summaryrefslogtreecommitdiff
diff options
context:
space:
mode:
-rw-r--r--39442-0.txt400
-rw-r--r--39442-0.zipbin360908 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--39442-8.txt21310
-rw-r--r--39442-8.zipbin357781 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--39442-h.zipbin2251861 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--39442-h/39442-h.htm (renamed from 39442-h/39442-h.html)375
-rw-r--r--39442-rst.zipbin2219567 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--39442-rst/39442-rst.rst21165
-rw-r--r--39442-rst/images/again_brahma_purusha.pngbin1126 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--39442-rst/images/bhagaf004.jpgbin15375 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--39442-rst/images/bhagap011.pngbin43568 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--39442-rst/images/bhagap013.pngbin26818 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--39442-rst/images/bhagap018.pngbin1678 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--39442-rst/images/bhagap021.pngbin705 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--39442-rst/images/bhagap048.pngbin19007 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--39442-rst/images/bhagap049.pngbin26755 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--39442-rst/images/bhagap050.pngbin24773 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--39442-rst/images/bhagap051.pngbin19499 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--39442-rst/images/bhagap052.pngbin13343 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--39442-rst/images/bhagap053.pngbin24428 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--39442-rst/images/bhagap054.pngbin26150 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--39442-rst/images/bhagap055.pngbin38869 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--39442-rst/images/bhagap056.pngbin15337 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--39442-rst/images/bhagap057.pngbin18557 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--39442-rst/images/bhagap058.pngbin38706 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--39442-rst/images/bhagap059.pngbin31238 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--39442-rst/images/bhagap060.pngbin35959 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--39442-rst/images/bhagap061.pngbin36513 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--39442-rst/images/bhagap099.pngbin16829 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--39442-rst/images/bhagap100.pngbin49705 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--39442-rst/images/bhagap101.pngbin23170 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--39442-rst/images/bhagap102.pngbin10952 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--39442-rst/images/bhagap113.pngbin39970 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--39442-rst/images/bhagap125.pngbin14224 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--39442-rst/images/bhagap128.pngbin46223 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--39442-rst/images/bhagap131.pngbin35462 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--39442-rst/images/bhagap139.pngbin42776 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--39442-rst/images/bhagap147.pngbin27573 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--39442-rst/images/bhagap186.pngbin34244 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--39442-rst/images/bhagap187.pngbin21153 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--39442-rst/images/bhagap188.pngbin12409 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--39442-rst/images/bhagap192.pngbin4451 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--39442-rst/images/bhagap193.pngbin33570 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--39442-rst/images/bhagap195.pngbin11920 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--39442-rst/images/bhagap196.pngbin4166 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--39442-rst/images/bhagap197.pngbin9544 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--39442-rst/images/bhagap198.pngbin3409 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--39442-rst/images/bhagap199.pngbin37333 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--39442-rst/images/bhagap200.pngbin28178 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--39442-rst/images/bhagap201.pngbin35139 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--39442-rst/images/bhagap202.pngbin20929 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--39442-rst/images/bhagap204.pngbin8379 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--39442-rst/images/bhagap205.pngbin12161 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--39442-rst/images/bhagap207.pngbin41445 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--39442-rst/images/bhagap208.pngbin6482 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--39442-rst/images/bhagap209.pngbin29441 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--39442-rst/images/bhagap210.pngbin105825 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--39442-rst/images/bhagap211.pngbin40213 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--39442-rst/images/bhagap212.pngbin36968 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--39442-rst/images/bhagap213.pngbin37041 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--39442-rst/images/bhagap215.pngbin40654 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--39442-rst/images/bhagap216.pngbin33869 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--39442-rst/images/bhagap217.pngbin22821 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--39442-rst/images/bhagap218.pngbin30738 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--39442-rst/images/bhagap219.pngbin33807 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--39442-rst/images/bhagap220.pngbin30290 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--39442-rst/images/bhagap221.pngbin32522 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--39442-rst/images/bhagap222.pngbin39696 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--39442-rst/images/bhagap223.pngbin42655 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--39442-rst/images/bhagap224.pngbin26253 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--39442-rst/images/bhagap225.pngbin45627 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--39442-rst/images/bhagap226.pngbin44521 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--39442-rst/images/bhagap419.pngbin21473 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--39442-rst/images/bhagap_cover.jpgbin98148 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--39442-rst/images/it_is_this_prana.pngbin1116 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--39442-rst/images/they_are_the_five.pngbin858 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--39442.txt21310
-rw-r--r--39442.zipbin354827 -> 0 bytes
78 files changed, 4 insertions, 64556 deletions
diff --git a/39442-0.txt b/39442-0.txt
index a6e51d5..1732f2a 100644
--- a/39442-0.txt
+++ b/39442-0.txt
@@ -1,32 +1,4 @@
- A Study of the Bhâgavata Purâna
-
- or Esoteric Hinduism
-
-
-
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with almost
-no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
-under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
-eBook or online at http://www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-
-Title: A Study of the Bhâgavata Purâna or Esoteric Hinduism
-
-Author: Purnendu Narayana Sinha
-
-Release Date: April 12, 2012 [EBook #39442]
-
-Language: English
-
-Character set encoding: UTF-8
-
-
-*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK STUDY OF THE BHÂGAVATA PURÂNA
-***
-
-
-
+*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK 39442 ***
Produced by Bhakta Jim.
@@ -20927,372 +20899,4 @@ Atyantika Pralaya.
*PEACE BE TO ALL.*
-*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK STUDY OF THE BHÂGAVATA PURÂNA
-***
-
-
-
-
-A Word from Project Gutenberg
-
-
-We will update this book if we find any errors.
-
-This book can be found under: http://www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/39442
-
-Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no one
-owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation (and
-you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without permission
-and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules, set forth in the
-General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to copying and
-distributing Project Gutenberg™ electronic works to protect the Project
-Gutenberg™ concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered
-trademark, and may not be used if you charge for the eBooks, unless you
-receive specific permission. If you do not charge anything for copies of
-this eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You may use this
-eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative works,
-reports, performances and research. They may be modified and printed and
-given away – you may do practically _anything_ with public domain
-eBooks. Redistribution is subject to the trademark license, especially
-commercial redistribution.
-
-
-
-The Full Project Gutenberg License
-
-
-_Please read this before you distribute or use this work._
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg™ mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work (or
-any other work associated in any way with the phrase “Project
-Gutenberg”), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project
-Gutenberg™ License available with this file or online at
-http://www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use & Redistributing Project Gutenberg™
-electronic works
-
-
-*1.A.* By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg™
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all the
-terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy all
-copies of Project Gutenberg™ electronic works in your possession. If you
-paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project Gutenberg™
-electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the terms of this
-agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or entity to whom you
-paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
-
-*1.B.* “Project Gutenberg” is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few things
-that you can do with most Project Gutenberg™ electronic works even
-without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See paragraph
-1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project Gutenberg™
-electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement and help
-preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg™ electronic works. See
-paragraph 1.E below.
-
-*1.C.* The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation (“the
-Foundation” or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of
-Project Gutenberg™ electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in
-the collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an
-individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are
-located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you
-from copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating
-derivative works based on the work as long as all references to Project
-Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the
-Project Gutenberg™ mission of promoting free access to electronic works
-by freely sharing Project Gutenberg™ works in compliance with the terms
-of this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg™ name associated
-with the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by
-keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project
-Gutenberg™ License when you share it without charge with others.
-
-*1.D.* The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in
-a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check
-the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement
-before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or
-creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project
-Gutenberg™ work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning the
-copyright status of any work in any country outside the United States.
-
-*1.E.* Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-*1.E.1.* The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg™ License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg™ work (any work on
-which the phrase “Project Gutenberg” appears, or with which the phrase
-“Project Gutenberg” is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed,
-viewed, copied or distributed:
-
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
- almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away
- or re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License
- included with this eBook or online at http://www.gutenberg.org
-
-*1.E.2.* If an individual Project Gutenberg™ electronic work is derived
-from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is
-posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied
-and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees
-or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work with
-the phrase “Project Gutenberg” associated with or appearing on the work,
-you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through
-1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project
-Gutenberg™ trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-*1.E.3.* If an individual Project Gutenberg™ electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional
-terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked
-to the Project Gutenberg™ License for all works posted with the
-permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work.
-
-*1.E.4.* Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg™
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg™.
-
-*1.E.5.* Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg™ License.
-
-*1.E.6.* You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
-word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or
-distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg™ work in a format other than
-“Plain Vanilla ASCII” or other format used in the official version
-posted on the official Project Gutenberg™ web site
-(http://www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or
-expense to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a
-means of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original
-“Plain Vanilla ASCII” or other form. Any alternate format must include
-the full Project Gutenberg™ License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-*1.E.7.* Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg™ works unless
-you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-*1.E.8.* You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg™ electronic works provided
-that
-
- - You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg™ works calculated using the method you
- already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed to
- the owner of the Project Gutenberg™ trademark, but he has agreed to
- donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid within 60
- days following each date on which you prepare (or are legally
- required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty payments
- should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in Section 4,
- “Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
- Archive Foundation.”
-
- - You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg™ License.
- You must require such a user to return or destroy all copies of the
- works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue all use of and
- all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg™ works.
-
- - You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
-
- - You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg™ works.
-
-
-*1.E.9.* If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg™
-electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set forth
-in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from both the
-Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael Hart, the
-owner of the Project Gutenberg™ trademark. Contact the Foundation as set
-forth in Section 3. below.
-
-*1.F.*
-
-*1.F.1.* Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg™ collection.
-Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg™ electronic works, and the
-medium on which they may be stored, may contain “Defects,” such as, but
-not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or corrupt data, transcription
-errors, a copyright or other intellectual property infringement, a
-defective or damaged disk or other medium, a computer virus, or computer
-codes that damage or cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-*1.F.2.* LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES – Except for the “Right
-of Replacement or Refund” described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg™ trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg™ electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all liability
-to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal fees. YOU AGREE
-THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT LIABILITY, BREACH OF
-WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3.
-YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR
-UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT,
-INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE
-NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH DAMAGE.
-
-*1.F.3.* LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND – If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with
-your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with
-the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a
-refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity
-providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to
-receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy
-is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further
-opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-*1.F.4.* Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you ‘AS-IS,’ WITH NO OTHER
-WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO
-WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTIBILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-*1.F.5.* Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages.
-If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the
-law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be
-interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by
-the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any
-provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions.
-
-*1.F.6.* INDEMNITY – You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg™ electronic works in accordance
-with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
-promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg™ electronic works,
-harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees,
-that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do
-or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg™
-work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any
-Project Gutenberg™ work, and (c) any Defect you cause.
-
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg™
-
-
-Project Gutenberg™ is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers
-including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists
-because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from
-people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need, is critical to reaching Project Gutenberg™’s goals
-and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg™ collection will remain freely
-available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure and
-permanent future for Project Gutenberg™ and future generations. To learn
-more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and how
-your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4 and the
-Foundation web page at http://www.pglaf.org .
-
-
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
-Foundation
-
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the state
-of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal Revenue
-Service. The Foundation’s EIN or federal tax identification number is
-64-6221541. Its 501(c)(3) letter is posted at
-http://www.gutenberg.org/fundraising/pglaf . Contributions to the
-Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the
-full extent permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state’s laws.
-
-The Foundation’s principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr.
-S. Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered
-throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at 809
-North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887, email
-business@pglaf.org. Email contact links and up to date contact
-information can be found at the Foundation’s web site and official page
-at http://www.pglaf.org
-
-For additional contact information:
-
- Dr. Gregory B. Newby
- Chief Executive and Director
- gbnewby@pglaf.org
-
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation
-
-
-Project Gutenberg™ depends upon and cannot survive without wide spread
-public support and donations to carry out its mission of increasing the
-number of public domain and licensed works that can be freely
-distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest array of
-equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations ($1 to
-$5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt status with
-the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations where
-we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular state
-visit http://www.gutenberg.org/fundraising/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make any
-statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from outside
-the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other ways
-including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To donate,
-please visit: http://www.gutenberg.org/fundraising/donate
-
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg™ electronic
-works.
-
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart is the originator of the Project Gutenberg™
-concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared
-with anyone. For thirty years, he produced and distributed Project
-Gutenberg™ eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg™ eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S. unless
-a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily keep eBooks
-in compliance with any particular paper edition.
-
-Each eBook is in a subdirectory of the same number as the eBook’s eBook
-number, often in several formats including plain vanilla ASCII,
-compressed (zipped), HTML and others.
-
-Corrected _editions_ of our eBooks replace the old file and take over
-the old filename and etext number. The replaced older file is renamed.
-_Versions_ based on separate sources are treated as new eBooks receiving
-new filenames and etext numbers.
-
-Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:
-
- http://www.gutenberg.org
-
-This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg™, including
-how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
-Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to subscribe to
-our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
+*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK 39442 ***
diff --git a/39442-0.zip b/39442-0.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index 23ce1c9..0000000
--- a/39442-0.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/39442-8.txt b/39442-8.txt
deleted file mode 100644
index 7b2ee97..0000000
--- a/39442-8.txt
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,21310 +0,0 @@
- A Study of the Bhgavata Purna
-
- or Esoteric Hinduism
-
-
-
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with almost
-no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
-under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
-eBook or online at http://www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-
-Title: A Study of the Bhgavata Purna or Esoteric Hinduism
-
-Author: Purnendu Narayana Sinha
-
-Release Date: April 12, 2012 [EBook #39442]
-
-Language: English
-
-Character set encoding: ISO-8859-1
-
-
-*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK STUDY OF THE BHGAVATA PURNA
-***
-
-
-
-
-Produced by Bhakta Jim.
-
-This file was produced from page images at the Internet Archive.
-
-
-
-
-Transcriber's Note
-
-
-The original book was very badly proofread and was filled with errors,
-inconsistent accents, improper punctuation, etc. Also the typesetters
-were unable to properly accent the book. As an example, the letter is
-represented as when capitalized. The author probably wanted to use a
-macron instead of a circumflex or an accent to indicate a long syllable
-and was forced to settle for this mixture of circumflexes and accents
-instead. This etext will use the circumflex throughout and will attempt
-to accent words as consistently as possible.
-
-In the original book some family tree tables were turned sideways. For
-reading as an e-book, these trees have been modified to read left to
-right rather than top-down. All family trees have been done as ASCII
-art. I have included the original page images containing the family
-trees as well.
-
-The family tree tables in the book put female names in italics, but not
-consistently. Where possible I have followed this practice in the ASCII
-art version, but in many cases I have omitted the italics because it
-would throw off the alignment of the trees in the text version of the
-book. When in doubt consult the page images in the HTML version.
-
-
-
-
- A STUDY
-
- OF THE
-
- BHGAVATA PURNA
-
- OR
-
- ESOTERIC HINDUISM
-
- BY PURNENDU NARAYANA SINHA, M. A., B. L.
-
- BENARES:
-
- PRINTED BY FREEMAN & Co., LTD.,
-
- AT THE TARA PRINTING WORKS. 1901.
-
-
-
-
- To
-
- *ANNIE BESANT*
-
- THE BHGAVATA OF BHGAVATAS
-
- THESE PAGES ARE RESPECTFULLY DEDICATED
-
- BY
-
- HER MOST DEVOTED BROTHER.
-
-
-
-
-"Let him kiss me with the kisses of his mouth: for thy love is better
-than wine.
-
-"Because of the savour of thy good ointments thy name is as ointment
-poured forth, therefore do the virgins love thee.
-
-"Tell me, O thou whom my soul loveth, where thou feedest, where thou
-makest thy flock to rest at noon; for why should I be as one that
-turneth aside by the flocks of thy companions?
-
-"If thou know not, O thou fairest among women, go thy way forth by the
-footsteps of the flock, and feed thy kids beside the shepherds' tents."
-
-THE SONG OF SOLOMON.
-
-
-
-
-PREFACE.
-
-
-The Bhgavata is the most popular of all Purnas and it is held in the
-highest esteem by Vaishnavas in all parts of India. It was the most
-authoritative book with such religious teachers as Shri Chaitanya.
-Several commentaries have been written on this great work. It is however
-strange that there has been so much discussion about the authoritative
-character of the work. The readers are all familiar with that discussion
-and I need not refer to it further than to say that the discussion does
-not in any way affect the intrinsic merit of the book, and the verdict
-of the public is so certain in this respect that the book will continue
-to be the most popular of all Purnas, despite any thing that may be
-said as to its authorship or the period of its appearance.
-
-The Padma Purna devotes a chapter to the worship of this Purna and
-calls it the most exalted of all the Purnas and the book is actually
-worshipped in many Hindu houses. The Purna is recited all over India by
-learned Pandits and Sdhus and its subject matter is familiar to every
-Hindu.
-
-PROFESSOR WILSON SAYS: -- "Bhgavata is a work of great celebrity in
-India and exercises a more direct and powerful influence upon the
-opinions and feelings of the people than perhaps any other of the
-Purnas. It is placed fifth in all the lists but the Padma Purna ranks
-it as the eighteenth, as the extracted substance of all the rest.
-According to the usual specification it consists of eighteen thousand
-slokas, distributed amongst three hundred and thirty-two chapters
-divided into twelve Skandhas or books. It is named Bhgavata from its
-being dedicated to the glorification of Bhagavat or Vishnu."
-
-Referring to the Tenth Skandha, Professor Wilson says "The tenth book is
-the characteristic part of the Purna, and the portion upon which its
-popularity is founded. It has been translated into, perhaps, all the
-languages in India, and is a favourite work with all descriptions of
-people."
-
-Much as the book commands the respect of the Hindus, it has brought upon
-itself the ridicule and sarcasm of those that attack Hinduism. It is the
-Tenth Skandha which has given the greatest handle to all adverse
-criticism and it is the one Skandha in the whole book which is so little
-understood by foreigners, unacquainted with the genius of the Hindu
-religion, particularly with its love aspect which is the peculium of all
-real devotees in every great religion. But the modern professors of
-great religions, being lost in their material surroundings, have
-entirely lost sight of that aspect. The songs of Solomon will stand out
-in all ages as an expression of enthusiastic and rapturous love of the
-human soul for the Divine Lord, whether the Christians of the modern day
-understand them or not. The Divvans and Sufis bore the highest love to
-their divine Lover, whether or not the Mohammedans of the present day
-follow the outpourings of their heart.
-
-Love in religion is a Science. It is the natural outcome of the human
-soul, when it is freed from impurities and cured of distractions.
-
-All religions speak of the purity of the mind, and they speak also of
-devotion to God or shvara. But no religion other than Hinduism treats
-of the gradual development of the mind as a Science, treats of its
-purification and then of its natural attraction for shvara and the
-final assimilation of human life to Isvaric life as the law of the
-Universe. And no book in Hinduism deals with the subject so
-systematically specially with reference to the history of the Universe,
-as the Bhgavata Purna does. I have tried to understand the book myself
-as an earnest student, with the light afforded by the book itself. I
-have been greatly helped in the understanding of of the book by the
-commentary of Sridhara Svmi which is by common consent the most
-authoritative of all the commentaries on the Bhgavata Purna. Once a
-Pandita prided himself before Sri Chaitanya on his having put an
-interpretation upon a certain sloka of the Purna different from that of
-Sridhara Svmi. Now "Svmi" is the designation of a learned Sanyassi,
-such as Sridhara Svmi was and it also means a husband. Sri Chaitanya
-remarked "one that does not follow the Svmi is unchaste." Such was the
-high opinion which the great Teacher held regarding Sridhara's
-commentary.
-
-I have purposely avoided making any reference to the commentaries made
-by the followers of Sr Chaitanya as I intend to study them separately
-along with the teachings of his school.
-
-The method of treatment followed in this study will speak for itself. I
-have separated the text from my own observations except in the
-introductory chapter and in the reference to Sukadeva in the chapter on
-Virt Purusha, and one can follow the text itself, without accepting any
-of my own views. I believe I have faithfully reproduced the text in its
-essential features, I have omitted unimportant details, poetical
-descriptions, prayers and adorations some of them most beautiful and
-sublime -- and I have also omitted the introduction by Suta and his
-concluding words. Suta related the Purna to Rishi Sounaka and others as
-he heard it from Sukadeva.
-
-The proofs have passed through different hands and the transliteration
-of Sanskrit words has been differently made. For instance [Sanskrit
-Letter] has been rendered as s, s, _s_ and sh. Though I would prefer s,
-the dash has been generally omitted, for the convenience of the printer.
-There have been also several mistakes in names.
-
-My best thanks are due to the several gentlemen, who have gone through
-the proofs and specially to my friend Mr. Bertram Keightley M, A., who
-has gone through nearly the whole of the manuscripts.
-
-
-
-
-Table of Contents
-
-
- PREFACE.
- SKANDHA I.
- THE IDEAL OF BHGAVATA PURNA: A DISCOURSE BETWEEN VYSA AND
- NRADA.
- ACCOUNT OF NARADA.
- VIRAT PURUSHA.
- SKANDHA II.
- THE PURUSHA IN ALL HEARTS.
- THE DEATH OF THE YOGI AND AFTER.
- WHAT MEN ARE TO DO AND WHAT THEY ARE NOT TO DO.
- THE BHAGVATA PURNA AS RELATED BY BRAHM TO NRADA.
- I. THE CREATION.
- II. PRESERVATION BY LIL AVATRAS.
- THOUGHTS ON THE ABOVE.
- THE BHGAVATA PURNA AND ITS PARTS.
- SKANDHA III.
- BHGAVATA AS RELATED BY MAITREYA TO VIDURA.
- I.--THE CREATION
- THOUGHTS ON THE ABOVE
- II. -- VASUDEVA AND SANKARSHANA.
- III. -- THE CREATION BY BRAHMA.
- THOUGHTS ON THE ABOVE.
- IV. DIVISIONS OF KLA.
- V.-THE CREATION BY BRAHMA (_Continued_) III. 12.
- PRE-MANVANTARIC CREATION.
- THE FIRST OR THE SVAYAMBHUVA MANVANTARA.
- VI. BHR AND VARAHA
- THOUGHTS ON THE ABOVE.
- VII. THE STORY OF HIRANYKSHA.
- THOUGHTS ON HIRANYKSHA.
- VIII. DEVA AND DEVA-YONI CREATION.
- IX. THE PROGENY OF KARDAMA.
- THOUGHTS ON KARDAMA.
- X. KAPILA'S INSTRUCTION TO HIS MOTHER DEVAHTI.
- SKANDHA IV.
- THE GENEALOGY OF MANU AND THE RISHIS.
- GENERAL REMARKS ON THE TABLES.
- TABLE A.
- TABLE B.
- TABLE C.
- TABLE D.
- TABLE E.
- TABLE F.
- TABLE G.
- TABLE H.
- TABLE I.
- TABLE J.
- TABLE K.
- TABLE L.
- THE QUARREL BETWEEN SIVA AND DAKSHA.
- THOUGHTS ON THE ABOVE.
- TABLE M.
- TABLE N.
- I. THE STORY OF DHRUVA.
- THOUGHTS ON THE ABOVE.
- II. THE STORY OF PRITHU.
- THOUGHT ON THE ABOVE.
- III. THE STORY OF THE PRACHINA BARHIS OR BARHISHAD.
- IV. THE ALLEGORY OF PURANJANA.
- V. THE STORY OF THE PRACHETAS BROTHERS.
- THOUGHTS ON THE ABOVE.
- SKANDHA V.
- TABLE V. PRIYAVRATA.
- THOUGHTS ON THE LINE OF PRIYA VRATA.
- THE EARTH CHAIN, BHUVANA KOSHA.
- ILAVRITA IS THE CENTRAL VARSHA.
- THE GANGES.
- THE MYSTERIES OF THE VARSHAS.
- THE DVIPAS.
- SVAR AND BHUVAR.
- THE SUN.
- THE PLANETS AND STARS.
- THE PTLAS
- ANANTA.
- THE NARAKAS.
- SKANDHA VI.
- THE STORY OF AJMILA
- THE PROGENY OF DAKSHA.
- THE PROGENY OF DHARMA.
- THE PROGENY OF BHUTA.
- THE PROGENY OF ANGIRASA.
- THE PROGENY OF KRISASVA.
- THE PROGENY OF TARKSHA.
- THE PROGENY OF KASYAPA
- THE STORY OF VIVSVARPA.
- THE STORY OF VRITRU.
- THE STORY OF CHITRAKETU.
- THE DAITYAS.
- THE MARUTS.
- SKANDHA VII.
- THE MYSTERIES ABOUT THE SURAS AND THE ASURAS.
- THOUGHTS ON THE ABOVE.
- I. _Hiranyksha and Hiranyakasipu._
- II. _Rvana and Kumbhakarna._
- THE STORY OF HIRANYAKASIPU.
- HIRANYAKASIPU AND PRAHLDA.
- THE PRAYER OF PRAHLDA
- VARNA AND ASHRAMA.
- SKANDHA VIII.
- YAJNA.
- THE SECOND MANVANTARA.
- THE THIRD MANVANTARA.
- THE FOURTH MANVANTARA.
- THE STORY OF THE ELEPHANT KING.
- THE FIFTH MANVANTARA.
- THE SIXTH MANVANTARA.
- THE CHURNING OF THE OCEAN.
- THOUGHTS ON THE ABOVE.
- THE SEVENTH MANVANTARA.
- THE EIGHTH MANVANTARA.
- THE NINTH MANVANTARA.
- THE TENTH MANVANTARA.
- THE ELEVENTH MANVANTARA.
- THE TWELFTH MANVANTARA.
- THE THIRTEENTH MANVANTARA.
- THE FOURTEENTH MANVANTARA.
- THE ADMINISTRATION OF A MANVANTARA
- THE STORY OF BALI.
- THOUGHTS ON THE ABOVE.
- THE MATSYA AVATARA.
- SKANDHA IX.
- THE VAIVASVATA MANVANTARA.
- SUDYUMNA.
- IKSHVKU BROTHERS.
- THE LUNAR DYNASTY.
- THE LUNAR DYNASTY (Continued).
- THOUGHTS ON THE VAIVASVATA MANVANTARA.
- THE TENTH SKANDHA.
- VRINDVANA LIL
- THE BIRTH OF SRI KRISHNA.
- COUNSEL WITH THE DAITYAS.
- NANDA AND VASUDEVA.
- PUTAN
- THE UPTURNING OF THE CART.
- TRINAVARTA OR THE WHIRLWIND.
- THE NAMES "KRISHNA" AND "RAMA."
- PRANKS OF THE BOY.
- THE TYING.
- THE ARJUNA TREES.
- THE FRUIT SELLER.
- VRINDAVANA.
- VATSA OR THE CALF.
- BAKA OR THE CRANE.
- AGHA OR THE SERPENT.
- BRAHMA AND KRISHNA.
- DHENUKA.
- THE KLIYA SERPENT AND THE FIRE.
- PRALAMBA.
- THE FOREST CONFLAGRATION.
- THE RAINY SEASON.
- THE AUTUMN.
- SRI KRISHNA AND THE GOPIS.
- THE STEALING OF CLOTHES.
- KRISHNA AND VEDIC YAJNA (SUMMER AGAIN.)
- INDRA AND THE RAISING OF GO-VARDHANA. THE INSTALLATION.
- KRISHNA AND VARUNA, KRISHNA AND THE GOPAS.
- THE FIVE CHAPTERS ON RSA
- THE RSA.
- SUDARSANA.
- SANKHA CHDA.
- THE SEPARATION SONG OF THE GOPIS.
- ARISHTA.
- NRADA AND KANSA.
- KESI.
- VYOMA.
- AKRRA.
- MATHUR.
- THE WRESTLING.
- THE DEATH OF KANSA.
- THE THREAD CEREMONY AND BRAHMACHARYA.
- UDDHAVA AND VRAJA.
- THOUGHTS ON THE VRINDVANA LIL.
- THE RSA.
- MATHUR LIL
- THE HUNCH-BACKED GIRL AND THE PNDAVAS.
- JARA SANDHA, YAVANA AND DVARAKA.
- MUCHUKUNDA
- DVARAKA LIL.
- RUKMINI.
- PRADYUMNA.
- THE JEWEL SYAMANTAKA, JAMBAVATI AND SATYABHAMA.
- SYAMANTAKA, AKRURA, KRITAVARMAN AND SATA DHANU:
- THE OTHER WIVES OF SRI KRISHNA.
- KRISHNA AND RUKMINI.
- THE SONS OF KRISHNA.
- THE DEATH OF RUKMIN.
- BANA.
- NRIGA.
- BALARMA AND THE DRAWING OF THE YAMUN.
- POUNDRAKA AND THE KING OF KS (BENARES).
- DVI-VID (MONKEY).
- SMBA, LAKSHAN AND BALARMA.
- NARADA AND THE WIVES OF SRI KRISHNA.
- THE RAJA SUYA AND JARASANDHA.
- SISUPLA.
- THE SLIGHT OF DURYODHANA.
- SLVA.
- DANTA VAKRA AND VIDURATHA.
- BALARMA AND THE DEATH OF ROMAHARSHANA.
- SRDMAN.
- THE MEETING AT KURUKSHETRA.
- VASUDEVA, DEVAKI, AND THEIR DEAD SONS.
- ARJUNA AND SUBHADR
- SRUTADEVA AND BAHULSVA.
- THE PRAYER TO BRAHMAN BY THE SRUTIS.
- THE RESTORATION OF BRAHMAN BOYS TO LIFE.
- THE LINE OF KRISHNA.
- THOUGHTS ON THE MATHUR LIL.
- THOUGHTS ON THE DVRAK
- THE WIVES.
- THE ELEVENTH SKANDHA
- THE MUSHALA. XI. I.
- THE BHGAVAT PATH.
- KRISHNA AND UDDHAVA.
- SELF-INSTRUCTION.
- TM A REFUTATION OF THE SCHOOL OF JAIMINI.
- BONDAGE AND LIBERATION.
- SDHU AND BHAKTI.
- WHY GIVE UP ALL KARMA
- THE GUNAS.
- HOW TO WITHDRAW FROM THE OBJECTS OF THE SENSES.
- BHAKTI YOGA.
- MEDITATION.
- THE SIDDHIS
- THE VIBHTIS OR POWERS OF THE LORD.
- VARNA AND ASRAMA RULES.
- WHAT ONE IS TO DO FOR MOKSHA.
- THE SADHANAS OR EXPEDIENTS.
- THE THREE PATHS: KARMA, JNNA AND BHAKTI.
- GUNA AND DOSHA OR RIGHT AND WRONG
- THE TATVAS.
- PRAKRITI AND PURUSHA.
- RE-INCARNATION.
- FORBEARANCE.
- SANKHYA.
- SATVA RAJAS AND TAMAS.
- COMPANY.
- KRIYA YOGA AND IDOL WORSHIP.
- JNNA YOGA.
- BHAKTI YOGA.
- THE END.
- THE TWELFTH SKANDHA.
- PRALAYA.
-
-
-
-
-SKANDHA I.
-
-
-
-THE IDEAL OF BHGAVATA PURNA: A DISCOURSE BETWEEN VYSA AND NRADA.
-
-
-"I have duly respected the Vedas, the teachers and the sacrificial fire,
-I have put the sense of all the Vedas into the Mahbhrata and have made
-their sacred lore accessible to all classes of men. I have done all
-this, nay, much more. Still I think my work is not fully done." So
-thought Veda Vysa, the adept author of the Kali Yuga, while meditating
-on the sacred banks of the Sarasvati, and his heart became heavy with
-something, he knew not what. At this time Nrada appeared before him --
-Nrada, who knew all that transpired in the Trilok and who could enter
-into the hearts of all beings. "Thou hast fully known," said Nrada,
-"all that is knowable, for thou hast written the excellent Mahbhrata,
-which leaves nothing unsaid. How is it then thou feelest dispirited as
-if thy object were not gained?" What could Vysa say in reply; he only
-inquired from the seer Nrada the cause of his uneasiness.
-
-Nrada entered into a free criticism of the Bhagavat Git, the
-philosophical portion of the Mahbhrata, pointed out its shortcomings
-and suggested to Vysa what next to do. A few remarks will be necessary
-to understand all this.
-
-There are seven planes Bhr, Bhuvar, Svar, Mahar, Jana, Tapas and Satya.
-
-Bhr is the terrestrial plane.
-
-Bhuvar is the astral plane.
-
-Svar is the plane of Kma and desires.
-
-These three planes, collectively known as Trilok, are the planes of
-personality. Kma is the guiding principle of existence in Trilok, and
-a recurrence of births and re-births its main characteristic. With every
-Night of Brahm, this triple plane comes to an end, transferring its
-energies to the next higher plane, and is re-born with every Day of
-Brahm. Mahar is intermediate between Trilok and the three higher Lokas
-of Universality.
-
-The Vedic school laid great stress on communion with the Devas of Svar
-Loka or Svarga or Indra Loka, and this was pre-eminently known as Vedic
-Yajna. The performance of Vedic Yajna led only to a prolonged
-gratification of kma in Svar Loka. But however long the period might
-be, it was limited by the magnitude of the force (Aprva) which buoyed
-up the individuality in the Svar Loka. As the Git says, when the merits
-are exhausted the observer of Vedic Dharma enters again into the
-transitory plane. The course of births and re-births is then set up
-anew, with constant transformations and with all the miseries of
-existence conditioned by personality.
-
-This was not Mukti or liberation. The followers of the post-vedic or
-Upanishad school contended that liberation lay in crossing the triple
-plane of individuality to the higher cosmic planes of universality. When
-an individual reaches the higher planes, he does not again become
-subject to transformations, and to the constant recurrence of births and
-re-births. There is one continued life, one continued existence in the
-higher planes, till the end of cosmos or the Life of Brahm. This life
-is not measured by personalities but is the cosmical life, and the
-individuality becomes a cosmical entity. Further there is life also
-beyond the cosmos, in the highest plane, the abode of the Supreme.
-
-The Git only incidentally describes the highest plane in the following
-sloka:
-
-"That is my supreme abode, by reaching which (Jivas) do not recur (to
-fresh births). Not the Sun, not the Moon, not even fire illumines that."
--- XV. 6.
-
-Krishna also refers to that plane in VIII. 20 and XV. 4. 5.
-
-The Git lays down Nishkma Karma, or the unselfish performance of the
-duties of life (Sva-dharma) as the first step towards reaching the
-higher planes. The sense of separateness is killed by Nishkma Karma.
-Then the Git takes the disciple to Upsan or communion with the
-Purusha of the highest plane, but scarcely a glimpse is given of that
-plane and its surroundings. The Mahbhrata does not throw any light on
-the dwellers of the higher planes, nor does it give any details of those
-planes. Without any distinct prospect of trans-Trilok life, one is
-asked to adhere to the duties appertaining to one's own sphere of life
-(Sva-dharma) and to perform those duties unselfishly. However transitory
-the things of Trilok may be, there are attractions enough for the frail
-sons of Manu, abounding in passions and desires. What can then bind a
-man to the higher planes and the highest Pursha of those planes or
-Bhagavn? It is only a description of the grandeur and the glory of
-those planes and of Bhagavn. Such description begets Bhakti or holy
-attachment, and it is this Bhakti which sets up a real communion with
-Bhagavn. Frail as man is, the mere performance of duties makes him
-attached to them, unless he is bound to the higher planes by the tie of
-holy attachment. The Git is however silent as to the attractions of the
-higher planes and of Bhagavn. This was the defect pointed out by
-Nrada.
-
-"O thou great Muni, as thou hast treated of Dharma and of other things,
-so thou hast not recited the glory of Vsudeva". -- I. 5. 9.
-
-"This universe is also an aspect of Bhagavn, for its creation,
-preservation and end proceed from Him. Thou knowest all this thyself.
-But thou hast shown to others only a portion of this truth." -- I. 5.
-20.
-
-"Salutations to Thee, Bhagavn, let me meditate on Vsudeva. Salutations
-to Pradyumna, Aniruddha and to Sankarshana. He who, by naming these
-_mrtis_ in the _mrtiless_, whose only _mrti_ is mantra, makes
-offerings to Yajna Purusha, is the complete seer." -- I. 5. 37-38. A
-mystery lies veiled in this Sloka.
-
-But who is this Nrada? Why should we accept his authority? Nrada was
-therefore careful to give his own account, elaborated by the enquiries
-of Vysa. All students of occultism will do well to read carefully this
-account which forms a fitting preliminary to the Bhgavata.
-
-
-
-ACCOUNT OF NARADA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA I. CHAP. 5 & 6.*
-
-"In the previous Kalpa, in my former birth, I was born of a certain
-maid-servant of Vedic Rishis. Certain Yogis had collected at a place to
-pass the rainy season and I was engaged as a boy to serve them. Seeing
-me void of all fickleness as a boy and self-controlled, the Munis, who
-looked on all with equal eyes, were kind to me, especially as I gave up
-play, followed them, served them and talked little. With the permission
-of the regenerated I at one time partook of the remnants of their meal
-and the impurities of my mind were all removed. When thus my mind became
-pure, my inclination grew towards their Dharma. By their favor I heard
-them sing the beautiful stories of Krishna. Hearing those stories every
-day with faith, I gained holy love for Krishna. Through that love my
-mind became fixed in Him and I came to perceive my Sthla and Skshma
-bodies as only false reflections of the real Self or Brahm. The Bhakti
-that grew up in me destroyed my Rajas and Tamas. Then when the kind
-Rishis were about to leave the place, they imparted to me the most
-occult knowledge which had been given to them by Bhagavn himself.
-Through that knowledge I have known the My of Bhagavn. It is by that
-knowledge that one reaches the plane of Bhagavn. As I cultivated this
-occult knowledge, Bhagavn appeared Himself and gave me knowledge and
-powers direct."
-
-[Sridhara Svmi, the commentator of Bhgavata Purna notes the following
-points in the above story (1) Sev, _i.e._, service of and attendance on
-Mahtms, (2) their krip or favor, (3) trust in their Dharma, (4)
-hearing the stories of Bhagavn, (5) attachment to Bhagavn, (6)
-knowledge of Self by the discrimination of the Sthla and the Skshma
-body, (7) firm Bhakti, (8) knowledge of the reality of Bhagavn, (9) at
-the last the appearance of omniscience and other powers through the
-favor of Bhagavn.]
-
-What followed then, inquired Vysa? Nrada continued:
-
-"Sometime after my teachers, the Bhikshus, had gone away, my mother died
-of snake-bite. I deemed that an act of God and went towards the North.
-After crossing several forests, rivers and mountains, I at last reached
-a solitary forest and there sat under a pipal tree. As directed by my
-teachers, I meditated on self in self through self. My mind had been
-completely conquered by Bhakti. As I was devotedly meditating on the
-lotus feet of Bhagavn with tear-drops in my eyes, Hari gradually
-appeared in my heart. O Muni, the hairs of my body stood on end through
-exuberance of holy love, I was completely lost in joy and knew not
-either self or any other. The indescribable shvara spoke thus in solemn
-words:
-
-"O thou that dost not deserve to see me in this life, I am difficult to
-be seen by imperfect Yogis, whose likes and dislikes have not been
-completely burnt up. I have shown myself to thee that thy Kma may all
-be centred in me. When I am the object of Kma, the Sdhu gives up all
-other desires. By prolonged service of Mahtms, thy mind is firmly
-fixed in me. Therefore shalt thou give up this faulty body and acquire
-my companionship. The mind fixed in me is never destroyed in creation or
-in pralaya, nor does the memory fail.'"
-
-"So saying shvara disappeared. In time, when I was drawn towards the
-pure body with which I was favored by Bhagavn, the body of my five
-Bhtas fell down on the extinction of my Prrabdha Karma. When the Kalpa
-came to an end my new body was indrawn by the breath of Brahm who was
-going to sleep. After one thousand Yuga Cycles, when Brahm awoke and
-desired to create, I, Marichi, and other Rishis came out. Since then I
-have invariably observed Brahmcharya and through the favor of Vishnu
-have been travelling all over Trilok, both inside and outside, my
-passage being wholly unobstructed. The Devas gave me this Vin which is
-adorned with Svara-Brahm. By playing upon this Vin I send forth songs
-of Hari all round. These songs are the only means of crossing the ocean
-of recurring lives."
-
-[This is the mystery of Nrada as related in the Purnas. Nrada is the
-repository of occult knowledge from the previous Kalpa. The first and
-foremost adept of this Kalpa, his mission is to spread occult knowledge,
-by unceasingly playing on the seven musical notes. He is ever watchful
-and always bides his time in all cyclic changes. He is the only Rishi of
-whom the Vina is a constant accompaniment, as it is of the goddess
-Sarasvati. His sphere of action is Trilok, and the dwellers of Bhr,
-Bhuvar, and Svar alike respect him. He is the universal counsellor, even
-of the highest Devas and of the highest Rishis. His constant mission is
-the good of the Universe. One thing is said of him, that he sometimes
-serves his purpose by setting one against another and amongst the
-ignorant his name is a bye-word for quarrel. However that be, the
-greatest good of the Universe in this Kalpa has been always done by him.
-It is under his inspiration, that Valmiki and Vysa wrote their most
-occult works, and his benign influence is observed in all universal
-changes for good. The Bhgavata recites his constant endeavours to do
-good and we shall consider them in detail hereafter.]
-
-
-
-VIRAT PURUSHA.
-
-
-*SK. I. CH. 18 & SK. II. CH. I.*
-
-Vysa drew upon his inspiration and wrote the Bhgavata. He taught this
-Purna to his son, the wonderful Suka. Suka did not marry, as Rishis in
-his time did. He left his home and roamed about the world at large,
-stark naked. The separation was painful to Vysa and he went out in
-search of his son. While he passed near a tank, the Apsarasas, who were
-freely indulging in play, hastily drew up their clothes, feeling
-ashamed. "Strange!" exclaimed Vysa, "I am old and covered. But when my
-young son, wholly uncovered, went this way, you remained unmoved." And
-the Deva-ladies replied, "Thy son knows not man and woman, but thou
-knowest." This exalted Suka was the worthy propounder of the Bhgavata
-Purna.
-
-Rj Parikshit, son of Abhimanyu and grandson of Arjuna, the successor
-of Rj Yudisthira on the throne of Hastinpura, forgot himself in a fit
-of anger and placed a dead serpent round the neck of a Rishi. For this
-he was cursed by the Rishi's son to meet with untimely death at the end
-of a week. The Rj became penitent and deemed the curse an act of God.
-He prepared himself for death and took up his abode on the sacred banks
-of the Ganges in company with all the Rishis. The Rj asked what a man
-on the point of death should do. The Rishis present could not give any
-satisfactory answer. At this time Suka appeared, followed by a host of
-boys, who took him to be a mad man. Suka was then only sixteen with long
-flowing hairs and well-built body, blooming with nature's beauty. All
-rose up as they saw the very young Rishi, and gave him the first seat.
-He related the Bhgavata Purna to Parikshit in seven days.
-
-The Rj repeated his question to Suka -- "What is a dying man,
-specially one who desires to attain Moksha, to do? What are the duties
-of men and what are they not to do?"
-
-Suka replied: -- "A man on the approach of death is to give up all
-fear of death and is to cut off all likes and dislikes by dispassion. He
-is to leave his house, bathe in pure water and duly make his sana in
-some solitary place. He is then to meditate on the three lettered
-Pranava with mind concentrated by Dhrna and Dhyna till he attains
-_samdhi_. If, however, his mind gets distracted by Rajas and Tamas, he
-is again and again to practise Dhrna."
-
-"What Dhrna is it that speedily brings on concentration and purity of
-mind?" was the next question.
-
-Suka replied: -- "Dhrna of the Sthla aspect of Bhagavna, by a
-fully controlled mind." He then went on dilating on the Sthla or
-Universe aspect, called Virt Purusha or Mahpurusha. The present, the
-past, the future is manifest in that aspect. The Virta Purusha is the
-soul of an Egg-like body with a seven-fold cover of earth, water, fire,
-air, kasa, Ahankra, and Mahat, respectively.
-
-Ptla is His feet, Rastala His heels, Mahtala His ankles, Taltala
-His legs, Sutala His knees, Vitala the lower portion of His thighs, and
-Atala the upper portion.
-
-Bhr Loka is His loins, Bhuvar Loka His navel, Svar Loka His breast,
-Mahar Loka His throat, Jana Loka His mouth, Tapas Loka His forehead, and
-Satya Loka is the head of the thousand-headed Virt Purusha. Indra and
-other Usra Devas (the world Usra meaning, literally, a ray of light) are
-his hands.
-
-The Dik or space gods are his ears. The twin gods Asvini Kumra are his
-nose.
-
-Agni is His mouth.
-
-The firmament is His eyes and the Sun-god His sight.
-
-Day and night are His eye-lashes.
-
-The graceful movement of His eye-brows is the abode of the Supreme.
-
-Water is His palate, taste His tongue.
-
-The Vedas are known as His Brahm-randhra.
-
-Yma is His tusk.
-
-The objects of affection are His teeth.
-
-His enchanting smile is My.
-
-The endless creation is His side-glance.
-
-His lower lip is shame, and the upper greed.
-
-Dharma is His breast. Adharma His back.
-
-Prajpati is His generative organ.
-
-The Mitr-Varuna gods are His sense of taste.
-
-The seas are His belly, the mountains His bony system and the rivers His
-veins and arteries.
-
-The trees are the hairs of the Universe-bodied.
-
-The powerful wind-god is His breath.
-
-Time is His movement.
-
-His play is the flow of Gunas.
-
-The clouds are His hairs.
-
-Twilight is His clothing.
-
-Prakriti is His heart.
-
-His manas is the moon, which is the source of all transformations.
-
-Mahat is His Chitta.
-
-Rudra is His Ahankra.
-
-Horses, mules, camels and elephants are His nails.
-
-All the other animals are His loins.
-
-The birds are His wonderful art.
-
-He is the abode of Manu, Buddhi and Man.
-
-Gandharva, Vidydhara, Chrana and Apsaras are His musical notes.
-
-The Asuras are His strength.
-
-The Brhmana is His mouth, the Kshatriya His hands, the Vaisya His
-thighs, and the black Sdra His feet.
-
-The Devas severally and collectively are His _havis_ or sacrificial
-ghee, and yajna is His karma.
-
-This is Virt Purusha. This is how the Universe-aspect of Purusha is
-realised in meditation, more as a means of concentration, than as the
-end. When the mind is sufficiently fixed by Dhrna or contemplation of
-Virt Purusha, it has next to meditate on the Purusha in the heart.
-
-
-
-
-SKANDHA II.
-
-
-
-THE PURUSHA IN ALL HEARTS.
-
-
-*SKANDHA II., CHAP. 2.*
-
-Some meditate within their own body on the Purusha of the size of
-_prdesa_ (the space of the thumb and forefinger) in the space covered
-by the heart, who dwells there. He has four hands containing Sankha
-(conch), chakra (a sharp circular missile), Gad (club) and Padma
-(lotus). His face is smiling, His eyes are as wide as lotus petals, and
-His cloth is yellow as the filament of the Kadamba flower. His armlets
-glitter with gems and gold. His crown and earrings sparkle with
-brilliant stones. Adepts in Yoga place His feet on the pericarp of the
-full blown lotus in the heart. With Him is Sr (Lakshm). The Kaustubha
-gem is on His neck. He is adorned with a garland of ever blooming wild
-flowers. His hair is curling and deep blue. His very look is full of
-kindness to all.
-
-As long as the mind is not fixed by Dhrna, meditate on this form of
-shvara, with the help of thy imagination. Concentrate your mind on one
-limb after another, beginning with the feet of Vishnu and ending with
-His smiling face. Try to grasp every limb in thought and then proceed to
-the next-higher. But as long as Bhakti or Devotion is not developed, do
-not fail to contemplate also on the Universe aspect of Purusha.
-
-
-
-THE DEATH OF THE YOGI AND AFTER.
-
-
-*SKANDHA II., CHAP. 2.*
-
-When all desires are controlled by meditation, and the Yogi is lost in
-the contemplation of Vishnu, he sits in proper posture, pressing his
-feet against the anus and perseveringly draws the vital air upwards to
-the six centres. He draws the air in the navel centre (Manipur) to the
-cardiac plexus, thence to the plexus beneath the throat (Visddha),
-thence gradually by intuition to the root of the palate. (Sridhara Svmi
-calls this last the higher part of Visddha chakra, and remarks that the
-vital air is not displaced from that position. This may be called the
-pharyngeal plexus.) Thence he takes the vital air to Ajna chakra, which
-is situated between the two eye-brows. Then he controls the seven holes
-(the ears, the eyes, the nostrils and the mouth). He then looks steadily
-for half a Muhurta, and if he has not a trace of desire left in him
-gives up the body and the Indriyas, passes out through the
-Brahm-randhra and attains the state of Vishnu.
-
-[It will be noticed above that six plexuses are mentioned other than the
-Sacral and the prostatic.
-
-In the death of the desireless Yogi, there is no record of thereafter,
-for nothing is known beyond our cosmos.]
-
-"But, O king," said Suka, "if the Yogi seeks for the highest cosmic
-state or for the roamings of aerial Siddhas over the whole of cosmos, in
-full control of the eight Siddhis, he will then take his Manas and
-Indriyas with him. It is said that these Masters of Yoga can move both
-inside and outside Trilok, for their Linga Sarira consists of the atoms
-of air. The state attained by those that acquire Samdhi by Upsana,
-Tapas and Yoga cannot be reached by Vedic Karma. In space when the Yogi
-moves towards the Brahm Loka or Satya Loka, he first goes by means of
-his Sushumn Ndi to Vaisvnara or the fire-god for the Sushumn by its
-light extends beyond the body. His impurities being all washed away, he
-goes upwards to the Sisumra Chakra of Hari (_i.e._, up to the highest
-point of Trilok, as will be explained afterwards). Then crossing that
-Chakra of Vishnu, which is the navel of the Universe, he reaches the
-Mahar Loka with his pure Linga Sarira. There the dwellers of Svarga
-cannot go. Mahar Loka is the abode of Brahmvids, where Bhrigu and other
-adepts who live for a whole Kalpa dwell.
-
-"The Yogi remains in Mahar Loka till the end of the Kalpa, when, seeing
-the Trilok burnt up by fire from the mouth of Ananta or Sankarshana,
-the fires reaching even Mahar Loka's he moves towards the abode of
-Paramesthi (Satya Loka or Brahm Loka). This highest Loka lasts for two
-Parrddhas and is adorned by the chariots of the kings of Siddhas. There
-is no sorrow in Brahm Loka, no infirmity, no death, no misery, no fear
-of any kind. But the Yogi suffers from mental pain caused by sympathy
-with those that suffer for their ignorance of the supreme state in the
-recurrence of births with their endless miseries.
-
-"There are three courses for those that go to Brahm Loka. Some by the
-excellence of their merits get responsible cosmical positions at the
-next Kalpa. Others remain in the Brahm Loka till the end of the cosmos
-or Brahmnda. The Upsakas of Bhagavn however may at their will pierce
-through the cosmos or Brahmnda and reach the trans-cosmic plane of
-Vishnu. The text goes on to say how this is done. The cosmos consists of
-seven Ptalas and seven Lokas, together forming the fourteen-fold
-Bhuvana, which extends over 50 Krores of Yojanas (1 Yojana = 8 miles).
-Surrounding this is a covering of the earthy principle, such as was not
-used up in the formation of the cosmos, extending over one krore of
-yojanas. (According to some this covering extends over 50 krores of
-yojanas.) The second cover is of water, extending over ten times as much
-space as earth, the third of fire, the fourth of air, the fifth of
-ksa, the sixth of Ahankra, the seventh of Mahat, each covering ten
-times as much space as the one preceding. The eighth cover is Prakriti,
-which is all pervading. The Linga Sarira of the Yogi in passing through
-the earthy cover, becomes earthy, through water becomes watery, and
-through fire, fiery. With the fiery body he goes to the air cover and
-with the airy cover to the ksa cover. He passes also through the
-Tanmtras and senses them. He passes through Prna itself and becomes
-all action. Having thus crossed the Sthla and Skshma coverings, the
-Yogi reaches the sixth covering that of the Transformable or Ahankra
-Tatva, which is the absorber of the Tanmtras and of the Indriyas.
-Thence he goes to Mahat Tatva and thence to Pradhna, where all the
-Gunas find their resting place. Then becoming all Pradhna himself full
-of bliss, he attains with the exhaustion of all _updhis_ the
-trans-cosmic Atm, which is Peace and Bliss.
-
-"These are the two ways to Mukti, the one prompt and the other deferred
-as sung in the Vedas."
-
-The following Diagram may be of some help in understanding the above:
---
-
-[Illustration: A diagram of concentric circles with P at the center and
-M' the outermost, with the Key below working inwards.]
-
-KEY TO THE CIRCLE.
-
-M' = Mahat cover 1,000,000 Krores or 50,000,000 Krores Yojanas.
-
-A" = Ahankra cover 100,000 or 5,000,000 Krores Yojanas.
-
-A' = ks cover 10,000 or 500,000 Krores Yojanas.
-
-V = Vayu cover 1000 or 50.000 Krores Yojanas.
-
-T' = Tejas cover 100 or 5000 Krores Yojanas.
-
-A = pas cover 10 or 500 Krores Yojanas.
-
-E = Earth cover 1 or 50 Krores Yojanas.
-
-S'= Satya Loka
-
-T = Tapas Loka
-
-J = Jana Loka
-
-M = Mahar Loka
-
-S = Svar Loka
-
-B' = Bhuvar Loka
-
-B = Bhr Loka
-
-P = Seven Ptlas
-
-S' to P = 50 Krores Yojanas.
-
-A' to E = Includes Tanmatras, Indriyas and Prana.
-
-Prakriti surrounds the whole circle.
-
-
-
-WHAT MEN ARE TO DO AND WHAT THEY ARE NOT TO DO.
-
-
-*SKANDHA II. CHAP. 3.*
-
-This was the second part of Parikshit's question, and to this general
-question, the answer is also general. Those that want divine glory
-worship Brahm. Those that want their Indriyas to be powerful worship
-Indra and so on. But those that are desirous of Moksha must practise
-Bhakti Yoga towards the supreme Purusha. Of all Upasakas, this is the
-only means of attaining supreme bliss, unswerving Bhakti or devotion to
-Bhagavn and the company of Bhgavatas.
-
-
-
-THE BHAGVATA PURNA AS RELATED BY BRAHM TO NRADA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA II. CHAP. 4-6.*
-
-
-I. THE CREATION.
-
-
-Parikshit next asked "How did Bhagavn create this Universe, how does He
-preserve it, how will He draw it in? What are the Saktis by which He
-manifests Himself directly and indirectly? What are His actions?"
-
-Suka replied, these were the very questions asked by Nrada of his
-father Brahm.
-
-Brahm replied: -- "Wishing to become manifold, the Lord of My,
-influenced Kala, Karma and Svabhva, by his own My". (Kala is the flow
-of Time and is, according to the Bhgavata Purna, the Sakti of Purusha.
-Karma is the _adrishta_ of Jiva or the Jiva record of the previous
-Kalpa. Svabhva is the essence of Prakriti). Under the influence of
-Purusha, the first disturbance in the equilibrium of the Gunas follows
-from Kala, transformation follows from Svabhva and the development of
-Mahat Tatva follows from Karma. When Rajas and Tamas manifest themselves
-in Mahat Tatva, it is transformed into Ahankra Tatva, with predominant
-Tamas. Ahankra Tatva by transformation becomes threefold. -- Stvika,
-Rjasika and Tmasika, i.e., Jnna Sakti (potency to produce the Devas),
-Kriy Sakti (potency to produce the Indriyas), and Dravya Sakti (potency
-to produce the Bhtas), respectively.
-
-Tmasa Ahankra was first transformed into ksa, ksa into Vayu, Vayu
-into Agni, Agni into pas, and pas into Prithivi, Stvika Ahankra was
-transformed into Manas and the ten Vaikrika Devas.
-
-[The Vaikrika Devas are the Adhidevas or the Energy-giving gods of the
-ten Indriyas. Sensing is _in_ Man or Adhi-tm, it is of the object or
-Adhi-bhuta and is _caused by_ Vaikarika Deva or Adhi-Deva. Thus the
-object seen is Adhi-bhta, the sight is Adhytma and the manifesting
-Energy of sight is Adhideva.]
-
-The Vaikrika Devas are --
-
-Dik for Hearing;
-
-Vayu for Touch;
-
-Sun for Sight;
-
-Varuna for Taste;
-
-Asvini Kumras for Smell;
-
-Agni for Speech;
-
-Indra for Pani or action of the hand;
-
-Upendra or Vishnu for Pada or action of the foot;
-
-Mitra or Yma for Payu or excretion;
-
-and Prajpati for Upastha or generation.
-
-Rjasika Ahankra was transformed into the ten Indriyas.
-
-The foregoing can be shown in the following table: --
-
-[Illustration: There is a pendulum-like drawing between the word Purusha
-and the phrase starting with Kla which is the pendulum swinging left
-and Karma which is the pendulum swinging right.]
-
- PURUSHA.
-
- Kla causing
- disturbance
- in the equilibrium of Karma
- Gunas.
- Svabhva.
-
-
- Transformation
-
-
- Details of transformation from
- Mahat downwards.
-
- Mahat.
- |
- Ahankra.
- |
- +---------------------+------------------+
- | | |
- Stvika or Rjasika Tmasika
- Vaikrika, = Kriy Sakti. = Dravya Sakti.
- = Jnna Sakti | |
- | | |
- | The 10 Indriyas Aksa
- | |
- | Vyu (air).
- +--------+ |
- | | Agni (fire).
- Manas The 10 Vaikrika |
- Devas or Adhidevas Apas (water).
- |
- Prithivi (earth).
-
-This is the Krana creation or the creation of the materials of the
-Individual creation. They could not, however, unite and proceed further
-with the work of creation. The Sakti of Bhagavn then permeated them and
-the cosmic Egg or Brahmnda was formed. The Egg remained for a thousand
-years unconsciously submerged in the primal waters. Purusha then
-influenced Kla, Karma and Svabhva to send forth vitality into it. It
-is this Purusha that emerged from the Egg with thousands of heads and
-thousands of limbs and is known as Virt Purusha. The seven Lokas and
-the seven Ptlas are parts of His body. This is the first Avatra, the
-di Purusha that creates, preserves and destroys. All the objects of
-creation are His Avatras, or Saktis or Vibhutis. The Lil Avatrs of
-Virt Purusha or special Incarnations for the preservation of the
-Universe are detailed below.
-
-
-II. PRESERVATION BY LIL AVATRAS.
-
-
-*SKANDHA II. CHAP. 7.*
-
- 1. _Varha_ -- In order to raise the Earth from the waters, the
- Purusha adopted the body of Varha or Boar and killed with His
- tusks the first Daitya Hiranyksha.
- 2. _Yajna_ -- was born of Ruchi and kuti. The Suyama Devas were
- born of Yajna. He dispelled the fears of Trilok.
- 3. _Kapila_ -- was born of Kardama Prajpati and his wife Devahti.
- He taught Brahm Vidy to his mother.
- 4. _Datttreya_ -- He preached Yoga to his disciples, who acquired
- powers and became liberated.
- 5. _The Kumras._ -- Sanat Kumra, Sanaka, Sanandana and Santana.
- They completely promulgated the tm Vidy, which had been lost in
- Pralaya.
- 6. _Nara Nryana._ -- They were born of Dharma and his wife Murti,
- daughter of Daksha. Their Tapas was so great that the Deva ladies
- could not shake it.
- 7. _Dhruva._ -- Though a boy, he could not bear the words of his
- step-mother. He went into the forests and made Tapas. He was
- rewarded with ascent to Dhruva Loka or the region of the polar
- star.
- 8. _Prithu._ -- He milked out riches and edibles from the earth.
- 9. _Rishabha._ -- Rishabha was the son of Nbhi by Sudevi or Meru
- Devi. He roamed about as Parama Hansa.
- 10. _Hayagrva._ -- This horse-headed Avatra appeared in the Vedic
- Yajna and promulgated the Vedas.
- 11. _Matsya._ -- Vaivasvata Mann found out this Avatra at the end
- of a cycle of Yugas. He preserved all beings and the Vedas from
- the waters of the Deluge.
- 12. _Krma._ -- At the great churning of the Ocean, the Tortoise
- Avatra supported the Mandra mountain.
- 13. _Nrisinha._ -- The Man-Lion Avatra killed Hiranyakspu.
- 14. _Hari_ -- saved the Elephant King of the famous story of Gajendra
- Moksha.
- 15. _Vmana_ -- measured the Trilok by His two steps.
- 16. _Hansa_ -- related Bhakti Yoga, Gnana and Bhgavata Purna to
- Nrada.
- 17. The presiding deity of each Manvantara.
- 18. _Dhanvantari_ -- promulgated the science of medicine.
- 19. _Parasu Rma_ -- suppressed the Kshatriyas who became disregardful
- of the Brhmanas and the Sstras.
- 20. _Rma_ -- destroyed Lank and killed Rvana.
- 21. _Rma_ and _Krishna_. -- The tenth Canto of Bhgavata is entirely
- devoted to their deeds.
- 22. _Vysa._ -- He divided the trunk of the Veda tree into several
- branches.
- 23. _Buddha._ -- When the Asuras came to know the Vedic mysteries and
- to oppress people, Buddha incarnated Himself in order to confound
- them by preaching a variety of by-religions.
- 24. _Kalki_ -- will appear before the end of Kali Yuga, to set things
- right.
-
-Besides these Lil Avatras, there are My Guna Avatras and Vibhtis
-or Saktis.
-
-In _creation_ these are:
-
-Tapas, Brahm, the Rishis, and the Nine Prajpatis.
-
-In _preservation_ they are:
-
-Dharma, Vishnu, Manu, Devas and Kings.
-
-In _Pralaya_ they are:
-
-Adharma, Siva, Serpents and Asuras.
-
-O Nrada, this is, in brief, the Bhgavata Purna. You relate it to
-others in a much more expanded form, so that people may have Bhakti or
-Divine attachment to Bhagavn.
-
-
-THOUGHTS ON THE ABOVE.
-
-
-The above account of creation relates to Trilok and to the dwellers of
-Trilok. After creation, some come down from the higher planes and hold
-responsible positions as we have already seen. The Vaikrika Devas, who
-may be identified with the Vedic Devas, are created or rather manifested
-in the Trilok before the Individual creation. They appertain to what
-the Purna calls Krana or causal Creation. The Vaikritika Devas and
-Deva Yonis, known as Elemental in Theosophical language, are created
-according to their Karma in the previous Kalpa and are subject to
-gradual evolution during the Kalpa. The Vaikarika Devas, however, remain
-as they are during the whole of the Kalpa. Similarly the Devas of the
-higher planes, e. g., Kumudas, Ribhus, Pratardanas, Anjanbhas and
-Pratitbhas of Mahar Loka, Brahma Purohitas, Brahma Kayikas, Brahma Mah
-Kayikas and Amaras of Jana Loka, bhasvaras, Mahbhasvaras, and Satya
-Mahbhasvaras of Tapas Loka and Achyutas, Sddha Nibsas, Satybhas and
-Sanjn Sanjnins of Satya Loka these are not affected by creation in
-Trilok. The dwellers of those Lokas other than Devas are also similarly
-not affected. The story of creation is a simple one. As the Linga Purna
-says, when Earth is scorched up in the summer season, it becomes fallow
-and the roots of vegetation remain underground. They, however, wait for
-the rainy season to germinate again and grow in all the varieties of the
-previous vegetation. Similarly when the previous creation is burnt up by
-the fires of Pralaya, the roots remain imbedded in Prakriti, which
-becomes fallow. The fallowness is removed on the approach of the
-creative period or Kla. Kla, according to Bhgavata, is a Sakti of
-Purush or the Unmanifested Logos. Then transformation follows in
-Prakriti according to Svabhva or the inherent nature of Prakriti and
-Karma, or the root-record of the previous Kalpa gives shape to the
-transformation.
-
-Sridhara Svmi quotes a sloka, which says that there are three Purusha
-manifestations. The first Purusha is the creator of Mahat and other
-elemental principles (Tatvas). The Second Purusha is the dweller of the
-Cosmic Egg. The Third Purusha is the pervader of all beings.
-
-Creation is divided into two stages. First the creation of the
-principles themselves or Tatvas, which unite to form globes and
-individuals. This is called Krana creation. Secondly the creation of
-individuals and of globes. This is called Krya or resultant creation.
-Following the law of periodicity, the First Purusha energises the latent
-Karma or Jiva-record of the previous Kalpa, and prepares the ground for
-the development of that Karma, by setting Prakriti into active
-transformation. This is the First Life Wave which caused the principles
-to appear by themselves. The First Purusha permeated these principles as
-pure tm.
-
-But the principles could not unite to make the forms, and to make
-individuals and globes. Purusha, as pure tm could not guide them
-further, as the gulf between Purusha and Prakriti was too wide. So
-Purusha had to limit Himself further, by uniting with Mla Prakriti, as
-one undivided whole, and so becoming the guiding principle of all
-individual workings in our universe, the pervader of all individuals and
-globes as tma-Buddhi. The Universe as a whole is represented as an Egg,
-and the Second Purusha or Virt Purusha is the soul of that Egg.
-Individuals and globes appear as germs in that Egg, and are all brought
-into manifestation in time by the Third Purusha Brahm.
-
-The Second Purusha is called the First Avatra and the seed and resting
-place of all other Avatras. An Avatra is a highly evolved Jiva, that
-has attained the Logoic state and that _comes down_ from his exalted
-position, to serve the universe. Why is the second Purusha called an
-Avatra? The Brihad ranyaka Upanishad raises the veil a little on this
-point.
-
-"This was before tm, bearing the shape of man (the first born from the
-Egg, the embodied soul, the Virt with heads and other members of the
-body) Looking round, he beheld nothing, but himself. He said first:
-'This am I'. Hence the name of I was produced.
-
-"_And because he, as the first of all of them consumed by fire all the
-sins, therefore he is called Purusha. He verily consumes him, who
-strives to obtain the state of Prajpati, prior to him."_ Sankarchrya
-explains the under-lined portion as follows: -- "And because he,
-"Prajpati in a former birth, which is the cause, as the first of those
-who were desirous to obtain the state of Prajpati by the exercise of
-reflection on works and knowledge, viz, "as the first of all of them,"
-of all those desirous of obtaining the state of Prajpati, consumed by
-the perfect exercise of reflection in works and knowledge all the sins
-of contact, which are obstacles to the acquirement of the state 'of
-Prajpati' because such was the case, therefore he is called Purusha,
-because, he, _pur_ (first) (did) _ush_ (burn)
-
-Therefore by the words: "He consumes him," it is meant, that the perfect
-performer obtains the highest state of Prajpati, he, who is less
-perfect, does not obtain it, and by no means, that the less perfect
-performer is actually consumed by the perfect.
-
-Here the word Prajpati refers to the Second Purusha.
-
-The state of the Second Purusha is the highest achievement of Jiva. It
-is the meeting ground of Jiva and the Supreme Purusha. The Second
-Purusha may be different for each Kalpa, it may be for each Brahmnda.
-He is the shvara, the Lord of our Universe. He holds the whole creation
-unto His bosom, and is the sustaining force of all. In the three aspects
-of Brahm, Vishnu and Siva, he guides the creation, the preservation and
-the dissolution of the Universe. Those that could not attain His state,
-though they strove for it equally as eminent as the Second Purusha, that
-are to become the Second Purusha in perhaps another Kalpa or Brahmnda,
-are the Lil Avatras. They remain merged in the Second Purusha or
-shvara and they manifest themselves in the Universe, only when a
-necessity arises for their manifestation. The Bhgavata contends that of
-all Lil Avatras, only Krishna is Purusha Himself the others being only
-partial manifestations of Purusha.
-
-"These are the parts and aspects of Purusha. Krishna is Bhagavn
-Himself." -- I-3-28.
-
-Tamas is dark, opaque and heavy on the physical plane, indolent and
-ignorant on the mental plane, non-perceptive on the spiritual plane.
-
-Rajas is translucent, and constantly moving on the physical plane;
-distracted constantly, acquiring likes and dislikes, and exercising
-intellection on the mental plane; and partially perceptive on the
-spiritual plane.
-
-Satva is light and transparent on the physical plane, cheerful and
-buoyant on the mental plane, and fully perceptive on the spiritual
-plane. True perception and real knowledge follow from Satva. By partial
-understanding and semblance of knowledge, the results of Rajas, people
-become distracted and led astray.
-
-Tamas keeps down all beings and enchains them to materiality in the
-course of evolution, and there is a point in the downfall of beings as
-well as of globes, beyond which there is a complete break-down. Satva
-counter-acts Tamas and the preservation and improvement of the Universe,
-rather of Trilok, there fore mean the infusion of Satva. Vishnu
-represents Satva and so Vishnu is the Preservative aspect of Virta
-Purusha. When Rajas and Tamas predominate in Trilok, when the lowest
-plane Bhr becomes heavy with Tamas, the Lil Avatras appear and infuse
-Satva into the Lokas.
-
-*SKANDHA I., CHAP. 2-34.*
-
-This Preserver of Lokas preserves the Lokas by means of Satva, by
-incarnating in Deva, Animal, Human and other kingdoms as Lil Avatras.
-
-The Third Purusha is Brahm in Creation, Vishnu in Preservation and Siva
-in dissolution. Vishnu as the tm in each being manifests Himself in
-action consciousness and will. Brahm is the propelling power in the
-Involution of beings, which gives them their physical body. Vishnu is
-the propelling force in the evolution of beings through physiological
-action (Prna), sensation, intellect, and lastly the development of the
-spiritual faculties.
-
-
-THE BHGAVATA PURNA AND ITS PARTS.
-
-
-*SKANDHA II., CHAP. 10.*
-
-The next question of Rj Parikshit was most comprehensive. It related
-to all knowledge of the Universe in all details. In answering the
-question, Suka related the whole of the Purna, from beginning to end.
-In doing so, the Muni gave a short introduction as to the history of the
-Purna. When Brahm regained his drowsy consciousness at the dawn of the
-present Kalpa, he knew not how to bring back the former state of things.
-He practised Tapas. Then Bhagavn appeared and related to him the
-Bhgavata Purna. Brahm taught the Purna to his son Nrada. Nrada
-gave it to Vysa, and Vysa to his son Suka.
-
-The Purna has ten parts: --
-
- 1. _Sarga_ -- the creation of the Bhtas, Tanmtras, Indriyas,
- Ahankra and Mahat, or of the materials that form individuals, and
- the appearance of Virt Purusha.
- 2. _Visarga_ -- the Individual creation by Brahm or the creation of
- the individual life forms.
- 3. _Sthna_ -- the preservation of the created beings in their own
- states by Bhagavn.
- 4. _Poshana_ -- the divine favor to those that properly remain in
- their own states.
- 5. _Manvantara_ -- the duties of the Rulers of Manvantaras.
- 6. _Uti_ -- desires that bind one to Trilok.
- 7. _Isnukath_ -- stories of the Avatras and of the followers of
- Hari.
- 8. _Nirodha_ -- the sleep of Hari and of all individual souls a
- Pralaya.
- 9. _Mukti_ -- the continued perception of the identity of self and of
- Brahm.
- 10. _Asraya_ -- The Final Resort, Para Brahma or Paramtma from whom
- Creation and Dissolution both proceed.
-
-This brings us to the end of the Second Skandha.
-
-
-
-
-SKANDHA III.
-
-
-
-BHGAVATA AS RELATED BY MAITREYA TO VIDURA.
-
-
-The Third and Fourth Branches of the Bhgavata are related by Maitreya
-to Vidura. Maitreya was the disciple of Parsara, father of Vysa.
-Parsara learned the Purna from Snkhyyana, Snkhyyana from Sanat
-Kumra and Sanat Kumra from Atlanta Deva.
-
-
-I.--THE CREATION
-
-
-*SKANDHA III., CHAP. 5-6.*
-
-At Pralaya, the Sakti of Bhagavn was asleep. That Sakti is My, which
-is Sat-asat or Existing-nonexisting Existing eternally as root, and not
-so existing as forms. Following the law of Periodicity (Kla), Purusha
-fecundated My. Mahat and other principles appeared by transformation.
-All these principles were Devas, having in them germs of consciousness,
-action and transformation. They could not unite to form the Universe,
-being divergent in character. They prayed to shvara for power to unite.
-Taking Prakriti as a part (Sakti) of Him, shvara entered into the 23
-Tatvas or root principles. He awakened the Karma that remained latent in
-them. By Kriy Sakti, He then united then. The 23 Tatvas, acting under
-Divine Energy and the impulse of Karma that had remained latent in them,
-formed the Virt body, each bearing its own share in the work. The
-Purusha within this body -- Virt Purusha or Hiranya Purusha -- with all
-beings and globes included in Him, dwelt for one thousand years in the
-waters (like the embryo in the waters of the uterus.) This Embryonic
-Purusha divided self by self, onefold by Daiva Sakti, tenfold by Kriy
-Sakti and threefold by tm Sakti. The onefold division is in the Heart.
-The tenfold division is in the Prnas (Prna, Apna, Samna, Udna,
-Vyna, Nga, Krma, Krikara, Devadatta and Dhananjaya,) for the Prnas
-are not Tatvas or principles, but they form an aspect of Purusha. The
-threefold division is tm in every being which is triune with its three
-sides -- Adhytma, Adhibhta and Adhidaiva. The Purusha infused His
-Sakti into the Virt body, for the development of powers in the Tatvas.
-The Adhytma mouth appeared with its Adhibhta speech and Adhidaiva
-Agni. Similarly the following appeared: --
-
-
- -----------------------------------------------------------------
- Adhytma. Adhibhta. Adhidaiva.
- -----------------------------------------------------------------
- Tongue Rsa (taste) Varuna.
- -----------------------------------------------------------------
- Nose Gandha(smell) Asvini Kumras.
- -----------------------------------------------------------------
- Eye Rpa(sight) ditya.
- -----------------------------------------------------------------
- Skin Sparsa (touch) Vayu.
- -----------------------------------------------------------------
- Ear Sabda (sound) Dik.
- -----------------------------------------------------------------
- Epidermis Sting Gods of
- vegetation
- -----------------------------------------------------------------
- Upastha
- -----------------------------------------------------------------
- (generative organ) Generation Prajpati.
- -----------------------------------------------------------------
- Pyu Secretion Mitra
- -----------------------------------------------------------------
- Hand Actions of hand Indra.
- -----------------------------------------------------------------
- Pda (foot) Movements of foot Vishnu.
- -----------------------------------------------------------------
- Buddhi Bodh (deliberation) Brahm.
- -----------------------------------------------------------------
- Manas Sankalpa and Vikalpa Moon.
- (true and false
- perception)
- -----------------------------------------------------------------
- Ahankra Aham perception Rudra.
- -----------------------------------------------------------------
- Chitta Thought Brahm
- -----------------------------------------------------------------
-
-
-The Trilok also appeared, Svar from the head, Bhuvar from the navel and
-Bhr from the feet. With these Lokas appeared the Devas and other
-beings, who are the transformations of the Gunas. From the predominance
-of Satva, the Devas went to Svar Loka. Men and the lower Kingdoms
-entered Bhr Loka from the predominance of Rajas in them. By the
-predominance of Tamas, the different classes of Bhtas remained in
-Bhuvar Loka. The Brhmana appeared from the mouth, the Kshatriya from
-the hands, the Vaisya from the thighs and the Sdra from the feet.
-
-
-THOUGHTS ON THE ABOVE
-
-
-We have considered the manifested Logos in the Universe. We shall now
-consider His manifestation in Man, the microcosm. The teachings are all
-collected from the Upanishads.
-
-(i.) -- _The manifestation in the heart._ -- A detailed knowledge of
-this manifestation is called Dahara Vidy in Chandogya. The Upanishads
-speaks of tm in the cavity of the heart.
-
-"Guhahitam Gahvarestham Purnam" is a well-known passage from the
-Upanishads. The Purusha in the heart is also called Prdes or the
-span-sized Purusha and is the favourite object of meditation in
-Paurnika Upsan. The Upanishads call Him thumb-sized and there is an
-interesting discussion as to the size in Sriraka Sutras I-3-24 to 26
-and the Bhshya thereupon.
-
-(ii.) -- _The Manifestation in the Prnas._ -- The Upanishads say: --
-
-"It is this Prana that is consciousness itself, Bliss, without
-infirmities and death."
-
-"They are these five Brahm Purushas."
-
-Again --
-
-_"Brahm Purusha in the openings of the heart."_ The heart is called the
-abode of Brahm. There are five openings of this abode of Brahm and
-there are five gate-keepers. These gate-keepers or _dvra-plas_ are the
-five Prnas. They are called Brahm Purushas as they pertain to Brahm.
-As long as the king is in the heart, the doorkeepers remain in the body.
-These door-keepers being inevitable accompaniments of Brahm in the
-heart, are also themselves the outer aspects of Brahm.
-
-(iii.) -- _The manifestation as tm which is triune._ What is a man but
-a bundle of experiences on the planes of Jgrat, Svapna and Sushupti.
-Each of these experiences has a threefold aspect or in Vedntic
-expression is a Triputi. These aspects are:
-
- 1) the object experienced or Adhibhta,
- 2) the experience itself or Adhytma,
- 3) and the Deva which gives the consciousness of that experience or
- Adhidaiva.
-
-In material expression, the object outside is Adhibhta. The reception
-of its image is Adhytma. The light that shews the image to be what it
-is, is Adhidaiva. As we have said, each experience is a three-sided
-triangle. All the triangles in the Jagrat state, analysed by the
-Vedntins into fourteen, are represented by the first letter _a_ in
-Pranava. All the triangles or Triputis in the dream state are
-represented by the second letter _u_. In Traka Brahm Yoga, _a_ is
-merged in contemplation into _u_, and _u_ is merged into _ma_. In _ma_
-there is only one triangle, which is the primary triangle to which all
-other triangles in _a_ and _u_ may be reduced. The Adhibhta side of
-this triangle is _nanda_ by the _vritti_ of Avidy. The Adhytma side
-is the _vritti_ of Avidy. The Adhidaiva side is shvara. Life in
-Trilok is conditioned by this triangle. The object of Traka Brahm
-Yoga is to cross the Triptiti, to cross the three letters of Pranava. It
-is only in the fourth _pda_ of Pranava that he finds his resting place,
-that pda being situated beyond the Trilok.
-
-The three manifestations of the Third Purusha in Jivas or individuals,
-may be said to relate to their different stages of evolution. Thus Prna
-manifests itself only in the lower life kingdoms, the minerals and
-vegetables. The Prna or life process is more elaborate in the
-vegetables than in the minerals. Purusha then manifests itself in the
-senses and emotions in the Animal kingdom and in intellect in the lower
-human kingdom the manifestation being three fold.
-
-The last manifestation of Purusha, the one-fold manifestation in the
-heart, is in higher man.
-
-
-II. -- VASUDEVA AND SANKARSHANA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA III., CHAP. 8.*
-
-When this universe remained submerged in the waters of Pralaya, the eyes
-of Vsudeva remained closed in sleep. He opened His eyes, lying down on
-the Serpent King Ananta or Sankarshana. He indulged in self and was
-without action. Inside His body was Bhuta-Skshma or all beings in a
-subtle state of latency. Only Kla-Sakti manifested itself and He dwelt
-in those waters in self, as fire remains in wood, with powers
-controlled. Having slept for one thousand Yuga cycles in the waters,
-with only Kla-Sakti manifesting His work, He found the lotuses of the
-Lokas in His body. He then looked at the Skshma, that was within Him.
-That Skshma became pierced with Kla -- propelled Rajas, and small as
-it was, it came out of his navel region. By the action of Kala, which
-awakens Karma, it suddenly grew up into a lotus bud. Vishnu entered this
-Loka Padma or the Lotus of Lokas. Brahm then appeared in that Lotus. He
-looked on all sides and became four-faced, but he could not find out the
-Lokas. Though he was in the Lotus himself, confused as he was, he knew
-not the whole Lotus. Whence am I? Whence is this Lotus? So thought
-Brahm. And he searched below to feel the lotus-stalk. The search was
-vain for one hundred years.
-
-For another hundred years he meditated within self, and lo! there
-appeared within his heart one _Purusha_ lying down on the body of Sesha
-(the serpent king). (The description of the Purusha is much the same as
-we have read of the _Prdesa Purusha_. So it is not given here.) Brahm
-prayed to that Purusha and was told to practise Tapas for acquiring the
-power of creation.
-
-
-III. -- THE CREATION BY BRAHMA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA III., CHAP. 10.*
-
-When Bhagavn disappeared, Brahm, as directed, practised meditation for
-one hundred Deva-years. He found his lotus abode moved by air. With all
-the power acquired by _tm Vidy_ and _Tapas_, he drank up all the
-waters and the air. He found the _Lokas_ attached to the overspreading
-Lotus and he had only to divide them. He entered into the Lotus bud and
-divided it into three parts -- the _Trilok_. This is the creation of
-the _Trilok_. The higher Lokas (Mahar, Jana, Tapas and Satya) are the
-transformations of _Nishkama Karma_ or unselfish action. So they are not
-destroyed in each Kalpa, but they last for two Parardhas.
-
-"What is Kla", asked Vidura, "that has been described as a _Sakti of
-Hari?_"
-
-"_Kla_ is the disturber of _Gunas_", replied Maitreya, "causing
-transformations. In itself it is without any particularity and is
-without beginning or end.
-
-"With Kla as the Nimitta or efficient cause, Bhagavn only manifested
-Himself. The Universe has no separate existence from that of Brahm. It
-is only Kla that makes the Universe manifest."
-
-The Creation of Brahm is ninefold, Prkrita and Vaikrita,
-Prkrita-Vaikrita being the tenth. The Pralaya is of three kinds:
-
- 1) By Kla or Nitya. Flow of time is the only cause of this Pralaya.
- 2) By Dravya or Naimittika. Dravya is the fire from the mouth of
- Sankarshana, at the end of one Kalpa.
- 3) By Guna or Prkritika, the Gunas devouring their own actions. The
- forms of Pralaya will be considered in the study of the Twelfth
- Branch.
-
-_A. -- Prkrita Creation, *i.e._ the Creation of Principles or Tatvas.*
-
- I. _Mahat_ -- Which is the out-come of the first disturbance of
- the equilibrium of the Gunas.
- II. _Ahankra_ -- Dravya + Jnna + Kriy.
- III. _Tanmtra_ -- Result of Dravya Sakti.
- IV. _Indriyas_ -- Result of Jnna and Kriy Sakti.
- V. _Vaikrika_ -- Devas and Manas.
- VI. The five-fold Tmasika creation.
-
-_B. -- Vaikrita or Individual Creation._
-
- VII. _Urdha Srotas_ -- or with upward current of the food taken, the
- Sthvara or Immobile kingdom with six divisions.
-
- 1) _Vnaspati_ -- Plants that fructify without flowers.
-
- 2) _Oshadhi_ -- Creepers that last till the ripening of fruits.
-
- 3) _Lat_ -- Ascending creepers.
-
- 4) _Tvaksra_ -- Those of which the growth is not in the
- centre, but in the dermal regions, as bamboos.
-
- 5) _Virudh_ -- Non-ascending woody creepers.
-
- 6) _Druma_ -- Flowering plants.
-
-
-The consciousness of all the six classes is almost obscured by Tamas.
-They are sensitive only to internal touch. They have many peculiarities.
-
- VIII. _Tiryak-Srotas._ -- With slanting food current. The position of
- the animal stomach as regards the animal mouth is such that
- food is not taken in vertically, but either horizontally or
- slantingly. The animal kingdom has 28 divisions. The animals
- are ignorant, with predominating Tamas, with the sense of smell
- largely developed in them so much that they mostly perceive by
- that sense, and with the faculties of the heart entirely
- undeveloped. The 28 classes are:
- 1. _Living on the ground._
- i. -- _The cloven-footed._
-
- (1) Cow, (2) goat, (3) buffalo (4)
- krishnasara, the spotted antelope, (5) hog,
- (6) gavaya, a species of ox, (7) ruru, a kind
- of deer, (8) sheep, (9) camel.
-
- ii. -- _The whole hoofed._
-
-
- (10) Ass, (n) horse, (12) mule, (13) goura, a
- kind of deer, (14) sarabha, a kind of deer,
- (15) chamari, a kind of deer.
-
- iii. -- _The five-nailed._
-
- (16) Dog, (17) jackal, (18) wolf, (19) tiger,
- (20) cat, (21) hare, rabbit, (22) porcupine,
- (23) lion, (24) monkey, (25) elephant, (26)
- tortoise, (27) alligator.
- 2. (28) Aquatic animals and birds.
- IX. _Arvk-Srotas_ or with downward food current, the Human kingdom
- with predominant Rajas, given to Karma, mistaking misery for
- happiness.
-
-
-_C. -- Prkrita- Vaikrita._
-
- X. The Kumras. The Kumra creation is partly Prkrita and partly
- Vaikrita.
-
-Besides these, there is
-
-_D. -- Vaikrita Dev Creation._
-
-There are eight divisions of Vaikrita Devas:
-
- 1) Vivudha,
- 2) Pitri,
- 3) Asura,
- 4) Gandharva and Apsar,
- 5) Siddha, Charana and Vidydhara,
- 6) Yaksha and Raksha,
- 7) Bhuta, Preta and Pischa,
- 8) Kinnara, Kimpurusha, Asvamukha and others.
-
-The Vaikarika and Vaikrita Devas form one class.
-
-
-THOUGHTS ON THE ABOVE.
-
-
-_Prkrita_ creation is that which gives rise to and is connected with
-all individuals. Excepting the Tmasic or Avidy creation, which we
-shall consider later on, the other divisions of this creation were
-caused by the first life impulse, given by the First Purusha. The
-Tmasic creation was brought into manifestation by the Third Purusha
-Brahm.
-
-The division of the life-kingdoms according to the movements of the food
-taken is peculiar to the Pauranic system. It will be interesting to know
-from the physiological stand-point whether it is necessary for the
-development of the brain that the spinal column should be erect, whether
-it is necessary for the formation of the spinal column, that the stomach
-should retain a certain position, and to know also how far the fixture
-of the plants is an impediment to the development of any nervous system
-in them.
-
-It is remarkable that the mineral kingdom is not mentioned as a distinct
-life-kingdom. The reason appears to be that the creative process is
-divided into two periods. In the first period formless Jivas take form
-after form, till the lowest material form is reached. This is elemental
-creation or the creation of Devas, as described in detail in Ch. XXI.
-Sk. IV. The Purna goes on to say: -- "Then Brahm created the Manus."
-III.-24-49. The Manu creation shews, how mind was gradually developed
-through Vegetable, Animal and Human creations, out of the Mineral
-Kingdom, represented by the Mountain Chief Himlaya. The giving up by
-Sti, of the body acquired from Daksha and her rebirth as the daughter
-of the Mountain King show how the elemental creation gave way to a fresh
-creative process, which took its start from the Mineral Kingdom.
-
-The Kumras form a peculiar creation. "They are Prakrita in as much as
-they partake of the character of Devas and they are Vaikrita, as they
-partake of the character of men." _Sridhara._ -- The great commentator
-also says: -- "Sanaka and other Kumras are not created in every kalpa.
-The account of their creation is only given in the first Kalpa, called
-Brahm. In reality, the Vegetable and other life kingdoms are created in
-every Kalpa. Sanaka and others being created in Brahm Kalpa only follow
-the creations in other Kalpas."
-
-Upon death, men go to Bhuvar Loka, where they become Bhtas, Pretas and
-Pischas. Then they go to Svar Loka, where they become Devas, not the
-Devas of Deva creations but only temporary Devas. When their merits are
-exhausted, they come down upon earth, to begin life as men again. But if
-by unselfish Karma and devotion, men pass across the limits of the
-triple plane, they go first to Mahar Loka. Here they are called
-Prajpatis. Bhrigu and other Prajpatis who are the ordinary dwellers of
-Mahar Loka, are described in one sloka of Bhgavata, as bearing the life
-period of one Kalpa. (II. 2. 25). In the next sloka it is said that the
-Yogins who go to Mahar Loka, remain there till the end of the Kalpa,
-when at last they go to Satya Loka.
-
-But in another sloka, the Purna says: -- "When the night of Pralaya
-follows, the three Lokas, Bhr, Bhuvar and Svar, are burnt by the fire
-from the mouth of Sankarshana. Troubled by the excessive heat of that
-fire, Bhrigu and others proceed from Mahar Loka to Jana Loka."
-III-11-30.
-
-This shews that the dwellers of Mahar Loka live for the life time of
-Brahm or two Parrdhas.
-
-This is also made clear by the following commentary of Sridhara on
-III-10-9: --
-
-"Why did Brahm make the three Lokas into one division? This Trilok
-consisting of Bhr, Bhuvar and Svar -- is the place that is to be made
-in every Kalpa or day of Brahm for the enjoyment of Jivas (or
-individuals). But Jivas dwell in the higher Lokas as well. Why are not
-those Lokas created then in every Kalpa? This is because they are the
-transformations of unselfish (Nishkma) action or Dharma -- the Lokas
-themselves and the dwellers thereof. The Trilok and the dwellers
-thereof are the transformations of selfish (Kmya) action. Therefore
-they have birth and death in every Kalpa. But Mahar and other Lokas are
-begotten by unselfish action heightened by Upsan (or devotion), and
-they last for two Parrdhas, which is the life time of Brahm. And the
-dwellers of those Lokas generally attain mukti (or liberation) after
-that period."
-
-The ordinary dwellers of Jana Loka are the Kumras. When men in course
-of evolution reach Jana Loka, they become Kumras.
-
-We have already seen that the essence of life in the higher Lokas is
-unselfishness. It is for this reason that the Git speaks of unselfish
-action in the first instance as an essential requisite of spiritual
-life. But it is not unselfish action alone which enables us to get rid
-of our personal desires and to assimilate ourselves with that one life
-which pervades all. Devotional love is another equally essential
-requisite.
-
-It is impossible for us to realise the different experiences in the four
-higher Lokas.
-
-The famous Brahma Skta has the following line: -- "The three feet of
-svara, bearing eternal happiness in the higher Lokas." The eighteenth
-Sloka in Chapter VI. of the Second Skandha is an exposition of this
-line. Sridhara has the following commentary on that line:
-
-"Happiness in Trilok is fleeting and temporary. Though Mahar Loka is on
-the path of liberation, the dwellers of that Loka have to leave it at
-the end of every Kalpa. The happiness there is therefore not
-ever-lasting. In Jana Loka, the happiness is ever-lasting, as long as
-the dwellers do not leave the place. But they have to witness the
-miseries of the dwellers of Mahar Loka, when they come to Jana Loka, at
-the end of the Kalpa. In Tapas, there is absolute want of evil. In
-Satya, there is freedom from fear or liberation."
-
-We have left the Devas (not the elementals that pass through the life
-kingdoms of this earth) out of consideration. Their evolution is worked
-out in all the seven Lokas. Their names and characteristics in each Loka
-are given by Vysa in his commentaries on Patanjali's Sutras. Those who
-are ordinarily known as Devas are the dwellers of Svar Loka. The Deva
-Yonis or lower Devas are dwellers of Bhuvar Loka and Bhr Loka. Men have
-nothing to do with the Devas of the higher Lokas. The Devas of Trilok
-are indifferent, friendly or inimical to men. Left alone, they do not
-interfere with men. But when men try to gain superiority over them, by
-the acquisition of Brahma Vidy, they try to throw obstacles in their
-way.
-
-The Brihad ranyak Upanishad says: -- "Even the gods verily are not able
-to prevent him from the possession of the state of all." I.-4-10
-
-Again, "As verily many beasts maintain a man, so every man maintains the
-gods. It is not pleasant, even if one beast is taken away, how then, if
-many? Therefore it is not pleasant to them, that men should know this
-_i.e._ the truth of the nature of Brahm." Commenting on this,
-Sankarchryya quotes a Sloka from Anugrta: "The world of the gods is
-surrounded by performers of works. But the gods do not wish that mortals
-should abide above."
-
-Sankarchryya goes on to say: -- "Therefore the gods try to exclude,
-like cattle from tigers, men from the knowledge of Brahm, as it is
-their desire, that they should not be elevated above the sphere of their
-use. Whom they wish to liberate, to him they impart belief &c., and
-unbelief to him whom they wish not to liberate."
-
-nanda Giri, the commentator of Sankarchryya, quotes the following
-Sloka: --
-
-"Devas do not protect men, rod in hand, like cattle-keepers. When they
-wish to protect a man, they impart the necessary intelligence to him."
-
-Nothing is said in the Purnas, as to Devas of the higher Lokas.
-
-The Prkrita Devas are intimately connected with our senses and
-intellect. It is through their direct help, that we are able to perceive
-and to conceive. Hence they are called Adhi-devas or Vaikric Devas.
-They are not individuals and the remarks made above as to Devas, do not
-apply to them.
-
-
-IV. DIVISIONS OF KLA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA III. CHAP. 11.*
-
-The unit of Kala at the Skshma pole is Paramnu, which is the minutest
-part of the created thing, not united to form a body. At the Sthula pole
-is the whole Sthula creation known in its entirety as Parama Mahn. The
-time during which the Sun crosses in his orbit one paramnu is the Kla
-unit paramnu. The time during which he crosses the whole system in his
-orbit, _i.e._, crosses all the twelve signs of the Zodiac, is Parama
-Mahn or one Samvatsara. The units of time and space are thus the same.
-
-1 Dvyanuka = 2 Paramnus.
-
-1 Trasarenu = 3 Paramnus.
-
-1 Truti = 3 Trasarenus.
-
-1 Vedha = 100 Trutis.
-
-1 Lava = 3 Vedhas.
-
-1 Nimesha or wink = 3 Lavas.
-
-1 Kshana = 3 Nimesha.
-
-1 Ksth = 5 Kshanas.
-
-1 Laghu = 15 Ksths.
-
-1 Ndik = 15 Laghus.
-
-1 Muhurta = 2 Ndiks.
-
-1 Yma or Prahara = 6 or 7 Ndiks.
-
-1 Ahortra (of the Mortals) = 8 Ymas.
-
-1 Paksha (Sukla or Krishna) = 15 Ahortras.
-
-1 Msa (Month) = 1 Sukla + 1 Krishna Paksha.
-
-1 Ritu = 2 Msas.
-
-1 Ayana = 6 Msas (Uttara or Dakshin.)
-
-1 Vatsara = 2 Ayanas.
-
-1 Vatsara = 12 Masas
-
-1 Vatsara = 1 Ahortra of Devas.
-
-1 Samvatsara = 1 year of Solar months.
-
-1 Parivatsara = 1 year of Jupiter months.
-
-1 Idvatsara = 1 year of Savana months.
-
-1 Svanuvatsara = 1 year of Lunar months.
-
-1 Vatsara = 1 year of Stellar months.
-
-One hundred Samvatsaras is the maximum age of men.
-
-Satya, Tret, Dvpara and Kali a cycle of these 4 Yugas and their
-Sandhys and Sandhynsas consist of 12 thousand divine years.
-
-The beginning of a Yuga is its Sandhy. Tho end of a Yuga is its
-Sandhynsa. Sandhy and Sandhynsa are not included in a Yuga and Yuga
-Dharma is not to be performed while they last.
-
- Sandhy of Satya Yuga = 400 Deva years.
-
- Satya Yuga = 4,000 " "
-
- Sandhynsa of Satya Yuga 400 " "
-
- Sandhy of Treta Yuga 300 " "
-
- Treta Yuga 3,000 " "
-
- Sandhynsa of Treta Yuga 300 " "
-
- Sandhy of Dvpara Yuga 200 " "
-
- Dvpara Yuga 2,000 " "
-
- Sandhynsa of Dvpara Yuga 200 " "
-
- Sandhy of Kali Yuga 100 " "
-
- Kali Yuga 1,000 " "
-
- Sandhynsa of Kali Yuga 100 " "
- -------
- 12,000 Deva years.
-
-Dharma is enjoined for the period between Sandhy and Sandhynsa, which
-is called Yuga.
-
- Dharma has all the 4 pdas or feet in Satya,
- " " only 3 pdas in Treta,
- " " only 2 pdas in Dvapara,
- " " only 1 pda in Kali.
-
- 1,000 Yuga cycles is one Day of Brahm or one Kalpa,
- *i.e.*, 1 Day of Brahm = 1,000 x 12,000 Deva years,
- = 1,20,00,000 Deva years.
-
-An equal period of time is also reckoned as one Night of Brahm. 14
-Manus reign during the Day of Brahm, each Manu reigning for:
-
- 1,000
- -------- = 71 3/4
- 14
-
-_i.e._, a little over 71 Yuga Cycles. Converted into Deva years: --
-
- 1 Manvantara = 12,000 x 1,000
- -------------- = 8,57,142 6/7 Deva years.
- 14
-
- 1 Deva year = 360 Lunar years.
-
- 12,000,000 x 360
- 1 Manvantara = ---------------- = 3,37,142,657 1/2 Lunar years.
- 14
-
-The Manvantaras have their Manus, successors of Manus, Rishis and Devas.
-
-The Rishis, Indras, and Devas appear together.
-
-In the daily creation of Brahm, Animals, Men, Pitris and Devas are born
-according to their own Karma.
-
-During the Manvantara, Bhagavn preserves this universe by His own
-Satva, directly as Manvantara Avatras and indirectly as Manus and
-others. When Pralaya approaches, Bhagavn withdraws His Saktis (or
-powers). Trilok is then burnt up by fires from the mouth of
-Sankarshana. Bhrigu and other dwellers of Mahar Loka proceed to Jana
-Loka. The waters of Pralaya sweep away everything before them. In that
-watery expanse, Hari remains seated upon the coils of Ananta, with His
-eyes closed.
-
-With every Day and Night, the age of Brahm declines. He lives for one
-hundred years only. Half of Brahm's age is called Parrddha. The first
-Parrddha has expired, the second has commenced with our Kalpa. Every
-day of Brahm is called one Kalpa.
-
-At the beginning of the first Parrddha was Brahm Kalpa, when Brahm or
-the present Kosmos was born.
-
-At the end of the first Parrddha was Padma Kalpa, when the Loka-Padma
-(the lotus of Lokas) appeared at the navel of Hari.
-
-The first Kalpa of the second Parrddha, which is the present Kalpa, is
-called Varha Kalpa. Hari incarnated as Varha or Boar during this
-Kalpa.
-
-The two Parrddhas are but a wink of Bhagavn. Kla cannot measure him.
-
- [1 Day of Brahm = 12,000,000 Deva years,
- 1 Night of Brahm = 12,000,000 Do.
- -------------
- 24,000,000 Do.
-
- Multiplying by 360
- ---------------
- 1 year of Brahm = 8,640,000,000 Deva years.
- Multiplying by 100
- ------------------
- Age of Brahm = 864,000,000,000 Deva years.
- Multiplying by 360
- -----------------------
- 31,10,40,00,00,00,000 Lunar years.
-
- 1 Kali Yuga, including Twilight (Sandhy and Sandhynsa)
- = 1,200 X 360 = 4,32,000 Lunar years.
-
- Varha Kalpa = 50 X 360 + 1 = 180001st Kalpa.
-
- The present is the seventh Manvantara of that Kalpa.
-
-The present Kali Yuga is the 28th Yuga of that Manvantara and 4,994
-years of that Yuga have expired in the present year of Christ 1894.
-
-THEOSOPHICAL CORRESPONDENCES. The words Kalpa and Manvantara are
-carelessly used in Theosophical literature. But I shall use those terms,
-specially with reference to page 309 of the second volume of the _Secret
-Doctrine_ (first edition.)
-
-1 Kalpa = 7 Rounds.
-
-1 Round = 2 Manvantaras.
-
-The Pralaya at the end of seven Rounds therefore means the Pralaya of
-Trilok.
-
-The last Globe Chain of which the Moon formed a living planet belonged
-to Pdma Kalpa. Our Globe D is the 18001st since the birth of the
-Kosmos. There will be 17999 more such Globes, one after each Pralaya of
-Globe Chains. There will be 18000 more Pralayas of the Globe Chain. Then
-there will be a general dissolution or Prkritika Pralaya, not only of
-the Globe Chain, but of the whole Kosmic system.
-
-
-V.-THE CREATION BY BRAHMA (_Continued_) III. 12.
-
-
-The first creation of Brahm was the five-fold Avidy, _viz_: --
-
- 1) Tamas or ignorance of Self (Avidy in Patanjali.)
- 2) Moha or egoism (Asmit.)
- 3) Mah Moha or desire for enjoyment (Rga).
- 4) Tmisra or mental disturbance on the non-fulfilment of desires
- (Dvesha).
- 5) Andha Tmisra or false perception of death (Abhinivesa).
-
-Brahm was not pleased with this dark creation. He purified his soul by
-meditation on Bhagavn and created Sanaka, Sananda, Santana and
-Sanatkumara. These Munis had no performances (for their own evolution).
-They were Urdha-retas. Brahm, addressing them, said -- "Sons, go and
-multiply yourselves." But they sought Moksha, and heeded him not. Brahm
-got enraged at the disobedience of his sons, and, though he tried to put
-down his anger, it burst forth from between his eye-brows and appeared
-as Kumra Nila-Lohita or Blue-Red. The boy, the first born of Devas,
-wept and cried out to Brahm -- "Give me names and give me abodes."
-"That shall be done," replied Brahm, "and, as thou wept like a boy,
-thou shalt be called Rudra or the Weeper. The heart, the Indriyas,
-Prna, ksa, Vyu, Agni, Apas, Prithvi, the Sun, the Moon and Tapas are
-your abodes. Manyu, Manu, Mahinasa, Mahn, Siva, Ritadhvaja, Ugra-retas,
-Bhava, Kla, Bmadeva and Dhrita-vrata these are thy eleven names; Dhi,
-Dhriti, Rsaloma, Nijut, Sarpi, Il, Ambik, Irvati, Svadh, Diksh and
-Rudrni, these are thy wives. Beget sons, as thou art Prajpati." Thus
-ordered, Nila-Lohita begot sons like unto himself in might, form and
-habits. The Rudras became numerous, and they spread all round the
-Universe ready almost to devour it. Brahm became afraid of his
-creation, and, addressing himself to Rudra, said -- "O Chief of Devas,
-desist from such creation. Thy progeny with their fiery eyes are
-consuming all and even consuming me. Take to Tapas for the joy of all
-beings. By Tapas thou shalt create the Universe as it was of yore. By
-Tapas thou shalt gain that Bhagavn who dwells in all hearts." "Amen,"
-said Rudra, and he went into the forests to make Tapas.
-
-Brahm then begot ten sons: -- Marichi, Atri, Angirasa, Pulastya,
-Pulaha, Kratu, Bhrigu, Vasishtha, Daksha and Nrada. Nrada came from
-Brahm's bosom, Daksha from his thumb, Vasishtha from his Prna, Bhrigu
-from his skin, Kratu from his hands, Pulaha from his navel, Pulastya
-from his ears, Angirasa from his mouth, Atri from his eyes and Marichi
-from his Manas.
-
-Dharma came from Brahm's right breast, where Nryana himself dwells.
-Adharma, the parent of Mrityu (or Death) came from his back. Kma came
-from his heart, Anger from his eye-brows, Greed from the lower lip. Vk
-or speech came from his mouth, the Seas from his generative organ and
-Death from his anus.
-
-Kardama, the husband of Devahti, was born of Brahm's Chhya or shadow.
-So there was creation out of the body and the mind of Brahm. Brahm
-took a fancy to his daughter Vk (or speech). Marichi and his other sons
-dissuaded him from the incestuous connection. And the Creator in shame
-gave up his body which was taken up by Space and which is known as dewy
-darkness. "How shall I bring back all the previous Creation?" So thought
-Brahm at one time, and the four Vedas appeared from his four mouths.
-The Yajnas, the Upavedas, the Philosophies, the four parts of Dharma,
-and the duties of sramas also appeared.
-
-Brahm had another body void of incestuous impulses and he thought of
-enlarging the Creation. But he found himself and the Rishis, powerful
-though they were, unsuccessful in this respect. He thought there was
-some unforeseen impediment, so he divided his body into two. A pair was
-formed by that division. The male was Svyambhuva Manu and the female
-was his wife Satarp. Since then creation multiplied by sexual
-intercourse. Svyambhuva Manu begot five children in Satarp -- two
-sons, Priyavrata and Uttnapda, and three daughters, kti, Devahti
-and Prasti. He gave Akuti in marriage to Ruchi, Devahti to Kardama and
-Prasti to Daksha. This changing universe is filled with their progeny.
-
-
-PRE-MANVANTARIC CREATION.
-
-
-The descent of Spirit into Matter is indicated by the overshadowing
-Tamas creation, The individuals reach the spiritual plane at the time of
-Pralaya and lose all sense of I-ness. Their memory becomes perfectly
-dead to all previous connections and experiences and even as to self as
-a distinct unit. The child starts with a body of his own, and faculties
-limited to that body. The Jiva children that came into existence at the
-beginning of the Universe had however nothing peculiar to themselves,
-and they had even to acquire the sense of I-ness.
-
-First, the Jiva identifies himself with his body and mind, his own
-phenomenal basis. For, if he identifies himself with the universal
-spirit, there is no action for him, no working out of his own Karma.
-Though from the standpoint of the highest wisdom individuality is a
-delusion, for the one unchangeable ever-lasting element in Jiva is tm,
-and at the final stage of development man has to separate himself from
-his phenomenal basis and to identify himself with tm, which is the
-real self, still the sense of separateness is necessary for the process
-of creation and for the gaining of experiences. This sense is
-two-fold,--
-
- 1) The non-perception of tm as Self, called Avidy by Patanjali and
- Tamas in the Purnas, and
- 2) The perception of the _updhi_ as self, called Asmit by Patanjali
- and Moha in the Purnas.
-
-Attachment and aversion, likes and dislikes, are equally necessary for
-continued individual action. The Jiva eats what he likes and does not
-eat what he dislikes. He associates himself with certain objects, ideas
-and thoughts and shuns others. His likes and dislikes form the guiding
-principle of his actions. These affinities are called Rga and Dvesha by
-Patanjali and Mah Moha and Tamisra in the Purnas.
-
-The tenacious desire to live in the present body is called Abhinivesha
-by Patanjali. This desire becomes an instinct in the Jiva, so necessary
-is it for his preservation. The Purnas call it Andha-Tmisra. Sridhara
-explains it as the shock we receive from a separation from all our
-present enjoyments. For, according to him, the idea of death is nothing
-but a sense of separation from our present enjoyments.
-
-These forms of Avidy were called into being that the forms of the
-previous Kalpa might be brought into existence, or that the work of
-creation might be undertaken. These faculties are the very essence of
-life manifestation. But the process has now been reversed. The work of
-creation is over. We have acquired the experiences of earth-life, and we
-are now destined to take a journey back to our home, the bosom of
-shvara, from which we all came. We have now to undo our sense of
-separateness. The five forms of Avidy are therefore called miseries
-(klesha) by Patanjali and he lays down rules for getting rid of them.
-
-After invoking Avidy, Brahm created the Kumras, who were the most
-spiritual of the beings to be created. They were so spiritual, that they
-could not take any part in the work of creation. They had to bide their
-time, till there was spiritual ascent in the Universe.
-
-The Rudras, called the Blue-Red Kumras, come next. Though highly
-spiritual themselves they did not object to take part in the work of
-creation. But as real factors in the work of dissolution, they were
-entirely out of place in the work of creation. We owe our idea of
-separateness or individuality to the Rudras. In the scale of universal
-life the agencies of dissolution carve out individual lives and their
-mission ends there.
-
-The ten Rishis form the next Creation. Further descent of life in the
-Universe brought forth ten distinct types of Intelligence. We shall
-consider these types later on. Then comes the story of Brahm's incest.
-Brahm could not directly take part in the Creation. His task was simply
-to bring back the former state of things through a graduated series of
-intermediaries. First appeared those that had to hold cosmic positions
-of responsibility, some throughout the Kalpa and others throughout the
-Manvantara. With the powers invoked, the temptation to evolve an
-independent Creation with the help of Vch, the potency of Mantras had
-to be got over. This done, Brahm thought of the Monads of the previous
-Kalpa, and the first Manu appeared with his wife Sata-rp or
-Hundred-formed. All forms of Creation existed in Idea before further
-manifestation, and Sata-rp was the collective aspect of all such
-Ideas.
-
-
-
-THE FIRST OR THE SVAYAMBHUVA MANVANTARA.
-
-
-VI. BHR AND VARAHA
-
-
-*SKANDHA III., CHAP. 13.*
-
-Said Manu to Brahm -- "I shall do thy behests, O Lord. But tell me
-where my Praj (progeny) and myself are to be located. The Bhr of the
-previous Kalpa where all beings found shelter is lost in the great ocean
-of Pralaya. Bestir thyself and raise it up, O Deva."
-
-Brahm thought within Himself what was to be done, when lo! out from His
-nostril came a Boar, no bigger than a thumb. In a moment the Boar
-assumed gigantic proportions and all space resounded with his roar. The
-dwellers of the Jana, Tapas and Satya Lokas worshipped Him by chanting
-the Mantras of the three Vedas. He roared once more for the good of the
-Devas and instantly plunged into the waters. Though an incarnation of
-Yajna, He tried to discover the Bhr by smelling like an ordinary
-animal. He dived down as far as Rastala and there found the Bhr Loka.
-He then raised it up on His tusks. The Daitya King Hiranyksha resisted
-and in rage the Boar killed him. The Rishis then worshipped Him knowing
-His true form to be Yajna.
-
-
-THOUGHTS ON THE ABOVE.
-
-
-[Bhr is the main system of Trilok. The Varha Avatra restored the
-system after the Kalpa Pralaya. Bhr being the lowest of the Seven Lokas
-corresponds to Prithvi Tatva and hence to the sense of smell. The boar
-is pre-eminently the animal of smell. The materialisation of the Prithvi
-principle for the purpose of globe formation was an effort of the energy
-of the Logos and the _smelling_ out of Bhr by the Varaha is suggestive.
-The Globe evolution is preparatory to Monadic evolution. The pent up
-Karma of the previous Kalpa develops itself on the Globes. All beings
-are mutually interdependent for their evolution. They help one another
-in the work of evolution, and one makes sacrifices that the others may
-grow. Some have to wait, till others come forward. Then they become
-united in the further race for progress. This great cosmic process, this
-mutual sacrifice is Yajna itself, which is typified in the Boar
-Incarnation. The Vedic Yajna gives prominence to the Communion of men
-with Devas, as at the early stages this is an all important fact of
-evolution. The Varha is called the first Yajna Avatra and all the
-parts of His body are named with reference to Vedic Yajna, as He by
-raising Bhr prepared the field for Karma.]
-
-
-VII. THE STORY OF HIRANYKSHA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA III., CHAP. 14.*
-
-Diti, the daughter of Daksha, approached one evening her husband
-Kasyapa, son of Marichi. She was overpowered with the passion of love
-and became importunate. Kasyapa asked her to wait. Rudra was presiding
-over sunset. His astral attendants, the Bhtas and Pishachas, were
-roaming over the Universe. With His three eyes representing the Sun,
-Moon and fire he could see every thing. His hesitation to yield to Diti
-was of no avail, and the Muni had to yield. There Diti became ashamed of
-her weakness. She was afraid she had offended Rudra and she helplessly
-prostrated herself at the feet of Kasyapa praying for his forgiveness.
-"Thou hast disobeyed me," said Kasyapa, "and hast shown disrespect to
-the companions of Rudra, thy mind is impure and so is the time of
-Evening (Sandhy). These four evils will cause the birth of two wicked
-sons from thee. They will oppress the Trilok and the Lokaplas
-(Preservers of the three Lokas). When their inequities exceed all
-bounds, Vishnu will Himself incarnate to kill them."
-
-For one hundred years Diti conceived her twin sons. Even from within the
-womb they shed lustre all round, which even overpowered the Lokaplas.
-The Devas went to Brahm to ascertain the cause of this disaster. He
-related to them the following story.
-
-"My Mnasa-putras, Sanaka and others were once in Vaikuntha, the abode
-of Bhagavn. Impatient to see Bhagavn the Kumras hurriedly passed
-through the six portals (Kaksha). At the seventh portal, they found two
-doorkeepers of equal age with clubs in their hands, richly adorned with
-golden crowns and other ornaments. They had four hands and looked
-beautiful in their blue colour. The Kumras heeded them not, but opened
-the gate with their own hands as they had opened the other gates. The
-door keepers stopped them with their clubs. The Kumras were put out by
-this unforeseen obstruction and addressing the doorkeepers gave vent to
-their feelings thus: -- 'What mean you by making this distinction? In
-Him the Lord of Vaikuntha, there is no difference whatsoever. The whole
-of this Universe is in Him. Do you dread any danger to Him, as to a
-common being, and why will you admit some and not others? But you are
-His servants. So we do not intend to be very hard on you. But you must
-descend from this elevated plane and take your birth where passion,
-anger and greed prevail'."
-
-"The door-keepers became terrified at this curse and fell at the feet of
-the Kumras. All that they prayed for was that while passing through the
-lowest births, they might not have Mha, beclouding their recollection
-of Bhagavn. Bhagavn knew what had transpired outside. He hastened on
-foot with Lakshm by His side to where the Munis stood. The Kumras
-prostrated themselves before Him Whom they had so long meditated upon in
-their hearts. With intent eyes they looked steadily on Him and longed to
-see Him again and again. The Kumras lauded Him with words full of
-import. Bhagavn addressing them said: -- 'These my door-keepers are by
-name Jaya and Vijaya. They have slighted you, and it is right that you
-have cursed them. I sanction that curse. For they are my servants, and I
-am indirectly responsible for their deeds. I always respect Brhmanas,
-as my glory is derived from them. These door-keepers did not know my
-regard for you, and they therefore unintentionally slighted you. But
-they shall instantly reap the fruit of their evil deeds and come back to
-Me when their punishment is over. Please therefore decide where they are
-to go.' The Kumras knew not what to say. They thought they had not done
-right and they asked to be excused. 'It is all right for Thee to extol
-the Brhmanas in this way, for Thou art the Preserver of Dharma and Thou
-teachest others what to do. But if, really, we have done wrong, let us
-be punished and let not our curse visit these innocent door-keepers.'
-Bhagavn replied: -- 'It is I who have uttered the curse through your
-mouths. My will shall be done. These door-keepers shall be born as
-Asuras, but they shall come back to Me speedily.' These two
-door-keepers, O Devas, have now appeared in Diti's womb. I have no power
-to overcome them. But when the time comes for the prevalence of Satva,
-Bhagavn Himself will do what is needed."
-
-The Devas went away and waited for events. The two Daityas Hiranyksha
-and Hiranyakasipu were born of Diti, after a conception of one hundred
-years. Hiranyksha though elder by birth was younger by conception.
-
-
-THOUGHTS ON HIRANYKSHA.
-
-
-[Diti is literally 'Cutting,' 'Splitting,' or 'dividing.' Jaya and
-Vijaya mean victory. Hiranya is gold. Hiranyksha means gold-eyed.
-Hiranyakasipu means gold-bedded. The key to the mystery lies in the fact
-that Jaya and Vijaya were the door-keepers of Vishnu and their external
-form was that of Vishnu. The Purusha in the Heart is the Counterpart in
-microcosm of the Purusha in the Universe. And we have found above that
-the five or ten door-keepers or Brahm-Purushas in the Heart are the
-five or ten Prnas in man. By analogy, therefore, which is a potent
-factor in the solution of mysteries, we find that Jaya and Vijaya are
-the two-fold manifestations of Prana in Vaikuntha, the in-going and
-out-going energies of Purusha. The life principle is an aspect of
-Bhagavn and stands at His very gate. It is this outer aspect of Purusha
-that is the mainspring of all material activities, of all
-life-manifestations and of the material development of the universe. The
-duality represents Tmasic inaction and Rjasic activity. Hiranyksha
-would have no life-manifestation, no appearance of globes, he would
-continue a state of things verging on Prlayic sleep. Hiranyakasipu was
-the very ideal of material greatness and material grandeur. Kumbhakarna
-slept and Rvana worked. The brothers Jaya and Vijaya passed through the
-dividing energy of Diti, to cause the material manifoldness of the
-Universe. The Varha as representing the awakened Jivic Karma fought
-with the Asura that opposed the development of that Karma, which could
-only fructify on the Bhr system.]
-
-
-VIII. DEVA AND DEVA-YONI CREATION.
-
-
-*SKANDHA III., CHAP. 20.*
-
-Vidura asked Maitreya: How did Marichi and other Rishis and also
-Svyambhuva Manu carry out Brahm's orders to create.
-
-Maitreya continued the story of Creation in reply to Vidura.
-
-We have heard of the primal dark creation of Brahm, consisting of
-five-fold Avidy. Referring to that, Maitreya said, it was a creation of
-shadows. Brahm was not pleased with this shadowy creation. He gave up
-the dark body and it became night, At that time Yakshas and Rkshasas
-were born and they took it up. The body was not only dark, but it was
-the seat of hunger and thirst. The new-born therefore in their hunger
-and thirst ran after Brahm to devour Him. Some of them said: "Have no
-mercy on Him as father." Others said "Devour him." Brahm became afraid
-of them and said -- "Save me. You are my sons. You should not devour
-me." Those that said "Devour" are Yakshas and those that said "Do not
-save him" are Rkshasas. Brahm then created the Devas, with His radiant
-Stvika body.
-
-This body when given up became day and the playing Devas took it up.
-Brahm then created the Asuras out of His thigh. They became extremely
-passionate and ran after Brahm void of all shame. In great distress
-Brahm prayed to Vishnu and the Creator was told to give up His body of
-passion. The body was given up and it became Sandhy, or evening. The
-Asuras accepted Sandhy as their wife. Evening is the time for lust and
-passion. Brahm then created the Gandharvas and Apsaras with His body of
-beauty, which when given up became Moon-light. With his indolence,
-Brahm created the Bhtas and Pischas. They were stark naked and had
-long loose hair. Brahm closed his eyes on seeing them. After a time he
-gave up his yawning body and the Bhtas and Pishchas took it up. The
-body that causes secretion is called "Sleep."
-
-That which causes delusion is "Madness." Indolence, yawning, sleep and
-madness all these four were taken up by Bhtas and Pischas for their
-body. Brahm knew His powers and He created with His invisible body the
-Sdhyas and Pitris. By His power of becoming invisible, He created
-Siddhas and Vidhydharas and gave them His body with that power. By His
-reflected image He created the Kinnaras and Kimpurushas, who took up
-that image for their body. At dawn, they sing in pairs the praise of
-Brahm. Brahm did not find any progress in creation with all these
-Bhoga (expansive) bodies. He threw away His body and from His hair the
-elemental serpents or Ngas were born. After all, Brahm created the
-Mans and Rishis.
-
-
-IX. THE PROGENY OF KARDAMA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA III. CHAP. 21-24.*
-
-Kardama Rishi was ordered by Brahm to create. This led him to pray to
-Vishnu on the sacred banks of the Sarasvati, near Vindu Sarovara. Vishnu
-appeared before him with Lakshm by His side. He revealed to Kardama a
-happy future. The Rishi was to marry Manu's daughter, to have by her
-nine daughters and one son, an Incarnation of Vishnu Himself, who was to
-promulgate the Tatva Vidy. Shortly after, Svyambhuva Manu came to
-Kardama's hermitage, with his wife Sata-rup and offered to the Rishi
-his daughter Devahti in marriage. Kardama accepted her as his wife. He
-had by her nine daughters and the Avatra Kapila. Brahm with his sons
-the Rishis came to Kardama and congratulated him and his wife Devahti
-upon having Bhagavn Vishnu for their son. He then asked Kardama to give
-his daughters in marriage to the Rishis. Kardama followed his father's
-behests and gave his daughters duly in marriage to the Rishis. Kal, he
-gave to Marichi, Anasuy to Atri, Sraddh to Angirasa, Havirbhu to
-Pulastya, Gati to Pulaha, Kriy to Kratu, Khyti to Bhrigu, Arundhati to
-Vasishtha and Snti to Atharvan. The Rishi then went to the forest for
-yoga and left his wife in charge of Kapila.
-
-
-THOUGHTS ON KARDAMA.
-
-
-[Devahti means offering to Devas, which is universal service. She is
-the progenitor of those forms of life which have a spiritual influence
-over the whole Trailokya.
-
-"Kal" is part, a digit of the Moon.
-
-"Anasuy" means absence of envy. From the proverbial chastity of Atri's
-wife the word also means the highest type of chastity and wifely
-devotion.
-
-"Sraddh" means faith.
-
-"Havirbhu" means born of sacrificial oblation.
-
-"Gati" means course, path.
-
-"Kriy" means performance (of Yajna) and action.
-
-"Khyti" means fame, praise and also proper discrimination.
-
-"Arundhati" would perhaps mean one that does not stop or hinder.
-Probably the word means a wife who helps her husband in the performance
-of duties and does not stop or prevent him.
-
-It is for this reason that the Star Arundhati is pointed out to the
-bride at the nuptial ceremony.
-
-"Snti" is peace, the well known invocation of the Vedas at the end of a
-Mantra.
-
-"Kardama" means clay. He was born of Brahm's Chhy or shadow.
-
-Devahti, being wedded to the materialised shadow of the whole Universe,
-gave rise to certain female types which in their turn on being wedded to
-the Rishis, the highest Planetary Intelligences, became the progenitors
-of all the life forms of the Universe. Kapila was one of the earliest
-Rishis. The word -- Kapila means tawny or brown coloured.]
-
-
-X. KAPILA'S INSTRUCTION TO HIS MOTHER DEVAHTI.
-
-
-*SKANDHA III., CHAP. 25-33.*
-
-We now come to an important part of the Bhgavata Purna, the teachings
-of Kapila to his mother in the Yoga philosophy of the Bhagavat Purna.
-They adapt the Snkhya and the Yoga systems to Bhakti or devotion. For a
-full knowledge of the teachings I refer my readers to the Purna itself,
-I shall only give the salient points and avoid details as much as
-possible, without breaking the continuity of the discourses. "Yoga
-directed towards tm brings about Mukti. Chitta attached to the
-transformations of Gunas causes Bondage; attached to Pursha, it causes
-Mukti. When the mind is pure and free from distractions, man perceives
-tm in himself, by Wisdom, Dispassion and Devotion. There is no path so
-friendly to the Yogins as constant devotion to Bhagavn. Company of
-Sdhus opens wide the door to Mukti. They are Sdhus who have
-forbearance and compassion, who are friendly to all beings, who have no
-enemies, who are free from passions, and above all who have firm and
-undivided Bhakti in Me. They give up all for My sake and they hear and
-speak no words that do not relate to Me. Their company removes the
-impurities of worldliness. Men first hear about Me from the Sdhus. By
-faith their heart is drawn towards Me, and they have devotion for Me.
-Devotion causes Dispassion and makes easy the path of Yoga. By
-indifference to the Guna transformations of Prakriti, by wisdom fostered
-by Dispassion, by Yoga and by Bhakti (devotion) offered to Me, the Jiva
-attains Me even while in this body."
-
-"When the Indriyas (the senses and the mind), that manifest the objects
-of external and internal perception, become trained by the performance
-of Vedic Karma, their spontaneous Vritti (or function) in a man of
-concentrated mind is in Satva which is the same as Vishnu. This Vritti
-which is void of all selfishness is Bhakti in Bhagavn. It is superior
-to Mukti. It instantly destroys the Kosha (Astral body) as the digestive
-fire consumes food. The devoted have no yearning for that Mukti (Syujya
-or Nirvna) which makes the Jiva one with Me. But they prefer ever to
-talk with each other about Me, to exert themselves for My sake and ever
-to meditate on Me. Mukti comes to them unasked. My Vibhutis, the eight
-Siddhis (_anima &c._) and all the glory of the highest Lokas are theirs,
-though they want them not. I am their Teacher, their Friend, their
-Companion, their all. So even Kla cannot destroy them."
-
-"Purusha is tm. He is eternal, void of Gunas, beyond Prakriti, all
-pervading, self luminous and all manifestating."
-
-"Prakriti is Pradhna, one in itself, but is also the source of all
-differences (_visesha_), possessed of three Gunas, unmanifested
-(_avyakta_) and eternal."
-
-"The twenty four transformations of Prakriti called Prdhnika or Saguna
-Brahma are: --
-
-"5 Mah Bhtas -- Earth, Water, Fire, Air and Aksa.
-
-"5 Tanmtras -- Smell, Taste, Rpa, Touch and Sound.
-
-"10 Indriyas -- Ear, Skin, Eye, Tongue, Nose, Speech, Hand, Foot,
-Upastha and Pyu.
-
-"4 Divisions of Antahkarana -- Manas, Buddhi, Chitta and Ahankra."
-
-"Kla is the twenty-fifth. But according to some, Kla is Prabhva or
-Sakti of Purusha. Those who identify themselves with Prakriti are afraid
-of Kla. Kla as the outer aspect of Purusha disturbs the equilibrium of
-Gunas in Prakriti."
-
-"Purusha energised Prakriti and the Gunas led to transformations
-following the action of Daiva or Karma, (Jivic record of the previous
-Kalpa). Prakriti brought forth the refulgent Mahat Tatva. The seed of
-the Universe was in the bosom of Mahat, and it manifested the Universe
-and destroyed the darkness of Pralaya by its own light."
-
-"Chitta which is Vsudeva and Mahat, is Satva, transparent and pure, and
-the perception of Bhagavn is achieved by this division of Antahkarana."
-
-"Transparence (fitness for the full reflection of Brahm) immutability
-and tranquility are the characteristics of Chitta, as of water in its
-primal state."
-
-"Mahat Tatva was transformed into Ahankra Tatva, with its Kriy Sakti.
-Ahankra became three-fold -- Stvika (Manas), Rjasika (Indriyas) and
-Tamasika (Bhtas) _i.e._ Kartri or Cause, Karana or Instrument and
-Kryya or effect."
-
-"Sankarshana is the Purusha of Ahankra. He is the Thousand-Headed and
-Ananta (endless.)"
-
-"Manas is Sankalpa and Vikalpa. It is the generator of Kma (or desire.)
-So Aniruddha, the king of Indriyas, blue as the blue-lotus of autumn,
-the Pursha of Manas, has with patience to be got over by yogins."
-
-"Buddhi is Rjasa transformation of Ahankra. The perception of objects,
-dependence on the Indriyas, doubt, wrong-knowledge, right-knowledge,
-memory and sleep these are the functions of Buddhi. (Pradyumna is the
-Pursha of Buddhi.)"
-
-[The terminology here adopted will appear strange to the Vedantin
-scholar. The divisions of Antahkarana are here adopted to the sacred
-Tetractys or Chatur-vyuha, consisting of Vsudeva, Sankarshana,
-Aniruddha and Pradyumna. In Devotional practice, Antahkarana should be
-made the channel for higher communion and its divisions are the
-divisions of spiritual perception.
-
-Chitta is the highest aspect of Antahkarana corresponding to Mahat Tatva
-in the Universe, with the Purusha always reflected in it. This aspect
-corresponds to Vsudeva, the highest Purusha in the Tetraktys.
-
-Ahankra is the bare individuality, transformable into peculiarities,
-but not so transformed. Sankarshana is the corresponding Purusha.
-
-Manas is Kma or desire brought on by likes and dislikes. It consists of
-the mental tendencies of attachment, repulsion and indifference.
-Aniruddha is the corresponding Purusha.
-
-Buddhi is in one word the Chitta of Patanjali, -- that which functions
-through the physical brain.
-
-Pradyumna is the corresponding Purusha.]
-
-"The Indriyas are also the Rajasika transformations of Ahankra."
-
-Prana through its Kriy Sakti gave rise to the Karma Indriyas. Buddhi
-through its Jnna Sakti gave rise to the Jnna Indriyas. The Tanmatras
-and the Maha Bhtas then came out in order of transformation. All these
-principles could not, however, unite to bring forth the creation.
-Purusha then permeated them, and the Cosmic Egg with its covers was
-formed. Details are given as to how the Indriyas and Antahkarana with
-their Adhytma, Adhibhta and Adhidaiva appearing in the Virta Purusha,
-rose up from sleep as it were only when Chitta finally appeared.
-
-Kapila then dilated on the relations between Purusha and Prakriti, using
-the illustration of the sun reflected on water and re-reflected on the
-wall. He showed how Mukti could be attained by discrimination of
-Prakriti and Purusha -- the seer and the seen.
-
-Devahti asked how Mukti was possible when Prakriti and Purusha were
-eternally co-existent, and inter-dependent in manifestation. A man might
-for a time realize that the Purusha was free from the fears of
-relativity, but his Karma had connected him with the Gunas and the fears
-would recur as the ultimate cause could not be removed. Kapila replied,
-"By unselfish performance of duties, by purification of mind, by intense
-Bhakti in Bhagavn fostered by the recital of His glory, by wisdom based
-on the knowledge of the Tatvas, by strong dispassion, by austere yoga,
-by intense concentration on tm, Prakriti becomes daily subdued and it
-is finally consumed, even as the wood is consumed by its own fire,
-caused by constant friction. Given up as already enjoyed and constantly
-found fault with, Prakriti does no harm to the Purusha centred in Self.
-Dreams do harm in sleep. But when a man wakes up, they lose all power to
-injure, as they are then found to be dreams only."
-
-Kapila then explained the Ashtnga Yoga of Patanjali, as adapted to
-Bhakti and gave a graphic description of Vishnu as the object of
-meditation.
-
-He then explained Bhakti Yoga. Bhakti Yoga is either Saguna or Nirguna.
-As Saguna it is either Satvika, Rjasika or Tamasika.
-
-Nirguna Bhakti Yoga is that in which the mind runs towards Bhagavn,
-even as the Ganges runs towards the Sea, with a constant spontaneous
-flow. The Devoted spurn Slokya, Srshti, Smipya, Srpya and Syujya
-union[1] even when offered to them and they prefer to serve Bhagavn
-ever and ever. Compassion and friendliness to all beings are the
-essential qualifications of the Devoted. They must be humble, respectful
-and self controlled. They must pass their days in hearing and reciting
-the glory of Bhagavn.
-
-Kapila then described in vivid terms the life and death of a man of the
-world and his passage after death to Yma Loka. He described the rebirth
-and went through every detail of foetal existence. The foetus acquires
-consciousness in the seventh month and gets a recollection of previous
-births. This recollection is lost on being born.
-
-Those who selfishly perform their Dharma and worship Devas and Pitris go
-to Soma Loka, and after partaking of Soma, they are again re-born. And
-even their Lokas are destroyed with the daily Pralaya of Brahm.
-
-Those who unselfishly perform their duties and give themselves up
-entirely to the Supreme Purusha go through Srya (Sun) to the
-transcosmic Loka of Parama Purusha. The worshippers of Hiranyagarbha
-(Brahm) reach Brahm Loka or Satya Loka and there wait for two
-Parrddhas _i.e._ for the life time of Brahm and upon the final
-dissolution of the Brahmnda go to the trans-cosmic plane of Parama
-Purusha.
-
-Brahm, Marichi and other Rishis, the Kumras and Siddhas do their
-assigned work unselfishly, but their Upsan admits of distinction. So
-they are absorbed in the Second or the First Manifested Purusha at
-Pralaya and become re-born at creation.
-
-Devahti heard all this from Kapila. Her doubts were all removed and she
-found the light within herself. She remained fixed in meditation as long
-as her Prrabdha was not exhausted. She then attained Mukti.
-
-Kapila first went towards the North. The sea then gave Him place, where
-He still lies in deep Samdhi, for the peace of Trilok. (Gang Sgar or
-Saugor is said to be the seat of Kapila).
-
- [1] These are the five kinds of Mukti. Slokya is residence in the
- same Loka with the Supreme Being. Srshti is equality with the
- Supreme Being in all the divine attributes. Smipya is
- assimilation to the deity. Synjya is absorption into the Supreme
- Being.
-
-
-
-
-SKANDHA IV.
-
-
-
-THE GENEALOGY OF MANU AND THE RISHIS.
-
-
-*SKANDHA IV. CHAP. 1.*
-
-In every Manvantar, there are one Manu, sons of Manu, Devas, Indra or
-king of the Devas, seven Rishis and one Avatra of Vishnu. The Avatras
-of Purusha propel Manu and others to their work. At the end of every
-cycle of 4 Yugas, the Rishis by their Tapas find out the lost Srutis and
-revive the old Dharma. The Manus propound the Dharma. The sons of Manu
-including their descendants and others preserve the Dharma, in their
-respective times, to the end of the Manvantara. The Devas help them in
-their work. Indra preserves the Trilok and sends down rains" VIII. --
-14.
-
-In the Svyambhuva Manvantara, Svyambhuva was Manu, the Tushita Devas
-were the Devats, Marichi and others were the seven Rishis, Yajna was
-both Avatra and Indra. Priyavrata and Uttnpada were the two sons of
-Manu.
-
-A number of genealogical tables are given below:
-
-(N. B. The female names are given in italics)
-
-TABLE A.
-
- SVYAMBHUVA MANU m.
- SATARPA -----+---Priyavrata
- |
- +---Uttnpda
- |
- +---Akti
- | m. Ruchi +--- KAPILA
- | |
- +---Devahti |
- | m. Kardama -----+--- _Kal_
- | | m. Marichi
- +---Prasti |
- m. Daksha +--- _Anasuy_
- | m. Atri
- |
- +--- _Sraddh_
- | m. Angirasa
- |
- +--- _Havirbhu_
- | m. Pulastya
- |
- +--- _Gati_
- | m. Pulaha
- |
- +--- _Kriy_
- | m. Kratu
- |
- +--- _Khyti_
- | m. Bhrigu
- |
- +--- _Arundhati_
- | m. Vasistha
- |
- +--- _Sauti_
- m. Atharvan
-
-TABLE B.
-
- RUCHI m.
- KTI --- YAJNA --------------+
- (married his +--+--- Tosha
- sister) Dakshin. --+ |
- |
- +--- Pratosha
- |
- |
- +--- Santosha
- |
- |
- +--- Bhadra
- |
- |
- +--- Suti
- |
- |
- +--- Idmpati
- |
- |
- +--- Idhma
- |
- |
- +--- Kavi
- |
- |
- +--- Vibhu
- |
- |
- +--- Svhra
- |
- |
- +--- Sudiva
- |
- |
- +--- Rochana
-
- N.B. The sons of Yajna are the Sushita Devas of the 1st. Manvantar.
-
-TABLE C.
-
- Marichi
- _m. Kal_
- |
- |
- --+--+-----------------+-----
- | |
- Kasyapa Prnim
- |
- +--------------+------------+--------
- | | |
- Viraja Visvaga _Devakuly_
- (River Ganges in
- subsequent incarnation).
-
-TABLE D.
-
- Atri
- _m. Anasuya_
- |
- +----------------+--+------------------------+
- | | |
- Datta Durvasas Soma
- (Rudra) (Brahm)
-
-TABLE E.
-
- Angirasa
- _m. Sraddh_
- |
- ---+----------+-------+-+--------+----------+--------+-----
- | | | | | |
- Sinivali Kuh Rk Anumati Utathya Vrihaspati
-
-TABLE F.
-
- Pulastya
- _m. Havirbhu_
- |
- -------------+------------+----------------+
- | |
- Agastya Visvaras
- m. (1) Ilavila m. (2) Kesin
- | |
- Kuvera +------+------+-------------+
- | | |
- Rvana Kumbhakarna Vibhisana
-
-TABLE G.
-
- Pulaha
- _m. Gati_
- |
- -----+---------------+-+---------------+---
- | | |
- Karma Sreshtha Bariyas Sahishnu
-
-TABLE H.
-
- Kratu
- _m. Kriy_
- |
- 60,000 Balakhilya Rishis
-
-TABLE I.
-
- Vasishtha
- _m. Aruudhati (Urj)_
- |
- -----+---------+--------+---+--+-------+----------+-----------+--
- | | | | | | |
- Chitraketu, Surochi, Viraj, Mitra, Ulvana, Vasubhirdyana, Duyuman,
-
-TABLE J.
-
- Atharvan
- _m. Chitti_
- |
- Dadhchi ( Asvasiras )
-
-TABLE K.
-
- Bhrigu
- _m. Khyati_
- |
- +---------------+-------+---------+-----------+
- | | | |
- Dht Vidht Sr Kavi
- m. Ayati m. Niyati |
- | | |
- Mrikundu Vedasiras Usanas
- |
- Markndeya
-
-TABLE L.
-
- Daksha
- m. Prasti ---+-- m. Dharma
- |
- |
- +-- _Sraddh_, --- Satya
- |
- |
- +-- _Maitr_, --- Prasda
- |
- |
- +-- _Day_, --- Abhaya
- |
- |
- +-- _Santi_, --- Sama
- |
- |
- +-- _Tushti_, --- Harsha
- |
- |
- +-- _Pushti_, --- Garva
- |
- |
- +-- _Kriy_, --- Yoga
- |
- |
- +-- _Unnati_, --- Darpa
- |
- |
- +-- _Buddhi_, --- Artha
- |
- |
- +-- _Medh_, --- Smriti
- |
- |
- +-- _Titksh_, --- Kshema
- |
- |
- +-- _Lajj_, --- Vinaya
- |
- |
- +-- _Mrti_
- | m. Dharma --+-- Nara
- | |
- | +-- Nrayna
- |
- +-- _Svah_
- | m. Agni ---+-- Pvaka--+
- | | |
- | +-- Pavamn-+-- 45 Fires
- | | | (Agni).
- | +-- Suchi---+
- |
- |
- +-- _Svadh_,
- | m. Pitris --+-- Vayun
- | |
- | +-- Dhrini
- |
- +-- _Sti_
- | m. Siva
- |
- |
-
-TABLE M.
-
- Adharma
- _m. Mithy_
- |
- +-------------+--------------+
- | |
- Damba Married _My_
- |
- +-------------+--------------+
- | |
- Lbha Married _Sathat_
- |
- +-------------+--------------+
- | |
- Krdha Married _Hins_
- |
- +-------------+--------------+
- | |
- Kali Married _Durukti_
- |
- +-------------+--------------+
- | |
- Mrityu Married _Bhiti_
- |
- +-------------+--------------+
- | |
- Niraya _Yatan_
-
-TABLE N.
-
- Uttnapda
- _m. Suruchi_
- |
- Uttama
- (killed by Yaksha) _m. Sunti_
- |
- +-------------------------+
- |
- Dhruva
- m. Il m. Bharami
- | +-------------+
- +------+--------+ | |
- | | Kalpa Vatsara
- Utkala (Daughter) _m. Suvthi_
- |
- m. Prabh --+-------------+---------+-----+-+---+----+---
- | | | | | | |
- | Pushparna, Tigmaketu, Isha, rja, Vasu, Jaya
- |
- +--+---+------------+
- | | |
- Prtar Madhyandina Syam m. Dosh
- |
- |
- +-------------+---------------+
- | | |
- Pradosha, Nisitha, Vyushta
- _m. Pushkarin_
- |
- Sarvatejas
- or
- Chakshus
- _m. kt_
- |
- Manu
- _m. Nadval_
- |
- +-------+-------+-----+---------+-------+--+---------+--------+------+--
- | | | | | | | | |
- Puru, Kritasna, Rita, Vrata, Agnishtoma, Atirtra, Pradyumna, Sivi, Ulmka
- |
- +-------+--------+-------+--------+--------+--------+
- | | | | | |
- Anga, Sumanas, Svti, Kratu, Angiras, Gaya.
-
-Table N.--(_Contd._)
-
- _M. Sunth_
- |
- Vena
- (By Churning)
- |
- PRITHU
- _M. Archi_
- |
- ---+-------------+---+---------+----------+---------+----
- | | | | |
- Vijitsva, Haryaksha, Dhmrakesha, Vrika, Dravina.
- or
- Antardhna
- _M. Skihandini_ _M. Nabhasvati_
- | |
- --+---+-----+--------+-- -----+--------
- | | | |
- Pvaka, Pavaman, Suchi Habirdhna
- _M. Habirdhni_
- |
- ----+----------+------+--------+--------+---------+---
- | | | | | |
- Barhishad, Gaya, Sukla, Krishna, Satya, Jitabrata
- or
- Pr-china Barhi
- _M. Satadruti_ (Daughter of Ocean God)
- |
- 10 Prachetas
- M. The Vegetable daughter of Kaudu and Pramloch
- |
- Daksha (of Chakshusha Manvantara)
- _M. Asikni_ (Daughter of Panchajana)
- |
- +--+-------------------+----------------+
- | | |
- 10,000 Haryasva, 1,000 Sabalasva, 60 Daughters
-
- 10 Married to Dharma
- 2 " " Bhuta
- 2 " " Angiras
- 2 " " Krisasva
- 4 " " Tarksha
- 27 " " Moon
- 13 " " Kasyapa
- ------
- 60
-
-TABLE O.
-
- Dharma
-
- m.
- _1. Bhanu,_ ---- Devarshava ---- Indra Sena
-
- m.
- _2. Lamb,_ ---- Vidyota ---- The Clouds
-
- m.
- _3. Kaku,_ ---- Sankata ---- Kikata (The Presiding-Gods
- of earth cavities.)
-
- m.
- _4. Ymi,_ ---- Svarga ---- Nandi
-
- m.
- _5. Visv,_ ---- The Visvadevas
-
- m.
- _6. Sdhya,_ --- The Sdhyas ---- Arthasidhi
-
- m.
- 7. Maruvat, --+-- Marutvat
- |
- +-- Jayanta or Upendra
-
- m.
- _8. Muhrta,_ --- The Muhurta-Gods
-
- m.
- _9. Sankalp._ --- Sankalpa ---- Kma
-
- m.
- 10. Vasu ----+--- Drona,
- | m. Anumati ----+-- Harsha
- | |
- | +-- Soka &c.
- |
- +--- Prana,
- | m. Urjasvati --+-- Saha,
- | |
- | +-- yus,
- | |
- | +-- Purojava.
- |
- +--- Dhruva
- | m. Dharan ----- The different
- | Localities (Pura).
- |
- +--- Arka
- | _m. Vsan_ ------ Tarsha &c.
- |
- +--- Agni
- | m. Dhr -----+-- Sknda ---- _Viskh &c._
- | | (Kartikeya)
- | |
- | +-- Dravinaka & c.
- |
- +--- Dosha
- | _m. Sarvar_ ----- Sisumra
- |
- +--- Vstu
- | m. ngirasi ---- Visvakarm --+-- Chkshush Manu
- | |
- | +-- Visvadevas
- | |
- | +-- Sdhyas
- |
- +--- Vibhvasu
- m. sh -------+-- Vyustha,
- |
- +-- Rochisha,
- |
- +-- tapa ----- Panchayma
-
-TABLE P.
-
- Bhta
- m. 11. Svarup ----+-- Raivata,
- |
- +-- Aja,
- |
- +-- Bhava,
- |
- +-- Bhma,
- |
- +-- Bma,
- |
- +-- Ugra,
- |
- +-- Vrishkapi,
- |
- +-- Ajaikpda,
- |
- +-- Bahurpa,
- |
- +-- Mahnand
- Millions
- of such
- Rudras.
-
- 12. Married another
- wife ------------- Pretas
-
-TABLE Q.
-
- Angirasa
-
- _m. 13 Svadh_ _m. 14. Sat_
- | |
- | |
- Pitris Aharvngiras
-
-TABLE R.
-
- Krissva
-
- _m. 15. Archi_ _m. 16. Dhishan_
- | |
- | +-----------++--------+--------+
- | | | | |
- Dhmaketu Vedasiras Devala Vayuna Manu.
-
-TABLE S.
-
- Tarksha
-
- m. 17. Vinat m. 18. Kadru m. 19. Patang m. 20. Ymin
- | | | |
- +-+---+ | | |
- | | | | |
- Garuda Aruna Serpents Flying birds Salabha (Moths
- and locusts)
-
-TABLE T.
-
- Chandra (Moon)
-
- _m._ 21 to 47. Krittik &c
- (Stars in the lunar path on the Ecliptic.)
-
-TABLE U.
-
- Kasyapa
-
- _m. 48. Tim_ -------- Aquatic animals,
-
- _m. 49. Saram_ ------ Quadrupeds,
- (Tigers &c.)
-
- _m. 50. Suravi_ ------ Cloven footed
- animals.
-
- m. 51. Tmr ----+-- Syena (falcon)
- |
- +-- Gridhra &c. (vulture)
-
- _m. 52. Muni_ ------- Apsarasas
-
- _m. 53. Krodhivas_ --- Dvandaska &c. (serpents)
-
- _m. 54. Il_ ---------- Udvid (Plants)
-
- _m. 55. Suram_ ------- Rkshasas
-
- _m. 56. Aristh_ ------ Gandharvas
-
- _m. 57. Kshth_ ------ Animals other than
- cloven-footed.
-
- m. 58. Danu------+-- Dvimrdh,
- |
- +-- Samvara,
- |
- +-- Aristh,
- |
- +-- Hayagrva,
- |
- +-- Bibhvasu,
- |
- +-- Ayomukha,
- |
- +-- Sankusiras,
- |
- +-- Svarbhnu, ---- _Suprabha_
- | _m._ Namuchi
- |
- +-- Kapila,
- |
- +-- Puloman,
- |
- +-- Vrishaparva, ---- _Sarmisth_
- | _m._ Yayti
- |
- +-- Ekachakra,
- |
- +-- Anutapana,
- |
- +-- Dhmrakesha,
- |
- +-- Virpksha,
- |
- +-- Biprachitti ----+-- Rhu
- | m. Sinhak |
- | +-- 100 Ketus.
- |
- +-- Durjaya,
-
- Kasyapa
- m. Aditi --+-- Vivasvat
- | m. Sanjn ----+-- Srdhadeva
- | | Manu
- | | (The present
- | | Vaivasvata Manu)
- | |
- | +-- Yma
- | |
- | +-- Yamun
- | |
- | +-- Ashvini kumras
- |
- | m. Chhy -----+-- Sanaischara,
- | |
- | +-- Svarni,
- | |
- | +-- _Tapati_
- | _m._ Samvarana
- |
- +-- Aryaman
- | _m. Mtrik_ ---- Charshanis
- |
- +-- Pshan
- |
- +-- Tvastri
- | _m. Rachan_ ---- Visvarpa
- |
- +-- Tvastri
- | m. Prisni ---+-- _Svitri,_
- | |
- | +-- _Vyhriti,_
- | |
- | +-- _Tray,_
- | |
- | +-- Agnihotra,
- | |
- | +-- Pasuyga,
- | |
- | +-- Somayga,
- | |
- | +-- Chturmasya,
- | |
- | +-- Panchamahyajna.
- |
- +-- Bhaga
- | m. Sidhi -----+-- Mahiman,
- | |
- | +-- Bibhu,
- | |
- | +-- Prabhu,
- | |
- | +-- Ass
- |
- +-- Dhtri
- | _m. Kuh_ ------ Syam
- | _m. Sinivti_, --- Darsa
- |
- | _m. Rka_, ------- Prtar
- |
- | _m. Anumat_ --- Prnamsa
- |
- +-- Vidhtri
- | _m. Kriy_, ------ Purishya
- | (Five Fires)
- |
- +-- Varuna
- | m. Charshan --+-- Bhrigu
- | |
- | +-- Vlmla
- |
- | m. Urvas -----+-- Agastya
- | |
- | +-- Vasistha
- |
- +-- Mitra
- | m. Revat -----+-- Utsarga
- | |
- | +-- Aristh
- | |
- | +-- Pippala
- |
- +-- Vishnu
- | _m. Krti_ ----- Vrihat slocac --- Soubhaga
- | &c.
- |
- +-- Hiranyakasipu
- | _m. Kaydhu_
- | |
- | +--+-- Samhrda,
- | | _m. Mati_ -- Panchajana
- | |
- | +-- Anuhrda,
- | | m. Sury,--+-- Vskala
- | | |
- | | +-- Mahisha
- | |
- | +-- Hlda,
- | | m. Dhaman +-- Vtapi
- | | |
- | | +-- Ilvala
- | |
- | +-- Prahlda
- | _m. Drarb,_
- | |
- | Virochana
- | |
- | Bali
- | _m. Asan_
- | |
- | +----------+
- | | |
- | Vna 100 Sons
- |
- +-- Hiranyksha
- |
- +-- 49 Maruts
-
-
-
-GENERAL REMARKS ON THE TABLES.
-
-
-These Tables must not be mistaken for human genealogies. The reader will
-have to carry himself in imagination to a time when there was a vast
-sheet of nebulous mass, when the globes and planets had not been formed,
-and the phenomena now known as day, night, year, month and season were
-still unknown.
-
-The process known as Pralaya had absorbed the life energies of Trilok,
-which remained latent in that intermediate plane between the higher and
-the lower Lokas known as Mahar Loka. When the creative process set in,
-and the ground was prepared for the manifestation of life, life energies
-streamed forth from the Mahar Loka, more as types than as individuals.
-These types are called Prajpatis or the Lords of life kingdoms. They
-carry back to Trilok all the life energies of the previous Kalpa. At
-Pralaya, they draw back unto themselves all the life energies of the
-dying Trilok, and take a lasting sleep in the archetypal plane ( Mahar
-Loka ) to which they properly belong. The Prajpatis of the First
-Manvantara become the Rishis of other Manvantaras. As the first Lords of
-creation bring back the life energies as well as the lost experiences of
-the previous Kalpa, so the Rishis bring back the lost knowledge of each
-Manvantara. This is fully explained in the fourteenth Chapter of the
-Eighth Skandha. The Kumrs are not Prajpatis, as they come from a plane
-higher than Mahar Loka. In the first Manvantara, Marich, Atr Angirasa,
-Pulastya, Pulaha, Kratu, Bhrigu, Vasistha, Daksha, and Nrada are
-mentioned as the chief Prajpatis. Of these, Nrada is not strictly
-speaking a Prajpati, or Lord of creation, as he took no part in the
-work of creation, though he is called so having proceeded from Mahar
-Loka. Kardama, Ruchi and Visvakarm are some of the other Prajpatis.
-
-Of the Prajpatis, seven form distinct types by themselves. They preside
-over the seven stars, which form the constellation of Great Bear. They
-send forth their energies from the plane of the Seven Sages, and guide
-the course of life evolution that takes place in Trilok. The sages are
-relieved every Manvantara by others who take up their place. The seven
-sages of our Manvantara, are different from the Prajpatis of the first
-Manvantara. It is by great sacrifices and by great efforts that the
-highest Rishis of a Manvantara attain the position of the Seven Sages.
-The Sages may become Prajpatis, and Prajpatis may become Kumras. And
-men may become sages, if they follow the true path. The grades that
-divide men from sages or Rishis proper are many, and human evolution
-proceeds on the line of those grades.
-
-Energies of another kind proceeded from Mahar Loka, energies known as
-Devas and Asuras. They work out, or rather they are intimately connected
-with, the tendency of life-evolution. There is a tendency in the
-Spiritual Jiva to acquire experience of the lower planes, through senses
-which they develop. The Asuras are connected with this tendency. There
-is the opposite tendency in the Jiva to get rid of the material taint
-and the material restriction earned in the efforts to acquire manifold
-experiences and to gain back the original state of purity after the
-acquisition of fresh spiritual treasures though the experiences of
-matter. The Devas are connected with this tendency.
-
-These are the forms of life which then come into existence and work out
-their evolution in this Trilok.
-
-Life evolution proceeds on two different lines -- that of globes and
-that of individuals. They are represented by the two sons of Manu --
-Priyavrata and Uttnapda.
-
-In the line of Priyavrata we find how the globes were formed in the
-solar system, through various cosmic fires originating from Visvakarm,
-how this earth was formed, its continents and countries. The different
-divisions of the Bhr Loka are presided over by different forms of
-intelligence, who are the sons of Priyavrata.
-
-In the line of Uttnapda we find the different life kingdoms passing
-through different stages of evolution.
-
-First of all, we find a limit is put to life existence in Trilok by
-Dhruva. Dhruva, son of Uttnapda, presides over the Polar Star. That
-Star forms the farthest limit of Trilok. Matter is so attenuated there
-that it can last for one Kalpa. We are speaking of a period when infant
-souls merged out to commence the race of life in the present Kalpa. They
-were spiritual and highly spiritual too. But they were carried away by
-the general current of creative tendencies. They were to limit
-themselves by sheath after sheath, so that they might acquire the
-experiences of Svar Loka, of Bhuvar Loka and of Bhr Loka in succession.
-Dhruva, the infant soul, a child only five years old, however, resisted
-the common temptation. He would not go down, for he had an important
-service to render to the Universe. Who would advise him in this noble
-mission but Nrada. Nrada was out of element when the creative process
-was in full swing, and it was a necessity of life evolution. But there
-were instances of exception, instances of noble souls who would not go
-in with the general current, but would like to remain fixed in spiritual
-life, and Nrada was always to be found helping them with his advice.
-
-Dhruva remained fixed in his early spirituality. That was a sacrifice,
-for he could not enrich himself with further spiritual experiences,
-through the senses, of the lower planes of life. But he had to keep up
-an abode which was to be resorted to by evolved souls in later days,
-souls that in due course would reach that high spiritual plane.
-
-From that Klpic plane and the dweller thereof, we come to lower planes
-and their dwellers, to the divisions of time that rule the lives of
-individuals and of lives adapted to these divisions of time. We come
-from the elementals of the Svarga plane, or the Devas, to the elementals
-of the Astral or Bhuvar plane, the Pitris, Bhtas, Pretas and Pischas,
-till we reach the mineral kingdom, represented by Himalya, the Mountain
-king. At this point a turning point was reached in life evolution, and
-the goddess of life-evolution became the daughter of the Mountain king.
-Of this we shall know more hereafter.
-
-We know of Daksha, first as the son of Brahm, the creative Prajpati
-when the life-process rapidly worked itself out in Elemental forms. Then
-there was no sexual procreation. Creation meant the materialisation of
-the Jiva. Sat, the daughter of Daksha, was the guiding energy of
-life-evolution. She became wedded to Siva, the Lord of Bhtas, Pretas
-and Pischas who by the infusion of their Tmasic energies could bring
-down Jivas from their high spiritual plane.
-
-When the process of materialisation was over, when the Jivas or Monads
-reached the lowest limits of materiality, the mission of Daksha came to
-an end.
-
-Life evolution had now to pass through mineral, vegetable and animal
-stages, until at last the human stage was reached.
-
-Sat now appeared as the daughter of the mineral king Himlaya. She gave
-the upward bent to life evolution and by the energy she imparted
-minerals were able to shake off the rigidity and stability of gross
-matter, to develop the sense of touch and to become vegetable at last.
-In like manner vegetable became animal, and animals at last became men.
-
-Siva, the husband of Bhagavati or Durg, as Sat was now called, is the
-Purusha of Dissolution. Bhagavati is His Energy, Who guides the Monadic
-or Jiva Evolution of the Kalpa. It is the wear and tear, the process of
-destruction, that counteracts the cohesive strength of the particles
-forming mineral matter, which by its action becomes flexible and so
-receptive of outside influences.
-
-Cells by division and death become capable of the life process in
-themselves. Vegetables grow by the rejection of cells, which
-necessitates a number of physiological processes. Death brings on life,
-waste, repair.
-
-If animals exist in one and the same body, progress will be limited,
-further evolution will be impossible. It is by death that we evolve.
-
-Bhagavat works out the evolution of life in different kingdoms till the
-stage of humanity is reached.
-
-At this point Aryaman, one of the dityas, comes to the help of
-humanity. Through his influence the sons of humanity become endowed with
-the power of reasoning, -- the faculty of discrimination.
-
-The sons of Aryaman are called Charshanis. The word Charshani literally
-means a cultivator. Its secondary sense given in the Vedic lexicon is
-one endowed with the discriminative faculty. The word Charshani is used
-in the Vedas for man. It is the equivalent of Arya or Aryan, the
-ploughman. But it is not as ploughmen or cultivators, that the Aryans
-had their high place in humanity, but as men endowed with the power of
-discrimination. And this we owe to Aryaman. This is why, though an
-ditya, he is called the chief of Pitris by Sri Krishna.
-
-"I am Aryaman of the Pitris." -- Bhagavat Git.
-
-We have thus the first stage in life evolution, when the spiritual Jiva
-had to descend from the elemental to the mineral form. Next we have the
-second stage, when minerals passed through higher forms of life till the
-Human Kingdom was reached.
-
-Then we have the third stage, when men became endowed with the power of
-discrimination.
-
-In the exercise of the discriminative faculty men were helped by their
-elder brothers, the Rishis and Mahtms of every period, and by Avatras
-Who apeared from time to time.
-
-Then the ground was prepared for further evolution. The Sacred
-Injunctions or the Vedas were revealed to men to give them a sense of
-right and wrong, of duties and prohibitions. The Vedas also held out to
-the developed sense of men the charming prospect of life in Svarga Loka
-with its lasting and alluring enjoyments. This may be called the stage
-of Karma Knda. In following the stages of human evolution we have come
-down to Vaivasvatu Manvantara.
-
-Side by side with the efforts made to raise humanity in the scale of
-evolution, sin was accumulating in the great Atlantean continent which
-spread over the whole of what we now know as the Bay of Bengal. The
-Atlanteans had acquired a mastery over the five forces of nature, which
-they used for selfish objects and against the cause and current of
-evolution.
-
-Then there was a great revolution in Nature. The great Atlantean
-Continent went down with its load of sins. The sons of Sagar, the
-Atlantean king, became buried under the great ocean, which overtook the
-doomed continent, and to this day the sea is called in India, "Sgar" or
-relating to Sagar.
-
-There was a corresponding upheaval in the Himalayas, and the sacred
-river Gang streamed forth from their sides, inaugurating the spiritual
-regeneration of the Universe. Much of what we now know as India must
-have been raised up at the time, and on its sacred soil appeared the
-great Avatra Rma, Who put an end to the disorganising, chaos-loving
-sons of Lank. The people of Lank were called Rkshasas as they were
-working towards the destruction of all order, all progress in the
-Universe, and rendered everything topsy-turvy in Nature.
-
-Now it was time for Sri Krishna to appear, the greatest of all Avatras
-in our Kalpa, Who gave the last bent to the progress of humanity. He
-wedded Himself with all the principles that enter into the constitution
-of man, so that man may come up to Him. He taught the basic unity of all
-beings, and laid down the path of Service and Devotion. He established
-the reign of spiritual life, and ever since His lotus feet sanctified
-the soil of India, the Scriptures only re-iterate His teachings, and
-they all sing His glory for ever and ever. We shall find in its true
-place the Service done by Lord Sri Krishna, and how by His Avatarship
-humanity has made one more advance in the scale of human evolution. When
-the Lord appeared, Bhagavat made her appearance too as the daughter of
-Nanda. It is with Her energy that Sri Krishna performed the mission of
-His Avatarship.
-
-This is a bare outline of what the Tables teach us, We shall consider
-them each in its own place. We shall find a detailed account as to how
-the Universe is preserved. We shall hear of great Rishis, of many
-Avatras, of the part played by Devas and Asurus. We shall see how the
-Monads pass through different stages of evolution, till the idea of
-perfect humanity is presented by Lord Krishna.
-
-The Tables sometimes speak of life Kingdoms, sometimes of human races,
-sometimes of types and principles, and sometimes of individuals.
-Sometimes, the names used convey a good deal of hidden meaning,
-sometimes they are used at random.
-
-In the line of Priyavratra, we find how globes are formed, how
-continents and countries appear. The solidification of earth is
-indicated by the muteness of Bharata. Bhrata Varsa or India is called
-the first born of all countries, and other lands are enjoined to follow
-and to obey their eldest brother.
-
-
-TABLE A.
-
-
-*SKANDHA IV. CHAP. 1.*
-
-The names of the first table have been considered before.
-
-
-TABLE B.
-
-
-*SKANDHA IV. CHAP. 1.*
-
-Ruchi and Akuti both mean Wish, Desire. Yajna is sacrifice, Dakshin
-means ordinarily the present made to a Brhmana for officiating at a
-ceremony. It is also the present made for the performance of a Vedic
-sacrifice. No Vedic sacrifice is complete without the present of
-Dakshin to the officiating priest. Dakshin was married to Yajna, for
-they are inseparable. Possibly Yajna has reference to the elemental or
-Devic character of life forms in the first Manvantara. That also
-explains why there was no Indra separate from the Avatra of the
-Manvantara.
-
-The first Manvantara was one of Pravritti or Descent, Spirit could
-descend into matters only with the help of Desire. Desire is the father
-of Kma -- Kma is the characteristic of Vedic Yajna. Yajna therefore
-guided the First Manvantara. He was the Avatra of Vishnu as well as the
-Indra of the Devas.
-
-The sons of Yajna were the Devas of the First Manvantar. The Bhgavata
-calls them Sushita or Bliss gods. The Vishnu Purna calls them Yma
-Devas. The Manvantara Devas have for their mission the carrying out of
-the cyclic work of the Manvantara.
-
-
-TABLE C.
-
-
-*SKANDHA IV. CHAP. 1.*
-
-Marichi means literally a ray of light. The word is frequently applied
-to the sun's ray. As the sun's ray breaks up into the component colours,
-so the line of Marichi broke up into the life kingdoms. Kal means a
-digit of the moon. Kasyapa was the son of Marichi and Kal. He married
-the 13 daughters of Daksha, in the line Uttnapada. By his wives,
-Kasyapa was the father of Suras and Asuras, of elementals, vegetables,
-animals and men. He is directly connected with the Monads. Marichi and
-Kal have a special significance in reference to Jivic evolution. Does
-the pair symbolise the sun's ray reflected on the Moon or the Atmic ray
-reflected on Buddhi? Any how Marichi and Kal imply the divine ray in
-the Jivas or tma-Buddhi.
-
-The monads of individuals are limited by the shells or bodies of
-Kasyapa's line. (The word Kasyapa means primarily bed, seat). They come
-through Prnima, daughter of Marichi. The sons of Prnima are Viraja and
-Visvaga.
-
-Viraja is free from Rajas. Visvaga means one who goes all over the
-Universe. Viraja and Visvaga are Universal aspects of Jivic
-Intelligence.
-
-(Viraja is the father of Vairjas). Devakuly is the daughter of
-Purnim. She flowed from the washings of the feet of Vishnu and became
-the divine river Gang.
-
-
-TABLE D.
-
-
-*SKANDHA IV. CHAP. 1.*
-
-Atri = _a_ (not ) + _tri_ (three). Not three, but three in one. Anasuy
-= (not)+*asuy* (envy, intolerance, jealousy).
-
-Atri made severe Tapas for one hundred years for a son like unto the
-Lord of the Universe. The ascetic fire at last broke forth from his head
-and instantly Brahm, Vishnu and Siva appeared before him.
-
-"Lords!" said Atri, "I had only one of you in my mind, but you have all
-Three come to me!"
-
-The Trinity replied: -- "We are three in one. You shall have three sons,
-one after each of us."
-
-Anasuy begot Soma or the Moon after Brahm, Datta or Datttreya after
-Vishnu and Durvsas after Siva.
-
-[The Moon is thus a sort of Brahm or creator to the present Kalpa.]
-
-Atri represents the Creative, the Preservative and the Destructive
-Intelligence in the individual, all united to carry out the complex
-process of evolution.
-
-The Brihat Aranyaka certainly refers to one of his aspects in the
-following passage: --
-
-"Speech is Attri; for by speech food is consumed; for Attri is verily
-derived from the root Attih (to eat, consume); he is the consumer of
-all." II-2-4.
-
-
-TABLE E.
-
-
-"Where was he, who thus established us? He Is within the mouth; hence is
-Aysya. He is Angirasa, because he is the essence of the members."
-Brihat Aranyaka I-3-8.
-
-Commenting on this passage Sankarcharya says: "Life is also called
-Angirasa, the essence of causes and effects. Angirasa is a compound of
-Anga and Rsa -- Anga meaning members, causes, and effects, and Rsa
-essence, substance; the whole meaning therefore is the substance, upon
-which causes and effects depend -- It is the essence of every thing,
-because unless it were present, all would become without effect."
-
-"He who abides in the mouth is Angirasa, for he is the essence (Rsa) of
-the members (Anga). Life is the essence of the members. This is also
-Brihaspati. Speech is Brihati. Life is the preserver (_pati_) of
-Brihati, therefore it is Brihaspati."
-
-B.A. I-3-19 and 20.
-
-Brihaspati or the presiding deity of the planet Jupiter is called
-Angirasa _i.e._ the son of Angiras. The wife of Angiras is, according to
-the Bhgavata, Sraddha or Faith, and, according to Vishnu Purina, Smriti
-or Memory. The latter is a more suggestive name. Brihaspati or Jupiter
-is the essence of all beings and of the Universe and is connected with
-the memory of the past.
-
-Angirasa is the Rishi of the 5th Mandala of the Rig Veda. The Mantras of
-that Mandala are composed in the Brihati or big Metre. This accounts for
-the name Brihaspati (Brihati+pati).
-
-Brihaspati or Jupiter, as the guide of the Devas, has to play a most
-important part in bringing about the life evolution of the present Kalpa
-according to the records of the past and the essence or Rsa of all
-beings. The ranyaka therefore calls him life itself.
-
-Utathya, another son of Angiras, is _u+tathya_. _U_ is an interjection,
-used as an expletive -- _Tathya_ means reality, truth -- Utathya is said
-to be an incarnation of Vishnu. Both the brothers are said to have
-distinguished themselves in the Second Manvantar. _Sinivli_ is the day
-preceding that of new moon or that day on which the moon rises with a
-scarcely visible crescent. Kuh is new moon day when the moon is
-altogether invisible.
-
-_Rk_ is the full moon day.
-
-_Anumati_ is the 15th day of the moon's age on which she rises one digit
-less than full.
-
-The full moon and new moon days have thus a mysterious connection with
-the essence of all beings. On those days the herbs have their medicinal
-properties in full and even men have mysterious potencies, which have
-formed the subject of occult study.
-
-
-TABLE F.
-
-
-Pulastya = Pula + Stya.
-
-_Pula_ is large, wide. It also means a thrill of joy or fear.
-
-_Stya_ is he who collects, is connected with, remains in. Agastya = Aga
-+ Stya.
-
-_Aga_ is mountain, unable to walk, fixed.
-
-According to a Pauranik legend, the Vindhya mountain began to rise
-higher and higher so as to obstruct the path of the sun and moon. The
-gods being alarmed sought the aid of Agastya who was the teacher of
-Vindhya. The Rishi approached the mountain and asked it to bend down and
-give him an easy passage to the south and to retain the same position
-till his return. Vindhya obeyed the order of his teacher, but Agastya
-never returned from the south and Vindhya never attained the height of
-Meru.
-
-According to the Bhgavata, Agastya is the digestive fire of the
-stomach.
-
-Visravas = Vi (signifying intensity) + Sravas (ear).
-
-Kubera is literally deformed. He is the god of riches and Regent of the
-North. He is the king of the Yakshas and Kinnaras and a friend of Rudra.
-His abode is Kailsa. He is represented as having three legs, only eight
-teeth and a yellow mark in place of one eye.
-
-Rvana, Kumbhakarna and Vibhishana are Rkshasas made famous by the
-Rmayana.
-
-Rvana is one who makes a loud noise. The Rkshasas reached the height
-of their power in his time. The Yakshas, before his time, had occupied
-Lank or Atlantis under Kubera, but Rvana propitiated Siva by his loud
-hymns, and acquired easy mastery over his kindred elementals. He ousted
-the Yakshas from Lank and made it his own capital. Rvana also
-controlled the higher Devas of Trilok.
-
-Kumbha karna = Kumbha (pitcher) + Karna (ear). This pitcher-eared
-brother of Rvana is said to have devoured thousands of beings including
-sages and heavenly nymphs. He slept for six months at a time. He was
-ultimately slain by Rma.
-
-Vibhisana, meaning the Terrible, left his brother Rvana and joined
-Rma. After the death of Rvana, Rma installed him on the throne of
-Lank. He is said to be still living.
-
-The Rkshasas are said to have possessed Kma Rupa _i.e._ they could
-assume any body at will.
-
-In the line of Pulastya we have this strange combination -- the
-digestive fire of stomach, ears, Yakshas and lastly the Rkshasas who
-could change their body at will. Altogether we may say, Pulastya is
-Intelligence which governs animal passions and Kma.
-
-
-TABLE G.
-
-
-Pulaha = Pula + ha. _Ha_ is one who gives up.
-
-_Gati_ is motion.
-
-_Karma-Srestha_ is one most skilled in karma or work.
-
-_Varyas_ is excellent, preferable.
-
-_Sahishnu_ is patient, enduring.
-
-Pulaha seems to be the higher aspect of Kma -- the impulses pure and
-simple, apart from their Kmic generator, or perhaps Pulaha may
-represent Prnic activity.
-
-
-TABLE H.
-
-
-Kratu is a Vedic sacrifice, intelligence, power, ability. Kriy is
-action.
-
-Blakhilyas -- are a class of Rishis 60,000 in number, of the size of
-the thumb, and are said to precede the sun's chariot. The word literally
-implies stunted in growth like infants. These Rishis are said to burn
-brightly with the spiritual fire of asceticism. The number 60,000 is
-significant. It indicates a correspondence.
-
-Perhaps the Rishis represent the sense perceptions which are guided by
-the Adhidevas who have their abode in the heart of the sun. The
-Balakhilya Rishis are therefore said to accompany the sun's chariot.
-Their connection with Vedic sacrifices is also intelligible, as they are
-generally directed to the Adhidevas.
-
-
-TABLE I.
-
-
-Vasisth is the Controller. He is the spiritual teacher of the Solar
-Race and represents spiritual Intelligence or Higher Manas. He is the
-controller of the senses and the lower mind.
-
-Urj is Energy. She is also called Arundhati.
-
-
-TABLE J.
-
-
-_Atharvan_ -- The Veda called by that name.
-
-_Dadhchi_ -- The name of a Rishi who accepted death In order to serve
-the Devas. Visvakarmn forged the thunderbolt with his bones and Indra
-defeated Vritra, the Asura King, with that weapon.
-
-The line of Atharvan represents self sacrifice for universal good as
-well as magic or occult wisdom.
-
-
-TABLE K.
-
-
-_Bhrigu_ -- is the Dweller of Mahar Loka, or the Archetypal plane. Upon
-the Pralaya of Trilok, the essence of that triple plane and its Karma
-become embedded in Mahar Loka. The creative process sets in again in
-strict conformity to the Karma of the past. Bhrigu is therefore father
-of:
-
-_Dht_ -- or Universal Karma
-
-_Vidht_ -- or Individual Karma, and
-
-_Sri_ or _Lakshm_ -- the wife of Vishnu, the Energy of Preservation.
-
-_Ayati_ -- or potency is the wife of Dht, Mrikandu and Markandeya, are
-in this line.
-
-_Niyati_ -- or fate, is the wife of Vidht. Prna and Vedasiras are in
-this line.
-
-_Kavi_ -- is another son of Bhrigu and _Usanas_ or _Sukra_ is Kavi's
-son. But according to some authorities Kavi is the same as Usanas. It is
-a matter for reflection how Sukra or the presiding Rishi of the planet
-Venus is connected with Mahar Loka or the trans-personal plane. Mahar
-Loka is the first approach to universality and therefore may correspond
-to Higher Manas. However that be, Venus corresponds to the first plane
-of universality.
-
-The consideration of Tables C to K has proved to be an interesting one.
-But readers are requested to remember that this is a mere study by an
-inquiring student and they are left to think for themselves. I might
-have dwelt at some length on this portion of the subject, but that would
-be going beyond the scope of the present work.
-
-Briefly speaking then,
-
-_Marchi_ -- is Mondic ray or tm-Buddhi,
-
-_Atri_ -- is the adjustment of the creative, preservative and
-destructive tendencies in a Jiva,
-
-_Angiras_ -- is the Essence of Creation, the auric repository of the
-Jiva,
-
-_Pulastya_ -- is Kmic Intelligence,
-
-_Pulaha_ -- is higher Kmic Intelligence, or it may be Prnic also,
-
-_Kratu_ -- is lower Mnasic Intelligence,
-
-_Vasishtha_ -- is Higher Mnasic Intelligence.
-
-
-TABLE L.
-
-
-_Daksha_ -- is the Able.
-
-_Prasti_ -- is the Mother, the Procreative Energy. During the First
-Manvantara Daksha had nothing to do with sexual procreation. He was the
-father of 16 primal energies. These energies were wedded to Dharma,
-Agni, the Pitris and Siva -- 13 to Dharma and one to each of the others.
-
-_Dharma_ -- is that which binds the creation. Man and man, man and
-animal, animal and animal, all forms of creation are kept together by
-Dharma. The binding forces of creation are the wives of Dharma.
-
-_Sraddh_ or Faith is the first wife of Dharma. Her son is _Satya_ or
-Truth.
-
-_Maitri_ or Friendliness is the second wife. Her son is _Prasda_ or
-complacence.
-
-_Day_ or compassion is the third wife. Her son is _Abhaya_ or Freedom
-from fear.
-
-_Snti_ or Peace is the fourth wife. Her son is _Sama_ or Tranquility.
-
-The fifth wife is _Tushti_ or contentment. Her son is _Harsha_ or joy.
-
-The sixth wife is _Pushti_ or Fullness. Her son is _Garva_ or Pride.
-
-The seventh wife is _Kriy_. Her son is _Yoga_.
-
-The eighth wife is _Unnati_ or Advancement. Her son is _Darpa_ or
-Vanity.
-
-The ninth wife is _Buddhi_. Her son is _Artha_.
-
-The tenth wife is _Medh_ or Intellect. Her son is _Smriti_ or Memory.
-
-The eleventh wife is _Titiksh_ or Forbearance. Her son is _Kshema_ or
-Well-being.
-
-The twelfth wife is _Lajj_ or Shame. Her son is _Vinaya_ or Modesty.
-
-The thirteenth and last wife of Dharma is _Mrti_ or Form. Her sons are
-Nara and Nryana, _i.e._ Humanity and Divinity. The Human Form
-constitute a Duality. It is in this dual form that Sri Krishna
-incarnated Himself.
-
-From Dharma we pass to Agni.
-
-[Agni is used in many senses. It means the channel of communication
-between different kingdoms in nature, specially between Man and Deva, as
-also a vehicle of consciousness, and sometimes consciousness itself. It
-also means the Rupa or form-giving principle in the Universe. It is
-frequently used in the Purnas in the last sense.]
-
-Agni was wedded to _Svh_, the 14th. daughter of Daksha. His three sons
-are _Pvaka_ or the Purifier, _Pavamn_ or that which is being purified
-and _Schi_ or Pure. They have 45 sons who with their fathers and
-grandfather form the Forty-nine Fires. They are separately mentioned in
-the Vedic Sacrifices in honour of Agni.
-
-_Svadh_ is the 15th. daughter of Daksha. She was married to the Pitris.
-Agnishvatv, Barhishad, Somapa and jyapa are the names of the Pitris.
-They are with fire (Sagni) or without fire (Niragini). Svadh bore two
-daughters to the Pitris, Vayun and Dhrini. Both of them were
-well-versed in the Supreme wisdom.
-
-[_Vayn_ is knowledge, wisdom, faculty of perception. _Dhrini_ means
-that which bears, holds, carries, supports. Sometimes the word is used
-to mean the earth.
-
-This two-fold classification means that some of the Pitris give the
-_body_, which is the receptacle or carrier, with its sub-divisions, and
-others give knowledge, wisdom and the faculties of perception].
-
-_Sti_ is the last daughter of Daksha. She was wedded to Siva. We shall
-specially notice her in the succeeding chapter.
-
-
-
-THE QUARREL BETWEEN SIVA AND DAKSHA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA IV., CHAP. 2.*
-
-Of old the Prajpaties performed a Yajna, and the Devas and Rishis all
-graced the occasion with their presence. Prajpati Daksha entered the
-assembly, when all stood up to receive him, except Brahm and Siva.
-Daksha saluted his father Brahm and with His permission took a seat.
-But he was so mortified by the conduct of Siva that he could not contain
-himself, and indignantly broke forth thus: -- "O you, Rishis, Devas and
-Agni! Witness this disgraceful conduct of Siva my own son-in-law, rather
-my disciple. This senseless being would not do so much as rise up and
-receive me. He has no sense of respect and dis-respect, of purity and
-impurity. He is mindless of all injunctions and observances. Do you
-know, what he does? He roves like a mad man in the crematories, with his
-host of Bhtas, Pretas and Pischas, sometimes laughing, sometimes
-weeping, his body covered over with the ashes of dead bodies, their
-bones serving for his ornaments. His name is Siva (auspicious). But he
-is really A-Siva (inauspicious). He is fond of intoxication, and his
-companions are the impure and senseless Bhtas. Oh! that I have given my
-daughter Sti in marriage to him. That was simply to obey the orders of
-Brahm."
-
-Siva remained unmoved. Daksha went on abusing Him and at last he cursed
-Siva saying "This vilest of Devas shall not participate in the
-sacrificial offerings to Indra, Upendra and others." He then left the
-place in a rage.
-
-Nandisvara, the chief companion of Siva, could not bear the gross and
-wanton insult done to his master. He retorted in angry tones the unkind
-words of Daksha and the approbation of some of the councillors. "Siva
-bears malice to none. It is Daksha who makes differences, where there
-are none. Ignorant people follow him and blame Siva. The Vedas deal with
-transitory objects. Worldly attachments receive an impetus from the
-Karma Knda of the Vedas and they beget vices and evil deeds. This
-Daksha looks upon the body as the soul. He shall be as fond of women as
-a beast and his face shall he that of an Aj (goat). Verily he deserves
-this, as he looks upon Avidy as Tatvavidy. He publicly insults Siva.
-The Brhmanas who follow him shall go through the repeated course of
-births and deaths and shall resort to the apparently pleasing Karma
-Knda of the Vedas. These Brhmanas shall have no scruples to eat
-anything and they shall make a profession of their learning, their Tapas
-and their austerities (Vrata). They shall consider their riches, their
-body and their Indriyas to be all in all. They shall beg about from door
-to door."
-
-Bhrigu, the leader of the Brhmanas, thus returned the curses of Nandi
-on the followers of Siva: -- "Those that will follow Siva, shall be
-disregardful of the Sat (real) Sastras and shall be irreligious. With
-braids of hair on their head, and ashes and bones round their body, they
-shall frequent places where wine is indulged in. The Vedas have at all
-times laid down the approved path. The Rishis of old followed their
-injunctions and Nryana is at their very root. Those that forget all
-this shall only attain the Tmasic Siva, the Lord of Bhtas and
-Pishachas."
-
-Siva with his followers then left the place. The Prajpatis performed
-the Yajna for 1,000 years.
-
-Sometime after, Brahm made Daksha the head of the Prajpatis, and his
-pride knew no bounds. He commenced a sacrifice called Vrihaspati Yajna
-and to it he invited all except Siva and his own daughter Sti. Sti
-heard of the grand preparations made by her father and became impatient
-to witness the Yajna herself. Siva at last yielded to her expostulations
-much against His own will. She left for Daksha's house accompanied by
-the attendants of Siva. At last she reached her father's house and went
-to the place of sacrifice. But her father would not receive her. She did
-not find any offering to Siva. She could easily make out that Daksha had
-disregarded her husband. No attention was also paid to her. She grew
-furious with rage and addressing her father said: -- "With Siva, all are
-equal. He has enmity with none. Who else but thee could be envious of
-his virtues? Thou hast attributed evil things to Siva. But do not the
-Devas know all that and knowingly worship Him? If the devoted wife
-cannot kill her husband's calumniators, she must leave the place with
-ears closed with her hands. But if she is strong enough, she must in the
-first place sever the tongue of the calumniator from his body by force
-and then put an end to herself. Thou art the calumniator of Siva. This
-my body is from thee, so I shall not keep it any longer. If prohibited
-food is taken, the best thing is to throw it out. True, there are the
-two Paths of Inclination (Pravritti) and of Renunciation (Nivritti). But
-one cannot adopt both the Paths at one and the same time. What action is
-there for Siva? He is Brahm Himself. Thou speakest of His ashes and
-bones. But hast thou any idea of His Yogic powers, in comparison with
-which thy powers as a performer of Vedic sacrifices are nothing? But
-there is no use wrangling with thee. I am ashamed of this body which has
-connection with thee. The sooner I get rid of it the better."
-
-So saying Sti gave up her body, and there was great uproar. Her
-attendants made ready for an attack, when Bhirgu, who acted as Adhvaryu,
-invoked the Ribhus. They appeared and beat the attendants of Siva, who
-ran away on all sides.
-
-Nrada informed Siva of what had happened. Siva bit His lips in anger
-and tore up a Jat (matted hairtuft) from his head. The Jat glowed with
-electric fire.
-
-He threw it down on the earth and the terrible Virabhadra sprang from
-it. His tall body reached the high heavens. He was dark as the clouds.
-He had one thousand hands, three eyes burning like the sun, teeth
-terrible to look at, and tufts of hair bright as fire. He had a garland
-of human skulls round his neck and there were various weapons in his
-hands.
-
-"What are thy behests, O Lord?" exclaimed Virabhadra. "Thou art clever
-in fight, child, thou hast nothing to fear from the Brhmanas, for
-verily thou art part of myself. Go forth at the head of my army. Put an
-end to Daksha and his Yajna." Such was the command of Siva. Virabhadra
-rushed forth with trident in hand, and the attendants of Siva followed
-him with enthusiasm and noise. The priests, the Brhmanas and their
-wives present at Daksha's sacrifice saw a huge dust storm, as it were,
-coming from the north. "Can it be the hurricane?" thought they, "but the
-wind is not strong. Can this be the march of robbers? But King
-Prchinabarhi is still alive. In his reign there is no fear from
-robbers. No one is driving cattle. What can be the cause of this
-approaching volume of dust?" The attendants of Siva arrived in no time.
-Some of them were brown coloured, some yellow. Some had their belly,
-some their face, like Makara. They broke the implements of sacrifice and
-scattered them around. They pulled down the buildings and put out the
-fires. They made all sorts of sacrilege, ran after the Rishis and Devas
-and frightened the women. Manimn caught hold of Bhrigu and tied him up.
-Virabhadra captured Daksha; Chandesa captured Sryya and Nandisvara
-captured Bhaga. Seeing this, the other Brhmanas and Devas took to
-flight, but they were grievously hurt by the stones cast at them by the
-followers of Siva. Virabhadra began to uproot the beard of Bhrigu, for
-while scoffing Siva he made his beard prominent. Nandishvara pulled out
-the two eye-balls of Bhaga, for he had encouraged Daksha by side
-glances. Virabhadra did not also spare Pshan, and pulled out all his
-teeth. Pshan had showed his teeth while smiling in approval of Daksha's
-abuse. But the crowning act of Virabhadra was still to come. He sprang
-upon Daksha and made several attempts to cut off his head. But the head
-resisted all his strokes. Wonder-struck, he took at last the weapons of
-sacrifice and easily severed the head of Daksha even as it were the head
-of a beast of sacrifice. Loud were the lamentations at the place of
-sacrifice when Virbhadra with his followers left it for Kailsa.
-
-The Devas after this signal defeat went to Brahm. Brahm and Vishnu
-knew what was to happen at Daksha's sacrifice, so they had kept
-themselves aloof. When the Devas had related their mishap, Brahm
-explained to them that they had done wrong in not allowing Siva to
-participate in the Yajna offering. There was no help now but to appease
-the Astral Lord, Who could destroy the Universe at His will. So saying
-Brahm himself went with the Devas to Kailsa the abode of Siva. He
-found there higher beings than men perfected by birth, herbs, Tapas,
-Mantra or Yoga and Yakshas, Kinnaras, Gandharvas and Apsarasas. The
-river Nand (Gang) traced its course round Kailsa. High up on the
-mount was the abode called Alak and the garden called Saugandhika
-(sweet-scented). On two sides of Alaka were the two rivers Nand and
-Alakanand, sanctified by the dust of Vishnu's feet. Alak is the abode
-of Kubera, the Yaksha king. The Kinnaras occupied the Saugandhika
-garden. Near it was a large fig tree (Vata) 800 miles (100 Yojanas)
-high, the branches spreading over 600 miles. Below that tree, the Devas
-found Siva in deep meditation for the good of the Universe. Brahm asked
-Him to pardon Daksha and his followers who had slighted Him by
-withholding Yajna offerings. "Through thy favour let the Yajna be
-completed now. Let Daksha get back his life. Let the eyes of Bhagadeva,
-the head of Bhrigu, the teeth of Pshan, be restored. Let the Devas and
-the sacrificial Rishis be relieved of all pain in their broken limbs.
-Since now, the remnants of Yajna offerings are all Thine. Take Thy
-offerings, and let the sacrifice be completed this day."
-
-Siva replied with a smile thus: -- "Daksha is a mere child. I do not
-even think of him as an offender. But I have to set right those that are
-led astray by My. Daksha's head is burnt up. So let him have the head
-of a goat. Bhagadeva shall find his Yajna offerings through the eyes of
-Mitra. Pshan shall have _pishta_ (crushed or ground up things) for his
-offerings. In company with other Devas, however, he shall have the use
-of the sacrificer's teeth. Let the broken limbs of the Devas be
-rehabilitated. But those that have lost their limbs shall use the arms
-of Asvinikumra and the hands of Pshan. So let it be with the Rishis
-too. Bhrigu shall have the beard of a goat."
-
-The Devas thanked Siva for His great kindness and invited Him to the
-sacrifice. Brahm accompanied Siva. Daksha regained life and looked on
-Siva with reverence. He acquired wisdom and became purified in mind. The
-sacrifice was duly performed. Daksha sat in meditation and, lo! Vishnu
-appeared on the back of Garuda.
-
-All rose up and saluted Him. Spontaneous prayers broke forth from one
-and all. Vishnu participated in the Yajna offerings. Addressing Daksha
-He said: -- "Only ignorant people see the difference between Me and
-Siva. I, Siva and Brahm are Three in One. For the creation,
-preservation and dissolution of the Universe, We assume three different
-Names. We, as the triune tm, pervade all beings. Wise men therefore
-look upon all others as their own selves."
-
-Such is the story of Sti's death. She took birth again as the daughter
-of Himlaya and became wedded once more -- the union with Siva this time
-was permanent.
-
-
-
-THOUGHTS ON THE ABOVE.
-
-
-Brahm, Vishnu and Siva are the three aspects of the Second Purusha.
-
-Brahm brings into manifestation the Prajpatis, and the Prajpatis
-bring into manifestation the individuals and life forms. The other
-Prajpatis mostly represent the principles that enter into the
-constitution of life-forms, while Daksha represents the combination of
-principles forming a life unit.
-
-Daksha had sixteen daughters -- thirteen he gave in marriage to Dharma,
-one to Agni, one to the Pitris and one to Siva.
-
-Agni or the god of Fire is the Rupa or form-giving Deva. Fire is used in
-sacrifice, because it changes the form of things offered and makes them
-acceptable to the gods by change of form.
-
-If Agni represents Rpa Devas or Devas with forms, Dharma might
-represent Arpa Devas or Devas without forms.
-
-The Pitris, of whom four classes are only mentioned (Agnishvtvas,
-Barhishads, Saumyas and Ajyapas), are also divided into two classes, --
-one with fire and one without fire.
-
-The attendants of Siva were dwellers of the astral or Bhuvar plane.
-
-For the sake of convenient reference we shall call the dwellers of
-Svarga Loka Devas and the dwellers of Bhuvar Loka, Astrals. The
-different classes of Devas and Astrals are described in the 20th.
-chapter of the 4th. Skandha. The Devas and Astrals were brought into
-manifestation by Daksha, whose position in creation was next to that of
-Brahm. Therefore all stood up to receive him at the sacrifice except
-Brahm.
-
-Siva first appeared as Kumra Nla Lohita or Rudra. And all beings
-thereafter got the potentiality of dissolution, phenomenal change, death
-and decay. But in the first stage of life process, phenomenal change,
-decay or dissolution was not in requisition, as Monads went on in their
-downward journey, not by dissolution, but by evolution. They remained
-what they were, and they acquired in addition a more material form. As
-the material form became prominent the Deva form and the astral form
-became suppressed.
-
-Consciousness in Deva form manifests itself as mind, in the astral form
-as animal desire and sense perception. In the mineral form it can hardly
-shew itself.
-
-Siva works out the decay and dissolution of mineral matter, so that the
-astral element may once more assert itself and there may be sense
-perception in the mineral metamorphosed into the vegetable. The process
-is carried further in the animal kingdom, and the animals get a
-constitution in which Kma or animal desire can manifest itself. The
-animals evolve themselves by death. Death frees them from the trammels
-of one set of experience, and carries them onwards till the human body
-is reached.
-
-The work of dissolution proceeds in various ways. Our sleep is partial
-dissolution. It is brought on by the astral attendants of Siva.
-
-Dissolution is caused by Tamas. Tamas begets inaction, and inaction
-causes death and decay. There is no phenomenal change without
-dissolution, death or decay.
-
-There are so many material tendencies in us that they require rejection.
-Siva gives us the power of rejection, as Vishnu, the power of
-preservation -- preservation of all that is good in us. Death makes the
-man, where moral teachings fail, The Consort of Siva is the Energy
-through Whom He guides the life process of Monads or Jivas. In the first
-stage of life process She is called Sti or the Lasting. For the body of
-the Jiva was lasting during the period of evolution. But Her mission was
-to act on the Monad itself, to cause the material tendency in it by
-means of Tamas.
-
-In the second stage, She is the Energy of dissolution, death and
-phenomenal change. In the third stage, she is over and above that the
-Energy of rejection (of all that is evil in us.) She is the kind mother,
-who has been nourishing all Jivas in their course of evolution.
-
-When the Mineral form was reached by the primal elemental Jiva, the
-creative process had done its work and the process of dissolution was to
-assert itself. There was to be a revolution in the life process. Sti
-gave up her own nature and became re-born in another character in the
-Mineral Kingdom. The creative process was materially changed. Daksha
-lost his original head, and he acquired the head of a goat. The goat
-symbolises sexual connection. All this happened during the reign of
-Prchina-Barhis. The Prachetas brothers were his sons. Daksha reappeared
-as the son of the Prachetas brothers.
-
-The dityas or gods of preservation who formed Daksha were Pshava and
-Bhaga. They were the preserving deities of the first stage of life
-process. When the next stage came in, they lost their activity. This
-explains the breaking of teeth and the uprooting of eyes of two of the
-dityas. The subjoined Table of correspondences taken from the 11th.
-Chapter of the Twelfth Skandha shews that Pshana and Bhaga correspond
-to the months of Pausha (December) and Mgha (January) when the rays of
-the sun are the least powerful. These dityas preserve Jivas in their
-downward course. Pshana was a favorite god of the Aryan shepherd.
-
-
-------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------
-NO MONTH ADITYA RISHI YAKSHA RAKSHAS NAGA GANDHARVA APSARAS
-------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------
- 1. Chaitra Dhatri Pulastya Rathravit Heti. Vsuki. Tumburu. Kritusthali.
-------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------
- 2. Baiska Aryaman Pulaha Athaujas. Praheti. Kachnira Nrada Punjikasthali.
-------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------
- 3. Jyaistha Mitra. Atri Rathasvana Paurusheya Takshaka Hh. Menak.
-------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------
- 4. srha Varuna. Vasistha. Chitrasvana Sahajayna Sukra. Huh. Rambh.
- (Sahajany)
-------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------
- 5. Srvana Indra. Angiras. Sroti. Varya Elaptara Visvvasu Pramlocha.
-------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------
- 6. Bhadra Vivasvat Bhrigu. Asrana. Vyghra. Sankhahla Ugrasena. Anumlocha.
-------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------
- 7. Mgha Pshan. Gautama. Suruchi. Vta. Dhanjaya. Sushena. Ghritchi.
-------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------
- 8. Flguna Parjanya Bharadhvaja Ritu. Vorch. Airvatra Visva. Senajit.
- (Savitri)
-------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------
- 9. Agrahyana Ansu. Kasyapa. Ritusena. Vidyatsatru Mahsankha Ritusena. Urvasi.
- (Vidhtri)
-------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------
- 10. Pausha. Bhaga. Kratu. Urna. Sphrja. Karkotaka. Arishtanemi Purvachitti
-------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------
- 11. svina Tvastri. Jamadagni. Satajit. Brahmpeta. Kambala. Dhritarshtra Tilottam.
-------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------
- 12. Krtika Vishnu. Visvmitra. Satyajit. Makhpeta. Asvatara. Sryyavarch. Rambh.
-------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------
-
-
-TABLE M.
-
-
-There is not much to detain us in this Table. It will be enough if
-readers will please note the meanings of the names used.
-
-
-TABLE N.
-
-
-We must divide this Table into the following heads: -- I. The story of
-Dhruva, II. The story of Pirthu, III. The story of Prachina Barhis, IV.
-The allegory of Puranjana, and V. The story of the Prachetasas.
-
-
-I. THE STORY OF DHRUVA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA IV. CHAP. 8-12.*
-
-Uttnapda is one of the sons of the First Manu. Uttnapda means "with
-uplifted foot". This perhaps refers to the period when the Jiva, having
-still the spiritual element strong in him, was not fixed in the course
-of material descent, but had one foot towards Mahar-Loka. Uttnapda had
-two wives Suruchi (with good graces) and Suniti (of good morals). Uttama
-or the Highest was the son of Suruchi. Dhruva or the fixed was the son
-of Suniti. Once upon a time, Dhruva found Uttama on his father's lap and
-he wished to be there himself. For fear of Suruchi, Uttnapda did not
-dare stretch forth his hands towards Dhruva, while Suruchi herself
-taunted the boy for his impudent aspiration. Stung to the quick by the
-bitter words of his stepmother Dhruva forthwith left the place and went
-straight to his mother and related to her his grievances. Suniti advised
-her son who was only five years old to make Tapas. Dhruva did not lose
-time but left home to make Tapas as directed by his mother. Nrada met
-him on the way. "Thou art a child Dhruva" said the great Rishi. "How is
-it possible for thee to find out Him by Tapas, Who is attainable by
-intense Yoga concentration and freedom from passion practised for
-several births. Desist my boy, for the present. Try, when thou hast
-enjoyed all the things of the world and hast grown old". But Dhruva was
-fixed in resolve and he importuned Nrada to teach him how to meditate.
-Nrada initiated Dhruva into the mysteries of the Mantra "Om Namo
-Bhagavate Vsudevaya", told him how to meditate on Vsudeva and asked
-him to make Tapas at Mathur where Bhagavn permanently resides. Dhruva
-passed his days in austere asceticism, standing on one foot and living
-on air. The prince at last controlled his breath and with deep
-concentration saw the Divine Light in the heart. Bhagavn withdrew that
-Light from the heart, and on the break of Samdhi, Dhruva found the same
-Divinity outside, standing before him. Words he had none for a time.
-Bhagavn addressing him said: -- "O Thou Kshatriya boy! I know thy
-resolve. Do thou ever prosper. I give thee a place which is ever bright
-and where Nirvana is constant. The planets and stars are all attached to
-that place. Those that live for a Kalpa will die, but that place shall
-never be destroyed. Dharma, Agni, Kasyapa, Indra and the seven Rishis
-with all the luminaries of the sky are constantly revolving round the
-place. Thou shalt succeed thy father on the throne and reign for 36,000
-years. Thy brother Uttama shall disappear in a forest. Thy stepmother
-Suruchi shall die in pursuit of her son. The place where thou shalt
-finally go is my own abode, higher than that of the Rishis, and there is
-no return from it."
-
-Dhruva returned to his parents and was placed by his father on the
-throne. He married Bhrami, the daughter of Sisumra, and had two sons by
-her, Kalpa and Vatsara. He had another son Utkala by Ila. Uttama was
-killed by a powerful Yaksha while out on a hunt. Dhruva went out to the
-north to take revenge on the Yakshas for his brother's death. He killed
-several thousands of innocent Yakshas, Rkshasas and Kinnaras in battle.
-Manu took pity on them and asked his grandson to desist from fight.
-Dhruva bowed in obedience to Manu and so Kubera the king of Yakshas
-became much pleased with him and blest him too. After thirty six
-thousand years, Sananda and Nanda, two companions of Vishnu came with a
-chariot and took Dhruva to the promised abode.
-
-Utkala was the eldest son of Dhruva and he was entitled to succeed his
-father. But he was a sage and had united himself with Brahm. He
-declined the throne. Bhrami's son Vatsara became the king. Vatsara
-married Subithi and had six sons by her, -- Pushprna, Tigmaketu, Ish,
-Urja, Vasu and Jaya. Pushprna had two wives, -- Pravha and Dosh.
-Prabh had three sons, -- Prtar, Madhyandina and Sayam, Dosh had three
-sons, -- Pradosha, Nisitha and Vyushta. Vyushta married Pushkarini. His
-Son was Sarvatejas, afterwards called Chakshus. Chakshus had one son, --
-Nadvala Manu.
-
-
-THOUGHTS ON THE ABOVE.
-
-
-[The line of Uttnapda, as I have said above, represents the appearance
-of individual life-forms. Limitation had to be put to the life-periods
-of individuals. We commence with Dhruva, who presides over the polar
-star, and lives for one Kalpa. His sons are Kalpa and Vatsara. "Vatsara"
-means year. The sons of Vatsara are the six seasons. "Pushprna" is the
-flower season or spring. "Tigmaketu" means fierce-rayed. The word
-denotes summer season. "Isha" means full of sat and is the name of the
-month of Asvina. But it means here the rainy season. "Urja" is the name
-of the month of Kartika. It is indicative of autumn. "Vasu" meaning
-wealth is the season between autumn and winter, when paddy becomes ripe.
-"Prabh" is light. "Dosh" is darkness. "Pratar," "Madhyandina" and
-Sayam are morning, midday and evening, respectively. "Pradosha" is first
-part of the night, "Nisitha" is midnight. "Vyushta" is day break.
-"Sarva-tejas" is all-fire. He was subsequently called Chakshus or eye.
-The names other than Chakshus indicate different capacities of
-individual life, ranging from portions of a day to the whole Kalpa. When
-the downward flow of Jivas was the rule, Dhruva had to make great
-sacrifice to remain fixed on the spiritual plane. Hence he worshipped
-Vishnu, as directed by Nrada. Sarva-tejas or Chakshus perhaps indicates
-the appearance of perceptive faculties. The son of Chakshus is glorified
-with the title of Manu. This is significant. He is called Nadvala, or
-one made of reeds. This marks a new era in the progress of Monads. As
-the reed is made up of sheaths over-lapping each other, so the sons of
-this Manu were constituted of overlapping principles. Why Nadvala is
-called Manu, has to be found out in the circumstances that attended the
-progress of the Monads from the mineral to the vegetable stage. The son
-of this Manu was Anga or the limbs. And Anga was wedded to the daughter
-of the death god. So there was no death up to the Nadvala form of life,
-and no limbs. It was something like the appearance of protoplastic
-matter, with all its potentialities of evolving life forms. Thus we can
-understand the importance of Nadvala as a Manu. Death or decay made the
-inorganic to develop organs or anga.]
-
-
-II. THE STORY OF PRITHU.
-
-
-*SKANDHA. IV. CHAP. 13-23.*
-
-Nadvala had twelve sons; one of them being Ulmuka (fire-brand, torch).
-He had six sons, one of them being Anga or the members of the body. Anga
-married Sunitha, the daughter of Death. The iniquitous Vena was the son
-of Anga. When he became king, he issued a proclamation prohibiting all
-worship and sacrifices. The sages strongly remonstrated with him but
-when he turned a deaf ear to their words, they killed him with their
-incantations. The kingdom was now without a ruler and there was great
-disorder. The Rishis then churned the thigh of the dead body, until a
-dwarfish, deep black person came out. The Rishis told him to 'sit down
-and wait.' Hence he was called Nishada. They then churned the two arms,
-and a pair arose. "This male is an incarnation of Vishnu," said the
-Rishis, "and this female is an incarnation of Lakshm. They shall marry
-each other. He shall be called Prithu and his wife, Archis. Prithu shall
-be the King and he shall preserve all beings." Prithu accepted the duty
-of preserving the people. He saw there was no vegetation on the earth.
-His subjects suffered from hunger. He thought that the earth had eaten
-up the seeds and was not bringing forth the plants. In anger Prithu took
-up his bow and aimed at the earth. She assumed the form of a cow and
-began to run away chased by the King. But she at last yielded and
-requested him to spare her life. "Thou art Lord of this Universe,"
-exclaimed the earth, "Thou knowest very well that the forms of vegetable
-life created by Brahm could not be used in Yajna so long. I have
-therefore preserved them within myself. If I had not done so, they would
-have been destroyed long ago and no Yajna could be performed in future.
-True, they are now rotting in me. But think about the best means to
-bring them out. Find out a calf, a milk-pot and a milker. I will secrete
-all desired objects as my milk. But first of all make my surface flat
-and level." Prithu rejoiced at these words. He made Svayambhuva Manu the
-calf and milked all vegetables into his own hands. Others followed him.
-The Rishis made Vrihaspati their calf and drew out the Vedas into their
-Indriyas.
-
-The Devas made Indra their calf and milked out into their golden pot
-Amrita and energy of body, of mind and of the Indriyas.
-
-The Daityas and Dnavas made Prahlda their calf and milked out wine
-into their iron pot. The Gandharvas and Apsaras made Visvavasu their
-calf and milked out into their lotus vessel, fragrance, beauty and sweet
-words.
-
-The Pitris made Aryaman their calf and extracted into their unburnt
-earth vessel the Kavya offerings. The Siddhas made Kapila their calf and
-milked out the Siddhis (animan &c). (And so other instances are given).
-Prithu was so glad that he called earth his daughter and hence she is
-called Prithivi or the daughter of Prithu. The King also crushed the
-mountains and made the earth's surface level.
-
-Prithu then commenced a series of Asvamedha Yajnas. During the
-performance of the hundredth, Indra twice stole away the sacrificial
-horse, but Prithu's son restored it on both the occasions. The performer
-of one hundred Asvamedha sacrifices becomes an Indra. This was the cause
-of Indra's fear. Prithu could not bear the disgraceful conduct of Indra
-and he resolved to kill him. The Rishis dissuaded him and even Brahm
-and Vishnu appeared to soothe the offended King and restore his
-friendship with Indra. Vishnu explained to Prithu that he had enough to
-do as a king of the earth and as a preserver of the people and that he
-should not aspire to become Indra, who had his duties as well.
-
-Sometime after, the Sanat Kumar brothers appeared before the King and
-taught him the way to Mukti. He made over the kingdom to his son
-Vijitsva and retired into the forest. At last he gave up the body and
-went to Vaikuntha.
-
-
-THOUGHT ON THE ABOVE.
-
-
-[We left the Monad in its protoplasmic state. The protoplasmic mass
-began to spread out limbs (Anga). But the development of limbs was not
-an unmixed blessing, for Anga became wedded to the daughter of Death.
-
-There was no death in the protoplasm. The offspring of the first
-connexion with death was Vena.
-
-The root _ven_ means to move. The first moving protoplasmic mass had too
-much of unruliness in it, and it was not therefore fitted for _yajna_ or
-evolution. It had to be brought under the law and the black element was
-churned out. That black element of Tamas had to wait till the time of
-the great dissolution. Vishnu had to incarnate at this stage as Prithu
-to suffuse the material mass with _satva_ and thereby make it conscious.
-The course of evolution received a great impetus. The Monad had passed
-through elemental and mineral stages. Organic life had already appeared.
-Matter had passed through the grossness and immobility of Tamas and the
-irregular, impulsive and purposeless movements of Rajas, till it became
-permeated with Satva, when those movements assumed the regularity of
-conscious acts. The consciousness of Satva made the future evolution or
-_yajna_ teem with big possibilities. Earth could no longer keep back the
-seeds of the vegetable creation in her bosom. Her surface became
-levelled and she looked green with vegetation. She brought forth all her
-latent life-energies and life-evolution commenced in right earnest under
-the guidance of the first King energised by Vishnu for the preservation
-of the universe. But that King was not to exceed the proper bounds. He
-was not to usurp the functions of Indra. The Devas are the executive
-officers of the Rishis in the cyclic administration of the universe and
-their work is more on cyclic than on individual lines. The kings however
-as representing Manu have to deal directly with Monads and Egos and have
-to guide them according to the light of the Rishis. Prithu was asked by
-Vishnu to keep himself within the bounds of kingly duties.]
-
-
-III. THE STORY OF THE PRACHINA BARHIS OR BARHISHAD.
-
-
-*SKANDHA IV. CHAP, 24.*
-
-The eldest son of Prithu was Vijitsva. He was so called for having
-restored the sacrificial horse stolen by Indra. Indra taught him the art
-of becoming invisible. Hence he was also called Antardhna. He had four
-brothers -- Havyaksha, Dhmrakesha, Vrika and Dravinas. To them he gave
-the east, the south, the west and the north respectively. By his wife
-Sikhandini, Vijitsva had three sons -- Pvaka, Pavamna, and Suchi.
-
-These fire-gods descended by the curse of Vasishtha but the descent was
-only temporary. Antardhna had by his other wife Nabhsvati one son,
-Havirdhna. Havirdhna had six sons -- Barhishad, Gaya, Sukla, Krishna,
-Satya and Jitavrata. Of these, Barhishad was a great votary of Kriy,
-(action) and he constantly performed Yajnas. Even while he was
-performing one Yajna, the place for another was preparing close by.
-Hence he was called Prchina-Barhis. King Prchina-Barhis married
-Satadruti, the daughter of the Ocean-god. And he had by her ten sons,
-all of whom were called Prachetas. The King ordered his sons to enlarge
-the creation. They went out to make Tapas for one thousand years. Nrada
-came to the King and told him that the way to Mukti was not through
-Kriy Knda. By. performing sacrifices he was only acquiring new karma.
-The only way to attain liberation was to know oneself. The Rishi
-illustrated his teachings by the famous allegory of Puranjana. The King
-heard the story and its explanation from Nrada. He did not wait for the
-return of his sons. But he called his ministers together and delivered
-to them his mandate that his sons were to succeed him on the throne. He
-went to the srama of Kapila for Tapas and attained liberation.
-
-
-IV. THE ALLEGORY OF PURANJANA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA IV. CHAP. 25-29.*
-
-There was a king called Puranjana. He had a friend, but the king knew
-not his name nor his doings. Puranjana went in search of a place to live
-in. He went about on all sides, but found no suitable abode. At last
-while roaming south of the Himlays, he found one Puri (town) in
-Bhrata Varsha (India), The marks were all favourable. There were nine
-gateways. In one of the gardens he found a most beautiful young lady.
-She had ten attendants. Each of them had hundreds of wives. One
-five-headed serpent was the warder of the town and he constantly guarded
-his mistress. The lady was on the look out for one to be her lord.
-Puranjana broke forth into words of love, and asked who she was. "O thou
-greatest of men!" exclaimed the lady, "I know not who I am or who thou
-art. Nor do I know who made us both. This only I know, that I now exist.
-I do not know even who made this town for me. These are my companions
-male and female. This serpent guards the town, even when we are all
-asleep. Luckily hast thou come here. I shall try with all my companions
-to bring to thee all objects of desire. Be thou the lord of this Puri
-for one hundred years. And accept all enjoyments brought by me."
-Puranjana entered the Puri and lived in enjoyment there for one hundred
-years.
-
-Of the nine gateways, seven were upper and two lower -- five on the east
-(Purva, which also means front), one on the south (Dakshin), one on the
-north (Uttara) and two on the west (Paschima). Two of them Khadyta and
-virmukh were close to each other and Puranjana used them whenever he
-would go out to see Vibhrajita in the company of Dyumat.
-
-Nalin and Nlin were also two passages built together. Puranjana used
-them with the help of Avadhta in order to repair to Saurabha.
-
-The Mukhy passage was used for Apana and Bahdana. Through the southern
-passage Pitrih, Puranjana went with Srutadhara to Dakshin Panchla and
-through the northern passage Devah, to Uttara Panchla.
-
-Through the western passage called suri, Puranjana went with Durmada to
-Grmaka. The other western passage was called Nir-riti, Through that
-passage Puranjana went with Lubdhaka to Vais-asa.
-
-There were two blind gates _i.e._ without opening, viz: -- Nirvak and
-Pesaskrita. Puranjana used them for motion and action. He went inside
-the town with Vishchina. There he experienced Moha (delusion), Prasda
-(contentment) and Harsha (joy), caused by his wife and daughters.
-
-Puranjana became thus attached to Karma. He slavishly followed whatever
-the Queen did. If she heard, the King heard. If she smelt, the King
-smelt. If she rejoiced, the King rejoiced. If she wept, the King wept.
-Puranjana merged his self entirely in that of his wife.
-
-Once upon a time, the King went out hunting into the forest
-Panchaprastha, His chariot had five swift going horses, two poles, two
-wheels, two axles, three flags, five chains, one bridle, one charioteer,
-one seat for the charioteer, two yoke ends, seven fenders, and five
-courses. He had a golden armour and an endless supply of arrows.
-Brihadbala was the commander of his forces. The King forgot his wife for
-the time being in the chase of deer. But he got tired and returned home.
-The Queen would not speak to him in feigned anger. The King appeased her
-with gentle and flattering words of love.
-
-So passed the days in utter delusion. The King had 1100 sons and 110
-daughters. He gave them in marriage to duly qualified persons.
-Puranjana's sons had 100 sons each. The kingdom of Panchla became
-filled with the progeny of Puranjana. The King performed sacrifices for
-the welfare of his children and killed animals for the purpose.
-
-Chandavega, a Gandharva king, had a strong force of 360 white
-Gandharvas. Each of them had one black wife. By turns these Gandharvas
-robbed the town of Puranjana. The serpent-warder could not fight long
-against such odds, it lost strength day by day. The King and all the
-citizens became extremely anxious.
-
-There was a daughter of Kla who went about the world for a husband. But
-no one received her for a wife. She went to Nrada and on the refusal of
-the sage cursed him to become a wanderer for ever. She was referred
-however by Nrada to Fear, the King of Yavanas. King Fear would not
-accept her for his wife. But he addressed her as his sister and assured
-her that she would enjoy all beings on earth, if only she attacked them
-unnoticed. His Yavana troops would always accompany her as well as his
-brother Prajvra.
-
-The Yavana troops of King Fear under Prajvra and the daughter of Kala
-attacked the Puri of Puranjana. The old serpent gave way. The Puri was
-burnt up by Prajvra. There was wailing all round. The Serpent left the
-Puri. Puranjana was dragged out of it. The sufferings he had caused to
-others in sacrifices or otherwise reacted upon him. Long he suffered
-forgetting even his old friends. His mind had been tainted by the
-constant company of women and he had thought of his wife till the last
-moment. So he became a female in the next birth. She was born as the
-daughter of the Vidarbha king. Malayadhvaja, King of Pndya, defeated
-other princes in the fight for her hand and the princess became his
-wife. She bore to the King one black-eyed daughter and seven sons. The
-sons became kings of Dravida and each of them had millions of sons,
-Agastya married the daughter of the King, and had by her a son called
-Dridhachyta. His son was Idhmavha. King Malayadhvaja divided the
-kingdom amongst his sons; and ascended the hills for devotional
-meditation. His wife accompanied him. One day the princess found the
-body of her husband cold in death. With loud lamentations, she prepared
-the funeral pyre, placed the King's body upon it and put fire thereon.
-She then resolved to burn herself on the same pyre.
-
-The former friend now appeared. Addressing the Queen he said: --
-
-"Who art thou? Who is he lying on the funeral pyre that thou mournest
-aloud? Dost thou know me, thy friend, thy former companion? Dost thou
-remember even so much that thou hadst a friend, whom thou canst not
-recognise? Thou didst leave me in search of some earthly abode and
-enjoyment. We were two Hansas (swans) on the Mnasa Loka and we lived
-together for one thousand years. Desirous of worldly enjoyments thou
-didst leave me for the earth and there didst find a town with a woman as
-its mistress. The company of that woman spoiled thy vision and effaced
-thy memory. Hence thou hast attained this state. Thou art not the
-daughter of the Vidarbha King, nor is this King thy husband. Nor wast
-thou the husband of Puranjana. By my _my_ thou misconceivest thyself
-as a man or a woman. But in reality both myself and thyself are Hansas.
-Wise men find no difference between us. If there is any difference
-between a man and his image, that is the difference between me and
-thyself."
-
-The other Hansa now regained his lost consciousness and was reawakened
-to his former state.
-
-This is the story of Puranjana. Now its explanation by Nrada: --
-
-Puranjana is Purusha -- he who illumines the Pura with consciousness.
-
-The unknown friend is shvara.
-
-The Pura or Puri or town is the human body.
-
-"The marks were all favourable" -- there were no deformities in the
-body.
-
-"The nine gateways" are the nine openings of the body.
-
-The young lady Puranjani is Buddhi.
-
-She is the mistress of the body.
-
-The ten male attendants are the five _jnanendriyas_ or organs of
-perception and the five _karmendriyas_ or organs of action.
-
-The wives of the attendants are the functions of the Indriyas.
-
-The five-headed serpent is Prna. The five heads are its five
-sub-divisions.
-
-"One hundred years" is the full term of man's life.
-
-"Khadyota," literally glow-worm, is the left eye, for, it has not the
-illumining capacity of the right eye.
-
-"virmukhi" or the great illuminator is the right eye.
-
-"Vibhrajita" is Rpa or object of sight.
-
-"Dyumat" is the perceiving eye.
-
-"Nalini" and "Nlini" are the left and right nostrils respectively.
-
-"Avadhta" is Vyu. In the story, it means the perceiving nose.
-
-"Saurabha" is Gandha or smell.
-
-"Mukhya" is mouth.
-
-"Apana" is speech.
-
-"Bahdana" is eating.
-
-"Panchla" is Pancha (five) + ala (capable) that which is capable of
-bringing to light such of the five objects of the senses, as cannot be
-otherwise cognised; Sastra or spiritual teachings.
-
-The right ear is stronger than the left ear. Therefore it is more
-prominent and useful in _hearing_ the Sastras, of which the first to be
-heard is Karma Knda.
-
-A man by the observance of Karma Knda is called to the Pitris, _i.e._
-he reaches, after death, the path called Pitriyna.
-
-"Pitrih" is therefore the right ear. "Devah" is the left ear
-corresponding to Devayna.
-
-"Uttara Panchla" is Pravritti Sstra or teachings of worldliness.
-
-"Dakshin Panchl" is Nivritti Sstra or teachings of renunciation.
-
-"Nirriti" is death. The anus is called death, because ordinarily the
-Linga Sarira goes out through that passage after death.
-
-"Lubdhak" is Pyu.
-
-"Vaisasa" is excrement.
-
-"Nirvk" is foot.
-
-"Pesaskrita" is hand.
-
-Of the Indriyas, hand and foot are blind, as there are no openings in
-them.
-
-"Vishchina" is mind.
-
-Moha is the result of Tamas, Prasda of Satva and Harsha of Rajas.
-
-The aforesaid names indicate enjoyment in the Jgrat or waking state.
-
-The hunting represents enjoyment in the Svapna or dream state.
-
-The "Chariot" is the body in dream consciousness.
-
-The five horses are the five organs of perception.
-
-The two poles are "I-ness" and "Mine-ness."
-
-The two wheels are merit and demerit.
-
-The axle is Pradhna.
-
-The three flags are the three Gunas.
-
-The five chains are the five Prnas.
-
-The bridle is Manas the seat of desires.
-
-The charioteer is Buddhi.
-
-The yoke-ends are sorrow and delusion.
-
-The seven fenders are the seven Dhtus or essential ingredients of the
-body.
-
-The five courses are the five organs of action.
-
-The gold color of the armour is due to Rajas.
-
-Brihadbala is the even perceiving mind.
-
-The sons are the transformations of perception.
-
-The daughters are the concepts following such transformations.
-
-"Chandavega", the Gandharva king, is the year, every year of human life.
-
-The Gandharvas are days.
-
-Their wives are nights.
-
-The 360 Gandharvas are the 360 days of the year. With their wives or
-nights they form the number 720.
-
-The daughter of Kla is Jar or decrepitude.
-
-The Yavanas are diseases or infirmities.
-
-Fear is the King of all diseases and infirmities viz., Death.
-
-Prajvra is destructive fever.
-
-As long as Purusha does not know his real self, but identifies himself
-with the Gunas of Prakriti, he becomes subject to births and deaths. The
-only remedy for this malady is pure devotion to Guru and to Bhagavn. By
-such devotion, dispassion and wisdom are both acquired.
-
-"Darbha" is Kusa grass, symbolical of Yajna. "Vidarbha" is pure land.
-"Malaya" or the Deccan is famous for Vishnu worship.
-
-"Malayadhvaja" is therefore a Vaishnava king.
-
-[It appears that Vaishnavism had its rise and growth in the South of
-India before it overspread Northern India. This would be natural
-considering the hold of Vedic Brahmnism in Northern India.]
-
-The daughter of Malayadhvaja is Devotion. The seven sons are the seven
-divisions of Bhakti, viz. --
-
- 1) _Sravana_ or hearing the glory of Vishnu,
- 2) _Kirtana_ or reciting the glory of Vishnu,
- 3) _Smarana_ or constant remembrance of Vishnu,
- 4) _Pdasevana_ or shewing respect to Vishnu,
- 5) _Archana_ or worship of Vishnu,
- 6) _Bandana_ or adoration of Vishnu,
- 7) _Dsya_ or consecration of one self to the service of Vishnu.
-
-The other two divisions, _Saukhya_ or companionship with Vishnu and
-_tm nivedana_ or complete resignation are not mentioned in this
-connection as they relate to a highly advanced spiritual state.
-
-These modes of Bhakti worship are prevalent in Dravida.
-
-The millions of sons are sub-divisions of Sravana, &c.
-
-"Agastya" is mind.
-
-"Dridhachyuta" is one confirmed in dispassion.
-
-"Idhmavha" is one who goes to Guru, fuel in hand, for instructions.
-
-Isvara, the unknown friend, called Himself and the Purusha two Kansas of
-the Mnasa Lake. Hansa is one absolutely pure. Mnasa Lake is the Heart.
-
-"For one thousand years" -- Both Jiva and Isvara remained together as
-friends, the same in essence and in form, during the one thousand years
-of Mah Pralaya, at the end of a Kaipa. During Manvantaric
-Manifestation, the Jiva parts from his Friend Isvara and launches into a
-wild course of enjoyments, of joys and sorrows. The touch of that
-fascinating lady Buddhi destroys all previous remembrances and the Jiva
-plays several characters in the drama of life, in dream and delusion.
-
-Nrada concluded his explanation of the allegory with this eloquent
-exhortation: --
-
-"Know thou, O King, the deer, skipping in the flower-garden, in company
-with its sweet-heart, deeply attached to the sweets of that garden,
-devouring with eager ears the humming music of _bhramaras_, little
-caring for the wolves on its way or for the arrows of the huntsman that
-pierce its back.
-
-"The flowers are but women who bloom only to droop. The fragrance and
-honey, the sweets of the garden, are the enjoyments brought on by the
-_karma_ of another birth."
-
-"The music of _bhramaras_ is the pleasing conversation of women and
-others. The wolves are the days and nights. The huntsman who stealthily
-flings arrows at the deer is Death. The deer is thy own self."
-
-"Consider Well the efforts of the deer. Concentrate _chitta_ into the
-heart and all perceptions into _chitta_. Give up the company of woman.
-Turn a deaf ear to all idle talks. Be devoted to that one true Friend of
-Jivas -- svara. Retire, retire from all others."
-
-King Prchina Barhis wondered why such beautiful teachings were with
-held by his teachers. Or forsooth, they knew not themselves. He
-requested Nrada however to remove two doubts that were still lurking in
-his mind. -- Purusha acquires _karma_ in one body, but he reaps the
-fruits of that _karma_ in another body. One body is the doer while
-another is the enjoyer and sufferer. To one body, the fruits of its own
-work are lost. To another body, there is an acquisition of fruits it did
-not sow. How can this be? This was the first doubt.
-
-What is done is done. Nothing apparently remains of our _karma_. How can
-then the sequences be accounted for? This was the second doubt.
-
-Narada replies: --
-
-Purusha reaps the fruits in that very body without break in which it
-acquires _karma_, but that body is the Linga Sarira, inclusive of Manas.
-As in dream man works out the impressions of the wakeful state without
-changing the body, so he enjoys the fruits of _karma_ created in one
-birth in the Karma-made body of another birth.
-
-And the doer of Karma is verily the Manas and not the Sthla body.
-"These are mine," "I am so and so," only such concepts of the mind
-produce re-birth, and not anything in the Sthla body. So the mind sows
-and the mind reaps. The body is merely the vehicle of birth producing
-thoughts.
-
-This is in answer to the first question. Now to the second.
-
-How do you know there is chitta or mind? All the senses are at one and
-the same time in contact with the objects of all the senses. But still
-you perceive only one thing at a time. Hence you infer the existence of
-the mind. Similarly by marking the tendencies of the mind their
-connection with a former birth is inferred. Otherwise why should there
-be one mental affection at a time and not another?
-
-Then, in this life you never realise a thing which you never heard or
-saw or felt before. How can the mind then reproduce matters you never
-experienced before?
-
-The mind by its present characteristics gives an insight into the past
-as well as into the future.
-
-It sometimes happens that things are perceived in the mind with strange
-combinations in time, space and action, as in dream.
-
-But men are endowed with mind and the mind perceives one after another
-the objects of the senses in an enormous variety, and the perceptions
-are lost again. So (in the long run) not one experience is altogether
-strange.
-
-(For instance, a man sees in dream that he is a king. He must have been
-a king in some birth or other. The present combination in the dream is
-untrue but not so the kingly experience. The experience is always true
-with reference to some time, some space, some action or other).
-
-When the mind is intensely Stvic (calm, pure and transparent) and
-becomes constantly devoted to Bhagavn, the whole universe is reflected
-on it.
-
-In Jiva there is never a break in the egoistic experience as long as the
-Linga Sarira continues.
-
-There is only a seeming break in sleep, swoon and-deep distress such as
-death and fatal illness, but such break is due to a collapse of the
-perceiving senses.
-
-There is similarly a break in the foetal stage and in extreme childhood.
-But such break is due to imperfection of the senses; The moon though not
-visible on the new moon night does still exist.
-
-The connection with gross objects does not cease because there is a
-temporary absence of such objects. For, are not thoughts about objects
-potent in their effects in dream?
-
-The Linga Sarira, consisting in their essence of the five pure elements
-(Tanmatra), subject to the three Gunas, extending over the sixteen
-transformations (of the Snkhya category), permeated with consciousness,
-is called Jiva.
-
-It is with this Ling Sarira that Purusha enters into a body or comes out
-of it, and it is with this Sarira that he experiences joy, sorrow, fear,
-misery and happiness.
-
-As the leech has its hold on the first blade of grass till it connects
-itself with another, so the Jiva identifies itself with one body till it
-enters another.
-
-Manas only acquires _karma_ by its contemplation of the objects of the
-senses. The bondage is thus created by Avidy.
-
-Therefore do thou meditate on Hari to free thyself from all worldly
-attachments and to be fixed in Him for ever.
-
-
-V. THE STORY OF THE PRACHETAS BROTHERS.
-
-
-*SKANDHA IV, CHAP. 30-31.*
-
-The Prachetas brothers left home in order to discover by Tapas the best
-mode of enlarging the creation. They went west-ward and had not gone far
-when Siva rose from beneath a large lake and addressed them thus: --
-"Children, you are sons of Barhishad, I know your good resolve.
-Blessings be on you. By the performance of one's duty in life, one
-attains the state of Brahm after many births. My abode is still
-further, inaccessible even to the virtuous. But the votary of Vishnu
-attains His holy state, only when this life is ended. I and the Devas
-shall also attain that state after the final break up of our Linga
-Sarira. Learn therefore this prayer to Vishnu. (Siva then recited the
-prayer to Vishnu, known as Rudra Git). Concentrate your mind on this
-prayer, meditate on it and recite it constantly."
-
-The Prachetas brothers entered the waters of the deep and there prayed
-to Vishnu for a thousand years. Vishnu appeared and asked them to chose
-a boon and without waiting for a reply addressed them thus: -- "You are
-dutiful sons and shall ever be known as such. You shall have a son in no
-way inferior to Brahm. All the three Lokas shall be filled with his
-progeny. Indra had sent Pramloch to decoy Kandu Rishi in his penances
-and the Apsar succeeded in winning the heart of the Rishi. She had by
-him one daughter whom she brought forth from her pores as she brushed
-against the tops of the trees. She left her child there and ascended to
-heaven. The moon nourished the child by putting his nectar-bearing
-forefinger into her mouth. Have that daughter of the trees for your
-wife. You are all alike in your virtues and she is like to you all. So
-she shall be the wife of all the brothers."
-
-The brothers then rose up from the waters. They found the earth
-overgrown with innumerable plants, so high that they almost reached the
-high heavens. The Prachetas brothers were angry to find such growth in
-plants and they resolved to destroy them. They emitted fire and air from
-their mouths, which caused havoc in the vegetable kingdom. Brahm came
-and pacified the sons of Barhishad. He advised the surviving plants to
-give their adopted daughter Mrisha in marriage to the Prachetas
-brothers. The offspring of this marriage was Daksha. He is the same as
-Prajpati Daksha, son of Brahm. His degradation was owing to his former
-disregard of Siva. The Chkshusa Manvantara witnessed his work of
-creation.
-
-The Prachetas brothers reigned for 1000 Deva years. They were succeeded
-by Daksha.
-
-
-THOUGHTS ON THE ABOVE.
-
-
-Consciousness in organic life had appeared with Prithu. The table of
-further evolution may be here reproduced for facility of reference.
-
- Prithu.
- |
- -+-------------+---+--------+---------+---------+--
- | | | | |
- Vijitsva Haryyaksha Dhumrksha Vrika Dravinas
- or Antardhna. (East) (South) (West) (North)
- m. Sikhandini m. Nabhasvati.
- | |
- | Havirdhna
- --+--+------+--------+-- |
- | | | |
- Pvaka Pavamna Suchi |
- |
- -+----------+-------+---+-----+---------+----------+--
- | | | | | |
- Barhishad Gaya Sukla Krishna Satya Jitavrata
- _alias_ Prchina Barhis
- m. Satadruti.
- |
- 10 Prachetases
- m. Mrish
- |
- Daksha.
-
-Vijitsva could make himself invisible. This may have reference to the
-state of the body at that stage of evolution. The fires appeared as it
-is they that give forms. The object corresponding to elemental fire is
-Rpa or form. Barhishad, the name of one class of Pitris, was the
-progenitor of the form-producing Linga Sarira with all its
-potentialities.
-
-We find the senses developed in his sons the Prachetas brothers. "Pra"
-Means perfect and "Chetas" is the perceiving mind. But the mind
-perceives through the Indriyas, which are ten in number. Therefore they
-are ten brothers all alike; but they are wedded to one girl Mrish.
-
-There is some occult connection between water and sense perception.
-Barhishad was married to the daughter of the Ocean-god. The Prachetas
-brothers remained submerged for a thousand years in the waters. The
-protozoa and protophytes must of necessity be aquatic, as it were, for
-the development in them of sense perceptions.
-
-It is in Touch that the sense perceptions find a common basis. Touch
-underlies all other perceptions. It is touch of the object by one sense
-or other that gives rise to one perception or the other. "Kandu" is
-primarily scratching or itching, secondarily touch. Mrish was
-nourished by the moon and brought up by the plants.
-
-The period refers to the stage of evolution when the vegetables formed
-the predominant creation. It corresponds somewhat to the geological
-period of tree-ferns and lycopods in our Manvantara.
-
-The development of sense perceptions is the result of a communion with
-Vishnu, under the auspices of Rudra. This means a further infusion of
-Satva by Vishnu, which was made possible by the Dissolving influence of
-Siva. And the son of the Prachetas brothers is verily Daksha, the
-Prajpati of procreation, reincarnated under better auspices for the
-purpose of extending the creation. So we find the Trinity acting as
-three in one in the creative process.
-
-With the appearance of Daksha Jiva evolution comes to an end in the
-first Manvantara.
-
-TABLE V.
-
- Priyavrata
- |
- By Bathishmat | By another wife
- ----------+----------------+--------------------+--------
- | |
- 10 sons (Agnidhra, Idhmajihva, Uttama
- Yajnavhu, Mahvira, Tmasa, and
- Hiranyaretas, Ghritapristha, Raivata, the
- Savana, Medhtithi, Vitihotra, Manus.
- and Kavi ) and one daughter
- *Urjasvat* married to
- Sukrcharyya.
- gnidhra
- m. Purvachitti
- |
- --+--------------+------------+------+---------------+---------+--------\
- | | | | | |
- Nbhi Kimpurusha Harivarsha Ilvrita Ramyak |
- m. Merudev m. Ptatirpa m. Ugradanstr m. Lat m. Ramy |
- | | |
- | |Hiranmaya Kuru Bhadrsva Ketumat |
- | | m. Sym m. Ndi m. Bhadr m. Devavti |
- | \----------------------------------------------------/
- |
- RISHABHA
- m. Jayant
- |
- ---+--+-----------+-----------+------------+----------+-------+--\
- | | | | | | |
- Bharata Kusvartu Ilvrita Brahmavarta Malaya Ketu |
- (Ajanbhavas | Bhadrasena, Indrasprik, Vidarbha, Kikata, |
- called after him | Kavi, Havis, Antariksha, Prabuddha, |
- Bharatavarsha) | Pippalayana, Avirhotra, Dravida, Chamasa, |
- m. Panchajani | Karabhojana, and 81 more sons. |
- | \----------------------------------------------/
- |
- --+----+------+--------------+--------+------------+
- | | | | |
- Sumati Rshtrabhrit Sudarsana Abharana Dhumraketu
- m. Vriddhasen
- |
- Devatjit
- m. Asuri
- |
- Devadyumna
- m. Dhenumati
- |
- |
- Paramesthin
- m. Suvarchal
- |
- |
- --+------+----------+-------------+
- | | |
- Pratihartri Pratistotri Udgtri
- m. Stuti
- |
- +-----+-----------------+---
- | |
- Aja Bhuman
- m. Rishikuly m. Devakul
- | |
- Udgitha Prastva
- m. Viruts
- |
- Vibhu
- m. Rati
- |
- Prithusena
- m. kriti
- |
- Nakta
- m. Riti
- |
- Gaya
- m. Gyanti
- |
- -----+--------------+---------------+---------+-------
- | | |
- Chitraratha Sugati Abhirodhana
- m. Urv
- |
- Samrt
- m. Utkal
- |
- Marichi
- m. Vindumat
- |
- Vindumat
- m. Saragh
- |
- Madhu
- m. Sumanas
- |
- Viravrata
- m. Bhoj
- |
- +----+--------------------------+
- | |
- Manthu Pramanthu
- m. Satya
- |
- Bhauvava
- |
- Tvastri
- m. Vitochan
- |
- Viraja
- m. Vishchi
- |
- +--------------------+
- | |
- 100 sons 1 daughter
-
-
-
-
-SKANDHA V.
-
-
-
-TABLE V. PRIYAVRATA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA V. CHAP. 1.*
-
-Priyavrata was, from the beginning, under the influence of Nrada. So he
-declined to take part in the rule of the universe; till at last Brahm
-persuaded him not to shirk his assigned work. King Priyavrata married
-Barhishmati, the daughter of Visvakarm. By her he had ten sons Agnidhra
-&c., all names of Agni.
-
-Of these ten, Kavi, Mahvira and Savana were spiritually inclined and
-they became Parama Hansas (Parama Hansa is one who gives up the world
-entirely and becomes fixed in Brahm). Priyavrata had by another wife
-three sons: Uttama, Tmasa and Raivata. They all became Manus.
-
-Priyavrata reigned for 400,000,000 years. The Sun-god ditya moves round
-the Sumeru Mount and sends his rays up to the Loka-loka range,
-illumining half the regions while the other half remains dark. King
-Priyavrata in the exuberance of spiritual power determined to illuminate
-the dark regions and to make it all day and no night. He followed the
-Sun-god seven times with a chariot as swift and bright as that of the
-Sun-god himself even as though he were a second ditya. Brahm appeared
-saying "Desist, O Son, this is not thy assigned duty in the universe."
-The ruts caused by the wheel of Priyavtata's chariot are the seven
-oceans, which gave rise to the seven Dvipas -- Jambu, Plaksha, Slmali,
-Kusa Krauncha, Ska and Pushkara.
-
-Of these Dvipas, each succeeding one is twice as large as the one
-preceding it. The seven oceans respectively consist of:
-
- 1) Kshra (Salt),
- 2) Ikshu (Sugarcane juice),
- 3) Sur (wine),
- 4) Ghrita (clarified butter),
- 5) Kshira (milk),
- 6) Dadhi (curd) and
- 7) Suddha (pure water).
-
-They are like ditches round the Dvipas and their dimensions are the same
-as those of the corresponding Dvipas.
-
-King Priyavrata divided the seven Dvipas among his seven sons thus: --
-
- To Agnidhra, he gave Jambu Dvipa.
- " Idhmajihva, " " Plaksha Dvipa.
- " Yajnavhu, " " Slmali Dvipa.
- " Hiranyaretas, " " Kusa Dvipa.
- " Ghritapristha, " " Krauncha Dvipa.
- " Medhtith, " " Ska Dvipa.
- " Vitihotra. " " Pushkar Dvipa.
-
-He gave his daughter Urjasvati in marriage to Sukra. The famous Devayni
-was their daughter.
-
-*SKANDHA V. CHAP. 2.*
-
-King gnidhra presided over Jambu Dvipa. He saw the Apsar Purva-chitti
-and became love-stricken, so much so that he became a _jada_ (Jada is
-literally fixed, materialized hence idiotic, mad.)
-
-The King had by her nine sons Nbhi, Kimpurusha, Harivarsha, Ilvrita,
-Ramyak, Hiranmaya, Kuru, Bhadrsva and Ketumla. Each of them presided
-over the Varsha of his name. They were respectively wedded to the
-following nine daughters of Meru, -- Merudevi, Pratirp, Ugradanstri,
-Lat, Ramy, Sym, Nari, Bhadr and Devavti.
-
-*SKANDHA V. CHAP. 4-6.*
-
-Nbhi had for his son RISHABHA an Incarnation of Vishnu. Rishabha knew
-his Varsha to be the field of Karma. He married Jayanti and had by her
-one hundred sons. The eldest and most qualified of his sons was Bharata,
-Bhratavarsha is named after him.
-
-The chief amongst the remaining ninety-nine sons were Kusvarta,
-Ilvarta, Brahmavarta, Malayaketu, Bhadrasena, Indrasprik, Vidarbha and
-Kikata. These nine were the immediate successors of Bharata and were
-attached to him.
-
-Following them were Kavi, Hari, Antariksha, Prabuddha, Pippalyana,
-birhotra, Dravida, Chamasa and Karabhjana. They were devoted to
-Bhagavn. Their story will be related in the 11th. Branch of this
-Purna.
-
-The younger eighty one sons were devoted to karma and they were great
-performers of Yajna.
-
-Rishabha called his sons together and gave them proper advice. He taught
-them tm Vidya and revealed to them his own nature as the all pervading
-Purusha, free from Avidy.
-
-"This my body is inconceivable. My heart is pure Satva. All impurities
-were cast off by me. Therefore good people call me 'Rishabha' (primarily
-a bull, secondarily the best). You are all born of my heart and so you
-all are great; follow your brother Bharata willingly. By serving him you
-will do your duty by your subjects."
-
-So saying, he made over the reins of government to Bharata and himself
-became a Parama Hansa. He took the vow of silence and never spoke again.
-He looked blind, dumb and deaf like one obsessed and mad. He went
-everywhere in this state, heedless of what others said. People flocked
-round him wherever he went. At last he thought the rush of people to be
-an impediment to yoga and took the vow of Ajagara life (Ajagara is a
-huge python that does not move, but eats whatever comes within reach of
-its mouth). He remained fixed at one place.
-
-The yoga powers (Sidhis) sought him but he spurned them all. When he
-foresaw the end of his _prarabdha karma_ Rishabha went about at will and
-travelled in Kanka, Venkata, Ktaka and South Karnataka. While in the
-forest of Ktaka he thrust some stones into his mouth. At that time the
-wind blew high and the bamboo tops caught fire and the body of the King
-was consumed. In Kali Vuga, King Arhat of Kanka, Venkata and Ktaka will
-hear of the deeds of Rishabha and in the name of religion will introduce
-all sorts of sacrilegious practices as sanctioned by Rishabha's example.
-
-*SKANDHA V. CHAP. 7.*
-
-King Bharata married Panchajani, the daughter of Vsva. He had by her
-five sons -- Sumati, Rshtrabhrit, Sudarsana, bharana and Dhmraketu.
-This Varsha was formerly called Ajanbha. When Bharata became king, it
-was named after him Bhrata Varsha. King Bharata performed the Vedic
-Yajnas and made offerings to the Devas. But he knew the Devas as
-manifestations only of Vsudeva. His mind became pure and filled with
-Satva. He lost himself in devotion to Vsudeva. At last he divided his
-kingdom amongst his sons and himself went for Tapas to the hermitage of
-Pulaha in the _kshetra_ of Hari on the Sacred Gandaki. He meditated in
-his heart on the lotus feet of Bhagavn and became suffused with
-ecstasy.
-
-Bharata invoked the golden Purusha in the rising sun by a special Rik
-(Vedic Mantra) and addressed Him thus, "Let us attain the spiritual rays
-of luminous Savitri that are beyond Rajas and that are the generators of
-Krmic effects. By His Manas He created this universe. He preserves the
-Jiva again by permeating this universe."
-
-*SKANDHA V. CHAP. 8.*
-
-Once upon a time king Bharata had bathed in the Gandaka and after
-performing the daily practices was meditating on Pranava on the
-river-side. A deer came to drink water at the time. While the animal was
-quenching her thirst a lion roared not far off and she in terror jumped
-into the river. As she happened to be big with child, she was delivered
-of it at the time. Exhausted, the deer got back to the river side only
-to die. The new born fawn was being washed away, having no one to take
-care of it. Bharata took pity on the little fawn. He took it up and
-brought it to his hermitage. He brought it up as his own child and
-became deeply attached to it. He constantly thought of the deer-child,
-even so much so that when death approached he could not forget it and
-became re-born in another birth as a deer.
-
-But though born as a deer, Bharata did not lose the memory of his former
-birth. He reflected that the mind that had been trained and controlled
-in the worship of Vsudeva went astray only for the sake of one
-deer-child. He left the Klanjara hills where he was born as a deer and
-sought for Slagram, sacred with the sramas of Pulastya and Pulaha. He
-waited calmly for the exhaustion of Karma that had given rise to his
-deer life. He then gave up his body in the sacred waters of the Gandaka.
-
-*SKANDHA V. CHAP. 9.*
-
-A Brhmana of the line of Angiras had nine sons by one wife. They were
-all well versed in the Vedas, He had one son by another wife and one
-daughter. This son was said to be an incarnation of Bharata. He was
-afraid of _sanga_ (company), so much so that he would not even speak to
-any one for fear of acquiring new Karma. People took him for an idiot.
-His father strove hard to teach him the Vedas but did not succeed. His
-parents died and his half brothers had charge of him. Their wisdom was
-that of the Vedas. They had not learned tm Vidy. So they did not
-understand the nature of Bharata and neglected him. They gave him poor
-meals for the day's work in the fields.
-
-At one time a thief wanted to propitiate the goddess Bhadra Kli by
-human sacrifice in order that he might be blessed with a child. The
-victim that was procured somehow untied himself and fled. The attendants
-searched for him on all sides in vain. They at last fell upon Bharata
-who was watching in the fields in a peculiar way. They found him most
-suited for sacrifice and tied him up and carried him to the altar of
-Kli. He was duly consecrated and the priest took up a sharp instrument
-to cut off his head. Kli could no longer remain unconcerned. She rushed
-forth in rage from out of her image, wrested the knives from the hands
-of the thieves and cut off their heads.
-
-Once upon a time Rhugana King of Sindhu and Saubira was travelling in a
-palanquin. The chief palanquin bearer on reaching the river Ikshumati
-went in search of a bearer and on finding Bharata deemed him to be a
-god-send. He found his limbs strong and well-built and thought him
-capable of bearing the palanquin. He forced Bharata into the service.
-Bharata though quite unfit for this menial work did his utmost. But he
-was in the habit of looking forward for the distance of an arrow throw
-and then taking steps in advance, so that he might not unwarily kill
-some animal under his feet. He could not therefore keep pace with the
-other bearers and the palanquin lost its balance. King Rahgana became
-angry and reproached the bearers. They complained against the new
-recruit. The king taunted Bharata with these words; "Oh my friend I dare
-say you are tired -- for have you not carried me long and for a long
-distance too -- and you appear to be thin indeed and weak. Are you
-suffering from decrepitude? Are not these your fellow-mates."
-
-Bharata kept quiet. For these taunting remarks did not touch him. He was
-crystallised in wisdom and was no longer troubled with the false
-perceptions of "I and mine."
-
-The palanquin again lost its balance. The king lost his temper and broke
-forth thus; "What is this? are you alive or dead? Do you thus disregard
-my orders and think of living? You must be a madman, like the Death-god
-I will punish your madness and bring you to your senses." King Rahgana
-was proud of his learning and his kingship. He was inflated with Rajas
-and Tames. He had therefore no hesitation in reproaching that lord of
-Yoga, Bharata.
-
-Bharata smiled and thus replied: -- "Thy taunts are true, O king! There
-is no doubt, I am neither tired nor did I travel long. For thy weight
-does not affect me nor have I any distance to travel. Nor could I be
-called fat. For the body is fat and not I. It is by falsely attributing
-the bodily attributes to self that one is said to have thickness,
-leanness, disease, hunger thirst, fear, enmity, desire, sleep,
-attachment, anger, egotism, pride and sorrow. But I have no such false
-perception.
-
-"Thou sayest I am dead even when alive. But such is the case with all
-beings for they are all subject to constant transformations.
-
-"Thou chargest me with disregarding the orders of my Master. But only if
-the relationship of Master and servant does really subsist, might there
-be command and obedience. But where is that relationship? If thou
-sayest, in the ways of the world, thou art my king momentary though
-these ways be, please tell me thy behests.
-
-"Thou callest me a mad man and dost want to punish me and bring me to my
-senses. But I am not mad, though I may look so, for I am fixed in the
-meditation of Brahm. But still if thou thinkest me to be a madman it
-will be useless to punish or to teach a senseless being."
-
-So saying Bharata continued to carry the king. Rahgana came down from
-the palanquin and fell at Bharata's feet. He expressed regret for having
-slighted such a sage in disguise and prayed for a fuller explanation of
-the philosophy involved in his weighty words. This led to an explanation
-by Bharata of the Advaita philosophy from the stand point of the
-Purnas, a denunciation of Vedic and Tntric rites, and an allegorical
-description of the worldly life as trading in the forest (the world
-being the forest and the traders being men in search of wealth). The
-allegory was explained by Suka to Parikshit. [The enquiring student is
-referred to the original for details (V. 11-14.)]
-
-*SKANDHA V. CHAP. 15.*
-
-We must hurriedly refer to the line of Bharata. Sumati was the son of
-Bharata. Ill guided men in the Kali Yuga will call him a God. In his
-line Pratiha was master of tm Vidy. Coming lower down by far the most
-renowned king in the line of Bharata was Gaya Viraja was also well
-known. Of the hundred sons of Viraja, the eldest was Satajit or the
-Conqueror of the hundred.
-
-
-
-THOUGHTS ON THE LINE OF PRIYA VRATA.
-
-
-Priya Vrata means literally one of welcome (_Priya_) deeds (_Vrata_).
-
-Priya Vrata, was under the influence of Nrada from the beginning and he
-declined to go along the Descending path or Pravritti Mrga. He was
-wedded to the daughter of Vishva Karm.
-
-Vishva Karm is the cosmic manufacturer. The work of this Prajpati
-extends over the whole of Trilok and he is the architect of all systems
-and chains included in the Trilok -- Priya Vrata, as we shall see later
-on, represents the earth chain only or the system known as Bhr.
-
-What we generally call the Solar system is a misnomer. For the sun
-stands between Bhr Loka and Svar Loka and illumines both the Lokas with
-its rays. The Solar System is therefore properly speaking the whole of
-the Trilok. In speaking of Priya Vrata, therefore, the Bhgavata
-restricts itself to the regions illumined by the sun as well as by the
-moon (V-15-I.)
-
-We shall enter into a detailed description of the whole system in the
-next chapter. Let us take here a passing glance of the line of Priya
-Vrata.
-
-We take Priya Vrata to be the Earth chain complete in itself or rather
-the progenitor of the Earth chain.
-
-Meru or Sumeru is the axis of Bhr Loka, its highest point being the
-highest point of Bhr Loka.
-
-The sun god revolves round this central axis.
-
-The Earth-god Priyavrata also revolved round Meru _i.e._ the Earth
-rotated round its own axis at a very rapid rate for some time during its
-infancy.
-
-The rotation of the Earth was followed by the separation of layers. The
-part most removed from the centre was first affected.
-
-In this way seven distinct layers were formed. The layer towards the
-circumference was the most spiritual. That towards the centre was the
-most material.
-
-The reason of this is to be found in the action of the three Gunas and
-Tamas.
-
-Satva is: on the material plane, light, transparent, with upward motion.
-On the mental plane, buoyant and cheerful, with true perception,
-spiritual.
-
-Rajas is: on the material plane, constantly moving, translucent, with
-motion on the same plane, without levity or gravity.
-
-On the mental plane, constantly active, partly joyful, partly sorrowful,
-with partially true and partially false perception, intellectual.
-
-Tamas is: on the material plane, heavy, opaque, with downward motion.
-
-On the mental plane indolent, melancholy, nonperceptive or dull.
-
-The centripetal force is the action of Tamas and is connected with
-materiality. The centrifugal force is the action of Satva and is
-connected with spirituality.
-
-Of the seven Dvipas, the central is the Jambudvipa, which is the most
-material.
-
-The one farthest from the centre is the Pushkara Dvipa.
-
-The spaces intervening between the layers or Dvipas are the seven
-oceans. They partake of the characteristics of the Dvipas, which they
-respectively surround. Thus the salt ocean surrounding the Jambu Dvipa
-is the most material. The materiality is indicated by the word "salt,"
-which implies gross matter.
-
-Priyavrata, it is said, went seven times round Meru, and at the time of
-each rotation, one ocean and its corresponding Dvipa were formed.
-
-But when the Dvipas and the oceans were all formed that particular
-motion of the whole system was lost.
-
-Since then days and nights are solely caused by the motion of the sun
-round Meru along the Mansottara range.
-
-The seven Dvipas may be the Globes A, B, C, D, E, F, and G of
-Theosophical literature.
-
-The rulers of these seven Globes are seven sons of Priyavrata, named
-after Agni or Fire.
-
-Agni is here the form-giving Energy of each Globe.
-
-Of the ten sons of Priyavrata, seven only became Rulers of the Globes,
-but the other three Kavi, Mahavira and Savana, had nothing to do with
-the creative process. They are highly spiritual entities beyond the
-plane of the seven Globes.
-
-The daughter of Priyavrata was Urjasvati. The word means full of Energy.
-She was wedded to Sukra, the presiding god of the planet Venus.
-
-Her daughter is the renowned Devayni, who was married to King Yayti.
-She stands for Devayna, the Radiant Path of the Upanishads, which
-transcends the Trilok.
-
-Of the sons of Priyavrata, we of Jambu Dvipa or Globe D are directly
-concerned with gnidhra, who presided over its earliest destinies.
-
-The Bhgavata does not relate the genealogy of the other sons as at
-present we have nothing to do with the life-evolution on these globes.
-
-The process of materialisation is indicated by the Jada state of
-gnidhra on seeing the Apsaras Prvachitti.
-
-The sons of gnidhra are the nine Varshas or Continents. We shall learn
-the details of these Varshas subsequently. Of these Varshas again, we
-are directly concerned with Nabhi. The word Nabhi means navel, which is
-at the centre of the body. The Nabhi Varsha is the pivot on which the
-other Varshas hang. The Nabhi Varsha is what we know as our Earth. The
-nine Varshas are also placed layer over layer, as the Dvipas are.
-
-When Nabhi underwent further transformation, Rishabha became his son. In
-Rishabha, we come to a turning point. He is said to be an Incarnation of
-Vishnu. The word "Rishabha" means bull. But that meaning does not give
-us any help in understanding Rishabha and his work.
-
-Priyavrata moved rapidly round Meru, till the globes were formed. This
-is in accordance with the Nebulous theory of Laplace. When the globes
-were formed, the Earth became denser. As the density increased, the
-movement of the Earth became irregular, till at last, the planet became
-fixed. This is not the western idea. The Pauranic idea is that the sun
-moves round the Earth, and the Earth remains fixed in its position. The
-story of Priyavrata's line is based upon this idea. Another idea of the
-ancients was that the planets had speech, till they became solidified.
-
-Rishabha took upon himself the vow of silence. His son Bharata became
-speechless as a deer.
-
-It was necessary to put a limit to the materiality of the Earth. The
-hard crust that formed the shell of the planet could not be allowed to
-affect its heart. The Earth was not to lose all spirituality. Therefore
-Vishnu incarnated in Rishabha so that spirituality might be stored in
-our planets, for the evolution of those Jivas that dwelt over it. Look
-at a Parama Hansa; the ascetic that neither speaks nor moves. Judging
-from outside, he is no better than a mute animal, but he is all
-spirituality within. Such is the nature of our mother Earth.
-
-The thrusting of stones into the mouth of Rishabha is suggestive.
-
-The sons of Rishabha are the countries of our Earth. Of these Bharata
-(India) was the first-born. The spiritual character of this holy land is
-shewn by the story of Bharata.
-
-Bharata was obeyed and imitated by nine brothers, of whom Brahma-varta
-is well-known as described by Manu. Malaya is Malabar. Vidarbha is Berar
-and Kikata is Bihar.
-
-The sons of Rishabha very likely include all the countries of the Earth.
-
-Rishabha called his sons and asked them to follow Bharata. Will other
-lands now follow that advice?
-
-
-
-THE EARTH CHAIN, BHUVANA KOSHA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA V. CHAP. 16.*
-
-Said Parikshit: -- "Thou hast given the bare outline of these regions of
-the universe which are lighted by the sun and where the moon and the
-luminous starry host are also seen.
-
-"Thou hast hereby mentioned the seven oceans and the seven Dvipas, but
-thou hast not given the details thereof." Suka replied: --
-
-Imagine the Bhu-mandala or the Earth chain to be the pericarp of a
-lotus. Imagine there are seven sheaths immersed in it -- the seven
-Dvipas. The central sheath is Jambu Dvipa. It is Niyut Yojanas in area
-(Niyut= 1,000,000 But Sridhara Svmi here explains Niyuta as meaning one
-laksha or 100,000. So according to Sridhara the area of Jambu Dvipa is
-800,000 miles). Jambu Dvipa is round like the lotus leaf.
-
-There are nine Varshas in Jambu Dvipa, each nine thousand Yojanas in
-area completely divided by eight mountain ranges. (Bhadrasva and
-Ketumala form exceptions, for they extend over 34,000 Yojanas. Some take
-nine thousand Yojanas to be the expanse between the Nila and Nishadha
-ranges. The Vayu Purna describes the position thus: -- Two Varshas are
-situated like two bows north and south. Four are placed longways.
-Ilvrita is as it were with four petals. _Sridhara_. This gives 7 x 9000
-+ 34000 = 97000).
-
-
-
-ILAVRITA IS THE CENTRAL VARSHA.
-
-
-Sumeru is situated in the navel of this Varsha. This king of mountains
-is gold all through. It is a laksha Yojanas high. If the Earth chain be
-taken to be a lotus, this Meru is its pericarp. It is 32,000 Yojanas as
-the top and 16,000 Yojanas at the foot and 16,000 Yojanas under the
-ground.
-
-(By saying 16000 Yojanas at the foot, 84000 Yojanas are left out. Thus
-the Vishnu Purna says -- the Meru is 84000 Yojanas over the ground and
-16000 under the ground, at the top 32000 and at the foot 16000.
-_Sridhara_. 16000 + 84000=100000).
-
-On the north of Ilvrita are the three mountain ranges Nila, Sveta and
-Sringavan in order. They are respectively the boundary ranges of
-Rmayak, Hiranmaya and Kuru. They spread east and west up to the salt
-ocean. They are two thousand Yojanas wide. In length, each succeeding
-one is a little over one tenth part shorter than the preceding one.
-(There is no difference in height and in width. _Sridhara_).
-
-So on the south of Ilvrita are the three ranges Nishadha, Hemakta and
-Himalaya spreading east and west like the preceding ones. They are
-10,000 Yojanas in height. They are the boundary ranges respectively of
-Harivarsha, Kinpurusha and Bharata. (This -- 10,000 Yojanas -- is also
-the height of Nila, Sveta and Sringavn. The width of these ranges again
-is that of Nila, and others. By Bhrata we are to understand Nabhi.
-
-On the west of Ilvrita is the Malyavat range and on the east lies the
-Gandha Madana range, These ranges extend north up to the Nila range and
-on the south up to the Nishadha range. They are two thousand Yojanas
-wide. They are the boundary ranges of Ketumala and Bhadrasva
-respectively. (East and west there is the Meru surrounded by Ilvrita,
-then there are the two ranges Malyavat and Gandha Madana, and the two
-varshas Bhadrasva and Ketumala and nothing besides).
-
-North and south, there is the Meru then Ilvrita, 6 mountain ranges and
-6 Varshas, 3 on each side and nothing else.
-
-[Where do you then get a _laksha_ of Yojanas? It is said: -- Meru has a
-diameter of 16,000. Ilvrita has 18,000. The 6 Varshas have 6 x 9,000 =
-54,000. The 6 mountain ranges have together a width of 6 x 2,000 =
-12,000. Thus north and south, we have 16,000 + 18,000 + 54,000 + 12,000
-= 100,000.
-
-East and west we have 34000 (9000 + 16000 + 9000) across Meru and
-Ilvrita and the two mountain ranges 2 x 2000 = 4000.
-
-The expanse of the two Varshas up to the ocean side is 62000. This gives
-us 34000 + 4000 + 62000 = 100,000. Thus there is no conflict.
-_Sridhara_.]
-
-[This discussion of Sridhara throws immense light on the text. We find
-that the area is measured by the diameter. We find that 16000 is the
-diameter of Meru at the foot. We find that Ilvrita has 9000 from Meru
-to Nila and 9000 from Meru to Nishadha. We understand also why Bhadrasva
-and Ketumala were said to be exceptions, their expanse being 34,000. A
-diagram will now best illustrate what we say.]
-
-[Illustration: A diagram of Jambu-Dvipa.]
-
-[Bhrata as a Varsha must not be mistaken for India. For Bhrata here
-stands for Nbhi or the whole of our known earth.
-
-Bhrata Varsha extends from the base of the Earth opposite the Himalayas
-on the side of America to the highest point of the Himalayas.]
-
-Kinpurusha Varsha, so called from its dwellers, extends from the highest
-point of the Himalayas as its base to the highest point of Hemakuta.
-
-So with the other Varshas.
-
-It will be seen, that we have no idea of any of the mountains, besides
-the Himalayas.
-
-Ilvrita stands on the same level with Ketumala and Bhadrasva. If these
-three be taken as one, we get the number _7_. Five other Dvipas have _7_
-Varshas only.]
-
-On the four sides of Meru are the four mountains -- Mandra, Meru
-Mandra, Suprsna and Kumu. They are ten thousand Yojanas in height and
-expanse.
-
-(There are two mountains east and west, their expanse being north and
-south. There are other two north and south, their expanse being east and
-west. Otherwise if these mountains were to encircle Meru, Ilvrita would
-not be in existence. _Sridhara_).
-
-On these four mountains respectively are four big trees of Mango,
-Jamboland, Kadamba and the sacred Fig. They are the banners as it were
-of the Mountains. They are 11000 Yojanas high and they also spread over
-this area. Their width is one hundred Yojanas.
-
-There is one lake below each of these trees: milk, sugarcane juice and
-pure water respectively. The use of these fluids gives natural Yogic
-powers to the Upadevas (lesser devas).
-
-There are also four gardens of the Devas, _viz._ Nandana, Chaitraratha,
-Vaibhrjoka and Sarvato-bhadra.
-
-The Devas, adored by the Upadevas amuse themselves in those gardens.
-
-Big fruits with nectar-like juice fall from the mango tree on Mandra.
-
-(The Vayu Purna gives the measure of the fruit. The Rishis who perceive
-truths give the measure of the fruits to be 108 cubits with the fist
-closed (_aratvi_) and also 61 cubits more. _Sridhara_)
-
-When these fruits drop down, they give out a very sweet, very fragrant,
-profuse reddish juice which collects to form the river called Arunod,
-having water of the color of Aruna or the morning Sun. This river waters
-the Eastern part of Ilvrita. The use of its water gives such a sweet
-scent to the body of the female attendants of Durg that the wind
-carries that scent to ten Yojanas around.
-
-So the Jambu river is formed by the juice of the fruits that drop down
-from the Jambolova tree in Meru Mandra. It waters the southern part of
-Ilvrita.
-
-The land on the banks of these rivers is soaked by their juice and
-worked on by air and light and is thus converted into gold called
-Jmbnada, which gives ornaments to the Devas.
-
-Aruna is the morning Sun, as well as the color of the morning Sun. The
-river with Aruna water is also gold producing.
-
-The Kadamba tree on Suprsva has cavities from which flow five streams
-of honey, each 5 Vymas wide (Vyma = the space between the tips of the
-fingers of either hand when the arms are extended.) These streams water
-the western part of Ilvrita. The fragrant breath of those that use them
-spreads over one hundred Yojanas all round.
-
-The fig tree (Vata) called Satavolsa on the summit of Kumuda has
-branches which give rise to rivers that bring forth milk, curd, honey,
-clarified butter, molasses, edibles, carpets, cloths, ornaments, in fact
-all objects of desire. These rivers fall from Kumuda and water the
-northern part of Ilvrita.
-
-Those that use the waters of those rivers are free from all Infirmities,
-diseases, secretions, old age and death. They live in absolute bliss all
-their lives.
-
-There are twenty more mountains on all sides of Meru, at its foot. They
-are Kuranga, Kurara, Kusumbha Naikovka, Trikuta, Sisira, Patanga.
-Ruchoka, Nishadha Sitivsa, Kapila Sankha, Vaidrya, Jrudhi, Housas,
-Rishabha, Nga, Klanjara, Nirada and others.
-
-Two mountains, Jatharu and Devakta, are situated on the east of Meru.
-They are two thousand Yojanas in height and in width. To the north they
-spread over 18,000 Yojanas.
-
-So on the west there are the two mountains Pavana and Priytra.
-
-On the south there are Kailsa and Karavira, which expand towards the
-east. So on the north, there are Trisringa and Makara. (If different
-measures are given in Vishnu and other Purnas, they are with reference
-to different Kalpas. _Sridhara_).
-
-The sages say that in the central portion of the top of Sumeru is the
-abode of Brahm, made of gold, 10,000,000 Yojanas in area, and of four
-equal sides.
-
-Surrounding the abode of Brahm are the eight abodes of the eight
-Lokaplas situated respectively in the directions presided over by these
-Lokaplas. Each of these abodes has the color of its own Lokapla and
-each extends over 2 1/2 thousand yojanas. (The names of these abodes are
-given in other Purnas. Thus:
-
- Manovat is the abode of Brahm.
- Amarvati " " Indra.
- Tejovati " " Agni.
- Sanyavati " " Yma.
- Krishnngana " " Nairita.
- Sradhavati " " Varuna.
- Gandhavati " " Vayu.
- Mahoday " " Kubera.
- Yasovati " " Isa.
-
-
-
-THE GANGES.
-
-
-*SKANDHA V. CHAP. 7.*
-
-The Avatra Vmana asked Bali, the Daitya King, for as much space as he
-could cover in three steps. The first step covered the earth. Vmana
-then raised his foot over the heavens and the stroke of his left
-toe-nail caused a hole in the cosmic egg. Water entered the hole from
-outside, water that carried the washings of Vishnu's feet and that was
-consequently capable of purifying all the impurities of the world and
-that was in itself very pure, water that was then called Bhagavat pudi.
-In a thousand yugas the stream reached the highest point of Svar Loka,
-called Vishnupada.
-
-Dhruva carried the stream on his own head with ever increasing devotion.
-
-The seven Rishis (of the Great Bear) carry the sacred water in their
-braided tufts of hair, as something better than Mukti, for the stream of
-devotion flows from Vishnu direct.
-
-Thence the stream passes through the path of the Devas, studded with
-thousands and thousands of starry chariots, till it overflows the lunar
-regions and fall down on the abode of Brahm in Meru.
-
-There the stream divides itself into four parts called Sit, Alakanand,
-Vankshu and Bhadr.
-
-The Sit flows from the abode of Brahm through the highest mountain
-ranges, she comes down to Gandha Mdana, thence through Bhadrsva Varsha
-she falls into the salt ocean towards the east.
-
-So the Vankshu flows through the Mlyavat range into Ketumala Varsha and
-falls on the west into the Salt ocean.
-
-The Bhadr flows north from the Sumeru peak through several mountain
-ranges down to Sringavat range and passes through Kuru in to the Salt
-ocean.
-
-The Alakanand flows south from the abode of Brahm through several
-mountain ranges to Hema Kuta and thence to Himlaya till it reaches
-Bhrata Varsha (_i.e._ Nbhi Varsha) and at last flows through it into
-the Salt ocean.
-
-There are a thousand other rivers and a thousand other mountains in each
-Varsha.
-
-[The real source of the Ganges is not the melting of snow in the
-Himlyas. That may be the source of the waters that swell the bed of
-the Ganges, as we see it. But the Ganges is something more than a volume
-of waters. There is a spiritual current underlying its waters. That
-current comes from regions higher than the highest peak of the
-Himlyas. Hence the great sanctity attached to it].
-
-
-
-THE MYSTERIES OF THE VARSHAS.
-
-
-*SKANDHA V. CHAP. 17-19.*
-
-Of the nine Varshas, Bhrata is the field of Karma (I must now once for
-all remind my readers that Bhrata when mentioned as a Varsha means
-Nbhi Varsha, the whole of this visible earth from the highest point of
-the Himalayas downwards). The other Varshas are places of fruition of
-the merits of those that go to Svarga. Hence they are called terrestrial
-(Bhouma) Svargas.
-
-(Svarga is of three kinds: --
-
- a. Divya viz. Svarga proper or Swar Loka.
- b. Bhouma or terrestrial and
- c. Bila or Ptlic.
-
-_Sridhara_.)
-
-_Ilvrita._ -- The dwellers of this Varsha live for ten thousand years
-of human measure. They are like Devas. They have the vitality of ten
-thousand elephants. Their body is strong like the thunderbolt They enjoy
-with women all their lives and only one year before death do the women
-bear children. They always live as it were in Treta Yuga.
-
-Nryana -- the Mah Purusha pervades all the Varshas for their good, in
-different forms of His Chatur Vyha (Vsudeva, Sankarshana, Pradyumna
-and Anirudha).
-
-In Ilvrita, Bhava or Siva is the only male. Other males do not enter
-that Varsha, for they know the curse of Bhvan (Durg) that whoever
-should enter the Varsha was to become a female.
-
-Bhava is adored by millions of women. He meditates on the fourth, the
-Tmasa Mrti of Mahpurusha _viz._ Shankarshana. He recites the
-following mantra and runs about: --
-
-"Om Namo Bhgavate Mah Purushya Sarva-guna Sankhynya Anantya
-Avyaktya Namaha."
-
-"Om, Salutations to Bhagavat Mah Purusha, salutations to the manifester
-of all Gunas, the Endless, the Unmanifested."
-
-Then follows a prayer to Sankarshana for which readers are referred to
-the original _Bhadtsva_.
-
-Bhadrasravas is the lord of Bhadrsva. He and his followers dwell there,
-they meditate on the Hayasirsha aspect of Vsudeva, they recite the
-following mantra and run about.
-
-"Om Namo Bhgavate Dharmya tm-visodhanya namah."
-
-"Om salutations to Bhagavat Dharma; salutations to him who purifies the
-soul."
-
-Then follows a prayer to Hayagrva _Harivarsha_.
-
-The renowned saintly Daitya Prahlda with the dwellers of this Varsha
-adore Him and recite the following mantra.
-
-"Om Namo Bhagavate Sr Nara Sinhya Namastejastejase virvir bhava
-vajranakha vajra-danstra Karm-Sayn randhaya randhaya tamo grasa om
-Svh Abhayam Abhoyam tmani bhyisthh om kshroum."
-
-"Om salutations to Bhagavat Sr Hrisinha, Salutations to the fire of all
-fires! Manifest Thyself! Manifest thyself O thunder-nailed! O
-thunder-toothed! Burn up, burn up all desires! devour Tamas! Om Svh!
-Freedom from fear, freedom from fear be in us. Om! Kohrum!"
-
-_Ketumla._
-
-Pradyumna or Kmadeva presides over Ketumla in order to please Lakshm
-Samvatsara (one year), the daughters of Samvatsara _viz:_ the nights and
-Sons of Samvatsara _viz:_ the days. The days and nights are 36,000 in
-number _i.e._ as many as are contained in the full term of a man's life
-(one hundred years). These days and nights are the lords of Ketumla
-Lakshm with whom the dwellers of Ketumla adore Kmadeva.
-
-(The mantra and prayer are then given.)
-
-_Ramyaka._
-
-Matsya (The Fish Incarnation) presides over Ramyaka. Manu is the King.
-
-(Mantra and prayer follow)
-
-_Hiranmaya._
-
-Krma (the Tortoise Incarnation) presides over Hiranmaya. Aryaman the
-chief of the Pitris dwells there with others.
-
-(Mantra and prayer follow)
-
-_Kuru._
-
-Varsha or the Boar Incarnation presides over Kuru. Bhr with the
-dwellers of Kuru adore him.
-
-(Mantra and prayer follow.)
-
-_Kinpurusha._
-
-In Kinpurusha, Hanumn with the dwellers of the Varsha worship the
-Adipurusha Rma, brother of Lakshamana and husband of Sit.
-
-(Mantra and prayer follow.)
-
-_Bhrat Varsha._
-
-Nara Nryana presides over this Varsha. There are various (castes) and
-sramas in this Varsha. Nrada of great devotion leads the people of
-this Varsha. His object in so doing is to teach to Svarni, the coming
-Manu, the Snkhya and Yoga (as related in the Bhagavat Git) together
-with the full realisation of Bhagavat (as related in the Pancharatras).
-
-[This mission of Nrada is specially noteworthy.]
-
-( Mantra and prayer follow.)
-
-In this Bhrata Varsha there are many mountains and rivers.
-
-Maloya, Mangalaprastha, Mainka, Trikuta, Rishava, Kutaka, Konva, Sahya,
-Rishyamka, Srisaila, Venkata, Mahendra, Vridhra, Vindhya, Saktimn,
-Riksha, Priptra, Drona, Chitrakta, Gobardhana, Raivatak, Kakubha,
-Nila, Gokmukha, Indrakila, Kmagiri and hundreds and thousands of other
-mountains are situated in this Varsha.
-
-The following are the principal rivers Chandvavsa, Tmvaparni, Avatoda,
-Kritamla, Vaihyasi, Kveri, Ven, Payasvini, Sarkarvart,
-Krishnavenu, Bhimrathi, Godbari, Nirvindhy, Payoshni, Tpi, Rev,
-Suras, Narmad, Charmanvati, Andha, Sona, Mahnadi, Vedasmriti,
-Rishikly, Trism, Kousiki, Mandkini, Yamun, Sarasvati, Drishadvati,
-Gomati, Saraju, Aghavati, Shasthavati, Saptavati, Satadru, Sushoma,
-Chandrabhg, Maruduridh, Vitast, Asikini and Visv.
-
-Those that acquire birth in this Varsha have recourse to Svarga,
-humanity and Naraka respectively, according as their Karma is White
-(Stvic), Red (Rjasic) or Black (Tmasic). The People acquire Moksha in
-this Varsha in accordance with their Varna (Caste). (This is because
-Karma according to caste prevails in this Varsha, not that Moksha is not
-otherwise attainable. _Sridhara_).
-
-And what is moksha in this Varsha? It is the Companionship of Mahtms
-(Mahpurushas) brought about by the destruction of the bonds of Avidy
-caused by various births. And that Moksha is in reality unceasing,
-unselfish devotion to the All-pervading, Indestructible, Causeless
-Paramtma Vsudeva.
-
-Even the Devas say: -- "How fortunate are these people of Bhrat Varsha!
-For Hari is kind to them, even without many performances and they are so
-adapted for communion with Hari by devotion. We have attained Svarga by
-the performance of Yajna. But we shall have to be born again after the
-end of the Kalpa. What good is in this state, which does not bring us in
-direct communion with Vishnu? These people of Bhrat Varsha even with
-their short lives acquire the state of Hari. If there be any Karma left
-to us after the enjoyment of Svarga may we be born as men that we may
-worship Hari."
-
-Some say there are eight upadvipas in Jambu Dvipa, formed by the sons of
-Sagara when they dug up this earth in search of the sacrificial horse.
-They are Svarna Prastha, Chandra Sukla, vartana, Rmanaka,
-Manda-harina, Panchajanya, Sinhala and Louk.
-
-
-
-THE DVIPAS.
-
-
-*SKANDHA V. CHAP. 20.*
-
-_Plaksha Dvipa_
-
-Jambu Dvipa is surrounded by the salt ocean on all sides. That ocean
-extends over Laksha Yojanas. That salt ocean is again surrounded on all
-sides by Plaksha Dvipa, which extends over 2 laksha of Yojanas.
-
-There is one golden Plaksha tree in that Dvipa as high as the Jambu tree
-in Jambu Dvipa and the Dvipa itself takes its name from that tree. There
-Fire is seven tongued,
-
-Idhmajihva son of Priyavrata ruled over this Dvipa. He divided the Dvipa
-into seven Varshas and named them after his seven sons each of whom
-ruled over the Varsha of his name.
-
-Siva, Vayasa, Subhadr, Snta, Kshema, Amrita and Abhoya are the
-Varshas.
-
-Manikta, Vajrakta, Indrasena, Jyotishmat, Subarna, Hiranyasthiva and
-Meghmla are the seven chief mountains.
-
-Arun, Nrimna, Angirasi, Svitri, Supravt, Ritambhar and Satyambhar
-are the seven great rivers.
-
-Hansa, Patanga, Urdhyana and Satynga are the corresponding castes.
-
-The dwellers of the Dvipa live for one thousand years. They look like
-Devas and procreate after Deva fashion. They worship the Srya (Sun-god)
-of the Vedas.
-
-(The Mantra is given)
-
-In Plaksha, Slmali, Kusa, Krouncha and Saka, the inmates have their
-age, Indriyas, strength, power and Budhi by their very birth and not by
-Karma.
-
-The Dvipa is surrounded by the Sugar cane juice ocean which extends over
-2 laksha of Yojanas.
-
-_Slmali Divpa:_ -- Twice as large as Plaksha Dvipa. The ocean of wine
-surrounding it is equally large.
-
-_Tree:_ -- Slmali (Bombax Malabaricum) as high as the Plaksha tree said
-to be the seat of Garuda.
-
-_King:_ Yajna-vha son of Priyavrata.
-
-_Seven Varshas and seven sons of Yajnavaha:_ -- Surochana, Soumanasya,
-Rmanaka, Devvarha, Pribhadra, pyyana and Abhijhta.
-
-_Seven principal mountains:_ -- Surasa, Sata Sringa, Vamadeva, Kunda,
-Kumuda, Pushpa Varsha and Sahosra.
-
-_Seven great rivers:_ -- Anumati, Sinivti, Sarasvati, Kuhu, Rajani,
-Nand and Rk.
-
-_Divisions of people:_ -- Srutidhara, Viryadhara, Vasundhara, and
-Ishundhara.
-
-_Presiding deity:_ -- The Moon.
-
-_Kusa Dvipa:_ -- Twice as large as Slmali Dvipa surrounded by an ocean
-of clarified butter equally large.
-
-_Tree:_ -- Clusters of Kusa grass glowing and glittering.
-
-_King:_ -- Hiranyaretas son of Priyavrata.
-
-_Seven Varshas:_ -- Vasu, Vasudna, Dridharuchi, Nbhigupta, Satyavrata,
-Bikranama, and Devanma.
-
-_Seven mountains:_ -- Babhra, Chatur-Sringa, Kapila Chitra Kta,
-Devnika, Urdharomau and Dravina.
-
-_Seven Rivers:_ -- Raaskuly, Madhukuly, Mitravind, Srutavind, Deva
-Garbh, Ghutachynt, and Mantraml.
-
-_Divisions of People:_ -- Kusala, Kovida, Abhiyukta and Kulaka.
-
-_Presiding Deity:_ -- Agni (Fire-god).
-
-_Krouncha Dvipa:_ -- Twice as large as Kusa, surrounded by an ocean of
-milk equally large. Named after the Krouncha Mountain. The Krouncha
-Mountain was attacked by Krtikeya and injured too. But the Milk Ocean
-and the presiding deity Varuna saved it.
-
-_King:_ -- Ghritaprestha son of Priyavrata.
-
-_Seven Varshas:_ -- tm, Madhuruha, Meghapristha, Sudhwan, Bhrjistha,
-Lohitrna, Vnaspati.
-
-_Seven Mountains:_ -- Sukla, Vardhamn, Bhajana, Upavarhaha, Nauda,
-Nandana and Sarvato-bhadra.
-
-_Seven Rivers:_ -- Abhoya, Amritough, ryuk, Tirthavati, Rupavati,
-Pavitravati and Sukl.
-
-_Divisions of people:_ -- Purasha, Rishabha, Dravina and Devaka.
-
-_Presiding Deity:_ pas (Water-God.)
-
-_Ska Dvipa:_ -- 32 laksha Yojanas. Surrounded by an ocean of curds --
-equally extensive.
-
-_Tree:_ -- Ska (Teak wood tree) very fragrant.
-
-_King:_ -- Medhtithi, son of Priyavrata.
-
-_Seven Varshas:_ -- Purojava, Manojava, Vepamna, Dhmrnika,
-Chitrarepha, Bahurpa and Visv-dhra.
-
-_Seven Mountains:_ -- Isna, Uru Sringa, Balabhadra, Sata Kesara,
-Sahasra-srotas, Devapla and Mohnasa.
-
-_Seven Rivers:_ -- Anagh, yurd, Ubhayaspriti, Aparjit, Punchapad,
-Sahasra Sruti and Nijadhriti.
-
-_Division of people:_ -- Ritavrata, Satyavrata, Dnavrata and Anuvrata.
-
-_Presiding Deity:_ -- Vayu (Wind-god).
-
-_Puskkara Dvipa:_ -- Twice as large as Saka Dvipa surrounded by an ocean
-of pure water -- equally extensive: There is a big Pushkara or Lotus
-plant with thousands of golden leaves. The Lotus is known as the seat of
-Brahm.
-
-Standing between two Varshas, eastern and western, is the Mnasattara
-Mountain ten thousand Yojanas high. On the four sides of this Mountain
-are four abodes of the Lokaplas = Indra and others.
-
-Over these abodes the Sanvatsava or Uttaryana Dakshinyana wheel
-(_chakra_) of the Sun's chariot moves in its course round Meru.
-
-Vitihotra, Son of Priyavrata, is the king of this Varsha.
-
-His two sons Rmanaka and Dhtaka are the lords of two Varshas named
-after them.
-
-The people of those Varshas worship Brahm by Yajna performances.
-
-Beyond the Ocean of pure water is the Lokloka (Loka and Aloka)
-Mountain, dividing Loka, the regions lighted by the sun, from Aloka or
-the regions not lighted by the sun.
-
-As much land as there is between Mnasottara and Meru, so much golden
-land is there on the other side of the pure water ocean. It is like the
-surface of the mirror. If any thing is thrown on that land, it is not
-regained. It is therefore forsaken by all beings. [The land between
-Mnasottara and Meru is one krore and a half _plus_ seven and a half
-lakhs. There is as much land on the other side of the Pure Water Ocean.
-There are living beings in that land. Beyond that is the golden land.
-That land is eight krores and thirty nine laksha yojanas wide. It is
-thus that the distance between Meru and Lokloka comes to be 12 1/2
-krores as mentioned below. This is also said in the Siva Tantra.
-
-Two krores 53 lakshas and 50 thousand this is the measure of the seven
-Dvipas with the Oceans. Beyond that is the golden land which is 10
-Krores of Yojanas. This is used by the Devas as their play-ground.
-Beyond that is Lokloka. The ten krores include the previously mentioned
-land, "Forsaken by all beings" -- this is to be understood with the
-exception of the Devas, for it is mentioned as the play-ground of the
-Devas. _Sridhara._]
-
-In order to understand the commentary of _Sridhara_, let us examine the
-figures.
-
-Jambu Dvipa with Ocean on one side of Meru:
-
- ... ... 150,000 Yojanas
-
-Plaksha Dvipa with Ocean on one side of Meru:
-
- ... ... 400,000
-
- Slmali Do. ... ... 800,000
-
- Kusa Do. .. ... 1,600,000
-
- Krouncha Do. .. ... 3,200,000
-
- Ska Do. .. ... 6,400,000
-
- Pushkar Do. . ... 12,800,000
-
-Deduct Pure water Ocean as it is not included between Meru and
-Mnasottara:
-
- ... ... 6,400,000
-
- ------------
- 18,950,000
-
-Mnasottara stands half way in Pushkara, as it stands between two
-Varshas. Deduct distance between Mnasottara and Pure Water Ocean:
-
- ... 3,200,000
-
- ------------
- 15,750,000
-
-The distance between Meru and Mnasottara is 1 1/2 Krores and 7 1/2
-lakhs.
-
-According to Sridhara, there is this much land on the other side of the
-Pure Water Ocean.
-
-Beyond that land is the Golden land which according to _Sridhara_ is:
-
- ... ... 83900000 Yojanas
-
- Thus we get Dvipas and Oceans ... 25350000 "
-
- Land beyond Pure Water Oceans ... 15750000 "
-
- The Golden land ... ... 83900000 "
-
- ----------
-
- 125000000 "
-
-Thus we get the 12 1/2 krores of Sridhara. Beyond the Golden land is the
-Lokloka Mountain. This will also explain the quotation from Siva
-Tantra. The following Diagram will partially illustrate the points.
-
- Lokloka
-
- * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * *
- --------------------------------
-
- The Golden Land
- --------------------------------
-
- Land beyond Pure Water Ocean
- --------------------------------
-
- Pure Water Ocean
- --------------------------------
-
- P
- u
- s
- h ( * * Mnasottara
- k
- a
- r
- a
-
- -------------------------------
-
- Milk Ocean
- -------------------------------
-
- Sk
- -------------------------------
-
- Sour Milk Ocean
- -------------------------------
-
- Krouncha
- -------------------------------
-
- Clarified Butter Ocean
- -------------------------------
-
- Kusa
- -------------------------------
-
- Wine Ocean
- -------------------------------
-
- Slmali
- -------------------------------
-
- Sugarcane Juice Ocean
- -------------------------------
-
- Plaksha
- -------------------------------
-
- Salt Ocean
- -------------------------------
-
- * Meru, Jambu
- -------------------------------
-
-The Lokloka is the boundary of three Lokas, Bhr, Bhuvar, and Svar.
-
-The rays of the numerous bodies from the Sun up to Dhruva illuminate the
-regions on the Triloka side of Lokloka but they can never reach its
-other side. For such is the height and expanse of Lokloka -- (It is
-even higher than Dhruva. So it is the boundary of Trilok. _Sridhara_).
-
-The Bhu-Golaka or the Bhr system measures 50 Krores. And Lokloka is
-one-fourth of that _i.e._ 12 1/2 Krores (on one side of Meru.
-_Sridhara_).
-
-Over this Lokloka, Brahm placed 4 Elephant Kings in four different
-directions _viz:_ Rishabha, Pushkarachra, Vmana and Aparjit. This is
-for the preservation of the Lokas.
-
-Bhagavn Mah Purusha (Vishnu) Himself remains there. He infuses various
-powers into the Elephant Kings and into the Lokaplas (preservers of the
-Lokas) Indra and others who are but His manifestations. He pervades all.
-He manifests His pure Satva. The characteristics of that satva are the
-eight Siddhis.
-
-Dharma, Jnna, Vairgya, Aisvarya &c., Vishvaksena and His other
-Companions are with Him. His own weapons are in his hands. He remains
-there for the good of all Lokas.
-
-To the end of the Kalpa, Vishnu remains in this way pervading all for
-the preservation of the Universe formed by His own My.
-
-The measure of Aloka is also 12 1/2 Krores (on one side of Meru.
-_Sridhara_).
-
-Beyond Aloka is Visuddha (very pure region) where only masters of Yoga
-can go.
-
-The Sun stands in the centre of the Egg. That is also the middle ground
-between Svar and Bhr. Between the Sun and the Circumference of the Egg
-is 25 Krores.
-
-The Sun is called Mrtanda (Mrita and anda) because in Mrita or dead
-matter he infused life as Vairja. He is called Hiranya Garbha (Gold
-wombed) because he came out of the Golden Egg.
-
-The sun divided space into Bhr, Bhuvar and Svar. The Sun divides the
-regions of enjoyment and Moksha. He divides the Narakas and Ptlas. He
-is the tm of Devas, men, animals, plants and other Jivas. He is the
-manifester of sight.
-
-
-
-SVAR AND BHUVAR.
-
-
-*SKANDHA V. CHAP. 21.*
-
-The localisation, measure and other details of Bhr have been given
-above. (By expanse 50 Krores and by height 25 Krores. _Sridhara_).
-
-The measure of Svar is the same as that of Bhr -- Just as one cotyledon
-gives the measure of the other cotyledon in a flower.
-
-Bhuvar is the connecting link of Bhr and Svar.
-
-
-
-THE SUN.
-
-
-*SKANDHA V. CHAP. 21-22.*
-
-The Sun from the Bhuvar Loka sends forth his rays to Trilok.
-
-(Here follow astronomical details which need not be given.)
-
-When the Sun is between the Autumn and spring Equinoxes it is called
-Uttaryana (or going towards the north.) Then the Sun's motion is said
-to be slow.
-
-When the Sun is between the spring Equinox and Autumn Equinox, it is
-Dakshinyana (Going towards the south.) The Sun's motion is then said to
-be Quick.
-
-When the sun is at the Equinoxes it is Vishuva. The Sun's motion is then
-said to be Even.
-
-When it is Dakshinyana, the days increase. When it is Uttaryana the
-nights increase.
-
-The sages teach 9 Krores and 51 lakhs of Yojanas as the Circumference of
-Mansottara.
-
-[On both sides of Meru up to Mansottara is 3 Krores and 15 lakhs. The
-Measure of the above circle is obtained from this (diameter).
-_Sridhara_.]
-
-[A full diagram of the Bhr system will now have to be given, to explain
-the above figures. For the sake of convenience, the Dvipa and its ocean
-are given as one.]
-
-[Illustration: A diagram of the Bhr system.]
-
- From Meru to Lokloka on one side ... 12 1/2 Krores
- on both sides ... 25 "
- Loka loka on both sides ... 25 "
- Measure of Bhr system ... 50 "
- Distance from Meru to Manasottora 15,750,000
- On both sides ... 31,500,000
-
-The Mansottara range is a circle of which the last figure is the
-diameter.
-
-The circle is obtained by multiplying the diameter by a little over 3.
-
-The circle is thus given to be -- 9 Krores and 51 Lakshas.
-
-The Mansottara is the path of revolution of the sun round Meru.
-
-On the East side of Meru in the Mansottara is the seat of Indra named
-Devadhn.
-
-On the South side is the seat of Yma named Sanyaman.
-
-On the West is the seat of Varuna named Nimlochani.
-
-On the North is the seat of the Moon named Vibhavar.
-
-Sunrise, midday, Sunset and night on those seats cause action and
-inaction in beings, according to the time with reference to the side of
-Meru.
-
-(For those that live to the south of Meru, their east &c. commence from
-the abode of Indra, of those that live to the west from the abode of
-Yma, of the northern people, from the abode of Varuna, of the eastern
-people from the abode of the Moon. _Sridhara_.)
-
-Those that live on the Meru have the Sun always over their heads.
-
-The Sun's chariot makes one round along Mansottara in one year. The
-wheel or chakra of the chariot is therefore called Sanvatsara.
-
-The 12 months are the 12 spokes of that wheel. The six seasons form 6
-arcs.
-
-The pole of that chariot extends to the top of Meru. The other end of
-the pole is on the Mansottara. (It is either to be thought that the
-wheel is placed more than 50,000 Yojanas over the Mansottara in the
-regions of air or the wheel is to be considered as high as that
-distance, otherwise the Mansottara being 10,000 Yojanas high and Meru
-being 84 Yojanas high, 16 thousand being under ground, there will be a
-difference of planes in the Sun's revolution. _Sridhara_.)
-
-There is another movement of the Sun round Dhruva. The radius of that
-revolution is one fourth the distance between Meru and Mansottara.
-(_i.e._ 1/4 X 15,750,000 = 3,937,500).
-
-The movement round Dhruva is caused by the action of air.
-
-The seat within the chariot is 36 laksha of Yojanas wide. The yoke is
-also of the same measure. The seven horses are the seven Vedic metres
-(Gyatri, Ushnik, Anustup, Vrihat, Pankti, Tristup and Jagati). They
-are driven by Aruna.
-
-The thumb sized Blikhilya Rishis stand in front of the chariot and
-chant hymns in honor of ditya.
-
-
-
-THE PLANETS AND STARS.
-
-
-*SKANDHA V. CHAP. 22-23.*
-
-The moon is one laksha of Yojanas over the Sun. The growing Moon makes
-the day of the Devas and the waning Moon is the life of all Jivas, in
-fact he is Jiva.
-
-He is Manomaya, Annamaya and Amritamaya. From him therefore proceed the
-life and advancement of Devas, Pitris, Men, Animals and Plants.
-
-Two laksha of Yojanas over the Moon are the 27 Zodiacal constellations
-and also the star Abhijit ( a mysterious star between Uttarshdh and
-Sravan) attached to the wheel of time.
-
-Two laksha of Yojanas over them is Sukra or Venus. His movements are
-like those of the Sun. He is ever favourable to men. His progression is
-generally accompanied by showers of rain. He also subdues those planets
-that counteract the rains.
-
-Two laksha of Yojanas over Sukra is Budha or Mercury. He is much like
-Sukra in his movements and is generally favourable to men. But when he
-transgresses the Sun, there is fear of high winds, rainless clouds and
-drought.
-
-Two laksha of Yojanas over Budha is Mangala or Mars. He moves round the
-Zodiac in three fortnights. He is generally unfavourable to men, causing
-miseries, unless he proceeds by retrogression.
-
-Two laksha of Yojanas over Mars is Brihaspati or Jupiter. He moves in
-each sign of the Zodiac for one Parivatsara (year of Jupiter), if there
-is no retrogression. He is generally unfavorable to the Brhmanas.
-
-Two laksha of Yojanas over Jupiter is Sanaischara or Saturn. He loiters
-in each sign of the Zodiac for thirty months. He completes his round in
-thirty Anuvatsaras. He is generally unfavourable to all and causes
-unrest.
-
-Eleven laksha of Yojanas over Saturn are the Rishis. Their influence is
-for the good of all people. They revolve round the Supreme abode of
-Vishnu.
-
-Thirteen laksha of Yojanas beyond the Rishis is Dhruva, which is the
-Supreme abode of Vishnu.
-
-All luminous bodies attached to the wheel of time move round Dhruva
-being propelled by Vyu while Dhruva remains fixed.
-
-The planets and stars remain fixed in their relative positions, under
-the union of Prakriti and Purusha by the future made for them by their
-Karma.
-
-Some however say that the luminous bodies become fixed in their relative
-positions by the Yoga support of Vsudeva, being held together in the
-shape of Sisumra (the Gangetic porpoise). The Sisumra has its face
-downwards and its body is coiled.
-
-Dhruva is at the end of its tail. Prajpati, Agni, Indra and Dharma are
-in the lower part of the tail. Dhta and Vidhta are at the root of the
-tail. The seven Rishis are in the middle. On the right side are the
-fourteen Stars from Abhijit to Punarvasu. On the left side are the 14
-stars from Pushy to Uttara Srh. So on, all the stars and planets.
-(For details refer to the original).
-
-The Sisumra is the Universal manifestation of Maha Purusha.
-
-[The following Geo-centric diagram is given, as illustrative of the
-positions of the planets.]
-
-[Illustration: Positions of the planets.]
-
-
-
-THE PTLAS
-
-
-*SKANDHA V. CHAP. 24.*
-
-Ten thousand Yojanas below the Sun is Rhu, son of Sinhika. Though an
-Asura, by favour of Bhagavn he became a planet and immortal too like
-the Devas.
-
-Ten thousand Yojanas below Rhu is the abode of the Siddhas, Chranas
-and Vaidydharas.
-
-Below that is the abode of the Yakshas, Rkshasas, Pischas, Pretas, and
-Bhtas. This abode extends down to the regions of air and clouds.
-
-One hundred Yojanas below that is the Earth. The details of the Earth's
-surface have been given above.
-
-Underneath the Earth are the seven Patlas: -- Atala, Vitala, Sutala,
-Taltala, Mahtala, Rastala and Ptla. They are ten thousand Yojanas
-apart from each other.
-
-In these nether Svargas, Daityas, Dnavas and Ngas dwell. Their
-enjoyments, power, joys and luxuries are even greater than those of the
-Devas of Svarga. Their houses, gardens and playgrounds are very rich.
-They are always joyous. They are attached to their wives, sons, friends
-and attendants. By the grace of svara, their desires are always
-gratified.
-
-My, the Dnava Magician, has built wonderful houses, gardens &c. in
-these regions with precious stones.
-
-There are no divisions of time, as the Sun's rays do not enter those
-regions and no disturbances from such divisions. All darkness is removed
-by the light of the precious stones on the head of the serpent king.
-
-The people of Ptla use divine herbs and medicines, and consequently
-they have no infirmities, diseases, old age, languor and offensive
-secretions.
-
-They have no death except by the Chakra of Bhagavn (_i.e._ final
-extinction).
-
-_Atala:_ -- Bala, the son of Maya resides in Atala (Maya is a masculine
-form of My the root Prakriti). He created here 96 forms of My. The
-Myvins (those who practice Magic) still have recourse to those forms.
-When he yawns, three classes of women spring into existence viz:
-
- 1. Svairini (self willed loose women),
- 2. Kmini (passionate women) and
- 3. Punschali (unchaste women).
-
-If any one enters Atala these women completely allure him by their
-Htaka (golden) charm, and when the man is completely overcome by their
-allurements, he says "I am svara", "I am Siddha."
-
-[The women are only forms of My because My is personified as an
-alluring woman. A man in Atala is completely under the domination of
-My and becomes estranged from spirit. So My is all in all to him and
-he knows no other.]
-
-_Vitala_: -- Below Atala is Vitala. There Bhava (Siva) the king of Gold
-reigns in company with his consort Bhavni, attended by Bhtas. He
-remains there for the benefit of the Prajpati creation. The fluid of
-intercourse with Bhavni gives rise to a river called Htaki (Golden).
-Agni kindled by Vyu drinks up that river and gives out the gold called
-Htaka which is used in ornaments by the Asuras who dwell there.
-
-(We have known Siva as the Astral Lord. We find him here engaged in the
-work of creation. The text speaks of a mysterious connection between him
-and the gold called Htaka. The occult varieties of gold such as
-Jmvanada and Htaka form a fit subject of study. Htaka refers to the
-Prajpati creation. There is duality in Vitala, as distinguished from
-the singleness of My in Atala).
-
-_Sutala_: -- Below Vitala is Sutala. There the renowned Bali son of
-Virochana still dwells. Vmana, the Dwarf Incarnation of Vishnu, took
-away the Trilok from him and replaced him here. His enjoyments even
-here are greater than those of Indra. He performs Sva-dharma and
-worships Vishnu. His sins are all removed.
-
-(A full account of Bali will be given below.)
-
-_Taltala_: -- Below Sutala is Taltala. My, the Dnava king, rules
-there. His "Three Puras" (abodes) were destroyed by Siva who is hence
-called Tripurari. But Siva favoured him again and placed him in
-Taltala. He is the preceptor of all Myvins. He is preserved by Siva
-and he has no fear from Sudarsana (the chakra weapon of Vishnu, which
-symbolises Time.)
-
-(Bali and My, Trilok and Tripura, the seizure of one and the
-destruction of the other, the restoration of Bali to Sutala and of My
-to Taltala, the favour shown to them in those regions, the
-correspondences of Sutala and Taltala are worth careful consideration.
-In the case of one, Vishnu or the Preservative aspect of the Second
-Purusha is the actor, and in the other, Siva, the Destructive aspect.)
-
-_Mahtala_: -- Below Taltala is Mahtala. Many headed serpents, the
-progeny of Kadru, dwell there. The chief amongst them are Kuhaka,
-Takshaka, Kliya, Sushena, and others. They are always afraid of Garuda,
-the Vehicle of Vishnu, and they are therefore seldom seen to indulge in
-pleasure-trips outside.
-
-_Rastala_: -- Below Mahatala is Rastala; Daityas, Dnavas and Panis,
-named Nivatakavachas, Klakeyas and Hiranyapuravsins dwell there. They
-are the enemies of the Devas. They are powerful from their very birth.
-They are subdued by the Sudarsana of Vishnu. They are like serpents.
-They fear even the threats of Saram, the bitch of the gods who is
-Indra's messenger to them. They fear Indra also.
-
-_Ptala_: -- Below Rastala is Ptala. The Ngas dwell there. Vaski is
-their chief. The other principal Ngas are -- Sankha, Kulika, Mah
-Sankha, Sveta, Dhananjaya, Asvatara, and Devadatta. Their hood is very
-large and they are very furious. Some of them are five headed, some 7
-headed, some 10 headed, some a thousand headed. The precious stones on
-their hoods dispel all darkness in Ptala.
-
-
-
-ANANTA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA V. CHAP. 25.*
-
-At the root of Ptala, thirty thousand Yojanas beyond, is the Tamas
-aspect of Bhagavn called Ananta. Those that worship the Chaturvyha
-aspect call him Sankarshana. He has a thousand heads. The earth held up
-on one of these heads looks but like a mustard seed. When the time for
-dissolution comes, Ananta assumes His Tamas form and becomes Rudra --
-other wise called Sankarshana, a host of eleven, with three eyes, three
-tufts of hair and with tridents on their heads. At other times, Ananta
-withdraws His Tamas and abides for the good of all Lokas. His eyes roll
-as it were by intoxication. His garments are blue. He has one ear-ring.
-He has a plough on his back.
-
-
-
-THE NARAKAS.
-
-
-*SKANDHA V. CHAP. 26.*
-
-Where are the Narakas, O Rishi, asked Parikshit? Are they particular
-localities? Are they outside the Trilok or inside?
-
-Suka replied: --
-
-They are inside the Trilok on the south side below the earth, over the
-waters, where Agnishvtt and other Pitris deeply meditate on the
-welfare of their respective descendants.
-
-There, Yma, the Death-god, metes out just punishment to the dead.
-
-There are twenty-one Narakas: --
-
- 1. Tmisra
- 2. Andha Tmisara
- 3. Rourava
- 4. Mahrourava
- 5. Kumbhipka
- 6. Kla Sutra
- 7. Asipatravana
- 8. Skara Mukha
- 9. Andha Kpa
- 10. Krimi bhajana
- 11. Sandansa
- 12. Tapta Surmi
- 13. Vajra-Kantaka Slmali
- 14. Vaitarani
- 15. Pyda
- 16. Prnarodha
- 17. Vaissana
- 18. Llbhaksha
- 19. Srameydna
- 20. Avichi and
- 21. Ayahpna.
-
-There are seven other Narakas:
-
- 1. Kshra Kardama
- 2. Rakshogana bhojana
- 3. Slaprota
- 4. Danda Ska
- 5. Avata-nirodhana
- 6. Pary vartana and
- 7. Schi mukha.
-
-(For details of these Narakas, the reader is referred to the original.
-They are more for the exoteric than for the esoteric reader.)
-
-There are hundreds and thousands of such Narakas in the realms of Yma.
-The vicious enter them by turns. The meritorious go to Svarga. But the
-Karma of men is not exhausted in Svarga or Naraka. For that which
-remains unexhausted, they enter life again by re-birth.
-
-(The mention of Pitris and Yma connects the Narakas with the astral
-plane.)
-
-
-
-
-SKANDHA VI.
-
-
-
-THE STORY OF AJMILA
-
-
-*SKANDHA VI. CHAP. 1-3.*
-
-Rj Parikshit asked how men could avoid Naraka.
-
-SUKA replied: -- It is by Pryaschitta (expiation) that men can avoid
-Naraka. But it is not Vedic Pryaschitta, not fasting by Chndryana and
-other Vratas. These Vedic performances cannot root out vicious
-tendencies, for the performer is seen again to indulge in vices. They do
-not purify the mind. They simply counteract the Krmic effect of the act
-for which Pryaschitta is performed. The real Pryaschitta is devotion
-to Vishnu.
-
-Ajmila was the son of a Brhmana. He was dutiful, virtuous, modest,
-truthful, and regular in the performance of Vedic injunctions. One day
-in obedience to his father he went into the forests and there collected
-fruits, flowers, sacrificial wood and _Kusa_ -- on returning he saw a
-Sudra in company with a slave-girl. He tried much to subdue his passions
-but did not succeed. He spent the whole of his patrimony to win the love
-of that girl. He gave up his own wife and kept company with that slave
-girl. He had by her several sons of whom the youngest was Nryana.
-Ajmila lost all his good qualities in low company and he forgot his
-daily practices. To support the woman and her children, he had recourse
-to all sorts of vicious and unlawful acts. Nryana was the favorite
-among his sons. He caressed him always. At last his end approached. He
-thought even then of his youngest son who was playing at a distance.
-Three fierce-looking messengers of Yma appeared, with ropes in hand.
-Terrified at the sight Ajmila cried out "Nryana, Nryana." Instantly
-the Messengers of Vishnu appeared. At the time when the servants of Yma
-were drawing out the Jiva from the heart of Ajmila, the attendants of
-Vishnu stopped them with a strong voice. "But who are you" said they "to
-interfere with the just sway of Yma." The bright attendants of Vishnu
-only smiled and asked: "What is Dharma? Does your lord Yma hold the
-sceptre of punishment against all who perform Karma? Is there no
-distinction made?"
-
-The astral messengers replied: -- "The performance of Vedic Injunctions
-is Dharma and their disregard is Adharma. This Ajmila in his earlier
-days duly respected the Vedas. But in company with the slave-girl, he
-lost his Brahmnism, disregarded the Vedas and did things which a
-Brhmana should not do. He justly comes for punishment to Yama."
-
-The attendants of Vishnu expressed wonder at these words. "And you are
-servants of him, who is called the king of Dharma, and you do not know
-that there is something above the Vedas too. This Ajmila consciously or
-unconsciously took the name of Nryana and that saved him from your
-clutches. It is in the nature of fire to consume fuel and so it is in
-the nature of Vishnu's name to destroy all sins. If one unconsciously
-takes some powerful medicine, does it not have effect? It matters not
-whether Ajmila meant his youngest son or not but still he took the name
-of Nryana. So you must retire."
-
-Wonder-struck the servants of Yma left their hold over Ajmila. They
-went away and complained to their Master. "There must be one law and one
-dispenser of that law. Otherwise some will be punished and others not.
-Why should there be this difference? We know Thee to be the sole
-dispenser of the Law for the vicious. But just now the attendants of
-Vishnu came and wrested from our hands a transgressor against the
-Vedas."
-
-"True my sons", replied Yma, "there is some one above me and it is
-Vishnu. His ways are mysterious.
-
-"The whole Universe is in Him. His attendants always save His votaries.
-Only twelve of us know his Dharma, which is Bhgavata and no one else.
-These twelve are Brahm, Siva, Sanat Kumra, Nrada, Kapila, Manu,
-Prahlda, Janaka, Bhishma, Bali, Suka and myself."
-
-Ajmila heard the conversation between the messengers of Yma and
-Vishnu. He became sorely penitent (the repentance is strongly
-described). He overcame his attachments, left the house and went to
-Haridvra. There he meditated on Vishnu with concentrated mind. The
-former attendants of Vishnu appeared once more and took him on a chariot
-to Vishnu Loka.
-
-
-
-THE PROGENY OF DAKSHA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA VI. CHAP. 4-6.*
-
-[We left the line of Uttnapda with Daksha, the son of the Prachetas
-brothers. We were told of his work of creation in the Chkshasha
-Manvantara. But we have to take up the line just now, to introduce the
-story of Visva Rpa.]
-
-Daksha first carried on the work of creation by Mnasic reproduction.
-But he found this sort of reproduction was not adequate for the
-enlargement of creation. He went to a place near the Vindhyas and prayed
-hard to Vishnu. Vishnu became pleased with his prayers and advised him
-to marry Asikni, the daughter of Prajpati Panchajana. "Take her for
-your wife and have sexual intercourse with her. By sexual reproduction,
-you shall have a large progeny and that form of reproduction shall
-prevail among your sons too".
-
-By Asikni, Daksha had at first 10 thousand sons called Haryasva. He
-asked them to take up the work of creation. They went westwards to where
-the river Sindhu falls into the ocean. They began to make Tapas there
-for their progeny. Nrada appeared before them and dissuaded them from
-Pravritti Mrga. He gave them instructions for obtaining Moksha and they
-followed the path of its attainment.
-
-Daksha heard that his sons were killed by Nrada and he became very
-sorry.
-
-He again had one thousand sons names Subalsva. They also went out to
-the very same place and prayed to Vishnu for progeny. Nrada again
-dissuaded them and they never returned to their father.
-
-Daksha became restless in sorrow and thus cursed Nrada on meeting him.
-"Thou shalt roam all over Trilok and shalt find no resting place."
-
-Daksha had then 60 daughters. Ten he gave to Dharma, 13 to Kasyapa, 27
-to the Moon, two each to Bhta, Angirasa, and Krisasva and four to
-Trksha.
-
-
-
-THE PROGENY OF DHARMA.
-
-
- (1) _By Bhnu_: -- Devar-shabha or the chief Devas.
-
- (2) _By Lamb_: -- Vidyota (flash of lightning)
- |
- The clouds.
-
- (3) _By Kakud_: -- Sankata
- |
- Kikata (the elementals presiding over
- earth-cavities).
-
- (4) _By Ymi_: -- Svarga.
- |
- Nandi.
-
- (5) _By Visv_: -- The Visvadevas (Vedic-gods).
-
- (6) _By Sdhy_: -- The Sdhyas -- attainment of desires.
-
- (7) _By Mavutvat_: -- Marutvat and Jayanta, otherwise called Upendra.
-
- (8) _By Muhrta_: -- The Muhrta Devas or Devas presiding over the
- moments.
-
- (9) _By Sankalp_: -- Sankalpa (Desire).
-
- (10) _By Vasu_: The eight Vasus (Vedic-gods), _viz_
-
- (_a_) Drona = Abhimat
- |
- --+---------+---+-----
- | |
- Harsha (Joy) Soka (Sorrow) &c.
-
-
- (_b_) Prna = Urjasvati
- |
- --+---------------+-----+-----+---
- | | |
- Saha (strength) yus (age) Purojava.
-
-
- (_c_) Dhruva=Dharan
- |
- Different towns.
-
-
- (_d_) Arka = Vsna (tendency)
- |
- ---+-----+------+--
- | |
- Tarsha (desire) &c.
-
-
- (_e_) Agni (Fire) = Dhra
- |
- --+----------------------+--+------------+--
- | | |
- Sknda Dravinaka &c.
- (otherwise known as (Gold, wealth)
- Kartikeya, the son
- of Siva by Krittika)
- |
- Viskha &c.
-
- (_f_) Dosha = Sarvar (night)
- |
- Sisumra (Gangetic porpoise the symbol of Trilok).
-
-
- (_g_) Vastu (Dwelling place) = ngirasi
- |
- Visvakarm (The cosmic manufacturer)
- |
- Chkshusha Manu
- |
- --+------+---------+---
- | |
- The Visvadevas The Sadhyas.
-
-
- (_h_) Vibhavasu = Ush (Dawn)
- |
- --+--------------+--+--------------+--
- | | |
- Vyushta Rochisha Atapa.
- (Dawn) (Bright, shining) (Sun shine)
- |
- Panchayma
-
- (1 Yma = 1/3 part of day
- = 3 hours. There are
- 8 ymas in day and night.
- Pancha yma = 5 ymas
- when men do their work).
-
-[The 8 Vasus are sub-manifestations of Brahm or the creative Purusha.
-They are energies that help creation in various ways. They find no place
-in the Hindu worship now. They are invoked only in marriage ceremonies
-when their appropriateness is evident. The Vedic gods can be analysed
-thus:--:
-
- Purusha
- |
- --+------------------------+-----------------------+--
- | | |
- Creative or Brahm Preservative or Vishnu Destructive or Siva
- 8 Vasus. 12 dityas. 11 Rudras.
-
-These are 31 gods. Then there are Prajpati and Indra, making the number
-33. The Brihat ranyaka says that the 33 Krores of Devas are only sub
-rays of these primary 33].
-
-
-
-THE PROGENY OF BHUTA.
-
-
-_By Sarp_: -- Millions of Rudras and the chief Pretas.
-
-
-
-THE PROGENY OF ANGIRASA.
-
-
- (1) _By Svadh_: -- Pitris (comet).
- (2) _By Sti_: -- The Veda known as Atharva-Angirasa.
-
-
-
-THE PROGENY OF KRISASVA.
-
-
- (1) _By Archis_: -- Dhma ketu (comet).
- (2) _By Dhishan_: -- Vedasiras, Devala, Vayuna and Manu.
-
-
-
-THE PROGENY OF TARKSHA.
-
-
-(1) _By Vinat_: -- Garuda (the vehicle of Vishnu) and Aruna (the
-charioteer of the Sun.)
-
- (2) _By Patangi_: -- Birds.
- (3) _By Ymin_. -- Moths and locusts.
- (4) _By Kadru_: -- the serpents.
-
-_The Moon_: The Moon married the 27 stars. But he is consumptive (_i.e._
-he is consumed?). Therefore he has no progeny. (What is meant by the
-consumption of a planetary body like the Moon?)
-
-
-
-THE PROGENY OF KASYAPA
-
-
- (1) _By Timi_: -- Aquatic animals.
- (2) _By Saram_: -- Wild beasts, such as Tigers.
- (3) _By Surabhi_. -- Cloven-footed animals.
- (4) _By Tmr_: -- The Vultures.
- (5) _By Muni_: -- The Apsarasas.
- (6) _By Krodhavasa_: -- Serpents such as Danda Suka and others.
- (7) _By Il_: -- Plants.
- (8) _By Suram_: -- The Rkshasas.
- (9) _By Aristh_: -- The Gandharvas.
- (10) _By Ksth_: -- Beasts other than cloven-hoofed.
- (11) _By Danu_: -- 61 Dnavas the chief of them being Dv Mrdh,
- Smbara, Aristh, Hayagrva, Vibhvasu, Ayomukha, Sanku Siras,
- Svarbhnu, Kapila, Putoma, Vrisha Prav, Eka-Chakra, Anutapana,
- Dhmra-Kesa, Virupaksha, Vipra-chitti and Durjaya.
-
-Namuchi married Suprabh, the daughter of Svar-bhanu.
-
-King Yayti married Sarmisth, the daughter of Vrisha-parvan.
-
-Vaisvanara was another son of Danu. He had four daughters. Upadanavi,
-Haya-siras, Puloma and Kalaka. Puloma and Kalaka had 60,000 valiant sons
-named Poulama and Kalakeya. Arjuna alone killed all of them in Svarga.
-Bipra Chitti had by his wife Sinhika 101 sons. The eldest of them is
-Rhu. The other hundred are Ketus. They all became planets.
-
- (12) _By Aditi_: -- The 12 dityas -- Vivasvat, Aryaman, Pshan,
- Tvastri, Savitri, Bhaga, Dhtri, Vidhtri, Varuna, Mitra, Indra,
- and Vishnu. _Vivasvat_ had by his wife Sanjn two sons
- Srddhadeva Manu and Yma (the death god), and one daughter the
- river Yamun. This Sanjn became also a mare and produced the
- twin Asvini Kumras. He had also by Chaya two sons Sanaischara
- (Saturn) and Svarni Manu and one daughter Tapat. Tapat had for
- her husband Sanvarana. Mtrik is the wife of _Aryaman_. He had
- by her sons called Charshani. (For Charshani _vide Supr_.) The
- human race has been moulded after them by Brahm. Pshan is
- childless, and broken toothed. He partakes only of powdered food.
- This has been related in the story of Daksha. Rachan is the wife
- of _Tvastri_. She is the daughter of a Daitya. Prajpati Tvastri
- had by her one son Visvarpa. Though connected on the mother's
- side with the Asuras, Visvarpa was made a Purohita by the Devas,
- when Brihaspati (Jupiter) their former preceptor left them.
-
-*SKANDHA VI. CHAP. 18.*
-
-_Savitri_ had, by his wife Prisni, three daughters, Svitri (Gyatri),
-Vyhriti (Bhr, Bhuvar, Svar, Mahar &c.) and the Trayi; (Rik, Yajur, and
-Sman). His sons were Agnihotra, Pasu Yga, Soma Yga, Chaturmsya Yga
-and the 5 Mah Yajnas.
-
-_Bhaga_ had, by his wife Siddhi, three sons Mahimart, Vibhu and Prabhu
-and one daughter sis.
-
-_Dhtri_ had, by his wife Kuhu, one son Syam (evening), by his wife
-Siniva, Darsa (the new moon day), by his wife Rk, Prtar (morn) and
-by his wife Anumati, Prnamsa (full Moonday).
-
-_Vidhtri_ had, by his wife Kriy, five Agnis called Purishya. Charshani
-is the wife of _Varuna_. Bhrigu incarnated as his son. It is said that
-the great Rishi Vlmika is also Varuna's son. Mitra and Varuna once felt
-love for Urvas. Agastya and Vasishtha were then born of that Apsaras.
-
-_Mitra_ had, by Revati, Utsarga, Arishta and Pippala.
-
-_Indra_ had, by Paulom, Jayanta, Rishabha and Midhusha.
-
-_Vishnu_, as son of Aditi, is known as the Vmana incarnation. He had by
-his wife Kirti one son Brihat Sloka (great fame). His sons were Sambhoga
-and others.
-
- (13) _By Diti_: Hiranyakasipu, Hiranyksha and the Maruts.
-
-
-
-THE STORY OF VIVSVARPA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA VI. CHAP. 7-8.*
-
-Indra surrounded by the Devas, was seated on the throne of _Trilok_. He
-felt the pride of his position. Brihaspati, the preceptor and guide of
-all Devas came, but Indra did not rise up to receive him. Thus insulted,
-Brihaspati left the place at once and abandoned the Devas. The Asuras
-took this opportunity to put down the Devas and carried on a severe
-struggle under the lead of Sukra. The Devas were worsted in the fight
-and they went to Brahm for redress. Brahm advised them to accept the
-guidance of Visvarpa, son of Tvastri. They gladly went to Visvarpa and
-he consented to be their preceptor. Visvarpa initiated Indra into the
-mysteries of Nryana Kabacha (an invocation to Vishnu which preserves
-one against all danger. The invocation must be read in the original, so
-no attempt has been made to render it into English). With the help of
-that Kabacha, Indra easily conquered the Asuras and firmly established
-once more the Kingdom of Trilok.
-
-Visvarpa had three mouths. With one he used to drink Soma, with another
-he used to drink wine and with the third he used to take his food. While
-performing Yajna, he openly gave oblations to the Devas, but secretly
-reserved some for his mother's relations the Asuras. Indra once found
-out this treachery. He became angry and cut off the three heads of
-Visvarpa. The Soma drinking head became Chtaka (the Swallow, supposed
-to live only on rain drops). The liquor imbibing head became Chataka
-(the Sparrow). The food eating head became Tittiri (the francoline
-partridge). The sin of killing a Brhmana attached to Indra. He divided
-it into equal parts and distributed them between earth, water, trees and
-woman. Earth accepted her part on receiving the boon that her cavities
-would be filled up by nature. But the sin manifests itself in the barren
-lands. The trees took their part in return for the boon that the wounds
-on their cuticle should naturally heal up of themselves. But the sin
-shows itself in the exudation. Water was persuaded by the boon that it
-could mix with any other substance. But the sin shows itself in bubbles
-and foam.
-
-
-
-THE STORY OF VRITRU.
-
-
-*SKANDHA VI. CHAP. 9-13.*
-
-Tvastri became enraged at the death of his son. He gave offerings to
-Agni for the destruction of Indra. A huge and fearful Asura rose out of
-the sacrificial fire. The Devas threw their weapons at him, but he
-swallowed them all. Wonderstruck they prayed to Vishnu for help. Vishnu
-asked them to go to Dadhchi and pray for his body and assured them that
-the weapon made of his bones by Visvakarm would cut off the head of
-Vritra. The Devas went to Dadhchi and got his body. Visvakarm made the
-thunderbolt instrument (Vajra) out of his bones. Indra went with this
-instrument at the head of the Devas to fight with Vritra. _The fight
-took place at the commencement of Treta Yuga in the first Yuga cycle of
-Vaivasvata Manvantara,_ on the banks of the Narmad. After a severe
-fight, the chances shewed themselves favourable to the Devas. The Daitya
-and Dnava chiefs began to shew their backs to the enemies. "What is
-this my companions?" exclaimed Vritra, "Is not death inevitable? And
-what death is more enviable than that with honor and glory? There are
-two modes of death, rare though they be, that are given the palm in all
-religious books -- one is by control of the Prnas by means of Yoga and
-the other is by facing enemies foremost of all, in the battle field."
-
-But the Asuras heeded him not. The Devas ran after them. "O ye cowards?"
-exclaimed Vritra, "What glory do you gain by running after those that
-fly away. Come and approach those that are in the field." So saying he
-attacked Indra. Indra in anger threw a large club at him. Vritra easily
-took it up with his left hand. He struck it with force on the head of
-Airvata, the elephant of Indra. The elephant receded 28 cubits and
-vomitted blood, The magnanimous Vritra seeing the distress of the animal
-did not strike it again. Indra softly touched the injured animal, trying
-to give it relief and he took respite for some time. Vritra remembered
-the wicked deeds of Indra and addressed him thus "O thou assassinator of
-a Brhmana! Thou didst kill thy own Guru, my brother Visvarpa. Thou
-didst raise faith and trust in my brother's mind and still thou didst
-kill that innocent, wise Brhmana, your own Guru, having been initiated
-by him in Yajna. Your karma makes you worse than even Rkshasas. It is
-meet that I shall kill thee with this Trident and make over thy body as
-food for vultures. And if thou, O Indra, cuttest off my head, I shall be
-free from the bond of Karma, by offering my body as Bali (sacrificial
-food) to the animals. Here I stand before thee. Why dost thou not strike
-with the Vajra. Thou hast been favoured by Vishnu and by Dadhchi.
-Victory and all the virtues always follow Vishnu. I will do as advised
-by my deity Sankarshana and attain after death the state of Yogins by
-sacrificing this body. O Bhagavat, may I ever and ever remain in the
-Service of thy votaries. This I deem a thousand times more desirable
-than the attainment of the Supreme Abode, or of Siddhis or of Mukti."
-
-Vritra then took the trident in hand and attacked Indra -- Indra then
-had recourse to Vajra and he easily cut off both the trident and one
-hand of Vritra. Vritra took a club in the other hand and struck both
-Indra and the elephant. The Vajra slipped out of the hands of Indra and
-he felt ashamed to pick it up in the presence of his enemy. "Pick it up,
-O King of Devas, and kill your enemy. This is no time for shame or
-sorrow. It is not you or I that are the real actors. Bhagavn is guiding
-us all. He guides the whole Universe. Look at me. I have been worsted,
-hand and weapon gone, still I am trying my best to kill you. This our
-fight is but like the game of dice in which the life of one of us is the
-stake."
-
-Indra could not help wondering at the wisdom and magnanimity of Vritra.
-He exclaimed "O king of Dnavas! thou hast got over the My of Vishnu.
-The Asura nature has altogether- left thee and thou art fixed in
-devotion to Vishnu. Verily thou art a Mahatma now."
-
-They again engaged in fight. This time Indra cut off both the club and
-the other hand with the help of Vajra -- Vritra then opened his mouth
-and swallowed Indra. There was loud wailing and lamentation all round.
-But Indra broke through the interior of Vritra with the help of Vajra,
-and he then forcibly applied the bolt to cut off the head of Vritra. The
-bolt though actively employed could only sever the head of the Asura
-King in 360 days. The flame of self from Vritra's body merged in
-Shankarshana in the presence of the Devas.
-
-The sin of killing a Brhmana a second time followed Indra in the form
-of a hideous old outcaste woman. He fled away into the Mnasa lake and
-entered the filament of a lotus stalk. He remained there concealed for
-one thousand years. King Nahusha reigned in Svarga during that time. But
-as he became maddened in pride, Sachi the wife of Indra made him a
-serpent. The Brhmanas then called back Indra to Svarga, and he reigned
-there again.
-
-
-
-THE STORY OF CHITRAKETU.
-
-
-*SKANDHA VI. CHAP. 14-17.*
-
-Chitraketu, the King of Srasena had ten millions of wives, but he had
-no son. Rishi Angiras once came to him. The King expressed regret for
-his childlessness. Angiras performed a Yajna in honor of Tvastri, and
-gave the sacrificial remnants to the eldest wife. "You shall have a son,
-O King!" said Angiras. "But he will give you joy and sorrow both." In
-time the eldest Queen bore a son. Her co-wives grew jealous and poisoned
-the child. Chitraketu was deeply moved, and he wept profusely. At the
-time Nrada and Angiras came to him. They taught him the worship of
-Shankarshana. Chitraketu became fixed in the meditation of this second
-manifestation of Chaturvyuha, and this made him very powerful. He became
-the King of the Vidydharas.
-
-Once Chitraketu was roaming over the firmament on the chariot given him
-by Vishnu, when he saw Siva surrounded by his attendants openly
-embracing His consort Bhvan. Chitraketu made some taunting remarks in
-the hearing of all. Siva simply smiled, and so did His attendants. But
-Bhvan cursed Chitraketu with an Asura birth. Chitaketu accepted the
-curse with an unruffled mind, saying it was the way of all beings to
-meet with things pleasant and unpleasant in this perishable world, and
-he only asked Bhvan to pardon him, if he had offended her. "Look how
-bold the followers of Vishnu are!" exclaimed Siva, "They fear no body in
-this world. I am also a follower of Vishnu. So I took no offence at the
-words of the King Vidyadhara."
-
-Chitraketu became Vritra by this curse, but his magnanimity and devotion
-to Vishnu were not lost.
-
-
-
-THE DAITYAS.
-
-
-*SKANDHA VI. CHAP. 18.*
-
- KASYAPA = Diti.
- |
- ---+-----------------+----------------+--
- | | |
- Hiranyakasipu Hiranyksha 49 Maruts.
- = Kaydhu = Bhnu
- |
- ---+-------------+---------+-------------+---------+---
- | | | | |
- Sanhrda Anuhrda Hrda Prahlda Sinhik
- = Mati = Sury. = Dhamanti = Drarv. = Viprachit
- | | | | |
- Panchajana +----+---+ +-+----+ | Rhu.
- | | | | |
- Vshkala. Mahisha. Vtpi Ilval |
- |
- Virochana.
- Bali
- = Asan
- |
- --+----+------+--
- | |
- Bna 99 sons.
-
-
-
-THE MARUTS.
-
-
-*SKANDHA VI. CHAP. 18-19.*
-
-Diti was very much grieved by the loss of her sons, caused by Indra. She
-ardently wished to have a son who could kill Indra. With this object,
-she served Kasyapa with all her heart and pleased him much. Kasyapa
-offered to give her any boon, and she prayed for an immortal son that
-would kill Indra. Sorely perplexed in mind, the Rishi thought within
-himself of a device. He said "I grant you the boon, but you shall have
-to observe Punsavana Vrata for one full year." This is a Vaisnava Vrata,
-the performance of which requires absolute purity of body and mind.
-Kasyapa related the details to his wife, (for which refer to the
-original). His object was to give an immortal son to Diti and to purify
-her mind by this Vrata, so that she might cast, off all enmity against
-Indra. He also thought it possible that his wife might not observe the
-strict rules for such a long time. Diti however accepted the conditions,
-and she bore a son. Indra became very much frightened, and he closely
-watched his step mother to discover a breach of the rules. He followed
-and served Diti always and tried to please her. One day Diti became very
-much tired, and she fell asleep after eating before she could wash her
-hands, mouth and feet. Finding this opportunity, Indra, by his Yogic
-powers entered the womb and split the child into 7 parts. The Maruts
-wept and requested their half-brother not to kill them. Indra consoled
-them saying that they need have no fear from him, and he would make them
-his companions. He then split each of the seven into as many parts
-again. By the favour of Vishnu, the Maruts were not destroyed, but came
-out all alive from the womb of Diti. It was a little short of one year
-still. Indra made them drinkers of Soma and his chief companions. Diti
-woke up, and she was astonished to find 49 sons by her. "Tell me Indra
-if thou knowest" said she, "how is it I have these 49 sons instead of
-one. Pray do not conceal any thing." Indra gave the whole story to Diti
-and expressed great repentance. He assured Diti that the Maruts would be
-his best companions. Diti's mind had been purified, and she allowed her
-sons to become Devas. Thus the Maruts, though born as Daityas, became
-immortal Devas. (Marut Vayu air. Vayu corresponds to the sense of touch
-and to vital energy).
-
-
-
-
-SKANDHA VII.
-
-
-
-THE MYSTERIES ABOUT THE SURAS AND THE ASURAS.
-
-
-*SKANDHA VII. CHAP. 7-1.*
-
-Rj Parikshit said: -- "To Bhagavn, all beings are equal, and He is
-the dear friend of all. Why did he kill the Daityas for the sake of
-Indra, as if He was not above partiality. Supreme Bliss Himself, He had
-nothing to gain from the Devas. Being above the control of the Gunas, He
-had no fear from the Asuras, and he did not bear any unfriendly feeling
-for them. We are in doubt as to the virtues of Nryana. Please clear up
-the doubt."
-
-Suka replied: -- Void of Gunas, without beginning, without
-manifestation, beyond Prakriti, Bhagavn pervades and permeates the
-Gunas of His My. Hence His seeming relations. Satva, Rajas and Tamas
-are not His Gunas, but they are the Gunas of Prakriti. These attributes
-or tendencies of Prakriti do not all prevail at one and the same period;
-but they have got their periods of increase and decrease. (That is,
-since the beginning of the universe, the general tendency which guides
-all beings is different at different times. Thus at the very outset
-there was inertia, Tamas. This inertia was got over by Rajas, which
-predominated in the Prajpatis, and the life-forms appeared on the
-globes. There was Tamas again in the mineral kingdom, which had to be
-conquered by Rjasic activity. And Rajas was in full swing till humanity
-reached a certain stage. Then Satva manifested itself for the evolution
-of men. The spiritual regeneration will be brought about by the ever
-increasing prevalence of Satva).
-
-When Satva prevails, Bhagavn favours the Devas and Rishis. When Rajas
-prevails, He favours the Asuras. When Tamas prevails, He favors the
-Yakshas and Rkshasas. He follows in fact the periodic tendency.
-
-It is Kla (Periodicity) that now brings up Satva. So the Lord seems to
-favour the hosts of Devas, in whom Satva prevails. He also seems to put
-down the hosts of Asuras, who are opposed to the Devas being full of
-Rajas and Tamas.
-
-It is also to favour the Asuras that He kills them. For we have seen
-above, how the gate-keepers of Vishnu became Hiranyksha and
-Hiranyakasipu by the curse of the Kumra brothers. They had to become
-Asuras for three successive births. In the second birth, they became
-Rvana and Kumbhakarna, when they were killed by Rma. In their last
-birth, they became Shishupla and Danta-vakra, when they were killed by
-Sri Krishna. Then they became finally liberated and restored to their
-place in Vaikuntha.
-
-(The Spiritual ascent commenced finally on the appearance of Sri
-Krishna. It was to prevail for the remaining life period of the
-universe. The Asuras had done their work by this time, and therefore
-they finally returned to Vaikuntha).
-
-
-
-THOUGHTS ON THE ABOVE.
-
-
-The Daityas and the Dnavas are both called Asuras. But there is a
-radical difference between the two classes.
-
-The Daityas are opposed to the -dityas. The root verb _d_ means to cut
-to pieces, to separate. _Diti_ is that which separates. _Aditi_ is that
-which does not separate. Jivtm is the same in all beings. One life
-principle animates all the forms of creation. The idea of separateness
-did not exist from before. The elementals that began life in this Kalpa
-from the spiritual plane, have hardly any idea of separate existence.
-The Devas and Pitris are described as classes (_ganas_), and not as
-individuals. In the Mineral Kingdom, again, there is no individual
-existence. Individuality has to be worked out, and the sons of Diti
-bring about this great work in the evolution of life forms.
-
-When we have the sense of separate existence strong in us, we become
-capable of further evolution. By our individual experiences, we know
-what is right and what is wrong, what is pleasurable and what is
-painful. Things that give joy give pain as well. It is the measure of
-pleasure or pain that teaches us what to covet and what to shun. Then we
-have the fact that by our very existence we have duties to perform. The
-teachings of other ages that are revealed to the Rishis and proclaimed
-by them, give us a better idea of things, and they tell us more than we
-can know of by our own experience. The Asuras lead us on and on, till we
-reach the highest point that, with a sense of individuality, we may
-attain.
-
-When the individual soul gathers all experience that may be acquired by
-the idea of separateness, it traces back its way to that spiritual home
-whence it came. In the return journey, it is helped by the dityas, who
-gradually efface the idea of separateness, by an ever increasing
-infusion of Satva: Vishnu himself became ditya and taught men the unity
-of all souls.
-
-The dityas who guided the early elementals had to be crushed, so that
-separateness might grow. Pushan and Bhaga were therefore overpowered by
-the attendants of Siva at the sacrifice of Daksha.
-
-The dityas who guide humanity in their return to spirituality are
-themselves high spiritual energies, the highest Devas of our Trilok.
-
-Our evolution is thus two-fold -- individual and non-individual. When we
-work as individuals, we are under the influence of Daityas. When we want
-to cast off separateness, we are under the influence of the dityas.
-
-In both cases, however, it is the bliss element in us that is worked on
-by the Daityas and A-dityas. This bliss element is our eternal heritage
-from Ishvara, and it is this element that saves us in our contact with
-manifold matter. The measure of bliss, (_ananda_), enables us to judge
-what matter to accept and what not.
-
-Individuality developed under Hiranyakasipu, and all sorts of blissful
-experiences were acquired. The sons of Hiranyakasipu were all called
-Bliss (Hrda), but the perfection of Bliss (Pra-Hrda) was in Prahlda,
-He found out that the worldly joys were unreal, and that the real joy
-could be had only from Him above, who was joy itself.
-
-But Prahlda did not realise that there was one life underlying all
-beings, and that all beings were essentially one and the same. He was
-separate in his devotion, though unselfish to the extreme. He knew that
-men had separate existences, and while he attained perfection, others
-did not. It was therefore his duty to raise others to his level. With
-all unselfishness and devotion, Prahlda was an Asura, because he worked
-from the stand point of individual life. The foster-father of Sri
-Krishna was Nanda, the word meaning also bliss. But the bliss of Gopas
-and Gopis consisted in forgetting self altogether. The bliss that was
-then evolved will draw humanity to the highest level of spirituality in
-our Kalpa.
-
-The reign of the Daityas may be divided into three periods: --
-
- I. -- The period of Hiranyksha and Hiranyakasipu.
- II. -- The period of Rvana and Kumbhakarna.
- III. -- The period of Shishupla and Dantavakra.
-
-
-I. _Hiranyksha and Hiranyakasipu._
-
-
-Jaya and Vijaya are the outer aspects of Vishnu. Vishnu preserves the
-universe, and He preserves all beings. Existence, consciousness and
-bliss all proceed from Vishnu, and it is these essential attributes that
-bring about the involution and evolution of all beings. In minerals,
-there is existence, but it is Tmasic. Consciousness and bliss are
-completely eclipsed by the Tmasic opacity of gross matter.
-
-In the vegetables, there is existence and something more -- the bare
-dawning of perceptive consciousness. There is predominating Tamas in the
-vegetables also. But Rajas also tries to manifest itself.
-
-In the animals, Rajas asserts itself by increasing activity, and by the
-action of the senses. The animals exist, they are conscious and they
-have blissful experiences.
-
-In men, Rajas plays the most important part. Through the ever increasing
-activities of mind and the development of consciousness, man runs after
-all sorts of experience, pleasurable and painful, till at last the idea
-of lasting and real bliss settles down in him, and he knows more of
-bliss than any other being in the universe. The future evolution of man
-lies in the permanence of spiritual bliss, which is purely Stvic in its
-character.
-
-Vishnu preserves all beings in their Tmasic, Rjasic and Stvic stages.
-For preservation means the maintenance as well as the improvement of
-beings. Therefore preservation is Stvic, and Vishnu is the Preserver.
-We live and move onwards in all stages of our being. But in Rjasic and
-Tmasic stages, it is the attendants of Vishnu, the door-keepers, that
-preserve us, and the Daityas are the lower manifestations of Jaya and
-Vijaya. One is Tmasic and the other Rjasic.
-
-Hiranyksha is Tmasic. He represents the original inertia of matter,
-its primary resistance to the onward process of evolution. There was
-existence after Pralyic sleep But it was homogeneous existence, with
-little or no phenomenal change. Varha got over this homogeneal tenacity
-by the killing of Hiranyksha, and he set going the process of planetary
-and individual life.
-
-Hiranyakasipu came next. He was the favoured son of Brahm. He helped
-the evolution of individual life. Minerals became vegetables. Vegetables
-became animals, and animals became men. The intellectual power of men
-rapidly increased, and there was material and moral progress. The limit
-of moral progress was reached by Prahlda. But the ideal of Prahlda was
-based upon the conception of differences and of individualities. It is
-for this reason that Varna and Ashrama Dharma, or the separate duties of
-life for separate classes of men, is dealt with in the discourses with
-Prahlda.
-
-But though Prahlda was a son of Hiranyakasipu, he was an exception to
-the general run of material evolution which was fostered by
-Hiranyakasipu. Hiranyakasipu hated the development of Stvic virtues, he
-hated Hari, the embodiment of Satva. Nrisinha killed the great Daitya,
-and Satva made its appearance in men.
-
-Hiranya means gold.
-
-Hiranyksha is gold-eyed.
-
-Hiranyakasipu is gold bedded.
-
-
-II. _Rvana and Kumbhakarna._
-
-
-Hiranyakasipu represented the gradual development of material and
-intellectual evolution, till the highest point was reached.
-
-Then there was a period of intellectual abuse. The Intellect of man
-tried to get a supremacy over the established order of things: Rvana
-sought to make Nature subservient to his own purposes. The universe
-existed for man, and not man for nature. This was the perverse idea that
-guided the people of the Atlantean Continent. The intellectual giants,
-maddened by this material grandeur, did not look for any world beyond
-the one they lived in. They cared not for Svarga, nor for the sacrifices
-that led to Svarga. The flow of evolution, the breath of shvara seemed
-to stand still for a time as it were. The human will tried to override
-the divine will. There was chaos and disorder, which tended to cause
-dissolution in the universe. Hence Rvana was a Rkshasa. The Tmasic
-Kumbhakarna with his six-monthly sleep was the back ground of Rvana.
-
-The spiritual forces that were called forth to put an end to this state
-of things were equal to the occasion. The great Atlantean Continent was
-washed away by the sea. The sacred Gang came rushing forward from the
-heights of the Himalayas, and eventually Rma appeared to give a
-finishing stroke to the evolutionary work of the time.
-
-Vishvmitra and others had paved the way for the great work undertaken
-by Rma. They propounded the Karma Knda of the Vedas.
-
-Men who knew nothing but the joys and sorrows of this short span of
-earthly life, and whose ideas and aspirations were all confined to that
-life, made a great advance when they were taught of an existence after
-death. When they further knew that life in Svarga was infinitely happier
-and far more lasting than what they called life on this earth, they made
-the beginning of a really spiritual life. The Vedic Devas are permanent
-dwellers in Svarga, and the Vedic Sacrifices establish communion with
-them by means of Apurva, a spiritual force generated by the performance
-of sacrifices, and life in Svarga becomes prolonged for a very very long
-period. People took time to understand this truth, but in time they
-accepted the performance of Vedic Sacrifices as the only religion for
-man.
-
-There was however a re-action. The intellectual giants, called
-Rkshasas, looked down upon Vedic Sacrifices, and they did not care for
-any life after death. They were the worst enemies of the Vedic Rishis.
-
-Vishvmitra took the help of Rma in protecting the Rishis in the
-peaceful performance of Yajnas.
-
-But people had grown old in their ideas about Vedic sacrifices. The
-first seceders were some Kshatriyas. They did not understand why Vedic
-Sacrifices should be the monopoly of Brhmanas, and they aspired to the
-position acquired by them. The foremost of these Kshatriyas were the
-Haihayas and Tlajanghas. But they were defeated by Parashurama, who
-re-established the supremacy of the Brhmanas.
-
-But a silent revolution was going on, in which the Kshatriyas and
-Brhmanas equally took part. King Janaka and Rishi Yajnavalkya gave the
-finishing stroke to the Upanishad movement, and side by side with Karma
-Knda grew up the Jnna Knda of the Vedas. Rma brought the two
-divisions of the Vedas into closer union, as he was himself the resting
-place of both. And as Vishnu himself, He became the object of Upsan.
-The three Paths appeared, that of Karma, Bhakti and Jnna. Vedic
-Sacrifices held their own, and a school grew up which accepted these as
-the highest Karma which man could perform. Another school, following the
-very old teachings of Kapila, dissected the transformable parts in man
-and discriminated the same from the non-transformable. A sister school
-followed up the teaching with practices in conformity to these, and
-taught how to concentrate the mind on the discriminated Atm. Another
-school confined itself to the properties of matter and mind, soul and
-oversoul, and remained wonder-struck at the superior properties that
-divided Jiva from shvara. Schools of independent thought grew up. Each
-school had its followers. There were differences and dissensions. There
-was disunion, self-sufficiency, pride, envy, jealousy and other evil
-traits of human character that thinks too much of itself. Every one
-followed his own faith and hated the follower of other faiths. This was
-the cycle of Shishupla and Dantavakta.
-
-Jarsandha performed Vedic sacrifices, and he put in chains the
-Vaishnava kings. There were those who believed in the existence of two
-primary causes, (_Dvivid_). Men, like the king of Kashi, prided
-themselves on mock wisdom. Religious faiths existed in all possible
-shades, and their difference was accentuated by dogmatism and mutual
-jealousy. "The Vedas are different, the Smritis are different. He is not
-a Muni, who has not some distinctive opinion of his own." This well
-known verse related strictly to the period of which we are now speaking.
-Shishupla had respect for the Munis. He was essentially a man of the
-period.
-
-Sri Krishna taught harmony. He gave the essence of all religions, the
-eternal truths that formed the ground work of all faiths. He proclaimed
-in the clearest language possible the One underlying the Many, the
-eternal Brahmn as forming the essence of Jiva and Ishvara. He
-particularly emphasised the relations of man, shvara and the universe,
-and the duties that followed from these relations. Religion became a
-science, the law universal, and all teachings found there respective
-places in the universal religion which He proclaimed. The Rishis bowed
-down their heads before Him. The Upanishads were never explained so
-lucidly before. The key-note of all truths and all religions was
-unravelled beyond all doubt. Such knowledge could proceed only from
-Ishvara Himself. The Rishis recognised Sri Krishna as the Lord. But
-Shishupla was slow to believe in this novel revolution. He did not
-understand why the Rishis gave the first place to Sri Krishna at the
-Rajasya sacrifice performed by Rj Yudhisthira. The difference formed
-a religion with Shishupla. But the age of differences was doomed. The
-age of unity, of harmony, of spiritual glory was now to reign in the
-Universe. Hundreds and hundreds of years have passed away, but the
-scriptures one and all proclaim the glory of the Lord Sri Krishna. What
-He has done for our universe, we shall see later on.
-
-Danta-vakra was the Tmasic counterpart of Shishupla.
-
-The Asuras advanced as the Klpic age advanced. There was no end of
-advancement from the standpoint of self. There is no big jump from
-individual self to universal self. Though the essential idea of
-spirituality is unity and the essential idea of materiality is
-diversity, the one idea develops into the other idea, by an ever
-widening view of things. Our duties enlarge. Our relations increase. The
-range of life widens, till it includes the life in Svarga. Vedic Yajna
-is then performed, though from a pure motive of self-advancement. The
-advanced self comes very near to the universal self. The performance of
-Vedic sacrifices is Asuric in so far as it is selfish, but it minimises
-the self of earthly existence, and gives a transitory character to our
-worldly joys and sufferings, and it gives the idea of an enlarged self,
-of widened existence and of higher duties. The Karma Knda of the Vedas
-therefore opens the door widely to real spiritual life.
-
-This explains why Vishvarupa, an Asura, guided the Devas for some time.
-The three heads of Vishvarupa represent the three Vedas. The swallow
-head is the Rik, the sparrow head is the Sman, and the Tittiri head is
-proverbially the Yajur. This refers to the prevalence of Karma Knda.
-But when better times came, Indra killed Vishva-rpa. The place of
-Vishva-rpa was however speedily taken, up by Vritra. And Indra had
-recourse to Atharva, the fourth Veda and to Dadhchi, a votary
-(represented as the son) of Atharva Veda, the very ideal of
-self-sacrifice.
-
-And who is this Vritra? The Vedas say: -- _"Sa imn lokn Avrinot etat
-Vritrasya Vritratvam."_
-
-He spread over (_vri_) all these Lokas, this is the Vritraship of
-Vritra.
-
-The Bhgavata says: -- "These Lokas are spread over by him in the form
-of Tvashtri's Tapas. Hence he is called Vritra." VI. -- 9-xviii.
-
-The invocation of Tvashtri is thus described in the Bhgavata: -- "Rise
-up, O Indra -- Shatru, never give up enmity." VI -- 9-xii.
-
-The word _shatru_ means enemy. Tvastri meant to say "he who is to become
-the enemy of Indra." But by proper grammatical construction, the
-expression means, he of whom Indra is to become the enemy. The
-invocation was therefore defective and it produced a contrary result.
-Pnini points this out as an apt illustration of what bad grammar leads
-to.
-
-The Vedas thus speak of the invocation: -- "As he said-_Svha_! O
-Indra-Shatru! rise up -- so Indra became the enemy of Vritra."
-Notwithstanding his wisdom, Chitra-ketu was anxious to have a son. He
-wept bitterly, when the son was lost. He was a votary of Sankarshana,
-who presides over Ahankra or Egoism. So by devotion he became the king
-of the Vidydharas. This selfish devotion, the worship of Gods for the
-gratification of selfish aspiration, which is so universal, is Vritra.
-
-Vritra was killed by a weapon made of the bones of Dadhchi the Rishi of
-self-sacrifice. We want to kill thee for thy bones, for they will be of
-service to the universe, so said the Devas. And Dadhchi felt the height
-of pleasure in giving himself completely up, that the universe might
-prosper.
-
-We are told that the fight with Vritra took place in the Vaivasvata
-Manvantara. The readers will easily understand why this is so.
-
-The fight between the Devas and the Asuras is only a counterpart of
-struggles on our earth between the forces of materiality and
-spirituality. With the appearance of Lord Krishna, the ascendancy of the
-Asuras is virtually over, and however self-seeking we may be by our
-nature, we bow down before the ideal of unselfishness, of One Life
-pervading all beings, so prominently held before us by that greatest of
-all Avatras, and the circle of those that follow this ideal is daily
-increasing.
-
-But why is Atharva Veda spoken of as the Veda of unselfishness? The
-popular idea about that Veda is quite the contrary.
-
-People resort to it for Tntric malpractices. The Vajra or thunderbolt
-is an electric current, which in the hands of Indra has the power of
-spiritualisation. The Asuras dread the subtle forces of nature which
-reach them even in the regions of Ptla. Who knows what purpose the
-electric discharges serve in the economy of nature? Who knows of the
-subtler currents of spiritual forces that silently bring about the
-grandest revolutions in nature? Atharva Veda inculcates an intimate
-acquaintance with the subtle forces of nature. It opens the door alike
-to White as well as Black Magic. But at the present day, the Black Magic
-only survives, making the Atharva a name of opprobrium and reproach.
-
-Marut is Vyu. The Maruts are forms of Pranic energy. They are 49 in
-number, corresponding to the 49 forms of Agni. These 49 forms include
-all sorts of Pranic energy in the spiritual, intellectual and material
-planes. As the whole process of evolution is dependent on life
-activities, and as life itself is essentially divine, the Maruts are the
-companions of Indra. As by life, we understand individual life as
-imprisoned in Jivic centres, the Maruts are by birth Daityas.
-
-We have lingered so long over the Daityas. The Dnavas are also called
-Asuras, but they are essentially different from the Daityas. Every
-individual has got two aspects -- Prkritic and Purushic. The Purusha
-aspect in him is limited by the individual Prakriti. The individual
-limitation appertains to the Daityas. The Prkritic element in man is
-Dnavic. The chief Dnava, My, is an aspect of My. My is a great
-magician, as the essence of Prakriti is illusion. Duryodhana and his
-brothers could not discriminate between the illusory aspect of the
-assembly-ground prepared by My. To the Pndavas, the followers of Sri
-Krishna, there was no illusion. The Dnavas lead men away from
-spirituality, so much so that they may be estranged completely from
-their spiritual nature. These dark forces in nature have no redeeming
-feature in them. Fortunately for the history of the universe, we do not
-hear much of them.
-
-
-
-THE STORY OF HIRANYAKASIPU.
-
-
-*SKANDHA VII. CHAP. 2-4.*
-
-Upon the death of Hiranyksha, Hiranyakasipu collected his companions
-and told them that Vishnu was no longer keeping that neutrality and
-impartiality which he had observed of yore. On the contrary, he had
-taken the side of the Devas, under the pretence of Upsan.
-
-He then consoled his nephew and his brother's wife by words of wisdom
-explaining to them the transitory character of the world and the
-permanence of tm. He also told them several stories to illustrate the
-point.
-
-Hiranyakasipu vowed enmity to Vishnu. He prayed hard for immortality and
-supremacy over the Trilok. Brahm became pleased with his asceticism
-and enquired what boon he wanted. Said Hiranyakasipu: -- "Let me have no
-death from any one created by Thee. Let not those that are not created
-by Thee kill me inside or outside, by day or by night, with any weapon,
-either on the earth or in the air. Let no man or animal, with or without
-life (asu) Deva, Daitya or serpent kill me. As thou art without a rival
-in battle, the one glorious lord of all beings and all Lokaplas, so let
-me be too. Let me possess all the Siddhis, (Anima &c.)" Brahm said,
-Amen.
-
-Hiranyakasipu then ruled the Universe. He took the place of Indra. All
-the Devas worshipped him.
-
-Brhmanas and other Grihasths performed Yajna in his honor and gave
-offerings to him. The earth yielded plenty even without much effort.
-There was prosperity all around. The Shastras were however not duly
-respected. (All this is a description of the material period, the reign
-of Materiality). A long, long time passed on in this way. At last the
-Lokaplas could bear it no longer. They prayed to Vishnu for relief. The
-Devas heard a voice from heaven "Wait ye all. The time has not yet come
-for the fall of Hiranyakasipu. He shall be the enemy of his own son. I
-kill him then." -- Assured by these words, the Devas went to their own
-place.
-
-
-
-HIRANYAKASIPU AND PRAHLDA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA VII. CHAP. 4-9.*
-
-Hiranyakasipu had 4 sons. Of these Prahlda was great in his virtues. He
-was respectful, well-behaved, truthful, self-controlled, friendly to all
-beings, and great in his devotion. Even in his infancy, he gave up play
-and constantly meditated on Vsudeva. The things of the world had no
-relish for him. In the exuberance of devotional feelings, he sometimes
-laughed, sometimes wept, sometimes sang and sometimes danced. At times
-when the feelings were profound, he remained quiet with hair standing on
-end while tears flowed down his cheeks.
-
-Shanda and Amarka, sons of Shukra, had charge of the education of
-Prahlda. He heard and learned whatever they had to say, but he inwardly
-did not like the teachings about mine and thine and about the transitory
-things of the world.
-
-Once Hiranyakasipu placed Prahlda on his lap and asked him -- "What do
-you consider to be righteous (_Sdhu_)?"
-
-Prahlda replied: -- "Human souls enshrined in bodies are always
-distracted on account of false perceptions. O great Asura, I therefore
-consider it righteous to leave the house, which like a dark well causes
-the downfall of tm, in order to go to the forest and take the shelter
-of Vishnu."
-
-Hiranyakasipu smiled and said: -- "It is thus that boys are spoiled by
-others. Take him back to the house of his teachers and let them see that
-Vaishnavas in disguise may not confound his Buddhi."
-
-The teachers brought him to their house and asked him in gentle and
-sweet words: -- "Child, do not conceal any thing from us. We are your
-teachers. Tell us whether this perversity is spontaneous in you or
-whether it is acquired from others." Said Prahlda: -- "I and others,
-this is mere false perception caused by the My of Bhagavn. So
-salutations to Him. When Bhagavn becomes kind, it is then only that the
-difference-making perception of men disappears. As the iron moves of
-itself in the presence of a magnet, so the distraction in my Budhi, if
-you like to call it so, rises of itself in the presence of Vishnu."
-
-"Get the cane," said one of the teachers, "This wicked boy will put us
-all to shame. He is a disgrace to his family. It is but meet to punish
-him. The Daityas are sandal trees and this boy is a thorn plant amongst
-them. Vishnu is the one for the extirpation of the sandal forest, and
-this boy is his handle."
-
-They threatened Prahlda in various ways and taught him Dharma, Artha
-and Kma, and the different devices to subdue one's enemies. At last
-they thought Prahlda had been well trained. So they took him to the
-king.
-
-The king embraced the child and said "Prahlda, my boy, you have been so
-long with your teachers. Tell me what you have learned, as the best of
-all."
-
-Prahlda replied: -- "Hearing of Vishnu, recital of His glory, constant
-remembrance of Him, attendance on Hari, His worship, adoration, service,
-and friendship, and offering oneself entirely to Him this is ninefold
-Bhakti. This Bhakti is to be offered to Vishnu and acted upon. This I
-deem to be the best teaching."
-
-Hiranyakasipu reproved the teachers in anger. They told him, it was
-neither from themselves nor from any one else that Prahlda had these
-teachings, but that they were spontaneous with him. The Asura king then
-addressing his son said: -- "If you have not learned these things from
-your teachings, whence could you have such a vicious inclination."
-
-Prahlda replied: -- "Inclination for Vishnu does not come to the
-Grihasth either from himself or from any other. One blind man cannot
-lead another. It is the company of Mahtms alone that can give such an
-inclination."
-
-Hiranyakasipu could bear it no longer. He threw down the child from his
-embrace, and asked the Asuras to kill him at once or expel him. They
-cried out "kill him, kill him," and struck the five year old child with
-their spears. But Prahlda was deeply concentrated in Bhagavn, so he
-felt not the spears at all. This put Hiranyakasipu in fear, and he
-devised means to kill the boy.
-
-He tried big elephants, venomous serpents, Tntric practices, throwing
-down the child from the hills, enclosing him in cavities, poisoning,
-starvation, cold, air, fire, water, but failed to kill his innocent son.
-He then thought his end was near at hand and became melancholy. Shanda
-and Amarka told him not to entertain fears, but to wait till Shukra
-came. The king asked them to take charge of the boy once more. They
-again commenced to teach him their sciences. One day the teachers left
-the house on business. The boys were all engaged in play, and they
-invited Prahlda into their midst. Prahlda took the opportunity to
-instruct the boys. He explained to them in eloquent terms the
-transitoriness of all joys and sorrows and the vanity of all worldly
-attachments. He taught them the imperishable character of tm, and
-dilated on its relation to the body and the universe. He then preached
-in glowing words friendliness to all beings and devotion to Bhagavn. He
-then told the boys that he had learned these things himself from Nrada.
-
-The boys expressed wonder, for they knew Prahlda to have been always
-under the tuition of Shanda and Amarka.
-
-Prahlda informed them that when Hiranyakasipu had gone to the Mandra
-mountain for prayer, the Devas attacked his kingdom, and Indra carried
-away his wife. Prahlda was then in her womb. Nrada kept
-Hiranyakasipu's wife in his own Ashrama till he had taught to her, more
-for the child in the womb than for the mother, the whole of tm Vidya.
-
-Prahlda again continued the discourse and impressed on his companions
-in the most eloquent words, full of wisdom, the utility and nature of
-devotion. (The original discourse will repay perusal).
-
-The teachers returned and found the contagion of Vaishnavism had also
-spread amongst other boys. They instantly reported the matter to
-Hiranyakasipu. The king became all wrath and angry. He sent for
-Prahlda. Prahlda approached him with all respect and humility. The
-king thundered forth thus: -- "What makes thee so often disobey me, thou
-vile enemy of thy own race? Dost thou not know that I will instantly put
-thee to death? All Trilok dreads me and trembles when I am enraged. But
-thou dost break my words without the least fear in thy mind."
-
-"Father," said Prahlda, "Bhagavn is my only strength. He is not only
-my strength, but also yours and that of the whole world. Look upon all
-as your own self, father."
-
-"Unfortunate that thou art", said Hiranyakasipu, "Tell me, who else is
-there besides myself whom thou callest Bhagavn or shvara. Where is
-he?" Said Prahlda, "He is everywhere."
-
-"Why not then in this pillar?"
-
-"Yes, I see him there."
-
-"Well, let me sever your head from your body and see how your Hari can
-preserve you."
-
-So saying, Hiranyakasipu took sword in hand and violently struck the
-pillar with his fist. A great noise was heard at the time, and the
-fearful Nrisinha came out of the pillar, half man, half lion.
-Hiranyakasipu with wonder saw He was neither man nor animal. Nrisinha
-placed the Asura king on his thighs and tore him with His nails to
-death. (For a description of Nrisinha and of the fight refer to the
-original).
-
-The Devas all collected and prayed to Him one after the other. But
-Nrisinha was still in a rage and they dared not approach Him. Brahm at
-last sent Prahlda to pacify Him.
-
-Prahlda approached Him slowly and prostrated himself at His feet;
-Nrisinha became full of tenderness and placed his hand on the head of
-Prahlda. That divine touch removed all evil from Prahlda and illumined
-his mind with Brahm Vidya. He then broke forth into a prayer, (perhaps
-the most sublime in the Bhgavata Purna).
-
-
-
-THE PRAYER OF PRAHLDA
-
-
-*SKANDHA VII. CHAP. 9.*
-
-"Brahm and other Devas, Rishis and wise men, full of Satva, have failed
-to adore Thee in suitable words. How can this Asura boy please Thee, O
-Hari: But I think, it is not wealth, good birth, beauty, asceticism,
-learning, power, intellect, or even Yoga that is so much suited for the
-worship of Parama Purusha as Bhakti. It is by Bhakti that the elephant
-king pleased Bhagavn. _Even a Chandla, (an outcaste) is much superior
-to a Brhmana, who has all the 12 virtues, but has no devotion to
-Vishuu._ For the Chandla who offers his Manas, his words, his Karma,
-his wealth and even his Prna to Vishnu, purifies not only himself, but
-his whole line, while, the proud Brhmana does not even purify himself."
-(Without devotion, the virtues only serve to increase pride. They do not
-purify the mind. _Sridhara_.)
-
-(The Almighty Vishnu does not want any offering from the ignorant for
-himself. He is possessed of all things. But the man who gives offerings
-to Him can alone keep them to himself, for verily the paintings on the
-real face are to be seen in the image. The self in man is only a
-reflection of tm or Manas. Therefore if a man does any thing that
-affects his Manas only, it does not concern his real self. If an
-offering is made to shvara, that reaches his real self).
-
-"Therefore though of low birth, I have no hesitation in reciting thy
-glory as much as I can, for such a recital is sure to purify a man.
-
-"Withdraw, O Lord! this terrible form, and be cooled. Look! the world
-trembles at Thee.
-
-"I am not afraid, however, even of this form, as I am afraid of the
-wheel of births. Give shelter at thy feet, that I may gain Moksha.
-
-"I have been scorched by the fire of misery in all births. The only
-remedy is devotion to Thy service. For Thy servant by Thy favor gets the
-company of Mahtms. By their company, he gets rid of all worldly
-attachments and sings the glory of Bhagavn. Then the miseries of life
-cannot overpower him.
-
-"The parents are not the protectors of the child; medicine is not the
-remedy for the diseased; the boat is not a shelter for the drowning; for
-they cannot save from a recurrence of evils. And even the little that
-others do is promoted by the Prompter of all.
-
-"When Purusha wishes, My disturbed by Kla creates the Skshma
-Sharira, headed by Manas. That Manas is drawn into a world of recurring
-births, characterised by the transformations of My": (5 Jnanendriyas,
-5 Karmendriyas, 5 Bhtas and Manas). "I am being squeezed in this wheel,
-like the sugar-cane in the mill.
-
-"Draw me unto Thee, O Lord! or I am lost in the whirl."
-
-(Some platitudes and a short account of the part taken by Vishnu in the
-creation follow).
-
-"Thou dost incarnate as man, animal, Rishi and Deva in order to guard
-all beings, to destroy the enemies of the world and preserve Dharma,
-according to the requirements of every Yuga. But in Kali Yuga, Thou
-concealest Thyself. Hence (from manifestating only in three Yugas), Thou
-art called Triyuga.
-
-"Lord of Vaikuntha, this mind does not take pleasure in discourses about
-Thee, as it is vitiated, prone towards the outside, unmanageable,
-passionate and affected by the three promptings -- joy, sorrow and fear.
-How can I with such a mind think of Thee?
-
-"I am drawn on all sides by the Indriyas, and I am as miserable as a man
-with many wives.
-
-"I am not the only sufferer. Look! all men remain fallen by their own
-karma in the Vaitarani (River at the gate of Yma) of recurring births.
-They are afraid of births and deaths and of danger from each other. They
-are mutually both friends and enemies. Take pity on these bewildered
-creatures, O Thou that art on the other side of the river, and preserve
-them this very day by taking them across the Vaitarani (_i.e._ the
-relativity's of Trilok existence).
-
-"O guide of the Universe! what is thy difficulty in saving all men? For
-Thou art the cause of the creation, preservation and destruction of the
-Universe. Thou hast much kindness for the ignorant. Thou art the friend
-of the afflicted. What then by saving us only who serve thy favorite men
-the Mahtms (for, those who serve the Mahtms are already saved).
-
-"O Thou Supreme, I am not the least anxious for myself about the
-Vaitarani (Trilok existence), however difficult to cross it may be, for
-my mind is plunged in the nectar ocean of singing thy glory. But I mourn
-for the ignorant, those that care only for the gratification of the
-senses and for the means of such gratification while they remain
-estranged from Thee.
-
-"Generally, O Deva! the Munis are desirous of their own Moksha, they
-hold their tongue, and roam in solitude without caring for the good of
-others. But I do not like to be liberated alone, leaving behind me the
-afflicted round me; I find no other shelter for these misguided people,
-besides Thee.
-
-"They are not happy, O Lord, in the enjoyment of the objects of the
-senses. For like itching, it is not a pleasure by itself but seems to be
-so, as long as Thou art not known.
-
-"It is said that holding the tongue (_mouna_) vowed observance (Vrata),
-sacred knowledge (Sruta), austerity (Tapas), reading (Adhyayana), the
-observance of rules pertaining to one's caste (Sva Dharma), exposition
-of Shastras (Vykhy), living in solitude (Rahas), recital of Mantra
-(Japa), and Samdhi also lead to Moksha. But generally it is seen that
-these are only means of livelihood for those that have no control over
-their senses. And for proud people they are sometimes the means of
-livelihood and sometimes not. But pride in itself is not a good thing.
-
-"Thou art not separate from the Universe. Both cause and effect are thy
-forms. It is not by avoiding the ways of Universe but by seeing Thee
-everywhere by means of Bhakti, that the right course is followed. It is
-by striking one stone against another that fire comes out, and not
-otherwise."
-
-[Let the words of the Asura boy resound from one end of India to the
-other. Let the sublime words of compassion and universal love be written
-in characters of gold, and let them be engraven in the hearts of all
-Indians]. Prahlda was made the king of the Asuras.
-
-
-
-VARNA AND ASHRAMA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA VII, CHAP. 11 TO 15.*
-
-Nrada related the story of Prahlda to King Yudhisthira at the Rajasya
-sacrifice. That story revealed the highest devotion that was possible
-for a Jiva to attain with the idea of separate existence. But separation
-also gives rise to the idea of difference. And as differences become
-established in society, duties and relations become manifold.
-Yudhisthira therefore appropriately asked Nrada about the Varnsrama
-duties.
-
-The general rules to be observed by all castes are first given, ethical,
-spiritual and devotional. The specific duties and indications of each
-caste are then given, much the same as given in Manu Sanhit, as also
-the duties of women. The following significant passage occurs at the
-end: --
-
-"The indications of each caste are given above (e.g. restraint of the
-senses, contentment, &c., for Brhmanas; courage, strength, &c., for
-Kshatriyas; reverence, energy, &c., for Vaishyas; and humanity, service
-&c., for Shudras). If however the indications of one caste are found in
-a man belonging to another caste, he is to be specified by the caste of
-his indications and not the caste of his birth." VII -- 35.
-
-The commentary of Sridhara is explicit on this passage. This shews the
-liberality of the Bhgavata Purna. According to this Purna, the
-divisions of caste at the present day, (for one must not forget that the
-Vaishnava movement belongs comparatively to a later period), are not to
-be determined by birth, but they are indicated by the virtues of each
-particular individual.
-
-The duties of each srama are next enumerated in detail. The enumeration
-follows the Smritis, with a word for Bhakti Yoga where necessary. Some
-very useful hints are given for a Grihasth, for which please refer to
-the original.
-
-The paths called Pitriyna and Devayna are next described. Hints on
-Yoga and the recital of Pranava are also given.
-
-
-
-
-SKANDHA VIII.
-
-
-
-YAJNA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA VIII. CHAP. 1.*
-
-An account has been given above of the progeny of Devahti and Prasuti.
-Yajna is the son of Akuti. In the First Manvantara, when Asuras and
-Rkshasas were going to devour Manu, Yajna killed the former, with the
-help of his sons, the Yma Devas. He ruled over Svarga as the Indra of
-that Manvantara.
-
-[This brings us to the end of the 1st Manvantara. The narration at
-several places took us to later Manvantaras, and the account of the
-Asuras especially took us to Vaivasvata Manvantara. The account of the
-first Manvantara is illustrative of the succeeding Manvantaras. Details
-have therefore been given at times which might not properly pertain to
-the 1st Manvantara, but which fit in with other Manvantaras at those
-stages of the narration. Necessarily the account of the succeeding
-Manvantaras is very meagre.]
-
-*END OF THE FIRST MANVANTARA.*
-
-
-
-THE SECOND MANVANTARA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA VIII. CHAP. 1.*
-
-Svrochisha is the 2nd Manu. (Svrochisha = Self refulgent). He is the
-son of Agni; Dyumat, Sushena, Rochishmat and others are the sons of this
-Manu. (Dyumat and Rochishmat also mean bright, refulgent). Rochana was
-the Indra (Rochana = bright illuminating). Tushita and others were the
-Devas. Urjastambha and others were the seven Rishis well versed in
-Brahm Vidy.
-
-There was one Rishi named Veda Siras. His wife was Tushit. He had by
-her _Vibhu_, the Avatra of this Manvantara. Vibhu took the vow of
-Brahmcharya and never married. 80,000 Rishis learned his Vrata.
-
-(The Second Manvantar is in Theosophical language the second ascending
-half of the 1st round. The spiritual character of this Manvantara is
-manifest from the use of words meaning "bright," "refulgent." The
-Avatra is Vibhu or All-pervading. The vow of Vibhu also denotes
-spirituality. Agni also, the father of the Manu, is almost a name for
-spirituality).
-
-
-
-THE THIRD MANVANTARA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA VIII. CHAP. 1.*
-
-The third Manu is Uttama, son of Priya Vrata. Pavana, Srinjaya,
-Yajnahotra and others were his sons. The sons of Vasistha, Pramada and
-others, were the seven Rishis.
-
-Satya, Veda Sruta, and Bhadra were the Devas. Satyajit was Indra.
-
-Dharma had by Sunrit one son named Satya-Sena. He was the Avatra of
-this Manvantara. He was born with others called Satya-Vrata. He killed
-wicked Yakshas and Rkshasas given to falsehood, and Bhtas who injured
-others.
-
-[The characteristic mark of this Manvantara which is the first half of
-the second Round is Truth. Satya or Truth enters into the names of one
-class of Devas, of the Indra and of the Avatra. The name of the
-Avatra's mother was also truth. The Yakshas and Rkshasas were given to
-falsehood].
-
-
-
-THE FOURTH MANVANTARA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA VIII. CHAP. 1-4.*
-
-The fourth Mann was Tmasa, brother of Uttama. He had ten sons, Prithu,
-Khyti, Nara, Ketu and others.
-
-Satyaka, Hari and Vira were the Devas. Trisikha was Indra.
-
-Jyotirdhman and others were the seven Rishis. The Vedas had been lost
-in time. The sons of Vidhriti, called Vaidhritis, however preserved them
-by their own energy. They are also the Devas of this manvantara.
-
-The Avatra Hari incarnated as the son of Harimedhas by Harini. He saved
-the Elephant king from the crocodile.
-
-
-
-THE STORY OF THE ELEPHANT KING.
-
-
-*SKANDHA VIII. CHAP. 2-4.*
-
-An elephant king resided on the summits of Trikta. He roamed about with
-his female herd, intoxicated with the juice that exuded from his
-temples. Finding a lake, he plunged himself into its waters and quenched
-his thirst. He then took water in his trunk and passed it on to the
-young herd and the females. A powerful crocodile attacked him in rage.
-They fought for one thousand years, each trying to draw the other unto
-him. The elephants on the bank raised a piteous cry, but they could not
-be of any use to their companion. The Elephant King got tired at last,
-but the crocodile being in his own element did not feel any fatigue. The
-elephant devoutly and ardently prayed to the supreme Purusha. In
-response to that prayer, Hari appeared with the Devas, seated on the
-back of Garuda. He drew out the crocodile, cut off its head with the
-chakra and thus saved the Elephant King.
-
-The Elephant was a Gandharva, named Hh. He was playing with his wives
-in a tank. Rishi Devala went there to bathe. The Gandharva drew the
-Rishi himself by his feet. The Rishi cursed him to become a crocodile.
-The elephant was king Indradyumna of Pandya. He was under a vow of
-silence while engaged in meditation. Rishi Agastya came with his
-disciples, but the king could not receive him with any word of welcome.
-"O thou of untrained intellect like an elephant, be an elephant
-thyself." Such was the curse of the Rishi to him.
-
-[The Elephant represents the characteristic Jiva of this Manvantara. The
-elephant becomes excited and mad when the juice exudes from his temples.
-In the story, madness represents the prevalence of Kma. The elephant
-was passionately attached to his wives. The Jiva had given himself too
-much to Kma, and he was carried away helplessly by the demon, he knew
-not where. His better sense could not prevail without some extraordinary
-help and that help was given by Hari, an incarnation of Vishnu. Possibly
-the story represents the development of animal instincts].
-
-
-
-THE FIFTH MANVANTARA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA VIII. CHAP. 5.*
-
-Raivata was the fifth Manu. He was the brother of Tmasa. His sons were
-Arjuna, Bali, Vindhya and others. Vibhu was Indra. Bhttaraya and others
-were the Devas.
-
-The seven Rishis were Hiranya-romay, Vedasiras, Urddhabhu and others.
-
-The presiding deity of Vaikuntha incarnated in partial manifestation as
-the son of Subhra and Vikuntha. He was the Avatra of this Manvantar.
-[This is the first half of the Third Round. The incarnation of the Lord
-of Vaikuntha may have some significance, but what is not clear from the
-text.]
-
-
-
-THE SIXTH MANVANTARA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA VIII. CHAPTER 5.*
-
-The Sixth Manu was Chkshusha, son of Chakshus. Pru, Prusha, Sudyumna
-and others were his sons. Mantra Druma was Indra. Apya and others were
-the Devas; Haryasma, Dviraka and others were the Rishis.
-
-The Avatra was Ajita, son of Vairaja by Deva-Sambhti. He assumed the
-form of Krma or the Tortoise, and helped in the churning of the Milk
-Ocean.
-
-
-
-THE CHURNING OF THE OCEAN.
-
-
-*SKANDHA VIII. CHAP. 5-12.*
-
-In the fight with the Asuras, the Devas lost their lives. They fell down
-and did not rise up again. By the curse of Durvsas, Indra and the three
-Lokas became shorn of Sr or Lakshm (wife of Vishnu in Vaikuntha:
-Preservative energy). Consequently there were no performances such as
-Yajna. (Durvasas once saw Indra on the elephant Airavata. He gave him
-the garland of his own neck. Indra proud of his own Sr or wealth,
-placed the garland on the head of the elephant. The elephant threw it
-down and tore it to pieces with his feet. Durvsas got angry and cursed
-Indra that he and his Trilok were to lose Sr). Indra did not know what
-to do and the Devas all went over to the seat of Brahm on the top of
-Meru. Brahm, saw the Lokaplas lifeless and lustreless, as it were, the
-Lokas beset with evils and the Asuras full of life and energy. He
-meditated on Parama Purasha with concentrated mind and then addressed
-the Devas thus.
-
-"Purusha has resort to Rajas, Satva and Tamas respectively for Creation,
-Preservation and Dissolution. This is just the time for Preservation.
-For the good of all beings, He shall now be possessed of Satva. So let
-us take the shelter of the guide of the universe. He shall now befriend
-the Devas and do what is best for us."
-
-The Devas with Brahm then went to Ajita. Brahm prayed to Him as the
-Preservative aspect of Virt Purusha. Vishnu appeared before the Devas
-and addressed them thus: --
-
-"The Asuras favored by Sukra are now victorious. Make peace with them so
-long as you are not strong yourselves. Lose no time in churning the Milk
-Ocean for Amrita in concert with the Asuras. By drinking Amrita even
-dead persons become immortal. Throw all creepers and herbs into that
-ocean. Make Mandra mountain the churning rod and make Vaski the rope.
-Then with my help, churn the ocean with all diligence. The Asuras shall
-have all the trouble to themselves, while you shall reap the fruits. If
-the Asuras ask for any concession, you had better approve of that. Do
-not be afraid of any poison that may arise. Have neither greed nor anger
-nor desire in respect of the things that will arise."
-
-So saying Vishnu disappeared. The Devas went to the Asura King Bali and
-Indra explained to him what Vishnu had said about the churning. The
-Asuras approved of the plan and made friends with the Devas. They then
-went together and uprooted the golden mountain Mandra and carried it
-towards the ocean. After going a long way, they felt fatigued and
-dropped the mountain. Several Devas and Asuras were crushed by its fall.
-Vishnu appeared on Garuda and revived them all. He then easily placed
-the mountain on the back of Garuda and went towards the ocean, followed
-by the Devas and Asuras.
-
-The Serpent King Vaski was assured of a share in Amrita and he
-consented to become the rope. The Mountain was then surrounded by
-Vaski. Vishnu followed by the Devas held the mouth of the serpent. But
-the Asuras said: -- "We have learned the Vedas, we know the Sstras, it
-is improper for us to hold the tail of a serpent. We will not do that.
-It is inauspicious." Vishnu smiled. He and the Devas gave up the mouth
-end and held the tail.
-
-The churning then commenced. The Mountain was however heavy and it sank
-down to the bottom of the ocean. The Devas and Asuras became mournful.
-Vishnu then assumed the form of a Tortoise, went into the water and
-raised the Mountain. He then remained like a Dvipa one lakhsa Yojanas in
-expanse with the mountain on his back. He infused his influence all
-round. Energised by Him, the Devas and Asuras vigorously carried on the
-churning. At last fire and smoke came out from the thousand mouths of
-Vaski. This overpowered the Asuras and the Devas -- but the Devas were
-refreshed by clouds, rains, and winds sent by Vishnu.
-
-After a good deal of churning, poison came out first. It spread out on
-all sides and the Prajpatis and their progeny in terror took the
-shelter of Siva. Siva felt compassion for them and with the approval of
-Durg, he drank up the whole of the poison. It made his throat blue.
-
-The Churning recommenced. Out came Surabhi (the fabulous cow of plenty).
-The Vedic Rishis took that Cow for the necessaries of Yajna. Then came
-the horse Uchchaih-Sravas. Bali desired to have it. But Indra as
-directed by Vishnu made no desire. Then came the elephant Airavata, then
-the 8 space elephants and their 8 female partners.
-
-Next arose Kaustubha, the celebrated lotus-colored gem. Vishnu wished to
-have it as an ornament for His breast. Next came Prijta, then the
-Apsaras.
-
-Illumining all sides with her lustre arose Lakshm. All paid homage to
-her. She looked on all sides, but found none, whom she could accept. If
-there was an ascetic he could not control his anger. If there was a
-Jnni (sophist) he could not get over attachments. There might be a
-Mahtm, but he had not conquered his passion of love. How could he be
-called svara, who depended on others, (and no one but svara could
-claim Lakshm). If there was Dharma any where, there was not
-friendliness for all beings. If there was sacrifice, it was not for
-liberation. There was power but it could not resist the flow of time. If
-there was one void of likes and dislikes, he did not take a companion.
-If there was any one long lived, he had neither good nature (_Sila_) nor
-auspiciousness (_Mangala._) If one had good nature and auspiciousness,
-he was not long lived. If one had all the Virtues he was out of his
-element with her. If he was all that she wanted he did not want her.
-
-Considering everything, Lakshm at last accepted Vishnu for her husband.
-He placed her on His breast. She favored the Devas, so they became
-possessed of all the virtues. She showed indifference to the Asuras, so
-they lost their might, energy and modesty and became greedy.
-
-Then arose a lotus eyed girl called Vruni (Spirituous liquor.) The
-Asuras accepted her.
-
-Then arose Dhanvantari, part of a part of Vishnu, with a pot of Amrita
-in hand. Seeing the pot of Amrita, the greedy Asuras took that by force.
-They quarrelled with each other, some saying "First myself," "First
-myself," others saying "Not you" "Not you," whilst the weaker amongst
-them finding that they were going to be deprived, cried out in jealousy
-"The Devas are also entitled to an equal share. They have also toiled
-with us."
-
-At this time Vishnu became a most beautiful young woman. She filled the
-hearts of the Asura Chiefs with passion. They asked the tempting girl to
-settle their differences and to make a proper distribution of Amrita
-amongst them. "But how can you trust a woman," said the girl. But the
-Asuras had fallen in love with her, so they made over the Amrita pot to
-her without further thought. She consented to distribute Amrita on the
-condition that the Asuras should put up with whatever she did, right or
-wrong. The Asuras consented. She then made the Devas and Asuras sit in
-two separate rows. She distributed the whole of the Amrita amongst the
-Devas. Only one Asura, named Rhu, sat with the Devas. The Sun and the
-Moon pointed him out to the girl Vishnu. Vishnu then and there severed
-the head from the body of the Asura, but as the head had touched Amrita,
-it became immortal. Brahm made it a planet. Rhu still pursues the Sun
-and Moon at eclipses out of enmity.
-
-When the Amrita was wholly spent, Vishnu assumed His own form and in the
-presence of all left the place on the back of Garuda.
-
-The Asuras found they had been deceived and they became very angry. They
-could not bear the success of their enemies but they instantly engaged
-in fight with them. The fight was personal between the chiefs of both
-sides. (It is interesting to note the antagonistic names, as they give
-the correspondences between the Deva and Asura chiefs.) Indra fought
-with Bali, Krtikeya with Traka, Varuna with Heti, Mitra with Praheti,
-Yma with Kalanbha, Visvakarm with My, Tvastri with Smbara, Savitri
-with Virochana, Aparajita with Namuchi. The Asvini Kumras with
-Vrishaparvan, Srya (Sun) with the hundred sons of Bali, Vna and
-others, Chandra (Moon) with Rhu, Vyu with Puloman, Bhadra Kali with
-Sumbha and Nishumbha, Vrishkapi with Jambha, Vibhavasu with Mahisha,
-the sons of Brahm with Ilvala and Vatapi, Brihaspati with Sukra, Sani
-with Naraka, the Maruts with the Nivtakavachas, the Vasus with the
-Kaleyas, the Visvadevas with the Poulamas and the Rudras with the
-Krodhavasas. (Those who want to make a deep study will do well to note
-these correspondences as they will serve to explain points which I have
-not touched upon as beyond the scope of the present work).
-
-The Asuras used all the weapons of tempting My and conquered the
-Devas, Vishnu then came to their rescue and they became victorious (The
-details of the fight might be interesting from an occult point of view,
-for which the reader must refer to the original.)
-
-Siva heard that Vishnu had assumed an enchanting female form. To satisfy
-his curiosity he went to Him with Bhvan. Vishnu assumed that form
-again to satisfy Siva. The Astral Lord became passionate and ran after
-that female form and embraced her. The female Vishnu got out of the
-embrace and re-assumed His own form. Siva was then restored to himself.
-
-
-
-THOUGHTS ON THE ABOVE.
-
-
-We have already seen that the ascent of spirit commenced in the
-Vaivasvata Manvantara. If the fourteenth Manvantara or the second half
-of the Seventh Round he left out of consideration, as the Manvantara of
-Dissolution or Pralaya, the middle of the remaining 13 Manvantaras will
-be in the Vaivasvata Manvantara. But the ascent could not commence
-without preparation. That preparation was made in the Chkshusha
-Manvantara or during the latter half of the Third Round.
-
-Sr or Lakshm is the Stvic energy of preservation. This energy was so
-much overpowered by Materiality, that she was not to be found in
-Trilok. The spiritual forces, the Devas, lost life and energy. The
-Asuras were at the height of their power. But as the ascending arc was
-near at hand, the Devas were promised Amrita _i.e._ immortality for the
-remaining part of the Kalpa. But that Amrita was to be obtained, the arc
-of spiritual evolution was to be raised by the churning of the ocean of
-Milk.
-
-The ocean of Milk does not appertain to Jambu Dwipa, but it is the ocean
-of Saka Dwipa. The seven oceans are transformations of Prakriti,
-differing in the admixture of Satva, Rajas and Tamas and determining the
-character of the globe they surround. Vishnu, as the Third Purusha, is
-the divine source of evolution in every Jiva. The seat of that Vishnu is
-the ocean of Milk, the ocean where Satva prevails.
-
-It is Vishnu who from His seat in the Ocean of Milk sends down Prnic
-Energy and the mineral becomes a vegetable. He sends down the power of
-perception and then the power of conception and the vegetable becomes an
-animal and at last a man. Throughout this course of evolution, there is
-a development of the self element in us. There is no idea of self in the
-mineral or in the vegetable. It faintly asserts itself or rather makes
-an effort to assert itself in the animal kingdom. The early history of
-humanity is the development of the selfish element in him. The Jiva has
-two sides in himself and non-self. The self side is caused by limitation
-due to his own senses They put him in contact with the outside world,
-and make him a centre of sense perceptions. He becomes lost entirely in
-the sense products, which form a world by themselves. The non-self side
-of a Jiva, is his spiritual nature. He begins with this spiritual
-nature. But the development of selfishness eclipses this nature, the
-true, the real nature of Jiva, and he identifies himself entirely with
-the acquired and false nature.
-
-Then comes a crisis in the evolution of Jivas. Were men to be lost for
-ever to their spiritual, their real nature? Were they to be tempted away
-by the senses, which had done their work of training, past all chance of
-return?
-
-Vishnu, the God of human evolution, willed otherwise. He caused a
-re-adjustment of the Daivic and suric forces, and the Devas by His help
-got the better of the Asuras. This is the churning of the Ocean of Milk.
-It averted a crisis and is therefore a great event in the history of the
-Universe.
-
-The Asura element could not be altogether wiped away. For the Deva or
-spiritual nature evolves out of Asura or selfish and material nature.
-Unselfishness grows out of selfishness, spirituality rises out of
-materiality.
-
-In the act of churning, the Devas could not do without the Asuras.
-Churning itself, implies the action and reaction of two contending
-forces. "Make peace with them, as long as you are not strong
-yourselves." The compromise of the Devas with the Asuras is the
-development of spiritual faculties out of the personal element in man.
-It is the grafting of higher Manas on lower Manas. The element of mind
-is in the Asuras as well as in the Devas. But the Asuric or lower mind
-thinks of self as separate from other selves. The Daivic or higher mind
-breaks through the trammels of personality and finds oneness all round.
-
-To use a better expression, we shall say higher self and lower self,
-rather than self and non-self.
-
-Jivas are carried on in their course of life evolution by the force of
-past tendencies, and nature unaided produces the personal man. But when
-the past tendencies are exhausted, there is nothing to keep on the Jivas
-in their course of evolution.
-
-Krma comes to the help of humanity at this stage. He gives a new power
-to men, the power of discrimination. With this power men become free
-agents, and they become responsible for their actions. They then
-generate new Karma for themselves, which takes them through infinite
-births and becomes a most potent factor in their future evolution.
-
-The three Purushas have three Oceans as their correspondences. The first
-ocean (Krana) gives the materials of the Jiva body. The Second ocean
-(Garbhoda), gives the germs of all Jivas. The third (Kshira) is the
-ocean of Jiva evolution. This ocean is churned for the spiritual
-evolution of Jivas, and it yields all that is necessary for that
-evolution. Vishnu himself appears as Krma and becomes the sustaining
-force of that evolution.
-
-It is a Klpic revolution. Vaski sustains the earth and its inhabitants
-for one Klpic period. The thousand hoods represent the thousand Maha
-yugas of every Kalpa. The Asuras held the mouth end of the serpent king
-and the Devas held the tail end. And the Devas acted wisely. For as the
-Kalpa waned, they got the supremacy.
-
-The tortoise thrusts out its limbs and draws them in. Man is drawn
-outside by his senses during material descent and he is drawn in by his
-spiritual ascent. It is by the power of discrimination when fully
-developed that a man returns to his higher nature.
-
-Sr or Lakshm is the divine energy of Vishnu. She is the Energy of
-preservation, of evolution and progress She works out all that is good,
-all that is beautiful, and all that is powerful in this Universe. The
-possibilities of purely material development or of Nature's own
-evolution, are limited, and they are worked out in time. Then there is a
-void. There was this void in our universe and Trilok become deprived of
-Sri. This was the curse of Durvasas, an Avatra of Siva.
-
-The Churning took place as a remedy for this evil. Fresh forces had to
-be brought into requisition, fresh elements that could secure the
-spiritual evolution of the universe. Lakshm herself reappeared in a
-most enchanting form, as the energy of a new evolution, the very best
-that man was capable of. The necessaries of this evolution also appeared
-and became powers in the hands of those that had to take part in the
-spiritual evolution of the universe.
-
-All evolution is preceded by dissolution. Unless we give up the evil
-element in us, we can not acquire the good. The evil has to be destroyed
-and the Lord of destruction, in his infinite compassion, accepted this
-poison for himself, to do away with the evils of the Universe.
-
-The Poison only opens the door for Amrita, the spiritual nectar. The
-famous Purusha Sukta says: -- "He placed Amrita or eternal bliss in the
-higher three Lokas." The Bhgavata renders this famous saying into the
-eighteenth sloka of the 6th. chapter of the Second Skandha. Commenting
-on this sloka, Sridhara says, bliss in our Trilok is only transitory
-and the dwellers of Mahar Loka have also to leave their abode for the
-higher Jana Loka, when they are oppressed by the fire of Klpic
-dissolution. Amrita was secured to the higher Lokas, as there is no
-selfishness in them. (III. 10-9.) Could the Asuras, the gods of
-selfishness, aspire to have life immortal and unlimited bliss. Vishnu
-decided otherwise.
-
-The way was thus prepared for the Vaivasvata Manvantara, when men
-learned to discern between right and wrong.
-
-
-
-THE SEVENTH MANVANTARA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA VIII. CHAP. 13.*
-
-Srddha Deva son of Vivasvat or Srya is the seventh Manu. He is
-reigning at present. Ikshvku, Nabhaga, Dhrishta, Saryti, Narishyanta,
-Nbhga, Dishta, Tarusha, Prishadhra, and Vasumat are his ten sons.
-
-The dityas, the Vasus, the Rudras, the Visvadevas, the Maruts, the
-Asvini-kumaras and the Ribhus are the Devas. Purandara is their Indra.
-Ksyapa, Atri, Vasistha, Visvmitra, Goutama, Jamadagni and Bharadvja
-are the seven Rishis.
-
-The Avatra of this Manvantara is Vmana, the youngest son of Aditi by
-Ksyapa.
-
-(The Purna will revert to this Manvantara after giving a general
-account of the succeeding Manvantaras).
-
-
-
-THE EIGHTH MANVANTARA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA VIII. CHAP. 13.*
-
-Svarni is the son of Vivasvat by his wife Chy. He shall be the eighth
-Manu -- Nirmoka, Virajaska (without Rajas) and others shall be his sons.
-Sutapas, Viraja (without Rajas) and Amrita Prabha shall be the Devas.
-Bali, son of Virochana, shall be the Indra.
-
-Glava, Diptimn, Parasurma, Asvatthma, Kripa, Rishya Sringa and Vysa
-shall be the seven Rishis.
-
-Srvabhouma, son of Devaguhya by Sarasvati, shall be the Avatra. He
-shall wrest the kingdom of Svarga Loka from Purandara and make it over
-to Bali.
-
-(The eighth Manvantara is the Second half of the Fourth Round and should
-be the spiritual half according to Theosophical ideas. But we find the
-Asura King Bali, who was removed from the kingdom of Trilok in the
-Vaivasvat Manvantara, restored to the kingdom of Svarga).
-
-Amongst the Rishis we find Parasurma who fought with Rma and
-Asvatthma and Kripa who ranged themselves against the Pndava brothers
-in the battle of Kurukshetra.
-
-All this shews that spirituality was developed out of materiality. The
-sons of Manu are Nirmoka and Virajaska. _Moka_ is the cast off skin of
-an animal and may well represent the sthla body. Nirmoka is one without
-Moka.
-
-Virajaska is without Rajas. So the course of evolution shews a tendency
-in the first place to cast off the sthla body and to overcome the
-Rajas.
-
-
-
-THE NINTH MANVANTARA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA VIII. CHAP. 13.*
-
-The ninth Manu is Daksha Svarni. He is the son of Varuna Bhtaketu,
-Diptaketu and others shall be his sons. Pra, Marichi garbha and others
-shall be the Devas and Adbhta their Indra. Dyu timat and others shall
-be the Rishis.
-
-Rishabha, son of yushmat by Ambudhr, shall be the Avatra.
-
-
-
-THE TENTH MANVANTARA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA VIII. CHAP. 13.*
-
-Brahm Svarni is the tenth Manu. He is the son of Upasloka. Bhrishena
-and others shall be his sons. Havishmat, Sukrita, Satya, Jaya, Mrti and
-others shall be the Rishis; Suvsana, Aviruddha and others shall be the
-Devas and Sambhu their Indra.
-
-Vishvaksena, son of Visvasrij by Vischi, shall be the Avatra.
-
-
-
-THE ELEVENTH MANVANTARA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA VIII. CHAP. 13*
-
-Dharma Svarni is the eleventh Manu. Satya-Dharma and others shall be
-his ten sons. Vihangama, Klagama, Nirvna-ruchi and others shall be the
-Devas, Vaidhrita their king, and Aruna and others the Rishis.
-Dharma-Setu, son of ryaka by Vaidhrit shall be the Avatra.
-
-
-
-THE TWELFTH MANVANTARA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA VIII. CHAP. 13.*
-
-Rudra-Svarni is the twelfth Manu. Devavat, Upadeva, Devasrestha and
-others shall be his sons (men shall be evolved into Devas In this
-Manvantara). Harita and others shall be the Devas, Ritadhman their
-Indra. Tapomrti, Tapasvin, Agnidhraka and others the Rishis; Svadhman,
-son of Satya-sahas by Snrit, shall be the Avatra.
-
-
-
-THE THIRTEENTH MANVANTARA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA VIII. CHAP. 13.*
-
-Deva Svarni is the thirteenth Manu. Chitra Sena, Vichitra and others
-shall he his sons, Sukarma and Sutrma the Devas, Divaspati their Indra
-and Nirmoka, Tatvadarsa, and others the Rishis.
-
-Yogesvara, son of Devahotra by Vrihati, shall be the Avatra.
-
-
-
-THE FOURTEENTH MANVANTARA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA VIII. CHAP. 13.*
-
-Indra Svarni is the fourteenth Manu. Uru, Gambhira, Vradhna and others
-shall be his sons.
-
-Pavitra and Chkshusha the Devas, Suchi their Indra, Agni, Vhu, Suchi,
-Suddha Mgadha and others the Rishis.
-
-Brihat-bhnu, son of Satryana by Vitn, shall be the Avatra (_i.e._
-the great sun shall absorb everything.)
-
-
-
-THE ADMINISTRATION OF A MANVANTARA
-
-
-*SKANDHA VIII. CHAP. 14.*
-
-Said Rj Parikshit: -- Tell me, O Rishi, what are the respective duties
-of Manu and others in the Manvantaras.
-
-Suka replied: -- The _Avatra_ of each Manvantara guides the Manu, the
-sons of Manu, the Rishis, the Indra and the Devas of that Manvantara.
-(Each Manvantara has its own place in the history of the Kalpa, and the
-general evolution has to be worked out in the way best adapted to that
-Manvantara. The administration of each Manvantara is in the hands of a
-separate set of kings and ministers. Vishnu incarnates in each
-Manvantara, as the king of all who serve as administrative officers of
-that Manvantara and he is as such called the special Avatra for that
-Manvantara. The divine kings, the Rishis, the Devas, all work under His
-direction. He gives the law that is to be administered. He shews the
-path, which evolution is to take in any particular Manvantara.)
-
-Yajna and others are Avatras of Purusha. Guided by them, Manu and
-others lead the course of the universe.
-
-_Rishis_: -- At the end of every four Yugas, the Srutis become devoured
-by time. (The human races have a life period timed to the four Yugas.
-They have their infancy, as it were, in Satya Yuga, and they have to be
-guided by wise sayings, which form the Srutis of those races. The Srutis
-become better understood with the growth of racial intelligence and
-other texts take the place of old ones. When the races do not require
-the help of the earlier texts, those texts become lost in time. When the
-races begin another life cycle, they require again the help of
-teachings, which become revealed to the Rishis. The Rishis then give
-those teachings to the races.) The Rishis find out the Srutis, by means
-of Tapas. The eternal Dharma proceeds from the Srutis. (People know
-their duties from the scriptures.)
-
-_Manus_. -- The Manus then take up the Dharma, and each in his own time
-devotedly promulgates it on the earth.
-
-_Manu's sons_. -- The sons of Manu preserve the Dharma, generation after
-generation, till the end of the Manvantara.
-
-_Devas and Indra_. -- Indra, with the Devas that participate in
-sacrificial offerings, protects the three Lokas and gives rains.
-
-(Besides this general administration, there are other ways also of
-managing the affairs of the universe and these are mentioned
-incidentally in the following slokas. _Sridhara_.)
-
-Hari appears as the Siddhas (Sanaka and others) and expounds divine
-wisdom (Jnna) in every Yuga. He appears as Rishis (Yjnavalkya and
-others) and expounds Karma. As Lords of Yoga (Datttreya and others), He
-expounds Yoga.
-
-
-
-THE STORY OF BALI.
-
-
-*SKANDHA VIII. CHAPS. 15-23.*
-
-Bali, son of Virochana and grandson of Prahlda, was once defeated by
-Indra. His Guru, Sukra, advised him to perform the Visvajit sacrifice.
-When _ghee_ was offered at the sacrifice, one chariot, some green
-coloured horses, one lion-marked flag, one golden bow, two quivers with
-an inexhaustible store of arrows, and one divine _kavacha_ (protective
-charm) arose from the fire. Bali gladly accepted these things. Prahlda
-also gave him a fresh garland and Sukra gave him a conch.
-
-Equipped with these things Bali attacked Svarga. Brihaspati told Indra
-the time was inauspicious and the Devas could not succeed without the
-help of Vishnu. He advised them to give in and to remain concealed
-somewhere, till the time came for their ascendancy. The Devas followed
-the advice of Brihaspati and Bali became the king of Trilok.
-
-Sukra advised Bali to perform one hundred Asvamedha sacrifices.
-
-Aditi became disconsolate at the down-fall of her sons. She asked her
-husband Kasyapa what to do for her sons. The Prajpati advised her to
-observe Payoravata in honor of Vishnu (for details, see the original).
-She observed the Vrata for 12 days when Vishnu appeared before her and
-assured her He would incarnate as her son.
-
-Vmana was born of Aditi at midday, on the 12th day of the moon, during
-the white quarter in the month of Bhdra, while the moon was in the
-first part of Sravan, in the Abhijit.
-
-(Vmana = Dwarf). Vmana heard that Bali was performing Asvamedha on the
-banks of the Narmad. He went there and Bali received him duly and
-enquired what he wanted, expressing his willingness to gratify him
-fully. Vmana asked for only three paces of ground. Bali laughed at this
-modest prayer and asked him to take more land. But Vmana excused
-himself, saying a Brhmana should be content with small things only.
-Bali laughed again and at once said "Then accept." He then took the
-water pot to make the formal gift. Sukra perceived the object of Vishnu.
-He tried to dissuade Bali from carrying out his promise. "This is not a
-dwarf Brhmana but Vishnu Himself. By one pace he will cover the whole
-of Bhr Loka and Bhuvar Loka. By the second pace, He will cover Svar
-Loka and what then will become of the third pace? You will have to go to
-Naraka for not being able to fulfil your promise. And where shall you
-yourself remain after giving over all you have? Therefore desist from
-what you are doing. No doubt truth is preferable. But the Vedas also
-allow untruth in extreme cases."
-
-Bali replied: -- "The grandson of Prahlda shall never speak an untruth.
-I will give to this Brhmana boy what I have promised, even if he be
-Vishnu and my enemy too."
-
-Sukra said in anger -- "You disregard the words of your Guru. So you
-shall forthwith lose everything."
-
-Bali remained unmoved. He worshipped the Brhmana boy and read out the
-formal Mantra of giving over three paces of land. Vindhyvali, the
-virtuous consort of Bali, at this time placed a golden pitcher filled
-with water before her husband. He washed the feet of Vmana with that
-water, and sprinkled it over his head. Then Vmana wonderfully grew in
-size. The whole Universe became visible in him. He seized the whole of
-Bhr Loka with one pace the whole of Bhuvar Loka with his body, and the
-directions in space with his hands, so that even the whole of Svar Loka
-became insufficient for the second pace. But nothing remained for the
-third pace. For the second pace of Vmana passed through Mahar Loka,
-Jana Loka, Tapas Loka and reached even Satya Loka.
-
-The Asuras exclaimed: -- "By what an unjust device has our king been
-deprived of all! It is no sin to fight with this disgrace of a Brhmana,
-this deceitful Vishnu." So they engaged in fight with the followers of
-Vishnu, but were defeated by them.
-
-Bali told his followers there was no use fighting, for Kala was against
-them. The same Bhagavn who had favored them was now in opposition.
-
-Garuda, knowing the intention of Vishnu, tied Bali with the noose of
-Varuna.
-
-Vmana then addressing Bali said: -- "Where is your promised ground for
-my third pace? You have told a lie. You do not carry out your promise to
-a Brhmana. For this you will have to go to Naraka."
-
-Bali said: -- "Do not think I told an untruth or that I mean to deceive
-thee. Here is my head for the third pace. I am not so much afraid of the
-Naraka thou art speaking of, nor of this noose, nor of any troubles I
-may undergo, nor of any punishment thou mayest inflict on me as I am
-afraid of doing anything for which good people will blame me. I deem
-this punishment an act of favor a favor shewn perhaps out of
-consideration for my grand-father Prahlda. For this kingdom only
-maddened me with power and made me forget my end. And what shall I do
-with this body too? True thou art my enemy, but this loss of kingdom has
-brought me nearer to thee."
-
-Prahlda appeared at this time. He bowed down to Vmana and said: -- "It
-is thou that didst give the kingdom of Trilok to Bali and it is thou
-that hast taken it away and really thou hast shewn him a favor by doing
-so. For power maddens a man and blinds him as to his real self."
-
-Vindhyvali said: -- "O Lord, Thou art the Creator, the Preserver, and
-the Destroyer of Trilok. Who else could own it besides Thyself? It was
-the height of presumption to pretend to give the Trilok to you." Brahm
-said: -- "O Deva of Devas, all-pervading Lord, thou hast taken away
-everything from this Bali. He has also given himself up entirely to
-Thee, without being moved in the least. He does not now deserve to
-remain tied up."
-
-Bhagavn said: -- "O Brahm, I take away all his riches from him whom I
-favor. For one proud of riches disregards both myself and others. When
-after many births the Jiva happens to become a man, and when in that
-birth he is found not to entertain any pride of birth, karma, age,
-beauty, wisdom, power, wealth and other things, you should know that to
-be my favor. One constantly devoted to me is not led away by anything
-apt to beget pride.
-
-"This king of Dnavas and Daityas has now conquered My. So he is not
-beside himself even in grief. His wealth gone, his position lost,
-himself overpowered and chained by enemies, forsaken by friends, reviled
-and cursed by his own preceptor, and what not, this Bali did not give up
-Truth.
-
-"I will give him a place, difficult for others to attain. He shall be
-the Indra of Svarni Manvantara. Till then let him reside in Sutala. By
-my wish, the dwellers of Sutala shall have no mental or bodily pain, no
-fatigue, no sleepiness, no defeat and no misfortune. Bless thee, O
-Maharaj, go to Sutala with thy clan. Sutala is even wished for by those
-that dwell in Svarga. Even the Lokaplas shall not be able to overpower
-thee. What of others? If any Daitya does not follow thee, I will kill
-him by my Chakra. By all means I will preserve thee and thy followers.
-There you shall always find me at your door. Thy Asura nature shall be
-there entirely destroyed under my influence."
-
-Prahlda was also ordered by Bhagavn to accompany Bali to Sutala. So
-they all went to Sutala.
-
-
-
-THOUGHTS ON THE ABOVE.
-
-
-We now find Bali shorn of all materialism and restored to spiritual
-purity. We can well understand the removal of Bali from the kingdom of
-Trilok, for the cyclic movement was tending that way since the last
-Manvantara, and the Devas were to have supremacy over Trilok. We have
-to study the future of Bali, as holding further light for us.
-
-We must repeat here the distinction made between the two classes of
-Asuras: Daityas and Dnavas. The Daityas trace their origin to the
-gate-keepers of Vishnu. They had inherent Satva in them, which was
-eclipsed in their downfall. Therefore, though they acted as
-materialistic forces following the cyclic tendency, they were themselves
-not incapable of spiritual development Thus we find words of wisdom and
-spirituality in Vritra, in Hiranyakasipu, unselfish devotion in
-Prahlda, and complete resignation in Bali. Hiranyksha and
-Hiranyakasipu went back to their old place in Vaikuntha. Vritra became
-united with Sankarshana. Prahlda is immortal in his unselfish mission,
-and we have just heard the future of Bali. The Maruts become Devas after
-their very birth.
-
-Therefore there is no extinction for the Asuras, except for those that
-do not follow Bali and do not place themselves under the influence of
-Vishnu. The cyclic weapon or Chakra is ever ready to destroy those that
-hopelessly go against the law.
-
-Now a word about Sutala. The arrangement of Ptlas as given in the text
-is the reverse of what they should be in point of spirituality, for
-Atala is the most and Ptla the least removed from spirituality.
-
-The influence of Vishnu does not extend beyond Sutala, and nothing can
-save those that transgress the limits of this nether plane. For in
-Vitala the destructive Purusha reigns and a passage to that plane is
-only a door to utter extinction. And in Atala there is not a trace of
-spirituality, the work of destruction is already done, and mother Nature
-dissolves the material elements for some better use in future.
-
-The special provision for Sutala is therefore a cyclic necessity. For
-Jivas have to be preserved from an undesirable end. Therefore Bali was
-given a post, the proud privilege of seeing that Jivas do not undergo
-utter extinction. Sutala was also fortified with an accession of
-spirituality.
-
-The example of self-abnegation, the ideal of self-sacrifice, Bali is to
-become the king of Devas in the succeeding Manvantara.
-
-
-
-THE MATSYA AVATARA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA. VIII. CHAP. 24.*
-
-Towards the end of the previous Kalpa, Brahm was falling asleep and the
-Vedas fell from his mouth. The Asura Hayagrva took them up. Seeing this
-Vishnu became a small fish. King Satyavrata was making Tarpana (_i.e._
-offering libations of water), when the fish found its way into his
-hands. He threw it into the river. The fish implored the King to
-preserve him. So he took it home and placed it in a small waterpot. The
-fish increased in size so much that all tanks and rivers were tried, but
-they could not contain it. At last the king took the fish to the sea,
-but it implored him not to throw it away into the sea. The king then
-said: -- "This fish must be the Deity Himself, otherwise how could it
-grow so large?" The fish then addressed the king thus: "On the seventh
-day from this, the Trilok shall be plunged into the Pralaya waters.
-Then a big Ark shall come to thee. Take all plants, all seeds, all
-animals, and the seven Rishis with you and get into that ark. When the
-wind shakes that ark, tie it with a serpent to myself. I will remain
-with that ark in the Pralaya Ocean till the awakening of Brahm. I will
-manifest supreme wisdom in thee."
-
-So saying the fish disappeared and on the seventh day the Pralaya waters
-deluged the Trilok. Satya Vrata did as he was told. He got the highest
-wisdom from the Fish Incarnation.
-
-That Satya Vrata is Srddhadeva, our present Manu.
-
-
-
-
-SKANDHA IX.
-
-
-
-THE VAIVASVATA MANVANTARA.
-
-
-SUDYUMNA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA IX. CHAP. 1.*
-
-Srddhadeva Manu had no child for some time. Vasistha performed a
-sacrifice in honor of Mitra-varuna that he might obtain progeny.
-Sraddha, wife of the Manu, went to the chief priest and asked for a
-daughter. So Manu had a daughter named Il. He took Vasistha to task for
-having had a daughter. Vasistha thought the priest had done something
-wrong. He prayed to Bhagavn for the change of Il's sex. So Il became
-a male named Sudyumna and in company with others went on horse back to
-the chase. He entered a forest called Sukumra, below the Meru, which is
-the play ground of Siva and his consort. He and his companions were all
-transformed into females, for such is the mandate of Siva for those that
-enter the forest. In this changed condition, Sudyumna with his female
-companions went to Budha. Budha took a fancy for Sudyumna and had by her
-one son Purravas.
-
-Vasistha took pity on Sudyumna again and prayed to Siva to change his
-sex. By the favor of Siva, Sudyumna became a male for one month and a
-female for another month. He had three sons. Utkala, Gaya and Vimala.
-
-
-IKSHVKU BROTHERS.
-
-
-*SKANDHA IX. CHAP. 2.*
-
-Manu prayed to Vishnu for one hundred years for other sons. He got ten
-sons like unto himself. Ikshvku was the eldest:
-
- Manu
- |
- --+------+-----+--------+-------+--------+---------+------------\\
- | | | | | | | |
- Ikshvku Nriga Saryati Dishita Dhrishta Karusha Narishyanta |
- |
- --+---------+-------/
- | |
- Prishadhra Nabhaga Kavi
-
-(8). PRISHADHRA.
-
-While residing in the house of his Guru, Prishadhra was placed in charge
-of cattle. It was raining one night, when a tiger entered the fold. The
-cattle strayed about in fear and bellowed aloud. Prishadhra ran after
-the tiger. The night was dark. He missed his aim and cut off the head of
-the cow, which the tiger had seized. He found out the mistake in the
-morning and informed his Guru about it. The Guru said: -- "You shall
-become a Sudra, as the fruit of your Karma." Prishadhra accepted the
-curse. He became an ascetic, and roamed about the earth as the friend of
-all beings. Eventually He ended his life in fire.
-
-(10). KAVI.
-
-Kavi attained wisdom in his youth. He did not marry.
-
-(6). KARUSHA.
-
-The sons of Karsha were the Krshas, a race of pious Kshatriyas, who
-guarded the north.
-
-(5). DHRISHTA.
-
-Dhrshtas were the sons of Dhrishta. Though born as Kshatriyas, they
-became Brhmanas on this earth.
-
- (2). NRIGA.
- |
- Sumati
- |
- Bhtajyoti
- |
- Vasu
- |
- Pratika
- |
- Oghavat
- |
- --+-+-----------------+----
- | |
- Oghavat Oghavati
- m. Sudarsana
-
-
- (7) Narishyanta, (4) Dishta
- | |
- Chitra Sena Nabga (became a Vaisya
- | by his karma)
- Riksha |
- | Bhaladana
- Midhvat |
- | Vatsapriti
- Purna |
- | Prnsu
- Indra Sena |
- | Pramati
- Vitihotra |
- | Khanitra
- Satya-Sravas |
- | Chkshusha
- Uru-Sravas |
- | Vivinsati
- Devadatta |
- | Rambha
- Agnivesya |
- Khaninetra (very pious)
- (Incarnation of Agni |
- also known as Kanina Karandhama
- and Jatu-Karna) |
- | Avikshit
- Agni veshyyana |
- Brhmanas. Marutta.
-
-Smbarta, Son of Angiras, officiated at the Yajna performed by Marutta.
-The Devas took direct part in the Yajna.
-
- Marutta
- |
- Dama
- |
- Rjavardhana
- |
- Sudhriti
- |
- Nara
- |
- Kevala
- |
- Dhundhumat
- |
- Vegavat
- |
- Budha
- |
- Trinabindu
-
- m. Apsaras Alamvush
- |
- --+-----+--+-----------+--------+--
- | | | |
- Visla Snyabandhu Dhmraketu Ilavil
-
- (founded the _m_. Rishi Visravas
- town named |
- Vaisli) Kubera--the
- | King of the
- Hema Chandra Yakshas.
- |
- Dhmrksha.
- |
- Sanyama
- |
- --++------+---
- | |
- Devaja Krissva
- |
- Somadatta
- |
- Sumati
- |
- Janamejaya.
-
-(3). SARYTI.
-
-SKANDHA IX. CHAP. 3.
-
-Saryti was well versed in the Vedas. He had one daughter, Sukany. He
-went with her one day to the srama of Chyavana Rishi. Sukany found
-there two streaks of light as from glow-worms, issuing from within a
-mound of earth, thrown up by white ants. She pricked those portions with
-a thorn and blood oozed out. The party of Saryti found that their usual
-secretions were stopped. The king thought some one had offended
-Chyavana. The girl then told her story. The king found the Rishi
-underneath the mound of earth and asked his pardon. The Rishi wanted the
-hand of the girl in marriage and Saryti consented. So Sukany became
-the wife of Chyavana.
-
-One day the Asvini Kumras came to Chyavana. The Rishi asked them to
-give him youth and beauty and promised in return to give them offerings
-of Soma, though they had no part in Soma Ygas, The Asvini Kumras took
-the Rishi inside a tank and all the three came out young and beautiful
-and looking all alike. Sukany could not recognise her husband and she
-prayed to the Asvini Kumras to remove her confusion. They were pleased
-with her chastity and pointed out her husband.
-
-One day king Saryti came and found his daughter sitting with a young
-man. He reproved Sukany for her supposed unchastity. The girl then
-related the story of her husband's attaining youth and the king became
-very much pleased.
-
-Chyavana made offerings of Soma to the Asvini Kumras. This offended
-Indra. He held up the Vajra to kill Chyavana, but the son of Bhrigu
-paralysed the hands of Indra. From that time the Devas consented to give
-a share in Soma to the Asvini Kumras.
-
- SARYTI.
- |
- --+------------+--------+---+-----------------+---
- | | | |
- Sukany Uttnavarhi narta Dhri Sena
- m. Chyavana |
- Revata
- (He built a town called Kusasthali
- in the midst of the sea and from that
- town ruled Anarta and other lands.)
- |
- --+----------------------+-------------------+---
- | |
- Kakudmin 99 other Sons.
- |
- Revati
-
-Kakudmin took his daughter Revati with him and went to Brahm loka to
-enquire of Brahm, who should be her husband. The Gandharvas were
-singing at the time and Kakudmin had to wait for a moment. He then
-saluted Brahm and made the enquiry. Brahm laughed and said: -- "O
-king, the men of your choice are dead and gone. I do not hear even of
-their sons and grandsons. Twenty seven yuga cycles have now passed away.
-Therefore go back to thy place and give thy daughter to Baladeva, who
-has now incarnated as an Ansa (part) of Vishnu for the good of
-Bhr-loka." And so the king did. (The Present is the 28th. Yuga cycle.
-Baladeva is the brother of Sri Krishna.)
-
- (9) NABHAGA.
-
-SKANDHA IX. CHAPS. 4-6.
-
-Nabhaga remained long with his Guru. So his brothers thought he had
-become a Brahma-chrin. They reserved no share for him at partition.
-Nabhaga at last returned to his house and asked for his share in the
-patrimony. The brothers pointed out their father Manu as his share.
-Nabhaga asked his father -- "How is it my brothers have reserved thee
-for my share?" Manu replied: -- "Child, do not believe them. The clan of
-Angiras are performing Yajna. They get confounded on every sixth day.
-This is the sixth day. Give them two Vaisvadeva Sktas. When they go to
-Svarga after completion of their Yajna they will leave all their
-sacrificial wealth to you." Nabhaga did as he was told. The Angirasas
-left all the property remaining on the sacrificial ground to Nabhaga. As
-he was going to take those things, a dark Purusha appeared from the
-north and said. "These are mine."
-
-"But the Rishis have given them to me" said Nabhaga.
-
-"Go to your father then and ask for the solution" said the dark Purusha.
-
-"Yes, the remnants of a Sacrifice belong to Rudra" said Manu.
-
-Nabhaga returned and said "Yes these remnants of sacrifice all belong to
-thee. So my father told me."
-
-"I am pleased with thee and thy father. Both of you have spoken the
-truth" said Rudra, "I give thee supreme wisdom. I also give thee these
-remnants. Take them now."
-
- NABHAGA
- |
- NBHGA.
- |
- AMBARISHA
-
-King Ambarisha had discrimination and dispassion. His devotion was
-great. His mind was fixed on the lotus feet of Vishnu, his words were
-all about the glory of Vaikuntha, his hands were engaged in cleansing
-the temples of Vishnu, his ears only heard about the glory and the works
-of Vishnu, his eyes intently looked on the symbols of Vishnu wherever
-found. His body felt pleasure in the touch of Vaishnavas, his nose smelt
-the sweet fragrance of Tulasi proceeding from the feet of Vishnu, his
-tongue tasted only food offered to Vishnu, his feet traversed the places
-sacred to Vishnu and his head was devoted to the salutation of Vishnu.
-If he enjoyed things of this world, it was for service to Vishnu and not
-for the sake of enjoyment. If he had attachment, it was only for those
-that were devoted to Vishnu. The fruits of his action he offered to Him.
-By devotion and by the unselfish performance of duties pertaining to his
-sphere of life (Svadharma), he pleased Bhagavn and by degrees he gave
-up all desires. Vishnu was so much pleased with the King, that he gave
-him His own Chakra for protection.
-
-Ambarisha with his wife once undertook to perform Dvdasi Vrata for one
-year. (Dvdasi is the twelfth day of the Moon. The Vrata consists in
-fasting on the eleventh day of the Moon and in breaking the fast on the
-12th day). On one occasion he fasted for 3 consecutive days. He bathed
-himself in the Yamun and worshipped Vishnu at Mathur. He gave plenty
-of riches and cattle to the Brhmanas. He then fed the Brhmanas and
-asked their permission to eat himself. At the time Durvsas appeared as
-his guest. The king received him duly and requested him to take his
-meals. The Rishi consented and went to bathe himself in the river and
-perform his daily rites. The king waited long for him but he did not
-return. There was only half a muhurta now remaining of Dvdasi. If the
-king did not eat any thing, his Vrata would not be observed. If he ate,
-he would shew disregard to a Brhmana. At this juncture, the king
-decided to serve both ends by taking a little water, for the Brhmanas
-call that both eating and non-eating. Durvsas came back. By spiritual
-vision, he knew what had happened and became highly enraged. He tore up
-a hair tuft and charged it to kill Ambarisha. The king remained unmoved.
-The chakra of Vishnu consumed the destructive force sent by Durvsas and
-went even to destroy him. The Rishi ran in every direction. The Chakra
-followed him wherever he went. He went to Brahm and prayed to be saved.
-"It is not in my power to save thee" said Brahm. "Thou hast offended a
-votary of Vishnu." He went to Siva. "Child" said Siva "this weapon of
-Vishnu is too much for me even. Go thou to Vishnu." Durvsas went to
-Vishnu and prayed to be pardoned and saved. Said Vishnu: "O Brhmana, I
-am dependent on my Bhaktas. I am not free. My heart is in the possession
-of my Bhaktas. I am dear to them. Without these my Bhaktas I do not even
-want myself, nor my absolute powers, for I am their sole and supreme
-resort. They forsake their wives, homes, children and wealth for my
-sake. How can I forsake them. Their heart is chained to me. They look on
-all with equal eyes. By devotion they win me even as chaste wives win
-their husbands. My service is all in all to them. They do not even
-desire the four Muktis, Slokya and others, though these come within
-their easy reach. What perishable objects can they have desire for? The
-Sdhus are my heart. I am the heart of the Sdhus. They do not know any
-one besides me nor do I know any one besides them. O Brhmana, hear what
-is thy only remedy. Without delay go to him who has caused this fear in
-thee. When force is used against Sdhus, it reacts on him who uses the
-force. True asceticism and wisdom are both for the salvation of the
-Brhmanas. But in one untrained, they produce the contrary effect.
-Therefore go thou to the son of Nbhga. Beg his pardon and thou shalt
-be saved." Durvsas went back to Ambarisha and touched the feet of the
-king. Ambarisha became non-plussed at this act of a Brhmana and knowing
-the object of the Rishi, he prayed to the Chakra to desist from its
-course and to save the Brhmana. The Chakra had just commenced its work
-of destruction, but it withdrew its energies upon the prayer of
-Ambarisha. Durvsas was extremely thankful and he thus praised the king.
-"I see this day the greatness of Vaishnavas, O king. Thou didst pray for
-my welfare, though I had offended thee. There is nothing strange for
-those that have conquered Vishnu Himself. Thou hast been very kind to
-me. Thou hast favored me much. Thou didst not even think of my offence,
-but thou hast saved my life." The king had waited for Durvsas all this
-time. He now fell at the feet of the Rishi and requested him to take his
-meals. The Rishi gladly did so, and also made the king take his food.
-
-Durvsas then went to Brahm Loka. He did not return for one year and
-the King lived upon water only all this time, being so anxious to see
-the Rishi back. Such is the holy story of Ambarisha.
-
- Ambarisha
- |
- --+-------------------+--+----------------+--
- | | |
- Virpa Ketumat Sambhu
- |
- Prishadasva
- |
- Rathitara
-
-Rathitara had no children. At his request Rishi Angiras produced certain
-sons by his wife. They were known both as Rathitaras and ngirasas.
-
-[Durvsas had cursed Indra, and Indra lost all power. But after the
-great churning, times were changed. The divine law favoured the Devas
-and the worshippers of Vishnu. Those who assumed a power, independently
-of Vishnu, were sure to find disappointment, however eminent their
-position might be.]
-
- (I) IKSHVKU.
-
-SKANDHA IX. CHAPS. 6-13.
-
-Ikshvku was born out of the nostrils of Manu when sneezing. He had one
-hundred sons. Vikukshi, Nimi, and Dandaka were the eldest born. Twenty
-five of them ruled on the east of ryvarta, twenty five on the west and
-twenty five in the middle. The others ruled else where. For the
-performance of Ashtak Srddha, Ikshvku once ordered Vikukshi to get
-some good flesh. Vikukshi had a bagful of good game. But he was hungry
-and ate one rabbit out of his store.
-
-Vasishtha found fault with this and Ikshvku had to reject the whole of
-the game. The King became angry at this and he expelled his son from the
-kingdom. When Ikshvku died, Vikukshi returned. He succeeded his father
-as king and was known as Sasda or Rabbiteater. Puranjaya was the son of
-Sasda. He was also called Indravha and Kakutstha. The Devas had a
-fight with the Asuras and Indra asked for the help of Puranjaya.
-Puranjaya wanted Indra to be his carrier, and the King of the Devas
-became a bull. Puranjaya ascended the bull on its hump. He is therefore
-called Indravaha or Indra-vehicled and Kakutstha or the mounter on the
-hump. He defeated the Asuras.
-
- Ikshvku
- |
- --+--------------------+-----+-----------------------+---
- | | |
- Vikukshi Nimi 98 other sons
- (Sasda)
- |
- Puranjaya
- (Indra vhu
- Kakutstha)
- |
- Anen
- |
- Prithu
- |
- Visvagandhi
- |
- Chandra
- |
- Yuvanasva
- |
- Srvasta
- (He built the town Srvasti)
- |
- Brihadasva
- |
- Kuvalayasva
- (Dhundhumra.)
-
-With his 21 thousand sons, Kuvalaysva killed an Asura called Dhundhu,
-for the good of Rishi Utanka. But the Asura killed all his sons, except
-three, with fire from his mouth. Those three were Dridhsva, Kapilsva
-and Bhadrsva.
-
- Kuvalaysva or Dhundhumra.
- |
- ---+--------------------+-+-----------------------+----
- | | |
- Dridhsva. Kapilsva. Bhadrsva.
- |
- Haryasva
- |
- Nikumbha
- |
- Bahulsva
- |
- Krissva
- |
- Senajit
- |
- Yuvansva.
-
-Yuvansva had no son. So the Rishis performed a sacrifice directed to
-Indra. One night Yuvansva became very thirsty and entered the Yajna
-house. He found all the Rishis sleeping at the time. He thought it
-improper to rouse the Rishis and drank whatever water he found near at
-hand. By chance that happened to be the consecrated water with the power
-of producing a son. When the Rishis rose up they did not find the water.
-On enquiry, when they knew what had happened, every one wondered what
-the outcome would be. In time the king brought forth a son from his
-right side. The little thing cried out for milk. Indra said "Do not
-weep, child, you shall _drink wine_ ('_Mn Dht_')" So saying he
-offered the child his fore finger. From this, the child was called
-Mndht. Yuvansva, by the blessing of the Rishis, did not meet with
-death at delivery. Mndht was a very powerful king. The thieves
-dreaded him much. He performed many sacrifices and made many gifts. He
-married Indumat, daughter of Sasabindu. He had three sons Purukutsa,
-Ambarisha, and the Yogin Muchukunda. He had also fifty daughters.
-
-Rishi Soubhari made Tapas in the waters of the Yamun. One day he saw
-the pairing of a couple of fish and became excited. He requested king
-Mndht to give him one daughter in marriage. The king said: "By
-Svayamvara, you may get my daughter" (_i.e._ the girl must choose her
-own husband from amongst a number of men offering themselves as
-husbands.) The Rishi thought because he was old and decrepit therefore
-the king wanted to put him off. So Soubhari by yogic powers became young
-and beautiful. All the fifty daughters then accepted him for their
-husband. The Rishi prepared for himself all the enjoyments of life and
-passed his days in company with his 50 wives. He then became disgusted
-with this sensual life and afterwards attained Moksha with his wives.
-
-Yuvansva adopted his grand son Ambarisha. Ambarisha had one son
-Youvansva. His son was Hrita. These three, Ambarisha, Youvansva and
-Hrita were the founders of the chief clans of the Mndht Dynasty.
-
-The elemental serpents gave their sister Narmod in marriage to
-Purukutsa. Purukutsa accompanied Narmod to Rastala at the request of
-Vaski. There he killed such Gandharvas as deserved to be killed. Those
-who remember this story have no fear from serpents. Such was the
-blessing of the elemental serpents.
-
- Yuvansva
- |
- Mndht
- |
- --+----------------------+--+-----------------------+---
- | | |
- Purukuta Ambarisha Muchukunda
- m. Narmod (adopted by Yuvansva) (Yogin)
- | |
- Trasadasya Youvansva
- | |
- Anaranya Hrita
- |
- Horyasva
- |
- Praruna
- |
- Tribandhana
- |
- Satyavrata or Tri Sanku
-
-Tri Sanku became a Chandla by the curse of his father. Rishi Visvmitra
-lifted him up to Svarga in his own mortal body. Tri Sanku is still
-visible in the heavens. The devas turned him with his head downwards and
-attempted to throw him down. Visvmitra by his power has retained him
-there.
-
-[Tri Sanku is a constellation in the southern hemisphere.]:
-
- Tri Sanku
- |
- Haris Chandra
-
-Haris Chandra had at first no issue. He prayed to Varuna for a son,
-promising to offer him as a sacrifice to the Water-god. The king had a
-son named Rohita (Red). Varuna asked for his victim. Ten days passed
-away. "Without teething the child will not be pure." There was teething.
-"When these milk teeth fall away, then will be the time." The milk teeth
-fell off. "Let other teeth grow." Other teeth did grow. "But he is a
-Kshatriya boy. He can be pure only when he is fit to put his armour on."
-
-The king put off Varuna from time to time in this way, out of affection
-for his son. Rohita came to know of his father's promise. To save
-himself, he took a bow and went to the forest. There he learned that his
-father had an attack of dropsy, the disease caused by Varuna. So he
-prepared himself to go back, but Indra prevented him by persuasive
-words. He was put back from year to year by Indra, till his 6th. year.
-He then made his way to the king. He purchased from Ajgarta his second
-son Snahsepha. He saluted his father and offered the child. King Haris
-Chandra appeased Varuna by human sacrifice and got rid of his dropsy. In
-that sacrifice, Visvmitra was the Hot, Jamadagni was the Adhvaryu,
-Vasistha Brahm and Aysya was the Udgta. Indra being pleased gave a
-golden chariot to the king. Visvmitra taught tm Vidya to Haris
-Chandra and he attained liberation.
-
-[The story of Haris Chandra in this Purna follows the vedic version.
-The gist of the story is that in the course of further evolution the
-Devas were to be propitiated by human sacrifice. But this sacrifice did
-not mean killing. It was the complete offering of oneself up to the
-service of the gods. The mission of the human victim is to constantly
-work for the good of the Universe and to extinguish his own personality.
-Snahsepha was not killed in the sacrifice. He was offered up to the
-service of the gods. After the sacrifice, he was called Devarta _i.e._
-one offered to the Devas. Visvmitra adopted Devarta as his own son and
-he asked his hundred sons to accept him as their eldest brother. He
-disowned those sons that did not obey him (Bhgavata IX-16). Therefore
-Visvmitra took the principal part in this sacrifice and not Vasistha,
-though he was the family preceptor.]
-
- Haris Chandra
- |
- Rohita
- |
- Harita
- |
- Champa (founder of Champ)
- |
- Sudeva
- |
- Vijaya
- |
- Bharuka
- |
- Vrika
- |
- Bhuka
-
-His enemies dispossesed Bahuka of his kingdom. He went to the forest
-accompanied by his wives. When he died, the eldest queen prepared
-herself for death also. Rishi Aurva knew her to be big with child, and
-dissuaded her from accompanying her husband on to the funeral pyre. The
-co-wives of the queen, out of jealousy, gave her poison. The child was
-born with this poison, therefore he was called Sagara (Sa = with, gara =
-poison.) Sagara became a great king. The Seas were dug by his sons. He
-was prevented by Rishi Aurva from taking the lives of the Tlajanghas,
-Yavanas, Sakas, Haihayas, and Barbars. But he made them change their
-outward look. He performed an Asvamedha sacrifice as advised by Aurva
-and Indra stole the sacrificial horse.
-
-Sagara had two wives Sumati and Kesini. The 60 thousand sons of Sumati
-searched for the horse on all sides. They dug the earth's surface and
-made the Seas. They found the horse near Kapila. They took him to be the
-stealer of the horse and abused him. For this they were all burnt up.
-
-Kesini had one son Asamanjas by Sagara. Ansumat was son of Asamanjas. He
-was attached to his grandfather Sagara. Asamanjas was a Yogin in his
-former birth. He therefore wanted to avoid company by means of provoking
-acts. He threw down some children into the Saraju. His father Sagara was
-thus compelled to forsake him. By Yogic powers, be brought back the
-children thrown into the Saraju, and left his father for ever.
-
-Ansumat was also sent by Sagara to search for the horse. He found the
-horse and a heap of ashes near Kapila. He saluted Kapila and glorified
-him. The Avatra was pleased. He permitted Ansumat to take away the
-horse. He also informed him that his burnt-up Pitris could only he saved
-by the water of the Gang.
-
-Sagara completed the sacrifice with the horse. He made over the kingdom
-to Ansumat and attained Mukti.
-
-Ansumat made Tapas for the downward flow of Gang but without success.
-He was followed by his son Dilipa. He also did not succeed. Bhagiratha
-was the son of Dilipa. He prayed hard and Gang appeared in person
-before him. "Child, I am pleased with thee. What boon do you ask for"?
-Bhagiratha told her what he prayed for. "But who shall arrest my course,
-when I fall down. If not arrested I will pierce the earth and reach
-Rastala. Again if I pass over earth, men will wash away their sins in
-my waters. Where shall I wash away those sins, O King? Therefore do thou
-ponder well what to do." Said Bhagiratha: -- "The touch of Sdhus shall
-take away thy sins. For Vishnu, the destroyer of sins, remains in them.
-Thy downward course shall be arrested by Rudra." Siva was pleased by the
-prayer of Bhagiratha, and he consented to hold Gang.
-
-Gang came rushing down and she was taken by Bhagiratha to where the
-ashes of his Pitris lay. The very touch of her waters purified the sons
-of Sagara and they went to Svarga.
-
- Bhuka
- |
- Sagara
- m. Sumati | m. Kesini
- --+----------+-------------------+--
- | |
- 60 thousand Asamanjas
- sons |
- Ansumat
- |
- Dilpa
- |
- Bhgiratha
- |
- Sruta
- |
- Nbha
- |
- Sindhu Dvpa
- |
- Ayutyu
- |
- Rituparna (friend
- of Nala)
- |
- Sarvakma
- |
- Sudsa
- |
- Soudsa or Mitrasaha
- or Kalmshapada
- _m_. Madayanti.
-
-Once there lived two Rkshasas. Soudsa killed one and did not kill the
-other. The surviving Rkshasa, bent on taking revenge, entered the
-service of Soudsa as a cook. When the king entertained Vasistha, he
-gave him human flesh to eat. The Rishi became angry and caused Soudsa
-to become a Rkshasa. When he learned however it was the doing of a
-Rkshasa, he reduced the king's Rkshasa life to 12 years. The king also
-held out water for the execration of Vasistha. His queen prevented him.
-So he threw the water at his own feet. His feet became black with sin.
-While living as a Rkshasa, the king saw a Brhmana and his wife in
-their privacy, and he attacked the Brhmana. The wife reminded the king
-of his former birth and requested him not to deprive her of her husband
-at the time of enjoyment. The king heeded not her words but devoured the
-Brhmana. The Brhmana woman cursed Soudsa so that he should meet with
-death whenever he had female connection. On the expiry of 12 years,
-Soudsa reverted to his former birth, but for fear of the curse he had
-no connection with women. Vasistha at the request of Soudsa produced a
-son by his wife, Madayanti. The conception lingered for 7 years.
-Vasistha struck the womb with a stone (Asman) and the son was hence
-called Asmaka. The son of Asmaka was Blika. He was the surviving
-kshatriya, after the extirpation of that caste by Parasurma. Hence he
-was called Mlaka also (the root of a race).
-
- Soudsa
- |
- Asmaka
- |
- Blika or Mlaka
- |
- Dasaratha
- |
- Aidavidi
- |
- Visvasaha
- |
- Khatvnga
-
-Khatvnga was a very powerful king. He killed Daityas as a friend of the
-Devas. The Devas offered him a boon. The king wanted to know how much
-longer he was to live. Learning it was a Muhurta only, he returned
-forthwith to his place and concentrated his mind on Bhagavn. He
-attained Mukti.
-
- Khatvnga
- |
- Dirgha-bhu
- |
- Raghu
- |
- Aja
- |
- Dasaratha
- |
- --+-+------+-----------+------------+--
- | | | |
- RMA Lakshmana Bharata Satrughna
-
-(The story of Rma as told in the Rmyana is widely and universally
-known. It is therefore unnecessary to repeat that story from the
-Bhgavata Purna.)
-
- Dasaratha
- |
- --+---+-------------+-------------+--------------+---
- | | | |
- RMA Lakshmana Bharata Satrughna
- | | | |
- +-----+ --+----+-----+-- --+-------+-- --+--------+--
- | | | | | | | |
- Kusa Lava Angada Chitraketu Taksha Pushkala Subhu Srutasena.
-
-
- Pushpa Kusa
- | |
- Dhruva Sandhi Atithi
- | |
- Sudarsana Nishada
- | |
- Agni varna Nabha
- | |
- Sighra Pundarika
- | |
- Maru Kshema Dhanvan
- |
- Devnika
- |
- Aniha
- |
- Priytra
- |
- Balasthala
- |
- Vajra nbha (incarnation
- of Srya).
- |
- Sagana
- |
- Vidhriti
- |
- Hiranya nbha (disciple
- of Jaimini and
- Yogachrya
- Teacher of Rishi
- Yjnavalka in
- Yoga)
-
-_Manu has matured in Yoga. He now resides at Kalapa._ _Towards the end
-of Kaliyuga he shall restore the Solar dynasty._
-
- Maru Vatsa-Vriddha Sutapas
- | | |
- Prasusruta Prativyoma Amitrajit
- | | |
- Sandhi Bhnu Bridharaj
- | | |
- Amarshana Divka Barhi
- | | |
- Mahasvat Sahadeva Kritanjaya
- | | |
- Visvabhu Brihadasva Rananjaya
- | | |
- Prasenajit Bhnumat Sanjaya
- | | |
- Takshaka Pratikasva Sakya
- | | |
- Brihadbala, killed Supratika Suddhoda
- at the battle of | |
- Kurukshetra by Marudeva Langala
- Abhimanyu | |
- Sunakshatra Prasenajit
- (Time of Parikshit) | |
- | Pushkara Kshudraka
- Brihat-rana | |
- | Antariksha Sumitra
- Vatsa-vriddha |
- Sutapas
-
-Sumitra shall be the last of the Ikshvku dynasty in this Kali Yuga.
-
-Nimi was the second son of Ikshvku. He asked Vasistha to officiate at
-his Yajna. But the Rishi had been pre-engaged with Indra. So he asked
-the king to wait till he came back. Considering the uncertainty, Nimi
-did not wait for his family Purohita. But engaged another priest.
-Vasistha on returning became offended and cursed Nimi with the loss of
-his body. Nimi gave the same curse to Vasistha. So both gave up their
-bodies. Vasistha was reborn shortly after as the son of Mitravaruna by
-Urvasi. The Rishis picked up the body of Nimi and placed it with the
-scented things of Yajna. On the completion of the Yajna, the Rishis
-prayed to the Devas for the vivification of the body. But Nimi said from
-within the scented things that he did not want to be encumbered with the
-body any more. The Devas said: "Then remain in the eyes of all beings as
-winking." So Nimi remains in the twinkling of eyes.
-
-The Rishis churned the body of Nimi and a son was born. He was called
-Janaka. As he was born, when his father was bodiless (_videha_) he was
-also called _Vaideha_. The churning also gave him the name of Mithila
-(Manth = to churn). He built the town Milhil. (Mithil is the modern
-Tirhut).
-
- NIMI Marti
- | |
- Janaka Pratipa
- | |
- Udvasu Kritaratha
- | |
- Nandivardhana Devamirha
- | |
- Suketu Visruta
- | |
- Devarta Mahadhriti
- | |
- Brihadratha Kritirta
- | |
- Mahvirya Mahrman (large-haired)
- | |
- Sudhriti Svarnaroman (gold-haired)
- | |
- Dhrishtaketu Hrasvaroman (short-haired)
- | |
- Haryasva Sira-Dhvaja
- |
- Maru
-
-While ploughing the ground for sacrifice, Sira-Dhvaja got Sita at the
-end of the plough. Therefore Sira (plough) being his Dhvaja (flag,
-proclaimer of fame), he was called Sira Dhvaja.
-
-(This Sira-Dhvaja is the renowned Janaka of Rmayana.):
-
- Sira-Dhvaja
- |
- Kusa-Dhvaja
- |
- Dharma-Dhvaja
- |
- --+-+---------------+---
- | |
- Krita-Dhvaja Mita-Dhvaja
- | |
- Kesi-Dhvaja Khandikya
-
-Kesi Dhvaja was versed in tm-vidya, Khandikya was versed in Vedic
-Karma, Kesi Dhvaja overpowered Khandikya and he fled away.
-
- Kesi-Dhvaja Upa-guru
- | |
- Bhanumat Upa-gupta (incarnation of Agni)
- | |
- Sata-dyumna Vasvananta
- | |
- Suchi Yuyudha
- | |
- Sanadvaja Subhashana
- | |
- Urja-ketu Sruta
- | |
- Purujit Jaya
- | |
- Arishta nemi Vijaya
- | |
- Srutayu Rita
- | |
- Suparsva Sunaka
- | |
- Chitraratha Vitahavya
- | |
- Kshemadh Dhriti
- | |
- Samaratha Bahulasva
- | |
- Satyaratha Kriti
- |
- Upa-guru
-
-These kings of Mithila were well versed in tm-vidya.
-
-
-
-THE LUNAR DYNASTY.
-
-
-*SKANDHA IX. CHAP. 14.*
-
-Soma (the Moon) was born out of the eyes of Atri. He carried off Tra,
-the wife of Brihaspati (Jupiter). Brihaspati asked for his wife several
-times, but Soma would not give her up. Sukra (Venus) was not on good
-terms with Brihaspati. So he took the side of Soma, with his disciples,
-the Asuras. Siva with his Bhtas took the side of Brihaspati. Indra with
-the Devas also sided with their preceptor. The two parties engaged in
-fight. After some days of fight, Angiras informed Brahm about every
-thing that transpired. Brahm reproached Soma. So he returned Tra to
-Brihaspati. Brihaspati found that Tra had conceived. "Immediately throw
-out the seed of another man in my field," cried he. Tra feeling bashful
-brought forth at the time a lustrous son, Both Brihaspati and Soma
-desired to have the son, each saying "It is mine not yours." When they
-quarrelled with each other, the Devas and Rishis asked Tra who was the
-father of the child. The child reproved his mother for the delay in
-answering. Brahm took Tra aside and learned from her that Soma was the
-father of the son, Soma then took the child. Brahm seeing the deep
-wisdom of the child named him Budha (Mercury).
-
-Budha had by Il one son Pururavas. Nrada related his beauty and his
-virtues to the Devas in Svarga. Urvasi heard all that and took a fancy
-for the king. By the curse of Mitra Varuna, she had then a human form.
-Both the king and the Apsaras became attached to each other and they
-lived as husband and wife. But Urvasi laid down two conditions of her
-company with the king -- (1) that the king was to preserve two rams,
-which the Apsaras had brought with her and (2) that the king was never
-to expose himself before her except in privacy. Indra sent the
-Gandharvas in search of Urvasi. They found her out and took away her two
-rams. She had a maternal affection for these animals and she cried out
-in despair. The king hurriedly took his arms and ran after the
-Gandharvas. They left the rams and fled away. The king brought them
-back. But in the hurry, he had forgot to cover himself and Urvasi left
-him. The king became disconsolate, and roamed about in search of her.
-After some days he found her on the banks of the Sarasvati with her 5
-companions. He entreated her to come back. She promised to give her
-company to the king one night every year and informed him of her
-delicate state of health.
-
-Urvasi came after a year, with one son. She advised the king to entreat
-the Gandharvas for her hands. The king did so and the Gandharvas became
-pleased with him. They gave him one Agnisthli (pot of fire). The king
-took the Agnisthli to be Urvasi and roamed with it in the forest. (The
-Gandharvas gave him the fire for the performance of sacrifice necessary
-for the attainment of Urvasi). The king found out his mistake at last.
-He then placed the fire in the forest, went home and meditated every
-night on Urvasi. On the approach of Tret, he was inspired with the
-three Vedas (Karma-Knda). He then went to the place of fire and found
-there one Asvatha tree (the sacred fig) grown from inside a Sami tree
-(Sami is the name of a tree said to contain fire). He decided that the
-fire must be within the Asvatha tree. He took two pieces of wood
-(technically called Arani) from that tree and produced fire by their
-friction. He deemed one piece to be Urvasi and another piece to be
-himself and the space between the two pieces to be his son. By friction,
-the fire called Jatavedas came out. (_Vedas_ is wealth, enjoyments in
-general. _Jta_ is grown. Jata-vedas is that fire from which enjoyments
-proceed that which gratifies all sense-desires. It is the chief fire of
-the Karma-knda of the Vedas). By the invocation of the three vedas,
-that fire became three fold. (havaniya, Grhapatya, and Dakshin are
-the three fires perpetually kept in the household. _havaniya_ is the
-eastern fire which represents the relations of the house holder with the
-Devas. _Grhapatya_ is the sacred fire which the householder receives
-from his father and transmits to his descendants and from which fires
-for sacrificial purposes are lighted. It represents household and family
-duties. _Dakhina_ is the southern fire. It represents all classes of
-duty to the Pitris). The king imagined this threefold fire to be his son
-(The son by his offerings sends his father's soul to Svarga. The
-sacrificial fire also sends the performer to Svarga). With that fire, he
-performed Yajna desiring to reach the Loka (plane) of Urvasi. Prior to
-this in Satya Yuga, Pranava was the only Veda, Nryana was the only
-Deva, there was only one fire and only one caste. The three Vedas came
-only from Pururavas, at the beginning of Treta Yuga. The king attained
-Gandharva Loka by means of the fire. (In Satya Yuga, Satva generally
-prevailed in men. Therefore they were all fixed in meditation. But in
-Treta Yuga, Rajas prevailed and by the division of the Vedas, Karma
-Mrga made its appearance. _Sridhara_.)
-
-[The true history of the origin of the three Vedas is thus given in
-veiled words. They originated in the strong desire of men in Treta Yuga
-for the possession of heavenly things. This gives us about two millions
-of years at the present day. The origin of the Vedas must not be
-confounded however with their existence in the present form. For that we
-must refer to the sacrifice of Haris Chandra, the adoption of Sunah
-sepha by Visvmitra and the division amongst the Madhu Chandas
-brothers.]
-
- Purravas
- _m_. Urvasi
- |
- --+-----------+-----------+----------+---------+----------+--
- | | | | | |
- yus Srutyus Satyyus Raya Vijaya Jaya
- | | | | |
- Vasumat Srutanjaya Eka Bhima Amita
- |
- Knchana
- |
- Hotraka
-
-
- Hotraka
- |
- Jahnu (He swallowed up the
- | Gang in her downward
- | course and let her out
- | though his thighs).
- |
- Puru
- |
- Balka
- |
- Ajaka
- |
- Kusa
- |
- --+-----------+---+----+-----------+--
- | | | |
- Kusmbu Tanaya Vasu Kusanbha
- |
- Gadhi
- |
- Satyavati
-
-Rishi Richika asked for the hand of Satyavati. Gadhi did not consider
-him to be a fit husband for his daughter. He therefore wanted to put him
-off and said: -- "Give a dower of one thousand horses, with the lustre
-of moon all over their body and with one of their ears dark-coloured
-(Syama). For we are sons of Kusika."
-
-The Rishi went to Varuna and got the horses. He gave them to the king
-and married Satyavati.
-
-Satyavati and her mother both asked Richika to prepare _Charu_ for the
-birth of a son to each. (_Charu_ is an oblation of rice, barley, and
-pulse, boiled together. It is offered to Devas and Pitris). Richika
-prepared two charus and consecrated one with Brhmana Mantra and the
-other with Kshatriya Mantra. The Rishi then went to bathe himself. In
-the meantime, the mother thought, the daughter's Charu must be superior
-to hers. So she procured that from her daughter and the daughter partook
-of her mother's Charu. When the Rishi returned and learned what had
-taken place, he said to his wife: -- "What an improper thing you have
-done by this exchange of Charus! You shall have a fierce and terrible
-son, while your brother shall be the greatest in divine wisdom."
-
-Satyavati prayed to her husband, saying "Let it not be so." The Rishi
-then said, "Then your grandson shall be all that."
-
-Jamadagni was born of Satyavati. She became the river Kausiki.
-
-Jamadagni married Renuk the daughter of Renu.
-
-Jamadagni had several sons, Vasumat and others. The youngest was Rma
-(Parsurama). He is said to be an Incarnation of Vishnu. He destroyed the
-Haihaya Kshatriyas. He cleared the earth of Kshatriyas twenty one times.
-
-Krtaviryarjuna was the chief of the Haihaya clan. He got yogic powers
-from Datta-Atreya and also one thousand heads. He was very powerful. He
-was hospitably received one day by Jamadagni, with the objects yielded
-by his Kma-Dhenu (a cow that yields all objects of desire). The king
-longed to have the cow and forcibly carried her away. Parasurma killed
-the king in battle and carried back the cow. The sons of the king out of
-revenge killed Rishi Jamadagni while Parasurma and his brothers were
-out. Incensed by this conduct of the Haihayas, Parasurma killed all the
-Kshatriyas on account of their iniquities.
-
-Jamadagni on his death became the Seventh Rishi in the constellation of
-the Seven Rishis.
-
-Parasurma will become one of the Seven Rishis in the next Manvantara.
-He bides his time, with axe in hand, on the Mahendra mountain.
-
-Gadhi had his son Visvmitra. Though a Kshatriya, he became a Brhmana
-by his Tapas. He had one hundred sons. The mid son was Madhuchhandas.
-But they were all called Madhuchhandas. Visvmitra adopted as his son
-Sunahsepha, son of Ajigarta of the clan of Bhrigu after he had been
-offered up to the Devas and the Rishi asked his sons to accept him as
-their eldest brother. Sunahsepha had been purchased as the victim of
-Haris Chandra's sacrifice. He prayed to the Devas and to Prajpati and
-got liberation. In the clan of Gadhi, he was known as Devarta. In the
-clan of Bhrigu, he was called Sunahsepha. The elder sons of Visvmitra
-did not accept him. So the Rishi cursed them to become Mlechhas.
-Madhuchhandas with the youngest 50 did as asked by the Rishi.
-
-The other sons of Visvmitra were Ashtaka, Harita, Jaya, Kratumat and
-others.
-
- GDHI
- |
- --+---------------------+------------+--
- | |
- Satyavati Visvmitra
- m. Richika |
- | --+------------+---+-----------+---
- Jamadagni (adopted) | |
- | Devarta 100 sons Ashtakja
- Parasurma including & others
- Madhuchhandas
-
-
-
-THE LUNAR DYNASTY (Continued).
-
-
-*SKANDHA IX. CHAP. 17.*
-
-yus was the eldest son of Pururavas. His line is now given.
-
- Pururavas
- |
- yus
- |
- --+-------------+----------+---+------+--------+--
- | | | | |
- Nahusha Kshatra-Vriddha Raji Rabha Anena
- | | | |
- Suhotra 500 Sons Rbhas Suddha
- | | |
- | Gambhira Suchi
- --+---------+-----+----+-- | |
- | | | Akriya Chitraka
- Ksya Kusa Gritsamada | |
- | | | Brahmvit Santarajas
- Kasi Prati Sunaka
- | | |
- Rashtra Sanjaya Sounaka
- | |
- Dirghatamas Jaya
- | |
- Dhanvantari Harnabala
- (promulgator |
- of yur Veda Sahadeva
- and a sub |
- Incarnation Hina
- of Vishnu.) |
- | Jaya Sena
- Ketumat |
- | Saukriti
- Bhimaratha |
- | Jaya.
- Divodasa
- |
- Dyumat (also called Pratardana
- Satrujit and Ritadhvaja)
- |
- Dharmaketu
- |
- -+-+--------------------+--
- | |
- Alarka others
- (reigned for 66000 years)
- |
- Santati
- |
- Sunitha
- |
- Niketana
- |
- Dharmaketu
- |
- Satyaketu
- |
- Dhrishtaketu
- |
- Sukumara
- |
- Vitihotra
- |
- Bharga
- |
- Bhargabhumi
-
-Raji defeated the Asuras and made over Svarga to Indra. Indra placed
-Raji in charge of Svarga. Raji died and his sons did not return the
-kingdom of Svarga to Indra. Brihaspati made invocation against them and
-they were all easily killed.
-
-SKANDHA IX. CHAPS. 18-19.
-
- Purravas
- |
- yus
- |
- --+--------------+----------+---+--------+---------+--
- | | | | |
- Nahusha Kshatra-vridha Raji Rabha Ann
- |
- --+--------------+--------------+--------+---------+-------+--
- | | | | | |
- Yati Yayti Saryti yati Viyati Kriti
-
-Sarmistha was the daughter of the Dnava king Vrishaparvan. Devayni was
-the daughter of Sukra, the preceptor of the Dnavas. They quarrelled
-whilst playing with each other and Sarmistha threw Devayni into a well.
-King Yayti happened to pass by the way and he rescued her. She became
-attached to the king and married him. Sukra became displeased with the
-Dnavas for the ill treatment of his daughter by Sarmistha. And to
-please the preceptor and his daughter, Vrishaparvan had to make over his
-daughter and her companions to Devayni as her constant attendants. So
-they accompanied Devayni to the place of Yayti. Sukra warned Yayti
-however not to have any intercourse with Sarmistha. But the king did not
-heed the warning. He had two sons Yadu and Turvasu by Devayni and three
-sons, Druhya, Anu and Puru by Sarmistha. Devayni complained to Sukra
-and by the curse of the Rishi the king was attacked with the infirmities
-of old age. The Rishi was subsequently pleased to say that the king
-might exchange his infirmities with another. Yayti called his sons one
-by one and they all declined to comply with his request except the
-youngest son Puru. So he exchanged his infirmities with Puru and lived
-as a young man. At last he found that no amount of gratification of the
-senses produced satiety and being disgusted with the pleasures of life,
-made over to Puru his youth and took upon himself his own infirmities.
-He made over the south east to Druhya, the east to Yadu, the west to
-Turvasu and the north to Anu. He then made Puru his successor and went
-into the forest.
-
-SKANDHA IX. CHAP. 20.
-
- YAYATI
- |
- --+---------+----------+------+--+-------+--
- | | | | |
- Yadu Turvasu Druhya Anu Puru
- |
- Janamejaya
- |
- Prachinvat
- |
- Pravira
- |
- Manasyu
- |
- Chrupada
- |
- Sudyu
- |
- Bahugava
- |
- Sanyti
- |
- Ahanyti
- |
- Raudrsva
- by Apsaras Ghritachi
- |
- --+---------+-----------+----------+-+---------+--------
- | | | | | |
- Riteyu Kaksheya Sthandileyua Kriteyu Jaleyu |
- | |
- Rantinbha --+---------+----------+-----------+-------++
- | | | | | |
- | Sateyu Dharmeyu Sannatyeyu Vrateyu Vaneyu
- |
- --++-----------------+--------------------+---
- | | |
- Sumati Dhruva Apratiratha
- | |
- Rebhi Kanva
- | |
- Dushmanta (the famous Medhtithi
- lover of Sakuntal daughter |
- of Visvmitra by Menak, Pras Kanna and other
- hero of Kali Dasa's drama.) Brhmanas
- |
- Bharata
- (Sub-Incarnation of Vishnu)
-
-Bharata had three wives, all of Vidarbha. One of them bore a son to the
-king, but he pronounced the child to be unlike himself. The wives of the
-king killed their children for fear of their being called illegitimate.
-Bharata gave Yajna offerings to the Maruts and to Soma (Moon) that he
-might be blessed with a Son. The Maruts gave him Bharadvja as his son.
-Brihaspati (Jupiter) produced Bharadvja on Mamat (Egoism), the wife of
-his brother Utathya. The parents deserted the child and he was brought
-up by the Maruts. Bharadvja being adopted by Bharata was called
-Vitatha.
-
- BHARADVJA OR VITATHA
- |
- MANYU
- |
- ---+-----------------+---+----------+------------+-----------+--
- | | | | |
- Brihat-Kshatra Jaya Mahvirya Nara Garga
- | | | |
- Hastin Durita-Kshaya Sankriti Sani
- (founded Hastinpur, | | |
- modern Delhi) | --+--+----+-- |
- | | | | |
- --+---+----------+-----------+-- | Guru Rantideva |
- | | | | |
- Ajamirha Dvimirha Purumirha | Grgya
- (See next page) | | (became
- | ---+------------++----------+--- Brhmana)
- | | | |
- | Trayyprni Kavi Pushkarruni
- | (Brhmana) (Br) (Br)
- |
- Yavinara
- |
- Kritimat
- |
- Satyadhriti
- |
- Dridhanemi
- |
- Suprsva
- |
- Sumati
- |
- Sannatimat
- |
- Kriti (arranged
- Prchasma in to 6
- Sanhits)
- |
- Niha
- |
- Ugryudha
- |
- Kshemya
- |
- Suvira
- |
- Ripunjaya
- |
- Bahuratha
-
-Rantideva gave to others whatever he had and had nothing left for
-himself. He and his dependents remained without food for forty-eight
-days. On the morning of the 49th. day he got some _ghee_, milk,
-prepared barley, and water. While he was going to partake of that with
-the others, a Brhmana became his guest. He duly respected his guest
-and gladly gave him a share of the meals. When the Brhmana went away,
-he divided the remnant amongst his dependents and himself, and while he
-was going to eat, one Sdra became his guest. He gave him a share out
-of his own. When the Sdra went away, another man came with a number of
-dogs and Rantideva duly respected him and gave him what he could. Only
-some water now remained, sufficient for the drink of one man only. He
-was going to drink that water, when a man of the Pukvasa caste (a
-degraded mixed caste) came and pitifully asked for some water. "I do
-not ask for the eight Siddhis," exclaimed Rantideva "I do not ask for
-Nirvna. I only want that I may pervade all beings and suffer for them
-all their miseries, that they may be sorrowless. By parting with this
-water to save the life of this distressed man, my hunger, thirst,
-langour, giddiness, and distress are all gone." Kind hearted Rantideva
-gave even the water to the thirsty Pukvasa. Even Brahm and others
-could not distract him from his devotion to Vishnu. His followers all
-became Yogins devoted to Vishnu.
-
-(Is there some connection between Rantideva and Jesus Christ?)
-
- Ajamirha
- |
- --+------------+------+---------+-----------+--
- | | | |
- The Brahmans Brihadishu Nila Riksha (1)
- Priyamedha | |
- & c. Brihaddbanu Snti
- (Large Jaws) |
- | Susanti
- Brihatkya |
- Large sized) Puruja
- | |
- Jayadratha Arka
- | |
- Vishada Bharmysva
- | (His sons were
- Syenajit known as
- | Panchla) -----+-- Mudgala
- --+-----------+-+---------+ | (originator of the
- | | | | Maudgalya clan)
- Ruchirsya Dhridhahanu Ksya Vatsa |
- | +-- Yavinara
- Pra |
- | +-- Brihadvisva
- --+--+--------+-- |
- | | +-- Kampilla
- Prithusena Npa |
- | +-- Sanjava
- --+--+----------+--
- | |
- 100 sons Bhahmadatta
- (Yogin)
- |
- Vishvaksen
- (author of Yoga
- Sstra)
- |
- Udaksena
- |
- Bhalita
-
-
- Mudgala (continued from above)
- |
- --+-----------+--------+--
- | |
- Divodasa Ahalya
- | m. Gotama
- Mitrayu |
- | Sotananda
- Chyavana |
- | Satyadhriti (versed in
- Sudasa Dhanur Veda)
- | |
- Sahadeva Saradvat (saw Urvas and
- | his seed fell on a cluster
- Somaka of Sara grass from which were
- | born the pair).
- --+-------++----------+-- |
- | | | --+---+-------+--
- Jantu 93 sons Prishata | |
- | Kripa Krip
- Drupada m. Drona
- |
- Draupad
- |
- --+--+-----------+--
- | |
- Dhrishtadyumna others
- |
- Dhrishtaketu
-
-
-
-
- (1) RIKSHA
- |
- Samvarana
- _m_. Tapati daughter of the Sun
- |
- Kuru
- |
- --+-----------+---------+--+------+--
- | | | |
- Parikshi Sudhana Jahnu Nishadha
- | |
- Suhotra Suratha
- | |
- Chyavana Viduratha
- | |
- Kriti Sarvabhouma
- | |
- Uparichara Vasu Jaya Sena
- | |
- | Rdhik
- | |
- | Ayutayu
- |
- Uparichara Vasu Ayutayu
- | |
- | Akrodhana
- | |
- | Devtithi
- | |
- | Riksha
- | |
- | Dilipa
- | |
- | Pratipa --------------------------\
- | |
- | |
- --+---------++--------+-------+----------+-------+-- |
- | | | | | | |
- Brihadratha Kusmba Matsya Pratyagra Chedipa Others |
- | |
- --+-+---------+-- |
- | | |
- Kusagra Jar Sandha |
- | (was born in two parts. He was |
- Rishabha therefore thrown away out side. |
- | Jar a Rkshasha woman, united |
- Satyahita the two parts and made the child |
- | alive. Hence he was called |
- Pushpavat Jarsandha). |
- | |
- Jahu --+----------+-----------+---/
- | | | |
- Sahadeva Devpi Sntanu Vhika
- | (gave up the world |
- Sompi and went to forest) Somadatta
- | |
- Sruta Sravas --+------------+-------------+---+--
- | | |
- Bhri Bhrisravas Sala
-
-Santana had in his former life the power by pass of his hands to make an
-old man young. He was therefore called Sntanu in this life. When he
-became king, there was drought for 12 years. The Brhmanas ascribed this
-to Sntanu's overlooking the claims of his eldest brother Devpi.
-Sntanu went to his brother. But in the meantime his minister had sent
-certain Brhmanas to Devpi and they dissuaded him from Vedic Dharma. He
-thus became unfit to be a king and the Devas then rained. _But Devpi is
-waiting at Kalpa for his future mission. The lunar dynasty will come to
-an end in the present Kaliyuga and Devpi will be the progenitor of the
-lunar Dynasty in the next Satyayuga._
-
- Sntanu
- By Gang | By Satyavati
- --+---------------------+---+----------------------+--
- | | |
- Bhishma Chitrangada Vichitra Virya
- (killed by a _m_. Amb and
- Gandharva) Amblik
- daughters of
- Ksirja
-
-Satyavati was the daughter of Uparichara Vasu by Matsyagandh. Before
-her marriage with Sntanu, Rishi Parsara had by her one son Krishna
-Dvaipyana, the renowned Vysa, father of Suka, the propounder of the
-Bhgavata Purna.
-
-As Vichitra Virya had no son, Satyavati asked Vysa to produce sons on
-his wives. They were Dhritarshra, Pndu, and Vidura.
-
- Dhritarshra
- _m_. Gandhari
- |
- --+----------------+----------+----+--
- | | |
- Duryodhana 99 Others Duhsal
-
-
- Pndu
- _m_. Kunti _m_. Madri
- | |
- --+---+---------+-----------+-- -----+------
- | | | |
- (By Dharma) (By Indra) (By Vayu) (By Asvini Kumars)
- Yudhisthira Arjuna Bhima | |
- Nakula Sahadeva
-
-YUDISTHIRA HAD:
-
- (1) By Draupad -- Prativindhya
- (2) By Pauravi -- Devaka
-
-BHIMA HAD:
-
- (1) By Draupad -- Srutasena
- (2) By Hidimb -- Ghatot Kacha
- (3) By Kli -- Sarvagata
-
-ARJUNA HAD
-
- (1) By Draupad -- Srutakirti
- (2) By Ulpi -- Iravat
- (3) By the princess
- of Manipur -- Vabhruvhana
- (4) By Subhadr -- Abhimanyu
- _m_. Uttar
- |
- Parikshit
-
-NAKULA HAD:
-
- (1) By Draupad -- Satnika
- (2) By Karenumat -- Naramitra
-
-SAHADEVA HAD:
-
- (1) By Draupad -- Sruta Karman
- (2) By Vijay -- Suhotra
-
-
- Arjuna Vrishtimat Durdamana
- | | |
- Abhimanyu Susena Mahinara
- | | |
- Parikshit Mahipati Dandapni
- | | |
- Janmaejaya Sunitha Nim
- | | |
- Satnika Nri Chakshus Kshemaka
- | |
- Sahasrnika Sukhinala
- | |
- Asvamedhaja Pariplava
- | |
- Asima Krishna Sunaya
- | |
- Nemi Chakra Medhvin
- (Hastinpura |
- shall be washed Nripanjaya
- away and he |
- shall reside at Durva
- Kousmbi) |
- | Timi
- Upta |
- | Brihadratha
- Chitraratha |
- | Sudsa
- Suchiratha |
- | Satnika
- Vrishtimat |
- | Durdamana
-
-_Kshemaka shall be the last of this approved line in the Kali Yuga._
-
-Now as to the Magadha kings.
-
- Jar Sandha Sama
- | |
- Sahadeva Dridhasena
- | |
- Mrjri Sumati
- | |
- Srutasravas Subala
- | |
- Yutyu Sunitha
- | |
- Naramitra Satyajit
- | |
- Sunakshatra Visvajit
- | |
- Brihat Sena Ripunjaya
- |
- Karmajit
- |
- Satanjaya
- |
- Vipra
- |
- Suchi
- |
- Kshema
- |
- Suvrata
- |
- Dharma Sutra
- |
- Sama
-
-This line shall be extinguished one thousand years after the death of
-Parikshit. (The future tense is used in the text with reference to the
-time of Parikshit.)
-
-*SKANDHA IX. CHAPS. 23.*
-
- YAYATI
- |
- --+---------+-----------++-------+---------+--
- | | | | |
- Yadu Turvasu Druhya Anu Puru
- |
- --+-------+------+----------+--
- | | |
- Sabhnara Chakshus Parekshu
- |
- Klanara
- |
- Janamejaya
- |
- Mah Sla
- |
- Mahmanas
- |
- --+--------------+------------+--
- | |
- Usinara Titiksha
- | |
- --+------+---+--+------+-- Rushadratha
- | | | | |
- Sivi Vara Krimi Daksha Homa
- | |
- --+--+----------+-------+------+-- Sutapas
- | | | | |
- Vrishrbha Subiua Madra Kekaya Bali
-
-Dirghatamas Rishi produced on Bali's wife Six sons -- Anga, Banga,
-Kalinga, Sambhu, Pundra and Odhra. These six sons founded kingdoms in
-their own names in the East.
-
-(Anga is the country about Bhgalpur. Banga is modern Bengal. Kalinga is
-the country between Jagannatha and the Krishna. Odhra is part of modern
-Orissa.)
-
- BALI
- |
- --+-------+---------+---------++--------+---------+--
- | | | | | |
- Anga Banga Kalinga Sambhu Pundra Odhra
- |
- Khalapna
- |
- Diviratha
- |
- Dharmaratha
- |
- Chitraratha.
-
-Chitratha was also called Romapda. He had no son. Dasaratha (father of
-Rma) was his friend. He gave his daughter Snt to Romapda. Snt was
-married to Rishi Rishya Sringa. That Rishi made a Yajna for Romapda and
-he had a Son Chaturanga born to him.
-
- Chitraratha or Romapda
- |
- Chaturanga
- |
- Prithulksha
- |
- Brihadratha
- |
- --+-------------------+-----------------+--
- | | |
- Brihadratha Brihatkarman Brihatbhanu
- |
- Brihanmanas
- |
- Jayadratha
- |
- Vijaya
- |
- Dhriti
- |
- Dhritavrata
- |
- Satkarman
- |
- Adhiratha
-
-(He adopted Karna of the Mahbhrata as his son, when he had been left
-by Kunti.)
-
- ADHIRATHA
- |
- Karna
- |
- Vrisha Sena
-
-
- YAYTI
- |
- Druhyu
- |
- Babhru
- |
- Setu
- |
- Arabdha
- |
- Gndhra
- |
- Dharma
- |
- Dhrita
- |
- Durmada
- |
- Prachetas
- |
- One hundred sons inhabiting the north as a Mlechcha race.
-
-
-
- YAYTI
- |
- Turvasu
- |
- Bahni
- |
- Bharga
- |
- Bhnumat
- |
- Tribhnu
- |
- Karandhama
- |
- Marutta (adopted Dushmanta of the
- line of Puru as his son, but
- Dushmanta reverted to his own
- line.)
-
-
-
-
- YAYTI
- |
- Yadu
- |
- --+------------+-----------+---------+--
- | | | |
- Sahasrajit, Kroshta, Nala, Ripu,
- |
- Satajit
- |
- --+-+----------+----------+--
- | | |
- Mahahaya Renuhaya Haihaya
- |
- Dharma
- |
- Netra
- |
- Kunti
- |
- Sohanji
- |
- Mahishmat
- |
- Bhadra sen
- |
- --+------+-------+--
- | |
- Durmada Dhanaka
- |
- --+-------------+-------------+--------------+--
- | | | |
- Kritavirya Kritgni Kritavarman Kritaujas
- |
- Arjuna
- (Learned Yoga from Datttreya. Had one
- thousand sons of whom only 5 survived.)
- |
- --+------+-----+-------------+----------+---------+--
- | | | | |
- Jayadhvaja Srasena Vrishabha Madhu Urjita
- | |
- Tlajangha --+-----+--------+--
- | | |
- Vitihotra and 99 other sons Vrishni 99 other sons
- called Tla Janghas. They
- were killed by Sagara.
-
-
-
- YADU
- |
- Kroshtu
- |
- Vrijinavat
- |
- Svhita
-
-
- Svhita (Continued)
- |
- Visadgu
- |
- Chitraratha
- |
- Sasavindu. (Had ten thousand wives
- and one laksha sons by each wife. Of these sons, six
- were famous: Prithu Sravas, Prithu Kirti, Punyayasas etc.)
-
-
-
- SASAVINDU
- |
- --+-------------------+-----------------+--
- | |
- Prithu-Sravas Others
- |
- Dharma
- |
- Usanas
- |
- Ruchaka
- |
- --+--------+-+----------+-----------+------------+--
- | | | | |
- Purujit Rukma Rukmesha Prithu Jymagha
- _m_. Saivy
-
- (The king carried away
- from Indra's place one girl
- Bhojya whom he married
- to his future son Vidarbha)
- |
- Vidarbha
- |
- --+-----------------+-------------+--------+----
- | | |
- Kusa Krathu Romapda
- | |
- Kunti Babhru
- | |
- Vrishni Kriti
- | |
- Nirvriti Usika
- | |
- Dasrha --+---+--------+--------+--
- | | | |
- Vyoma Chedi Damagosha Others
- |
- Jimta
- |
- Bhimaratha
- |
- Navaratha
-
-
-
- Navaratha (Continued)
- |
- Dasaratha
- |
- Sakuni
- |
- Karambhi
- |
- Devarta
- |
- Devakshatra
- |
- Madhu
- |
- Kuruvasa
- |
- Anu
- |
- Puruhotra
- |
- yus
- |
- Satvata
- |
- --+--------+------+-------+--+------+----------+---------+--
- | | | | | | |
- Bhajamat Bhaji Divya Vrishni Devavridha Andhaka Mohabhoja
- | | | (a) |
- --+--------+-------+----\ | Babhra The Bhojas
- | | | | |
- Nimlochi Kinkana Dhrishti | |
- --+-------+---------+----/ |
- | | | |
- Satajit Sahasrajit Ayutjit |
- |
- --+---------+-----------+--
- | |
- Sumitra Yudhjit
- |
- --+------+---+----------+--
- | | |
- Nighna Sini Anamitra
- | |
- --+---+---+-- |
- | | |
- Satrajita Prasena |
- |
- |
- /----------------------/
- |
- --+------+---+--
- | |
- Sini Vrishni
- | |
- Satyaka |
- | --+------------+--
- Yuyudhna | |
- | Svaphalka Chitraratha
- Jaya | |
- | | --+-----+-+--
- Kuni | | |
- | | Prithu Viduratha
- Yugandhara | (_c_)
- |
- --+---------+----------+--
- | | |
- Akrra 12 others Suchara
- |
- --++-----------+--
- | |
- Devavat Upadeva
-
-
-
- (_a_) ANDHAKA
- |
- --+-----------+----------+----------+-+--
- | | | |
- Kukura Bhajamat Suchi Kambalavarhis
- |
- Bahni
- |
- Viloman
- |
- Kapota-roman
- |
- Anu (Tumvaru was
- his friend)
- |
- Andhaka
- |
- Dundubhi
- |
- Avidyota
- |
- Punarvasu
- |
- --+--+----+--
- | |
- Ahuka Ahuk
- |
- --+------+--
- | |
- Devaka Ugrasena (_b_)
- |
- --+-----------------------------------------------
- |
- (1) Devavat. (2) Upadeva. (3) Sudeva. (4) Devavardhana.
- (5) _Dhritadev_. (6) _Sntideva_. (7) _Upadev_. (8) _Srideva_.
- (9) _Devarakshit_. (10) _Sahadev_. (11) _Devak_.
- (Vsudeva married all the Sisters)
-
-
-
- UGRA-SENA.
- |
- --+--------+---------+--------++-------+------+----------+-----
- | | | | | | |
- Kansa Sunama Nyagrodha Kanka Sanku Suhu Rshtrapala
-
- --+---------+------------------+----------
- | | |
- Dhrishti Tushtimat 5 Sisters married to the
- brothers of Vsudeva.
-
-
-
- (c) VIDURATHA
- |
- Sra
- |
- Bhojamat
-
-
-
- Bhojamat (Continued)
- |
- Sini
- |
- Bhoja
- |
- Hridika
- |
- --+-------------++-----------------+--
- | | |
- Devamirha Satadhanu Kritavarman
- |
- Sura
- _m_. Mrish
- |
- --+-----------+-+---------+----------+--------+----------+-----\
- | | | | | | |
- Vsudeva Devabhga Devasravas Anaka Srinjaya Symaka |
- |
- --+---------+---------+---------+-----------+--------/
- | | | | |
- Kanka Samika Vatsaka Vrika 5 daughters
-
- The five sisters of Vsudeva were:--
-
- (1) _Prith_, married to Pndu
-
- (2) _Srutadeva_, married to Vriddha Sarman
- Dantavkra
-
- (3) _Sruta Krti_, married to Dhrishtaketu
- |
- --+---+-------+--
- | |
- Santardan 4 sons
-
- (4) _Sruta Sravas_, married to Damaghosha of Chedi
- |
- Sisupla
-
- (5) _Rjdhidevi_, married to Jayasena
- |
- --++----------+--
- | |
- Vinda Anuvinda
-
- The five sisters of Kansa were married to the 5
- brothers of Vsudeva. They were:--
-
- (1) _Kans_, married to Devabhga.
- |
- --+-------+-----+--
- | |
- Chittaketu Brihadbala.
-
- (2) _Kansavat_, married to Deva Sravas.
- |
- --+-+-----------+--
- | |
- Suvra Ishumat
-
-
-
- (3) _Kank_, married to Kanka.
- |
- --+---+------+-----------+--
- | | |
- Vaka Satyajit Purujit.
-
- (4) _Rshtrapl_, married to Srinjaya.
- |
- --+--+--------+-----------+--
- | | |
- Vrisha Durmarshana Others.
-
- (5) _Srabhmi_, married to Symaka.
- |
- --+----+---------+--
- | |
- Harikesa Hiranyksha.
-
- As to the other brothers of Vsudeva, Vatsaka had by
- Apsaras--Misrakesi, Vrika and other sons.
-
-
-
- VATSAKA
- _m_. MISRAKESI
- |
- --+------------------------+--------------------+--
- | |
- Vrika Others
- _m_. Durvakshi
- |
- --+---------------+--------------------+--
- | | |
- Taksha Pushkarasla Others.
-
-
- Samika
- _m_. Sudmni
- |
- --+------------------+------+-----------+--
- | | |
- Sumitra Arjunapala Others.
-
-
- Anaka
- _m_. Karnika
- |
- --+------------------------+----------+--
- | |
- Ritadhman Jaya
-
-
- Vsudeva had several wives. Their names and the names of
- their sons are given below:
-
-
- 1. _Rohini_
- |
- --+--------+------+-------+----+--+-------+-------+------+--
- | | | | | | | |
- BALADEVA Gad Srana Durmada Vipula Dhruva Krita Others
-
-
- 2. _Paurav_
- |
- --+----------+----------+------+-+------+---------+--
- | | | | | |
- Subhadr Bhadrabahu Durmada Bhadra Bhta 7 Others.
-
-
- 3. _Madir_
- |
- --+---------+-----------+-------+-+-------+--
- | | | | |
- Nanda Upananda Kritaka Sura Others.
-
-
- 4. _Bhadr_
- |
- Kesin.
-
-
- 5. _Rochan_
- |
- --+---------------+--------+--------+--
- | | |
- Hasta Hemngada Others
-
-
-
- 6. _Il_.
- |
- --+---------------------+-----------+--
- | |
- Uruvalka Others.
-
-
- 7. _Dhritadev_
- |
- Vipristh.
-
-
- 8. _Sntidev_
- |
- --+-----------+-----------+------+--
- | | |
- Prasama Prathita Others.
-
-
- 9. _Upadev_
- |
- --+-----------+-----------+------+--
- | | |
- Rjanya Kalpa-Varha Others.
-
-
- 10. _Srdev_
- |
- --+---------+----------+---+------+--
- | | | |
- Vasu Hansa Suvansa Others.
-
-
- 11. _Devarakshit_
- |
- --+------------------------+------+--
- | |
- Gada Others.
-
-
- 12. _Shahadev_
- |
- --+-------------+---------+------+--
- | | |
- Pravara Srutimukhya Others.
-
-
- 13. _Devaki_
- |
- --+---------+----------+-------+-+---------+----------+----\
- | | | | | | |
- Kirtimat Sushena Bhadrasena Riju Sanmardana Bhadra |
- |
- --+----------------+-------------+--------------/
- | | |
- Sankarshana KRISHNA Subhadr.
-
-With the birth of Sri Krishna, we come to the end of the Ninth Skandha
-of the Bhgavata Purna. But for the completion of the racial account,
-we give here only the 1st. Chapter of the 12th. Skandha.
-
-*SKANDHA XII. CHAP. 1.*
-
-We have seen Ripunjaya to be the last of the Magadha kings. He will be
-also called Puranjaya (The future tense, it must be remembered, is used
-solely with reference to the time of Parikshit). His minister Sunaka
-shall kill him and place his own son Pradyota on the throne.
-
- Pradyota
- |
- Palaka
- |
- Viskha
- |
- Rjaka
- |
- Nandivardhana
-
-These 5 kings of the line of Pradyota shall reign for 138 years.
-
- Nandi Vardhana Ajata-Satru (Contd).
- | |
- Sisunaga Darbhaka
- | |
- Kkavarna Aj-aya
- | |
- Kshemadharma Nandi Vardhana
- | |
- Kshetrajna Mahanandi
- | |
- Vidhisara Saisunaga
- |
- Ajta-Satru
-
-These ten shall reign for 360 years--Mahanandi shall have a son, Nanda,
-by a Sdra woman. He shall be the next king. One Brhmana Chnakya shall
-kill Nanda and his eight sons and shall place Chandra Gupta on the
-throne.
-
- Chandra Gupta
- |
- Vrisra
- |
- Asokavardhana
- |
- Suyasas
- |
- Dasaratha
- |
- Sangata
- |
- Slisuka
- |
- Soma-Sarman
- |
- Satadhanvan
- |
- Brihadratha
-
-These ten kings called Mauryas shall reign for 137 years. Pushpamitra,
-Commander of Brihadratha's forces, shall kill his master and be king
-himself. He shall be the founder of the Sunga dynasty.
-
- PUSHPAMITRA
- |
- Agnimitra
- |
- Sujyestha
- |
- --+---------------------+-----------------+--
- | | |
- Vasumitra Bhadraka Pulinda
- |
- Utghosha
- |
- Vajramitra
- |
- Bhgavata
- |
- Devabhti
-
-These (10) ten kings of the Sunga dynasty shall reign for 112 years.
-Vsudeva, the minister of Devabhuti, shall kill his master and become
-himself the king.
-
- VASUDEVA
- |
- Bhmitra
- |
- Nryana
- |
- Susarman
-
-These four kings shall be called Knvas. They shall reign for 345 years.
-Susarman shall be killed by his servant Balin, a Sdra of the Andhra
-clan, who shall himself usurp the throne. Balin shall be succeeded by
-his brother.
-
- --+------------+--
- | |
- Balin Krishna Anishta Karman Gomati
- | | |
- Srisntakarna Haleya Purmat
- | | |
- Pournamsa Talaka Medasiras
- | | |
- Lambodara Purishabhru Sivasknda
- | | |
- Chivilaka Sunandana Yajnasri
- | | |
- Meghasvti Chakora Vijaya
- | | |
- Atamana 8 Bahus Chandravijna
- | ending in Sivasvti |
- Anishta Karman Salomadhi
-
-These thirty kings of the Andhra dynasty shall rule the earth for 456
-years. Seven bhiras, kings of Avabhriti, ten Gardabhins (men of
-Gardabha) and sixteen Kankas shall then be the rulers. They shall be
-followed by 8 Yavanas, 14 Turushkas and ten Surundas. These 65 kings
-shall reign for one thousand and ninety nine years. Eleven Moulas shall
-then be the kings for 300 years.
-
-Bhuta-Nanda, Bangiri, Sisunandi and Yaso-Nandi shall then become kings.
-Their sons, all known as Bhlikas, shall succeed them. Then Pushpamitra
-shall be the king, then his son Durmitra. Seven Andhras, seven Kosalas,
-Vidurapatis and Nishadhas shall then become kings, at one and the same
-time, over the lands of these names. They shall be the descendants of
-the Bhlikas.
-
-Visvasphrji, otherwise called Puranjaya, shall be the king of the
-Magadhas. He shall make havoc of the caste system. His chief town shall
-be Padmavati (Modern Patna) but his kingdom shall extend from Hardwar to
-Pryag.
-
-Then there shall be Sdra and Mlechcha kings.
-
-
-
-THOUGHTS ON THE VAIVASVATA MANVANTARA.
-
-
-The study of the Vaivasvata Manvantara can be pursued, as to minor
-details, from more than one stand-point. But I am at present concerned
-with only the broad outlines of its esoteric aspect.
-
-We are to understand, in the first place, that there are certain types
-of human races in this as in other Manvantaras. Each of these types has
-a history of its own. Each has its stages of growth, rise and decline,
-and some have their periods of revival in this Manvantara as well. Each
-racial type has to be studied separately.
-
-The connection of the races with the Sun and the Moon requires a little
-consideration.
-
-Those who are acquainted with Hindu astrology know that the life time of
-a man is divided into certain divisions, each division being under the
-influence of one planet. Each planetary period again has its
-sub-divisions, in each of which there is a secondary run of the planets.
-
-According to the Bengal School, the main planetary run takes 108 years
-for its completion, and according to another school, it takes 120 years.
-
-The following is the order of planetary succession according to the
-second school, which prevails all over India, except in Bengal: --
-
-Sun 6 years, Moon 10, Mars 7, Rhu 18, Brihaspati 16, Saturn 19, Mercury
-17, Ketu 7 and Venus 20. Thus if a man lives for 120 years, all the
-planets will in turn have influenced his life in the above order,
-commencing from the planet of his birth. Again there will be
-corresponding sub-runs of all the planets during each planetary run. The
-races are also governed by such planetary influences.
-
-The Solar Dynasty means that the particular type of humanity so denoted
-was born under the influence of the solar planet. When all the planets
-have in turn exercised their influence over this Dynasty, it disappears
-for a time and is re-born under the influence of the Sun.
-
-Similarly there will be a revival of the Lunar dynasty -- that which
-commenced under the influence of the Moon.
-
-The law of planetary influence over the human races is not as clearly
-known as that over individual men. Otherwise the future history of each
-race would not be the sealed book to us which it is.
-
-The humanity of the present Manvantara was first born under the
-influence of the Solar Planet. Our Moon is the son of the Sun-God.
-
-The races that first appeared were called Solar races.
-
-Other races appeared under the influence of the Moon. In these races we
-find first the influence of Brihaspati or Jupiter, through his wife
-Tra, then of Budha or Mercury, and lastly of Sukra or Venus, through
-his daughter Devayni.
-
-This planetary succession may be only a Sub-run of the planets. We read,
-in the account of the previous Manvantaras, of the appearance of Sukra
-as the guide of the Daityas, and of Brihaspati as the guide of the
-Devas. We have also read of the appearance of Rhu in the sixth
-Manvantara. This shews that the main planetary round has to be found in
-the Kalpa itself.
-
-Our knowledge on the whole subject is however so poor that it is unsafe
-to make any distinct suggestion.
-
-Now we shall take the Solar Races, or the sons of Vaivasvat Manu, in
-order of their treatment in the text. _Prishadhta_ and _Kavi_ were the
-first spiritual races. They did not marry _i.e._ there was no sexual
-reproduction among them.
-
-Next in order was the _Krusha_ race inhabiting the north.
-
-The _Dhrshtas_ were also a spiritual race (Brhmanas).
-
-The descent towards Materiality commenced with Nriga. He is said to have
-been transformed into a lizard. His grandson was _Bhtajyot_, Bhtas
-being different forms of matter. _Vasu_ is a God of Material wealth.
-_Pratka_ means the reverse or opposite (_i.e._ the reverse of spirit.)
-_Ogha_ means a current. The current of materialism set in with the line
-of Nriga.
-
-The next line, that of Narishyanta, shews further materiality. Midhvat
-is that which wets (the root _mih_ means to pass water). _Viti_ is
-production, enjoyments. Vitihotra is the name of a sacrificial fire.
-_Agnivesya_ is an incarnation of Agni or the Fire-God, but he is
-nick-named Knina or son of an unmarried woman and also _Jtukarna_ (the
-name of a Vedic Rishi). There seems to have been sexual procreation in
-this line. The incarnation of Agni further indicates that the present
-human form was complete, for Agni is the form-giving energy in Nature.
-
-In the next line of _Dishta_ we have _Vatsapriti_ or affection for
-children, _Pransu_ or tall, _Pramati_ or full-grown intellect,
-_Khanitra_ or digger, _Chkshusha_ or the eyed, and _Khaninetra_ or the
-hollow-eyed. This line represents the race of the earliest diggers, very
-tall, with the hollow eye predominant in them as a characteristic
-feature; this race was very powerful and capable of direct communion
-with the Devas, and the gods acted as waiters in the Yajna of Marutta.
-
-The line of Saryti refers to narta and a town named Kusasthal, built
-in the midst of the Sea. Evidently the continent on which the race
-flourished is now under water. narta is supposed to be Sourshtra
-(modern Surat.) But the site of Kusasthal cannot be ascertained. There
-were remnants of this race till the time of Krishna, for Balarm married
-Revati, the daughter of Kakudmin (hump-backed). The line of Nabhaga is a
-short one and it merged itself into that of Angiras who was the father
-of Brihaspati or Jupiter. Ambarisha is the prominent figure of this
-period.
-
-Then we come to the line of _Ikshvku_. This is the best known line of
-the Solar races. It flourished during the last Tretayuga. _Ikshvku_ is
-called the eldest son of Manu. Perhaps this has reference to the
-appearance of the Race in the previous Manvantaras.
-
-The eldest son of Ikshvku is Vikukshi (_Kukshi_ is womb.) He is also
-called Sasada or the Rabbit-eater. The Moon is called Rabbit-marked.
-
-_Puranjaya_ is the son of Vikukshi. He is called Indra-Vha or
-Indra-Vehicled. Several of the kings of this dynasty befriended the
-Devas of Svar Loka.
-
-Further down we find King _Purukutsa_ forming an alliance with the
-elemental serpents, and holding communion with the dwellers of Rastala.
-The river Narvad is mentioned in connection with Rastala.
-
-_Mndht_ is a traditional name that has been preserved upto this time
-in common parlance in the saying "As old as king Mndht." The line of
-Mndht was divided into three different branches. _Muchukunda_
-represented a branch of Yogins. The long, unbroken sleep of Muchukunda
-is traditional and he is credited also with Yogic powers. Another branch
-that of Ambarisha, Youvansva and Hrita represented a spiritual
-sub-race. But we have to follow the history of the Atlanteans through
-Purukutsa. The connection with Rastala, or the plane of Material
-ascendancy, affected the destiny of this line. In Trisanku, the
-aspiration ran very high. He became a Deva, but had his head turned
-downwards, _i.e._ turned towards materiality. With the powers of a Deva,
-but with the aspirations of an Asura, the ground was prepared for the
-downfall of this line. For a time, however, the Race flourished in all
-its materiality. The alliance between Devas and men became cemented by
-the performance of Vedic sacrifices. This was the first spiritual
-advance of the human race, through the temptations of Svarga life.
-
-The time of Haris Chandra is the Vedic era, when the earliest Riks of
-what we know as Rigveda were composed. Visvmitra and his disciples were
-the Vedic Rishis of this age. The Vedas tried to curb the riotous course
-of materiality by prescribing a number of restrictions on the enjoyment
-of material desires. Elaborate rules were laid down as to how the
-desires might be best gratified for a prolonged period in Svargaloka, by
-the performance of sacrifices or Yajna. The whole of the life of the
-regenerate classes was regulated by rigid laws and a glowing picture was
-given of life in Svarga after death. The sacred injunctions were not,
-however, potent enough to check the Kmic tendencies of the race and the
-cyclic law which now required the spiritual evolution of humanity was
-continually disregarded by the race. This was poison (_gara_) to the
-system of humanity and king Sagar imbibed this poison. Hence he was
-called the Poisoned. He had two wives. The sons of one wife were 60
-thousand in number. They offended Kapila, an Incarnation of Vishnu, and
-thus were all consumed. They reached the limit of material degradation,
-where final extinction awaited the race. The number 60,000 is
-suggestive.
-
-The extinction of Sagara's sons was attended with great changes on the
-earth's surface. It is said they dug the earth and made the seas in
-their search for the sacrificial horse. Hence the sea is called Sgara.
-This may refer to the sinking down of Atlantis when a large portion of
-that great continent became a sea-bed. There was a corresponding
-upheaval of land and the Himalayan chain reared up its head, as we can
-easily infer from the first appearance of the Ganges. The first flow of
-Gang indicated a many sided revolution in the appearance of the earth's
-surface. A new continent was formed to which India was attached as the
-prominent link. Spiritual sub-races grew up on the banks of the sacred
-river who more than atoned for the sins of their fathers. The
-fore-runner of the race of spirituality was Asamanjas (rising above the
-ordinary run). He was a Yogin not led away by the material tendencies of
-the age. His son was Ansumat (having the ray or light in him). Ansumat
-pacified Kapila.
-
-Gang is said to be a spiritual stream flowing from the feet of Vishnu.
-With the advent of this stream, the spiritual rebirth of humanity
-commenced in right earnest, for the remaining period of the Kalpa.
-Already the path had been paved by the Karmaknda of the Vedas, which
-put restrictions on the wanton and reckless performance of Karma or
-action. The pure magnetism of the holy river helped on the process of
-regeneration. But this was not in itself sufficient to cope with the
-forces of materiality. Accordingly we see _Kalmasha_ or sin appearing in
-the line of Bhagiratha. King Kalmashapda became a Rkshasa. A Rkshasa
-is an elemental of destruction. When mind becomes too much identified
-with the gross body and its desires, its connection with the Higher Self
-is liable to be cut off by the action of the Rkshasas. These forces of
-Tamas act in different ways to serve different purposes in the economy
-of the Universe. When the material downfall of man reaches its furthest
-limit in the Kalpa, the Rkshasas become Tmasic forces in man and he is
-unconscious of his higher nature. That sleep in time becomes a permanent
-sleep, and the lower man becomes dead to his real Self. This is the real
-death of man, when the ray sent forth by shvara comes back to Him,
-without any spiritual harvest, and what constituted the personality of
-man dissolves into the Material Universe.
-
-The time had come when a fresh departure was necessary in the methods
-pursued by the Lil Avatras for the spiritual regeneration of the
-Universe. They had now to appear amongst men, as ordinary beings, to
-give direct teachings to their votaries, to infuse as much Satva as
-possible into humanity and to retard by all means the further extinction
-of the human race.
-
-For a time the Rkshasas reigned supreme, but not over the new
-continent, permeated as it was by the sacred waters of the Ganges. Their
-stronghold was Lank, the remnant of the Atlantean continent. Following
-the descent of Gang therefore, Vishnu incarnated himself as Rma, one
-of the greatest of his manifestations. The Rkshasas of Lank were
-killed. Vibhishana only survived, but he was allied to Rma and so
-became immortal in spirituality. The Rkshasa survives in us but its
-energy of dissolution does not militate against the evolution of man. It
-was Rma who first gave the idea of shvara to the degraded human races
-of the present Manvantara. They knew, for the first time, that there was
-one greater than all the Devas -- the Gods of the Vedas -- and that
-there were planes higher than even Svarga. The path of devotion was
-proclaimed. And it became possible for men to cross the limits of death
-and of Trilok by this quality. The downfall was stopped no doubt; but
-the ascent was only permanently secured by Lord Sri Krishna as we shall
-see later on.
-
-After Rma, there is little of interest in the line of Ikshvku. The
-decline commenced and the line became extinct with Sumitra, but it is
-said one king Maru of this line became an adept in Yoga and retired to
-Kalapa, where he bides his time to revive the solar dynasty towards the
-end of the Kaliyuga. We may take him to be the originator of another
-race which will be the re-incarnation of the Ikshvku race.
-
-We have considered the line of Ikshvku's descendants through Purukutsa.
-There is another line of his descendants through Nimisha. Then we come
-to the Lunar Dynasty.
-
-The Lunar races first appeared while the descendants of Ikshvku were
-still flourishing, though on the eve of their decline. They had immense
-possibilities of spiritual evolution, and the great Aryan race seems to
-be connected with them. The appearance of these races is almost
-simultaneous with the first flow of the Ganges. For we find Jahnu, who
-swallowed up the Ganges in her first terrestrial course, is only sixth
-in the line of descent from Pururavas.
-
-The Lunar dynasty originated in the union of Tr, the female principle
-of Brihaspati (Jupiter), and the Moon. The issue was Budha (Mercury),
-the direct progenitor of the Lunar dynasty.
-
-The son of Budha was Pururavas. He married Urvasi, the renowned Deva
-nymph.
-
-Pururavas had six sons. But we are concerned with only two of them, yus
-and Vijaya.
-
-Vijaya gave the Adept line of the race and yus, the ordinary humanity.
-
-In the line of Vijaya, we find Jahnu, purified by the assimilation of
-Gang, Visvmitra, pre-eminently the Rishi of the Rig Veda and one of
-the seven sages who watch over the destiny of the present Manvantara,
-Jamadagni, another of the seven sages of our Manvantara and Parasurma
-one of the coming sages of the next Manvantara. We have already
-mentioned the part taken by Visvmitra and his sons in the composition
-of the Vedic Mantras.
-
-Coming to the line of yus, we recognise the forefathers of the Aryan
-races.
-
-In the short-lived branch through Kshatra-vriddha, we find the Vedic
-Rishi Gritsamada, his son Snaka, the renowned Sounaka, Dirghatamas and
-Dhanvantari, the promulgator of yur-veda.
-
-But the longest history of the Race is through the descendants of
-Yayti.
-
-King Yayti married Devayni, the daughter of Sukra, the presiding Rishi
-of the planet Venus, and had by her two sons, Yadu and Turvasu. Sukra is
-the son of Bhrigu, the Rishi of Mahar Loka. Devayna, is the path
-leading beyond Trilok, after death.
-
-But the King had also connection with a Dnava girl, who brought forth
-three sons, Druhyu, Anu and Puru. For his Dnava connection, King Yayti
-had in youth to undergo the infirmities of age. This evil was
-transmitted to Puru, the youngest son of the Dnava girl.
-
-The line of Puru was short-lived. But it is this line that gave some of
-the renowned Vedic Rishis, viz. Apratiratha, Kanva, Medhtithi and
-Praskanva. Dushmanta, the hero of Kalidasa's renowned drama also came of
-this line. Vishnu incarnated in part as Bharata, son of Dushmanta.
-
-Then there was a revolution. Bharata found that his sons were not like
-unto himself. So the direct line of Puru came to an end. What followed
-is a little mysterious. Bharata adopted Bharadvja as his son.
-Bharadvja was begotten by Brihaspati (Jupiter) on the wife of his
-brother Utathya named Mamat (Egoism).
-
-Bharadvja is one of the seven presiding Rishis of the present
-Manvantara. His name is connected with several Mantras of the Rig Veda.
-
-The great actors in the Kurukshetra battle were the descendants of
-Bharadvja. We find much diversity of spiritual characteristics among
-them. The material and spiritual forces were gathered together, in all
-possible grades from the Pndavas downward to the sons of Dhrita-rshtra
-and their allies. The poetical genius of the author of the Mahbhrata
-has called forth characters in the Drama of the Kurukshetra battle, that
-stand out in all the details of real life and find a permanent place in
-the genealogy of the Lunar dynasty. The study of the racial account of
-the line of Bharadvja becomes therefore extremely difficult.
-
-The Lunar dynasty will be revived by Devpi, a descendant of Bharadvja,
-who is biding his time at Kalpa.
-
-The early inhabitants of Bengal, Behar and Urishy were the sons of Anu,
-the second son of Sarmisth. The famous Kma, one of the heroes of
-Kurukshetra, also belonged to this line.
-
-The eldest son of Sarmisth by Yayti was Druhyu. Prachetas of this line
-had one hundred sons, who inhabited the north as Mlechha races.
-
-But the greatest interest attaches to the line of Yadu, the eldest son
-of Yayti by Devayni. The early descendants of this line were the
-Haihayas, killed by Parasurma, and the Tlajanghas, killed by Sagar --
-both of the Solar Dynasty. The Mahbhrata has given an importance to
-the overthrow of these early Yadu classes as a victory of the Brhmanas
-over the Kshatriyas. Next to the Brhmanas in intelligence were the
-Kshatriyas. They eagerly accepted the teachings of Rma, who incarnated
-as one of them. They knew svara as higher than the Devas and the
-Brhmanas. They thought they could profitably employ their time in
-seeking after the knowledge of Brahmn. This necessarily offended the
-orthodox Brhmanas, who performed the Vedic sacrifices and had no higher
-ambition than to resort to Devaloka. The Kshatriyas thus represented a
-religious evolution, of which the Upanishads were an outcome. In time,
-some Brhmanas even became disciples of Kshatriyas. Both Rma and
-Krishna incarnated themselves as Kshatriyas. We are to understand that
-by Kshatriyas, during this period of Puranic history, is meant seceders
-from Vedic Karma Knda more or less.
-
-The early seceders, the Haihayas and Tlajanghas were put down by the
-Brhmana Parasurma and by the Kshatriya King Sagar, who espoused the
-cause of Vedic Karma Knda and of the Brhmanas, represented by Rishi
-Aurva of this time.
-
-Parasurma did not like any meddling with Vedic Karma Knda by persons
-not perfected in wisdom. Even Rma had to respect the Vedic Rishis and
-had to protect them in the performance of Vedic sacrifices from the
-attacks of Asuras and Rkshasas. When Lord Krishna appeared on the
-scene, the Asuras still survived; the Vedic Rishis denied offerings to
-Him, Vedic Karma had a strong supporter in Jarsandha, there was
-hypocrisy in the name of religion, and there were pretensions in various
-forms. On the other hand great improvements had been made in the proper
-understanding of the realities of life and of the laws of nature.
-Intellect overflowed in many channels of thought, and the religious
-nature of man found vent in all directions from atheism to religious
-devotion.
-
-Leaving this general resume, we may now enter upon a closer study of the
-history of religious movements in our present Manvantara, so that we may
-understand the great work done by Lord Sri Krishna. The races live as
-individuals live. However developed an individual may be, when he is
-re-born after death, he first becomes a child as any other child. There
-is much of spiritual life in the child, and sometimes pictures of
-heavenly life are presented to his spiritual vision, which are denied to
-to the grown-up man. The child begins his life when he is grown up, and
-then his individual characteristics soon manifest themselves. We do not
-read much of the man in the child. Hence the history of the early
-spiritual races, who were infants in the racial life, does not teach us
-anything. We find some of them had communion with the Devas of Svarga
-Loka, but that is more on account of their infant spirituality than any
-thing else.
-
-When the races developed in time, they became most intellectual as well
-as most material at the same time. Manvantara after Manvantara was taken
-up in developing the physiological (Pranic) activities, the sense
-(Indriya) activities, and then the lower mental activities of the Jivas.
-The personal man was fully developed in the sixth Manvantara and the
-great churning only opened the door for another line of development. The
-possibility of spiritual activity was secured to men by Krma.
-
-When the races of the Sixth Manvantara therefore became reborn in the
-Seventh Manvantara, they were the most intellectual of all races, but
-they had also the power given to them of developing spiritual faculties.
-They could not however shake off the Asuric element all at once. They
-were extremely fond of material joys, and they devised all means, which
-human intellect could contrive, of gratifying material desires. That was
-right which gave material gratification; that was wrong which militated
-against material enjoyment.
-
-Bhuvar Loka is the plane of animal desires. The human beasts go after
-death to Bhuvar Loka. They do not possess anything which could take them
-to Svarga Loka.
-
-The Svarga Loka is for those who develop in themselves the faculty of
-discriminating between right and wrong, and who do or attempt to do what
-is right. Far more it is for those who love others and who do good to
-them. For service and love pertain to planes higher even than Svarga.
-But in the higher planes, service is unselfish and love is divine. The
-lower forms of service and love pertain to the plane of Svarga. In
-Svarga there is selfishness, but it is mixed with spirituality. It is
-only the good, the virtuous, the devoted that go to the plane of the
-Devas and there gratify their higher desires to their heart's content.
-There are divine music, divine beauty, divine objects of gratification
-in Svarga Loka -- allurements enough for a man of desire. And if his
-merits be great, he enjoys the things of Svarga Loka for an enormously
-long period.
-
-But a man by bare intellectuality can not cross the threshold of Svarga.
-The Devas reject the intruder. However much Trisanku might aspire to
-have the enjoyments of Svarga, and however great his intellect might be,
-he was not allowed to enter the coveted plane, without the passport of
-spirituality. Humanity had still to learn the proper means of securing
-life in Svarga.
-
-Poor and chance spiritual acquisitions give only a passing life in
-Svarga and that not of a superior character. So all the knowledge as to
-attaining Svarga life had to be revealed in time.
-
-The Rishis made great efforts to improve humanity by securing for them a
-prolonged existence in Svarga, most of all Rishi Visvmitra, one of the
-seven sages of our Manvantara. Visvmitra failed in his attempt to send
-Trisanku to Svarga. He then tried with his son Haris Chandra. It is said
-he advised the Rj to make a human sacrifice to Varuna. But we find the
-victim Sunah-sepha living after the sacrifice, under the name of
-Deva-rata, or one given up to the gods, and some of the Riks even were
-revealed to him. Haris Chandra succeeded in entering Svarga. That was a
-great victory for Rishi Visvmitra. The Vedas were revealed to the
-Rishis and sacrifices came to be known.
-
-Nrada also helped the cause in another away. He related the beauty and
-the virtues of king Purravas to the Devas in Svarga. Urvasi, the famous
-Deva nymph, hearing all that, became enamoured of the king. She had
-then, by the curse of some god, a human form. So she could keep company
-with the King. The king was enchanted by her beauty. When she left, he
-followed her advice and pleased the Gandharvas. The Gandharvas gave him
-the fire, with which the king could perform sacrifice. The fire became
-threefold. With one he could perform his duties to the Devas and go to
-Svarga Loka. With another, he could perform his duties to the Pitris.
-With the third fire, he could perform the duties of a house-holder. Thus
-sacrifices meant duties. And it is by the performance of duties that men
-can perform Vedic sacrifices and go to Svarga Loka.
-
-The Vedas laid down injunctions and prohibitions. They regulated the
-actions of men, propelled by Kma or desire. Men must eat meat. The
-Vedas said this meat was prohibited, but that could be used. Men mixed
-with women. The Vedas laid down restrictions. Even they regulated the
-relations between man and wife. Then the Vedas laid down the duties
-which men owed to all classes of beings. In order to induce men to
-accept the Vedic injunctions, the Vedas held out Svarga as the reward of
-Vedic Karma. They even favoured the belief, that there was to be
-immortal life in Svarga gained by the performance of Vedic Karma.
-Detailed rules as to the performance of Vedic sacrifices were given. So
-long as men did not aspire to become Indra, or the ruler of Svarga, the
-Devas were pleased with the sacrifices; they helped the performer as
-much as they could, giving them all objects of desire, and they welcomed
-them to Svarga, when they passed to that plane after death. The Devas
-were as friendly to the performer of Vedic Karma as they were unfriendly
-to the immature Trisanku.
-
-The Vedic Karma Knda became thus fully revealed. The revelation was
-made in the last Treta-yuga of the present Manvantara. "At the beginning
-of the Treta Yuga, the three Vedas were revealed through Pururavas." IX.
-14-49. "The path of Karma was promulgated in Treta Yuga, by the division
-of the Vedas." _Sridhara_.
-
-The great churning was justified. The Devas asserted themselves for the
-good of humanity. The Rishis got the revelation and helped men to place
-themselves in active relationship with the Devas. Men learned to
-regulate themselves and to give up the wantonness of material life. And
-they had a strong inducement to do so in the prospect of eternal life in
-Svarga. The great actor in this Vedic movement was Rishi Visvmitra,
-(Hallowed be his name!) Others followed him in quick succession, and
-there was a brilliant combination of Vedic Rishis who propounded the
-whole of the Karma Knda of the Vedas, as it was revealed to them by the
-force of Klpic necessity.
-
-At all times there have been two parties, one following the current of
-evolution, and another going against it. At all times there have been
-cavillers and sceptics.
-
-The Haihayas and Tlajanghas were confirmed materialists and great
-sinners. They ridiculed the Brhmanas, who performed Vedic Karma, and
-often set themselves in opposition to them. They were very troublesome
-to the Brhmanas. King Sagar wanted to extinguish the race, but he was
-prevented from doing so. Possibly Atlantis was the country inhabited by
-these races and Nature helped the cause of evolution by dragging down
-the continent itself under water. The sacred Gang also flowed at this
-time, spreading purity over all lands lying on her banks.
-
-The Haihayas however still flourished; and they had a great leader in
-Krta-Viryrjuna. Then came one of the great Avatras, Parasurma. He
-extirpated the Haihaya Kshatriyas, and went on killing the Kshatriyas
-till Rma appeared, and it was then that he thought his mission was
-over.
-
-If there were some Kshatriyas who disregarded the Vedas, there were
-others who found transitoriness, even in Svarga Loka, and honestly
-thought that the complete wisdom was not to be found in the Karma Knda.
-They were for further revelations At first, the Brhmanas did not look
-with favour upon these Kshatriyas. But when it was found that the
-Kshatriyas got real light, they were soon joined by the Brhmanas. The
-foremost of these Kshatriyas was Janaka, and the foremost of the
-Brhmanas was Yjnavalkya. The further revelations were called the
-Upanishads.
-
-King Janaka found Sit, the consort of Rma, at the end of his plough.
-Yjnavalkya defeated all the Brhmanas of his time in discussions held
-at the court of king Janaka.
-
-When Rma incarnated, there existed the people of Lank, a remnant of
-the Atlantean continent, who had inherited a mighty material
-civilisation, but who were called Rkshasas, on account of their gross
-iniquities. They reached the last point of material downfall, and lost
-all spirituality. They were called Rkshasas as final extinction was
-their lot, and as the force of dissolution was strong in them.
-
-Then there were the regenerate classes, who performed Vedic sacrifices.
-There were a few again, who accepted the Upanishads as a teaching, but
-they could not boldly declare themselves against the performance of
-sacrifices.
-
-Rma finally did away with the Rkshasas. The bard who sang his glory,
-the great Vlmiki, thus began his lay: -- "O Killer of birds, thou shalt
-not live for ever, as of the pair of storks thou hast killed the male,
-so passionately attached to his consort." Verily the Purusha in us, the
-ray of the supreme Purusha, becomes passionately attached to the element
-of Prakriti in us, so that we may acquire spiritual experiences through
-the body. And it is a cruel act to separate our Prkritic
-individualities completely from him by turning ourselves persistently
-away from the Purusha. But when Rma became an Avatra, the fate of the
-separator was sealed.
-
-When the Rkshasas were killed, the Rishis were left free to perform the
-Vedic sacrifices.
-
-Rma did something more. He married the daughter of Janaka, and by this
-act openly espoused the cause of the Upanishads.
-
-Lastly Rma offered Himself as an object of worship. This was the
-beginning of Vishnu worship, which makes no distinction between classes
-and castes. Rma openly made friendship with Guhaka, belonging to the
-lowest class, whom it was an abomination to touch, for Guhaka was
-devotedly attached to Him, as an Incarnation of Vishnu.
-
-The world admired Rma. No man could reach such eminence. He must be
-something more than a man. In time men accepted him as an Avatra. At
-any rate, he was an example to others in every respect. The ethical
-standard he laid down in his own life was unimpeachable. The world had
-never seen such sacrifices in the performance of the duties of life. A
-model king, a model son, a model husband, a model brother, a model
-warrior, a model friend, the model of models, Rma left an indelible
-mark as a religious and moral teacher, on the age in which he lived, and
-on all succeeding ages.
-
-The example was not lost on the world. The many-sided picture, that Rma
-presented, produced a spirit of enquiry, which has never been rivalled
-in this Kalpa. Men thought on different lines. They studied the
-Upanishads, which had been favoured by Rma. They could not forget also
-that Rma taught salvation for the performers of Vedic sacrifices. Then
-there was the teaching of his own life. The light was manifold.
-Independent schools of thought grew up, notably the six schools of
-philosophy. Each school tried to find its authority in the Upanishads
-and the divine scriptures supplied texts enough for all the schools.
-Every school found a part of the truth but not the whole truth. Yet each
-school regarded its own part as the whole. So they quarrelled. The
-Mimnskas said that the performance of Vedic sacrifices was all in all.
-It had the sanction of time-honored texts and of the most ancient
-Rishis. And Jaimini supplied the reasoning by which the practice could
-be supported. The Snkhyas said that the chief duty of a man was to
-discriminate between the transformable and the non-transformable element
-in him, and when that was done, nothing more was needed. The followers
-of Patanjali said that mere discrimination was not sufficient, but a
-continued practice was required. The Vaiseshikas studied the attributes
-and properties of all objects and sought by differentiation to know the
-truths. There were others who worshipped the Bhtas, Pretas and
-Pisachas, so that they might easily acquire powers. Others worshipped
-the dwellers of Svarga Loka. Some worshipped shvara. But mostly the
-worship of Siva was prevalent. Gifts and charities also were not
-unknown, in fact they were very extensive in some instances. But
-generally the object of all religious observances was self-seeking more
-or less.
-
-Amidst this diversity of religious ideas and religious observances,
-seemingly so contradictory, Sri Krishna, the greatest of all Avatras,
-appeared and He brought the message of peace and reconciliation. He laid
-great stress on the fact that the performance of Vedic sacrifices could
-lead us only to Svarga Loka, but when our merits were exhausted, we were
-bound to be born again on Bhr Loka, our Earth. While on Earth, we form
-fresh Karma, which gives rise to other births. The performance of Vedic
-Karma does not therefore free us from the bondage of births, for, as the
-Lord said, there is object-seeking in these performances. Object-seeking
-for one's own self does not find a place in the higher Lokas. Its
-highest limit is Svarga Loka. So long as man remains self-seeking, he
-can not transcend the limits of Trilok. In the higher Lokas, there is
-no recurrence of births and re-births. Once you are translated to Mahar
-Loka, you live for the whole of the remaining period of the Kalpa,
-passing through a gradual evolution to the higher Lokas. And if you form
-a devotional tie with the Lord of many Brahmndas, the First Purusha,
-even the Klpic period does not restrict your existence. Liberation is a
-relative term. It may be from the bondage of births and re-births in
-Trilok. It may be liberation from the bondage of Bvahmandas or solar
-systems. Those who worship only material objects remain chained to this
-earth. Those who worship the dwellers of Bhuvar Loka (Bhtas, Pretas,
-Pisachas and Pitris) or cultivate aspiration for them become allied to
-them and they pass only to Bhuvar Loka after death. Those who worship
-the Devas and cultivate this aspiration go to Svarga Loka after death.
-Those who worship Hiranya-garbha go up to Satya or Brahm Loka. Those
-who worship the Lord of all Brahmndas pass beyond even the Brahmnda.
-
-The first thing that a man should do is to transcend the limits of
-Trilok. This he cannot do as long as he is self-seeking. He should
-therefore perform his actions _unselfishly_. And the Lord said as
-follows: --
-
-1. There is the perishable and the imperishable element in us. Karma or
-actions appertain to the perishable element. The perishable element
-constantly changes, so it cannot be our real self or tm. From the
-stand-point of our real self, we can dissociate ourselves from our
-actions, which relate to our transitory nature. Here the system of
-Snkhya came into requisition.
-
-2. But by this discrimination, we can not forcibly stop the performance
-of actions. For the actions are propelled by (_a_) active tendencies
-which form an inseparable part of our present nature, and (_b_) by the
-necessity of our very existence. So by stopping actions, we force the
-tendencies to mental channels, and cause more mischief by producing
-mental germs for the future. And we cannot stop all actions, as some are
-necessary for our bare existence.
-
-3. Therefore we are to perform actions, and we can perform them
-unselfishly, if they are done from a pure sense of duty. We are to take
-duty as a law of our very existence. _Yajna_ is only another name for
-this law. The Lord of beings, having created all beings with the Yajna,
-said of yore, -- "You shall prosper by the performance of this Yajna and
-this Yajna shall be the producer of all desired objects for you." Yajna
-consists of mutual sacrifices, as all beings are dependent on one
-another. "Think of the Devas by means of Yajna, and the Devas shall
-think of you." All our actions may be classed under duties -- duties
-which we owe to the Devas, the Pitris, the sages, the animals and to
-other men. If we perform our Karma for the sake of Yajna only, we
-perform it unselfishly.
-
-4. As discrimination is useful in realising the real self, so restraint
-is necessary to put down the acquired self. The tendencies of the
-acquired self, if left to themselves, prompt men to ever recurring
-actions, which again produce their own effects, some of which develop
-into fresh tendencies or strengthen the pre-existing tendencies. So
-restraint is to be constantly practised. The object of restraint is to
-free the mind from thoughts of the object world and to fix it on the
-real self, tm. Here the system of Patanjali comes into requisition.
-But the system is to be accepted with this reservation that Yoga does
-not necessarily mean renunciation of Karma. It includes the unselfish
-performance of Karma and, for the average humanity, renunciation of
-Karma is harmful as an expedient of Yoga. Though there may be some who
-do not require Karma for themselves, yet they should not renounce it, if
-they want to set an example to others and not to confound their
-intellect.
-
-5. But the Prva Mimnskas say: Vedic Karma is all in all, and the
-authority of the Vedas is supreme. Here Sri Krishna had to assert
-Himself as an Avatra, and He asked people to accept His own authority.
-He said there was self-seeking in Vedic Karma, and one could not
-therefore avoid the recurrence of births by the performance of Vedic
-Karma. So Sri Krishna said to Uddhava: -- "If the Vedas say that men
-attain Svarga by the performance of Vedic Karma, it is simply by way of
-inducement, and not as pointing out the supreme end. The father says;
-'Boy, eat this bitter medicine and I will give thee this cake in my
-hand.' The boy takes the medicine for the sweet thing. But that really
-leads to his recovery from the disease. So the Vedas mean final
-liberation as the end. But to enforce restraint, they hold out the
-prospect of Svarga, which is most agreeable to men." (Elaboration of XI.
-21. 23.)
-
-Many were unwilling to accept the authority of Sri Krishna, and the
-chief amongst them was Sisupla.
-
-This was the teaching of Karma Yoga by Sri Krishna. But the unselfish
-performance of Karma is not all. It is only a negative virtue. It
-purifies the mind and frees it from the taint of selfishness. The mind
-then becomes prepared for the higher planes and becomes fit for the
-direct influence of shvara.
-
-So Sri Krishna gave to His disciples the true conception of svara. He
-told them svara was One, the source of all existence, all knowledge and
-all bliss. He told them how one svara pervaded the whole universe and
-became thus manifested through the Universe. He also pervaded all
-beings, and became manifested through these beings. The Universe and the
-Jiva were His Prakritis or bodies as it were. The Universe body was
-eight-fold in its character, beginning with that most susceptible to His
-influence and ending with the division most obtuse to that influence.
-This eight-fold Prakriti also entered into the constitution of Jiva. But
-there was something more in Jiva, -- the consciousness, the knower. This
-element was svara Himself, as limited by Jiva Prakriti, or Jiva body.
-The whole universe being the body of svara, His knowledge and powers
-were unrestricted, whereas the body of the Jiva, being limited and
-restricted, his powers and knowledge were also restricted.
-
-This highest conception of svara is not adapted for all. So Sri Krishna
-gave the conception of svara, as manifested by His powers, and as
-manifested in Time and Space, and lastly as He is manifested in the
-human body with four hands and the Crown, symbolising His lordship over
-the whole Universe.
-
-But this conception of svara is not enough. As man owes a duty to all
-beings, the performance of which is Karma, so he owes a duty to svara,
-and that duty is Upsan. All beings make sacrifices for one another,
-and so they owe duty to one another. But svara makes the greatest
-sacrifice for all beings and He holds all beings close to His bosom in
-each Kalpa, that they may work out their evolution under the most
-favorable circumstances. He waits for those that give up everything for
-His sake, and give themselves entirely up to Him, so that He may bear
-their Karma upon Himself and hasten their evolution to such an extent,
-that they may approach His own state. As svara gives Himself to the
-service of the Universe, so do His Bhaktas too. Men owe the highest duty
-to svara, and this they discharge by means of Upsan. Upsan is the
-law of being for all Jivas, when they reach the state of manhood.
-Surrender is the essence of Upsan, and this Sri Krishna taught to
-Arjuna.
-
-_When a man by performing his duties to other beings and to svara
-becomes purified and single minded, he is entitled to receive the final
-teaching, and not before._ And Sri Krishna gave that teaching at the
-very last to Arjuna. He said that Jiva and shvara were one in essence.
-It is the difference in Prakriti that makes all the difference between
-Jiva and shvara. When all the bonds of Prakriti are broken through,
-only Brahmn remains, the one reality, underlying both shvara and Jiva.
-When we become fixed, in this wisdom all is Brahmn, and final
-liberation is attained. This is the real teaching of the Upanishads, as
-embodied in Uttara Mimns. In this connection, Sri Krishna pointed out
-the fallacy of the Vaiseshika system in attempting to know the
-Attributeless, through the attributes.
-
-The highest wisdom of the Kalpa was revealed and the world resounds with
-all glory to Sri Krishna. The Rishis and Mahtms took up His work. All
-the religious movements and religious writings that have followed only
-reproduce His teachings.
-
-There was something however wanting in these teachings as given in the
-Mahbhrata -- the relation of Sri Krishna to His own Bhaktas. What He
-did for the Universe and how He did it are fully related in the great
-Epic. But what He did for those that had already given themselves up
-entirely to Him, who did not require the teaching of Karma, Upsan and
-Jnna, who were His own people, who knew no other Dharma than Himself,
-who had followed Him through ages, and who simply took births as He
-appeared on this earth, what Sri Krishna did for these Bhaktas, what His
-relations were with them, are not described in the Mahbhrata at all.
-The lordly side is given but not the sweet side. The picture of the Lord
-edifies and overawes, that of the Lover enchants and enthrals. The
-Bhgavata sings what the Mahbhrata left unsung. That is the peculiar
-significance of the Tenth Skandha which follows, the Skandha that
-maddens the hearts of all real devotees.
-
-
-
-
-THE TENTH SKANDHA.
-
-
-
-VRINDVANA LIL
-
-
-THE BIRTH OF SRI KRISHNA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 1-3.*
-
-_Said Suka_: -- The goddess Earth, being oppressed by the heavy load of
-tens of thousands of Daitya hosts, who were born as arrogant kings,
-sought the shelter of Brahm. She took the form of a cow, and with tears
-running down her cheeks, piteously related her grievances to the Lord of
-Creation. Brahm took Siva and the Devas with him, and went over to the
-Ocean of milk (Kshra Samudra), the abode of Vishnu. There he adored the
-Lord of Preservation and heard the Divine voice, which he thus explained
-to the Devas: --
-
-"Even before this, the Lord knew about the grievances of the goddess of
-Earth. Go, take your births, as parts of yourselves, in the clan of the
-Yadus. The Lord of Lords, by governing His Kla Sakti, shall appear on
-the Earth and relieve her pressure. The Supreme Purusha Himself shall be
-born in the family of Vsudeva. Let the Deva girls take their births for
-His gratification. The thousand-mouthed, self-illumining Ananta, who is
-only a part of Vsudeva, shall be the elder-born, that he may do what
-pleases Hari. Bhagavati, the My of Vishnu, who keeps the whole world
-under delusion, shall also incarnate in part, as desired by the Lord,
-for doing His work."
-
-Saying all this to the Devas, and giving words of consolation to the
-goddess of Earth, Brahm went back to his own abode.
-
-Sura Sena, the chief of the Yadus, ruled over the town of Mathur. Hence
-it became the chief seat of the Yadu kings. It is a sacred town, the
-constant seat of Hari.
-
-Once upon a time, at Mathur. Vsudeva drove in his chariot with his
-newly married wife Devaki. The marriage presents were innumerable.
-Kansa, the son of Ugrasena, held the reins of the horses himself, so
-eager was he to please his sister Devaki.
-
-On the way, an incorporeal voice, addressing Kansa, said: --
-
-"O ignorant one! the eighth child of her whom thou art now driving shall
-be thy slayer."
-
-The cruel Kansa instantly took sword in hand and caught Devaki by her
-hair.
-
-Vsudeva pacified him with these words: --
-
-"Thy virtues are well known. Why shouldst thou kill a female, thine own
-sister, at marriage. Death is certain, this day or a hundred years
-hence. Man takes body after body under the action of Karma, as he takes
-step after step in walking, or even as the leech takes blade after blade
-of grass in moving.
-
-"As in dream there is a reflex perception of what is seen and heard in
-waking, and as in that perception the man forgets his former self and
-becomes a reflex of that self, so a man gives up his former body and
-becomes forgetful of it.
-
-"To whatever body the mind is drawn by fruit -- bearing Karma, the Jiva
-assumes that body as its own.
-
-"The wind shakes the water and the Son or moon, reflected on its bosom,
-appears as if shaken. So by ascription, the Purusha has the attributes
-of the body. He who does evil to another has to fear evil from others.
-
-"This girl, thy younger sister, is motionless with fear. Thou art not
-entitled to kill her."
-
-But persuasion was of no avail, as Kansa was under the influence of the
-Daityas.
-
-Vsudeva then thought how he could ward off the present danger, leaving
-the future to take care of itself.
-
-Addressing Kansa he said: --
-
-"But, O King, thon hast no fear from her: Surely I would make over to
-thee her sons, from whom thou hast fear." Kansa desisted from his cruel
-act and Vsudeva went home with his bride, pleased for the time being.
-
-In time Devaki brought forth eight sons and one daughter.
-
-The truthful Vsudeva presented his first son Kirtimat to Kansa. The
-king admired the firmness of his brother-in-law and smilingly said: --
-"Take back this child. I have no fear from him. From your eighth born my
-death is ordained." "So let it be" exclaimed Vsudeva, and he took back
-his son. But he had very little faith in the words of Kansa.
-
-Kansa learned from Nrada that Nanda, Vsudeva and others of their dan,
-their wives and even the clansmen of Kansa, his friends and relatives,
-were partial incarnations of the Devas. He further learned from the
-Rishi that preparations were being made for the lolling of the Daityas,
-whose power menaced the Earth.
-
-When the Rishi left Kansa, he took all the members of the Yadu clan for
-Devas and every child of Devaki for Vishnu that was to kill him. He now
-confined Vsudeva and Devaki in his own house and put them in fetters.
-He put to death every son that was born to them.
-
-He knew himself to be Klanemi who had been, in another birth, killed by
-Vishnu. He fell out with the Yadus, deposed his own father Ugra Sena and
-became himself the King.
-
-With the alliance of the Mgadhas (people of Magadha or ancient Bihar)
-and with the help of Pralamba, Baka, Chnra, Trinvarta, Agha,
-Mushtika, Arishta, Dvivid, Ptan, Kesi, Dhenuka, Vna, Bhouma and other
-Asuras, Kansa tormented the Yadus. They fled away to the kingdoms of
-Kuru, Pnchla, Kekaya, Slva, Vidarbha, Nishadha, Videha, and Kausala.
-Some only remained behind and they followed the behests of Kansa.
-
-Six sons of Devaki were killed, one by one, by Kansa.
-
-The seventh, the abode of Vishnu, whom they call Ananta, appeared in the
-womb of Devaki, causing both joy and grief to his parents.
-
-Vishnu, the tm of all beings, knew the sufferings of His own
-followers, the Yadus, at the hands of Kansa. He summoned Yoga My and
-commanded her as follows. "Go forth, blessed Devi! to Vraja, which is
-adorned by Gopas and Gos (_Go_ is ordinarily a cow. _Gopa_, go and pa is
-a preserver of cow, a cowherd. Vraja or Go-kula was the chief town of
-Nan da, the king of the Gopas). Rohini, wife of Vsudeva, dwells in
-Gokula the kingdom of Nanda. Other wives of Vsudeva lie hidden at other
-places, for fear of Kansa. The child in the womb of Devaki is my Sesha
-named abode. Draw it out and place it in the womb of Rohini. I shall
-myself become the son of Devaki as a part of myself. Thou shalt be born
-of Yasod, the wife of Nanda. Men shall worship thee as the giver of all
-desires and boons, with incense, presents and sacrifices. They shall
-give thee names and make places for thee on the Earth. Durg,
-Bhadrakali, Vijay, Vaishnavi, Kamad, Chandik, Krishn, Madhavi,
-Kanyak, My, Nryani, sni, Srad and Ambik -- these shall be thy
-names. For thy _drawing out (Sankarshana)_ the child shall be called
-Sankarshana, He shall be called Rma, from his attractiveness (_ramana_)
-and Bala from his uncommon strength (_bala_)."
-
-"So let it be, Om!" said Bhagavati, and she carried out the behests of
-the Lord. By inducing the sleep of Yoga, she removed the child from the
-womb of Devaki to that of Rohini. People thought Devaki had miscarried.
-
-Then Bhagavn, the tm of the Universe, the dispeller of all the fears
-of his votaries, entered the Manas of Vsudeva in part. Devaki bore in
-her Manas this part of Achyuta, even as the East bears the moon. Her
-lustre being confined to the prison-room could not please others, even
-like fire confined as heat or like Sarasvati confined in the cheat who
-keeps his wisdom to himself. Kansa saw an unusual glow round his sister
-such as he had never witnessed before. He exclaimed "Surely Hari is born
-in this womb, He who is to take away my life. What shall I do this day?
-He comes on a mission and His energy will be all directed towards that
-end. Am I then to kill my sister? But the killing of a pregnant female,
-my own sister, will ruin my fame, my wealth and my life. By the
-performance of such a heinous act, one becomes dead even when alive. Men
-curse him for his evil deeds and after death he enters the regions of
-absolute darkness."
-
-Kansa by his own persuasion restrained himself from doing any violent
-act and he waited with feelings of bitterness for the time when Hari was
-to be born. But whether sitting or lying down, eating or walking, he
-thought of Vishnu and saw Him everywhere in the Universe.
-
-Brahm, Siva, the Rishis, the Devas adored Vishnu in the womb of Devaki.
-"True in thy will, attainable by Truth, the one Truth before, after and
-in creation, the root of the Universe, and underlying the Universe as
-its only Reality, Thou from whom all true sayings and true perceptions
-do proceed, Truth Thyself, we take Thy shelter."
-
-"The primal Jiva tree stands on the field of Prakriti. Joy and sorrow
-are its fruits. The three gunas (Satva, Rajas and Tamas) are its three
-roots. Dharma (the means of attaining objects), Artha (the objects),
-Kma (desires) and Moksha (freedom from desires), these are its fourfold
-juice, the five senses are its sources of perception, the six sheaths
-form its chief feature, the seven constituents of the physical body
-(_dhtus_) form its skin, the five Bhtas, Manas, Buddhi and Ahankra
-are its eight branches, the nine openings are its holes, the ten Prnas,
-or physiological functions, are its leaves and Jivtma and Paramtm are
-the two birds sitting on this tree. Thou art the one root of this tree,
-it ends in Thee and it is preserved by Thee. Those that are deluded by
-Thy My see manifold forms in place of Thy real self, but not so the
-wise. Thou art consciousness itself. For the good of the world, Thou
-dost assume Satva-made forms, which bring joy to all good people and woe
-to the evil-minded."
-
-"O Lotus-eyed, thou art the abode of Satva. Thy votaries, by
-concentrating their minds on Thee and by resorting to Thy feet which
-serve as boats to them, make an easy ford of this Ocean of recurring
-births (_Sansra_)."
-
-"O Self manifest, the Ocean of recurring births, which is formidable and
-unfordable to others, gives way before Thy votaries, even at the mere
-touch of the boat of Thy feet. So while they cross themselves, even
-without the boat, they leave that boat for others, for they have
-boundless compassion for other beings." (_i.e._ Thy votaries lay down
-the path of Bhakti. _Sridhara_.)
-
-"There are others (followers of the Path of wisdom) who consider
-themselves liberated (_Mukta_). But their intellect is impure as they
-have no Bhakti in Thee. By ascetic efforts they rise to (near about) the
-Supreme abode, but (being overpowered by obstacles) they fall down, by
-their disregard of Thy feet."
-
-"But Thy votaries, O Madhava, never slip away from Thy path for they are
-bound by their attachment to Thee and Thou dost preserve them. So
-fearlessly they tread over the heads of Vinyaka hosts. (The Vinyaka
-are elementals who are supposed to cause obstacles to all good works)."
-
-"Thy body is pure Satva, for the preservation of the Universe. That body
-becomes the means of attaining the fruits of (devotional?) karma. It is
-by reason of that body that men are able to worship Thee by means of
-Veda, Kriy Yoga, Tapas and Samdhi." (There could be no worship, if no
-body had been assumed. Hence there could be no _attainment of the fruits
-of Karma, Srdhara_. This is not intelligible, if ordinary Karma is
-meant.)
-
-"If this Satva body of Thine had not existed, direct perception would
-not be possible. For through Thy manifestations in (the world of) the
-Gunas, thoughts can (at last) reach Thee. The Gunas only relate to Thee
-and are themselves manifested by Thee." (By devotion to the pure Satva
-body, the mind partakes of its character _i.e._ becomes purely Stvic.
-Then by the favor of Vishnu, there is direct perception, _i.e._ the form
-is not the object of direct perception but the means of direct
-perception. But these forms only serve the purpose of devotion. The
-Purusha can not be known by these forms. Hence the following Sloka,
-_Srdhara_).
-
-"Thy Name (nma) and Thy Form (rpa) are not however to be known by Thy
-attributes, births and deeds. For Thou art their Seer and Thy Path is
-beyond the reach of Manas and speech. Still in the act of devotion, Thy
-votaries realise Thee. By hearing, uttering, causing others to remember
-and by meditating on Thy blessed names and forms in devotional
-practices, one becomes fixed in mind on Thy Lotus Feet and does not then
-stand the chance of another birth."
-
-"By Thy birth, the pressure on the Earth is removed. The marks of Thy
-feet already adorn her. Heaven and Earth look favored by Thee."
-
-"What else can be the cause of Thy birth but a mere fancy on Thy part,
-for even the birth, life and death of Jivtmas are but seeming things
-caused by Thy Avidy."
-
-"The Fish, the Horse, the Tortoise, the Man Lion, the Boar, the Swan, in
-these and in Kings, Brhmanas and wise men, Thou hast incarnated. As
-thou dost preserve us and preserve this Trilok, so dost Thou take away
-the load from off the Earth. Our salutations to Thee."
-
-"And mother Devaki, the Great Purusha Himself is in Thy womb in part,
-for our good. Fear not then from Kansa, whose death is near at hand. Thy
-Son shall be the Saviour of the Yadus."
-
-Having thus adored the Lord, the Devas left the place.
-
-In time, when all nature looked still and there was joy in heaven and
-earth, Sri Krishna was born under the influence of the Rohini
-constellation. It was all dark at dead of night. He had four hands
-bearing Sankha, Chakra, Gad, and Padma. The mark of Srivatsa the
-Kaustubha gem, the yellow cloth, the crown on the head glittering with
-stones, the brilliant ear-rings all marked Him out as the Purusha, and
-Vsudeva and Devaki adored Him as such. Devaki asked him to withdraw his
-lordly form with four hands.
-
-Said Bhagavn, addressing Devaki.
-
-"In the Svayambhuva Manvantara, thou wert called Prisni, and this
-Vsudeva, Prajpati Sutapas. Commanded by Brahm to beget progeny, thou
-didst make austere Tapas and prayed for a son even like unto my own
-self. So I was born of thee as Prisni-Garbha. This was my first
-Incarnation. When you two were Aditi and Kasyapa, I was born of you as
-Upendra, otherwised called Vmana (the Dwarf). This was my second
-Incarnation. In this my third Incarnation, I am again born unto you.
-This form is shown to thee to remind thee of those previous births. Thou
-shalt attain my supreme state by meditating on me both as a son and as
-Brahm."
-
-Then He assumed the form of an ordinary child.
-
-Directed by Him, Vsudeva took Him to Vraja, the Kingdom of Nanda. The
-fetters loosened. The gate opened wide. The gate keepers fell into deep
-sleep. Though there was a heavy downpour of rain, the serpent Sesha gave
-shelter under his thousand hoods. The river Yamun, deep in flood,
-fretting and foaming under the storm, made way for Vsudeva. The Gopas
-were all fast asleep in Vraja. Vsudeva placed his own son by the side
-of Yasod and took her new born daughter away and placed her near
-Devaki. He then put on his fetters and remained confined as before.
-Yasod knew that she had a child, but the labour pains and sleep made
-her quite forget the sex of the child.
-
-
-COUNSEL WITH THE DAITYAS.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 4.*
-
-The gates closed again, the gate-keepers woke up and, on hearing a
-child's voice, they forthwith informed their King. Kansa had been
-anxiously waiting for the birth of this child. So he lost no time in
-getting up and appearing before Devaki. He snatched away the child from
-her. Devaki remonstrated with her brother praying for the life of her
-daughter. Kansa heeded not her words. He raised the child aloft and cast
-it down to strike it against a stone. The child slipped away from his
-hands, and rose high up. This younger born of Vishnu appeared with eight
-hands, bearing eight weapons, -- Dhanus (bow) Sla (spear) Isha (arrow),
-Charma (hide protector), Asi (sword), Sankha (conch), Chakra (Disc), and
-Gad (club). She had divine garlands and garments and was adorned with
-ornaments. Siddhas, Chranas, Gandharvas, Apsarasas, Kinnaras and Ngas
-worshiped her with profuse offerings.
-
-"Fool that thou art" she thundered forth, "What if I am killed. He who
-shall make an end of thee, thy former enemy, is born somewhere else. Do
-not kill other children in vain."
-
-The Goddess My then became known by different names in different parts
-of the earth.
-
-Kansa was wonder-struck. He removed the fetters of Vsudeva and Devaki
-and begged their pardon, saying, "Like a Rkshasa, I have killed your
-sons. I do not know what fate awaits me after death. Not only men tell
-lies, but the Devas too."
-
-Kansa then called the Daityas together. These sworn enemies of the Devas
-heard their master and then broke forth thus: --
-
-"If it be so, O King of Bhoja, we will kill all children, whether ten
-days old or not, whether found in towns, villages, or pasture grounds.
-What can the Devas do, cowards in battle? They are always afraid of the
-sound of thy bow. Dost thou not remember how, pierced by thy arrows,
-they fled for their lives. The Devas are only bold when they are safe,
-and they indulge in tall talk outside the battle ground. Vishnu seeks
-solitude. Siva dwells in forests. Indra has but little might. Brahm is
-an ascetic. But still the Devas are enemies. They are not to be
-slighted. Therefore engage us, your followers, in digging out the very
-root of the Devas, for like disease and sensuality when neglected at
-first, they become difficult of suppression. Vishnu is the root of the
-Devas, and he represents the eternal religion (Sanatana Dharma _i.e._
-Dharma that follows the eternal course of time, or is based on the
-eternal truths of nature, hence eternal religion, a term applied to
-Hinduism proper). And the roots of Dharma are the Vedas, the Cows, the
-Brhmanas, Tapas and Yajna. Therefore by all means, O King, we shall
-kill the Deva-knowing, Yajna-performing and ascetic Brhmanas and cows
-that supply the sacrificial ghee. Brhmanas, Cows, Vedas, asceticism,
-truth, restraint of the senses, restraint of the mind, faith, kindness,
-forbearance and sacrifices these are the parts of Vishnu's body.
-Therefore the best way to kill him is to kill these. Vishnu, who
-pervades all hearts, is the guide of all Devas, the enemy of Asuras. He
-is the root of all Devas, including Siva and Brahm."
-
-Kansa approved of this counsel. He directed the Kmarupa bearing (_i.e._
-bearing forms at will) Asuras to oppress all good people and they
-readily took to their work.
-
-
-NANDA AND VASUDEVA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 5.*
-
-Nanda performed the birth ceremony of his son with great pomp. His gifts
-knew no bounds. Vishnu was worshipped and there was plenty in Vraja. The
-time came for payment of the year's dues to Kansa. So Nanda left Gokula
-( _i.e._ Vraja ) in charge of the Gopas and himself went with the dues
-to Mathur. Vsudeva learned of Nanda's arrival and went to meet him.
-Nanda stood up to receive him and embraced him heartily. Said Vsudeva:
---
-
-"Brother, you grew old and gave up all hopes of having a child. Luckily
-a son is now born unto you. It is indeed a new birth to you, that you
-are blessed with the sight of a lovely son. Friends cannot live
-pleasantly together as their manifold Karma, like a strong wind, forces
-them asunder. Is it all right with the big forest, with the pasture
-lands where you now dwell with friends? Is it all right with my son
-(Balarma) who lives at your place with her mother, and who looks upon
-you as his parent?"
-
-Nanda replied: --
-
-"Alas! your sons by Devaki were all killed by Kansa; even the daughter
-that was born last has ascended to the heavens. Surely man is governed
-by the unseen. Those that know are not deluded." Said Vsudeva: --
-
-"You have paid your yearly dues and have also met me. Now do not remain
-here any longer. For evils befall Gokula."
-
-Nanda left Mathur for Gokula.
-
-
-PUTAN
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 6.*
-
-With evil forebodings, Nanda made his way to Vraja, for he thought
-Vsudeva would not tell a lie. And he was right. By Kansa's orders, the
-fierce Putan went about killing children in towns, villages and pasture
-lands, for verily she was a killer of children. That wanderer of the
-skies entered Gokula at will, assuming the form of a woman most
-beautiful to look at. So no one stopped her passage. She moved freely
-here and there and at last entered the house of Nanda. She looked like a
-kind mother and Yasod and Rohini were so much struck by her fine
-exterior that they did not stop her access to Krishna. Putan placed the
-child on her lap and gave him milk from her breast full of deadly
-poison. The divine child knew who Putan was and what she was about. He
-held fast her breast with both hands and in anger drank in the very life
-juice of the Asura woman. She screamed forth "Let go", "Let go", "No
-more". Her eyes expanded. She cast up and down her hands and feet again
-and again in profuse perspiration. Her groans made heaven and earth
-tremble and space itself resounded on all sides. At last she fell dead
-like a great mountain, crushing down trees within an ambit of twelve
-miles. Fearlessly the boy played on her body.
-
-The Gopa ladies hurried to the place with Rohini and Yasod. They bathed
-the boy in cows' urine and dust from cow's feet. They pronounced the
-twelve names of Vishnu (Kesava and others) over twelve parts of his
-body. Then after touching water, they duly uttered the root mantras over
-their own body and that of the child. Lastly they invoked Vishnu by
-different names to protect the child from danger of all sorts. (The
-protective mantra uttered by the mother with passes of the hand over
-different parts of the body was supposed to shield the child from
-danger. Latterly the custom has been to get the mantra written, with due
-ceremonies, by a qualified Brahmn, on the sacred bark (Bhrja) and then
-to tie it round the hand.)
-
-Yasod then placed the child on her lap and gave him milk.
-
-By this time Nanda had returned to Vrindabana. He saw the huge body of
-the Asura woman and realised the force of Vsudeva's warning.
-
-The people of Vraja cut the body into parts and burnt them with fuel.
-The smoke was sweet-scented, as the touch of Krishna's body purifies
-even the enemy.
-
-
-THE UPTURNING OF THE CART.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 7.*
-
-The ceremony observable on the child being able to stand on his legs and
-the birth-day ceremony were observed together and there was a great
-feast at the house of Nanda. Yasod placed the child near a cart,
-containing brass vessels with articles of food, and became busily
-engaged in receiving her guests. The child wept but she did not hear. He
-then raised his feet aloft, weeping for his mother's milk, and struck
-the cart with his feet. The cart was upset, the brass vessels broken and
-the wheel and axle upturned. The Gopa ladies could not account for this
-wonderful phenomenon. The boys, who sat near the child, told all that
-they saw, but people could not easily believe what they said.
-
-
-TRINAVARTA OR THE WHIRLWIND.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 7.*
-
-The child was once on the lap of Yasod when he suddenly became so heavy
-that Yasod had to throw him on the ground. The Asura Trinvarta or
-Whirlwind made an attack on the child and a violent dust storm overtook
-Gokula. The Asura had scarcely raised Krishna to a certain height, when
-his weight almost crushed him to death. Krishna did not let go his hold
-and the Asura breathed his last and fell dead. Yasod kissed her son
-again and again, but when he opened His mouth, the mother saw the whole
-Universe within it.
-
-
-THE NAMES "KRISHNA" AND "RAMA."
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 8.*
-
-Garga, the family priest of the Yadus, came to Vraja at the request of
-Vsudeva. Nanda duly received him and said: -- "You are versed in the
-Vedas and you are the author of an astrological treatise. Please perform
-the Naming ceremony of the two boys." Garga replied: "I am known as the
-priest of the Yadus and, if I officiate at the ceremony, Kansa might
-suspect your son to be the eighth son of Devaki." Nanda promised strict
-privacy, and the Rishi performed the ceremony. Addressing Nanda, he then
-said: --
-
-"This son of Rohini shall be called Rma or the charming one, as he
-shall charm his friends by his virtues. He shall be called Bala, from
-possessing excessive strength. From his bringing together the Yadus, he
-shall be called Sankarshana.
-
-"This other boy, taking body, yuga after yuga, had three colors, White
-(_Sukla_), Red (_Rakta_) and Yellow, (_Pta_). Now he has got the black
-color (_Krishna_). In the past, he was born as the son of Vsudeva. So
-those that know call him Srimat Vsudeva. He has many names and many
-forms, according to his deeds and attributes. Neither I nor other people
-know them all. He shall give you the greatest blessings and protect you
-against all dangers. In days of yore, good people conquered the
-ill-doers by his help. Those that are attached to him are not conquered
-by enemies, even as followers of Vishnu are not conquered by the Asuras.
-Therefore this son of Nanda is equal to Nryana by his virtues, powers
-and fame."
-
-
-PRANKS OF THE BOY.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 8.*
-
-With growing childhood, Krishna became very naughty. Once the Gopa women
-made the following complaints. Krishna would untie their calves before
-the milking time. He would steal their milk and curds and divide the
-remnants, after eating, among the monkeys. If they did not eat, he would
-break the pot. If he did not get the things he wanted, he would curse
-the inmates and other boys. If the pots were out of reach, he would
-raise himself on seats or husking stools and bear those hanging pots
-away to get at their contents. He would illumine the dark room by the
-glitter of his own body and that of his jewels, to serve his purpose. He
-would talk insolently, and spoil the ground. The Gopa women exclaimed:
--- "But now how innocent he looks before you." Krishna betrayed fear in
-his eyes. Yasod would not beat him. So she only smiled.
-
-One day Rma and other boys complained to Yasod that Krishna had eaten
-earth. The mother remonstrated. "They have lied" exclaimed Krishna "Or
-if they have spoken the truth, then examine my mouth." "Open it," said
-Yasod. But what did she find within that mouth? The Seven Dvipas, the
-planets, the stars, the three Gunas and all their transformations, even
-Vrindvana and herself. "Is this dream or delusion or is this all the
-power of my own son? If Thou art then the Unknowable, my salutations to
-Thee. I take the shelter of Him, by whose My I seem to be Yasod, this
-Nanda my husband, this boy my son, the Gos (cows) Gopas and Gopis to be
-mine." She had the true knowledge, but it was soon eclipsed by the My
-of Vishnu and Yasod again knew Krishna to be her own son.
-
-Rj Parikshit asked: --
-
-"What did Nanda do that Krishna would be his foster son? And what did
-Yasod do, that Krishna should suck her breast? Even his own parents did
-not witness the deeds of the child of which poets have sung so much."
-
-Suka replied: --
-
-"Drona, the chief of the Vasus, with his wife Dhr shewed great
-obedience to Brahm. 'When born on Earth may we have the highest
-devotion for Him.'" Such was their prayer to Brahm and it was granted.
-Drona was born as Nanda and Dhr as Yasod.
-
-
-THE TYING.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 9.*
-
-One day Yasod was churning curdled milk and singing the deeds of her
-son. Krishna came up and, desirous of sucking milk, held the churning
-rod. Yasod placed him on her lap and gave him milk to suck. But the
-milk that was boiling on the oven overflowed the pot and she hurriedly
-left her son. In anger Krishna bit his lips, broke the milk pot with a
-stone, took the fresh butter to a retired corner and there partook of
-it. Yasod came back after a while and found the pot broken. Her son had
-left the place and she could easily see that it was all his doing. She
-found Krishna seated on the husk stand, freely dividing the contents of
-the hanging pots among the monkeys, and she quietly approached him with
-a stick. Krishna hurriedly got down and ran away as if in fear. Yasod
-ran after him and caught him at last. Finding him fear-stricken, she
-threw down the stick and tried to fasten him to the husking stand. The
-rope fell short by the breadth of two fingers (say two inches). She
-added another rope. The gap remained the same. She added rope after
-rope, as many as she had of her own and of her neighbours, but could not
-bridge over the distance. She stood baffled at last, amazed and ashamed.
-Finding that his mother was perspiring in the effort and that her hair
-had become dishevelled, Krishna allowed himself to be fastened to the
-stand.
-
-
-THE ARJUNA TREES.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 10.*
-
-The Yaksha King Kuvera had two sons -- Nalakvara and Manigriva. They
-became maddened with power and intoxicated with drink. Nrada passed by
-them while they were playing with Gandharva girls stark naked in a river
-bath and they heeded him not. Nrada thought how best he could reclaim
-them. "Poverty is the only remedy for those that lose their heads in
-wealth. These sons of the Lokapla Kuvera are deep in ignorance,
-insolence and intoxication. Let them become trees. But they shall not
-lose memory by my favor. After one hundred Deva years, the touch of Sri
-Krishna shall save them." These sons of Kuvera in consequence became a
-pair of Arjuna trees in Vrindvana.
-
-While Krishna was fastened to the husking stand, the pair of Arjuna
-trees drew his attention. He was bent on making good the words of
-Nrada. So he approached the trees, drawing the husking stand behind him
-by force and, placing himself between them, uprooted the trees. They
-fell down with a crash and lo! two fiery spirits came out, illumining
-space by the splendour of their bodies. They prayed to Krishna and then
-rose upwards.
-
-The Gopa women had been engaged all this time in their household duties
-and the crash attracted the attention of all the Gopas and Gopis. The
-boys told what they had seen. But some were loath to believe that all
-this could be done by the boy Krishna.
-
-
-THE FRUIT SELLER.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 11.*
-
-One day Krishna heard a woman crying out "Come ye buy fruits." He took
-some paddy and hastened to her side. The woman filled both his hands
-with fruits and lo! her basket became full of gems and precious stones.
-
-
-VRINDAVANA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 11.*
-
-Seeing that calamities befell Brihat Vna (Vraja or Gokul) so often, the
-elders put their heads together to devise the best course to adopt. Upa
-Nanda, one of the oldest and wisest of them, said: --
-
-"We that wish well for Gokula must hence get away. Evils befall that
-bode no good for the children. This boy was with difficulty saved from
-that child-killing Rkshasa woman. It is only by the favor of Vishnu
-that the cart did not fall on him. When he was taken high up by the
-whirlwind Asura, and when he fell down on the rock, it was the Deva
-Kings that saved him. If this boy and others did not perish when they
-were between the two trees, it was because Vishnu preserved them. Ere
-this Vraja is visited by fresh calamity, let us go elsewhere with the
-boys and all attendants.
-
-"There is a forest called Vrindvana with fresh verdure for cattle,
-where Gopas, Gopis and Gos will all enjoy themselves. The hills, grass
-and creepers are all holy there. This very day let us go to that place.
-Make ready the carriages. Let the cows precede us, if it pleases you
-all."
-
-With one heart, the Gopas exclaimed: -- "Well said! Well said!" They
-prepared their carriages and placed on them the aged, the young, the
-females and all household articles. They drove the cows in advance. They
-blew their horns and beat their drums. Accompanied by the priests, the
-Gopas went on their way. The Gopa girls, seated on chariots sang the
-deeds of Krishna and Yasod, and Rohinl attentively listened to them.
-
-At last they entered Vrindvana, which gives pleasure at all times, with
-the carriages; they made a semi-circular abode for the cattle.
-
-Rma and Krishna saw Vrindvana, the hill Govardhana and the banks of
-the Yamun and then became very much pleased. In time they became
-keepers of calves (Vatsa). They tended the calves in the company of Gopa
-boys on pasture lands near at hand. They played with other boys as
-ordinary children.
-
-
-VATSA OR THE CALF.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 11.*
-
-One day Rma, Krishna and other boys were looking after their calves
-when an Asura, with the intention of killing them, assumed the form of a
-calf (Vatsa) and got mixed among the herd. Krishna pointed this out to
-Balarma and silently moved behind the Asura. He held it aloft by the
-hind feet and tail and gave it such a whirl that its life became
-extinct. The boys, cried out "Well done! Well done!" and the Devas
-rained flowers on Krishna.
-
-
-BAKA OR THE CRANE.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 11.*
-
-One day the Gopa boys went over to a tank to quench their thirst. They
-saw a huge monster in the form of a Baka (crane). It rushed forth and
-swallowed Krishna. Krishna caused a burning in its throat and the Asura
-threw him out. It made a second attack and Krishna held the two beaks
-and parted them asunder as if they were blades of grass, And the Asura
-died.
-
-
-AGHA OR THE SERPENT.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 12.*
-
-One day Krishna was playing with the boys in the forest. Agha, the
-youngest born of Putan and Baka, the Asura whom even the Devas,
-rendered immortal by _Amrita_, dreaded, burning with a spirit of revenge
-at the death of his brother and sister, thought of killing Krishna and
-all his attendants. He stretched himself forth as a huge serpent,
-spreading over one yojana, the extremities of his open mouth touching
-the clouds and the earth. The Gopa boys took the Asura to be the goddess
-of Vrindvana. "Or if it really be a serpent opening its mouth to kill
-us, it will instantly be killed like the Asura Vaka." So with their eyes
-fixed on Krishna they clapped their hands and with a smile entered the
-mouth of the serpent, even before Krishna had time to warn them. The
-Asura still waited with its mouth open for Krishna. Krishna thought how
-he could kill the serpent and at the same time save his companions.
-
-On reflection, he himself entered the mouth of the serpent and stretched
-himself and his comrades. The Asura lost breath and breathed his last. A
-shining spirit emerged from the Asura body and entered the body of
-Krishna. Krishna gave fresh life to his comrades by his Amrita bearing
-looks.
-
-Krishna killed Agha in his fifth year, but the Gopa boys who witnessed
-the act said, when Krishna entered his sixth year, that the act was done
-that very day.
-
-"How could that be?" enquired Parikshit.
-
-Suka explained this with reference to the following story.
-
-
-BRAHMA AND KRISHNA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 13-14.*
-
-When the Asura Agha was killed, Krishna went with his companions to the
-river bank and said: --
-
-"We are hungry, the hour is late. Let us have our meals here. Let the
-calves drink water and graze on near lands." The Gopa boys spread out
-their stores and improvised plates for eating. While they were engaged
-in eating, the calves strayed away. The boys became anxious and were
-about to get up, when Krishna stopped them, saying he would find the
-calves. He left his companions and went on the search. Brahm, who had
-been witnessing from the high heavens all the deeds of Krishna, even the
-killing of Agha, with wonder, wanted to have still one more
-manifestation of his divine powers. Finding opportunity, he removed the
-calves as well as the Gopa boys to some secure place and disappeared.
-Krishna could not find the calves and on returning he could not find his
-companions. He then knew it was all the act of Brahm. To please Brahm,
-as well as to please the mothers of the Gopa boys, He Himself became so
-many calves and so many Gopa boys of their very size and form to the
-minutest detail. The mothers thought they had got their boys and they
-became even more attached to them. The cows thought they had got their
-calves and their fondness knew no bounds.
-
-Krishna went on playing his manifold parts for one year. Five or six
-days remaining till the completion of the year, Balarma saw one day
-that the cows were grazing on the summits of Govardhana, while the
-calves were grazing at some distance near Vraja. The cows impelled by a
-fit of attachment breathlessly ran towards the calves even those that
-had quite lately brought forth younger calves and caressed them
-profusely. The elder Gopas who were in charge could not restrain them
-with all their efforts. They felt shame and vexation. But when they
-themselves approached the calves and their own sons, their anger melted
-away in deep affection.
-
-Balarma thought for a moment. "Never was such love witnessed by me
-before -- this attachment for calves that had been weaned long ago. The
-people of Vraja have even increasing affection for their own sons even
-as they had of yore for Krishna. These calves no longer appear to be the
-incarnations of Rishis, their keepers the Gopa boys do not appear any
-longer to be the incarnations of the Devas. They look all like thee O
-Krishna! Wherein lies the mystery?" Krishna explained to Rma what had
-happened. Brahm appeared after a Truti (fraction of a moment) of his
-own measure. He saw the boys, he saw the calves. He could not make any
-distinction between those he placed under his own My and those brought
-into existence by the My of Krishna. The foggy darkness is overpowered
-by the darkness of the night. The light of the glowworm vanishes before
-the light of the day. To delude Krishna, Brahm became deluded himself.
-In another moment Brahm saw the calves and the boys each and all
-bearing four hands, the divine weapons and all the divine powers. They
-shone in resplendent glory. Brahm became overpowered, stupefied.
-Recovering himself, he found once more Sri Krishna alone, searching for
-the calves and boys in Vrindvana. He fell at the feet of Krishna, again
-and again, his four heads with their crowns rolling on the ground and
-with tears in his eyes, he glorified Krishna.
-
-(The glorification is a long one. Only one sloka is given here.)
-
-"It is only he who lives on, anxiously looking out for Thy favor,
-bearing through the workings of his own Karma as a matter of course and
-making obeisance to Thee in heart, words and body, that can get the
-heritage of Mukti (As one must be living, so that a particular heritage
-may vest in him, so the Bhakta must keep up his individuality to get the
-heritage of Mukti)."
-
-Parikshit asked. "How could the people of Vraja have greater love for
-Krishna than for their own sons?"
-
-Suka replied: --
-
-"Self, O King, is the most beloved of all things not so beloved are
-one's sons or wealth. Therefore, O king, people love themselves better
-than they do their sons, their riches or their homes. Those that deem
-their body to be their own tm or self, love that body more than
-anything else.
-
-"But the body only becomes dear as it pertains to self. It can not be as
-dear as self. For when the body wears away, the desire to live on is
-still strong.
-
-"Therefore tm or self is most dear to all beings and the whole of this
-Universe is for that self.
-
-"But know thou this Krishna to be the Self of all selves, the tm of
-all tms. For the good of the Universe, he also looks by My as one
-possessed of a body. Those that know Krishna know that all movable and
-immovable beings are but His forms and that nothing else exists.
-
-"Of all things, the ultimate reality is 'Existence'. Krishna is the
-reality of Existence itself. So there is nothing besides Krishna."
-
-Here ends the Kumra Lil of Krishna. The Pouganda Lil is now to
-commence. (Kumra is a boy below five, Pouganda is boyhood from the 5th
-to the 16th year).
-
-*END OF KUMARA LIL*
-
-
-DHENUKA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 15.*
-
-On attaining the Pouganda age, Rma and Krishna were placed in charge of
-cows. Vrindvana looked gay and Krishna amused himself with his
-companions in the forests. One day Sridman, Subala, Stoka and other
-companions spoke to Rma and Krishna "Not far off is a forest of palm
-trees (Tla). Tla fruits fall in abundance there, but one Asura
-Dhenuka, with many of his kin obstruct all access to them. The Asura has
-the form of an Ass. We smell the fragrance of the fruits even from here.
-They are very tempting indeed." Rma boldly entered that forest and gave
-a shake to the Tla trees, and Tlas fell in abundance. Roused by the
-noise, the Ass rushed forth and kicked Rma with its hind feet. The
-Asura brayed and made a second rush, when Rma held it by the hind feet
-and whirling it round in the skies threw It dead on the trees. The kith
-and kin of the Asura then came rushing forth, but they were one and all
-killed by Rma and Krishna. When they returned to Vrindvana the Gopis
-who had been feeling the separation went out to receive them and, being
-pleased to see them, cast bashful glances at them.
-
-
-THE KLIYA SERPENT AND THE FIRE.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 16-17.*
-
-The Ngas or serpents made offerings to Garuda on appointed days.
-Kliya, proud of his own valour, did not make any offering himself and
-snatched away the offerings made by others. Garuda attacked him and,
-being overpowered in the fight, Kliya sought shelter in a deep pool of
-water in the Yamun.
-
-Of yore, Garuda had caught a fish in that pool of water and was about to
-eat it, when Rishi Soubhari asked him not to eat, but Garuda heeded not
-his words. The wailings of the fish moved the tender heart of the Rishi
-and for their future good he cursed Garuda with death, if he entered the
-pool any more.
-
-Kliya knew about this and he therefore sought protection in that pool
-of water with his family. The water became deadly poison and even the
-adjoining air breathed poisonous death.
-
-One day Krishna went with all his companions, other than Rma, to the
-Yamun side. The Gopa boys and the cows being very thirsty drank the
-water of that pool and met with instant death. Krishna cast his amrita
-pouring looks at them and they got up, being restored to life. They
-looked at each other, very much surprised.
-
-To purge the river, Krishna got upon a Kadamba tree and jumped into the
-pool of water. Kliya fiercely attacked him and stung him to the quick.
-The serpent then twined round Krishna. The cows wept, the Gopa boys
-became senseless. There were evil portents in Vrindvana. Nanda and
-other Gopas came out in search of Krishna. They saw him in the grasp of
-the powerful serpent and made loud wailings. A moment after, seeing how
-they all grieved for him, Krishna eluded the grasp of the serpent and
-moved dancing round him. The serpent, somewhat fatigued, also kept
-moving with its overspread hoods, fixing its looks on Krishna. Krishna
-then got upon the hoods one thousand in number, one hundred being the
-chief, and danced on them putting down the hood that tried to raise
-itself. It was a lovely sight and the Devas sang in joy and rained
-flowers. The serpent king was overpowered. He vomited blood. His body
-was broken. In his heart of hearts, he sought the protection of
-Nryana. The serpent girls also glorified Krishna and prayed for their
-husband's life.
-
-Krishna said: -- "Go hence O serpent, dwell in the sea. Men and cows
-shall use the water of the river. You left Rmanaka Dvipa for fear of
-Garuda. But now as your heads bear the marks of my feet, Garuda shall
-not touch you." Kliya left the Yamun with his wives and the water of
-that river has been pure ever since.
-
-The people of Vrindvana embraced Krishna and shed tears of joy. They
-were all so much put out that they stopped that night on the river bank.
-At midnight, a fire broke out from a castor plantation and it surrounded
-the people on all sides. The Gopas and Gopis cried out: "O Krishna, O
-Rma, we are yours. Krishna! Save us from this fire. We are not afraid
-of our lives, but it will pain us to part from Thy feet."
-
-Krishna ate up the whole fire.
-
-
-PRALAMBA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 18.*
-
-It was summer. But Vrindvana was cool with its shade, its water-spouts
-and its river.
-
-Rma and Krishna were tending the cattle with their companions. An Asura
-named Pralamba disguised himself as a Gopa boy and mixed with the other
-boys. The All-knowing Krishna found him but he feigned friendship, with
-the object of killing the Asura. Krishna proposed two parties for play.
-The defeated party had to carry the members of the victorious party on
-their backs. Krishna became the leader of one party and Rma that of the
-other. The party of Krishna were routed near the Bhndiraka forest.
-Krishna carried Srdmana on his back, Bhadrasena carried Vrishabha and
-Pralamba carried Balarma. Pralamba ran with Balarma beyond the mark.
-Balarma suspected something evil. Then composing himself, he hit a blow
-on the head of the Asura and Pralamba lay down dead.
-
-
-THE FOREST CONFLAGRATION.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 19.*
-
-The cattle strayed away from the Bhndarika forest, when suddenly there
-was a fire. They ran bellowing into a forest of rushes. The Gopa boys
-went in search of them and found them from a distance. Krishna called
-them out and they responded to the call. At the time a general
-conflagration in the forest overtook the cows and the Gopa boys and they
-helplessly turned to Krishna. Krishna asked the boys to close their
-eyes. They did so, but when they looked again they found themselves once
-more in the Bhndarika forest. Seeing this Yoga power in Sri Krishna,
-they knew him to be a God. The older Gopas and Gopis, hearing all the
-wonderful deeds of Rma and Krishna, knew them to be Devas.
-
-
-THE RAINY SEASON.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 20.*
-
-The _rainy season_ followed summer. There was joy and plenty. (For a
-graphic and highly poetical description of the rainy season please refer
-to the original. The details of the description are somewhat important
-from the esoteric standpoint and the Season itself is suggestive as to a
-new era in spiritual development.)
-
-
-THE AUTUMN.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 20.*
-
-The AUTUMN came and it was all _calm, clear_ and _transparent_.
-
-The clouds disappeared. The water became pure. The wind became gentle.
-With the advent of lotus-bearing Autumn, the waters regained their
-tranquillity, even as distracted Yogins the calm of their minds by fresh
-resort to Yoga. The Autumn removed the clouds from the skies,
-promiscuous living from the animals, mud from the soil and dirt from the
-water -- even as Bhakti in Krishna does away with the impurities
-attaching to the four sramas. The clouds gave up rainy moisture and
-looked beautifully white, even like Munis who give up all desires. The
-hills sometimes gave pure water from their sides and sometimes not, as
-wise men pour forth the nectar of their wisdom sometimes and not often.
-The animals that frequent shallow water did not know that the water was
-subsiding, as deluded men living in family circles do not realise the
-daily expiry of their lives. And they suffered like sensuous men from
-the rays of the Autumn sun. Day by day the soil gave up its muddiness as
-the wise give up their Mine-ness and the creepers got over their
-immaturity as the wise get over their I-ness. The Sea became calm as a
-Muni no longer distracted by Vedic performances. The farmers stored up
-waters in the paddy fields by making strong embankments, even as Yogins
-store up Prana by withdrawing it from the Indriyas. The moon gave relief
-from the inflictions of sun-burning, even as wisdom relieves the misery
-caused by connection with the body, and as the sight of Sri Krishna
-removes all the sorrows of the Gopis. The clear skies gave a brilliant
-view of the stars, as the mind purified by Satva makes manifest the
-conclusions of the Mimnsa Darsanas. The full moon shone above with all
-the stars as Sri Krishna shone on earth with the circle of Yadus.
-
-
-SRI KRISHNA AND THE GOPIS.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 21.*
-
-Krishna roamed in the fresh forest with the cattle and his companions.
-He played upon the flute and the Gopis forgot themselves in hearing his
-music. They saw before their mind's eye the dancing Krishna filling the
-holes of the flute with nectar flowing from his lips, the peacock
-feather on his head, Karnikra flower on his ears, his cloth yellow like
-gold and the Vaijayanti garland round his neck.
-
-Some exclaimed: -- "What better could the eyes feed upon than the lovely
-faces of Rma and Krishna, with the flutes touching their lips and their
-smiling glances."
-
-Some said: -- "How beautiful they look with garlands of mango twigs,
-peacock feather and blue lotus. In the assembly of Gopas, they look like
-heroes on the theatrical stage."
-
-Others said: -- "What did that bamboo piece of a flute do that it should
-drink so hard the nectar flowing from Krishna's lips, the special
-possession of the Gopis, that nothing should remain but the taste
-thereof. The water that nourished it is thrilling with joy and the plant
-of which it is a shoot is shedding joysome tears."
-
-Some said: -- "Look, O companions! how lovely does Vrindvana look from
-the touch of Sri Krishna's lotus feet! Look there, the peacock madly
-dances to the tune of the flute and other animals stand dumb on the
-summit of the hills and witness the scene. There is no spot on the earth
-like Vrindvana."
-
-Others said: -- "How blessed are these female deer that In the company
-of their husbands hear the music of the flute and make an offering of
-their loving looks!"
-
-Other Gopis said: -- "So tempting is this form of Krishna and so
-alluring is the music of his flute that even Deva girls become lost to
-themselves. Look, how the cows drink that music with ears erect. And
-even the calves stand with their mothers' milk in their mouths, eagerly
-listening to that sound. Those birds are no worse than Rishis, for they
-sit high on trees whence they can have a full view of Krishna and with
-eyes closed they silently hear the sweet music of the flute. Even the
-rivers shew the love transformation of their hearts by their whirls and
-they stop their course to embrace the feet of Krishna with their raised
-billows serving as hands and offering lotus flowers at those feet. The
-clouds give shadow and they shed dewy flowers on Krishna. Most fortunate
-is Govardhana, for Krishna drives cattle on its sides and it makes its
-offerings of edibles and drink."
-
-The Gopis became full of Krishna (Tanmaya).
-
-
-THE STEALING OF CLOTHES.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 22.*
-
-In the first month of the DEWY SEASON (Agrahyana), the girls of
-Vrindvana worshipped Ktyyani (a name of the Goddess Durga, wife of
-Siva). The observances lasted for a month. The girls prayed to Ktyyani
-that they might get Krishna for their husband. They bathed early in the
-morning every day in the river Yamun. One day they left their clothes
-on the bank and went down into the river to bathe. Krishna took away
-their clothes. He asked the girls to come up and take them. They did so
-and the clothes were returned. Krishna then addressing the Gopis said:
-
-"O virtuous girls, I know your resolve. It is to worship me. I also
-approve of it and you must succeed. The desires of those that are
-absorbed in me do not bear Krmic fruits. For fried or burnt paddy does
-not germinate. Go back to Vraja. Your object in worshipping Ktyyani is
-gained. These nights (_i.e._ on nights to come. _Sridhra_) you shall
-enjoy with me."
-
-
-KRISHNA AND VEDIC YAJNA (SUMMER AGAIN.)
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 23.*
-
-Krishna went over to a distant forest driving cattle with his
-companions. The summer sun was fierce and the trees gave shade. "Look, O
-companions" said Krishna, "how noble minded these trees are. They live
-for others. Themselves they suffer from the winds, the rains, from the
-sun and frost but they protect us from these. They do not send away one
-disappointed. They offer their leaves, their flowers, their fruits,
-their shade, their roots, their bark, their fragrance, their juice,
-their ashes, their fuel, their buds, and what not. Of all living beings,
-such only justify their birth as do good to others by their lives, their
-wealth, their wisdom and their words." (This is introductory as an
-attack upon the selfish performances of Vedic Brhmanas. _Sridhra_.)
-
-The boys became hungry and they complained to Rma and Krishna.
-
-Krishna said: -- "The Brhmanas are performing ngirasa Yajna. Take our
-names and ask them for food."
-
-The boys did as they were told but the Brhmanas heeded them not. Narrow
-were their desires which did not extend beyond Svarga. But for these,
-they went through elaborate Karma. Ignorant as they were, they thought
-themselves to be wise. Yajna was all in all to them but they disregarded
-the Lord of Yajnas, the direct manifestation of Parama Purusha. They
-looked upon Krishna as an ordinary man and as Brhmanas they deemed
-themselves to be superior to Him. They said neither yea nor nay. So the
-boys returned unsuccessful to Krishna and Rma. Krishna smiled and asked
-them to go to the wives of the Brhmanas. This they did. The Brhmana
-women had heard of Krishna and they were eager to see him.
-Notwithstanding the protests of their husbands, brothers, sons and
-friends, they hastened to Krishna with dishes full of eatables of all
-sorts. The ears had heard and the eyes now saw. And it did not take the
-Brhmana women long to embrace Krishna and forget their grievances.
-
-Knowing that the women had given up all desires for the sake of seeing
-tm, Krishna said smilingly: -- "Welcome O you noble-minded ones, take
-your seats. What can we do for you? It is meet that you have come to see
-us. I am tm and therefore the most beloved. Those that care for their
-tm or self bear unconditional and unremitting Bhakti towards me. The
-Prnas, Buddhi, Manas, the relatives, the body, wife, children and
-riches all become dear for the sake of self or tm. What can be
-therefore dearer, than tm? Now that you have seen me, go back to your
-husbands. They have to perform the sacrifices with your help."
-
-The Brhmana women replied: -- "Lord, thou dost not deserve to speak so
-cruelly to us. Make good thy words ('My Bhakta does not meet with
-destruction' or 'He does not again return' _Sridhra_.) We have taken
-the shelter of thy feet, throwing over-board all friends, that we may
-bear on our heads the Tulasi thrown from Thy feet. Our husbands,
-parents, sons, brothers, and friends will not take us back. Who else
-can? Grant us, O conqueror of all enemies, that we may have no other
-resort but Thee. ( We may not have such resorts as Svarga &c. for which
-our husbands are striving. We want to serve Thee. _Sridhara_)."
-
-Sri Krishna replied: -- "Your husbands will not bear any grudge against
-you. By my command all people, even the Devas (in whose honor the
-sacrifices are made) shall approve of your conduct. Direct contact is
-not necessary for love. Think of me with all your heart and you shall
-speedily obtain me."
-
-The Brhmana women returned to their husbands and they were received
-well. The Brhmanas repented. But for fear of Kansa, they could not go
-to Vrindvana. They worshipped Krishna at home.
-
-
-INDRA AND THE RAISING OF GO-VARDHANA. THE INSTALLATION.
-
-
-(THE RAINY SEASON AGAIN.)
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 24-27.*
-
-There were great preparations for Yajna in honor of Indra. "What is this
-all about, father?" asked Krishna of Nanda. "What is the outcome of this
-sacrifice? In whose honor is it to be performed and how?"
-
-Nanda replied -- "Child, Indra is the Cloud-God. He will give us rains.
-The rains give life to all beings. Therefore people worship Indra by
-these sacrificial offerings. The enjoyment of that only which remains
-after sacrifice conduces to Dharma, Artha and Kma."
-
-Krishna replied: -- "The birth and death of men are shaped by their own
-Karma. Happiness, misery, fear, well-being, these are all the effects of
-Karma. If there be any god who dispenses the fruits of Karma, he must
-also follow that Karma and not act independently of it. When people are
-governed by their own Karma, where does Indra come in? He can not undo
-what follows from Svabhva (Svabhva is Krmic tendency). Karma is the
-Lord and Karma is to be worshipped. It is Rajas that works the clouds.
-What can Indra do? We do not live in towns or villages but we live in
-the forest. Therefore let us make Yajna offerings to our cows, our
-Brhmanas and our hills. The preparations that you have already made
-will serve the purpose." Nanda and other Gopas approved of what Krishna
-said. They made offerings to the cows, the Brhmanas and the Hill. They
-went round the Hill to shew respect. Krishna said "I am the Hill" and
-assumed some form which created faith in the Gopas. He then partook
-himself of the offerings to the Hill.
-
-Indra became highly incensed. He sent forth his clouds and winds and
-there were rains and thunder-storms and hail-stones at Vrindvana.
-
-Krishna carelessly lifted up the Govardhana hill with one hand and the
-people of Vrindvana with their cows took shelter in the cave.
-
-For seven days it rained incessantly and for seven days Krishna held the
-hill aloft without moving an inch.
-
-Baffled and surprised, Indra withdrew his clouds and winds. The people
-of Vrindvana went to their own places and Krishna replaced the hill.
-
-The Gopas struck with wonder approached Nanda. They related all the
-previous deeds of Krishna and then referring to the last incident said:
--- "Look here this boy only _seven years_ old and there the holding
-aloft of this big hill. We wonder whether your son may not be the tm
-of all beings." Nanda related to them what he had heard from Garga and
-they all ceased to wonder. Indra and Surabhi came down from the heavens.
-Indra fell at the feet of Krishna and glorified Him.
-
-Krishna said to him: -- "To favour you, Indra, I caused a break in your
-Yajna, that, maddened as you were by your position and powers, you might
-not forget me. It is only when one is blinded by powers, that one does
-not see me sceptre in hand. I take away the powers of him whom I want to
-favor. Therefore go now, Indra. You are to keep to your own station and
-do your duties as enjoined by me void of all pride." Surabhi, the divine
-mother of cows, thanked Krishna for the services done to her children.
-
-She said: -- "O Krishna, O thou great Yogin whose form is this Universe
-and who art the root of this Universe, we have found our Lord in Thee.
-Thou art our Supreme Deva O Lord of the Universe, thou shalt be our
-Indra, for the good of cows, Brhmanas and Devas, and of all that are
-good. By the command of Brahm, we shall install thee as our Indra."
-
-So saying, Surabhi poured her milk over Krishna's head and Indra and
-other Devas, by the command of the Deva mothers, bathed Him with the
-waters of the ksa Gang. They all called him "GOVINDA." (He who
-attains (_Vinda_) as Indra the _Cows_ or _Svarga_ (Go) Sridhara.) The
-Rishis, Gandharvas, Vidydharas, Siddhas and Chranas all joined the
-Inauguration ceremony. The Deva girls danced and sang. The three Lokas
-became full of joy. The cows wet the earth with their milk. The rivers
-bore streams of milk and other drinks. The trees poured honey. The
-cereals bore grains without culture. The hills brought forth their
-precious stones. Even the wild animals became mild.
-
-
-KRISHNA AND VARUNA, KRISHNA AND THE GOPAS.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 28.*
-
-After observing the fast of the 11th Day of the Moon, Nanda went to
-bathe in the river Yamun, on the twelfth day of the Moon. It was still
-dark. So the Asuras had possession of the hour. An Asura servant of
-Varuna carried Nanda to his master. The Gopas called out to Rma and
-Krishna. Krishna entered the water and went to Varuna. The Lokapala
-worshipped him and gave back Nanda, excusing himself for the ignorance
-of his servant. Nanda on returning apprised the Gopas of what he had
-seen. Could Krishna be any other than shvara? The Gopas wished ardently
-that He might take them over to His supreme abode. The all-knowing
-Krishna knew this. He took the Gopas to that portion of the Yamun
-called Bramha Hrada. Plunged in the waters, they saw Vaikuntha, the
-supreme abode of Krishna, far away from the limits of Prakriti.
-
-
-THE FIVE CHAPTERS ON RSA
-
-
-(AUTUMN AGAIN.)
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 29-33.*
-
-Suka said: --
-
-"Seeing those autumnal nights, gay with Mallika flowers, Bhagavn wished
-to enjoy Himself by resort to Yogamy."
-
-(It looks odd that there should be a show of conquering the God of love
-by enjoyment of others' wives. But it is really not so. For you have "By
-resort to Yoga My." "Enjoyed though self enjoyer," "The subduer of the
-God of Love Himself," "With enjoyment all self contained," and such like
-passages, which show absolute self dependence. Therefore this show of
-Rsa play is only meant to recite the conquest of Kma Deva. This is the
-real truth. Moreover through this love topic, the five chapters on Rsa
-are calculated to bring about a complete disinclination to worldly
-matters. _Sridhara_).
-
-("Those nights" _Go back to Vraja. These nights you shall enjoy with me_
--- the nights promised by these words. _Sridhara_.')
-
-At that time the moon had appeared on the horizon. As the lover reunited
-after long separation besmears the face of his beloved with orange
-coloured saffron, so he besmeared the face of the east with the most
-delightful orange rays which brushed away the sorrows of men
-(_charshani_). Krishna looked at the Moon, the lover of the Kumud
-flower, with unbroken disc, glowing like the face of Lakshm, orange red
-like fresh saffron, and he looked at the forest illumined with the
-tender rays of the Moon and he indulged in song so sweet that it
-ravished the hearts of good-looking women.
-
-Listening to that passion-exciting song, the women of Vraja, with minds
-absorbed in Krishna rushed forth to where their lover was without taking
-notice of each other, their ear-rings moving violently about.
-
-Some left their houses while milking the cow. Some did not wait to see
-the boiling of the milk. Some did not take down boiled wheat from the
-oven. Some had been giving food to others, some had been giving milk to
-their own children. Some had been serving their husbands and some had
-been taking their own food. But they all left their work half finished.
-They gave up their household duties and, with clothes and ornaments all
-in disorder, they hurriedly went to Krishna, (Hearing the voice
-indicative of Sri Krishna, the Gopis became strongly inclined to Him,
-and they showed by their acts that then and there they had complete
-disinclination for works that had the three Vargas, Dharma, Artha and
-Kma for their object. They left their half finished work and went over
-to Krishna straight. _Sridhara_.)
-
-Their husbands could not keep them back nor their fathers, brothers and
-friends. Their hearts had been completely charmed by Govinda. They did
-not turn back. (Obstacles cannot overcome those whose hearts are
-attracted by Krishna. _Sridhara_.)
-
-Some Gopis that had been inside their houses could not make their way
-out. Their thoughts had been already devoted to Krishna, and now with
-closed eyes, they held Him fast in their minds.
-
-With sins all removed by the acute pain of unbearable separation from
-the dearest one, the Krmic effects of good works taken away by the
-absolute pleasure caused by the embraces of Krishna in meditation, with
-their bonds completely severed at that very moment, those Gopis gave up
-their bodies composed of the Gunas, even though they united with Krishna
-as their paramour. (How could they give up their bodies composed of
-Gunas while they did not know Krishna as Parama tm, but knew him only
-as their paramour, a relation caused by the Gunas? "Even though they
-&c." A thing is not dependent for its properties upon what another
-thinks of it. Drink nectar without knowing it is so. The effects are
-there. There is another difficulty. The Gopis had their Prrabdha Karma,
-or Karma that brought about the present birth and its surroundings, and
-Prrabdha is exhausted only after being worked out. So with the bonds of
-Prrabdha, how could they give up their body? "With their bonds
-completely severed at that very time." But Prrabdha cannot be exhausted
-without suffering and enjoyment. Where were the suffering and enjoyment
-in this case? "With sins all removed &c." The greatest suffering caused
-by separation removed all demerits and the greatest enjoyment caused by
-the embraces of Krishna removed the bonds of merits. Therefore when
-Parama tm was attained by intense meditation, the suffering and
-enjoyment of the time completely eradicated Karma and the Gopis gave up
-their bodies composed of the Gunas. _Sridhara_.)
-
-Asked Rj Parikshit: --
-
-"O Muni, they knew Krishna as only one enjoyable and not as Brahm. The
-Gunas were mixed up in their understanding of Krishna. How could there
-then be a cessation of the flow of the Gunas?"
-
-(Husbands, sons and others, even they themselves were Brahm in essence.
-But a devotion to them could not cause Moksha as they were not known as
-Brahm. How could union with Krishna cause Moksha, when he was not known
-as Brahm? Therefore this doubt. _Sridhara_.)
-
-Suka replied: --
-
-"O King, I have said before how Sisupla attained Siddhi even by bearing
-enmity to Hrishikesha (controller of the senses, Krishna.) What of those
-to whom Krishna is dear? (The purport is that Brahm-hood is eclipsed in
-the Jiva. But Krishna is controller of the senses. Brahm-hood is
-manifest in him. He does not require to be known. _Sridhara_). Bhagavn
-manifests himself for the Moksha of men though in reality, He is without
-end, without measure, void of all Gunas and their controller." (Krishna
-being a manifestation of Bhagavn, there is no comparison between Him
-and other embodied men. _Sridhara_.)
-
-"Bear any feeling _constantly_ towards Hari, whether it be a feeling of
-love, anger, fear, affection, kinship or devotion and you become full of
-Him. Do not wonder at this. For Krishna is the Lord of all Lords of
-Yoga. All (even the lowest life forms) attain Mukti from him. When the
-women of Vraja drew near, Krishna addressed them thus: --
-
-"'Welcome, ye great ones! What good can I do for you? Is it all safe in
-Vraja? Tell me the object of your coming here. The night is fearful and
-dangerous animals are treading round. Go back to Vraja. This is not a
-place for women. You have got your mothers, fathers, sons, brothers, and
-husbands. They are seeking you. Do not cause pain to your friends. What
-more, you have now seen this forest adorned with flowers and illumined
-by the tender rays of the full moon, where the trees and their tender
-branches, gently moved by the breeze from the Yamun, stand in all their
-beauty. Now go back, O virtuous girls, speedily to your homes and look
-after your husbands. The calves and your children are weeping. Go and
-let them have their drink. Or if you have come here, forced by your love
-for me, it is only meet and proper, for all people have their love for
-me. Devotion to husband is the one great religion for women. They are to
-seek the well being of their friends and to bring up their children. The
-husband may be wicked, old, diseased or poor. But those who wish for
-higher Lokas should not give up their husbands. The connection with one
-not the husband is disreputable and unbecoming. You may bear love to me
-in other ways than by such a near approach. Therefore go back to your
-houses.'"
-
-"The Gopis were struck dumb for a time. They became overcome with
-sorrow. They had given up every thing for the sake of Krishna and they
-could ill bear to hear these unkind words. At last they broke forth: --
-'O Lord, it is not for Thee to utter these unkind words. We have given
-up all objects and sought Thy feet. O Thou difficult to be reached, do
-not forsake us but please think of us, even as the First Purusha thinks
-of those that seek Moksha. Thou speakest, O love, of our duties to
-husbands, sons, and friends as if thou wert a religious teacher, but
-thou art thyself the goal of those religious injunctions. So let them
-rest in thee. Thou art the greatest friend of all beings, for thou art
-verily their own self. What do they care for husbands or sons, sources
-of misery as they are, who are attached to thee, the constant source of
-happiness?
-
-"'Therefore do thou show favor to us and permit us to serve Thee.' Moved
-by their piteous appeal, Krishna gave his company to the Gopis. Proud of
-that company, the Gopis deemed themselves superior to all other women on
-the earth. To put down this loss of mental balance, caused by good
-fortune and this pride, Krishna suddenly disappeared from amongst them.
-The Gopis became disconsolate. Their hearts had been too much taken up
-by the gestures and movements of Krishna. So they imitated his deeds and
-even called themselves Krishna. They all sang loudly together and madly
-searched for Krishna from forest to forest. They asked the trees if they
-had seen their lover. They enquired of the creepers, the earth and the
-deer. Fatigued at last, they again took to reproducing the deeds of
-Krishna. Some played the part of Ptan or some other Asura, some played
-the part of Krishna in connection with some of his manifold deeds. They
-again made enquiries from the plants. They then found out the footsteps
-of Krishna marked by the divine symbols (flag, the lotus, the
-thunder-bolt and the goad). Tracing those steps a little further, they
-found they were mixed up with the footprints of a girl. The Gopis
-exclaimed: --
-
-"'Surely this girl had made _rdhan_ (devout prayer for the Lord).
-Govinda left us that he might take her to a secret retreat. Sacred are
-the dust particles of Govinda's feet; even Brahm, Siva and Lakshm hold
-them on their head for the extinction of sins. Look here we no longer
-see the foot marks of that girl. It seems Krishna carried her here on
-his back and his footprints are therefore deeply marked. Here He placed
-her down to pluck flowers and touched the earth with his toes only, for
-the steps are not fully marked. Surely he placed the girl on his lap
-here and adorned her hair with flowers.' And what of that girl? She
-deemed herself very fortunate that Krishna should shew particular
-attention to her. With this sense of superiority she spoke to Krishna.
-'I can not walk. Take me to where I like on thy back.' Krishna said,
-'Get up on my back.' But when she would do so, Krishna had already
-disappeared. The girl was loudly lamenting, when the other Gopis joined
-her. They heard her story and became very much surprised. (It is
-necessary to draw the special attention of the readers to the girl, who
-had made rdhan of Hari. She is the Rdhik of Nrada Panchartra and
-of later day Vaishnavism. Rdhik means literally one who makes Rdhan
-or rdhan. But I shall not touch upon her in a study of the Bhgavata
-Purna. The study of this Purna is incomplete without a study of
-Chaitanya's teachings. And if I succeed in taking up those teachings, I
-shall consider the lofty ideal of Rdhik).
-
-"The Gopis all returned to the forest and searched for Krishna as long
-as there was moonlight. They gave up their search when it was dark. With
-thoughts all directed to Krishna, with conversations all about Him, with
-gestures and movements all after Him, with songs all about His deeds,
-the Gopis, all full of Krishna, they did not think of their homes. They
-went to the banks of the Yamun, and all sang in a chorus about Krishna,
-ardently praying for his return. (I shall not touch with my profane hand
-the songs of the Gopis. They are far too sacred for any rendering into
-English and they baffle any attempt to do so. Sweet as nectar, the
-melody of those songs is inseparable from their very essence, and he
-would be murdering Bhgavata who would attempt to translate those songs.
-For the continuity of our study it is only necessary to translate the
-fourth sloka.)
-
-"'Thou art not surely the son of Yasod. Thou art the inmost seer of all
-things. Implored by Brahm thou hast appeared, O friend, in the line of
-the Stvats, for the protection of the Universe.' While the Gopis were
-thus bewailing in melodious tunes, Krishna appeared with a smiling face.
-They formed a circle round Him and were so pleased to see Him that they
-reached the very limit of their joy. The Gopis spread out their outer
-garments as a seat for Sri Krishna, on the river bank. When Krishna sat
-down, they addressed him thus: --
-
-"'Some seek those only that seek them; some do the contrary, (_i.e._
-seek those even who do not seek them), others seek neither those that
-seek them nor those that do not seek them. Please tell us, what is all
-this.'
-
-"Said Sri Krishna: -- 'Those that seek each other are guided in their
-efforts by selfishness. There is neither friendship nor virtue in that
-mutuality. It is all for a selfish end. (Even the beasts seek mutual
-good. _Sridhara_. And do not the Utilitarians and the evolutionists do
-so)? Those that seek the unseeking are either kind-hearted men or they
-are guided by affection like the parents. It is pure virtue in the
-former case and friendship in the latter.
-
-"'Those that do not seek the people that seek them and far less those
-that do not seek them fall under one of the following four classes: --
-
-"'(1) Those that seek pleasure in self (and not in the outside world),
-(2) those that are satiated, (3) the ungrateful and (4) the treacherous.
-But I do not belong to any of these classes, I do not seek those that
-seek me in order to make them seek me continually and constantly. For
-when a poor man gains wealth and then loses it, he becomes so full of
-that loss that no other thought can enter his mind (_i.e._ to help the
-continuity and constancy of the devotional feeling, I do not show open
-favor to a devotee. This is an act of supreme kindness and friendship).
-You have given up for my sake all worldly concerns, the Vedas and even
-your own relations. I seek you from behind, being out of sight.
-Therefore you ought rightly to be angry with me. Even with the life of a
-God, I cannot make any return for your devotion to me, for you have
-burst asunder the ever fresh chains of home life, in order to seek me.
-So let your own goodness be the only recompense for your devotion.'"
-
-
-THE RSA.
-
-
-Govinda commenced Rsa with his devoted band. (Rsa is a kind of dance
-in which many dancing girls take part.) The Gopis formed a circle, and
-Krishna, the Lord of Yoga, was between every two of them and he pressed
-them all unto his shoulders, and each of them thought that Krishna was
-near to her. (How could one Krishna stand between every two of them and
-how could each Gopi think that he was near to her only, when he was near
-to them all? Therefore "the Lord of Yoga" _i.e._ of unimaginable powers.
-_Sridhara_.) The sky became filled with hundreds of chariots of Devas
-and Deva girls, eager to witness the scene. Drums beat and flowers
-rained. The Gandharva kings with their wives sang the pure glory of
-Krishna. Loud was the clash of the Gopis' ornaments. They danced and
-sang in great excitement. The moon lingered on with amazed look and the
-night became prolonged. So the dance continued till at last the Gopis
-became fatigued. Krishna wiped off their sweat and went with them to
-bathe in the Yamun. After the bath they most reluctantly took leave of
-Krishna.
-
-In these enjoyments Krishna was self-contained.
-
-Asked Rj Parikshit: --
-
-"The Incarnation of svara is for the spread of Dharma and the putting
-down of Adharma. What is this enjoyment of others' wives, contrary to
-all injunctions and hateful in itself, by one who is at once the
-originator and preserver of all Dharma?"
-
-Suka said: -- Even the great are seen to violate what we call Dharma and
-the gods become over bold. But this does not bespeak any evil of them,
-as they have got superior force, even as fire eats everything but is
-ever pure. But he who is not capable (_i.e._ who is a slave to his body
-and its attributes) is not to perform such acts even in mind. If he does
-such acts through ignorance, he is sure to be ruined. It is only Siva
-that could drink the poison that appeared from the ocean of milk. The
-words of the Lords (svara) are true. Their deeds are only sometimes
-true, (_i.e._ their exceptional life, which is governed by extraordinary
-consideration and unusual conditions, is not meant always as an example
-for ordinary beings. But what they say is always for the good of the
-universe and is to be followed as a teaching. What is given as their
-life is also sometimes allegorical and has to be understood in another
-sense). The wise man therefore follows such of their deeds as are
-consistent with the other words of the great ones. They have nothing to
-gain or lose by good or bad deeds. For they have no Egoism in them. What
-is good and what is bad to him who is the Lord of all beings? By
-devotion to His feet and by power of Yoga, even Munis are freed from the
-bonds of good and evil. The Lord did only assume a body at will. Whence
-could there be any bondage in His case? (And was there really an
-enjoyment of others' wives? No for He dwells in all beings, even the
-Gopis and their husbands. He is the manifestor of all the senses. The
-assumption of the body is only a playful fancy. It is for the good of
-all beings that He became a man. His indulgences are such as are likely
-to make one devoted to Him, when heard of. Even the minds of those that
-are very much turned away from svara are attracted towards svara, by
-means of Sringra Rsa or love topics. Hence the love matter of Sri
-Krishna. This is the purport. _Sridhara_) The people of Vraja, deluded
-by the My of Krishna, thought that their wives were by their side.
-They bore no ill-feeling towards Krishna. (It follows that those who
-perform such acts without such powers are sinners. _Sridhara_.)
-
-When it was Brahm Muhurta, (the part of the night immediately preceding
-the dawn), the Gopis, with the permission of Sri Krishna, reluctantly
-left Him and went home.
-
-He who hears or recites this play of Vishnu with the women of Vraja
-acquires supreme devotion to Bhagavat and shakes off in no time that
-disease of the heart called Kma or passion for women.
-
-
-SUDARSANA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 34.*
-
-(The Rsa is a teaching about conquering Kma by treating of indulgence
-in Kma itself. Similarly this chapter treats of the conquest of
-Vidyadhara. _Sridhara_.)
-
-On the occasion of a sacred festival the Gopas went to the banks of the
-Sarasvati. (Students will mark the significance of the Sarasvati, which
-corresponds to Sushumn in the human system at this stage of spiritual
-development). They adored Pasupati (Siva) and Ambik (Durg). They
-passed the night on the river bank. A huge serpent swallowed Nanda. The
-Gopas burnt the animal but it would not let go its hold; Krishna then
-touched it with his feet and out came a Vidyadhara from the serpent
-body. This Vidyadhara, by name Sudarsana, had been cursed by Rishi
-Angiras for having slighted him and became a serpent.
-
-
-SANKHA CHDA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 34.*
-
-One day Rma and Krishna came to the forest to have company with the
-Gopis. It was the first part of the night. They played upon the flute
-and the Gopis listened to the music with rapt attention. At this time
-Sankha Chda, the well-known attendant of Kuvera, drove the Gopis away
-northward. The girls wept and called out to Krishna and Rma for help.
-They ran after the Yaksha who in terror left the Gopis and fled away.
-Rma remained in charge of the Gopa girls. Krishna overtook Sankha Chda
-and severed his head with its jewel and presented the crest jewel to
-Balarma.
-
-
-THE SEPARATION SONG OF THE GOPIS.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 35.*
-
-At night the Gopis enjoyed the company of Krishna. But the day was their
-time of separation and, when Krishna went to the forest, they passed the
-time any how in singing about him. For the separation song, please refer
-to the original.
-
-
-ARISHTA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 36.*
-
-Arishta, an Asura in the form of a bull, attacked the quarters of the
-cows. The cows fled away and the Gopas cried out "Krishna, O Krishna
-save us," Krishna killed the Asura.
-
-
-NRADA AND KANSA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 36.*
-
-Nrada told Kansa: -- "The female child was the daughter of Yasod;
-Krishna and Rma are sons of Devaki. Vsudeva kept them with his friend
-Nanda out of fear. Those two brothers have killed your spies." In rage
-the king of Bhoja took his sword to kill Vsudeva. Nrada prevented him.
-But the King put Yasudeva and his wife in iron fetters. He then ordered
-Kesi to kill Rma and Krishna. He called his ministers together in
-council. Addressing Chnur and Mushtika he said: -- "Rma and Krishna
-are to kill us. So Nrada told me." Those two Asuras came ready for
-Vraja. But Kansa said: "No, you need not go. I shall send for the two
-brothers and kill them in a wrestling match. So prepare the playground.
-Place the elephant Kubalaypida at the entrance and let him kill my
-enemies. On the fourteenth day of the Moon, let us commence Dhanus
-Yajna, and let animals be killed in honor of Siva."
-
-Kansa then sent for Akrra, one of the chiefs of the Yadu clan.
-"Akrra," said he, "Thou art my friend and do the work of a friend.
-Please go to Vraja. Take this chariot and bring the two sons of
-Vsudeva. Tell them, they are to see the Dhanus Yajna and have a sight
-of the town. Let Nanda and other Gopas come with presents. The elephant
-shall kill the two boys. Or if perchance they escape, the wrestlers
-shall do away with them. I will then make easy work of Vsudeva, my old
-father Ugrasena, his brother Devaka, the Vrishnis, the Bhojas and the
-Dasrhas. Then, O friend, the earth will be left without a thorn.
-Jarsandha is my guide. Dvivid is my friend. Samvara, Naraka, and Vna
-have made alliance with me. With the help of these, I shall kill all
-kings that are on the side of the Devas. Know this to be my plan."
-Akrra said: -- "The design is all right. But it may or may not succeed.
-Even lofty desires are frustrated by unforeseen obstacles. Still man
-entertains them, to meet with either joy or sorrow. But I will do thy
-behests."
-
-The council broke up.
-
-
-KESI.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 37.*
-
-In the meantime, Kesi, under the orders of Kansa, entered Vraja, in the
-form of a fiery steed, Krishna held him aloft by the feet and threw him
-away. The Asura regained consciousness and again ran after Krishna. He
-thrust his hand inside the mouth of the Asura and killed him at once.
-The Devas rained flowers over him and prayed. Rishi Nrada also appeared
-and adored him, making reference to his future deeds.
-
-
-VYOMA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 37.*
-
-The Gopas were grazing cattle on the flat summit of a hill. Some played
-the part of thieves, some, that of cattle keepers and some the part of
-sheep. The Asura Vyoma, (the word meaning ksa), son of My, assumed
-the form of a Gopa, and playing the part of a thief carried away many
-Gopas, who became sheep and he confined them in a hill cave closed by
-stones. In the playground only four or five Gopas remained. Krishna
-found out the mischief, attacked the Asura and killed him.
-
-
-AKRRA.
-
-
-Akrra was mightily pleased that he would see the lotus feet of Rma and
-Krishna. His devotion to Krishna knew no bounds and he knew full well
-that, whatever his mission might be, the Lord would find out his inward
-devotion. At sunset he reached Gokula and, on seeing Rma and Krishna,
-fell down at their feet. They duly honored him. Nanda also shewed every
-respect to Akrra. At night Akrra made a clean breast of everything to
-Rma and Krishna, telling how Kansa oppressed the Yadus, how Nrada
-informed him of their presence in Vraja and who they were, how he
-planned their death, and the mission on which he sent him. Rma and
-Krishna only laughed. The next morning they informed Nanda about the
-command of the king. Nanda asked the Gopas to prepare themselves with
-presents.
-
-And the Gopa girls? Who could measure the depth of their sorrow? Their
-plaintive strains were most heart-rending. They wept They followed the
-chariot carrying Rma and Krishna. Krishna to console them sent word
-that he would come back. At last the chariot became invisible and the
-Gopis went back to their homes.
-
-On reaching the banks of the Yamun the brothers took their bath in the
-river and refreshed themselves with its water. They took their seat
-again in the chariot. Akrra asked their permission and went to bathe.
-He plunged himself in the waters and duly performed the ablution
-ceremonies. He made a _japa_ (repeated recital) of Veda Mantras. But lo!
-he found before him Rma and Krishna. They were in the chariot. How
-could they appear then? He rose and saw the boys were really seated in
-the chariot. He plunged himself once more and saw in the waters the
-serpent king Ananta, with a thousand heads and a thousand crowns,
-dressed in blue clothes, white in body, adored by Siddhas, Chranas,
-Gandhavas, and Asuras. Embraced by him was the dark Purusha, dressed in
-yellow clothes, with four hands, adored by the Rishis.
-
-Akrra made salutations and adored the Purusha with folded hands.
-
-Krishna then withdrew his form, as a play is withdrawn from the stage.
-Akrra got up and took his seat in the chariot.
-
-Krishna said: -- "Akrra, you look as if you have seen something
-unusual." Akrra replied: -- "What is there in the universe that is not
-in thee. When I have seen thee, I have seen everything." They drove on
-again and at last reached Mathur.
-
-
-MATHUR.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 41-42.*
-
-Akrra asked Krishna and all the Gopas to come to his house. But Krishna
-would first kill Kansa before doing him this favor. So Akrra
-sorrowfully left him and informed Kansa about the performance of his
-mission.
-
-Krishna with Balarma and the Gopas went out to see the town. The house
-tops became crowded with females who wanted to have a look at Krishna,
-whose fame had already preceded him. A washerman passed that way.
-Krishna begged him to give him some choice clothes. But he was the
-washerman of Kansa and he arrogantly refused to give any of the King's
-clothes. Krishna in anger cut off his head. The attendants left the
-clothes and fled away. Rma and Krishna took as many as they liked and
-gave the rest to the Gopas.
-
-A weaver came forward of his own accord and gladly dressed the brothers
-with choice clothes. Krishna rewarded him with great powers and provided
-for him Srupya (a kind of Mukti) after death.
-
-Then the brothers went to the house of a garland-maker named Sudm.
-Sudm fell down at their feet and adorned them and the Gopas with the
-best garlands. The garland-maker prayed for constant devotion, for
-friendship with the devotees and for love of all beings. Krishna gave
-him these boons as well as many other blessings.
-
-A young girl went that way with fragrant paste in her hand. Though young
-and beautiful, she was hunch-backed.
-
-Krishna said smilingly: -- "Fine girl that thou art, tell me truly what
-this scented thing is for. Anoint us with this, and good shall be your
-lot." The girl said: -- "My name is Trivakr (with three bends). I am a
-servant of Kansa. He likes my paste very much. Who but you can deserve
-to have it?" The girl then anointed the brothers, with zeal and love.
-Krishna pressed her feet with the tips of his own feet and held up her
-chin with two fingers and with a little effort made her erect. The hunch
-on her back was gone and she became a beauty. She invited Krishna to her
-own house. Krishna knew her object and said "Let me first do my work and
-then I shall visit your house." He then passed through the traders'
-quarters. They made various presents. Krishna then enquired where the
-Yajna Dhanus (the bow to be used in the performance of the Yajna) was.
-Though warned by the citizens, he entered the place and easily broke the
-bow asunder. There was great noise. The warders ran to kill him. He
-killed the guardsmen with the two parts of the bow.
-
-It was then sun-set. The boys returned with the Gopas to their quarters.
-
-Kansa heard of the valour of the boys and passed the night in evil
-dreams. When the day broke, he made preparations for the wrestling
-match.
-
-
-THE WRESTLING.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 43-44.*
-
-Kansa took his seat on a raised platform with his ministers. There was
-beating of drums. The athletes appeared on the scene, headed by Chnur,
-Mushtika, Kta, Sala and Tosala. Nanda and other Gopas made their
-presents and were shown over to another platform.
-
-Hearing the noise, Rma and Krishna also came to see the match. At the
-entrance they were obstructed by the elephant Kubalaypida. Krishna
-asked the driver to remove the elephant, but he only set it upon him.
-There was a fight and Krishna at last succeeded in felling the elephant
-to the ground. He then plucked out its teeth and with their help, he
-killed both the animal and its driver. Blood-stained, the two brothers
-entered the wrestling ground with the ivory teeth in their hands. All
-were struck by their appearance. The account of the elephant's death
-struck terror into Kansa's heart. He began to tremble. The people of
-Mathur were attracted by the divine form of the brothers and they began
-to talk about their deeds. Chnra addressing the brothers said: -- "You
-are known as good wrestlers. The King has therefore invited you to this
-match. Come and do the pleasure of the King, for the King is the
-embodiment of all Devas."
-
-Krishna said: -- "We dwell in the forest. But still we are subjects of
-the King of Bhoja. That we are ordered to please the King is a great
-favor to us. But we are boys. We shall play with those of equal might.
-There will then be a fair match and there will be no injustice attaching
-to those present here."
-
-Chnra replied: --
-
-"You are neither a boy nor a youth below fifteen, Krishna. Nor is
-Balarma so. You killed that elephant with the might of a thousand
-elephants as it were in sport. It is meet therefore you shall fight with
-the powerful. There is no injustice in this. You measure your strength
-with me and let Balarma do so with Mushtika."
-
-So it was. The fight was a drawn one. At last the brothers killed their
-rivals. Kta then confronted Balarma, who killed him with his fist.
-Sola and Tosala also fell dead before Krishna. The other wrestlers fled
-for their lives. Rma and Krishna then called their Gopa companions and
-began to dance together on the wrestling ground. "Well done," "Well
-done," cried all, except Kansa.
-
-
-THE DEATH OF KANSA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 44.*
-
-Kansa stopped the music. He exclaimed. "Let these two unruly sons of
-Vsudeva be driven out from the town. Take away the wealth of the Gopas.
-Confine this wicked Nanda. Kill that vile Vsudeva. My father Ugrasena
-is partial to my enemies. Kill him with all his attendants." While Kansa
-was thus bragging Krishna got angry and with one jump, he got upon the
-platform. Kansa stood up with his sword and shield. Krishna held him by
-his hair and threw him down from the platform. He then jumped over Kansa
-and his life departed. He then dragged the dead body of Kansa in the
-presence of all. Kansa through fear and anxiety had always thought of
-Krishna and now being killed by his hands, he attained the Rpa of
-Krishna. The eight brothers of Kansa attacked Krishna but they were put
-to death by Balarma. There was great rejoicing amongst the Devas.
-
-The wives of Kansa loudly lamented the death of their husband. Bhagavn
-consoled them. He then liberated his father and mother and touched their
-feet. He then took leave of Nanda and the Gopas, promising a speedy
-return to them.
-
-
-THE THREAD CEREMONY AND BRAHMACHARYA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 45.*
-
-Krishna placed Ugrasena on the throne. The Yadus, Vrishnis, Andhakas,
-Madhus, Dasarhas and Kukkuras, who had left Mathur for fear of Kansa,
-now returned to that town. Vsudeva called the Purohita (family priest)
-Garga and performed the Upanayana ceremony (investiture of the sacred
-thread) of his sons. They then became twice-born. (Dvija-Brhmanas,
-Kshatriyas and Vaisyas are the twice-born classes. Krishna was a
-Kshatriya by birth). After Upanayana, one has to practise Brahmcharya
-_i.e._ he has to reside at the house of his Guru, learn the Vedas from
-him and practise asceticism at the same time. According to practice,
-Rma and Krishna went to reside at the house of Rishi Sandipani of
-Avanti of the line of Kasyapa. The brothers learned the Vedas, the
-Vedangas and all the branches of learning in sixty four days. Then they
-requested their Guru to name his Dakshin. (When a disciple leaves his
-Guru after the completion of study, he has to give some Dakshin or
-present according to his power to the Guru). Sandipani in consultation
-with his wife asked for the restoration to life of his son, who had been
-drowned in the sea at Prabhsa Kshetra. "All right," said the brothers.
-They took their chariot and went to the sea-side. The sea brought
-presents. But Krishna asked for the restoration of his Guru's son. The
-sea replied: -- "I did not carry him off, but one Asura named
-Panchajana, who lives in my waters in the form of a conch." Krishna
-entered the waters and killed Panchajana. But he did not find the boy
-within the Asura's body. Me took the conch and came back. He then went
-with Balarma to the seat of Yma called Sanyamani and blew the conch.
-Yma adored the brothers and wanted to know their behests.
-
-Bhagavn said: -- "My Guru's son has certainly been brought here by his
-own Karma. But hear my command and bring him to me." "So be it" said
-Yma, and brought back the Guru's son. The brothers took him to their
-father and said: "What more do you ask, O Guru?"
-
-The Guru said: -- "I have nothing more to ask. Now you may go home."
-
-
-UDDHAVA AND VRAJA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 46.*
-
-Uddhava was the chief counsellor of the Vrishnis, the dear friend of
-Krishna and the direct disciple of Brihaspati. He was second to none in
-wisdom. His dress and decorations were those of Krishna.
-
-Krishna called his friend aside and said: --
-
-"Go, Uddhava, to Vraja. Bear my love to Nanda and Yasod, Give my
-message to the Gopis, which will be a relief to them in their distress.
-Their desires are all centred in me. I am their life. They have given up
-all worldly connections for my sake. I am their dearest and nearest
-friend. I protect those that give up worldly duties for my sake. So
-painful is my separation to the Gopis that they are beside themselves.
-Any how they live and that with difficulty, only because I sent word of
-my speedy return."
-
-Gladly Uddhava accepted the mission. He went to Vraja and stayed there
-for a few months, consoling the Gopas and Gopis.
-
-To Nanda and Yasod he said: --
-
-"Rma and Krishna are the efficient and the material cause of the
-Universe -- Purusha and Pradhana. They pervade all beings and guide the
-workings of individual natures. Krishna would fulfil the promise he made
-to you on the wrestling ground and come back to Vraja ere long. Do not
-grieve O great ones. You shall see Krishna by your side: He is within
-the heart of all beings, as fire is inside all fuel, To him nothing is
-agreeable or disagreeable, nothing high or low. He has no father, no
-wife, no sons, no one near or distant, no body, no birth, no Karma. For
-the protection of Sdhus he manifests himself in different births at his
-own pleasure. Though void of all Gunas, he seeks them at pleasure for
-the purpose of creation. As a stationary body appears to be moving, so
-tm appears to be working, though Chitta is the worker. Krishna is not
-your son only. But he is of all the sons, the self, father, mother and
-svara. Nothing exists in reality but Krishna."
-
-Excited were the effusions of the Gopis, on seeing Uddhava. (They may be
-interesting to the general reader but to the student the message
-delivered by Uddhava is the only necessary portion at this stage of the
-story. The reader is therefore referred to other translations for those
-highly poetical effusions.)
-
-Uddhava informed the Gopis that he was the secret messenger of Krishna.
-He then delivered the following message from Bhagavn: -- "You have no
-separation from me, for I am all-pervading. As the five elements earth,
-water, air, fire and ether enter into the composition of all beings, so
-I underlie Manas, Prana, the Bhtas and the Indriyas, as also the Gunas
-themselves. I create, preserve and destroy self in self by self. By my
-My, I become the Bhtas, the Indriyas and the Gunas. But tm is pure,
-it is all consciousness (Jnna), separate, unconnected with the Gunas.
-It is only by the mental states of wakefulness, dream and dreamless
-sleep that egoistic perceptions are caused in tm. (The objects of
-perception in one state appear to be unreal in another state.) The
-objects of dream perception appear to be unreal to the awakened man. The
-mind (being the common factor in all the three states) perceives these
-(unreal) objects of the senses and it underlies the senses themselves.
-Sleeplessly therefore control the mind. This is the final reach of the
-Vedas, of Yoga, and of Snkhya, of relinquishment, of Tapas, of the
-control of senses, and of Truth itself. This is the ocean into which all
-rivers fall.
-
-"That I, though pleasing to your eyes, remain away from you is because I
-want you constantly to meditate on me, for such meditation will attract
-your mind more towards me. The mind of women does not dwell so much upon
-the lover, near at hand, dearest though he be, as it dwells upon a
-distant lover, being full of him.
-
-"By devoting your whole mind to me, free from all other thoughts, and by
-constantly meditating on me you shall forthwith attain me. Even those
-girls that remained at Vraja and could not join the Rsa attained me by
-meditating on My powers." The words of Uddhava only reminded the Gopis
-of the doings of Krishna. They loudly took his name. They were full of
-Krishna and would not forget him. But they knew from His message that He
-was tm and their pain of separation was gone.
-
-Uddhava remained for several days at Vraja, reminding all of Sri
-Krishna. When he left Vraja he wished that he could be one of the
-creepers or herbs in Vrindvana, that had been rendered sacred by the
-dust of the Gopis' feet. (With that wish let us take leave of the
-Vrindvana Lil of Bhagavn Sri Krishna.)
-
-
-THOUGHTS ON THE VRINDVANA LIL.
-
-
-Before making any remarks of my own, it will be necessary to draw upon
-the Upanishads.
-
-Gopla Tpani is one of the chief Upanishads dealing with Krishna. The
-work is divided into two parts. The first part gives one yantra for the
-Upsan of Krishna. The second part gives a narration. The women of
-Vraja asked Krishna to name some Brhmana to whom they could make
-offerings of food. Krishna named Durvasas. "But how can we approach him
-without crossing the Yamun?" asked the Gopis.
-
-"Take my name, that of Krishna, a Brahmcharin, and the Yamun shall
-give you way" So it was. The Gopis crossed the Yamun and went to the
-srama of Durvasas, the incarnation of Rudra. They offered the sweet
-things to the Rishi and when he partook of these, he permitted the Gopis
-to retire. "But how can we cross the Yamun?"
-
-The Rishi replied: -- "Remember me, the eater of Durv (a kind of grass)
-and the river shall give way."
-
-"Krishna a Brahmcharin! And thou an eater of Durv only? How can that
-be?" asked the chief Gopi and she asked a number of other questions.
-
-(According to the common exoteric notion Sri Krishna is the lord of many
-women and Durvasas is a voracious Rishi. This is the cause of the
-wonder.)
-
-Durvasas first explained that Krishna was the all-pervading Purusha,
-underlying all. Then further on, there are seven _Skmya_ Puris or
-places, on the top of Meru, as well as seven _nishkmya_ Puris.
-
-(The commentator Visvesvara explains "Skmya," as regions where desires
-fructify. As on the Meru there are seven such Puris, so there are seven
-Nishkmya or Moksha-producing Puri's). On the earth, these, are seven
-Skmya Puris (Ayodhy, Mathur and others.) Of these Gopla Puri
-(Mathur) is the direct abode of Brahm.
-
-As the lotus floats on the lake, Mathur rears itself up on the earth,
-protected by Chakra, the disc of Vishnu. Hence it is called Gopla Puri.
-This Puri is surrounded by twelve forests: --
-
-Brihat Vana (from Brihat or great, large).
-
-Madhu Vana (From Madhu, a daitya).
-
-Tla Vana (Tla or palm tree).
-
-Bahula Vana (From Bahula, a kind of tree).
-
-Kumud Vana (From Kumud, flower).
-
-Khadira Vana (From Khadira or the catechu plant).
-
-Bhadra Vana (From Bhadra, a kind of tree).
-
-Bhndira Vana (From Bhndira, the name of a religious fig tree).
-
-Sr Vana (From Sr or Lakshm).
-
-Loha-vana (from Loha, the name of an Asura.)
-
-And Vrindvana (from Vrinda or Tulasi plant.)
-
-These twelve forests are presided over by the 12 dityas, 11 Rudras,
-eight Vasus, seven Rishis, Brahm, Nrada, the five Vinyakas (Moda,
-Pramoda, moda, Sumukha and Durmukha), Viresvara, Rudresvara,
-Visvesvara, Gopalesvara, Bhadresvara, and 24 other Siva Lingas.
-
-There are two chief forests, Krishnavana and Bhadra vana. The 12 forests
-are included in these. They are all sacred, some of them most sacred.
-
-There are four forms of Vishnu (Mrtis) in these forests, Rma
-(Sankarshana), Pradyumna, Aniruddha and Krishna (Vsudeva).
-
-There are twelve other Mrtis in Mathur:
-
-_Roudr_ adored by the Rudras.
-
-_Brhmi_, by Brahm.
-
-_Dev_, by the sons of Brahm.
-
-_Mnav_, by the Maruts.
-
-_Vighna nsin_, by the Yinayakas.
-
-_Kmy_, by the Vasus.
-
-_rsh_, by the Rishis.
-
-_Gndharvi_, by the Gandharvas.
-
-_Go_, by the Apsarasas.
-
-_Antardhnasth_ remains hidden.
-
-_Svapadangat_ is at the supreme abode of Vishnu.
-
-_Bhmisith_ remains on the earth (Bhmi).
-
-Those who worship _Bhmisth_ know no death, they become liberated.
-
-Gopa is Jiva (Ego).
-
-Gopla = Gopa (Jiva) + la (acceptor).
-
-Gopla is he who accepts the Jivas as his own.
-
-He who realises "I am Gopla" attains Moksha. Gopla always remains at
-Mathur. Mathur is the place for devotion.
-
-The Lotus of the heart is Mathur with its eight petals. The two feet of
-Nryana are there marked with the divine Symbols (flag, umbrella &c.).
-The object of meditation there is either Krishna, with Srivatsa, with
-Kaustubha, with four hands, bearing Sankha, Chakra, Padma, and Gad,
-with arms adorned by Keyra, with the neck adorned by a garland, with a
-crown on the head and with Makara-shaped Kundalas on the ears; or it is
-Krishna with, two hands, bearing a flute and horn.
-
-Mathur is from _Math_, to put down, because materiality is put down
-there by divine wisdom. The eight Dikplas (Indra, Agni, Vayu, Varuna
-and others) preside over the eight petals of the Lotus in the heart.
-
-The "flags" have the glow of the Sun and the Moon.
-
-The umbrella is Brahm Loka.
-
-The two feet are "above" and "below."
-
-Kaustubha is that light which overpowers all other lights _viz._, Surya,
-Agni, Vak and Chandra.
-
-The "four hands" are Satva, Rajas, Tamas and Ahankra.
-
-"Sankha," consisting of the five Bhtas, is held by the hand
-representing Rajas.
-
-"Chakra," consisting of Manas, is held by the hand representing Satva.
-
-"Padma" is the universe, the primal My. It is held by the hand,
-representing Tamas.
-
-"Gad" is primal Vidya or wisdom. It is held by the hand, representing
-Ahankra.
-
-"Garland" round the neck consists of the Mnasa Putras of Brahm. The
-crown is Sat, absolute existence. The different life forms and the
-underlying Jiva are the two "Kundalas" on the ear.
-
-Then we come to MANTRA BHAGAVATA or Bhgavata written in Vedic Mantras,
-a stiff work not quite intelligible without the excellent gloss of
-Nilkantha (published at the Venkatesvara Press, Bombay). This work is
-said to have been found out by Nilkantha. It is divided into four parts
--- Gokula Knda, Vrindvana Knda, Akrra Knda and Mathur Knda. The
-chief events of Krishna's divine life (Lil) are narrated in this book,
-but in the order of narration., it follows Hari Vansa more than the
-Bhgavata Purna. I refer only to those portions of the book, which to
-me appear important.
-
-We take the following from the Gokula Knda. The Gopas are
-re-incarnations of Devas. They are the messengers of Krishna. They are
-fond of _Gavya_ or the products of Cows. The relation between Krishna
-and the Gopas is that between an object and its image. Krishna drove the
-cattle of Nanda, just as he drove the horses of Arjuna, the object of
-doing so being in both the cases the destruction of all the enemies
-(III). In commenting on the 5th Sloka, Nilkantha calls Krishna the white
-ray of the Sun, which becomes the blue ray, which is in reality the ray
-of Sat, Chit and Ananda. He refers in this connection to the word Bharga
-(ray) in the Gayatri. Krishna is the heart of the Sun.
-
-The sixth sloka explains this: --
-
-"It is Krishna who causes bliss. The Sun God (Savitri), being guided by
-Krishna, goes his way on the golden chariot (VI)."
-
-In the 11th sloka, Krishna is called the Black ray.
-
-Mother Aditi (Earth) asked her son Indra for relief (VII). At the
-request of Indra, Vishnu entered the womb of Devaki. He first ensouled
-seven Ardha-Garbhas. (_Ardha_ is half and _Garbha_ is a foetal child.
-The six sons of Kala-nemi -- the name of a demon, literally, the rim of
-the wheel of time, known as Shat Garbhas, pleased Brahm by worship and
-became immortal. They were the grandsons of Hiranyakasipu. He cursed
-them saying: --
-
-"I am your own grandfather. But you disregard me for the sake of the
-Divine Grandfather Brahm. Hence you shall be killed by the hands of
-your own father." They remained in their Linga Sarira in Ptla.
-
-They incarnated as the first six sons of Vsudeva and were killed by
-Kansa, the incarnation of Kala-nemi. This is related in Harivansa.
-Therefore they are called Ardha Garbhas. The seventh Balarma is also
-called Ardha-Garbha, as he was drawn away from Devakl to Rohini.
-_Nilkantha_) IX.
-
-The Black ray (Sat, Chit and Ananda) incarnated in Devakt's womb.
-
-Krishna is Antarymin or inside all beings.
-
-Balarma is Sutrtm, the Ego. XIX.
-
-The Cart Asura (_Sakata_) is a messenger of the death God from the
-South, XX.
-
-_Ptan_ is a weapon of death in the form of a bird. XXI.
-
-_Trinvarta_ is the disease, known as consumption.
-
-The Gopas asked Krishna for the milk-products. As devas, they had never
-known such offerings in Yajnas. They informed Krishna, where the milk
-made things were to be found. (XXIII and XXIV.) For the gratification of
-the universe, the longings of Krishna are great and for this reason he
-did not spare any fresh butter of the Gopis. The Gopis learned from this
-that for the bare up-keep of their lives, they were to attend to their
-household duties (XXVI). (If the boys are to steal away all the butter,
-life itself will be extinguished. People should have enough left for
-their household requirement. If I taste only a little of the butter, all
-the three Lokas will be gratified, and the Gopis will acquire the merit
-thereof. Considering all this, Bhagavn tasted butter by stealth
-_Nilkantka_. This means, in so many words, that Krishna accepted the
-fruits of all the actions of the Gopis except such as sufficed to
-preserve their lives). The Gopis complained to Yasod of the stealing
-acts of Krishna. XXVII.
-
-_Vrindvana Knda_.
-
-The dwellers of Gokula migrated with Krishna to Vrinddvana, for fear of
-Vrikas or wolves. (Kma and other passions are the wolves, _Nitkantha_),
-I.
-
-In treating of Pralamba Asura, mention is made of the nonperception of
-"I am Brahm," VII.
-
-Pralamba is said to be an aspect of the primal Daitya Madhu, IX.
-
-There is some philosophical discussion about the concealment of calves
-by Brahm, (X to XIV.)
-
-The first six sons of Devaki are the Six Indriyas (including Manas) and
-the seventh is the Jivtma, the conscious Ego. XXXV.
-
-In commenting upon this sloka, Nilkantha says, "Devaki and other names
-are merely allegorical, bearing an esoteric meaning. The narration is
-not the real point." He further supports his position while commenting
-on sloka XL, of Vrindvana Knda. He makes quotations from the Skanda
-Purna, which speak of the twofold meanings of the narration texts, one
-dhytmika and another dhi bhautika, the former being difficult to
-follow. Following up these quotations, Nilkantha says; "Those that are
-not prepared for the dhytmika hindering of all modifications of the
-mind, must seek the dhibhautika Lil of Bhagavn. And if they
-concentrate their minds on the _holy deeds of Bhagavn_, they acquire
-the result of Samdhi."
-
-Krishna is Paramtm. The intercourse of the Gopis was not therefore
-adulterous. (XXXVII and XXXVIII.)
-
-_Akrra Knda_.
-
-In this Knda, Akrra comes to Vraja and takes Rma and Krishna to
-Mathur.
-
-_Mathura Knda_.
-
-This part treats of the killing of Kansa by Krishna.
-
-Krishna is described as the knower of the hidden names of the cows. (It
-is to be understood that the cows have hidden names, _Nilkantha_.)
-
-We now come to KRISHNA UPANISHAD, one of the Atharvana Upanishads.
-
-The Gopas are Devas.
-
-"Nanda" is Supreme bliss.
-
-"Yasod" is Mukti.
-
-My is three-fold Stvika, Rjasika and Tmasika.
-
-Satvika My is in Rudra, Rjasika in Brahm and Tmasika in the
-Daityas.
-
-Devaki (_Deva+ki_ or chanted by the Devas) is Brahm Vidya.
-
-"Vsudeva" is Nigama.
-
-The "Gopis" and the cows are Riks. (Vedic Mantras)
-
-Brahm is the stick of Krishna.
-
-Rudra is His flute.
-
-Indra is the horn,
-
-"Gokula Vna" is Vaikuntha.
-
-The trees are the Rishis of Vaikuntha.
-
-The Daityas (Trinvarta and others) are greed, anger and other passions.
-Krishna, in the form of Gopa, is Hari. Rma is the Sesha serpent.
-
-The eight principal wives and the sixteen thousand and one hundred minor
-wives of Krishna are the Riks and Upanishads.
-
-"Chnra" is Dvesha (Dislike).
-
-"Mushtika" is Matsara (Egoism, Envy).
-
-"Kubalaya pda" is Darpa (pride).
-
-"Vaka" is Garva (Arrogance).
-
-"Rohini" is Day (Tenderness).
-
-"Satya bhama" is Ahins, (Non-Injury).
-
-"Agha" is some fatal disease, such as consumption &c.
-
-"Kansa" is Kali(?) (The commentator Nryana says that by Kali we are
-here to understand Kalaha or quarrel, for Kansa is the incarnation of
-Klanemi and Duryodhana is the incarnation of Kali.).
-
-"Sudman" is Sama (restraint of the mind).
-
-"Akrra" is Satya (Truth).
-
-"Uddhava" is Dama (restraint of the senses).
-
-"Sankha" is Vishnu himself in the form of Lakshm.
-
-The Milk products of the Gopis correspond to the ocean of milk in the
-universe.
-
-Kasyapa is the Ulkhala (wooden mortar used in cleansing rice), to which
-Krishna was tied by Yasod.
-
-The rope that was used in the tying of Sri Krishna is Aditi. Chakra is
-Veda.
-
-The garland Vaijayanti is Dharma.
-
-The umbrella is kasa.
-
-Gad is the Goddess Kalika.
-
-The bow of horn (Srnga) is the My of Vishnu.
-
-The Arrow is Kla, the destroyer of all lives.
-
-The Lotus is the seed of the universe. Garuda is the religious fig tree
-named Bhndira.
-
-The following is taken from GOPI CHANDANA UPANISHAD.
-
-"What is Gopi?
-
-"She who preserves.
-
-"Preserves from what?
-
-"Preserves people from Naraka, from death and from fear."
-
-HARIVANSA says: --
-
-"Kansa is Klanemi,
-
-"Kesin is Haya Grva,
-
-"Arishta is son of Bali, the Elephant is Rishta, son of Diti, Chnra
-and Mushtika are the Asuras, Varaha and Kisora."
-
-PADMA PURANA throws the greatest light on the Vrindvana Lil of Sri
-Krishna. The chapters refer to the Ptla Khanda of that Purna.
-
-Ch. 38. Of innumerable Brahmndas (solar systems), there is one supreme
-seat, that of Vishnu. Of this seat, Goloka is the highest aspect, and
-Vaikuntha, Siva Loka and others are the lower aspects. Goloka is
-represented on the earth by Gokula, and Vaikuntha by Dvrak. Vrindvana
-is within the jurisdiction of Mathur. Mathur has the form of the
-thousand-petalled lotus, situated in the head.
-
-Of the forests in Gokula, the twelve chief ones are: -- Bhadra, Sri,
-Loha, Bhndira, Mahvana, Tla, Khadir, Bakula, Kumud, Kmya, Madhu and
-Vrindvan. There are several sub-forests too, which witnessed some scene
-or other of Krishna Lil.
-
-Gokula is the thousand-petalled lotus and its disc is the seat of
-Govinda.
-
-The petals are the seats of different performances of Sri Krishna and
-are different occult centres.
-
-The southern petal contains a most occult seat, attainable with
-difficulty by the greatest of Yogins. The south-eastern petal contains
-two secret recesses. The eastern petal has the most purifying
-properties. The north-east petal is the seat of fruition. The Gopis
-attained Krishna on this petal, by worshipping Ktyyani. Their clothes
-were also stolen on this petal.
-
-The northern petal is the seat of the twelve dityas. It is as good as
-the disc itself.
-
-The north-west petal is the seat of Kliya. On the western petal, favor
-was shewn to the wives of the Vedic Rishis. Here the Asura Agha was
-killed. Here is also the Lake called Brahm. On the south-western petal,
-the Asuras Vyoma and Sankha-chda were killed.
-
-These eight petals are situated in Vrindvana. Outside Vrindvana, there
-are sixteen petals. The first petal is the seat of Govardhana. Here
-Krishna was installed as Govinda. The first petal contains Madhuvana,
-the second Khadira, the fourth Kadamba, the fifth Nandisvara (residence
-of Nanda), the sixth Nanda, the seventh Bakula, the eighth Tla (where
-the Asura Dhenuka was killed), the ninth Kumuda, the tenth Kmya (where
-Brahm knew Krishna as Vishnu), the eleventh many forests, the twelfth
-Bhndra, the thirteenth Bhadra, the fourteenth Sri, the fifteenth Loha,
-and the sixteenth Mahvana. The deeds of Sri Krishna up to the age of
-five were all performed at Mahvana.
-
-Vrindvana is the seed cavity of the thousand-petalled lotus. By all
-means place Vrindvana in the heart cavity. Krishna is always a Kisora
-(between ten and fifteen) at Vrindvana, (_i.e._ Vrindvana proper, the
-particular forest of that name).
-
-At the centre of Vrindvana is the eight-cornered Yoga seat of Sri
-Krishna. Over that seat is a throne of jewels. The eight petalled lotus
-lies there. The disc of that lotus is the supreme abode of Govinda. He
-is the Lord of Vrindvana. Brahm, Vishnu and Siva are all His parts.
-His primal Prakriti is Rdhik.
-
-*CHAPTER 39.*
-
-Govinda with Rdh is seated on the golden throne. Outside the throne,
-on the seat of Yoga, remain the chief favorites of Krishna, who are
-parts of Rdhik.
-
-Lalita stands on the west, Symal on the north-west, Srimat on the
-north, Haripriy on the north-east, Viskha on the east, Saivy on the
-south-east, Padm on the south, and Bhadr on the south-west.
-
-Then there is another group of eight, Chandrvali, Chitrarekh, Chandr,
-Madana Sundari, Sri, Madhumati, Chandra-rekh, and Haripriy.
-
-Of this latter group, Chandrvali holds almost equal position with
-Rdhik.
-
-These are the sixteen principal Prakritis. Then there are thousands of
-Gopis all devoted to Krishna.
-
-On the right side of Sri Krishna are thousands of Sruti girls, who chant
-His divine mysteries. On the left side are the most beautiful-looking
-Deva girls, who turn towards Sri Krishna with the greatest eagerness.
-
-Outside this inner temple are the Gopa boys, who look like Krishna.
-Sridman is on the west, Sudman on the north, Vasudman on the east,
-and Kinkini on the south.
-
-Outwards still more, inside a golden temple, seated upon a golden seat,
-adorned with ornaments of gold, there are thousands of Gopa boys, headed
-by Stoka Krishna, Ansu Bhadra and others, all devoutly singing the glory
-of Sri Krishna.
-
-The whole of this is surrounded by a shining gold wall.
-
-On the west of that wall, within a temple, situated under a Parijta
-tree, is Vsudeva, with his eight wives, Rukmini, Satyabhama, Jmbavati,
-Ngnajiti, Sulakshan, Mitravind, Anuvind and Sunand.
-
-On the north, under a Harichandana tree, is Sankarshana with Revati. On
-the south, under a Santna tree, is Pradyumna with Rati. On the east,
-under a Kalpataru, is Aniruddha.
-
-Surrounding all this is a white stone wall, with four gates. White
-Vishnu preserves the western gate, Red Vishnu preserves the northern
-gate, yellow Vishnu preserves the eastern gate, Black Vishnu preserves
-the southern.
-
-CHAP. 41. Rishi Ugra-tapas meditated on Sri Krishna for one hundred
-Kalpas. At the end of that period he became a Gopi, named Sunand.
-
-Rishi Satya-tapas meditated on Krishna for ten Kalpas, and he then
-became a Gopi named Bhadr.
-
-Rishi Hari-dham became a Gopi, named Raktaven, at the end of three
-Kalpas.
-
-Rishi Jvli became Chitra-gandh after ten Kalpas.
-
-Suchi-sravas and Suvarna became the daughters of the Gopa Suvira, at the
-end of one Kalpa.
-
-Jatila, Janghapta, Ghritsin, and Karbu became Gopis after three
-Kalpas.
-
-Suka, son of Dirgha-tapas, Vysa of the previous Kalpa, became daughter
-of Upananda.
-
-One son of Svetaketu became the daughter of Blvani.
-
-Chitra-dhvaja, son of Rjrshi Chandraprabha, became Chitrakal,
-daughter of Gopa Viragupta, at the end of one Kalpa.
-
-Rishi Punya-sravas practised meditation for thirty thousand Kalpas and
-he was born as the daughter of Nanda's brother, by name Labang.
-
-These are some of the favorite Gopis of Krishna.
-
-CHAP. 42. The form of Sri Krishna, as seen at Vrindvana, is constant.
-Mathur, Vrindvana, Yamun, the Gopa girls, the Gopa boys, Sri Krishna
-as an Avatra -- are all constant.
-
-The Gopis are the Srutis (forms invoked by Vedic Mantras), Deva girls
-and devoted Rishis, desirous of liberation.
-
-The Gopa boys are Munis, full of the bliss of Vaikuntha.
-
-The Kadamba tree is Kalpa Vriksha, (a divine tree that gives all that is
-desired).
-
-The Siddhas, Sadhyas and Gandharvas are the Kokilas (cuckoos) of
-Vrindvana.
-
-Govardhana is the eternal servant of Hari.
-
-CHAP. 43. Arjuna wanted to know the mysteries of Vrindvana and of the
-Gopis.
-
-Krishna said they were unknown to Brahm even. He then advised Arjuna to
-worship the goddess Tripura-sundari, as through her favor only he could
-know all he asked about. The goddess asked Arjuna to bathe in a tank
-called Kulakunda. She then gave directions which were duly performed by
-Arjuna. The goddess then took Arjuna to the real, constant Vrindvana,
-which is placed over Goloka. With the divine vision, given by the
-goddess, Arjuna saw the mysteries of Vrindvana, and became full of
-devotional love. He then asked the goddess what to do next. She then
-asked him to bathe in another tank, and, when Arjuna did so, he became a
-female. A divine voice said, "Go back to the former tank. Touch its
-water and you will attain your object. There you will find your
-companions."
-
-The Gopis gathered round Arjuna out of curiosity. One of them Priyamuda
-asked: -- "Who art thou? How hast thou come here?" Arjuna related his
-story.
-
-To satisfy the curiosity of Arjuna, Priyamuda said: -- "We are all the
-dear companions of Krishna. Here are the girls of Vraja. Those are
-Srutis and these are Munis. We are Gopa girls. Some appeared here from
-the body of Krishna. They are constant, keeping constant company with
-Krishna and moving all over the universe. Of them, this is Purna-ras,
-this is Rsa Manthara (and so on). Then of the Srutis, this is Udgita,
-this is Sugita (and so on). Then of the Munis, this is Ugra-tapas, this
-is Priyavrata, this is Suvrata (and so on). Amongst us, the girls of
-Gopas, this is Chandravali, this is Chandrika, this is Chandra-rekha
-(and so on). You will have all these for your companions. Come bathe on
-the east side of the tank. I shall give thee the Mantra of Rdhik".
-Arjuna worshipped Rdhik with that Mantra and she appeared before him.
-She then gave him the Mantra of Krishna. With that Mantra, Arjuna
-succeeded in getting the favor of Krishna. He called Arjuna, in his
-female form, and gave him the privilege of his company. Arjuna was then
-made to bathe on the west side of the tank and he then regained his
-former form.
-
-THE BRAHMA VAIVARTA PURANA follows the ideal of Padma Purna. This ideal
-was further worked out and further revelations were made by Chaitanya,
-who is believed to be an Avatra of Krishna Himself. A full discussion
-of these revelations will be made when we come to study the teachings of
-Chaitanya. No reference is therefore made in this book to the works
-which appeared and some of which preceded, but were connected with, the
-great movement of Chaitanya.
-
-Such is the study of the Vrindvana Lil as authoritatively given in
-standard religious books. It gives us a clue to the mysteries, which
-should be worked out by each esoteric student for himself.
-
-The mysteries are partly allegorical and partly historical. We shall
-first take the allegorical representation of the Lil, which has
-reference to the spiritual development of every individual Bhakta and is
-therefore of the most abiding interest to all Bhaktas.
-
-The Puri of Mathur is in every man, the kingdom of his own mind, where
-the personal self is to be _put down_. Mathur is from _math_, to put
-down. Lavana (Salt), the demon of materialism (for salt is an emblem of
-materialism; cf. the salt ocean) had hold of this Puri during the time
-of Rma, and Satrughna killed the demon.
-
-But materialism regained its lost ground and the forces of descent
-gathered strong round Kansa. Kansa was Kla-nemi, or the mark left by
-the wheel of time. Each one of us has inherited through countless ages a
-strong element of materiality, which tries to reign over each one of us.
-This is the Kansa in each of us. There was also king Kansa of the period
-when Krishna appeared. He was brought down from his high platform and
-killed by Krishna, and the spiritual evolution of humanity became
-assured.
-
-There are eight Prkritic principles in man, corresponding to eight
-senses. Earth or smell, water or taste, fire or form, air or touch, and
-akasa or sound, these enable Jivas to acquire experiences from the
-outside. Ahankra, or the sense of egoism, enables man to assimilate
-those experiences to his personal self, and to make a small world of his
-own self.
-
-Then there is Mahat and the universal sense corresponding to it. This
-sense takes man out of the limits of personality; it raises him to the
-level of spiritual life. It develops unselfishness and universal life.
-
-Last of all is the eighth principle, Mula Prakrit. It gives the sense
-of perceiving tm.
-
-Krishna helps the evolution of the Jivas, by developing the outer senses
-first and then the inner senses.
-
-When the first six senses are developed, the evolution of personality is
-complete. The powers that develop the senses do not come any more into
-requisition. Those powers were the first six brothers of Krishna, who
-lay slumbering in the ocean, and who were _ardhagarbha_, as Harivansa
-says. Their action was confined to the material stage of evolution and
-hence they are said to have descended from Hiranyakasipu. Kansa had no
-difficulty in slaying these half-dead powers.
-
-The sixth brother was Balarma. He was robed in blue, a highly spiritual
-color, the color of Mahat. He roused the spiritual sense of man. Jivas
-had wandered away from their spiritual home, where they were all united,
-and each had made a separate entity for himself. Balarma tried to draw
-them together once more on the plane of Mahat. Hence he was called
-Sankarshana, and his instrument was called the plough. He was the first
-born, as men cannot come face to face with shvara, so long as they are
-not raised beyond the limits of personality. Jivas streamed forth from
-the plane of Mahat, presided over by Atlanta or Sankarshana, and they
-are drawn back to that plane so that they may set out on a higher
-spiritual journey.
-
-Then came Sri Krishna and Yogamy, both together. Sri Krishna was the
-highest of the high, beyond the My that enshrouded the Brahmnda. How
-could he come in contact with the Jivas of Brahmnda? The only plane of
-Prakriti with which He could come in direct contact was the plane of
-Mula Prakriti. But this plane was not developed in humanity as yet.
-Therefore He asked Yoga My, the energy of Jivic evolution, who carries
-Jiva from the lowest to the highest point, to serve as a medium between
-Him and the Jivas. Sri Krishna performed His mission with the help of
-Yoga My. The Gopis met Sri Krishna because they worshipped Yoga My
-(Ktyyani). Sri Krishna had personal contact with the Gopis at Rsa,
-because He invoked Yoga My at the time and got her help. Yoga My is
-the highest sense of which Jiva is capable, and, when Durga appeared in
-her third incarnation as Yoga My, she was not to undergo further
-incarnation in this Kalpa. To the developing sense of Yoga My, Siva
-gave truth after truth, till the highest truths were revealed to her,
-which form the Agamas and Nigamas. The revelations to the developing
-sense of humanity are the Tantras.
-
-Sri Krishna was born that men might come up to His ideal. He is the
-first Purusha. The limitations or My of the solar system do not touch
-Him. He is the Lord of many solar systems. Even the materials that form
-the solar systems have their manifestation from him. Nothing that we
-know of, nothing that we are composed of, nothing that shapes our
-experiences, that causes our likes and dislikes, limits Krishna. Even
-Brahm, Vishnu and Siva, the triune aspect of the second Purusha, are
-limited by the universe they lord over. Siva is also called an aspect of
-the first Purusha in Saiva Purnas.
-
-Sri Krishna is Nirguna, for the Gunas we know of do not touch Him. He is
-the Absolute, for the relativities we know of, or which we may even
-think of, have no place in Him. The other Avatras are said to be
-manifestations of the second Purusha. But Krishna is Bhagavn Himself,
-_i.e._, the first Purusha (I-3-28).
-
-There are three aspects of the Absolute, the non-transformable, which
-uphold creation. It is through these aspects that all beings come into
-existence, prosper and dissolve. It is through them that they are
-brought nearer and nearer in every Kalpa to shvara. In the perfected
-being, the aspects of sat (existence), chit (consciousness) and nanda
-(bliss) are not restricted by the conditions of the universe in which
-those aspects are developed. When beings are perfected in this way, they
-reach the plane of Krishna, which is beyond the seven-fold plane of the
-Cosmic Egg. The Gopis are such perfected beings.
-
-It will be out of place to enter here into a detailed study of these
-aspects. But it will be necessary to make a brief reference to them in
-order to understand the aspect of Bliss, as a factor in spiritual
-Evolution.
-
-It is the _existence_ aspect of the underlying ray of the Absolute
-Brahmn, in every individual, that gives a continuity to individual
-existence, through thousands of births and experiences, and makes
-individual evolution a possibility.
-
-The _consciousness_ aspect of the ray unfolds the blunt inanimate sense
-into the most highly developed mind. It gives the wisdom side of man's
-evolution, which leads to the path of Jnna.
-
-Then there is the _Bliss_ aspect of the ray, which directly leads to the
-union of the human soul with the Over-soul, of Jiva with shvara, and it
-leads to the path of Bhakti. It is the sensation of pleasure that makes
-the lowest organic form, the primordial cell, break through the inertia
-of Tamas. The cell moves about, either for cell union or for the
-assimilation of food, because these give rise to some sensation, call it
-pleasurable, if you like. It is not so easy to form an idea of the
-sensation of pleasure in the vegetable kingdom, but the excitement
-caused by the union of the sperm cell with the germ cell cannot but
-strike any one with the existence of some such feeling, though in a most
-rudimentary state.
-
-Animals feel pleasure in the company of their female partners. They also
-love their offspring. This gives rise to family connections, to the
-formation of society and of social virtues. With the evolution of body
-and mind, pleasures become many-sided, and the acquirement of pleasure
-becomes in itself the principal factor in the development of man. Man
-seeks his pleasure outside himself, and he does so either for himself or
-for others. A point is reached when self is lost sight of and self
-sacrifice for the good of others becomes a duty of pleasure. Self is
-estranged from the narrow groove of personality. It tries to identify
-itself with all beings. There is philanthropy, there is universal
-kindness. Still the differences cause unrest and disquiet. Self finds no
-rest, till it seeks its reality, till it makes a homeward journey, for
-even its own personality and the outside world lose all charm for it.
-Self finds bliss in self void of personality. This is spiritual bliss
-attained by those that are Antarmukh (facing inwards) and not by those
-that are Bahir Mukh (facing outwards). Self when seeking self becomes
-united to the universal self as its eternal friend and its real aspect.
-The universal self in Vrindvana is Sri Krishna. And the bliss of the
-Gopis is self-attainment, attachment to self or tm and not to non-self
-or worldly connections.
-
-It is to those and those only that eagerly desire to make this inward
-journey that the Vrindvana Lil is addressed.
-
-Nanda is bliss, he is spiritual Bliss the Bliss of an Antar Mukha. It is
-spiritual bliss that attracts spirit unto itself. It is the field for
-spiritual growth, the nursery ground of enthusiastic devotion and, what
-is more, of devotional love. The ideal spiritual bliss is that of
-Rdhik and of her fellow Gopis. It is the Bliss aspect of svara that
-in the Jiva causes mutual attractions and makes devotion a law, a
-necessity. Reflected in the Universe at large, it is the one bond that
-holds together all beings, and becomes a force of attraction on all
-planes. Man is guided by bliss in his relations to the Universe. He is
-guided by bliss in his relation to himself.
-
-Nanda is located in the brain, in the thousand-petalled Lotus. The
-spiritual seat in the head is Gokul, the first abode of Nanda.
-
-Krishna appears in Gokul. The devotee sets out on his devotional
-journey.
-
-The first impediment of a devotee is Mala or impurity. In spite of
-himself, he cannot get the better of his passions, his personal desires.
-They have such a strong and apparent charm, there is such an hereditary
-and accumulated attraction toward them, that they easily overcome the
-devotional life in its infancy. The fascinating Ptan overtook all by
-her charms and she found an easy access to Krishna himself. She made an
-attempt to nurse Krishna with poisoned milk. She was killed and Mala was
-removed (X. 6.)
-
-The next impediment is Vikshepa or distraction. The mind, with its load
-of outside experiences always responding to the outside world, is so
-much distracted, thinking now of this and now of that, that it has to be
-set right before further development is possible. The cart has to be
-upturned, with its load of food-articles, the cart of mind with its load
-of experiences. That is, the man has to become Antarmukha (X. 7.) When
-this is done, the Asura of distraction, Trinvarta or whirlwind, is
-easily killed (X. 7.). The Gopis were now void of impurities and void of
-distraction; yet more they were being attracted to Krishna. Krishna
-favored them by stealing the fruits of their karma or action and
-accepting them for himself. Sri Krishna said to Arjuna, "You have a
-right to the Karma only and not to the fruits thereof." The senses of
-the Gopis used to roam about in the performance of daily duties, and
-they brought back perceptions and conceptions for the day which were
-worked out by the Gopis as duty required. The perceptions and
-conceptions are the milk-products and milk. They were churned into the
-karma of the Gopis. The senses are the cows; the outside objects of
-perception, their grass. The Brahm Vaivarta Purna says: -- "_Ghrita_
-is obtained from milk, _Yajna_ is performed with _Ghrita_, and all
-happiness arises out of the performance of Yajna." _Prakriti Khanda_.
-The preparation of milk products is the karma or sacrifice of the Gopis.
-(X. 8.).
-
-The husk-stand is the discriminating faculty, that which separates the
-husk from the grains. When Krishna becomes fastened to the
-discriminating faculty (not that any one can fasten him with any effort
-of his own), when right and wrong are centered in him, self becomes
-abnegated and offered up entirely to Krishna, Egoism and ignorance, the
-pair of Arjuna trees disappear, though deeply rooted in man (X. 10).
-When fruits are offered to Krishna, there is a rich return (X. 11.).
-
-We have reached here a point in spiritual progress. Personality has been
-completely given up. Brain intellect is no longer congenial to spiritual
-progress. The head retards the spiritual man and does not carry him
-forward.
-
-The elders of Gokula sat in council and they decided to leave Gokula for
-Vrindvana.
-
-Vrindvana is the Heart. The eight-petalled lotus in the heart is the
-permanent abode of Sri Krishna. The twelve forests are twelve centres 4
-x 3, the primary number being 4, the number of the sacred Tetraktys.
-Within the heart, the only Purusha is Sri Krishna. AH others have to
-make themselves passive to Him. The Gopis, the ideal devotees of the
-Purusha in the heart, left the world outside, their husbands and homes,
-and placed themselves entirely at the service of the Divine Lord. Let us
-approach the sublime truths of the Vrindvana Upsan with the utmost
-solemnity possible. Those who cannot bring themselves to an exalted
-appreciation of the Vrindvana Lil had better not read the Bhgavata at
-all.
-
-The Gopas and Gopis went to Vrindvana. Rma and Krishna headed the Gopa
-boys and looked after the calves.
-
-What are the cows and calves? Who are the Gopas, the Gopa boys and the
-Gopis?
-
-Once more let us understand the triad -- Adhytma, Adhibhta and
-Adhidaiva. Take sight.
-
-The sense of sight comes in contact with the outside world and carries
-the perception of sight to the possessor of the eye, under the guidance
-of a conscious energy. The senses and the mind are Cows or Adhyatma. The
-outside world is grass or Adhibhta. The possessor of the senses and the
-mind is the Gopi, the Ego or Jiva. In Vrindvana, the Gopis are the
-highest Jivas or Rishis, as explained in the Upanishads. The conscious
-energy is the Gopa or Adhideva.
-
-The Adhidevas are the Vedic Devas, as we have already seen.
-
-The Gopas are reincarnations of the Devas, as explained in the
-Upanishads.
-
-Ordinarily the Gopas lead the cows or the Adhi-Davas lead the senses,
-but in Vrindvana the Devas surrender themselves entirely to Krishna.
-
-The calves or the Vatsas are the modifications of the senses and the
-mind -- the Vrittis.
-
-In Vrindvana, Rma and Krishna first tended the calves. The Gopa boys
-were the attendants of Rma and Krishna, the prishads or companions who
-reached very near the state of divinity, the work-mates of Bhagavn in
-the preservation of the universe.
-
-The Lord tended the Vrittis of the mind. Therefore they could not go
-astray.
-
-Now let us follow up the working of the divine in the heart of the
-individual and the killing of all obstacles.
-
-_Vatsa, Baka, Agha and Brahm_. -- The Vatsa Asura is a Vritti of the
-mind. If a non-spiritual Vritti becomes unconsciously mixed up with the
-spiritual Vrittis of the mind, it has instantly to be killed.
-
-Baka or the crane, stands for religious hypocrisy. Spiritual life
-rejects all hypocrisy, all traces of untruth, in any form.
-
-When these two Asuras are destroyed, a third Asura appears on the scene,
-the terrible Agha. Agha is sin, an evil deed. The sins of a man, his
-past evil deeds, stand up for a while and swallow up all that is divine
-in him. Even Gods can not overcome Agha. Those who know the struggles of
-a devotee know very well how hard it is when all that is evil in man the
-accumulated tendencies of innumerable births, rise up in rebellion as it
-were at a certain stage of his progress. Who else but Sri Krishna can
-save a devotee at such a crisis. The flesh itself has to be destroyed
-and the whole nature changed. The devotee undergoes a second birth as it
-were. His Vrittis are not the Vrittis of yore; even the energies that
-guide these vrittis undergo change.
-
-Every Brhmana knows the Mantra that is recited for the suppression of
-Agha (Agha-marshana). It goes back to the pre-manifesting period, when
-days and nights did not exist.
-
-The serpent Agha swallowed up Krishna and his companions.
-
-Krishna came out victorious and he revivified his companions.
-
-The Vrittis underwent change by this process and also those that guided
-them. It was another creation altogether. The forms and varieties of
-Brahm's creation had no meaning now in them.
-
-What if the Vrittis were now removed from the Gopis or the Gopa boys
-kept out in a body? They all lost their distinctive features; their
-differences were gone. All was become divine -- the Vrittis and the Gopa
-boys.
-
-So when Brahm concealed the calves and the Gopa boys, he only thought
-of his own creation. The Vrittis and the Gopa boys came out in divinity
-which was now their only reality. They were all parts of Sri Krishna
-himself. They were manifestly sparks or rays of tm itself. The senses
-and the mind were now irresistibly drawn towards their calves. The Gopas
-were more than ever attached to their boys. Balarma noticed this and
-spoke to Krishna. The query of Rj Parikshit and the reply of Suka
-explain the whole position. This brings us to the end of the KUMARA LIL
-of Sri Krishna which prepares the way for the union of the human soul
-with the over-soul, of Jiva tm with Parama tm. We come next to the
-POUGANDA LIL when Krishna guided the mind itself and all were attached
-to Him.
-
-_Krishna, the tender of the cows._
-
-Rma and Krishna were now in charge of the cows themselves, the senses
-and the mind.
-
-_The Kliya serpent._
-
-Yma is the Death-god. The river Yamun is his sister. _Kliya_ is from
-kala or time. Kliya with its one hundred hoods is the lifetime of one
-birth, represented by one hundred years. The serpent could not be killed
-but only sent away from Vrindvana. The devotees got over the periodic
-death-transformation.
-
-_The conflagtation and Pralamba._
-
-As the followers of Krishna were saved from death on the one hand, so
-they were saved from conflagration (annihilation of form) and loss of
-the Ego (Balarma) on the other hand.
-
-In the kingdom of Divine Bliss, everything now was divine. The purified
-mind did not go astray. It remained entirely attached to Sri Krishna.
-Personality was now thoroughly conquered. The Jiva had acquired matter
-congenial to the plane of the first Purusha, and he no longer ran the
-risk of death or annihilation. The Gopis completed their homeward
-journey and they knew nothing except their Lord Krishna. They gave up
-all for the sake of the Lord. The Lord was all in all to them. They were
-bound to Him by the most sacred ties of devotional love. We shall now
-see how they became united to the Divine Lord.
-
-_The Gopis and the stealing of their clothes._
-
-The rains followed the summer and there was a flow of spirituality all
-around. The autumn followed and it was calm, clear and transparent.
-
-When the water is pure, transparent and calm and the sun is over it can
-anything prevent the reflection of the sun's image on its bosom? The
-Gopis drew unto themselves the image of Sri Krishna. There was no
-muddiness in them as in ordinary mortals; they had not the calls of
-other desires.
-
-It is not till the ear ceases to hear the outside world, that it is open
-to the music in the heart, the flute of Sri Krishna.
-
-The Rupa of Krishna becomes manifest when all worldly Rupas lose their
-charm.
-
-The Gopis even smelt the divine fragrance of Sri Krishna; they felt his
-divine touch and they tasted the honey of Sri Krishna's lips.
-
-The charms of the world all dead and gone, there remains only one
-attraction, that of Sri Krishna, the only Purusha in Vrindvana.
-
-The Gopis now had a right to approach Sri Krishna as their lover. They
-became full of Him (_tanmaya_), and they worshipped Ktyyani (Yoga
-My) to gain their object. (X. 21.)
-
-It was then that Sri Krishna stripped them of their clothes (X. 22.) No
-false shame, no false considerations should now deter the Gopis. They
-should lay themselves bare before Sri Krishna. No hiding, no half
-speaking. "Virtuous girls, I know your resolve. It is to worship me. I
-also approve of it and so it must succeed." This was the long and short
-of the whole affair. The Gopis saw they were found out. So it was to be
-a matter of open love now.
-
-We shall pass over a few digressions before we come back to the Gopis
-and the consummation of their love (Rsa Lil).
-
-_Vedic Brahmns and their wives._
-
-Those that were under the influence of Vedic Yajnas could not easily
-accept the self-sacrificing path of compassion.
-
-The students of Bhagavat Git know very well that Sri Krishna raised his
-voice against Vedic karma and preached the performance of unselfish
-karma in its stead. The Vedic Brhmanas did not follow Him for a time.
-But the tide overtook their unselfish wives who were attached to the
-path of unselfishness and compassion blended as it was with the path of
-devotion to the Lord Sri Krishna. The wives brought their husbands round
-and the cause triumphed in all India.
-
-_The raising of Govardhana._
-
-The raising of Govardhana is only a sequel to the suppression of Vedic
-Yajnas. Why are the gods, headed by Indra, worshipped? Because the
-Indriyas are their channels of communion with men and they can influence
-men through those channels. They are therefore called Adhi-Devas. They
-are also the hands of providence and through them we get all the things
-of the earth. But can they give us anything that is not allotted to us
-by our own karma? If a prolonged and unhindered connection with the
-manasic world or a prolonged Svarga experience is brought about by the
-performance of Vedic Yajnas it is on account of the superior force
-exerted over the Devas, acquired by such performances, and is therefore
-due to karma. The Devas cannot override karma.
-
-But still men have to depend upon the gods in their everyday lives. They
-are the hands of the karmic dispenser. True they deal out things
-according to the karma of men. But they give to men the desired objects
-of life and in return they expect yajna-offerings to them. This is the
-old law of the existence of beings. The universe itself is the outcome
-of sacrifice and inter-dependence, the law of giving and taking.
-
-If men broke that law, what wonder that the gods should resent it! But
-there was a higher law, governing men and Devas alike, the law of direct
-communion with the lord of all, the supreme karmic dispenser, the
-Adhi-yajna of Bhagavat Git. If men placed themselves and their karma
-entirely at the service of the Lord, where was room left for the Devas?
-Against such men the gods themselves lost all power.
-
-The Hill Govardhana is the accumulated karma of the Gopis, which gives
-the pasture ground for their cows. Krishna bears the burden of His
-Bhaktas' karma, and He lifted up the karmic hill of his devoted band
-with very little effort of his own. And when Sri Krishna bears the karma
-of His Bhaktas, the Devas are powerless against them. It is karma that
-nourishes the senses and hence the hill is called Govardhana (nourisher
-of the cows).
-
-_The Installation._
-
-When the gods were displaced from their position of leadership, whom
-were the cows, the senses, to follow? Surabhi, the heavenly mother of
-the cows, said: -- "Now that thou hast taken the place of Indra, we
-shall call thee our Indra, or GOVINDA." Sridhara says, _go_ means a cow,
-as well as Svarga. Govinda is one who acquires supremacy over the cows
-or over Svarga. So the word means Indra as well. But the peculiar
-significance of the word Govinda has been elaborated in the Brahm
-Sanhita and other works.
-
-The plane of the first Purusha, which is the common plane of innumerable
-solar systems, with their sevenfold planes, has two broad aspects
-Vaikuntha and Goloka. Vaikuntha has reference to the solar systems as a
-whole. The energies that guide the Brahmndas proceed from the plane of
-Vaikuntha. Both Siva and Vishnu are aspects of the first Purusha, but
-not Brahm. Siva Loka or Kailsa is therefore included in Vaikuntha. The
-plane of Brahm is Satya Loka or Brahm Loka, the highest plane of the
-Brahmnda. The worshippers of Brahm or Hiranya-garbha reach the plane
-of Brahm Loka. There they remain till the Brahmnda becomes dissolved
-at the end of the life period of Brahmn.
-
-Vaikuntha is the plane of Vishnu as the first Purusha. He has four
-aspects on that plane -- Vsudeva, Sankarshana, Pradyumna and Aniruddha.
-His female aspect is Lakshm. The worshippers of Vishnu, Preserver of
-the Universe, reach this plane.
-
-Goloka is a higher aspect of the plane of the first Purusha. There
-Krishna is not the Lord of the Universe. He is the Lord of only His
-followers -- those that give up everything for His sake. The highest
-spiritual life is on this plane. In Vaikuntha there is the majesty of
-power. In Goloka there is the sweetness of love. Love is a surrender
-which we all owe to Krishna, who makes the greatest sacrifices for us.
-shvara gives us existence, consciousness and bliss, so that we may
-develop new centres that approach the state of shvara, and when we do
-that we have no right to keep them to ourselves, but should give them
-back to Him from whom we owe them. Nothing can please the Lord so much
-as when we pay this willing homage to Him. He has full control over the
-senses and experiences of the Gopas and Gopis that dwell in Goloka. He
-can turn them to any use He likes. They are His own property, and the
-dwellers of Goloka form His own household. He is one with them as they
-are with Him. The highest spiritual life is in Goloka. Every kalpa adds
-to the number of the devoted band.
-
-Vaikuntha is represented in the Dvrak Lil. The acts of Sri Krishna
-that constitute the Vrindvana Lil are constant (nitya).
-
-They are reproduced in all Kalpas and on all the Dvipas or globes for
-the benefit of all Bhaktas. When there is the full manifestation of
-Krishna in any Kalpa, the Gopas and Gopis also appear with Him. But His
-relations with them are meant to serve as a guide only for the initiated
-Bhaktas, and not for the world at large. Sri Krishna as an Avatra is
-different from Sri Krishna as the beloved and the lover. As an Avatra,
-He forces allegiance, and expects it as of right. As a lover, He seeks
-His Bhaktas as they seek Him.
-
-The Lord of Goloka is Govinda. When Sri Krishna was installed as
-Govinda, he had a right to the company of the Gopis, and not before. The
-Gopis became the property of Govinda, as soon as Krishna asserted
-himself as such. The Installation precedes the Rsa Lil. The
-significance of this Installation will never be lost sight of by those
-who want to make a critical study of the Rsa Lil, or to apply the
-ordinary canons of morality to this most sacred, most sublime, and most
-soul-enchanting act of Sri Krishna the RSA LIL.
-
-
-THE RSA.
-
-
-Who can presume to explain Rsa! What mortal mind can approach, even in
-conception, the divinity, the sublimity of the five chapters on Rsa!
-The Gopis were on the field of action. They had their husbands, their
-parents, their sons; they had their worldly duties to perform, some of
-them arduous enough to require constant attention. When the time came,
-however, for union with the Purusha of the Heart, when the signal music
-was heard, every Gopi threw aside all Karma, all actions, all
-attachments, all bonds and offered herself up completely to the Lord.
-Where is the glory of those that give up the world, that give up all
-duties in life, of those that force themselves out of all actions that
-they may be devoted to the Lord within and the Lord without? And when
-the Gopis approached the Lord, there was no trace of human passion in
-them, no love of human flesh, no idea of material gratification. They
-placed themselves entirely at the service of the Lord.
-
-But there were those that had the yearning to do so, to free themselves
-from all material obstacles in their way, to offer their individuality
-to the Lord, but the Prrabdha Karma was too much for them. Their past
-Karma had woven a net round them which they could not break through. It
-was the yearning which the Lord looked to and not the overcoming of
-obstacles in the way. And though they died with that yearning only, the
-death completed what they yearned for, for then the Union was complete.
-
-The Vrindvana Lil is Nitya or constant. The Rsa Lil is for all time,
-for all Bhaktas.
-
-The night is the time for rest but it is the rest of bodily actions.
-For, towards the close of night, spiritual activity sets in. Men get
-spiritual teachings and spiritual advancement without knowing it. But it
-is only a few, who have a conscious union with the Lord who manifests
-Himself in the heart of man.
-
-Purusha is one. Jiva Prakritis or Para Prakritis are many. To Purusha
-Jiva must be always negative, however positive it may be towards the
-forms of Apara Prakriti. Purusha is always Male. And to Him, Jiva
-Prakriti is always a female. As the Vaishnavas say, there is only one
-male in all Vrindvana and that male is the Lord Sri Krishna. In
-devotional practice, one should consider himself a female, the male
-being the Lord of the universe, as reflected in the heart of every man.
-
-The Gopis heard the music and went to Sri Krishna.
-
-If you are of the world, go back to the world. But no, the Gopis were
-not of the world. They had every right to the union. And Sri Krishna
-could not deny them His companionship. Nay, it was a great thing to the
-Lord Himself that Jivas should return to Him with all their spiritual
-experiences that the Universe might be served and protected. The
-concession was natural, the joy was mutual. But in the midst of the
-union itself, there is a danger, a most subtle danger, that of Egoism,
-"I am in union with the Lord." The first and the last weakness of
-humanity, this I-ness is a drawback even in the highest spiritual life
-of man. The Gopis thought of _themselves_ and there was an instant break
-in the union. The Lord disappeared. The Lord incarnated for the good of
-the Universe and not of individuals, and if individuals were dear to Him
-it was for the sake of the Universe. He was no special property of the
-Gopis; What did the Gopis do? They imitated his actions on the Earth.
-They followed His footsteps wherever found. They approached the Lord as
-much as they could in idea.
-
-At last they broke out, "Thou art surely not the son of a Gopi. Thou art
-the inmost seer of all beings. Implored by Brahm thou hast appeared, O
-friend in the line of the Stvatas, for the protection of the Universe."
-
-The Gopis now realised that the Lord they wanted to be united to was the
-Lord of the Universe. His mission was the protection of the universe.
-Could they share with Him? It was then and then only that they could
-expect a continuity of the union. It was not for themselves only that
-they had any further right. Hut the Gopis now cared not for themselves.
-They cared for their Lord, whom they now knew and realised to be the
-Lord of the Universe.
-
-And lo! the Lord appeared again. This time there was union but not
-individual union. Hand in hand, the Gopis formed a circle with their
-Lord, not the individual Lord, but the universal Lord making Himself
-many. Every Gopi held the hands of the Lord and all the Gopis
-collectively formed one circle, and the circle went on dancing and
-dancing. The Devas looked with wonder and envied the lot of the Gopis.
-Let that wonder grow amongst us. Let us catch a glimpse of that divine
-dance, that Rsa Lil, that men may become gods on the Earth.
-
-_Sudarsana, Sankha Chuda, Arishta, Kesi and Vyoma._
-
-The Vidydharas and Yakshas were controlled and other obstacles
-overcome. Even the barrier of Aksa, which forms the final limit of
-actions and wisdom in the universe, was pushed through. Work was now
-over at Vrindvana. The Bhaktas were now fitted to pass across the
-limits of Brahmnda to Goloka.
-
-_Akrra._ With the advent of Akrra, we move backwards from the heart to
-the head, from the world of Bhaktas to the world at large. When Kansa
-presided over Mathur, men were guided by Self in their thoughts and
-actions. Jarsandha, who represented the Brahmnism of self-seeking
-Yajnas, was the friend of Kansa.
-
-Akrra was the messenger selected by Kansa to fetch Rma and Krishna
-from Vrindvana. _Krra_ is cruel. Akrra is one who is not cruel. It
-was not cruelty on the part of Akrra to take Rma and Krishna to
-Mathur. He was no doubt seemingly cruel to the Gopis. But he was kind
-to the generality of mankind, who did not live in Vrindvana.
-
-The Gopis, followers of the path of Devotion, could not bear the sight
-of him and they called him a mock Rishi. But he was really a Bhakta
-himself, though he adhered to Vedic Karma. He performed the Vedic
-Sandhy and recited Vedic Mantras; he was rewarded with the vision of
-Rma and Krishna in meditation.
-
-This votary of Karma Knda was a fitting messenger from Kansa. He united
-in himself the spirituality of Karma Knda and the unselfishness of the
-path of Devotion.
-
-From Vrindvana to Mathur we proceed from the inner man to the outer
-man, from the everlasting companions of Sri Krishna to His surroundings
-as an Avatra.
-
-In the Vrindvana Lil, we find Krishna in his relations to the holy
-beings and to the Devas who incarnated with Him for the good of the
-universe. Whenever a great Avatra appears on the Earth, his companions
-also appear with him. His relations to his own companions serve as a
-living example to others. They afford a lesson to all Bhaktas for all
-time. This part of the Lil is based upon undying, eternal truths, upon
-the permanent relations between Jiva and shvara. The heart of man is
-the seat of this Lil, which can be reproduced at all times, in the
-heart of every real Bhakta. The Gopis are the same now as they were when
-Krishna sanctified the Earth. They are the preservers of the universe,
-according to Gopi Chandana Upanishad. And their ranks may be increased
-by devoted Bhaktas who give up all for the sake of the universe and its
-Lord.
-
-There is one point more in the relations of the Gopas and Gopis to
-Krishna. Love was the one bond which united them all to Him. They sought
-him in their inmost heart, they talked to him, they knew him as one of
-themselves. He was a son to them, a companion, a lover. Whatever pleased
-the Lord pleased them. Whatever was His work was their work too. They
-abnegated themselves. They merged themselves entirely in Krishna. There
-was no question of duty; no rules, no injunctions. The Vedas did not
-exist for the dwellers in Vrindvana. The Smritis were not written for
-them. They did not tread the path of karma. Love-bound, they gave
-themselves entirely up to Krishna and they did not stop to ask the
-reason why, they did not stop to cast a glance at the world they left.
-
-But the union was hardly complete; the Gopis had scarcely embraced their
-friend, their lover, than he disappeared into the regions of the
-Universe. The message came that He was to be sought in the Universe.
-
-The Lord of the Universe was not the lover of the Gopis. He could not be
-the direct object of their love. But, when the Gopis knew that their own
-Krishna was the Lord of the Universe, they failed not to bear the same
-love to Him. But the majesty of the Universe was ill-adapted to the
-sweetness of their domestic love. They were out of harmony with the
-lordliness of their Lord at Dvrak. So when the Lord finally received
-them at Kurukshetra, the Gopis said that, home-bred as they were, they
-could not forget the lotus feet of Krishna in their heart. They were
-re-united to Krishna, as the all-pervading Purusha, the preserver of the
-Universe. The veil may be lifted a little further. We have already seen
-that life in the higher Lokas is purely unselfish, for, as the Bhgavata
-says, the higher Lokas are transformations of Nishkma Karma. We are to
-abnegate ourselves before we can go to Mahar Loka. This abnegation can
-be accomplished by merging ourselves in some one who stands across the
-Trilok. Love alone breaks the barrier between man and man. If we can
-get an object of unselfish love, to whom we can give everything that we
-have, we may easily learn the lesson of self-surrender. By the bond of
-love, souls group together in Mahar Loka and they learn the first
-lessons of universal life. What better object of love can one have than
-one of the Avatras himself? What union will be more glorious, more
-lasting, more spiritual? And Sri Krishna offered himself for such love
-to those that are devoted to him. And the most fortunate amongst
-humanity are those that complete the love-union with Sri Krishna. They
-form an inseparable group with Him, and the plane of their union is
-Goloka. The Vaishnavas place that Loka higher than Vaikuntha Itself. It
-is the plane proper of Sri Krishna, where he is always at home with his
-Bhaktas. There may be many centres round which souls might gather in the
-higher Lokas, many types of universal life, but there is none so high,
-so noble, so glorious, as the centre afforded by Lord Krishna. When
-Krishna incarnates, He cannot do so singly. The Gopis appear with Him.
-The Chaitanya Charitmrita, which embodies the teachings of Chaitanya,
-says that the Lil of Krishna is reproduced throughout the fourteen
-Manvantaras over all parts of the Brahmnda, just as days and nights are
-produced over all parts of the earth. The Lil is constantly performed
-in Goloka, and it is reproduced over parts of Brahmnda, according to
-the will of Krishna. Vrindvana is only a reflection of Goloka.
-
-When we go to Mathur, we find the Asura attendants of Kansa
-representing all the predominating vices of the time. Pride, arrogance,
-envy and malice, worldliness and anger, all that keep up the materiality
-in man were to be found among the best of his followers and advisers.
-
-They were all subdued and Kansa himself brought down from his high
-platform.
-
-When Krishna went to Mathur and Dvrak, we find him as an Avatra,
-inaugurating a new era in the spiritual history of the Universe. We find
-him there in all His majesty, glory and divine lordship. Those who
-follow him there follow the path of Divine Lordship. Those who follow
-Him at Vrindvana follow the path of Divine Love and sweetness.
-
-*END OF VRINDAVANA LIL,*
-
-
-
-MATHUR LIL
-
-
-THE HUNCH-BACKED GIRL AND THE PNDAVAS.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 48-49.*
-
-To keep his word, Sri Krishna went with Uddhava to the house of the
-hunch-backed girl. He gratified her desire and gave her what she wanted.
-
-Sri Krishna then went with Rma and Uddhava to the house of Akrra.
-Akrra rose up to receive them. He adored Krishna saying: -- "Thou hast
-come down for the good of the Universe. Whenever the olden path of the
-Vedas is crossed by the evil paths of unbelievers, Thou dost manifest
-Thyself, as now, by the attribute of Satva."
-
-Sri Krishna said: --
-
-"Good people like yourselves are to be always adored by men and the
-Devas. For while Devas are self-seeking, Sdhus are not so. The places
-of sanctity on the earth and idols and stones, that symbolise divinity,
-have the power to purify the mind after long service, while the very
-sight of Sdhus is purifying. Go thou to Hastinpura and make enquiries
-about the Pndavas. They are still young and they have lost their
-father. We hear they are living with Dhritarshra. But the blind king is
-too much in the hands of his evil sons and he may not be impartial to
-his nephews. So enquire whether his treatment of them is good or bad.
-When I know that, I shall do what is best for my friends."
-
-Akrra went to Hastinpura and learned from Vidura and Kunti the cruel
-treatment of the Pndavas by Dhritarshra and his sons. Dhritarshra
-confessed that he could not hold the balance evenly between his sons and
-nephews, as his attachment for his sons was too great.
-
-Akrra returned to Mathur and informed Rma and Krishna of all that he
-had heard.
-
-
-JARA SANDHA, YAVANA AND DVARAKA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 50.*
-
-Kansa had two wives, Asti and Prpti. They were the daughters of
-Jarsandha, king of Magadha (modern Bihar). The latter king learned from
-his daughters the fate of Kansa and became highly enraged. He collected
-an army of thirteen Akshauhinis, (one Akshauhini consisting of 21,870
-chariots, as many elephants, 65,610 horses, and 109,350 foot), and he
-besieged Mathur on all sides.
-
-Krishna thought for a moment how he could best serve the object of his
-Avatarship. He found in the army before him a collection of the forces
-that oppressed the Earth. He thought of killing the army and of saving
-Jarsandha, who might be instrumental in raising such large armies over
-and over again. "For it is to remove the weight now oppressing the Earth
-that I have incarnated. I have to protect the good people and kill those
-that are not so." Two chariots came from the Heavens fully equipped.
-Rma and Krishna drove out on those chariots. They killed the whole army
-in no time. Rma fell upon Jarsandha and well-nigh killed him when
-Krishna caused him to be set free. Jarsandha, in his disgrace, thought
-of practising asceticism but he was kept off by other kings who consoled
-him with words of worldly wisdom.
-
-The king of Magadha was however not to be easily put down. Seventeen
-times he led his army to an attack on Mathur, and each time he lost his
-entire army at the hands of Krishna and his followers. Before the fight
-commenced for the eighteenth time, Kala Yavana appeared on the field of
-battle with three crores of Mlechha troops. Krishna held counsel with
-Rma as to the course to be adopted. The brothers might engage with Kala
-Yavana in fight, but Jarsandha would make havoc in the meantime amongst
-their clansmen at Mathur. So Krishna planned the erection of a fort,
-within the seas, where he might harbour his clansmen in safety. So the
-fort was built extending over twelve Yajanas. It was laid out with a
-town of exquisite skill and workmanship. High buildings with golden
-towers, extensive roads, large gardens enhanced the beauty of the town.
-The Devas offered their best things and the Lokaplas surrendered their
-rulership to Sri Krishna. By Yogic powers Krishna removed his kinsmen to
-this town. He then left the town in charge of Balarm and himself went
-out to fight with Yavana. (Yavana, is one altogether outside the pale of
-Hinduism, a Mlechha.)
-
-Kala Yavana recognized Krishna and pursued him. Krishna drew him inside
-a mountain cave. There Kala Yavana found a man lying asleep. He thought
-Krishna was pretending sleep. So he gave the man a kick. That man had
-been sleeping for a long time but he gradually opened his eyes and in
-anger looked at Yavana who became consumed by the fire proceeding from
-that look.
-
-
-MUCHUKUNDA
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 51.*
-
-Rj Parikshit asked -- "Who was the man and why was he sleeping in the
-cave?"
-
-Suka replied: --
-
-"He was a descendant of the line of Ikshvku, son of the great King
-Mndht, by name Muchukunda. He had helped the Devas in their fight
-with the Asuras. When the fight was over, the Devas showed him the cave
-and asked him to rest there. The Devas blessed him with a long sleep."
-
-When Yavana was killed, Krishna appeared before Muchukunda.
-
-"Who mayest thou be with such overpowering glory?" the latter asked.
-
-Krishna replied: --
-
-"My births and deeds are infinite. Even I cannot count them. At the
-request of Brahm, I am at present born in the line of Yadu as the son
-of Vsudeva, for the protection of religion and for the rooting out of
-the Asuras. I have killed Kansa who is no other than Kalanemi. I have
-killed Pralamba and others. This Yavana was also killed by me, by means
-of the fire from your eyes. I have now come here to favor thee, for I am
-bound by affection to my votaries. Ask what boon thou likest. Thou shalt
-have all thou desirest."
-
-Muchu Kunda remembered the foresaying of Garga that there was to be a
-Divine Incarnation in the 28th Kali Yuga and he therefore knew Krishna
-to be the divine Lord. He asked for no boon but devotion to Krishna.
-
-"Truly" said Krishna, "thy mind is pure and noble for it is not tempted
-by boons. Those that are wholly devoted to me do not yield to desires.
-Those that are not devoted may control their mind by Prnyama and other
-practices but, as their desires are not overcome, they are found to go
-astray. Roam about the Earth, with mind fixed in me. Thy devotion shall
-never fail. Wash away the impurities of the present life with devoted
-concentration of the mind. In the next birth thou shalt be born as a
-Brhmana and become the greatest friend of all beings, and thou shalt
-then fully attain me."
-
-Muchu Kunda came out of the mountain cave. He found that the animals and
-trees were all short-sized and hence inferred it was Kali Yuga. He made
-his way to the north and engaged himself in devotional practices in the
-Badari Asram of Nara and Nryana.
-
-(What has been the next birth of Muchu Kunda? How has he befriended the
-universe! Or is he still to come?)
-
-Krishna came back to Mathur. He killed the Mlechha troops. His men and
-cattle were carrying the booty to Dvrak. When on the way, Rma and
-Krishna were attacked by Jara Sandha with a large army. The brothers
-feigned a flight. Jara Sandha chased them with his army. They climbed up
-a mountain. Jara Sandha made a search, but could not find them. He then
-set fire to the mountain sides. The brothers jumped down eleven Yojanas
-and made their way to Dvrak.
-
-
-
-DVARAKA LIL.
-
-
-RUKMINI.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 52-54.*
-
-We have been already told of Balarma's marriage with Revati.
-
-Sri Krishna married Rukmini in the Rkshasa form. (The seizure of a
-maiden by force from her house, while she weeps and calls for
-assistance, after her kinsmen and friends have been slain in the battle
-or wounded and their houses broken open, is the marriage styled
-Rkshasa).
-
-King Bhishmaka of Vidarbha had five sons, Rukmin, Rukmaratha,
-Rukma-vahu, Rukma-kesa, and Rukma-malin. He had also one daughter
-Rukmini. (_Rukma_ means bright, radiant, also gold).
-
-Krishna and Rukmini had heard of each other and they made a vow of
-marriage. Rukmin however betrothed his sister to Sisupla, son of the
-king of Chedi. Rukmini secretly sent a Brhmana messenger to Krishna and
-gave him a letter. The Brhmana was received well by Krishna. He read
-out the following letter of Rukmini.
-
-"O Achyuta, thou most lovely of all, my mind has forced through all
-false shame and has become attached to thee, for I have heard of thy
-excellences, which reach the ear only to remove all sufferings and I
-have heard of thy beauty, which gives all that is desired to the seer
-thereof.
-
-"O Mukunda, O Nrisinha, where is the girl, however wellborn, modest and
-great she may be, that will not choose thee as her husband, unequalled
-as thou art in birth, grace, beauty, wisdom and riches, and the most
-pleasing to all mankind.
-
-"Therefore thou art chosen by me as my husband. I offer myself up to
-thee. Come thou here and make me thy wife. Thou dost deserve to have me
-soon. Let not Sisupla touch me, like a jackal touching the share of a
-lion.
-
-"If I have done virtuous acts, if I have rightly served the great Lord
-Siva, then come, O brother of Rma, and hold my hand and let not others
-do so. The day after to-morrow is fixed for my marriage. Come thou
-unnoticed. Defeat Sisupla and others and carry me away by force in the
-Rkshasa form of marriage.
-
-"I shall tell you how it will not be necessary to kill my friends within
-the house. The day before the marriage there will be a large gathering
-outside the town to worship the goddess Durga, and I as bride shall be
-present there."
-
-The message was thus delivered. Sri Krishna vowed to marry Rukmini by
-force. He ordered Daruka (His charioteer) to bring the chariot. Then he
-took the Brhmana with him and reached Kundina, the town of Bhishmaka,
-in one day.
-
-Kundina was gay with preparations for the marriage. Dama Ghosa, the
-father of Sisupla, also made grand preparations. He came with a large
-retinue to Kundina. Bhishmaka went out to receive him, and led him to
-his quarters. Slva, Jarsandha, Dantavakra, Viduratha, Paundraka, and
-many other kings, friendly to Dama Ghosha joined him with large armies.
-They anticipated a fight with Krishna and Rma and they came well
-prepared for the occasion. Rma heard that Krishna went all alone and he
-heard of the preparations made by his enemies. So he lost no time in
-gathering a large army and marching for Kundina.
-
-Bhishmaka heard of the approach of Krishna and Rma. He gladly received
-them and gave them quarters. Rukmini, guarded by the army, went to the
-temple of Durga with her companions. She worshipped the Goddess and
-prayed for Krishna as her husband. She then left the temple and was
-about to get into the chariot when Sri Krishna carried her off by force
-in his own chariot.
-
-Jara Sandha and other kings were defeated by the Yadu chiefs and they
-took to flight They consoled Sisupla and then each went to his own
-place.
-
-Rukmin vowed that he would not return to Kundina till he had killed
-Krishna and rescued his sister. He attacked Krishna but was defeated by
-him. Krishna was about to kill him when Rukmini interceded on his
-behalf. Krishna then partially shaved his head and chin and left him.
-Being thus disgraced, Rukmin made a town called Bhojukata and lived
-there.
-
-Krishna brought Rukmini to Dvrak and married her in due form.
-
-
-PRADYUMNA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 55.*
-
-The god Kma is an aspect of Vsudeva. He had been burnt before by the
-fire of Rudra's anger. To get back his body, he was born as the son of
-Krishna by Rukmini and became known as Pradyumna. He was not unlike his
-father in any respect The Asura Samvara, who was Kma (or passions)
-incarnate, (Kma rpin), knew the child to be his enemy and stole him
-away and threw him into the sea. A big fish swallowed him up. That fish
-with others was caught in a large net by the fishermen. They presented
-the fish to Samvara. The servant cut open the fish and the child came
-out. They made him over to Mayavati. She was frightened but Naroda told
-her all about the child. This Mayavati, named Rati, had been the wife of
-Kma. She had been waiting for the reappearance of her husband in a
-body. She was employed by Samvara as a cook. Knowing the child to be
-Kma Deva, she nursed him and became attached to him. In time, Kmadeva
-grew tip and Myvati approached him with expressions of love. "What is
-this mother?" asked Kmadeva, "Why this change in your feelings towards
-me!"
-
-"Thou art Kmadeva, O Lord, son of Krishna. Thou hadst been stolen away
-by Samvara. I am thy wife Rati. The Asura had thrown thee into the sea,
-when a fish devoured thee. I have got thee back from the stomach of that
-fish. Samvara is an adept in many forms of My. Kill him by means of
-Delusion and other powers of My known to thee."
-
-Rati gave to Pradyumna the Vidya known as Mahamaya, the destroyer of all
-other Mys.
-
-Pradyumna fought with Samvara and killed him with the help of Mahamaya.
-Rati then carried her husband to Dvrak. There the women mistook him
-for Krishna and bashfully moved aside. Even Rukmini could only half
-decide that he was her son. Krishna appeared with Vsudeva, Devaki and
-Rma. Nrada related the story of Pradyumna's adventures. There was
-great joy at Dvrak and people welcomed Pradyumna and his wife.
-Pradyumna was an image of Krishna. What wonder if even his mother became
-attached to him!
-
-
-THE JEWEL SYAMANTAKA, JAMBAVATI AND SATYABHAMA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 56.*
-
-King Satrajit was a votary of the Sun-God. He got a present from his
-deity of the Syamantaka jewel. He came to Dvrak with the jewel on his
-neck. He shone with such a lustre that people took him for the sun. The
-jewel used to bring forth 16,000 palas of gold every day. Sri Krishna
-asked the jewel for the king of the Yadus, but Satrajit would not part
-with it. One day his brother Prasenajit rode on a hunting excursion into
-the forests, with the jewel on his neck. A lion killed him and his horse
-and carried away the jewel. The Bear-chief, Jmbavat, killed the lion
-and took away the jewel into his cave and made it the plaything of his
-son. When Prasena did not return, Satrajit thought that he had been
-killed by Krishna. People also suspected him. To get rid of this unjust
-reproach, Sri Krishna went on a search himself with his men. He traced
-out the remains of Prasena, the horse and the lion. He then entered the
-cave of the Bear-chief, leaving his men outside. The infant son of
-Jmbavat was playing with the jewel. Krishna appeared before the boy.
-The nurse screamed aloud. Jmbavat rushed out in anger and attacked
-Krishna. The fight went on for twenty eight days and at last Jmbavat
-was overpowered. He then knew Sri Krishna as Vishnu, the primal Purusha
-and prayed to Him. Sri Krishna said the object of his entering the cave
-was to recover the jewel, as he wanted to remove the suspicion that he
-himself had taken it. Jmbavat gladly offered his daughter Jmbavati
-with the jewel to Sri Krishna. He then returned to Dvrak with his
-bride and the jewel. He called an assembly and, in the presence of all,
-made over the jewel to Satrajit. He also told him how he got it back.
-Satrajit felt deeply mortified. He came back to his kingdom and thought
-how he could best appease Sri Krishna whom he had offended by groundless
-suspicion. At last he offered his daughter Satyabhama to Krishna and
-also the jewel. Krishna said: -- "We do not want the jewel, O King. Thou
-art the votary of the Sun-God. Let it remain with thee. We shall partake
-of its blessings."
-
-
-SYAMANTAKA, AKRURA, KRITAVARMAN AND SATA DHANU:
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 57.*
-
-Hearing that the Pndavas had been killed in the Lac-house, Rma and
-Krishna went to Hastinpura to offer their condolences. Taking advantage
-of their absence, Akrra and Kritavarman said to Satadhanu, -- "Satrajit
-promised the Syamantaka jewel also when he made over his daughter to Sri
-Krishna. Why shall not the jewel be taken from him? Why shall he not
-share the fate of his brother?" The wicked Satadhanu under this evil
-inspiration killed Satrajit while he was asleep and carried away the
-jewel. Satyabhama went to Hastinpura and informed Krishna of the
-killing of her father. The brothers came back to Dvrak. Krishna made
-preparations for killing Satadhanu and for recovering the jewel from
-him. Satadhanu sought the help of Kritavarman. But he knew too well the
-might of Sri Krishna and he declined to give any help. Satadhanu then
-turned to Akrra. Akrra knew Krishna as tmn and he would not do
-anything. Satadhanu however left the jewel with Akrra and fled away on
-horse-back. Rma and Krishna followed him to Mithila. He left the horse
-and ran away on foot. Sri Krishna overtook him soon and cut off his head
-with the Chakra.
-
-He then searched for the jewel, but could not find it. Turning to his
-brother, he said, "For nothing have I killed Satadhanu. The jewel is not
-with him." Rma replied -- "Satadhanu must have left the jewel with some
-one. Try to find him out. Go back to Dvrak. I shall in the meantime
-pass some time with my friend, the king of Mithila." Rma remained at
-Mithila for a few years. Duryodhana also came there. He learned the art
-of fighting with the mall from Rma.
-
-Sri Krishna went back to Dvrak and told Satyabhama how he had killed
-Satadhanu but could not find the jewel. Kritavarman and Akrra heard all
-that took place and they fled for their lives from Dvrak. In the
-absence of Akrra the people of Dvrak suffered from bodily and mental
-pain as well as disturbances from the Devas and the elements. Those who
-forgot the glory of Sri Krishna attributed all this to the absence of
-Akrra. But it was not possible that such things should happen where Sri
-Krishna resided (without His wish.)
-
-"Once upon a time there were no rains at Ks (Benares). The king of
-Ks offered his daughter Gandivi to Svafalka and it rained at Ks.
-Akrra is the son of that Svafalka. He has got the powers of his father.
-It rains wherever Akrra lives and the land becomes free from epidemics
-and calamities."
-
-The old people talked thus. Sri Krishna knew it was not so. He sent for
-Akrra, shewed him every respect, and smilingly addressed him thus: --
-"O lord of giving (_Danapati_), Satadhanu must have left the Syamantaka
-jewel with thee. I knew this from before. Satrajit left no son. His
-daughter's son is therefore his true heir. But it is not so easy to keep
-the jewel. Thou dost keep the observances well. So let it be with thee.
-But in the matter of this jewel, even my brother does not believe me.
-Therefore shew it once and give peace to your friends." Akrra made over
-the jewel to Sri Krishna. He shewed it to his clansmen, in order to
-remove the stain of suspicion against him. He then returned it to
-Akrra.
-
-
-THE OTHER WIVES OF SRI KRISHNA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 58-59.*
-
-Sri Krishna went to see the Pandava brothers at Hastinpura. They gave
-him a most devoted reception. One day Krishna and Arjuna went on a
-hunting excursion to the side of the Yamun.
-
-They saw there a most beautiful girl. Arjuna asked who she was. The girl
-replied: -- "I am daughter of the Sun-god. Desiring Vishnu to be my
-husband, I have performed great Tapas. I shall have no other husband.
-Let that friend of the friendless be pleased with me. My name is
-KALINDI. I am to reside in the waters of the Yamun in the abode built
-by my father till I see Achyuta." Krishna placed the girl on his chariot
-and took her to Yudisthira.
-
-It was at this time that Krishna got a town built by Visvakarmn at the
-request of Arjuna and the Khndava forest was burnt by the Fire-god.
-
-The rains over, Krishna went to Dvrak and there duly married Kalindi.
-
-Vinda and Anuvinda, two princes of Avanti, were followers of Duryodhana.
-Their sister MITRA VINDA wanted to marry Krishna but they dissuaded her.
-So Krishna carried away the girl by force and married her. She was the
-daughter of his father's sister Rajadhi-devi.
-
-In Ko-sala, there was a virtuous prince named Nagnajit. He had a
-daughter named SATYA, also called NAGNAJITI after her father. No one
-could marry her who had not overcome seven fierce bulls. Krishna went to
-Kosala with a large retinue and he was received well by the prince. The
-girl prayed to the Fire-god to have Krishna as her bridegroom. Krishna
-overcame the bulls and married the girl.
-
-Krishna then married BHADRA of Kekaya, the daughter of her aunt
-(father's sister) Sruta-kirt. He also carried away by force LAKSHANA,
-the daughter of the king of Madra.
-
-Naraka, son of the Earth, deprived Aditi, mother of Indra, of her
-ear-rings, Varuna of his umbrella and Indra of his seat at Mani Parvat
-(Mountain of jewels). Indra complained to Krishna. He went with his wife
-Satyabhma to Prkjyotisha, the town of Naraka. That town was well
-fortified and it was protected by the Daitya Mura and his meshes.
-Krishna forced his passage through all obstacles and had a fight with
-Mura whom he slew with his Chakra. The seven sons of Mura, -- Tmra,
-Antariksha, Sravana, Vibhvasu, Vatu, Nabhasvat and Varuna, -- under the
-lead of one Pithha also attacked Krishna, but they were all killed.
-Naraka then himself fought with Krishna and was killed by him. The
-Goddess Earth then approached Krishna and, after adoring him, said: --
-"This Bhagadatta, son of Naraka, takes Thy shelter. Please pass Thy hand
-round his head."
-
-Krishna gave assurances of safety and he then entered the house of
-Naraka. Naraka had carried away 16 THOUSAND GIRLS by force. Krishna sent
-away these girls and much treasure to Dvrak. He then went with
-Satyabhma to the place of Indra and there restored the ear-rings to
-Aditi. At the request of his wife, Krishna uprooted the Prijta tree
-and placed it on the back of Garuda. The Devas resisted, but Krishna
-defeated them all. The Prijta tree was planted in the quarters of
-Satyabhma and it spread its fragrance all round. Krishna married the 16
-thousand girls at one and the same moment by assuming as many forms.
-
-
-KRISHNA AND RUKMINI.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 60.*
-
-Krishna and Rukmini were once sitting together, when, turning to his
-wife with a smile, Krishna spoke the following words:
-
-"Princess, thou wert coveted by great and powerful kings. Thy brother
-and thy own father offered thee to Sisupla and others. How is it then
-thou didst accept me who am not thy equal? See how we have taken shelter
-in the sea being afraid of the kings. Having powerful enemies, we can
-hardly be said to occupy our kingly seats. O thou with beautiful
-eyebrows, woe to those women who follow such men as have unknown and
-uncommon ways of their own. Poor as we are, wealthy people hardly seek
-us. It is meet that they should marry or make friendship with each
-other, who are equals in wealth, birth, power and beauty. It is through
-ignorance and shortsightedness that thou hast married one who is void of
-all Gunas (good qualities) and who is praised only by Bhikshus
-(beggars). Therefore do thou seek some Kshatriya king who will be a
-match for thee. Sisupla, Slva, Jarsandha, Danta Vakra and other kings
-and even thy own brother Rukmin, blindfolded by pride, shewed hostility
-to me. For the repression of their pride, I the punisher of evil men
-brought thee here. But we are indifferent to the body and the house,
-void of all desires, fixed in self, all full, the light within, without
-actions."
-
-(Without anticipating our general study of the Dvrak Lil, it is
-sufficient to mention here that Rukmini is the spiritual energy of Mula
-Prakriti, or rather the light of Purusha, as reflected on Prakriti. The
-gist of what Krishna says is that there is an essential difference
-between Prakriti and Purusha. Purusha is void of Gunas, while the Gunas
-form the essence of Prakriti. Coming from Prakriti, Rukmini must follow
-the Prkritic elements. And if Krishna wrested her away from the hands
-of the material energies of Prakriti and even from her own Prkritic
-basis (her brothers and father), it was because the material energies
-had asserted themselves too much. This was done in the Seventh
-Manvantara, when the spiritual ascent was a Klpic necessity. Was
-Rukmini to remain wedded to Krishna for the remaining period of the
-Kalpa, or was she to go back to her brothers and their friends?).
-
-Rukmini replied: --
-
-"O Lotus eyed! even so it is as thou sayest. I am quite unlike thee, the
-Great Bhagavat. Lord of even Brahm, Vishnu and Siva, Thou art plunged
-in Thy own greatness. What am I to Thee, the Gunas forming my essence?
-It is only ignorant people who worship me. (For fear of kings, thou hast
-taken refuge in the sea.) But the kings are the Gunas, (Sound, Touch,
-Form, Taste, and Smell which compose the object world.) For fear of
-them, as it were, thou hast taken refuge in the inner ocean of the
-heart, and there thou dost manifest Thyself, as pure Chaitanya. The
-object-seeking Indriyas are no doubt thy constant enemies. But when thou
-speakest of giving up kingly seats, why even thy votaries give them up,
-as darkness itself. The ways of even Munis who worship Thy Lotus feet
-are unknown; what of thine own? When their ways are uncommon, what of
-thine? Thou art poor indeed, for there is nothing besides thee, (and so
-nothing can form Thy wealth.) But thou dost receive the offerings of
-others and they seek thee. It is not through ignorance, but knowing that
-thou art the tm of the Universe, that I have sought Thee. The flow of
-Time that arises from Thy eyebrow swallows up the desires of even Brahm
-and others. I did not even seek them for Thy sake. What speakest thou of
-others? As the lion carries away his share by force from other animals,
-so thou didst carry me away from amongst the kings. How can I believe
-that thou didst take shelter in the Sea from fear of such kings? Anga,
-Prithu, Bharata, Yayti, Gaya and other jewels of kings gave up their
-kingdoms and sought thee in the forests. Did woe befall them that thou
-talkest of woe to me? The Gunas have their resting place in thee. Thou
-art the home of Lakshm. Moksha is at Thy feet. What foolish woman shall
-follow others, neglecting Thee? I have accepted thee, the Lord and soul
-of the Universe, the giver of all blessings here and hereafter. Let thy
-Moksha-giving feet be my shelter. Let those women have the kings for
-their husbands, those asses, bullocks, dogs, cats, and servants who have
-not heard of Thee.
-
-"(What is man without tm?) Those that have not smelt the honey of Thy
-Lotus feet seek the dead body, though it seems to be alive, consisting
-of flesh, blood, bone, worms, excrement, phlegm, bile and gas, covered
-over with skin, hair and nails." (Mula Prakriti in the Universe, or
-Budhi in man, is wedded to tm, represented by Sri Krishna. The kings
-represent here the followers of material elements in the Universe or in
-man.)
-
-
-THE SONS OF KRISHNA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 61.*
-
-The wives of Krishna had each ten sons.
-
-_The Sons of Rukmini were._ -- Pradyumna, Charudeshna, Sudeshna,
-Chrudeha, Suchru, Chru Gupta, Bhadra Chru, Chru-Chandra, Vichru
-and Chru.
-
-_The ten sons of Satyabhma were._ -- Bhnu, Subhnu, Svarbhnu,
-Prabhnu, Bhnumat, Chandra-bhnu, Vrihat-bhnu, Ati-bhnu, Sribhnu and
-Prati-bhnu.
-
-_Jmbavati had ten sons._ -- Smva, Sumitra, Purujit, Satajit,
-Sahasrajit, Vijaya, Chitraketu, Vasumat, Dravida, and Kratu.
-
-_Ngnajiti had ten sons._ -- Vira, Chandra, Asva-sen, Chitragu, Vegavat,
-Vrisha, ma, Sanku, Vasu and Kunti.
-
-_Kalind had ten sons._ -- Sruta, Kavi, Vrisha, Vira, Suvhu, Bhadra,
-Snti, Darsa, Prna Msa and Somaka.
-
-_Mdr had ten sons._ -- Praghosha, Gtravat, Sinha, Bala, Prabala,
-Urdhaga, Mahsakti, Saha, Ojas and Aparjita.
-
-_Mitravind had ten Sons._ -- Vrika, Harsha, Anila, Gridhra, Vardhana,
-Annda, Mahnsa, Pvana, Vahni and Kshudhi.
-
-_Bhadra had ten Sons._ -- Sangrmajit, Brihat Sena, Sra, Praharana,
-Arijit, Jaya, Subhadr, Rma, yu and Satya.
-
-Rohini (illustrative of the 16 thousand wives) had Tmra-tapt and other
-sons.
-
-Pradyumna had, by Rukmavati, daughter of Rukmin, one son Aniruddha.
-
-There were millions and millions in the line of Krishna. Though Rukmin
-vowed enmity to Krishna, he gave his daughter to Krishna's son, out of
-regard for his own sister Rukmini.
-
-Balavat son of Kritavarman married Chrumati, daughter of Rukmini.
-
-Rukmin also gave his grand-daughter Rochan in marriage to Aniruddha.
-
-
-THE DEATH OF RUKMIN.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 61.*
-
-Rma, Krishna, Pradyumna, Rukmini and others went to Bhoja Kata, the
-seat of Rukmin, on the occasion of Aniruddha's marriage. When the
-marriage was over, the assembled kings advised Rukmin to challenge Rma
-to a game of dice. At first, the wager was laid by Rma at one hundred,
-one thousand and ten thousand gold coins respectively. Rukmin won all
-the games. The king of Kalinga derided Rma by shewing his teeth. Rma
-did not like this.
-
-Rukmin then laid the wager at one lakh of gold coins. Balarma won the
-game. But Rukmin falsely declared that he had won it.
-
-Rma then laid the wager at ten krores. Rma won the game this time
-also. But Rukmin falsely said: -- "I have got it let the bystanders
-decide this." At this time, a voice from the heavens said that Balarma
-had got the victory by fair means and Rukmin was telling a lie, But
-Rukmin under evil advice did not mind this. He and the kings derided
-Balarma. "Keeper of cows, what know you of games? They are the province
-of kings." Balarma could bear it no longer. He took his club and killed
-Rukmin. He then broke the teeth of the king of Kalinga. The other kings
-fled in fear.
-
-
-BANA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 62-63.*
-
-Bna, the eldest son of Bali, had one thousand hands. He was a votary of
-Siva. Siva asked him to name a boon and he prayed to Siva to be the
-keeper of his place. Once he told Siva that there was too much
-fighting-inclination in his hands, but he found no match for him except
-Siva himself. Even the elephants of space ran away in fear. Siva said
-angrily: -- "Fool that thou art, thou shalt fight with one equal to
-myself. Thy eminence shall then be lowered." The Asura chief gladly
-waited for the day.
-
-Bna had a daughter named Usha. She met Aniruddha in a dream. On getting
-up, she exclaimed, "Friend where art thou?" Her attendant Chitra-lekh,
-daughter of the minister, named Kumbhanda, enquired whom she was looking
-for. Usha described the figure she had seen in her dream. Chitra-lekh
-pointed out to her Devas, Gandhavas, and men, one after another. At
-last, when she pointed to the figure of Aniruddha, the princess
-indicated him as her lover. Chitra-lekh by her Yogic powers went to
-Dvrak and carried away Aniruddha, while he was asleep. The prince and
-the princess passed their days together in the privacy of Usha's
-apartment. The men of the guard found some significant change in Usha.
-They informed the King. Bna came in unexpectedly and he found his
-daughter playing with a young man. The armed attendants of Bna attacked
-Aniruddha but he killed many of them with his club and they ran away.
-Bna then tied the prince with serpents' twinings.
-
-Nrada gave the news to Krishna. Rma and Krishna, with their followers
-and a large army, attacked Sonita-pura, the seat of Bna. Siva engaged
-in fight with Krishna, Kartikeya with Pradyumna, Bna with Satyaki,
-Kumbhanda and Kpakarna with Balarma and Bna's son with Smba. Krishna
-worsted Siva and Pradyumna worsted Kartikeya. Bna then attacked
-Krishna. After some fighting the king fled away. The Fever with three
-heads and three feet, known as Siva's Fever, joined the battle. To meet
-him, Krishna created the Fever known as Vishnu's Fever. The two fevers
-fought with each other. Worsted in the fight, the Fever of Siva sought
-the protection of Krishna. He got assurances that he need have no fear
-from Vishnu's Fever.
-
-Bna returned to the charge. Krishna began to cut off his hands with the
-Chakra. Siva appeared at the time and asked Krishna to forgive Bna as
-he had forgiven his father Bali. Krishna replied: -- "O Lord, I cannot
-kill this son of Bali. I promised Prahlda that I would not kill any of
-his line. His many hands caused grief to Earth and I have lopped them
-off. Now four hands shall only remain. With these hands, Bna shall be
-thy constant companion, without fear of death or infirmity." Bna bowed
-down his head. He made over his daughter and Aniruddha to Krishna.
-
-
-NRIGA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP, 64.*
-
-The sons of Krishna went out to play in the forest. They saw a huge
-lizard in a certain well. They tried all means, but could not raise it
-up. They then informed Krishna. He raised it, without effort, with his
-left hand. The lizard assumed the form of a Deva. On inquiry from
-Krishna, he thus related his own story. "I am king Nriga of the line of
-Ikshvku. My charities knew no bounds and they have become proverbial.
-One cow belonging to a Brhmana got mixed with my herd and, without
-knowing that, I gave her to another Brhmana. While he was taking away
-the cow, the owner found her out. The two Brhmanas quarrelled and they
-came to me. They said: -- 'You are a giver as well as taker.' I became
-surprised and, when the facts were known, I offered one lakh of cows for
-the return of the mistaken cow. One of them however said, 'I am not
-going to take a gift from the king.' The other said: -- 'I do not wish
-for other cows even if they be ten lakhs.' They both went away. At this
-time the messengers of Yma came and carried me away. Yma said: -- 'I
-see no end of your merits and the places acquired by them. Do you prefer
-to suffer for your demerit first or to enjoy those heavenly things?' I
-took the first choice and down I fell as a lizard into this well. Look
-how I have suffered for taking a Brhmana's property." The king then
-thanked Krishna for his favor and ascended to the heavens. Krishna gave
-a discourse to those around him as to how iniquitous it was to take a
-Brhmana's property, consciously or unconsciously.
-
-
-BALARMA AND THE DRAWING OF THE YAMUN.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 65.*
-
-Balarma went to Vrindvana to see his old friends. The Gopas and Gopis
-gave him a warm reception and they complained of the hard-heartedness of
-Krishna. Balarma remained there for the two months, Chaitra and
-Vaisakha. The Gopa girls used to join him at night. One day he went in
-their company to the side of the Yamun. Fermented juice (Vruni) fell
-from the trees, as directed by Varuna. Balarma drank the juice with the
-Gopa girls and became intoxicated. He called the Yamun to his side for
-a pleasure bath, but she did not came. Balarma thought he was drunk and
-therefore the river goddess did not heed his words. He drew her by the
-ploughshare and said in anger: -- "Wicked thou, I called thee. But thou
-didst not hear. I shall tear thee asunder with this plough." Terrified,
-the river goddess adored Balarma and sought his pardon. Balarma
-forgave her. He then had a pleasure bath with the girls. Lakshm made
-presents to him of blue clothes, rich ornaments and an auspicious
-garland.
-
-
-POUNDRAKA AND THE KING OF KS (BENARES).
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 66.*
-
-Poundraka, king of Karusha, thought, "I am Vsudeva." With this
-conviction, he sent a messenger to Krishna, calling him a pretender. He
-was staying with his friend, the king of Ks. Krishna attacked Ks,
-and both the princes came out with a large army. Krishna found Poundraka
-had the conch, the disc, the club, the bow made of horn and the
-Srivatsa, all his own symbols. He was adorned with the Kaustubha and a
-garland of wild flowers. He had yellow clothes and rich crest jewels. He
-had Makara-shaped ear-rings. He was seated on a false Garuda. Seeing
-Poundraka represent him in this way, as it were on the stage, Krishna
-began to laugh. He killed both the princes in the fight. Poundraka had
-constantly meditated on Hari and he assumed his form and became all Hari
-himself.
-
-Sudakshina, son of the Ks prince, vowed vengeance and worshipped Siva.
-Siva, being pleased with his worship, asked him to name a boon. He asked
-how he could kill the slayer of his father. Siva told him to invoke
-Dakshin Agni, with a Mantra of black magic (_Abhichra_). Sudakshina
-did so with the aid of Brhmanas. The fire went towards Dvrak to
-consume Krishna. Krishna sent his Sudarsana disc which overpowered the
-fire. The fire fell back on Ks and consumed Sudakshina and the
-Brhmanas. Sudarsana still followed the fire. The divine weapon burnt
-the whole of Ks and went back to Krishna.
-
-
-DVI-VID (MONKEY).
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 67.*
-
-The Monkey-general Dvi-vid was a minister of Sugriva and brother of
-Mainda. He was a friend of Naraka, son of Earth. To take revenge for his
-friend's death, he began to do all sorts of mischief, especially in the
-regions of Dvrak.
-
-Balarma was in the midst of some girls on the Raivataka hill. The
-monkey made all sorts of gestures to annoy and insult the girls and he
-provoked Balarma again and again who then killed Dvi-vid, to the great
-joy of all.
-
-
-SMBA, LAKSHAN AND BALARMA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 68.*
-
-Lakshan, daughter of Duryodhana, was to select her own husband, and
-there was an assembly of princes. Smba, son of Jmbavati, carried away
-the girl by force. The Kauravas could not brook this insult. Bhishma,
-Kma, Salya, Bhri, Yajna Ketu and Duryodhana united to defeat Smba and
-they brought him back as a prisoner. Nrada gave the information to the
-Vrishnis and their chief Ugrasena gave them permission to fight with the
-Kauravas. Balarama did not like that the Kurus and Yadus should fight
-with one another. So he went himself to Hastinpura. He remained outside
-the town and sent Uddhava to learn the views of Dhrita-Rshtra. The
-Kurus came in a body to receive Balarma. When the formalities were
-over, Balarma composedly asked the Kurus, in the name of king Ugrasena,
-to restore Smba. The Kurus proudly replied: "We have given the kingdom
-to the Vrishnis and Yadus. A wonder indeed, they want to become our
-equals and to dictate to us! Surely the lamb cannot take away the lion's
-game."
-
-Balarma thought how foolish the Kurus had become. They did not know the
-powers of Ugrasena and of Krishna. In anger he exclaimed, "I will make
-the earth to be stripped of all Kauravas" He took his plough and gave a
-pull to Hastinpura. The town became topsy-turvy. The Kurus came and
-adored him. They brought back Smba and Lakshan. Duryodhana made large
-presents and Balarma became appeased. He went back with Smba and his
-bride to Hastinpura and related what had happened to the Yadus.
-
-
-NARADA AND THE WIVES OF SRI KRISHNA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 69.*
-
-"What a wonder that Sri Krishna married 16 thousand girls, all at one
-and the same time, with but one body!" So thought Nrada and he came to
-see things with his own eyes at Dvrak. He entered one of the rooms and
-found Krishna seated with one of the girls. Krishna washed the feet of
-Nrada and sprinkled the water over his body.
-
-The Rishi entered another room. Krishna was playing at dice with one of
-his wives and with Uddhava. He entered another room and found Krishna
-was taking care of his children.
-
-So he entered room after room. Krishna was either bathing or making
-preparations for the sacrifice, or feeding Brhmanas, or making recitals
-of Gyatr, or riding, or driving, or taking counsel of ministers, or
-making gifts, or hearing recitals of sacred books. He was in one place
-following Dharma, in one Artha and in another Kma.
-
-Nrada smiled and said: -- "O Lord of Yoga, I know the Yogic My, by
-service at Thy feet, as it is manifest in me, though hard of perception
-by those that are themselves under the influence of My. Now permit me
-to roam about the Lokas, filled with Thy glory, singing Thy deeds, which
-purify all the worlds."
-
-Sri Krishna said: --
-
-"O Brhmana, I am the teacher, the maker and the recogniser of Dharma.
-It is to teach people that I have resorted to all this. O Son, do not be
-deluded."
-
-
-THE RAJA SUYA AND JARASANDHA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 70-73.*
-
-Krishna was holding council in the Assembly Room called Sudharm. A
-Brhmana came as a messenger from the Rajas who had been imprisoned by
-Jarsandha and confined in a hill fort. The Rajas sought their delivery
-from Krishna, who had defeated Jarsandha seven times and had been
-defeated by him only once.
-
-Nrada appeared at the time. Krishna enquired from him about the
-Pndavas. The Rishi said: --
-
-"Rj Yudhisthira intends to perform the great Yajna Rj Sya in Thy
-honor. Please give thy consent". Krishna turned towards Uddhava and
-asked for advice.
-
-Uddhava gauged the feelings of Nrada, of Krishna and the assembly and
-said: --
-
-"It is meet thou shouldst help thy cousin in the performance of Rj
-Sya Yajna and also that thou shouldst protect the Rajas that seek
-relief from thee. Kings all round will have to be conquered at the Rj
-Sya sacrifice. The defeat of Jarsandha will follow as a matter of
-course. Thus shall we see the fulfilment of our great desire and the
-liberation of the Rajas shall redound to Thy glory. Both ends will be
-served in this way. But Jarsandha is very powerful. He should not be
-fought with while at the head of his large army. Bhima is equal to him
-in strength. Let him fight singly with Jarsandha. That king does not
-refuse any prayer of Brhmanas. Let Bhima ask for single combat in the
-disguise of a Brhmana. Surely that son of Pndu will kill him in thy
-presence."
-
-Krishna gave kind assurances to the messenger of the captive kings and
-left for Hastinpura.
-
-The Pndavas vied with one another in shewing respectful love to Krishna
-and Arjuna delivered up the Khndava forest to Agni and liberated My.
-In return for this kindness, My made the magical assembly ground for
-the Yajna.
-
-All the kings were brought under submission by Bhima, Arjuna, Nakula,
-Sahadeva and the allied kings, except Jarsandha.
-
-Bhima, Arjuna and Krishna went to the seat of Jarsandha in the disguise
-of Brhmanas.
-
-They begged hospitality from the king. King Jarsandha concluded from
-their voice, their shape and from the arrow marks on their hands that
-they were Kshatriyas. He also thought they were his acquaintances.
-"These are Kshatriyas, though they wear the marks of brahmanas. I will
-give them what they ask even though it be my own self, so difficult to
-part with. Is not the pure glory of Bali spread in all directions,
-though he was deprived of his lordly powers by Vishnu in the disguise of
-a Brhmana? Vishnu wanted to restore the lordship of the Trilok to
-India. Bali knew the Brhmana in disguise to be Vishnu. He still made
-over the Trilok to him, even against the protests of his Guru Sukra.
-This body of a Kshatriya, frail as it is, what purpose will it serve if
-wide fame is not acquired by means of it for the sake of a Brhmana?"
-Turning to Krishna, Arjuna and Bhima, Jarsandha said: -- "O Brhmanas,
-ask what you wish for. Even if it be my own head, I shall give it to
-you."
-
-Krishna replied: "Give us a single combat, if you please, O King. We are
-Kshatriyas and have come for fight. We desire nothing else. This is
-Bhima. This is his brother Arjuna. Know me to be their cousin Krishna,
-thy enemy." The king of Magadha broke out in loud laughter. In anger he
-then exclaimed: -- "O fools, I will give you a fight then. But thou art
-a coward. Thou didst run away from Mathur and didst take shelter in the
-sea. This Arjuna is not my equal in age. He is not very strong. He is
-unlike me in his body. So he cannot be my rival. This Bhima is my match
-in strength." So saying he gave one club to Bhima and took one himself.
-The two heroes fought outside the town. The fight was a drawn one.
-Krishna knew about the birth, death and life of Jarsandha. He thought
-in his mind about the joining together by the Rkshasa woman Jara. (The
-legend is that Jarsandha was born, divided in two halves, which were
-put together by the Rkshasa woman Jara.) Krishna took a branch in his
-hand and tore it asunder. Bhima took the hint. He put his foot on one of
-the legs of Jarsandha and took the other in his hand and tore asunder
-the body in two equal parts.
-
-Krishna placed Sahadeva, the son of Jarsandha, on the throne of
-Magadha, He then liberated the kings who had been imprisoned by
-Jarsandha. They were twenty thousand and eight hundred in number. They
-saw Krishna with four hands and with all the divine attributes. Their
-eyes, tongues and noses all fed upon him, as it were, and their hands
-were stretched forth to receive him. They all fell at the feet of
-Krishna and began to adore him.
-
-"We do not blame the king of Magadha. O Lord, it is by Thy favor, that
-kings are deprived of their thrones. Humbled, we remember Thy feet. We
-do not long for any kingdom in this life, nor do we care for the fruits
-of good works after death. Tell us that which will keep the recollection
-of Thy feet ever fresh in this life."
-
-Sri Krishna replied: --
-
-"From this day forward let your devotion towards me, the Lord of all, be
-made firm and fixed. Your resolve is commendable. It is true as you say
-that riches and power turn the heads of princes. Look at Haihaya,
-Nahusha Vena, Rvana, Naraka and others. Though kings of Devas, Daityas
-and men, they came down from their lofty position through pride. Knowing
-as you do that the body and all other things that have a beginning have
-also an end, you should worship me, perform sacrifices and duly protect
-your subjects. Indifferent to good and bad things alike, fix your minds
-completely on me and you shall attain me in the end."
-
-Krishna made arrangements for their comfort. At his bidding, Sahadeva
-supplied them with kingly dresses and valuable ornaments and gave them
-princely treatment. Krishna sent them to their respective kingdoms.
-Krishna, Bhima and Arjuna then returned to Hastinpura.
-
-
-SISUPLA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 74.*
-
-Yudhisthira commenced the performance of the Yajna. He asked permission
-of Krishna to make a respectful call on the priests that were to
-officiate at the ceremonies. Vysa, Bharadvja, Sumanta, Gotama, Asita,
-Vasishtha, Chyavana, Kanva, Maitreya and other Rishis, Drona, Bhishma,
-Kripa and others, Dhritarshra with his sons, Vidura, Brhmanas, Vaisyas
-and Sudras: all the kings and their subjects came to witness the Yajna.
-The Brhmanas prepared the sacrificial ground with golden ploughs. They
-then initiated king Yudhisthira according to the Vedic rites. The Ritvik
-Brhmanas duly assisted at the performance of the Rajasya. On the day
-of extracting Soma Juice, the king duly worshipped the priests and their
-assistants. Then the time came for worshipping those that were present
-at the assembly. Now who was to be worshipped first? There were many
-head-men present and the members consulted with one another as to who
-deserved to get the first offering but they could not come to a
-decision. Sahadeva then addressed the meeting thus: --
-
-"Sri Krishna, the Lord of the Stvats, deserves the first place. All the
-Devas, Time, Space, wealth and all else are but himself. He is the soul
-of the Universe. He is the essence of all sacrifices, the sacrificial
-fire, the sacrificial offerings and Mantras, Snkhya and Yoga; all
-relate to him. He is the one without a second. Alone, He creates,
-preserves and destroys. By His favor men make various performances and
-from Him they attain the fruits of those performances. Give the first
-welcome-offering of respect to that Great Krishna. All beings and even
-Self shall be honored by this. Krishna is the soul of all beings. All
-differences vanish before him."
-
-All good people approved of the proposal of Sahadeva.
-
-Rj Yudhisthira washed the feet of Krishna and sprinkled the water over
-his own head and that of his relatives. He then made valuable offerings
-to him. All people saluted Krishna, saying "Namas" (salutation) and
-"Jaya" (Victory), and flowers rained over his head.
-
-Sisupla could not bear all this. He stood up in the midst of the
-assembly and thus gave vent to his feelings.
-
-"True is the saying that time is hard to overcome. Or how could even old
-men be led away by the words of a boy? You leaders of the assembly know
-best what are the relative merits of all. Do not endorse the words of a
-boy that Krishna deserves to get the first welcome-offering of respect
-Here are great Rishis, fixed on Brahm, great in asceticism, wisdom and
-religious practices, adored even by the Lokaplas, their impurities all
-completely removed by divine perception. Overstepping them all, how
-could this cowherd (_Gopla_) boy, the disgrace (_pansana_) of his
-family (_Kla_), deserve to be worshipped, as if the crow (_Kka_)
-deserves to get the sacrificial oblation (_purodsa_)? (Sridhara
-explains this Sloka and the following ones as a veiled adoration of Sri
-Krishna. _Gopla_ is the protector of Vedas, of the Earth and of others.
-The word _go_ means the Vedas and the Earth, besides "cow." _Kula
-pnsana_ = Kulapa+ansana. _Kulapas_ are sinners. He who destroys
-(_Ansa_) them is _Kula pnsana_. _Kka_ may be read as compounded with
-another word in the Sloka, in the form of _akka_. _Kka_ is ka + aka.
-_Ka_ is happiness, _aka_ is misery. He who has neither happiness nor
-misery is _akka_ _i.e._, one who has got all his desires. One who has
-got all his desires does not only deserve to get the _purodsa_ offering
-of the Devas but all other offerings. I do not think it necessary to
-reproduce the double interpretation by Sridhara of the other Slokas,
-which is continued in the same strain.) He has gone away from his Varna,
-srama and Kula. He is outside all injunctions and duties. He follows
-his own will. He is void of attributes (_Gunas_). How can he deserve to
-be worshipped? King Yayti cursed his line and it is not honored by good
-people. His clansmen are addicted to unnecessary drinking. How can he
-deserve to be worshipped? They left the the lands where the Rishis
-dwell, and made their fort on the Sea; moreover they oppress their
-subjects like robbers."
-
-Sisupla went on in this way and Krishna did not say a word. The lion
-heeds not the jackal's cry. The members of the Assembly closed their
-ears and went away, cursing Sisupla in anger. They could not hear the
-calumny of Bhagavat. For he who hears the calumny of Bhagavat and of
-those that are devoted to him and does not leave the place goes
-downwards, deprived of all merits. The sons of Pndu and their allies of
-Matsya, Kaikaya and Srinjaya, took up arms to kill Sisupla. Sisupla
-also took his shield and sword and reproved the kings on the side of
-Krishna. Krishna then rose up and asked his followers to desist. He cut
-off the head of Sisupla with the Chakra. A flame like a glowing meteor
-rose from the body of Sisupla and entered Sri Krishna. For three
-births, Sisupla had constantly followed Vishnu in enmity. By this
-constant though hostile meditation, he attained the state of that he
-meditated upon. (The readers are reminded here of the story of Jaya and
-Vijaya, the gatekeepers of Vishnu in Vaikuntha).
-
-The Rajasya sacrifice came to a close. Rj Yudhisthira performed the
-bathing ceremony, enjoined at the close of a sacrifice (_avabhritha_).
-
-
-THE SLIGHT OF DURYODHANA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 75.*
-
-The fame of Yudhisthira went abroad. All sang the glory of the Rajasya
-sacrifice. Duryodhana became filled with jealousy. One day king
-Yudhisthira was seated on a golden throne in the assembly hall, prepared
-by My, with Krishna and others around him. The proud Duryodhana,
-surrounded by his brothers, entered the place with crown on his head and
-sword in his hand, showering abuse on the gate-keepers and others. He
-took land to be water and drew up his clothes. He also took water to be
-land and wet himself. The My (Magic), displayed by My, in the
-preparation of the assembly ground, caused this delusion. Bhima laughed,
-and the females and other kings laughed too, though forbidden by
-Yudhisthira. Krishna however approved their laughter.
-
-Overpowered with shame, with his head cast down, Duryodhana silently
-left the place and went to Hastinpura.
-
-Krishna kept quiet. He wished to relieve the Earth of the weight of the
-Daityas who were oppressing her. It was only His will that Duryodhana
-should thus be deluded (and the disastrous results would follow).
-
-
-SLVA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 76-77.*
-
-When Krishna carried away Rukmini, he defeated the kings in battle and,
-amongst others, he defeated Slva, king of Soubha, the friend of
-Sisupla. Slva vowed at the time to kill all Ydavas. He ate only a
-handful of dust and worshipped Siva. After a year Siva became pleased
-with his worship and asked the king to name a boon. He prayed for an
-invulnerable chariot that would carry terror to the Ydavas. At the
-bidding of Siva, My prepared an iron chariot, called Soubha, which
-could move at will to any place. Mounted on this chariot, Slva attacked
-Dvrak, with his large army. He threw weapons, stones, trees and
-serpents from above and demolished walls and gardens. The people of
-Dvrak became very much oppressed. Pradyumna and other Ydavas engaged
-in fight with Slva and his army. Slva's chariot was sometimes visible
-and sometimes not. It now rose high and now came low. With difficulty,
-Pradyumna killed Dyumat, the general of Slva. But still the fight went
-on for seven days and seven nights. Krishna had been at Hastinpura. He
-felt misgivings and hurried to Dvrak with Rma. The fight was then
-going on. Krishna placed Rma in charge of the town and himself went to
-fight with Slva. Slva tauntingly addressed Krishna who gave the king a
-heavy blow with his club. Slva disappeared. Instantly a man came and
-informed Krishna that he was a messenger from Devaki. Slva had carried
-away his father Vsudeva.
-
-Krishna asked: -- "How could Slva conquer Rma so as to carry away my
-father?" But he had scarcely finished when Slva appeared with somebody
-like Vsudeva, saying "O fool, here is your father. I will kill him in
-your presence. Save him, if you can." He then cut off the head of
-Vsudeva, and entered the chariot. Krishna found this was all the My
-of Slva and in reality his father was neither carried off nor killed.
-He broke the chariot Soubha with his club. Slva left the chariot and
-stood upon earth, club in hand. Krishna cut off his hands and then cut
-off his head with the Chakra.
-
-
-DANTA VAKRA AND VIDURATHA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 78.*
-
-Danta-Vakra was the friend of Sisupla, Slva and Paundraka. He came to
-attack Sri Krishna with club in hand and, seeing him, exclaimed: "It is
-good fortune, that I see you. You are our cousin. But still you have
-killed our friends and you now want to kill me. I will therefore kill
-you with this club." (Sridhara gives a second meaning to this Sloka. At
-the end of his third birth Danta Vakra was to regain his place in
-Vaikuntha. Sisupla and Danta Vakra, as explained before, were Jaya and
-Vijaya, gate-keepers of Vaikuntha. By the curse of the Kumras, they
-incarnated as Asuras. The third and last cycle of material ascendancy
-was to be ended. Jaya and Vijaya were not to incarnate any more.
-Therefore Danta-Vakra exclaimed that it was his good fortune to meet
-Krishna and so on). Krishna struck him with his club and killed him. A
-flame arose from the body of Danta-Vakra, as from that of Sisupla, and
-it entered Sri Krishna.
-
-Vidratha, the brother of Danta-Vakra was afflicted with grief at the
-death of his brother. He now attacked Krishna. Krishna cut off his head
-with the Chakra.
-
-
-BALARMA AND THE DEATH OF ROMAHARSHANA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 78-79.*
-
-Balarma heard that the Kurus and Pndavas were making preparations for
-a mutual fight. He belonged to neither side. So he went out on pretext
-of a pilgrimage. He went to Prabhsa and performed the ablution
-ceremonies. He went to several other places and at last reached the
-Naimisha forest. The Rishis all rose up to receive him. Romaharshana,
-the disciple of Vysa, did not leave his seat. He belonged to the Sta
-community, -- a mixed class, born of Kshatriya father and Brhmana
-mother, -- but he took his seat higher than that of the Brhmanas.
-Balarma thought that the Sta had learned the Itihasas, Purnas and all
-Dharma Sstras from Vysa but he had not learned humility and
-self-control and that he had become proud of his wisdom. Balarma cut
-off his head with the tip of a Kusa grass. The Rishis broke forth into
-loud cries of lamentation. Addressing Balarma, they said: "O lord! thou
-hast done a wrong. We gave him this seat of a Brhmana. We gave him age
-and freedom from fatigue, till the Yajna was completed. Not knowing
-this, thou hast killed one who was, while on his seat, a Brhmana. Thou
-art not regulated by the Vedas. But of thy own accord, do thou perform
-some Pryaschitta, and thereby shew an example to other people."
-Balarma enquired what he was to do. The Rishi asked him to do that by
-which their words as well as the act of Balarma both might prove true.
-Balarma said: "One's son is one's own self. So say the Vedas. Therefore
-the son of Romaharshana, Ugrasravas, shall be your reciter of Purnas.
-He shall have long life and freedom from fatigue. What am I to do, O
-Rishis, by which I may atone for my deed?"
-
-The Rishis asked Balarma to kill Valvala, son of the Dnava Ilvala, who
-used to pollute the sacrificial ground on certain days of the moon. They
-also asked Rma to travel all over Bhrata Varsha for twelve months, and
-take his bath at the sacred places.
-
-Rma killed Valvala and went out on pilgrimage. On his return to
-Prabhsa he heard about the death of the Kshatriya kings in the war
-between the Kurus and the Pndavas. He went to Kurukshetra. Bhima and
-Duryodhana were then fighting with each other with their clubs. Balarma
-tried to bring about peace. But they did not heed his words. He then
-returned to Dvrak.
-
-Balarma once more went to Naimisha and he was adored by the Rishis.
-
-
-SRDMAN.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 80-81.*
-
-Krishna had a Brhmana fellow-student, by name Srdman. He was
-well-read in the Vedas, self controlled and contented. He had a wife. He
-lived on whatever was freely given to him by others. His wife was
-ill-clad and ill-fed, like himself. One day she approached her husband
-and said: --
-
-"Husband, your friend is the Lord of Lakshm (the goddess of wealth)
-herself. Go to him and he will give you wealth. He gives even his own
-self to those that meditate on his lotus feet. What can not that Lord of
-the Universe give to those that worship him with some desire?" Being
-repeatedly pressed by his wife, he at last resolved to go to Krishna,
-thinking that the sight of his friend would be his greatest gain. He
-asked his wife for some offering for his friend, She begged four
-handfuls of flattened rice (_Chiptaka_) from the Brhmanas and tied
-that up in one corner of her husband's rag. The Brhmana went to
-Dvrak, thinking all the way how he could meet Krishna. He passed
-through certain apartments and went into one of the rooms. Krishna was
-seated with one of his wives. He saw the Brhmana from a distance and
-rose up to receive him. He came down and embraced his former companion
-with both his hands. Krishna gave him a respectful welcome and a seat by
-his own side. He then talked with him about the old reminiscences of
-student life, how they passed their days at the residence of Sandipani,
-how faithfully they carried out the behests of the Guru and his wife,
-how necessary it was to respect the Guru and such other topics. He then
-smilingly looked at the Brhmana and said: --
-
-"What have you brought for me from your house? Even the smallest thing
-brought by my Bhaktas becomes great by their love, while the largest
-offerings of those that are not devoted to me cannot please me." The
-Brhmana, though asked, was ashamed to offer the flattened rice to the
-Lord of Lakshm and he cast down his head. The all-seeing Sri Krishna
-knew the object of the Brhmana's coming. He found that the Brhmana had
-not at first worshipped him with the object of attaining wealth. It was
-only to please his devoted wife that he now had that desire. The Lord
-therefore thought he would give him such wealth as was difficult to
-acquire. He then snatched away the flattened rice from the rags of the
-Brhmana saying, "What is this! O friend you have brought this highly
-gratifying offering for me. These rice grains please me, the Universal
-tm." So saying he partook of one handful. When he was going to take
-the second handful, Lakshm held his hand, saying, "O Lord of the
-Universe, this much will quite suffice to give all such wealth as can be
-needed for this world as well as for the next, such that it will even
-please thee to see that thy votary has got so much wealth."
-
-The Brhmana passed the night with Krishna. The next morning, he went
-home. Krishna went a certain distance with him to see him off. Krishna
-did not give him wealth nor did he ask for any. He thought within
-himself "What am I, a poor Brhmana and a sinner and this Krishna, whose
-breast is the abode of Lakshm, gave me a reception as if I were a god.
-The worship of His feet is the root of all Siddhis, all enjoyments, of
-Svarga and even of Mukti. Kind as he is, he did not give me any the
-least wealth, lest a poor man should forget Him by the pride of wealth."
-
-When he reached home, he found palatial buildings, gardens and lots of
-well-dressed male and female attendants. They received him with valuable
-presents. His wife also came out to receive him, with a number of female
-attendants. The Brhmana was surprised. He saw this was all the outcome
-of his visiting Sri Krishna. He controlled himself while enjoying this
-immense wealth and, meditating on Sri Krishna, he at last attained His
-supreme abode.
-
-
-THE MEETING AT KURUKSHETRA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 82-84*
-
-There was a total eclipse of the sun. Krishna and all the Ydavas went
-to Kurukshetra to bathe on the occasion. Nanda, the Gopas and Gopis, all
-came there. Kunti and her sons, Bhishma, Drona and all the kings also
-went. They all went together. (The Bhgavata Purna carefully avoids the
-battle at Kurukshetra. It barely mentions the duel between Bhima and
-Duryodhana. According to the Mahbhrata, Bhishma, Drona and all the
-brothers of Duryodhana had been killed before the fight took place
-between Bhima and Duryodhana. But we find here that they were all
-present at the Kurukshetra meeting. A slight explanation will be
-necessary to put the readers on the right line of thought. The ideal of
-the Mahbhrata was Tatva-masi, the unity of Jiva and shvara. Krishna
-and Arjuna looked alike. They were close companions. This Advaita view
-struck at the root of Upsan excepting as a means to an end; it put
-into the shade altogether the Path of compassion, the Path of service of
-which Nrada is the guide for this Kalpa. So we find even Bhishma being
-killed. Bhishma died at Uttarayana and necessarily passed through the
-Devayna Mrga, as an Upsaka. Whatever might be the goal of Upsan,
-the Bhgavata Purna treats of Upsan as an end and not as a means. The
-Bhgavatas, the Stvatas, the Vaishnavas do not ask for Nirvana Mukti
-they ask for devotion to the Lord of the Universe. They work in the
-Universe as servants of the Lord, taking the whole Universe to be their
-own selves. The Kurukshetra battle is therefore out of place in the
-Bhgavata Purna. This explains the great meeting at Kurukshetra instead
-of the Great Annihilation.)
-
-Kunti complained to Vsudeva that he did not make any enquiries about
-her and her sons, in her many afflictions. Vsudeva said, for fear of
-Kansa the Ydavas had scattered themselves, and they could not make
-enquiries about one another. The Kurus, Pndavas and the kings were all
-glad to see Krishna and his wives. Rma and Krishna duly honoured them
-all and made valuable presents. They all admired the good fortune of the
-Ydavas, in having Krishna always in their midst.
-
-Nanda and Yasod were duly respected by Vsudeva and his wives.
-
-Krishna met the Gopis in privacy. He embraced them all, and, after
-enquiry about their safety, said smilingly: -- "Do you remember us, O
-friends? For the good of those whom we call our own, we have been long
-in putting down the adverse party. Or do you think little of us, feeling
-that we have been ungrateful to you? Know for certain, it is the Lord
-who unites and separates all beings. As the wind unites masses of
-clouds, grass, cotton and dust particles, and again disunites them, so
-the creator does with all beings. Devotion to me serves to make beings
-immortal. How glad I am that you have this love to me, for by that love
-you gain me back. I am the beginning and end of all beings, I am both
-inside and outside. As the material objects resolve themselves into the
-primal elements, (Aksa, air, fire, water and earth), so (the material
-parts in) all beings resolve themselves into the primal elements. tm
-pervades all beings as the conscious Perceiver (tm). Know both (the
-Perceiver and the Perceived) to be reflected in me, the Supreme and the
-Immutable."
-
-The Gopis were taught this Adhytma teaching by Sri Krishna. Bearing
-this teaching constantly in mind, they cast off the Jiva sheath (Jiva
-Kosa) and they attained Krishna. And they said: -- "O Krishna let thy
-lotus feet be ever present in our minds, home-seeking though we may have
-been. The lords of Yoga by their profound wisdom meditate on thy feet in
-their hearts. It is by thy feet that those that have fallen into the
-well of Sansara are raised."
-
-(Here we take a final leave of the Gopis. They had known Krishna as the
-Purusha of the Heart. They now knew him as the all-pervading Purusha.
-They were drawn back into the bosom of that Purusha, their Linga
-(Skshma) Sarira destroyed. They now entered the divine state, but even
-there they did not forget the lotus feet of Krishna. They became centres
-of devotional love in the bosom of the Universal Lord.)
-
-Yudisthira and other friends of Krishna addressed him as all-incarnating
-Purusha. The wives of Krishna related to Draupadi how they came to be
-married to him. The Rishis addressed Sri Krishna as shvara. They then
-took leave of him. Vsudeva however detained them, saying they should
-instruct him as to how he could exhaust his Karma. Nrada said it was no
-wonder that he should ask this question of them and not of Krishna. For
-proximity is the cause of disregard.
-
-The Rishis, addressing Vsudeva, said: --
-
-"Karma is exhausted by Karma. Worship Vishnu by Yajna. He is the lord of
-all Yajnas. Wise men do not wish for riches by the performance of Yajna,
-nor do they wish for men or enjoyments. They give up all desires and
-then go to the forest for Tapas. The twice-born are indebted to the
-Devas, Rishis and Pitris, by their birth. You have paid up your debts to
-the Rishis and to the Pitris. Now pay up your debts to the Devas, by the
-performance of Yajna and then give up your home." Vsudeva then
-performed Yajna, and the Rishis officiated. The Yajna over, the Rishis
-went away. Dhritarshra, Vidura, the Pndavas, Bhishma, Drona, Kunti,
-Nrada, Vysa, his friends and relatives, parted with a heavy heart.
-Nrada and his followers were detained for three months by the Ydavas,
-such was their love for them. They then received many presents and left
-for Mathur. Seeing the approach of the rainy season, the Ydavas also
-went back to Dvrak.
-
-
-VASUDEVA, DEVAKI, AND THEIR DEAD SONS.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 85.*
-
-Vsudeva now believed his sons to be lords of the Universe. He once
-asked them whether they had not incarnated for relieving the pressure on
-the Earth. Krishna replied: -- "I, yourselves, this Rma, the people of
-Dvrak, nay the whole universe are to be known as Brahm. tm, though
-one and self-manifest, becomes manifold, according to the nature of the
-beings in which its manifestation takes place. Compare the variety in
-the manifestation of the Bhtas in the Bhoutic objects."
-
-Hearing these words of wisdom, Vsudeva learned to see unity in
-diversity.
-
-Devaki had heard of the powers of Rma and Krishna in bringing back to
-life the deceased son of their Guru. She asked them to shew her the sons
-that had been killed by Kansa.
-
-Rma and Krishna entered by Yogic power the regions of Sutala. Bali
-shewed them every respect and worshipped them.
-
-Krishna said: "In the Svayambhava Manvantara, Marchi had six sons by
-Urna. These sons of the Rishi laughed at Brahm, because he grew
-passionate towards his daughter. For this they became Asuras and sons of
-Hiranyakasipu. Yoga My carried them to the womb of Devaki and they
-became her sons. They were killed by Kansa. Devaki takes them to be her
-own sons and laments over their death. They are now with you; I shall
-take them over to my mother to remove her grief. They shall then go to
-Devaloka, free from the effects of their curse. Smara, Udgitha,
-Parishvanga, Patanga, Kshudra-bhuka and Ghrini -- these shall by my
-favor again attain a good state." (Smara is called Kirtimat.)
-
-Krishna took the boys to Devaki and she embraced them all. They were
-then taken to Devaloka.
-
-
-ARJUNA AND SUBHADR
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 86.*
-
-Rj Parikshit enquired how Arjuna had married his grandmother Subhadr,
-the sister of Rma and Krishna.
-
-Suka replied: --
-
-"Arjuna heard that Rma was going to give Subhadr (the cousin of
-Arjuna) in marriage to Duryodhana. He disguised himself as a Sanysn
-and went to Dvrak. The people of Dvrak and even Rma could not
-recognise him. Arjuna lived there for a year and received due
-hospitality. Once Arjuna was invited by Balarma and he was taking his
-food when Subhadr passed by him. They looked at each other and felt
-mutual love. One day, Subhadr, with the permission of her parents and
-of Sri Krishna, came out on a chariot to worship an idol outside the
-fort and a strong guard accompanied her. Arjuna availed himself of this
-opportunity and carried away the girl by force. Balarma became greatly
-enraged. But Sri Krishna and other friends appeased him."
-
-
-SRUTADEVA AND BAHULSVA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 86.*
-
-Srutadeva, a Brhmana of Mithila, was much devoted to Sri Krishna. The
-prince of Mithila, Bahulsva, was also a favorite of Sri Krishna. To
-favor them, Sri Krishna went with Nrada and other Rishis to Mithila.
-Srutadeva and Bahulsva each asked him to go to his own house. Krishna
-to please them both went to the houses of both at the same time, being
-unnoticed by each in respect of his going to the other's house. Both
-Bahulsva and Srutadeva received Sri Krishna and the Rishis with due
-respect. Sri Krishna taught Srutadeva to respect the Brhmana Rishis as
-much as he respected him. After giving proper instructions to the prince
-and the Brhmana for sometime, Sri Krishna returned to Dvrak.
-
-
-THE PRAYER TO BRAHMAN BY THE SRUTIS.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 87.*
-
-Rj Parikshit asked: --
-
-"O Great Sage, Brahmn is undefinable, void of Gunas, beyond both causes
-and effects. How can the Srutis, which have the Gunas for their Vritti
-(_i.e._ which treat of Devas and sacrifices which are full of
-attributes), directly cognise Brahmn?"
-
-Suka replied: --
-
-"The Lord created Buddhi, Indriya, Manas and Prana in Jivas that they
-might obtain their objects (Mtr), their birth-producing Karma (Bhava),
-their transmigration to different Lokas (tm), and also their Mukti
-(Akalpana)." (These four words respectively mean Artha, Dharma, Kma and
-Moksha. The Srutis treat of Bhagavat, of Sat-Chit-Ananda the
-all-knowing, the all-powerful, the lord of all, the guide of all, the
-all-object of Upsan, the Dispenser of all fruits of Karma, the Resort
-of all that is good, as one with attributes. The Srutis begin with
-attributes, but at last drop these attributes saying "Not this", "Not
-this" and end in Brahmn. The sayings about Upasan and Karma treat of
-things with attributes, as a means to attain wisdom and thereby
-indirectly lead to Brahmn. This is the purport. _Sridhara_.)
-
-"The Upanishad speaks of Brahmn. She was accepted as such by even those
-that were older than those whom we call old. He who accepts her with
-faith attains well-being." (The Bhgavata tries to refute the idea that
-the Vedas treat of the Devas only and not of svara and Brahm).
-
-"I shall relate to thee here a conversation between Nrada and Nryana.
-
-"Once upon a time Nrada went to see the great Rishi Nryana. For the
-well-being of Bhratavarsha, for the good of all men, he remains in his
-srama, fixed in Tapas, since the beginning of this Kalpa. The Rishis of
-Kalpa sat round him. Nrada saluted him and asked this very question.
-
-"Nryana said: --
-
-"In Jana Loka, the Manas, born Rishis of that place performed Brahm
-Yajna (Yajna, in which 'What is Brahmn' is ascertained, some one
-becoming the speaker and others forming the audience). You had gone to
-Sveta Dvipa at the time. This very question was raised in the assembly.
-Sanandan became the speaker. He said: --
-
-"The Supreme drank up his own creation and lay asleep with His Saktis.
-At the end of Pralaya, the Srutis (which were the first breath of the
-Supreme. _Sridhara_) roused Him up by words denotive of Him.
-
-"The Srutis said: --
-
-"Glory be to Thee! Destroy the Avidy of all moveable and immoveable
-beings. She has got attributes for the sake of deluding others. All Thy
-powers are completely confined in Thee. Thou art the Manifester of all
-Saktis in Jivas. Thou art (sometimes -- _Sridhara_) with My and
-(always -- _Sridhara_) by Thyself. (But wherever thou art) the Vedas
-follow Thee. (The Vedas treat both of Saguna and Nirguna Brahmn).
-
-"All that are perceived, (Indra and other gods), know Thee to be the
-Big, and themselves to be only parts. For their rise and setting are
-from Thee. (Then is the Big transformable? Hence the next words.
-_Sridhara_). But thou art untransformed. Even as the (transformed) earth
-pots have their rise and setting in the (untransformed) mother earth.
-Therefore the Rishis -- (the Mantras or their perceivers. _Sridhara_.
-Every Vedic Mantra has its Rishi, who first perceived that Mantra) --
-set their minds, their words and actions in Thee (or had their purport
-and meaning in Thee. _Sridhara_). For wherever people may roam, their
-footsteps always touch the earth.
-
-"O Thou Lord of the Three Gunas, the wise plunged into the nectar ocean
-formed of words about Thee, -- an Ocean which removes the impurities of
-all people -- and they got rid of all miseries. What of those then who,
-by the perception of Self in them, free themselves from the attributes
-of mind (likes or dislikes) and of time (the transformations of age) and
-worship Thy real self which gives rise to perpetual happiness?
-
-"Those that are animated by life breathe truly if they follow Thee,
-otherwise their breath is the breath of bellows. Inspired by Thee,
-Mahat, Ahankra and others lay their eggs (create collective and
-individual bodies). Thou dost permeate the five sheaths (Annamaya and
-others) in man and become those sheaths, as it were, by this permeation.
-But thou art the last in the sheaths, as taught in the Upanishads.
-
-"Thou art beyond the gross and subtle sheaths, the Indestructible and
-Real.
-
-"Among the Rishis, the Srkarakshas (or those that have an imperfect
-vision) meditate on Brahm in the navel. The runis, however, meditate
-on Brahm in the cavity of the Heart, which is the seat of the nerves.
-Ananta, from the Heart, the Sushumn (the nerve which causes Thy
-perception) leads to Thy supreme place in the Head. He who once attains
-that place does not fall into the mouth of Death again. (The Upanishads
-speak of one hundred and one nerves of the heart. Of these, one goes to
-the head).
-
-"Thou hast Thyself created various life kingdoms and various forms.
-Though Thou pervadest them all from of old, having brought them all
-about, yet Thy special manifestation in them is relatively greater or
-smaller, according to the nature of the things created by Thee even as
-fire, though one and the same, burns differently according to the
-character of the fuel. Those that are of pure intellect follow the one
-Real amidst the many unreal forms. The (perceiving) Purusha in all
-beings is said to be Thy part only. Knowing this to be the truth about
-Jivas, wise men worship Thy feet.
-
-"Brahm and other Jivas did not know Thy end. Even Thou dost not know
-Thy own end. For Thou art endless. Drawn by the wheel of time, the
-Brahmndas, with their Avaranas, (outer circles) roll on together in Thy
-middle, even as if they were dust particles in the air. The Srutis
-fructify in Thee (have Thee, for their end and goal.) (Though they
-cannot directly speak of Thee) their words are directed towards Thee, by
-discarding every thing else." (Though the Vedas treat of Indra and other
-Devas, they ultimately lead to Brahm, by saying "Brahm is not this,
-not this," in the Upanishads.)
-
-
-THE RESTORATION OF BRAHMAN BOYS TO LIFE.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 89.*
-
-At Dvrak a Brahmn lost his son at birth. He took the dead child to
-the palace and placed it at the gate, blaming the king for his
-misfortune. For the sins of kings visit themselves upon their subjects.
-In this way nine sons died one after another and the Brahmn did the
-same with all of them and, when the ninth son died, Arjuna was sitting
-with Krishna and he heard the reproaches of the Brhmana. Arjuna
-promised the Brhmana that he would protect his son this time, or would
-otherwise enter the fire for breach of his promise. The son was born
-again. And Arjuna was there with his famous bow. But lo! the child wept
-and it rose up high and disappeared, The Brhmana taunted Arjuna for
-making promises he had not the power to keep. Stung by these words, the
-Pndava went to Yma Loka. He went to Indra Loka. He went to the regions
-of Agni, Nirriti, Chandra, Vyu and Varuna. He went to Rastala. He went
-to Svarga. But the Brhmana boy was no where to be found. He then made
-preparations for entering the fire. Sri Krishna made him desist. He
-said: -- "I shall show you the Brhmana's sons. Do not disregard
-yourself. Those that blame us now shall sing our glory hereafter."
-
-Krishna and Arjuna went towards the west. They crossed the seven oceans
-and the seven Dvipas. They crossed the Loka-aloka and entered the
-regions of chaotic darkness. The horses could not proceed further. So by
-Krishna's order the glowing Chakra, Sudarshana, pierced through the
-darkness and the horses followed the track. Infinite, endless, divine
-light then spread out. Arjuna re-opened his eyes. They then entered the
-regions of primal water. They found one house glittering with gems and
-stones. The thousand-headed Ananta was sitting in that house. Seated
-upon Ananta was the Supreme Purusha, the Lord of the Lords. Krishna and
-Arjuna saluted Him. The Purusha then smiled and said: -- "I brought the
-Brhmana boys that I might see you both. For the protection of Dharma on
-the Earth, you have incarnated as my parts (Kal.) Kill the Asuras that
-oppress the Earth and come back soon to me. Filled are your own desires,
-O you Rishis, Nara and Nryana. But for the preservation of the
-Universe, do that which others may follow."
-
-Krishna and Arjuna said "Om". They brought back the Brhmana boys and
-restored them to their father.
-
-
-
-THE LINE OF KRISHNA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 90.*
-
-Vajra was the son of Aniruddha.
-
-Prati-bhu was the son of Vajra.
-
-Su-bhu was the son of Prati-bhu.
-
-Upasena was the son of Su-bhu.
-
-Bhadra-sena was the son of Upasena.
-
-*END OF THE TENTH BRANCH.*
-
-
-
-THOUGHTS ON THE MATHUR LIL.
-
-
-Kansa was killed and all good men that had fled from Mathur returned to
-it. Krishna fast developed Himself as shvara. He restored his Guru's
-son to life.
-
-Uddhava, the embodiment of Bhakti Yoga mixed with wisdom, was the
-messenger of Krishna to the Gopis. It was through him that Sri Krishna
-sent words of wisdom, which He himself could not have spoken to them at
-Vrindvana. For the Gopis would have spurned such words from Him, so
-great was their personal love for Him. Krishna now placed another ideal
-before them for meditation. They were now to seek Him, not as the lovely
-Krishna, playing upon the flute, but as the all-pervading tm to be
-known by discriminating wisdom. He asked the Gopis to meditate on this
-ideal, and He now returned to them as the all-pervading immutable
-principle in the Universe.
-
-In the stories of Jarsandha, Yavana and Muchukunda we find the
-historical Krishna.
-
-Jarsandha was an incongruous combination of materiality and
-spirituality, (the two parts which Jiva put together). He was the
-performer of Vedic Yajnas, the supporter of Brhmanas, the
-representative of the old state of things. Naturally therefore he was
-the most powerful king of his time and the most powerful enemy of
-Krishna. Vaishnavism had to fight hard with orthodox Brahmnism.
-Vaishnava kings were put to death in large numbers. Krishna could not
-kill him on account of his connection with Brhmanas and with Vedic
-Yajnas. He even feigned a retreat and fled away to Dvrak. Dvrak was
-a spiritual centre on earth, created by Krishna, for the performance of
-His mission as Avatra. The town was washed away as soon as Krishna
-disappeared.
-
-It will be interesting to know the future mission of Muchukunda. But the
-Bhgavata is silent about it.
-
-
-
-THOUGHTS ON THE DVRAK
-
-
-At Dvrak, we find Sri Krishna as the Lord of the Universe, a Klpic
-Avatra, and as such something more than the historical Krishna.
-
-_Sri Krishna as an Avatra._
-
-It is time that we should know something definitely of Sri Krishna as an
-Avatra.
-
-To restore the Brhmana boys, Sri Krishna went with Arjuna to the abode
-of Purusha. Purusha smiled and said: -- "I brought the Brhmana boys,
-that I might see you both. For the protection of Dharma on the Earth,
-you have incarnated as my parts (Kal). Kill the Asuras that oppress the
-Earth and come back soon to Me. Stiated are your own desires, O you
-Rishis, Nara and Nryana, but for the preservation of the universe do
-that which others may follow."
-
-The Purusha is the Virt Purusha of our universe, the Second Purusha or
-the Second Logos.
-
-When the first Purusha woke up, the process of transformation went on
-and the material creation was completed. The materials could not however
-unite to form individual bodies. Purusha infused the material creation
-and became known as the Second Purusha or Virt Purusha, As regards this
-Virt Purusha, the Bhgavata Purna says as follows: --
-
-"He is the resting place and eternal seed of all Avatras. Brahm is His
-part, Marichi and other Rishis are parts of His part. Devas, animals and
-men are brought into manifestation by parts of His part." Bhgavata I.
-3-5.
-
-"He is the primal, unborn Purusha, who in every Kalpa creates, preserves
-and destroys self (objective) as self (nominative), in self (locative),
-by self (instrumental)." II. 6 XXXVII.
-
-"He is the primal Purusha Avatra of the Supreme." II. 6 XL.
-
-He is also called the Thousand-Limbed and the Egg-born. II. 5, XXXV.,
-III. 6, VI.
-
-This Virt Purusha upholds the manifested universe. All materials are in
-Him and all individuals take their rise from Him and end in Him. He is
-the one ocean of endless bubbles which have their beginning and end in
-Him. The Avatras also all rest on the bosom of Virt Purusha.
-
-We have looked at Virt Purusha from the standpoint of the First
-Purusha. Now let us proceed upwards from below.
-
-The Brihat Aranayaka Upanishad thus speaks of Virt Purusha, at the
-beginning of the Fourth Brhmana of the first chapter: --
-
-"This was before soul, bearing the shape of a man. Looking round he
-beheld nothing but himself. He said first: -- 'This am I.' Hence the
-name of I was produced. And, because he as the first of all of them
-consumed by fire all the sins, therefore he is called Purusha. He verily
-consumes him who, before this, strives to obtain the state of Prajpati,
-he, namely who, thus knows."
-
-The following is the commentary of Sankarchrya.
-
-"This was before the soul." The soul is here defined as Prajpati, the
-first born from the Egg, the embodied soul, as resulting from his
-knowledge and works in accordance with the Vedas. He was what? "This,"
-produced by the division of the body, "was the soul" not separated from
-the body of Prajpati, "before" the production of other bodies. He was
-"also bearing the shape of man", which means that he was endowed with
-head, hands and other members, he was the Viraj, the first born.
-"Looking round reflecting who am I, and of what nature, he beheld
-nothing but himself", the fulness of life, the organism of causes and
-effects. He beheld only himself as the Universal soul. Then, endowed
-with the recollection of his Vedic knowledge in a former birth, "he said
-first: This am I" _viz_., Prajpati, the universal soul. "Hence,"
-because from the recollection of his knowledge in a former world he
-called himself I, therefore his name was I "And because he" -- Prajpati
-in a former birth, which is the cause, as the first of those who were
-desirous of obtaining the state of Prajpati by the exercise of
-reflection on works and knowledge _viz_. "as the first of all of them,"
-of all that were desirous of obtaining the state of Prajpati, consumed
-by the perfect exercise of reflection on works and knowledge of all the
-sins of contact which are obstacles to the acquirement of the state of
-Prajpati, -- because such was the case, therefore he is called Purusha,
-because he is _Purvam Aushad_, (first burnt). As that Prajpati, by
-consuming all opposite sins, became this Purusha Prajpati, so also any
-other consumes, reduces all to ashes by the fire of the practice of
-reflection on knowledge and works, or only by the force of his
-knowledge, and He verily "consumes" Whom? "Him who before this sage
-strives to obtain the state of Prajpati." The sage is pointed out as he
-who thus knows, who according to his power manifests his reflection on
-knowledge. "But is it not useless for any one to strive for the state of
-Prajpati, if he is consumed by one who thus knows? There is no fault in
-this; for consuming means here only that the highest state, that of
-Prajpati, is not obtained, because the eminence of reflection on
-knowledge is wanting. Therefore by the words, "He consumes him" is
-meant, that the perfect performer obtains the highest state of
-Prajpati; he who is less perfect does not obtain it, and by no means
-that the less perfect performer is actually consumed by the perfect;
-thus it is said in common life, that a warrior who first rushes into
-battle, consumes his combatants, which means that he exceeds them in
-prowess.
-
-In order to understand this better, let us consider the scheme of human
-evolution.
-
-tm is the same in all beings and, when free from the limitations of
-individual life, it becomes all pervading.
-
-Sympathy and compassion open the door to the liberation of tm.
-
-The Upadhi, or vehicle of tm, or the body of its manifestation,
-becomes less and less gross, as tm proceeds in its course of
-liberation, the body becomes better able to do good to all mankind and
-it does not act as a barrier to communion with the real self.
-
-The most highly evolved beings become universal and not individual, and
-they live normally on the spiritual plane.
-
-They at last reach the state of divinity. Then they may become Avatras.
-When these Avatras have to work on the physical and intellectual
-planes, they assume a body and become born, like ordinary beings. They
-have then to _come down_ from their normal state, but their vision and
-power remain undestroyed. When their mission is over, they reach again
-their normal state. The Avatras have not to work out their own Karma.
-They are liberated tms, staying back for the liberation of other
-individuals in the universe. Karma-less themselves, they bear the Karma
-of the universe upon their shoulders. The thin veil that separates their
-state from the state of the absolute Brahm is My, which is the
-highest manifestation of Prakriti which enables them to assume cosmic
-responsibility out of their unbounded compassion for all beings.
-
-The Avatras may cast off their veil at will, but as long as they choose
-to keep that veil, the whole universe is at their command and they guide
-the whole course of universal evolution.
-
-Now of all Avatras one takes upon himself to hold all individuals in
-His bosom, to sustain them all and to make Him the field of their
-Involution and Evolution, in the Kalpa.
-
-He is called Virt Purusha. He is practically the shvara of our
-universe.
-
-The body of this Purusha, called the First Avatra, the Second or Virt
-Purusha, and the Egg-born, is formed by the Tatvas, numbered twenty-four
-in the Snkhya philosophy. These Tatvas collect together to form an Egg
-and the Second Purusha breaks forth from that Egg and becomes the
-Thousand-headed Purusha of the Upanishads. For the sake of meditation,
-He is imagined to be seated on the Serpent Ananta. The lotus stalk grew
-out of his navel.
-
-The Tatvas themselves are brought into manifestation by the awaking of
-the First Purusha.
-
-The Second Purusha enters into all beings as their tm, becoming
-three-fold in his aspect _viz_. Adhi-tm, Adhi-bhuta and Adhi-deva.
-Then He is called the Third Purusha. Says the Stvata Tantra, as quoted
-by Sridhara: --
-
-"There are three forms of Vishnu known as Purusha -- the first is the
-creator of Mahat, the Second is the permeator of the cosmic Egg, and the
-third is the permeator of all beings." Virt Purusha is the seat af all
-Avatras. Therefore all Avatras are called parts of the Virt Purusha.
-
-Speaking of other Lil Avatras, Bhgavata calls them parts and aspects
-of the Second Purusha; "but Krishna is Bhagavat Himself."
-
-Bhagavat is here the First Purusha. I. 3 XXVIII.
-
-In the Tenth Skandha, Rj Parikshit says: "Tell us the mighty deeds of
-Vishnu, incarnated as a _part_ in the line of Yadu." X. 1 II. Later on
-again: --
-
-"The supreme Purusha, Bhagavat Himself, shall be born in the house of
-Vsudeva." X. 1 XXIII.
-
-The Devas said, addressing Devaki: -- "Rejoice mother, the Supreme
-Purusha, Bhagavat Himself, is in thy womb _by His part_" X. 2 XII.
-
-The Purusha, seated on Ananta, addressed Arjuna and Krishna as Nara and
-Nryana.
-
-The Mahbhrata also calls them Incarnations of Nara and Nryana. These
-Rishis are invoked all throughout the Mahbhrata. They were the sons of
-Dharma by Mrti, daughter of Daksha.
-
-Nara and Nryana are looked upon as two in one and they were adored by
-the Devas, as manifestations of Purusha Himself. (IV. 1 XLVI).
-
-They went after their birth to Gandha Madana. (IV. 1 XLVIII.) It is
-these Rishis, parts of Bhagavat Hari, who have now appeared for the
-removal of her load from the Goddess Earth, as Krishnas, in the lines of
-Yadu and Kuru. (IV. 1 XLIX.)
-
-Krishna in the line of Kuru is Arjuna.
-
-In explaining this Sloka, Sridhara quotes the following from a Vaishnava
-Tantra: --
-
-"In Arjuna, there is only the vesa (suffusing) of Nara. Krishna is
-Nryana Himself."
-
-Sri Krishna said to Arjuna: -- "I have passed through many births as
-well as thou. I know them all. Not so thou."
-
-This shows that Arjuna was not Nara himself, the supplement of Nryana,
-for in that case he would have remembered his previous births. But, as
-the Tantra says, "Arjuna was possessed by the Nara aspect of the dual
-Rishi."
-
-Sri Krishna said to Devaki: --
-
-"At my first birth, in the Svyam-bhuva Manvantara, thou wert born as
-Prisni and this Vsudeva was named Prajpati Sutapas I was born as your
-son, Prisni-garbha. I was also born of you, when you were Aditi and
-Vsudeva was Kasyapa, as Upendra, also called the Vmana or Dwarf
-Avatra. At this third birth, I am your son again, with the same body."
-X. 3 XXXII. to XLIII.
-
-These are the three Incarnations of Nara Nryana, mentioned in the
-Bhgavata. They are certainly not the many births to which Sri Krishna
-alludes in the Git. Those many births took place in previous Kalpas of
-which we know nothing. In this Kalpa, however, he appeared at the
-turning points in the Evolution of our universe. He appeared in the
-First Manvantara, the Manvantara of manifestation, as Prisni-garbha. We
-do not know the good done by Him in His first birth.
-
-As Vmana, however, he restored the Trilok to the Devas and asserted
-the supremacy of the spiritual forces.
-
-The Earth was again overpowered by the Asuras. The Kalpa was about to be
-half over. The last struggle was to be made. Satva had to be infused
-into all beings, even into the materials composing them. Every thing in
-the universe was to be wedded to the Lord of Preservation. An upward
-trend was to be given to the whole course of evolution. Materialism
-could not be stamped out all at once. But henceforth there was to be a
-steady fall of Materiality and rise of Spirituality, subject to such
-variations as minor Cycles might cause.
-
-Sri Krishna is therefore the greatest Avatra of our Kalpa. "For the
-good of those that seek tm, Nara Nryana shall perform Tapas in
-Bharata Varsha, unknown to others, till the end of the Kalpa." V. 19-9
-
-Sri Krishna as Bhagavat is greater than the Second Purusha.
-
-To the devotees, he is greater than the Purusha manifestation.
-
-He now appeared as the preserver of the Universe, the embodiment of
-Satva, the force of ascent. And the Tatvas had to be wedded to him, so
-that they might acquire the energy of higher evolution in them.
-
-Unless there was change in the innate downward tendency of the Tatvas,
-the spiritual ascent of the universe was not possible.
-
-The Lord brought about this change by permeating the whole universe with
-His Satva body, or becoming something like the spiritual soul in every
-being. Therefore Lord Krishna is in the hearts of all beings and can be
-perceived by all in meditation. He is everywhere, in every atom. Whether
-Sri Krishna is Bhagavat Himself or some manifestation of Bhagavat makes
-no difference whatever. By His works, He is Bhagavat. His worshippers
-are bound for the abode of Bhagavat. They have not to wait in Brahm or
-Satya Loka, till the end of Brahm's life. Those who worship. Hiranya
-garbha or Brahm cannot pass beyond the limits of Brahm Loka.
-
-In answer to Rj Parikshit, Suka Deva delineated the Paths to be
-followed after death.
-
-I. The Prompt Path of Liberation (Sadyo Mukti). Those who meditate on
-the abstract Absolute, called Brahm, attain prompt liberation. The
-All-pervading principle is abstracted from the phenomenal universe,
-there is no thought of man, no thought of fellow beings, no thought of
-the universe, there is the pure abstraction by the process of "Not
-this." "Not this" liberates one from all phenomenal connections. This is
-Sadyo Mukti. (II. 2 XV. to XXI.)
-
-II. The Deferred Path of Liberation (Krama Mukti), when one wishes to go
-to Brahm Loka or to the abode of the Siddhas. Where the eight siddhis
-are acquired, he retains the Manas and the Indriyas and goes all over
-the universe of Seven Lokas. II. 2 XXII.
-
-With their Linga Sarira, these Lords of Yoga go inside and outside
-Trilok. II. 2 XXIII.
-
-On their way to Brahm Loka, they are carried by Sushumna first to Agni
-Loka. Then they go to the farthest limit of Trilok, the Sisumara
-Chakra, extending over to Dhruva or the Polar star. II. 2 XXIV.
-
-When at the end of a Kalpa, the Trilok becomes consumed by fire from
-the mouth of Sankarshana, they go to Brahm Loka, which lasts for two
-Parrddhas, and which is adorned by the chariots of great Siddhas. II. 2
-XXVI.
-
-There is no sorrow, no infirmity no death, no pain, no anxiety in Brahm
-Loka. But those who go there are, out of their compassion, afflicted by
-the endless miseries of those that do not know the path. II. 2 XXVII.
-
-Then they pass through the seven Avaranas or covers of the Universe and,
-having the Vehicle of Mula Prakriti only, become full of Bliss and, when
-that Upadhi is destroyed, they obtain absolute bliss and do not return
-again. This is the attainment of the state. II. 2. XXVIII to XXXI.
-
-Those who go to Brahm Loka pass through three different paths.
-
- 1. Those, who come with great merits acquired in life, get posts of
- duty according to their merits in the next Kalpa (_i.e._ they
- become Prajpatis, Lokaplas. Indras and so on.)
- 2. Those who go to Brahm Loka merely by force of their Upsan of
- Hiranya-Garbha become liberated, when Brahm becomes liberated at
- the end of his life ('extending over two Parrddhas.)
- 3. Those that worship Bhagavat pierce the Brahmnda at will, and rise
- to the abode of Vishnu. The Slokas XXVIII to XXXI refer to the
- piercing of Brahmnda by the Bhgavatas. _Sridhara_.
-
-The worshippers of Sri Krishna attain the last state. The deferred path
-of Liberation is the path of all Bhaktas. It is the path of compassion,
-of service. The Bhaktas spurn all sorts of Mukti, even if they be
-offered to them. They become servants of the Lord in the preservation of
-the Universe.
-
-In the Dvrak Lil, we shall find Sri Krishna, as the greatest Avatra
-of the Kalpa, carrying out His work of Preservation.
-
-The Purna does not speak of the Nara aspect of Sri Krishna as
-manifested in Arjuna. That is the subject matter of the Mahbhrata. The
-study of the one is complementary to the study of the other, as the
-study of the Bhagavat is complementary to the study of the Git. In one,
-we see the Evolution of Man, in the other we see the work of Bhagavat.
-We see in both together the whole of our Lord Sri Krishna.
-
-
-
-THE WIVES.
-
-
-As Lord of the Universe, Sri Krishna became wedded to the eightfold
-energies of Prakriti, His eight principal wives, so that he might
-influence, through them, individuals formed by these divisions of
-Prakritis. These energies are: --
-
- 1. _Rukmini_ or Mula Prakrit, Buddhi.
- 2. _Jmba-vati_ or Mahat, Universal mind.
- 3. _Satya-bhm_ or Ahankra.
- 4. _Klindi_ or Aksa-Tanmttra, sound, Aksa.
- 5. _Mitra Vinda_ or Vyu-Tanmatra, Touch, Air.
- 6. _Satya_ or _Nagnajiti_, Agni-Tanmatra, Form, Fire.
- 7. _Bhadr_, Ap-Tanmtra, Taste, Water.
- 8. _Lakshan_, Kshiti-Tanmtra, smell, Earth.
-
-The Energies of Prakriti have a double tendency, one of lower
-transformation, of materialisation, of descent and another of higher
-transformation, of spiritualisation, of ascent. Sri Krishna, by His
-Avatrship, attracted to Himself the higher tendency of all the energies
-of Prakriti. This is how he was wedded to all the aspects of Prakriti.
-
-Rukmini is the spiritual energy of Mula Prakriti. Read the talk between
-Krishna and Rukmini (X. 80).
-
-The legend of the Syamantaka jewel is a mysterious one. It was the gift
-of the Sun-God. It used to produce gold every day.
-
-The Hiranya-Garbha Purusha of Vedic Upsan has its seat inside the
-Sun-God. "The Purusha inside ditya." This Purusha is the Adhi-daiva of
-Bhagavat Git, as explained by Sankarchrya. All the Devas proceed from
-_Him_. He is the one Deva, also called Prna. (Vide Yajnavalkya's answer
-to Sakala Brihat Aranyaka Upanishad III. 9.) Hiranya is gold.
-Hiranya-garbha is that which has gold in its womb. The Syamantaka jewel
-gave protection against diseases, accidents, and other dangers. These
-are all the results of Hiranya-garbha Upsan. Syamantaka represents
-Hiranyagarbha Upsan.
-
-Sri Krishna wanted that this Upsan should be replaced by the Upsan
-of shvara.
-
-The jewel was lost. It was carried away by some religious movement,
-represented as a lion.
-
-Jmba-vat snatched it from the Lion. Jmbavat, the bear king, was one of
-the chief allies of Sugriva. He was the oldest in years and the wisest
-in counsel.
-
-"When Vmana stepped over the three Lokas, I made a respectful circuit
-round Him." Rmayana Kishkindha Knda. Chap. 64-15.
-
-"When Vmana became an Avatra I moved round the earth twenty one times.
-I threw plants into the Sea which yielded Amrita by churning. Now I am
-old." Rmayana Kishkindha Knda Chap. 65-32.
-
-While Rma was about to ascend to heaven he addressed the old Jmbavat,
-as a son of Brahm, and asked him to stay behind till the approach of
-Kali -- Uttar Knda. Chap. 121-34.
-
-Jmbavat represents a very old religious movement, which was out of date
-even in Rma's time.
-
-Hiranyagarbha Upsan became old and a thing of the past. But however
-hoary it might be with years, it was holy with the traditions of the
-Vedas and though Krishna had no direct hand in its disappearance, people
-thought the disappearance was the outcome of His Avatarship. To save His
-reputation, Krishna restored the jewel from Jmbavat, but it could not
-long remain in the hands of Satrajit. Vedic Upsan did survive. But it
-survived only in Vedic Sandhy and Gyatri, which were represented by
-Akrra.
-
-Krishna was wedded to Jmbavat, the spiritual energy of Mahat.
-
-Satya-bhm is the spiritual energy of Ahankra. She holds the Vin,
-with the seven notes of differentiation. The Vedas proceed from these
-notes and also all departments of knowledge, Satyabhm is the goddess
-of learning.
-
-There is not much to say about the five other principal wives.
-
-The last of these wives, Lakshan, represents the spiritual energy of
-earth. Coming down to earth, we proceed to Naraka, son of Earth. The
-word Naraka literally means Hell, hence gross materiality. We have found
-that the Purna writers place Naraka below the Ptlas. Sixteen thousand
-girls representing all earthly and material energies had been snatched
-away by Naraka. They all became wedded to Sri Krishna.
-
-_Vsudeva, Sankarshana, Pradyumna, Aniruddha._
-
-The following correspondences were given by Kapila to his mother
-Devahti. (III. 26 ).
-
-
- ------------------------------------------------------------------
- _Upsya_ _Adhibhta_ _Adhyatma_ _Adhideva_
- ------------------------------------------------------------------
- Vsudeva Mahat Chitta Kshetrajna
- ------------------------------------------------------------------
- Sankarsana Ahankra Ahankra Rudra
- ------------------------------------------------------------------
- Aniruddha Manas Manas The Moon god
- ------------------------------------------------------------------
- Pradyumna Buddhi Buddhi Brahm
- ------------------------------------------------------------------
-
-
-_Chitta_ is transparent, without transformation, and calm, even as the
-first state of water. III. 26. XXI.
-
-"Transparent" -- capable of of receiving the image Bhagavat.
-
-"Without transformation" -- without indolence and distraction.
-_Sridhara_
-
-Chitta is the abode of Bhagavat, _i.e._ Bhagavat is perceived by Chitta.
-III. 26. XX.
-
-Differences cause many-sidedness and distraction.
-
-Ahankra Tatva brings differences into manifestation.
-
-Beyond the plane of Ahankra Tatva, is the plane of Mahat.
-
-Mahat literally means big, great, universal.
-
-It is the plane of universal manifestation.
-
-The mind is universal on this plane. As soon as the One Purusha wished
-to be many, Prakriti gave rise to the Mahat transformation and Mahat
-took up the wish to be many. It was one, but it had the potency of
-becoming many. The whole universe that was to manifest itself was
-mirrored in Mahat, and was the subject matter of one thought, the
-thought of one who had the universe for his body. During the period of
-creation, Mahat soon transformed itself into Ahankra, the Tatva of
-differences. Ahankra gave rise to different bodies, different minds and
-different faculties; individuals appeared and they started on separate
-lines of manifestation and of evolution.
-
-On their homeward journey, individuals again reach the plane of Mahat,
-when they rise above all differences, lose all sense of personality and
-carry their experiences to the plane of the Universe. Their thoughts
-then become thoughts of the Universe, guided by one feeling, that of
-compassion for those that remain behind. There is no thought of self, no
-distraction, no impurity, it is all calm and tranquil; such a mind is
-called _Chitta_ by Kapila. This Chitta is the abode of peace, the abode
-of Bhagavat.
-
-Bhagavat, when reflected on Chitta, is VASUDEVA. He is the Purusha
-seated on Ananta.
-
-SANKARSANA is Bhagavat as reflected on Ahankra. He is called Ananta or
-endless, as there is no end of individuals. He is Bhagavat as manifested
-in every individual and may be called, in one sense, the Purusha of
-Individual souls. Balarma is said to be an incarnation of Sankarshana.
-As individuals proceed in their course of life journeys, they become
-crystallised into separate entities, with a strong sense of personality.
-The inner self, the real self, runs the risk of becoming swallowed up by
-the outer self, the Upadhi of individuality. The point is reached, when
-individuals are to be drawn back to their homes, their real selves.
-Therefore Balarma used the plough to draw in others. This is a process
-of destruction. The material nature is gradually destroyed in us.
-Therefore Balarma is also called an incarnation of Rudra or Siva
-according to Vaishnava texts. He is Rudra Himself. The fire from the
-mouth of Sankarshana burns the Trilok at Pralaya. Sankarshana literally
-means "he who draws in completely." The process of Pralaya has already
-set in. The whole process of spiritual ascent is a process of material
-Pralaya. According to some therefore, Vishnu and Siva united to form
-Harihara, at the time of the Great Churning, when this process first set
-in. When individuals throw off their material garb, or when, by Pralayic
-force, their material cover is forcibly removed, they become fit to be
-gathered together and to become merged at Pralaya in the One.
-
-PRADYUMNA is the wish of Bhagavat, as imprinted on the course of
-universal evolution. He is the wish of God. When the one wished to be
-many, He represented that wish and gave the entire turn to the course of
-evolution, that it might adopt itself to that wish. Individuals
-multiplied. Desires became many and all actions became Sakama. Pradyumna
-was then called Kmadeva, the God of Love, or desire.
-
-When the course of descent was arrested, Kmadeva was destroyed by fire
-from the forehead of Siva. He appeared again, but this time he appeared
-as the son of Krishna. The wish of his father now was to be one again,
-for He had already become many, as many as the Karma of the previous
-Kalpa would allow. And Pradyumna had to impress this wish upon
-individuals generally, so that the ascent of matter to spirit might be
-universal.
-
-According to Kapila, Pradyumna is reflected on Buddhi. Buddhi is defined
-by him as that faculty by which objects are perceived. Doubt, false
-understanding, true understanding, memory and sleep, these are the
-indications of that faculty. (III. 26. XXVIII, XXIX).
-
-ANIRUDDHA is the son of Pradyumna. According to Kapila, he is reflected
-on Manas, the faculty of Sankalpa and Vikalpa. Sankalpa in Snkhya
-terminology is the first or general idea of a thing.
-
-Vikalpa is the idea of the peculiarity of a thing. Thus when I cast a
-passing glance at a man, I know nothing of him except that he is a man.
-But when I look at him carefully, I know his peculiarities and can
-differentiate him from others.
-
-The first idea is the idea of a thing in its primity or dawn.
-
-The second idea is the idea of its peculiarities. It is the second idea
-which gives rise to likes and dislikes.
-
-In the course of ascent, we must carry general ideas. We must rise from
-particulars to generals. The mind will thus be freed from the burden of
-personal and material thoughts.
-
-Aniruddha became wedded to Usha or Dawn. He is Bhagavat as perceived by
-Manas.
-
-*END OF THE TENTH SKANDHA.*
-
-
-
-
-THE ELEVENTH SKANDHA
-
-
-
-THE MUSHALA. XI. I.
-
-
-Sri Krishna, with the help of Rma, the Ydavas and the Pndavas, killed
-the Daityas, born as Kings. He made the Pndavas his instruments in the
-great war. When the Kings on both sides and their armies were killed,
-Sri Krishna thought within himself: -- "The pressure is not yet all
-removed from the earth. For these powerful Ydavas, backed by me, have
-become mad with power. I shall bring on disunion among them, which will
-be the cause of their death. Then I can have rest and may go to my own
-abode."
-
-Visv-mitra, Asita, Kanva, Durvsas, Bhrigu, Angiras, Kasyapa, Vmadeva,
-Atri, Vasistha, Nrada and other Rishis went to a sacred place called
-Pindaraka near Dvrka. The Yadava boys were playing among themselves.
-They dressed Smba, son of Jmbavati, as a girl and took him to the
-Rishis, saying she was pregnant and inquiring whether she would have a
-son or a daughter. The Rishis could not bear this impertinence and they
-said: -- "O you fools, she will bring forth a _Mushala_ (a pestle) that
-will be the ruin of your line." The boys were terrified. Smba did
-produce an iron pestle. They took the pestle and went home. The boys
-related the story to all the Ydavas. huka, the chief of the clan,
-ordered the pestle to be ground down to powder and the powder to be
-thrown into the Sea. This was done, but a portion remained. That portion
-was also thrown into the Sea. A fish swallowed the iron piece. The fish
-was caught by a fisherman. He made two spears of the iron found in the
-fish. The powdered iron grains were carried by the waves to the coast
-and there they grew into reeds.
-
-
-
-THE BHGAVAT PATH.
-
-
-*SKANDHA XI. CHAP. 2-5.*
-
-Vsudeva asked Nrada about the Path of Bhagavat which leads to Moksha.
-Nrada said: --
-
-Of the sons of Rishabha, nine became well-versed in tm Vidya. They
-were Kavi, Hari, Antariksha, Prabuddha, Pippalayana Avirhotra, Drumila,
-Chamasa, and Kara-bhjana.
-
-The Rishis of Bharata Varsha were performing Yajna at the place of Nimi
-and these nine Rishis went there.
-
- I. Nimi asked the Rishis about the _path of Bhagavat_.
-
-Kavi said: --
-
-The path of Bhagavat consists of such expedients as the Lord mentioned
-Himself (for those that are not wise) for the speedy acquisition of self
-knowledge. In following this Path, man is not overcome by obstacles (as
-in the path of Yoga). He may run along this path even with closed eyes
-without fear of losing his steps (with closed eyes _i.e._ even without
-knowing where he goes and what he does).
-
-(What is the path then?)
-
-Whatever a man does, whether it be the body or speech or mind or the
-senses or intellect or the sense of I-ness that acts, let him offer that
-all up to the Supreme Nryana.
-
-He who is removed from svara, (first) forgets (svara), (_Asmriti_),
-then there is wrong perception such as "I am the body" (_Viparyaya_).
-This is caused by the My of Bhagavat. Fear arises from devotion to the
-Second. Therefore wise men worship the Lord only, with unfailing Bhakti,
-knowing his Guru to be one with svara and tm.
-
-(The Bhgavata School classifies Jivas under two heads -- Antar Mukha
-and Bahir Mukha. Antar Mukha is literally one with his face turned
-inwards _i.e._, one who withdraws himself from the outside world and
-looks to self within, which is only an aspect of shvara.
-
-Bahir Mukha Jiva is one with his face turned outwards _i.e._ one who
-withdraws himself from the self-within and therefore from shvara. He
-first loses sight of shvara, forgets that he (the Jiva) is an aspect of
-shvara and that he is not the same as the body. He then considers the
-body as one with himself and concerns himself only with its relations to
-the outside world. This is called forgetting and wrong perception. "Fear
-arises from devotion to the Second." The Second is that which is not
-self. In meditation, the Guru stands between svara and self, and is
-svara for all practical purposes to the devotee).
-
-The Dvaita (Mayic manifestation), though not existing, appears to exist,
-through the mind of man, like dreams and desires. Therefore wise men
-should control the mind, which gives rise to desires and doubts about
-actions. Then there shall be no fear.
-
-The existence of the outside world and of the body is like the existence
-of dreams and desires. The dream exists for the time being and then
-disappears altogether, The dream has its existence because the mind
-brings it into existence. It is a creation of the mind, not permanently
-attached to the Jiva. So desires are also creations of the mind, not
-permanently attached to the Jiva, But they have got a temporary
-existence. That existence, however, is an existence in the mind of the
-man entertaining the dreams and desires and not outside the mind.
-Therefore the existence is not a real one.
-
-So the body of the Jiva and its surroundings are temporarily attached to
-the Jiva. As the dream vanishes in the wakeful state, so the body and
-its surroundings disappear with the transformation called Death. Body
-after body, surroundings after surroundings, are dreams, as it were, in
-the mind that bears all through the bubbles arising in the ocean of
-Jivic existence.
-
-The realisation of this temporary connection of the body and its
-surroundings is a training for the Antarmukha Jiva, for it enables him
-to turn towards shvara and the permanent aspect of Jiva.
-
-The non-existence of Dvaita has always to be understood with reference
-to Jiva or shvara, and not _independently_, for the flow of Prakriti is
-eternal. The disregard of this primary idea has given rise to many
-misconceptions. (Then as to Antarmukha practices.) Hear about the
-Incarnations of Vishnu and His blessed deeds, hear about his names full
-of import as to those deeds and Incarnations, hear and sing the songs
-about Him, without any sense of uneasiness as to what others will say.
-Then roam over the earth free from all worldly attachments.
-
-By such practices, and by the recital of His dear names, love for
-Bhagavat grows up. The heart then melts away. The devotee laughs loudly,
-he weeps, he cries aloud, he sings and he dances like a mad man. He
-loses all control over himself.
-
-He salutes Aksa, Vayu, Agni, Water, Earth, the planets, the trees, the
-Seas and all beings as forming the body of his Hari. For he knows
-nothing else.
-
-He, who worships Bhagavat in this way, has Devotion (Bhakti), perception
-of shvara (Anubhava) and dispassion (Virakti) -- all three growing at
-one and the same time, as, by eating, one gets pleasure, nutrition and
-satisfaction of hunger all at one and the same time.
-
-The Bhgavata then attains supreme peace.
-
- II. Nimi then asked: "What are the _Characteristics of a Bhgavata_
- and what are the _Signs by which a Bhgavata is known?_"
-
-Hari replied: --
-
-"He who sees in all beings the existence of Bhagavat as in his own self,
-and sees all beings in the Bhagavat within himself is the highest
-Bhgavata.
-
-"He who bears love towards svara friendship towards his dependents,
-kindness toward the ignorant, and indifference towards his enemies
-belongs to the next class of Bhgavatas.
-
-"He who worships an image as Hari with faith, but has no regard for
-Bhaktas and for other beings is only a beginner as a Bhakta.
-
-"The highest Bhgavata perceives the objects with his senses, but does
-not feel either aversion or pleasure. He looks upon the universe as the
-My of Vishnu.
-
-"By constant meditation on Hari, he is not affected by the changes of
-life. Desires have no place in his mind, so devoted is he to Vsudeva.
-
-_He_ is the favourite of Hari, who does not take pride in his birth,
-Karma, caste or srama.
-
-"The highest Bhgavata does not know "Mine" and "Thine," either in
-wealth or in body. He looks upon all beings with equal eyes, His mind is
-always at peace.
-
-"Even for the sake of all the three Lokas, the Vaishnava will not for a
-moment forget the lotus feet of Bhagavat.
-
-"And more, he is the greatest of all Bhgavatas, to whose heart Hari is
-bound down by the tie of Love."
-
- III. Nimi asked: -- "What is then this My of the Supreme Lord?"
-
-Antariksha replied: --
-
-"My of Bhagavat is that which causes the creation, preservation and
-dissolution of this universe."
-
- IV. Nimi asked: -- "How can one whose mind is not controlled and
- who is of dull understanding easily cross over this My?
-
-Prabuddha replied: --
-
-"Have recourse to a Guru, who knows the Truth and is fixed in the
-supreme. Learn the duties of Bhgavatas from him. Practise
-non-attachment, keep company with Sdhus. Be kind to your inferiors,
-friendly to your equals and respectful to your superiors. Keep your body
-and mind pure. Regulate your life by fixed rules. Have forgiveness. Do
-not talk idly. Read the sacred books. Be upright. Be temperate. Be
-harmless to all beings. Bear good and evil, pleasure and pain with
-equanimity. Find out tm and shvara everywhere. Free yourself from all
-connections. Do not bind yourself down to your house. Have that which is
-easily got for your clothing. Be content with anything and everything.
-Have faith in the Bhgavata Sstra, but do not blame any other Sastra.
-Control your mind, speech and actions. Speak the truth. Control your
-inner and outer senses. Hear, recite and meditate on the deeds and
-Avatras of Hari. Let all your exertions be for Him. Offer up all, even
-your wife, children and your own life, to Him. In the company of
-Bhgavatas, interchange devotion and love, remind each other and speak
-to each other of the glory of Bhagavat, till your hair stands on end,
-and you will sometimes dance and sometimes sing, maddened by your
-devotional thoughts about Achyuta.
-
-"These are the duties of a Bhgavata and by practising these, he may
-easily cross over My."
-
- V. Nimi asked: -- "How can one be fixed in devotion to Nryana?"
-
-Pippalyana replied: --
-
-"When through the desire of attaining the feet of Vishnu, one has strong
-devotion, the impurities of one's mind are destroyed. When the mind is
-purified, it becomes fixed in tm."
-
- VI. Nimi asked: -- "Tell me about Karma Yoga, by the performance of
- which Karma is speedily destroyed."
-
-virhotra replied: --
-
-"Vedic Karma does not directly lead to Moksha. Offer up your Vedic Karma
-to shvara, and perform it, without any worldly attachment, however.
-
-"He who wants speedily to cut asunder the tie of Ahankra shall worship
-Vishnu in the way prescribed in the Tantras or gama. (Vedic Karma at
-first consisted of Vedic Yajna. The Git gave a death blow to the
-performance of Vedic Yajnas. _Nishkma_ Karma took the place of _Kmya_
-Karma, The Vedic Karma however survived in the Sandhy Mantras, which
-conform themselves to the Path of Upsan.
-
-"The Vedic Sandhy is however meant only for Brhmanas.
-
-"The Tntric Sandhy is an imitation of the Vedic Sandhy, adapted to
-all classes of men, and it supplements the Vedic Sandhy by laying down
-a method of worshipping the Lord in the heart and of worshipping His
-image. Mantras are also prescribed. Devotion is the chief element in
-Tntric Upsan and this Upsan is enjoined for all Bhgavatas or
-Vaishnavas. There are Siva Tantras, Sakti Tantras, Ganapati Tantras,
-Srya Tantras as well as Vaishnava Tantras. There are black rites
-prescribed in some of the Sakti Tantras and the Tantras have therefore
-got a bad name with many. But the Tantras as a whole form the only
-science of practical occultism in Sanskrit, and the Vaishnava Upsan is
-strictly a Tntric Upsan."
-
-(I do not enter here into the details of that Upsan, though some
-details are given in the text.)
-
- VII. Nimi said: -- "Tell me about the _Avatras_ and Their deeds O
- Rishis." Drumila gave a short account of the Avatras,
- commencing from the First Purusha. As this is nearly a
- repetition of what has been said before, no attempt is made to
- reproduce it.
- VIII. Nimi asked what is the _destiny of those that do not worship
- Bhagavat, those that have no control over their mind and their
- senses_.
-
-Chamasa replied: -- "They enter the regions of darkness (Tamas)."
-
- IX. Nimi asked:
-
-"What is the Color of the manifestation of Bhagavat at each period, how
-does he manifest Himself, by what name is He known and in what way is He
-worshipped?"
-
-Karabhjana replied: --
-
-"In Satya Yuga, Bhagavat becomes white, with four hands, with tufts of
-braided hair, with bark round His waist. He bears a black deer-skin, the
-sacred thread and beads, and has Danda (the rod of an ascetic) and
-Kmandalu (the water-pot of an ascetic) in his hands. (_i.e._ He looks
-like a Brahmcharin).
-
-"Men are then peaceful and friendly towards one another. There are no
-differences amongst them. They worship the Lord by means of Tapas, by
-control of the senses and of the mind.
-
-"Bhagavat is then known by the following names: -- Hansa, Suparna,
-Vaikuntha, Dharma, Yogesvara, Amala, svara, Purusha, Avyakta, and
-Paramtmn.
-
-"In Tret, Bhagavat becomes Red. He has four hands and golden hair. His
-form is that of Yajna. Men are pious at the time. They worship Bhagavat
-by Vedic Yajna.
-
-"Bhagavat is known by the following names: --
-
-"Vishnu, Yajna, Prism-garbha, Sarvadeva, Uru-krama, Vrish Kapi, Jayanta
-and Urugya.
-
-"In Dvpara, Bhagavat is _Syama_. (The word Syma ordinarily means
-dark-blue. But Sridhara explains the word here as the color of an Atasi
-flower, which is generally yellow. This is because the Bhagavat speaks
-before of white, red, yellow and black as the colors of Yuga Avatras.)
-His cloth is yellow.
-
-"Men worship Him both by Vedic and Tntric methods.
-
-"Vsudeva, Sankarshana, Pradyumna, Aniruddha, Nryana, Visvesvara and
-Visva are his names.
-
-"In Kali, worship is made according to the Tantras, which are various.
-
-"Bhagavat is black (Krishna). Men worship Him, His Symbols and
-attendants mostly by loud recitals of names and prayers (Sankirtana).
-Wise men praise Kali because worship is so easily made by mere
-Sankirtana. Even men in Satya Yuga wish to be born in Kali Yuga."
-
-Nimi respected the nine Rishis and they disappeared in the presence of
-all men.
-
-Vsudeva and Devaki heard this story from Nrada. They realised Krishna
-as svara and they acquired wisdom.
-
-
-
-KRISHNA AND UDDHAVA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA XI. CHAP. 6.*
-
-Brahm and other Devas went to Dvrak. Addressing Krishna; Brahm said:
--- "All that we prayed for has been done. One hundred and twenty-five
-years have passed away since thou didst appear in the line of Yadus.
-That line is also well nigh extinguished. Now go back to thy own abode,
-if it pleases thee."
-
-Sri Krishna replied: -- "The extinction of the Ydavas has been set on
-foot by the curse of the Rishis. I shall remain on Earth, till it is
-completely brought about." There were unusual phenomena at Dvrak. The
-elders came to Krishna. He proposed a pilgrimage to Prabhsa. So the
-Ydavas made preparations for going to Prabhsa. Uddhava saw the evil
-portents and he heard what Sri Krishna said. "I see, O Lord," said he to
-Sri Krishna, "thou shalt leave this earth, as soon as the Yadus are
-destroyed. I can not miss thy feet even for half a moment. So take me to
-thy own abode."
-
-Sri Krishna replied: -- "It is true as you say. My mission is fulfilled.
-The Devas ask me to go back. The Ydavas shall be killed by mutual
-quarrel. On the seventh day from this, the sea shall swallow up this
-seat of Dvrak. As soon as I leave this earth, Kali shall overtake it
-and men shall grow unrighteous. It will not then be meet for you to
-remain here. Give up all and free yourself from all attachments and roam
-about over this earth, with your mind fixed on me, looking on all beings
-with equal eyes. Whatever is perceived by the senses and the mind, know
-all that to be of the mind, and so Myic and transitory. "This is this"
-and "this is that" this conception of difference is only a delusion of
-him whose mind is distracted (_i.e._ not united to Me). It is this
-delusion which causes experiences of right and wrong. It is for those
-that have got notions of right and wrong that (the Vedas speak)
-differently of the performance of prescribed work (Karma), the
-non-performance of prescribed work (Akarma), and the performance of
-prohibited work (Vikarma). (This has reference to Varna and srama
-duties. As long as a man identifies himself with some Varna or srama he
-looks upon others also as belonging to some Varna or srama. He
-therefore makes a distinction between men and men. The Varnsrama duties
-are prescribed by the Vedas for a man, so long as he entertains ideas of
-difference. When he looks equally upon a Brhmana and a Chandla, when
-he finds his Lord every where and finds all beings in the Lord within
-himself, he becomes a man of the Universe, a Bhgavata. For him the
-Vedas do not make any rule. He is above all rules and restrictions. But
-the Varnsrama duties are to be respected, so long as one makes any
-difference between man and man.) Control thy senses and control thy
-mind. See the wide-spread Universe in thyself and see thyself in Me, the
-Lord. Learn and digest all that is given in the scriptures. Contented
-with self perception, the very self of all other beings, you shall have
-no danger from others. You will do no wrong but not because it is
-prohibited by the Scriptures, and you will do what is prescribed but not
-because it is so prescribed (_i.e._ the sense of right and wrong will be
-natural in you, independently of Sastric teachings.) You will exceed the
-limits of both right and wrong and do things just like a child. The
-friend of all beings, calm and quiet at heart, fixed in wisdom and
-direct knowledge, you will see the Universe full of Me and you will not
-be drawn back to births."
-
-Uddhava said: --
-
-"Lord of Yoga, what thou sayest for my final bliss is a complete
-renunciation of all worldly attachments. It seems to me however that the
-giving up of desires is not possible for those that have their mind
-filled with the object world, unless they are completely devoted to
-Thee.
-
-"I have not yet got over the sense of 'I' and 'Mine.' Tell me how I can
-easily follow out Thy teachings."
-
-Sri Krishna replied: --
-
-"Generally those men that are skilful in discrimination rescue self from
-worldly desires by means of self, (_i.e._ they may do so, even without
-the help of a Guru, by means of self discrimination.) Self is the
-instructor of self, specially in man (Purusha.)" (Even in animals,
-preserving instincts proceed from self. So self is the instructor.
-_Sridhara_) "For it is self that finds out final bliss by direct
-perception and by inference. Wise men, well versed in Snkhya and Yoga,
-look upon Me as Purusha pervading all beings, and possessing all powers.
-(This is according to Sridhara, the direct perception by which final
-bliss is attained. The word Purusha here has something like the sense of
-a Monad in Theosophical literature. The passage quoted by Sridhara from
-the Upanishads to illustrate the idea of Purusha also shews this.) There
-are many habitations created for life manifestation, some, with one,
-two, three or four feet, some with many feet and some with no foot. Of
-these, however, that of man (Pourushi) is dear to me. For in this form
-of Man those that are fixed in meditation truly find me out, the Lord,
-though beyond all objects of perception, by the indications of perceived
-attributes as well as by inferences from the same." (_Indications_.
-Buddhi, Manas and others, the perceived attributes, are in their nature
-manifestless. The manifestation is not possible except through one that
-is self manifest. Therefore Buddhi and others point to Him.
-
-_Inferences_. Whenever there is an instrument, there is some one to use
-it. Buddhi and others are instruments. There is therefore one who guides
-these. _Sridhara_.) In this matter of self instruction, hear the story
-of an Ava-dhuta (an ascetic who renounces all worldly attachments and
-connections.)
-
-
-
-SELF-INSTRUCTION.
-
-
-*SKANDHA XI. CHAP. 7-9.*
-
-Yadu asked an Ava-dhta how he could get that clear spiritual vision, by
-which he was able to give up all attachments, and roam like a child in
-perfect bliss.
-
-The Ava-dhta replied: --
-
-I have many Gurus, O king -- Earth, Air, ksa, Water, Fire, the Moon,
-the Sun, the pigeon, the huge serpents, the ocean, the insect, the bee,
-the elephant, the collector of honey, the deer, the fish, Pingal, the
-osprey, the child, the maid, the maker of arrows, the serpent, the
-spider and the wasp. These are my twenty four Gurus.
-
-Though oppressed by the elements, the Earth does not deviate from her
-path, as she knows that they are only guided by the divine law. This
-forbearance I have learned from the Earth. I have learned from the
-mountain (which is a part of the Earth) that all our desires should be
-for the good of others and that our very existence is for others and not
-for self. I have learned entire subordination to other's interests from
-the trees (also part of the Earth).
-
-I have learned from the vital air, that one should be content only with
-such things as keep up the life and should not care about the objects of
-the senses. (The sage should keep up his life so that his mind be not
-put out of order and his mental acquisitions lost; but at the same time
-he should not be attached to the objects of the senses, so that his
-speech and mind be not disturbed.)
-
-Though placed in the midst of the objects with different attributes, the
-Yogi should not be attached to them. This I have learned from the
-outside air. The soul enters the body and the bodily attributes seem its
-own, but it is not so. The air is charged with smell, but the smell is
-no attribute of air.
-
-tm is all pervading and it is not affected by the body and bodily
-attributes. This I have learned from Aksa which, though all pervading,
-seems to be conditioned by clouds and other objects.
-
-Transparency, agreeability and sweetness, I have learned from water. The
-sage purifies others like water.
-
-Powerful in knowledge and glowing with asceticism, the sage receiving
-all things does not take their impurities even as fire.
-
-Fire eats the sacrificial ghee when offered to it and consumes the sins
-of the offerer. The sage eats the food offered to him by others but he
-burns up their past and future impurities.
-
-Fire is one though it enters fuels of various sorts.
-
-One tm pervades all beings, however different they may appear by the
-action of Avidy.
-
-Birth, death, and other affections are states of the body, not of tm.
-The moon looks full, diminished and gone, though it is the same in all
-these states.
-
-The sun draws water by its rays and gives it all away in time. The sage
-takes in order to give, and not in order to add to his own possessions.
-
-The sun reflected on different surfaces appears to the ignorant as many
-and various. The tm in different bodies, even appears as such.
-
-Too much attachment is bad. This I have learned from a pair of pigeons.
-They lived in a forest. One day they left their young ones in the nest
-and went about in search of food for them. When they returned they found
-the young ones netted by a hunter. The mother had too much affection for
-the young ones. She fell into the net of her own accord. The father also
-followed suit and the hunter was pleased to have them all without any
-exertion of his own.
-
-The huge Ajagara serpent remains where he is and is content with
-whatever food comes to him.
-
-The sage is calm and deep, not to be fathomed or measured. He is
-limitless (as the unconditioned self is manifested in him). He is not to
-be disturbed even like the tranquil ocean. The ocean may receive volumes
-of water from the rivers at times or may receive no water at other
-times. But it remains the same, even as the sage at all times.
-
-He who is tempted by woman is destroyed like an insect falling into
-fire.
-
-The bee takes a little from every flower. The Sanys should take only a
-little from each Grihasth, so that the Grihasth may not suffer.
-
-The bee extracts honey from all flowers big or small. The Sage should
-extract wisdom from all Sstras big or small. Do not store anything for
-the evening or for the morrow. Have only so much for your _bhiksh_
-(alms given to a Sanys) as may suffice for one meal. The bee is killed
-for his storing.
-
-The Bhikshu shall not touch a woman though made of wood, even with his
-feet. The elephant is shewn a female and is drawn into a trap. The woman
-is the death of the sage. He should never approach her. The elephant
-seeking a female is killed by stronger elephants.
-
-The miser neither gives nor enjoys his riches. What ever he collects
-with difficulty is carried away by some one else. The collector of honey
-carries away the honey collected by others. He does not make it by his
-own effort. The Sanys without any effort of his own gets food from the
-Grihasths, as it is their duty to feed him.
-
-Do not hear vulgar songs. The deer is attracted by songs and is
-entrapped.
-
-The love of taste is to be conquered above all, for it is most difficult
-to conquer. When the sense of taste is controlled, all other senses are
-controlled. The fish is killed when tempted by the bait.
-
-Pingl, a courtesan of Videha waited the whole day for some lover who
-might come and make presents to her, with breathless expectation. The
-night approached and she grew restless She then thought within herself:
--- "For what a trifle, am I so uneasy. Why not seek shvara, the eternal
-giver of all pleasures and all desires." She gave up all hopes and
-expectations that troubled her ere long and became happy. She had good
-sleep in the night. It is hope that gives us trouble. Without hope we
-are happy.
-
-When the bird kurara (osprey) gets some flesh to eat, the stronger birds
-kill him. He is happy when he renounces the flesh. Renunciation of dear
-objects is good for the sage.
-
-The child has no sense of honor or dis-honor. It has not the thoughts of
-a man of the world. It is self content and it plays with self. I roam
-about like the child. The child is however ignorant, but the sage
-crosses the limits of the Gunas.
-
-Some people came to select a bride. The maid was alone in the house. She
-received the men who came. She went to a solilary place to beat off the
-impurities of the rice for their meal. She had shell-made bracelets on
-her wrists. These made a great noise. She felt disgust and broke the
-bracelets one by one, till only one remained on each hand. When there
-are two or more at one place, they cause a jarring sound, and they
-quarrel. I have therefore earned solitariness from the maid.
-
-I have learned concentration of mind from the maker of arrows.
-
-The serpent has no home. It roams in solitude. So do I.
-
-Nryana draws in the whole creation at the end of the Kalpa and becomes
-one, the resort of all.
-
-By Kla Sakti, the thread, Mahat, first comes out and the universe is
-again brought into manifestation. The spider brings the thread out of
-himself, spreads out the web and devours it himself.
-
-(There is a kind of wasp, which catches a particular insect and carries
-it into a hole. It is supposed that the insect assumes the form of the
-wasp through fear.) When either through affection, hatred, or fear, a
-man throws his whole heart upon some object and the mind holds it fast,
-he attains the form of that object. I have learned this from the wasp.
-
-Thus I have learned from my Gurus, My own body is also my Guru. I have
-learned from it dispassion and discrimination. The body is born only to
-die. Constant misery is its lot. I know the truths, by a discriminative
-study of the body. Still I regard it as not mine and so I feel no
-attachment for it (The body belongs to the dogs and jackals who devour
-it after death. _Sridhara_.)
-
-What does not a man do for the enjoyment of the body -- but it comes to
-an end after all, having created the germs of another body.
-
-The possessor of the body is now drawn away by this sense, now by that
-sense, now by this action now by that action. The senses suck his very
-life blood, even as the many wives of one husband.
-
-The Lord created vegetable and animal bodies. But he was not satisfied
-with them. For the human body only has the power to perceive Brahmn.
-
-Therefore after many births, when the human body is once attained, one
-should strive promptly for his supreme bliss.
-
-Yadu heard these words of wisdom, and he gave up all attachments.
-
-
-
-TM A REFUTATION OF THE SCHOOL OF JAIMINI.
-
-
-*SKANDHA XI. CHAP. 10.*
-
-Sri Krishna continued: --
-
-(Self-study is the first stage. It leads to the power of discrimination.
-Without self study no progress is possible. Therefore Sri Krishna speaks
-of it as an essential condition. He then goes on to the next stage of
-preparation.)
-
-"Subject to what I have said as to one's own duties (in Pancha Rtra and
-other Vaishnava works; _Sridhara_) and knowing me to be the final
-resort, you should dispassionately follow the Varna-srama and family
-duties. (But how is dispassion possible?) With the mind purified by the
-performance of duties, reflect on this that worldly men take up things,
-thinking them to be real but the end shews that they are not so.
-
-"Objects of desire are unreal, as their perception as separate entities
-is caused by the senses and they are altogether sense-made. Even they
-are as unreal as dreams and fancy, both caused by the mind."
-
-(Actions are fourfold, (1) those that have the fulfilment of selfish
-desires for their object or Kmya Karma, (2) those that are prohibited
-by the Scriptures or Nishiddha Karma, (3) those that are required to be
-daily performed or Nity Karma, (4) those that are required to be
-performed on certain occasions or Naimittika.
-
-The first two are Pravritta or selfish Karma. The last two are Nivritta
-or unselfish Karma. The Smritis say that those who want Moksha or
-liberation must not perform Pravritta Karma. But they should perform
-Nitya and Naimittika Karma, as their non-performance might give rise to
-obstacles.) Perform Nivritta Karma and being devoted to Me, give up all
-Pravritta Karma. But when you fully enter the path of wisdom, then you
-need not care much even for Nivritta Karma. Constantly practise Yma.
-Being fixed on Me, you may sometimes practise Niyama (Yma and Niyama
-are detailed in the 19th chapter.)
-
-"Devotedly follow one Guru, who knows Me and is full of Me, being calm
-and quiet at heart.
-
-"Be humble and unenvious, active, free from the sense of "Mineness",
-strong in friendship (towards the Guru. _Sridhara_) not over-zealous,
-eager to know the truths and free from malice. Do not indulge in idle
-talk. Be indifferent to wife, son, house, land, relations, riches and
-all other things, for tm is the same every where and its working is
-the same in all bodies.
-
-"This tm is neither the gross body nor the subtle body. It is the self
-illumined seer. Fire that illuminates and burns is separate from the
-fuel that is illuminated and burnt.
-
-"The fuel has beginning and end. It is big and small. It is of various
-kinds. The fire that pervades it is limited by the nature of the fuel.
-So tm which is separate from the body bears the attributes of the
-body.
-
-"The birth and re-birth of the Jiva have their origin in the gross and
-the subtle body, which are the outcome of the Gunas, subordinated by
-svara. The knowledge of tm (as separate from the body) cuts off the
-course of rebirths.
-
-"Therefore by seeking after knowledge fully realise that tm in self is
-separate and is beyond the body. Then by degrees do away with a sense of
-reality in respect of the gross and the subtle body.
-
-"The preceptor is the lower piece of wood used for kindling the sacred
-fire. The pupil is the upper piece of wood. The teachings form the
-middle portion of the wood where the stroke is made. Vidy is the
-pleasing fire that comes out. (The pupil by constant questioning should
-extract the fire of wisdom from the Guru _i.e._ one should learn tm
-Vidy from his Guru.)
-
-"The pure wisdom that is thus acquired from the Guru shakes off the My
-that is begotten of the Gunas. It burns up the Gunas themselves, which
-constitute this universe of re-incarnation and then it ceases of itself.
-The fire consumes the fuel first and then it is extinguished of itself.
-
-"Or if you think that the doers of actions, their pleasures and pains,
-the enjoyers and sufferers (Jivtmas or Egos) are many and that the
-place and time of enjoyment and suffering, and the scriptures relating
-thereto and to the enjoyer or sufferer are all alike not constant."
-
-(We have found in the former slokas that tm is one and constant. It is
-self manifest and it is conciousness itself. When we speak of tm as
-the Doer, the Enjoyer and so on these attributes really relate to the
-body which forms the phenomenal basis of tm. Every thing else besides
-tm is transitory and formed of My. It has been therefore said that
-one should free himself from all attachments and should attain
-liberation by the knowledge of tm. This is the conclusion arrived at
-by a reconciliation of all the Srutis. But there is another school, that
-of Jaimini, which arrives at a different conclusion. To remove all
-doubts whatsoever, the author refers to it for the sake of refutation.
-The followers of Jaimini deem Jivtmas -- the doers and enjoyers in all
-beings to be essentially separate and many. According to them, tm is
-known by the feeling of "I-ness." Now this feeling is different in
-different bodies. "I am the doer" "I am the enjoyer" every one feels
-this separately for himself. There is no one Parmtm, which is the
-essence of all these Jivtmas and which is above all transformations.
-Therefore freedom from attachments or dispassion is not possible. You
-may think, that the enjoyments are transitory, and so also that the time
-and place of enjoyment, the scriptures that enjoin them, and the
-_enjoying_ tm itself are not constant. Hence you may justify
-dispassion. But all this is not a fact. This is the argument of the
-followers of Jaimini. _Sridhara_.)
-
-"And if you consider that all substances are constant by the eternal
-flow of their existence and that consciousness grows and is separate
-according to the difference in every particular form." (According to the
-followers of Jaimini there is no break in the objects of enjoyment nor
-are they formed of My. All substances perpetually exist by the
-constancy of their flow. They say that there was no time, when the
-Universe was not what it is. Therefore there is no maker of the
-Universe, no shvara. And the Universe is not a delusion -- My. It is
-what it appears to be. There is no one and constant consciousness of
-which the essence is tm. "This pot" "this cloth" -- Our consciousness
-grows by the process of perceiving these differences. Therefore
-consciousness is not constant and it has separate forms. The hidden
-purport is this. tm is not absolute consciousness itself, but it is
-transformed into consciousness. But you can not say, because it is
-subject to transformation, therefore it is transient. For it has been
-said authoritatively that its transformation into consciousness does not
-interfere with its eternity. Therefore for the purpose of liberation
-(Mukti), tm can not transform itself without the help of the senses
-&c. And if tm attains liberation, in the state of jada (or
-unconsciousness) nothing is gained. Therefore the best path to follow is
-that of Pravritti or Inclination and not that of Nivritti or
-Disinclination. _Sridhara_. The above commentaries of Sridhara form one
-of the best expositions of the philosophy of Jaimini. Only the last
-passage requires a little elucidation. tm in itself is not
-consciousness. Its transformation into consciousness is its highest
-evolution or Mukti. Now this transformation is caused by the perception
-of objects, it is made complete by the perception of all objects and it
-is made constant by a constant desire for all objects. This object, or
-that object may vanish, this man or that woman may die, this flower or
-that flower may perish, but there is no time when the objects as a class
-do not exist, when there is no enjoyer, no object to be enjoyed. So
-there is a constancy in the desires. Therefore one must form
-attachments, have desires, that tm be made fully conscious. But if
-tm be left to itself, it will remain Jada or unconscious. There is
-nothing to be gained by this. Therefore one should persistently follow
-the path of desires as laid down in the Karma Knda of the Vedas,
-analysed by Jaimini in his Prva Mimns. One should not give up Vedic
-Karma and selfish desires as he is taught to do in the Jnna Knda of
-the Vedas, the Upanishads, as analysed by Vysa in his Uttara Mimns,
-and as expounded by Sri Krishna in the Bhagavat Git. It must be
-remembered that this philosophy of Karma, so effectually refuted by Sri
-Krishna, was suited to the materialistic cycle of evolution, when Rajas
-had to be sought rather than put down. The minerals and vegetables were
-unconscious. The animals shewed a slight development in consciousness.
-But the full development was in Man. And this was due to the pursuit of
-the Path of Inclination or Pravritti Mrga up to a late period in the
-past history of the Universe. Notwithstanding the attacks of Sri
-Krishna, the school of Jaimini had its followers till the time of Sr
-Sankarchrya, when Mandana Misra the most learned Pandit of the time,
-was its chief exponent. After his memorable defeat by Sr Sankarchrya
-the Mimnskas fell into disrepute and Vedic Karma became a thing of the
-past.)
-
-"Granting all that, O dear Uddhava, all tms have constantly their
-births and other states, by connection with the body and by reason of
-the divisions of time." (_i.e._ though you may say that tm itself is
-transformed, still you can not deny that the transformations take place
-by its connection with the body and that they are brought about by
-time.)
-
-"It follows then that the doer of actions, the enjoyer of joys and the
-sufferer of sorrows is dependent on other things." (For tm is
-dependent upon the body and upon time for its highest transformation.
-Sridhara says if tm is the doer and enjoyer, why should it do wrong
-acts and suffer sorrows if it were independent. Therefore tm must be
-dependent according to the Mimnskas). Now who in seeking his greatest
-good would worship one that is dependent on others?
-
-"(Do not say that those who know Vedic karma thoroughly are always happy
-and only those that do not know that are unhappy. For it is found that
--- _Sridhara_) even wise men sometimes have no happiness and the
-ignorant have no misery. Therefore it is mere vanity (to speak about
-Karma). Even if (the followers of the path of Pravritti) know how to
-gain happiness and destroy misery, they certainly do not know the means
-by which they can get over death. And when death is near at hand, what
-objects of desire can give joy? What can please the victim that is
-carried to the place of sacrifice? (This is so far as this life is
-concerned. Then as to life after death). What you hear about Svarga
-life, even that is as bad as the life we lead on this earth. For in
-Svarga, there is jealousy, there is fault finding, there are
-inequalities and consequent uneasiness, and there is a finality in the
-enjoyments and the desires are full of obstacles, even as agriculture is
-and so after all even Svarga is of no good. When the Vedic Karma is
-properly performed without any obstacle whatsoever, hear how the
-performer of Karma loses the place acquired by his Karma. He makes
-offerings to Indra and other Devas by the performance of Yajna and he
-goes after death to Svarga. There he enjoys heavenly objects like the
-Devas, objects acquired by his own Karma. He moves in white chariots the
-acquisitions of his own merits, among Deva girls and is adored; by the
-Gandharvas. The chariot moves at his will. It is adorned by small bells.
-He whiles away his time with the Deva girls in the gardens of Svarga and
-he does not know his own fall. But he remains in Svarga only so long as
-his merit is not exhausted. And when the merit is run out, down falls
-the man by the force of time, even against his will. (The above is the
-course after death of those who perform Kmya Karma, according to Vedic
-rules. This is one way of following Pravritti Mrga. There is another
-way -- the following up of one's own inclinations, in disregard of the
-Vedic rules. The next Sloka refers to the performers of prohibited
-Karma). And if again a man indulges in the prohibited acts, through evil
-company, if his senses are not controlled, and if in consequence, he is
-passionate indiscriminate, greedy, excessively fond of women, and unkind
-to other beings, if the man kills animals wantonly and worships Pretas
-and Bhtas, he goes, driven by the law, to the Narakas and finds there
-intense Tamas.
-
-"Therefore karma (selfish actions) ends in unhappiness. By performing
-karma with the body, men seek the body again. What happiness is there in
-the possession of this transitory body? The Lokas and Lokaplas have to
-fear me, they who live for one full day of Brahm. Even Brahm who lives
-for 2 Parardhas has fear of me."
-
-(Therefore Pravritti Mrga leads to evil. It should be shunned and
-Nivritti Mrga should be adopted. This is the purport. _Sridhara_).
-
-(Now Sri Krishna goes on to refute the first two assumptions (1) that
-tm is the doer and (2) that tm is the enjoyer). The Gunas create
-actions and the Gunas lead the Gunas. (The Gunas are Satva, Rajas and
-Tamas. These primal attributes of Prakriti give rise to all her
-manifestations. The Indriyas, the senses, and the mind are Stvic and
-Rjasic transformations of the Ahankra manifestation of Prakriti. So
-they are the Gunas first referred to. The senses and the mind create
-actions. Our actions are all prompted by them and not by tm. So tm
-is not the doer. It may be said however that the senses and the mind are
-guided by tm. But it is not so. The primal attributes (Gunas) lead the
-senses and the mind (Gunas). If Satva prevails in a man his actions are
-Stvic and so on. It is the nature of the Prkritic transformations of a
-man that determines his actions. This is only an elaboration of
-Sridhara's notes.)
-
-The Jiva enjoys the fruits of Karma, being connected with the Gunas (The
-enjoyment by Jiva is also due to its phenomenal basis. "Connected with
-the Gunas" _i.e._ connected with the senses and other Prkritic
-elements. Jivtma dwells in the body. When the house falls down, he
-occupies another house. When the houses are merely halting stations in
-his long journey, he does not care much for the house itself, he does
-not identify himself with the house. So when Jivtma becomes indifferent
-to the body, it is not affected by the changes of the body. When a house
-burns, the dweller in the house feels pain. When the house is
-comfortable, the dweller in the house feels pleasure. His connection
-with the house is however temporary.)
-
-As long as there is difference in the Gunas (i. e, Guna transformations,
-Ahankra &c.), so long there is plurality in tm. As long as there is
-plurality so long is it dependent on others. (The difference in Jivtmas
-or individuals, is not due to any difference in tm, but to differences
-in the Guna transformations which give rise to the body. Dependence is
-also an accompaniment of those transformations),
-
-So long as Jiva is dependent on others it has fear from shvara. Those
-that worship the Guna transformations are given up to sorrow and they
-become deluded.
-
-
-
-BONDAGE AND LIBERATION.
-
-
-*SKANDHA XI. CHAP. 11.*
-
-Uddhava asked: --
-
-"tm dwells in the transformations of the Gunas forming the body. Why
-should it not be bound down by the Gunas. Or if tm is free (like
-Aksa) why should it be at all in bondage? What are the indications of
-tm in bondage and of liberated tm? Is tm ever in bondage? (for
-connection with the Gunas is eternal. _Sridhara_) or ever in liberation
-(for if liberation is a state to be acquired, tm can not be permanent.
-_Sridhara_)"
-
-Sri Krishna replied: --
-
-"Bondage and liberation are terms applied to Me not with reference to my
-real self, but with reference to My Gunas (the Guna limitations, Satva,
-Rajas and Tamas that are subordinate to me. _Sridhara_). The Gunas have
-their origin in My. Therefore I have neither liberation nor bondage.
-
-"Sorrow and delusion, joy and grief, even the attainment of body --
-these are all due to My. The dream is only an illusory form of the
-mind, even so the course of births is not real. Vidya and Avidy both
-proceed from My My, O Uddhava. I am one and the Jiva is only my part
-(as the ray is of the sun). The bondage of Jiva is caused by Avidy and
-its liberation by Vidya. This is eternally so. Now I shall tell you the
-different indications of the imprisoned and the liberated Jiva. (The
-difference is twofold: that between Jiva and svara and that amongst the
-Jivas themselves. The author first speaks of the former. _Sridhara._)
-Jiva and svara though of different attributes dwell in the same body.
-They are two birds like each other (for both are manifestations of
-conciousness), companions that have made a nest for themselves (the
-heart), in the tree of body, of their own free will.
-
-"Of these one (the Jiva) eats the fruits of the tree. The other (svara)
-though not a partaker of the fruits is the mightier of the two. For He
-who does not partake of the fruits is the knower of self as of others.
-But the partaker of fruits is not so. He (Jiva) who is joined with
-Avidy is always imprisoned. He (shvara) who is joined with Vidya is
-always liberated. (My of shvara or Vidya does not throw a veil round
-and does not delude). The "conscious" are two in every individual. The
-consciousness of svara is universal. Jivtma however takes upon himself
-the limitations of individuality and becomes the conscious centre in
-every man. "I perceive" "I conceive" "I do," that "I" is tm limited by
-the sense of individuality. The perception and conceptions are of
-Jivtma and he is the partaker of the fruits. This "Jiva" element in an
-individual is in bondage. But the svara element in him is always
-liberated. And Jiva becomes liberated, when the individual limitation is
-withdrawn).
-
-"(Now the difference amongst Jivas liberated and imprisoned).
-
-"The liberated (Jiva) though dwelling in the body does not dwell in it
-as it were, even like one aroused from dream. (The awakened man
-remembers his dream body, but realises it as unreal, So the liberated
-Jiva looks upon his body as unreal or a temporary halting station, not a
-part of his own self). The ignorant identifies himself with the body,
-like the man in dream.
-
-"The senses perceive the objects of the senses. The Gunas perceive the
-Gunas. The wise (Jiva) does not identify self with these. He is
-therefore not distracted.
-
-"The ignorant, however, while dwelling in this body brought about by
-prior Karma, in which the senses act, thinks that he is the doer and
-becomes thus bound down.
-
-"The wise one sees with disgust that the actions of others bind him.
-Sleeping, sitting, walking or bathing, seeing, touching, smelling,
-eating or hearing, the wise (Jiva) does not bind himself like the
-ignorant, for in those acts, he realises that the Gunas (senses)
-perceive (and not his self). He dwells in the body, but is not attached
-to it, like the Aksa, the sun and the air. (Space is in all things, but
-the things form no part of space. The sun becomes reflected in water,
-but is not attached to water. The air moves about all around, but does
-not become attached to any thing). By the force of dispassion, the
-vision becomes clear. All doubts are removed. And the wise (Jiva) rises
-as it were from sleep, and withdraws himself from the diversities (of
-body and other material objects).
-
-"The Jiva whose Prnas, Indriyas, Manas and Buddhi function without the
-promptings of self-centred desires is freed from the attributes of the
-body though dwelling in the body.
-
-"Whether injured by others or adored the liberated Jiva is not affected
-in the least. He neither praises nor blames others for their good or bad
-deeds or words. He knows no merits nor demerits. He looks on all with an
-equal eye. He does not do anything, he does not say anything, he does
-not think on any thing, good or bad. He is self-entranced and moves like
-a sense-less being (Jada).
-
-"If a man well-versed in the Vedas is not fixed in the Supreme, his
-labour becomes fruitless like that of a man who keeps a breeding cow
-that bears no calf. A cow that does not give milk, an unchaste wife, a
-body that is under the control of others, an undutiful son, wealth that
-is not given to the deserving and words that do not relate to me: he
-only keeps these whose lot is misery.
-
-"With discrimination such as this do away with the notion of diversity
-in self. Then fix your purified mind in Me, who am all pervading, and
-desist from everything else.
-
-"If you can not fix your mind in Me, then offer up all your actions
-unconditionally to Me. Hear with faith the words that relate to Me. Sing
-of Me, meditate on my deeds and Incarnations. Imitate these. Whatever
-you do, do that for Me. Then will be gained, O Uddhava, fixed devotion
-to Me. That devotion (Bhakti) is to be acquired in the company of
-Sdhus."
-
-
-
-SDHU AND BHAKTI.
-
-
-*SKANDHA XI. CHAP. 11-12.*
-
-Uddhava asked: --
-
-"Who according to Thee is a Sdhu? What sort of Bhakti (devotion) may be
-offered to Thee?"
-
-Sri Krishna replied: --
-
-"Compassionate, harmless, forgiving, firm in truth, faultless,
-impartial, doing good to all, undisturbed by desires, self restrained,
-mild, pure, not asking for anything, indifferent, temperate in eating
-with controlled mind, steady in the performance of duties, seeking
-refuge in me, given to meditation, careful, profound, patient, having
-control over the six-fold waves (hunger, thirst, sorrow and delusion,
-infirmity and death), not seeking respect from others, but respecting
-others, able, friendly, tender-hearted, wise, such is a Sdhu. He who
-knowing my injunctions and prohibitions in the performance of one's own
-Dharma or duties of life, even gives them all up for my sake is the best
-of all Sdhus. Those who seek me and nothing else, whether they know or
-not what I am, are the best of My Bhaktas.
-
-"To see, touch and worship My symbols and my votaries, to serve and
-adore them, the humble recital of My glory and of My deeds, Faith in
-hearing words about Me, constant meditation on Me, the offering up of
-all gains to Me, even the offering up of self in a spirit of service,
-the observance of the sacred days, rejoicings in the houses set apart
-for Me (all good Hindus have a house or room set apart for divine
-worship), initiation according to the Vedic and the Tntric System (one
-who is initiated is to recite the Mantras a certain number of times,
-every morning and evening and he can not take his meals without doing so
-in the morning) to observe fasts, enthusiasm in founding My image for
-worship, and in founding gardens, buildings and towns (in connection
-with My worship) humility and silence about one's own good deeds, --
-these are the indications of Bhakti.
-
-"Sun, Fire, the Brhmana, the Cow, the Vaishnava, Aksa, Air, Water,
-Earth, tm, and all beings -- these are the eleven places of my
-worship.
-
-"I am to be worshipped in the Sun, by Vedic Mantras, in the fire by
-sacrificial Ghee, in the Brhmana by hospitality, in the cows by the
-offer of grass, in the Vaishnava by friendly treatment, in the Aksa of
-the heart cavity by meditation, in the air by the contemplation of
-Prana, in the water by offerings of libation and so forth, in the Earth
-by secret Mantras, in tm by experiencing (Bhoga) and in all beings by
-equality.
-
-"In all these places of worship I am to be meditated on as with four
-hands, bearing conch, disc, club and lotus.
-
-"He who worships Me as above and serves the Sdhus acquires Devotion.
-Except by devotion that is acquired in the company of Sdhus, there is
-hardly any other way of liberation. I am not so easily attainable by
-Yoga, Snkhya, Dharma, the reading of Scriptures, Tapas, gifts,
-charitable acts, fasts, Yajnas, the Vedas, resort to pilgrimage, Niyamas
-or Ymas as by the company of Sdhus. Even those that are the lowest by
-birth, those that have Rajas and Tamas predominant in them, the Daityas,
-Asuras, and Rkshasas attain me easily by the company of Sdhus. The
-Gopis in Vraja, the wives of the Vedic Brhmanas did not read the Vedas,
-they did not observe fasts, they did not perform Tapas, but they
-attained Me, through the company of Sdhus. Therefore O Uddhava care not
-for Srutis or Smritis, for biddings and for forbiddings. Have recourse
-to Me, the tm of all beings, with all devotion, and thou shall have no
-fear from any quarter."
-
-(The following stages are to be marked: --
-
- 1. Study of Nature and self instruction.
- 2. Self discrimination, resuting in the separation of the conscious
- tm and the unconscious Non-tm.
- 3. The understanding of what is bondage and liberation, and the
- relation between Jiva tm and Parama tm (shvara.)
- 4. The liberating process during which the rules are to be observed,
- sacrifices to be made, the duties of life to be performed and
- active good done to all beings. During this process, the whole
- nature of the man becomes one of universal compassion and
- friendliness. Differences vanish. Good and bad become all alike.
-
-The Jiva rests in his own tm, which is the tm of all beings, and
-then all is calm and quiet.
-
- 5. The company of Sdhus.
- 6. Devotion acquired in that company.
- 7. When Devotion (Bhakti) becomes a part of one's nature then the
- giving up of all rules, all karma, whether pertaining to the Srutis
- or the Smritis.)
-
-
-
-WHY GIVE UP ALL KARMA
-
-
-*SKANDHA XI. CHAP. 12.*
-
-This Jiva-shvara becomes manifest in the cavities (nerve-plexuses). He
-enters the cavity (called dhra or prostatic plexus) with the Prana
-(energy) of sound (called Para). He passed through subtle mind-made
-forms (Pasyanti and Madhyam) in the plexuses called Manipura or Solar
-and Visuddhi or laryngeal and at last comes out as) very gross (Sound
-forms, called Vaikhari, consisting of) Mtr (Measures, such as long,
-short &c), Svara (accents known as Udtta or high, Anudtta or low and
-Svarita or mixed; and Varna the (letters of the alphabet, _ka, kha_ &c.)
-
-(The ruling idea is that the teachings of the Vedas and the Smritis are
-conveyed in articulate expressions and are adapted to planes
-corresponding to articulation. But articulation is the last and grossest
-expression of Divine Sound energy. In man the highest manifestation of
-sound energy, the primal voice, the divine voice, the first Logos, is
-Para. It is the Light which manifests the whole Universe. In that
-highest plane of manifestation there is no difference between Light and
-Sound. The seat of this Light is Mla-dhra Chakra.
-
-Coming down the line of material manifestation, this Divine Light, this
-Par Voice, become Pasyanti in the plane of causes, of germ thoughts, of
-root ideas, the Karana plane. The germs are transmitted in Man from
-birth to birth and in the Universe from kalpa to kalpa. They are the
-_causes_ of the subsequent manifestations, whether individual or
-universal. The Par voice passing through the causal plane, becomes the
-root-ideas or germ thoughts.
-
-In the next plane, the Skshma plane, the voice becomes the thoughts
-themselves or Madhyam.
-
-The last expression of the Voice is the articulate expression, Vaikhari.
-
-The Srutis and Smritis as written or spoken belong to the plane of
-lowest manifestation. They are governed by the root-ideas and ideas of
-the present universe, the root-ideas and ideas of the Rishis through
-whom they are manifested.
-
-When you seek the _unmanifested_ light of the Logos, the Divine Voice,
-or only the first manifestation of that Voice, what care you about the
-lower manifestations, the Srutis or Smritis, what care you about karma
-that pertains to the lower planes?)
-
-In Aksa, fire is only unmanifested heat (Ushman). It is manifested
-further down in the fuel. By friction in the fuel, it becomes a spark.
-Kindled by _Ghee_, it becomes a flame. Such is my manifestation also in
-this articulate Voice.
-
-So also the senses of action (Karmendriyas) and of perception
-(Gnanendriyas), the faculties of Desire, Discrimination, and Egoistic
-perception, the thread-giving Pradhna, the transformations of Satva,
-Rajas and Tamas are all my manifestations. (_i.e._ I am manifested
-through all of them).
-
-Primally, this Jiva shvara is unmanifested and one. But being the
-resort of the three Gunas, being the generator (Yoni) of the lotus (of
-the Universe), He becomes in time of divided energy, and appears as
-many, even like seeds that have found the soil.
-
-This Universe exists in Me, even as a piece of cloth exists in threads.
-
-The essence of this eternal tree of the Universe is Inclination. It
-begets flowers (Karma) and fruits (the fruits of Karma). Two are its
-seeds (Merit and de merit). Hundreds are its roots (the desires). Three
-are its stems (the Three Gunas). Five are its trunks (the five Bhtas,
-Aksa &c). The branches produce 5 sorts of juice (Sound, Touch, Sight,
-Taste and Smell); the Ten senses and the mind are the branches of the
-tree. Two birds (Jivtma and Paramtm) make their nest on it. Wind,
-bile and phlegm are its dermal layers. Joy and sorrow are the two fruits
-of this tree. It extends up to the solar regions (for beyond the Solar
-system, the Trilok, there are no rebirths.) The country loving Gridhras
-(in the first sense, vultures and in the second sense, home loving men
-of desires) partake of one fruit (sorrow). And the forest frequenting
-Hansas (in one sense swans and in the other sense discriminating men who
-give up desires) partake of the other fruit (joy).
-
-He who, through the favor of his Guru knows the One as becoming Many
-through My, knows the Truth.
-
-Thus with the axe of wisdom, sharpened by whole-minded devotion acquired
-by the worship of the Guru, do thou calmly and steadily cut asunder the
-sheaths of Jiva and on attaining Paramtm, do thou let go of the
-instrument itself.
-
-
-
-THE GUNAS.
-
-
-*SKANDHA XI. CHAP. 13.*
-
-Satva, Rajas and Tamas -- they are the Gunas of Buddhi (Prakriti), not
-of tm -- control Rajas and Tamas by means of Satva and control Satva
-by Satva itself. When Satva grows in Man, he acquires Dharma, which is
-Devotion to Me. By worshipping Stvic objects Satva increases and Dharma
-is the outcome. That Dharma kills Rajas and Tamas and it increases
-Satva. When Rajas and Tamas are killed, Adharma which is an outcome of
-Rajas and Tamas is also killed. The scriptures, water, men, land, time,
-karma, regeneration, meditation, mantra and purification these ten are
-accessaries to the Gunas. Of these what the Sages praise are Stvic,
-what they blame are Tmasic, what they neither praise nor blame are
-Rjasic. Have resort to only those of them that are Stvic, for then
-Satva will increase. Dharma follows that increase and wisdom follows
-Dharma. But wisdom has its field only so long as memory lasts and the
-(Gunas) are not exhausted. Fire that is produced by the friction of
-bamboo pieces, burns up the forest and is then extinguished of itself
-even so the body caused by disturbance of the Gunas is extinguished of
-itself, (at that final stage).
-
-(Of the scriptures, there are some that speak of inclination, others
-that speak of disinclination. The latter only are to be followed. Water
-which has a purifying effect, as that of a sacred place is to be used,
-not pointed water and wine. Bad men are to be shunned and good men are
-to be mixed with. Quiet solitary places are to be sought, not highways
-and gambling places. The time before sun rise is preferable for
-meditation not night fall or night. Nitya Karma is to be performed, not
-Kmya Karma. Initiation causes a second birth. Vaishnava or Saiva
-initiation is Stvic and not Sakta initiation. Meditation upon Vishnu is
-Stvic and not the meditation upon women or upon those that are hostile
-to Vishnu. The Pranava Mantra is Stvic and not the lower Kmya Mantras.
-The cleansing must be purification of self, not the mere cleansing of
-Deva houses. _Sridhara_. By these Stvic pursuits, Satva Guna prevails
-in man. When Satva prevails the whole nature becomes Stvic. The
-tendencies are all such as to lead to calmness, which is the essence of
-Satva. This is Dharma Adharma is the opposite of this. It is identified
-with such a nature as leads to distractions. Dharma is followed by
-wisdom. For when the mind is calm and tranquil, truths are reflected on
-it in their entirety and they are fully perceived. That wisdom lasts as
-long as memory lasts _i.e._ as long as Dvaita perception exists. But
-when the Gunas themselves die out, wisdom vanishes of itself, for when
-there is direct perception of Brahm as self, the knower, the known and
-knowledge become one and the same.)
-
-
-
-HOW TO WITHDRAW FROM THE OBJECTS OF THE SENSES.
-
-
-*SKANDHA XI. CHAP. 13.*
-
-Uddhava asked: --
-
-"Generally people know that the objects of the senses lead them to
-misery. How is it, O Krishna, they still follow them, like dogs, donkeys
-and goats?"
-
-Sri Krishna replied: --
-
-"When in the heart of the undiscriminating man, the false perception of
-'I' arises (with regard to body &c.), the terrible Rajas takes
-possession of the Manas, which by its origin is Stvic. Doubts and
-desires arise in the mind. The mind then dwells upon attributes (oh! how
-beautiful, what a nice thing!) and acquires a strong liking for it.
-Guided by the passions, with the senses uncontrolled, deluded by the
-strong current of Rajas, the helpless man knowingly does things that
-bear evil fruits. The mind of the wise man is also distracted by Rajas
-and Tamas. But he sleeplessly controls his mind and he finds fault (with
-his own actions). He is not attached to them. Gradually and steadfastly
-offer up your mind to Me, being wide awake, at all times, controlling
-your breath and regulating your seat and you will then be able to
-control your mind.
-
-"This is the Yoga, as taught by My disciples Sanaka and others."
-
-Uddhava asked: --
-
-"When and in what form did you teach Sanaka and others?"
-
-Sri Krishna replied: --
-
-"Sanaka and other Manas-born sons of Brahm asked their father as
-follows: -- The mind enters the Gunas (objects _i.e._ the mind naturally
-becomes attached to objects) and the Gunas (_i.e._ the objects when
-experienced) enter the mind (as desires). How can those that want to
-cross over (the objects) and to become liberated cause a separation
-between the two?
-
-"Brahm could not gauge the question in his own mind. So he meditated on
-me. I appeared before him as a Hansa. (The Swan can discriminate between
-milk and water. So the bird symbolises a discriminating sage.) The
-Brhmanas and Brahm asked: 'Who art thou?' I said as follows: --
-
-"O Brhmanas does your question relate to tm -- If so, tm is not
-many. So the question does not arise. And who will reply to whom?
-
-"If your question relates to the body, then also the elements composing
-the body being the same in all beings, and Atm being the same in all,
-your question is meaningless.
-
-"Whatever is perceived by the senses and the mind, I am that -- There is
-nothing besides Me. Rightly know this to be so.
-
-"True the mind enters the Gunas and the Gunas enter the mind. The Gunas
-and mind thus mutually blended are but the body of the Jiva, its reality
-being My own self. (If mind wedded to objects, be the essence of Jiva,
-then their separation is not possible. But the essence of Jiva is
-Brahm. Mind is only attributed to Jiva. And Jiva's connection with the
-objects is through the properties of the mind. Therefore Jiva by
-realising that it is Brahm will find out that the objects have no
-existence as far as its own self is concerned. Therefore by devotion to
-Bhagavat, Jiva completely rests in its own self. _Sridhara_. This is not
-a separation of Manas and objects, but the withdrawal of self from
-both.)
-
-"By constant pursuit of the Gunas, the mind enters the Gunas. The Gunas
-also (being turned into desires) take a firm hold of the mind. Knowing
-Me to be thy own self give up both (the objects and the mind wedded to
-them.)
-
-"Wakefulness (Jgrat), Dream (Svapna) and Dreamless sleep (Sushupti) are
-states of mind, caused by the Gunas, Jiva is beyond all these states.
-For it is the witness of all these states. The bondage caused by mind
-imparts the actions of the Gunas to tm. Therefore being fixed in Me,
-the Fourth (_i.e._ beyond the three states of consciousness), get over
-the bondage of mind. That will be the (mutual) giving up of the mind and
-the Gunas. This bondage of tm is caused by Ahankra (the sense of
-'I-ness') Know this to be the cause of all evils. Knowing this, be fixed
-in the Fourth, and give up all thoughts of _Sansra_ (_i.e._ of mind and
-of the connections caused by mind.)
-
-"So long as the idea of manifoldness is not destroyed by reasoning, man
-dreams in ignorance even in the wakeful state, just as in dream, the
-ignorant man thinks he is wakeful.
-
-"All things, other than tm are unreal. The differences made amongst
-them (such as, this is Brhmana, this is Sudra, this is Grihasth, this
-is Sanysn), the different destinations (Svarga and other Krmic
-fruits) and even Karma (action) itself are unreal, so far as tm is
-concerned.
-
-"He who throughout the constantly following stages of life (childhood,
-youth, age etc.) perceives the objects in the wakeful state, with the
-help of all the senses, he who perceives the likes of those objects in
-dream in the heart, and he who brings those perceptions to an end in
-dreamless sleep are all one and the same. For the same memory runs
-through all these states. The Lord of the senses is one and the same.
-(The outward senses perceive the wakeful state. Mind, perceives the
-dream. Buddhi perceives dreamless sleep. tm, is the Lord of all these
-senses).
-
-"Ponder well over this that the three states of mind are caused in Me by
-the Gunas, through My My. Knowing this definitely, cut asunder the
-source of all doubts (Ahankra) by the sword of wisdom sharpened by
-reasoning, the teachings of Sdhus, and the Srutis. And worship Me, that
-dwell in the heart.
-
-"Look upon this Universe as a delusion, a play of the mind. Now seen,
-now destroyed. So rapid is the succession, that it is like a whirling
-fire brand that looks circular (on account of the rapid motion, though
-it is not circular). One consciousness appears as many. The phenomenal
-existence (_Vikalpa_) caused by the threefold Guna transformations is
-but My, a dream.
-
-"Turn away your sight from this object world. Give up all desires. Be
-calm and find bliss in the perception of self. At times you will have
-experience of the objects in your daily life (for getting the
-necessaries of life). But what you have once thrown aside as unreal
-shall not be able to cause delusion in you. Till the fall of your body,
-the objects will haunt you like things of the past, stored as it were in
-memory alone. This frail body, through which he has known his real self,
-may rise or sit, may move away from its place or come back, just as
-chance will have it, but the Siddha sees it not, even as an inebriate
-person does not see the cloth he puts on.
-
-"The body waits with the Prnas and Indriyas till the _Commenced_ Karma
-exhausts itself. But being fixed in Samdhi, the knower of the truth
-does not care for the body and the object world, which are all visionary
-to him.
-
-"I said all this to the Brhmanas and came back to my own abode."
-
-
-
-BHAKTI YOGA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA XI. CHAP. 14.*
-
-"O Krishna, thou speakest of Bhakti Yoga. Others speak of other
-expedients. Are they all same or is any one of them superior to others?"
-
-Sri-Krishna replied: --
-
-"The tendencies of men are different, according to the differences in
-their nature. So different paths have been spoken of. But the regions
-(or fruits) acquired by the votaries of the other paths, and as created
-by their actions have a beginning and an end, a miserable future and an
-end in Tamas. The pleasures there are small and they are not unmixed
-with sorrow. Where is that bliss to be found in objects that is to be
-found in Me.
-
-"Fixed in Me, and finding bliss in Me, all is blissful to My votaries.
-They do not wish for universal supremacy, they do not ask for supremacy
-over Svarga, Bhr or Ptla, they do not long for Siddhis, they do not
-even ask for Mukti. Surrendering Self to Me they wish for nothing else
-but Myself. Brahm, Siva, Sankarshana, Lakshm and My own form are not
-so dear to Me, O Uddhava, as thou art to Me. I always seek my Bhaktas.
-It is they only that know what bliss they enjoy, Bhakti consumes all
-impurities, even as fire consumes the fuel. Yoga, Snkhya, Dharma, study
-of the scriptures, asceticism, or relinquishment nothing wins me so much
-as powerful Bhakti does. I am attained only by faithful Devotion. Bhakti
-purifies the Bhaktas, even though they be Chandlas by birth.
-
-"Dharma, though combined with truth and compassion, wisdom though wedded
-to asceticism, do not completely purify self, if devotion to Me is
-wanting. How can mind be purified without Bhakti. For by Bhakti the
-hairs stand on end, the heart melts away and tears of bliss run down the
-cheek. Words become choked with devotional feelings. The Bhakta weeps,
-and smiles, and sings and dances forgetting himself. Such a Bhakta (not
-only purifies self, but) he purifies the whole world.
-
-"Gold loses its impurities under fire and regains its own form. tm
-(Jiva tm) shakes off its impurities under Bhakti Yoga and regains its
-own form. As tm becomes more and more purified, by hearing and
-meditating on the sacred sayings about Me, it sees more and more of
-subtle objects, as the eye touched with collyrium does.
-
-"Think of objects and your mind will be attached to objects. Think of Me
-and your mind will be attached to Me. Therefore fix your mind on Me,
-giving up all other thoughts.
-
-"Shun from a distance the company of women and of those that keep the
-company of women. Be self controlled. Go to a solitary place, free from
-dangers and then sleeplessly meditate on Me.
-
-"There is not so much misery, so much bondage from other quarters as
-from the company of women and of those that associate with them."
-
-
-
-MEDITATION.
-
-
-*SKANDHA XI. CHAP. 14.*
-
-Uddhava asked: --
-
-"O Lotus-eyed! how to meditate on Thee! Tell me what is the nature of
-that meditation and what it is?"
-
-Sri Krishna replied: --
-
-"Be seated on an Asana (Seat), that is neither high nor low (say, a
-blanket), with your body erect and in an easy posture. Place your hands
-on the lap. Fix your gaze on the tip of the nose (in order to fix the
-mind). Purify the tracks of Prna by Puraka, Kumbhaka and Rechaka, and
-then again in the reverse way (_i.e._ first breathe in by the left
-nostril with the right nostril closed by the tip of the thumb, then
-close the left nostril by the tips of the ring finger and the little
-finger and retain the breath in both the nostrils. Then remove the tip
-of the thumb, and breathe out through the right nostril. Reverse the
-process by breathing in through the right nostril then retaining the
-breath in both the nostrils and then letting out the breath through the
-left nostril). Practise this Prnyama gradually with your senses
-controlled.
-
-"'Aum' with the sound of a bell, extends all over, from Mldhra
-upwards. Raise the 'Aum' in the heart, by means of Prna (twelve fingers
-upwards) as if it were the thread of a lotus-stalk. There let Bindu (the
-fifteenth vowel sound) be added to it. Thus practise Prnyama
-accompanied by the Pranava reciting the latter ten times. Continue the
-practice, three times a day and within a month you shall be able to
-control the vital air. The lotus of the heart, has its stalk upwards and
-the flower downwards, facing below (and it is also closed, like the
-inflorescence with bracts of the banana. _Sridhara_). Meditate on it
-however as facing upwards and full-blown, with eight petals and with the
-pericarp. On the pericarp, think of the Sun, the Moon, and Fire one
-after another. Meditate on My form (as given in the text) within the
-Fire. First Meditate on all the limbs. Then let the mind withdraw the
-senses from their objects. Then draw the concentrated mind completely
-towards Me, by means of Buddhi. Then give up all other limbs and
-concentrate your mind on one thing only My smiling face. Do not meditate
-on anything else. Then with draw the concentrated mind from that and fix
-it on Aksa. Give up that also and being fixed in Me, (as Brahm) think
-of nothing at all. You shall see Me in tm, as identical with all
-tms, even as light is identical with another light. The delusions
-about object, knowledge and action shall then completely disappear."
-
-
-
-THE SIDDHIS
-
-
-*SKANDHA XI. CHAP. 15.*
-
-When the senses and the breath are controlled and the mind is fixed on
-Me, Siddhis or powers overtake the Yogi. There are eighteen Siddhis and
-eighteen Dhrnas. Of these, eight belong to me (eight of them are
-normally the powers of shvara and they exist in a some what lesser
-degree in those that approach the state of shvara. _Sridhara_. The
-remaining ten cause the appearance of Guna _i.e._ they cause an
-excellence of Satva. _Sridhara_.)
-
- 1. _Anim_, the power of becoming as small as an atom.
- 2. _Mahim_, the power of increasing size.
-
-3. _Laghim_, the power of becoming light. These three Siddhis relate to
-the body.
-
-4. _Prpti_, to be in the relation of presiding Devas to the
-corresponding senses of all beings.
-
-5. _Prkmya_, power of enjoying and perceiving all objects seen or
-unseen.
-
-6. _sit_, control over the energies of My in svara, over the lower
-energies in other beings.
-
- 7. _Vasit_, Non-attachment to objects.
- 8. _Kmvasyit_, the power of attaining all desires.
-
-These are My eight Siddhis and they normally exist in Me.
-
- 1. The cessation of hunger and thirst.
- 2. The hearing from a distance.
- 3. Seeing from a distance.
- 4. Motion of the body with the velocity of the mind.
- 5. Assumption of any form at will.
- 6. The entering into another's body.
- 7. Death at one's own will.
- 8. Play with Deva girls.
- 9. The attainment of desired for objects.
- 10. Irresistible command.
-
-These are the ten Siddhis that relate to the Gunas. There are also five
-smaller Siddhis.
-
- 1. Knowledge of the present, past and future.
- 2. Control over the Pairs, such as heat and cold &c.
- 3. Knowledge of other's minds.
- 4. Suspending the actions of fire, sun, water, poison &c.
- 5. Invincibility.
-
-These are only illustrative of the Siddhis.
-
-Now about Dhrna or the modes of concentration of the mind.
-
-Those that fix their mind on Me as pervading the Tanmatras acquire the
-power of becoming an atom.
-
-Those that concentrate their mind on Me as pervading Mahat Tatva acquire
-_Mahima_.
-
- The object of Dhrna ... ... The power acquired
-
- The Lord pervading the atoms ... Laghima.
-
- Do. Do. Stvic Ahankra ... Prpti.
-
- Do. Do. Stra or Mahat ... Prakamya.
-
- Vishnu the Lord of the three Gunas ... sita.
-
- Nryana, the Fourth, Bhagavat ... Vasita.
-
- Nirguna Brahm (Brahm without
- attribute) ... ... ... Kmavasayita.
-
- Lord of Sveta Dvipa (White Island) ... Cessation of hunger
- and thirst.
-
- Aksa ... ... ... Distant hearing.
-
- Sun ... ... ... Distant vision.
-
- &c. &c. &c.
-
-
-
-THE VIBHTIS OR POWERS OF THE LORD.
-
-
-*SKANDHA XI. CHAP. 16.*
-
-The Sixteenth Chapter deals with the Vibhtis of the Lord, much in the
-same way as the tenth chapter of the Bhagavad Git.
-
-
-
-VARNA AND ASRAMA RULES.
-
-
-*SKANDHA XI. CHAP. 17-18.*
-
-The seventeenth and eighteenth chapters deal with Varna and srama
-rules.
-
-
-
-WHAT ONE IS TO DO FOR MOKSHA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA XI. CHAP. 19.*
-
-Jnna (knowledge), Vairgya (dispassion), Vijnna (direct knowledge),
-Sraddh (faith) Bhakti (Devotion), these are the requisites of Moksha.
-The nine (Prakriti, Purusha, Mahat. Ahankra and the five Tanmatras),
-the eleven (five Jnnendriyas, five Karmendriyas and Manas), the five
-Bhtas, the three (Gunas), that knowledge by which one knows that these
-constitute all beings and that the One underlies all these is _Jnna_.
-
-(The first training of the mind is to break up the objects into their
-component elements. Thus we can mentally resolve any object into its
-chemical elements and this Universe into a mass of homogeneous nebula.
-The process is to be carried further, till we get the Tatvas or the
-ultimate principles of the Snkhya philosophy. Then the next step is to
-realise the one Purusha as underlying all the Prkritic principles.)
-
-Vijnna is the direct knowledge of the One by itself and not as
-pervading all Prkritic forms. (Jnna is indirect knowledge and Vijnna
-is direct knowledge of Brahm).
-
-All the existing things being formed of the three Gunas have their
-growth, existence and end. What follows the transformation from one form
-into another, at all the three stages of beginning, middle and end, and
-what remains behind after the destruction of all forms -- that is the
-existing (Sat).
-
-The Vedas, direct perception, the sayings of great men and logical
-inference are the four Pramanas or evidences. The world of
-transformations does not stand the test of any of them (_i.e._ there is
-only one real existence, the existence of the transformable and
-transformed world being only relative and unreal. This is the conclusion
-arrived at from all sources. Therefore the wise man becomes
-dispassionate to all things.
-
-Transformation is the end of all actions. Therefore the wise man sees
-all the regions that may be attained by actions from that of Brahm
-downwards, as miserable and transitory even like the worlds that are
-seen. This is Vairagya or Dispassion.
-
-I have told you already of Bhakti yoga. Hear again what I say. _Sraddh_
-or faith in the nectar like sayings about Me, constant recitals about
-myself, steadiness in worshipping Me, the chanting of devotional hymns,
-the hearty performance of divine service, adoration by means of the
-body, worship of my votaries, the realisation of my existence in all
-beings, the directing of the daily actions and of the daily talks
-towards Me, the offering up of the mind to Me, the giving up of all
-desires, of all objects, of all enjoyments and of all joys for my Sake,
-the performance of Vedic karma all for Me -- by all these, Bhakti grows
-up towards Me.
-
-
-
-THE SADHANAS OR EXPEDIENTS.
-
-
-*SKANDHA XI. CHAP. 19.*
-
-Yma consists of --
-
- 1. _Ahins_ -- the non-infliction of pain.
- 2. _Satya_ -- the practice of truth.
- 3. _Asteya_ -- Not even the mental stealing of other's properties.
- 4. _Asanga_ -- Non-attachment.
- 5. _Hri_ -- Modesty.
- 6. _Asanchaya_ -- Want of storing for the future.
- 7. _Astikya_ -- faith in religion.
- 8. _Brahmacharya_ -- Abstinence.
- 9. _Mauna_ -- Silence.
- 10. _Sthairya_ -- Steadiness.
- 11. _Ksham_ -- forgiveness.
- 12. _Abhaya_ -- fearlessness.
-
-_Niyama_ Consists of
-
- 1. _Saucha_ -- bodily purity.
- 2. _Do_. -- Mental purity.
- 3. _Japa_ -- Mental repetition of Mantras or Names of deities.
- 4. _Tapas_ -- Asceticism.
- 5. _Homa_ -- Sacrificial offering.
- 6. _Sraddh_ -- faith.
- 7. _Atithya_ -- hospitality.
- 8. _Archan_ -- daily worship.
- 9. _Trthtana_ -- Wandering on pilgrimage.
- 10. _Parartheh_ -- desire for the Supreme object.
- 11. _Tushti_ -- Contentment.
- 12. _Achrya Sevana_ -- Service of the spiritual teacher.
-
-Yma and Niyama are practised by men, either for furtherance in life or
-for Moksha.
-
-_Sama_ -- is fixing the mind on Me (and not mental quietness only).
-
-_Titiksh_ -- is forbearance.
-
-_Dhriti_ -- is the restraint of the senses of taste and generation.
-
-The best _Dna_ (gift) is not to oppress any creature.
-
-_Tapas_ -- is really the giving up of desires.
-
-_Saurya_ -- or power is the control of one's own nature.
-
-_Satya_ or Truth is the practice of equality.
-
-_Rita_ -- is truth speaking that does not cause pain.
-
-_Saucha_ -- is only non-attachment to karma, but _Tyga_ is its complete
-renunciation.
-
-The wealth to be coveted for is _Dharma_. I Myself am _Yajna_, Spiritual
-teaching is the _Sacrificial gift_, _Prnyama_ is the greatest
-strength.
-
-_Bhaga_ is my Lordly state.
-
-The best attainment is devotion to Me.
-
-_Vidy_ is the removal of the idea of separateness from self.
-
-_Hr_ is the abhorrence of all unrighteous acts (and not merely
-modesty.)
-
-_Sr_ is (not merely riches but) virtues. Happiness is that which seeks
-neither happiness nor misery.
-
-Misery is nothing but longings for enjoyment.
-
-The Sage is he who knows about liberation from bondage.
-
-He is ignorant who knows the body to be self.
-
-The Path is that which leads to Me.
-
-The evil path is that which distracts the mind.
-
-The increase of Satva is Svarga (and not merely Indra Loka.)
-
-The increase of Tamas is Naraka.
-
-Guru is the friend and I am that Guru.
-
-This human body is the house.
-
-He is rich who is virtuous.
-
-He is poor who is not contented.
-
-He who has not conquered the senses is the helpless man.
-
-The Lord is he who is not attached to the objects.
-
-He is a slave who is attached to them.
-
-
-
-THE THREE PATHS: KARMA, JNNA AND BHAKTI.
-
-
-*SKANDHA XI. CHAP. 20.*
-
-Uddhava said: --
-
-"Karma is to be performed and Karma is not to be performed -- both are
-Thy injunctions in the Vedas. The Vedas speak of merits and demerits in
-connection with Karma. They speak of Varna and srama, of differences in
-time, space, age and objects, of Svarga and Naraka.
-
-"The sense of right and wrong is not innate but it is acquired from the
-scriptures, and the same scriptures undermine all ideas of difference.
-All this is confounding to me."
-
-Shri Krishna replied: --
-
-"I have spoken of three paths leading to the attainment of Moksha by men
--- Jnna, Karma and Bhakti Yogas. There is no other means what so ever
-of attaining Moksha. Jnna Yoga is for those that are disgusted with the
-performance of Karma and so give it up.
-
-"Karma Yoga is for those that are not disgusted with the performance of
-Karma but are attached to it.
-
-"He who perchance becomes fond of what is said or spoken of Me, but has
-no aversion for Karma nor has any undue attachment to it is fit for
-Bhakti Yoga.
-
-"Perform Karma so long as you do not feel disgust for it or as long as
-you are not drawn by love for me. True to your duties, perform Yajnas
-but without any selfish desires. Do not perform prohibited Karma. Then
-you shall cross the limits of both Svarga and Naraka.
-
-"By the performance of one's own duties, the purified man may acquire
-pure wisdom (Jnna) and Bhakti.
-
-"The dwellers of Svarga wish for the human body and so the dwellers of
-Naraka. For that body is a means to the attainment of of Jnna and
-Bhakti both, not so the Svarga body or Naraka body.
-
-"The far-sighted man does not wish for Svarga or Naraka. He does not
-even wish for human existence. For connection with the body causes
-selfish distractions.
-
-"The sage knows the body as leading to desired for ends. But he realises
-at the same time its transitory character. He therefore loses no time in
-striving for Moksha before the approach of death. Even so the bird loses
-all attachment for its nest and flies away free and happy before the man
-who strikes at the tree succeeds in felling it.
-
-"The human body which is the primal source of all attainments is a well
-built boat, so hard to secure and so cheap when once attained. The Guru
-is at the helm of this boat, and I am the favorable wind that drives it.
-The man that does not cross the ocean of births with such a boat is a
-killer of self.
-
-"_Jnna_: -- When a man feels disgust for karma and becomes
-dispassionate and when his senses are controlled, he should practise
-concentration of mind.
-
-"When in the act of concentration, the mind suddenly goes astray and
-becomes unsettled, you should bring it back under the control of self,
-with unremitting efforts, after allowing it to go in its wandering
-course a little.
-
-"Never neglect however to check the course of the mind with your Prnas
-and senses all controlled. With the help of Stvic Buddhi bring the mind
-under the control of self.
-
-"This control of the mind is the highest yoga. The horseman slackens the
-reins at first but never lets go the reins. Reflect on the creative
-manifestation of all objects and then the contrary process of their
-dissolution, according to the Snkhya method. Do this till the mind
-attains calm.
-
-"By cultivating a sense of disgust, by the growth of dispassion, by
-constant pondering over the teachings of the Guru, the mind gives up its
-delusion.
-
-"By practising Yma and other ways of Yoga, by discrimination of self
-and by worshipping Me, the mind is able to think of the Supreme.
-
-"If by loss of mental balance, the Yogi does some improper act he should
-burn up the impurity by Yoga alone, but not by any other means (not by
-expiatory rites. _Sridhara_)
-
-"Adherence to the particular path of one's own following is the right
-thing. People have been taught to distinguish between right and wrong,
-not because the acts are not all impure by their very nature but because
-the distinction is necessary to regulate the acts themselves with a view
-to cause a final abandonment of all attachments to them". (It may be
-said that according to the scriptures, Nitya Karma (acts ordained to be
-daily performed) and Naimittika Karma (acts ordained to be occasionally
-performed) purify the mind. Hence they are _right_ (_guna_). The killing
-of animals and such other acts make the mind impure. Hence they are
-_wrong_ (_dosha_). Expiatory acts (Pryaschitta) are required to be
-performed in order to remove the consequences of wrong acts. Therefore
-Pryaschitta is a right thing (_guna_). How can impurities be destroyed
-by means of Yoga then and not by means of Pryaschitta: therefore it is
-said that what is called Guna (right) and Dosha (wrong) by injunctions
-and prohibitions, is only a regulation of acts. The purport is this. The
-impurities of a man are not the outcome of his own inclinations. Man is
-impure through his natural tendencies. It is not possible for him all on
-a sudden to have disinclination for all actions. Therefore "Do this,"
-"Do not do this," these injunctions and prohibitions only put a
-restriction upon the inclinations of a man and by this means, they lead
-to disinclination. The Yogis have no inclinations. The rules of
-Pryaschitta are therefore not meant for them. _Sridhara_.)
-
-Bhakti: -- "He who has reverential faith in all that is said about Me,
-and who feels disgust for all actions, who knows that desires are
-identical with misery, but is yet in-capable of renouncing them, such a
-man should worship Me, with sincere devotion and firm faith. Though
-gratifying his desires, he should not have any attachment for them,
-knowing that they lead to misery in the end. Those that constantly
-worship Me according to Bhakti yoga as already expounded by Me, have all
-the desires of their heart destroyed as I myself dwell in their heart.
-The bondage is broken asunder, doubts all cease to exist, the
-accumulated actions fade away, when I, the tm of all, am seen. My
-Bhakta speedily attains every thing that is attained by other means,
-Svarga, Moksha or even My own abode, if he has any desire for any of
-these. But My Bhaktas who are solely devoted to Me do not desire any
-thing even if it be offered by Me, not even final liberation. They are
-beyond the limits of Guna and Dosha."
-
-
-
-GUNA AND DOSHA OR RIGHT AND WRONG
-
-
-*SKANDHA XI. CHAP. 21.*
-
-Those who do not follow the Paths of Bhakti, Jnna and Karma, but who
-only seek paltry desires become subject to rebirths [For those that are
-matured in Jnna and Bhakti, there is neither Guna (right) nor Dosha
-(wrong). For those that practise Disinclination, the performance of
-Nitya and Naimittika Karma is Guna, for it leads to the purification of
-the mind. The non-performance of such Karma and the performance of
-prohibited Karma are Dosha, for they give rise to impurities of the
-mind. Pryaschitta counteracts such Dosha, and therefore it is Guna. For
-those pure men that are fixed in the Path of Jnna, the practice of
-Jnna is Guna; Bhakti is Guna to them that are fixed in the path of
-Bhakti. What is opposed to Jnna and Bhakti is Dosha to the followers of
-those two Paths. All this has been said before. Now Guna and Dosha are
-detailed for those that do not follow the Paths, but seek their selfish
-ends. _Sridhara_]. Devotion to the path of one's following is Guna. The
-reverse is Dosha. This is the proper definition of Guna and Dosha (Guna
-and Dosha are relative terms. They do not appertain to the thing itself.
-_Sridhara_).
-
-Purity (Sddhi) or Impurity (Asddhi), Right (Guna) or Wrong (Dosha),
-Auspicious (Sbha) or Inauspicious (Asbha) are terms applied to the
-same objects, in relation to religion (Dharma), Society (Vyavahara) and
-living (Ytr), respectively.
-
-I have explained chra (rules of life) for those that want to be guided
-by Dharma (Sanctional religion). (Shri Krishna refers here to the works
-of Manu and other Smriti writers).
-
-The body of all beings is composed of the five elements (earth, water
-&c). They are all ensouled by tm. Though men are all equal, the Vedas
-give different names and forms to their bodies (saying this is Brhmana,
-this is Sudra, this is Grihasth, this is Sanys) with a view to do
-good to them. (The object is to put a limit to the natural inclinations
-and thereby to secure Dharma, Artha, Kma and Moksha. _Sridhara_).
-Similarly classification is made of time, space and other things, solely
-with the object of regulating actions (Karma.) Thus those lands are
-impure where the black deer do not roam (Details are not given for which
-read the original).
-
-"Those that perform Yajna attain Svarga." Sayings like these do not
-speak of final bliss. They are only tempting words really meant for the
-attainment of Moksha, just like words said to a child to induce him to
-take medicine (The father says; "Eat this Nimba -- a bitter drug. I
-shall give you this sweet meat." The child takes the medicine. But the
-sweet meat is not what he really gets, for his real gain is recovery
-from disease).
-
-From their very birth, mortals are attached to some objects of desire,
-to their lives and powers and to their own people. But these are only
-sources of misery in the future. Why should the Vedas then teach
-attachment to such things? Some wrong-minded people say so without
-knowing the purport of the Vedas. They are deluded by the performance of
-fire sacrifices, and they resort to Pitri Yna (_i.e._ they are drawn to
-rebirths on the Earth after temporary enjoyment of Svarga). They do not
-know their own abode, which am I as seated in their heart, from whom the
-universe proceeds. Not knowing the real meaning of the Vedas, they
-worship Indra and other Devas and perform Yajnas at which animals are
-sacrificed. Par, Pasyanti and Madhyam remain deep and unfathomable
-like the ocean and only Vaikhari becomes manifest in the Vedas
-originating in Pranava and appearing through the letters of the alphabet
-and the Metres. Even that Vaikhari is not properly understood by men.
-(The Vedas form the sound manifestation of shvara. That sound has four
-divisions. _Par_, which finds manifestation only in Prna, _Pasyanti_,
-which finds manifestation in the mind, _Madhyam_ which finds
-manifestation in the Indriyas, and Vaikhari which finds manifestation in
-articulate expression. Those who have mental vision can only find out
-the first three. But the Vedas as expressed in language are also
-difficult to understand.) Further details are given, which are not
-reproduced.
-
-
-
-THE TATVAS.
-
-
-*SKANDHA XI. CHAP. 22.*
-
-Uddhava asked: -- "How many Tatvas (elemental principles) are there? The
-Rishis give the number differently."
-
-Sri Krishna replied: --
-
-"The discussion about the number is useless. The principles are
-interpenetrating. Their order and their number are therefore differently
-understood."
-
-Uddhava asked: --
-
-"Prakriti and Purusha though different by themselves are interdependent.
-They are never seen separately. tm is seen in Prakriti (body) and
-Prakriti is seen in tm (Where is then the difference between body and
-tm?)
-
-"This is my doubt."
-
-Sri Krishna replied: --
-
-"Prakriti and Purusha are essentially different."
-
-
-
-PRAKRITI AND PURUSHA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA XI. CHAP. 22.*
-
-(1). _Prakriti_ is subject to manifestation.
-
-(2). It is subject to transformation.
-
-(3). It consists of the transformations of the Gunas.
-
-(4). It is various, -- broadly speaking threefold, Adhytma, Adhi-bhta
-and Adhi-daiva.
-
-(5). It is not self manifest.
-
-tm is one, immutable and self manifest.
-
-Ahankra is at the root of all doubt and delusion. They last as long as
-the mind is turned away from me.
-
-
-
-RE-INCARNATION.
-
-
-*SKANDHA XI. CHAP. 22.*
-
-Uddhava asked: --
-
-"Those that are turned away from Thee take on and give up bodies. Tell
-me something about rebirth."
-
-Sri Krishna replied: --
-
-"The mind of men imprinted with karma moves with the five senses from
-body to body. tm (under the denomination of 'I') accompanies the mind.
-
-"The mind (after death) thinks of such seen and unseen objects as the
-karma of men places before it. It awakes (unto those objects, it thinks
-of) and fades away (in respect of previous objects). The memory
-(connecting the present with the past) dies away in consequence.
-
-"When one loses all thoughts of one's body on account of close
-application to another object (body), through some cause or other, that
-utter forgetfulness is his death." (By karma, man gets after his
-so-called death either a deva body, or a body of inflictions. In the
-former case, it is through pleasure and desire and in the latter case,
-through fear and sorrow, that the Jiva utterly forgets his former body.
-That is the death of the Jiva who used to identify himself with the
-former body and not the destruction of Jiva as of the body. _Sridhara_.
-
-The Deva-body is the phenomenal basis of the Jiva in Svarga Loka. The
-body of inflications is the astral or Kmic body, in Bhta, Preta and
-Pischa Loka, where the Jiva undergoes inflictions. The Jiva identifies
-itself with these new bodies or new states in such a way as to forget
-completely its former physical body. The connection with the former body
-is thus completely cut off in the mind. This is the death of the Jiva in
-relation to its previous body.)
-
-"The birth of a Jiva is the acceptance of a body as one's own self. It
-is even like dream or fancy. In dream or fancy, a man does not know his
-present self as the former self. The mind by its application to a new
-body causes a birth into that body, and the ideas of good, bad and
-indifferent crop up in self.
-
-"Though a father may have neither friend nor enemy, he is affected by
-the connections formed by his vicious son, even so it is with tm.
-Growth and decay are happening every moment in the body. But they are
-hardly perceptible owing to the extreme subtlely of time.
-
-"The burning lamp, the flowing current, the ripening fruit, pass through
-stages, as all beings also pass through the stages of childhood, youth
-and age. We say it is the same fire, it is the same water (though the
-particles of fire and water are continually changing.) So we say, it is
-the same man. The understanding and the words of ignorant men are all
-confounding (for they speak and think assuming that the same body
-continues). But even the ignorant man does not acquire birth or death,
-by Karma engendered by self, for the self is immortal and the notion of
-birth and death is itself a delusion with reference to self. Fire, as an
-element lasts through out the Kalpa. But it seems to come into existence
-or to become extinguished. Fecundation, foetal state, birth, childhood,
-grown up childhod, youth, ripeness, age and death are the nine states of
-the body. These states of the body which is other than self are only
-fancies of the mind (so far as self is concerned). Some accept them as
-their own, by contact with Gunas and some reject them to some extent (by
-discriminating knowledge). From the death of the body inherited from the
-father and the birth of another child body, one can infer the birth and
-death of his body only, he the knower not being affected by either birth
-or death. The seer of the growth and decay of the tree is different from
-the tree itself, so the seer of the different states of the body is
-different from the body itself. One is bound down to the wheel of
-rebirths, by want of discrimination. One becomes Deva or Rishi by the
-action of Satva, Asura or man by the action of Rajas and Bhta or animal
-by the action of Tamas. As a man seeing the performance of singers and
-dancers involuntarily imitates them (in the mind) even so tm follows
-the actions of Buddhi. The tree seems to move when the water is moving.
-The earth seems to roll when the eyes are rolling. Births and rebirths
-are as unreal to tm as are dreams but they have an existence even as
-objects in dream have an existence so long as the mind thinks of those
-objects.
-
-"Whatever others may say or do unto you, do not care the least about
-that, but with single minded devotion restore self by self."
-
-Uddhava said: --
-
-"Human nature is human nature, O Lord. Hew can one bear all that is said
-or done by the impious?"
-
-
-
-FORBEARANCE.
-
-
-*SKANDHA XI. CHAP, 23.*
-
-Sri Krishna said: --
-
-"In days of yore, there was a wealthy Brhmana in the Malava regions. He
-earned money by the evil ways of the world, but did not spend any thing
-on charity. In time the wealth was all gone. He repented and felt
-disgust for wealth. He renounced the world and became a wandering
-Bhikshu. He went to villages for alms. People called him all sorts of
-names -- thief, hypocrite and so on. Some pelted him, others abused him,
-others put him to chains and confined him.
-
-"He bore all this with perfect calm. This is how he used to reason
-within himself: --
-
-"These men, the Devas, self, the planets, Karma and Kla (periodicity)
-none of them is the cause of my happiness or misery. Mind is the one
-cause, which causes the wheel of births to move. They make friends and
-enemies, who do not conquer the mind. The connection with the body is
-only an act of the mind. Deluded men however think, this is my body and
-they go astray.
-
-"One man can not be the cause of grief and joy to another. tm in all
-men is not the doer. All acts proceed from the gross and the subtle
-body. If the tooth bites the tongue, who should you be angry at?
-
-"If the Devas (the Adhidevas) be the cause of sorrow, it is not their
-tm that is so but their bodily transformations. And the Devas (who
-guide the senses) are the same in all beings. If one limb causes pain to
-another limb, who should be the object of anger?
-
-"If self is the cause of joy and sorrow, then you have not to look to
-the outside world. But every thing else besides tm is only a seeming
-existence. Therefore there is no real existence of any cause of joy or
-grief and there is no joy or grief.
-
-"If the planets by their position at birth bring about joys and sorrows,
-then no body is to blame for that. And the planetary Purusha is separate
-from the bodies of the planets. There is none to be angry at. Karma can
-not be the cause of Joy and sorrow. Karma has its sphere in which there
-is both a conscious and an unconscious element. The unconscious element
-undergoes transformation and the conscious element in search for the
-desired object leads to action. But the body is absolutely unconscious.
-And Purusha (or Self) in man is absolutely conscious. There is no root
-of Karma either in body or in Purusha.
-
-"_Kla_ is part of tm, for Kla is an aspect of shvara. Fire does not
-destroy its spark, snow does not destroy its flakes.
-
-"One who is awakened to his real self has fear from no one else. Purusha
-has no connection with the pairs of opposites." (Cold and heat,
-happiness and misery &c.)
-
-
-
-SANKHYA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA XI. CHAP. 24.*
-
-"There is only one perception and one undivided object of perception,
-when there are no Yugas (i.e. in Pralaya), in Satya Yuga, as well as for
-men skilful in discrimination, that object of perception is Brahmn, the
-absolute Truth, beyond the reach of worlds and of mind. I became two
-fold, by means of My. Of the two one is Prakriti consisting of causes
-and effects. And the other is Purusha.
-
-"Following the Krmic record of Jivas, I disturbed Prakriti, and Satva,
-Rajas and Tamas became manifest. The Gunas gave rise to Sutra or Thread
-(which represents Kriy Sakti). Mahat (Jnna Sakti) is not separate from
-Sutra (Sutra and Mahat form one Tatva. It is two-fold, on account of its
-double aspect of Jnna and Kriy or knowledge and action).
-
-"Ahankra is the transformation of Mahat. It is three-fold, Stvic or
-Vaikric, Rjasic or Taijasa and Tmasic.
-
-"The Adhi-daivas and Manas came from Stvic Ahankra, and the 5
-Tanmtras from Tmasic Ahankra.. The five Mah bhutas came from the
-five Tanmtras.
-
-"Prompted by Me, all these principles united together to form the Egg
-which was My own abode. I incarnated in that Egg which was immersed in
-the (Pralayic) water (as Sri Nryana or Virt Purusha).
-
-"Out of my navel grew the Lotus called the Universe. Brahm was
-manifested in that Lotus.
-
-"He brought into manifestation the Lokas (Bhr, Bhuvar &c.,) and the
-Lokaplas.
-
-"Svar was the abode of the Devas, Bhuvar of the Bhtas, Bhr of men, the
-higher Lokas of the Siddhas and the Lower Lokas of the Asuras and Ngas.
-
-"All actions (Karma) bear fruits in the Trilok. Mahar, Jana and Tapas
-are attained by Yoga, Tapas and Renunciation. My abode (Vaikuntha, which
-is beyond the Seven Lokas) is attained by Bhakti Yoga.
-
-"All beings in this Universe wedded to karma are made by Me, who as Kla
-am the Dispenser of all karma, to merge out of or to dive down in the
-flow of Gunas (_i.e._ they are made to go up to the higher Lokas or to
-come down to the lower Lokas).
-
-"All things big or small, thick or thin are pervaded by Prakriti and
-Purusha.
-
-"That which is at the beginning and at the end of a thing is also at the
-middle, as in the case of ornaments and earth-pots, the intervening
-transformations having a separate existence only for the sake of
-conventional use (thus the ornaments of gold are called by different
-names only for temporary uses. But they are gold when the forms are made
-and destroyed. The forms are all transitory and the ornaments are
-essentially gold).
-
-"That is only Real which gives rise to the original transformation,
-which is at the beginning and at the end. Prakriti the material cause,
-Purusha -- that pervades Prakriti and Kla or periodicity which causes
-disturbance in the Gunas -- these are three in one and I am that
-three-fold Brahm. The creative process flows on in order of succession
-without a break. The multifarious creation unfolds itself to serve the
-purposes of the jivas and it lasts so long as the period of Preservation
-continues and so long as shvara looks at it.
-
-"The order is reversed in Pralaya, and transformations are merged in the
-principles from which they proceeded. The body merges in to the food
-grains. The food grains merge in to the roots of plants. The roots merge
-into the earth, The earth merges into smell, smell into water, water
-into Taste, Taste into fire, fire into Form, Form in to Air, Air into
-Touch, touch into Aksa and Aksa into sound.
-
-"The Indriyas merge into the Adhi-daivas. The Adhi-daivas merge into the
-Manas. Manas merges into Ahankra.
-
-"Ahankra merges into Mahat (_i.e._ gives up the unconscious portion and
-becomes Jiva Sakti and Kriy Sakti itself. _Sridhara_.)
-
-"Mahat merges into the Gunas.
-
-"The Gunas merge into unmanifested Prakriti. Prakriti merges into Kla.
-Kla merges into Jiva. Jiva merges into tm. tm rests in self.
-
-"When these processes are meditated on, there is no delusion."
-
-
-
-SATVA RAJAS AND TAMAS.
-
-
-*SKANDHA XI. CHAP. 25.*
-
-"_Sama_ or Control of the mind, _Dama_ or Control of the Senses,
-forbearance, discrimination, tapas, truthfulness, compassion, memory,
-renunciation, contentment, faith, shame and charitableness are the
-attributes proper of _Satva_. Selfish desire, Selfish exertion, pride,
-discontent, variety, selfish-invocation of the Devas, idea of
-separateness, material enjoyment, love of excitement, love of fame,
-derision, power and violence, are the attributes proper of _Rajas_.
-
-"Anger, greed, untruthfulness, cruelty, begging, parading of religion,
-languor, quarrel, repentance, delusion, grief, dejection, sleep,
-helplessness, fear and indolence are the attributes proper of _Tamas_.
-
-"The sense of I-ness and My-ness is produced by the mixture of the three
-Gunas (I have Sama, selfish desire and anger. My Sama, selfish desire
-and anger. Thus _I_ and _My_ are common to all the three Gunas.
-_Sridhara_) All our dealings having the elements of Manas (Stvic), the
-Tanmtras (Tmasic), the Indriyas and the Prnas (Rjasic) in them,
-proceed from a mixture of the three Gunas. Devotion to Dharma (Stvic),
-Kma (Rjasic) and Artha (Tmasic), that bears the fruits of faith
-(Stvic), attachment (Rjasic) and wealth (Tmasic) is also based on a
-mixture of the Gunas.
-
-"The performance of religion for the gratification of desires (Kmya
-Dharma which is Rjasic), the performance of the duties of married life
-(Grihasta Dharma which is Tmasic) and the performance of the daily and
-occasional duties assigned to one's position in life (Svadharma which is
-Stvic) are based on a union of the three Gunas. Man is Stvic, when he
-has got the Stvic attributes. He is Rjasic when he has got the Rjasic
-attributes. He is Tmasic when he has got the Tmasic attributes.
-
-"When a man or woman worships Me with unselfish devotion and by the
-performance of duties, he or she is Stvic.
-
-"The person who worships Me, for the attainment of desires is Rjasic.
-
-"The person who worships Me with a view to do injury to others is
-Tmasic.
-
-"Satva, Rajas and Tamas are attributes that grow in the minds of jivas,
-they are not My attributes.
-
-"When Satva prevails over the other two Gunas, man acquires
-religiousness, wisdom, and other attributes, as also happiness. When
-Rajas prevails, it causes distraction, attachment and a sense of
-separateness. Man acquires karma, fame and wealth. But he becomes
-miserable.
-
-"When Tamas prevails, delusion, inaction and ignorance follow.
-
-"When the Mind attains calm, the senses become abstemious, the body free
-from fear and the mind free from attachments, Satva grows up and makes
-it easy to perceive Me.
-
-"When the mind becomes distracted by actions, and desires multiply, when
-the senses of action become disordered and the mind always wanders away,
-Rajas has its hold over man.
-
-"When the mind can not grasp, when it languishes, when even desires do
-not crop up, and there is indolence, melancholy and ignorance, they all
-proceed from Tamas.
-
-"With Satva, the Deva element prevails, with Rajas, the Asura element
-prevails and with Tamas, the Rkshas element prevails.
-
-"The waking is from Satva, dream from Rajas and deep sleep from Tamas.
-
-"By Satva, people go higher and higher up, by Rajas they move about in
-the middle, and by Tamas they move lower down.
-
-"Satva takes one to Svarga Loka, Rajas to human Loka and Tamas to
-Naraka. Those who are void of Gunas attain Me.
-
-"Action that is offered up to Me or that is unselfish is Stvic. Selfish
-action is Rajasa. Heartless action is Tamasa.
-
-"Stvic wisdom is that which relates to tm, as separate from the body.
-
-"Rjasic is half perceived wisdom. Tmasic is wisdom relating to the
-material universe.
-
-"Wisdom centred in Me is Nirguna or without Gunas.
-
-"Stvics like to reside in the forest. Rjasics in human habitations and
-Tmasics in gambling houses. Houses where I am worshipped are beyond all
-the Gunas. Births are caused by Guna and Karma. Those who conquer these
-become devoted to Me and attain my state."
-
-
-
-COMPANY.
-
-
-*SKANDHA XI. CHAP. 26.*
-
-"King Pururavas was forsaken by Urvasi. He then thought within himself
-what the body of a woman was composed of, where its beauty lay, and the
-origin and the end of that body. 'Therefore' said he 'wise men should
-not associate with women or those that are addicted to women. By contact
-of the senses with their objects, mind gets disturbed, not otherwise.
-What you have not seen or heard of before can not disturb your mind. Let
-not the senses indulge in objects and mind will attain calm.' Keep
-company with Sdhus.
-
-"Give up bad company. Acquire from the Sdhus devotion to Me and you
-shall ultimately attain Moksha."
-
-
-
-KRIYA YOGA AND IDOL WORSHIP.
-
-
-*SKANDHA XI. CHAP. 27.*
-
-(The details will not be interesting to the general reader).
-
-
-
-JNNA YOGA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA XI. CHAP. 28.*
-
-"Do not either praise or blame other men and their actions. Look upon
-all as one, pervaded by the same Prakriti and the same Purusha. By
-criticising others, the mind is directed to a false channel and it
-deviates from the right path. What is good or what is bad of Dvaita? By
-direct perception, reasoning, self intuition, and scriptural teachings,
-know every thing in this manifested Universe to have a beginning and an
-end and to be thus unreal. Therefore free yourself from all attachments.
-(The ways of acquiring discriminative knowledge are then given in
-eloquent terms for which read the original).
-
-"Clearing up all doubts by discrimination, the sage should be fixed in
-the bliss of self, having abstained from every thing else.
-
-"The body of gross matter is not tm. The Indriyas, their guiding
-Devas, Manas, Buddhi, Chitta and Ahankra are not tm. The Bhtas, the
-Tanmatras and Prakriti are not tm. These do not affect the seer.
-Whether the clouds gather or disperse, what is that to the Sun.
-
-"Aksa is not affected by the attributes of air, fire, water and earth
-nor by the changes of seasons.
-
-"The immutable is not affected by the impurities of Satva, Rajas and
-Tamas, however often they may cause the birth and rebirth of the Ahan
-principle.
-
-"But still (the unliberated sage) should avoid contact with the Gunas.
-He should by firm devotion to Me, cast off all attachments and all
-passions. When the disease is not properly treated, it gives trouble
-again and again. So when attachments are not completely removed and
-Karma is not counteracted they trouble the imperfect Yogi.
-
-"The yogis that deviate from the path on account of obstacles that are
-spread out for them by the Devas through men (For the Sruti says: --
-"The Devas do not like that men should know all this." _Sridhara_) are
-re-united to the path of Yoga in a better birth through the practices of
-their former birth.
-
-"The immature Yogi may be overpowered by diseases and other grievances
-of the body. He should overcome some of them by Yoga concentration (by
-concentration on the Moon, the Sun and others he should overcome heat
-cold &c., _Sridhara_), others by prescribed postures accompanied by
-retention of breath (diseases caused by gaseous derangement are to be
-overcome by postures, accompanied by retention of breath), and some
-others by Tapas, Mantra and medicine. He should overcome some evils by
-meditating on Me, by taking My name, and by making rehearsals about Me.
-He should overcome other evils by following the lords of Yoga.
-
-"Some practise these to keep themselves young and free from diseases,
-solely with the object of attaining some Siddhis. This is not approved
-of by good people. The effort is fruitless. The body has an end. True in
-following the path of Yoga, the body sometimes becomes free from
-diseases and infirmities. But the Yogi should put no faith on these
-Siddhis.
-
-"When the Yogi gives up all desires, becomes fixed in self-bliss, and
-makes Me his all in all, he is not overcome by obstacles."
-
-
-
-BHAKTI YOGA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA XI. CHAP. 29.*
-
-Uddhava said: --
-
-"This path of Yoga seems to Me to be difficult of pursuit. Tell me O
-Achyuta, some means by which man may attain perfection without such
-exertion. Generally those that try to concentrate their mind become
-tired at last, being unsuccessful in their attempts. The discriminating
-sage has recourse to Thy lotus-feet, the fountain of all bliss. Tell me
-the path that leads to Thee."
-
-Shri Krishna replied: --
-
-"Do all actions for Me and bear me in mind as much as you can. Offer up
-the mind and all thoughts to Me. Be attached to the duties of
-Bhgavatas. Live in sacred lands, where my Bhaktas dwell. Follow what
-they do -- see Me in all beings as well as in self, pure as Aksa. With
-the eye of pure wisdom, look upon all beings as my existence and respect
-them as such. Brhmana or Chandla, stealer or giver, big as the sun or
-small as his ray, tender hearted or cruel, the sage must look upon all
-alike. Then he shall have neither rivalry, nor jealousy nor reproach for
-others. His egoism shall also be gone. Mind not the ridicule of friends,
-mind not the bodily differences that may cause a feeling of shame, but
-salute even horses, Chandlas, cows and asses. As long as you do not
-learn to see Me in all beings, do not give up this practice in speech,
-body and mind. There is not the least chance of failure in the Bhgavata
-Path. Even what is otherwise fruitless becomes a Dharma, when it is
-unselfishly offered up to Me. There is no higher wisdom, no higher
-cleverness than this that the Real is attained by the Unreal, the
-Immortal is attained by what is mortal. This is the essence of Brahm
-Vidy.
-
-"Now that you have learned all this give it unto those that are
-deserving.
-
-"Go Uddhava now to Badari srama and follow what I have said."
-
-
-
-THE END.
-
-
-*SKANDHA XI. CHAP. 30.*
-
-Uddhava went to Badari. Sri Krishna advised the Yadus to leave Dvrak.
-"Let the females, children, and the aged go to Sankha-Uddhara and let us
-go to Prabhsa." The Yadu chiefs went to Prabhsa. They drank the wine
-called Maireya and got intoxicated. They quarreled and fought with one
-another. They snatched the fatal reeds and killed one another. Rma went
-to the Sea-side and by practicing Samdhi, left this world. All was now
-over. Sri Krishna sat under an Asvatha tree (religious fig). A huntsman
-named Jara took Him for a deer and pierced him with a spear, formed of
-the fatal pestle.
-
-The huntsman then saw Krishna bearing four hands and became terrified.
-"Fear not" said Sri Krishna "you shall go to heaven." The chariot came
-down from the heaven and took up the huntsman.
-
-Daruka, the charioteer of Sri Krishna traced Him to the spot.
-
-Sri Krishna asked him to inform all friends at Dvrak of the death of
-the Yadu chiefs, the disappearance of Rma and of His own state. "Do not
-remain any more at Dvrak, for the Sea shall swallow it up. Let our
-parents and all others go to Indraprastha under the protection of
-Arjuna."
-
-Daruka saluted Krishna and went away.
-
-The Garuda marked chariot of Sri Krishna came from high above. Brahm
-and all other Devas gathered to witness the scene.
-
-The Lord disappeared from the earth and truth, Dharma, forbearance,
-glory and Lakshm all followed Him.
-
-There was great rejoicing in the heavens. The Devas sang and flowers
-rained.
-
-Daruka gave the information to Vsudeva and Ugrasena. All came to see
-the place of the occurrence. Vsudeva died of grief. Some of the ladies
-followed their husbands to death. Those that remained were escorted by
-Arjuna to Indraprastha. He installed Vajra as the successor of the Yadu
-chiefs. The Pndavas made Parikshit their successor and left
-Indraprastha for the Final Journey.
-
-*END OF THE ELEVENTH SKANDHA.*
-
-
-
-
-THE TWELFTH SKANDHA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA XII. CHAP. 2.*
-
-When the present Kali Yuga will be about to end, Bhagavn will incarnate
-as KALKI. He will take birth at Sambhal as the son of Vishnu-Yasas.
-
-On His advent, Satya Yuga will make its appearance. The Sun, the Moon
-and the Jupiter will then enter together the constellation of Pushy.
-(Jupiter enters the constellation of Pushy in Cancer every twelve
-years, and there may be a conjunction of that planet with the Sun and
-the Moon on new Moon nights, but the text here means the _entering
-together_ of the three. _Sridhara_.)
-
-One thousand one hundred and fifteen years will expire from the birth of
-Rj Parikshit to the beginning of King Nanda's reign. (But in the
-detailed account given in the Bhgavata Purna, the period comes up to
-1448 years, as shewn by Sridhara.)
-
-Of the Seven Rishis (forming the constellation of the Great Bear), the
-two that are first seen to rise above the horizon have through their
-middle point a correspondence with some constellation (in the Zodiac).
-The Rishis remain united to that constellation for one hundred mortal
-years.
-
-At present (_i.e._ when Sukadeva was reciting Bhgavata to Rj
-Parikshit), the Rishis are united to Magh.
-
-The form of the Great Bear or the constellation of the Seven Rishis is
-given below.
-
- 6 5 X
- X X 1
- X X X X
- 7 4 3 2
-
-Sridhara gives the following names:
-
-No. 1 is Marichi.
-
-No. 2 is Vasishtha with Arundhti.
-
-No. 3 is Angiras.
-
-No. 4 is Atri.
-
-No. 5 is Pulastya.
-
-No. 6 is Pulaha.
-
-No. 7 is Kratu.
-
-"Such being the configuration of the Rishis, the two that are first seen
-to rise above the horizon are Pulaha and Kratu. The longitudinal line
-passing through the middle point of the line joining them crosses some
-one of the 27 constellations, Asvini, Bharani and others. The Rishis
-have their position in that constellation for one hundred years."
-_Sridhara_.
-
-So soon as the Krishna named divine body of Vishnu ascended the heavens,
-Kali entered this Loka. As long as the Lord of Lakshm touched this
-Earth with His lotus feet, Kali could not overtake the planet. ( While
-Sri Krishna was still on this Earth, Kali appeared in its Sandhy or
-Dawn. When Sri Krishna disappeared, the Sandhy period was over, and the
-period proper of Kali set in. _Sridhara_).
-
-The Yuga shall become darker and darker, as the Seven Rishis will pass
-on from Magh to Prva-shdh, _i.e._, till the period of king Nanda.
-(The darkness will go on increasing till the reign of king Pradyotana.
-It will still go on increasing very much till the reign of king Nanda.
-_Sridhara_.
-
-This gives us a cycle of 1,000 years. The line of the Ecliptic is
-divided into 27 constellations, which form the 12 signs of the Zodiac.
-Each sign of the Zodiac contains 9 parts of these constellations, if
-each constellation be divided into four parts.
-
-Thus Aries contains Asvini, Bharani and 1/4 Krittika;
-
-Taurus contains 3/4 Krittika, Rohini and 1/2 Mrigasiras;
-
-Gemini contains 1/2 Mrigasiras, rdr and 3/4 Punarvasu;
-
-Cancer contains 1/4 Punarvasu, Pushy and Ashlesha;
-
-Leo contains Magha, Prva Falguni and 1/4 Uttar Falguni;
-
-Virgo contains 3/4 Uttara Falguni, Hast, and 1/2 Chitra;
-
-Libra contains Chitra, Svti and 3/4 Viskh;
-
-Scorpio contains 1/4 Viskh, Anurdh and Jyeshth;
-
-Sagittarius contains Mla, Prva shdha and 1/4 Uttara shdh;
-
-Capricornus contains 3/4 Uttara shdh, Sravan, and 1/2 Dhanishtha;
-
-Aquarius contains 1/2 Dhanishth, Sata-bhish, and 3/4 Prva Bhdrapada;
-
-Pisces contains 1/4 Prva Bhdrapada, Uttara Bhdrapada and Revati.
-
-Abhijit is included in Uttarshdh and Sravana. From Magh to Prva
-shdh there are eleven constellations. This gives a cycle of 1,000
-years.
-
-The reference to king Nanda's reign leaves no doubt as to the cycle
-being one of 1,000 years, for the period is given in this very chapter
-as 1,115 years.
-
-The lines of Kshatriya kings have been given in the Purma, The lines of
-Brhmanas, Vaisyas and Sudras are to be similarly known.
-
-Devpi, brother of Santanu and Maru of the line of Ikshvku are now
-waiting at Kalapa. They will appear towards the end of Kali Yuga and
-will again teach Varna and srama Dharma. (They will start again the
-lines of divine kings which came to an end in the Kali Yuga.
-_Sridhara_.)
-
-
-
-PRALAYA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA XII. CHAP. 4.*
-
-Four thousand Yugas form one day of Brahm. This is also the period of
-one Kalpa, during which fourteen Manus appear. The night of Brahm
-follows for an equally long period. The three worlds -- Bhr, Bhuvar and
-Svar then come to an end. This is called _Naimittika_ Pralaya. Drawing
-the universe within self, Nryana sleeps at the time over Ananta and
-Brahm sleeps too. (_Nimitta_ is cause. Naimittika is proceeding frome
-some cause. This Pralaya procedes from the sleep of Brahm as a
-_cause_).
-
-When two Parrddhas of years expire, the seven subdivisions of Prakriti
-(Mahat, Ahankra, and the five Tanmatras) become subject to dissolution.
-(The life period of Brahm is two Parrddhas). This is called
-_Prkritika_ Pralaya. When this dissolving factor comes in, the whole
-combination known as the Cosmic Egg breaks up. (As the subdivisions of
-Prakriti as well as the Cosmic Egg which is formed by their combination
-become all dissolved, this Pralaya is called Prkritika Pralaya). With
-the advent of this Pralaya, there will be no rains for one hundred
-years. Food will disappear. People will devour one another. The Sun will
-draw in moisture from the seas, from the body, and from the earth, but
-will not give it back. The fire called Samvartaka, arising from the
-mouth of Shankarshana, will consume the Ptlas. Winds will blow for one
-hundred years, followed by rain for another hundred years. The universe
-will be covered by one sheet of water. Water will draw in earth, fire
-will draw in water, and so on till Pradhna in due time will devour all
-the Gunas. Pradhna is not measured by time, and it does not undergo
-transformation. Beginningless, endless, unmanifested, eternal, the cause
-of all causes, without diminution, it is beyond the reach of Gunas, the
-rootless root, that passes comprehension, like the void.
-
-Jnna is the ultimate resort of Buddhi (the perceiver or knower), the
-Indriyas or senses (perception, knowledge or the instruments of
-perception and knowledge) and the objects (things perceived and known).
-It is Jnna alone that appears in this threefold form. That which is
-subject to perception, which in its nature is not separate from its
-cause, and which has both beginning and end is no real substance. The
-lamp, the eye and the object seen are not different from light itself.
-So Buddhi, the senses and the objects are not separate from the one
-Truth (Brahmn, for they all proceed from Brahmn), but Brahmn is quite
-separate from all others. Wakefulness, dream and dreamless sleep are all
-states of Buddhi. They are all transitory, O king. The diversity appears
-in Pratyagtma (the separate self). The clouds appear and disappear in
-space, even as the universes appear and disappear in Brahmn. Of all
-forms, the common element is the only reality. But the forms seem to
-have an existence of their own independently of the primal element. The
-threads that form the cloth look separate from the cloth itself. All
-that appears as cause and effect is unreal, for there is
-interdependence, and there is both beginning and end.
-
-The transformations can not exist without the light of tm. If they are
-self-manifest however, they are not in any way different from tm
-itself.
-
-Do not think tm is many, (as there is tm in every being). It is
-ignorance to think so. The space confined in a pot and the limitless
-space are one and the same, even so the sun and its image in water, the
-air inside and outside.
-
-Men call gold by different names, according to the different ornaments
-it forms. So the language of the Vedas and the language of ordinary men
-give different names to Bhagavn.
-
-The cloud that is generated by the sun, that appears by the light of the
-sun, that is in fact rays of the sun so transformed stands between the
-eye and the sun. Even so Ahankra, proceeding from Brahmn, manifested
-by Brahmn, even a part of Brahmn, eclipses the perception of Brahmn
-by Jiva.
-
-When the cloud disappears, the eye perceives the sun. When Ahankra, the
-_updhi_ of tm, disappears by discrimination, then the Jiva perceives
-"I am Brahmn."
-
-When by discrimination, such as this, the tie of unreal Ahankra is cut
-as under, and the unfailing perception of tm becomes fixed, it is
-called _tyantika_ Pralaya.
-
-(tyantika is from Atyanta = ati+anta, the very last. After this
-Pralaya, which is individual and not general, one does not return to
-life in the universe. It is the final liberation of a man from the
-limitations of life in Brahmnda).
-
-Every day all beings, from Brahm downwards, undergo according to some
-seers of subtleties states of beginning and end.
-
-These beginnings and ends are caused by the changes in states of all
-beings subject to transformation, changes that follow the flow of time.
-(One does not grow adult or old in one day. The change must be going on
-constantly. The fruit does not ripen in one day. But the process of
-ripening day by day is not perceptible. Water flows in a continued
-stream but the water particles constantly change at a given space. So
-the lamp burns and the flame looks one and the same though the particles
-that ignite do constantly change. Even so our body is not the same from
-day to day. There is a change going on every moment of our life.
-Particles of the body are rejected every day and they are replaced by
-new particles. There is the beginning with our new particles, and an end
-or Pralaya with the old particles.) This is called NITYA Pralaya. (Nitya
-means constant).
-
-Pralaya is thus fourfold -- Nitya, Naimittika, Prakritika and Atyantika.
-
-Such are the stories of Bhagavat as related in the Bhgavata Purna.
-
-Rishi Nryana first related the Purna to Nrada, Nrada related it to
-Vysa and Vysa to Suka. Suta heard the Purna from Sukadeva, when he
-related it to Rj Parikshit, and he expounded it to the assembly of
-Rishis at Naimisha, headed by Sounaka.
-
-Prakriti changes its forms and states. The body disintegrates into
-particles, particles into molecules, and molecules into atoms. Solid
-becomes liquid, liquid becomes gaseous and gaseous becomes
-ultra-gaseous. Life manifests itself through the endless varieties of
-Prakriti and becomes manifold in its manifestations. The hard mineral
-matter does not admit the mineral life to be expressed in any other way
-than by a fixed form. The more plastic vegetable matter shews vegetable
-life in all the activities of life and growth. Subtler matter appears in
-the animals and makes the sensing of the object world possible. Even
-sublter matter becomes the basis of brain activities. The Prkritic
-basis of the mind is two-fold in its character Ahankra and Mahat. When
-the mind is capable of thinking only from the standpoint of one life and
-one birth only, it is limited by Ahankra matter. When that limit is
-overcome, mind is on the plane of Mahat. Individuality is not lost, but
-the individual has consciousness of all births, _i.e._ consciousness on
-the plane of the universe. Such consciousness does not normally exist in
-Trilok. When a man becomes normally conscious on the plane of Mahat, he
-is carried to Mahar Loka and becomes a Rishi. Bhrigu is such a Rishi.
-The acquirement of such consciousness is the object of life evolution in
-our solar system. When the solar system is destroyed, it is the Manasic
-consciousness that alone survives. The three Lokas -- Bhr, Bhuvar and
-Svar are destroyed, The Prkritic forms and states of these three Lokas
-become destroyed and the different states of consciousness corresponding
-to those forms and states finally disappear. The harvest of Manasic
-evolution, which is the only harvest reaped by means of one solar system
-is stored in Mahar Loka. But when the three lower Lokas are destroyed,
-the flames of dissolution reach even Mahar Loka and all the gains of a
-Kalpa's evolution are transferred to the higher plane of Jana Loka. This
-is therefore the highest plane of our consciousness. The highest evolved
-beings of the previous solar system could not after Pralaya go beyond
-Jana Loka, and their consciousness was the consciousness of Jana Loka.
-When our earth was formed and when they came down in time for further
-evolution, they brought down their highest consciousness with them as a
-possibility, for it was obscured in their entrance to Trilok. As the
-soul gathers spiritual strength in Svarga Loka after death, so the
-disembodied soul after Prayala gathers spiritual strength in Jana Loka
-or the Loka of Kumras. "When the three Lokas are consumed by fire from
-the mouth of Sankarshana, afflicted by the heat, Bhrigu and others go to
-Jana Loka" III-II-XXX. The Lord of Yoga goes by means of Sushumna
-through the radiant path in his subtle body and at last reaches Mahar
-Loka, where Bhrigu and other Rishis who live for one Kalpa remain. "Then
-seeing the Trilok consumed by fire from the mouth of Ananta he goes
-towards that supreme abode, which is adorned by the chariots of great
-Siddhas, and which lasts for the whole life period of Brahm."
-(II-2-XXVI).
-
-Those who did not reach the Manasic state, in the last Kalpa were no
-acquisitions to the higher planes of Brahmnda, which stand over the
-three mortal planes, where all experience is to be gathered. Those who
-developed the Manasic state were gathered to the third of the higher
-planes, Jana Loka, because further development was possible, nay it was
-a necessity, in the Trilok that was to come. But there were others, who
-did not quite reach the Manasic state, but they were still on the way to
-acquire such state, and in fact they acquired the human form. They were
-also preserved to carry out a certain purpose in the life evolution of
-the coming Kalpa which will be shortly mentioned. How they were
-preserved, the Purnas do not speak of. They became the Pitris of the
-present Kalpa. The Pitris reached different states of development and
-were therefore classed under seven heads. Some of them had developed the
-fire in them and some were without the fire. "Agnishvatta, Barhishad,
-Somapa, and Ajyapa are Pitris with fire; the others are without fire.
-They were all wedded to Svadha, the daughter of Daksha." IV-1-III.
-
-The mention of the word "fire" requires a little explanation. The
-Upanishads say that the three mortal Lokas of form Bhr, Bhuvar and Svar
-are the transformations of "Tejobanna" _i.e._ of fire, water and earth.
-The other two elements do not enter into the constitution of forms. The
-element earth predominates on the plane of Bhr or the material plane.
-Water is supreme on Bhuvar or the Astral plane. Our Kamic tendencies
-proceed from the presence of water in us. Fire is the element of Svarga
-or the Mental plane. Fire devas are therefore the highest devas of
-Trilok. The forty-nine forms of fire are therefore so many forms of
-consciousness. Some of the Pitris developed fire in them, _i.e._ they
-developed the principle of mind in them, in however rudimental a form it
-might be.
-
-Devas and Rishis were also preserved. Jana Loka is the Loka of Kumras.
-We shall therefore call the souls preserved in Jana Loka as Kumras, or
-Kumaric souls.
-
-Commenting on the fourth sloka, twelfth chapter, Third Skandha, Sridhara
-says: -- "Sanaka and others are not created in every Kalpa. The mention
-of their creation has reference to the Brahm Kalpa, _i.e._ the first
-Kalpa. In fact the objects of Mukhya creation and others are brought
-into existence in every Kalpa. Sanaka and others are only created in the
-Brahm Kalpa and they follow the other Kalpas." The Mukhya creation has
-reference to chapter 10, Skandha III. It is the same as Urdha Srotas (p.
-25). Sridhara means to say that plants, animals and men are only created
-in every Kalpa.
-
-The Kumaric souls of the last Kalpa that went to Jana Loka have to play
-the most prominent part in the present Kalpa and they are the heroes of
-our solar system. Their stay at Jana Loka was only a fitting preparation
-for the most responsible work of the present Kalpa. The shvara of our
-system, addressing Puranjana, said: -- "Wishing to have an abode, drawn
-to earthly enjoyments, thou didst leave me. But, o great one, both I and
-thou were swans (Hansa) and friends in the Manas Lake. We dwelt there
-without any abode, for one thousand years." IV. 28 LIV. "One thousand
-years" is indicative of Pralaya, which lasts for one thousand yuga
-cycles. In Pralaya, the kumaric soul had no body _i.e._ no abode. The
-body separates Jiva from shvara. Without the impediment, the obstacle
-of the body, without any obscuring agency, the Jiva meets shvara face
-to face in Jana Loka, and being both essentially alike become friends.
-Nrada says, esoterically the Mnasa Laka is the heart and Hansa means
-the pure. But in Pralaya, the heart of the Jiva is in Jana Loka, which
-is the Mnasa or mental Lake. This friendly union of Jiva and shvara
-gives all the promise of the future for the Jiva.
-
-What is not preserved in Naimittika Pralaya, the forms of the past
-kalpa, are all borne in the mind of Brahm as images. It is the mind of
-Brahm that reproduces the forms of the previous creation. The image of
-all that was remains in the mind of Brahm. Creation in Brahm Kalpa is
-not the same as creation in the succeeding Kalpas. In Brahm Kalpa, all
-the seven Lokas, and the dwellers of all the planes are created. In the
-succeeding Kalpas, the three Lokas and their dwellers only are created.
-
-The Naimittika Pralaya comes on, as Brahm sleeps.
-
-This Pralaya corresponds to our physical death. When we die, the body is
-destroyed. Just as when the universe bodied Brahm goes to sleep, His
-Trilok body is destroyed. Men go after death first to Bhuvar Loka, and
-then to Svarga Loka. At Pralaya, the Mnasika Jivas first go to Mahar
-Loka and then to Jana Loka.
-
-The Naimittika Pralaya affords the greatest relief to Jivas. It makes up
-for all the ups and downs of manifested life, for all miseries, all
-sorrows, all sufferings and all disappointments. shvara can do more for
-Jivas in Pralaya, than in manifestation. He gives company to those, who
-by their advancement reach Jana Loka, There is the shvara of our system
-or Brahmnda and there is the shvara of many systems.
-
-The shvara of many systems, "Bhagavn Himself" is the First Purusha. He
-is the manifestor of the Tatvas, the first Principles, the Karan or
-causal creation, which enter into the constitution of all the solar
-systems or Brahmndas. When He wishes to become many, to appear through
-many manifestations, to bring up all unto Himself and His own state,
-through oeons and oeons of cosmic manifestation, though it might be, the
-Tatvas start forth into activity and form an ocean by themselves. Many
-solar systems are evolved out of this Karan Samudra or the ocean of the
-causes and each system gets its shvara, the Second Purusha. That Second
-Purusha becomes three fold -- Brahm, Vishnu and Siva, for the Creation,
-Preservation and Dissolution of His own Universe. He is Virt Purusha or
-the universe bodied, Nryana seated on the waters of Karana Samudra,
-and Sahasra Sirsha Purusha or the thousand headed Purusha of the
-Upanishads. "All this, the past, present and future is this Purusha. The
-universe is pervaded by Him As Prana (_i.e._ the sun, for Prana is the
-solar deity according to the Sruti. _Sridhara_) by illumining his own
-circle illumines the outside as well, so Purusha by illumining his Virt
-body illumines the inside and outside of this Brahmnda as well. I
-(Brahm) create by His direction, Siva destroys, under His control, as
-Vishnu, He preserves this universe He is the primal Avatra." II. 6.
-
-"First of all, Bhagavn took form as Purusha for the creation of the
-Lokas form made by Mahat and others, having 16 parts. (_Mahat and
-others_ -- Mahat, Ahankra, and the Tanmatras. 16 parts the eleven
-Indriyas and the 5 elements. Though this is not the form of Bhagavn
-meaning the First Purusha still for the Upsan in Virt form of the
-Virt Purusha who indwells all Jivas, this is given. _Sridhara_). (In
-the Padma Kalpa), Brahm, the Lord of Prajpatis, appeared in the lotus
-that rose out of the navel of (this Purusha), who while lying down on
-the ocean, spread the sleep of Samdhi all round. The Lokas are but
-parts of His body. His form is pure and intensified Satva. The Yogins
-perceive Him by their vision of wisdom, as one looking wonderful with a
-thousand feet, thighs, hands and mouths, with a thousand heads, ears,
-eyes and noses, glittering with a thousand crowns, and ornaments. This
-(Virt Purusha) is the immutable seed and final resort of the many
-Avatras. Brahm is His part. Marichi and other Prajpatis are parts of
-Brahm. So through parts of His part, Devas, animals and men are
-created. (He does not appear and disappear like other Avatras. He is
-the end not only of the Avatras, but of all beings. _Sridhara_.)" I-3.
-
-Brahm appeared in the lotus, it is said, in the last Kalpa, which from
-this event is named Pdma Kalpa. How Brahm appeared out of Nryana in
-the previous Kalpas is not given. That he appeared in our Kalpa in the
-same way as in the last Kalpa is evident, as no difference is noted.
-Brahm took up the creation, which was two-fold -- direct or Mnasa and
-indirect or through Prajpatis and Manu. The creation or bringing into
-manifestation of those that had been preserved at Pralaya is direct or
-Mnasa. The mind born sons of Brahm took up positions in the universe
-of duty and responsibility and in this Kalpa they have not to look to
-themselves, but to others. Their own evolution is not a matter of their
-concern. The innumerable Monads were created through Manu and the real
-history of the Kalpa is the history of their evolution.
-
-First there was the process of involution. There was no form and forms
-had to be first brought forth. Limitation after limitation had to the
-imposed, to chain life in forms. For when set forms were arrived at with
-set organs, Jivas could be trusted with independent action.
-
-No energy is spent in vain in the economy of the universe. Each monadic
-flow as it appeared in the universe could he carried on to a certain
-stage, by one common guiding influence. This requires a little
-explanation.
-
-Each particle of each Tatva is alive. The Tatvic life is the life of the
-first Purusha. But the particles combine, and the power of combination
-proceeds from the life of the second Purusha, the shvara of our system.
-Every combination however large has the life of shvara in it and it is
-that life which keeps up the combination. Each combination for the time
-being has its ruler, who is the viceroy of shvara, and who is called
-the Monad of that combination. Monad is Jivtma or Jiva tm or tm as
-limited by every Jiva.
-
-The combination transforms, but the Monad remains constant. The
-vegetable becomes animal, and the animal becomes man, but one Monad runs
-through all these transformations.
-
-By rulership over higher and higher combinations the Monad or Jivtma,
-ultimately approaches the state of shvara Himself and that is the goal
-of evolution in this universe.
-
-Whenever a combination is formed, there is one life governing that
-combination -- the life of the ruler of that combination. Ail other
-lives have to surrender themselves completely and entirely to that one
-life. This is the law and we have to bow down our heads to the
-inevitable. There is life in every cell that composes the human body.
-But the cell lives are all subordinated to the life of the man, the
-Jivtma ruling the combination that forms the man. So long as the cell
-is attached to the human combination, it has no independence whatsoever.
-And this is to the immense benefit of the cells themselves. They receive
-the impress of souls much more evolved than their own and are able to
-evolve themselves at a much more rapid rate, than if they had been left
-to themselves. This is the law of giving and taking, the law of
-sacrifice, the Yajna which is the essence of creation. And even as men
-approach the state of shvara, they have to surrender themselves
-completely to Him and to merge themselves in His existence.
-
-The Jivic or Monadic flow first appears on the plane of Svarga, it comes
-down to Bhvar and then to Bhr, to appear finally in the mineral
-Kingdom of our Earth. This process of coming down does not require
-separate guidance for separate combinations. The downward flow is
-homogeneous. It is carried on under the guidance of the Prajpatis. It
-is all involution during this process taking in grosser and grosser
-matter and not rejecting anything. Rudra had no work to do during the
-earliest stages of monadic life. The mineral Kingdom appeared and the
-Himalayan chain reared up its head. The legend says the sons of Himalaya
-had wings on and they could move about but the Devas cut down their
-wings and they became fixed. No doubt the mineral Kingdom hardened and
-became immobile in time. The immobility of the mineral Kingdom, the
-final reach of matter in its downward course was the turning point in
-the life history of Jivas. Their foetal stage was over and they were now
-born into the Kalpa, as it were.
-
-There was need for separation now, for the rejection of particles and
-the drawing in of new ones, and Durga appeared as the daughter of
-Himalaya.
-
-She became wedded to Siva once more and since then there was change
-continually going on in all forms of life, that evolved out of the
-mineral Kingdom. There was continual adjustment of external and internal
-conditions, called life. The vegetable appeared, the animal appeared and
-the man appeared. The life process means continual transformation. Forms
-changed and dissolved. Change is continually going on all round and is
-called Nitya Pralaya.
-
-During the transformation that goes on, combinations are guided by
-rulers, who are the Pitris. They lead the combinations on till the human
-form is reached. When the human form is reached each combination is a
-man. The highest of the Pitris can give only germinal Manas. When the
-Pitris give to the combination, all that they could give, their work is
-over, for this Kalpa.
-
-Then come the Kumaric souls, the Puranjanas from the Mnasa Laka (P.
-89). They find the abode ready made and leaving their friend and
-companion they enter their chosen abodes. There are nine gate ways in
-that abode, and every enjoyment reaches Puranjana through those gate
-ways. He becomes mad in the pursuit of enjoyments. He forgets himself.
-He forgets his friend the eternal companion of Jiva. He identifies
-himself with the abode. He thinks that he is inseparable from that
-abode. So he goes on and on hopelessly in his course of riotous joy and
-the Friend whom he forgets gives him rebuff for every joy that he meets.
-The rebuffs at last make him a little attentive. The friend then speaks
-through the Vedas, the Smritis through sages and at last He comes down
-Himself as an Avatra.
-
-The Eternal Friend first allows Puranjana to run on in the midst of
-enjoyments, just as he likes. If he goes beyond the limits of temperance
-and moderation he gets some unpleasant experience. If he does something
-wrong, he feels the painful consequence. The sting of pain makes
-Puranjana ponder over what he does. He registers the pleasurable and
-painful experiences and reasons about the causes and effects. He tries
-to know what is right and what is wrong.
-
-With the power of discrimination in its infancy, with the "enjoyment"
-nature or the self-seeking Asuric element too strong in him, Puranjana,
-the Kumaric soul, is helpless. He is drifted away, though sometimes much
-against his will.
-
-The Friend comes to the rescue. The Devas and Asuras combine and with
-their joint efforts, the ocean of Milk is churned, and the Goddess of
-Evolution, the Energy of Vishnu, makes Her divine appearance in our
-universe. The Devas become more than a match for the Asuras. The
-Vaivasvata Manvantara steps in, the Manvantara teeming with the fate of
-man and of the universe. shvara, the eternal friend of Puranjana, is
-most busy in the Vaivasvata Manvantara. Every effort is made to raise
-humanity to a higher level and to open out all the possibilities of man.
-
-First, the enjoyments of Svarga are held out before the rising vision of
-men as an allurement. Man admires those enjoyments and makes every
-effort to attain them. The Vedic sacrifice is revealed to Pururavas, who
-becomes mad after Urvasi, the nymph of Svarga. Later on, the heavenly
-cow, Surabhi, attracts Visvmitra. And he becomes the chief actor in the
-promulgation of Vedic sacrifice. In the firmness of resolve, in the bold
-and determined pursuit of objects, and in the intolerance of
-inferiority, Visvmitra stands prominently out as an example to
-humanity, for all ages to come and it is meet and proper that in the
-next Manvantara, he will act as one of the seven sages guiding the
-affairs of the universe.
-
-The Karma Knda of the Vedas is a monument of Visvamitara's gigantic
-efforts for the good of humanity. shvara made revelations. He prompted
-the sages.
-
-If the Karma Knda holds out the allurements of Svarga life, it lays
-down rules and restrictions at the same time, that regulate life and
-beget temperance and moderation. Meritorious acts are enjoined and acts
-that retard evolution are prohibited. Men do what is good and avoid what
-is evil, that they may attain heavenly things. They do what is right and
-shun what is wrong, not because that is the Law, the divine will, but
-because it gives them some reward. All the same, the mind is trained,
-the man curbed and regulated. The bitter pill is taken and if the child
-thinks that it is for the sweetmeat he is only mistaken. When the child
-grows he knows, that he takes the bitter pill as it is the law of nature
-that he should do so. Do what is right, because that is the law. Shun
-what is wrong, because it is against the law. We are all carried forward
-by the law, and we must willingly give ourselves up to that law. When we
-do that, we partake ourselves of divine life. The ground had to be
-prepared for further teachings.
-
-Events in Svarga foreshadow and forestall events that are to transpire
-on the earth. The Devas and Asuras by their mutual fight in Svarga bring
-about a state of things which casts its shadow on the earth below.
-
-Two great events happened in Svarga the killing of Vritra, and the
-deposition of Bali.
-
-Vritra, though an Asura was a votary of Sankarshana, the Shankara aspect
-of Vishnu. Vritra was great in all respects and his wisdom extracted the
-admiration of Indra. But he represented the idea of personal self in
-Jiva, which is so strong-rooted, and which is the hardest thing to over
-come. Vritra was killed by a weapon, which is no other than the most
-willing and ready sacrifice of personal self by Dadhchi.
-
-Bali, the Asura king, ungrudgingly gave all that he had to Vmana. The
-Asura had become so great both in intellect and in spirituality, that
-there was no question of killing him or of his being overpowered by the
-Devas. The Asuras and Devas both combined to make Svarga, the
-store-house of spiritual life. The Asuras by their willing surrender
-permitted the Devas to have entire hold of Svarga. By this sacrifice,
-they established their indisputable right to Svarga, in the broad
-dispensation of providence and in the succeeding Manvantara, Bali is to
-become the Indra of the Devas.
-
-Vmana was the same as Lord Sri Krishna on our earth. If diplomacy had
-succeeded so easily below as above, if the Asura chiefs on earth had
-behaved as splendidly as Bali in Svarga, the horrors and heartrending
-scenes of Kurukshetra could have been avoided. The same result was
-however brought about in Svarga as it was subsequently brought about on
-the Earth. The actor was the same, the diplomacy was the same, only the
-result of diplomacy was different on the different planes. The
-deposition of Bali was bloodless while the deposition of Duryodhana was
-a bloody one.
-
-Coming down to Earth let us see how events in Svarga were followed up on
-the terrestrial plane.
-
-Two great human Avatras came, one the ideal and the other the apostle
-of unselfishness. But we must take a running survey of the Avatras as a
-whole.
-
-Vishnu appeared on Earth Himself, through His direct manifestations
-called Avatras. Ten of them have been specially picked out as Great
-Avatras, though no specification has been made in the Bhgavata Purna.
-
-There were three great Asuric movements in this Kalpa, caused by the
-three successive incarnations of Jaya and Vijaya. And these gave our
-four great Avatras.
-
-Hiranyksha was killed by Varaha, Hiranyakasipu was killed by Nrisinha.
-Rvana and Kumbhakarna were killed by Rma. Sisupla and Dantavakra were
-killed by Sri Krishna. Krma was a great Avatra as He prepared the way
-for the spiritual regeneration of the universe, by the Churning of the
-ocean of Milk.
-
-Vmana was a great Avatra as He reclaimed the Trilok from the Asuras.
-
-Parasurma and Buddha did work, which revolutionised the whole humanity.
-
-Kalki will give the final blow to the Asuric element in us.
-
-Matsya is important with reference to our own Manvantara. Every
-Manvantara is followed by a deluge, which destroys the existing
-continents and swallows up all living beings. When the last Manvantara
-was over, our Manu saved the germs of creation with the help of Matsya.
-Opinion is divided as to whether there is Pralaya after every
-Manvantara. The Bhgavata Purna says when there was deluge (sanplava)
-following the Chakshusha Manvantara, Vishnu assumed the form of Matsya.
-Commenting on this, Sridhara says there is no Pralaya at the end of a
-Manvantara. There may not be such a Pralaya at the end of a Manvantara
-as happens at the end of a Kalpa. But other Purnas speak of some sort
-of Pralaya on the expiry of every Manvantara. Srya Siddhanta, the
-renowned work on Astronomy, also says: -- "There is a period called
-Sandhi (the meet between two Manvantaras) measured by the period of one
-Satya Yuga, followed by another Manvantara. There is deluge by water
-then."
-
-The Avatras of Vishnu infuse more and more of Satva into men, that they
-may become Satvika. Increasing Satva put down Rajas and Tamas in man and
-makes him divine.
-
-But of all these Avatras two stand out most prominently one the ideal
-and the other the apostle of unselfishness. The brightest luminary of
-the solar line held out in His life, an example of unselfishness, of
-purity of character and of scrupulous regard to duty, an example that is
-the admiration of all people in all ages, as perfect as the limits of
-humanity will allow and as elevated as the loftiest ideal of human
-character may be, unsurpassed in its pathetic grandeur, unrivalled in
-the straight forward pursuit of duty along a most thorny and uneven
-path. The divine founder of Dvrak of the Lunar line asserted Himself
-as the supreme shvara, He took up the reins of Trilok in His own
-hands, the Devas installed Him as the king of Svarga or Govinda, and men
-on earth had now to look up to Him only and not to the Devas for their
-guidance. For men had now to pass the limits of Trilok, and the friend
-of Puranjana came down Himself to hold out the torch of divine light.
-Sri Krishna laid down the triple path of Karma, Bhakti and Jnna, and
-shewed the relative importance of each. His teachings are perfect,
-thorough and exhaustive. Ever since His manifestation, those teachings
-have been re-iterated in a thousand forms, they have been adapted to
-different powers of understanding and all the modern scriptures of
-Hinduism have grown up, round the central point of those teachings. Men
-had no longer to complain of teachings. They had to follow those
-teachings now and to live up to them. They had to begin with
-unselfishness, and end with liberation. New vistas opened out before the
-growing spiritual vision of men, vistas of new worlds, new planes, of
-masters of Yoga and wisdom, forming every link between man and shvara.
-Possibilities became realities. Liberation was no longer a word of the
-lips.
-
-Now liberation is a relative term. First there may be liberation from
-the bonds of Trilok only. Or it may be from the limitations of Janaloka
-which was the highest possibility with which the Jiva started. Or it may
-be liberation from the bonds of the Brahmnda itself. The last
-liberation is again two fold in its character. There may be liberation
-from all concrete things and all ideas, including the idea of shvara
-Himself or the liberation may lead to the great shvara from whom many
-solar systems proceed. Mukti is not only liberation from bondage. It is
-also something more. It is an acquisition, Starting from the plane of
-Jana Loka, the Kumaric soul acquires higher and higher possibilities. He
-may transcend Jana Loka. He may transcend even the Satya Loka. But
-passage across Satya Loka is not easy in this Kalpa. Mukti in its
-fullest and highest sense means freedom from all limitations caused by
-Prakriti, caused by Time and Space and identification with Brahmn, who
-is absolute bliss, absolute consciousness and absolute existence beyond
-the limits of Time and Space. This is called Atyantika Pralaya or
-absolute dissolution. But this Mukti lean never be obtained till all the
-duties of a man are performed. These duties are nothing else but
-sacrifices or Yajna. Man must perform each one of his duties he must
-perform all that he owes to himself, to all other beings, and last of
-all the highest duty he owes to the shvara of the Universe the Lord of
-Sacrifice, Yajnesvara Himself, "Adhiyajna am I, here in the body, best
-of living beings."
-
-The Bhgavatas do not care to go beyond the Yajna Purusha, They do not
-care to leave the life of sacrifice, as long as their shvara stands out
-as the embodiment of all sacrifice.
-
-"Salutation to Thee, Bhagavn, let me meditate on Vsudeva. Salutations
-to Pradyumna, Aniruddha and to Sankarshana. He who, by knowing these
-_mrtis_ in the _mrtiless_, whose only _mtrti_ is mantra makes
-offerings to Yajna Purusha, is the complete seer." I. 5. 37 "When the
-Indriyas," said Kapila, "that manifest the objects of external and
-internal perception, become trained by the performance of Vedic Karma,
-their spontaneous Vritti (or function) in a man of concentrated mind is
-in Satva which is the same as Vishnu. This Vritti which is void of all
-selfishness is Bhakti in Bhagavna. It is superior to Mukti. It
-instantly destroys the Kosha, as the digestive fire consumes food. The
-devoted have no yearning for that Mukti which makes the Jiva one with
-Me. But they prefer ever to talk with each other about Me, to exert
-themselves for My sake and ever to meditate on me. Mukti comes to them
-unasked. My Vibhutis, the eight Siddhis, and all the glory of the
-highest Lokas are theirs though they want them not. I am their Teacher,
-their Friend, their companion, their all. So even Kala can not destroy
-them."
-
-Again, "The devoted spurn Salokya, Sarshti, Samipya, Sarupya and
-Sayujya, even when offered to them and they prefer to serve Bhagavn
-ever and ever. Compassion and friendliness to all beings are the
-essential qualifications of the devoted. They must be humble respectful
-and self controlled. They must pass their days in hearing and reciting
-the glory of Bhagavn." Kapila makes the following classification as to
-the final destiny of men (p. 46):
-
-1. Those who selfishly perform their Dharma and worship Devas and Pitris
-go to Soma Loka, and after partaking of Soma, they are again re-born.
-Their Lokas are destroyed with the daily Pralaya of Brahm.
-
-2. The worshippers of Hiranya-garbha (Brahm) reach Brahm Loka or Satya
-Loka and there wait for two Parrddhas _i.e._ for the life time of
-Brahm and upon the final dissolution of the Brahmnda, they enter with
-Hiranya-garbha, the Eternal Supreme Purusha, who is supreme Bliss and
-their sense of individuality becomes then lost.
-
-3. "Brahm with Marichi and other Rishis, with Kumras and other lords
-of Yoga, and with Siddhas who are leaders of Yoga, do by their unselfish
-action, and at the same time the retention of their individuality, and
-their vision of separateness reach Saguna Brahm or the Second Purusha,
-who is the shvara of our system. And when Kala, as an aspect of
-shvara, causes a disturbance in the Gunas on the approach of the
-creative period they are born again just as they had been before. (They
-are born because of their individuality and their vision of
-separateness. They are born in the same state on account of their
-non-attachment and their unselfishness. _Sridhara_). As long as the
-Trilok lasts, they enjoy all the divine things of Satya Loka, according
-to their Karma. (And when the Trilok is destroyed, they attain the
-Saguna Purusha, who is First Avatra. _Sridhara_). When the Gunas are
-disturbed again they come back (i.e. they revert to their former posts
-respectively. _Sridhara_)" III 32 xii-xv.
-
-4. Those who unselfishly perform their duties and give themselves up
-entirely to the Supreme Purusha void of all attachment and all egoism,
-calm, tranquil and pure in the mind go through the gateway of the Sun to
-the all pervading Purusha, the Lord of all, the material and efficient
-cause of all this.
-
-Commenting on II 2 xxviii, Sridhara says: -- "There are three courses
-for those that go to Brahm Loka. Those who go by the excellence of
-their merits, become holders of responsible positions in the next Kalpa,
-according to their respective merits. Those who go there by worshipping
-Hiranya-garbha and others, become liberated along with Brahm. Those who
-are worshippers of Bhagavn, pierce the Brahmnda at will and reach the
-State of Vishnu."
-
-The classification is the same as made by Kapila.
-
-Hiranya-garbha Upsan, which was prevalent at one time is now out of
-use. It was the worship of the Life aspect of shvara, as manifested in
-the Solar system. There is a higher duty, the highest duty of a Jiva
-manifested in this universe, to realise that this universe itself is a
-part of a big universe, and there is shvara of that big universe
-Bhagavn Himself and to surrender one self completely up to Him in pure
-love and devotion. He will not then be of this universe, but he will be
-of many universes, he will transcend the limits of all the seven planes
-of our system at will. What his work then will be, it is for Bhagavn to
-say not for him. The work of Bhagavn is his work, the life of Bhagavn
-is his life. He becomes a Bhgavata. The Gopis are ideal Bhgavatas and
-the Vrindvana Lil is the consummation on this earth of the relation of
-a Bhgavata with Bhagavn. This to all Bhaktas is the highest form of
-Mukti.
-
-To the Bhakta, there is no Mukti, without the universe and the lord of
-universe.
-
-Forget the universe, forget every thing, only meditate on the eternal
-unchanging element in you, be fixed in that and that only and you attain
-Atyantika Pralaya.
-
-*PEACE BE TO ALL.*
-
-*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK STUDY OF THE BHGAVATA PURNA
-***
-
-
-
-
-A Word from Project Gutenberg
-
-
-We will update this book if we find any errors.
-
-This book can be found under: http://www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/39442
-
-Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no one
-owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation (and
-you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without permission
-and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules, set forth in the
-General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to copying and
-distributing Project Gutenberg(tm) electronic works to protect the
-Project Gutenberg(tm) concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a
-registered trademark, and may not be used if you charge for the eBooks,
-unless you receive specific permission. If you do not charge anything
-for copies of this eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You may
-use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative
-works, reports, performances and research. They may be modified and
-printed and given away - you may do practically _anything_ with public
-domain eBooks. Redistribution is subject to the trademark license,
-especially commercial redistribution.
-
-
-
-The Full Project Gutenberg License
-
-
-_Please read this before you distribute or use this work._
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg(tm) mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work (or
-any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project
-Gutenberg(tm) License available with this file or online at
-http://www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use & Redistributing Project Gutenberg(tm)
-electronic works
-
-
-*1.A.* By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg(tm)
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all the
-terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy all
-copies of Project Gutenberg(tm) electronic works in your possession. If
-you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project
-Gutenberg(tm) electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the
-terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or
-entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
-
-*1.B.* "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few things
-that you can do with most Project Gutenberg(tm) electronic works even
-without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See paragraph
-1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg(tm) electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement
-and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg(tm) electronic
-works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-*1.C.* The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
-Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of
-Project Gutenberg(tm) electronic works. Nearly all the individual works
-in the collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an
-individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are
-located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you
-from copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating
-derivative works based on the work as long as all references to Project
-Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the
-Project Gutenberg(tm) mission of promoting free access to electronic
-works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg(tm) works in compliance with
-the terms of this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg(tm) name
-associated with the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this
-agreement by keeping this work in the same format with its attached full
-Project Gutenberg(tm) License when you share it without charge with
-others.
-
-*1.D.* The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in
-a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check
-the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement
-before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or
-creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project
-Gutenberg(tm) work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning
-the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United
-States.
-
-*1.E.* Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-*1.E.1.* The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg(tm) License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg(tm) work (any work
-on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
- almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away
- or re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License
- included with this eBook or online at http://www.gutenberg.org
-
-*1.E.2.* If an individual Project Gutenberg(tm) electronic work is
-derived from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating
-that it is posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can
-be copied and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying
-any fees or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a
-work with the phrase "Project Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on
-the work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs
-1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the
-Project Gutenberg(tm) trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or
-1.E.9.
-
-*1.E.3.* If an individual Project Gutenberg(tm) electronic work is
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and
-distribution must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and
-any additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg(tm) License for all works posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of
-this work.
-
-*1.E.4.* Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project
-Gutenberg(tm) License terms from this work, or any files containing a
-part of this work or any other work associated with Project
-Gutenberg(tm).
-
-*1.E.5.* Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg(tm) License.
-
-*1.E.6.* You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
-word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or
-distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg(tm) work in a format other than
-"Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official version
-posted on the official Project Gutenberg(tm) web site
-(http://www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or
-expense to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a
-means of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original
-"Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include
-the full Project Gutenberg(tm) License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-*1.E.7.* Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg(tm) works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-*1.E.8.* You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg(tm) electronic works
-provided that
-
- - You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg(tm) works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg(tm) trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation."
-
- - You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg(tm)
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg(tm)
- works.
-
- - You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
-
- - You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg(tm) works.
-
-
-*1.E.9.* If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg(tm) electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael
-Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg(tm) trademark. Contact the
-Foundation as set forth in Section 3. below.
-
-*1.F.*
-
-*1.F.1.* Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg(tm) collection.
-Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg(tm) electronic works, and the
-medium on which they may be stored, may contain "Defects," such as, but
-not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or corrupt data, transcription
-errors, a copyright or other intellectual property infringement, a
-defective or damaged disk or other medium, a computer virus, or computer
-codes that damage or cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-*1.F.2.* LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg(tm) trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg(tm) electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal fees.
-YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT LIABILITY,
-BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE PROVIDED IN
-PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE TRADEMARK OWNER, AND
-ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE LIABLE TO YOU FOR
-ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR INCIDENTAL DAMAGES
-EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH DAMAGE.
-
-*1.F.3.* LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with
-your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with
-the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a
-refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity
-providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to
-receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy
-is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further
-opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-*1.F.4.* Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS,' WITH NO OTHER
-WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO
-WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTIBILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-*1.F.5.* Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages.
-If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the
-law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be
-interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by
-the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any
-provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions.
-
-*1.F.6.* INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg(tm) electronic works in accordance
-with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
-promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg(tm) electronic works,
-harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees,
-that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do
-or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg(tm)
-work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any
-Project Gutenberg(tm) work, and (c) any Defect you cause.
-
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg(tm)
-
-
-Project Gutenberg(tm) is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers
-including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists
-because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from
-people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need, is critical to reaching Project Gutenberg(tm)'s
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg(tm) collection will remain
-freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure and
-permanent future for Project Gutenberg(tm) and future generations. To
-learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and
-how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4 and the
-Foundation web page at http://www.pglaf.org .
-
-
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
-Foundation
-
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the state
-of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal Revenue
-Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification number is
-64-6221541. Its 501(c)(3) letter is posted at
-http://www.gutenberg.org/fundraising/pglaf . Contributions to the
-Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the
-full extent permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr.
-S. Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered
-throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at 809
-North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887, email
-business@pglaf.org. Email contact links and up to date contact
-information can be found at the Foundation's web site and official page
-at http://www.pglaf.org
-
-For additional contact information:
-
- Dr. Gregory B. Newby
- Chief Executive and Director
- gbnewby@pglaf.org
-
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation
-
-
-Project Gutenberg(tm) depends upon and cannot survive without wide
-spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations where
-we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular state
-visit http://www.gutenberg.org/fundraising/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make any
-statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from outside
-the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other ways
-including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To donate,
-please visit: http://www.gutenberg.org/fundraising/donate
-
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg(tm) electronic
-works.
-
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart is the originator of the Project Gutenberg(tm)
-concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared
-with anyone. For thirty years, he produced and distributed Project
-Gutenberg(tm) eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg(tm) eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S. unless
-a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily keep eBooks
-in compliance with any particular paper edition.
-
-Each eBook is in a subdirectory of the same number as the eBook's eBook
-number, often in several formats including plain vanilla ASCII,
-compressed (zipped), HTML and others.
-
-Corrected _editions_ of our eBooks replace the old file and take over
-the old filename and etext number. The replaced older file is renamed.
-_Versions_ based on separate sources are treated as new eBooks receiving
-new filenames and etext numbers.
-
-Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:
-
- http://www.gutenberg.org
-
-This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg(tm),
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
diff --git a/39442-8.zip b/39442-8.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index 335107f..0000000
--- a/39442-8.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/39442-h.zip b/39442-h.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index 683554f..0000000
--- a/39442-h.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/39442-h/39442-h.html b/39442-h/39442-h.htm
index 4876c3a..d2ea056 100644
--- a/39442-h/39442-h.html
+++ b/39442-h/39442-h.htm
@@ -435,38 +435,9 @@ pre { font-family: monospace; font-size: 0.9em; white-space: pre-wrap
</style>
</head>
<body>
+<div>*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK 39442 ***</div>
<div class="document" id="a-study-of-the-bhagavata-purana">
<h1 class="document-title level-1 pfirst title with-subtitle">A Study of the Bhâgavata Purâna</h1>
-<p class="document-subtitle level-1 pfirst subtitle" id="or-esoteric-hinduism">
-or Esoteric Hinduism</p>
-
-<!-- -*- encoding: utf-8 -*- -->
-<div class="clearpage">
-</div>
-<!-- -*- encoding: utf-8 -*- -->
-<div class="align-None container language-en noindent pgheader" id="pg-header" xml:lang="en" lang="en">
-<p class="noindent pfirst">This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
-almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
-re-use it under the terms of the <a class="reference internal" href="#project-gutenberg-license">Project Gutenberg License</a>
-included with this eBook or online at
-<a class="reference external" href="http://www.gutenberg.org/license">http://www.gutenberg.org/license</a>.</p>
-<p class="noindent pnext"></p>
-<div class="noindent vspace" style="height: 2em">
-</div>
-<div class="align-None container noindent white-space-pre-line" id="pg-machine-header">
-<p class="noindent pfirst white-space-pre-line"><span class="white-space-pre-line">Title: A Study of the Bhâgavata Purâna or Esoteric Hinduism<br />
-<br />
-Author: Purnendu Narayana Sinha<br />
-<br />
-Release Date: April 12, 2012 [EBook #39442]<br />
-<br />
-Language: English<br />
-<br />
-Character set encoding: UTF-8</span></p>
-</div>
-<div class="noindent vspace" style="height: 2em">
-</div>
-<p class="noindent pfirst" id="pg-start-line">*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK <span>STUDY OF THE BHÂGAVATA PURÂNA</span> ***</p>
<div class="noindent vspace" style="height: 4em">
</div>
<p class="noindent pfirst" id="pg-produced-by"><span>Produced by Bhakta Jim.</span></p>
@@ -19297,348 +19268,6 @@ Sâynjya is absorption into the Supreme Being.</p>
<!-- -*- encoding: utf-8 -*- -->
<div class="backmatter">
</div>
-<p class="pfirst" id="pg-end-line">*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK <span>STUDY OF THE BHÂGAVATA PURÂNA</span> ***</p>
-<div class="cleardoublepage">
-</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-<div class="language-en level-2 pgfooter section" id="a-word-from-project-gutenberg" xml:lang="en" lang="en">
-<span id="pg-footer"></span><h2 class="level-2 pfirst section-title title">A Word from Project Gutenberg</h2>
-<p class="pfirst">We will update this book if we find any errors.</p>
-<p class="pnext">This book can be found under: <a class="reference external" href="http://www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/39442"><span>http://www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/39442</span></a></p>
-<p class="pnext">Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no one
-owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation (and
-you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without
-permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules, set
-forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to
-copying and distributing Project Gutenberg™ electronic works to
-protect the Project Gutenberg™ concept and trademark. Project
-Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you charge
-for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you do not
-charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the rules is
-very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as
-creation of derivative works, reports, performances and research.
-They may be modified and printed and given away – you may do
-practically <em class="italics">anything</em> with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is
-subject to the trademark license, especially commercial
-redistribution.</p>
-<div class="level-3 section" id="the-full-project-gutenberg-license">
-<span id="project-gutenberg-license"></span><h3 class="level-3 pfirst section-title title">The Full Project Gutenberg License</h3>
-<p class="pfirst"><em class="italics">Please read this before you distribute or use this work.</em></p>
-<p class="pnext">To protect the Project Gutenberg™ mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase “Project
-Gutenberg”), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg™ License available with this file or online at
-<a class="reference external" href="http://www.gutenberg.org/license">http://www.gutenberg.org/license</a>.</p>
-<div class="level-4 section" id="section-1-general-terms-of-use-redistributing-project-gutenberg-electronic-works">
-<h4 class="level-4 pfirst section-title title">Section 1. General Terms of Use &amp; Redistributing Project Gutenberg™ electronic works</h4>
-<p class="pfirst"><strong class="bold">1.A.</strong> By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg™
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg™ electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg™ electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by
-the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person
-or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.</p>
-<p class="pnext"><strong class="bold">1.B.</strong> “Project Gutenberg” is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg™ electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg™ electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement
-and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg™ electronic
-works. See paragraph 1.E below.</p>
-<p class="pnext"><strong class="bold">1.C.</strong> The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation (“the
-Foundation” or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg™ electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is in the public domain in the United
-States and you are located in the United States, we do not claim a
-right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg™ mission of promoting free
-access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg™ works
-in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the Project
-Gutenberg™ name associated with the work. You can easily comply with
-the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the same format
-with its attached full Project Gutenberg™ License when you share it
-without charge with others.</p>
-<p class="pnext"></p>
-<p class="pnext"><strong class="bold">1.D.</strong> The copyright laws of the place where you are located also
-govern what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most
-countries are in a constant state of change. If you are outside the
-United States, check the laws of your country in addition to the terms
-of this agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg™ work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country outside the United States.</p>
-<p class="pnext"><strong class="bold">1.E.</strong> Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:</p>
-<p class="pnext"><strong class="bold">1.E.1.</strong> The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg™ License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg™ work (any work
-on which the phrase “Project Gutenberg” appears, or with which the
-phrase “Project Gutenberg” is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:</p>
-<blockquote>
-<div>
-<p class="pfirst">This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
-almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
-re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
-with this eBook or online at <a class="reference external" href="http://www.gutenberg.org">http://www.gutenberg.org</a></p>
-</div>
-</blockquote>
-<p class="pfirst"><strong class="bold">1.E.2.</strong> If an individual Project Gutenberg™ electronic work is
-derived from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating
-that it is posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work
-can be copied and distributed to anyone in the United States without
-paying any fees or charges. If you are redistributing or providing
-access to a work with the phrase “Project Gutenberg” associated with
-or appearing on the work, you must comply either with the requirements
-of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of
-the work and the Project Gutenberg™ trademark as set forth in
-paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.</p>
-<p class="pnext"><strong class="bold">1.E.3.</strong> If an individual Project Gutenberg™ electronic work is
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and
-distribution must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and
-any additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg™ License for all works posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of
-this work.</p>
-<p class="pnext"><strong class="bold">1.E.4.</strong> Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project
-Gutenberg™ License terms from this work, or any files containing a
-part of this work or any other work associated with Project
-Gutenberg™.</p>
-<p class="pnext"><strong class="bold">1.E.5.</strong> Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute
-this electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg™ License.</p>
-<p class="pnext"><strong class="bold">1.E.6.</strong> You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg™ work in a format other
-than “Plain Vanilla ASCII” or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg™ web site
-(<a class="reference external" href="http://www.gutenberg.org">http://www.gutenberg.org</a>), you must, at no additional cost, fee or
-expense to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a
-means of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original
-“Plain Vanilla ASCII” or other form. Any alternate format must include
-the full Project Gutenberg™ License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.</p>
-<p class="pnext"><strong class="bold">1.E.7.</strong> Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg™ works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.</p>
-<p class="pnext"><strong class="bold">1.E.8.</strong> You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg™ electronic works provided
-that</p>
-<ul class="open">
-<li><p class="first pfirst">You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
-the use of Project Gutenberg™ works calculated using the method you
-already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed to
-the owner of the Project Gutenberg™ trademark, but he has agreed to
-donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid within 60
-days following each date on which you prepare (or are legally
-required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty payments
-should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in Section 4,
-“Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation.”</p>
-</li>
-<li><p class="first pfirst">You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
-you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
-does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg™
-License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
-copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
-all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg™
-works.</p>
-</li>
-<li><p class="first pfirst">You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
-any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
-electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
-receipt of the work.</p>
-</li>
-<li><p class="first pfirst">You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
-distribution of Project Gutenberg™ works.</p>
-</li>
-</ul>
-<p class="pfirst"><strong class="bold">1.E.9.</strong> If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg™ electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and
-Michael Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg™ trademark. Contact
-the Foundation as set forth in Section 3. below.</p>
-<p class="pnext"><strong class="bold">1.F.</strong></p>
-<p class="pnext"><strong class="bold">1.F.1.</strong> Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend
-considerable effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe
-and proofread public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg™
-collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg™ electronic
-works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain
-“Defects,” such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or
-corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual
-property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a
-computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by
-your equipment.</p>
-<p class="pnext"><strong class="bold">1.F.2.</strong> LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES – Except for the
-“Right of Replacement or Refund” described in paragraph 1.F.3, the
-Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the
-Project Gutenberg™ trademark, and any other party distributing a
-Project Gutenberg™ electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.</p>
-<p class="pnext"><strong class="bold">1.F.3.</strong> LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND – If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.</p>
-<p class="pnext"><strong class="bold">1.F.4.</strong> Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set
-forth in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you ‘AS-IS,’ WITH
-NO OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTIBILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.</p>
-<p class="pnext"><strong class="bold">1.F.5.</strong> Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.</p>
-<p class="pnext"><strong class="bold">1.F.6.</strong> INDEMNITY – You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation,
-the trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg™ electronic works in accordance
-with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg™
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg™ work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg™ work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.</p>
-</div>
-<div class="level-4 section" id="section-2-information-about-the-mission-of-project-gutenberg">
-<h4 class="level-4 pfirst section-title title">Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg™</h4>
-<p class="pfirst">Project Gutenberg™ is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.</p>
-<p class="pnext">Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need, is critical to reaching Project Gutenberg™'s
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg™ collection will remain
-freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg™ and future generations. To
-learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and
-how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4 and the
-Foundation web page at <a class="reference external" href="http://www.pglaf.org">http://www.pglaf.org</a> .</p>
-</div>
-<div class="level-4 section" id="section-3-information-about-the-project-gutenberg-literary-archive-foundation">
-<h4 class="level-4 pfirst section-title title">Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation</h4>
-<p class="pfirst">The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Its 501(c)(3) letter is posted at
-<a class="reference external" href="http://www.gutenberg.org/fundraising/pglaf">http://www.gutenberg.org/fundraising/pglaf</a> . Contributions to the
-Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to
-the full extent permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.</p>
-<p class="pnext">The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr.
-S. Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are
-scattered throughout numerous locations. Its business office is
-located at 809 North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801)
-596-1887, email <a class="reference external" href="mailto:business@pglaf.org">business@pglaf.org</a>. Email contact links and up to date
-contact information can be found at the Foundation's web site and
-official page at <a class="reference external" href="http://www.pglaf.org">http://www.pglaf.org</a></p>
-<p class="pnext">For additional contact information:</p>
-<blockquote>
-<div>
-<div class="line-block outermost">
-<div class="line">Dr. Gregory B. Newby</div>
-<div class="line">Chief Executive and Director</div>
-<div class="line"><a class="reference external" href="mailto:gbnewby@pglaf.org">gbnewby@pglaf.org</a></div>
-</div>
-</div>
-</blockquote>
-</div>
-<div class="level-4 section" id="section-4-information-about-donations-to-the-project-gutenberg-literary-archive-foundation">
-<h4 class="level-4 pfirst section-title title">Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation</h4>
-<p class="pfirst">Project Gutenberg™ depends upon and cannot survive without wide spread
-public support and donations to carry out its mission of increasing
-the number of public domain and licensed works that can be freely
-distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest array of
-equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations ($1 to
-$5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt status
-with the IRS.</p>
-<p class="pnext">The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit <a class="reference external" href="http://www.gutenberg.org/fundraising/donate">http://www.gutenberg.org/fundraising/donate</a></p>
-<p class="pnext">While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.</p>
-<p class="pnext">International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.</p>
-<p class="pnext">Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: <a class="reference external" href="http://www.gutenberg.org/fundraising/donate">http://www.gutenberg.org/fundraising/donate</a></p>
-</div>
-<div class="level-4 section" id="section-5-general-information-about-project-gutenberg-electronic-works">
-<h4 class="level-4 pfirst section-title title">Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg™ electronic works.</h4>
-<p class="pfirst">Professor Michael S. Hart is the originator of the Project Gutenberg™
-concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared
-with anyone. For thirty years, he produced and distributed Project
-Gutenberg™ eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.</p>
-<p class="pnext">Project Gutenberg™ eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the
-U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.</p>
-<p class="pnext">Each eBook is in a subdirectory of the same number as the eBook's
-eBook number, often in several formats including plain vanilla ASCII,
-compressed (zipped), HTML and others.</p>
-<p class="pnext">Corrected <em class="italics">editions</em> of our eBooks replace the old file and take over
-the old filename and etext number. The replaced older file is
-renamed. <em class="italics">Versions</em> based on separate sources are treated as new
-eBooks receiving new filenames and etext numbers.</p>
-<p class="pnext">Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search
-facility:</p>
-<blockquote>
-<div>
-<p class="pfirst"><a class="reference external" href="http://www.gutenberg.org">http://www.gutenberg.org</a></p>
-</div>
-</blockquote>
-<p class="pfirst">This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg™, including
-how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
-Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to subscribe
-to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.</p>
-</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-</div>
+<div>*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK 39442 ***</div>
</body>
</html>
diff --git a/39442-rst.zip b/39442-rst.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index 8ce35a7..0000000
--- a/39442-rst.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/39442-rst/39442-rst.rst b/39442-rst/39442-rst.rst
deleted file mode 100644
index eb0f08d..0000000
--- a/39442-rst/39442-rst.rst
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,21165 +0,0 @@
-.. -*- encoding: utf-8 -*-
-
-.. meta::
- :PG.Id: 39442
- :PG.Released: 2012-04-12
- :PG.Rights: Public Domain
- :PG.Title: Study of the Bhâgavata Purâna
- :PG.Rights: Public Domain
- :PG.Producer: Bhakta Jim
- :PG.Credits: This file was produced from page images at the Internet Archive.
- :DC.Creator: Purnendu Narayana Sinha
- :DC.Title: A Study of the Bhâgavata Purâna or Esoteric Hinduism
- :DC.Language: en
- :DC.Created: 1901
- :coverpage: images/bhagap_cover.jpg
-
-===============================
-A Study of the Bhâgavata Purâna
-===============================
-
---------------------
-or Esoteric Hinduism
---------------------
-
-.. clearpage::
-
-.. pgheader::
-
-.. clearpage::
-
-.. topic:: Transcriber's Note
-
- The original book was very badly proofread and
- was filled with errors, inconsistent accents, improper punctuation,
- etc. Also the typesetters were unable to properly accent the book.
- As an example, the letter â is represented as Á when capitalized. The
- author probably wanted to use a macron instead of a circumflex or an
- accent to indicate a long syllable and was forced to settle for this
- mixture of circumflexes and accents instead. This etext will use the
- circumflex throughout and will attempt to accent
- words as consistently as possible.
-
- .. vspace:: 1
-
- In the original book some family tree tables were turned sideways.
- For reading as an e-book, these trees have been modified to read left to
- right rather than top-down. All family trees have been done as ASCII
- art. I have included the original page images containing the
- family trees as well.
-
- .. vspace:: 1
-
- The family tree tables in the book put female names in italics, but
- not consistently. Where possible I have followed this practice in
- the ASCII art version, but in many cases I have omitted the italics
- because it would throw off the alignment of the trees in the text
- version of the book. When in doubt consult the page images in the
- HTML version.
-
-.. cleardoublepage::
-
-.. container:: titlepage
-
- .. container:: center x-large
-
- A STUDY
-
- OF THE
-
- BHÂGAVATA PURÂNA
-
- OR
-
- ESOTERIC HINDUISM
-
- BY PURNENDU NARAYANA SINHA, M. A., B. L.
-
- .. figure:: images/bhagaf004.jpg
-
- .. container:: center x-large
-
- BENARES:
-
- PRINTED BY FREEMAN & Co., LTD.,
-
- AT THE TARA PRINTING WORKS. 1901.
-
-.. clearpage::
-
-.. container:: dedication
-
- .. container:: center x-large
-
- To
-
- **ANNIE BESANT**
-
- THE BHÂGAVATA OF BHÂGAVATAS
-
- THESE PAGES ARE RESPECTFULLY DEDICATED
-
- BY
-
- HER MOST DEVOTED BROTHER.
-
-.. cleardoublepage::
-
-"Let him kiss me with the kisses of his mouth: for thy love is better
-than wine.
-
-.. vspace:: 1
-
-"Because of the savour of thy good ointments thy name is as ointment
-poured forth, therefore do the virgins love thee.
-
-.. vspace:: 1
-
-"Tell me, O thou whom my soul loveth, where thou feedest, where thou
-makest thy flock to rest at noon; for why should I be as one that
-turneth aside by the flocks of thy companions?
-
-.. vspace:: 1
-
-"If thou know not, O thou fairest among women, go thy way forth by the
-footsteps of the flock, and feed thy kids beside the shepherds' tents."
-
-.. vspace:: 1
-
-THE SONG OF SOLOMON.
-
-.. cleardoublepage::
-
-.. frontmatter::
-
-PREFACE.
-========
-
-The Bhâgavata is the most popular of all Purânas and it is held in the
-highest esteem by Vaishnavas in all parts of India. It was the most
-authoritative book with such religious teachers as Shri Chaitanya.
-Several commentaries have been written on this great work. It is however
-strange that there has been so much discussion about the authoritative
-character of the work. The readers are all familiar with that discussion
-and I need not refer to it further than to say that the discussion does
-not in any way affect the intrinsic merit of the book, and the verdict
-of the public is so certain in this respect that the book will continue
-to be the most popular of all Purânas, despite any thing that may be
-said as to its authorship or the period of its appearance.
-
-The Padma Purâna devotes a chapter to the worship of this Purâna and
-calls it the most exalted of all the Purânas and the book is actually
-worshipped in many Hindu houses. The Purâna is recited all over India by
-learned Pandits and Sâdhus and its subject matter is familiar to every
-Hindu.
-
-PROFESSOR WILSON SAYS: — "Bhâgavata is a work of great celebrity in India
-and exercises a more direct and powerful influence upon the opinions and
-feelings of the people than perhaps any other of the Purânas. It is
-placed fifth in all the lists but the Padma Purâna ranks it as the
-eighteenth, as the extracted substance of all the rest. According to the
-usual specification it consists of eighteen thousand slokas, distributed
-amongst three hundred and thirty-two chapters divided into twelve
-Skandhas or books. It is named Bhâgavata from its being dedicated to
-the glorification of Bhagavat or Vishnu."
-
-Referring to the Tenth Skandha, Professor Wilson says "The tenth book is
-the characteristic part of the Purâna, and the portion upon which its
-popularity is founded. It has been translated into, perhaps, all the
-languages in India, and is a favourite work with all descriptions of
-people."
-
-Much as the book commands the respect of the Hindus, it has brought upon
-itself the ridicule and sarcasm of those that attack Hinduism. It is the
-Tenth Skandha which has given the greatest handle to all adverse
-criticism and it is the one Skandha in the whole book which is so little
-understood by foreigners, unacquainted with the genius of the Hindu
-religion, particularly with its love aspect which is the peculium of all
-real devotees in every great religion. But the modern professors of
-great religions, being lost in their material surroundings, have
-entirely lost sight of that aspect. The songs of Solomon will stand out
-in all ages as an expression of enthusiastic and rapturous love of the
-human soul for the Divine Lord, whether the Christians of the modern day
-understand them or not. The Divvans and Sufis bore the highest love to
-their divine Lover, whether or not the Mohammedans of the present day
-follow the outpourings of their heart.
-
-Love in religion is a Science. It is the natural outcome of the human
-soul, when it is freed from impurities and cured of distractions.
-
-All religions speak of the purity of the mind, and they speak also of
-devotion to God or Íshvara. But no religion other than Hinduism treats of
-the gradual development of the mind as a Science, treats of its
-purification and then of its natural attraction for Íshvara and the final
-assimilation of human life to Isvaric life as the law of the Universe.
-And no book in Hinduism deals with the subject so systematically
-specially with reference to the history of the Universe, as the
-Bhâgavata Purâna does. I have tried to understand the book myself as an
-earnest student, with the light afforded by the book itself. I have been
-greatly helped in the understanding of of the book by the commentary of
-Śridhara Svâmi which is by common consent the most authoritative of all
-the commentaries on the Bhâgavata Purâna. Once a Pandita prided himself
-before Sri Chaitanya on his having put an interpretation upon a certain
-sloka of the Purâna different from that of Śridhara Svâmi. Now "Svâmi"
-is the designation of a learned Sanyassi, such as Śridhara Svâmi was and
-it also means a husband. Sri Chaitanya remarked "one that does not
-follow the Svâmi is unchaste." Such was the high opinion which the great
-Teacher held regarding Śridhara's commentary.
-
-I have purposely avoided making any reference to the commentaries made
-by the followers of Srî Chaitanya as I intend to study them separately
-along with the teachings of his school.
-
-The method of treatment followed in this study will speak for itself. I
-have separated the text from my own observations except in the
-introductory chapter and in the reference to Sukadeva in the chapter on
-Virât Purusha, and one can follow the text itself, without accepting any
-of my own views. I believe I have faithfully reproduced the text in its
-essential features, I have omitted unimportant details, poetical
-descriptions, prayers and adorations some of them most beautiful and
-sublime — and I have also omitted the introduction by Suta and his
-concluding words. Suta related the Purâna to Rishi Sounaka and others as
-he heard it from Sukadeva.
-
-The proofs have passed through different hands and the transliteration
-of Sanskrit words has been differently made. For instance [Sanskrit
-Letter] has been rendered as s, ś, *s* and sh. Though I would prefer ś,
-the dash has been generally omitted, for the convenience of the printer.
-There have been also several mistakes in names.
-
-My best thanks are due to the several gentlemen, who have gone through
-the proofs and specially to my friend Mr. Bertram Keightley M, A., who
-has gone through nearly the whole of the manuscripts.
-
-.. clearpage::
-
-.. contents:: Table of Contents
-
-.. cleardoublepage::
-
-.. mainmatter::
-
-
-SKANDHA I.
-==========
-
-THE IDEAL OF BHÂGAVATA PURÂNA: A DISCOURSE BETWEEN VYÂSA AND NÂRADA.
---------------------------------------------------------------------
-
-"I have duly respected the Vedas, the teachers and the sacrificial fire,
-I have put the sense of all the Vedas into the Mahâbhârata and have made
-their sacred lore accessible to all classes of men. I have done all
-this, nay, much more. Still I think my work is not fully done." So
-thought Veda Vyâsa, the adept author of the Kali Yuga, while meditating
-on the sacred banks of the Sarasvati, and his heart became heavy with
-something, he knew not what. At this time Nârada appeared before
-him — Nârada, who knew all that transpired in the Trilokî and who could
-enter into the hearts of all beings. "Thou hast fully known," said
-Nârada, "all that is knowable, for thou hast written the excellent
-Mahâbhârata, which leaves nothing unsaid. How is it then thou feelest
-dispirited as if thy object were not gained?" What could Vyâsa say in
-reply; he only inquired from the seer Nârada the cause of his
-uneasiness.
-
-Nârada entered into a free criticism of the Bhagavat Gitâ, the
-philosophical portion of the Mahâbhârata, pointed out its shortcomings
-and suggested to Vyâsa what next to do. A few remarks will be necessary
-to understand all this.
-
-There are seven planes Bhûr, Bhuvar, Svar, Mahar, Jana, Tapas and Satya.
-
-Bhûr is the terrestrial plane.
-
-Bhuvar is the astral plane.
-
-Svar is the plane of Kâma and desires.
-
-These three planes, collectively known as Trilokî, are the planes of
-personality. Kâma is the guiding principle of existence in Trilokî, and
-a recurrence of births and re-births its main characteristic. With every
-Night of Brahmâ, this triple plane comes to an end, transferring its
-energies to the next higher plane, and is re-born with every Day of
-Brahmâ. Mahar is intermediate between Trilokî and the three higher Lokas
-of Universality.
-
-The Vedic school laid great stress on communion with the Devas of Svar
-Loka or Svarga or Indra Loka, and this was pre-eminently known as Vedic
-Yajna. The performance of Vedic Yajna led only to a prolonged
-gratification of kâma in Svar Loka. But however long the period might
-be, it was limited by the magnitude of the force (Apûrva) which buoyed
-up the individuality in the Svar Loka. As the Gitâ says, when the merits
-are exhausted the observer of Vedic Dharma enters again into the
-transitory plane. The course of births and re-births is then set up
-anew, with constant transformations and with all the miseries of
-existence conditioned by personality.
-
-This was not Mukti or liberation. The followers of the post-vedic or
-Upanishad school contended that liberation lay in crossing the triple
-plane of individuality to the higher cosmic planes of universality. When
-an individual reaches the higher planes, he does not again become
-subject to transformations, and to the constant recurrence of births and
-re-births. There is one continued life, one continued existence in the
-higher planes, till the end of cosmos or the Life of Brahmâ. This life
-is not measured by personalities but is the cosmical life, and the
-individuality becomes a cosmical entity. Further there is life also
-beyond the cosmos, in the highest plane, the abode of the Supreme.
-
-The Gitâ only incidentally describes the highest plane in the following
-sloka:
-
-"That is my supreme abode, by reaching which (Jivas) do not recur (to
-fresh births). Not the Sun, not the Moon, not even fire illumines that." — XV. 6.
-
-Krishna also refers to that plane in VIII. 20 and XV. 4. 5.
-
-The Gitâ lays down Nishkâma Karma, or the unselfish performance of the
-duties of life (Sva-dharma) as the first step towards reaching the
-higher planes. The sense of separateness is killed by Nishkâma Karma.
-Then the Gitâ takes the disciple to Upâsanâ or communion with the
-Purusha of the highest plane, but scarcely a glimpse is given of that
-plane and its surroundings. The Mahâbhârata does not throw any light on
-the dwellers of the higher planes, nor does it give any details of those
-planes. Without any distinct prospect of trans-Trilokî life, one is
-asked to adhere to the duties appertaining to one's own sphere of life
-(Sva-dharma) and to perform those duties unselfishly. However transitory
-the things of Trilokî may be, there are attractions enough for the frail
-sons of Manu, abounding in passions and desires. What can then bind a
-man to the higher planes and the highest Purûsha of those planes or
-Bhagavân? It is only a description of the grandeur and the glory of
-those planes and of Bhagavân. Such description begets Bhakti or holy
-attachment, and it is this Bhakti which sets up a real communion with
-Bhagavân. Frail as man is, the mere performance of duties makes him
-attached to them, unless he is bound to the higher planes by the tie of
-holy attachment. The Gitâ is however silent as to the attractions of the
-higher planes and of Bhagavân. This was the defect pointed out by
-Nârada.
-
-"O thou great Muni, as thou hast treated of Dharma and of other things,
-so thou hast not recited the glory of Vâsudeva". — I. 5. 9.
-
-"This universe is also an aspect of Bhagavân, for its creation,
-preservation and end proceed from Him. Thou knowest all this thyself.
-But thou hast shown to others only a portion of this truth." — I. 5. 20.
-
-"Salutations to Thee, Bhagavân, let me meditate on Vâsudeva. Salutations
-to Pradyumna, Aniruddha and to Sankarshana. He who, by naming these
-*mûrtis* in the *mûrtiless*, whose only *mûrti* is mantra, makes
-offerings to Yajna Purusha, is the complete seer." — I. 5. 37-38. A
-mystery lies veiled in this Śloka.
-
-But who is this Nârada? Why should we accept his authority? Nârada was
-therefore careful to give his own account, elaborated by the enquiries
-of Vyâsa. All students of occultism will do well to read carefully this
-account which forms a fitting preliminary to the Bhâgavata.
-
-
-
-ACCOUNT OF NARADA.
-------------------
-
-**SKANDHA I. CHAP. 5 & 6.**
-
-"In the previous Kalpa, in my former birth, I was born of a certain
-maid-servant of Vedic Rishis. Certain Yogis had collected at a place to
-pass the rainy season and I was engaged as a boy to serve them. Seeing
-me void of all fickleness as a boy and self-controlled, the Munis, who
-looked on all with equal eyes, were kind to me, especially as I gave up
-play, followed them, served them and talked little. With the permission
-of the regenerated I at one time partook of the remnants of their meal
-and the impurities of my mind were all removed. When thus my mind became
-pure, my inclination grew towards their Dharma. By their favor I heard
-them sing the beautiful stories of Krishna. Hearing those stories every
-day with faith, I gained holy love for Krishna. Through that love my
-mind became fixed in Him and I came to perceive my Sthûla and Sûkshma
-bodies as only false reflections of the real Self or Brahmâ. The Bhakti
-that grew up in me destroyed my Rajas and Tamas. Then when the kind
-Rishis were about to leave the place, they imparted to me the most
-occult knowledge which had been given to them by Bhagavân himself.
-Through that knowledge I have known the Mâyâ of Bhagavân. It is by that
-knowledge that one reaches the plane of Bhagavân. As I cultivated this
-occult knowledge, Bhagavân appeared Himself and gave me knowledge and
-powers direct."
-
-[Śridhara Svâmi, the commentator of Bhâgavata Purâna notes the following
-points in the above story (1) Sevâ, *i.e.*, service of and attendance on
-Mahâtmâs, (2) their kripâ or favor, (3) trust in their Dharma, (4)
-hearing the stories of Bhagavân, (5) attachment to Bhagavân, (6)
-knowledge of Self by the discrimination of the Sthûla and the Sûkshma
-body, (7) firm Bhakti, (8) knowledge of the reality of Bhagavân, (9) at
-the last the appearance of omniscience and other powers through the
-favor of Bhagavân.]
-
-What followed then, inquired Vyâsa? Nârada continued:
-
-"Sometime after my teachers, the Bhikshus, had gone away, my mother died
-of snake-bite. I deemed that an act of God and went towards the North.
-After crossing several forests, rivers and mountains, I at last reached
-a solitary forest and there sat under a pipal tree. As directed by my
-teachers, I meditated on self in self through self. My mind had been
-completely conquered by Bhakti. As I was devotedly meditating on the
-lotus feet of Bhagavân with tear-drops in my eyes, Hari gradually
-appeared in my heart. O Muni, the hairs of my body stood on end through
-exuberance of holy love, I was completely lost in joy and knew not
-either self or any other. The indescribable Íshvara spoke thus in solemn
-words:
-
-"O thou that dost not deserve to see me in this life, I am difficult to
-be seen by imperfect Yogis, whose likes and dislikes have not been
-completely burnt up. I have shown myself to thee that thy Kâma may all
-be centred in me. When I am the object of Kâma, the Sâdhu gives up all
-other desires. By prolonged service of Mahâtmâs, thy mind is firmly
-fixed in me. Therefore shalt thou give up this faulty body and acquire
-my companionship. The mind fixed in me is never destroyed in creation or
-in pralaya, nor does the memory fail.'"
-
-"So saying Íshvara disappeared. In time, when I was drawn towards the
-pure body with which I was favored by Bhagavân, the body of my five
-Bhûtas fell down on the extinction of my Prârabdha Karma. When the Kalpa
-came to an end my new body was indrawn by the breath of Brahmâ who was
-going to sleep. After one thousand Yuga Cycles, when Brahmâ awoke and
-desired to create, I, Marichi, and other Rishis came out. Since then I
-have invariably observed Brahmâcharya and through the favor of Vishnu
-have been travelling all over Trilokî, both inside and outside, my
-passage being wholly unobstructed. The Devas gave me this Vinâ which is
-adorned with Svara-Brahmâ. By playing upon this Vinâ I send forth songs
-of Hari all round. These songs are the only means of crossing the ocean
-of recurring lives."
-
-[This is the mystery of Nârada as related in the Purânas. Nârada is the
-repository of occult knowledge from the previous Kalpa. The first and
-foremost adept of this Kalpa, his mission is to spread occult knowledge,
-by unceasingly playing on the seven musical notes. He is ever watchful
-and always bides his time in all cyclic changes. He is the only Rishi of
-whom the Vina is a constant accompaniment, as it is of the goddess
-Sarasvati. His sphere of action is Trilokî, and the dwellers of Bhûr,
-Bhuvar, and Svar alike respect him. He is the universal counsellor, even
-of the highest Devas and of the highest Rishis. His constant mission is
-the good of the Universe. One thing is said of him, that he sometimes
-serves his purpose by setting one against another and amongst the
-ignorant his name is a bye-word for quarrel. However that be, the
-greatest good of the Universe in this Kalpa has been always done by him.
-It is under his inspiration, that Valmiki and Vyâsa wrote their most
-occult works, and his benign influence is observed in all universal
-changes for good. The Bhâgavata recites his constant endeavours to do
-good and we shall consider them in detail hereafter.]
-
-
-
-VIRAT PURUSHA.
---------------
-
-**SK. I. CH. 18 & SK. II. CH. I.**
-
-Vyâsa drew upon his inspiration and wrote the Bhâgavata. He taught this
-Purâna to his son, the wonderful Suka. Suka did not marry, as Rishis in
-his time did. He left his home and roamed about the world at large,
-stark naked. The separation was painful to Vyâsa and he went out in
-search of his son. While he passed near a tank, the Apsarasas, who were
-freely indulging in play, hastily drew up their clothes, feeling
-ashamed. "Strange!" exclaimed Vyâsa, "I am old and covered. But when my
-young son, wholly uncovered, went this way, you remained unmoved." And
-the Deva-ladies replied, "Thy son knows not man and woman, but thou
-knowest." This exalted Suka was the worthy propounder of the Bhâgavata
-Purâna.
-
-Râjâ Parikshit, son of Abhimanyu and grandson of Arjuna, the successor
-of Râjâ Yudisthira on the throne of Hastinâpura, forgot himself in a fit
-of anger and placed a dead serpent round the neck of a Rishi. For this
-he was cursed by the Rishi's son to meet with untimely death at the end
-of a week. The Râjâ became penitent and deemed the curse an act of God.
-He prepared himself for death and took up his abode on the sacred banks
-of the Ganges in company with all the Rishis. The Râjâ asked what a man
-on the point of death should do. The Rishis present could not give any
-satisfactory answer. At this time Suka appeared, followed by a host of
-boys, who took him to be a mad man. Suka was then only sixteen with long
-flowing hairs and well-built body, blooming with nature's beauty. All
-rose up as they saw the very young Rishi, and gave him the first seat.
-He related the Bhâgavata Purâna to Parikshit in seven days.
-
-The Râjâ repeated his question to Suka — "What is a dying man, specially
-one who desires to attain Moksha, to do? What are the duties of men and
-what are they not to do?"
-
-Suka replied: — "A man on the approach of death is to give up all fear of
-death and is to cut off all likes and dislikes by dispassion. He is to
-leave his house, bathe in pure water and duly make his âsana in some
-solitary place. He is then to meditate on the three lettered Pranava
-with mind concentrated by Dhârâna and Dhyâna till he attains *samâdhi*. If,
-however, his mind gets distracted by Rajas and Tamas, he is again and
-again to practise Dhârâna."
-
-"What Dhârâna is it that speedily brings on concentration and purity of
-mind?" was the next question.
-
-Suka replied: — "Dhârâna of the Sthûla aspect of Bhagavâna, by a fully
-controlled mind." He then went on dilating on the Sthûla or Universe
-aspect, called Virât Purusha or Mahâpurusha. The present, the past, the
-future is manifest in that aspect. The Virâta Purusha is the soul of an
-Egg-like body with a seven-fold cover of earth, water, fire, air, âkasa,
-Ahankâra, and Mahat, respectively.
-
-Pâtâla is His feet, Rasâtala His heels, Mahâtala His ankles, Talâtala
-His legs, Sutala His knees, Vitala the lower portion of His thighs, and
-Atala the upper portion.
-
-Bhûr Loka is His loins, Bhuvar Loka His navel, Svar Loka His breast,
-Mahar Loka His throat, Jana Loka His mouth, Tapas Loka His forehead, and
-Satya Loka is the head of the thousand-headed Virât Purusha. Indra and
-other Usra Devas (the world Usra meaning, literally, a ray of light) are
-his hands.
-
-The Dik or space gods are his ears. The twin gods Asvini Kumâra are his
-nose.
-
-Agni is His mouth.
-
-The firmament is His eyes and the Sun-god His sight.
-
-Day and night are His eye-lashes.
-
-The graceful movement of His eye-brows is the abode of the Supreme.
-
-Water is His palate, taste His tongue.
-
-The Vedas are known as His Brahmâ-randhra.
-
-Yâma is His tusk.
-
-The objects of affection are His teeth.
-
-His enchanting smile is Mâyâ.
-
-The endless creation is His side-glance.
-
-His lower lip is shame, and the upper greed.
-
-Dharma is His breast. Adharma His back.
-
-Prajâpati is His generative organ.
-
-The Mitrâ-Varuna gods are His sense of taste.
-
-The seas are His belly, the mountains His bony system and the rivers His
-veins and arteries.
-
-The trees are the hairs of the Universe-bodied.
-
-The powerful wind-god is His breath.
-
-Time is His movement.
-
-His play is the flow of Gunas.
-
-The clouds are His hairs.
-
-Twilight is His clothing.
-
-Prakriti is His heart.
-
-His manas is the moon, which is the source of all transformations.
-
-Mahat is His Chitta.
-
-Rudra is His Ahankâra.
-
-Horses, mules, camels and elephants are His nails.
-
-All the other animals are His loins.
-
-The birds are His wonderful art.
-
-He is the abode of Manu, Buddhi and Man.
-
-Gandharva, Vidyâdhara, Chârana and Apsaras are His musical notes.
-
-The Asuras are His strength.
-
-The Brâhmana is His mouth, the Kshatriya His hands, the Vaisya His
-thighs, and the black Sûdra His feet.
-
-The Devas severally and collectively are His *havis* or sacrificial ghee,
-and yajna is His karma.
-
-This is Virât Purusha. This is how the Universe-aspect of Purusha is
-realised in meditation, more as a means of concentration, than as the
-end. When the mind is sufficiently fixed by Dhârâna or contemplation of
-Virât Purusha, it has next to meditate on the Purusha in the heart.
-
-.. clearpage::
-
-SKANDHA II.
-===========
-
-THE PURUSHA IN ALL HEARTS.
---------------------------
-
-**SKANDHA II., CHAP. 2.**
-
-Some meditate within their own body on the Purusha of the size of
-*prâdesa* (the space of the thumb and forefinger) in the space covered by
-the heart, who dwells there. He has four hands containing Sankha
-(conch), chakra (a sharp circular missile), Gadâ (club) and Padma
-(lotus). His face is smiling, His eyes are as wide as lotus petals, and
-His cloth is yellow as the filament of the Kadamba flower. His armlets
-glitter with gems and gold. His crown and earrings sparkle with
-brilliant stones. Adepts in Yoga place His feet on the pericarp of the
-full blown lotus in the heart. With Him is Srî (Lakshmî). The Kaustubha
-gem is on His neck. He is adorned with a garland of ever blooming wild
-flowers. His hair is curling and deep blue. His very look is full of
-kindness to all.
-
-As long as the mind is not fixed by Dhârâna, meditate on this form of
-Íshvara, with the help of thy imagination. Concentrate your mind on one
-limb after another, beginning with the feet of Vishnu and ending with
-His smiling face. Try to grasp every limb in thought and then proceed to
-the next-higher. But as long as Bhakti or Devotion is not developed, do
-not fail to contemplate also on the Universe aspect of Purusha.
-
-
-THE DEATH OF THE YOGI AND AFTER.
---------------------------------
-
-**SKANDHA II., CHAP. 2.**
-
-When all desires are controlled by meditation, and the Yogi is lost in
-the contemplation of Vishnu, he sits in proper posture, pressing his
-feet against the anus and perseveringly draws the vital air upwards to
-the six centres. He draws the air in the navel centre (Manipur) to the
-cardiac plexus, thence to the plexus beneath the throat (Visúddha),
-thence gradually by intuition to the root of the palate. (Śridhara Svâmi
-calls this last the higher part of Visúddha chakra, and remarks that the
-vital air is not displaced from that position. This may be called the
-pharyngeal plexus.) Thence he takes the vital air to Ajna chakra, which
-is situated between the two eye-brows. Then he controls the seven holes
-(the ears, the eyes, the nostrils and the mouth). He then looks steadily
-for half a Muhurta, and if he has not a trace of desire left in him
-gives up the body and the Indriyas, passes out through the
-Brahmâ-randhra and attains the state of Vishnu.
-
-[It will be noticed above that six plexuses are mentioned other than the
-Sacral and the prostatic.
-
-In the death of the desireless Yogi, there is no record of thereafter,
-for nothing is known beyond our cosmos.]
-
-"But, O king," said Suka, "if the Yogi seeks for the highest cosmic
-state or for the roamings of aerial Siddhas over the whole of cosmos, in
-full control of the eight Siddhis, he will then take his Manas and
-Indriyas with him. It is said that these Masters of Yoga can move both
-inside and outside Trilokî, for their Linga Sarira consists of the atoms
-of air. The state attained by those that acquire Samâdhi by Upâsana,
-Tapas and Yoga cannot be reached by Vedic Karma. In space when the Yogi
-moves towards the Brahmâ Loka or Satya Loka, he first goes by means of
-his Sushumnâ Nâdi to Vaisvânara or the fire-god for the Sushumnâ by its
-light extends beyond the body. His impurities being all washed away, he
-goes upwards to the Sisumâra Chakra of Hari (*i.e.*, up to the highest
-point of Trilokî, as will be explained afterwards). Then crossing that
-Chakra of Vishnu, which is the navel of the Universe, he reaches the
-Mahar Loka with his pure Linga Sarira. There the dwellers of Svarga
-cannot go. Mahar Loka is the abode of Brahmâvids, where Bhrigu and other
-adepts who live for a whole Kalpa dwell.
-
-"The Yogi remains in Mahar Loka till the end of the Kalpa, when, seeing
-the Trilokî burnt up by fire from the mouth of Ananta or Sankarshana,
-the fires reaching even Mahar Loka's he moves towards the abode of
-Paramesthi (Satya Loka or Brahmâ Loka). This highest Loka lasts for two
-Parârddhas and is adorned by the chariots of the kings of Siddhas.
-There is no sorrow in Brahmâ Loka, no infirmity, no death, no misery, no
-fear of any kind. But the Yogi suffers from mental pain caused by
-sympathy with those that suffer for their ignorance of the supreme state
-in the recurrence of births with their endless miseries.
-
-"There are three courses for those that go to Brahmâ Loka. Some by the
-excellence of their merits get responsible cosmical positions at the
-next Kalpa. Others remain in the Brahmâ Loka till the end of the cosmos
-or Brahmânda. The Upâsakas of Bhagavân however may at their will pierce
-through the cosmos or Brahmânda and reach the trans-cosmic plane of
-Vishnu. The text goes on to say how this is done. The cosmos consists of
-seven Pâtalas and seven Lokas, together forming the fourteen-fold
-Bhuvana, which extends over 50 Krores of Yojanas (1 Yojana = 8 miles).
-Surrounding this is a covering of the earthy principle, such as was not
-used up in the formation of the cosmos, extending over one krore of
-yojanas. (According to some this covering extends over 50 krores of
-yojanas.) The second cover is of water, extending over ten times as much
-space as earth, the third of fire, the fourth of air, the fifth of
-âkása, the sixth of Ahankâra, the seventh of Mahat, each covering ten
-times as much space as the one preceding. The eighth cover is Prakriti,
-which is all pervading. The Linga Sarira of the Yogi in passing through
-the earthy cover, becomes earthy, through water becomes watery, and
-through fire, fiery. With the fiery body he goes to the air cover and
-with the airy cover to the âkása cover. He passes also through the
-Tanmâtras and senses them. He passes through Prâna itself and becomes
-all action. Having thus crossed the Sthûla and Sûkshma coverings, the
-Yogi reaches the sixth covering that of the Transformable or Ahankâra
-Tatva, which is the absorber of the Tanmâtras and of the Indriyas.
-Thence he goes to Mahat Tatva and thence to Pradhâna, where all the
-Gunas find their resting place. Then becoming all Pradhâna himself full
-of bliss, he attains with the exhaustion of all *upâdhis* the trans-cosmic
-Atmâ, which is Peace and Bliss.
-
-"These are the two ways to Mukti, the one prompt and the other deferred
-as sung in the Vedas."
-
-The following Diagram may be of some help in understanding the above: —
-
-.. figure:: images/bhagap011.png
- :alt: A diagram of concentric circles with P at the center and M' the outermost, with the Key below working inwards.
-
- A diagram of concentric circles with P at the center and M' the outermost, with the Key below working inwards.
-
-
-KEY TO THE CIRCLE.
-
-M' = Mahat cover 1,000,000 Krores or 50,000,000 Krores Yojanas.
-
-A" = Ahankâra cover 100,000 or 5,000,000 Krores Yojanas.
-
-A' = Âkâs cover 10,000 or 500,000 Krores Yojanas.
-
-V = Vayu cover 1000 or 50.000 Krores Yojanas.
-
-T' = Tejas cover 100 or 5000 Krores Yojanas.
-
-A = Âpas cover 10 or 500 Krores Yojanas.
-
-E = Earth cover 1 or 50 Krores Yojanas.
-
-S'= Satya Loka
-
-T = Tapas Loka
-
-J = Jana Loka
-
-M = Mahar Loka
-
-S = Svar Loka
-
-B' = Bhuvar Loka
-
-B = Bhûr Loka
-
-P = Seven Pâtâlas
-
-S' to P = 50 Krores Yojanas.
-
-A' to E = Includes Tanmatras, Indriyas and Prana.
-
-Prakriti surrounds the whole circle.
-
-
-
-WHAT MEN ARE TO DO AND WHAT THEY ARE NOT TO DO.
------------------------------------------------
-
-**SKANDHA II. CHAP. 3.**
-
-This was the second part of Parikshit's question, and to this general
-question, the answer is also general. Those that want divine glory
-worship Brahmâ. Those that want their Indriyas to be powerful worship
-Indra and so on. But those that are desirous of Moksha must practise
-Bhakti Yoga towards the supreme Purusha. Of all Upasakas, this is the
-only means of attaining supreme bliss, unswerving Bhakti or devotion to
-Bhagavân and the company of Bhâgavatas.
-
-
-THE BHAGÂVATA PURÂNA AS RELATED BY BRAHMÂ TO NÂRADA.
-----------------------------------------------------
-
-**SKANDHA II. CHAP. 4-6.**
-
-I. THE CREATION.
-````````````````
-
-Parikshit next asked "How did Bhagavân create this Universe, how does
-He preserve it, how will He draw it in? What are the Śaktis by which He
-manifests Himself directly and indirectly? What are His actions?"
-
-Suka replied, these were the very questions asked by Nârada of his
-father Brahmâ.
-
-Brahmâ replied: — "Wishing to become manifold, the Lord of Mâyâ,
-influenced Kala, Karma and Svabhâva, by his own Mâyâ". (Kala is the flow
-of Time and is, according to the Bhâgavata Purâna, the Śakti of Purusha.
-Karma is the *adrishta* of Jiva or the Jiva record of the previous Kalpa.
-Svabhâva is the essence of Prakriti). Under the influence of Purusha,
-the first disturbance in the equilibrium of the Gunas follows from Kala,
-transformation follows from Svabhâva and the development of Mahat Tatva
-follows from Karma. When Rajas and Tamas manifest themselves in Mahat
-Tatva, it is transformed into Ahankâra Tatva, with predominant Tamas.
-Ahankâra Tatva by transformation becomes threefold. — Sâtvika, Râjasika
-and Tâmasika, i.e., Jnâna Śakti (potency to produce the Devas), Kriyâ
-Śakti (potency to produce the Indriyas), and Dravya Śakti (potency to
-produce the Bhûtas), respectively.
-
-Tâmasa Ahankâra was first transformed into Âkása, Âkása into Vayu, Vayu
-into Agni, Agni into Âpas, and Âpas into Prithivi, Sâtvika Ahankâra was
-transformed into Manas and the ten Vaikârika Devas.
-
-[The Vaikârika Devas are the Adhidevas or the Energy-giving gods of the
-ten Indriyas. Sensing is *in* Man or Adhi-Âtmâ, it is of the object or
-Adhi-bhuta and is *caused by* Vaikarika Deva or Adhi-Deva. Thus the object
-seen is Adhi-bhûta, the sight is Adhyâtma and the manifesting Energy of
-sight is Adhideva.]
-
-The Vaikârika Devas are —
-
-Dik for Hearing;
-
-Vayu for Touch;
-
-Sun for Sight;
-
-Varuna for Taste;
-
-Asvini Kumâras for Smell;
-
-Agni for Speech;
-
-Indra for Pani or action of the hand;
-
-Upendra or Vishnu for Pada or action of the foot;
-
-Mitra or Yâma for Payu or excretion;
-
-and Prajâpati for Upastha or generation.
-
-Râjasika Ahankâra was transformed into the ten Indriyas.
-
-The foregoing can be shown in the following table: —
-
-.. figure:: images/bhagap013.png
- :alt: There is a pendulum-like drawing between the word Purusha and the phrase starting with Kâla which is the pendulum swinging left and Karma which is the pendulum swinging right.
-
- There is a pendulum-like drawing between the word Purusha and the phrase starting with Kâla which is the pendulum swinging left and Karma which is the pendulum swinging right.
-
-::
-
- PURUSHA.
-
- Kâla causing
- disturbance
- in the equilibrium of Karma
- Gunas.
- Svabhâva.
-
-
- Transformation
-
-
- Details of transformation from
- Mahat downwards.
-
- Mahat.
- |
- Ahankâra.
- |
- +---------------------+------------------+
- | | |
- Sâtvika or Râjasika Tâmasika
- Vaikârika, = Kriyâ Śakti. = Dravya Śakti.
- = Jnâna Śakti | |
- | | |
- | The 10 Indriyas Akâsa
- | |
- | Vâyu (air).
- +--------+ |
- | | Agni (fire).
- Manas The 10 Vaikârika |
- Devas or Adhidevas Apas (water).
- |
- Prithivi (earth).
-
-
-
-This is the Kârana creation or the creation of the materials of the
-Individual creation. They could not, however, unite and proceed further
-with the work of creation. The Śakti of Bhagavân then permeated them and
-the cosmic Egg or Brahmânda was formed. The Egg remained for a thousand
-years unconsciously submerged in the primal waters. Purusha then
-influenced Kâla, Karma and Svabhâva to send forth vitality into it. It
-is this Purusha that emerged from the Egg with thousands of heads and
-thousands of limbs and is known as Virât Purusha. The seven Lokas and
-the seven Pâtâlas are parts of His body. This is the first Avatâra, the
-Âdi Purusha that creates, preserves and destroys. All the objects of
-creation are His Avatâras, or Śaktis or Vibhutis. The Lilâ Avatârs of
-Virât Purusha or special Incarnations for the preservation of the
-Universe are detailed below.
-
-
-II. PRESERVATION BY LILÂ AVATÂRAS.
-``````````````````````````````````
-
-**SKANDHA II. CHAP. 7.**
-
-1. *Varâha* — In order to raise the Earth from the waters, the Purusha
- adopted the body of Varâha or Boar and killed with His tusks the first
- Daitya Hiranyâksha.
-
-2. *Yajna* — was born of Ruchi and Âkuti. The Suyama Devas were born of
- Yajna. He dispelled the fears of Trilokî.
-
-3. *Kapila* — was born of Kardama Prajâpati and his wife Devahûti. He taught
- Brahmâ Vidyâ to his mother.
-
-4. *Dattâtreya* — He preached Yoga to his disciples, who acquired powers and
- became liberated.
-
-5. *The Kumâras.* — Sanat Kumâra, Sanaka, Sanandana and Sanâtana. They
- completely promulgated the Âtmâ Vidyâ, which had been lost in Pralaya.
-
-6. *Nara Nârâyana.* — They were born of Dharma and his wife Murti, daughter
- of Daksha. Their Tapas was so great that the Deva ladies could not shake
- it.
-
-7. *Dhruva.* — Though a boy, he could not bear the words of his step-mother.
- He went into the forests and made Tapas. He was rewarded with ascent to
- Dhruva Loka or the region of the polar star.
-
-8. *Prithu.* — He milked out riches and edibles from the earth.
-
-9. *Rishabha.* — Rishabha was the son of Nàbhi by Sudevi or Meru Devi. He
- roamed about as Parama Hansa.
-
-10. *Hayagrîva.* — This horse-headed Avatâra appeared in the Vedic Yajna and
- promulgated the Vedas.
-
-11. *Matsya.* — Vaivasvata Mann found out this Avatâra at the end of a
- cycle of Yugas. He preserved all beings and the Vedas from the waters of
- the Deluge.
-
-12. *Kûrma.* — At the great churning of the Ocean, the Tortoise Avatâra
- supported the Mandâra mountain.
-
-13. *Nrisinha.* — The Man-Lion Avatâra killed Hiranyakâsîpu.
-
-14. *Hari* — saved the Elephant King of the famous story of Gajendra Moksha.
-
-15. *Vâmana* — measured the Trilokî by His two steps.
-
-16. *Hansa* — related Bhakti Yoga, Gnana and Bhâgavata Purâna to Nârada.
-
-17. The presiding deity of each Manvantara.
-
-18. *Dhanvantari* — promulgated the science of medicine.
-
-19. *Parasu Râma* — suppressed the Kshatriyas who became disregardful of the
- Brâhmanas and the Sâstras.
-
-20. *Râma* — destroyed Lankâ and killed Râvana.
-
-21. *Râma* and *Krishna*. — The tenth Canto of Bhâgavata is entirely devoted
- to their deeds.
-
-22. *Vyâsa.* — He divided the trunk of the Veda tree into several branches.
-
-23. *Buddha.* — When the Asuras came to know the Vedic mysteries and to
- oppress people, Buddha incarnated Himself in order to confound them by
- preaching a variety of by-religions.
-
-24. *Kalki* — will appear before the end of Kali Yuga, to set things right.
-
-Besides these Lilâ Avatâras, there are Mâyâ Guna Avatâras and Vibhûtis
-or Śaktis.
-
-In *creation* these are:
-
-Tapas, Brahmâ, the Rishis, and the Nine Prajâpatis.
-
-In *preservation* they are:
-
-Dharma, Vishnu, Manu, Devas and Kings.
-
-In *Pralaya* they are:
-
-Adharma, Śiva, Serpents and Asuras.
-
-O Nârada, this is, in brief, the Bhâgavata Purâna. You relate it to
-others in a much more expanded form, so that people may have Bhakti or
-Divine attachment to Bhagavân.
-
-THOUGHTS ON THE ABOVE.
-``````````````````````
-
-The above account of creation relates to Trilokî
-and to the dwellers of Trilokî. After creation, some come down from the
-higher planes and hold responsible positions as we have already seen.
-The Vaikârika Devas, who may be identified with the Vedic Devas, are
-created or rather manifested in the Trilokî before the Individual
-creation. They appertain to what the Purâna calls Kârana or causal
-Creation. The Vaikritika Devas and Deva Yonis, known as Elemental in
-Theosophical language, are created according to their Karma in the
-previous Kalpa and are subject to gradual evolution during the Kalpa.
-The Vaikarika Devas, however, remain as they are during the whole of the
-Kalpa. Similarly the Devas of the higher planes, e. g., Kumudas, Ribhus,
-Pratardanas, Anjanâbhas and Pratitâbhas of Mahar Loka, Brahma Purohitas,
-Brahma Kayikas, Brahma Mahâ Kayikas and Amaras of Jana Loka, Âbhasvaras,
-Mahâbhasvaras, and Satya Mahâbhasvaras of Tapas Loka and Achyutas,
-Súddha Nibâsas, Satyâbhas and Sanjnâ Sanjnins of Satya Loka these are
-not affected by creation in Trilokî. The dwellers of those Lokas other
-than Devas are also similarly not affected. The story of creation is a
-simple one. As the Linga Purâna says, when Earth is scorched up in the
-summer season, it becomes fallow and the roots of vegetation remain
-underground. They, however, wait for the rainy season to germinate again
-and grow in all the varieties of the previous vegetation. Similarly when
-the previous creation is burnt up by the fires of Pralaya, the roots
-remain imbedded in Prakriti, which becomes fallow. The fallowness is
-removed on the approach of the creative period or Kâla. Kâla, according
-to Bhâgavata, is a Śakti of Purush or the Unmanifested Logos. Then
-transformation follows in Prakriti according to Svabhâva or the inherent
-nature of Prakriti and Karma, or the root-record of the previous Kalpa
-gives shape to the transformation.
-
-Śridhara Svâmi quotes a sloka, which says that there are three Purusha
-manifestations. The first Purusha is the creator of Mahat and other
-elemental principles (Tatvas). The Second Purusha is the dweller of the
-Cosmic Egg. The Third Purusha is the pervader of all beings.
-
-Creation is divided into two stages. First the creation of the
-principles themselves or Tatvas, which unite to form globes and
-individuals. This is called Kârana creation. Secondly the creation of
-individuals and of globes. This is called Kârya or resultant creation.
-Following the law of periodicity, the First Purusha energises the latent
-Karma or Jiva-record of the previous Kalpa, and prepares the ground for
-the development of that Karma, by setting Prakriti into active
-transformation. This is the First Life Wave which caused the principles
-to appear by themselves. The First Purusha permeated these principles as
-pure Âtmâ.
-
-But the principles could not unite to make the forms, and to make
-individuals and globes. Purusha, as pure Âtmâ could not guide them
-further, as the gulf between Purusha and Prakriti was too wide. So
-Purusha had to limit Himself further, by uniting with Mûla Prakriti, as
-one undivided whole, and so becoming the guiding principle of all
-individual workings in our universe, the pervader of all individuals and
-globes as Âtma-Buddhi. The Universe as a whole is represented as an Egg,
-and the Second Purusha or Virât Purusha is the soul of that Egg.
-Individuals and globes appear as germs in that Egg, and are all brought
-into manifestation in time by the Third Purusha Brahmâ.
-
-The Second Purusha is called the First Avatâra and the seed and resting
-place of all other Avatâras. An Avatâra is a highly evolved Jiva, that
-has attained the Logoic state and that *comes down* from his exalted
-position, to serve the universe. Why is the second Purusha called an
-Avatâra? The Brihad Âranyaka Upanishad raises the veil a little on this
-point.
-
-"This was before Âtmâ, bearing the shape of man (the first born from the
-Egg, the embodied soul, the Virât with heads and other members of the
-body) Looking round, he beheld nothing, but himself. He said first:
-'This am I'. Hence the name of I was produced.
-
-"*And because he, as the first of all of them consumed by fire all the
-sins, therefore he is called Purusha. He verily consumes him, who
-strives to obtain the state of Prajâpati, prior to him."* Sankarâchârya
-explains the under-lined portion as follows: — "And because he,
-"Prajâpati in a former birth, which is the cause, as the first of those
-who were desirous to obtain the state of Prajâpati by the exercise of
-reflection on works and knowledge, viz, "as the first of all of them,"
-of all those desirous of obtaining the state of Prajâpati, consumed by
-the perfect exercise of reflection in works and knowledge all the sins
-of contact, which are obstacles to the acquirement of the state 'of
-Prajâpati' because such was the case, therefore he is called Purusha,
-because, he, *pur* (first) (did) *ush* (burn)
-
-Therefore by the words: "He consumes him," it is meant, that the perfect
-performer obtains the highest state of Prajâpati, he, who is less perfect,
-does not obtain it, and by no means, that the less perfect performer is
-actually consumed by the perfect.
-
-Here the word Prajâpati refers to the Second Purusha.
-
-The state of the Second Purusha is the highest achievement of Jiva. It is the
-meeting ground of Jiva and the Supreme Purusha. The Second Purusha may be
-different for each Kalpa, it may be for each Brahmânda. He is the Íshvara, the
-Lord of our Universe. He holds the whole creation unto His bosom, and is the
-sustaining force of all. In the three aspects of Brahmâ, Vishnu and Śiva, he
-guides the creation, the preservation and the dissolution of the Universe. Those
-that could not attain His state, though they strove for it equally as eminent as
-the Second Purusha, that are to become the Second Purusha in perhaps another
-Kalpa or Brahmânda, are the Lilâ Avatâras. They remain merged in the Second
-Purusha or Íshvara and they manifest themselves in the Universe, only when a
-necessity arises for their manifestation. The Bhâgavata contends that of all
-Lilâ Avatâras, only Krishna is Purusha Himself the others being only partial
-manifestations of Purusha.
-
-"These are the parts and aspects of Purusha. Krishna is Bhagavân
-Himself." — I-3-28.
-
-Tamas is dark, opaque and heavy on the physical plane, indolent and
-ignorant on the mental plane, non-perceptive on the spiritual plane.
-
-Rajas is translucent, and constantly moving on the physical plane;
-distracted constantly, acquiring likes and dislikes, and exercising
-intellection on the mental plane; and partially perceptive on the
-spiritual plane.
-
-Satva is light and transparent on the physical plane, cheerful and
-buoyant on the mental plane, and fully perceptive on the spiritual
-plane. True perception and real knowledge follow from Satva. By partial
-understanding and semblance of knowledge, the results of Rajas, people
-become distracted and led astray.
-
-Tamas keeps down all beings and enchains them to materiality in the
-course of evolution, and there is a point in the downfall of beings as
-well as of globes, beyond which there is a complete break-down. Satva
-counter-acts Tamas and the preservation and improvement of the Universe,
-rather of Trilokî, there fore mean the infusion of Satva. Vishnu
-represents Satva and so Vishnu is the Preservative aspect of Virâta
-Purusha. When Rajas and Tamas predominate in Trilokî, when the lowest
-plane Bhûr becomes heavy with Tamas, the Lilâ Avatâras appear and infuse
-Satva into the Lokas.
-
-.. figure:: images/bhagap018.png
-
-**SKANDHA I., CHAP. 2-34.**
-
-This Preserver of Lokas preserves the Lokas by means of Satva, by
-incarnating in Deva, Animal, Human and other kingdoms as Lilâ Avatâras.
-
-The Third Purusha is Brahmâ in Creation, Vishnu in Preservation and Śiva
-in dissolution. Vishnu as the Âtmâ in each being manifests Himself in
-action consciousness and will. Brahmâ is the propelling power in the
-Involution of beings, which gives them their physical body. Vishnu is
-the propelling force in the evolution of beings through physiological
-action (Prâna), sensation, intellect, and lastly the development of the
-spiritual faculties.
-
-THE BHÂGAVATA PURÂNA AND ITS PARTS.
-```````````````````````````````````
-
-**SKANDHA II., CHAP. 10.**
-
-The next question of Râjâ Parikshit was most comprehensive. It related
-to all knowledge of the Universe in all details. In answering the
-question, Suka related the whole of the Purâna, from beginning to end.
-In doing so, the Muni gave a short introduction as to the history of the
-Purâna. When Brahmâ regained his drowsy consciousness at the dawn of the
-present Kalpa, he knew not how to bring back the former state of things.
-He practised Tapas. Then Bhagavân appeared and related to him the
-Bhâgavata Purâna. Brahmâ taught the Purâna to his son Nârada. Nârada
-gave it to Vyâsa, and Vyâsa to his son Suka.
-
-The Purâna has ten parts: —
-
-1. *Sarga* — the creation of the Bhûtas, Tanmâtras, Indriyas, Ahankâra and
- Mahat, or of the materials that form individuals, and the appearance of
- Virât Purusha.
-
-2. *Visarga* — the Individual creation by Brahmâ or the creation of the
- individual life forms.
-
-3. *Sthâna* — the preservation of the created beings in their own states by
- Bhagavân.
-
-4. *Poshana* — the divine favor to those that properly remain in their own
- states.
-
-5. *Manvantara* — the duties of the Rulers of Manvantaras.
-
-6. *Uti* — desires that bind one to Trilokî.
-
-7. *Isânukathâ* — stories of the Avatâras and of the followers of Hari.
-
-8. *Nirodha* — the sleep of Hari and of all individual souls a Pralaya.
-
-9. *Mukti* — the continued perception of the identity of self and of Brahmâ.
-
-10. *Asraya* — The Final Resort, Para Brahma or Paramâtma from whom Creation
- and Dissolution both proceed.
-
-This brings us to the end of the Second Skandha.
-
-.. clearpage::
-
-SKANDHA III.
-============
-
-BHÂGAVATA AS RELATED BY MAITREYA TO VIDURA.
--------------------------------------------
-
-The Third and Fourth Branches of the Bhâgavata are related by Maitreya
-to Vidura. Maitreya was the disciple of Parâsara, father of Vyâsa.
-Parâsara learned the Purâna from Sânkhyâyana, Sânkhyâyana from Sanat
-Kumâra and Sanat Kumâra from Atlanta Deva.
-
-I.--THE CREATION
-````````````````
-
-**SKANDHA III., CHAP. 5-6.**
-
-At Pralaya, the Śakti of Bhagavân was asleep. That Śakti is Mâyâ, which
-is Sat-asat or Existing-nonexisting Existing eternally as root, and not
-so existing as forms. Following the law of Periodicity (Kâla), Purusha
-fecundated Mâyâ. Mahat and other principles appeared by transformation.
-All these principles were Devas, having in them germs of consciousness,
-action and transformation. They could not unite to form the Universe,
-being divergent in character. They prayed to Íshvara for power to unite.
-Taking Prakriti as a part (Śakti) of Him, Íshvara entered into the 23
-Tatvas or root principles. He awakened the Karma that remained latent in
-them. By Kriyâ Śakti, He then united then. The 23 Tatvas, acting under
-Divine Energy and the impulse of Karma that had remained latent in them,
-formed the Virât body, each bearing its own share in the work. The
-Purusha within this body — Virât Purusha or Hiranya Purusha — with all
-beings and globes included in Him, dwelt for one thousand years in the
-waters (like the embryo in the waters of the uterus.) This Embryonic
-Purusha divided self by self, onefold by Daiva Śakti, tenfold by Kriyâ
-Śakti and threefold by Âtmâ Śakti. The onefold division is in the Heart.
-The tenfold division is in the Prânas (Prâna, Apâna, Samâna, Udâna,
-Vyâna, Nâga, Kûrma, Krikara, Devadatta and Dhananjaya,) for the Prânas
-are not Tatvas or principles, but they form an aspect of Purusha. The
-threefold division is Âtmâ in every being which is triune with its three
-sides — Adhyâtma, Adhibhûta and Adhidaiva. The Purusha infused His Śakti
-into the Virât body, for the development of powers in the Tatvas. The
-Adhyâtma mouth appeared with its Adhibhûta speech and Adhidaiva Agni.
-Similarly the following appeared: —
-
- ====================== ======================= ===================
- Adhyâtma. Adhibhûta. Adhidaiva.
- ====================== ======================= ===================
- Tongue Râsa (taste) Varuna.
-
- Nose Gandha(smell) Asvini Kumâras.
-
- Eye Rûpa(sight) Âditya.
-
- Skin Sparsa (touch) Vayu.
-
- Ear Sabda (sound) Dik.
-
- Epidermis Sting Gods of vegetation
-
- Upastha
- (generative organ) Generation Prajâpati.
-
- Pâyu Secretion Mitra
-
- Hand Actions of hand Indra.
-
- Pâda (foot) Movements of foot Vishnu.
-
- Buddhi Bodh (deliberation) Brahmâ.
-
- Manas Sankalpa and Vikalpa
- (true and false
- perception) Moon.
-
- Ahankâra Aham perception Rudra.
-
- Chitta Thought Brahmâ
- ====================== ======================= ===================
-
-The Trilokî also appeared, Svar from the head, Bhuvar from the navel and
-Bhûr from the feet. With these Lokas appeared the Devas and other
-beings, who are the transformations of the Gunas. From the predominance
-of Satva, the Devas went to Svar Loka. Men and the lower Kingdoms
-entered Bhûr Loka from the predominance of Rajas in them. By the
-predominance of Tamas, the different classes of Bhûtas remained in
-Bhuvar Loka. The Brâhmana appeared from the mouth, the Kshatriya from
-the hands, the Vaisya from the thighs and the Sûdra from the feet.
-
-THOUGHTS ON THE ABOVE
-`````````````````````
-
-We have considered the manifested Logos in the
-Universe. We shall now consider His manifestation in Man, the microcosm.
-The teachings are all collected from the Upanishads.
-
-(i.) — *The manifestation in the heart.* — A detailed knowledge of this
-manifestation is called Dahara Vidyâ in Chandogya. The Upanishads speaks
-of Âtmâ in the cavity of the heart.
-
-.. figure:: images/bhagap021.png
-
-"Guhahitam Gahvarestham Purânam" is a well-known passage from the
-Upanishads. The Purusha in the heart is also called Prâdesâ or the
-span-sized Purusha and is the favourite object of meditation in
-Paurânika Upâsanâ. The Upanishads call Him thumb-sized and there is an
-interesting discussion as to the size in Sâriraka Sutras I-3-24 to 26
-and the Bhâshya thereupon.
-
-(ii.) — *The Manifestation in the Prânas.* — The Upanishads say: —
-
-.. figure:: images/it_is_this_prana.png
-
-"It is this Prana that is consciousness itself, Bliss, without
-infirmities and death."
-
-.. figure:: images/they_are_the_five.png
-
-"They are these five Brahmâ Purushas."
-
-Again —
-
-.. figure:: images/again_brahma_purusha.png
-
-*"Brahmâ Purusha in the openings of the heart."* The heart is called the
-abode of Brahmâ. There are five openings of this abode of Brahmâ and
-there are five gate-keepers. These gate-keepers or *dvâra-pâlas* are the
-five Prânas. They are called Brahmâ Purushas as they pertain to Brahmâ.
-As long as the king is in the heart, the doorkeepers remain in the body.
-These door-keepers being inevitable accompaniments of Brahmâ in the
-heart, are also themselves the outer aspects of Brahmâ.
-
-(iii.) — *The manifestation as Âtmâ which is triune.* What is a man but a
-bundle of experiences on the planes of Jâgrat, Svapna and Sushupti. Each
-of these experiences has a threefold aspect or in Vedântic expression is
-a Triputi. These aspects are:
-
-1) the object experienced or Adhibhûta,
-
-2) the experience itself or Adhyâtma,
-
-3) and the Deva which gives the consciousness of that experience or Adhidaiva.
-
-In material expression,
-the object outside is Adhibhûta. The reception of its image is Adhyâtma.
-The light that shews the image to be what it is, is Adhidaiva. As we
-have said, each experience is a three-sided triangle. All the triangles
-in the Jagrat state, analysed by the Vedântins into fourteen, are
-represented by the first letter *a* in Pranava. All the triangles or
-Triputis in the dream state are represented by the second letter *u*. In
-Târaka Brahmâ Yoga, *a* is merged in contemplation into *u*, and *u* is merged
-into *ma*. In *ma* there is only one triangle, which is the primary triangle
-to which all other triangles in *a* and *u* may be reduced. The Adhibhûta
-side of this triangle is *ânanda* by the *vritti* of Avidyâ. The Adhyâtma
-side is the *vritti* of Avidyâ. The Adhidaiva side is Íshvara. Life in
-Trilokî is conditioned by this triangle. The object of Târaka Brahmâ
-Yoga is to cross the Triptiti, to cross the three letters of Pranava. It
-is only in the fourth *pâda* of Pranava that he finds his resting place,
-that pâda being situated beyond the Trilokî.
-
-The three manifestations of the Third Purusha in Jivas or individuals,
-may be said to relate to their different stages of evolution. Thus Prâna
-manifests itself only in the lower life kingdoms, the minerals and
-vegetables. The Prâna or life process is more elaborate in the
-vegetables than in the minerals. Purusha then manifests itself in the
-senses and emotions in the Animal kingdom and in intellect in the lower
-human kingdom the manifestation being three fold.
-
-The last manifestation of Purusha, the one-fold manifestation in the
-heart, is in higher man.
-
-II. — VASUDEVA AND SANKARSHANA.
-```````````````````````````````
-
-**SKANDHA III., CHAP. 8.**
-
-When this universe remained submerged in the waters of Pralaya, the eyes
-of Vâsudeva remained closed in sleep. He opened His eyes, lying down on
-the Serpent King Ananta or Sankarshana. He indulged in self and was
-without action. Inside His body was Bhuta-Sûkshma or all beings in a
-subtle state of latency. Only Kâla-Śakti manifested itself and He dwelt
-in those waters in self, as fire remains in wood, with powers
-controlled. Having slept for one thousand Yuga cycles in the waters,
-with only Kâla-Śakti manifesting His work, He found the lotuses of the
-Lokas in His body. He then looked at the Sûkshma, that was within Him.
-That Sûkshma became pierced with Kâla — propelled Rajas, and small as it
-was, it came out of his navel region. By the action of Kala, which
-awakens Karma, it suddenly grew up into a lotus bud. Vishnu entered this
-Loka Padma or the Lotus of Lokas. Brahmâ then appeared in that Lotus. He
-looked on all sides and became four-faced, but he could not find out the
-Lokas. Though he was in the Lotus himself, confused as he was, he knew
-not the whole Lotus. Whence am I? Whence is this Lotus? So thought
-Brahmâ. And he searched below to feel the lotus-stalk. The search was
-vain for one hundred years.
-
-For another hundred years he meditated within self, and lo! there
-appeared within his heart one *Purusha* lying down on the body of Sesha
-(the serpent king). (The description of the Purusha is much the same as
-we have read of the *Prâdesa Purusha*. So it is not given here.) Brahmâ
-prayed to that Purusha and was told to practise Tapas for acquiring the
-power of creation.
-
-III. — THE CREATION BY BRAHMA.
-``````````````````````````````
-
-**SKANDHA III., CHAP. 10.**
-
-When Bhagavân disappeared, Brahmâ, as directed, practised meditation for
-one hundred Deva-years. He found his lotus abode moved by air. With all
-the power acquired by *Âtmâ Vidyâ* and *Tapas*, he drank up all the waters
-and the air. He found the *Lokas* attached to the overspreading Lotus and
-he had only to divide them. He entered into the Lotus bud and divided
-it into three parts — the *Trilokî*. This is the creation of the *Trilokî*.
-The higher Lokas (Mahar, Jana, Tapas and Satya) are the transformations
-of *Nishkama Karma* or unselfish action. So they are not destroyed in each
-Kalpa, but they last for two Parardhas.
-
-"What is Kâla", asked Vidura, "that has been described as a *Śakti of Hari?*"
-
-"*Kâla* is the disturber of *Gunas*", replied Maitreya, "causing
-transformations. In itself it is without any particularity and is
-without beginning or end.
-
-"With Kâla as the Nimitta or efficient cause, Bhagavân only manifested
-Himself. The Universe has no separate existence from that of Brahmâ. It
-is only Kâla that makes the Universe manifest."
-
-The Creation of Brahmâ is ninefold, Prâkrita and Vaikrita,
-Prâkrita-Vaikrita being the tenth. The Pralaya is of three kinds:
-
-1) By Kâla or Nitya. Flow of time is the only cause of this Pralaya.
-
-2) By Dravya or Naimittika. Dravya is the fire from the mouth of
- Sankarshana, at the end of one Kalpa.
-
-3) By Guna or Prâkritika, the Gunas devouring their own actions. The
- forms of Pralaya will be considered in the study of the Twelfth Branch.
-
-*A. — Prâkrita Creation, *i.e.* the Creation of Principles or Tatvas.*
-
-I. *Mahat* — Which is the out-come of the first disturbance of the
- equilibrium of the Gunas.
-
-II. *Ahankâra* — Dravya + Jnâna + Kriyâ.
-
-III. *Tanmâtra* — Result of Dravya Śakti.
-
-IV. *Indriyas* — Result of Jnâna and Kriyâ Śakti.
-
-V. *Vaikârika* — Devas and Manas.
-
-VI. The five-fold Tâmasika creation.
-
-*B. — Vaikrita or Individual Creation.*
-
-VII. *Urdha Srotas* — or with upward current of the food taken, the Sthâvara
- or Immobile kingdom with six divisions.
-
-1) *Vânaspati* — Plants that fructify without flowers.
-
-2) *Oshadhi* — Creepers that last till the ripening of fruits.
-
-3) *Latâ* — Ascending creepers.
-
-4) *Tvaksâra* — Those of which the growth is not in the
- centre, but in the dermal regions, as bamboos.
-
-5) *Virudh* — Non-ascending woody creepers.
-
-6) *Druma* — Flowering plants.
-
-The consciousness of all the six classes is almost obscured by Tamas.
-They are sensitive only to internal touch. They have many peculiarities.
-
-VIII. *Tiryak-Srotas.* — With slanting food current. The position of the
- animal stomach as regards the animal mouth is such that food is not
- taken in vertically, but either horizontally or slantingly. The animal
- kingdom has 28 divisions. The animals are ignorant, with predominating
- Tamas, with the sense of smell largely developed in them so much that
- they mostly perceive by that sense, and with the faculties of the heart
- entirely undeveloped. The 28 classes are:
-
- 1. *Living on the ground.*
-
- i. — *The cloven-footed.*
-
- (1) Cow, (2) goat, (3) buffalo (4) krishnasara, the spotted
- antelope, (5) hog, (6) gavaya, a species of ox, (7) ruru,
- a kind of deer, (8) sheep, (9) camel.
-
- ii. — *The whole hoofed.*
-
- (10) Ass, (n) horse, (12) mule, (13) goura, a kind of deer,
- (14) sarabha, a kind of deer, (15) chamari, a kind of
- deer.
-
- iii. — *The five-nailed.*
-
- (16) Dog, (17) jackal, (18) wolf, (19) tiger, (20) cat,
- (21) hare, rabbit, (22) porcupine, (23) lion, (24) monkey,
- (25) elephant, (26) tortoise, (27) alligator.
-
- 2. (28) Aquatic animals and birds.
-
-IX. *Arvâk-Srotas* or with downward food current, the Human
- kingdom with predominant Rajas, given to Karma, mistaking misery
- for happiness.
-
-*C. — Prâkrita- Vaikrita.*
-
-X. The Kumâras. The Kumâra creation is partly Prâkrita
- and partly Vaikrita.
-
-Besides these, there is
-
-*D. — Vaikrita Dev Creation.*
-
-There are eight divisions of Vaikrita Devas:
-
-1) Vivudha,
-
-2) Pitri,
-
-3) Asura,
-
-4) Gandharva and Apsarâ,
-
-5) Siddha, Charana and Vidyâdhara,
-
-6) Yaksha and Raksha,
-
-7) Bhuta, Preta and Pisâcha,
-
-8) Kinnara, Kimpurusha, Asvamukha and others.
-
-The Vaikarika and Vaikrita Devas form one class.
-
-THOUGHTS ON THE ABOVE.
-``````````````````````
-
-*Prâkrita* creation is that which gives rise to and is connected
-with all individuals. Excepting the Tâmasic or Avidyâ creation,
-which we shall consider later on, the other divisions of this creation
-were caused by the first life impulse, given by the First Purusha. The
-Tâmasic creation was brought into manifestation by the Third
-Purusha Brahmâ.
-
-The division of the life-kingdoms according to the movements
-of the food taken is peculiar to the Pauranic system. It will be
-interesting to know from the physiological stand-point whether it is
-necessary for the development of the brain that the spinal column
-should be erect, whether it is necessary for the formation of the spinal
-column, that the stomach should retain a certain position, and to
-know also how far the fixture of the plants is an impediment to the
-development of any nervous system in them.
-
-It is remarkable that the mineral kingdom is not mentioned as a distinct
-life-kingdom. The reason appears to be that the creative process is
-divided into two periods. In the first period formless Jivas take form
-after form, till the lowest material form is reached. This is elemental
-creation or the creation of Devas, as described in detail in Ch. XXI.
-Sk. IV. The Purâna goes on to say: — "Then Brahmâ created the Manus."
-III.-24-49. The Manu creation shews, how mind was gradually developed
-through Vegetable, Animal and Human creations, out of the Mineral
-Kingdom, represented by the Mountain Chief Himâlaya. The giving up by
-Sâti, of the body acquired from Daksha and her rebirth as the daughter
-of the Mountain King show how the elemental creation gave way to a fresh
-creative process, which took its start from the Mineral Kingdom.
-
-The Kumâras form a peculiar creation. "They are Prakrita in as
-much as they partake of the character of Devas and they are
-Vaikrita, as they partake of the character of men." *Śridhara.* — The
-great commentator also says: — "Sanaka and other Kumâras are not
-created in every kalpa. The account of their creation is only given
-in the first Kalpa, called Brahmâ. In reality, the Vegetable and
-other life kingdoms are created in every Kalpa. Sanaka and others
-being created in Brahmâ Kalpa only follow the creations in other
-Kalpas."
-
-Upon death, men go to Bhuvar Loka, where they become Bhûtas, Pretas and
-Pisâchas. Then they go to Svar Loka, where they become Devas, not the
-Devas of Deva creations but only temporary Devas. When their merits are
-exhausted, they come down upon earth, to begin life as men again. But if
-by unselfish Karma and devotion, men pass across the limits of the
-triple plane, they go first to Mahar Loka. Here they are called
-Prajâpatis. Bhrigu and other Prajâpatis who are the ordinary dwellers of
-Mahar Loka, are described in one sloka of Bhâgavata, as bearing the life
-period of one Kalpa. (II. 2. 25). In the next sloka it is said that the
-Yogins who go to Mahar Loka, remain there till the end of the Kalpa,
-when at last they go to Satya Loka.
-
-But in another sloka, the Purâna says: — "When the night of Pralaya
-follows, the three Lokas, Bhûr, Bhuvar and Svar, are burnt by the fire
-from the mouth of Sankarshana. Troubled by the excessive heat of that
-fire, Bhrigu and others proceed from Mahar Loka to Jana Loka."
-III-11-30.
-
-This shews that the dwellers of Mahar Loka live for the life time of
-Brahmâ or two Parârdhas.
-
-This is also made clear by the following commentary of Śridhara on
-III-10-9: —
-
-"Why did Brahmâ make the three Lokas into one division? This Trilokî
-consisting of Bhûr, Bhuvar and Svar — is the place that is to be made in
-every Kalpa or day of Brahmâ for the enjoyment of Jivas (or
-individuals). But Jivas dwell in the higher Lokas as well. Why are not
-those Lokas created then in every Kalpa? This is because they are the
-transformations of unselfish (Nishkâma) action or Dharma — the Lokas
-themselves and the dwellers thereof. The Trilokî and the dwellers
-thereof are the transformations of selfish (Kâmya) action. Therefore
-they have birth and death in every Kalpa. But Mahar and other Lokas are
-begotten by unselfish action heightened by Upâsanâ (or devotion), and
-they last for two Parârdhas, which is the life time of Brahmâ. And the
-dwellers of those Lokas generally attain mukti (or liberation) after
-that period."
-
-The ordinary dwellers of Jana Loka are the Kumâras. When men in course
-of evolution reach Jana Loka, they become Kumâras.
-
-We have already seen that the essence of life in the higher Lokas is
-unselfishness. It is for this reason that the Gitâ speaks of unselfish
-action in the first instance as an essential requisite of spiritual
-life. But it is not unselfish action alone which enables us to get rid
-of our personal desires and to assimilate ourselves with that one life
-which pervades all. Devotional love is another equally essential
-requisite.
-
-It is impossible for us to realise the different experiences in the four
-higher Lokas.
-
-The famous Brahma Sûkta has the following line: — "The three feet of
-Ísvara, bearing eternal happiness in the higher Lokas." The eighteenth
-Śloka in Chapter VI. of the Second Skandha is an exposition of this
-line. Śridhara has the following commentary on that line:
-
-"Happiness in Trilokî is fleeting and temporary. Though Mahar Loka is
-on the path of liberation, the dwellers of that Loka have to leave it at
-the end of every Kalpa. The happiness there is therefore not
-ever-lasting. In Jana Loka, the happiness is ever-lasting, as long as
-the dwellers do not leave the place. But they have to witness the
-miseries of the dwellers of Mahar Loka, when they come to Jana Loka, at
-the end of the Kalpa. In Tapas, there is absolute want of evil. In
-Satya, there is freedom from fear or liberation."
-
-We have left the Devas (not the elementals that pass through the life
-kingdoms of this earth) out of consideration. Their evolution is worked
-out in all the seven Lokas. Their names and characteristics in each Loka
-are given by Vyâsa in his commentaries on Patanjali's Sutras. Those who
-are ordinarily known as Devas are the dwellers of Svar Loka. The Deva
-Yonis or lower Devas are dwellers of Bhuvar Loka and Bhûr Loka. Men have
-nothing to do with the Devas of the higher Lokas. The Devas of Trilokî
-are indifferent, friendly or inimical to men. Left alone, they do not
-interfere with men. But when men try to gain superiority over them, by
-the acquisition of Brahma Vidyâ, they try to throw obstacles in their
-way.
-
-The Brihad Âranyak Upanishad says: — "Even the gods verily are not able
-to prevent him from the possession of the state of all." I.-4-10
-
-Again, "As verily many beasts maintain a man, so every man maintains the
-gods. It is not pleasant, even if one beast is taken away, how then, if
-many? Therefore it is not pleasant to them, that men should know this
-*i.e.* the truth of the nature of Brahmâ." Commenting on this,
-Śankarâchâryya quotes a Śloka from Anugrta: "The world of the gods is
-surrounded by performers of works. But the gods do not wish that mortals
-should abide above."
-
-Śankarâchâryya goes on to say: — "Therefore the gods try to exclude, like
-cattle from tigers, men from the knowledge of Brahmâ, as it is their
-desire, that they should not be elevated above the sphere of their use.
-Whom they wish to liberate, to him they impart belief &c., and unbelief
-to him whom they wish not to liberate."
-
-Ânanda Giri, the commentator of Śankarâchâryya, quotes the following
-Śloka: —
-
-"Devas do not protect men, rod in hand, like cattle-keepers. When they
-wish to protect a man, they impart the necessary intelligence to him."
-
-Nothing is said in the Purânas, as to Devas of the higher Lokas.
-
-The Prâkrita Devas are intimately connected with our senses and
-intellect. It is through their direct help, that we are able to perceive
-and to conceive. Hence they are called Adhi-devas or Vaikâric Devas.
-They are not individuals and the remarks made above as to Devas, do not
-apply to them.
-
-
-IV. DIVISIONS OF KÂLA.
-``````````````````````
-
-**SKANDHA III. CHAP. 11.**
-
-The unit of Kala at the Sûkshma pole is Paramânu, which is the minutest
-part of the created thing, not united to form a body. At the Sthula pole
-is the whole Sthula creation known in its entirety as Parama Mahân. The
-time during which the Sun crosses in his orbit one paramânu is the Kâla
-unit paramânu. The time during which he crosses the whole system in his
-orbit, *i.e.*, crosses all the twelve signs of the Zodiac, is Parama
-Mahân or one Samvatsara. The units of time and space are thus the same.
-
-1 Dvyanuka = 2 Paramânus.
-
-1 Trasarenu = 3 Paramânus.
-
-1 Truti = 3 Trasarenus.
-
-1 Vedha = 100 Trutis.
-
-1 Lava = 3 Vedhas.
-
-1 Nimesha or wink = 3 Lavas.
-
-1 Kshana = 3 Nimesha.
-
-1 Kâsthâ = 5 Kshanas.
-
-1 Laghu = 15 Kâsthâs.
-
-1 Nâdikâ = 15 Laghus.
-
-1 Muhurta = 2 Nâdikâs.
-
-1 Yâma or Prahara = 6 or 7 Nâdikâs.
-
-1 Ahorâtra (of the Mortals) = 8 Yâmas.
-
-1 Paksha (Sukla or Krishna) = 15 Ahorâtras.
-
-1 Mâsa (Month) = 1 Sukla + 1 Krishna Paksha.
-
-1 Ritu = 2 Mâsas.
-
-1 Ayana = 6 Mâsas (Uttara or Dakshinâ.)
-
-1 Vatsara = 2 Ayanas.
-
-1 Vatsara = 12 Masas
-
-1 Vatsara = 1 Ahorâtra of Devas.
-
-1 Samvatsara = 1 year of Solar months.
-
-1 Parivatsara = 1 year of Jupiter months.
-
-1 Idâvatsara = 1 year of Savana months.
-
-1 Svanuvatsara = 1 year of Lunar months.
-
-1 Vatsara = 1 year of Stellar months.
-
-One hundred Samvatsaras is the maximum age of men.
-
-Satya, Tretâ, Dvâpara and Kali a cycle of these 4 Yugas
-and their Sandhyâs and Sandhyânsas consist of 12 thousand
-divine years.
-
-The beginning of a Yuga is its Sandhyâ. Tho end of a Yuga
-is its Sandhyânsa. Sandhyâ and Sandhyânsa are not included in a
-Yuga and Yuga Dharma is not to be performed while they last.
-
-::
-
- Sandhyâ of Satya Yuga = 400 Deva years.
-
- Satya Yuga = 4,000 " "
-
- Sandhyânsa of Satya Yuga 400 " "
-
- Sandhyâ of Treta Yuga 300 " "
-
- Treta Yuga 3,000 " "
-
- Sandhyânsa of Treta Yuga 300 " "
-
- Sandhyâ of Dvâpara Yuga 200 " "
-
- Dvâpara Yuga 2,000 " "
-
- Sandhyânsa of Dvâpara Yuga 200 " "
-
- Sandhyâ of Kali Yuga 100 " "
-
- Kali Yuga 1,000 " "
-
- Sandhyânsa of Kali Yuga 100 " "
- -------
- 12,000 Deva years.
-
-Dharma is enjoined for the period between Sandhyâ and Sandhyânsa, which
-is called Yuga.
-
-::
-
- Dharma has all the 4 pâdas or feet in Satya,
- " " only 3 pâdas in Treta,
- " " only 2 pâdas in Dvapara,
- " " only 1 pâda in Kali.
-
- 1,000 Yuga cycles is one Day of Brahmâ or one Kalpa,
- *i.e.*, 1 Day of Brahmâ = 1,000 x 12,000 Deva years,
- = 1,20,00,000 Deva years.
-
-An equal period of time is also reckoned as one Night of Brahmâ.
-14 Manus reign during the Day of Brahmâ, each Manu reigning for:
-
-::
-
- 1,000
- -------- = 71 3/4
- 14
-
-*i.e.*, a little over 71 Yuga Cycles. Converted into Deva years: —
-
-::
-
- 1 Manvantara = 12,000 x 1,000
- -------------- = 8,57,142 6/7 Deva years.
- 14
-
- 1 Deva year = 360 Lunar years.
-
- 12,000,000 x 360
- 1 Manvantara = ---------------- = 3,37,142,657 1/2 Lunar years.
- 14
-
-The Manvantaras have their Manus, successors of Manus, Rishis
-and Devas.
-
-The Rishis, Indras, and Devas appear together.
-
-In the daily creation of Brahmâ, Animals, Men, Pitris and Devas are born
-according to their own Karma.
-
-During the Manvantara, Bhagavân preserves this universe by His own
-Satva, directly as Manvantara Avatâras and indirectly as Manus and
-others. When Pralaya approaches, Bhagavân withdraws His Śaktis (or
-powers). Trilokî is then burnt up by fires from the mouth of
-Sankarshana. Bhrigu and other dwellers of Mahar Loka proceed to Jana
-Loka. The waters of Pralaya sweep away everything before them. In that
-watery expanse, Hari remains seated upon the coils of Ananta, with His
-eyes closed.
-
-With every Day and Night, the age of Brahmâ declines. He lives for one
-hundred years only. Half of Brahmâ's age is called Parârddha. The first
-Parârddha has expired, the second has commenced with our Kalpa. Every
-day of Brahmâ is called one Kalpa.
-
-At the beginning of the first Parârddha was Brahmâ Kalpa, when Brahmâ or
-the present Kosmos was born.
-
-At the end of the first Parârddha was Padma Kalpa, when the Loka-Padma
-(the lotus of Lokas) appeared at the navel of Hari.
-
-The first Kalpa of the second Parârddha, which is the present Kalpa, is
-called Varâha Kalpa. Hari incarnated as Varâha or Boar during this
-Kalpa.
-
-The two Parârddhas are but a wink of Bhagavân. Kâla cannot measure him.
-
-::
-
- [1 Day of Brahmâ = 12,000,000 Deva years,
- 1 Night of Brahmâ = 12,000,000 Do.
- -------------
- 24,000,000 Do.
-
- Multiplying by 360
- ---------------
- 1 year of Brahmâ = 8,640,000,000 Deva years.
- Multiplying by 100
- ------------------
- Age of Brahmâ = 864,000,000,000 Deva years.
- Multiplying by 360
- -----------------------
- 31,10,40,00,00,00,000 Lunar years.
-
- 1 Kali Yuga, including Twilight (Sandhyâ and Sandhyânsa)
- = 1,200 X 360 = 4,32,000 Lunar years.
-
- Varâha Kalpa = 50 X 360 + 1 = 180001st Kalpa.
-
- The present is the seventh Manvantara of that Kalpa.
-
-The present Kali Yuga is the 28th Yuga of that Manvantara and 4,994
-years of that Yuga have expired in the present year of Christ 1894.
-
-THEOSOPHICAL CORRESPONDENCES. The words Kalpa and Manvantara are
-carelessly used in Theosophical literature. But I shall use those terms,
-specially with reference to page 309 of the second volume of the *Secret
-Doctrine* (first edition.)
-
-1 Kalpa = 7 Rounds.
-
-1 Round = 2 Manvantaras.
-
-The Pralaya at the end of seven Rounds therefore means the Pralaya of
-Trilokî.
-
-The last Globe Chain of which the Moon formed a living planet belonged
-to Pâdma Kalpa. Our Globe D is the 18001st since the birth of the
-Kosmos. There will be 17999 more such Globes, one after each Pralaya of
-Globe Chains. There will be 18000 more Pralayas of the Globe Chain. Then
-there will be a general dissolution or Prâkritika Pralaya, not only of
-the Globe Chain, but of the whole Kosmic system.
-
-V.-THE CREATION BY BRAHMA (*Continued*) III. 12.
-````````````````````````````````````````````````
-
-The first creation of Brahmâ was the five-fold Avidyâ, *viz*: —
-
-1) Tamas or ignorance of Self (Avidyâ in Patanjali.)
-
-2) Moha or egoism (Asmitâ.)
-
-3) Mahâ Moha or desire for enjoyment (Râga).
-
-4) Tâmisra or mental disturbance on the non-fulfilment of desires
- (Dvesha).
-
-5) Andha Tâmisra or false perception of death (Abhiniveśa).
-
-Brahmâ was not pleased with this dark creation. He purified his soul by
-meditation on Bhagavân and created Sanaka, Sananda, Sanâtana and
-Sanatkumara. These Munis had no performances (for their own evolution).
-They were Urdha-retas. Brahmâ, addressing them, said — "Sons, go and
-multiply yourselves." But they sought Moksha, and heeded him not. Brahmâ
-got enraged at the disobedience of his sons, and, though he tried to put
-down his anger, it burst forth from between his eye-brows and appeared
-as Kumâra Nila-Lohita or Blue-Red. The boy, the first born of Devas,
-wept and cried out to Brahmâ — "Give me names and give me abodes." "That
-shall be done," replied Brahmâ, "and, as thou wept like a boy, thou
-shalt be called Rudra or the Weeper. The heart, the Indriyas, Prâna,
-Âkâsa, Vâyu, Agni, Apas, Prithvi, the Sun, the Moon and Tapas are your
-abodes. Manyu, Manu, Mahinasa, Mahân, Śiva, Ritadhvaja, Ugra-retas,
-Bhava, Kâla, Bâmadeva and Dhrita-vrata these are thy eleven names; Dhi,
-Dhriti, Râsaloma, Nijut, Sarpi, Ilâ, Ambikâ, Irâvati, Svadhâ, Dikshâ
-and Rudrâni, these are thy wives. Beget sons, as thou art Prajâpati."
-Thus ordered, Nila-Lohita begot sons like unto himself in might, form
-and habits. The Rudras became numerous, and they spread all round the
-Universe ready almost to devour it. Brahmâ became afraid of his
-creation, and, addressing himself to Rudra, said — "O Chief of Devas,
-desist from such creation. Thy progeny with their fiery eyes are
-consuming all and even consuming me. Take to Tapas for the joy of all
-beings. By Tapas thou shalt create the Universe as it was of yore. By
-Tapas thou shalt gain that Bhagavân who dwells in all hearts." "Amen,"
-said Rudra, and he went into the forests to make Tapas.
-
-Brahmâ then begot ten sons: — Marichi, Atri, Angirasa, Pulastya, Pulaha,
-Kratu, Bhrigu, Vasishtha, Daksha and Nârada. Nârada came from Brahmâ's
-bosom, Daksha from his thumb, Vasishtha from his Prâna, Bhrigu from his
-skin, Kratu from his hands, Pulaha from his navel, Pulastya from his
-ears, Angirasa from his mouth, Atri from his eyes and Marichi from his
-Manas.
-
-Dharma came from Brahmâ's right breast, where Nârâyana himself dwells.
-Adharma, the parent of Mrityu (or Death) came from his back. Kâma came
-from his heart, Anger from his eye-brows, Greed from the lower lip. Vâk
-or speech came from his mouth, the Seas from his generative organ and
-Death from his anus.
-
-Kardama, the husband of Devahûti, was born of Brahmâ's Chhâya or shadow.
-So there was creation out of the body and the mind of Brahmâ. Brahmâ
-took a fancy to his daughter Vâk (or speech). Marichi and his other sons
-dissuaded him from the incestuous connection. And the Creator in shame
-gave up his body which was taken up by Space and which is known as dewy
-darkness. "How shall I bring back all the previous Creation?" So
-thought Brahmâ at one time, and the four Vedas appeared from his four
-mouths. The Yajnas, the Upavedas, the Philosophies, the four parts of
-Dharma, and the duties of Âsramas also appeared.
-
-Brahmâ had another body void of incestuous impulses and he thought of
-enlarging the Creation. But he found himself and the Rishis, powerful
-though they were, unsuccessful in this respect. He thought there was
-some unforeseen impediment, so he divided his body into two. A pair was
-formed by that division. The male was Svâyambhuva Manu and the female
-was his wife Śatarûpâ. Since then creation multiplied by sexual
-intercourse. Svâyambhuva Manu begot five children in Śatarâpâ — two sons,
-Priyavrata and Uttânapâda, and three daughters, Âkûti, Devahûti and
-Prasûti. He gave Akuti in marriage to Ruchi, Devahûti to Kardama and
-Prasûti to Daksha. This changing universe is filled with their progeny.
-
-PRE-MANVANTARIC CREATION.
-`````````````````````````
-The descent of Spirit into Matter is indicated by the overshadowing
-Tamas creation, The individuals reach the spiritual plane at the time of
-Pralaya and lose all sense of I-ness. Their memory becomes perfectly
-dead to all previous connections and experiences and even as to self as
-a distinct unit. The child starts with a body of his own, and faculties
-limited to that body. The Jiva children that came into existence at the
-beginning of the Universe had however nothing peculiar to themselves,
-and they had even to acquire the sense of I-ness.
-
-First, the Jiva identifies himself with his body and mind, his own
-phenomenal basis. For, if he identifies himself with the universal
-spirit, there is no action for him, no working out of his own Karma.
-Though from the standpoint of the highest wisdom individuality is a
-delusion, for the one unchangeable ever-lasting element in Jiva is Âtmâ,
-and at the final stage of development man has to separate himself from
-his phenomenal basis and to identify himself with Âtmâ, which is the
-real self, still the sense of separateness is necessary for the process
-of creation and for the gaining of experiences. This sense is two-fold,--
-
-1) The non-perception of Âtmâ as Self, called Avidyâ by Patanjali and
- Tamas in the Purânas, and
-
-2) The perception of the *upâdhi* as self,
- called Asmitâ by Patanjali and Moha in the Purânas.
-
-Attachment and aversion, likes and dislikes, are equally necessary for
-continued individual action. The Jiva eats what he likes and does not
-eat what he dislikes. He associates himself with certain objects, ideas
-and thoughts and shuns others. His likes and dislikes form the guiding
-principle of his actions. These affinities are called Râga and Dvesha by
-Patanjali and Mahâ Moha and Tamisra in the Purânas.
-
-The tenacious desire to live in the present body is called Abhinivesha
-by Patanjali. This desire becomes an instinct in the Jiva, so necessary
-is it for his preservation. The Purânas call it Andha-Tâmisra. Śridhara
-explains it as the shock we receive from a separation from all our
-present enjoyments. For, according to him, the idea of death is nothing
-but a sense of separation from our present enjoyments.
-
-These forms of Avidyâ were called into being that the forms of the
-previous Kalpa might be brought into existence, or that the work of
-creation might be undertaken. These faculties are the very essence of
-life manifestation. But the process has now been reversed. The work of
-creation is over. We have acquired the experiences of earth-life, and we
-are now destined to take a journey back to our home, the bosom of
-Íshvara, from which we all came. We have now to undo our sense of
-separateness. The five forms of Avidyâ are therefore called miseries
-(klesha) by Patanjali and he lays down rules for getting rid of them.
-
-After invoking Avidyâ, Brahmâ created the Kumâras, who were the most
-spiritual of the beings to be created. They were so spiritual, that they
-could not take any part in the work of creation. They had to bide their
-time, till there was spiritual ascent in the Universe.
-
-The Rudras, called the Blue-Red Kumâras, come next. Though highly
-spiritual themselves they did not object to take part in the work of
-creation. But as real factors in the work of dissolution, they were
-entirely out of place in the work of creation. We owe our idea of
-separateness or individuality to the Rudras. In the scale of universal
-life the agencies of dissolution carve out individual lives and their
-mission ends there.
-
-The ten Rishis form the next Creation. Further descent of life in the
-Universe brought forth ten distinct types of Intelligence. We shall
-consider these types later on. Then comes the story of Brahmâ's incest.
-Brahmâ could not directly take part in the Creation. His task was simply
-to bring back the former state of things through a graduated series of
-intermediaries. First appeared those that had to hold cosmic positions
-of responsibility, some throughout the Kalpa and others throughout the
-Manvantara. With the powers invoked, the temptation to evolve an
-independent Creation with the help of Vâch, the potency of Mantras had
-to be got over. This done, Brahmâ thought of the Monads of the previous
-Kalpa, and the first Manu appeared with his wife Sata-rûpâ or
-Hundred-formed. All forms of Creation existed in Idea before further
-manifestation, and Sata-rûpâ was the collective aspect of all such
-Ideas.
-
-THE FIRST OR THE SVAYAMBHUVA MANVANTARA.
-----------------------------------------
-
-VI. BHÛR AND VARAHA
-```````````````````
-
-**SKANDHA III., CHAP. 13.**
-
-Said Manu to Brahmâ — "I shall do thy behests, O Lord. But tell me where
-my Prajâ (progeny) and myself are to be located. The Bhûr of the
-previous Kalpa where all beings found shelter is lost in the great ocean
-of Pralaya. Bestir thyself and raise it up, O Deva."
-
-Brahmâ thought within Himself what was to be done, when lo! out from
-His nostril came a Boar, no bigger than a thumb. In a moment the Boar
-assumed gigantic proportions and all space resounded with his roar. The
-dwellers of the Jana, Tapas and Satya Lokas worshipped Him by chanting
-the Mantras of the three Vedas. He roared once more for the good of the
-Devas and instantly plunged into the waters. Though an incarnation of
-Yajna, He tried to discover the Bhûr by smelling like an ordinary
-animal. He dived down as far as Rasâtala and there found the Bhûr Loka.
-He then raised it up on His tusks. The Daitya King Hiranyâksha resisted
-and in rage the Boar killed him. The Rishis then worshipped Him knowing
-His true form to be Yajna.
-
-THOUGHTS ON THE ABOVE.
-``````````````````````
-
-[Bhûr is the main system of Trilokî. The Varâha Avatâra restored the
-system after the Kalpa Pralaya. Bhûr being the lowest of the Seven Lokas
-corresponds to Prithvi Tatva and hence to the sense of smell. The boar
-is pre-eminently the animal of smell. The materialisation of the Prithvi
-principle for the purpose of globe formation was an effort of the energy
-of the Logos and the *smelling* out of Bhûr by the Varaha is suggestive.
-The Globe evolution is preparatory to Monadic evolution. The pent up
-Karma of the previous Kalpa develops itself on the Globes. All beings
-are mutually interdependent for their evolution. They help one another
-in the work of evolution, and one makes sacrifices that the others may
-grow. Some have to wait, till others come forward. Then they become
-united in the further race for progress. This great cosmic process, this
-mutual sacrifice is Yajna itself, which is typified in the Boar
-Incarnation. The Vedic Yajna gives prominence to the Communion of men
-with Devas, as at the early stages this is an all important fact of
-evolution. The Varâha is called the first Yajna Avatâra and all the
-parts of His body are named with reference to Vedic Yajna, as He by
-raising Bhûr prepared the field for Karma.]
-
-
-VII. THE STORY OF HIRANYÂKSHA.
-``````````````````````````````
-
-**SKANDHA III., CHAP. 14.**
-
-Diti, the daughter of Daksha, approached one evening her husband
-Kasyapa, son of Marichi. She was overpowered with the passion of love
-and became importunate. Kasyapa asked her to wait. Rudra was presiding
-over sunset. His astral attendants, the Bhûtas and Pishachas, were
-roaming over the Universe. With His three eyes representing the Sun,
-Moon and fire he could see every thing. His hesitation to yield to Diti
-was of no avail, and the Muni had to yield. There Diti became ashamed of
-her weakness. She was afraid she had offended Rudra and she helplessly
-prostrated herself at the feet of Kasyapa praying for his forgiveness.
-"Thou hast disobeyed me," said Kasyapa, "and hast shown disrespect to the
-companions of Rudra, thy mind is impure and so is the time of Evening
-(Sandhyâ). These four evils will cause the birth of two wicked sons from
-thee. They will oppress the Trilokî and the Lokapâlas (Preservers of the
-three Lokas). When their inequities exceed all bounds, Vishnu will
-Himself incarnate to kill them."
-
-For one hundred years Diti conceived her twin sons. Even from within the
-womb they shed lustre all round, which even overpowered the Lokapâlas.
-The Devas went to Brahmâ to ascertain the cause of this disaster. He
-related to them the following story.
-
-"My Mânasa-putras, Sanaka and others were once in Vaikuntha, the abode
-of Bhagavân. Impatient to see Bhagavân the Kumâras hurriedly passed
-through the six portals (Kaksha). At the seventh portal, they found two
-doorkeepers of equal age with clubs in their hands, richly adorned with
-golden crowns and other ornaments. They had four hands and looked
-beautiful in their blue colour. The Kumâras heeded them not, but opened
-the gate with their own hands as they had opened the other gates. The
-door keepers stopped them with their clubs. The Kumâras were put out by
-this unforeseen obstruction and addressing the doorkeepers gave vent to
-their feelings thus: — 'What mean you by making this distinction? In
-Him the Lord of Vaikuntha, there is no difference whatsoever. The whole
-of this Universe is in Him. Do you dread any danger to Him, as to a
-common being, and why will you admit some and not others? But you are
-His servants. So we do not intend to be very hard on you. But you must
-descend from this elevated plane and take your birth where passion,
-anger and greed prevail'."
-
-"The door-keepers became terrified at this curse and fell at the feet of
-the Kumâras. All that they prayed for was that while passing through the
-lowest births, they might not have Môha, beclouding their recollection
-of Bhagavân. Bhagavân knew what had transpired outside. He hastened on
-foot with Lakshmî by His side to where the Munis stood. The Kumâras
-prostrated themselves before Him Whom they had so long meditated upon in
-their hearts. With intent eyes they looked steadily on Him and longed to
-see Him again and again. The Kumâras lauded Him with words full of
-import. Bhagavân addressing them said: — 'These my door-keepers are by
-name Jaya and Vijaya. They have slighted you, and it is right that you
-have cursed them. I sanction that curse. For they are my servants, and I
-am indirectly responsible for their deeds. I always respect Brâhmanas,
-as my glory is derived from them. These door-keepers did not know my
-regard for you, and they therefore unintentionally slighted you. But
-they shall instantly reap the fruit of their evil deeds and come back to
-Me when their punishment is over. Please therefore decide where they are
-to go.' The Kumâras knew not what to say. They thought they had not done
-right and they asked to be excused. 'It is all right for Thee to extol
-the Brâhmanas in this way, for Thou art the Preserver of Dharma and Thou
-teachest others what to do. But if, really, we have done wrong, let us
-be punished and let not our curse visit these innocent door-keepers.'
-Bhagavân replied: — 'It is I who have uttered the curse through your
-mouths. My will shall be done. These door-keepers shall be born as
-Asuras, but they shall come back to Me speedily.' These two
-door-keepers, O Devas, have now appeared in Diti's womb. I have no power
-to overcome them. But when the time comes for the prevalence of Satva,
-Bhagavân Himself will do what is needed."
-
-The Devas went away and waited for events. The two Daityas Hiranyâksha
-and Hiranyakasipu were born of Diti, after a conception of one hundred
-years. Hiranyâksha though elder by birth was younger by conception.
-
-THOUGHTS ON HIRANYÂKSHA.
-````````````````````````
-
-[Diti is literally 'Cutting,' 'Splitting,' or 'dividing.' Jaya and
-Vijaya mean victory. Hiranya is gold. Hiranyâksha means gold-eyed.
-Hiranyakasipu means gold-bedded. The key to the mystery lies in the fact
-that Jaya and Vijaya were the door-keepers of Vishnu and their external
-form was that of Vishnu. The Purusha in the Heart is the Counterpart in
-microcosm of the Purusha in the Universe. And we have found above that
-the five or ten door-keepers or Brahmâ-Purushas in the Heart are the
-five or ten Prânas in man. By analogy, therefore, which is a potent
-factor in the solution of mysteries, we find that Jaya and Vijaya are
-the two-fold manifestations of Prana in Vaikuntha, the in-going and
-out-going energies of Purusha. The life principle is an aspect of
-Bhagavân and stands at His very gate. It is this outer aspect of Purusha
-that is the mainspring of all material activities, of all
-life-manifestations and of the material development of the universe. The
-duality represents Tâmasic inaction and Râjasic activity. Hiranyâksha
-would have no life-manifestation, no appearance of globes, he would
-continue a state of things verging on Prâlayic sleep. Hiranyakasipu was
-the very ideal of material greatness and material grandeur. Kumbhakarna
-slept and Râvana worked. The brothers Jaya and Vijaya passed through the
-dividing energy of Diti, to cause the material manifoldness of the
-Universe. The Varâha as representing the awakened Jivic Karma fought
-with the Asura that opposed the development of that Karma, which could
-only fructify on the Bhûr system.]
-
-
-
-VIII. DEVA AND DEVA-YONI CREATION.
-``````````````````````````````````
-
-**SKANDHA III., CHAP. 20.**
-
-Vidura asked Maitreya: How did Marichi and other Rishis and also
-Svâyambhuva Manu carry out Brahmâ's orders to create.
-
-Maitreya continued the story of Creation in reply to Vidura.
-
-We have heard of the primal dark creation of Brahmâ, consisting of
-five-fold Avidyâ. Referring to that, Maitreya said, it was a creation of
-shadows. Brahmâ was not pleased with this shadowy creation. He gave up
-the dark body and it became night, At that time Yakshas and Râkshasas
-were born and they took it up. The body was not only dark, but it was
-the seat of hunger and thirst. The new-born therefore in their hunger
-and thirst ran after Brahmâ to devour Him. Some of them said: "Have
-no mercy on Him as father." Others said "Devour him." Brahmâ became
-afraid of them and said — "Save me. You are my sons. You should not
-devour me." Those that said "Devour" are Yakshas and those that said
-"Do not save him" are Râkshasas. Brahmâ then created the Devas, with His
-radiant Sâtvika body.
-
-This body when given up became day and the playing Devas took it up.
-Brahmâ then created the Asuras out of His thigh. They became extremely
-passionate and ran after Brahmâ void of all shame. In great distress
-Brahmâ prayed to Vishnu and the Creator was told to give up His body of
-passion. The body was given up and it became Sandhyâ, or evening. The
-Asuras accepted Sandhyâ as their wife. Evening is the time for lust
-and passion. Brahmâ then created the Gandharvas and Apsaras with His
-body of beauty, which when given up became Moon-light. With his
-indolence, Brahmâ created the Bhûtas and Pisâchas. They were stark naked
-and had long loose hair. Brahmâ closed his eyes on seeing them. After a
-time he gave up his yawning body and the Bhûtas and Pishâchas took it
-up. The body that causes secretion is called "Sleep."
-
-That which causes delusion is "Madness." Indolence, yawning, sleep and
-madness all these four were taken up by Bhûtas and Pisâchas for their
-body. Brahmâ knew His powers and He created with His invisible body the
-Sâdhyas and Pitris. By His power of becoming invisible, He created
-Siddhas and Vidhyâdharas and gave them His body with that power. By His
-reflected image He created the Kinnaras and Kimpurushas, who took up
-that image for their body. At dawn, they sing in pairs the praise of
-Brahmâ. Brahmâ did not find any progress in creation with all these
-Bhoga (expansive) bodies. He threw away His body and from His hair the
-elemental serpents or Nâgas were born. After all, Brahmâ created the
-Manûs and Rishis.
-
-
-
-IX. THE PROGENY OF KARDAMA.
-```````````````````````````
-
-**SKANDHA III. CHAP. 21-24.**
-
-Kardama Rishi was ordered by Brahmâ to create. This led him to pray to
-Vishnu on the sacred banks of the Sarasvati, near Vindu Sarovara. Vishnu
-appeared before him with Lakshmî by His side. He revealed to Kardama a
-happy future. The Rishi was to marry Manu's daughter, to have by her
-nine daughters and one son, an Incarnation of Vishnu Himself, who was to
-promulgate the Tatva Vidyâ. Shortly after, Svâyambhuva Manu came to
-Kardama's hermitage, with his wife Sata-rupâ and offered to the Rishi
-his daughter Devahûti in marriage. Kardama accepted her as his wife. He
-had by her nine daughters and the Avatâra Kapila. Brahmâ with his sons
-the Rishis came to Kardama and congratulated him and his wife Devahûti
-upon having Bhagavân Vishnu for their son. He then asked Kardama to give
-his daughters in marriage to the Rishis. Kardama followed his father's
-behests and gave his daughters duly in marriage to the Rishis. Kalâ, he
-gave to Marichi, Anasuyâ to Atri, Sraddhâ to Angirasa, Havirbhu to
-Pulastya, Gati to Pulaha, Kriyâ to Kratu, Khyâti to Bhrigu, Arundhati to
-Vasishtha and Sânti to Atharvan. The Rishi then went to the forest for
-yoga and left his wife in charge of Kapila.
-
-
-THOUGHTS ON KARDAMA.
-````````````````````
-
-[Devahûti means offering to Devas, which is universal service. She is
-the progenitor of those forms of life which have a spiritual influence
-over the whole Trailokya.
-
-"Kalâ" is part, a digit of the Moon.
-
-"Anasuyâ" means absence of envy. From the proverbial chastity of Atri's
-wife the word also means the highest type of chastity and wifely
-devotion.
-
-"Sraddhâ" means faith.
-
-"Havirbhu" means born of sacrificial oblation.
-
-"Gati" means course, path.
-
-"Kriyâ" means performance (of Yajna) and action.
-
-"Khyâti" means fame, praise and also proper discrimination.
-
-"Arundhati" would perhaps mean one that does not stop or hinder.
-Probably the word means a wife who helps her husband in the performance
-of duties and does not stop or prevent him.
-
-It is for this reason that the Star Arundhati is pointed out to the
-bride at the nuptial ceremony.
-
-"Sânti" is peace, the well known invocation of the Vedas at the end of
-a Mantra.
-
-"Kardama" means clay. He was born of Brahmâ's Chhâyâ or shadow.
-
-Devahûti, being wedded to the materialised shadow of the whole Universe,
-gave rise to certain female types which in their turn on being wedded to
-the Rishis, the highest Planetary Intelligences, became the progenitors
-of all the life forms of the Universe. Kapila was one of the earliest
-Rishis. The word — Kapila means tawny or brown coloured.]
-
-
-
-X. KAPILA'S INSTRUCTION TO HIS MOTHER DEVAHÛTI.
-```````````````````````````````````````````````
-
-**SKANDHA III., CHAP. 25-33.**
-
-We now come to an important part of the Bhâgavata Purâna, the teachings
-of Kapila to his mother in the Yoga philosophy of the Bhagavat Purâna.
-They adapt the Sânkhya and the Yoga systems to Bhakti or devotion. For a
-full knowledge of the teachings I refer my readers to the Purâna itself,
-I shall only give the salient points and avoid details as much as
-possible, without breaking the continuity of the discourses. "Yoga
-directed towards Âtmâ brings about Mukti. Chitta attached to the
-transformations of Gunas causes Bondage; attached to Purûsha, it causes
-Mukti. When the mind is pure and free from distractions, man perceives
-Âtmâ in himself, by Wisdom, Dispassion and Devotion. There is no path so
-friendly to the Yogins as constant devotion to Bhagavân. Company of
-Sâdhus opens wide the door to Mukti. They are Sâdhus who have
-forbearance and compassion, who are friendly to all beings, who have no
-enemies, who are free from passions, and above all who have firm and
-undivided Bhakti in Me. They give up all for My sake and they hear and
-speak no words that do not relate to Me. Their company removes the
-impurities of worldliness. Men first hear about Me from the Sâdhus. By
-faith their heart is drawn towards Me, and they have devotion for Me.
-Devotion causes Dispassion and makes easy the path of Yoga. By
-indifference to the Guna transformations of Prakriti, by wisdom fostered
-by Dispassion, by Yoga and by Bhakti (devotion) offered to Me, the Jiva
-attains Me even while in this body."
-
-"When the Indriyas (the senses and the mind), that manifest the objects
-of external and internal perception, become trained by the performance
-of Vedic Karma, their spontaneous Vritti (or function) in a man of
-concentrated mind is in Satva which is the same as Vishnu. This Vritti
-which is void of all selfishness is Bhakti in Bhagavân. It is superior
-to Mukti. It instantly destroys the Kosha (Astral body) as the digestive
-fire consumes food. The devoted have no yearning for that Mukti (Sâyujya
-or Nirvâna) which makes the Jiva one with Me. But they prefer ever to
-talk with each other about Me, to exert themselves for My sake and ever
-to meditate on Me. Mukti comes to them unasked. My Vibhutis, the eight
-Siddhis (*anima &c.*) and all the glory of the highest Lokas are theirs,
-though they want them not. I am their Teacher, their Friend, their
-Companion, their all. So even Kâla cannot destroy them."
-
-"Purusha is Âtmâ. He is eternal, void of Gunas, beyond Prakriti, all
-pervading, self luminous and all manifestating."
-
-"Prakriti is Pradhâna, one in itself, but is also the source of all
-differences (*visesha*), possessed of three Gunas, unmanifested (*avyakta*)
-and eternal."
-
-"The twenty four transformations of Prakriti called Prâdhânika or Saguna
-Brahma are: —
-
-"5 Mahâ Bhûtas — Earth, Water, Fire, Air and Akâsa.
-
-"5 Tanmâtras — Smell, Taste, Rûpa, Touch and Sound.
-
-"10 Indriyas — Ear, Skin, Eye, Tongue, Nose, Speech, Hand, Foot, Upastha
-and Pâyu.
-
-"4 Divisions of Antahkarana — Manas, Buddhi, Chitta and Ahankâra."
-
-"Kâla is the twenty-fifth. But according to some, Kâla is Prabhâva or
-Śakti of Purusha. Those who identify themselves with Prakriti are afraid
-of Kâla. Kâla as the outer aspect of Purusha disturbs the equilibrium of
-Gunas in Prakriti."
-
-"Purusha energised Prakriti and the Gunas led to transformations
-following the action of Daiva or Karma, (Jivic record of the previous
-Kalpa). Prakriti brought forth the refulgent Mahat Tatva. The seed of
-the Universe was in the bosom of Mahat, and it manifested the Universe
-and destroyed the darkness of Pralaya by its own light."
-
-"Chitta which is Vâsudeva and Mahat, is Satva, transparent and pure, and
-the perception of Bhagavân is achieved by this division of Antahkarana."
-
-"Transparence (fitness for the full reflection of Brahmâ) immutability
-and tranquility are the characteristics of Chitta, as of water in its
-primal state."
-
-"Mahat Tatva was transformed into Ahankâra Tatva, with its Kriyâ Śakti.
-Ahankâra became three-fold — Sâtvika (Manas), Râjasika (Indriyas) and
-Tamasika (Bhûtas) *i.e.* Kartri or Cause, Karana or Instrument and Kâryya
-or effect."
-
-"Sankarshana is the Purusha of Ahankâra. He is the Thousand-Headed and
-Ananta (endless.)"
-
-"Manas is Sankalpa and Vikalpa. It is the generator of Kâma
-(or desire.) So Aniruddha, the king of Indriyas, blue as the blue-lotus
-of autumn, the Purûsha of Manas, has with patience to be got over
-by yogins."
-
-"Buddhi is Râjasa transformation of Ahankâra. The perception
-of objects, dependence on the Indriyas, doubt, wrong-knowledge,
-right-knowledge, memory and sleep these are the functions of Buddhi.
-(Pradyumna is the Purûsha of Buddhi.)"
-
-[The terminology here adopted will appear strange to the Vedantin
-scholar. The divisions of Antahkarana are here adopted to the sacred
-Tetractys or Chatur-vyuha, consisting of Vâsudeva, Sankarshana,
-Aniruddha and Pradyumna. In Devotional practice, Antahkarana should be
-made the channel for higher communion and its divisions are the
-divisions of spiritual perception.
-
-Chitta is the highest aspect of Antahkarana corresponding to Mahat Tatva
-in the Universe, with the Purusha always reflected in it. This aspect
-corresponds to Vâsudeva, the highest Purusha in the Tetraktys.
-
-Ahankâra is the bare individuality, transformable into peculiarities,
-but not so transformed. Sankarshana is the corresponding Purusha.
-
-Manas is Kâma or desire brought on by likes and dislikes. It consists of
-the mental tendencies of attachment, repulsion and indifference.
-Aniruddha is the corresponding Purusha.
-
-Buddhi is in one word the Chitta of Patanjali, — that which functions
-through the physical brain.
-
-Pradyumna is the corresponding Purusha.]
-
-"The Indriyas are also the Rajasika transformations of Ahankâra."
-
-Prana through its Kriyâ Śakti gave rise to the Karma Indriyas. Buddhi
-through its Jnâna Śakti gave rise to the Jnâna Indriyas. The Tanmatras
-and the Maha Bhûtas then came out in order of transformation. All these
-principles could not, however, unite to bring forth the creation.
-Purusha then permeated them, and the Cosmic Egg with its covers was
-formed. Details are given as to how the Indriyas and Antahkarana with
-their Adhyâtma, Adhibhûta and Adhidaiva appearing in the Virâta Purusha,
-rose up from sleep as it were only when Chitta finally appeared.
-
-Kapila then dilated on the relations between Purusha and Prakriti, using
-the illustration of the sun reflected on water and re-reflected on the
-wall. He showed how Mukti could be attained by discrimination of
-Prakriti and Purusha — the seer and the seen.
-
-Devahûti asked how Mukti was possible when Prakriti and Purusha were
-eternally co-existent, and inter-dependent in manifestation. A man might
-for a time realize that the Purusha was free from the fears of
-relativity, but his Karma had connected him with the Gunas and the fears
-would recur as the ultimate cause could not be removed. Kapila replied,
-"By unselfish performance of duties, by purification of mind, by intense
-Bhakti in Bhagavân fostered by the recital of His glory, by wisdom based
-on the knowledge of the Tatvas, by strong dispassion, by austere yoga,
-by intense concentration on Âtmâ, Prakriti becomes daily subdued and it
-is finally consumed, even as the wood is consumed by its own fire,
-caused by constant friction. Given up as already enjoyed and constantly
-found fault with, Prakriti does no harm to the Purusha centred in Self.
-Dreams do harm in sleep. But when a man wakes up, they lose all power to
-injure, as they are then found to be dreams only."
-
-Kapila then explained the Ashtânga Yoga of Patanjali, as adapted to
-Bhakti and gave a graphic description of Vishnu as the object of
-meditation.
-
-He then explained Bhakti Yoga. Bhakti Yoga is either Saguna or Nirguna.
-As Saguna it is either Satvika, Râjasika or Tamasika.
-
-Nirguna Bhakti Yoga is that in which the mind runs towards Bhagavân,
-even as the Ganges runs towards the Sea, with a constant spontaneous
-flow. The Devoted spurn Sâlokya, Sârshti, Sâmipya, Sârûpya and Sâyujya
-union [1]_ even when offered to them and they prefer to serve Bhagavân
-ever and ever. Compassion and friendliness to all beings are the
-essential qualifications of the Devoted. They must be humble, respectful
-and self controlled. They must pass their days in hearing and reciting
-the glory of Bhagavân.
-
-Kapila then described in vivid terms the life and death of a man of the
-world and his passage after death to Yâma Loka. He described the rebirth
-and went through every detail of fœtal existence. The fœtus acquires
-consciousness in the seventh month and gets a recollection of previous
-births. This recollection is lost on being born.
-
-Those who selfishly perform their Dharma and worship Devas and Pitris go
-to Sōma Loka, and after partaking of Sōma, they are again re-born. And
-even their Lokas are destroyed with the daily Pralaya of Brahmâ.
-
-Those who unselfishly perform their duties and give themselves up
-entirely to the Supreme Purusha go through Sûrya (Sun) to the
-transcosmic Loka of Parama Purusha. The worshippers of Hiranyagarbha
-(Brahmâ) reach Brahmâ Loka or Satya Loka and there wait for two
-Parârddhas *i.e.* for the life time of Brahmâ and upon the final
-dissolution of the Brahmânda go to the trans-cosmic plane of Parama
-Purusha.
-
-Brahmâ, Marichi and other Rishis, the Kumâras and Siddhas do their
-assigned work unselfishly, but their Upâsanâ admits of distinction. So
-they are absorbed in the Second or the First Manifested Purusha at
-Pralaya and become re-born at creation.
-
-Devahûti heard all this from Kapila. Her doubts were all removed and
-she found the light within herself. She remained fixed in meditation as
-long as her Prârabdha was not exhausted. She then attained Mukti.
-
-Kapila first went towards the North. The sea then gave Him place, where
-He still lies in deep Samâdhi, for the peace of Trilokî. (Gangâ Sâgar or
-Saugor is said to be the seat of Kapila).
-
-.. [1] These are the five kinds of Mukti.
- Sâlokya is residence in the same Loka with the Supreme Being.
- Sârshti is equality with the Supreme Being in all the divine attributes.
- Sâmipya is assimilation to the deity.
- Sâynjya is absorption into the Supreme Being.
-
-.. clearpage::
-
-SKANDHA IV.
-===========
-
-THE GENEALOGY OF MANU AND THE RISHIS.
--------------------------------------
-
-**SKANDHA IV. CHAP. 1.**
-
-In every Manvantarâ, there are one Manu, sons of Manu, Devas, Indra or
-king of the Devas, seven Rishis and one Avatâra of Vishnu. The Avatâras
-of Purusha propel Manu and others to their work. At the end of every
-cycle of 4 Yugas, the Rishis by their Tapas find out the lost Srutis and
-revive the old Dharma. The Manus propound the Dharma. The sons of Manu
-including their descendants and others preserve the Dharma, in their
-respective times, to the end of the Manvantara. The Devas help them in
-their work. Indra preserves the Trilokî and sends down rains" VIII. — 14.
-
-In the Svâyambhuva Manvantara, Svâyambhuva was Manu, the Tushita Devas
-were the Devatâs, Marichi and others were the seven Rishis, Yajna was
-both Avatâra and Indra. Priyavrata and Uttânpada were the two sons of
-Manu.
-
-A number of genealogical tables are given below:
-
-(N. B. The female names are given in italics)
-
-.. figure:: images/bhagap048.png
-
-TABLE A.
-
-.. parsed-literal::
-
- SVÂYAMBHUVA MANU m.
- SATARÛPA -----+---Priyavrata
- |
- +---Uttânpâda
- |
- +---Akûti
- | m. Ruchi +--- KAPILA
- | |
- +---Devahûti |
- | m. Kardama -----+--- *Kalâ*
- | | m. Marichi
- +---Prasûti |
- m. Daksha +--- *Anasuyâ*
- | m. Atri
- |
- +--- *Sraddhâ*
- | m. Angirasa
- |
- +--- *Havirbhu*
- | m. Pulastya
- |
- +--- *Gati*
- | m. Pulaha
- |
- +--- *Kriyâ*
- | m. Kratu
- |
- +--- *Khyâti*
- | m. Bhrigu
- |
- +--- *Arundhati*
- | m. Vasistha
- |
- +--- *Sauti*
- m. Atharvan
-
-TABLE B.
-
-.. parsed-literal::
-
- RUCHI m.
- ÂKÛTI --- YAJNA --------------+
- (married his +--+--- Tosha
- sister) Dakshinâ. --+ |
- |
- +--- Pratosha
- |
- |
- +--- Santosha
- |
- |
- +--- Bhadra
- |
- |
- +--- Sâuti
- |
- |
- +--- Idâmpati
- |
- |
- +--- Idhma
- |
- |
- +--- Kavi
- |
- |
- +--- Vibhu
- |
- |
- +--- Svâhra
- |
- |
- +--- Sudiva
- |
- |
- +--- Rochana
-
- N.B. The sons of Yajna are the Sushita Devas of the 1st. Manvantarâ.
-
-.. figure:: images/bhagap049.png
-
-TABLE C.
-
-.. parsed-literal::
-
-
- Marichi
- *m. Kalâ*
- |
- |
- --+--+-----------------+-----
- | |
- Kasyapa Pûrnimâ
- |
- +--------------+------------+--------
- | | |
- Viraja Visvaga *Devakulyâ*
- (River Ganges in
- subsequent incarnation).
-
-
-TABLE D.
-
-.. parsed-literal::
-
- Atri
- *m. Anasuyâa*
- |
- +----------------+--+------------------------+
- | | |
- Datta Durvasas Sōma
- (Rudra) (Brahmâ)
-
-
-TABLE E.
-
-.. parsed-literal::
-
- Angirasa
- *m. Sraddhâ*
- |
- ---+----------+-------+-+--------+----------+--------+-----
- | | | | | |
- Sinivali Kuhû Râkâ Anumati Utathya Vrihaspati
-
-
-
-TABLE F.
-
-.. parsed-literal::
-
- Pulastya
- *m. Havirbhu*
- |
- -------------+------------+----------------+
- | |
- Agastya Visvaras
- m. (1) Ilavila m. (2) Kesinî
- | |
- Kuvera +------+------+-------------+
- | | |
- Râvana Kumbhakarna Vibhisana
-
-
-.. figure:: images/bhagap050.png
-
-TABLE G.
-
-.. parsed-literal::
-
- Pulaha
- *m. Gati*
- |
- -----+---------------+-+---------------+---
- | | |
- Karma Sreshtha Bariyas Sahishnu
-
-
-
-TABLE H.
-
-.. parsed-literal::
-
-
- Kratu
- *m. Kriyâ*
- |
- 60,000 Balakhilya Rishis
-
-
-
-TABLE I.
-
-.. parsed-literal::
-
- Vasishtha
- *m. Aruudhati (Urjâ)*
- |
- -----+---------+--------+---+--+-------+----------+-----------+--
- | | | | | | |
- Chitraketu, Surochi, Virajâ, Mitra, Ulvana, Vasubhirdyana, Duyuman,
-
-
-
-TABLE J.
-
-.. parsed-literal::
-
- Atharvan
- *m. Chitti*
- |
- Dadhîchi ( Asvasiras )
-
-TABLE K.
-
-.. parsed-literal::
-
- Bhrigu
- *m. Khyati*
- |
- +---------------+-------+---------+-----------+
- | | | |
- Dhâtâ Vidhâtâ Srî Kavi
- m. Ayati m. Niyati |
- | | |
- Mrikundu Vedasiras Usanas
- |
- Markândeya
-
-.. figure:: images/bhagap051.png
-
-TABLE L.
-
-.. parsed-literal::
-
- Daksha
- m. Prasûti ---+-- m. Dharma
- |
- |
- +-- *Sraddhâ*, --- Satya
- |
- |
- +-- *Maitrî*, --- Prasâda
- |
- |
- +-- *Dayâ*, --- Abhaya
- |
- |
- +-- *Santi*, --- Sama
- |
- |
- +-- *Tushti*, --- Harsha
- |
- |
- +-- *Pushti*, --- Garva
- |
- |
- +-- *Kriyâ*, --- Yoga
- |
- |
- +-- *Unnati*, --- Darpa
- |
- |
- +-- *Buddhi*, --- Artha
- |
- |
- +-- *Medhâ*, --- Smriti
- |
- |
- +-- *Titkshâ*, --- Kshema
- |
- |
- +-- *Lajjâ*, --- Vinaya
- |
- |
- +-- *Mûrti*
- | m. Dharma --+-- Nara
- | |
- | +-- Nârayâna
- |
- +-- *Svahâ*
- | m. Agni ---+-- Pâvaka--+
- | | |
- | +-- Pavamân-+-- 45 Fires
- | | | (Agni).
- | +-- Suchi---+
- |
- |
- +-- *Svadhâ*,
- | m. Pitris --+-- Vayunâ
- | |
- | +-- Dhûrini
- |
- +-- *Sâti*
- | m. Śiva
- |
- |
-
-
-.. figure:: images/bhagap052.png
-
-TABLE M.
-
-.. parsed-literal::
-
- Adharma
- *m. Mithyâ*
- |
- +-------------+--------------+
- | |
- Damba Married *Mâyâ*
- |
- +-------------+--------------+
- | |
- Lôbha Married *Sathatâ*
- |
- +-------------+--------------+
- | |
- Krôdha Married *Hinsâ*
- |
- +-------------+--------------+
- | |
- Kali Married *Durukti*
- |
- +-------------+--------------+
- | |
- Mrityu Married *Bhiti*
- |
- +-------------+--------------+
- | |
- Niraya *Yatanâ*
-
-
-.. figure:: images/bhagap053.png
-
-.. figure:: images/bhagap054.png
-
-
-TABLE N.
-
-.. parsed-literal::
-
- Uttânapâda
- *m. Suruchi*
- |
- Uttama
- (killed by Yaksha) *m. Sunîti*
- |
- +-------------------------+
- |
- Dhruva
- m. Ilâ m. Bharami
- | +-------------+
- +------+--------+ | |
- | | Kalpa Vatsara
- Utkala (Daughter) *m. Suvîthi*
- |
- m. Prabhâ --+-------------+---------+-----+-+---+----+---
- | | | | | | |
- | Pushparna, Tigmaketu, Isha, Ûrja, Vasu, Jaya
- |
- +--+---+------------+
- | | |
- Prâtar Madhyandina Sâyam m. Doshâ
- |
- |
- +-------------+---------------+
- | | |
- Pradosha, Nisitha, Vyushta
- *m. Pushkarinî*
- |
- Sarvatejas
- or
- Chakshus
- *m. Âkûtî*
- |
- Manu
- *m. Nadvalâ*
- |
- +-------+-------+-----+---------+-------+--+---------+--------+------+--
- | | | | | | | | |
- Puru, Kritasna, Rita, Vrata, Agnishtoma, Atirâtra, Pradyumna, Sivi, Ulmûka
- |
- +-------+--------+-------+--------+--------+--------+
- | | | | | |
- Anga, Sumanas, Svâti, Kratu, Angiras, Gaya.
-
-
-Table N.--(*Contd.*)
-
-.. parsed-literal::
-
- *M. Sunîthâ*
- |
- Vena
- (By Churning)
- |
- PRITHU
- *M. Archi*
- |
- ---+-------------+---+---------+----------+---------+----
- | | | | |
- Vijitâsva, Haryaksha, Dhûmrakesha, Vrika, Dravina.
- or
- Antardhâna
- *M. Skihandini* *M. Nabhasvati*
- | |
- --+---+-----+--------+-- -----+--------
- | | | |
- Pâvaka, Pavaman, Suchi Habirdhâna
- *M. Habirdhâni*
- |
- ----+----------+------+--------+--------+---------+---
- | | | | | |
- Barhishad, Gaya, Sukla, Krishna, Satya, Jitabrata
- or
- Prâ-china Barhi
- *M. Satadruti* (Daughter of Ocean God)
- |
- 10 Prachetas
- M. The Vegetable daughter of Kaudu and Pramlochâ
- |
- Daksha (of Chakshusha Manvantara)
- *M. Asikni* (Daughter of Panchajana)
- |
- +--+-------------------+----------------+
- | | |
- 10,000 Haryasva, 1,000 Sabalasva, 60 Daughters
-
- 10 Married to Dharma
- 2 " " Bhuta
- 2 " " Angiras
- 2 " " Krisasva
- 4 " " Tarksha
- 27 " " Moon
- 13 " " Kasyapa
- ------
- 60
-
-.. figure:: images/bhagap055.png
-
-
-TABLE O.
-
-.. parsed-literal::
-
- Dharma
-
- m.
- *1. Bhanu,* ---- Devarshava ---- Indra Sena
-
- m.
- *2. Lambâ,* ---- Vidyota ---- The Clouds
-
- m.
- *3. Kakuâ,* ---- Sankata ---- Kikata (The Presiding-Gods
- of earth cavities.)
-
- m.
- *4. Yâmi,* ---- Svarga ---- Nandi
-
- m.
- *5. Visvâ,* ---- The Visvadevas
-
- m.
- *6. Sâdhya,* --- The Sâdhyas ---- Arthasidhi
-
- m.
- 7. Maruvatî, --+-- Marutvat
- |
- +-- Jayanta or Upendra
-
- m.
- *8. Muhûrta,* --- The Muhurta-Gods
-
- m.
- *9. Sankalpâ.* --- Sankalpa ---- Kâma
-
- m.
- 10. Vasu ----+--- Drona,
- | m. Anumati ----+-- Harsha
- | |
- | +-- Soka &c.
- |
- +--- Prana,
- | m. Urjasvati --+-- Saha,
- | |
- | +-- Âyus,
- | |
- | +-- Purojava.
- |
- +--- Dhruva
- | m. Dharanî ----- The different
- | Localities (Pura).
- |
- +--- Arka
- | *m. Vâsanâ* ------ Tarsha &c.
- |
- +--- Agni
- | m. Dhârâ -----+-- Skânda ---- *Visâkhû &c.*
- | | (Kartikeya)
- | |
- | +-- Dravinaka & c.
- |
- +--- Dosha
- | *m. Sarvarî* ----- Sisumâra
- |
- +--- Vâstu
- | m. Ângirasi ---- Visvakarmâ --+-- Châkshush Manu
- | |
- | +-- Visvadevas
- | |
- | +-- Sâdhyas
- |
- +--- Vibhâvasu
- m. Ûshâ -------+-- Vyustha,
- |
- +-- Rochisha,
- |
- +-- Âtapa ----- Panchayâma
-
-.. figure:: images/bhagap056.png
-
-
-TABLE P.
-
-.. parsed-literal::
-
- Bhûta
- m. 11. Svarupâ ----+-- Raivata,
- |
- +-- Aja,
- |
- +-- Bhava,
- |
- +-- Bhîma,
- |
- +-- Bâma,
- |
- +-- Ugra,
- |
- +-- Vrishâkapi,
- |
- +-- Ajaikpâda,
- |
- +-- Bahurûpa,
- |
- +-- Mahânand
- Millions
- of such
- Rudras.
-
- 12. Married another
- wife ------------- Pretas
-
-TABLE Q.
-
-.. parsed-literal::
-
- Angirasa
-
- *m. 13 Svadhâ* *m. 14. Satî*
- | |
- | |
- Pitris Aharvângiras
-
-
-.. figure:: images/bhagap057.png
-
-
-TABLE R.
-
-.. parsed-literal::
-
- Krisâsva
-
- *m. 15. Archi* *m. 16. Dhishanâ*
- | |
- | +-----------++--------+--------+
- | | | | |
- Dhûmaketu Vedasiras Devala Vayuna Manu.
-
-
-TABLE S.
-
-.. parsed-literal::
-
- Tarksha
-
- m. 17. Vinatâ m. 18. Kadru m. 19. Patangî m. 20. Yâminî
- | | | |
- +-+---+ | | |
- | | | | |
- Garuda Aruna Serpents Flying birds Salabha (Moths
- and locusts)
-
-TABLE T.
-
-.. parsed-literal::
-
- Chandra (Moon)
-
- *m.* 21 to 47. Krittikâ &c
- (Stars in the lunar path on the Ecliptic.)
-
-.. figure:: images/bhagap058.png
-
-.. figure:: images/bhagap059.png
-
-.. figure:: images/bhagap060.png
-
-.. figure:: images/bhagap061.png
-
-TABLE U.
-
-.. parsed-literal::
-
- Kasyapa
-
- *m. 48. Timî* -------- Aquatic animals,
-
- *m. 49. Saramâ* ------ Quadrupeds,
- (Tigers &c.)
-
- *m. 50. Suravi* ------ Cloven footed
- animals.
-
- m. 51. Tâmrâ ----+-- Syena (falcon)
- |
- +-- Gridhra &c. (vulture)
-
- *m. 52. Muni* ------- Apsarasas
-
- *m. 53. Krodhivasâ* --- Dvandasûka &c. (serpents)
-
- *m. 54. Ilâ* ---------- Udvid (Plants)
-
- *m. 55. Suramâ* ------- Râkshasas
-
- *m. 56. Aristhâ* ------ Gandharvas
-
- *m. 57. Kâshthâ* ------ Animals other than
- cloven-footed.
-
- m. 58. Danu------+-- Dvimûrdhâ,
- |
- +-- Samvara,
- |
- +-- Aristhâ,
- |
- +-- Hayagrîva,
- |
- +-- Bibhâvasu,
- |
- +-- Ayomukha,
- |
- +-- Sankusiras,
- |
- +-- Svarbhânu, ---- *Suprabha*
- | *m.* Namuchi
- |
- +-- Kapila,
- |
- +-- Puloman,
- |
- +-- Vrishaparva, ---- *Sarmisthâ*
- | *m.* Yayâti
- |
- +-- Ekachakra,
- |
- +-- Anutapana,
- |
- +-- Dhûmrakesha,
- |
- +-- Virûpâksha,
- |
- +-- Biprachitti ----+-- Râhu
- | m. Sinhakâ |
- | +-- 100 Ketus.
- |
- +-- Durjaya,
-
- Kasyapa
- m. Aditi --+-- Vivasvat
- | m. Sanjnâ ----+-- Srâdhadeva
- | | Manu
- | | (The present
- | | Vaivasvata Manu)
- | |
- | +-- Yâma
- | |
- | +-- Yamunâ
- | |
- | +-- Ashvini kumâras
- |
- | m. Chhâyâ -----+-- Sanaischara,
- | |
- | +-- Sâvarni,
- | |
- | +-- *Tapati*
- | *m.* Samvarana
- |
- +-- Aryaman
- | *m. Mâtrikâ* ---- Charshanis
- |
- +-- Pûshan
- |
- +-- Tvastri
- | *m. Rachanâ* ---- Visvarûpa
- |
- +-- Tvastri
- | m. Prisni ---+-- *Sâvitri,*
- | |
- | +-- *Vyâhriti,*
- | |
- | +-- *Trayî,*
- | |
- | +-- Agnihotra,
- | |
- | +-- Pasuyâga,
- | |
- | +-- Sōmayâga,
- | |
- | +-- Châturmasya,
- | |
- | +-- Panchamahâyajna.
- |
- +-- Bhaga
- | m. Sidhi -----+-- Mahiman,
- | |
- | +-- Bibhu,
- | |
- | +-- Prabhu,
- | |
- | +-- Asîs
- |
- +-- Dhâtri
- | *m. Kuhû* ------ Sâyam
- | *m. Sinivâti*, --- Darsa
- |
- | *m. Râka*, ------- Prâtar
- |
- | *m. Anumatî* --- Pûrnamâsa
- |
- +-- Vidhâtri
- | *m. Kriyâ*, ------ Purishya
- | (Five Fires)
- |
- +-- Varuna
- | m. Charshanî --+-- Bhrigu
- | |
- | +-- Vâlmîla
- |
- | m. Urvasî -----+-- Agastya
- | |
- | +-- Vasistha
- |
- +-- Mitra
- | m. Revatî -----+-- Utsarga
- | |
- | +-- Aristhâ
- | |
- | +-- Pippala
- |
- +-- Vishnu
- | *m. Kîrti* ----- Vrihat slocac --- Soubhaga
- | &c.
- |
- +-- Hiranyakasipu
- | *m. Kayâdhu*
- | |
- | +--+-- Samhrâda,
- | | *m. Mati* -- Panchajana
- | |
- | +-- Anuhrâda,
- | | m. Suryâ,--+-- Vâskala
- | | |
- | | +-- Mahisha
- | |
- | +-- Hlâda,
- | | m. Dhamanî +-- Vâtapi
- | | |
- | | +-- Ilvala
- | |
- | +-- Prahlâda
- | *m. Drarbî,*
- | |
- | Virochana
- | |
- | Bali
- | *m. Asanâ*
- | |
- | +----------+
- | | |
- | Vâna 100 Sons
- |
- +-- Hiranyâksha
- |
- +-- 49 Maruts
-
-
-
-
-GENERAL REMARKS ON THE TABLES.
-------------------------------
-
-These Tables must not be mistaken for human genealogies. The reader will
-have to carry himself in imagination to a time when there was a vast
-sheet of nebulous mass, when the globes and planets had not been formed,
-and the phenomena now known as day, night, year, month and season were
-still unknown.
-
-The process known as Pralaya had absorbed the life energies of Trilokî,
-which remained latent in that intermediate plane between the higher and
-the lower Lokas known as Mahar Loka. When the creative process set in,
-and the ground was prepared for the manifestation of life, life energies
-streamed forth from the Mahar Loka, more as types than as individuals.
-These types are called Prajâpatis or the Lords of life kingdoms. They
-carry back to Trilokî all the life energies of the previous Kalpa. At
-Pralaya, they draw back unto themselves all the life energies of the
-dying Trilokî, and take a lasting sleep in the archetypal plane ( Mahar
-Loka ) to which they properly belong. The Prajâpatis of the First
-Manvantara become the Rishis of other Manvantaras. As the first Lords of
-creation bring back the life energies as well as the lost experiences of
-the previous Kalpa, so the Rishis bring back the lost knowledge of each
-Manvantara. This is fully explained in the fourteenth Chapter of the
-Eighth Skandha. The Kumârs are not Prajâpatis, as they come from a plane
-higher than Mahar Loka. In the first Manvantara, Marichî, Atrî Angirasa,
-Pulastya, Pulaha, Kratu, Bhrigu, Vasistha, Daksha, and Nârada are
-mentioned as the chief Prajâpatis. Of these, Nârada is not strictly
-speaking a Prajâpati, or Lord of creation, as he took no part in the
-work of creation, though he is called so having proceeded from Mahar
-Loka. Kardama, Ruchi and Visvakarmâ are some of the other Prajâpatis.
-
-Of the Prajâpatis, seven form distinct types by themselves. They preside
-over the seven stars, which form the constellation of Great Bear. They
-send forth their energies from the plane of the Seven Sages, and guide
-the course of life evolution that takes place in Trilokî. The sages are
-relieved every Manvantara by others who take up their place. The seven
-sages of our Manvantara, are different from the Prajâpatis of the first
-Manvantara. It is by great sacrifices and by great efforts that the
-highest Rishis of a Manvantara attain the position of the Seven Sages.
-The Sages may become Prajâpatis, and Prajâpatis may become Kumâras. And
-men may become sages, if they follow the true path. The grades that
-divide men from sages or Rishis proper are many, and human evolution
-proceeds on the line of those grades.
-
-Energies of another kind proceeded from Mahar Loka, energies known as
-Devas and Asuras. They work out, or rather they are intimately connected
-with, the tendency of life-evolution. There is a tendency in the
-Spiritual Jiva to acquire experience of the lower planes, through senses
-which they develop. The Asuras are connected with this tendency. There
-is the opposite tendency in the Jiva to get rid of the material taint
-and the material restriction earned in the efforts to acquire manifold
-experiences and to gain back the original state of purity after the
-acquisition of fresh spiritual treasures though the experiences of
-matter. The Devas are connected with this tendency.
-
-These are the forms of life which then come into existence and work out
-their evolution in this Trilokî.
-
-Life evolution proceeds on two different lines — that of globes and that
-of individuals. They are represented by the two sons of Manu — Priyavrata
-and Uttânapâda.
-
-In the line of Priyavrata we find how the globes were formed in the
-solar system, through various cosmic fires originating from Visvakarmâ,
-how this earth was formed, its continents and countries. The different
-divisions of the Bhûr Loka are presided over by different forms of
-intelligence, who are the sons of Priyavrata.
-
-In the line of Uttânapâda we find the different life kingdoms passing
-through different stages of evolution.
-
-First of all, we find a limit is put to life existence in Trilokî by
-Dhruva. Dhruva, son of Uttânapâda, presides over the Polar Star. That
-Star forms the farthest limit of Trilokî. Matter is so attenuated there
-that it can last for one Kalpa. We are speaking of a period when infant
-souls merged out to commence the race of life in the present Kalpa. They
-were spiritual and highly spiritual too. But they were carried away by
-the general current of creative tendencies. They were to limit
-themselves by sheath after sheath, so that they might acquire the
-experiences of Svar Loka, of Bhuvar Loka and of Bhûr Loka in succession.
-Dhruva, the infant soul, a child only five years old, however, resisted
-the common temptation. He would not go down, for he had an important
-service to render to the Universe. Who would advise him in this noble
-mission but Nârada. Nârada was out of element when the creative process
-was in full swing, and it was a necessity of life evolution. But there
-were instances of exception, instances of noble souls who would not go
-in with the general current, but would like to remain fixed in spiritual
-life, and Nârada was always to be found helping them with his advice.
-
-Dhruva remained fixed in his early spirituality. That was a sacrifice,
-for he could not enrich himself with further spiritual experiences,
-through the senses, of the lower planes of life. But he had to keep up
-an abode which was to be resorted to by evolved souls in later days,
-souls that in due course would reach that high spiritual plane.
-
-From that Kâlpic plane and the dweller thereof, we come to lower planes
-and their dwellers, to the divisions of time that rule the lives of
-individuals and of lives adapted to these divisions of time. We come
-from the elementals of the Svarga plane, or the Devas, to the elementals
-of the Astral or Bhuvar plane, the Pitris, Bhûtas, Pretas and Pisâchas,
-till we reach the mineral kingdom, represented by Himalya, the Mountain
-king. At this point a turning point was reached in life evolution, and
-the goddess of life-evolution became the daughter of the Mountain king.
-Of this we shall know more hereafter.
-
-We know of Daksha, first as the son of Brahmâ, the creative Prajâpati
-when the life-process rapidly worked itself out in Elemental forms. Then
-there was no sexual procreation. Creation meant the materialisation of
-the Jiva. Satî, the daughter of Daksha, was the guiding energy of
-life-evolution. She became wedded to Śiva, the Lord of Bhûtas, Pretas
-and Pisâchas who by the infusion of their Tâmasic energies could bring
-down Jivas from their high spiritual plane.
-
-When the process of materialisation was over, when the Jivas
-or Monads reached the lowest limits of materiality, the mission of
-Daksha came to an end.
-
-Life evolution had now to pass through mineral, vegetable and animal
-stages, until at last the human stage was reached.
-
-Satî now appeared as the daughter of the mineral king Himâlaya. She gave
-the upward bent to life evolution and by the energy she imparted
-minerals were able to shake off the rigidity and stability of gross
-matter, to develop the sense of touch and to become vegetable at last.
-In like manner vegetable became animal, and animals at last became men.
-
-Śiva, the husband of Bhagavati or Durgâ, as Satî was now called, is the
-Purusha of Dissolution. Bhagavati is His Energy, Who guides the Monadic
-or Jiva Evolution of the Kalpa. It is the wear and tear, the process of
-destruction, that counteracts the cohesive strength of the particles
-forming mineral matter, which by its action becomes flexible and so
-receptive of outside influences.
-
-Cells by division and death become capable of the life process in
-themselves. Vegetables grow by the rejection of cells, which
-necessitates a number of physiological processes. Death brings on life,
-waste, repair.
-
-If animals exist in one and the same body, progress will be limited,
-further evolution will be impossible. It is by death that we evolve.
-
-Bhagavatî works out the evolution of life in different kingdoms till the
-stage of humanity is reached.
-
-At this point Aryaman, one of the Âdityas, comes to the help of
-humanity. Through his influence the sons of humanity become endowed with
-the power of reasoning, — the faculty of discrimination.
-
-The sons of Aryaman are called Charshanis. The word Charshani literally
-means a cultivator. Its secondary sense given in the Vedic lexicon is
-one endowed with the discriminative faculty. The word Charshani is used
-in the Vedas for man. It is the equivalent of Arya or Aryan, the
-ploughman. But it is not as ploughmen or cultivators, that the Aryans
-had their high place in humanity, but as men endowed with the power of
-discrimination. And this we owe to Aryaman. This is why, though an
-Âditya, he is called the chief of Pitris by Sri Krishna.
-
-"I am Aryaman of the Pitris." — Bhagavat Gitâ.
-
-We have thus the first stage in life evolution, when the spiritual
-Jiva had to descend from the elemental to the mineral form. Next
-we have the second stage, when minerals passed through higher forms
-of life till the Human Kingdom was reached.
-
-Then we have the third stage, when men became endowed with
-the power of discrimination.
-
-In the exercise of the discriminative faculty men were helped by their
-elder brothers, the Rishis and Mahâtmâs of every period, and by Avatâras
-Who apeared from time to time.
-
-Then the ground was prepared for further evolution. The Sacred
-Injunctions or the Vedas were revealed to men to give them a sense of
-right and wrong, of duties and prohibitions. The Vedas also held out to
-the developed sense of men the charming prospect of life in Svarga Loka
-with its lasting and alluring enjoyments. This may be called the stage
-of Karma Kânda. In following the stages of human evolution we have come
-down to Vaivasvatu Manvantara.
-
-Side by side with the efforts made to raise humanity in the scale of
-evolution, sin was accumulating in the great Atlantean continent which
-spread over the whole of what we now know as the Bay of Bengal. The
-Atlanteans had acquired a mastery over the five forces of nature, which
-they used for selfish objects and against the cause and current of
-evolution.
-
-Then there was a great revolution in Nature. The great Atlantean
-Continent went down with its load of sins. The sons of Sagar, the
-Atlantean king, became buried under the great ocean, which overtook the
-doomed continent, and to this day the sea is called in India, "Sâgar" or
-relating to Sagar.
-
-There was a corresponding upheaval in the Himalayas, and the sacred
-river Gangâ streamed forth from their sides, inaugurating the spiritual
-regeneration of the Universe. Much of what we now know as India must
-have been raised up at the time, and on its sacred soil appeared the
-great Avatâra Râma, Who put an end to the disorganising, chaos-loving
-sons of Lankâ. The people of Lankâ were called Râkshasas as they were
-working towards the destruction of all order, all progress in the
-Universe, and rendered everything topsy-turvy in Nature.
-
-Now it was time for Sri Krishna to appear, the greatest of all Avatâras
-in our Kalpa, Who gave the last bent to the progress of humanity. He
-wedded Himself with all the principles that enter into the constitution
-of man, so that man may come up to Him. He taught the basic unity of all
-beings, and laid down the path of Service and Devotion. He established
-the reign of spiritual life, and ever since His lotus feet sanctified
-the soil of India, the Scriptures only re-iterate His teachings, and
-they all sing His glory for ever and ever. We shall find in its true
-place the Service done by Lord Sri Krishna, and how by His Avatarship
-humanity has made one more advance in the scale of human evolution. When
-the Lord appeared, Bhagavatî made her appearance too as the daughter of
-Nanda. It is with Her energy that Sri Krishna performed the mission of
-His Avatarship.
-
-This is a bare outline of what the Tables teach us, We shall consider
-them each in its own place. We shall find a detailed account as to how
-the Universe is preserved. We shall hear of great Rishis, of many
-Avatâras, of the part played by Devas and Asurus. We shall see how the
-Monads pass through different stages of evolution, till the idea of
-perfect humanity is presented by Lord Krishna.
-
-The Tables sometimes speak of life Kingdoms, sometimes of human races,
-sometimes of types and principles, and sometimes of individuals.
-Sometimes, the names used convey a good deal of hidden meaning,
-sometimes they are used at random.
-
-In the line of Priyavratra, we find how globes are formed, how
-continents and countries appear. The solidification of earth is
-indicated by the muteness of Bharata. Bhârata Varsa or India is called
-the first born of all countries, and other lands are enjoined to follow
-and to obey their eldest brother.
-
-TABLE A.
-````````
-
-**SKANDHA IV. CHAP. 1.**
-
-The names of the first table have been considered before.
-
-TABLE B.
-````````
-
-**SKANDHA IV. CHAP. 1.**
-
-Ruchi and Akuti both mean Wish, Desire. Yajna is sacrifice, Dakshinâ
-means ordinarily the present made to a Brâhmana for officiating at a
-ceremony. It is also the present made for the performance of a Vedic
-sacrifice. No Vedic sacrifice is complete without the present of
-Dakshinâ to the officiating priest. Dakshinâ was married to Yajna, for
-they are inseparable. Possibly Yajna has reference to the elemental or
-Devic character of life forms in the first Manvantara. That also
-explains why there was no Indra separate from the Avatâra of the
-Manvantara.
-
-The first Manvantara was one of Pravritti or Descent, Spirit could
-descend into matters only with the help of Desire. Desire is the father
-of Kâma — Kâma is the characteristic of Vedic Yajna. Yajna therefore
-guided the First Manvantara. He was the Avatâra of Vishnu as well as the
-Indra of the Devas.
-
-The sons of Yajna were the Devas of the First Manvantarâ. The Bhâgavata
-calls them Sushita or Bliss gods. The Vishnu Purâna calls them Yâma
-Devas. The Manvantara Devas have for their mission the carrying out of
-the cyclic work of the Manvantara.
-
-TABLE C.
-````````
-
-**SKANDHA IV. CHAP. 1.**
-
-Marichi means literally a ray of light. The word is frequently applied
-to the sun's ray. As the sun's ray breaks up into the component colours,
-so the line of Marichi broke up into the life kingdoms. Kalâ means a
-digit of the moon. Kasyapa was the son of Marichi and Kalâ. He married
-the 13 daughters of Daksha, in the line Uttânapada. By his wives,
-Kasyapa was the father of Suras and Asuras, of elementals, vegetables,
-animals and men. He is directly connected with the Monads. Marichi and
-Kalâ have a special significance in reference to Jivic evolution. Does
-the pair symbolise the sun's ray reflected on the Moon or the Atmic ray
-reflected on Buddhi? Any how Marichi and Kalâ imply the divine ray in
-the Jivas or Âtma-Buddhi.
-
-The monads of individuals are limited by the shells or bodies of
-Kasyapa's line. (The word Kasyapa means primarily bed, seat). They come
-through Pûrnima, daughter of Marichi. The sons of Pûrnima are Viraja and
-Visvaga.
-
-Viraja is free from Rajas. Visvaga means one who goes all over the
-Universe. Viraja and Visvaga are Universal aspects of Jivic
-Intelligence.
-
-(Viraja is the father of Vairâjas). Devakulyâ is the daughter of
-Purnimâ. She flowed from the washings of the feet of Vishnu and became
-the divine river Gangâ.
-
-
-
-TABLE D.
-````````
-
-**SKANDHA IV. CHAP. 1.**
-
-
-Atri = *a* (not ) + *tri* (three). Not three, but three in one. Anasuyâ =
-(not)+*asuyâ* (envy, intolerance, jealousy).
-
-Atri made severe Tapas for one hundred years for a son like unto the
-Lord of the Universe. The ascetic fire at last broke forth from his head
-and instantly Brahmâ, Vishnu and Śiva appeared before him.
-
-"Lords!" said Atri, "I had only one of you in my mind, but you have all
-Three come to me!"
-
-The Trinity replied: — "We are three in one. You shall have three sons,
-one after each of us."
-
-Anasuyâ begot Sōma or the Moon after Brahmâ, Datta or Dattâtreya after
-Vishnu and Durvâsas after Śiva.
-
-[The Moon is thus a sort of Brahmâ or creator to the present Kalpa.]
-
-Atri represents the Creative, the Preservative and the Destructive
-Intelligence in the individual, all united to carry out the complex
-process of evolution.
-
-The Brihat Aranyaka certainly refers to one of his aspects in the
-following passage: —
-
-"Speech is Attri; for by speech food is consumed; for Attri is verily
-derived from the root Attih (to eat, consume); he is the consumer of
-all." II-2-4.
-
-
-
-TABLE E.
-````````
-
-"Where was he, who thus established us? He Is within the mouth; hence is
-Ayâsya. He is Angirasa, because he is the essence of the members."
-Brihat Aranyaka I-3-8.
-
-Commenting on this passage Sankarâcharya says: "Life is also called
-Angirasa, the essence of causes and effects. Angirasa is a compound of
-Anga and Râsa — Anga meaning members, causes, and effects, and Râsa
-essence, substance; the whole meaning therefore is the substance, upon
-which causes and effects depend — It is the essence of every thing,
-because unless it were present, all would become without effect."
-
-"He who abides in the mouth is Angirasa, for he is the essence (Râsa)
-of the members (Anga). Life is the essence of the members. This is also
-Brihaspati. Speech is Brihati. Life is the preserver (*pati*) of
-Brihati, therefore it is Brihaspati."
-
-B.A. I-3-19 and 20.
-
-Brihaspati or the presiding deity of the planet Jupiter is called
-Angirasa *i.e.* the son of Angiras. The wife of Angiras is, according to
-the Bhâgavata, Sraddha or Faith, and, according to Vishnu Purina, Smriti
-or Memory. The latter is a more suggestive name. Brihaspati or Jupiter
-is the essence of all beings and of the Universe and is connected with
-the memory of the past.
-
-Angirasa is the Rishi of the 5th Mandala of the Rig Veda. The Mantras of
-that Mandala are composed in the Brihati or big Metre. This accounts for
-the name Brihaspati (Brihati+pati).
-
-Brihaspati or Jupiter, as the guide of the Devas, has to play a most
-important part in bringing about the life evolution of the present
-Kalpa according to the records of the past and the essence or Râsa
-of all beings. The Âranyaka therefore calls him life itself.
-
-Utathya, another son of Angiras, is *u+tathya*. *U* is an interjection,
-used as an expletive — *Tathya* means reality, truth — Utathya is said to be
-an incarnation of Vishnu. Both the brothers are said to have
-distinguished themselves in the Second Manvantarâ. *Sinivâli* is the day
-preceding that of new moon or that day on which the moon rises with a
-scarcely visible crescent. Kuhâ is new moon day when the moon is
-altogether invisible.
-
-*Râkâ* is the full moon day.
-
-*Anumati* is the 15th day of the moon's age on which she rises one digit
-less than full.
-
-The full moon and new moon days have thus a mysterious connection with
-the essence of all beings. On those days the herbs have their medicinal
-properties in full and even men have mysterious potencies, which have
-formed the subject of occult study.
-
-
-
-TABLE F.
-````````
-
-Pulastya = Pula + Stya.
-
-*Pula* is large, wide. It also means a thrill of joy or fear.
-
-*Stya* is he who collects, is connected with, remains in.
-Agastya = Aga + Stya.
-
-*Aga* is mountain, unable to walk, fixed.
-
-According to a Pauranik legend, the Vindhya mountain began
-to rise higher and higher so as to obstruct the path of the sun and
-moon. The gods being alarmed sought the aid of Agastya who was
-the teacher of Vindhya. The Rishi approached the mountain and
-asked it to bend down and give him an easy passage to the south
-and to retain the same position till his return. Vindhya obeyed the
-order of his teacher, but Agastya never returned from the south and
-Vindhya never attained the height of Meru.
-
-According to the Bhâgavata, Agastya is the digestive fire of the
-stomach.
-
-Visravas = Vi (signifying intensity) + Sravas (ear).
-
-Kubera is literally deformed. He is the god of riches and Regent of the
-North. He is the king of the Yakshas and Kinnaras and a friend of Rudra.
-His abode is Kailâsa. He is represented as having three legs, only eight
-teeth and a yellow mark in place of one eye.
-
-Râvana, Kumbhakarna and Vibhishana are Râkshasas made famous by the
-Râmayana.
-
-Râvana is one who makes a loud noise. The Râkshasas reached the height
-of their power in his time. The Yakshas, before his time, had occupied
-Lankâ or Atlantis under Kubera, but Râvana propitiated Śiva by his loud
-hymns, and acquired easy mastery over his kindred elementals. He ousted
-the Yakshas from Lankâ and made it his own capital. Râvana also
-controlled the higher Devas of Trilokî.
-
-Kumbha karna = Kumbha (pitcher) + Karna (ear). This pitcher-eared
-brother of Râvana is said to have devoured thousands of beings including
-sages and heavenly nymphs. He slept for six months at a time. He was
-ultimately slain by Râma.
-
-Vibhisana, meaning the Terrible, left his brother Râvana and joined
-Râma. After the death of Râvana, Râma installed him on the throne of
-Lankâ. He is said to be still living.
-
-The Râkshasas are said to have possessed Kâma Rupa *i.e.* they could
-assume any body at will.
-
-In the line of Pulastya we have this strange combination — the digestive
-fire of stomach, ears, Yakshas and lastly the Râkshasas who could change
-their body at will. Altogether we may say, Pulastya is Intelligence
-which governs animal passions and Kâma.
-
-TABLE G.
-````````
-
-Pulaha = Pula + ha. *Ha* is one who gives up.
-
-*Gati* is motion.
-
-*Karma-Srestha* is one most skilled in karma or work.
-
-*Varîyas* is excellent, preferable.
-
-*Sahishnu* is patient, enduring.
-
-Pulaha seems to be the higher aspect of Kâma — the impulses
-pure and simple, apart from their Kâmic generator, or perhaps Pulaha
-may represent Prânic activity.
-
-
-
-TABLE H.
-````````
-
-Kratu is a Vedic sacrifice, intelligence, power, ability. Kriyâ is
-action.
-
-Bâlakhilyas — are a class of Rishis 60,000 in number, of the size of the
-thumb, and are said to precede the sun's chariot. The word literally
-implies stunted in growth like infants. These Rishis are said to burn
-brightly with the spiritual fire of asceticism. The number 60,000 is
-significant. It indicates a correspondence.
-
-Perhaps the Rishis represent the sense perceptions which are guided by
-the Adhidevas who have their abode in the heart of the sun. The
-Balakhilya Rishis are therefore said to accompany the sun's chariot.
-Their connection with Vedic sacrifices is also intelligible, as they are
-generally directed to the Adhidevas.
-
-
-
-TABLE I.
-````````
-
-Vaśisthâ is the Controller. He is the spiritual teacher of the Solar
-Race and represents spiritual Intelligence or Higher Manas. He is the
-controller of the senses and the lower mind.
-
-Urjâ is Energy. She is also called Arundhati.
-
-
-
-TABLE J.
-````````
-
-*Atharvan* — The Veda called by that name.
-
-*Dadhîchi* — The name of a Rishi who accepted death In order to serve the
-Devas. Visvakarmân forged the thunderbolt with his bones and Indra
-defeated Vritra, the Asura King, with that weapon.
-
-The line of Atharvan represents self sacrifice for universal good as
-well as magic or occult wisdom.
-
-
-TABLE K.
-````````
-
-*Bhrigu* — is the Dweller of Mahar Loka, or the Archetypal plane. Upon the
-Pralaya of Trilokî, the essence of that triple plane and its Karma
-become embedded in Mahar Loka. The creative process sets in again in
-strict conformity to the Karma of the past. Bhrigu is therefore father
-of:
-
-*Dhâtâ* — or Universal Karma
-
-*Vidhâtâ* — or Individual Karma, and
-
-*Sri* or *Lakshmî* — the wife of Vishnu, the Energy of Preservation.
-
-*Ayati* — or potency is the wife of Dhâtâ, Mrikandu and Markandeya, are in
-this line.
-
-*Niyati* — or fate, is the wife of Vidhâtâ. Prâna and Vedasiras are in this
-line.
-
-*Kavi* — is another son of Bhrigu and *Usanas* or *Sukra* is Kavi's son. But
-according to some authorities Kavi is the same as Usanas. It is a matter
-for reflection how Sukra or the presiding Rishi of the planet Venus is
-connected with Mahar Loka or the trans-personal plane. Mahar Loka is the
-first approach to universality and therefore may correspond to Higher
-Manas. However that be, Venus corresponds to the first plane of
-universality.
-
-The consideration of Tables C to K has proved to be an interesting one.
-But readers are requested to remember that this is a mere study by an
-inquiring student and they are left to think for themselves. I might
-have dwelt at some length on this portion of the subject, but that would
-be going beyond the scope of the present work.
-
-Briefly speaking then,
-
-*Marîchi* — is Monâdic ray or Âtmâ-Buddhi,
-
-*Atri* — is the adjustment of the creative, preservative and destructive
-tendencies in a Jiva,
-
-*Angiras* — is the Essence of Creation, the auric repository of the Jiva,
-
-*Pulastya* — is Kâmic Intelligence,
-
-*Pulaha* — is higher Kâmic Intelligence, or it may be Prânic also,
-
-*Kratu* — is lower Mânasic Intelligence,
-
-*Vasishtha* — is Higher Mânasic Intelligence.
-
-
-
-TABLE L.
-````````
-
-*Daksha* — is the Able.
-
-*Prasûti* — is the Mother, the Procreative Energy. During the First
-Manvantara Daksha had nothing to do with sexual procreation. He was the
-father of 16 primal energies. These energies were wedded to Dharma,
-Agni, the Pitris and Śiva — 13 to Dharma and one to each of the others.
-
-*Dharma* — is that which binds the creation. Man and man, man and animal,
-animal and animal, all forms of creation are kept together by Dharma.
-The binding forces of creation are the wives of Dharma.
-
-*Sraddhâ* or Faith is the first wife of Dharma. Her son is *Satya* or Truth.
-
-*Maitri* or Friendliness is the second wife. Her son is *Prasâda* or
-complacence.
-
-*Dayâ* or compassion is the third wife. Her son is *Abhaya* or Freedom from
-fear.
-
-*Sânti* or Peace is the fourth wife. Her son is *Sama* or Tranquility.
-
-The fifth wife is *Tushti* or contentment. Her son is *Harsha* or joy.
-
-The sixth wife is *Pushti* or Fullness. Her son is *Garva* or Pride.
-
-The seventh wife is *Kriyâ*. Her son is *Yoga*.
-
-The eighth wife is *Unnati* or Advancement. Her son is *Darpa* or Vanity.
-
-The ninth wife is *Buddhi*. Her son is *Artha*.
-
-The tenth wife is *Medhâ* or Intellect. Her son is *Smriti* or Memory.
-
-The eleventh wife is *Titikshâ* or Forbearance. Her son is *Kshema* or
-Well-being.
-
-The twelfth wife is *Lajjâ* or Shame. Her son is *Vinaya* or Modesty.
-
-The thirteenth and last wife of Dharma is *Mûrti* or Form. Her sons are
-Nara and Nârâyana, *i.e.* Humanity and Divinity. The Human Form
-constitute a Duality. It is in this dual form that Sri Krishna
-incarnated Himself.
-
-From Dharma we pass to Agni.
-
-[Agni is used in many senses. It means the channel of communication
-between different kingdoms in nature, specially between Man and Deva, as
-also a vehicle of consciousness, and sometimes consciousness itself. It
-also means the Rupa or form-giving principle in the Universe. It is
-frequently used in the Purânas in the last sense.]
-
-Agni was wedded to *Svâhâ*, the 14th. daughter of Daksha. His three sons
-are *Pâvaka* or the Purifier, *Pavamân* or that which is being purified and
-*Sâchi* or Pure. They have 45 sons who with their fathers and grandfather
-form the Forty-nine Fires. They are separately mentioned in the Vedic
-Sacrifices in honour of Agni.
-
-*Svadhâ* is the 15th. daughter of Daksha. She was married to the Pitris.
-Agnishvatvâ, Barhishad, Sōmapa and Âjyapa are the names of the Pitris.
-They are with fire (Sagni) or without fire (Niragini). Svadhâ bore two
-daughters to the Pitris, Vayunâ and Dhârini. Both of them were
-well-versed in the Supreme wisdom.
-
-[*Vayânâ* is knowledge, wisdom, faculty of perception. *Dhârini* means
-that which bears, holds, carries, supports. Sometimes the word is used
-to mean the earth.
-
-This two-fold classification means that some of the Pitris give the
-*body*, which is the receptacle or carrier, with its sub-divisions, and
-others give knowledge, wisdom and the faculties of perception].
-
-*Sâti* is the last daughter of Daksha. She was wedded to Śiva. We shall
-specially notice her in the succeeding chapter.
-
-
-
-THE QUARREL BETWEEN ŚIVA AND DAKSHA.
-------------------------------------
-
-**SKANDHA IV., CHAP. 2.**
-
-Of old the Prajâpaties performed a Yajna, and the Devas and Rishis all
-graced the occasion with their presence. Prajâpati Daksha entered the
-assembly, when all stood up to receive him, except Brahmâ and Śiva.
-Daksha saluted his father Brahmâ and with His permission took a seat.
-But he was so mortified by the conduct of Śiva that he could not contain
-himself, and indignantly broke forth thus: — "O you, Rishis, Devas and
-Agni! Witness this disgraceful conduct of Śiva my own son-in-law,
-rather my disciple. This senseless being would not do so much as rise
-up and receive me. He has no sense of respect and dis-respect, of purity
-and impurity. He is mindless of all injunctions and observances. Do you
-know, what he does? He roves like a mad man in the crematories, with
-his host of Bhûtas, Pretas and Pisâchas, sometimes laughing, sometimes
-weeping, his body covered over with the ashes of dead bodies, their
-bones serving for his ornaments. His name is Śiva (auspicious). But he
-is really A-Śiva (inauspicious). He is fond of intoxication, and his
-companions are the impure and senseless Bhûtas. Oh! that I have given
-my daughter Sâti in marriage to him. That was simply to obey the orders
-of Brahmâ."
-
-Śiva remained unmoved. Daksha went on abusing Him and at last he cursed
-Śiva saying "This vilest of Devas shall not participate in the
-sacrificial offerings to Indra, Upendra and others." He then left the
-place in a rage.
-
-Nandisvara, the chief companion of Śiva, could not bear the gross and
-wanton insult done to his master. He retorted in angry tones the unkind
-words of Daksha and the approbation of some of the councillors. "Śiva
-bears malice to none. It is Daksha who makes differences, where there
-are none. Ignorant people follow him and blame Śiva. The Vedas deal with
-transitory objects. Worldly attachments receive an impetus from the
-Karma Kânda of the Vedas and they beget vices and evil deeds. This
-Daksha looks upon the body as the soul. He shall be as fond of women as
-a beast and his face shall he that of an Ajâ (goat). Verily he deserves
-this, as he looks upon Avidyâ as Tatvavidyâ. He publicly insults Śiva.
-The Brâhmanas who follow him shall go through the repeated course of
-births and deaths and shall resort to the apparently pleasing Karma
-Kânda of the Vedas. These Brâhmanas shall have no scruples to eat
-anything and they shall make a profession of their learning, their Tapas
-and their austerities (Vrata). They shall consider their riches, their
-body and their Indriyas to be all in all. They shall beg about from door
-to door."
-
-Bhrigu, the leader of the Brâhmanas, thus returned the curses of Nandi
-on the followers of Śiva: — "Those that will follow Śiva, shall be
-disregardful of the Sat (real) Śastras and shall be irreligious. With
-braids of hair on their head, and ashes and bones round their body, they
-shall frequent places where wine is indulged in. The Vedas have at all
-times laid down the approved path. The Rishis of old followed their
-injunctions and Nârâyana is at their very root. Those that forget all
-this shall only attain the Tâmasic Śiva, the Lord of Bhûtas and
-Pishachas."
-
-Śiva with his followers then left the place. The Prajâpatis performed
-the Yajna for 1,000 years.
-
-Sometime after, Brahmâ made Daksha the head of the Prajâpatis, and his
-pride knew no bounds. He commenced a sacrifice called Vrihaspati Yajna
-and to it he invited all except Śiva and his own daughter Sâti. Sâti
-heard of the grand preparations made by her father and became impatient
-to witness the Yajna herself. Śiva at last yielded to her expostulations
-much against His own will. She left for Daksha's house accompanied by
-the attendants of Śiva. At last she reached her father's house and went
-to the place of sacrifice. But her father would not receive her. She did
-not find any offering to Śiva. She could easily make out that Daksha had
-disregarded her husband. No attention was also paid to her. She grew
-furious with rage and addressing her father said: — "With Śiva, all are
-equal. He has enmity with none. Who else but thee could be envious of
-his virtues? Thou hast attributed evil things to Śiva. But do not the
-Devas know all that and knowingly worship Him? If the devoted wife
-cannot kill her husband's calumniators, she must leave the place with
-ears closed with her hands. But if she is strong enough, she must in the
-first place sever the tongue of the calumniator from his body by force
-and then put an end to herself. Thou art the calumniator of Śiva. This
-my body is from thee, so I shall not keep it any longer. If prohibited
-food is taken, the best thing is to throw it out. True, there are the
-two Paths of Inclination (Pravritti) and of Renunciation (Nivritti).
-But one cannot adopt both the Paths at one and the same time. What
-action is there for Śiva? He is Brahmâ Himself. Thou speakest of His
-ashes and bones. But hast thou any idea of His Yogic powers, in
-comparison with which thy powers as a performer of Vedic sacrifices are
-nothing? But there is no use wrangling with thee. I am ashamed of this
-body which has connection with thee. The sooner I get rid of it the
-better."
-
-So saying Sâti gave up her body, and there was great uproar. Her
-attendants made ready for an attack, when Bhirgu, who acted as Adhvaryu,
-invoked the Ribhus. They appeared and beat the attendants of Śiva, who
-ran away on all sides.
-
-Nârada informed Śiva of what had happened. Śiva bit His lips in anger
-and tore up a Jatâ (matted hairtuft) from his head. The Jatâ glowed
-with electric fire.
-
-He threw it down on the earth and the terrible Virabhadra sprang from
-it. His tall body reached the high heavens. He was dark as the clouds.
-He had one thousand hands, three eyes burning like the sun, teeth
-terrible to look at, and tufts of hair bright as fire. He had a garland
-of human skulls round his neck and there were various weapons in his
-hands.
-
-"What are thy behests, O Lord?" exclaimed Virabhadra. "Thou art clever
-in fight, child, thou hast nothing to fear from the Brâhmanas, for
-verily thou art part of myself. Go forth at the head of my army. Put an
-end to Daksha and his Yajna." Such was the command of Śiva. Virabhadra
-rushed forth with trident in hand, and the attendants of Śiva followed
-him with enthusiasm and noise. The priests, the Brâhmanas and their
-wives present at Daksha's sacrifice saw a huge dust storm, as it were,
-coming from the north. "Can it be the hurricane?" thought they, "but
-the wind is not strong. Can this be the march of robbers? But King
-Prâchinabarhi is still alive. In his reign there is no fear from
-robbers. No one is driving cattle. What can be the cause of this
-approaching volume of dust?" The attendants of Śiva arrived in no time.
-Some of them were brown coloured, some yellow. Some had their belly,
-some their face, like Makara. They broke the implements of sacrifice and
-scattered them around. They pulled down the buildings and put out the
-fires. They made all sorts of sacrilege, ran after the Rishis and Devas
-and frightened the women. Manimân caught hold of Bhrigu and tied him up.
-Virabhadra captured Daksha; Chandesa captured Sûryya and Nandisvara
-captured Bhaga. Seeing this, the other Brâhmanas and Devas took to
-flight, but they were grievously hurt by the stones cast at them by the
-followers of Śiva. Virabhadra began to uproot the beard of Bhrigu, for
-while scoffing Śiva he made his beard prominent. Nandishvara pulled out
-the two eye-balls of Bhaga, for he had encouraged Daksha by side
-glances. Virabhadra did not also spare Pûshan, and pulled out all his
-teeth. Pûshan had showed his teeth while smiling in approval of Daksha's
-abuse. But the crowning act of Virabhadra was still to come. He sprang
-upon Daksha and made several attempts to cut off his head. But the head
-resisted all his strokes. Wonder-struck, he took at last the weapons of
-sacrifice and easily severed the head of Daksha even as it were the head
-of a beast of sacrifice. Loud were the lamentations at the place of
-sacrifice when Virbhadra with his followers left it for Kailâsa.
-
-The Devas after this signal defeat went to Brahmâ. Brahmâ and Vishnu
-knew what was to happen at Daksha's sacrifice, so they had kept
-themselves aloof. When the Devas had related their mishap, Brahmâ
-explained to them that they had done wrong in not allowing Śiva to
-participate in the Yajna offering. There was no help now but to appease
-the Astral Lord, Who could destroy the Universe at His will. So saying
-Brahmâ himself went with the Devas to Kailâsa the abode of Śiva. He
-found there higher beings than men perfected by birth, herbs, Tapas,
-Mantra or Yoga and Yakshas, Kinnaras, Gandharvas and Apsarasas. The
-river Nandâ (Gangâ) traced its course round Kailâsa. High up on the
-mount was the abode called Alakâ and the garden called Saugandhika
-(sweet-scented). On two sides of Alaka were the two rivers Nandâ and
-Alakanandâ, sanctified by the dust of Vishnu's feet. Alakâ is the abode
-of Kubera, the Yaksha king. The Kinnaras occupied the Saugandhika
-garden. Near it was a large fig tree (Vata) 800 miles (100 Yojanas)
-high, the branches spreading over 600 miles. Below that tree, the Devas
-found Śiva in deep meditation for the good of the Universe. Brahmâ asked
-Him to pardon Daksha and his followers who had slighted Him by
-withholding Yajna offerings. "Through thy favour let the Yajna be
-completed now. Let Daksha get back his life. Let the eyes of Bhagadeva,
-the head of Bhrigu, the teeth of Pûshan, be restored. Let the Devas and
-the sacrificial Rishis be relieved of all pain in their broken limbs.
-Since now, the remnants of Yajna offerings are all Thine. Take Thy
-offerings, and let the sacrifice be completed this day."
-
-Śiva replied with a smile thus: — "Daksha is a mere child. I do not even
-think of him as an offender. But I have to set right those that are led
-astray by Mâyâ. Daksha's head is burnt up. So let him have the head of a
-goat. Bhagadeva shall find his Yajna offerings through the eyes of
-Mitra. Pûshan shall have *pishta* (crushed or ground up things) for his
-offerings. In company with other Devas, however, he shall have the use
-of the sacrificer's teeth. Let the broken limbs of the Devas be
-rehabilitated. But those that have lost their limbs shall use the arms
-of Asvinikumâra and the hands of Pûshan. So let it be with the Rishis
-too. Bhrigu shall have the beard of a goat."
-
-The Devas thanked Śiva for His great kindness and invited Him to the
-sacrifice. Brahmâ accompanied Śiva. Daksha regained life and looked on
-Śiva with reverence. He acquired wisdom and became purified in mind. The
-sacrifice was duly performed. Daksha sat in meditation and, lo! Vishnu
-appeared on the back of Garuda.
-
-All rose up and saluted Him. Spontaneous prayers broke forth from one
-and all. Vishnu participated in the Yajna offerings. Addressing Daksha
-He said: — "Only ignorant people see the difference between Me and Śiva.
-I, Śiva and Brahmâ are Three in One. For the creation, preservation and
-dissolution of the Universe, We assume three different Names. We, as the
-triune Âtmâ, pervade all beings. Wise men therefore look upon all others
-as their own selves."
-
-Such is the story of Sâti's death. She took birth again as the daughter
-of Himâlaya and became wedded once more — the union with Śiva this time
-was permanent.
-
-THOUGHTS ON THE ABOVE.
-----------------------
-
-Brahmâ, Vishnu and Śiva are the three aspects of the Second Purusha.
-
-Brahmâ brings into manifestation the Prajâpatis, and the Prajâpatis
-bring into manifestation the individuals and life forms. The other
-Prajâpatis mostly represent the principles that enter into the
-constitution of life-forms, while Daksha represents the combination of
-principles forming a life unit.
-
-Daksha had sixteen daughters — thirteen he gave in marriage to Dharma, one
-to Agni, one to the Pitris and one to Śiva.
-
-Agni or the god of Fire is the Rupa or form-giving Deva. Fire is used in
-sacrifice, because it changes the form of things offered and makes them
-acceptable to the gods by change of form.
-
-If Agni represents Rûpa Devas or Devas with forms, Dharma might
-represent Arûpa Devas or Devas without forms.
-
-The Pitris, of whom four classes are only mentioned (Agnishvâtvas,
-Barhishads, Saumyas and Ajyapas), are also divided into two classes, —
-one with fire and one without fire.
-
-The attendants of Śiva were dwellers of the astral or Bhuvar plane.
-
-For the sake of convenient reference we shall call the dwellers of
-Svarga Loka Devas and the dwellers of Bhuvar Loka, Astrals. The different
-classes of Devas and Astrals are described in the 20th. chapter of the
-4th. Skandha. The Devas and Astrals were brought into manifestation by
-Daksha, whose position in creation was next to that of Brahmâ. Therefore
-all stood up to receive him at the sacrifice except Brahmâ.
-
-Śiva first appeared as Kumâra Nîla Lohita or Rudra. And all beings
-thereafter got the potentiality of dissolution, phenomenal change, death
-and decay. But in the first stage of life process, phenomenal change,
-decay or dissolution was not in requisition, as Monads went on in their
-downward journey, not by dissolution, but by evolution. They remained
-what they were, and they acquired in addition a more material form. As
-the material form became prominent the Deva form and the astral form
-became suppressed.
-
-Consciousness in Deva form manifests itself as mind, in the astral form
-as animal desire and sense perception. In the mineral form it can hardly
-shew itself.
-
-Śiva works out the decay and dissolution of mineral matter, so that the
-astral element may once more assert itself and there may be sense
-perception in the mineral metamorphosed into the vegetable. The process
-is carried further in the animal kingdom, and the animals get a
-constitution in which Kâma or animal desire can manifest itself. The
-animals evolve themselves by death. Death frees them from the trammels
-of one set of experience, and carries them onwards till the human body
-is reached.
-
-The work of dissolution proceeds in various ways. Our sleep is partial
-dissolution. It is brought on by the astral attendants of Śiva.
-
-Dissolution is caused by Tamas. Tamas begets inaction, and inaction
-causes death and decay. There is no phenomenal change without
-dissolution, death or decay.
-
-There are so many material tendencies in us that they require rejection.
-Śiva gives us the power of rejection, as Vishnu, the power of
-preservation — preservation of all that is good in us. Death makes the
-man, where moral teachings fail, The Consort of Śiva is the Energy
-through Whom He guides the life process of Monads or Jivas. In the first
-stage of life process She is called Sâti or the Lasting. For the body of
-the Jiva was lasting during the period of evolution. But Her mission was
-to act on the Monad itself, to cause the material tendency in it by
-means of Tamas.
-
-In the second stage, She is the Energy of dissolution, death and
-phenomenal change. In the third stage, she is over and above that the
-Energy of rejection (of all that is evil in us.) She is the kind mother,
-who has been nourishing all Jivas in their course of evolution.
-
-When the Mineral form was reached by the primal elemental Jiva, the
-creative process had done its work and the process of dissolution was to
-assert itself. There was to be a revolution in the life process. Sâti
-gave up her own nature and became re-born in another character in the
-Mineral Kingdom. The creative process was materially changed. Daksha
-lost his original head, and he acquired the head of a goat. The goat
-symbolises sexual connection. All this happened during the reign of
-Prâchina-Barhis. The Prachetas brothers were his sons. Daksha reappeared
-as the son of the Prachetas brothers.
-
-The Âdityas or gods of preservation who formed Daksha were
-Pûshava and Bhaga. They were the preserving deities of the first
-stage of life process. When the next stage came in, they lost their
-activity. This explains the breaking of teeth and the uprooting of
-eyes of two of the Âdityas. The subjoined Table of correspondences
-taken from the 11th. Chapter of the Twelfth Skandha shews that
-Pûshana and Bhaga correspond to the months of Pausha (December)
-and Mâgha (January) when the rays of the sun are the least powerful.
-These Âdityas preserve Jivas in their downward course. Pûshana was
-a favorite god of the Aryan shepherd.
-
-
-+---+----------+----------+-----------+-----------+-----------+----------+-------------+--------------+
-|NO | MONTH |ADITYA | RISHI | YAKSHA |RAKSHAS | NAGA |GANDHARVA |APSARAS |
-+===+==========+==========+===========+===========+===========+==========+=============+==============+
-| 1.|Chaitra |Dhatri |Pulastya |Rathravit | Heti. | Vâsuki. | Tumburu. |Kritusthali. |
-+---+----------+----------+-----------+-----------+-----------+----------+-------------+--------------+
-| 2.|Baisâka |Aryaman |Pulaha |Athaujas. | Praheti. | Kachnira | Nârada |Punjikasthali.|
-+---+----------+----------+-----------+-----------+-----------+----------+-------------+--------------+
-| 3.|Jyaistha |Mitra. |Atri |Rathasvana |Paurusheya | Takshaka | Hâhâ. |Menakâ. |
-+---+----------+----------+-----------+-----------+-----------+----------+-------------+--------------+
-| 4.|Âsârha |Varuna. |Vasistha. |Chitrasvana| Sahajayna | Sukra. | Huhû. |Rambhâ. |
-| | | | | | | | |(Sahajanyâ) |
-+---+----------+----------+-----------+-----------+-----------+----------+-------------+--------------+
-| 5.|Srâvana |Indra. |Angiras. |Sroti. | Varya | Elaptara | Visvâvasu |Pramlocha. |
-+---+----------+----------+-----------+-----------+-----------+----------+-------------+--------------+
-| 6.|Bhadra |Vivasvat |Bhrigu. |Aśârana. | Vyâghra. |Sankhahâla| Ugrasena. |Anumlocha. |
-+---+----------+----------+-----------+-----------+-----------+----------+-------------+--------------+
-| 7.|Mâgha |Pûshan. |Gautama. |Suruchi. | Vâta. |Dhanjaya. | Sushena. |Ghritâchi. |
-+---+----------+----------+-----------+-----------+-----------+----------+-------------+--------------+
-| 8.|Fâlguna |Parjanya |Bharadhvaja|Ritu. | Vorchâ. |Airâvatra | Visva. |Senajit. |
-| | |(Savitri) | | | | | | |
-+---+----------+----------+-----------+-----------+-----------+----------+-------------+--------------+
-| 9.|Agrahâyana|Ansu. |Kasyapa. |Ritusena. |Vidyatsatru|Mahâsankha|Ritusena. |Urvasi. |
-| | |(Vidhâtri)| | | | | | |
-+---+----------+----------+-----------+-----------+-----------+----------+-------------+--------------+
-|10.|Pausha. |Bhaga. |Kratu. |Urna. |Sphûrja. |Karkotaka.|Arishtanemi |Purvachitti |
-+---+----------+----------+-----------+-----------+-----------+----------+-------------+--------------+
-|11.|Âsvina |Tvastri. |Jamadagni. |Satajit. |Brahmâpeta.|Kambala. |Dhritarâshtra|Tilottamâ. |
-+---+----------+----------+-----------+-----------+-----------+----------+-------------+--------------+
-|12.|Kârtika |Vishnu. |Visvâmitra.|Satyajit. |Makhâpeta. |Asvatara. |Sûryyavarchâ.|Rambhâ. |
-+---+----------+----------+-----------+-----------+-----------+----------+-------------+--------------+
-
-
-TABLE M.
-````````
-
-There is not much to detain us in this Table. It will be enough if
-readers will please note the meanings of the names used.
-
-
-
-TABLE N.
-````````
-
-We must divide this Table into the following heads: — I. The story of
-Dhruva, II. The story of Pirthu, III. The story of Prachina Barhis, IV.
-The allegory of Puranjana, and V. The story of the Prachetasas.
-
-
-
-I. THE STORY OF DHRUVA.
-+++++++++++++++++++++++
-
-**SKANDHA IV. CHAP. 8-12.**
-
-Uttânapâda is one of the sons of the First Manu. Uttânapâda means "with
-uplifted foot". This perhaps refers to the period when the Jiva, having
-still the spiritual element strong in him, was not fixed in the course
-of material descent, but had one foot towards Mahar-Loka. Uttânapâda had
-two wives Suruchi (with good graces) and Suniti (of good morals).
-Uttama or the Highest was the son of Suruchi. Dhruva or the fixed was
-the son of Suniti. Once upon a time, Dhruva found Uttama on his father's
-lap and he wished to be there himself. For fear of Suruchi, Uttânapâda
-did not dare stretch forth his hands towards Dhruva, while Suruchi
-herself taunted the boy for his impudent aspiration. Stung to the quick
-by the bitter words of his stepmother Dhruva forthwith left the place
-and went straight to his mother and related to her his grievances.
-Suniti advised her son who was only five years old to make Tapas. Dhruva
-did not lose time but left home to make Tapas as directed by his mother.
-Nârada met him on the way. "Thou art a child Dhruva" said the great
-Rishi. "How is it possible for thee to find out Him by Tapas, Who is
-attainable by intense Yoga concentration and freedom from passion
-practised for several births. Desist my boy, for the present. Try, when
-thou hast enjoyed all the things of the world and hast grown old". But
-Dhruva was fixed in resolve and he importuned Nârada to teach him how to
-meditate. Nârada initiated Dhruva into the mysteries of the Mantra "Om
-Namo Bhagavate Vâsudevaya", told him how to meditate on Vâsudeva and
-asked him to make Tapas at Mathurâ where Bhagavân permanently resides.
-Dhruva passed his days in austere asceticism, standing on one foot and
-living on air. The prince at last controlled his breath and with deep
-concentration saw the Divine Light in the heart. Bhagavân withdrew that
-Light from the heart, and on the break of Samâdhi, Dhruva found the same
-Divinity outside, standing before him. Words he had none for a time.
-Bhagavân addressing him said: — "O Thou Kshatriya boy! I know thy
-resolve. Do thou ever prosper. I give thee a place which is ever bright
-and where Nirvana is constant. The planets and stars are all attached to
-that place. Those that live for a Kalpa will die, but that place shall
-never be destroyed. Dharma, Agni, Kasyapa, Indra and the seven Rishis
-with all the luminaries of the sky are constantly revolving round the
-place. Thou shalt succeed thy father on the throne and reign for 36,000
-years. Thy brother Uttama shall disappear in a forest. Thy stepmother
-Suruchi shall die in pursuit of her son. The place where thou shalt
-finally go is my own abode, higher than that of the Rishis, and there is
-no return from it."
-
-Dhruva returned to his parents and was placed by his father on the
-throne. He married Bhrami, the daughter of Siśumâra, and had two sons by
-her, Kalpa and Vatsara. He had another son Utkala by Ila. Uttama was
-killed by a powerful Yaksha while out on a hunt. Dhruva went out to the
-north to take revenge on the Yakshas for his brother's death. He killed
-several thousands of innocent Yakshas, Râkshasas and Kinnaras in battle.
-Manu took pity on them and asked his grandson to desist from fight.
-Dhruva bowed in obedience to Manu and so Kubera the king of Yakshas
-became much pleased with him and blest him too. After thirty six
-thousand years, Sananda and Nanda, two companions of Vishnu came with a
-chariot and took Dhruva to the promised abode.
-
-Utkala was the eldest son of Dhruva and he was entitled to succeed his
-father. But he was a sage and had united himself with Brahmâ. He
-declined the throne. Bhrami's son Vatsara became the king. Vatsara
-married Subithi and had six sons by her, — Pushpârna, Tigmaketu, Ishâ,
-Urja, Vasu and Jaya. Pushpârna had two wives, — Pravha and Doshâ. Prabhâ
-had three sons, — Prâtar, Madhyandina and Sayam, Doshâ had three sons, —
-Pradosha, Nisitha and Vyushta. Vyushta married Pushkarini. His Son was
-Sarvatejas, afterwards called Chakshus. Chakshus had one son, — Nadvala
-Manu.
-
-THOUGHTS ON THE ABOVE.
-++++++++++++++++++++++
-
-[The line of Uttânapâda, as I have said above, represents the
-appearance of individual life-forms. Limitation had to be put to the
-life-periods of individuals. We commence with Dhruva, who presides over
-the polar star, and lives for one Kalpa. His sons are Kalpa and Vatsara.
-"Vatsara" means year. The sons of Vatsara are the six seasons.
-"Pushpârna" is the flower season or spring. "Tigmaketu" means
-fierce-rayed. The word denotes summer season. "Isha" means full of sat
-and is the name of the month of Asvina. But it means here the rainy
-season. "Urja" is the name of the month of Kartika. It is indicative
-of autumn. "Vasu" meaning wealth is the season between autumn and
-winter, when paddy becomes ripe. "Prabhâ" is light. "Doshâ" is
-darkness. "Pratar," "Madhyandina" and Sayam are morning, midday and
-evening, respectively. "Pradosha" is first part of the night,
-"Nisitha" is midnight. "Vyushta" is day break. "Sarva-tejas" is
-all-fire. He was subsequently called Chakshus or eye. The names other
-than Chakshus indicate different capacities of individual life, ranging
-from portions of a day to the whole Kalpa. When the downward flow of
-Jivas was the rule, Dhruva had to make great sacrifice to remain fixed
-on the spiritual plane. Hence he worshipped Vishnu, as directed by
-Nârada. Sarva-tejas or Chakshus perhaps indicates the appearance of
-perceptive faculties. The son of Chakshus is glorified with the title of
-Manu. This is significant. He is called Nadvala, or one made of reeds.
-This marks a new era in the progress of Monads. As the reed is made up
-of sheaths over-lapping each other, so the sons of this Manu were
-constituted of overlapping principles. Why Nadvala is called Manu, has
-to be found out in the circumstances that attended the progress of the
-Monads from the mineral to the vegetable stage. The son of this Manu was
-Anga or the limbs. And Anga was wedded to the daughter of the death god.
-So there was no death up to the Nadvala form of life, and no limbs. It
-was something like the appearance of protoplastic matter, with all its
-potentialities of evolving life forms. Thus we can understand the
-importance of Nadvala as a Manu. Death or decay made the inorganic to
-develop organs or anga.]
-
-II. THE STORY OF PRITHU.
-++++++++++++++++++++++++
-
-**SKANDHA. IV. CHAP. 13-23.**
-
-Nadvala had twelve sons; one of them being Ulmuka (fire-brand, torch).
-He had six sons, one of them being Anga or the members of the body. Anga
-married Sunitha, the daughter of Death. The iniquitous Vena was the son
-of Anga. When he became king, he issued a proclamation prohibiting all
-worship and sacrifices. The sages strongly remonstrated with him but
-when he turned a deaf ear to their words, they killed him with their
-incantations. The kingdom was now without a ruler and there was great
-disorder. The Rishis then churned the thigh of the dead body, until a
-dwarfish, deep black person came out. The Rishis told him to 'sit down
-and wait.' Hence he was called Nishada. They then churned the two arms,
-and a pair arose. "This male is an incarnation of Vishnu," said the
-Rishis, "and this female is an incarnation of Lakshmî. They shall marry
-each other. He shall be called Prithu and his wife, Archis. Prithu shall
-be the King and he shall preserve all beings." Prithu accepted the duty
-of preserving the people. He saw there was no vegetation on the earth.
-His subjects suffered from hunger. He thought that the earth had eaten
-up the seeds and was not bringing forth the plants. In anger Prithu took
-up his bow and aimed at the earth. She assumed the form of a cow and
-began to run away chased by the King. But she at last yielded and
-requested him to spare her life. "Thou art Lord of this Universe,"
-exclaimed the earth, "Thou knowest very well that the forms of
-vegetable life created by Brahmâ could not be used in Yajna so long. I
-have therefore preserved them within myself. If I had not done so, they
-would have been destroyed long ago and no Yajna could be performed in
-future. True, they are now rotting in me. But think about the best means
-to bring them out. Find out a calf, a milk-pot and a milker. I will
-secrete all desired objects as my milk. But first of all make my surface
-flat and level." Prithu rejoiced at these words. He made Svayambhuva
-Manu the calf and milked all vegetables into his own hands. Others
-followed him. The Rishis made Vrihaspati their calf and drew out the
-Vedas into their Indriyas.
-
-The Devas made Indra their calf and milked out into their golden pot
-Amrita and energy of body, of mind and of the Indriyas.
-
-The Daityas and Dânavas made Prahlâda their calf and milked out wine
-into their iron pot. The Gandharvas and Apsaras made Visvavasu their
-calf and milked out into their lotus vessel, fragrance, beauty and sweet
-words.
-
-The Pitris made Aryaman their calf and extracted into their unburnt
-earth vessel the Kavya offerings. The Siddhas made Kapila their calf and
-milked out the Siddhis (animan &c). (And so other instances are given).
-Prithu was so glad that he called earth his daughter and hence she is
-called Prithivi or the daughter of Prithu. The King also crushed the
-mountains and made the earth's surface level.
-
-Prithu then commenced a series of Asvamedha Yajnas. During the
-performance of the hundredth, Indra twice stole away the sacrificial
-horse, but Prithu's son restored it on both the occasions. The performer
-of one hundred Asvamedha sacrifices becomes an Indra. This was the cause
-of Indra's fear. Prithu could not bear the disgraceful conduct of Indra
-and he resolved to kill him. The Rishis dissuaded him and even Brahmâ
-and Vishnu appeared to soothe the offended King and restore his
-friendship with Indra. Vishnu explained to Prithu that he had enough to
-do as a king of the earth and as a preserver of the people and that he
-should not aspire to become Indra, who had his duties as well.
-
-Sometime after, the Sanat Kumar brothers appeared before the King and
-taught him the way to Mukti. He made over the kingdom to his son
-Vijitâsva and retired into the forest. At last he gave up the body and
-went to Vaikuntha.
-
-THOUGHT ON THE ABOVE.
-+++++++++++++++++++++
-
-[We left the Monad in its protoplasmic state. The protoplasmic mass
-began to spread out limbs (Anga). But the development of limbs was not an
-unmixed blessing, for Anga became wedded to the daughter of Death.
-
-There was no death in the protoplasm. The offspring of the first
-connexion with death was Vena.
-
-The root *ven* means to move. The first moving protoplasmic mass had too
-much of unruliness in it, and it was not therefore fitted for *yajna* or
-evolution. It had to be brought under the law and the black element was
-churned out. That black element of Tamas had to wait till the time of
-the great dissolution. Vishnu had to incarnate at this stage as Prithu
-to suffuse the material mass with *satva* and thereby make it conscious.
-The course of evolution received a great impetus. The Monad had passed
-through elemental and mineral stages. Organic life had already appeared.
-Matter had passed through the grossness and immobility of Tamas and the
-irregular, impulsive and purposeless movements of Rajas, till it became
-permeated with Satva, when those movements assumed the regularity of
-conscious acts. The consciousness of Satva made the future evolution or
-*yajna* teem with big possibilities. Earth could no longer keep back the
-seeds of the vegetable creation in her bosom. Her surface became
-levelled and she looked green with vegetation. She brought forth all her
-latent life-energies and life-evolution commenced in right earnest
-under the guidance of the first King energised by Vishnu for the
-preservation of the universe. But that King was not to exceed the proper
-bounds. He was not to usurp the functions of Indra. The Devas are the
-executive officers of the Rishis in the cyclic administration of the
-universe and their work is more on cyclic than on individual lines. The
-kings however as representing Manu have to deal directly with Monads and
-Egos and have to guide them according to the light of the Rishis. Prithu
-was asked by Vishnu to keep himself within the bounds of kingly duties.]
-
-III. THE STORY OF THE PRACHINA BARHIS OR BARHISHAD.
-+++++++++++++++++++++++++++++++++++++++++++++++++++
-
-**SKANDHA IV. CHAP, 24.**
-
-The eldest son of Prithu was Vijitâsva. He was so called for having
-restored the sacrificial horse stolen by Indra. Indra taught him the art
-of becoming invisible. Hence he was also called Antardhâna. He had four
-brothers — Havyaksha, Dhûmrakesha, Vrika and Dravinas. To them he gave
-the east, the south, the west and the north respectively. By his wife
-Sikhandini, Vijitâsva had three sons — Pâvaka, Pavamâna, and Suchi.
-
-These fire-gods descended by the curse of Vasishtha but the descent was
-only temporary. Antardhâna had by his other wife Nabhâsvati one son,
-Havirdhâna. Havirdhâna had six sons — Barhishad, Gaya, Sukla, Krishna,
-Satya and Jitavrata. Of these, Barhishad was a great votary of Kriyâ,
-(action) and he constantly performed Yajnas. Even while he was
-performing one Yajna, the place for another was preparing close by.
-Hence he was called Prâchina-Barhis. King Prâchina-Barhis married
-Satadruti, the daughter of the Ocean-god. And he had by her ten sons,
-all of whom were called Prachetas. The King ordered his sons to enlarge
-the creation. They went out to make Tapas for one thousand years. Nârada
-came to the King and told him that the way to Mukti was not through
-Kriyâ Kânda. By. performing sacrifices he was only acquiring new karma.
-The only way to attain liberation was to know oneself. The Rishi
-illustrated his teachings by the famous allegory of Puranjana. The King
-heard the story and its explanation from Nârada. He did not wait for the
-return of his sons. But he called his ministers together and delivered
-to them his mandate that his sons were to succeed him on the throne. He
-went to the Âśrama of Kapila for Tapas and attained liberation.
-
-IV. THE ALLEGORY OF PURANJANA.
-++++++++++++++++++++++++++++++
-
-**SKANDHA IV. CHAP. 25-29.**
-
-There was a king called Puranjana. He had a friend, but the king knew
-not his name nor his doings. Puranjana went in search of a place to live
-in. He went about on all sides, but found no suitable abode. At last
-while roaming south of the Himâlayâs, he found one Puri (town) in
-Bhârata Varsha (India), The marks were all favourable. There were nine
-gateways. In one of the gardens he found a most beautiful young lady.
-She had ten attendants. Each of them had hundreds of wives. One
-five-headed serpent was the warder of the town and he constantly guarded
-his mistress. The lady was on the look out for one to be her lord.
-Puranjana broke forth into words of love, and asked who she was. "O
-thou greatest of men!" exclaimed the lady, "I know not who I am or who
-thou art. Nor do I know who made us both. This only I know, that I now
-exist. I do not know even who made this town for me. These are my
-companions male and female. This serpent guards the town, even when we
-are all asleep. Luckily hast thou come here. I shall try with all my
-companions to bring to thee all objects of desire. Be thou the lord of
-this Puri for one hundred years. And accept all enjoyments brought by
-me." Puranjana entered the Puri and lived in enjoyment there for one
-hundred years.
-
-Of the nine gateways, seven were upper and two lower — five on the east
-(Purva, which also means front), one on the south (Dakshinâ), one on
-the north (Uttara) and two on the west (Paśchima). Two of them
-Khadyôta and Âvirmukhî were close to each other and Puranjana used them
-whenever he would go out to see Vibhrajita in the company of Dyumat.
-
-Nalinî and Nâlinî were also two passages built together. Puranjana used
-them with the help of Avadhûta in order to repair to Saurabha.
-
-The Mukhyâ passage was used for Apana and Bahûdana. Through the
-southern passage Pitrihû, Puranjana went with Srutadhara to Dakshinâ
-Panchâla and through the northern passage Devahû, to Uttara Panchâla.
-
-Through the western passage called Âsuri, Puranjana went with Durmada to
-Grâmaka. The other western passage was called Nir-riti, Through that
-passage Puranjana went with Lubdhaka to Vaiś-asa.
-
-There were two blind gates *i.e.* without opening, viz: — Nirvak and
-Pesaskrita. Puranjana used them for motion and action. He went inside
-the town with Vishûchina. There he experienced Moha (delusion), Prasâda
-(contentment) and Harsha (joy), caused by his wife and daughters.
-
-Puranjana became thus attached to Karma. He slavishly followed whatever
-the Queen did. If she heard, the King heard. If she smelt, the King
-smelt. If she rejoiced, the King rejoiced. If she wept, the King wept.
-Puranjana merged his self entirely in that of his wife.
-
-Once upon a time, the King went out hunting into the forest
-Panchaprastha, His chariot had five swift going horses, two poles, two
-wheels, two axles, three flags, five chains, one bridle, one charioteer,
-one seat for the charioteer, two yoke ends, seven fenders, and five
-courses. He had a golden armour and an endless supply of arrows.
-Brihadbala was the commander of his forces. The King forgot his wife for
-the time being in the chase of deer. But he got tired and returned home.
-The Queen would not speak to him in feigned anger. The King appeased her
-with gentle and flattering words of love.
-
-So passed the days in utter delusion. The King had 1100 sons and 110
-daughters. He gave them in marriage to duly qualified persons.
-Puranjana's sons had 100 sons each. The kingdom of Panchâla became
-filled with the progeny of Puranjana. The King performed sacrifices for
-the welfare of his children and killed animals for the purpose.
-
-Chandavega, a Gandharva king, had a strong force of 360 white
-Gandharvas. Each of them had one black wife. By turns these Gandharvas
-robbed the town of Puranjana. The serpent-warder could not fight long
-against such odds, it lost strength day by day. The King and all the
-citizens became extremely anxious.
-
-There was a daughter of Kâla who went about the world for a husband. But
-no one received her for a wife. She went to Nârada and on the refusal of
-the sage cursed him to become a wanderer for ever. She was referred
-however by Nârada to Fear, the King of Yavanas. King Fear would not
-accept her for his wife. But he addressed her as his sister and assured
-her that she would enjoy all beings on earth, if only she attacked them
-unnoticed. His Yavana troops would always accompany her as well as his
-brother Prajvâra.
-
-The Yavana troops of King Fear under Prajvâra and the daughter of Kala
-attacked the Puri of Puranjana. The old serpent gave way. The Puri was
-burnt up by Prajvâra. There was wailing all round. The Serpent left the
-Puri. Puranjana was dragged out of it. The sufferings he had caused to
-others in sacrifices or otherwise reacted upon him. Long he suffered
-forgetting even his old friends. His mind had been tainted by the
-constant company of women and he had thought of his wife till the last
-moment. So he became a female in the next birth. She was born as the
-daughter of the Vidarbha king. Malayadhvaja, King of Pândya, defeated
-other princes in the fight for her hand and the princess became his
-wife. She bore to the King one black-eyed daughter and seven sons. The
-sons became kings of Dravida and each of them had millions of sons,
-Agastya married the daughter of the King, and had by her a son called
-Dridhachyta. His son was Idhmavâha. King Malayadhvaja divided the
-kingdom amongst his sons; and ascended the hills for devotional
-meditation. His wife accompanied him. One day the princess found the
-body of her husband cold in death. With loud lamentations, she prepared
-the funeral pyre, placed the King's body upon it and put fire thereon.
-She then resolved to burn herself on the same pyre.
-
-The former friend now appeared. Addressing the Queen he said: —
-
-"Who art thou? Who is he lying on the funeral pyre that thou mournest
-aloud? Dost thou know me, thy friend, thy former companion? Dost thou
-remember even so much that thou hadst a friend, whom thou canst not
-recognise? Thou didst leave me in search of some earthly abode and
-enjoyment. We were two Hansas (swans) on the Mânasa Loka and we lived
-together for one thousand years. Desirous of worldly enjoyments thou
-didst leave me for the earth and there didst find a town with a woman as
-its mistress. The company of that woman spoiled thy vision and effaced
-thy memory. Hence thou hast attained this state. Thou art not the
-daughter of the Vidarbha King, nor is this King thy husband. Nor wast
-thou the husband of Puranjana. By my *mâyâ* thou misconceivest thyself as
-a man or a woman. But in reality both myself and thyself are Hansas.
-Wise men find no difference between us. If there is any difference
-between a man and his image, that is the difference between me and
-thyself."
-
-The other Hansa now regained his lost consciousness and was reawakened
-to his former state.
-
-This is the story of Puranjana. Now its explanation by Nârada: —
-
-Puranjana is Purusha — he who illumines the Pura with consciousness.
-
-The unknown friend is Íshvara.
-
-The Pura or Puri or town is the human body.
-
-"The marks were all favourable" — there were no deformities
-in the body.
-
-"The nine gateways" are the nine openings of the body.
-
-The young lady Puranjani is Buddhi.
-
-She is the mistress of the body.
-
-The ten male attendants are the five *jnanendriyas* or organs
-of perception and the five *karmendriyas* or organs of
-action.
-
-The wives of the attendants are the functions of the Indriyas.
-
-The five-headed serpent is Prâna. The five heads are its five
-sub-divisions.
-
-"One hundred years" is the full term of man's life.
-
-"Khadyota," literally glow-worm, is the left eye, for, it has not the
-illumining capacity of the right eye.
-
-"Âvirmukhi" or the great illuminator is the right eye.
-
-"Vibhrajita" is Rûpa or object of sight.
-
-"Dyumat" is the perceiving eye.
-
-"Nalini" and "Nâlini" are the left and right nostrils respectively.
-
-"Avadhûta" is Vâyu. In the story, it means the perceiving nose.
-
-"Saurabha" is Gandha or smell.
-
-"Mukhya" is mouth.
-
-"Apana" is speech.
-
-"Bahûdana" is eating.
-
-"Panchâla" is Pancha (five) + ala (capable) that which is capable of
-bringing to light such of the five objects of the senses, as cannot be
-otherwise cognised; Śastra or spiritual teachings.
-
-The right ear is stronger than the left ear. Therefore it is more
-prominent and useful in *hearing* the Śastras, of which the first to be
-heard is Karma Kânda.
-
-A man by the observance of Karma Kânda is called to the Pitris, *i.e.* he
-reaches, after death, the path called Pitriyâna.
-
-"Pitrihû" is therefore the right ear. "Devahû" is the left ear
-corresponding to Devayâna.
-
-"Uttara Panchâla" is Pravritti Śâstra or teachings of worldliness.
-
-"Dakshinâ Panchâl" is Nivritti Śâstra or teachings of renunciation.
-
-"Nirriti" is death. The anus is called death, because ordinarily the
-Linga Sarira goes out through that passage after death.
-
-"Lubdhak" is Pâyu.
-
-"Vaisasa" is excrement.
-
-"Nirvâk" is foot.
-
-"Pesaskrita" is hand.
-
-Of the Indriyas, hand and foot are blind, as there are no
-openings in them.
-
-"Vishûchina" is mind.
-
-Moha is the result of Tamas, Prasâda of Satva and Harsha of Rajas.
-
-The aforesaid names indicate enjoyment in the Jâgrat or waking state.
-
-The hunting represents enjoyment in the Svapna or dream state.
-
-The "Chariot" is the body in dream consciousness.
-
-The five horses are the five organs of perception.
-
-The two poles are "I-ness" and "Mine-ness."
-
-The two wheels are merit and demerit.
-
-The axle is Pradhâna.
-
-The three flags are the three Gunas.
-
-The five chains are the five Prânas.
-
-The bridle is Manas the seat of desires.
-
-The charioteer is Buddhi.
-
-The yoke-ends are sorrow and delusion.
-
-The seven fenders are the seven Dhâtus or essential ingredients of the body.
-
-The five courses are the five organs of action.
-
-The gold color of the armour is due to Rajas.
-
-Brihadbala is the even perceiving mind.
-
-The sons are the transformations of perception.
-
-The daughters are the concepts following such transformations.
-
-"Chandavega", the Gandharva king, is the year, every year of human
-life.
-
-The Gandharvas are days.
-
-Their wives are nights.
-
-The 360 Gandharvas are the 360 days of the year. With their wives or
-nights they form the number 720.
-
-The daughter of Kâla is Jarâ or decrepitude.
-
-The Yavanas are diseases or infirmities.
-
-Fear is the King of all diseases and infirmities viz., Death.
-
-Prajvâra is destructive fever.
-
-As long as Purusha does not know his real self, but identifies himself
-with the Gunas of Prakriti, he becomes subject to births and deaths. The
-only remedy for this malady is pure devotion to Guru and to Bhagavân. By
-such devotion, dispassion and wisdom are both acquired.
-
-"Darbha" is Kusa grass, symbolical of Yajna. "Vidarbha" is pure land.
-"Malaya" or the Deccan is famous for Vishnu worship.
-
-"Malayadhvaja" is therefore a Vaishnava king.
-
-[It appears that Vaishnavism had its rise and growth in the South of
-India before it overspread Northern India. This would be natural
-considering the hold of Vedic Brahmânism in Northern India.]
-
-The daughter of Malayadhvaja is Devotion. The seven sons are the seven
-divisions of Bhakti, viz. —
-
-1) *Sravana* or hearing the glory of Vishnu,
-
-2) *Kirtana* or reciting the glory of Vishnu,
-
-3) *Smarana* or constant remembrance of Vishnu,
-
-4) *Pâdasevana* or shewing respect to Vishnu,
-
-5) *Archana* or worship of Vishnu,
-
-6) *Bandana* or adoration of Vishnu,
-
-7) *Dâsya* or consecration of one self to the service of Vishnu.
-
-The other two divisions, *Saukhya* or companionship with Vishnu and *Âtmâ
-nivedana* or complete resignation are not mentioned in this connection as
-they relate to a highly advanced spiritual state.
-
-These modes of Bhakti worship are prevalent in Dravida.
-
-The millions of sons are sub-divisions of Sravana, &c.
-
-"Agastya" is mind.
-
-"Dridhachyuta" is one confirmed in dispassion.
-
-"Idhmavâha" is one who goes to Guru, fuel in hand, for instructions.
-
-Iśvara, the unknown friend, called Himself and the Purusha two Kansas of
-the Mânasa Lake. Hansa is one absolutely pure. Mânasa Lake is the Heart.
-
-"For one thousand years" — Both Jiva and Iśvara remained together as
-friends, the same in essence and in form, during the one thousand years
-of Mahâ Pralaya, at the end of a Kaipa. During Manvantaric
-Manifestation, the Jiva parts from his Friend Iśvara and launches into a
-wild course of enjoyments, of joys and sorrows. The touch of that
-fascinating lady Buddhi destroys all previous remembrances and the Jiva
-plays several characters in the drama of life, in dream and delusion.
-
-Nârada concluded his explanation of the allegory with this
-eloquent exhortation: —
-
-"Know thou, O King, the deer, skipping in the flower-garden,
-in company with its sweet-heart, deeply attached to the sweets of
-that garden, devouring with eager ears the humming music of
-*bhramaras*, little caring for the wolves on its way or for the arrows
-of the huntsman that pierce its back.
-
-"The flowers are but women who bloom only to droop. The
-fragrance and honey, the sweets of the garden, are the enjoyments
-brought on by the *karma* of another birth."
-
-"The music of *bhramaras* is the pleasing conversation of women
-and others. The wolves are the days and nights. The huntsman
-who stealthily flings arrows at the deer is Death. The deer is thy
-own self."
-
-"Consider Well the efforts of the deer. Concentrate *chitta* into
-the heart and all perceptions into *chitta*. Give up the company
-of woman. Turn a deaf ear to all idle talks. Be devoted to that one
-true Friend of Jivas — Îśvara. Retire, retire from all others."
-
-King Prâchina Barhis wondered why such beautiful teachings were with
-held by his teachers. Or forsooth, they knew not themselves. He
-requested Nârada however to remove two doubts that were still lurking in
-his mind. — Purusha acquires *karma* in one body, but he reaps the fruits of
-that *karma* in another body. One body is the doer while another is the
-enjoyer and sufferer. To one body, the fruits of its own work are lost.
-To another body, there is an acquisition of fruits it did not sow. How
-can this be? This was the first doubt.
-
-What is done is done. Nothing apparently remains of our *karma*. How can
-then the sequences be accounted for? This was the second doubt.
-
-Narada replies: —
-
-Purusha reaps the fruits in that very body without break in which it
-acquires *karma*, but that body is the Linga Sarira, inclusive of Manas.
-As in dream man works out the impressions of the wakeful state without
-changing the body, so he enjoys the fruits of *karma* created in one birth
-in the Karma-made body of another birth.
-
-And the doer of Karma is verily the Manas and not the Sthûla body.
-"These are mine," "I am so and so," only such concepts of the mind
-produce re-birth, and not anything in the Sthûla body. So the mind sows
-and the mind reaps. The body is merely the vehicle of birth producing
-thoughts.
-
-This is in answer to the first question. Now to the second.
-
-How do you know there is chitta or mind? All the senses are at one and
-the same time in contact with the objects of all the senses. But still
-you perceive only one thing at a time. Hence you infer the existence of
-the mind. Similarly by marking the tendencies of the mind their
-connection with a former birth is inferred. Otherwise why should there
-be one mental affection at a time and not another?
-
-Then, in this life you never realise a thing which you never heard or
-saw or felt before. How can the mind then reproduce matters you never
-experienced before?
-
-The mind by its present characteristics gives an insight into the past
-as well as into the future.
-
-It sometimes happens that things are perceived in the mind with strange
-combinations in time, space and action, as in dream.
-
-But men are endowed with mind and the mind perceives one after another
-the objects of the senses in an enormous variety, and the perceptions
-are lost again. So (in the long run) not one experience is altogether
-strange.
-
-(For instance, a man sees in dream that he is a king. He must have been
-a king in some birth or other. The present combination in the dream is
-untrue but not so the kingly experience. The experience is always true
-with reference to some time, some space, some action or other).
-
-When the mind is intensely Sâtvic (calm, pure and transparent) and
-becomes constantly devoted to Bhagavân, the whole universe is reflected
-on it.
-
-In Jiva there is never a break in the egoistic experience as long as the
-Linga Sarira continues.
-
-There is only a seeming break in sleep, swoon and-deep distress such as
-death and fatal illness, but such break is due to a collapse of the
-perceiving senses.
-
-There is similarly a break in the fœtal stage and in extreme childhood.
-But such break is due to imperfection of the senses; The moon though not
-visible on the new moon night does still exist.
-
-The connection with gross objects does not cease because there is a
-temporary absence of such objects. For, are not thoughts about objects
-potent in their effects in dream?
-
-The Linga Sarira, consisting in their essence of the five pure elements
-(Tanmatra), subject to the three Gunas, extending over the sixteen
-transformations (of the Sânkhya category), permeated with consciousness,
-is called Jiva.
-
-It is with this Ling Sarira that Purusha enters into a body or comes out
-of it, and it is with this Sarira that he experiences joy, sorrow, fear,
-misery and happiness.
-
-As the leech has its hold on the first blade of grass till it connects
-itself with another, so the Jiva identifies itself with one body till it
-enters another.
-
-Manas only acquires *karma* by its contemplation of the objects of the
-senses. The bondage is thus created by Avidyâ.
-
-Therefore do thou meditate on Hari to free thyself from all worldly
-attachments and to be fixed in Him for ever.
-
-V. THE STORY OF THE PRACHETAS BROTHERS.
-+++++++++++++++++++++++++++++++++++++++
-
-**SKANDHA IV, CHAP. 30-31.**
-
-The Prachetas brothers left home in order to discover by Tapas the
-best mode of enlarging the creation. They went west-ward and had not
-gone far when Śiva rose from beneath a large lake and addressed them
-thus: — "Children, you are sons of Barhishad, I know your good resolve.
-Blessings be on you. By the performance of one's duty in life, one
-attains the state of Brahmâ after many births. My abode is still
-further, inaccessible even to the virtuous. But the votary of Vishnu
-attains His holy state, only when this life is ended. I and the Devas
-shall also attain that state after the final break up of our Linga
-Sarira. Learn therefore this prayer to Vishnu. (Śiva then recited the
-prayer to Vishnu, known as Rudra Gitâ). Concentrate your mind on this
-prayer, meditate on it and recite it constantly."
-
-The Prachetas brothers entered the waters of the deep and there prayed
-to Vishnu for a thousand years. Vishnu appeared and asked them to chose
-a boon and without waiting for a reply addressed them thus: — "You are
-dutiful sons and shall ever be known as such. You shall have a son in no
-way inferior to Brahmâ. All the three Lokas shall be filled with his
-progeny. Indra had sent Pramlochâ to decoy Kandu Rishi in his penances
-and the Apsarâ succeeded in winning the heart of the Rishi. She had by
-him one daughter whom she brought forth from her pores as she brushed
-against the tops of the trees. She left her child there and ascended to
-heaven. The moon nourished the child by putting his nectar-bearing
-forefinger into her mouth. Have that daughter of the trees for your
-wife. You are all alike in your virtues and she is like to you all. So
-she shall be the wife of all the brothers."
-
-The brothers then rose up from the waters. They found the earth
-overgrown with innumerable plants, so high that they almost reached the
-high heavens. The Prachetas brothers were angry to find such growth in
-plants and they resolved to destroy them. They emitted fire and air from
-their mouths, which caused havoc in the vegetable kingdom. Brahmâ came
-and pacified the sons of Barhishad. He advised the surviving plants to
-give their adopted daughter Mârisha in marriage to the Prachetas
-brothers. The offspring of this marriage was Daksha. He is the same as
-Prajâpati Daksha, son of Brahmâ. His degradation was owing to his former
-disregard of Śiva. The Châkshusa Manvantara witnessed his work of
-creation.
-
-The Prachetas brothers reigned for 1000 Deva years. They were succeeded
-by Daksha.
-
-THOUGHTS ON THE ABOVE.
-++++++++++++++++++++++
-
-.. figure:: images/bhagap099.png
-
-Consciousness in organic life had appeared with Prithu. The
-table of further evolution may be here reproduced for facility of
-reference.
-
-.. parsed-literal::
-
- Prithu.
- |
- -+-------------+---+--------+---------+---------+--
- | | | | |
- Vijitâsva Haryyaksha Dhumrâksha Vrika Dravinas
- or Antardhâna. (East) (South) (West) (North)
- m. Sikhandini m. Nabhasvati.
- | |
- | Havirdhâna
- --+--+------+--------+-- |
- | | | |
- Pâvaka Pavamâna Suchi |
- |
- -+----------+-------+---+-----+---------+----------+--
- | | | | | |
- Barhishad Gaya Sukla Krishna Satya Jitavrata
- *alias* Prâchina Barhis
- m. Śatadruti.
- |
- 10 Prachetases
- m. Mârishâ
- |
- Daksha.
-
-Vijitâsva could make himself invisible. This may have reference to the
-state of the body at that stage of evolution. The fires appeared as it
-is they that give forms. The object corresponding to elemental fire is
-Rûpa or form. Barhishad, the name of one class of Pitris, was the
-progenitor of the form-producing Linga Sarira with all its
-potentialities.
-
-We find the senses developed in his sons the Prachetas brothers. "Pra"
-Means perfect and "Chetas" is the perceiving mind. But the mind
-perceives through the Indriyas, which are ten in number. Therefore they
-are ten brothers all alike; but they are wedded to one girl Mârishâ.
-
-There is some occult connection between water and sense perception.
-Barhishad was married to the daughter of the Ocean-god. The Prachetas
-brothers remained submerged for a thousand years in the waters. The
-protozoa and protophytes must of necessity be aquatic, as it were, for
-the development in them of sense perceptions.
-
-It is in Touch that the sense perceptions find a common basis. Touch
-underlies all other perceptions. It is touch of the object by one sense
-or other that gives rise to one perception or the other. "Kandu" is
-primarily scratching or itching, secondarily touch. Mârishâ was
-nourished by the moon and brought up by the plants.
-
-The period refers to the stage of evolution when the vegetables formed
-the predominant creation. It corresponds somewhat to the geological
-period of tree-ferns and lycopods in our Manvantara.
-
-The development of sense perceptions is the result of a communion with
-Vishnu, under the auspices of Rudra. This means a further infusion of
-Satva by Vishnu, which was made possible by the Dissolving influence of
-Śiva. And the son of the Prachetas brothers is verily Daksha, the
-Prajâpati of procreation, reincarnated under better auspices for the
-purpose of extending the creation. So we find the Trinity acting as
-three in one in the creative process.
-
-With the appearance of Daksha Jiva evolution comes to an end in the
-first Manvantara.
-
-
-.. figure:: images/bhagap100.png
-
-.. figure:: images/bhagap101.png
-
-.. figure:: images/bhagap102.png
-
-TABLE V.
-
-::
-
- Priyavrata
- |
- By Bathishmatî | By another wife
- ----------+----------------+--------------------+--------
- | |
- 10 sons (Agnidhra, Idhmajihva, Uttama
- Yajnavâhu, Mahâvira, Tâmasa, and
- Hiranyaretas, Ghritapristha, Raivata, the
- Savana, Medhâtithi, Vitihotra, Manus.
- and Kavi ) and one daughter
- *Urjasvatî* married to
- Sukrâcharyya.
- Âgnidhra
- m. Purvachitti
- |
- --+--------------+------------+------+---------------+---------+--------\
- | | | | | |
- Nâbhi Kimpurusha Harivarsha Ilâvrita Ramyak |
- m. Merudevî m. Ptatirûpa m. Ugradanstrî m. Latâ m. Ramyâ |
- | | |
- | |Hiranmaya Kuru Bhadrâsva Ketumat |
- | | m. Syâmâ m. Nâdi m. Bhadrâ m. Devavîti |
- | \----------------------------------------------------/
- |
- RISHABHA
- m. Jayantî
- |
- ---+--+-----------+-----------+------------+----------+-------+--\
- | | | | | | |
- Bharata Kusâvartu Ilâvrita Brahmavarta Malaya Ketu |
- (Ajanâbhavas | Bhadrasena, Indrasprik, Vidarbha, Kikata, |
- called after him | Kavi, Havis, Antariksha, Prabuddha, |
- Bharatavarsha) | Pippalayana, Avirhotra, Dravida, Chamasa, |
- m. Panchajani | Karabhojana, and 81 more sons. |
- | \----------------------------------------------/
- |
- --+----+------+--------------+--------+------------+
- | | | | |
- Sumati Râshtrabhrit Sudarśana Abharana Dhumraketu
- m. Vriddhasenâ
- |
- Devatâjit
- m. Asuri
- |
- Devadyumna
- m. Dhenumati
- |
- |
- Paramesthin
- m. Suvarchalâ
- |
- |
- --+------+----------+-------------+
- | | |
- Pratihartri Pratistotri Udgâtri
- m. Stuti
- |
- +-----+-----------------+---
- | |
- Aja Bhuman
- m. Rishikulyâ m. Devakulâ
- | |
- Udgitha Prastâva
- m. Virutsâ
- |
- Vibhu
- m. Rati
- |
- Prithusena
- m. Âkriti
- |
- Nakta
- m. Riti
- |
- Gaya
- m. Gâyanti
- |
- -----+--------------+---------------+---------+-------
- | | |
- Chitraratha Sugati Abhirodhana
- m. Urvâ
- |
- Samrât
- m. Utkalâ
- |
- Marichi
- m. Vindumatî
- |
- Vindumat
- m. Saraghâ
- |
- Madhu
- m. Sumanas
- |
- Viravrata
- m. Bhojâ
- |
- +----+--------------------------+
- | |
- Manthu Pramanthu
- m. Satya
- |
- Bhauvava
- |
- Tvastri
- m. Vitochanâ
- |
- Viraja
- m. Vishûchi
- |
- +--------------------+
- | |
- 100 sons 1 daughter
-
-
-.. clearpage::
-
-SKANDHA V.
-==========
-
-TABLE V. PRIYAVRATA.
---------------------
-
-**SKANDHA V. CHAP. 1.**
-
-Priyavrata was, from the beginning, under the influence of Nârada. So he
-declined to take part in the rule of the universe; till at last Brahmâ
-persuaded him not to shirk his assigned work. King Priyavrata married
-Barhishmati, the daughter of Visvakarmâ. By her he had ten sons Agnidhra
-&c., all names of Agni.
-
-Of these ten, Kavi, Mahâvira and Savana were spiritually inclined and
-they became Parama Hansas (Parama Hansa is one who gives up the world
-entirely and becomes fixed in Brahmâ). Priyavrata had by another wife
-three sons: Uttama, Tâmasa and Raivata. They all became Manus.
-
-Priyavrata reigned for 400,000,000 years. The Sun-god Âditya moves round
-the Sumeru Mount and sends his rays up to the Loka-loka range, illumining
-half the regions while the other half remains dark. King Priyavrata in
-the exuberance of spiritual power determined to illuminate the dark
-regions and to make it all day and no night. He followed the Sun-god
-seven times with a chariot as swift and bright as that of the Sun-god
-himself even as though he were a second Âditya. Brahmâ appeared saying
-"Desist, O Son, this is not thy assigned duty in the universe." The ruts
-caused by the wheel of Priyavtata's chariot are the seven oceans, which
-gave rise to the seven Dvipas — Jambu, Plaksha, Sâlmali, Kusa Krauncha,
-Śâka and Pushkara.
-
-Of these Dvipas, each succeeding one is twice as large as the one
-preceding it. The seven oceans respectively consist of:
-
-1) Kshâra (Salt),
-
-2) Ikshu (Sugarcane juice),
-
-3) Surâ (wine),
-
-4) Ghrita (clarified butter),
-
-5) Kshira (milk),
-
-6) Dadhi (curd) and
-
-7) Suddha (pure water).
-
-They are like ditches round the Dvipas and their dimensions
-are the same as those of the corresponding Dvipas.
-
-King Priyavrata divided the seven Dvipas among his seven sons thus: — ::
-
- To Agnidhra, he gave Jambu Dvipa.
- " Idhmajihva, " " Plaksha Dvipa.
- " Yajnavâhu, " " Sâlmali Dvipa.
- " Hiranyaretas, " " Kuśa Dvipa.
- " Ghritapristha, " " Krauncha Dvipa.
- " Medhâtithî, " " Śâka Dvipa.
- " Vitihotra. " " Pushkar Dvipa.
-
-He gave his daughter Urjasvati in marriage to Śukra. The famous Devayâni
-was their daughter.
-
-**SKANDHA V. CHAP. 2.**
-
-King Âgnidhra presided over Jambu Dvipa. He saw the Apsarâ Purva-chitti
-and became love-stricken, so much so that he became a *jada* (Jada is
-literally fixed, materialized hence idiotic, mad.)
-
-The King had by her nine sons Nâbhi, Kimpurusha, Harivarsha, Ilâvrita,
-Ramyak, Hiranmaya, Kuru, Bhadrâsva and Ketumâla. Each of them presided
-over the Varsha of his name. They were respectively wedded to the
-following nine daughters of Meru, — Merudevi, Pratirûpâ, Ugradanstri,
-Latâ, Ramyâ, Śyâmâ, Nari, Bhadrâ and Devavîti.
-
-**SKANDHA V. CHAP. 4-6.**
-
-Nâbhi had for his son RISHABHA an Incarnation of Vishnu. Rishabha knew
-his Varsha to be the field of Karma. He married Jayanti and had by her
-one hundred sons. The eldest and most qualified of his sons was Bharata,
-Bhâratavarsha is named after him.
-
-The chief amongst the remaining ninety-nine sons were Kusâvarta, Ilâvarta,
-Brahmavarta, Malayaketu, Bhadrasena, Indrasprik, Vidarbha and Kikata.
-These nine were the immediate successors of Bharata and were attached to
-him.
-
-Following them were Kavi, Hari, Antariksha, Prabuddha, Pippalâyana,
-Âbirhotra, Dravida, Chamasa and Karabhâjana. They were devoted to
-Bhagavân. Their story will be related in the 11th. Branch of this Purâna.
-
-The younger eighty one sons were devoted to karma and they were great
-performers of Yajna.
-
-Rishabha called his sons together and gave them proper advice. He taught
-them Âtmâ Vidya and revealed to them his own nature as the all pervading
-Purusha, free from Avidyâ.
-
-"This my body is inconceivable. My heart is pure Satva. All impurities
-were cast off by me. Therefore good people call me 'Rishabha'
-(primarily a bull, secondarily the best). You are all born of my heart
-and so you all are great; follow your brother Bharata willingly. By
-serving him you will do your duty by your subjects."
-
-So saying, he made over the reins of government to Bharata and himself
-became a Parama Hansa. He took the vow of silence and never spoke again.
-He looked blind, dumb and deaf like one obsessed and mad. He went
-everywhere in this state, heedless of what others said. People flocked
-round him wherever he went. At last he thought the rush of people to be
-an impediment to yoga and took the vow of Ajagara life (Ajagara is a
-huge python that does not move, but eats whatever comes within reach of
-its mouth). He remained fixed at one place.
-
-The yoga powers (Sidhis) sought him but he spurned them all. When he
-foresaw the end of his *prarabdha karma* Rishabha went about at will and
-travelled in Kanka, Venkata, Kûtaka and South Karnataka. While in the
-forest of Kûtaka he thrust some stones into his mouth. At that time the
-wind blew high and the bamboo tops caught fire and the body of the King
-was consumed. In Kali Vuga, King Arhat of Kanka, Venkata and Kûtaka will
-hear of the deeds of Rishabha and in the name of religion will introduce
-all sorts of sacrilegious practices as sanctioned by Rishabha's example.
-
-**SKANDHA V. CHAP. 7.**
-
-King Bharata married Panchajani, the daughter of Vîsva. He had by her
-five sons — Sumati, Râshtrabhrit, Sudarśana, Âbharana and Dhûmraketu. This
-Varsha was formerly called Ajanâbha. When Bharata became king, it was
-named after him Bhârata Varsha. King Bharata performed the Vedic Yajnas
-and made offerings to the Devas. But he knew the Devas as manifestations
-only of Vâsudeva. His mind became pure and filled with Satva. He lost
-himself in devotion to Vâsudeva. At last he divided his kingdom amongst
-his sons and himself went for Tapas to the hermitage of Pulaha in the
-*kshetra* of Hari on the Sacred Gandaki. He meditated in his heart on the
-lotus feet of Bhagavân and became suffused with ecstasy.
-
-Bharata invoked the golden Purusha in the rising sun by a special Rik
-(Vedic Mantra) and addressed Him thus, "Let us attain the spiritual rays
-of luminous Savitri that are beyond Rajas and that are the generators of
-Kârmic effects. By His Manas He created this universe. He preserves the
-Jiva again by permeating this universe."
-
-**SKANDHA V. CHAP. 8.**
-
-Once upon a time king Bharata had bathed in the Gandaka and after
-performing the daily practices was meditating on Pranava on the
-river-side. A deer came to drink water at the time. While the animal was
-quenching her thirst a lion roared not far off and she in terror jumped
-into the river. As she happened to be big with child, she was delivered
-of it at the time. Exhausted, the deer got back to the river side only
-to die. The new born fawn was being washed away, having no one to take
-care of it. Bharata took pity on the little fawn. He took it up and
-brought it to his hermitage. He brought it up as his own child and
-became deeply attached to it. He constantly thought of the deer-child,
-even so much so that when death approached he could not forget it and
-became re-born in another birth as a deer.
-
-But though born as a deer, Bharata did not lose the memory of his
-former birth. He reflected that the mind that had been trained and
-controlled in the worship of Vâsudeva went astray only for the sake of
-one deer-child. He left the Kâlanjara hills where he was born as a deer
-and sought for Sâlagram, sacred with the Âsramas of Pulastya and Pulaha.
-He waited calmly for the exhaustion of Karma that had given rise to his
-deer life. He then gave up his body in the sacred waters of the Gandaka.
-
-**SKANDHA V. CHAP. 9.**
-
-A Brâhmana of the line of Angiras had nine sons by one wife. They were
-all well versed in the Vedas, He had one son by another wife and one
-daughter. This son was said to be an incarnation of Bharata. He was
-afraid of *sanga* (company), so much so that he would not even speak to
-any one for fear of acquiring new Karma. People took him for an idiot.
-His father strove hard to teach him the Vedas but did not succeed. His
-parents died and his half brothers had charge of him. Their wisdom was
-that of the Vedas. They had not learned Âtmâ Vidyâ. So they did not
-understand the nature of Bharata and neglected him. They gave him poor
-meals for the day's work in the fields.
-
-At one time a thief wanted to propitiate the goddess Bhadra Kâli by
-human sacrifice in order that he might be blessed with a child. The
-victim that was procured somehow untied himself and fled. The attendants
-searched for him on all sides in vain. They at last fell upon Bharata
-who was watching in the fields in a peculiar way. They found him most
-suited for sacrifice and tied him up and carried him to the altar of
-Kâli. He was duly consecrated and the priest took up a sharp instrument
-to cut off his head. Kâli could no longer remain unconcerned. She rushed
-forth in rage from out of her image, wrested the knives from the hands
-of the thieves and cut off their heads.
-
-Once upon a time Râhugana King of Sindhu and Saubira was travelling in a
-palanquin. The chief palanquin bearer on reaching the river Ikshumati
-went in search of a bearer and on finding Bharata deemed him to be a
-god-send. He found his limbs strong and well-built and thought him
-capable of bearing the palanquin. He forced Bharata into the service.
-Bharata though quite unfit for this menial work did his utmost. But he
-was in the habit of looking forward for the distance of an arrow throw
-and then taking steps in advance, so that he might not unwarily kill
-some animal under his feet. He could not therefore keep pace with the
-other bearers and the palanquin lost its balance. King Rahûgana became
-angry and reproached the bearers. They complained against the new
-recruit. The king taunted Bharata with these words; "Oh my friend I
-dare say you are tired — for have you not carried me long and for a long
-distance too — and you appear to be thin indeed and weak. Are you
-suffering from decrepitude? Are not these your fellow-mates."
-
-Bharata kept quiet. For these taunting remarks did not touch him. He was
-crystallised in wisdom and was no longer troubled with the false
-perceptions of "I and mine."
-
-The palanquin again lost its balance. The king lost his temper and broke
-forth thus; "What is this? are you alive or dead? Do you thus disregard
-my orders and think of living? You must be a madman, like the Death-god
-I will punish your madness and bring you to your senses." King Rahûgana
-was proud of his learning and his kingship. He was inflated with Rajas
-and Tames. He had therefore no hesitation in reproaching that lord of
-Yoga, Bharata.
-
-Bharata smiled and thus replied: — "Thy taunts are true, O king! There is
-no doubt, I am neither tired nor did I travel long. For thy weight does
-not affect me nor have I any distance to travel. Nor could I be called
-fat. For the body is fat and not I. It is by falsely attributing the
-bodily attributes to self that one is said to have thickness, leanness,
-disease, hunger thirst, fear, enmity, desire, sleep, attachment, anger,
-egotism, pride and sorrow. But I have no such false perception.
-
-"Thou sayest I am dead even when alive. But such is the case with all
-beings for they are all subject to constant transformations.
-
-"Thou chargest me with disregarding the orders of my Master. But only if
-the relationship of Master and servant does really subsist, might there
-be command and obedience. But where is that relationship? If thou
-sayest, in the ways of the world, thou art my king momentary though
-these ways be, please tell me thy behests.
-
-"Thou callest me a mad man and dost want to punish me and bring me to my
-senses. But I am not mad, though I may look so, for I am fixed in the
-meditation of Brahmâ. But still if thou thinkest me to be a madman it
-will be useless to punish or to teach a senseless being."
-
-So saying Bharata continued to carry the king. Rahûgana came down from
-the palanquin and fell at Bharata's feet. He expressed regret for having
-slighted such a sage in disguise and prayed for a fuller explanation of
-the philosophy involved in his weighty words. This led to an explanation
-by Bharata of the Advaita philosophy from the stand point of the
-Purânas, a denunciation of Vedic and Tântric rites, and an allegorical
-description of the worldly life as trading in the forest (the world being
-the forest and the traders being men in search of wealth). The allegory
-was explained by Suka to Parikshit. [The enquiring student is referred
-to the original for details (V. 11-14.)]
-
-**SKANDHA V. CHAP. 15.**
-
-We must hurriedly refer to the line of Bharata. Sumati was the son of
-Bharata. Ill guided men in the Kali Yuga will call him a God. In his
-line Pratiha was master of Âtmâ Vidyâ. Coming lower down by far the most
-renowned king in the line of Bharata was Gaya Viraja was also well
-known. Of the hundred sons of Viraja, the eldest was Śatajit or the
-Conqueror of the hundred.
-
-THOUGHTS ON THE LINE OF PRIYA VRATA.
-------------------------------------
-
-Priya Vrata means literally one of welcome (*Priya*) deeds (*Vrata*).
-
-Priya Vrata, was under the influence of Nârada from the beginning and he
-declined to go along the Descending path or Pravritti Mârga. He was
-wedded to the daughter of Vishva Karmâ.
-
-Vishva Karmâ is the cosmic manufacturer. The work of this Prajâpati
-extends over the whole of Trilokî and he is the architect of all systems
-and chains included in the Trilokî — Priya Vrata, as we shall see later
-on, represents the earth chain only or the system known as Bhûr.
-
-What we generally call the Solar system is a misnomer. For the sun
-stands between Bhûr Loka and Svar Loka and illumines both the Lokas with
-its rays. The Solar System is therefore properly speaking the whole of
-the Trilokî. In speaking of Priya Vrata, therefore, the Bhâgavata
-restricts itself to the regions illumined by the sun as well as by the
-moon (V-15-I.)
-
-We shall enter into a detailed description of the whole system in the
-next chapter. Let us take here a passing glance of the line of Priya
-Vrata.
-
-We take Priya Vrata to be the Earth chain complete in itself or rather
-the progenitor of the Earth chain.
-
-Meru or Sumeru is the axis of Bhûr Loka, its highest point being the
-highest point of Bhûr Loka.
-
-The sun god revolves round this central axis.
-
-The Earth-god Priyavrata also revolved round Meru *i.e.* the Earth
-rotated round its own axis at a very rapid rate for some time during its
-infancy.
-
-The rotation of the Earth was followed by the separation of layers. The
-part most removed from the centre was first affected.
-
-In this way seven distinct layers were formed. The layer towards the
-circumference was the most spiritual. That towards the centre was the
-most material.
-
-The reason of this is to be found in the action of the three Gunas and
-Tamas.
-
-Satva is: on the material plane, light, transparent, with upward
-motion. On the mental plane, buoyant and cheerful, with true perception,
-spiritual.
-
-Rajas is: on the material plane, constantly moving, translucent, with
-motion on the same plane, without levity or gravity.
-
-On the mental plane, constantly active, partly joyful, partly
-sorrowful, with partially true and partially false perception, intellectual.
-
-Tamas is: on the material plane, heavy, opaque, with downward motion.
-
-On the mental plane indolent, melancholy, nonperceptive or
-dull.
-
-The centripetal force is the action of Tamas and is connected
-with materiality. The centrifugal force is the action of Satva and is
-connected with spirituality.
-
-Of the seven Dvipas, the central is the Jambudvipa, which is
-the most material.
-
-The one farthest from the centre is the Pushkara Dvipa.
-
-The spaces intervening between the layers or Dvipas are the seven
-oceans. They partake of the characteristics of the Dvipas, which they
-respectively surround. Thus the salt ocean surrounding the Jambu Dvipa
-is the most material. The materiality is indicated by the word "salt,"
-which implies gross matter.
-
-Priyavrata, it is said, went seven times round Meru, and at the time of
-each rotation, one ocean and its corresponding Dvipa were formed.
-
-But when the Dvipas and the oceans were all formed that particular
-motion of the whole system was lost.
-
-Since then days and nights are solely caused by the motion of the sun
-round Meru along the Manâsottara range.
-
-The seven Dvipas may be the Globes A, B, C, D, E, F, and G of
-Theosophical literature.
-
-The rulers of these seven Globes are seven sons of Priyavrata, named
-after Agni or Fire.
-
-Agni is here the form-giving Energy of each Globe.
-
-Of the ten sons of Priyavrata, seven only became Rulers of the Globes,
-but the other three Kavi, Mahavira and Savana, had nothing to do with
-the creative process. They are highly spiritual entities beyond the
-plane of the seven Globes.
-
-The daughter of Priyavrata was Urjasvati. The word means full of
-Energy. She was wedded to Sukra, the presiding god of the planet Venus.
-
-Her daughter is the renowned Devayâni, who was married to King Yayâti.
-She stands for Devayâna, the Radiant Path of the Upanishads, which
-transcends the Trilokî.
-
-Of the sons of Priyavrata, we of Jambu Dvipa or Globe D are directly
-concerned with Âgnidhra, who presided over its earliest destinies.
-
-The Bhâgavata does not relate the genealogy of the other sons as at
-present we have nothing to do with the life-evolution on these globes.
-
-The process of materialisation is indicated by the Jada state of
-Âgnidhra on seeing the Apsaras Pûrvachitti.
-
-The sons of Âgnidhra are the nine Varshas or Continents. We shall learn
-the details of these Varshas subsequently. Of these Varshas again, we
-are directly concerned with Nabhi. The word Nabhi means navel, which is
-at the centre of the body. The Nabhi Varsha is the pivot on which the
-other Varshas hang. The Nabhi Varsha is what we know as our Earth. The
-nine Varshas are also placed layer over layer, as the Dvipas are.
-
-When Nabhi underwent further transformation, Rishabha became his son. In
-Rishabha, we come to a turning point. He is said to be an Incarnation of
-Vishnu. The word "Rishabha" means bull. But that meaning does not give
-us any help in understanding Rishabha and his work.
-
-Priyavrata moved rapidly round Meru, till the globes were formed. This
-is in accordance with the Nebulous theory of Laplace. When the globes
-were formed, the Earth became denser. As the density increased, the
-movement of the Earth became irregular, till at last, the planet became
-fixed. This is not the western idea. The Pauranic idea is that the sun
-moves round the Earth, and the Earth remains fixed in its position. The
-story of Priyavrata's line is based upon this idea. Another idea of the
-ancients was that the planets had speech, till they became solidified.
-
-Rishabha took upon himself the vow of silence. His son Bharata became
-speechless as a deer.
-
-It was necessary to put a limit to the materiality of the Earth.
-The hard crust that formed the shell of the planet could not be
-allowed to affect its heart. The Earth was not to lose all spirituality.
-Therefore Vishnu incarnated in Rishabha so that spirituality might be
-stored in our planets, for the evolution of those Jivas that dwelt over
-it. Look at a Parama Hansa; the ascetic that neither speaks nor moves.
-Judging from outside, he is no better than a mute animal, but he is all
-spirituality within. Such is the nature of our mother Earth.
-
-The thrusting of stones into the mouth of Rishabha is suggestive.
-
-The sons of Rishabha are the countries of our Earth. Of these Bharata
-(India) was the first-born. The spiritual character of this holy land is
-shewn by the story of Bharata.
-
-Bharata was obeyed and imitated by nine brothers, of whom Brahma-varta
-is well-known as described by Manu. Malaya is Malabar. Vidarbha is Berar
-and Kikata is Bihar.
-
-The sons of Rishabha very likely include all the countries of the Earth.
-
-Rishabha called his sons and asked them to follow Bharata. Will other
-lands now follow that advice?
-
-THE EARTH CHAIN, BHUVANA KOSHA.
--------------------------------
-
-**SKANDHA V. CHAP. 16.**
-
-Said Parikshit: — "Thou hast given the bare outline of these regions of
-the universe which are lighted by the sun and where the moon and the
-luminous starry host are also seen.
-
-"Thou hast hereby mentioned the seven oceans and the seven Dvipas, but
-thou hast not given the details thereof." Suka replied: —
-
-Imagine the Bhu-mandala or the Earth chain to be the pericarp of a
-lotus. Imagine there are seven sheaths immersed in it — the seven Dvipas.
-The central sheath is Jambu Dvipa. It is Niyut Yojanas in area (Niyut=
-1,000,000 But Śridhara Svâmi here explains Niyuta as meaning one laksha
-or 100,000. So according to Śridhara the area of Jambu Dvipa is 800,000
-miles). Jambu Dvipa is round like the lotus leaf.
-
-There are nine Varshas in Jambu Dvipa, each nine thousand Yojanas in
-area completely divided by eight mountain ranges. (Bhadrasva and
-Ketumala form exceptions, for they extend over 34,000 Yojanas. Some take
-nine thousand Yojanas to be the expanse between the Nila and Nishadha
-ranges. The Vayu Purâna describes the position thus: — Two Varshas are
-situated like two bows north and south. Four are placed longways.
-Ilâvrita is as it were with four petals. *Śridhara*. This gives 7 x 9000 +
-34000 = 97000).
-
-ILAVRITA IS THE CENTRAL VARSHA.
--------------------------------
-
-Sumeru is situated in the navel of this Varsha. This king of mountains
-is gold all through. It is a laksha Yojanas high. If the Earth chain be
-taken to be a lotus, this Meru is its pericarp. It is 32,000 Yojanas as
-the top and 16,000 Yojanas at the foot and 16,000 Yojanas under the
-ground.
-
-(By saying 16000 Yojanas at the foot, 84000 Yojanas are left out. Thus
-the Vishnu Purâna says — the Meru is 84000 Yojanas over the ground and
-16000 under the ground, at the top 32000 and at the foot 16000.
-*Śridhara*. 16000 + 84000=100000).
-
-On the north of Ilâvrita are the three mountain ranges Nila, Sveta and
-Śringavan in order. They are respectively the boundary ranges of
-Râmayak, Hiranmaya and Kuru. They spread east and west up to the salt
-ocean. They are two thousand Yojanas wide. In length, each succeeding
-one is a little over one tenth part shorter than the preceding one.
-(There is no difference in height and in width. *Śridhara*).
-
-So on the south of Ilâvrita are the three ranges Nishadha, Hemakûta and
-Himalaya spreading east and west like the preceding ones. They are
-10,000 Yojanas in height. They are the boundary ranges respectively of
-Harivarsha, Kinpurusha and Bharata. (This — 10,000 Yojanas — is also the
-height of Nila, Sveta and Sringavnâ. The width of these ranges again is
-that of Nila, and others. By Bhârata we are to understand Nabhi.
-
-On the west of Ilâvrita is the Malyavat range and on the east lies the
-Gandha Madana range, These ranges extend north up to the Nila range and
-on the south up to the Nishadha range. They are two thousand Yojanas
-wide. They are the boundary ranges of Ketumala and Bhadrasva
-respectively. (East and west there is the Meru surrounded by Ilâvrita,
-then there are the two ranges Malyavat and Gandha Madana, and the two
-varshas Bhadrasva and Ketumala and nothing besides).
-
-North and south, there is the Meru then Ilâvrita, 6 mountain ranges and
-6 Varshas, 3 on each side and nothing else.
-
-[Where do you then get a *laksha* of Yojanas? It is said: — Meru has a
-diameter of 16,000. Ilâvrita has 18,000. The 6 Varshas have
-6 x 9,000 = 54,000. The 6 mountain ranges have together a width of 6 x 2,000 =
-12,000. Thus north and south, we have 16,000 + 18,000 + 54,000 + 12,000 =
-100,000.
-
-East and west we have 34000 (9000 + 16000 + 9000) across Meru and Ilâvrita
-and the two mountain ranges 2 x 2000 = 4000.
-
-The expanse of the two Varshas up to the ocean side is 62000. This gives
-us 34000 + 4000 + 62000 = 100,000. Thus there is no conflict. *Śridhara*.]
-
-[This discussion of Śridhara throws immense light on the text. We find
-that the area is measured by the diameter. We find that 16000 is the
-diameter of Meru at the foot. We find that Ilâvrita has 9000 from Meru
-to Nila and 9000 from Meru to Nishadha. We understand also why Bhadrasva
-and Ketumala were said to be exceptions, their expanse being 34,000. A
-diagram will now best illustrate what we say.]
-
-.. figure:: images/bhagap113.png
- :alt: A diagram of Jambu-Dvipa.
-
- A diagram of Jambu-Dvipa.
-
-[Bhârata as a Varsha must not be mistaken for India. For Bhârata here
-stands for Nâbhi or the whole of our known earth.
-
-Bhârata Varsha extends from the base of the Earth opposite the Himalayas
-on the side of America to the highest point of the Himalayas.]
-
-Kinpurusha Varsha, so called from its dwellers, extends from the highest
-point of the Himalayas as its base to the highest point of Hemakuta.
-
-So with the other Varshas.
-
-It will be seen, that we have no idea of any of the mountains, besides
-the Himalayas.
-
-Ilâvrita stands on the same level with Ketumala and Bhadrasva. If these
-three be taken as one, we get the number *7*. Five other Dvipas have *7*
-Varshas only.]
-
-On the four sides of Meru are the four mountains — Mandâra, Meru Mandâra,
-Supârsna and Kumuâ. They are ten thousand Yojanas in height and expanse.
-
-(There are two mountains east and west, their expanse being north and
-south. There are other two north and south, their expanse being east and
-west. Otherwise if these mountains were to encircle Meru, Ilâvrita would
-not be in existence. *Śridhara*).
-
-On these four mountains respectively are four big trees of Mango,
-Jamboland, Kadamba and the sacred Fig. They are the banners as it were
-of the Mountains. They are 11000 Yojanas high and they also spread over
-this area. Their width is one hundred Yojanas.
-
-There is one lake below each of these trees: milk, sugarcane juice and
-pure water respectively. The use of these fluids gives natural Yogic
-powers to the Upadevas (lesser devas).
-
-There are also four gardens of the Devas, *viz.* Nandana, Chaitraratha,
-Vaibhrâjoka and Sarvato-bhadra.
-
-The Devas, adored by the Upadevas amuse themselves in those gardens.
-
-Big fruits with nectar-like juice fall from the mango tree on Mandâra.
-
-(The Vayu Purâna gives the measure of the fruit. The Rishis who perceive
-truths give the measure of the fruits to be 108 cubits with the fist
-closed (*aratvi*) and also 61 cubits more. *Śridhara*)
-
-When these fruits drop down, they give out a very sweet, very fragrant,
-profuse reddish juice which collects to form the river called Arunodâ,
-having water of the color of Aruna or the morning Sun. This river waters
-the Eastern part of Ilâvrita. The use of its water gives such a sweet
-scent to the body of the female attendants of Durgâ that the wind
-carries that scent to ten Yojanas around.
-
-So the Jambu river is formed by the juice of the fruits that drop down
-from the Jambolova tree in Meru Mandâra. It waters the southern part of
-Ilâvrita.
-
-The land on the banks of these rivers is soaked by their juice and
-worked on by air and light and is thus converted into gold called
-Jâmbûnada, which gives ornaments to the Devas.
-
-Aruna is the morning Sun, as well as the color of the morning Sun. The
-river with Aruna water is also gold producing.
-
-The Kadamba tree on Supârsva has cavities from which flow five streams
-of honey, each 5 Vyâmas wide (Vyâma = the space between the tips of the
-fingers of either hand when the arms are extended.) These streams water
-the western part of Ilâvrita. The fragrant breath of those that use them
-spreads over one hundred Yojanas all round.
-
-The fig tree (Vata) called Satavolsa on the summit of Kumuda has
-branches which give rise to rivers that bring forth milk, curd, honey,
-clarified butter, molasses, edibles, carpets, cloths, ornaments, in fact
-all objects of desire. These rivers fall from Kumuda and water the
-northern part of Ilâvrita.
-
-Those that use the waters of those rivers are free from all Infirmities,
-diseases, secretions, old age and death. They live in absolute bliss all
-their lives.
-
-There are twenty more mountains on all sides of Meru, at its foot. They
-are Kuranga, Kurara, Kusumbha Naikovka, Trikuta, Sisira, Patanga.
-Ruchoka, Nishadha Sitivâsa, Kapila Sankha, Vaidûrya, Jârudhi, Housas,
-Rishabha, Nâga, Kâlanjara, Nirada and others.
-
-Two mountains, Jatharu and Devakûta, are situated on the east of Meru.
-They are two thousand Yojanas in height and in width. To the north they
-spread over 18,000 Yojanas.
-
-So on the west there are the two mountains Pavana and Pâriyâtra.
-
-On the south there are Kailâśa and Karavira, which expand towards the
-east. So on the north, there are Trisringa and Makara. (If different
-measures are given in Vishnu and other Purânas, they are with reference
-to different Kalpas. *Śridhara*).
-
-The sages say that in the central portion of the top of Sumeru is the
-abode of Brahmâ, made of gold, 10,000,000 Yojanas in area, and of four
-equal sides.
-
-Surrounding the abode of Brahmâ are the eight abodes of the eight
-Lokapâlas situated respectively in the directions presided over by these
-Lokapâlas. Each of these abodes has the color of its own Lokapâla and
-each extends over 2 1/2 thousand yojanas. (The names of these abodes are
-given in other Purânas. Thus:
-
-::
-
- Manovatî is the abode of Brahmâ.
- Amarâvati " " Indra.
- Tejovati " " Agni.
- Sanyavati " " Yâma.
- Krishnângana " " Nairita.
- Sradhavati " " Varuna.
- Gandhavati " " Vayu.
- Mahodayâ " " Kubera.
- Yasovati " " Isa.
-
-
-THE GANGES.
------------
-
-**SKANDHA V. CHAP. 7.**
-
-The Avatâra Vâmana asked Bali, the Daitya King, for as much space as he
-could cover in three steps. The first step covered the earth. Vâmana
-then raised his foot over the heavens and the stroke of his left
-toe-nail caused a hole in the cosmic egg. Water entered the hole from
-outside, water that carried the washings of Vishnu's feet and that was
-consequently capable of purifying all the impurities of the world and
-that was in itself very pure, water that was then called Bhagavat pudi.
-In a thousand yugas the stream reached the highest point of Svar Loka,
-called Vishnupada.
-
-Dhruva carried the stream on his own head with ever increasing devotion.
-
-The seven Rishis (of the Great Bear) carry the sacred water in their
-braided tufts of hair, as something better than Mukti, for the stream of
-devotion flows from Vishnu direct.
-
-Thence the stream passes through the path of the Devas, studded with
-thousands and thousands of starry chariots, till it overflows the lunar
-regions and fall down on the abode of Brahmâ in Meru.
-
-There the stream divides itself into four parts called Sitâ, Alakanandâ,
-Vankshu and Bhadrâ.
-
-The Sitâ flows from the abode of Brahmâ through the highest mountain
-ranges, she comes down to Gandha Mâdana, thence through Bhadrâsva Varsha
-she falls into the salt ocean towards the east.
-
-So the Vankshu flows through the Mâlyavat range into Ketumala Varsha and
-falls on the west into the Salt ocean.
-
-The Bhadrâ flows north from the Sumeru peak through several mountain
-ranges down to Sringavat range and passes through Kuru in to the Salt
-ocean.
-
-The Alakanandâ flows south from the abode of Brahmâ through several
-mountain ranges to Hema Kuta and thence to Himâlaya till it reaches
-Bhârata Varsha (*i.e.* Nâbhi Varsha) and at last flows through it into
-the Salt ocean.
-
-There are a thousand other rivers and a thousand other mountains in each
-Varsha.
-
-[The real source of the Ganges is not the melting of snow in the
-Himâlâyas. That may be the source of the waters that swell the bed of
-the Ganges, as we see it. But the Ganges is something more than a volume
-of waters. There is a spiritual current underlying its waters. That
-current comes from regions higher than the highest peak of the
-Himâlâyas. Hence the great sanctity attached to it].
-
-THE MYSTERIES OF THE VARSHAS.
------------------------------
-
-**SKANDHA V. CHAP. 17-19.**
-
-Of the nine Varshas, Bhârata is the field of Karma (I must now once for
-all remind my readers that Bhârata when mentioned as a Varsha means
-Nâbhi Varsha, the whole of this visible earth from the highest point of
-the Himalayas downwards). The other Varshas are places of fruition of
-the merits of those that go to Svarga. Hence they are called terrestrial
-(Bhouma) Svargas.
-
-(Svarga is of three kinds: —
-
-a. Divya viz. Svarga proper or Swar Loka.
-
-b. Bhouma or terrestrial and
-
-c. Bila or Pâtâlic.
-
-*Śridhara*.)
-
-*Ilâvrita.* — The dwellers of this Varsha live for ten thousand years of
-human measure. They are like Devas. They have the vitality of ten
-thousand elephants. Their body is strong like the thunderbolt They enjoy
-with women all their lives and only one year before death do the women
-bear children. They always live as it were in Treta Yuga.
-
-Nârâyana — the Mahâ Purusha pervades all the Varshas for their good, in
-different forms of His Chatur Vyûha (Vâsudeva, Sankarshana, Pradyumna
-and Anirudha).
-
-In Ilâvrita, Bhava or Śiva is the only male. Other males
-do not enter that Varsha, for they know the curse of Bhâvanî (Durgâ)
-that whoever should enter the Varsha was to become a female.
-
-Bhava is adored by millions of women. He meditates on the fourth, the
-Tâmasa Mûrti of Mahâpurusha *viz.* Shankarshana. He recites the following
-mantra and runs about: —
-
-"Om Namo Bhâgavate Mahâ Purushâya Sarva-guna Sankhâynâya Anantâya
-Avyaktâya Namaha."
-
-"Om, Salutations to Bhagavat Mahâ Purusha, salutations to the manifester
-of all Gunas, the Endless, the Unmanifested."
-
-Then follows a prayer to Sankarshana for which readers are referred to
-the original *Bhadtâsva*.
-
-Bhadrasravas is the lord of Bhadrâsva. He and his followers dwell there,
-they meditate on the Hayaśirsha aspect of Vâsudeva, they recite the
-following mantra and run about.
-
-"Om Namo Bhâgavate Dharmâya Âtmâ-visodhanâya namah."
-
-"Om salutations to Bhagavat Dharma; salutations to him who purifies the
-soul."
-
-Then follows a prayer to Hayagrîva *Harivarsha*.
-
-The renowned saintly Daitya Prahlâda with the dwellers of this Varsha
-adore Him and recite the following mantra.
-
-"Om Namo Bhagavate Srî Nara Sinhâya Namastejastejase Âvirâvir bhava
-vajranakha vajra-danstra Karmâ-Sayân randhaya randhaya tamo grasa om
-Svâhâ Abhayam Abhoyam Âtmani bhûyisthûh om kshroum."
-
-"Om salutations to Bhagavat Srî Hrisinha, Salutations to the fire of all
-fires! Manifest Thyself! Manifest thyself O thunder-nailed! O
-thunder-toothed! Burn up, burn up all desires! devour Tamas! Om Svâhâ!
-Freedom from fear, freedom from fear be in us. Om! Kohrâum!"
-
-*Ketumâla.*
-
-Pradyumna or Kâmadeva presides over Ketumâla in order to please Lakshmî
-Samvatsara (one year), the daughters of Samvatsara *viz:* the nights and
-Sons of Samvatsara *viz:* the days. The days and nights are 36,000 in
-number *i.e.* as many as are contained in the full term of a man's life
-(one hundred years). These days and nights are the lords of Ketumâla
-Lakshmî with whom the dwellers of Ketumâla adore Kâmadeva.
-
-(The mantra and prayer are then given.)
-
-*Ramyaka.*
-
-Matsya (The Fish Incarnation) presides over Ramyaka. Manu is
-the King.
-
-(Mantra and prayer follow)
-
-*Hiranmaya.*
-
-Kûrma (the Tortoise Incarnation) presides over Hiranmaya.
-Aryaman the chief of the Pitris dwells there with others.
-
-(Mantra and prayer follow)
-
-*Kuru.*
-
-Varsha or the Boar Incarnation presides over Kuru. Bhûr
-with the dwellers of Kuru adore him.
-
-(Mantra and prayer follow.)
-
-*Kinpurusha.*
-
-In Kinpurusha, Hanumân with the dwellers of the Varsha
-worship the Adipurusha Râma, brother of Lakshamana and
-husband of Sitâ.
-
-(Mantra and prayer follow.)
-
-*Bhârat Varsha.*
-
-Nara Nârâyana presides over this Varsha. There are various
-(castes) and Âsramas in this Varsha. Nârada of great devotion
-leads the people of this Varsha. His object in so doing is to teach
-to Sâvarni, the coming Manu, the Sânkhya and Yoga (as related in
-the Bhagavat Gitâ) together with the full realisation of Bhagavat (as
-related in the Pancharatras).
-
-[This mission of Nârada is specially noteworthy.]
-
-( Mantra and prayer follow.)
-
-In this Bhârata Varsha there are many mountains and rivers.
-
-Maloya, Mangalaprastha, Mainâka, Trikuta, Rishava, Kutaka, Kōnva, Sahya,
-Rishyamûka, Srisaila, Venkata, Mahendra, Vâridhâra, Vindhya, Śaktimân,
-Riksha, Pâripâtra, Drōna, Chitrakûta, Gobardhana, Raivatak, Kakubha,
-Nila, Gokâmukha, Indrakila, Kâmagiri and hundreds and thousands of other
-mountains are situated in this Varsha.
-
-The following are the principal rivers Chandvavâsa, Tâmvaparni, Avatōda,
-Kritamâlā, Vaihâyasi, Kâveri, Venûâ, Payasvini, Sarkarâvartâ,
-Krishnavenuâ, Bhimrathi, Godâbari, Nirvindhyâ, Payoshni, Tâpi, Revâ,
-Surasâ, Narmadâ, Charmanvati, Andha, Sōna, Mahânadi, Vedasmriti,
-Rishikúlyâ, Trisâmâ, Kousiki, Mandâkini, Yamunâ, Sarasvati, Drishadvati,
-Gomati, Saraju, Aghavati, Shasthavati, Saptavati, Satadru, Sushōma,
-Chandrabhâgâ, Maruduridhâ, Vitastâ, Asikini and Visvâ.
-
-Those that acquire birth in this Varsha have recourse to Svarga,
-humanity and Naraka respectively, according as their Karma is White
-(Sâtvic), Red (Râjasic) or Black (Tâmasic). The People acquire Moksha in
-this Varsha in accordance with their Varna (Caste). (This is because
-Karma according to caste prevails in this Varsha, not that Moksha is not
-otherwise attainable. *Śridhara*).
-
-And what is moksha in this Varsha? It is the Companionship of Mahâtmâs
-(Mahâpurushas) brought about by the destruction of the bonds of Avidyâ
-caused by various births. And that Moksha is in reality unceasing,
-unselfish devotion to the All-pervading, Indestructible, Causeless
-Paramâtma Vâsudeva.
-
-Even the Devas say: — "How fortunate are these people of Bhârat Varsha!
-For Hari is kind to them, even without many performances and they are so
-adapted for communion with Hari by devotion. We have attained Svarga by
-the performance of Yajna. But we shall have to be born again after the
-end of the Kalpa. What good is in this state, which does not bring us in
-direct communion with Vishnu? These people of Bhârat Varsha even with
-their short lives acquire the state of Hari. If there be any Karma left
-to us after the enjoyment of Svarga may we be born as men that we may
-worship Hari."
-
-Some say there are eight upadvipas in Jambu Dvipa, formed by the sons of
-Sagara when they dug up this earth in search of the sacrificial horse.
-They are Svarna Prastha, Chandra Sukla, Âvartana, Râmanaka,
-Manda-harina, Panchajanya, Sinhala and Loukâ.
-
-THE DVIPAS.
------------
-
-**SKANDHA V. CHAP. 20.**
-
-*Plaksha Dvipa*
-
-Jambu Dvipa is surrounded by the salt ocean on all sides. That ocean
-extends over Laksha Yojanas. That salt ocean is again surrounded on all
-sides by Plaksha Dvipa, which extends over 2 laksha of Yojanas.
-
-There is one golden Plaksha tree in that Dvipa as high as the Jambu tree
-in Jambu Dvipa and the Dvipa itself takes its name from that tree. There
-Fire is seven tongued,
-
-Idhmajihva son of Priyavrata ruled over this Dvipa. He divided the Dvipa
-into seven Varshas and named them after his seven sons each of whom
-ruled over the Varsha of his name.
-
-Śiva, Vayasa, Subhadrâ, Sânta, Kshema, Amrita and Abhoya are the
-Varshas.
-
-Manikûta, Vajrakûta, Indrasena, Jyotishmat, Subarna, Hiranyasthiva and
-Meghmâla are the seven chief mountains.
-
-Arunâ, Nrimâna, Angirasi, Sâvitri, Supravâtâ, Ritambharâ and
-Satyambharâ are the seven great rivers.
-
-Hansa, Patanga, Urdhâyana and Satyânga are the corresponding castes.
-
-The dwellers of the Dvipa live for one thousand years. They look like
-Devas and procreate after Deva fashion. They worship the Sûrya (Sun-god)
-of the Vedas.
-
-(The Mantra is given)
-
-In Plaksha, Sâlmali, Kusa, Krouncha and Śaka, the inmates have their age,
-Indriyas, strength, power and Budhi by their very birth and not by
-Karma.
-
-The Dvipa is surrounded by the Sugar cane juice ocean which extends over
-2 laksha of Yojanas.
-
-.. vspace:: 1
-
-..
-
-*Sâlmali Divpa:* — Twice as large as Plaksha Dvipa. The ocean of wine
-surrounding it is equally large.
-
-*Tree:* — Sâlmali (Bombax Malabaricum) as high as the Plaksha tree said to
-be the seat of Garuda.
-
-*King:* Yajna-vâha son of Priyavrata.
-
-*Seven Varshas and seven sons of Yajnavaha:* — Surochana, Soumanasya,
-Râmanaka, Devvarha, Pâribhadra, Âpyâyana and Abhijhâta.
-
-*Seven principal mountains:* — Surasa, Śata Sringa, Vamadeva, Kunda,
-Kumuda, Pushpa Varsha and Sahosra.
-
-*Seven great rivers:* — Anumati, Sinivâti, Sarasvati, Kuhu, Rajani, Nandâ
-and Râkâ.
-
-*Divisions of people:* — Srutidhara, Viryadhara, Vasundhara, and
-Ishundhara.
-
-*Presiding deity:* — The Moon.
-
-*Kusa Dvipa:* — Twice as large as Sâlmali Dvipa surrounded by an ocean of
-clarified butter equally large.
-
-*Tree:* — Clusters of Kusa grass glowing and glittering.
-
-*King:* — Hiranyaretas son of Priyavrata.
-
-*Seven Varshas:* — Vasu, Vasudâna, Dridharuchi, Nâbhigupta, Satyavrata,
-Bikranama, and Devanâma.
-
-*Seven mountains:* — Babhra, Chatur-Sringa, Kapila Chitra Kûta, Devânika,
-Urdharomau and Dravina.
-
-*Seven Rivers:* — Raaskulyâ, Madhukulyâ, Mitravindâ, Srutavindâ, Deva
-Garbhâ, Ghutachyntâ, and Mantramâlâ.
-
-*Divisions of People:* — Kusala, Kōvida, Abhiyukta and Kulaka.
-
-*Presiding Deity:* — Agni (Fire-god).
-
-.. vspace:: 1
-
-..
-
-*Krouncha Dvipa:* — Twice as large as Kusa, surrounded by an ocean of milk
-equally large. Named after the Krouncha Mountain. The Krouncha Mountain
-was attacked by Kârtikeya and injured too. But the Milk Ocean and the
-presiding deity Varuna saved it.
-
-*King:* — Ghritaprestha son of Priyavrata.
-
-*Seven Varshas:* — Âtmâ, Madhuruha, Meghapristha, Sudhâwan, Bhrâjistha,
-Lohitârna, Vânaspati.
-
-*Seven Mountains:* — Sukla, Vardhamân, Bhajana, Upavarhaha, Nauda, Nandana
-and Sarvato-bhadra.
-
-*Seven Rivers:* — Abhoya, Amritoughâ, Âryukâ, Tirthavati, Rupavati,
-Pavitravati and Suklâ.
-
-*Divisions of people:* — Purasha, Rishabha, Dravina and Devaka.
-
-*Presiding Deity:* Âpas (Water-God.)
-
-*Sâka Dvipa:* — 32 laksha Yojanas. Surrounded by an ocean of curds — equally
-extensive.
-
-*Tree:* — Sâka (Teak wood tree) very fragrant.
-
-*King:* — Medhâtithi, son of Priyavrata.
-
-*Seven Varshas:* — Purojava, Manojava, Vepamâna, Dhûmrânika, Chitrarepha,
-Bahurûpa and Visvâ-dhâra.
-
-*Seven Mountains:* — Isâna, Uru Sringa, Balabhadra, Sata Kesara,
-Sahasra-srotas, Devapâla and Mohânasa.
-
-*Seven Rivers:* — Anaghâ, Âyurdâ, Ubhayaspriti, Aparâjitâ, Punchapadî,
-Sahasra Sruti and Nijadhriti.
-
-*Division of people:* — Ritavrata, Satyavrata, Dânavrata and Anuvrata.
-
-*Presiding Deity:* — Vayu (Wind-god).
-
-.. vspace:: 1
-
-..
-
-*Puskkara Dvipa:* — Twice as large as Saka Dvipa surrounded by an ocean of
-pure water — equally extensive: There is a big Pushkara or Lotus plant
-with thousands of golden leaves. The Lotus is known as the seat of
-Brahmâ.
-
-Standing between two Varshas, eastern and western, is the Mânasattara
-Mountain ten thousand Yojanas high. On the four sides of this Mountain
-are four abodes of the Lokapâlas = Indra and others.
-
-Over these abodes the Sanvatsava or Uttarâyana Dakshinâyana wheel
-(*chakra*) of the Sun's chariot moves in its course round Meru.
-
-Vitihotra, Son of Priyavrata, is the king of this Varsha.
-
-His two sons Râmanaka and Dhâtaka are the lords of two Varshas named
-after them.
-
-The people of those Varshas worship Brahmâ by Yajna performances.
-
-Beyond the Ocean of pure water is the Lokâloka (Loka and Aloka)
-Mountain, dividing Loka, the regions lighted by the sun, from Aloka or
-the regions not lighted by the sun.
-
-As much land as there is between Mânasottara and Meru, so much golden
-land is there on the other side of the pure water ocean. It is like the
-surface of the mirror. If any thing is thrown on that land, it is not
-regained. It is therefore forsaken by all beings. [The land between
-Mânasottara and Meru is one krore and a half *plus* seven and a half lakhs.
-There is as much land on the other side of the Pure Water Ocean. There
-are living beings in that land. Beyond that is the golden land. That
-land is eight krores and thirty nine laksha yojanas wide. It is thus
-that the distance between Meru and Lokâloka comes to be 12 1/2 krores as
-mentioned below. This is also said in the Śiva Tantra.
-
-Two krores 53 lakshas and 50 thousand this is the measure of the seven
-Dvipas with the Oceans. Beyond that is the golden land which is 10
-Krores of Yojanas. This is used by the Devas as their play-ground.
-Beyond that is Lokâloka. The ten krores include the previously mentioned
-land, "Forsaken by all beings" — this is to be understood with the
-exception of the Devas, for it is mentioned as the play-ground of the
-Devas. *Śridhara.*]
-
-In order to understand the commentary of *Śridhara*, let us
-examine the figures.
-
-Jambu Dvipa with Ocean on one side of Meru::
-
- ... ... 150,000 Yojanas
-
-Plaksha Dvipa with Ocean on one side of Meru::
-
- ... ... 400,000
-
- Sâlmali Do. ... ... 800,000
-
- Kusa Do. .. ... 1,600,000
-
- Krouncha Do. .. ... 3,200,000
-
- Sâka Do. .. ... 6,400,000
-
- Pushkar Do. . ... 12,800,000
-
-Deduct Pure water Ocean as it is not
-included between Meru and
-Mânasottara::
-
- ... ... 6,400,000
-
- ------------
- 18,950,000
-
-Mânasottara stands half way in Pushkara, as it stands between two
-Varshas. Deduct distance between Mânasottara and Pure
-Water Ocean::
-
- ... 3,200,000
-
- ------------
- 15,750,000
-
-The distance between Meru and Mânasottara is 1 1/2 Krores
-and 7 1/2 lakhs.
-
-According to Śridhara, there is this much land on the other
-side of the Pure Water Ocean.
-
-Beyond that land is the Golden land which according to
-*Śridhara* is:
-
-::
-
- ... ... 83900000 Yojanas
-
- Thus we get Dvipas and Oceans ... 25350000 "
-
- Land beyond Pure Water Oceans ... 15750000 "
-
- The Golden land ... ... 83900000 "
-
- ----------
-
- 125000000 "
-
-Thus we get the 12 1/2 krores of Śridhara. Beyond the Golden
-land is the Lokâloka Mountain. This will also explain the quotation
-from Śiva Tantra. The following Diagram will partially illustrate
-the points.
-
-.. figure:: images/bhagap125.png
-
-::
-
- Lokâloka
-
- * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * *
- --------------------------------
-
- The Golden Land
- --------------------------------
-
- Land beyond Pure Water Ocean
- --------------------------------
-
- Pure Water Ocean
- --------------------------------
-
- P
- u
- s
- h ( * * Mânasottara
- k
- a
- r
- a
-
- -------------------------------
-
- Milk Ocean
- -------------------------------
-
- Sâkâ
- -------------------------------
-
- Sour Milk Ocean
- -------------------------------
-
- Krouncha
- -------------------------------
-
- Clarified Butter Ocean
- -------------------------------
-
- Kusa
- -------------------------------
-
- Wine Ocean
- -------------------------------
-
- Sâlmali
- -------------------------------
-
- Sugarcane Juice Ocean
- -------------------------------
-
- Plaksha
- -------------------------------
-
- Salt Ocean
- -------------------------------
-
- * Meru, Jambu
- -------------------------------
-
-
-The Lokâloka is the boundary of three Lokas, Bhûr, Bhuvar, and Svar.
-
-The rays of the numerous bodies from the Sun up to Dhruva illuminate the
-regions on the Triloka side of Lokâloka but they can never reach its
-other side. For such is the height and expanse of Lokâloka — (It is even
-higher than Dhruva. So it is the boundary of Trilokî. *Śridhara*).
-
-The Bhu-Golaka or the Bhûr system measures 50 Krores. And Lokâloka is
-one-fourth of that *i.e.* 12 1/2 Krores (on one side of Meru. *Śridhara*).
-
-Over this Lokâloka, Brahmâ placed 4 Elephant Kings in four different
-directions *viz:* Rishabha, Pushkarachûra, Vâmana and Aparâjitâ. This is
-for the preservation of the Lokas.
-
-Bhagavân Mahâ Purusha (Vishnu) Himself remains there. He infuses various
-powers into the Elephant Kings and into the Lokapâlas (preservers of the
-Lokas) Indra and others who are but His manifestations. He pervades all.
-He manifests His pure Satva. The characteristics of that satva are the
-eight Siddhis.
-
-Dharma, Jnâna, Vairâgya, Aisvarya &c., Vishvaksena and His other
-Companions are with Him. His own weapons are in his hands. He remains
-there for the good of all Lokas.
-
-To the end of the Kalpa, Vishnu remains in this way pervading all for
-the preservation of the Universe formed by His own Mâyâ.
-
-The measure of Aloka is also 12 1/2 Krores (on one side of Meru. *Śridhara*).
-
-Beyond Aloka is Visuddha (very pure region) where only masters of Yoga
-can go.
-
-The Sun stands in the centre of the Egg. That is also the middle ground
-between Svar and Bhûr. Between the Sun and the Circumference of the Egg
-is 25 Krores.
-
-The Sun is called Mârtanda (Mrita and anda) because in Mrita or dead
-matter he infused life as Vairâja. He is called Hiranya Garbha (Gold
-wombed) because he came out of the Golden Egg.
-
-The sun divided space into Bhûr, Bhuvar and Svar. The Sun divides the
-regions of enjoyment and Moksha. He divides the Narakas and Pâtâlas. He
-is the Âtmâ of Devas, men, animals, plants and other Jivas. He is the
-manifester of sight.
-
-SVAR AND BHUVAR.
-----------------
-
-**SKANDHA V. CHAP. 21.**
-
-The localisation, measure and other details of Bhûr have been given
-above. (By expanse 50 Krores and by height 25 Krores. *Śridhara*).
-
-The measure of Svar is the same as that of Bhûr — Just as one cotyledon
-gives the measure of the other cotyledon in a flower.
-
-Bhuvar is the connecting link of Bhûr and Svar.
-
-THE SUN.
---------
-
-**SKANDHA V. CHAP. 21-22.**
-
-The Sun from the Bhuvar Loka sends forth his rays to Trilokî.
-
-(Here follow astronomical details which need not be given.)
-
-When the Sun is between the Autumn and spring Equinoxes it is called
-Uttarâyana (or going towards the north.) Then the Sun's motion is said
-to be slow.
-
-When the Sun is between the spring Equinox and Autumn Equinox, it is
-Dakshinâyana (Going towards the south.) The Sun's motion is then said
-to be Quick.
-
-When the sun is at the Equinoxes it is Vishuva. The Sun's motion is then
-said to be Even.
-
-When it is Dakshinâyana, the days increase. When it is Uttarâyana the
-nights increase.
-
-The sages teach 9 Krores and 51 lakhs of Yojanas as the Circumference of
-Manâsottara.
-
-[On both sides of Meru up to Manâsottara is 3 Krores and 15 lakhs. The
-Measure of the above circle is obtained from this (diameter).
-*Śridhara*.]
-
-[A full diagram of the Bhûr system will now have to be given, to explain
-the above figures. For the sake of convenience, the Dvipa and its ocean
-are given as one.]
-
-.. figure:: images/bhagap128.png
-
- A diagram of the Bhûr system.
-
-::
-
- From Meru to Lokâloka on one side ... 12 1/2 Krores
- on both sides ... 25 "
- Loka loka on both sides ... 25 "
- Measure of Bhûr system ... 50 "
- Distance from Meru to Manasottora 15,750,000
- On both sides ... 31,500,000
-
-The Manâsottara range is a circle of which the last figure is the
-diameter.
-
-The circle is obtained by multiplying the diameter by a little
-over 3.
-
-The circle is thus given to be — 9 Krores and 51 Lakshas.
-
-The Manâsottara is the path of revolution of the sun round
-Meru.
-
-On the East side of Meru in the Manâsottara is the seat of Indra named
-Devadhânî.
-
-On the South side is the seat of Yâma named Sanyamanî.
-
-On the West is the seat of Varuna named Nimlochani.
-
-On the North is the seat of the Moon named Vibhavarî.
-
-Sunrise, midday, Sunset and night on those seats cause action and
-inaction in beings, according to the time with reference to the side of
-Meru.
-
-(For those that live to the south of Meru, their east &c. commence from
-the abode of Indra, of those that live to the west from the abode of
-Yâma, of the northern people, from the abode of Varuna, of the eastern
-people from the abode of the Moon. *Śridhara*.)
-
-Those that live on the Meru have the Sun always over their heads.
-
-The Sun's chariot makes one round along Manâsottara in one year. The
-wheel or chakra of the chariot is therefore called Sanvatsara.
-
-The 12 months are the 12 spokes of that wheel. The six seasons form 6
-arcs.
-
-The pole of that chariot extends to the top of Meru. The other end of
-the pole is on the Manâsottara. (It is either to be thought that the
-wheel is placed more than 50,000 Yojanas over the Manâsottara in the
-regions of air or the wheel is to be considered as high as that
-distance, otherwise the Manâsottara being 10,000 Yojanas high and Meru
-being 84 Yojanas high, 16 thousand being under ground, there will be a
-difference of planes in the Sun's revolution. *Śridhara*.)
-
-There is another movement of the Sun round Dhruva. The radius of that
-revolution is one fourth the distance between Meru and Manâsottara.
-(*i.e.* 1/4 X 15,750,000 = 3,937,500).
-
-The movement round Dhruva is caused by the action of air.
-
-The seat within the chariot is 36 laksha of Yojanas wide. The yoke is
-also of the same measure. The seven horses are the seven Vedic metres
-(Gâyatri, Ushnik, Anustup, Vrihatî, Pankti, Tristup and Jagati). They
-are driven by Aruna.
-
-The thumb sized Bâlikhilya Rishis stand in front of the chariot and
-chant hymns in honor of Âditya.
-
-THE PLANETS AND STARS.
-----------------------
-
-**SKANDHA V. CHAP. 22-23.**
-
-The moon is one laksha of Yojanas over the Sun. The growing Moon makes
-the day of the Devas and the waning Moon is the life of all Jivas, in
-fact he is Jiva.
-
-He is Manomaya, Annamaya and Amritamaya. From him therefore proceed the
-life and advancement of Devas, Pitris, Men, Animals and Plants.
-
-Two laksha of Yojanas over the Moon are the 27 Zodiacal constellations
-and also the star Abhijit ( a mysterious star between Uttarâshâdhâ and
-Sravanâ) attached to the wheel of time.
-
-Two laksha of Yojanas over them is Sukra or Venus. His movements are
-like those of the Sun. He is ever favourable to men. His progression is
-generally accompanied by showers of rain. He also subdues those planets
-that counteract the rains.
-
-Two laksha of Yojanas over Sukra is Budha or Mercury. He is much like
-Sukra in his movements and is generally favourable to men. But when he
-transgresses the Sun, there is fear of high winds, rainless clouds and
-drought.
-
-Two laksha of Yojanas over Budha is Mangala or Mars. He moves round the
-Zodiac in three fortnights. He is generally unfavourable to men, causing
-miseries, unless he proceeds by retrogression.
-
-Two laksha of Yojanas over Mars is Brihaspati or Jupiter. He moves in
-each sign of the Zodiac for one Parivatsara (year of Jupiter), if
-there is no retrogression. He is generally unfavorable to the Brâhmanas.
-
-Two laksha of Yojanas over Jupiter is Sanaischara or Saturn. He loiters
-in each sign of the Zodiac for thirty months. He completes his round in
-thirty Anuvatsaras. He is generally unfavourable to all and causes
-unrest.
-
-Eleven laksha of Yojanas over Saturn are the Rishis. Their influence is
-for the good of all people. They revolve round the Supreme abode of
-Vishnu.
-
-Thirteen laksha of Yojanas beyond the Rishis is Dhruva, which is the
-Supreme abode of Vishnu.
-
-All luminous bodies attached to the wheel of time move round Dhruva
-being propelled by Vâyu while Dhruva remains fixed.
-
-The planets and stars remain fixed in their relative positions, under
-the union of Prakriti and Purusha by the future made for them by their
-Karma.
-
-Some however say that the luminous bodies become fixed in their relative
-positions by the Yoga support of Vâsudeva, being held together in the
-shape of Sisumâra (the Gangetic porpoise). The Sisumâra has its face
-downwards and its body is coiled.
-
-Dhruva is at the end of its tail. Prajâpati, Agni, Indra and Dharma are
-in the lower part of the tail. Dhâta and Vidhâta are at the root of the
-tail. The seven Rishis are in the middle. On the right side are the
-fourteen Stars from Abhijit to Punarvasu. On the left side are the 14
-stars from Pushyâ to Uttara Sârhâ. So on, all the stars and planets.
-(For details refer to the original).
-
-The Sisumâra is the Universal manifestation of Maha Purusha.
-
-[The following Geo-centric diagram is given, as illustrative of the
-positions of the planets.]
-
-.. figure:: images/bhagap131.png
-
- Positions of the planets.
-
-THE PÂTÂLAS
------------
-
-**SKANDHA V. CHAP. 24.**
-
-Ten thousand Yojanas below the Sun is Râhu, son of Sinhika. Though an
-Asura, by favour of Bhagavân he became a planet and immortal too like
-the Devas.
-
-Ten thousand Yojanas below Râhu is the abode of the Siddhas, Châranas
-and Vaidyâdharas.
-
-Below that is the abode of the Yakshas, Râkshasas, Pisâchas, Pretas, and
-Bhûtas. This abode extends down to the regions of air and clouds.
-
-One hundred Yojanas below that is the Earth. The details of the Earth's
-surface have been given above.
-
-Underneath the Earth are the seven Patâlas: — Atala, Vitala, Sutala,
-Talâtala, Mahâtala, Rasâtala and Pâtâla. They are ten thousand Yojanas
-apart from each other.
-
-In these nether Svargas, Daityas, Dânavas and Nâgas dwell. Their
-enjoyments, power, joys and luxuries are even greater than those of the
-Devas of Svarga. Their houses, gardens and playgrounds are very rich.
-They are always joyous. They are attached to their wives, sons, friends
-and attendants. By the grace of Îsvara, their desires are always
-gratified.
-
-Mâyâ, the Dânava Magician, has built wonderful houses, gardens &c. in
-these regions with precious stones.
-
-There are no divisions of time, as the Sun's rays do not enter those
-regions and no disturbances from such divisions. All darkness is removed
-by the light of the precious stones on the head of the serpent king.
-
-The people of Pâtâla use divine herbs and medicines, and consequently
-they have no infirmities, diseases, old age, languor and offensive
-secretions.
-
-They have no death except by the Chakra of Bhagavân (*i.e.* final
-extinction).
-
-*Atala:* — Bala, the son of Maya resides in Atala (Maya is a masculine form
-of Mâyâ the root Prakriti). He created here 96 forms of Mâyâ. The
-Mâyâvins (those who practice Magic) still have recourse to those forms.
-When he yawns, three classes of women spring into existence viz:
-
-1. Svairini (self willed loose women),
-
-2. Kâmini (passionate women) and
-
-3. Punschali (unchaste women).
-
-If any one enters Atala these women completely allure him by their
-Hâtaka (golden) charm, and when the man is completely overcome by their
-allurements, he says "I am Îsvara", "I am Siddha."
-
-[The women are only forms of Mâyâ because Mâyâ is personified as an
-alluring woman. A man in Atala is completely under the domination of
-Mâyâ and becomes estranged from spirit. So Mâyâ is all in all to him and
-he knows no other.]
-
-*Vitala*: — Below Atala is Vitala. There Bhava (Śiva) the king of Gold
-reigns in company with his consort Bhavâni, attended by Bhûtas. He
-remains there for the benefit of the Prajâpati creation. The fluid of
-intercourse with Bhavâni gives rise to a river called Hâtaki (Golden).
-Agni kindled by Vâyu drinks up that river and gives out the gold called
-Hâtaka which is used in ornaments by the Asuras who dwell there.
-
-(We have known Śiva as the Astral Lord. We find him here engaged in the
-work of creation. The text speaks of a mysterious connection between him
-and the gold called Hâtaka. The occult varieties of gold such as
-Jâmvanada and Hâtaka form a fit subject of study. Hâtaka refers to the
-Prajâpati creation. There is duality in Vitala, as distinguished from
-the singleness of Mâyâ in Atala).
-
-*Sutala*: — Below Vitala is Sutala. There the renowned Bali son of
-Virochana still dwells. Vâmana, the Dwarf Incarnation of Vishnu, took
-away the Trilokî from him and replaced him here. His enjoyments even
-here are greater than those of Indra. He performs Sva-dharma and
-worships Vishnu. His sins are all removed.
-
-(A full account of Bali will be given below.)
-
-*Talâtala*: — Below Sutala is Talâtala. Mâyâ, the Dânava king, rules there.
-His "Three Puras" (abodes) were destroyed by Śiva who is hence called
-Tripurari. But Śiva favoured him again and placed him in Talâtala. He is
-the preceptor of all Mâyâvins. He is preserved by Śiva and he has no
-fear from Sudarsana (the chakra weapon of Vishnu, which symbolises
-Time.)
-
-(Bali and Mâyâ, Trilokî and Tripura, the seizure of one and the
-destruction of the other, the restoration of Bali to Sutala and of Mâyâ
-to Talâtala, the favour shown to them in those regions, the
-correspondences of Sutala and Talâtala are worth careful consideration.
-In the case of one, Vishnu or the Preservative aspect of the Second
-Purusha is the actor, and in the other, Śiva, the Destructive aspect.)
-
-*Mahâtala*: — Below Talâtala is Mahâtala. Many headed serpents, the progeny
-of Kadru, dwell there. The chief amongst them are Kuhaka, Takshaka,
-Kâliya, Sushena, and others. They are always afraid of Garuda, the
-Vehicle of Vishnu, and they are therefore seldom seen to indulge in
-pleasure-trips outside.
-
-*Rasâtala*: — Below Mahatala is Rasâtala; Daityas, Dânavas and Panis,
-named Nivatakavachas, Kâlakeyas and Hiranyapuravâsins dwell there. They
-are the enemies of the Devas. They are powerful from their very birth.
-They are subdued by the Sudarsana of Vishnu. They are like serpents.
-They fear even the threats of Saramâ, the bitch of the gods who is
-Indra's messenger to them. They fear Indra also.
-
-*Pâtala*: — Below Rasâtala is Pâtala. The Nâgas dwell there. Vasûki is
-their chief. The other principal Nâgas are — Sankha, Kulika, Mahâ Sankha,
-Sveta, Dhananjaya, Asvatara, and Devadatta. Their hood is very large and
-they are very furious. Some of them are five headed, some 7 headed, some
-10 headed, some a thousand headed. The precious stones on their hoods
-dispel all darkness in Pâtala.
-
-ANANTA.
--------
-
-**SKANDHA V. CHAP. 25.**
-
-At the root of Pâtala, thirty thousand Yojanas beyond, is the Tamas
-aspect of Bhagavân called Ananta. Those that worship the Chaturvyûha
-aspect call him Sankarshana. He has a thousand heads. The earth held up
-on one of these heads looks but like a mustard seed. When the time for
-dissolution comes, Ananta assumes His Tamas form and becomes Rudra — other
-wise called Sankarshana, a host of eleven, with three eyes, three tufts
-of hair and with tridents on their heads. At other times, Ananta
-withdraws His Tamas and abides for the good of all Lokas. His eyes roll
-as it were by intoxication. His garments are blue. He has one ear-ring.
-He has a plough on his back.
-
-THE NARAKAS.
-------------
-
-**SKANDHA V. CHAP. 26.**
-
-Where are the Narakas, O Rishi, asked Parikshit? Are they particular
-localities? Are they outside the Trilokî or inside?
-
-Suka replied: —
-
-They are inside the Trilokî on the south side below the earth, over the
-waters, where Agnishvâttâ and other Pitris deeply meditate on the
-welfare of their respective descendants.
-
-There, Yâma, the Death-god, metes out just punishment to the dead.
-
-There are twenty-one Narakas: —
-
-1. Tâmisra
-
-2. Andha Tâmisara
-
-3. Rourava
-
-4. Mahârourava
-
-5. Kumbhipâka
-
-6. Kâla Sutra
-
-7. Asipatravana
-
-8. Sûkara Mukha
-
-9. Andha Kûpa
-
-10. Krimi bhajana
-
-11. Sandansa
-
-12. Tapta Surmi
-
-13. Vajra-Kantaka Sâlmali
-
-14. Vaitarani
-
-15. Pûyôda
-
-16. Prânarodha
-
-17. Vaisâsana
-
-18. Lâlâbhaksha
-
-19. Sârameyâdâna
-
-20. Avichi and
-
-21. Ayahpâna.
-
-There are seven other Narakas:
-
-1. Kshâra Kardama
-
-2. Rakshogana bhōjana
-
-3. Sûlaprōta
-
-4. Danda Sûka
-
-5. Avata-nirodhana
-
-6. Paryâ vartana and
-
-7. Sûchi mukha.
-
-(For details of these Narakas, the reader is referred to the original.
-They are more for the exoteric than for the esoteric reader.)
-
-There are hundreds and thousands of such Narakas in the realms of Yâma.
-The vicious enter them by turns. The meritorious go to Svarga. But the
-Karma of men is not exhausted in Svarga or Naraka. For that which
-remains unexhausted, they enter life again by re-birth.
-
-(The mention of Pitris and Yâma connects the Narakas with the astral
-plane.)
-
-SKANDHA VI.
-===========
-
-THE STORY OF AJÂMILA
---------------------
-
-**SKANDHA VI. CHAP. 1-3.**
-
-Râjâ Parikshit asked how men could avoid Naraka.
-
-SUKA replied: — It is by Prâyaschitta (expiation) that men can avoid
-Naraka. But it is not Vedic Prâyaschitta, not fasting by Chândrâyana and
-other Vratas. These Vedic performances cannot root out vicious
-tendencies, for the performer is seen again to indulge in vices. They do
-not purify the mind. They simply counteract the Kârmic effect of the act
-for which Prâyaschitta is performed. The real Prâyaschitta is devotion
-to Vishnu.
-
-Ajâmila was the son of a Brâhmana. He was dutiful, virtuous, modest,
-truthful, and regular in the performance of Vedic injunctions. One day
-in obedience to his father he went into the forests and there collected
-fruits, flowers, sacrificial wood and *Kusa* — on returning he saw a Sudra
-in company with a slave-girl. He tried much to subdue his passions but
-did not succeed. He spent the whole of his patrimony to win the love of
-that girl. He gave up his own wife and kept company with that slave
-girl. He had by her several sons of whom the youngest was Nârâyana.
-Ajâmila lost all his good qualities in low company and he forgot his
-daily practices. To support the woman and her children, he had recourse
-to all sorts of vicious and unlawful acts. Nârâyana was the favorite
-among his sons. He caressed him always. At last his end approached. He
-thought even then of his youngest son who was playing at a distance.
-Three fierce-looking messengers of Yâma appeared, with ropes in hand.
-Terrified at the sight Ajâmila cried out "Nârâyana, Nârâyana."
-Instantly the Messengers of Vishnu appeared. At the time when the
-servants of Yâma were drawing out the Jiva from the heart of Ajâmila,
-the attendants of Vishnu stopped them with a strong voice. "But who are
-you" said they "to interfere with the just sway of Yâma." The bright
-attendants of Vishnu only smiled and asked: "What is Dharma? Does your
-lord Yâma hold the sceptre of punishment against all who perform Karma?
-Is there no distinction made?"
-
-The astral messengers replied: — "The performance of Vedic Injunctions is
-Dharma and their disregard is Adharma. This Ajâmila in his earlier days
-duly respected the Vedas. But in company with the slave-girl, he lost
-his Brahmânism, disregarded the Vedas and did things which a Brâhmana
-should not do. He justly comes for punishment to Yama."
-
-The attendants of Vishnu expressed wonder at these words. "And you are
-servants of him, who is called the king of Dharma, and you do not know
-that there is something above the Vedas too. This Ajâmila consciously or
-unconsciously took the name of Nârâyana and that saved him from your
-clutches. It is in the nature of fire to consume fuel and so it is in
-the nature of Vishnu's name to destroy all sins. If one unconsciously
-takes some powerful medicine, does it not have effect? It matters not
-whether Ajâmila meant his youngest son or not but still he took the name
-of Nârâyana. So you must retire."
-
-Wonder-struck the servants of Yâma left their hold over Ajâmila. They
-went away and complained to their Master. "There must be one law and
-one dispenser of that law. Otherwise some will be punished and others
-not. Why should there be this difference? We know Thee to be the sole
-dispenser of the Law for the vicious. But just now the attendants of
-Vishnu came and wrested from our hands a transgressor against the
-Vedas."
-
-"True my sons", replied Yâma, "there is some one above me and
-it is Vishnu. His ways are mysterious.
-
-"The whole Universe is in Him. His attendants always save His votaries.
-Only twelve of us know his Dharma, which is Bhâgavata and no one else.
-These twelve are Brahmâ, Śiva, Sanat Kumâra, Nârada, Kapila, Manu,
-Prahlâda, Janaka, Bhishma, Bali, Suka and myself."
-
-Ajâmila heard the conversation between the messengers of Yâma and
-Vishnu. He became sorely penitent (the repentance is strongly described).
-He overcame his attachments, left the house and went to Haridvâra.
-There he meditated on Vishnu with concentrated mind. The former
-attendants of Vishnu appeared once more and took him on a chariot to
-Vishnu Loka.
-
-THE PROGENY OF DAKSHA.
-----------------------
-
-**SKANDHA VI. CHAP. 4-6.**
-
-[We left the line of Uttânapâda with Daksha, the son of the Prachetas
-brothers. We were told of his work of creation in the Châkshasha
-Manvantara. But we have to take up the line just now, to introduce the
-story of Visva Rûpa.]
-
-Daksha first carried on the work of creation by Mânasic reproduction.
-But he found this sort of reproduction was not adequate for the
-enlargement of creation. He went to a place near the Vindhyas and prayed
-hard to Vishnu. Vishnu became pleased with his prayers and advised him
-to marry Asikni, the daughter of Prajâpati Panchajana. "Take her for
-your wife and have sexual intercourse with her. By sexual reproduction,
-you shall have a large progeny and that form of reproduction shall
-prevail among your sons too".
-
-By Asikni, Daksha had at first 10 thousand sons called Haryasva. He
-asked them to take up the work of creation. They went westwards to where
-the river Sindhu falls into the ocean. They began to make Tapas there
-for their progeny. Nârada appeared before them and dissuaded them from
-Pravritti Mârga. He gave them instructions for obtaining Moksha and they
-followed the path of its attainment.
-
-Daksha heard that his sons were killed by Nârada and he became very
-sorry.
-
-He again had one thousand sons names Subalâsva. They also went out to
-the very same place and prayed to Vishnu for progeny. Nârada again
-dissuaded them and they never returned to their father.
-
-Daksha became restless in sorrow and thus cursed Nârada on
-meeting him. "Thou shalt roam all over Trilokî and shalt find no
-resting place."
-
-Daksha had then 60 daughters. Ten he gave to Dharma, 13
-to Kasyapa, 27 to the Moon, two each to Bhûta, Angirasa, and
-Krisasva and four to Târksha.
-
-.. figure:: images/bhagap139.png
-
-THE PROGENY OF DHARMA.
-----------------------
-
-.. parsed-literal::
-
- (1) *By Bhânu*: — Devar-shabha or the chief Devas.
-
- (2) *By Lambâ*: — Vidyota (flash of lightning)
- |
- The clouds.
-
- (3) *By Kakud*: — Sankata
- |
- Kikata (the elementals presiding over
- earth-cavities).
-
- (4) *By Yâmi*: — Svarga.
- |
- Nandi.
-
- (5) *By Visvâ*: — The Visvadevas (Vedic-gods).
-
- (6) *By Sâdhyâ*: — The Sâdhyas — attainment of desires.
-
- (7) *By Mavutvatî*: — Marutvat and Jayanta, otherwise called Upendra.
-
- (8) *By Muhûrta*: — The Muhûrta Devas or Devas presiding over the
- moments.
-
- (9) *By Sankalpâ*: — Sankalpa (Desire).
-
- (10) *By Vasu*: The eight Vasus (Vedic-gods), *viz*
-
- (*a*) Drona = Abhimatî
- |
- --+---------+---+-----
- | |
- Harsha (Joy) Soka (Sorrow) &c.
-
-
- (*b*) Prâna = Urjasvati
- |
- --+---------------+-----+-----+---
- | | |
- Saha (strength) Âyus (age) Purōjava.
-
-
- (*c*) Dhruva=Dharanî
- |
- Different towns.
-
-
- (*d*) Arka = Vâsâna (tendency)
- |
- ---+-----+------+--
- | |
- Tarsha (desire) &c.
-
-
- (*e*) Agni (Fire) = Dhâra
- |
- --+----------------------+--+------------+--
- | | |
- Skânda Dravinaka &c.
- (otherwise known as (Gold, wealth)
- Kartikeya, the son
- of Śiva by Krittika)
- |
- Visâkha &c.
-
- (*f*) Dosha = Sarvarî (night)
- |
- Sisumâra (Gangetic porpoise the symbol of Trilokî).
-
-
- (*g*) Vastu (Dwelling place) = Ângirasi
- |
- Visvakarmâ (The cosmic manufacturer)
- |
- Châkshusha Manu
- |
- --+------+---------+---
- | |
- The Visvadevas The Sadhyas.
-
-
- (*h*) Vibhavasu = Ushâ (Dawn)
- |
- --+--------------+--+--------------+--
- | | |
- Vyushta Rochisha Atapa.
- (Dawn) (Bright, shining) (Sun shine)
- |
- Panchayâma
-
- (1 Yâma = 1/3 part of day
- = 3 hours. There are
- 8 yâmas in day and night.
- Pancha yâma = 5 yâmas
- when men do their work).
-
-[The 8 Vasus are sub-manifestations of Brahmâ or the creative Purusha.
-They are energies that help creation in various ways. They find no place
-in the Hindu worship now. They are invoked only in marriage ceremonies
-when their appropriateness is evident. The Vedic gods can be analysed
-thus:--::
-
- Purusha
- |
- --+------------------------+-----------------------+--
- | | |
- Creative or Brahmâ Preservative or Vishnu Destructive or Śiva
- 8 Vasus. 12 Âdityas. 11 Rudras.
-
-These are 31 gods. Then there are Prajâpati and Indra,
-making the number 33. The Brihat Âranyaka says that the 33
-Krores of Devas are only sub rays of these primary 33].
-
-
-THE PROGENY OF BHUTA.
----------------------
-
-*By Sarûpâ*: — Millions of Rudras and the chief Pretas.
-
-
-THE PROGENY OF ANGIRASA.
-------------------------
-
-(1) *By Svadhâ*: — Pitris (comet).
-
-(2) *By Sâti*: — The Veda known as Atharva-Angirasa.
-
-
-THE PROGENY OF KRISASVA.
-------------------------
-
-(1) *By Archis*: — Dhûma ketu (comet).
-
-(2) *By Dhishanâ*: — Vedasiras, Devala, Vayuna and Manu.
-
-
-THE PROGENY OF TARKSHA.
------------------------
-
-(1) *By Vinatâ*: — Garuda (the vehicle of Vishnu) and Aruna (the
-charioteer of the Sun.)
-
-(2) *By Patangi*: — Birds.
-
-(3) *By Yâminî*. — Moths and locusts.
-
-(4) *By Kadru*: — the serpents.
-
-*The Moon*: The Moon married the 27 stars. But he is consumptive (*i.e.*
-he is consumed?). Therefore he has no progeny. (What is meant by the
-consumption of a planetary body like the Moon?)
-
-
-THE PROGENY OF KASYAPA
-----------------------
-
-(1) *By Timi*: — Aquatic animals.
-
-(2) *By Saramâ*: — Wild beasts, such as Tigers.
-
-(3) *By Surabhi*. — Cloven-footed animals.
-
-(4) *By Tâmrâ*: — The Vultures.
-
-(5) *By Muni*: — The Apsarasas.
-
-(6) *By Krōdhavasa*: — Serpents such as Danda Suka and others.
-
-(7) *By Ilâ*: — Plants.
-
-(8) *By Suramâ*: — The Râkshasas.
-
-(9) *By Aristhâ*: — The Gandharvas.
-
-(10) *By Kâsthâ*: — Beasts other than cloven-hoofed.
-
-(11) *By Danu*: — 61 Dânavas the chief of them being Dvî Mûrdhâ, Sâmbara,
- Aristhâ, Hayagrîva, Vibhâvasu, Ayōmukha, Sanku Siras, Svarbhânu, Kapila,
- Putōma, Vrisha Pravâ, Eka-Chakra, Anutapana, Dhûmra-Kesa, Virupaksha,
- Vipra-chitti and Durjaya.
-
-Namuchi married Suprabhâ, the daughter of Svar-bhanu.
-
-King Yayâti married Sarmisthâ, the daughter of Vrisha-parvan.
-
-Vaisvanara was another son of Danu. He had four daughters. Upadanavi,
-Haya-siras, Pulōma and Kalaka. Pulōma and Kalaka had 60,000 valiant sons
-named Poulama and Kalakeya. Arjuna alone killed all of them in Svarga.
-Bipra Chitti had by his wife Sinhika 101 sons. The eldest of them is
-Râhu. The other hundred are Ketus. They all became planets.
-
-(12) *By Aditi*: — The 12 Âdityas — Vivasvat, Aryaman, Pûshan, Tvastri, Savitri,
- Bhaga, Dhâtri, Vidhâtri, Varuna, Mitra, Indra, and Vishnu. *Vivasvat* had
- by his wife Sanjnâ two sons Srâddhadeva Manu and Yâma (the death god),
- and one daughter the river Yamunâ. This Sanjnâ became also a mare and
- produced the twin Asvini Kumâras. He had also by Chaya two sons
- Sanaischara (Saturn) and Sâvarni Manu and one daughter Tapatî. Tapatî
- had for her husband Sanvarana. Mâtrikâ is the wife of *Aryaman*. He had by
- her sons called Charshani. (For Charshani *vide Suprâ*.) The human race
- has been moulded after them by Brahmâ. Pûshan is childless, and broken
- toothed. He partakes only of powdered food. This has been related in the
- story of Daksha. Rachanâ is the wife of *Tvastri*. She is the daughter of
- a Daitya. Prajâpati Tvastri had by her one son Visvarûpa. Though
- connected on the mother's side with the Asuras, Visvarûpa was made a
- Purohita by the Devas, when Brihaspati (Jupiter) their former preceptor
- left them.
-
-**SKANDHA VI. CHAP. 18.**
-
-*Savitri* had, by his wife Prisni, three daughters, Sâvitri (Gâyatri),
-Vyâhriti (Bhûr, Bhuvar, Svar, Mahar &c.) and the Trayi; (Rik, Yajur, and
-Sâman). His sons were Agnihotra, Pasu Yâga, Sōma Yâga, Chaturmâsya Yâga
-and the 5 Mahâ Yajnas.
-
-*Bhaga* had, by his wife Siddhi, three sons Mahimart, Vibhu and Prabhu and
-one daughter Âsis.
-
-*Dhâtri* had, by his wife Kuhu, one son Sâyam (evening), by his wife
-Sinivaû, Darsa (the new moon day), by his wife Râkâ, Prâtar (morn) and
-by his wife Anumati, Pûrnamâsa (full Moonday).
-
-*Vidhâtri* had, by his wife Kriyâ, five Agnis called Purishya. Charshani
-is the wife of *Varuna*. Bhrigu incarnated as his son. It is said that the
-great Rishi Vâlmika is also Varuna's son. Mitra and Varuna once felt
-love for Urvasî. Agastya and Vasishtha were then born of that Apsaras.
-
-*Mitra* had, by Revati, Utsarga, Arishta and Pippala.
-
-*Indra* had, by Paulomî, Jayanta, Rishabha and Midhusha.
-
-*Vishnu*, as son of Aditi, is known as the Vâmana incarnation. He had by
-his wife Kirti one son Brihat Śloka (great fame). His sons were Sambhoga
-and others.
-
-(13) *By Diti*: Hiranyakasipu, Hiranyâksha and the Maruts.
-
-THE STORY OF VIVSVARÛPA.
-------------------------
-
-**SKANDHA VI. CHAP. 7-8.**
-
-Indra surrounded by the Devas, was seated on the throne of *Trilokî*. He
-felt the pride of his position. Brihaspati, the preceptor and guide of
-all Devas came, but Indra did not rise up to receive him. Thus insulted,
-Brihaspati left the place at once and abandoned the Devas. The Asuras
-took this opportunity to put down the Devas and carried on a severe
-struggle under the lead of Sukra. The Devas were worsted in the fight
-and they went to Brahmâ for redress. Brahmâ advised them to accept the
-guidance of Visvarûpa, son of Tvastri. They gladly went to Visvarûpa and
-he consented to be their preceptor. Visvarûpa initiated Indra into the
-mysteries of Nârâyana Kabacha (an invocation to Vishnu which preserves
-one against all danger. The invocation must be read in the original, so
-no attempt has been made to render it into English). With the help of
-that Kabacha, Indra easily conquered the Asuras and firmly established
-once more the Kingdom of Trilokî.
-
-Visvarûpa had three mouths. With one he used to drink Sōma, with another
-he used to drink wine and with the third he used to take his food. While
-performing Yajna, he openly gave oblations to the Devas, but secretly
-reserved some for his mother's relations the Asuras. Indra once found
-out this treachery. He became angry and cut off the three heads of
-Visvarûpa. The Sōma drinking head became Châtaka (the Swallow, supposed
-to live only on rain drops). The liquor imbibing head became Chataka
-(the Sparrow). The food eating head became Tittiri (the francoline
-partridge). The sin of killing a Brâhmana attached to Indra. He divided
-it into equal parts and distributed them between earth, water, trees and
-woman. Earth accepted her part on receiving the boon that her cavities
-would be filled up by nature. But the sin manifests itself in the barren
-lands. The trees took their part in return for the boon that the wounds
-on their cuticle should naturally heal up of themselves. But the sin
-shows itself in the exudation. Water was persuaded by the boon that it
-could mix with any other substance. But the sin shows itself in bubbles
-and foam.
-
-THE STORY OF VRITRU.
---------------------
-
-**SKANDHA VI. CHAP. 9-13.**
-
-Tvastri became enraged at the death of his son. He gave offerings to
-Agni for the destruction of Indra. A huge and fearful Asura rose out of
-the sacrificial fire. The Devas threw their weapons at him, but he
-swallowed them all. Wonderstruck they prayed to Vishnu for help. Vishnu
-asked them to go to Dadhîchi and pray for his body and assured them that
-the weapon made of his bones by Visvakarmâ would cut off the head of
-Vritra. The Devas went to Dadhîchi and got his body. Visvakarmâ made the
-thunderbolt instrument (Vajra) out of his bones. Indra went with this
-instrument at the head of the Devas to fight with Vritra. *The fight took
-place at the commencement of Treta Yuga in the first Yuga cycle of
-Vaivasvata Manvantara,* on the banks of the Narmadâ. After a severe
-fight, the chances shewed themselves favourable to the Devas. The Daitya
-and Dânava chiefs began to shew their backs to the enemies. "What is
-this my companions?" exclaimed Vritra, "Is not death inevitable? And
-what death is more enviable than that with honor and glory? There are
-two modes of death, rare though they be, that are given the palm in all
-religious books — one is by control of the Prânas by means of Yoga and the
-other is by facing enemies foremost of all, in the battle field."
-
-But the Asuras heeded him not. The Devas ran after them. "O ye cowards?"
-exclaimed Vritra, "What glory do you gain by running after those that
-fly away. Come and approach those that are in the field." So saying he
-attacked Indra. Indra in anger threw a large club at him. Vritra easily
-took it up with his left hand. He struck it with force on the head of
-Airâvata, the elephant of Indra. The elephant receded 28 cubits and
-vomitted blood, The magnanimous Vritra seeing the distress of the animal
-did not strike it again. Indra softly touched the injured animal, trying
-to give it relief and he took respite for some time. Vritra remembered
-the wicked deeds of Indra and addressed him thus "O thou assassinator
-of a Brâhmana! Thou didst kill thy own Guru, my brother Visvarûpa. Thou
-didst raise faith and trust in my brother's mind and still thou didst
-kill that innocent, wise Brâhmana, your own Guru, having been initiated
-by him in Yajna. Your karma makes you worse than even Râkshasas. It is
-meet that I shall kill thee with this Trident and make over thy body as
-food for vultures. And if thou, O Indra, cuttest off my head, I shall be
-free from the bond of Karma, by offering my body as Bali (sacrificial
-food) to the animals. Here I stand before thee. Why dost thou not
-strike with the Vajra. Thou hast been favoured by Vishnu and by
-Dadhîchi. Victory and all the virtues always follow Vishnu. I will do as
-advised by my deity Sankarshana and attain after death the state of
-Yogins by sacrificing this body. O Bhagavat, may I ever and ever remain
-in the Service of thy votaries. This I deem a thousand times more
-desirable than the attainment of the Supreme Abode, or of Siddhis or of
-Mukti."
-
-Vritra then took the trident in hand and attacked Indra — Indra then had
-recourse to Vajra and he easily cut off both the trident and one hand of
-Vritra. Vritra took a club in the other hand and struck both Indra and
-the elephant. The Vajra slipped out of the hands of Indra and he felt
-ashamed to pick it up in the presence of his enemy. "Pick it up, O King
-of Devas, and kill your enemy. This is no time for shame or sorrow. It
-is not you or I that are the real actors. Bhagavân is guiding us all. He
-guides the whole Universe. Look at me. I have been worsted, hand and
-weapon gone, still I am trying my best to kill you. This our fight is
-but like the game of dice in which the life of one of us is the stake."
-
-Indra could not help wondering at the wisdom and magnanimity of Vritra.
-He exclaimed "O king of Dânavas! thou hast got over the Mâyâ of
-Vishnu. The Asura nature has altogether- left thee and thou art fixed in
-devotion to Vishnu. Verily thou art a Mahatma now."
-
-They again engaged in fight. This time Indra cut off both the club and
-the other hand with the help of Vajra — Vritra then opened his mouth and
-swallowed Indra. There was loud wailing and lamentation all round. But
-Indra broke through the interior of Vritra with the help of Vajra, and
-he then forcibly applied the bolt to cut off the head of Vritra. The
-bolt though actively employed could only sever the head of the Asura
-King in 360 days. The flame of self from Vritra's body merged in
-Shankarshana in the presence of the Devas.
-
-The sin of killing a Brâhmana a second time followed Indra in the form
-of a hideous old outcaste woman. He fled away into the Mânasa lake and
-entered the filament of a lotus stalk. He remained there concealed for
-one thousand years. King Nahusha reigned in Svarga during that time. But
-as he became maddened in pride, Sachi the wife of Indra made him a
-serpent. The Brâhmanas then called back Indra to Svarga, and he reigned
-there again.
-
-THE STORY OF CHITRAKETU.
-------------------------
-
-**SKANDHA VI. CHAP. 14-17.**
-
-Chitraketu, the King of Sûrasena had ten millions of wives, but he had
-no son. Rishi Angiras once came to him. The King expressed regret for
-his childlessness. Angiras performed a Yajna in honor of Tvastri, and
-gave the sacrificial remnants to the eldest wife. "You shall have a
-son, O King!" said Angiras. "But he will give you joy and sorrow
-both." In time the eldest Queen bore a son. Her co-wives grew jealous
-and poisoned the child. Chitraketu was deeply moved, and he wept
-profusely. At the time Nârada and Angiras came to him. They taught him
-the worship of Shankarshana. Chitraketu became fixed in the meditation
-of this second manifestation of Chaturvyuha, and this made him very
-powerful. He became the King of the Vidyâdharas.
-
-Once Chitraketu was roaming over the firmament on the chariot given him
-by Vishnu, when he saw Śiva surrounded by his attendants openly
-embracing His consort Bhâvanî. Chitraketu made some taunting remarks in
-the hearing of all. Śiva simply smiled, and so did His attendants. But
-Bhâvanî cursed Chitraketu with an Asura birth. Chitaketu accepted the
-curse with an unruffled mind, saying it was the way of all beings to
-meet with things pleasant and unpleasant in this perishable world, and
-he only asked Bhâvanî to pardon him, if he had offended her. "Look how
-bold the followers of Vishnu are!" exclaimed Śiva, "They fear no body
-in this world. I am also a follower of Vishnu. So I took no offence at
-the words of the King Vidyadhara."
-
-Chitraketu became Vritra by this curse, but his magnanimity and devotion
-to Vishnu were not lost.
-
-.. figure:: images/bhagap147.png
-
-THE DAITYAS.
-------------
-
-**SKANDHA VI. CHAP. 18.**
-
-.. parsed-literal::
-
-
- KASYAPA = Diti.
- |
- ---+-----------------+----------------+--
- | | |
- Hiranyakasipu Hiranyâksha 49 Maruts.
- = Kayâdhu = Bhânu
- |
- ---+-------------+---------+-------------+---------+---
- | | | | |
- Sanhrâda Anuhrâda Hrâda Prahlâda Sinhikâ
- = Mati = Suryâ. = Dhamanti = Drarvî. = Viprachit
- | | | | |
- Panchajana +----+---+ +-+----+ | Râhu.
- | | | | |
- Vâshkala. Mahisha. Vâtâpi Ilvalâ |
- |
- Virochana.
- Bali
- = Asanâ
- |
- --+----+------+--
- | |
- Bâna 99 sons.
-
-
-
-THE MARUTS.
------------
-
-**SKANDHA VI. CHAP. 18-19.**
-
-Diti was very much grieved by the loss of her sons, caused by Indra. She
-ardently wished to have a son who could kill Indra. With this object,
-she served Kasyapa with all her heart and pleased him much. Kasyapa
-offered to give her any boon, and she prayed for an immortal son that
-would kill Indra. Sorely perplexed in mind, the Rishi thought within
-himself of a device. He said "I grant you the boon, but you shall have
-to observe Punsavana Vrata for one full year." This is a Vaisnava Vrata,
-the performance of which requires absolute purity of body and mind.
-Kasyapa related the details to his wife, (for which refer to the
-original). His object was to give an immortal son to Diti and to purify
-her mind by this Vrata, so that she might cast, off all enmity against
-Indra. He also thought it possible that his wife might not observe the
-strict rules for such a long time. Diti however accepted the conditions,
-and she bore a son. Indra became very much frightened, and he closely
-watched his step mother to discover a breach of the rules. He followed
-and served Diti always and tried to please her. One day Diti became very
-much tired, and she fell asleep after eating before she could wash her
-hands, mouth and feet. Finding this opportunity, Indra, by his Yogic
-powers entered the womb and split the child into 7 parts. The Maruts
-wept and requested their half-brother not to kill them. Indra consoled
-them saying that they need have no fear from him, and he would make them
-his companions. He then split each of the seven into as many parts
-again. By the favour of Vishnu, the Maruts were not destroyed, but came
-out all alive from the womb of Diti. It was a little short of one year
-still. Indra made them drinkers of Sōma and his chief companions. Diti
-woke up, and she was astonished to find 49 sons by her. "Tell me Indra
-if thou knowest" said she, "how is it I have these 49 sons instead of
-one. Pray do not conceal any thing." Indra gave the whole story to Diti
-and expressed great repentance. He assured Diti that the Maruts would be
-his best companions. Diti's mind had been purified, and she allowed her
-sons to become Devas. Thus the Maruts, though born as Daityas, became
-immortal Devas. (Marut Vayu air. Vayu corresponds to the sense of touch
-and to vital energy).
-
-
-SKANDHA VII.
-============
-
-THE MYSTERIES ABOUT THE SURAS AND THE ASURAS.
----------------------------------------------
-
-**SKANDHA VII. CHAP. 7-1.**
-
-Râjâ Parikshit said: — "To Bhagavân, all beings are equal, and He is the
-dear friend of all. Why did he kill the Daityas for the sake of Indra, as
-if He was not above partiality. Supreme Bliss Himself, He had nothing to
-gain from the Devas. Being above the control of the Gunas, He had no
-fear from the Asuras, and he did not bear any unfriendly feeling for
-them. We are in doubt as to the virtues of Nârâyana. Please clear up the
-doubt."
-
-Suka replied: — Void of Gunas, without beginning, without manifestation,
-beyond Prakriti, Bhagavân pervades and permeates the Gunas of His Mâyâ.
-Hence His seeming relations. Satva, Rajas and Tamas are not His Gunas,
-but they are the Gunas of Prakriti. These attributes or tendencies of
-Prakriti do not all prevail at one and the same period; but they have
-got their periods of increase and decrease. (That is, since the
-beginning of the universe, the general tendency which guides all beings
-is different at different times. Thus at the very outset there was
-inertia, Tamas. This inertia was got over by Rajas, which predominated
-in the Prajâpatis, and the life-forms appeared on the globes. There was
-Tamas again in the mineral kingdom, which had to be conquered by Râjasic
-activity. And Rajas was in full swing till humanity reached a certain
-stage. Then Satva manifested itself for the evolution of men. The
-spiritual regeneration will be brought about by the ever increasing
-prevalence of Satva).
-
-When Satva prevails, Bhagavân favours the Devas and Rishis. When Rajas
-prevails, He favours the Asuras. When Tamas prevails, He favors the
-Yakshas and Râkshasas. He follows in fact the periodic tendency.
-
-It is Kâla (Periodicity) that now brings up Satva. So the Lord seems to
-favour the hosts of Devas, in whom Satva prevails. He also seems to put
-down the hosts of Asuras, who are opposed to the Devas being full of
-Rajas and Tamas.
-
-It is also to favour the Asuras that He kills them. For we have seen
-above, how the gate-keepers of Vishnu became Hiranyâksha and
-Hiranyakasipu by the curse of the Kumâra brothers. They had to become
-Asuras for three successive births. In the second birth, they became
-Râvana and Kumbhakarna, when they were killed by Râma. In their last
-birth, they became Shishupâla and Danta-vakra, when they were killed by
-Sri Krishna. Then they became finally liberated and restored to their
-place in Vaikuntha.
-
-(The Spiritual ascent commenced finally on the appearance of Sri
-Krishna. It was to prevail for the remaining life period of the
-universe. The Asuras had done their work by this time, and therefore
-they finally returned to Vaikuntha).
-
-THOUGHTS ON THE ABOVE.
-----------------------
-
-The Daityas and the Dânavas are both called Asuras. But there is a
-radical difference between the two classes.
-
-The Daityas are opposed to the Â-dityas. The root verb *dâ* means to cut
-to pieces, to separate. *Diti* is that which separates. *Aditi* is that
-which does not separate. Jivâtmâ is the same in all beings. One life
-principle animates all the forms of creation. The idea of separateness
-did not exist from before. The elementals that began life in this Kalpa
-from the spiritual plane, have hardly any idea of separate existence.
-The Devas and Pitris are described as classes (*ganas*), and not as
-individuals. In the Mineral Kingdom, again, there is no individual
-existence. Individuality has to be worked out, and the sons of Diti
-bring about this great work in the evolution of life forms.
-
-When we have the sense of separate existence strong in us, we become
-capable of further evolution. By our individual experiences, we know
-what is right and what is wrong, what is pleasurable and what is
-painful. Things that give joy give pain as well. It is the measure of
-pleasure or pain that teaches us what to covet and what to shun. Then we
-have the fact that by our very existence we have duties to perform. The
-teachings of other ages that are revealed to the Rishis and proclaimed
-by them, give us a better idea of things, and they tell us more than we
-can know of by our own experience. The Asuras lead us on and on, till we
-reach the highest point that, with a sense of individuality, we may
-attain.
-
-When the individual soul gathers all experience that may be acquired by
-the idea of separateness, it traces back its way to that spiritual home
-whence it came. In the return journey, it is helped by the Âdityas, who
-gradually efface the idea of separateness, by an ever increasing
-infusion of Satva: Vishnu himself became Âditya and taught men the
-unity of all souls.
-
-The Âdityas who guided the early elementals had to be crushed, so that
-separateness might grow. Pushan and Bhaga were therefore overpowered by
-the attendants of Śiva at the sacrifice of Daksha.
-
-The Âdityas who guide humanity in their return to spirituality are
-themselves high spiritual energies, the highest Devas of our Trilokî.
-
-Our evolution is thus two-fold — individual and non-individual. When we
-work as individuals, we are under the influence of Daityas. When we want
-to cast off separateness, we are under the influence of the Âdityas.
-
-In both cases, however, it is the bliss element in us that is worked on
-by the Daityas and A-dityas. This bliss element is our eternal heritage
-from Ishvara, and it is this element that saves us in our contact with
-manifold matter. The measure of bliss, (*ananda*), enables us to judge
-what matter to accept and what not.
-
-Individuality developed under Hiranyakasipu, and all sorts of blissful
-experiences were acquired. The sons of Hiranyakasipu were all called
-Bliss (Hrâda), but the perfection of Bliss (Pra-Hrâda) was in
-Prahlâda, He found out that the worldly joys were unreal, and that the
-real joy could be had only from Him above, who was joy itself.
-
-But Prahlâda did not realise that there was one life underlying all
-beings, and that all beings were essentially one and the same. He was
-separate in his devotion, though unselfish to the extreme. He knew that
-men had separate existences, and while he attained perfection, others
-did not. It was therefore his duty to raise others to his level. With
-all unselfishness and devotion, Prahlâda was an Asura, because he worked
-from the stand point of individual life. The foster-father of Sri
-Krishna was Nanda, the word meaning also bliss. But the bliss of Gopas
-and Gopis consisted in forgetting self altogether. The bliss that was
-then evolved will draw humanity to the highest level of spirituality in
-our Kalpa.
-
-The reign of the Daityas may be divided into three periods: —
-
-I. — The period of Hiranyâksha and Hiranyakasipu.
-
-II. — The period of Râvana and Kumbhakarna.
-
-III. — The period of Shishupâla and Dantavakra.
-
-
-I. *Hiranyâksha and Hiranyakasipu.*
-```````````````````````````````````
-
-Jaya and Vijaya are the outer aspects of Vishnu. Vishnu preserves the
-universe, and He preserves all beings. Existence, consciousness and
-bliss all proceed from Vishnu, and it is these essential attributes that
-bring about the involution and evolution of all beings. In minerals,
-there is existence, but it is Tâmasic. Consciousness and bliss are
-completely eclipsed by the Tâmasic opacity of gross matter.
-
-In the vegetables, there is existence and something more — the bare
-dawning of perceptive consciousness. There is predominating Tamas in the
-vegetables also. But Rajas also tries to manifest itself.
-
-In the animals, Rajas asserts itself by increasing activity, and by the
-action of the senses. The animals exist, they are conscious and they
-have blissful experiences.
-
-In men, Rajas plays the most important part. Through the ever increasing
-activities of mind and the development of consciousness, man runs after
-all sorts of experience, pleasurable and painful, till at last the idea
-of lasting and real bliss settles down in him, and he knows more of
-bliss than any other being in the universe. The future evolution of man
-lies in the permanence of spiritual bliss, which is purely Sâtvic in its
-character.
-
-Vishnu preserves all beings in their Tâmasic, Râjasic and Sâtvic stages.
-For preservation means the maintenance as well as the improvement of
-beings. Therefore preservation is Sâtvic, and Vishnu is the Preserver.
-We live and move onwards in all stages of our being. But in Râjasic and
-Tâmasic stages, it is the attendants of Vishnu, the door-keepers, that
-preserve us, and the Daityas are the lower manifestations of Jaya and
-Vijaya. One is Tâmasic and the other Râjasic.
-
-Hiranyâksha is Tâmasic. He represents the original inertia of matter,
-its primary resistance to the onward process of evolution. There was
-existence after Pralâyic sleep But it was homogeneous existence, with
-little or no phenomenal change. Varâha got over this homogeneal tenacity
-by the killing of Hiranyâksha, and he set going the process of planetary
-and individual life.
-
-Hiranyakasipu came next. He was the favoured son of Brahmâ. He helped
-the evolution of individual life. Minerals became vegetables. Vegetables
-became animals, and animals became men. The intellectual power of men
-rapidly increased, and there was material and moral progress. The limit
-of moral progress was reached by Prahlâda. But the ideal of Prahlâda was
-based upon the conception of differences and of individualities. It is
-for this reason that Varna and Ashrama Dharma, or the separate duties of
-life for separate classes of men, is dealt with in the discourses with
-Prahlâda.
-
-But though Prahlâda was a son of Hiranyakasipu, he was an exception to
-the general run of material evolution which was fostered by
-Hiranyakasipu. Hiranyakasipu hated the development of Sâtvic virtues, he
-hated Hari, the embodiment of Satva. Nrisinha killed the great Daitya,
-and Satva made its appearance in men.
-
-Hiranya means gold.
-
-Hiranyâksha is gold-eyed.
-
-Hiranyakasipu is gold bedded.
-
-
-II. *Râvana and Kumbhakarna.*
-`````````````````````````````
-
-Hiranyakasipu represented the gradual development of material and
-intellectual evolution, till the highest point was reached.
-
-Then there was a period of intellectual abuse. The Intellect of man
-tried to get a supremacy over the established order of things: Râvana
-sought to make Nature subservient to his own purposes. The universe
-existed for man, and not man for nature. This was the perverse idea that
-guided the people of the Atlantean Continent. The intellectual giants,
-maddened by this material grandeur, did not look for any world beyond
-the one they lived in. They cared not for Svarga, nor for the sacrifices
-that led to Svarga. The flow of evolution, the breath of Íshvara seemed
-to stand still for a time as it were. The human will tried to override
-the divine will. There was chaos and disorder, which tended to cause
-dissolution in the universe. Hence Râvana was a Râkshasa. The Tâmasic
-Kumbhakarna with his six-monthly sleep was the back ground of Râvana.
-
-The spiritual forces that were called forth to put an end to this state
-of things were equal to the occasion. The great Atlantean Continent was
-washed away by the sea. The sacred Gangâ came rushing forward from the
-heights of the Himalayas, and eventually Râma appeared to give a
-finishing stroke to the evolutionary work of the time.
-
-Vishvâmitra and others had paved the way for the great work undertaken
-by Râma. They propounded the Karma Kânda of the Vedas.
-
-Men who knew nothing but the joys and sorrows of this short span of
-earthly life, and whose ideas and aspirations were all confined to that
-life, made a great advance when they were taught of an existence after
-death. When they further knew that life in Svarga was infinitely happier
-and far more lasting than what they called life on this earth, they made
-the beginning of a really spiritual life. The Vedic Devas are permanent
-dwellers in Svarga, and the Vedic Sacrifices establish communion with
-them by means of Apurva, a spiritual force generated by the performance
-of sacrifices, and life in Svarga becomes prolonged for a very very long
-period. People took time to understand this truth, but in time they
-accepted the performance of Vedic Sacrifices as the only religion for
-man.
-
-There was however a re-action. The intellectual giants, called
-Râkshasas, looked down upon Vedic Sacrifices, and they did not care for
-any life after death. They were the worst enemies of the Vedic Rishis.
-
-Vishvâmitra took the help of Râma in protecting the Rishis in the
-peaceful performance of Yajnas.
-
-But people had grown old in their ideas about Vedic sacrifices. The
-first seceders were some Kshatriyas. They did not understand why Vedic
-Sacrifices should be the monopoly of Brâhmanas, and they aspired to the
-position acquired by them. The foremost of these Kshatriyas were the
-Haihayas and Tâlajanghas. But they were defeated by Parashurama, who
-re-established the supremacy of the Brâhmanas.
-
-But a silent revolution was going on, in which the Kshatriyas and
-Brâhmanas equally took part. King Janaka and Rishi Yajnavalkya gave the
-finishing stroke to the Upanishad movement, and side by side with Karma
-Kânda grew up the Jnâna Kânda of the Vedas. Râma brought the two
-divisions of the Vedas into closer union, as he was himself the resting
-place of both. And as Vishnu himself, He became the object of Upâsanâ.
-The three Paths appeared, that of Karma, Bhakti and Jnâna. Vedic
-Sacrifices held their own, and a school grew up which accepted these as
-the highest Karma which man could perform. Another school, following the
-very old teachings of Kapila, dissected the transformable parts in man
-and discriminated the same from the non-transformable. A sister school
-followed up the teaching with practices in conformity to these, and
-taught how to concentrate the mind on the discriminated Atmâ. Another
-school confined itself to the properties of matter and mind, soul and
-oversoul, and remained wonder-struck at the superior properties that
-divided Jiva from Íshvara. Schools of independent thought grew up. Each
-school had its followers. There were differences and dissensions. There
-was disunion, self-sufficiency, pride, envy, jealousy and other evil
-traits of human character that thinks too much of itself. Every one
-followed his own faith and hated the follower of other faiths. This was
-the cycle of Shishupâla and Dantavakta.
-
-Jarâsandha performed Vedic sacrifices, and he put in chains the
-Vaishnava kings. There were those who believed in the existence of two
-primary causes, (*Dvivid*). Men, like the king of Kashi, prided themselves
-on mock wisdom. Religious faiths existed in all possible shades, and
-their difference was accentuated by dogmatism and mutual jealousy. "The
-Vedas are different, the Smritis are different. He is not a Muni, who
-has not some distinctive opinion of his own." This well known verse
-related strictly to the period of which we are now speaking. Shishupâla
-had respect for the Munis. He was essentially a man of the period.
-
-Sri Krishna taught harmony. He gave the essence of all religions, the
-eternal truths that formed the ground work of all faiths. He proclaimed
-in the clearest language possible the One underlying the Many, the
-eternal Brahmân as forming the essence of Jiva and Ishvara. He
-particularly emphasised the relations of man, Íshvara and the universe,
-and the duties that followed from these relations. Religion became a
-science, the law universal, and all teachings found there respective
-places in the universal religion which He proclaimed. The Rishis bowed
-down their heads before Him. The Upanishads were never explained so
-lucidly before. The key-note of all truths and all religions was
-unravelled beyond all doubt. Such knowledge could proceed only from
-Ishvara Himself. The Rishis recognised Sri Krishna as the Lord. But
-Shishupâla was slow to believe in this novel revolution. He did not
-understand why the Rishis gave the first place to Sri Krishna at the
-Rajasûya sacrifice performed by Râjâ Yudhisthira. The difference formed
-a religion with Shishupâla. But the age of differences was doomed. The
-age of unity, of harmony, of spiritual glory was now to reign in the
-Universe. Hundreds and hundreds of years have passed away, but the
-scriptures one and all proclaim the glory of the Lord Sri Krishna. What
-He has done for our universe, we shall see later on.
-
-Danta-vakra was the Tâmasic counterpart of Shishupâla.
-
-The Asuras advanced as the Kâlpic age advanced. There was no end of
-advancement from the standpoint of self. There is no big jump from
-individual self to universal self. Though the essential idea of
-spirituality is unity and the essential idea of materiality is
-diversity, the one idea develops into the other idea, by an ever
-widening view of things. Our duties enlarge. Our relations increase. The
-range of life widens, till it includes the life in Svarga. Vedic Yajna
-is then performed, though from a pure motive of self-advancement. The
-advanced self comes very near to the universal self. The performance of
-Vedic sacrifices is Asuric in so far as it is selfish, but it minimises
-the self of earthly existence, and gives a transitory character to our
-worldly joys and sufferings, and it gives the idea of an enlarged self,
-of widened existence and of higher duties. The Karma Kânda of the Vedas
-therefore opens the door widely to real spiritual life.
-
-This explains why Vishvarupa, an Asura, guided the Devas for some time.
-The three heads of Vishvarupa represent the three Vedas. The swallow
-head is the Rik, the sparrow head is the Sâman, and the Tittiri head is
-proverbially the Yajur. This refers to the prevalence of Karma Kânda.
-But when better times came, Indra killed Vishva-rûpa. The place of
-Vishva-rûpa was however speedily taken, up by Vritra. And Indra had
-recourse to Atharva, the fourth Veda and to Dadhîchi, a votary
-(represented as the son) of Atharva Veda, the very ideal of
-self-sacrifice.
-
-And who is this Vritra? The Vedas say: — *"Sa imân lokân Avrinot etat
-Vritrasya Vritratvam."*
-
-He spread over (*vri*) all these Lokas, this is the Vritraship of Vritra.
-
-The Bhâgavata says: — "These Lokas are spread over by him
-in the form of Tvashtri's Tapas. Hence he is called Vritra." VI. — 9-xviii.
-
-The invocation of Tvashtri is thus described in the Bhâgavata: — "Rise up,
-O Indra — Shatru, never give up enmity." VI — 9-xii.
-
-The word *shatru* means enemy. Tvastri meant to say "he who is to become
-the enemy of Indra." But by proper grammatical construction, the
-expression means, he of whom Indra is to become the enemy. The
-invocation was therefore defective and it produced a contrary result.
-Pânini points this out as an apt illustration of what bad grammar leads
-to.
-
-The Vedas thus speak of the invocation: — "As he said-*Svâha*! O
-Indra-Shatru! rise up — so Indra became the enemy of Vritra."
-Notwithstanding his wisdom, Chitra-ketu was anxious to have a son. He
-wept bitterly, when the son was lost. He was a votary of Sankarshana,
-who presides over Ahankâra or Egoism. So by devotion he became the king
-of the Vidyâdharas. This selfish devotion, the worship of Gods for the
-gratification of selfish aspiration, which is so universal, is Vritra.
-
-Vritra was killed by a weapon made of the bones of Dadhîchi the Rishi of
-self-sacrifice. We want to kill thee for thy bones, for they will be of
-service to the universe, so said the Devas. And Dadhîchi felt the height
-of pleasure in giving himself completely up, that the universe might
-prosper.
-
-We are told that the fight with Vritra took place in the Vaivasvata
-Manvantara. The readers will easily understand why this is so.
-
-The fight between the Devas and the Asuras is only a counterpart of
-struggles on our earth between the forces of materiality and
-spirituality. With the appearance of Lord Krishna, the ascendancy of the
-Asuras is virtually over, and however self-seeking we may be by our
-nature, we bow down before the ideal of unselfishness, of One Life
-pervading all beings, so prominently held before us by that greatest of
-all Avatâras, and the circle of those that follow this ideal is daily
-increasing.
-
-But why is Atharva Veda spoken of as the Veda of unselfishness? The
-popular idea about that Veda is quite the contrary.
-
-People resort to it for Tântric malpractices. The Vajra or thunderbolt
-is an electric current, which in the hands of Indra has the power of
-spiritualisation. The Asuras dread the subtle forces of nature which
-reach them even in the regions of Pâtâla. Who knows what purpose the
-electric discharges serve in the economy of nature? Who knows of the
-subtler currents of spiritual forces that silently bring about the
-grandest revolutions in nature? Atharva Veda inculcates an intimate
-acquaintance with the subtle forces of nature. It opens the door alike
-to White as well as Black Magic. But at the present day, the Black Magic
-only survives, making the Atharva a name of opprobrium and reproach.
-
-Marut is Vâyu. The Maruts are forms of Pranic energy.
-They are 49 in number, corresponding to the 49 forms of Agni.
-These 49 forms include all sorts of Pranic energy in the spiritual,
-intellectual and material planes. As the whole process of evolution
-is dependent on life activities, and as life itself is essentially divine,
-the Maruts are the companions of Indra. As by life, we understand
-individual life as imprisoned in Jivic centres, the Maruts are by birth
-Daityas.
-
-We have lingered so long over the Daityas. The Dânavas are
-also called Asuras, but they are essentially different from the Daityas.
-Every individual has got two aspects — Prâkritic and Purushic. The
-Purusha aspect in him is limited by the individual Prakriti. The
-individual limitation appertains to the Daityas. The Prâkritic
-element in man is Dânavic. The chief Dânava, Mâyâ, is an
-aspect of Mâyâ. Mâyâ is a great magician, as the essence of Prakriti
-is illusion. Duryodhana and his brothers could not discriminate
-between the illusory aspect of the assembly-ground prepared by
-Mâyâ. To the Pândavas, the followers of Sri Krishna, there was no
-illusion. The Dânavas lead men away from spirituality, so much so that
-they may be estranged completely from their spiritual nature. These
-dark forces in nature have no redeeming feature in them. Fortunately
-for the history of the universe, we do not hear much of them.
-
-
-THE STORY OF HIRANYAKASIPU.
----------------------------
-
-**SKANDHA VII. CHAP. 2-4.**
-
-Upon the death of Hiranyâksha, Hiranyakasipu collected his companions
-and told them that Vishnu was no longer keeping that neutrality and
-impartiality which he had observed of yore. On the contrary, he had
-taken the side of the Devas, under the pretence of Upâsanâ.
-
-He then consoled his nephew and his brother's wife by words of wisdom
-explaining to them the transitory character of the world and the
-permanence of Âtmâ. He also told them several stories to illustrate the
-point.
-
-Hiranyakasipu vowed enmity to Vishnu. He prayed hard for immortality
-and supremacy over the Trilokî. Brahmâ became pleased with his
-asceticism and enquired what boon he wanted. Said Hiranyakasipu: — "Let
-me have no death from any one created by Thee. Let not those that are
-not created by Thee kill me inside or outside, by day or by night, with
-any weapon, either on the earth or in the air. Let no man or animal,
-with or without life (asu) Deva, Daitya or serpent kill me. As thou art
-without a rival in battle, the one glorious lord of all beings and all
-Lokapâlas, so let me be too. Let me possess all the Siddhis, (Anima
-&c.)" Brahmâ said, Amen.
-
-Hiranyakasipu then ruled the Universe. He took the place of Indra. All
-the Devas worshipped him.
-
-Brâhmanas and other Grihasthâs performed Yajna in his honor and gave
-offerings to him. The earth yielded plenty even without much effort.
-There was prosperity all around. The Shastras were however not duly
-respected. (All this is a description of the material period, the reign
-of Materiality). A long, long time passed on in this way. At last the
-Lokapâlas could bear it no longer. They prayed to Vishnu for relief. The
-Devas heard a voice from heaven "Wait ye all. The time has not yet come
-for the fall of Hiranyakasipu. He shall be the enemy of his own son. I
-kill him then." — Assured by these words, the Devas went to their own
-place.
-
-HIRANYAKASIPU AND PRAHLÂDA.
----------------------------
-
-**SKANDHA VII. CHAP. 4-9.**
-
-Hiranyakasipu had 4 sons. Of these Prahlâda was great in his virtues.
-He was respectful, well-behaved, truthful, self-controlled, friendly to
-all beings, and great in his devotion. Even in his infancy, he gave up
-play and constantly meditated on Vâsudeva. The things of the world had
-no relish for him. In the exuberance of devotional feelings, he
-sometimes laughed, sometimes wept, sometimes sang and sometimes danced.
-At times when the feelings were profound, he remained quiet with hair
-standing on end while tears flowed down his cheeks.
-
-Shanda and Amarka, sons of Shukra, had charge of the education of
-Prahlâda. He heard and learned whatever they had to say, but he inwardly
-did not like the teachings about mine and thine and about the transitory
-things of the world.
-
-Once Hiranyakasipu placed Prahlâda on his lap and asked him — "What do
-you consider to be righteous (*Sâdhu*)?"
-
-Prahlâda replied: — "Human souls enshrined in bodies are always distracted
-on account of false perceptions. O great Asura, I therefore consider it
-righteous to leave the house, which like a dark well causes the downfall
-of Âtmâ, in order to go to the forest and take the shelter of Vishnu."
-
-Hiranyakasipu smiled and said: — "It is thus that boys are spoiled by
-others. Take him back to the house of his teachers and let them see that
-Vaishnavas in disguise may not confound his Buddhi."
-
-The teachers brought him to their house and asked him in gentle and
-sweet words: — "Child, do not conceal any thing from us. We are your
-teachers. Tell us whether this perversity is spontaneous in you or
-whether it is acquired from others." Said Prahlâda: — "I and others,
-this is mere false perception caused by the Mâyâ of Bhagavân. So
-salutations to Him. When Bhagavân becomes kind, it is then only that the
-difference-making perception of men disappears. As the iron moves of
-itself in the presence of a magnet, so the distraction in my Budhi, if
-you like to call it so, rises of itself in the presence of Vishnu."
-
-"Get the cane," said one of the teachers, "This wicked boy will put us
-all to shame. He is a disgrace to his family. It is but meet to punish
-him. The Daityas are sandal trees and this boy is a thorn plant amongst
-them. Vishnu is the one for the extirpation of the sandal forest, and
-this boy is his handle."
-
-They threatened Prahlâda in various ways and taught him Dharma, Artha
-and Kâma, and the different devices to subdue one's enemies. At last
-they thought Prahlâda had been well trained. So they took him to the
-king.
-
-The king embraced the child and said "Prahlâda, my boy, you have been
-so long with your teachers. Tell me what you have learned, as the best
-of all."
-
-Prahlâda replied: — "Hearing of Vishnu, recital of His glory, constant
-remembrance of Him, attendance on Hari, His worship, adoration, service,
-and friendship, and offering oneself entirely to Him this is ninefold
-Bhakti. This Bhakti is to be offered to Vishnu and acted upon. This I
-deem to be the best teaching."
-
-Hiranyakasipu reproved the teachers in anger. They told him, it was
-neither from themselves nor from any one else that Prahlâda had these
-teachings, but that they were spontaneous with him. The Asura king then
-addressing his son said: — "If you have not learned these things from
-your teachings, whence could you have such a vicious inclination."
-
-Prahlâda replied: — "Inclination for Vishnu does not come to the
-Grihasthâ either from himself or from any other. One blind man cannot
-lead another. It is the company of Mahâtmâs alone that can give such an
-inclination."
-
-Hiranyakasipu could bear it no longer. He threw down the child from his
-embrace, and asked the Asuras to kill him at once or expel him. They
-cried out "kill him, kill him," and struck the five year old child with
-their spears. But Prahlâda was deeply concentrated in Bhagavân, so he
-felt not the spears at all. This put Hiranyakasipu in fear, and he
-devised means to kill the boy.
-
-He tried big elephants, venomous serpents, Tântric practices, throwing
-down the child from the hills, enclosing him in cavities, poisoning,
-starvation, cold, air, fire, water, but failed to kill his innocent son.
-He then thought his end was near at hand and became melancholy. Shanda
-and Amarka told him not to entertain fears, but to wait till Shukra
-came. The king asked them to take charge of the boy once more. They
-again commenced to teach him their sciences. One day the teachers left
-the house on business. The boys were all engaged in play, and they
-invited Prahlâda into their midst. Prahlâda took the opportunity to
-instruct the boys. He explained to them in eloquent terms the
-transitoriness of all joys and sorrows and the vanity of all worldly
-attachments. He taught them the imperishable character of Âtmâ, and
-dilated on its relation to the body and the universe. He then preached
-in glowing words friendliness to all beings and devotion to Bhagavân. He
-then told the boys that he had learned these things himself from Nârada.
-
-The boys expressed wonder, for they knew Prahlâda to have been always
-under the tuition of Shanda and Amarka.
-
-Prahlâda informed them that when Hiranyakasipu had gone to the Mandâra
-mountain for prayer, the Devas attacked his kingdom, and Indra carried
-away his wife. Prahlâda was then in her womb. Nârada kept Hiranyakasipu's
-wife in his own Ashrama till he had taught to her, more for the
-child in the womb than for the mother, the whole of Âtmâ Vidya.
-
-Prahlâda again continued the discourse and impressed on his companions
-in the most eloquent words, full of wisdom, the utility and nature of
-devotion. (The original discourse will repay perusal).
-
-The teachers returned and found the contagion of Vaishnavism had also
-spread amongst other boys. They instantly reported the matter to
-Hiranyakasipu. The king became all wrath and angry. He sent for Prahlâda.
-Prahlâda approached him with all respect and humility. The king
-thundered forth thus: — "What makes thee so often disobey me, thou vile
-enemy of thy own race? Dost thou not know that I will instantly put
-thee to death? All Trilokî dreads me and trembles when I am enraged. But
-thou dost break my words without the least fear in thy mind."
-
-"Father," said Prahlâda, "Bhagavân is my only strength. He is not only
-my strength, but also yours and that of the whole world. Look upon all
-as your own self, father."
-
-"Unfortunate that thou art", said Hiranyakasipu, "Tell me, who else is
-there besides myself whom thou callest Bhagavân or Íshvara. Where is he?"
-Said Prahlâda, "He is everywhere."
-
-"Why not then in this pillar?"
-
-"Yes, I see him there."
-
-"Well, let me sever your head from your body and see how your Hari can
-preserve you."
-
-So saying, Hiranyakasipu took sword in hand and violently struck the
-pillar with his fist. A great noise was heard at the time, and the
-fearful Nrisinha came out of the pillar, half man, half lion. Hiranyakasipu
-with wonder saw He was neither man nor animal. Nrisinha placed
-the Asura king on his thighs and tore him with His nails to death. (For
-a description of Nrisinha and of the fight refer to the original).
-
-The Devas all collected and prayed to Him one after the other. But
-Nrisinha was still in a rage and they dared not approach Him. Brahmâ at
-last sent Prahlâda to pacify Him.
-
-Prahlâda approached Him slowly and prostrated himself at His feet;
-Nrisinha became full of tenderness and placed his hand on the head of
-Prahlâda. That divine touch removed all evil from Prahlâda and illumined
-his mind with Brahmâ Vidya. He then broke forth into a prayer, (perhaps
-the most sublime in the Bhâgavata Purâna).
-
-THE PRAYER OF PRAHLÂDA
-----------------------
-
-**SKANDHA VII. CHAP. 9.**
-
-"Brahmâ and other Devas, Rishis and wise men, full of Satva, have failed
-to adore Thee in suitable words. How can this Asura boy please Thee, O
-Hari: But I think, it is not wealth, good birth, beauty, asceticism,
-learning, power, intellect, or even Yoga that is so much suited for the
-worship of Parama Purusha as Bhakti. It is by Bhakti that the elephant
-king pleased Bhagavân. *Even a Chandâla, (an outcaste) is much superior
-to a Brâhmana, who has all the 12 virtues, but has no devotion to
-Vishuu.* For the Chandâla who offers his Manas, his words, his Karma, his
-wealth and even his Prâna to Vishnu, purifies not only himself, but his
-whole line, while, the proud Brâhmana does not even purify himself."
-(Without devotion, the virtues only serve to increase pride. They do not
-purify the mind. *Śridhara*.)
-
-(The Almighty Vishnu does not want any offering from the ignorant for
-himself. He is possessed of all things. But the man who gives offerings
-to Him can alone keep them to himself, for verily the paintings on the
-real face are to be seen in the image. The self in man is only a
-reflection of Âtmâ or Manas. Therefore if a man does any thing that
-affects his Manas only, it does not concern his real self. If an
-offering is made to Íshvara, that reaches his real self).
-
-"Therefore though of low birth, I have no hesitation in reciting thy
-glory as much as I can, for such a recital is sure to purify a man.
-
-"Withdraw, O Lord! this terrible form, and be cooled. Look! the world
-trembles at Thee.
-
-"I am not afraid, however, even of this form, as I am afraid of the wheel
-of births. Give shelter at thy feet, that I may gain Moksha.
-
-"I have been scorched by the fire of misery in all births. The only
-remedy is devotion to Thy service. For Thy servant by Thy favor gets the
-company of Mahâtmâs. By their company, he gets rid of all worldly
-attachments and sings the glory of Bhagavân. Then the miseries of life
-cannot overpower him.
-
-"The parents are not the protectors of the child; medicine is not the
-remedy for the diseased; the boat is not a shelter for the drowning;
-for they cannot save from a recurrence of evils. And even the little
-that others do is promoted by the Prompter of all.
-
-"When Purusha wishes, Mâyâ disturbed by Kâla creates the Sûkshma Sharira,
-headed by Manas. That Manas is drawn into a world of recurring births,
-characterised by the transformations of Mâyâ": (5 Jnanendriyas, 5
-Karmendriyas, 5 Bhûtas and Manas). "I am being squeezed in this wheel,
-like the sugar-cane in the mill.
-
-"Draw me unto Thee, O Lord! or I am lost in the whirl."
-
-(Some platitudes and a short account of the part taken by Vishnu in the
-creation follow).
-
-"Thou dost incarnate as man, animal, Rishi and Deva in order to guard all
-beings, to destroy the enemies of the world and preserve Dharma,
-according to the requirements of every Yuga. But in Kali Yuga, Thou
-concealest Thyself. Hence (from manifestating only in three Yugas), Thou
-art called Triyuga.
-
-"Lord of Vaikuntha, this mind does not take pleasure in discourses about
-Thee, as it is vitiated, prone towards the outside, unmanageable,
-passionate and affected by the three promptings — joy, sorrow and fear.
-How can I with such a mind think of Thee?
-
-"I am drawn on all sides by the Indriyas, and I am as miserable as a man
-with many wives.
-
-"I am not the only sufferer. Look! all men remain fallen by their own
-karma in the Vaitarani (River at the gate of Yâma) of recurring births.
-They are afraid of births and deaths and of danger from each other. They
-are mutually both friends and enemies. Take pity on these bewildered
-creatures, O Thou that art on the other side of the river, and preserve
-them this very day by taking them across the Vaitarani (*i.e.* the
-relativity's of Trilokî existence).
-
-"O guide of the Universe! what is thy difficulty in saving all men? For
-Thou art the cause of the creation, preservation and destruction of the
-Universe. Thou hast much kindness for the ignorant. Thou art the friend
-of the afflicted. What then by saving us only who serve thy favorite men
-the Mahâtmâs (for, those who serve the Mahâtmâs are already saved).
-
-"O Thou Supreme, I am not the least anxious for myself about the
-Vaitarani (Trilokî existence), however difficult to cross it may be, for
-my mind is plunged in the nectar ocean of singing thy glory. But I mourn
-for the ignorant, those that care only for the gratification of the
-senses and for the means of such gratification while they remain
-estranged from Thee.
-
-"Generally, O Deva! the Munis are desirous of their own Moksha, they
-hold their tongue, and roam in solitude without caring for the good of
-others. But I do not like to be liberated alone, leaving behind me the
-afflicted round me; I find no other shelter for these misguided people,
-besides Thee.
-
-"They are not happy, O Lord, in the enjoyment of the objects of the
-senses. For like itching, it is not a pleasure by itself but seems to be
-so, as long as Thou art not known.
-
-"It is said that holding the tongue (*mouna*) vowed observance (Vrata),
-sacred knowledge (Sruta), austerity (Tapas), reading (Adhyayana), the
-observance of rules pertaining to one's caste (Sva Dharma), exposition
-of Shastras (Vyâkhyâ), living in solitude (Rahas), recital of Mantra
-(Japa), and Samâdhi also lead to Moksha. But generally it is seen that
-these are only means of livelihood for those that have no control over
-their senses. And for proud people they are sometimes the means of
-livelihood and sometimes not. But pride in itself is not a good thing.
-
-"Thou art not separate from the Universe. Both cause and effect are thy
-forms. It is not by avoiding the ways of Universe but by seeing Thee
-everywhere by means of Bhakti, that the right course is followed. It is
-by striking one stone against another that fire comes out, and not
-otherwise."
-
-[Let the words of the Asura boy resound from one end of India to the
-other. Let the sublime words of compassion and universal love be written
-in characters of gold, and let them be engraven in the hearts of all
-Indians]. Prahlâda was made the king of the Asuras.
-
-VARNA AND ASHRAMA.
-------------------
-
-**SKANDHA VII, CHAP. 11 TO 15.**
-
-Nârada related the story of Prahlâda to King Yudhisthira at the Rajasûya
-sacrifice. That story revealed the highest devotion that was possible
-for a Jiva to attain with the idea of separate existence. But separation
-also gives rise to the idea of difference. And as differences become
-established in society, duties and relations become manifold.
-Yudhisthira therefore appropriately asked Nârada about the Varnâsrama
-duties.
-
-The general rules to be observed by all castes are first given, ethical,
-spiritual and devotional. The specific duties and indications of each
-caste are then given, much the same as given in Manu Sanhitâ, as also
-the duties of women. The following significant passage occurs at the end: —
-
-"The indications of each caste are given above (e.g. restraint of the
-senses, contentment, &c., for Brâhmanas; courage, strength, &c., for
-Kshatriyas; reverence, energy, &c., for Vaishyas; and humanity,
-service &c., for Shudras). If however the indications of one caste are
-found in a man belonging to another caste, he is to be specified by the
-caste of his indications and not the caste of his birth." VII — 35.
-
-The commentary of Śridhara is explicit on this passage. This shews the
-liberality of the Bhâgavata Purâna. According to this Purâna, the
-divisions of caste at the present day, (for one must not forget that the
-Vaishnava movement belongs comparatively to a later period), are not to
-be determined by birth, but they are indicated by the virtues of each
-particular individual.
-
-The duties of each Âsrama are next enumerated in detail. The enumeration
-follows the Smritis, with a word for Bhakti Yoga where necessary. Some
-very useful hints are given for a Grihasthâ, for which please refer to
-the original.
-
-The paths called Pitriyâna and Devayâna are next described. Hints on
-Yoga and the recital of Pranava are also given.
-
-.. clearpage::
-
-SKANDHA VIII.
-=============
-
-YAJNA.
-------
-
-**SKANDHA VIII. CHAP. 1.**
-
-An account has been given above of the progeny of Devahûti and Prasuti.
-Yajna is the son of Akuti. In the First Manvantara, when Asuras and
-Râkshasas were going to devour Manu, Yajna killed the former, with the
-help of his sons, the Yâma Devas. He ruled over Svarga as the Indra of
-that Manvantara.
-
-[This brings us to the end of the 1st Manvantara. The narration at
-several places took us to later Manvantaras, and the account of the
-Asuras especially took us to Vaivasvata Manvantara. The account of the
-first Manvantara is illustrative of the succeeding Manvantaras. Details
-have therefore been given at times which might not properly pertain to
-the 1st Manvantara, but which fit in with other Manvantaras at those
-stages of the narration. Necessarily the account of the succeeding
-Manvantaras is very meagre.]
-
-**END OF THE FIRST MANVANTARA.**
-
-
-THE SECOND MANVANTARA.
-----------------------
-
-**SKANDHA VIII. CHAP. 1.**
-
-Svârōchisha is the 2nd Manu. (Svârōchisha = Self refulgent). He is the
-son of Agni; Dyumat, Sushena, Rochishmat and others are the sons of
-this Manu. (Dyumat and Rochishmat also mean bright, refulgent). Rochana
-was the Indra (Rochana = bright illuminating). Tushita and others were
-the Devas. Urjastambha and others were the seven Rishis well versed in
-Brahmâ Vidyâ.
-
-There was one Rishi named Veda Siras. His wife was Tushitâ. He had by
-her *Vibhu*, the Avatâra of this Manvantara. Vibhu took the vow of
-Brahmâcharya and never married. 80,000 Rishis learned his Vrata.
-
-(The Second Manvantarâ is in Theosophical language the second ascending
-half of the 1st round. The spiritual character of this Manvantara is
-manifest from the use of words meaning "bright," "refulgent." The
-Avatâra is Vibhu or All-pervading. The vow of Vibhu also denotes
-spirituality. Agni also, the father of the Manu, is almost a name for
-spirituality).
-
-
-
-THE THIRD MANVANTARA.
----------------------
-
-**SKANDHA VIII. CHAP. 1.**
-
-The third Manu is Uttama, son of Priya Vrata. Pavana, Srinjaya,
-Yajnahotra and others were his sons. The sons of Vasistha, Pramada and
-others, were the seven Rishis.
-
-Satya, Veda Sruta, and Bhadra were the Devas. Satyajit was Indra.
-
-Dharma had by Sunritâ one son named Satya-Sena. He was the Avatâra of
-this Manvantara. He was born with others called Satya-Vrata. He killed
-wicked Yakshas and Râkshasas given to falsehood, and Bhûtas who injured
-others.
-
-[The characteristic mark of this Manvantara which is the first half of
-the second Round is Truth. Satya or Truth enters into the names of one
-class of Devas, of the Indra and of the Avatâra. The name of the
-Avatâra's mother was also truth. The Yakshas and Râkshasas were given to
-falsehood].
-
-
-
-THE FOURTH MANVANTARA.
-----------------------
-
-**SKANDHA VIII. CHAP. 1-4.**
-
-The fourth Mann was Tâmasa, brother of Uttama. He had ten sons, Prithu,
-Khyâti, Nara, Ketu and others.
-
-Satyaka, Hari and Vira were the Devas. Triśikha was Indra.
-
-Jyōtirdhâman and others were the seven Rishis. The Vedas had been lost
-in time. The sons of Vidhriti, called Vaidhritis, however preserved them
-by their own energy. They are also the Devas of this manvantara.
-
-The Avatâra Hari incarnated as the son of Harimedhas by Harini. He saved
-the Elephant king from the crocodile.
-
-
-
-THE STORY OF THE ELEPHANT KING.
--------------------------------
-
-**SKANDHA VIII. CHAP. 2-4.**
-
-An elephant king resided on the summits of Trikûta. He roamed about with
-his female herd, intoxicated with the juice that exuded from his
-temples. Finding a lake, he plunged himself into its waters and quenched
-his thirst. He then took water in his trunk and passed it on to the
-young herd and the females. A powerful crocodile attacked him in rage.
-They fought for one thousand years, each trying to draw the other unto
-him. The elephants on the bank raised a piteous cry, but they could not
-be of any use to their companion. The Elephant King got tired at last,
-but the crocodile being in his own element did not feel any fatigue. The
-elephant devoutly and ardently prayed to the supreme Purusha. In
-response to that prayer, Hari appeared with the Devas, seated on the
-back of Garuda. He drew out the crocodile, cut off its head with the
-chakra and thus saved the Elephant King.
-
-The Elephant was a Gandharva, named Hûhû. He was playing with his wives
-in a tank. Rishi Devala went there to bathe. The Gandharva drew the
-Rishi himself by his feet. The Rishi cursed him to become a crocodile.
-The elephant was king Indradyumna of Pandya. He was under a vow of
-silence while engaged in meditation. Rishi Agastya came with his
-disciples, but the king could not receive him with any word of welcome.
-"O thou of untrained intellect like an elephant, be an elephant
-thyself." Such was the curse of the Rishi to him.
-
-[The Elephant represents the characteristic Jiva of this Manvantara. The
-elephant becomes excited and mad when the juice exudes from his temples.
-In the story, madness represents the prevalence of Kâma. The elephant
-was passionately attached to his wives. The Jiva had given himself too
-much to Kâma, and he was carried away helplessly by the demon, he knew
-not where. His better sense could not prevail without some extraordinary
-help and that help was given by Hari, an incarnation of Vishnu. Possibly
-the story represents the development of animal instincts].
-
-
-
-THE FIFTH MANVANTARA.
----------------------
-
-**SKANDHA VIII. CHAP. 5.**
-
-Raivata was the fifth Manu. He was the brother of Tâmasa. His sons were
-Arjuna, Bali, Vindhya and others. Vibhu was Indra. Bhûttaraya and others
-were the Devas.
-
-The seven Rishis were Hiranya-romay, Vedasiras, Urddhabâhu and others.
-
-The presiding deity of Vaikuntha incarnated in partial manifestation as
-the son of Subhra and Vikuntha. He was the Avatâra of this Manvantarâ.
-[This is the first half of the Third Round. The incarnation of the Lord
-of Vaikuntha may have some significance, but what is not clear from the
-text.]
-
-
-
-THE SIXTH MANVANTARA.
----------------------
-
-**SKANDHA VIII. CHAPTER 5.**
-
-The Sixth Manu was Châkshusha, son of Chakshus. Pûru, Pûrusha, Sudyumna
-and others were his sons. Mantra Druma was Indra. Apya and others were
-the Devas; Haryasma, Dviraka and others were the Rishis.
-
-The Avatâra was Ajita, son of Vairaja by Deva-Sambhûti. He assumed the
-form of Kûrma or the Tortoise, and helped in the churning of the Milk
-Ocean.
-
-
-
-THE CHURNING OF THE OCEAN.
---------------------------
-
-**SKANDHA VIII. CHAP. 5-12.**
-
-In the fight with the Asuras, the Devas lost their lives. They fell down
-and did not rise up again. By the curse of Durvâsas, Indra and the three
-Lokas became shorn of Srî or Lakshmî (wife of Vishnu in Vaikuntha:
-Preservative energy). Consequently there were no performances such as
-Yajna. (Durvasas once saw Indra on the elephant Airavata. He gave him
-the garland of his own neck. Indra proud of his own Srî or wealth,
-placed the garland on the head of the elephant. The elephant threw it
-down and tore it to pieces with his feet. Durvâsas got angry and cursed
-Indra that he and his Trilokî were to lose Srî). Indra did not know what
-to do and the Devas all went over to the seat of Brahmâ on the top of
-Meru. Brahmâ, saw the Lokapâlas lifeless and lustreless, as it were, the
-Lokas beset with evils and the Asuras full of life and energy. He
-meditated on Parama Purasha with concentrated mind and then addressed
-the Devas thus.
-
-"Purusha has resort to Rajas, Satva and Tamas respectively for Creation,
-Preservation and Dissolution. This is just the time for Preservation.
-For the good of all beings, He shall now be possessed of Satva. So let
-us take the shelter of the guide of the universe. He shall now befriend
-the Devas and do what is best for us."
-
-The Devas with Brahmâ then went to Ajita. Brahmâ prayed to Him as the
-Preservative aspect of Virât Purusha. Vishnu appeared before the Devas
-and addressed them thus: —
-
-"The Asuras favored by Sukra are now victorious. Make peace with them so
-long as you are not strong yourselves. Lose no time in churning the Milk
-Ocean for Amrita in concert with the Asuras. By drinking Amrita even
-dead persons become immortal. Throw all creepers and herbs into that
-ocean. Make Mandâra mountain the churning rod and make Vasûki the rope.
-Then with my help, churn the ocean with all diligence. The Asuras shall
-have all the trouble to themselves, while you shall reap the fruits. If
-the Asuras ask for any concession, you had better approve of that. Do
-not be afraid of any poison that may arise. Have neither greed nor anger
-nor desire in respect of the things that will arise."
-
-So saying Vishnu disappeared. The Devas went to the Asura King Bali and
-Indra explained to him what Vishnu had said about the churning. The
-Asuras approved of the plan and made friends with the Devas. They then
-went together and uprooted the golden mountain Mandâra and carried it
-towards the ocean. After going a long way, they felt fatigued and
-dropped the mountain. Several Devas and Asuras were crushed by its fall.
-Vishnu appeared on Garuda and revived them all. He then easily placed
-the mountain on the back of Garuda and went towards the ocean, followed
-by the Devas and Asuras.
-
-The Serpent King Vasûki was assured of a share in Amrita and he
-consented to become the rope. The Mountain was then surrounded by
-Vasûki. Vishnu followed by the Devas held the mouth of the serpent. But
-the Asuras said: — "We have learned the Vedas, we know the Sâstras, it
-is improper for us to hold the tail of a serpent. We will not do that.
-It is inauspicious." Vishnu smiled. He and the Devas gave up the mouth
-end and held the tail.
-
-The churning then commenced. The Mountain was however heavy and it sank
-down to the bottom of the ocean. The Devas and Asuras became mournful.
-Vishnu then assumed the form of a Tortoise, went into the water and
-raised the Mountain. He then remained like a Dvipa one lakhsa Yojanas in
-expanse with the mountain on his back. He infused his influence all
-round. Energised by Him, the Devas and Asuras vigorously carried on the
-churning. At last fire and smoke came out from the thousand mouths of
-Vasûki. This overpowered the Asuras and the Devas — but the Devas were
-refreshed by clouds, rains, and winds sent by Vishnu.
-
-After a good deal of churning, poison came out first. It spread out on
-all sides and the Prajâpatis and their progeny in terror took the
-shelter of Śiva. Śiva felt compassion for them and with the approval of
-Durgâ, he drank up the whole of the poison. It made his throat blue.
-
-The Churning recommenced. Out came Surabhi (the fabulous cow of plenty).
-The Vedic Rishis took that Cow for the necessaries of Yajna. Then came
-the horse Uchchaih-Sravas. Bali desired to have it. But Indra as
-directed by Vishnu made no desire. Then came the elephant Airavata, then
-the 8 space elephants and their 8 female partners.
-
-Next arose Kaustubha, the celebrated lotus-colored gem. Vishnu wished to
-have it as an ornament for His breast. Next came Pârijâta, then the
-Apsaras.
-
-Illumining all sides with her lustre arose Lakshmî. All paid homage to
-her. She looked on all sides, but found none, whom she could accept. If
-there was an ascetic he could not control his anger. If there was a
-Jnâni (sophist) he could not get over attachments. There might be a
-Mahâtmâ, but he had not conquered his passion of love. How could he be
-called Îsvara, who depended on others, (and no one but Îsvara could
-claim Lakshmî). If there was Dharma any where, there was not
-friendliness for all beings. If there was sacrifice, it was not for
-liberation. There was power but it could not resist the flow of time. If
-there was one void of likes and dislikes, he did not take a companion.
-If there was any one long lived, he had neither good nature (*Sila*) nor
-auspiciousness (*Mangala.*) If one had good nature and auspiciousness, he
-was not long lived. If one had all the Virtues he was out of his element
-with her. If he was all that she wanted he did not want her.
-
-Considering everything, Lakshmî at last accepted Vishnu for her husband.
-He placed her on His breast. She favored the Devas, so they became
-possessed of all the virtues. She showed indifference to the Asuras, so
-they lost their might, energy and modesty and became greedy.
-
-Then arose a lotus eyed girl called Vâruni (Spirituous liquor.) The
-Asuras accepted her.
-
-Then arose Dhanvantari, part of a part of Vishnu, with a pot of Amrita
-in hand. Seeing the pot of Amrita, the greedy Asuras took that by force.
-They quarrelled with each other, some saying "First myself," "First
-myself," others saying "Not you" "Not you," whilst the weaker amongst
-them finding that they were going to be deprived, cried out in jealousy
-"The Devas are also entitled to an equal share. They have also toiled
-with us."
-
-At this time Vishnu became a most beautiful young woman. She filled the
-hearts of the Asura Chiefs with passion. They asked the tempting girl to
-settle their differences and to make a proper distribution of Amrita
-amongst them. "But how can you trust a woman," said the girl. But the
-Asuras had fallen in love with her, so they made over the Amrita pot to
-her without further thought. She consented to distribute Amrita on the
-condition that the Asuras should put up with whatever she did, right or
-wrong. The Asuras consented. She then made the Devas and Asuras sit in
-two separate rows. She distributed the whole of the Amrita amongst the
-Devas. Only one Asura, named Râhu, sat with the Devas. The Sun and the
-Moon pointed him out to the girl Vishnu. Vishnu then and there severed
-the head from the body of the Asura, but as the head had touched Amrita,
-it became immortal. Brahmâ made it a planet. Râhu still pursues the Sun
-and Moon at eclipses out of enmity.
-
-When the Amrita was wholly spent, Vishnu assumed His own form and in the
-presence of all left the place on the back of Garuda.
-
-The Asuras found they had been deceived and they became very angry. They
-could not bear the success of their enemies but they instantly engaged
-in fight with them. The fight was personal between the chiefs of both
-sides. (It is interesting to note the antagonistic names, as they give
-the correspondences between the Deva and Asura chiefs.) Indra fought
-with Bali, Kârtikeya with Târaka, Varuna with Heti, Mitra with Praheti,
-Yâma with Kalanâbha, Visvakarmâ with Mâyâ, Tvastri with Sâmbara, Savitri
-with Virochana, Aparajita with Namuchi. The Asvini Kumâras with
-Vrishaparvan, Sûrya (Sun) with the hundred sons of Bali, Vâna and
-others, Chandra (Moon) with Râhu, Vâyu with Puloman, Bhadra Kali with
-Sumbha and Nishumbha, Vrishâkapi with Jambha, Vibhavasu with Mahisha,
-the sons of Brahmâ with Ilvala and Vatapi, Brihaspati with Sukra, Sani
-with Naraka, the Maruts with the Nivâtakavachas, the Vasus with the
-Kaleyas, the Visvadevas with the Poulamas and the Rudras with the
-Krōdhavaśas. (Those who want to make a deep study will do well to note
-these correspondences as they will serve to explain points which I have
-not touched upon as beyond the scope of the present work).
-
-The Asuras used all the weapons of tempting Mâyâ and conquered the
-Devas, Vishnu then came to their rescue and they became victorious (The
-details of the fight might be interesting from an occult point of view,
-for which the reader must refer to the original.)
-
-Śiva heard that Vishnu had assumed an enchanting female form. To satisfy
-his curiosity he went to Him with Bhâvanî. Vishnu assumed that form
-again to satisfy Śiva. The Astral Lord became passionate and ran after
-that female form and embraced her. The female Vishnu got out of the
-embrace and re-assumed His own form. Śiva was then restored to himself.
-
-THOUGHTS ON THE ABOVE.
-----------------------
-
-We have already seen that the ascent of spirit commenced in the
-Vaivasvata Manvantara. If the fourteenth Manvantara or the second half
-of the Seventh Round he left out of consideration, as the Manvantara of
-Dissolution or Pralaya, the middle of the remaining 13 Manvantaras will
-be in the Vaivasvata Manvantara. But the ascent could not commence
-without preparation. That preparation was made in the Châkshusha
-Manvantara or during the latter half of the Third Round.
-
-Srî or Lakshmî is the Sâtvic energy of preservation. This energy was so
-much overpowered by Materiality, that she was not to be found in
-Trilokî. The spiritual forces, the Devas, lost life and energy. The
-Asuras were at the height of their power. But as the ascending arc was
-near at hand, the Devas were promised Amrita *i.e.* immortality for the
-remaining part of the Kalpa. But that Amrita was to be obtained, the arc
-of spiritual evolution was to be raised by the churning of the ocean of
-Milk.
-
-The ocean of Milk does not appertain to Jambu Dwipa, but it is the
-ocean of Saka Dwipa. The seven oceans are transformations of Prakriti,
-differing in the admixture of Satva, Rajas and Tamas and determining the
-character of the globe they surround. Vishnu, as the Third Purusha, is
-the divine source of evolution in every Jiva. The seat of that Vishnu is
-the ocean of Milk, the ocean where Satva prevails.
-
-It is Vishnu who from His seat in the Ocean of Milk sends down Prânic
-Energy and the mineral becomes a vegetable. He sends down the power of
-perception and then the power of conception and the vegetable becomes an
-animal and at last a man. Throughout this course of evolution, there is
-a development of the self element in us. There is no idea of self in the
-mineral or in the vegetable. It faintly asserts itself or rather makes
-an effort to assert itself in the animal kingdom. The early history of
-humanity is the development of the selfish element in him. The Jiva has
-two sides in himself and non-self. The self side is caused by limitation
-due to his own senses They put him in contact with the outside world,
-and make him a centre of sense perceptions. He becomes lost entirely in
-the sense products, which form a world by themselves. The non-self side
-of a Jiva, is his spiritual nature. He begins with this spiritual
-nature. But the development of selfishness eclipses this nature, the
-true, the real nature of Jiva, and he identifies himself entirely with
-the acquired and false nature.
-
-Then comes a crisis in the evolution of Jivas. Were men to be lost for
-ever to their spiritual, their real nature? Were they to be tempted
-away by the senses, which had done their work of training, past all
-chance of return?
-
-Vishnu, the God of human evolution, willed otherwise. He caused a
-re-adjustment of the Daivic and Âsuric forces, and the Devas by His help
-got the better of the Asuras. This is the churning of the Ocean of Milk.
-It averted a crisis and is therefore a great event in the history of the
-Universe.
-
-The Asura element could not be altogether wiped away. For the Deva or
-spiritual nature evolves out of Asura or selfish and material nature.
-Unselfishness grows out of selfishness, spirituality rises out of
-materiality.
-
-In the act of churning, the Devas could not do without the Asuras.
-Churning itself, implies the action and reaction of two contending
-forces. "Make peace with them, as long as you are not strong
-yourselves." The compromise of the Devas with the Asuras is the
-development of spiritual faculties out of the personal element in man.
-It is the grafting of higher Manas on lower Manas. The element of mind
-is in the Asuras as well as in the Devas. But the Asuric or lower mind
-thinks of self as separate from other selves. The Daivic or higher mind
-breaks through the trammels of personality and finds oneness all round.
-
-To use a better expression, we shall say higher self and lower self,
-rather than self and non-self.
-
-Jivas are carried on in their course of life evolution by the force of
-past tendencies, and nature unaided produces the personal man. But when
-the past tendencies are exhausted, there is nothing to keep on the Jivas
-in their course of evolution.
-
-Kûrma comes to the help of humanity at this stage. He gives a new power
-to men, the power of discrimination. With this power men become free
-agents, and they become responsible for their actions. They then
-generate new Karma for themselves, which takes them through infinite
-births and becomes a most potent factor in their future evolution.
-
-The three Purushas have three Oceans as their correspondences. The first
-ocean (Kârana) gives the materials of the Jiva body. The Second ocean
-(Garbhoda), gives the germs of all Jivas. The third (Kshira) is the
-ocean of Jiva evolution. This ocean is churned for the spiritual
-evolution of Jivas, and it yields all that is necessary for that
-evolution. Vishnu himself appears as Kûrma and becomes the sustaining
-force of that evolution.
-
-It is a Kâlpic revolution. Vasûki sustains the earth and its inhabitants
-for one Kâlpic period. The thousand hoods represent the thousand Maha
-yugas of every Kalpa. The Asuras held the mouth end of the serpent king
-and the Devas held the tail end. And the Devas acted wisely. For as the
-Kalpa waned, they got the supremacy.
-
-The tortoise thrusts out its limbs and draws them in. Man is drawn
-outside by his senses during material descent and he is drawn in by his
-spiritual ascent. It is by the power of discrimination when fully
-developed that a man returns to his higher nature.
-
-Srî or Lakshmî is the divine energy of Vishnu. She is the Energy of
-preservation, of evolution and progress She works out all that is good,
-all that is beautiful, and all that is powerful in this Universe. The
-possibilities of purely material development or of Nature's own
-evolution, are limited, and they are worked out in time. Then there is a
-void. There was this void in our universe and Trilokî become deprived of
-Sri. This was the curse of Durvasas, an Avatâra of Śiva.
-
-The Churning took place as a remedy for this evil. Fresh forces had to
-be brought into requisition, fresh elements that could secure the
-spiritual evolution of the universe. Lakshmî herself reappeared in a
-most enchanting form, as the energy of a new evolution, the very best
-that man was capable of. The necessaries of this evolution also appeared
-and became powers in the hands of those that had to take part in the
-spiritual evolution of the universe.
-
-All evolution is preceded by dissolution. Unless we give up the evil
-element in us, we can not acquire the good. The evil has to be destroyed
-and the Lord of destruction, in his infinite compassion, accepted this
-poison for himself, to do away with the evils of the Universe.
-
-The Poison only opens the door for Amrita, the spiritual nectar. The
-famous Purusha Sukta says: — "He placed Amrita or eternal bliss in the
-higher three Lokas." The Bhâgavata renders this famous saying into the
-eighteenth sloka of the 6th. chapter of the Second Skandha. Commenting
-on this sloka, Śridhara says, bliss in our Trilokî is only transitory
-and the dwellers of Mahar Loka have also to leave their abode for the
-higher Jana Loka, when they are oppressed by the fire of Kâlpic
-dissolution. Amrita was secured to the higher Lokas, as there is no
-selfishness in them. (III. 10-9.) Could the Asuras, the gods of
-selfishness, aspire to have life immortal and unlimited bliss. Vishnu
-decided otherwise.
-
-The way was thus prepared for the Vaivasvata Manvantara, when men
-learned to discern between right and wrong.
-
-THE SEVENTH MANVANTARA.
------------------------
-
-**SKANDHA VIII. CHAP. 13.**
-
-Srâddha Deva son of Vivasvat or Sûrya is the seventh Manu. He is
-reigning at present. Ikshvâku, Nabhaga, Dhrishta, Saryâti, Narishyanta,
-Nâbhâga, Dishta, Tarusha, Prishadhra, and Vasumat are his ten sons.
-
-The Âdityas, the Vasus, the Rudras, the Visvadevas, the Maruts, the
-Asvini-kumaras and the Ribhus are the Devas. Purandara is their Indra.
-Kâsyapa, Atri, Vasistha, Visvâmitra, Goutama, Jamadagni and Bharadvâja
-are the seven Rishis.
-
-The Avatâra of this Manvantara is Vâmana, the youngest son of Aditi by
-Kâsyapa.
-
-(The Purâna will revert to this Manvantara after giving a general
-account of the succeeding Manvantaras).
-
-THE EIGHTH MANVANTARA.
-----------------------
-
-**SKANDHA VIII. CHAP. 13.**
-
-Sâvarni is the son of Vivasvat by his wife Châyâ. He shall be the eighth
-Manu — Nirmoka, Virajaska (without Rajas) and others shall be his sons.
-Sutapas, Viraja (without Rajas) and Amrita Prabha shall be the Devas.
-Bali, son of Virochana, shall be the Indra.
-
-Gâlava, Diptimân, Parasurâma, Asvatthâma, Kripa, Rishya Sringa and Vyâsa
-shall be the seven Rishis.
-
-Sârvabhouma, son of Devaguhya by Sarasvati, shall be the Avatâra. He
-shall wrest the kingdom of Svarga Loka from Purandara and make it over
-to Bali.
-
-(The eighth Manvantara is the Second half of the Fourth Round and should
-be the spiritual half according to Theosophical ideas. But we find the
-Asura King Bali, who was removed from the kingdom of Trilokî in the
-Vaivasvat Manvantara, restored to the kingdom of Svarga).
-
-Amongst the Rishis we find Parasurâma who fought with Râma and
-Asvatthâma and Kripa who ranged themselves against the Pândava brothers
-in the battle of Kurukshetra.
-
-All this shews that spirituality was developed out of materiality. The
-sons of Manu are Nirmoka and Virajaska. *Moka* is the cast off skin of an
-animal and may well represent the sthûla body. Nirmoka is one without
-Moka.
-
-Virajaska is without Rajas. So the course of evolution shews a tendency
-in the first place to cast off the sthûla body and to overcome the
-Rajas.
-
-THE NINTH MANVANTARA.
----------------------
-
-**SKANDHA VIII. CHAP. 13.**
-
-The ninth Manu is Daksha Sâvarni. He is the son of Varuna Bhûtaketu,
-Diptaketu and others shall be his sons. Pâra, Marichi garbha and others
-shall be the Devas and Adbhûta their Indra. Dyu timat and others shall
-be the Rishis.
-
-Rishabha, son of Âyushmat by Ambudhârâ, shall be the Avatâra.
-
-THE TENTH MANVANTARA.
----------------------
-
-**SKANDHA VIII. CHAP. 13.**
-
-Brahmâ Sâvarni is the tenth Manu. He is the son of Upaśloka. Bhûrishena
-and others shall be his sons. Havishmat, Sukrita, Satya, Jaya, Mûrti and
-others shall be the Rishis; Suvâsana, Aviruddha and others shall be the
-Devas and Sambhu their Indra.
-
-Vishvaksena, son of Visvasrij by Visûchi, shall be the Avatâra.
-
-THE ELEVENTH MANVANTARA.
-------------------------
-
-**SKANDHA VIII. CHAP. 13**
-
-Dharma Sâvarni is the eleventh Manu. Satya-Dharma and others shall be
-his ten sons. Vihangama, Kâlagama, Nirvâna-ruchi and others shall be the
-Devas, Vaidhrita their king, and Aruna and others the Rishis.
-Dharma-Setu, son of Âryaka by Vaidhritâ shall be the Avatâra.
-
-
-THE TWELFTH MANVANTARA.
------------------------
-
-**SKANDHA VIII. CHAP. 13.**
-
-Rudra-Sâvarni is the twelfth Manu. Devavat, Upadeva, Devasrestha and
-others shall be his sons (men shall be evolved into Devas In this
-Manvantara). Harita and others shall be the Devas, Ritadhâman their
-Indra. Tapomûrti, Tapasvin, Agnidhraka and others the Rishis;
-Svadhâman, son of Satya-sahas by Sûnritâ, shall be the Avatâra.
-
-
-THE THIRTEENTH MANVANTARA.
---------------------------
-
-**SKANDHA VIII. CHAP. 13.**
-
-Deva Sâvarni is the thirteenth Manu. Chitra Sena, Vichitra and others
-shall he his sons, Sukarma and Sutrâma the Devas, Divaspati their Indra
-and Nirmoka, Tatvadarsa, and others the Rishis.
-
-Yogesvara, son of Devahotra by Vrihati, shall be the Avatâra.
-
-THE FOURTEENTH MANVANTARA.
---------------------------
-
-**SKANDHA VIII. CHAP. 13.**
-
-Indra Sâvarni is the fourteenth Manu. Uru, Gambhira, Vradhna and others
-shall be his sons.
-
-Pavitra and Châkshusha the Devas, Suchi their Indra, Agni, Vâhu, Suchi,
-Suddha Mâgadha and others the Rishis.
-
-Brihat-bhânu, son of Satrâyana by Vitânâ, shall be the Avatâra (*i.e.* the
-great sun shall absorb everything.)
-
-THE ADMINISTRATION OF A MANVANTARA
-----------------------------------
-
-**SKANDHA VIII. CHAP. 14.**
-
-Said Râjâ Parikshit: — Tell me, O Rishi, what are the respective duties
-of Manu and others in the Manvantaras.
-
-Suka replied: — The *Avatâra* of each Manvantara guides the Manu, the sons
-of Manu, the Rishis, the Indra and the Devas of that Manvantara. (Each
-Manvantara has its own place in the history of the Kalpa, and the
-general evolution has to be worked out in the way best adapted to that
-Manvantara. The administration of each Manvantara is in the hands of a
-separate set of kings and ministers. Vishnu incarnates in each
-Manvantara, as the king of all who serve as administrative officers of
-that Manvantara and he is as such called the special Avatâra for that
-Manvantara. The divine kings, the Rishis, the Devas, all work under His
-direction. He gives the law that is to be administered. He shews the
-path, which evolution is to take in any particular Manvantara.)
-
-Yajna and others are Avatâras of Purusha. Guided by them, Manu and
-others lead the course of the universe.
-
-*Rishis*: — At the end of every four Yugas, the Srutis become devoured by
-time. (The human races have a life period timed to the four Yugas. They
-have their infancy, as it were, in Satya Yuga, and they have to be
-guided by wise sayings, which form the Srutis of those races. The Srutis
-become better understood with the growth of racial intelligence and
-other texts take the place of old ones. When the races do not require
-the help of the earlier texts, those texts become lost in time. When the
-races begin another life cycle, they require again the help of
-teachings, which become revealed to the Rishis. The Rishis then give
-those teachings to the races.) The Rishis find out the Srutis, by means
-of Tapas. The eternal Dharma proceeds from the Srutis. (People know
-their duties from the scriptures.)
-
-*Manus*. — The Manus then take up the Dharma, and each in his own time
-devotedly promulgates it on the earth.
-
-*Manu's sons*. — The sons of Manu preserve the Dharma, generation after
-generation, till the end of the Manvantara.
-
-*Devas and Indra*. — Indra, with the Devas that participate in sacrificial
-offerings, protects the three Lokas and gives rains.
-
-(Besides this general administration, there are other ways also of
-managing the affairs of the universe and these are mentioned
-incidentally in the following slokas. *Śridhara*.)
-
-Hari appears as the Siddhas (Sanaka and others) and expounds divine
-wisdom (Jnâna) in every Yuga. He appears as Rishis (Yâjnavalkya and
-others) and expounds Karma. As Lords of Yoga (Dattâtreya and others),
-He expounds Yoga.
-
-THE STORY OF BALI.
-------------------
-
-**SKANDHA VIII. CHAPS. 15-23.**
-
-Bali, son of Virochana and grandson of Prahlâda, was once defeated by
-Indra. His Guru, Sukra, advised him to perform the Visvajit sacrifice.
-When *ghee* was offered at the sacrifice, one chariot, some green coloured
-horses, one lion-marked flag, one golden bow, two quivers with an
-inexhaustible store of arrows, and one divine *kavacha* (protective charm)
-arose from the fire. Bali gladly accepted these things. Prahlâda also
-gave him a fresh garland and Sukra gave him a conch.
-
-Equipped with these things Bali attacked Svarga. Brihaspati told Indra
-the time was inauspicious and the Devas could not succeed without the
-help of Vishnu. He advised them to give in and to remain concealed
-somewhere, till the time came for their ascendancy. The Devas followed
-the advice of Brihaspati and Bali became the king of Trilokî.
-
-Sukra advised Bali to perform one hundred Asvamedha sacrifices.
-
-Aditi became disconsolate at the down-fall of her sons. She asked her
-husband Kasyapa what to do for her sons. The Prajâpati advised her to
-observe Payōravata in honor of Vishnu (for details, see the original).
-She observed the Vrata for 12 days when Vishnu appeared before her and
-assured her He would incarnate as her son.
-
-Vâmana was born of Aditi at midday, on the 12th day of the moon, during
-the white quarter in the month of Bhâdra, while the moon was in the
-first part of Sravanâ, in the Abhijit.
-
-(Vâmana = Dwarf). Vâmana heard that Bali was performing Asvamedha on the
-banks of the Narmadâ. He went there and Bali received him duly and
-enquired what he wanted, expressing his willingness to gratify him
-fully. Vâmana asked for only three paces of ground. Bali laughed at this
-modest prayer and asked him to take more land. But Vâmana excused
-himself, saying a Brâhmana should be content with small things only.
-Bali laughed again and at once said "Then accept." He then took the
-water pot to make the formal gift. Sukra perceived the object of Vishnu.
-He tried to dissuade Bali from carrying out his promise. "This is not a
-dwarf Brâhmana but Vishnu Himself. By one pace he will cover the whole
-of Bhûr Loka and Bhuvar Loka. By the second pace, He will cover Svar
-Loka and what then will become of the third pace? You will have to go
-to Naraka for not being able to fulfil your promise. And where shall you
-yourself remain after giving over all you have? Therefore desist from
-what you are doing. No doubt truth is preferable. But the Vedas also
-allow untruth in extreme cases."
-
-Bali replied: — "The grandson of Prahlâda shall never speak an untruth.
-I will give to this Brâhmana boy what I have promised, even if he be
-Vishnu and my enemy too."
-
-Sukra said in anger — "You disregard the words of your Guru. So you shall
-forthwith lose everything."
-
-Bali remained unmoved. He worshipped the Brâhmana boy and read out the
-formal Mantra of giving over three paces of land. Vindhyâvali, the
-virtuous consort of Bali, at this time placed a golden pitcher filled
-with water before her husband. He washed the feet of Vâmana with that
-water, and sprinkled it over his head. Then Vâmana wonderfully grew in
-size. The whole Universe became visible in him. He seized the whole of
-Bhûr Loka with one pace the whole of Bhuvar Loka with his body, and the
-directions in space with his hands, so that even the whole of Svar Loka
-became insufficient for the second pace. But nothing remained for the
-third pace. For the second pace of Vâmana passed through Mahar Loka,
-Jana Loka, Tapas Loka and reached even Satya Loka.
-
-The Asuras exclaimed: — "By what an unjust device has our king been
-deprived of all! It is no sin to fight with this disgrace of a
-Brâhmana, this deceitful Vishnu." So they engaged in fight with the
-followers of Vishnu, but were defeated by them.
-
-Bali told his followers there was no use fighting, for Kala was against
-them. The same Bhagavân who had favored them was now in opposition.
-
-Garuda, knowing the intention of Vishnu, tied Bali with the noose of
-Varuna.
-
-Vâmana then addressing Bali said: — "Where is your promised ground for my
-third pace? You have told a lie. You do not carry out your promise to a
-Brâhmana. For this you will have to go to Naraka."
-
-Bali said: — "Do not think I told an untruth or that I mean to deceive
-thee. Here is my head for the third pace. I am not so much afraid of the
-Naraka thou art speaking of, nor of this noose, nor of any troubles I
-may undergo, nor of any punishment thou mayest inflict on me as I am
-afraid of doing anything for which good people will blame me. I deem
-this punishment an act of favor a favor shewn perhaps out of
-consideration for my grand-father Prahlâda. For this kingdom only
-maddened me with power and made me forget my end. And what shall I do
-with this body too? True thou art my enemy, but this loss of kingdom
-has brought me nearer to thee."
-
-Prahlâda appeared at this time. He bowed down to Vâmana and said: — "It
-is thou that didst give the kingdom of Trilokî to Bali and it is thou
-that hast taken it away and really thou hast shewn him a favor by doing
-so. For power maddens a man and blinds him as to his real self."
-
-Vindhyâvali said: — "O Lord, Thou art the Creator, the Preserver, and
-the Destroyer of Trilokî. Who else could own it besides Thyself? It was
-the height of presumption to pretend to give the Trilokî to you." Brahmâ
-said: — "O Deva of Devas, all-pervading Lord, thou hast taken away
-everything from this Bali. He has also given himself up entirely to
-Thee, without being moved in the least. He does not now deserve to
-remain tied up."
-
-Bhagavân said: — "O Brahmâ, I take away all his riches from him whom I
-favor. For one proud of riches disregards both myself and others. When
-after many births the Jiva happens to become a man, and when in that
-birth he is found not to entertain any pride of birth, karma, age,
-beauty, wisdom, power, wealth and other things, you should know that to
-be my favor. One constantly devoted to me is not led away by anything
-apt to beget pride.
-
-"This king of Dânavas and Daityas has now conquered Mâyâ. So he is not
-beside himself even in grief. His wealth gone, his position lost,
-himself overpowered and chained by enemies, forsaken by friends, reviled
-and cursed by his own preceptor, and what not, this Bali did not give up
-Truth.
-
-"I will give him a place, difficult for others to attain. He shall be the
-Indra of Sâvarni Manvantara. Till then let him reside in Sutala. By my
-wish, the dwellers of Sutala shall have no mental or bodily pain, no
-fatigue, no sleepiness, no defeat and no misfortune. Bless thee, O
-Maharaj, go to Sutala with thy clan. Sutala is even wished for by those
-that dwell in Svarga. Even the Lokapâlas shall not be able to overpower
-thee. What of others? If any Daitya does not follow thee, I will kill
-him by my Chakra. By all means I will preserve thee and thy followers.
-There you shall always find me at your door. Thy Asura nature shall be
-there entirely destroyed under my influence."
-
-Prahlâda was also ordered by Bhagavân to accompany Bali to Sutala. So
-they all went to Sutala.
-
-THOUGHTS ON THE ABOVE.
-----------------------
-
-We now find Bali shorn of all materialism and restored to spiritual
-purity. We can well understand the removal of Bali from the kingdom of
-Trilokî, for the cyclic movement was tending that way since the last
-Manvantara, and the Devas were to have supremacy over Trilokî. We have
-to study the future of Bali, as holding further light for us.
-
-We must repeat here the distinction made between the two classes of
-Asuras: Daityas and Dânavas. The Daityas trace their origin to the
-gate-keepers of Vishnu. They had inherent Satva in them, which was
-eclipsed in their downfall. Therefore, though they acted as
-materialistic forces following the cyclic tendency, they were themselves
-not incapable of spiritual development Thus we find words of wisdom and
-spirituality in Vritra, in Hiranyakasipu, unselfish devotion in
-Prahlâda, and complete resignation in Bali. Hiranyâksha and
-Hiranyakasipu went back to their old place in Vaikuntha. Vritra became
-united with Sankarshana. Prahlâda is immortal in his unselfish mission,
-and we have just heard the future of Bali. The Maruts become Devas after
-their very birth.
-
-Therefore there is no extinction for the Asuras, except for those that
-do not follow Bali and do not place themselves under the influence of
-Vishnu. The cyclic weapon or Chakra is ever ready to destroy those that
-hopelessly go against the law.
-
-Now a word about Sutala. The arrangement of Pâtâlas as given in the text
-is the reverse of what they should be in point of spirituality, for
-Atala is the most and Pâtâla the least removed from spirituality.
-
-The influence of Vishnu does not extend beyond Sutala, and nothing can
-save those that transgress the limits of this nether plane. For in
-Vitala the destructive Purusha reigns and a passage to that plane is
-only a door to utter extinction. And in Atala there is not a trace of
-spirituality, the work of destruction is already done, and mother Nature
-dissolves the material elements for some better use in future.
-
-The special provision for Sutala is therefore a cyclic necessity. For
-Jivas have to be preserved from an undesirable end. Therefore Bali was
-given a post, the proud privilege of seeing that Jivas do not undergo
-utter extinction. Sutala was also fortified with an accession of
-spirituality.
-
-The example of self-abnegation, the ideal of self-sacrifice, Bali is to
-become the king of Devas in the succeeding Manvantara.
-
-THE MATSYA AVATARA.
--------------------
-
-**SKANDHA. VIII. CHAP. 24.**
-
-Towards the end of the previous Kalpa, Brahmâ was falling asleep and the
-Vedas fell from his mouth. The Asura Hayagrîva took them up. Seeing this
-Vishnu became a small fish. King Satyavrata was making Tarpana (*i.e.*
-offering libations of water), when the fish found its way into his
-hands. He threw it into the river. The fish implored the King to
-preserve him. So he took it home and placed it in a small waterpot. The
-fish increased in size so much that all tanks and rivers were tried, but
-they could not contain it. At last the king took the fish to the sea,
-but it implored him not to throw it away into the sea. The king then
-said: — "This fish must be the Deity Himself, otherwise how could it grow
-so large?" The fish then addressed the king thus: "On the seventh day
-from this, the Trilokî shall be plunged into the Pralaya waters. Then a
-big Ark shall come to thee. Take all plants, all seeds, all animals, and
-the seven Rishis with you and get into that ark. When the wind shakes
-that ark, tie it with a serpent to myself. I will remain with that ark
-in the Pralaya Ocean till the awakening of Brahmâ. I will manifest
-supreme wisdom in thee."
-
-So saying the fish disappeared and on the seventh day the Pralaya waters
-deluged the Trilokî. Satya Vrata did as he was told. He got the highest
-wisdom from the Fish Incarnation.
-
-That Satya Vrata is Srâddhadeva, our present Manu.
-
-.. clearpage::
-
-SKANDHA IX.
-===========
-
-THE VAIVASVATA MANVANTARA.
---------------------------
-
-SUDYUMNA.
-`````````
-
-**SKANDHA IX. CHAP. 1.**
-
-Srâddhadeva Manu had no child for some time. Vasistha performed a
-sacrifice in honor of Mitra-varuna that he might obtain progeny.
-Sraddha, wife of the Manu, went to the chief priest and asked for a
-daughter. So Manu had a daughter named Ilâ. He took Vasistha to task
-for having had a daughter. Vasistha thought the priest had done
-something wrong. He prayed to Bhagavân for the change of Ilâ's sex. So
-Ilâ became a male named Sudyumna and in company with others went on
-horse back to the chase. He entered a forest called Sukumâra, below the
-Meru, which is the play ground of Śiva and his consort. He and his
-companions were all transformed into females, for such is the mandate of
-Śiva for those that enter the forest. In this changed condition,
-Sudyumna with his female companions went to Budha. Budha took a fancy
-for Sudyumna and had by her one son Purûravas.
-
-Vasistha took pity on Sudyumna again and prayed to Śiva to change his
-sex. By the favor of Śiva, Sudyumna became a male for one month and a
-female for another month. He had three sons. Utkala, Gaya and Vimala.
-
-
-IKSHVÂKU BROTHERS.
-``````````````````
-
-**SKANDHA IX. CHAP. 2.**
-
-Manu prayed to Vishnu for one hundred years for other sons. He got ten
-sons like unto himself. Ikshvâku was the eldest::
-
- Manu
- |
- --+------+-----+--------+-------+--------+---------+------------\\
- | | | | | | | |
- Ikshvâku Nriga Saryati Dishita Dhrishta Karusha Narishyanta |
- |
- --+---------+-------/
- | |
- Prishadhra Nabhaga Kavi
-
-
-
-(8). PRISHADHRA.
-
-While residing in the house of his Guru, Prishadhra was placed in charge
-of cattle. It was raining one night, when a tiger entered the fold. The
-cattle strayed about in fear and bellowed aloud. Prishadhra ran after
-the tiger. The night was dark. He missed his aim and cut off the head of
-the cow, which the tiger had seized. He found out the mistake in the
-morning and informed his Guru about it. The Guru said: — "You shall
-become a Sudra, as the fruit of your Karma." Prishadhra accepted the
-curse. He became an ascetic, and roamed about the earth as the friend of
-all beings. Eventually He ended his life in fire.
-
-
-(10). KAVI.
-
-Kavi attained wisdom in his youth. He did not marry.
-
-
-(6). KARUSHA.
-
-The sons of Karûsha were the Kârûshas, a race of pious Kshatriyas, who
-guarded the north.
-
-
-(5). DHRISHTA.
-
-Dhârshtas were the sons of Dhrishta. Though born as Kshatriyas, they
-became Brâhmanas on this earth.
-
-.. figure:: images/bhagap186.png
-
-.. figure:: images/bhagap187.png
-
-.. parsed-literal::
-
- (2). NRIGA.
- |
- Sumati
- |
- Bhûtajyoti
- |
- Vasu
- |
- Pratika
- |
- Oghavat
- |
- --+-+-----------------+----
- | |
- Oghavat Oghavati
- m. Sudarsana
-
-
- (7) Narishyanta, (4) Dishta
- | |
- Chitra Sena Nabâga (became a Vaisya
- | by his karma)
- Riksha |
- | Bhaladana
- Midhvat |
- | Vatsapriti
- Purna |
- | Prânsu
- Indra Sena |
- | Pramati
- Vitihotra |
- | Khanitra
- Satya-Sravas |
- | Châkshusha
- Uru-Sravas |
- | Vivinsati
- Devadatta |
- | Rambha
- Agnivesya |
- Khaninetra (very pious)
- (Incarnation of Agni |
- also known as Kanina Karandhama
- and Jatu-Karna) |
- | Avikshit
- Agni veshyâyana |
- Brâhmanas. Marutta.
-
-
-Sâmbarta, Son of Angiras, officiated at the Yajna performed by Marutta.
-The Devas took direct part in the Yajna.
-
-.. parsed-literal::
-
- Marutta
- |
- Dama
- |
- Râjavardhana
- |
- Sudhriti
- |
- Nara
- |
- Kevala
- |
- Dhundhumat
- |
- Vegavat
- |
- Budha
- |
- Trinabindu
-
- m. Apsaras Alamvushâ
- |
- --+-----+--+-----------+--------+--
- | | | |
- Visâla Sûnyabandhu Dhûmraketu Ilavilâ
-
- (founded the *m*. Rishi Visravas
- town named |
- Vaiśâli) Kubera--the
- | King of the
- Hema Chandra Yakshas.
- |
- Dhûmrâksha.
- |
- Sanyama
- |
- --++------+---
- | |
- Devaja Krisâsva
- |
- Sōmadatta
- |
- Sumati
- |
- Janamejaya.
-
-
-
-(3). SARYÂTI.
-
-SKANDHA IX. CHAP. 3.
-
-Saryâti was well versed in the Vedas. He had one daughter, Sukanyâ. He
-went with her one day to the Âsrama of Chyavana Rishi. Sukanyâ found
-there two streaks of light as from glow-worms, issuing from within a
-mound of earth, thrown up by white ants. She pricked those portions with
-a thorn and blood oozed out. The party of Saryâti found that their usual
-secretions were stopped. The king thought some one had offended
-Chyavana. The girl then told her story. The king found the Rishi
-underneath the mound of earth and asked his pardon. The Rishi wanted the
-hand of the girl in marriage and Saryâti consented. So Sukanyâ became
-the wife of Chyavana.
-
-One day the Asvini Kumâras came to Chyavana. The Rishi asked them to
-give him youth and beauty and promised in return to give them offerings
-of Sōma, though they had no part in Sōma Yâgas, The Asvini Kumâras took
-the Rishi inside a tank and all the three came out young and beautiful
-and looking all alike. Sukanyâ could not recognise her husband and she
-prayed to the Asvini Kumâras to remove her confusion. They were pleased
-with her chastity and pointed out her husband.
-
-One day king Saryâti came and found his daughter sitting with a young
-man. He reproved Sukanyâ for her supposed unchastity. The girl then
-related the story of her husband's attaining youth and the king became
-very much pleased.
-
-Chyavana made offerings of Sōma to the Asvini Kumâras. This offended
-Indra. He held up the Vajra to kill Chyavana, but the son of Bhrigu
-paralysed the hands of Indra. From that time the Devas consented to give
-a share in Sōma to the Asvini Kumâras.
-
-.. figure:: images/bhagap188.png
-
-.. parsed-literal::
-
- SARYÂTI.
- |
- --+------------+--------+---+-----------------+---
- | | | |
- Sukanyâ Uttânavarhi Ânarta Dhûri Sena
- m. Chyavana |
- Revata
- (He built a town called Kuśasthali
- in the midst of the sea and from that
- town ruled Anarta and other lands.)
- |
- --+----------------------+-------------------+---
- | |
- Kakudmin 99 other Sons.
- |
- Revati
-
-
-Kakudmin took his daughter Revati with him and went to Brahmâ loka to
-enquire of Brahmâ, who should be her husband. The Gandharvas were
-singing at the time and Kakudmin had to wait for a moment. He then
-saluted Brahmâ and made the enquiry. Brahmâ laughed and said: — "O king,
-the men of your choice are dead and gone. I do not hear even of their
-sons and grandsons. Twenty seven yuga cycles have now passed away.
-Therefore go back to thy place and give thy daughter to Baladeva, who
-has now incarnated as an Ansa (part) of Vishnu for the good of
-Bhûr-loka." And so the king did. (The Present is the 28th. Yuga cycle.
-Baladeva is the brother of Sri Krishna.)
-
-
-(9) NABHAGA.
-
-SKANDHA IX. CHAPS. 4-6.
-
-Nabhaga remained long with his Guru. So his brothers thought he had
-become a Brahma-chârin. They reserved no share for him at partition.
-Nabhaga at last returned to his house and asked for his share in the
-patrimony. The brothers pointed out their father Manu as his share.
-Nabhaga asked his father — "How is it my brothers have reserved thee for
-my share?" Manu replied: — "Child, do not believe them. The clan of
-Angiras are performing Yajna. They get confounded on every sixth day.
-This is the sixth day. Give them two Vaisvadeva Sûktas. When they go to
-Svarga after completion of their Yajna they will leave all their
-sacrificial wealth to you." Nabhaga did as he was told. The Angirasas
-left all the property remaining on the sacrificial ground to Nabhaga. As
-he was going to take those things, a dark Purusha appeared from the
-north and said. "These are mine."
-
-"But the Rishis have given them to me" said Nabhaga.
-
-"Go to your father then and ask for the solution" said the dark
-Purusha.
-
-"Yes, the remnants of a Sacrifice belong to Rudra" said Manu.
-
-Nabhaga returned and said "Yes these remnants of sacrifice all belong
-to thee. So my father told me."
-
-"I am pleased with thee and thy father. Both of you have spoken the
-truth" said Rudra, "I give thee supreme wisdom. I also give thee these
-remnants. Take them now."
-
-::
-
-
- NABHAGA
- |
- NÂBHÂGA.
- |
- AMBARISHA
-
-
-King Ambarisha had discrimination and dispassion. His devotion was
-great. His mind was fixed on the lotus feet of Vishnu, his words were
-all about the glory of Vaikuntha, his hands were engaged in cleansing
-the temples of Vishnu, his ears only heard about the glory and the works
-of Vishnu, his eyes intently looked on the symbols of Vishnu wherever
-found. His body felt pleasure in the touch of Vaishnavas, his nose smelt
-the sweet fragrance of Tulasi proceeding from the feet of Vishnu, his
-tongue tasted only food offered to Vishnu, his feet traversed the places
-sacred to Vishnu and his head was devoted to the salutation of Vishnu.
-If he enjoyed things of this world, it was for service to Vishnu and not
-for the sake of enjoyment. If he had attachment, it was only for those
-that were devoted to Vishnu. The fruits of his action he offered to Him.
-By devotion and by the unselfish performance of duties pertaining to his
-sphere of life (Svadharma), he pleased Bhagavân and by degrees he gave
-up all desires. Vishnu was so much pleased with the King, that he gave
-him His own Chakra for protection.
-
-Ambarisha with his wife once undertook to perform Dvâdasi Vrata for one
-year. (Dvâdasi is the twelfth day of the Moon. The Vrata consists in
-fasting on the eleventh day of the Moon and in breaking the fast on the
-12th day). On one occasion he fasted for 3 consecutive days. He bathed
-himself in the Yamunâ and worshipped Vishnu at Mathurâ. He gave plenty
-of riches and cattle to the Brâhmanas. He then fed the Brâhmanas and
-asked their permission to eat himself. At the time Durvâsas appeared as
-his guest. The king received him duly and requested him to take his
-meals. The Rishi consented and went to bathe himself in the river and
-perform his daily rites. The king waited long for him but he did not
-return. There was only half a muhurta now remaining of Dvâdasi. If the
-king did not eat any thing, his Vrata would not be observed. If he ate,
-he would shew disregard to a Brâhmana. At this juncture, the king
-decided to serve both ends by taking a little water, for the Brâhmanas
-call that both eating and non-eating. Durvâsas came back. By spiritual
-vision, he knew what had happened and became highly enraged. He tore up
-a hair tuft and charged it to kill Ambarisha. The king remained unmoved.
-The chakra of Vishnu consumed the destructive force sent by Durvâsas and
-went even to destroy him. The Rishi ran in every direction. The Chakra
-followed him wherever he went. He went to Brahmâ and prayed to be saved.
-"It is not in my power to save thee" said Brahmâ. "Thou hast offended
-a votary of Vishnu." He went to Śiva. "Child" said Śiva "this weapon
-of Vishnu is too much for me even. Go thou to Vishnu." Durvâsas went to
-Vishnu and prayed to be pardoned and saved. Said Vishnu: "O Brâhmana,
-I am dependent on my Bhaktas. I am not free. My heart is in the
-possession of my Bhaktas. I am dear to them. Without these my Bhaktas I
-do not even want myself, nor my absolute powers, for I am their sole and
-supreme resort. They forsake their wives, homes, children and wealth for
-my sake. How can I forsake them. Their heart is chained to me. They look
-on all with equal eyes. By devotion they win me even as chaste wives win
-their husbands. My service is all in all to them. They do not even
-desire the four Muktis, Sâlokya and others, though these come within
-their easy reach. What perishable objects can they have desire for? The
-Sâdhus are my heart. I am the heart of the Sâdhus. They do not know any
-one besides me nor do I know any one besides them. O Brâhmana, hear what
-is thy only remedy. Without delay go to him who has caused this fear in
-thee. When force is used against Sâdhus, it reacts on him who uses the
-force. True asceticism and wisdom are both for the salvation of the
-Brâhmanas. But in one untrained, they produce the contrary effect.
-Therefore go thou to the son of Nâbhâga. Beg his pardon and thou shalt
-be saved." Durvâsas went back to Ambarisha and touched the feet of the
-king. Ambarisha became non-plussed at this act of a Brâhmana and knowing
-the object of the Rishi, he prayed to the Chakra to desist from its
-course and to save the Brâhmana. The Chakra had just commenced its work
-of destruction, but it withdrew its energies upon the prayer of
-Ambarisha. Durvâsas was extremely thankful and he thus praised the king.
-"I see this day the greatness of Vaishnavas, O king. Thou didst pray
-for my welfare, though I had offended thee. There is nothing strange for
-those that have conquered Vishnu Himself. Thou hast been very kind to
-me. Thou hast favored me much. Thou didst not even think of my offence,
-but thou hast saved my life." The king had waited for Durvâsas all this
-time. He now fell at the feet of the Rishi and requested him to take his
-meals. The Rishi gladly did so, and also made the king take his food.
-
-Durvâsas then went to Brahmâ Loka. He did not return for
-one year and the King lived upon water only all this time, being so
-anxious to see the Rishi back. Such is the holy story of Ambarisha.
-
-.. figure:: images/bhagap192.png
-
-.. parsed-literal::
-
- Ambarisha
- |
- --+-------------------+--+----------------+--
- | | |
- Virûpa Ketumat Sambhu
- |
- Prishadasva
- |
- Rathitara
-
-
-Rathitara had no children. At his request Rishi Angiras produced certain
-sons by his wife. They were known both as Rathitaras and Ângirasas.
-
-[Durvâsas had cursed Indra, and Indra lost all power. But after the
-great churning, times were changed. The divine law favoured the Devas
-and the worshippers of Vishnu. Those who assumed a power, independently
-of Vishnu, were sure to find disappointment, however eminent their
-position might be.]
-
-
-
-(I) IKSHVÂKU.
-
-SKANDHA IX. CHAPS. 6-13.
-
-Ikshvâku was born out of the nostrils of Manu when sneezing. He had one
-hundred sons. Vikukshi, Nimi, and Dandaka were the eldest born. Twenty
-five of them ruled on the east of Âryâvarta, twenty five on the west and
-twenty five in the middle. The others ruled else where. For the
-performance of Ashtakâ Srâddha, Ikshvâku once ordered Vikukshi to get
-some good flesh. Vikukshi had a bagful of good game. But he was hungry
-and ate one rabbit out of his store.
-
-Vasishtha found fault with this and Ikshvâku had to reject the whole of
-the game. The King became angry at this and he expelled his son from the
-kingdom. When Ikshvâku died, Vikukshi returned. He succeeded his father
-as king and was known as Saśâda or Rabbiteater. Puranjaya was the son of
-Saśâda. He was also called Indravâha and Kakutstha. The Devas had a
-fight with the Asuras and Indra asked for the help of Puranjaya.
-Puranjaya wanted Indra to be his carrier, and the King of the Devas
-became a bull. Puranjaya ascended the bull on its hump. He is therefore
-called Indravaha or Indra-vehicled and Kakutstha or the mounter on the
-hump. He defeated the Asuras.
-
-.. figure:: images/bhagap193.png
-
-.. parsed-literal::
-
- Ikshvâku
- |
- --+--------------------+-----+-----------------------+---
- | | |
- Vikukshi Nimi 98 other sons
- (Saśâda)
- |
- Puranjaya
- (Indra vâhu
- Kakutstha)
- |
- Anenâ
- |
- Prithu
- |
- Visvagandhi
- |
- Chandra
- |
- Yuvanaśva
- |
- Srâvasta
- (He built the town Srâvasti)
- |
- Brihadasva
- |
- Kuvalayasva
- (Dhundhumâra.)
-
-
-With his 21 thousand sons, Kuvalayâsva killed an Asura called Dhundhu,
-for the good of Rishi Utanka. But the Asura killed all his sons, except
-three, with fire from his mouth. Those three were Dridhâsva, Kapilâsva
-and Bhadrâsva.
-
-::
-
-
- Kuvalayâsva or Dhundhumâra.
- |
- ---+--------------------+-+-----------------------+----
- | | |
- Dridhâsva. Kapilâsva. Bhadrâsva.
- |
- Haryasva
- |
- Nikumbha
- |
- Bahulâsva
- |
- Krisâsva
- |
- Senajit
- |
- Yuvanâsva.
-
-
-Yuvanâsva had no son. So the Rishis performed a sacrifice directed to
-Indra. One night Yuvanâsva became very thirsty and entered the Yajna
-house. He found all the Rishis sleeping at the time. He thought it
-improper to rouse the Rishis and drank whatever water he found near at
-hand. By chance that happened to be the consecrated water with the power
-of producing a son. When the Rishis rose up they did not find the water.
-On enquiry, when they knew what had happened, every one wondered what
-the outcome would be. In time the king brought forth a son from his
-right side. The little thing cried out for milk. Indra said "Do not
-weep, child, you shall *drink wine* ('*Mân Dhâtâ*')" So saying he offered
-the child his fore finger. From this, the child was called Mândhâtâ.
-Yuvanâsva, by the blessing of the Rishis, did not meet with death at
-delivery. Mândhâtâ was a very powerful king. The thieves dreaded him
-much. He performed many sacrifices and made many gifts. He married
-Indumatî, daughter of Sasabindu. He had three sons Purukutsa, Ambarisha,
-and the Yōgin Muchukunda. He had also fifty daughters.
-
-Rishi Soubhari made Tapas in the waters of the Yamunâ. One day he saw
-the pairing of a couple of fish and became excited. He requested king
-Mândhâtâ to give him one daughter in marriage. The king said: "By
-Svayamvara, you may get my daughter" (*i.e.* the girl must choose her
-own husband from amongst a number of men offering themselves as
-husbands.) The Rishi thought because he was old and decrepit therefore
-the king wanted to put him off. So Soubhari by yogic powers became young
-and beautiful. All the fifty daughters then accepted him for their
-husband. The Rishi prepared for himself all the enjoyments of life and
-passed his days in company with his 50 wives. He then became disgusted
-with this sensual life and afterwards attained Moksha with his wives.
-
-Yuvanâsva adopted his grand son Ambarisha. Ambarisha had one son
-Youvanâsva. His son was Hârita. These three, Ambarisha, Youvanâsva and
-Hârita were the founders of the chief clans of the Mândhâtâ Dynasty.
-
-The elemental serpents gave their sister Narmodâ in marriage to
-Purukutsa. Purukutsa accompanied Narmodâ to Rasâtala at the request of
-Vasûki. There he killed such Gandharvas as deserved to be killed. Those
-who remember this story have no fear from serpents. Such was the
-blessing of the elemental serpents.
-
-.. figure:: images/bhagap195.png
-
-.. parsed-literal::
-
- Yuvanâsva
- |
- Mândhâtâ
- |
- --+----------------------+--+-----------------------+---
- | | |
- Purukuta Ambarisha Muchukunda
- m. Narmodâ (adopted by Yuvanâsva) (Yōgin)
- | |
- Trasadasya Youvanâsva
- | |
- Anaranya Hârita
- |
- Horyasva
- |
- Praruna
- |
- Tribandhana
- |
- Satyavrata or Tri Sanku
-
-
-Tri Sanku became a Chandâla by the curse of his father. Rishi Visvâmitra
-lifted him up to Svarga in his own mortal body. Tri Sanku is still
-visible in the heavens. The devas turned him with his head downwards and
-attempted to throw him down. Visvâmitra by his power has retained him
-there.
-
-[Tri Sanku is a constellation in the southern hemisphere.]::
-
-
- Tri Sanku
- |
- Haris Chandra
-
-
-Haris Chandra had at first no issue. He prayed to Varuna for a son,
-promising to offer him as a sacrifice to the Water-god. The king had a
-son named Rohita (Red). Varuna asked for his victim. Ten days passed
-away. "Without teething the child will not be pure." There was
-teething. "When these milk teeth fall away, then will be the time." The
-milk teeth fell off. "Let other teeth grow." Other teeth did grow.
-"But he is a Kshatriya boy. He can be pure only when he is fit to put his
-armour on."
-
-The king put off Varuna from time to time in this way, out of affection
-for his son. Rohita came to know of his father's promise. To save
-himself, he took a bow and went to the forest. There he learned that his
-father had an attack of dropsy, the disease caused by Varuna. So he
-prepared himself to go back, but Indra prevented him by persuasive
-words. He was put back from year to year by Indra, till his 6th. year.
-He then made his way to the king. He purchased from Ajîgarta his second
-son Sûnahśepha. He saluted his father and offered the child. King Haris
-Chandra appeased Varuna by human sacrifice and got rid of his dropsy. In
-that sacrifice, Visvâmitra was the Hōtâ, Jamadagni was the Adhvaryu, Vasistha
-Brahmâ and Ayâsya was the Udgâta. Indra being pleased gave a golden
-chariot to the king. Visvâmitra taught Âtmâ Vidya to Haris Chandra and
-he attained liberation.
-
-[The story of Haris Chandra in this Purâna follows the vedic version.
-The gist of the story is that in the course of further evolution the
-Devas were to be propitiated by human sacrifice. But this sacrifice did
-not mean killing. It was the complete offering of oneself up to the
-service of the gods. The mission of the human victim is to constantly
-work for the good of the Universe and to extinguish his own personality.
-Sûnahśepha was not killed in the sacrifice. He was offered up to the
-service of the gods. After the sacrifice, he was called Devarâta *i.e.*
-one offered to the Devas. Visvâmitra adopted Devarâta as his own son and
-he asked his hundred sons to accept him as their eldest brother. He
-disowned those sons that did not obey him (Bhâgavata IX-16). Therefore
-Visvâmitra took the principal part in this sacrifice and not Vasistha,
-though he was the family preceptor.]
-
-.. figure:: images/bhagap196.png
-
-.. parsed-literal::
-
- Haris Chandra
- |
- Rohita
- |
- Harita
- |
- Champa (founder of Champâ)
- |
- Sudeva
- |
- Vijaya
- |
- Bharuka
- |
- Vrika
- |
- Bâhuka
-
-
-His enemies dispossesed Bahuka of his kingdom. He went to the forest
-accompanied by his wives. When he died, the eldest queen prepared
-herself for death also. Rishi Aurva knew her to be big with child, and
-dissuaded her from accompanying her husband on to the funeral pyre. The
-co-wives of the queen, out of jealousy, gave her poison. The child was
-born with this poison, therefore he was called Sagara (Sa = with, gara =
-poison.) Sagara became a great king. The Seas were dug by his sons. He
-was prevented by Rishi Aurva from taking the lives of the Tâlajanghas,
-Yavanas, Sakas, Haihayas, and Barbars. But he made them change their
-outward look. He performed an Asvamedha sacrifice as advised by Aurva
-and Indra stole the sacrificial horse.
-
-Sagara had two wives Sumati and Kesini. The 60 thousand sons of Sumati
-searched for the horse on all sides. They dug the earth's surface and
-made the Seas. They found the horse near Kapila. They took him to be the
-stealer of the horse and abused him. For this they were all burnt up.
-
-Kesini had one son Asamanjas by Sagara. Anśumat was son of Asamanjas. He
-was attached to his grandfather Sagara. Asamanjas was a Yogin in his
-former birth. He therefore wanted to avoid company by means of provoking
-acts. He threw down some children into the Saraju. His father Sagara was
-thus compelled to forsake him. By Yogic powers, be brought back the
-children thrown into the Saraju, and left his father for ever.
-
-Anśumat was also sent by Sagara to search for the horse. He found the
-horse and a heap of ashes near Kapila. He saluted Kapila and glorified
-him. The Avatâra was pleased. He permitted Anśumat to take away the
-horse. He also informed him that his burnt-up Pitris could only he saved
-by the water of the Gangâ.
-
-Sagara completed the sacrifice with the horse. He made over the kingdom
-to Anśumat and attained Mukti.
-
-Anśumat made Tapas for the downward flow of Gangâ but without success.
-He was followed by his son Dilipa. He also did not succeed. Bhagiratha
-was the son of Dilipa. He prayed hard and Gangâ appeared in person
-before him. "Child, I am pleased with thee. What boon do you ask for"?
-Bhagiratha told her what he prayed for. "But who shall arrest my
-course, when I fall down. If not arrested I will pierce the earth and
-reach Rasâtala. Again if I pass over earth, men will wash away their
-sins in my waters. Where shall I wash away those sins, O King?
-Therefore do thou ponder well what to do." Said Bhagiratha: — "The touch
-of Sâdhus shall take away thy sins. For Vishnu, the destroyer of sins,
-remains in them. Thy downward course shall be arrested by Rudra." Śiva
-was pleased by the prayer of Bhagiratha, and he consented to hold Gangâ.
-
-Gangâ came rushing down and she was taken by Bhagiratha to where the
-ashes of his Pitris lay. The very touch of her waters purified the sons
-of Sagara and they went to Svarga.
-
-.. figure:: images/bhagap197.png
-
-.. parsed-literal::
-
- Bâhuka
- |
- Sagara
- m. Sumati | m. Kesini
- --+----------+-------------------+--
- | |
- 60 thousand Asamanjas
- sons |
- Anśumat
- |
- Dilîpa
- |
- Bhâgiratha
- |
- Sruta
- |
- Nâbha
- |
- Sindhu Dvîpa
- |
- Ayutâyu
- |
- Rituparna (friend
- of Nala)
- |
- Sarvakâma
- |
- Sudâsa
- |
- Soudâsa or Mitrasaha
- or Kalmâshapada
- *m*. Madayanti.
-
-
-Once there lived two Râkshasas. Soudâsa killed one and did not kill the
-other. The surviving Râkshasa, bent on taking revenge, entered the
-service of Soudâsa as a cook. When the king entertained Vasistha, he
-gave him human flesh to eat. The Rishi became angry and caused Soudâsa
-to become a Râkshasa. When he learned however it was the doing of a
-Râkshasa, he reduced the king's Râkshasa life to 12 years. The king also
-held out water for the execration of Vasistha. His queen prevented him.
-So he threw the water at his own feet. His feet became black with sin.
-While living as a Râkshasa, the king saw a Brâhmana and his wife in
-their privacy, and he attacked the Brâhmana. The wife reminded the king
-of his former birth and requested him not to deprive her of her husband
-at the time of enjoyment. The king heeded not her words but devoured the
-Brâhmana. The Brâhmana woman cursed Soudâsa so that he should meet with
-death whenever he had female connection. On the expiry of 12 years,
-Soudâsa reverted to his former birth, but for fear of the curse he had
-no connection with women. Vasistha at the request of Soudâsa produced a
-son by his wife, Madayanti. The conception lingered for 7 years.
-Vasistha struck the womb with a stone (Aśman) and the son was hence
-called Aśmaka. The son of Aśmaka was Bâlika. He was the surviving
-kshatriya, after the extirpation of that caste by Parasurâma. Hence he
-was called Mûlaka also (the root of a race).
-
-.. figure:: images/bhagap198.png
-
-.. parsed-literal::
-
- Soudâsa
- |
- Aśmaka
- |
- Bâlika or Mûlaka
- |
- Daśaratha
- |
- Aidavidi
- |
- Visvasaha
- |
- Khatvânga
-
-
-Khatvânga was a very powerful king. He killed Daityas as a friend of the
-Devas. The Devas offered him a boon. The king wanted to know how much
-longer he was to live. Learning it was a Muhurta only, he returned
-forthwith to his place and concentrated his mind on Bhagavân. He
-attained Mukti.
-
-.. figure:: images/bhagap199.png
-
-.. parsed-literal::
-
-
- Khatvânga
- |
- Dirgha-bâhu
- |
- Raghu
- |
- Aja
- |
- Daśaratha
- |
- --+-+------+-----------+------------+--
- | | | |
- RÂMA Lakshmana Bharata Satrughna
-
-
-(The story of Râma as told in the Râmâyana is widely and universally
-known. It is therefore unnecessary to repeat that story from the
-Bhâgavata Purâna.)
-
-.. parsed-literal::
-
-
- Daśaratha
- |
- --+---+-------------+-------------+--------------+---
- | | | |
- RÂMA Lakshmana Bharata Satrughna
- | | | |
- +-----+ --+----+-----+-- --+-------+-- --+--------+--
- | | | | | | | |
- Kusa Lava Angada Chitraketu Taksha Pushkala Subâhu Srutasena.
-
-
- Pushpa Kusa
- | |
- Dhruva Sandhi Atithi
- | |
- Sudarsana Nishada
- | |
- Agni varna Nabha
- | |
- Sighra Pundarika
- | |
- Maru Kshema Dhanvan
- |
- Devânika
- |
- Aniha
- |
- Pâriyâtra
- |
- Balasthala
- |
- Vajra nâbha (incarnation
- of Sûrya).
- |
- Sagana
- |
- Vidhriti
- |
- Hiranya nâbha (disciple
- of Jaimini and
- Yogachârya
- Teacher of Rishi
- Yâjnavalka in
- Yoga)
-
-
-*Manu has matured in Yoga. He now resides at Kalapa.*
-*Towards the end of Kaliyuga he shall restore the Solar dynasty.*
-
-.. figure:: images/bhagap200.png
-
-.. parsed-literal::
-
-
- Maru Vatsa-Vriddha Sutapas
- | | |
- Prasusruta Prativyōma Amitrajit
- | | |
- Sandhi Bhânu Bridharaj
- | | |
- Amarshana Divâka Barhi
- | | |
- Mahasvat Sahadeva Kritanjaya
- | | |
- Visvabâhu Brihadasva Rananjaya
- | | |
- Prasenajit Bhânumat Sanjaya
- | | |
- Takshaka Pratikaśva Śakya
- | | |
- Brihadbala, killed Supratika Suddhōda
- at the battle of | |
- Kurukshetra by Marudeva Langala
- Abhimanyu | |
- Sunakshatra Prasenajit
- (Time of Parikshit) | |
- | Pushkara Kshudraka
- Brihat-rana | |
- | Antariksha Sumitra
- Vatsa-vriddha |
- Sutapas
-
-
-Sumitra shall be the last of the Ikshvâku dynasty in this Kali Yuga.
-
-Nimi was the second son of Ikshvâku. He asked Vasistha to officiate at
-his Yajna. But the Rishi had been pre-engaged with Indra. So he asked
-the king to wait till he came back. Considering the uncertainty, Nimi
-did not wait for his family Purohita. But engaged another priest.
-Vasistha on returning became offended and cursed Nimi with the loss of
-his body. Nimi gave the same curse to Vasistha. So both gave up their
-bodies. Vasistha was reborn shortly after as the son of Mitravaruna by
-Urvasi. The Rishis picked up the body of Nimi and placed it with the
-scented things of Yajna. On the completion of the Yajna, the Rishis
-prayed to the Devas for the vivification of the body. But Nimi said from
-within the scented things that he did not want to be encumbered with the
-body any more. The Devas said: "Then remain in the eyes of all beings
-as winking." So Nimi remains in the twinkling of eyes.
-
-The Rishis churned the body of Nimi and a son was born. He was called
-Janaka. As he was born, when his father was bodiless (*videha*) he was
-also called *Vaideha*. The churning also gave him the name of Mithila
-(Manth = to churn). He built the town Milhilâ. (Mithilâ is the modern
-Tirhut).
-
-.. figure:: images/bhagap201.png
-
-.. parsed-literal::
-
- NIMI Marti
- | |
- Janaka Pratipa
- | |
- Udâvasu Kritaratha
- | |
- Nandivardhana Devamirha
- | |
- Suketu Visruta
- | |
- Devarâta Mahadhriti
- | |
- Brihadratha Kritirâta
- | |
- Mahâvirya Mahârôman (large-haired)
- | |
- Sudhriti Svarnaroman (gold-haired)
- | |
- Dhrishtaketu Hrasvaroman (short-haired)
- | |
- Haryasva Sira-Dhvaja
- |
- Maru
-
-
-While ploughing the ground for sacrifice, Sira-Dhvaja got Sita at the
-end of the plough. Therefore Sira (plough) being his Dhvaja (flag,
-proclaimer of fame), he was called Sira Dhvaja.
-
-(This Sira-Dhvaja is the renowned Janaka of Râmayana.)::
-
-
- Sira-Dhvaja
- |
- Kusa-Dhvaja
- |
- Dharma-Dhvaja
- |
- --+-+---------------+---
- | |
- Krita-Dhvaja Mita-Dhvaja
- | |
- Kesi-Dhvaja Khandikya
-
-
-Kesi Dhvaja was versed in Âtmâ-vidya, Khandikya was versed in Vedic
-Karma, Kesi Dhvaja overpowered Khandikya and he fled away.
-
-.. figure:: images/bhagap202.png
-
-.. parsed-literal::
-
-
- Kesi-Dhvaja Upa-guru
- | |
- Bhanumat Upa-gupta (incarnation of Agni)
- | |
- Sata-dyumna Vasvananta
- | |
- Suchi Yuyudha
- | |
- Sanadvaja Subhashana
- | |
- Urja-ketu Sruta
- | |
- Purujit Jaya
- | |
- Arishta nemi Vijaya
- | |
- Srutayu Rita
- | |
- Suparsva Sunaka
- | |
- Chitraratha Vitahavya
- | |
- Kshemadhî Dhriti
- | |
- Samaratha Bahulasva
- | |
- Satyaratha Kriti
- |
- Upa-guru
-
-
-These kings of Mithila were well versed in Âtmâ-vidya.
-
-
-
-THE LUNAR DYNASTY.
-------------------
-
-**SKANDHA IX. CHAP. 14.**
-
-Sōma (the Moon) was born out of the eyes of Atri. He carried off Târa,
-the wife of Brihaspati (Jupiter). Brihaspati asked for his wife several
-times, but Sōma would not give her up. Sukra (Venus) was not on good
-terms with Brihaspati. So he took the side of Sōma, with his disciples,
-the Asuras. Śiva with his Bhûtas took the side of Brihaspati. Indra with
-the Devas also sided with their preceptor. The two parties engaged in
-fight. After some days of fight, Angiras informed Brahmâ about every
-thing that transpired. Brahmâ reproached Sōma. So he returned Târa to
-Brihaspati. Brihaspati found that Târa had conceived. "Immediately
-throw out the seed of another man in my field," cried he. Târa feeling
-bashful brought forth at the time a lustrous son, Both Brihaspati and
-Sōma desired to have the son, each saying "It is mine not yours." When
-they quarrelled with each other, the Devas and Rishis asked Târa who was
-the father of the child. The child reproved his mother for the delay in
-answering. Brahmâ took Târa aside and learned from her that Sōma was the
-father of the son, Sōma then took the child. Brahmâ seeing the deep
-wisdom of the child named him Budha (Mercury).
-
-Budha had by Ilâ one son Pururavas. Nârada related his beauty and his
-virtues to the Devas in Svarga. Urvasi heard all that and took a fancy
-for the king. By the curse of Mitra Varuna, she had then a human form.
-Both the king and the Apsaras became attached to each other and they
-lived as husband and wife. But Urvasi laid down two conditions of her
-company with the king — (1) that the king was to preserve two rams, which
-the Apsaras had brought with her and (2) that the king was never to
-expose himself before her except in privacy. Indra sent the Gandharvas
-in search of Urvasi. They found her out and took away her two rams. She
-had a maternal affection for these animals and she cried out in despair.
-The king hurriedly took his arms and ran after the Gandharvas. They left
-the rams and fled away. The king brought them back. But in the hurry, he
-had forgot to cover himself and Urvasi left him. The king became
-disconsolate, and roamed about in search of her. After some days he
-found her on the banks of the Sarasvati with her 5 companions. He
-entreated her to come back. She promised to give her company to the king
-one night every year and informed him of her delicate state of health.
-
-Urvasi came after a year, with one son. She advised the king to entreat
-the Gandharvas for her hands. The king did so and the Gandharvas became
-pleased with him. They gave him one Agnisthâli (pot of fire). The king
-took the Agnisthâli to be Urvasi and roamed with it in the forest. (The
-Gandharvas gave him the fire for the performance of sacrifice necessary
-for the attainment of Urvasi). The king found out his mistake at last.
-He then placed the fire in the forest, went home and meditated every
-night on Urvasi. On the approach of Tretâ, he was inspired with the
-three Vedas (Karma-Kânda). He then went to the place of fire and found
-there one Asvatha tree (the sacred fig) grown from inside a Śami tree
-(Śami is the name of a tree said to contain fire). He decided that the
-fire must be within the Asvatha tree. He took two pieces of wood
-(technically called Arani) from that tree and produced fire by their
-friction. He deemed one piece to be Urvasi and another piece to be
-himself and the space between the two pieces to be his son. By friction,
-the fire called Jatavedas came out. (*Vedas* is wealth, enjoyments in
-general. *Jâta* is grown. Jata-vedas is that fire from which enjoyments
-proceed that which gratifies all sense-desires. It is the chief fire of
-the Karma-kânda of the Vedas). By the invocation of the three vedas, that
-fire became three fold. (Âhavaniya, Gârhapatya, and Dakshinâ are the
-three fires perpetually kept in the household. *Âhavaniya* is the eastern
-fire which represents the relations of the house holder with the Devas.
-*Gârhapatya* is the sacred fire which the householder receives from his
-father and transmits to his descendants and from which fires for
-sacrificial purposes are lighted. It represents household and family
-duties. *Dakhina* is the southern fire. It represents all classes of duty
-to the Pitris). The king imagined this threefold fire to be his son (The
-son by his offerings sends his father's soul to Svarga. The sacrificial
-fire also sends the performer to Svarga). With that fire, he performed
-Yajna desiring to reach the Loka (plane) of Urvasi. Prior to this in
-Satya Yuga, Pranava was the only Veda, Nârâyana was the only Deva, there
-was only one fire and only one caste. The three Vedas came only from
-Pururavas, at the beginning of Treta Yuga. The king attained Gandharva
-Loka by means of the fire. (In Satya Yuga, Satva generally prevailed in
-men. Therefore they were all fixed in meditation. But in Treta Yuga,
-Rajas prevailed and by the division of the Vedas, Karma Mârga made its
-appearance. *Śridhara*.)
-
-[The true history of the origin of the three Vedas is thus given in
-veiled words. They originated in the strong desire of men in Treta Yuga
-for the possession of heavenly things. This gives us about two millions
-of years at the present day. The origin of the Vedas must not be
-confounded however with their existence in the present form. For that we
-must refer to the sacrifice of Haris Chandra, the adoption of Sunah
-sepha by Visvâmitra and the division amongst the Madhu Chandas
-brothers.]
-
-.. figure:: images/bhagap204.png
-
-.. figure:: images/bhagap205.png
-
-.. parsed-literal::
-
-
- Purûravas
- *m*. Urvasi
- |
- --+-----------+-----------+----------+---------+----------+--
- | | | | | |
- Âyus Srutâyus Satyâyus Raya Vijaya Jaya
- | | | | |
- Vasumat Srutanjaya Eka Bhima Amita
- |
- Kânchana
- |
- Hotraka
-
-
- Hotraka
- |
- Jahnu (He swallowed up the
- | Gangâ in her downward
- | course and let her out
- | though his thighs).
- |
- Puru
- |
- Balâka
- |
- Ajaka
- |
- Kusa
- |
- --+-----------+---+----+-----------+--
- | | | |
- Kusâmbu Tanaya Vasu Kusanâbha
- |
- Gadhi
- |
- Satyavati
-
-
-Rishi Richika asked for the hand of Satyavati. Gadhi did not consider
-him to be a fit husband for his daughter. He therefore wanted to put him
-off and said: — "Give a dower of one thousand horses, with the lustre of
-moon all over their body and with one of their ears dark-coloured
-(Śyama). For we are sons of Kusika."
-
-The Rishi went to Varuna and got the horses. He gave them to the king
-and married Satyavati.
-
-Satyavati and her mother both asked Richika to prepare *Charu* for the
-birth of a son to each. (*Charu* is an oblation of rice, barley, and pulse,
-boiled together. It is offered to Devas and Pitris). Richika prepared
-two charus and consecrated one with Brâhmana Mantra and the other with
-Kshatriya Mantra. The Rishi then went to bathe himself. In the meantime,
-the mother thought, the daughter's Charu must be superior to hers. So
-she procured that from her daughter and the daughter partook of her
-mother's Charu. When the Rishi returned and learned what had taken
-place, he said to his wife: — "What an improper thing you have done by
-this exchange of Charus! You shall have a fierce and terrible son,
-while your brother shall be the greatest in divine wisdom."
-
-Satyavati prayed to her husband, saying "Let it not be so." The Rishi
-then said, "Then your grandson shall be all that."
-
-Jamadagni was born of Satyavati. She became the river Kausiki.
-
-Jamadagni married Renukâ the daughter of Renu.
-
-Jamadagni had several sons, Vasumat and others. The youngest was Râma
-(Parsurama). He is said to be an Incarnation of Vishnu. He destroyed the
-Haihaya Kshatriyas. He cleared the earth of Kshatriyas twenty one times.
-
-Kârtaviryarjuna was the chief of the Haihaya clan. He got yogic powers
-from Datta-Atreya and also one thousand heads. He was very powerful. He
-was hospitably received one day by Jamadagni, with the objects yielded
-by his Kâma-Dhenu (a cow that yields all objects of desire). The king
-longed to have the cow and forcibly carried her away. Parasurâma killed
-the king in battle and carried back the cow. The sons of the king out of
-revenge killed Rishi Jamadagni while Parasurâma and his brothers were
-out. Incensed by this conduct of the Haihayas, Parasurâma killed all the
-Kshatriyas on account of their iniquities.
-
-Jamadagni on his death became the Seventh Rishi in the constellation of
-the Seven Rishis.
-
-Parasurâma will become one of the Seven Rishis in the next Manvantara.
-He bides his time, with axe in hand, on the Mahendra mountain.
-
-Gadhi had his son Visvâmitra. Though a Kshatriya, he became a Brâhmana
-by his Tapas. He had one hundred sons. The mid son was Madhuchhandas.
-But they were all called Madhuchhandas. Visvâmitra adopted as his son
-Sunahsepha, son of Ajigarta of the clan of Bhrigu after he had been
-offered up to the Devas and the Rishi asked his sons to accept him as
-their eldest brother. Śunahśepha had been purchased as the victim of
-Haris Chandra's sacrifice. He prayed to the Devas and to Prajâpati and
-got liberation. In the clan of Gadhi, he was known as Devarâta. In the
-clan of Bhrigu, he was called Sunahsepha. The elder sons of Visvâmitra
-did not accept him. So the Rishi cursed them to become Mlechhas.
-Madhuchhandas with the youngest 50 did as asked by the Rishi.
-
-The other sons of Visvâmitra were Ashtaka, Harita, Jaya, Kratumat and
-others.
-
-.. parsed-literal::
-
- GÂDHI
- |
- --+---------------------+------------+--
- | |
- Satyavati Visvâmitra
- m. Richika |
- | --+------------+---+-----------+---
- Jamadagni (adopted) | |
- | Devarâta 100 sons Ashtakja
- Parasurâma including & others
- Madhuchhandas
-
-
-
-THE LUNAR DYNASTY (Continued).
-------------------------------
-
-**SKANDHA IX. CHAP. 17.**
-
-Âyus was the eldest son of Pururavas. His line is now given.
-
-.. figure:: images/bhagap207.png
-
-.. parsed-literal::
-
-
- Pururavas
- |
- Âyus
- |
- --+-------------+----------+---+------+--------+--
- | | | | |
- Nahusha Kshatra-Vriddha Raji Rabha Anena
- | | | |
- Suhotra 500 Sons Râbhas Śuddha
- | | |
- | Gambhira Śuchi
- --+---------+-----+----+-- | |
- | | | Akriya Chitraka
- Kâsya Kusa Gritsamada | |
- | | | Brahmâvit Santarajas
- Kaśi Prati Sunaka
- | | |
- Rashtra Sanjaya Sounaka
- | |
- Dirghatamas Jaya
- | |
- Dhanvantari Harnabala
- (promulgator |
- of Âyur Veda Sahadeva
- and a sub |
- Incarnation Hina
- of Vishnu.) |
- | Jaya Sena
- Ketumat |
- | Saukriti
- Bhimaratha |
- | Jaya.
- Divōdasa
- |
- Dyumat (also called Pratardana
- Satrujit and Ritadhvaja)
- |
- Dharmaketu
- |
- -+-+--------------------+--
- | |
- Alarka others
- (reigned for 66000 years)
- |
- Santati
- |
- Sunitha
- |
- Niketana
- |
- Dharmaketu
- |
- Satyaketu
- |
- Dhrishtaketu
- |
- Sukumara
- |
- Vitihotra
- |
- Bharga
- |
- Bhargabhumi
-
-
-
-Raji defeated the Asuras and made over Svarga to Indra. Indra placed
-Raji in charge of Svarga. Raji died and his sons did not return the
-kingdom of Svarga to Indra. Brihaspati made invocation against them and
-they were all easily killed.
-
-
-SKANDHA IX. CHAPS. 18-19.
-
-.. figure:: images/bhagap208.png
-
-.. parsed-literal::
-
- Purûravas
- |
- Âyus
- |
- --+--------------+----------+---+--------+---------+--
- | | | | |
- Nahusha Kshatra-vridha Raji Rabha Anênâ
- |
- --+--------------+--------------+--------+---------+-------+--
- | | | | | |
- Yati Yayâti Saryâti Âyati Viyati Kriti
-
-
-Śarmistha was the daughter of the Dânava king Vrishaparvan. Devayâni was
-the daughter of Sukra, the preceptor of the Dânavas. They quarrelled
-whilst playing with each other and Śarmistha threw Devayâni into a well.
-King Yayâti happened to pass by the way and he rescued her. She became
-attached to the king and married him. Sukra became displeased with the
-Dânavas for the ill treatment of his daughter by Śarmistha. And to
-please the preceptor and his daughter, Vrishaparvan had to make over his
-daughter and her companions to Devayâni as her constant attendants. So
-they accompanied Devayâni to the place of Yayâti. Sukra warned Yayâti
-however not to have any intercourse with Śarmistha. But the king did not
-heed the warning. He had two sons Yadu and Turvasu by Devayâni and three
-sons, Druhya, Anu and Puru by Śarmistha. Devayâni complained to Sukra
-and by the curse of the Rishi the king was attacked with the infirmities
-of old age. The Rishi was subsequently pleased to say that the king
-might exchange his infirmities with another. Yayâti called his sons one
-by one and they all declined to comply with his request except the
-youngest son Puru. So he exchanged his infirmities with Puru and lived
-as a young man. At last he found that no amount of gratification of the
-senses produced satiety and being disgusted with the pleasures of life,
-made over to Puru his youth and took upon himself his own infirmities.
-He made over the south east to Druhya, the east to Yadu, the west to
-Turvasu and the north to Anu. He then made Puru his successor and went
-into the forest.
-
-SKANDHA IX. CHAP. 20.
-
-.. figure:: images/bhagap209.png
-
-.. parsed-literal::
-
-
- YAYATI
- |
- --+---------+----------+------+--+-------+--
- | | | | |
- Yadu Turvasu Druhya Anu Puru
- |
- Janamejaya
- |
- Prachinvat
- |
- Pravira
- |
- Manasyu
- |
- Chârupada
- |
- Sudyu
- |
- Bahugava
- |
- Sanyâti
- |
- Ahanyâti
- |
- Raudrâsva
- by Apsaras Ghritachi
- |
- --+---------+-----------+----------+-+---------+--------
- | | | | | |
- Riteyu Kaksheya Sthandileyua Kriteyu Jaleyu |
- | |
- Rantinâbha --+---------+----------+-----------+-------++
- | | | | | |
- | Sateyu Dharmeyu Sannatyeyu Vrateyu Vaneyu
- |
- --++-----------------+--------------------+---
- | | |
- Sumati Dhruva Apratiratha
- | |
- Rebhi Kanva
- | |
- Dushmanta (the famous Medhâtithi
- lover of Sakuntalâ daughter |
- of Visvâmitra by Menakâ, Pras Kanna and other
- hero of Kali Dasa's drama.) Brâhmanas
- |
- Bharata
- (Sub-Incarnation of Vishnu)
-
-
-Bharata had three wives, all of Vidarbha. One of them bore a son to the
-king, but he pronounced the child to be unlike himself. The wives of the
-king killed their children for fear of their being called illegitimate.
-Bharata gave Yajna offerings to the Maruts and to Sōma (Moon) that he
-might be blessed with a Son. The Maruts gave him Bharadvâja as his son.
-Brihaspati (Jupiter) produced Bharadvâja on Mamatâ (Egoism), the wife of
-his brother Utathya. The parents deserted the child and he was brought
-up by the Maruts. Bharadvâja being adopted by Bharata was called
-Vitatha.
-
-.. figure:: images/bhagap210.png
-
-.. parsed-literal::
-
- BHARADVÂJA OR VITATHA
- |
- MANYU
- |
- ---+-----------------+---+----------+------------+-----------+--
- | | | | |
- Brihat-Kshatra Jaya Mahâvirya Nara Garga
- | | | |
- Hastin Durita-Kshaya Sankriti Sani
- (founded Hastinâpur, | | |
- modern Delhi) | --+--+----+-- |
- | | | | |
- --+---+----------+-----------+-- | Guru Rantideva |
- | | | | |
- Ajamirha Dvimirha Purumirha | Gârgya
- (See next page) | | (became
- | ---+------------++----------+--- Brâhmana)
- | | | |
- | Trayyâprni Kavi Pushkarâruni
- | (Brâhmana) (Br) (Br)
- |
- Yavinara
- |
- Kritimat
- |
- Satyadhriti
- |
- Dridhanemi
- |
- Supârsva
- |
- Sumati
- |
- Sannatimat
- |
- Kriti (arranged
- Prâchasâma in to 6
- Sanhitâs)
- |
- Niha
- |
- Ugrâyudha
- |
- Kshemya
- |
- Suvira
- |
- Ripunjaya
- |
- Bahuratha
-
-Rantideva gave to others whatever he had and had nothing left for
-himself. He and his dependents remained without food for forty-eight
-days. On the morning of the 49th. day he got some *ghee*, milk, prepared
-barley, and water. While he was going to partake of that with the others,
-a Brâhmana became his guest. He duly respected his guest and gladly gave
-him a share of the meals. When the Brâhmana went away, he divided the
-remnant amongst his dependents and himself, and while he was going to eat,
-one Sûdra became his guest. He gave him a share out of his own. When
-the Sûdra went away, another man came with a number of dogs and Rantideva
-duly respected him and gave him what he could. Only some water now
-remained, sufficient for the drink of one man only. He was going to drink
-that water, when a man of the Pukvasa caste (a degraded mixed caste) came
-and pitifully asked for some water. "I do not ask for the eight Siddhis,"
-exclaimed Rantideva "I do not ask for Nirvâna. I only want that I may
-pervade all beings and suffer for them all their miseries, that they may
-be sorrowless. By parting with this water to save the life of this
-distressed man, my hunger, thirst, langour, giddiness, and distress are
-all gone." Kind hearted Rantideva gave even the water to the thirsty
-Pukvasa. Even Brahmâ and others could not distract him from his devotion
-to Vishnu. His followers all became Yōgins devoted to Vishnu.
-
-(Is there some connection between Rantideva and Jesus Christ?)
-
-.. figure:: images/bhagap211.png
-
-.. figure:: images/bhagap212.png
-
-.. figure:: images/bhagap213.png
-
-.. parsed-literal::
-
-
- Ajamirha
- |
- --+------------+------+---------+-----------+--
- | | | |
- The Brahmans Brihadishu Nila Riksha (1)
- Priyamedha | |
- & c. Brihaddbanu Sânti
- (Large Jaws) |
- | Susanti
- Brihatkâya |
- Large sized) Puruja
- | |
- Jayadratha Arka
- | |
- Vishada Bharmyâsva
- | (His sons were
- Syenajit known as
- | Panchâla) -----+-- Mudgala
- --+-----------+-+---------+ | (originator of the
- | | | | Maudgalya clan)
- Ruchirâsya Dhridhahanu Kâsya Vatsa |
- | +-- Yavinara
- Pâra |
- | +-- Brihadvisva
- --+--+--------+-- |
- | | +-- Kampilla
- Prithusena Nîpa |
- | +-- Sanjava
- --+--+----------+--
- | |
- 100 sons Bhahmadatta
- (Yogin)
- |
- Vishvaksen
- (author of Yoga
- Sâstra)
- |
- Udaksena
- |
- Bhaliâta
-
-
- Mudgala (continued from above)
- |
- --+-----------+--------+--
- | |
- Divodasa Ahalya
- | m. Gotama
- Mitrayu |
- | Sotananda
- Chyavana |
- | Satyadhriti (versed in
- Sudasa Dhanur Veda)
- | |
- Sahadeva Saradvat (saw Urvasî and
- | his seed fell on a cluster
- Somaka of Sara grass from which were
- | born the pair).
- --+-------++----------+-- |
- | | | --+---+-------+--
- Jantu 93 sons Prishata | |
- | Kripa Kripî
- Drupada m. Drona
- |
- Draupadî
- |
- --+--+-----------+--
- | |
- Dhrishtadyumna others
- |
- Dhrishtaketu
-
-
-
-
- (1) RIKSHA
- |
- Samvarana
- *m*. Tapati daughter of the Sun
- |
- Kuru
- |
- --+-----------+---------+--+------+--
- | | | |
- Parikshi Sudhana Jahnu Nishadha
- | |
- Suhotra Suratha
- | |
- Chyavana Viduratha
- | |
- Kriti Sarvabhouma
- | |
- Uparichara Vasu Jaya Sena
- | |
- | Râdhikâ
- | |
- | Ayutayu
- |
- Uparichara Vasu Ayutayu
- | |
- | Akrodhana
- | |
- | Devâtithi
- | |
- | Riksha
- | |
- | Dilipa
- | |
- | Pratipa --------------------------\\
- | |
- | |
- --+---------++--------+-------+----------+-------+-- |
- | | | | | | |
- Brihadratha Kusâmba Matsya Pratyagra Chedipa Others |
- | |
- --+-+---------+-- |
- | | |
- Kusagra Jarâ Sandha |
- | (was born in two parts. He was |
- Rishabha therefore thrown away out side. |
- | Jarâ a Râkshasha woman, united |
- Satyahita the two parts and made the child |
- | alive. Hence he was called |
- Pushpavat Jarâsandha). |
- | |
- Jahu --+----------+-----------+---/
- | | | |
- Sahadeva Devâpi Sântanu Vâhika
- | (gave up the world |
- Sōmâpi and went to forest) Somadatta
- | |
- Sruta Sravas --+------------+-------------+---+--
- | | |
- Bhûri Bhûrisravas Sala
-
-
-
-Santana had in his former life the power by pass of his hands to make an
-old man young. He was therefore called Sântanu in this life. When he
-became king, there was drought for 12 years. The Brâhmanas ascribed this
-to Sântanu's overlooking the claims of his eldest brother Devâpi.
-Sântanu went to his brother. But in the meantime his minister had sent
-certain Brâhmanas to Devâpi and they dissuaded him from Vedic Dharma.
-He thus became unfit to be a king and the Devas then rained. *But Devâpi
-is waiting at Kalâpa for his future mission. The lunar dynasty will come
-to an end in the present Kaliyuga and Devâpi will be the progenitor of
-the lunar Dynasty in the next Satyayuga.*
-
-.. parsed-literal::
-
-
- Sântanu
- By Gangâ | By Satyavati
- --+---------------------+---+----------------------+--
- | | |
- Bhishma Chitrangada Vichitra Virya
- (killed by a *m*. Ambâ and
- Gandharva) Ambâlikâ
- daughters of
- Kâsirâja
-
-
-Satyavati was the daughter of Uparichara Vasu by Matsyagandhâ. Before
-her marriage with Sântanu, Rishi Parâśara had by her one son Krishna
-Dvaipâyana, the renowned Vyâsa, father of Suka, the propounder of the
-Bhâgavata Purâna.
-
-As Vichitra Virya had no son, Satyavati asked Vyâsa to produce sons on
-his wives. They were Dhritarâshra, Pându, and Vidura.
-
-.. parsed-literal::
-
-
-
- Dhritarâshra
- *m*. Gandhari
- |
- --+----------------+----------+----+--
- | | |
- Duryodhana 99 Others Duhsalâ
-
-
- Pându
- *m*. Kunti *m*. Madri
- | |
- --+---+---------+-----------+-- -----+------
- | | | |
- (By Dharma) (By Indra) (By Vayu) (By Asvini Kumars)
- Yudhisthira Arjuna Bhima | |
- Nakula Sahadeva
-
-
-
-YUDISTHIRA HAD::
-
- (1) By Draupadî — Prativindhya
- (2) By Pauravi — Devaka
-
-BHIMA HAD::
-
- (1) By Draupadî — Srutasena
- (2) By Hidimbâ — Ghatot Kacha
- (3) By Kâli — Sarvagata
-
-ARJUNA HAD
-
-.. parsed-literal::
-
- (1) By Draupadî — Srutakirti
- (2) By Ulûpi — Iravat
- (3) By the princess
- of Manipur — Vabhruvâhana
- (4) By Subhadrâ — Abhimanyu
- *m*. Uttarâ
- |
- Parikshit
-
-NAKULA HAD::
-
- (1) By Draupadî — Satânika
- (2) By Karenumatî — Naramitra
-
-SAHADEVA HAD::
-
- (1) By Draupadî — Sruta Karman
- (2) By Vijayâ — Suhotra
-
-
- Arjuna Vrishtimat Durdamana
- | | |
- Abhimanyu Susena Mahinara
- | | |
- Parikshit Mahipati Dandapâni
- | | |
- Janmaejaya Sunitha Nimî
- | | |
- Satânika Nri Chakshus Kshemaka
- | |
- Sahasrânika Sukhinala
- | |
- Asvamedhaja Pariplava
- | |
- Asima Krishna Sunaya
- | |
- Nemi Chakra Medhâvin
- (Hastinâpura |
- shall be washed Nripanjaya
- away and he |
- shall reside at Durva
- Kousâmbi) |
- | Timi
- Upta |
- | Brihadratha
- Chitraratha |
- | Sudâsa
- Suchiratha |
- | Satânika
- Vrishtimat |
- | Durdamana
-
-*Kshemaka shall be the last of this approved line in the Kali
-Yuga.*
-
-.. figure:: images/bhagap215.png
-
-Now as to the Magadha kings.
-
-::
-
-
- Jarâ Sandha Sama
- | |
- Sahadeva Dridhasena
- | |
- Mârjâri Sumati
- | |
- Srutasravas Subala
- | |
- Yutâyu Sunitha
- | |
- Naramitra Satyajit
- | |
- Sunakshatra Visvajit
- | |
- Brihat Sena Ripunjaya
- |
- Karmajit
- |
- Satanjaya
- |
- Vipra
- |
- Suchi
- |
- Kshema
- |
- Suvrata
- |
- Dharma Sutra
- |
- Sama
-
-
-This line shall be extinguished one thousand years after the death of
-Parikshit. (The future tense is used in the text with reference to the
-time of Parikshit.)
-
-**SKANDHA IX. CHAPS. 23.**
-
-.. parsed-literal::
-
- YAYATI
- |
- --+---------+-----------++-------+---------+--
- | | | | |
- Yadu Turvasu Druhya Anu Puru
- |
- --+-------+------+----------+--
- | | |
- Sabhânara Chakshus Parekshu
- |
- Kâlanara
- |
- Janamejaya
- |
- Mahâ Sâla
- |
- Mahâmanas
- |
- --+--------------+------------+--
- | |
- Usinara Titiksha
- | |
- --+------+---+--+------+-- Rushadratha
- | | | | |
- Sivi Vara Krimi Daksha Homa
- | |
- --+--+----------+-------+------+-- Sutapas
- | | | | |
- Vrishârbha Subiua Madra Kekaya Bali
-
-Dirghatamas Rishi produced on Bali's wife Six sons — Anga, Banga,
-Kalinga, Sambhu, Pundra and Odhra. These six sons founded kingdoms in
-their own names in the East.
-
-(Anga is the country about Bhâgalpur. Banga is modern Bengal. Kalinga is
-the country between Jagannatha and the Krishna. Odhra is part of modern
-Orissa.)
-
-.. figure:: images/bhagap216.png
-
-.. parsed-literal::
-
-
- BALI
- |
- --+-------+---------+---------++--------+---------+--
- | | | | | |
- Anga Banga Kalinga Sambhu Pundra Odhra
- |
- Khalapâna
- |
- Diviratha
- |
- Dharmaratha
- |
- Chitraratha.
-
-
-
-Chitratha was also called Rōmapâda. He had no son. Dasaratha (father of
-Râma) was his friend. He gave his daughter Sântâ to Rōmapâda. Sântâ was
-married to Rishi Rishya Sringa. That Rishi made a Yajna for Rōmapâda and
-he had a Son Chaturanga born to him.
-
-.. parsed-literal::
-
- Chitraratha or Rōmapâda
- |
- Chaturanga
- |
- Prithulâksha
- |
- Brihadratha
- |
- --+-------------------+-----------------+--
- | | |
- Brihadratha Brihatkarman Brihatbhanu
- |
- Brihanmanas
- |
- Jayadratha
- |
- Vijaya
- |
- Dhriti
- |
- Dhritavrata
- |
- Satkarman
- |
- Adhiratha
-
-(He adopted Karna of the Mahâbhârata as his son, when he
-had been left by Kunti.)
-
-.. figure:: images/bhagap217.png
-
-.. figure:: images/bhagap218.png
-
-.. figure:: images/bhagap219.png
-
-.. figure:: images/bhagap220.png
-
-.. figure:: images/bhagap221.png
-
-.. figure:: images/bhagap222.png
-
-.. figure:: images/bhagap223.png
-
-.. figure:: images/bhagap224.png
-
-.. figure:: images/bhagap225.png
-
-.. figure:: images/bhagap226.png
-
-.. parsed-literal::
-
-
-
- ADHIRATHA
- |
- Karna
- |
- Vrisha Sena
-
-
- YAYÂTI
- |
- Druhyu
- |
- Babhru
- |
- Setu
- |
- Arabdha
- |
- Gândhâra
- |
- Dharma
- |
- Dhrita
- |
- Durmada
- |
- Prachetas
- |
- One hundred sons inhabiting the north as a Mlechcha race.
-
-
-
- YAYÂTI
- |
- Turvasu
- |
- Bahni
- |
- Bharga
- |
- Bhânumat
- |
- Tribhânu
- |
- Karandhama
- |
- Marutta (adopted Dushmanta of the
- line of Puru as his son, but
- Dushmanta reverted to his own
- line.)
-
-
-
-
- YAYÂTI
- |
- Yadu
- |
- --+------------+-----------+---------+--
- | | | |
- Sahasrajit, Kroshta, Nala, Ripu,
- |
- Satajit
- |
- --+-+----------+----------+--
- | | |
- Mahahaya Renuhaya Haihaya
- |
- Dharma
- |
- Netra
- |
- Kunti
- |
- Sohanji
- |
- Mahishmat
- |
- Bhadra sen
- |
- --+------+-------+--
- | |
- Durmada Dhanaka
- |
- --+-------------+-------------+--------------+--
- | | | |
- Kritavirya Kritâgni Kritavarman Kritaujas
- |
- Arjuna
- (Learned Yoga from Dattâtreya. Had one
- thousand sons of whom only 5 survived.)
- |
- --+------+-----+-------------+----------+---------+--
- | | | | |
- Jayadhvaja Sûrasena Vrishabha Madhu Urjita
- | |
- Tâlajangha --+-----+--------+--
- | | |
- Vitihotra and 99 other sons Vrishni 99 other sons
- called Tâla Janghas. They
- were killed by Sagara.
-
-
-
- YADU
- |
- Kroshtu
- |
- Vrijinavat
- |
- Svâhita
-
-
- Svâhita (Continued)
- |
- Visadgu
- |
- Chitraratha
- |
- Sasavindu. (Had ten thousand wives
- and one laksha sons by each wife. Of these sons, six
- were famous: Prithu Sravas, Prithu Kirti, Punyayasas etc.)
-
-
-
- SASAVINDU
- |
- --+-------------------+-----------------+--
- | |
- Prithu-Sravas Others
- |
- Dharma
- |
- Usanas
- |
- Ruchaka
- |
- --+--------+-+----------+-----------+------------+--
- | | | | |
- Purujit Rukma Rukmesha Prithu Jyâmagha
- *m*. Saivyâ
-
- (The king carried away
- from Indra's place one girl
- Bhojya whom he married
- to his future son Vidarbha)
- |
- Vidarbha
- |
- --+-----------------+-------------+--------+----
- | | |
- Kusa Krathu Romapâda
- | |
- Kunti Babhru
- | |
- Vrishni Kriti
- | |
- Nirvriti Usika
- | |
- Dasârha --+---+--------+--------+--
- | | | |
- Vyoma Chedi Damagosha Others
- |
- Jimûta
- |
- Bhimaratha
- |
- Navaratha
-
-
-
- Navaratha (Continued)
- |
- Dasaratha
- |
- Sakuni
- |
- Karambhi
- |
- Devarâta
- |
- Devakshatra
- |
- Madhu
- |
- Kuruvasa
- |
- Anu
- |
- Puruhotra
- |
- Âyus
- |
- Satvata
- |
- --+--------+------+-------+--+------+----------+---------+--
- | | | | | | |
- Bhajamat Bhaji Divya Vrishni Devavridha Andhaka Mohabhoja
- | | | (a) |
- --+--------+-------+----\\ | Babhra The Bhojas
- | | | | |
- Nimlochi Kinkana Dhrishti | |
- --+-------+---------+----/ |
- | | | |
- Satajit Sahasrajit Ayutâjit |
- |
- --+---------+-----------+--
- | |
- Sumitra Yudhâjit
- |
- --+------+---+----------+--
- | | |
- Nighna Sini Anamitra
- | |
- --+---+---+-- |
- | | |
- Satrajita Prasena |
- |
- |
- /----------------------/
- |
- --+------+---+--
- | |
- Sini Vrishni
- | |
- Satyaka |
- | --+------------+--
- Yuyudhâna | |
- | Svaphalka Chitraratha
- Jaya | |
- | | --+-----+-+--
- Kuni | | |
- | | Prithu Viduratha
- Yugandhara | (*c*)
- |
- --+---------+----------+--
- | | |
- Akrûra 12 others Suchara
- |
- --++-----------+--
- | |
- Devavat Upadeva
-
-
-
- (*a*) ANDHAKA
- |
- --+-----------+----------+----------+-+--
- | | | |
- Kukura Bhajamat Suchi Kambalavarhis
- |
- Bahni
- |
- Viloman
- |
- Kapota-roman
- |
- Anu (Tumvaru was
- his friend)
- |
- Andhaka
- |
- Dundubhi
- |
- Avidyota
- |
- Punarvasu
- |
- --+--+----+--
- | |
- Ahuka Ahukî
- |
- --+------+--
- | |
- Devaka Ugrasena (*b*)
- |
- --+-----------------------------------------------
- |
- (1) Devavat. (2) Upadeva. (3) Sudeva. (4) Devavardhana.
- (5) *Dhritadevâ*. (6) *Sântideva*. (7) *Upadevâ*. (8) *Srideva*.
- (9) *Devarakshitâ*. (10) *Sahadevâ*. (11) *Devakî*.
- (Vâsudeva married all the Sisters)
-
-
-
- UGRA-SENA.
- |
- --+--------+---------+--------++-------+------+----------+-----
- | | | | | | |
- Kansa Sunama Nyagrodha Kanka Sanku Suhu Râshtrapala
-
- --+---------+------------------+----------
- | | |
- Dhrishti Tushtimat 5 Sisters married to the
- brothers of Vâsudeva.
-
-
-
- (c) VIDURATHA
- |
- Sûra
- |
- Bhojamat
-
-
-
- Bhojamat (Continued)
- |
- Sini
- |
- Bhoja
- |
- Hridika
- |
- --+-------------++-----------------+--
- | | |
- Devamirha Satadhanu Kritavarman
- |
- Sura
- *m*. Mârishâ
- |
- --+-----------+-+---------+----------+--------+----------+-----\\
- | | | | | | |
- Vâsudeva Devabhâga Devasravas Anaka Srinjaya Syâmaka |
- |
- --+---------+---------+---------+-----------+--------/
- | | | | |
- Kanka Samika Vatsaka Vrika 5 daughters
-
- The five sisters of Vâsudeva were:--
-
- (1) *Prithâ*, married to Pându
-
- (2) *Srutadeva*, married to Vriddha Sarman
- Dantavâkra
-
- (3) *Sruta Kîrti*, married to Dhrishtaketu
- |
- --+---+-------+--
- | |
- Santardan 4 sons
-
- (4) *Sruta Sravas*, married to Damaghosha of Chedi
- |
- Sisupâla
-
- (5) *Râjâdhidevi*, married to Jayasena
- |
- --++----------+--
- | |
- Vinda Anuvinda
-
- The five sisters of Kansa were married to the 5
- brothers of Vâsudeva. They were:--
-
- (1) *Kansâ*, married to Devabhâga.
- |
- --+-------+-----+--
- | |
- Chittaketu Brihadbala.
-
- (2) *Kansavatî*, married to Deva Sravas.
- |
- --+-+-----------+--
- | |
- Suvîra Ishumat
-
-
-
- (3) *Kankâ*, married to Kanka.
- |
- --+---+------+-----------+--
- | | |
- Vaka Satyajit Purujit.
-
- (4) *Râshtrapâlî*, married to Srinjaya.
- |
- --+--+--------+-----------+--
- | | |
- Vrisha Durmarshana Others.
-
- (5) *Sûrabhûmi*, married to Syâmaka.
- |
- --+----+---------+--
- | |
- Harikesa Hiranyâksha.
-
- As to the other brothers of Vâsudeva, Vatsaka had by
- Apsaras--Misrakesi, Vrika and other sons.
-
-
-
- VATSAKA
- *m*. MISRAKESI
- |
- --+------------------------+--------------------+--
- | |
- Vrika Others
- *m*. Durvakshi
- |
- --+---------------+--------------------+--
- | | |
- Taksha Pushkarasâla Others.
-
-
- Samika
- *m*. Sudâmâni
- |
- --+------------------+------+-----------+--
- | | |
- Sumitra Arjunapala Others.
-
-
- Anaka
- *m*. Karnika
- |
- --+------------------------+----------+--
- | |
- Ritadhâman Jaya
-
-
- Vâsudeva had several wives. Their names and the names of
- their sons are given below:
-
-
- 1. *Rohini*
- |
- --+--------+------+-------+----+--+-------+-------+------+--
- | | | | | | | |
- BALADEVA Gadâ Sârana Durmada Vipula Dhruva Krita Others
-
-
- 2. *Pauravî*
- |
- --+----------+----------+------+-+------+---------+--
- | | | | | |
- Subhadrâ Bhadrabahu Durmada Bhadra Bhûta 7 Others.
-
-
- 3. *Madirâ*
- |
- --+---------+-----------+-------+-+-------+--
- | | | | |
- Nanda Upananda Kritaka Sura Others.
-
-
- 4. *Bhadrâ*
- |
- Kesin.
-
-
- 5. *Rochanâ*
- |
- --+---------------+--------+--------+--
- | | |
- Hasta Hemângada Others
-
-
-
- 6. *Ilâ*.
- |
- --+---------------------+-----------+--
- | |
- Uruvalka Others.
-
-
- 7. *Dhritadevâ*
- |
- Vipristhâ.
-
-
- 8. *Sântidevâ*
- |
- --+-----------+-----------+------+--
- | | |
- Prasama Prathita Others.
-
-
- 9. *Upadevâ*
- |
- --+-----------+-----------+------+--
- | | |
- Râjanya Kalpa-Varha Others.
-
-
- 10. *Srîdevâ*
- |
- --+---------+----------+---+------+--
- | | | |
- Vasu Hansa Suvansa Others.
-
-
- 11. *Devarakshitâ*
- |
- --+------------------------+------+--
- | |
- Gada Others.
-
-
- 12. *Shahadevâ*
- |
- --+-------------+---------+------+--
- | | |
- Pravara Srutimukhya Others.
-
-
- 13. *Devaki*
- |
- --+---------+----------+-------+-+---------+----------+----\\
- | | | | | | |
- Kirtimat Sushena Bhadrasena Riju Sanmardana Bhadra |
- |
- --+----------------+-------------+--------------/
- | | |
- Sankarshana KRISHNA Subhadrâ.
-
-
-With the birth of Sri Krishna, we come to the end of the
-Ninth Skandha of the Bhâgavata Purâna. But for the completion
-of the racial account, we give here only the 1st. Chapter of the 12th.
-Skandha.
-
-
-
-**SKANDHA XII. CHAP. 1.**
-
-We have seen Ripunjaya to be the last of the Magadha kings. He will be
-also called Puranjaya (The future tense, it must be remembered, is used
-solely with reference to the time of Parikshit). His minister Sunaka
-shall kill him and place his own son Pradyōta on the throne.
-
-::
-
-
-
- Pradyōta
- |
- Palaka
- |
- Visâkha
- |
- Râjaka
- |
- Nandivardhana
-
-
-These 5 kings of the line of Pradyōta shall reign for 138 years.
-
-::
-
-
-
- Nandi Vardhana Ajata-Śatru (Contd).
- | |
- Sisunaga Darbhaka
- | |
- Kâkavarna Aj-aya
- | |
- Kshemadharma Nandi Vardhana
- | |
- Kshetrajna Mahanandi
- | |
- Vidhisara Saisunaga
- |
- Ajâta-Śatru
-
-
-These ten shall reign for 360 years--Mahanandi shall have a son, Nanda,
-by a Sûdra woman. He shall be the next king. One Brâhmana Chânakya shall
-kill Nanda and his eight sons and shall place Chandra Gupta on the
-throne.
-
-::
-
-
- Chandra Gupta
- |
- Vârisâra
- |
- Asokavardhana
- |
- Suyasas
- |
- Dasaratha
- |
- Sangata
- |
- Sâlisuka
- |
- Soma-Śarman
- |
- Śatadhanvan
- |
- Brihadratha
-
-
-These ten kings called Mauryas shall reign for 137 years.
-Pushpamitra, Commander of Brihadratha's forces, shall kill his
-master and be king himself. He shall be the founder of the
-Śunga dynasty.
-
-::
-
-
-
- PUSHPAMITRA
- |
- Agnimitra
- |
- Sujyestha
- |
- --+---------------------+-----------------+--
- | | |
- Vasumitra Bhadraka Pulinda
- |
- Utghosha
- |
- Vajramitra
- |
- Bhâgavata
- |
- Devabhûti
-
-
-These (10) ten kings of the Sunga dynasty shall reign for 112
-years. Vâsudeva, the minister of Devabhuti, shall kill his master and
-become himself the king.
-
-::
-
-
- VASUDEVA
- |
- Bhûmitra
- |
- Nârâyana
- |
- Susarman
-
-
-These four kings shall be called Kânvas. They shall reign for
-345 years. Susarman shall be killed by his servant Balin, a Sûdra of
-the Andhra clan, who shall himself usurp the throne. Balin shall be
-succeeded by his brother.
-
-::
-
-
- --+------------+--
- | |
- Balin Krishna Anishta Karman Gomati
- | | |
- Srisântakarna Haleya Purîmat
- | | |
- Pournamâsa Talaka Medasiras
- | | |
- Lambodara Purishabhîru Sivaskânda
- | | |
- Chivilaka Sunandana Yajnasri
- | | |
- Meghasvâti Chakōra Vijaya
- | | |
- Atamana 8 Bahus Chandravijna
- | ending in Sivasvâti |
- Anishta Karman Salomadhi
-
-
-These thirty kings of the Andhra dynasty shall rule the earth for 456
-years. Seven Âbhiras, kings of Avabhriti, ten Gardabhins (men of
-Gardabha) and sixteen Kankas shall then be the rulers. They shall be
-followed by 8 Yavanas, 14 Turushkas and ten Surundas. These 65 kings
-shall reign for one thousand and ninety nine years. Eleven Moulas shall
-then be the kings for 300 years.
-
-Bhuta-Nanda, Bangiri, Sisunandi and Yaso-Nandi shall then become kings.
-Their sons, all known as Bâhlikas, shall succeed them. Then Pushpamitra
-shall be the king, then his son Durmitra. Seven Andhras, seven Kosalas,
-Vidurapatis and Nishadhas shall then become kings, at one and the same
-time, over the lands of these names. They shall be the descendants of
-the Bâhlikas.
-
-Visvasphûrji, otherwise called Puranjaya, shall be the king of the
-Magadhas. He shall make havoc of the caste system. His chief town shall
-be Padmavati (Modern Patna) but his kingdom shall extend from Hardwar to
-Pryag.
-
-Then there shall be Sûdra and Mlechcha kings.
-
-THOUGHTS ON THE VAIVASVATA MANVANTARA.
---------------------------------------
-
-The study of the Vaivasvata Manvantara can be pursued, as to minor
-details, from more than one stand-point. But I am at present concerned
-with only the broad outlines of its esoteric aspect.
-
-We are to understand, in the first place, that there are certain types
-of human races in this as in other Manvantaras. Each of these types has
-a history of its own. Each has its stages of growth, rise and decline,
-and some have their periods of revival in this Manvantara as well. Each
-racial type has to be studied separately.
-
-The connection of the races with the Sun and the Moon requires a little
-consideration.
-
-Those who are acquainted with Hindu astrology know that the life time of
-a man is divided into certain divisions, each division being under the
-influence of one planet. Each planetary period again has its
-sub-divisions, in each of which there is a secondary run of the planets.
-
-According to the Bengal School, the main planetary run takes 108 years
-for its completion, and according to another school, it takes 120
-years.
-
-The following is the order of planetary succession according to the
-second school, which prevails all over India, except in Bengal: —
-
-Sun 6 years, Moon 10, Mars 7, Râhu 18, Brihaspati 16, Saturn 19, Mercury
-17, Ketu 7 and Venus 20. Thus if a man lives for 120 years, all the
-planets will in turn have influenced his life in the above order,
-commencing from the planet of his birth. Again there will be
-corresponding sub-runs of all the planets during each planetary run. The
-races are also governed by such planetary influences.
-
-The Solar Dynasty means that the particular type of humanity so denoted
-was born under the influence of the solar planet. When all the planets
-have in turn exercised their influence over this Dynasty, it disappears
-for a time and is re-born under the influence of the Sun.
-
-Similarly there will be a revival of the Lunar dynasty — that which
-commenced under the influence of the Moon.
-
-The law of planetary influence over the human races is not as clearly
-known as that over individual men. Otherwise the future history of each
-race would not be the sealed book to us which it is.
-
-The humanity of the present Manvantara was first born under the
-influence of the Solar Planet. Our Moon is the son of the Sun-God.
-
-The races that first appeared were called Solar races.
-
-Other races appeared under the influence of the Moon. In these races we
-find first the influence of Brihaspati or Jupiter, through his wife
-Târa, then of Budha or Mercury, and lastly of Sukra or Venus, through
-his daughter Devayâni.
-
-This planetary succession may be only a Sub-run of the planets. We read,
-in the account of the previous Manvantaras, of the appearance of Sukra
-as the guide of the Daityas, and of Brihaspati as the guide of the
-Devas. We have also read of the appearance of Râhu in the sixth
-Manvantara. This shews that the main planetary round has to be found in
-the Kalpa itself.
-
-Our knowledge on the whole subject is however so poor that it is unsafe
-to make any distinct suggestion.
-
-Now we shall take the Solar Races, or the sons of Vaivasvat Manu, in
-order of their treatment in the text. *Prishadhta* and *Kavi* were the first
-spiritual races. They did not marry *i.e.* there was no sexual
-reproduction among them.
-
-Next in order was the *Kârusha* race inhabiting the north.
-
-The *Dhârshtas* were also a spiritual race (Brâhmanas).
-
-The descent towards Materiality commenced with Nriga. He is said to
-have been transformed into a lizard. His grandson was *Bhûtajyotî*,
-Bhûtas being different forms of matter. *Vasu* is a God of Material
-wealth. *Pratîka* means the reverse or opposite (*i.e.* the reverse of
-spirit.) *Ogha* means a current. The current of materialism set in with
-the line of Nriga.
-
-The next line, that of Narishyanta, shews further materiality. Midhvat
-is that which wets (the root *mih* means to pass water). *Viti* is
-production, enjoyments. Vitihotra is the name of a sacrificial fire.
-*Agnivesya* is an incarnation of Agni or the Fire-God, but he is
-nick-named Kânina or son of an unmarried woman and also *Jâtukarna* (the
-name of a Vedic Rishi). There seems to have been sexual procreation in
-this line. The incarnation of Agni further indicates that the present
-human form was complete, for Agni is the form-giving energy in Nature.
-
-In the next line of *Dishta* we have *Vatsapriti* or affection for children,
-*Pransu* or tall, *Pramati* or full-grown intellect, *Khanitra* or digger,
-*Châkshusha* or the eyed, and *Khaninetra* or the hollow-eyed. This line
-represents the race of the earliest diggers, very tall, with the hollow
-eye predominant in them as a characteristic feature; this race was very
-powerful and capable of direct communion with the Devas, and the gods
-acted as waiters in the Yajna of Marutta.
-
-The line of Saryâti refers to Ânarta and a town named Kusasthalî, built
-in the midst of the Sea. Evidently the continent on which the race
-flourished is now under water. Ânarta is supposed to be Sourâshtra
-(modern Surat.) But the site of Kusasthalî cannot be ascertained. There
-were remnants of this race till the time of Krishna, for Balarâm married
-Revati, the daughter of Kakudmin (hump-backed). The line of Nabhaga is a
-short one and it merged itself into that of Angiras who was the father
-of Brihaspati or Jupiter. Ambarisha is the prominent figure of this
-period.
-
-Then we come to the line of *Ikshvâku*. This is the best known line of the
-Solar races. It flourished during the last Tretayuga. *Ikshvâku* is called
-the eldest son of Manu. Perhaps this has reference to the appearance of
-the Race in the previous Manvantaras.
-
-The eldest son of Ikshvâku is Vikukshi (*Kukshi* is womb.) He is also
-called Sasada or the Rabbit-eater. The Moon is called Rabbit-marked.
-
-*Puranjaya* is the son of Vikukshi. He is called Indra-Vâha or
-Indra-Vehicled. Several of the kings of this dynasty befriended the
-Devas of Svar Loka.
-
-Further down we find King *Purukutsa* forming an alliance with the
-elemental serpents, and holding communion with the dwellers of Rasâtala.
-The river Narvadâ is mentioned in connection with Rasâtala.
-
-*Mândhâtâ* is a traditional name that has been preserved upto this time in
-common parlance in the saying "As old as king Mândhâtâ." The line of
-Mândhâtâ was divided into three different branches. *Muchukunda*
-represented a branch of Yogins. The long, unbroken sleep of Muchukunda
-is traditional and he is credited also with Yogic powers. Another branch
-that of Ambarisha, Youvanâsva and Hârita represented a spiritual
-sub-race. But we have to follow the history of the Atlanteans through
-Purukutsa. The connection with Rasâtala, or the plane of Material
-ascendancy, affected the destiny of this line. In Trisanku, the
-aspiration ran very high. He became a Deva, but had his head turned
-downwards, *i.e.* turned towards materiality. With the powers of a Deva,
-but with the aspirations of an Asura, the ground was prepared for the
-downfall of this line. For a time, however, the Race flourished in all
-its materiality. The alliance between Devas and men became cemented by
-the performance of Vedic sacrifices. This was the first spiritual
-advance of the human race, through the temptations of Svarga life.
-
-The time of Haris Chandra is the Vedic era, when the earliest Riks of
-what we know as Rigveda were composed. Visvâmitra and his disciples were
-the Vedic Rishis of this age. The Vedas tried to curb the riotous course
-of materiality by prescribing a number of restrictions on the enjoyment
-of material desires. Elaborate rules were laid down as to how the
-desires might be best gratified for a prolonged period in Svargaloka, by
-the performance of sacrifices or Yajna. The whole of the life of the
-regenerate classes was regulated by rigid laws and a glowing picture was
-given of life in Svarga after death. The sacred injunctions were not,
-however, potent enough to check the Kâmic tendencies of the race and the
-cyclic law which now required the spiritual evolution of humanity was
-continually disregarded by the race. This was poison (*gara*) to the
-system of humanity and king Sagar imbibed this poison. Hence he was
-called the Poisoned. He had two wives. The sons of one wife were 60
-thousand in number. They offended Kapila, an Incarnation of Vishnu, and
-thus were all consumed. They reached the limit of material degradation,
-where final extinction awaited the race. The number 60,000 is
-suggestive.
-
-The extinction of Sagara's sons was attended with great changes on the
-earth's surface. It is said they dug the earth and made the seas in
-their search for the sacrificial horse. Hence the sea is called Sâgara.
-This may refer to the sinking down of Atlantis when a large portion of
-that great continent became a sea-bed. There was a corresponding
-upheaval of land and the Himalayan chain reared up its head, as we can
-easily infer from the first appearance of the Ganges. The first flow of
-Gangâ indicated a many sided revolution in the appearance of the earth's
-surface. A new continent was formed to which India was attached as the
-prominent link. Spiritual sub-races grew up on the banks of the sacred
-river who more than atoned for the sins of their fathers. The
-fore-runner of the race of spirituality was Asamanjas (rising above the
-ordinary run). He was a Yogin not led away by the material tendencies of
-the age. His son was Ansumat (having the ray or light in him). Ansumat
-pacified Kapila.
-
-Gangâ is said to be a spiritual stream flowing from the feet of Vishnu.
-With the advent of this stream, the spiritual rebirth of humanity
-commenced in right earnest, for the remaining period of the Kalpa.
-Already the path had been paved by the Karmakânda of the Vedas, which
-put restrictions on the wanton and reckless performance of Karma or
-action. The pure magnetism of the holy river helped on the process of
-regeneration. But this was not in itself sufficient to cope with the
-forces of materiality. Accordingly we see *Kalmasha* or sin appearing in
-the line of Bhagiratha. King Kalmashapâda became a Râkshasa. A Râkshasa
-is an elemental of destruction. When mind becomes too much identified
-with the gross body and its desires, its connection with the Higher Self
-is liable to be cut off by the action of the Râkshasas. These forces of
-Tamas act in different ways to serve different purposes in the economy
-of the Universe. When the material downfall of man reaches its furthest
-limit in the Kalpa, the Râkshasas become Tâmasic forces in man and he is
-unconscious of his higher nature. That sleep in time becomes a permanent
-sleep, and the lower man becomes dead to his real Self. This is the real
-death of man, when the ray sent forth by Íshvara comes back to Him,
-without any spiritual harvest, and what constituted the personality of
-man dissolves into the Material Universe.
-
-The time had come when a fresh departure was necessary in the methods
-pursued by the Lilâ Avatâras for the spiritual regeneration of the
-Universe. They had now to appear amongst men, as ordinary beings, to
-give direct teachings to their votaries, to infuse as much Satva as
-possible into humanity and to retard by all means the further extinction
-of the human race.
-
-For a time the Râkshasas reigned supreme, but not over the new
-continent, permeated as it was by the sacred waters of the Ganges. Their
-stronghold was Lankâ, the remnant of the Atlantean continent. Following
-the descent of Gangâ therefore, Vishnu incarnated himself as Râma, one
-of the greatest of his manifestations. The Râkshasas of Lankâ were
-killed. Vibhishana only survived, but he was allied to Râma and so
-became immortal in spirituality. The Râkshasa survives in us but its
-energy of dissolution does not militate against the evolution of man. It
-was Râma who first gave the idea of Íshvara to the degraded human races
-of the present Manvantara. They knew, for the first time, that there was
-one greater than all the Devas — the Gods of the Vedas — and that there were
-planes higher than even Svarga. The path of devotion was proclaimed. And
-it became possible for men to cross the limits of death and of Trilokî
-by this quality. The downfall was stopped no doubt; but the ascent was
-only permanently secured by Lord Sri Krishna as we shall see later on.
-
-After Râma, there is little of interest in the line of Ikshvâku. The
-decline commenced and the line became extinct with Sumitra, but it is
-said one king Maru of this line became an adept in Yoga and retired to
-Kalapa, where he bides his time to revive the solar dynasty towards the
-end of the Kaliyuga. We may take him to be the originator of another
-race which will be the re-incarnation of the Ikshvâku race.
-
-We have considered the line of Ikshvâku's descendants through Purukutsa.
-There is another line of his descendants through Nimisha. Then we come
-to the Lunar Dynasty.
-
-The Lunar races first appeared while the descendants of Ikshvâku were
-still flourishing, though on the eve of their decline. They had immense
-possibilities of spiritual evolution, and the great Aryan race seems to
-be connected with them. The appearance of these races is almost
-simultaneous with the first flow of the Ganges. For we find Jahnu, who
-swallowed up the Ganges in her first terrestrial course, is only sixth
-in the line of descent from Pururavas.
-
-The Lunar dynasty originated in the union of Târâ, the female principle
-of Brihaspati (Jupiter), and the Moon. The issue was Budha (Mercury),
-the direct progenitor of the Lunar dynasty.
-
-The son of Budha was Pururavas. He married Urvasi, the renowned Deva
-nymph.
-
-Pururavas had six sons. But we are concerned with only two of them, Âyus
-and Vijaya.
-
-Vijaya gave the Adept line of the race and Âyus, the ordinary humanity.
-
-In the line of Vijaya, we find Jahnu, purified by the assimilation of
-Gangâ, Visvâmitra, pre-eminently the Rishi of the Rig Veda and one of
-the seven sages who watch over the destiny of the present Manvantara,
-Jamadagni, another of the seven sages of our Manvantara and Parasurâma
-one of the coming sages of the next Manvantara. We have already
-mentioned the part taken by Visvâmitra and his sons in the composition
-of the Vedic Mantras.
-
-Coming to the line of Âyus, we recognise the forefathers of
-the Aryan races.
-
-In the short-lived branch through Kshatra-vriddha, we find the Vedic
-Rishi Gritsamada, his son Sûnaka, the renowned Sounaka, Dirghatamas and
-Dhanvantari, the promulgator of Âyur-veda.
-
-But the longest history of the Race is through the descendants of
-Yayâti.
-
-King Yayâti married Devayâni, the daughter of Sukra, the presiding Rishi
-of the planet Venus, and had by her two sons, Yadu and Turvasu. Sukra is
-the son of Bhrigu, the Rishi of Mahar Loka. Devayâna, is the path
-leading beyond Trilokî, after death.
-
-But the King had also connection with a Dânava girl, who brought forth
-three sons, Druhyu, Anu and Puru. For his Dânava connection, King Yayâti
-had in youth to undergo the infirmities of age. This evil was
-transmitted to Puru, the youngest son of the Dânava girl.
-
-The line of Puru was short-lived. But it is this line that gave some of
-the renowned Vedic Rishis, viz. Apratiratha, Kanva, Medhâtithi and
-Praskanva. Dushmanta, the hero of Kalidasa's renowned drama also came of
-this line. Vishnu incarnated in part as Bharata, son of Dushmanta.
-
-Then there was a revolution. Bharata found that his sons were not like
-unto himself. So the direct line of Puru came to an end. What followed
-is a little mysterious. Bharata adopted Bharadvâja as his son.
-Bharadvâja was begotten by Brihaspati (Jupiter) on the wife of his
-brother Utathya named Mamatâ (Egoism).
-
-Bharadvâja is one of the seven presiding Rishis of the present
-Manvantara. His name is connected with several Mantras of the Rig Veda.
-
-The great actors in the Kurukshetra battle were the descendants of
-Bharadvâja. We find much diversity of spiritual characteristics among
-them. The material and spiritual forces were gathered together, in all
-possible grades from the Pândavas downward to the sons of Dhrita-râshtra
-and their allies. The poetical genius of the author of the Mahâbhârata
-has called forth characters in the Drama of the Kurukshetra battle, that
-stand out in all the details of real life and find a permanent place in
-the genealogy of the Lunar dynasty. The study of the racial account of
-the line of Bharadvâja becomes therefore extremely difficult.
-
-The Lunar dynasty will be revived by Devâpi, a descendant of Bharadvâja,
-who is biding his time at Kalâpa.
-
-The early inhabitants of Bengal, Behar and Urishyâ were the sons of Anu,
-the second son of Sarmisthâ. The famous Kâma, one of the heroes of
-Kurukshetra, also belonged to this line.
-
-The eldest son of Sarmisthâ by Yayâti was Druhyu. Prachetas
-of this line had one hundred sons, who inhabited the north as Mlechha
-races.
-
-But the greatest interest attaches to the line of Yadu, the eldest son
-of Yayâti by Devayâni. The early descendants of this line were the
-Haihayas, killed by Parasurâma, and the Tâlajanghas, killed by Sagar
-— both of the Solar Dynasty. The Mahâbhârata has given an importance to
-the overthrow of these early Yadu classes as a victory of the Brâhmanas
-over the Kshatriyas. Next to the Brâhmanas in intelligence were the
-Kshatriyas. They eagerly accepted the teachings of Râma, who incarnated
-as one of them. They knew Ísvara as higher than the Devas and the
-Brâhmanas. They thought they could profitably employ their time in
-seeking after the knowledge of Brahmân. This necessarily offended the
-orthodox Brâhmanas, who performed the Vedic sacrifices and had no higher
-ambition than to resort to Devaloka. The Kshatriyas thus represented a
-religious evolution, of which the Upanishads were an outcome. In time,
-some Brâhmanas even became disciples of Kshatriyas. Both Râma and
-Krishna incarnated themselves as Kshatriyas. We are to understand that
-by Kshatriyas, during this period of Puranic history, is meant seceders
-from Vedic Karma Kânda more or less.
-
-The early seceders, the Haihayas and Tâlajanghas were put down by the
-Brâhmana Parasurâma and by the Kshatriya King Sagar, who espoused the
-cause of Vedic Karma Kânda and of the Brâhmanas, represented by Rishi
-Aurva of this time.
-
-Parasurâma did not like any meddling with Vedic Karma Kânda by persons
-not perfected in wisdom. Even Râma had to respect the Vedic Rishis and
-had to protect them in the performance of Vedic sacrifices from the
-attacks of Asuras and Râkshasas. When Lord Krishna appeared on the
-scene, the Asuras still survived; the Vedic Rishis denied offerings to
-Him, Vedic Karma had a strong supporter in Jarâsandha, there was
-hypocrisy in the name of religion, and there were pretensions in various
-forms. On the other hand great improvements had been made in the proper
-understanding of the realities of life and of the laws of nature.
-Intellect overflowed in many channels of thought, and the religious
-nature of man found vent in all directions from atheism to religious
-devotion.
-
-Leaving this general resumè, we may now enter upon a closer study of the
-history of religious movements in our present Manvantara, so that we may
-understand the great work done by Lord Sri Krishna. The races live as
-individuals live. However developed an individual may be, when he is
-re-born after death, he first becomes a child as any other child. There
-is much of spiritual life in the child, and sometimes pictures of
-heavenly life are presented to his spiritual vision, which are denied to
-to the grown-up man. The child begins his life when he is grown up, and
-then his individual characteristics soon manifest themselves. We do not
-read much of the man in the child. Hence the history of the early
-spiritual races, who were infants in the racial life, does not teach us
-anything. We find some of them had communion with the Devas of Svarga
-Loka, but that is more on account of their infant spirituality than any
-thing else.
-
-When the races developed in time, they became most intellectual as well
-as most material at the same time. Manvantara after Manvantara was taken
-up in developing the physiological (Pranic) activities, the sense
-(Indriya) activities, and then the lower mental activities of the Jivas.
-The personal man was fully developed in the sixth Manvantara and the
-great churning only opened the door for another line of development. The
-possibility of spiritual activity was secured to men by Kûrma.
-
-When the races of the Sixth Manvantara therefore became reborn in the
-Seventh Manvantara, they were the most intellectual of all races, but
-they had also the power given to them of developing spiritual faculties.
-They could not however shake off the Asuric element all at once. They
-were extremely fond of material joys, and they devised all means, which
-human intellect could contrive, of gratifying material desires. That was
-right which gave material gratification; that was wrong which militated
-against material enjoyment.
-
-Bhuvar Loka is the plane of animal desires. The human beasts go after
-death to Bhuvar Loka. They do not possess anything which could take them
-to Svarga Loka.
-
-The Svarga Loka is for those who develop in themselves the faculty of
-discriminating between right and wrong, and who do or attempt to do what
-is right. Far more it is for those who love others and who do good to
-them. For service and love pertain to planes higher even than Svarga.
-But in the higher planes, service is unselfish and love is divine. The
-lower forms of service and love pertain to the plane of Svarga. In
-Svarga there is selfishness, but it is mixed with spirituality. It is
-only the good, the virtuous, the devoted that go to the plane of the
-Devas and there gratify their higher desires to their heart's content.
-There are divine music, divine beauty, divine objects of gratification
-in Svarga Loka — allurements enough for a man of desire. And if his merits
-be great, he enjoys the things of Svarga Loka for an enormously long
-period.
-
-But a man by bare intellectuality can not cross the threshold of Svarga.
-The Devas reject the intruder. However much Trisanku might aspire to
-have the enjoyments of Svarga, and however great his intellect might be,
-he was not allowed to enter the coveted plane, without the passport of
-spirituality. Humanity had still to learn the proper means of securing
-life in Svarga.
-
-Poor and chance spiritual acquisitions give only a passing life in
-Svarga and that not of a superior character. So all the knowledge as to
-attaining Svarga life had to be revealed in time.
-
-The Rishis made great efforts to improve humanity by securing for them a
-prolonged existence in Svarga, most of all Rishi Visvâmitra, one of the
-seven sages of our Manvantara. Visvâmitra failed in his attempt to send
-Trisanku to Svarga. He then tried with his son Haris Chandra. It is said
-he advised the Râjâ to make a human sacrifice to Varuna. But we find the
-victim Sunah-sepha living after the sacrifice, under the name of
-Deva-rata, or one given up to the gods, and some of the Riks even were
-revealed to him. Haris Chandra succeeded in entering Svarga. That was a
-great victory for Rishi Visvâmitra. The Vedas were revealed to the
-Rishis and sacrifices came to be known.
-
-Nârada also helped the cause in another away. He related the beauty and
-the virtues of king Purûravas to the Devas in Svarga. Urvasi, the
-famous Deva nymph, hearing all that, became enamoured of the king. She
-had then, by the curse of some god, a human form. So she could keep
-company with the King. The king was enchanted by her beauty. When she
-left, he followed her advice and pleased the Gandharvas. The Gandharvas
-gave him the fire, with which the king could perform sacrifice. The fire
-became threefold. With one he could perform his duties to the Devas and
-go to Svarga Loka. With another, he could perform his duties to the
-Pitris. With the third fire, he could perform the duties of a
-house-holder. Thus sacrifices meant duties. And it is by the performance
-of duties that men can perform Vedic sacrifices and go to Svarga Loka.
-
-The Vedas laid down injunctions and prohibitions. They regulated the
-actions of men, propelled by Kâma or desire. Men must eat meat. The Vedas
-said this meat was prohibited, but that could be used. Men mixed with
-women. The Vedas laid down restrictions. Even they regulated the
-relations between man and wife. Then the Vedas laid down the duties
-which men owed to all classes of beings. In order to induce men to
-accept the Vedic injunctions, the Vedas held out Svarga as the reward of
-Vedic Karma. They even favoured the belief, that there was to be
-immortal life in Svarga gained by the performance of Vedic Karma.
-Detailed rules as to the performance of Vedic sacrifices were given. So
-long as men did not aspire to become Indra, or the ruler of Svarga, the
-Devas were pleased with the sacrifices; they helped the performer as
-much as they could, giving them all objects of desire, and they welcomed
-them to Svarga, when they passed to that plane after death. The Devas
-were as friendly to the performer of Vedic Karma as they were unfriendly
-to the immature Trisanku.
-
-The Vedic Karma Kânda became thus fully revealed. The revelation was
-made in the last Treta-yuga of the present Manvantara. "At the beginning
-of the Treta Yuga, the three Vedas were revealed through Pururavas." IX.
-14-49. "The path of Karma was promulgated in Treta Yuga, by the division
-of the Vedas." *Śridhara*.
-
-The great churning was justified. The Devas asserted themselves for the
-good of humanity. The Rishis got the revelation and helped men to place
-themselves in active relationship with the Devas. Men learned to
-regulate themselves and to give up the wantonness of material life. And
-they had a strong inducement to do so in the prospect of eternal life in
-Svarga. The great actor in this Vedic movement was Rishi Visvâmitra,
-(Hallowed be his name!) Others followed him in quick succession, and
-there was a brilliant combination of Vedic Rishis who propounded the
-whole of the Karma Kânda of the Vedas, as it was revealed to them by the
-force of Kâlpic necessity.
-
-At all times there have been two parties, one following the current of
-evolution, and another going against it. At all times there have been
-cavillers and sceptics.
-
-The Haihayas and Tâlajanghas were confirmed materialists and great
-sinners. They ridiculed the Brâhmanas, who performed Vedic Karma, and
-often set themselves in opposition to them. They were very troublesome
-to the Brâhmanas. King Sagar wanted to extinguish the race, but he was
-prevented from doing so. Possibly Atlantis was the country inhabited by
-these races and Nature helped the cause of evolution by dragging down
-the continent itself under water. The sacred Gangâ also flowed at this
-time, spreading purity over all lands lying on her banks.
-
-The Haihayas however still flourished; and they had a great leader in
-Kârta-Viryârjuna. Then came one of the great Avatâras, Parasurâma. He
-extirpated the Haihaya Kshatriyas, and went on killing the Kshatriyas
-till Râma appeared, and it was then that he thought his mission was
-over.
-
-If there were some Kshatriyas who disregarded the Vedas, there were
-others who found transitoriness, even in Svarga Loka, and honestly
-thought that the complete wisdom was not to be found in the Karma Kânda.
-They were for further revelations At first, the Brâhmanas did not look
-with favour upon these Kshatriyas. But when it was found that the
-Kshatriyas got real light, they were soon joined by the Brâhmanas. The
-foremost of these Kshatriyas was Janaka, and the foremost of the
-Brâhmanas was Yâjnavalkya. The further revelations were called the
-Upanishads.
-
-King Janaka found Sitâ, the consort of Râma, at the end of his plough.
-Yâjnavalkya defeated all the Brâhmanas of his time in discussions held
-at the court of king Janaka.
-
-When Râma incarnated, there existed the people of Lankâ, a remnant of
-the Atlantean continent, who had inherited a mighty material
-civilisation, but who were called Râkshasas, on account of their gross
-iniquities. They reached the last point of material downfall, and lost
-all spirituality. They were called Râkshasas as final extinction was
-their lot, and as the force of dissolution was strong in them.
-
-Then there were the regenerate classes, who performed Vedic
-sacrifices. There were a few again, who accepted the Upanishads as a
-teaching, but they could not boldly declare themselves against the
-performance of sacrifices.
-
-Râma finally did away with the Râkshasas. The bard who sang his glory,
-the great Vâlmiki, thus began his lay: — "O Killer of birds, thou shalt
-not live for ever, as of the pair of storks thou hast killed the male,
-so passionately attached to his consort." Verily the Purusha in us, the
-ray of the supreme Purusha, becomes passionately attached to the element
-of Prakriti in us, so that we may acquire spiritual experiences through
-the body. And it is a cruel act to separate our Prâkritic
-individualities completely from him by turning ourselves persistently
-away from the Purusha. But when Râma became an Avatâra, the fate of the
-separator was sealed.
-
-When the Râkshasas were killed, the Rishis were left free to perform the
-Vedic sacrifices.
-
-Râma did something more. He married the daughter of Janaka, and by this
-act openly espoused the cause of the Upanishads.
-
-Lastly Râma offered Himself as an object of worship. This was the
-beginning of Vishnu worship, which makes no distinction between classes
-and castes. Râma openly made friendship with Guhaka, belonging to the
-lowest class, whom it was an abomination to touch, for Guhaka was
-devotedly attached to Him, as an Incarnation of Vishnu.
-
-The world admired Râma. No man could reach such eminence. He must be
-something more than a man. In time men accepted him as an Avatâra. At
-any rate, he was an example to others in every respect. The ethical
-standard he laid down in his own life was unimpeachable. The world had
-never seen such sacrifices in the performance of the duties of life. A
-model king, a model son, a model husband, a model brother, a model
-warrior, a model friend, the model of models, Râma left an indelible
-mark as a religious and moral teacher, on the age in which he lived, and
-on all succeeding ages.
-
-The example was not lost on the world. The many-sided picture, that Râma
-presented, produced a spirit of enquiry, which has never been rivalled
-in this Kalpa. Men thought on different lines. They studied the
-Upanishads, which had been favoured by Râma. They could not forget also
-that Râma taught salvation for the performers of Vedic sacrifices. Then
-there was the teaching of his own life. The light was manifold.
-Independent schools of thought grew up, notably the six schools of
-philosophy. Each school tried to find its authority in the Upanishads
-and the divine scriptures supplied texts enough for all the schools.
-Every school found a part of the truth but not the whole truth. Yet each
-school regarded its own part as the whole. So they quarrelled. The
-Mimânsâkas said that the performance of Vedic sacrifices was all in all.
-It had the sanction of time-honored texts and of the most ancient
-Rishis. And Jaimini supplied the reasoning by which the practice could
-be supported. The Sânkhyas said that the chief duty of a man was to
-discriminate between the transformable and the non-transformable element
-in him, and when that was done, nothing more was needed. The followers
-of Patanjali said that mere discrimination was not sufficient, but a
-continued practice was required. The Vaiseshikas studied the attributes
-and properties of all objects and sought by differentiation to know the
-truths. There were others who worshipped the Bhûtas, Pretas and
-Pisachas, so that they might easily acquire powers. Others worshipped
-the dwellers of Svarga Loka. Some worshipped Íshvara. But mostly the
-worship of Śiva was prevalent. Gifts and charities also were not
-unknown, in fact they were very extensive in some instances. But
-generally the object of all religious observances was self-seeking more
-or less.
-
-Amidst this diversity of religious ideas and religious observances,
-seemingly so contradictory, Sri Krishna, the greatest of all Avatâras,
-appeared and He brought the message of peace and reconciliation. He laid
-great stress on the fact that the performance of Vedic sacrifices could
-lead us only to Svarga Loka, but when our merits were exhausted, we were
-bound to be born again on Bhûr Loka, our Earth. While on Earth, we form
-fresh Karma, which gives rise to other births. The performance of Vedic
-Karma does not therefore free us from the bondage of births, for, as the
-Lord said, there is object-seeking in these performances. Object-seeking
-for one's own self does not find a place in the higher Lokas. Its
-highest limit is Svarga Loka. So long as man remains self-seeking, he
-can not transcend the limits of Trilokî. In the higher Lokas, there is
-no recurrence of births and re-births. Once you are translated to Mahar
-Loka, you live for the whole of the remaining period of the Kalpa,
-passing through a gradual evolution to the higher Lokas. And if you form
-a devotional tie with the Lord of many Brahmândas, the First Purusha,
-even the Kâlpic period does not restrict your existence. Liberation is a
-relative term. It may be from the bondage of births and re-births in
-Trilokî. It may be liberation from the bondage of Bvahmandas or solar
-systems. Those who worship only material objects remain chained to this
-earth. Those who worship the dwellers of Bhuvar Loka (Bhûtas, Pretas,
-Pisachas and Pitris) or cultivate aspiration for them become allied to
-them and they pass only to Bhuvar Loka after death. Those who worship
-the Devas and cultivate this aspiration go to Svarga Loka after death.
-Those who worship Hiranya-garbha go up to Satya or Brahmâ Loka. Those
-who worship the Lord of all Brahmândas pass beyond even the Brahmânda.
-
-The first thing that a man should do is to transcend the limits of
-Trilokî. This he cannot do as long as he is self-seeking. He should
-therefore perform his actions *unselfishly*. And the Lord said as follows: —
-
-1. There is the perishable and the imperishable element in us. Karma or
-actions appertain to the perishable element. The perishable element
-constantly changes, so it cannot be our real self or Âtmâ. From the
-stand-point of our real self, we can dissociate ourselves from our
-actions, which relate to our transitory nature. Here the system of
-Sânkhya came into requisition.
-
-2. But by this discrimination, we can not forcibly stop the performance
-of actions. For the actions are propelled by (*a*) active tendencies which
-form an inseparable part of our present nature, and (*b*) by the necessity
-of our very existence. So by stopping actions, we force the tendencies
-to mental channels, and cause more mischief by producing mental germs
-for the future. And we cannot stop all actions, as some are necessary
-for our bare existence.
-
-3. Therefore we are to perform actions, and we can perform them
-unselfishly, if they are done from a pure sense of duty. We are to take
-duty as a law of our very existence. *Yajna* is only another name for this
-law. The Lord of beings, having created all beings with the Yajna, said
-of yore, — "You shall prosper by the performance of this Yajna and this
-Yajna shall be the producer of all desired objects for you." Yajna
-consists of mutual sacrifices, as all beings are dependent on one
-another. "Think of the Devas by means of Yajna, and the Devas shall
-think of you." All our actions may be classed under duties — duties which
-we owe to the Devas, the Pitris, the sages, the animals and to other
-men. If we perform our Karma for the sake of Yajna only, we perform it
-unselfishly.
-
-4. As discrimination is useful in realising the real self, so restraint
-is necessary to put down the acquired self. The tendencies of the
-acquired self, if left to themselves, prompt men to ever recurring
-actions, which again produce their own effects, some of which develop
-into fresh tendencies or strengthen the pre-existing tendencies. So
-restraint is to be constantly practised. The object of restraint is to
-free the mind from thoughts of the object world and to fix it on the
-real self, Âtmâ. Here the system of Patanjali comes into requisition.
-But the system is to be accepted with this reservation that Yoga does
-not necessarily mean renunciation of Karma. It includes the unselfish
-performance of Karma and, for the average humanity, renunciation of
-Karma is harmful as an expedient of Yoga. Though there may be some who
-do not require Karma for themselves, yet they should not renounce it, if
-they want to set an example to others and not to confound their
-intellect.
-
-5. But the Pûrva Mimânsâkas say: Vedic Karma is all in all, and the
-authority of the Vedas is supreme. Here Sri Krishna had to assert
-Himself as an Avatâra, and He asked people to accept His own authority.
-He said there was self-seeking in Vedic Karma, and one could not
-therefore avoid the recurrence of births by the performance of Vedic
-Karma. So Sri Krishna said to Uddhava: — "If the Vedas say that men
-attain Svarga by the performance of Vedic Karma, it is simply by way of
-inducement, and not as pointing out the supreme end. The father says;
-'Boy, eat this bitter medicine and I will give thee this cake in my
-hand.' The boy takes the medicine for the sweet thing. But that really
-leads to his recovery from the disease. So the Vedas mean final
-liberation as the end. But to enforce restraint, they hold out the
-prospect of Svarga, which is most agreeable to men." (Elaboration of XI.
-21. 23.)
-
-Many were unwilling to accept the authority of Sri Krishna, and the
-chief amongst them was Sisupâla.
-
-This was the teaching of Karma Yoga by Sri Krishna. But the unselfish
-performance of Karma is not all. It is only a negative virtue. It
-purifies the mind and frees it from the taint of selfishness. The mind
-then becomes prepared for the higher planes and becomes fit for the
-direct influence of Íshvara.
-
-So Sri Krishna gave to His disciples the true conception of Ísvara. He
-told them Ísvara was One, the source of all existence, all knowledge and
-all bliss. He told them how one Ísvara pervaded the whole universe and
-became thus manifested through the Universe. He also pervaded all
-beings, and became manifested through these beings. The Universe and the
-Jiva were His Prakritis or bodies as it were. The Universe body was
-eight-fold in its character, beginning with that most susceptible to His
-influence and ending with the division most obtuse to that influence.
-This eight-fold Prakriti also entered into the constitution of Jiva. But
-there was something more in Jiva, — the consciousness, the knower. This
-element was Ísvara Himself, as limited by Jiva Prakriti, or Jiva body.
-The whole universe being the body of Ísvara, His knowledge and powers
-were unrestricted, whereas the body of the Jiva, being limited and
-restricted, his powers and knowledge were also restricted.
-
-This highest conception of Ísvara is not adapted for all. So Sri Krishna
-gave the conception of Ísvara, as manifested by His powers, and as
-manifested in Time and Space, and lastly as He is manifested in the
-human body with four hands and the Crown, symbolising His lordship over
-the whole Universe.
-
-But this conception of Ísvara is not enough. As man owes a
-duty to all beings, the performance of which is Karma, so he owes a
-duty to Ísvara, and that duty is Upâsanâ. All beings make sacrifices
-for one another, and so they owe duty to one another. But Ísvara makes
-the greatest sacrifice for all beings and He holds all beings close to
-His bosom in each Kalpa, that they may work out their evolution
-under the most favorable circumstances. He waits for those that give
-up everything for His sake, and give themselves entirely up to Him,
-so that He may bear their Karma upon Himself and hasten their
-evolution to such an extent, that they may approach His own state.
-As Ísvara gives Himself to the service of the Universe, so do His
-Bhaktas too. Men owe the highest duty to Ísvara, and this they
-discharge by means of Upâsanâ. Upâsanâ is the law of being for
-all Jivas, when they reach the state of manhood. Surrender is the
-essence of Upâsanâ, and this Sri Krishna taught to Arjuna.
-
-*When a man by performing his duties to other beings and to Ísvara
-becomes purified and single minded, he is entitled to receive the final
-teaching, and not before.* And Sri Krishna gave that teaching at the
-very last to Arjuna. He said that Jiva and Íshvara were one in essence.
-It is the difference in Prakriti that makes all the difference between
-Jiva and Íshvara. When all the bonds of Prakriti are broken through,
-only Brahmân remains, the one reality, underlying both Íshvara and
-Jiva. When we become fixed, in this wisdom all is Brahmân, and final
-liberation is attained. This is the real teaching of the Upanishads, as
-embodied in Uttara Mimânsâ. In this connection, Sri Krishna pointed
-out the fallacy of the Vaiseshika system in attempting to know the
-Attributeless, through the attributes.
-
-The highest wisdom of the Kalpa was revealed and the world resounds with
-all glory to Sri Krishna. The Rishis and Mahâtmâs took up His work. All
-the religious movements and religious writings that have followed only
-reproduce His teachings.
-
-There was something however wanting in these teachings as given in the
-Mahâbhârata — the relation of Sri Krishna to His own Bhaktas. What He did
-for the Universe and how He did it are fully related in the great Epic.
-But what He did for those that had already given themselves up entirely
-to Him, who did not require the teaching of Karma, Upâsanâ and Jnâna,
-who were His own people, who knew no other Dharma than Himself, who had
-followed Him through ages, and who simply took births as He appeared on
-this earth, what Sri Krishna did for these Bhaktas, what His relations
-were with them, are not described in the Mahâbhârata at all. The lordly
-side is given but not the sweet side. The picture of the Lord edifies
-and overawes, that of the Lover enchants and enthrals. The Bhâgavata
-sings what the Mahâbhârata left unsung. That is the peculiar
-significance of the Tenth Skandha which follows, the Skandha that
-maddens the hearts of all real devotees.
-
-.. clearpage::
-
-THE TENTH SKANDHA.
-==================
-
-VRINDÂVANA LILÂ
----------------
-
-THE BIRTH OF SRI KRISHNA.
-`````````````````````````
-
-**SKANDHA X. CHAP. 1-3.**
-
-*Said Suka*: — The goddess Earth, being oppressed by the heavy load of tens
-of thousands of Daitya hosts, who were born as arrogant kings, sought
-the shelter of Brahmâ. She took the form of a cow, and with tears
-running down her cheeks, piteously related her grievances to the Lord of
-Creation. Brahmâ took Śiva and the Devas with him, and went over to the
-Ocean of milk (Kshîra Samudra), the abode of Vishnu. There he adored
-the Lord of Preservation and heard the Divine voice, which he thus
-explained to the Devas: —
-
-"Even before this, the Lord knew about the grievances of the goddess of
-Earth. Go, take your births, as parts of yourselves, in the clan of the
-Yadus. The Lord of Lords, by governing His Kâla Śakti, shall appear on
-the Earth and relieve her pressure. The Supreme Purusha Himself shall be
-born in the family of Vâsudeva. Let the Deva girls take their births for
-His gratification. The thousand-mouthed, self-illumining Ananta, who is
-only a part of Vâsudeva, shall be the elder-born, that he may do what
-pleases Hari. Bhagavati, the Mâyâ of Vishnu, who keeps the whole world
-under delusion, shall also incarnate in part, as desired by the Lord,
-for doing His work."
-
-Saying all this to the Devas, and giving words of consolation to the
-goddess of Earth, Brahmâ went back to his own abode.
-
-Śura Sena, the chief of the Yadus, ruled over the town of Mathurâ. Hence
-it became the chief seat of the Yadu kings. It is a sacred town, the
-constant seat of Hari.
-
-Once upon a time, at Mathurâ. Vâsudeva drove in his chariot with his
-newly married wife Devaki. The marriage presents were innumerable.
-Kansa, the son of Ugrasena, held the reins of the horses himself, so
-eager was he to please his sister Devaki.
-
-On the way, an incorporeal voice, addressing Kansa, said: —
-
-"O ignorant one! the eighth child of her whom thou art now driving
-shall be thy slayer."
-
-The cruel Kansa instantly took sword in hand and caught Devaki by her
-hair.
-
-Vâsudeva pacified him with these words: —
-
-"Thy virtues are well known. Why shouldst thou kill a female, thine own
-sister, at marriage. Death is certain, this day or a hundred years
-hence. Man takes body after body under the action of Karma, as he
-takes step after step in walking, or even as the leech takes blade
-after blade of grass in moving.
-
-"As in dream there is a reflex perception of what is seen and heard in
-waking, and as in that perception the man forgets his former self and
-becomes a reflex of that self, so a man gives up his former body and
-becomes forgetful of it.
-
-"To whatever body the mind is drawn by fruit — bearing Karma, the Jiva
-assumes that body as its own.
-
-"The wind shakes the water and the Son or moon, reflected on its bosom,
-appears as if shaken. So by ascription, the Purusha has the attributes
-of the body. He who does evil to another has to fear evil from others.
-
-"This girl, thy younger sister, is motionless with fear. Thou art not
-entitled to kill her."
-
-But persuasion was of no avail, as Kansa was under the influence of the
-Daityas.
-
-Vâsudeva then thought how he could ward off the present danger, leaving
-the future to take care of itself.
-
-Addressing Kansa he said: —
-
-"But, O King, thon hast no fear from her: Surely I would make over to
-thee her sons, from whom thou hast fear." Kansa desisted from his cruel
-act and Vâsudeva went home with his bride, pleased for the time being.
-
-In time Devaki brought forth eight sons and one daughter.
-
-The truthful Vâsudeva presented his first son Kirtimat to Kansa. The
-king admired the firmness of his brother-in-law and smilingly said: — "Take
-back this child. I have no fear from him. From your eighth born my
-death is ordained." "So let it be" exclaimed Vâsudeva, and he took back
-his son. But he had very little faith in the words of Kansa.
-
-Kansa learned from Nârada that Nanda, Vâsudeva and others of their dan,
-their wives and even the clansmen of Kansa, his friends and relatives,
-were partial incarnations of the Devas. He further learned from the
-Rishi that preparations were being made for the lolling of the Daityas,
-whose power menaced the Earth.
-
-When the Rishi left Kansa, he took all the members of the Yadu clan for
-Devas and every child of Devaki for Vishnu that was to kill him. He now
-confined Vâsudeva and Devaki in his own house and put them in fetters.
-He put to death every son that was born to them.
-
-He knew himself to be Kâlanemi who had been, in another birth, killed by
-Vishnu. He fell out with the Yadus, deposed his own father Ugra Sena and
-became himself the King.
-
-With the alliance of the Mâgadhas (people of Magadha or ancient Bihar)
-and with the help of Pralamba, Baka, Chânûra, Trinâvarta, Agha,
-Mushtika, Arishta, Dvivid, Pûtanâ, Kesi, Dhenuka, Vâna, Bhouma and other
-Asuras, Kansa tormented the Yadus. They fled away to the kingdoms of
-Kuru, Pânchâla, Kekaya, Sâlva, Vidarbha, Nishadha, Videha, and Kausala.
-Some only remained behind and they followed the behests of Kansa.
-
-Six sons of Devaki were killed, one by one, by Kansa.
-
-The seventh, the abode of Vishnu, whom they call Ananta, appeared in the
-womb of Devaki, causing both joy and grief to his parents.
-
-Vishnu, the Âtmâ of all beings, knew the sufferings of His own
-followers, the Yadus, at the hands of Kansa. He summoned Yoga Mâyâ and
-commanded her as follows. "Go forth, blessed Devi! to Vraja, which is
-adorned by Gopas and Gos (*Go* is ordinarily a cow. *Gopa*, go and pa is a
-preserver of cow, a cowherd. Vraja or Go-kula was the chief town of Nan
-da, the king of the Gopas). Rohini, wife of Vâsudeva, dwells in Gokula
-the kingdom of Nanda. Other wives of Vâsudeva lie hidden at other
-places, for fear of Kansa. The child in the womb of Devaki is my Sesha
-named abode. Draw it out and place it in the womb of Rohini. I shall
-myself become the son of Devaki as a part of myself. Thou shalt be born
-of Yasodâ, the wife of Nanda. Men shall worship thee as the giver of all
-desires and boons, with incense, presents and sacrifices. They shall
-give thee names and make places for thee on the Earth. Durgâ,
-Bhadrakali, Vijayâ, Vaishnavi, Kamadâ, Chandikâ, Krishnâ, Madhavi,
-Kanyakâ, Mâyâ, Nârâyani, Ísâni, Sâradâ and Ambikâ — these shall be thy
-names. For thy *drawing out (Sankarshana)* the child shall be called
-Sankarshana, He shall be called Râma, from his attractiveness (*ramana*)
-and Bala from his uncommon strength (*bala*)."
-
-"So let it be, Om!" said Bhagavati, and she carried out the behests
-of the Lord. By inducing the sleep of Yoga, she removed the child from
-the womb of Devaki to that of Rohini. People thought Devaki had
-miscarried.
-
-Then Bhagavân, the Âtmâ of the Universe, the dispeller of all the fears
-of his votaries, entered the Manas of Vâsudeva in part. Devaki bore in
-her Manas this part of Achyuta, even as the East bears the moon. Her
-lustre being confined to the prison-room could not please others, even
-like fire confined as heat or like Sarasvati confined in the cheat who
-keeps his wisdom to himself. Kansa saw an unusual glow round his sister
-such as he had never witnessed before. He exclaimed "Surely Hari is
-born in this womb, He who is to take away my life. What shall I do this
-day? He comes on a mission and His energy will be all directed towards
-that end. Am I then to kill my sister? But the killing of a pregnant
-female, my own sister, will ruin my fame, my wealth and my life. By the
-performance of such a heinous act, one becomes dead even when alive. Men
-curse him for his evil deeds and after death he enters the regions of
-absolute darkness."
-
-Kansa by his own persuasion restrained himself from doing any violent
-act and he waited with feelings of bitterness for the time when Hari was
-to be born. But whether sitting or lying down, eating or walking, he
-thought of Vishnu and saw Him everywhere in the Universe.
-
-Brahmâ, Śiva, the Rishis, the Devas adored Vishnu in the womb of Devaki.
-"True in thy will, attainable by Truth, the one Truth before, after and
-in creation, the root of the Universe, and underlying the Universe as
-its only Reality, Thou from whom all true sayings and true perceptions
-do proceed, Truth Thyself, we take Thy shelter."
-
-"The primal Jiva tree stands on the field of Prakriti. Joy and sorrow
-are its fruits. The three gunas (Satva, Rajas and Tamas) are its three
-roots. Dharma (the means of attaining objects), Artha (the objects),
-Kâma (desires) and Moksha (freedom from desires), these are its fourfold
-juice, the five senses are its sources of perception, the six sheaths
-form its chief feature, the seven constituents of the physical body
-(*dhâtus*) form its skin, the five Bhûtas, Manas, Buddhi and Ahankâra are
-its eight branches, the nine openings are its holes, the ten Prânas, or
-physiological functions, are its leaves and Jivâtma and Paramâtmâ are
-the two birds sitting on this tree. Thou art the one root of this tree,
-it ends in Thee and it is preserved by Thee. Those that are deluded by
-Thy Mâyâ see manifold forms in place of Thy real self, but not so the
-wise. Thou art consciousness itself. For the good of the world, Thou
-dost assume Satva-made forms, which bring joy to all good people and woe
-to the evil-minded."
-
-"O Lotus-eyed, thou art the abode of Satva. Thy votaries, by
-concentrating their minds on Thee and by resorting to Thy feet which
-serve as boats to them, make an easy ford of this Ocean of recurring
-births (*Sansâra*)."
-
-"O Self manifest, the Ocean of recurring births, which is formidable
-and unfordable to others, gives way before Thy votaries, even at the
-mere touch of the boat of Thy feet. So while they cross themselves, even
-without the boat, they leave that boat for others, for they have
-boundless compassion for other beings." (*i.e.* Thy votaries lay down the
-path of Bhakti. *Śridhara*.)
-
-"There are others (followers of the Path of wisdom) who consider
-themselves liberated (*Mukta*). But their intellect is impure as they have
-no Bhakti in Thee. By ascetic efforts they rise to (near about) the
-Supreme abode, but (being overpowered by obstacles) they fall down, by
-their disregard of Thy feet."
-
-"But Thy votaries, O Madhava, never slip away from Thy path for they
-are bound by their attachment to Thee and Thou dost preserve them. So
-fearlessly they tread over the heads of Vinâyaka hosts. (The Vinâyaka
-are elementals who are supposed to cause obstacles to all good works)."
-
-"Thy body is pure Satva, for the preservation of the Universe. That
-body becomes the means of attaining the fruits of (devotional?) karma.
-It is by reason of that body that men are able to worship Thee by means
-of Veda, Kriyâ Yoga, Tapas and Samâdhi." (There could be no worship, if
-no body had been assumed. Hence there could be no *attainment of the
-fruits of Karma, Srîdhara*. This is not intelligible, if ordinary Karma
-is meant.)
-
-"If this Satva body of Thine had not existed, direct perception would
-not be possible. For through Thy manifestations in (the world of) the
-Gunas, thoughts can (at last) reach Thee. The Gunas only relate to Thee
-and are themselves manifested by Thee." (By devotion to the pure Satva
-body, the mind partakes of its character *i.e.* becomes purely Sâtvic.
-Then by the favor of Vishnu, there is direct perception, *i.e.* the form
-is not the object of direct perception but the means of direct
-perception. But these forms only serve the purpose of devotion. The
-Purusha can not be known by these forms. Hence the following Śloka,
-*Srîdhara*).
-
-"Thy Name (nâma) and Thy Form (rûpa) are not however to be known by
-Thy attributes, births and deeds. For Thou art their Seer and Thy Path
-is beyond the reach of Manas and speech. Still in the act of devotion,
-Thy votaries realise Thee. By hearing, uttering, causing others to
-remember and by meditating on Thy blessed names and forms in devotional
-practices, one becomes fixed in mind on Thy Lotus Feet and does not then
-stand the chance of another birth."
-
-"By Thy birth, the pressure on the Earth is removed. The marks of Thy
-feet already adorn her. Heaven and Earth look favored by Thee."
-
-"What else can be the cause of Thy birth but a mere fancy on Thy part,
-for even the birth, life and death of Jivâtmas are but seeming things
-caused by Thy Avidyâ."
-
-"The Fish, the Horse, the Tortoise, the Man Lion, the Boar, the Swan,
-in these and in Kings, Brâhmanas and wise men, Thou hast incarnated. As
-thou dost preserve us and preserve this Trilokî, so dost Thou take away
-the load from off the Earth. Our salutations to Thee."
-
-"And mother Devaki, the Great Purusha Himself is in Thy womb in part,
-for our good. Fear not then from Kansa, whose death is near at hand. Thy
-Son shall be the Saviour of the Yadus."
-
-Having thus adored the Lord, the Devas left the place.
-
-In time, when all nature looked still and there was joy in heaven and
-earth, Sri Krishna was born under the influence of the Rohini
-constellation. It was all dark at dead of night. He had four hands
-bearing Sankha, Chakra, Gadâ, and Padma. The mark of Srivatsa the
-Kaustubha gem, the yellow cloth, the crown on the head glittering with
-stones, the brilliant ear-rings all marked Him out as the Purusha, and
-Vâsudeva and Devaki adored Him as such. Devaki asked him to withdraw his
-lordly form with four hands.
-
-Said Bhagavân, addressing Devaki.
-
-"In the Svayambhuva Manvantara, thou wert called Prisni, and this
-Vâsudeva, Prajâpati Sutapas. Commanded by Brahmâ to beget progeny, thou
-didst make austere Tapas and prayed for a son even like unto my own
-self. So I was born of thee as Prisni-Garbha. This was my first
-Incarnation. When you two were Aditi and Kasyapa, I was born of you as
-Upendra, otherwised called Vâmana (the Dwarf). This was my second
-Incarnation. In this my third Incarnation, I am again born unto you.
-This form is shown to thee to remind thee of those previous births. Thou
-shalt attain my supreme state by meditating on me both as a son and as
-Brahmâ."
-
-Then He assumed the form of an ordinary child.
-
-Directed by Him, Vâsudeva took Him to Vraja, the Kingdom of Nanda. The
-fetters loosened. The gate opened wide. The gate keepers fell into deep
-sleep. Though there was a heavy downpour of rain, the serpent Sesha gave
-shelter under his thousand hoods. The river Yamunâ, deep in flood,
-fretting and foaming under the storm, made way for Vâsudeva. The Gopas
-were all fast asleep in Vraja. Vâsudeva placed his own son by the side
-of Yasodâ and took her new born daughter away and placed her near
-Devaki. He then put on his fetters and remained confined as before.
-Yasodâ knew that she had a child, but the labour pains and sleep made
-her quite forget the sex of the child.
-
-
-
-COUNSEL WITH THE DAITYAS.
-`````````````````````````
-
-**SKANDHA X. CHAP. 4.**
-
-The gates closed again, the gate-keepers woke up and, on hearing a
-child's voice, they forthwith informed their King. Kansa had been
-anxiously waiting for the birth of this child. So he lost no time in
-getting up and appearing before Devaki. He snatched away the child from
-her. Devaki remonstrated with her brother praying for the life of her
-daughter. Kansa heeded not her words. He raised the child aloft and cast
-it down to strike it against a stone. The child slipped away from his
-hands, and rose high up. This younger born of Vishnu appeared with eight
-hands, bearing eight weapons, — Dhanus (bow) Sûla (spear) Isha (arrow),
-Charma (hide protector), Asi (sword), Sankha (conch), Chakra (Disc), and Gadâ
-(club). She had divine garlands and garments and was
-adorned with ornaments. Siddhas, Châranas, Gandharvas, Apsarasas,
-Kinnaras and Nâgas worshiped her with profuse offerings.
-
-"Fool that thou art" she thundered forth, "What if I am killed. He
-who shall make an end of thee, thy former enemy, is born somewhere else.
-Do not kill other children in vain."
-
-The Goddess Mâyâ then became known by different names in different parts
-of the earth.
-
-Kansa was wonder-struck. He removed the fetters of Vâsudeva and Devaki
-and begged their pardon, saying, "Like a Râkshasa, I have killed your
-sons. I do not know what fate awaits me after death. Not only men tell
-lies, but the Devas too."
-
-Kansa then called the Daityas together. These sworn enemies of the Devas
-heard their master and then broke forth thus: —
-
-"If it be so, O King of Bhoja, we will kill all children, whether ten
-days old or not, whether found in towns, villages, or pasture grounds.
-What can the Devas do, cowards in battle? They are always afraid of the
-sound of thy bow. Dost thou not remember how, pierced by thy arrows,
-they fled for their lives. The Devas are only bold when they are safe,
-and they indulge in tall talk outside the battle ground. Vishnu seeks
-solitude. Śiva dwells in forests. Indra has but little might. Brahmâ is
-an ascetic. But still the Devas are enemies. They are not to be
-slighted. Therefore engage us, your followers, in digging out the very
-root of the Devas, for like disease and sensuality when neglected at
-first, they become difficult of suppression. Vishnu is the root of the
-Devas, and he represents the eternal religion (Sanatana Dharma *i.e.*
-Dharma that follows the eternal course of time, or is based on the
-eternal truths of nature, hence eternal religion, a term applied to
-Hinduism proper). And the roots of Dharma are the Vedas, the Cows, the
-Brâhmanas, Tapas and Yajna. Therefore by all means, O King, we shall
-kill the Deva-knowing, Yajna-performing and ascetic Brâhmanas and cows
-that supply the sacrificial ghee. Brâhmanas, Cows, Vedas, asceticism,
-truth, restraint of the senses, restraint of the mind, faith, kindness,
-forbearance and sacrifices these are the parts of Vishnu's body.
-Therefore the best way to kill him is to kill these. Vishnu, who
-pervades all hearts, is the guide of all Devas, the enemy of Asuras. He
-is the root of all Devas, including Śiva and Brahmâ."
-
-Kansa approved of this counsel. He directed the Kâmarupa bearing (*i.e.*
-bearing forms at will) Asuras to oppress all good people and they
-readily took to their work.
-
-
-
-NANDA AND VASUDEVA.
-```````````````````
-
-**SKANDHA X. CHAP. 5.**
-
-Nanda performed the birth ceremony of his son with great pomp. His gifts
-knew no bounds. Vishnu was worshipped and there was plenty in Vraja. The
-time came for payment of the year's dues to Kansa. So Nanda left Gokula
-( *i.e.* Vraja ) in charge of the Gopas and himself went with the dues to
-Mathurâ. Vâsudeva learned of Nanda's arrival and went to meet him. Nanda
-stood up to receive him and embraced him heartily. Said Vâsudeva: —
-
-"Brother, you grew old and gave up all hopes of having a child. Luckily
-a son is now born unto you. It is indeed a new birth to you, that you
-are blessed with the sight of a lovely son. Friends cannot live
-pleasantly together as their manifold Karma, like a strong wind, forces
-them asunder. Is it all right with the big forest, with the pasture
-lands where you now dwell with friends? Is it all right with my son
-(Balarâma) who lives at your place with her mother, and who looks upon
-you as his parent?"
-
-Nanda replied: —
-
-"Alas! your sons by Devaki were all killed by Kansa; even the daughter
-that was born last has ascended to the heavens. Surely man is governed
-by the unseen. Those that know are not deluded." Said Vâsudeva: —
-
-"You have paid your yearly dues and have also met me. Now do not remain
-here any longer. For evils befall Gokula."
-
-Nanda left Mathurâ for Gokula.
-
-
-
-PUTANÂ
-``````
-
-**SKANDHA X. CHAP. 6.**
-
-With evil forebodings, Nanda made his way to Vraja, for he thought
-Vâsudeva would not tell a lie. And he was right. By Kansa's orders, the
-fierce Putanâ went about killing children in towns, villages and pasture
-lands, for verily she was a killer of children. That wanderer of the
-skies entered Gokula at will, assuming the form of a woman most
-beautiful to look at. So no one stopped her passage. She moved freely
-here and there and at last entered the house of Nanda. She looked like a
-kind mother and Yasodâ and Rohini were so much struck by her fine
-exterior that they did not stop her access to Krishna. Putanâ placed the
-child on her lap and gave him milk from her breast full of deadly
-poison. The divine child knew who Putanâ was and what she was about. He
-held fast her breast with both hands and in anger drank in the very life
-juice of the Asura woman. She screamed forth "Let go", "Let go", "No
-more". Her eyes expanded. She cast up and down her hands and feet
-again and again in profuse perspiration. Her groans made heaven and
-earth tremble and space itself resounded on all sides. At last she fell
-dead like a great mountain, crushing down trees within an ambit of
-twelve miles. Fearlessly the boy played on her body.
-
-The Gopa ladies hurried to the place with Rohini and Yasodâ. They bathed
-the boy in cows' urine and dust from cow's feet. They pronounced the
-twelve names of Vishnu (Kesava and others) over twelve parts of his
-body. Then after touching water, they duly uttered the root mantras over
-their own body and that of the child. Lastly they invoked Vishnu by
-different names to protect the child from danger of all sorts. (The
-protective mantra uttered by the mother with passes of the hand over
-different parts of the body was supposed to shield the child from
-danger. Latterly the custom has been to get the mantra written, with due
-ceremonies, by a qualified Brahmân, on the sacred bark (Bhûrja) and then
-to tie it round the hand.)
-
-Yasodâ then placed the child on her lap and gave him milk.
-
-By this time Nanda had returned to Vrindabana. He saw the huge body of
-the Asura woman and realised the force of Vâsudeva's warning.
-
-The people of Vraja cut the body into parts and burnt them with fuel.
-The smoke was sweet-scented, as the touch of Krishna's body purifies
-even the enemy.
-
-
-
-THE UPTURNING OF THE CART.
-``````````````````````````
-
-**SKANDHA X. CHAP. 7.**
-
-The ceremony observable on the child being able to stand on his legs and
-the birth-day ceremony were observed together and there was a great
-feast at the house of Nanda. Yasodâ placed the child near a cart,
-containing brass vessels with articles of food, and became busily
-engaged in receiving her guests. The child wept but she did not hear. He
-then raised his feet aloft, weeping for his mother's milk, and struck
-the cart with his feet. The cart was upset, the brass vessels broken and
-the wheel and axle upturned. The Gopa ladies could not account for this
-wonderful phenomenon. The boys, who sat near the child, told all that
-they saw, but people could not easily believe what they said.
-
-
-
-TRINAVARTA OR THE WHIRLWIND.
-````````````````````````````
-
-**SKANDHA X. CHAP. 7.**
-
-The child was once on the lap of Yasodâ when he suddenly became so heavy
-that Yasodâ had to throw him on the ground. The Asura Trinâvarta or
-Whirlwind made an attack on the child and a violent dust storm overtook
-Gokula. The Asura had scarcely raised Krishna to a certain height, when
-his weight almost crushed him to death. Krishna did not let go his hold
-and the Asura breathed his last and fell dead. Yasodâ kissed her son
-again and again, but when he opened His mouth, the mother saw the whole
-Universe within it.
-
-
-
-THE NAMES "KRISHNA" AND "RAMA."
-```````````````````````````````
-
-**SKANDHA X. CHAP. 8.**
-
-Garga, the family priest of the Yadus, came to Vraja at the request of
-Vâsudeva. Nanda duly received him and said: — "You are versed in the
-Vedas and you are the author of an astrological treatise. Please perform
-the Naming ceremony of the two boys." Garga replied: "I am known as
-the priest of the Yadus and, if I officiate at the ceremony, Kansa might
-suspect your son to be the eighth son of Devaki." Nanda promised strict
-privacy, and the Rishi performed the ceremony. Addressing Nanda, he then
-said: —
-
-"This son of Rohini shall be called Râma or the charming one, as he
-shall charm his friends by his virtues. He shall be called Bala, from
-possessing excessive strength. From his bringing together the Yadus, he
-shall be called Sankarshana.
-
-"This other boy, taking body, yuga after yuga, had three colors, White
-(*Sukla*), Red (*Rakta*) and Yellow, (*Pîta*). Now he has got the black color
-(*Krishna*). In the past, he was born as the son of Vâsudeva. So those
-that know call him Srimat Vâsudeva. He has many names and many forms,
-according to his deeds and attributes. Neither I nor other people know
-them all. He shall give you the greatest blessings and protect you
-against all dangers. In days of yore, good people conquered the
-ill-doers by his help. Those that are attached to him are not conquered
-by enemies, even as followers of Vishnu are not conquered by the Asuras.
-Therefore this son of Nanda is equal to Nârâyana by his virtues, powers
-and fame."
-
-
-
-PRANKS OF THE BOY.
-``````````````````
-
-**SKANDHA X. CHAP. 8.**
-
-With growing childhood, Krishna became very naughty. Once the Gopa women
-made the following complaints. Krishna would untie their calves before
-the milking time. He would steal their milk and curds and divide the
-remnants, after eating, among the monkeys. If they did not eat, he would
-break the pot. If he did not get the things he wanted, he would curse
-the inmates and other boys. If the pots were out of reach, he would
-raise himself on seats or husking stools and bear those hanging pots
-away to get at their contents. He would illumine the dark room by the
-glitter of his own body and that of his jewels, to serve his purpose. He
-would talk insolently, and spoil the ground. The Gopa women exclaimed: —
-"But now how innocent he looks before you." Krishna betrayed fear in his
-eyes. Yasodâ would not beat him. So she only smiled.
-
-One day Râma and other boys complained to Yasodâ that Krishna had eaten
-earth. The mother remonstrated. "They have lied" exclaimed Krishna
-"Or if they have spoken the truth, then examine my mouth." "Open it,"
-said Yasodâ. But what did she find within that mouth? The Seven Dvipas,
-the planets, the stars, the three Gunas and all their transformations,
-even Vrindâvana and herself. "Is this dream or delusion or is this all
-the power of my own son? If Thou art then the Unknowable, my salutations
-to Thee. I take the shelter of Him, by whose Mâyâ I seem to be Yasodâ,
-this Nanda my husband, this boy my son, the Gos (cows) Gopas and Gopis
-to be mine." She had the true knowledge, but it was soon eclipsed by the
-Mâyâ of Vishnu and Yasodâ again knew Krishna to be her own son.
-
-Râjâ Parikshit asked: —
-
-"What did Nanda do that Krishna would be his foster son? And what did
-Yasodâ do, that Krishna should suck her breast? Even his own parents
-did not witness the deeds of the child of which poets have sung so
-much."
-
-Suka replied: —
-
-"Drōna, the chief of the Vasus, with his wife Dhârâ shewed great
-obedience to Brahmâ. 'When born on Earth may we have the highest
-devotion for Him.'" Such was their prayer to Brahmâ and it was granted.
-Drōna was born as Nanda and Dhârâ as Yasodâ.
-
-
-
-THE TYING.
-``````````
-
-**SKANDHA X. CHAP. 9.**
-
-One day Yasodâ was churning curdled milk and singing the deeds of her
-son. Krishna came up and, desirous of sucking milk, held the churning
-rod. Yasodâ placed him on her lap and gave him milk to suck. But the
-milk that was boiling on the oven overflowed the pot and she hurriedly
-left her son. In anger Krishna bit his lips, broke the milk pot with a
-stone, took the fresh butter to a retired corner and there partook of
-it. Yasodâ came back after a while and found the pot broken. Her son had
-left the place and she could easily see that it was all his doing. She
-found Krishna seated on the husk stand, freely dividing the contents of
-the hanging pots among the monkeys, and she quietly approached him with
-a stick. Krishna hurriedly got down and ran away as if in fear. Yasodâ
-ran after him and caught him at last. Finding him fear-stricken, she
-threw down the stick and tried to fasten him to the husking stand. The
-rope fell short by the breadth of two fingers (say two inches). She
-added another rope. The gap remained the same. She added rope after
-rope, as many as she had of her own and of her neighbours, but could not
-bridge over the distance. She stood baffled at last, amazed and ashamed.
-Finding that his mother was perspiring in the effort and that her hair
-had become dishevelled, Krishna allowed himself to be fastened to the
-stand.
-
-
-
-THE ARJUNA TREES.
-`````````````````
-
-**SKANDHA X. CHAP. 10.**
-
-The Yaksha King Kuvera had two sons — Nalakûvara and Manigriva. They
-became maddened with power and intoxicated with drink. Nârada passed by
-them while they were playing with Gandharva girls stark naked in a river
-bath and they heeded him not. Nârada thought how best he could reclaim
-them. "Poverty is the only remedy for those that lose their heads in
-wealth. These sons of the Lōkapâla Kuvera are deep in ignorance,
-insolence and intoxication. Let them become trees. But they shall not
-lose memory by my favor. After one hundred Deva years, the touch of Sri
-Krishna shall save them." These sons of Kuvera in consequence became a
-pair of Arjuna trees in Vrindâvana.
-
-While Krishna was fastened to the husking stand, the pair of Arjuna
-trees drew his attention. He was bent on making good the words of
-Nârada. So he approached the trees, drawing the husking stand behind him
-by force and, placing himself between them, uprooted the trees. They
-fell down with a crash and lo! two fiery spirits came out, illumining
-space by the splendour of their bodies. They prayed to Krishna and then
-rose upwards.
-
-The Gopa women had been engaged all this time in their household duties
-and the crash attracted the attention of all the Gopas and Gopis. The
-boys told what they had seen. But some were loath to believe that all
-this could be done by the boy Krishna.
-
-
-
-THE FRUIT SELLER.
-`````````````````
-
-**SKANDHA X. CHAP. 11.**
-
-One day Krishna heard a woman crying out "Come ye buy
-fruits." He took some paddy and hastened to her side. The woman
-filled both his hands with fruits and lo! her basket became full of
-gems and precious stones.
-
-
-
-VRINDAVANA.
-```````````
-
-**SKANDHA X. CHAP. 11.**
-
-Seeing that calamities befell Brihat Vâna (Vraja or Gokul) so often, the
-elders put their heads together to devise the best course to adopt. Upa
-Nanda, one of the oldest and wisest of them, said: —
-
-"We that wish well for Gokula must hence get away. Evils befall that
-bode no good for the children. This boy was with difficulty saved from
-that child-killing Râkshasa woman. It is only by the favor of Vishnu
-that the cart did not fall on him. When he was taken high up by the
-whirlwind Asura, and when he fell down on the rock, it was the Deva
-Kings that saved him. If this boy and others did not perish when they
-were between the two trees, it was because Vishnu preserved them. Ere
-this Vraja is visited by fresh calamity, let us go elsewhere with the
-boys and all attendants.
-
-"There is a forest called Vrindâvana with fresh verdure for cattle, where
-Gopas, Gopis and Gos will all enjoy themselves. The hills, grass and
-creepers are all holy there. This very day let us go to that place. Make
-ready the carriages. Let the cows precede us, if it pleases you all."
-
-With one heart, the Gopas exclaimed: — "Well said! Well said!" They
-prepared their carriages and placed on them the aged, the young, the
-females and all household articles. They drove the cows in advance. They
-blew their horns and beat their drums. Accompanied by the priests, the
-Gopas went on their way. The Gopa girls, seated on chariots sang the
-deeds of Krishna and Yasodâ, and Rohinl attentively listened to them.
-
-At last they entered Vrindâvana, which gives pleasure at all times, with
-the carriages; they made a semi-circular abode for the cattle.
-
-Râma and Krishna saw Vrindâvana, the hill Govardhana and the banks of
-the Yamunâ and then became very much pleased. In time they became
-keepers of calves (Vatsa). They tended the calves in the company of Gopa
-boys on pasture lands near at hand. They played with other boys as
-ordinary children.
-
-
-
-VATSA OR THE CALF.
-``````````````````
-
-**SKANDHA X. CHAP. 11.**
-
-One day Râma, Krishna and other boys were looking after their calves
-when an Asura, with the intention of killing them, assumed the form of a
-calf (Vatsa) and got mixed among the herd. Krishna pointed this out to
-Balarâma and silently moved behind the Asura. He held it aloft by the
-hind feet and tail and gave it such a whirl that its life became
-extinct. The boys, cried out "Well done! Well done!" and the Devas
-rained flowers on Krishna.
-
-
-
-BAKA OR THE CRANE.
-``````````````````
-
-**SKANDHA X. CHAP. 11.**
-
-One day the Gopa boys went over to a tank to quench their thirst. They
-saw a huge monster in the form of a Baka (crane). It rushed forth and
-swallowed Krishna. Krishna caused a burning in its throat and the Asura
-threw him out. It made a second attack and Krishna held the two beaks
-and parted them asunder as if they were blades of grass, And the Asura
-died.
-
-
-
-AGHA OR THE SERPENT.
-````````````````````
-
-**SKANDHA X. CHAP. 12.**
-
-One day Krishna was playing with the boys in the forest. Agha, the
-youngest born of Putanâ and Baka, the Asura whom even the Devas,
-rendered immortal by *Amrita*, dreaded, burning with a spirit of revenge at
-the death of his brother and sister, thought of killing Krishna and all
-his attendants. He stretched himself forth as a huge serpent, spreading
-over one yojana, the extremities of his open mouth touching the clouds
-and the earth. The Gopa boys took the Asura to be the goddess of
-Vrindâvana. "Or if it really be a serpent opening its mouth to kill us,
-it will instantly be killed like the Asura Vaka." So with their eyes
-fixed on Krishna they clapped their hands and with a smile entered the
-mouth of the serpent, even before Krishna had time to warn them. The
-Asura still waited with its mouth open for Krishna. Krishna thought how
-he could kill the serpent and at the same time save his companions.
-
-On reflection, he himself entered the mouth of the serpent and stretched
-himself and his comrades. The Asura lost breath and breathed his last. A
-shining spirit emerged from the Asura body and entered the body of
-Krishna. Krishna gave fresh life to his comrades by his Amrita bearing
-looks.
-
-Krishna killed Agha in his fifth year, but the Gopa boys who witnessed
-the act said, when Krishna entered his sixth year, that the act was done
-that very day.
-
-"How could that be?" enquired Parikshit.
-
-Suka explained this with reference to the following story.
-
-
-
-BRAHMA AND KRISHNA.
-```````````````````
-
-**SKANDHA X. CHAP. 13-14.**
-
-When the Asura Agha was killed, Krishna went with his companions to the
-river bank and said: —
-
-"We are hungry, the hour is late. Let us have our meals here. Let the
-calves drink water and graze on near lands." The Gopa boys spread out
-their stores and improvised plates for eating. While they were engaged
-in eating, the calves strayed away. The boys became anxious and were
-about to get up, when Krishna stopped them, saying he would find the
-calves. He left his companions and went on the search. Brahmâ, who had
-been witnessing from the high heavens all the deeds of Krishna, even the
-killing of Agha, with wonder, wanted to have still one more
-manifestation of his divine powers. Finding opportunity, he removed the
-calves as well as the Gopa boys to some secure place and disappeared.
-Krishna could not find the calves and on returning he could not find his
-companions. He then knew it was all the act of Brahmâ. To please Brahmâ,
-as well as to please the mothers of the Gopa boys, He Himself became so
-many calves and so many Gopa boys of their very size and form to the
-minutest detail. The mothers thought they had got their boys and they
-became even more attached to them. The cows thought they had got their
-calves and their fondness knew no bounds.
-
-Krishna went on playing his manifold parts for one year. Five or six
-days remaining till the completion of the year, Balarâma saw one day
-that the cows were grazing on the summits of Govardhana, while the
-calves were grazing at some distance near Vraja. The cows impelled by a
-fit of attachment breathlessly ran towards the calves even those that
-had quite lately brought forth younger calves and caressed them
-profusely. The elder Gopas who were in charge could not restrain them
-with all their efforts. They felt shame and vexation. But when they
-themselves approached the calves and their own sons, their anger melted
-away in deep affection.
-
-Balarâma thought for a moment. "Never was such love witnessed by me
-before — this attachment for calves that had been weaned long ago. The
-people of Vraja have even increasing affection for their own sons even
-as they had of yore for Krishna. These calves no longer appear to be the
-incarnations of Rishis, their keepers the Gopa boys do not appear any
-longer to be the incarnations of the Devas. They look all like thee O
-Krishna! Wherein lies the mystery?" Krishna explained to Râma what had
-happened. Brahmâ appeared after a Truti (fraction of a moment) of his
-own measure. He saw the boys, he saw the calves. He could not make any
-distinction between those he placed under his own Mâyâ and those brought
-into existence by the Mâyâ of Krishna. The foggy darkness is overpowered
-by the darkness of the night. The light of the glowworm vanishes before
-the light of the day. To delude Krishna, Brahmâ became deluded himself.
-In another moment Brahmâ saw the calves and the boys each and all
-bearing four hands, the divine weapons and all the divine powers. They
-shone in resplendent glory. Brahmâ became overpowered, stupefied.
-Recovering himself, he found once more Sri Krishna alone, searching for
-the calves and boys in Vrindâvana. He fell at the feet of Krishna, again
-and again, his four heads with their crowns rolling on the ground and
-with tears in his eyes, he glorified Krishna.
-
-(The glorification is a long one. Only one sloka is given here.)
-
-"It is only he who lives on, anxiously looking out for Thy favor,
-bearing through the workings of his own Karma as a matter of course and
-making obeisance to Thee in heart, words and body, that can get the
-heritage of Mukti (As one must be living, so that a particular heritage
-may vest in him, so the Bhakta must keep up his individuality to get the
-heritage of Mukti)."
-
-Parikshit asked. "How could the people of Vraja have greater love for
-Krishna than for their own sons?"
-
-Suka replied: —
-
-"Self, O King, is the most beloved of all things not so beloved are
-one's sons or wealth. Therefore, O king, people love themselves better
-than they do their sons, their riches or their homes. Those that deem
-their body to be their own Âtmâ or self, love that body more than
-anything else.
-
-"But the body only becomes dear as it pertains to self. It can not be as
-dear as self. For when the body wears away, the desire to live on is
-still strong.
-
-"Therefore Âtmâ or self is most dear to all beings and the whole of this
-Universe is for that self.
-
-"But know thou this Krishna to be the Self of all selves, the Âtmâ of all
-Âtmâs. For the good of the Universe, he also looks by Mâyâ as one
-possessed of a body. Those that know Krishna know that all movable and
-immovable beings are but His forms and that nothing else exists.
-
-"Of all things, the ultimate reality is 'Existence'. Krishna is
-the reality of Existence itself. So there is nothing besides Krishna."
-
-Here ends the Kumâra Lilâ of Krishna. The Pouganda Lilâ
-is now to commence. (Kumâra is a boy below five, Pouganda is
-boyhood from the 5th to the 16th year).
-
-**END OF KUMARA LILÂ**
-
-
-
-DHENUKA.
-````````
-
-**SKANDHA X. CHAP. 15.**
-
-On attaining the Pouganda age, Râma and Krishna were placed in charge of
-cows. Vrindâvana looked gay and Krishna amused himself with his
-companions in the forests. One day Sridâman, Subala, Stoka and other
-companions spoke to Râma and Krishna "Not far off is a forest of palm
-trees (Tâla). Tâla fruits fall in abundance there, but one Asura
-Dhenuka, with many of his kin obstruct all access to them. The Asura has
-the form of an Ass. We smell the fragrance of the fruits even from here.
-They are very tempting indeed." Râma boldly entered that forest and gave
-a shake to the Tâla trees, and Tâlas fell in abundance. Roused by the
-noise, the Ass rushed forth and kicked Râma with its hind feet. The
-Asura brayed and made a second rush, when Râma held it by the hind feet
-and whirling it round in the skies threw It dead on the trees. The kith
-and kin of the Asura then came rushing forth, but they were one and all
-killed by Râma and Krishna. When they returned to Vrindâvana the Gopis
-who had been feeling the separation went out to receive them and, being
-pleased to see them, cast bashful glances at them.
-
-
-
-THE KÂLIYA SERPENT AND THE FIRE.
-````````````````````````````````
-
-**SKANDHA X. CHAP. 16-17.**
-
-The Nâgas or serpents made offerings to Garuda on appointed days.
-Kâliya, proud of his own valour, did not make any offering himself and
-snatched away the offerings made by others. Garuda attacked him and,
-being overpowered in the fight, Kâliya sought shelter in a deep pool of
-water in the Yamunâ.
-
-Of yore, Garuda had caught a fish in that pool of water and was about to
-eat it, when Rishi Soubhari asked him not to eat, but Garuda heeded not
-his words. The wailings of the fish moved the tender heart of the Rishi
-and for their future good he cursed Garuda with death, if he entered the
-pool any more.
-
-Kâliya knew about this and he therefore sought protection in that pool
-of water with his family. The water became deadly poison and even the
-adjoining air breathed poisonous death.
-
-One day Krishna went with all his companions, other than Râma, to the
-Yamunâ side. The Gopa boys and the cows being very thirsty drank the
-water of that pool and met with instant death. Krishna cast his amrita
-pouring looks at them and they got up, being restored to life. They
-looked at each other, very much surprised.
-
-To purge the river, Krishna got upon a Kadamba tree and jumped into the
-pool of water. Kâliya fiercely attacked him and stung him to the quick.
-The serpent then twined round Krishna. The cows wept, the Gopa boys
-became senseless. There were evil portents in Vrindâvana. Nanda and
-other Gopas came out in search of Krishna. They saw him in the grasp of
-the powerful serpent and made loud wailings. A moment after, seeing how
-they all grieved for him, Krishna eluded the grasp of the serpent and
-moved dancing round him. The serpent, somewhat fatigued, also kept
-moving with its overspread hoods, fixing its looks on Krishna. Krishna
-then got upon the hoods one thousand in number, one hundred being the
-chief, and danced on them putting down the hood that tried to raise
-itself. It was a lovely sight and the Devas sang in joy and rained
-flowers. The serpent king was overpowered. He vomited blood. His body
-was broken. In his heart of hearts, he sought the protection of
-Nârâyana. The serpent girls also glorified Krishna and prayed for their
-husband's life.
-
-Krishna said: — "Go hence O serpent, dwell in the sea. Men and cows shall
-use the water of the river. You left Râmanaka Dvipa for fear of Garuda.
-But now as your heads bear the marks of my feet, Garuda shall not touch
-you." Kâliya left the Yamunâ with his wives and the water of that river
-has been pure ever since.
-
-The people of Vrindâvana embraced Krishna and shed tears of joy. They
-were all so much put out that they stopped that night on the river bank.
-At midnight, a fire broke out from a castor plantation and it surrounded
-the people on all sides. The Gopas and Gopis cried out: "O Krishna, O
-Râma, we are yours. Krishna! Save us from this fire. We are not afraid
-of our lives, but it will pain us to part from Thy feet."
-
-Krishna ate up the whole fire.
-
-
-
-PRALAMBA.
-`````````
-
-**SKANDHA X. CHAP. 18.**
-
-It was summer. But Vrindâvana was cool with its shade, its water-spouts
-and its river.
-
-Râma and Krishna were tending the cattle with their companions. An Asura
-named Pralamba disguised himself as a Gopa boy and mixed with the other
-boys. The All-knowing Krishna found him but he feigned friendship, with
-the object of killing the Asura. Krishna proposed two parties for play.
-The defeated party had to carry the members of the victorious party on
-their backs. Krishna became the leader of one party and Râma that of the
-other. The party of Krishna were routed near the Bhândiraka forest.
-Krishna carried Srîdâmana on his back, Bhadrasena carried Vrishabha and
-Pralamba carried Balarâma. Pralamba ran with Balarâma beyond the mark.
-Balarâma suspected something evil. Then composing himself, he hit a blow
-on the head of the Asura and Pralamba lay down dead.
-
-
-
-THE FOREST CONFLAGRATION.
-`````````````````````````
-
-**SKANDHA X. CHAP. 19.**
-
-The cattle strayed away from the Bhândarika forest, when suddenly there
-was a fire. They ran bellowing into a forest of rushes. The Gopa boys
-went in search of them and found them from a distance. Krishna called
-them out and they responded to the call. At the time a general
-conflagration in the forest overtook the cows and the Gopa boys and they
-helplessly turned to Krishna. Krishna asked the boys to close their
-eyes. They did so, but when they looked again they found themselves once
-more in the Bhândarika forest. Seeing this Yoga power in Sri Krishna,
-they knew him to be a God. The older Gopas and Gopis, hearing all the
-wonderful deeds of Râma and Krishna, knew them to be Devas.
-
-
-
-THE RAINY SEASON.
-`````````````````
-
-**SKANDHA X. CHAP. 20.**
-
-The *rainy season* followed summer. There was joy and plenty. (For a
-graphic and highly poetical description of the rainy season please refer
-to the original. The details of the description are somewhat important
-from the esoteric standpoint and the Season itself is suggestive as to a
-new era in spiritual development.)
-
-
-
-THE AUTUMN.
-```````````
-
-**SKANDHA X. CHAP. 20.**
-
-The AUTUMN came and it was all *calm, clear* and *transparent*.
-
-The clouds disappeared. The water became pure. The wind became gentle.
-With the advent of lotus-bearing Autumn, the waters regained their
-tranquillity, even as distracted Yogins the calm of their minds by fresh
-resort to Yoga. The Autumn removed the clouds from the skies,
-promiscuous living from the animals, mud from the soil and dirt from the
-water — even as Bhakti in Krishna does away with the impurities attaching
-to the four Âsramas. The clouds gave up rainy moisture and looked
-beautifully white, even like Munis who give up all desires. The hills
-sometimes gave pure water from their sides and sometimes not, as wise
-men pour forth the nectar of their wisdom sometimes and not often. The
-animals that frequent shallow water did not know that the water was
-subsiding, as deluded men living in family circles do not realise the
-daily expiry of their lives. And they suffered like sensuous men from
-the rays of the Autumn sun. Day by day the soil gave up its muddiness as
-the wise give up their Mine-ness and the creepers got over their
-immaturity as the wise get over their I-ness. The Sea became calm as a
-Muni no longer distracted by Vedic performances. The farmers stored up
-waters in the paddy fields by making strong embankments, even as Yogins
-store up Prana by withdrawing it from the Indriyas. The moon gave relief
-from the inflictions of sun-burning, even as wisdom relieves the misery
-caused by connection with the body, and as the sight of Sri Krishna
-removes all the sorrows of the Gopis. The clear skies gave a brilliant
-view of the stars, as the mind purified by Satva makes manifest the
-conclusions of the Mimânsa Darsanas. The full moon shone above with all
-the stars as Sri Krishna shone on earth with the circle of Yadus.
-
-
-
-SRI KRISHNA AND THE GOPIS.
-``````````````````````````
-
-**SKANDHA X. CHAP. 21.**
-
-Krishna roamed in the fresh forest with the cattle and his companions.
-He played upon the flute and the Gopis forgot themselves in hearing his
-music. They saw before their mind's eye the dancing Krishna filling the
-holes of the flute with nectar flowing from his lips, the peacock
-feather on his head, Karnikâra flower on his ears, his cloth yellow like
-gold and the Vaijayanti garland round his neck.
-
-Some exclaimed: — "What better could the eyes feed upon than the lovely
-faces of Râma and Krishna, with the flutes touching their lips and their
-smiling glances."
-
-Some said: — "How beautiful they look with garlands of mango twigs,
-peacock feather and blue lotus. In the assembly of Gopas, they look like
-heroes on the theatrical stage."
-
-Others said: — "What did that bamboo piece of a flute do that it should
-drink so hard the nectar flowing from Krishna's lips, the special
-possession of the Gopis, that nothing should remain but the taste
-thereof. The water that nourished it is thrilling with joy and the plant
-of which it is a shoot is shedding joysome tears."
-
-Some said: — "Look, O companions! how lovely does Vrindâvana look from the
-touch of Sri Krishna's lotus feet! Look there, the peacock madly dances
-to the tune of the flute and other animals stand dumb on the summit of
-the hills and witness the scene. There is no spot on the earth like
-Vrindâvana."
-
-Others said: — "How blessed are these female deer that In the company of
-their husbands hear the music of the flute and make an offering of their
-loving looks!"
-
-Other Gopis said: — "So tempting is this form of Krishna and so alluring
-is the music of his flute that even Deva girls become lost to
-themselves. Look, how the cows drink that music with ears erect. And
-even the calves stand with their mothers' milk in their mouths, eagerly
-listening to that sound. Those birds are no worse than Rishis, for they
-sit high on trees whence they can have a full view of Krishna and with
-eyes closed they silently hear the sweet music of the flute. Even the
-rivers shew the love transformation of their hearts by their whirls and
-they stop their course to embrace the feet of Krishna with their raised
-billows serving as hands and offering lotus flowers at those feet. The
-clouds give shadow and they shed dewy flowers on Krishna. Most fortunate
-is Govardhana, for Krishna drives cattle on its sides and it makes its
-offerings of edibles and drink."
-
-The Gopis became full of Krishna (Tanmaya).
-
-
-
-THE STEALING OF CLOTHES.
-````````````````````````
-
-**SKANDHA X. CHAP. 22.**
-
-In the first month of the DEWY SEASON (Agrahâyana), the girls of
-Vrindâvana worshipped Kâtyâyani (a name of the Goddess Durga, wife of
-Śiva). The observances lasted for a month. The girls prayed to Kâtyâyani
-that they might get Krishna for their husband. They bathed early in the
-morning every day in the river Yamunâ. One day they left their clothes
-on the bank and went down into the river to bathe. Krishna took away
-their clothes. He asked the girls to come up and take them. They did so
-and the clothes were returned. Krishna then addressing the Gopis said:
-
-"O virtuous girls, I know your resolve. It is to worship me. I also
-approve of it and you must succeed. The desires of those that are
-absorbed in me do not bear Kârmic fruits. For fried or burnt paddy does
-not germinate. Go back to Vraja. Your object in worshipping Kâtyâyani is
-gained. These nights (*i.e.* on nights to come. *Sridhâra*) you shall enjoy
-with me."
-
-
-
-KRISHNA AND VEDIC YAJNA (SUMMER AGAIN.)
-```````````````````````````````````````
-
-**SKANDHA X. CHAP. 23.**
-
-Krishna went over to a distant forest driving cattle with his
-companions. The summer sun was fierce and the trees gave shade. "Look, O
-companions" said Krishna, "how noble minded these trees are. They live
-for others. Themselves they suffer from the winds, the rains, from the
-sun and frost but they protect us from these. They do not send away one
-disappointed. They offer their leaves, their flowers, their fruits,
-their shade, their roots, their bark, their fragrance, their juice,
-their ashes, their fuel, their buds, and what not. Of all living beings,
-such only justify their birth as do good to others by their lives, their
-wealth, their wisdom and their words." (This is introductory as an attack
-upon the selfish performances of Vedic Brâhmanas. *Sridhâra*.)
-
-The boys became hungry and they complained to Râma and Krishna.
-
-Krishna said: — "The Brâhmanas are performing Ângirasa Yajna. Take our
-names and ask them for food."
-
-The boys did as they were told but the Brâhmanas heeded them not. Narrow
-were their desires which did not extend beyond Svarga. But for these,
-they went through elaborate Karma. Ignorant as they were, they thought
-themselves to be wise. Yajna was all in all to them but they disregarded
-the Lord of Yajnas, the direct manifestation of Parama Purusha. They
-looked upon Krishna as an ordinary man and as Brâhmanas they deemed
-themselves to be superior to Him. They said neither yea nor nay. So the
-boys returned unsuccessful to Krishna and Râma. Krishna smiled and asked
-them to go to the wives of the Brâhmanas. This they did. The Brâhmana
-women had heard of Krishna and they were eager to see him.
-Notwithstanding the protests of their husbands, brothers, sons and
-friends, they hastened to Krishna with dishes full of eatables of all
-sorts. The ears had heard and the eyes now saw. And it did not take the
-Brâhmana women long to embrace Krishna and forget their grievances.
-
-Knowing that the women had given up all desires for the sake of seeing
-Âtmâ, Krishna said smilingly: — "Welcome O you noble-minded ones, take
-your seats. What can we do for you? It is meet that you have come to see
-us. I am Âtmâ and therefore the most beloved. Those that care for their
-Âtmâ or self bear unconditional and unremitting Bhakti towards me. The
-Prânas, Buddhi, Manas, the relatives, the body, wife, children and
-riches all become dear for the sake of self or Âtmâ. What can be
-therefore dearer, than Âtmâ? Now that you have seen me, go back to your
-husbands. They have to perform the sacrifices with your help."
-
-The Brâhmana women replied: — "Lord, thou dost not deserve to speak so
-cruelly to us. Make good thy words ('My Bhakta does not meet with
-destruction' or 'He does not again return' *Śridhâra*.) We have taken
-the shelter of thy feet, throwing over-board all friends, that we may
-bear on our heads the Tulasi thrown from Thy feet. Our husbands,
-parents, sons, brothers, and friends will not take us back. Who else
-can? Grant us, O conqueror of all enemies, that we may have no other
-resort but Thee. ( We may not have such resorts as Svarga &c. for which
-our husbands are striving. We want to serve Thee. *Śridhara*)."
-
-Sri Krishna replied: — "Your husbands will not bear any grudge against
-you. By my command all people, even the Devas (in whose honor the
-sacrifices are made) shall approve of your conduct. Direct contact is
-not necessary for love. Think of me with all your heart and you shall
-speedily obtain me."
-
-The Brâhmana women returned to their husbands and they were received
-well. The Brâhmanas repented. But for fear of Kansa, they could not go
-to Vrindâvana. They worshipped Krishna at home.
-
-
-
-INDRA AND THE RAISING OF GO-VARDHANA. THE INSTALLATION.
-```````````````````````````````````````````````````````
-
-(THE RAINY SEASON AGAIN.)
-
-**SKANDHA X. CHAP. 24-27.**
-
-There were great preparations for Yajna in honor of Indra. "What is
-this all about, father?" asked Krishna of Nanda. "What is the outcome
-of this sacrifice? In whose honor is it to be performed and how?"
-
-Nanda replied — "Child, Indra is the Cloud-God. He will give us rains. The
-rains give life to all beings. Therefore people worship Indra by these
-sacrificial offerings. The enjoyment of that only which remains after
-sacrifice conduces to Dharma, Artha and Kâma."
-
-Krishna replied: — "The birth and death of men are shaped by their own
-Karma. Happiness, misery, fear, well-being, these are all the effects of
-Karma. If there be any god who dispenses the fruits of Karma, he must
-also follow that Karma and not act independently of it. When people are
-governed by their own Karma, where does Indra come in? He can not undo
-what follows from Svabhâva (Svabhâva is Kârmic tendency). Karma is the
-Lord and Karma is to be worshipped. It is Rajas that works the clouds.
-What can Indra do? We do not live in towns or villages but we live in
-the forest. Therefore let us make Yajna offerings to our cows, our
-Brâhmanas and our hills. The preparations that you have already made
-will serve the purpose." Nanda and other Gopas approved of what Krishna
-said. They made offerings to the cows, the Brâhmanas and the Hill. They
-went round the Hill to shew respect. Krishna said "I am the Hill" and
-assumed some form which created faith in the Gopas. He then partook
-himself of the offerings to the Hill.
-
-Indra became highly incensed. He sent forth his clouds and winds and
-there were rains and thunder-storms and hail-stones at Vrindâvana.
-
-Krishna carelessly lifted up the Govardhana hill with one hand and the
-people of Vrindâvana with their cows took shelter in the cave.
-
-For seven days it rained incessantly and for seven days Krishna held the
-hill aloft without moving an inch.
-
-Baffled and surprised, Indra withdrew his clouds and winds. The people
-of Vrindâvana went to their own places and Krishna replaced the hill.
-
-The Gopas struck with wonder approached Nanda. They related all the
-previous deeds of Krishna and then referring to the last incident said: —
-"Look here this boy only *seven years* old and there the holding aloft of
-this big hill. We wonder whether your son may not be the Âtmâ of all
-beings." Nanda related to them what he had heard from Garga and they all
-ceased to wonder. Indra and Surabhi came down from the heavens. Indra
-fell at the feet of Krishna and glorified Him.
-
-Krishna said to him: — "To favour you, Indra, I caused a break in your
-Yajna, that, maddened as you were by your position and powers, you might
-not forget me. It is only when one is blinded by powers, that one does
-not see me sceptre in hand. I take away the powers of him whom I want to
-favor. Therefore go now, Indra. You are to keep to your own station
-and do your duties as enjoined by me void of all pride." Surabhi, the
-divine mother of cows, thanked Krishna for the services done to her
-children.
-
-She said: — "O Krishna, O thou great Yogin whose form is this Universe
-and who art the root of this Universe, we have found our Lord in Thee.
-Thou art our Supreme Deva O Lord of the Universe, thou shalt be our
-Indra, for the good of cows, Brâhmanas and Devas, and of all that are
-good. By the command of Brahmâ, we shall install thee as our Indra."
-
-So saying, Surabhi poured her milk over Krishna's head and Indra and
-other Devas, by the command of the Deva mothers, bathed Him with the
-waters of the Âkâsa Gangâ. They all called him "GOVINDA." (He who attains
-(*Vinda*) as Indra the *Cows* or *Svarga* (Go) Śridhara.) The Rishis,
-Gandharvas, Vidyâdharas, Siddhas and Châranas all joined the
-Inauguration ceremony. The Deva girls danced and sang. The three Lokas
-became full of joy. The cows wet the earth with their milk. The rivers
-bore streams of milk and other drinks. The trees poured honey. The
-cereals bore grains without culture. The hills brought forth their
-precious stones. Even the wild animals became mild.
-
-
-
-KRISHNA AND VARUNA, KRISHNA AND THE GOPAS.
-``````````````````````````````````````````
-
-**SKANDHA X. CHAP. 28.**
-
-After observing the fast of the 11th Day of the Moon, Nanda went to
-bathe in the river Yamunâ, on the twelfth day of the Moon. It was still
-dark. So the Asuras had possession of the hour. An Asura servant of
-Varuna carried Nanda to his master. The Gopas called out to Râma and
-Krishna. Krishna entered the water and went to Varuna. The Lokapala
-worshipped him and gave back Nanda, excusing himself for the ignorance
-of his servant. Nanda on returning apprised the Gopas of what he had
-seen. Could Krishna be any other than Íshvara? The Gopas wished
-ardently that He might take them over to His supreme abode. The
-all-knowing Krishna knew this. He took the Gopas to that portion of the
-Yamunâ called Bramha Hrada. Plunged in the waters, they saw Vaikuntha,
-the supreme abode of Krishna, far away from the limits of Prakriti.
-
-THE FIVE CHAPTERS ON RÂSA
-`````````````````````````
-
-(AUTUMN AGAIN.)
-
-**SKANDHA X. CHAP. 29-33.**
-
-Suka said: —
-
-"Seeing those autumnal nights, gay with Mallika flowers, Bhagavân wished
-to enjoy Himself by resort to Yogamâyâ."
-
-(It looks odd that there should be a show of conquering the God of love
-by enjoyment of others' wives. But it is really not so. For you have "By
-resort to Yoga Mâyâ." "Enjoyed though self enjoyer," "The subduer of
-the God of Love Himself," "With enjoyment all self contained," and such
-like passages, which show absolute self dependence. Therefore this show
-of Râsa play is only meant to recite the conquest of Kâma Deva. This is
-the real truth. Moreover through this love topic, the five chapters on
-Râsa are calculated to bring about a complete disinclination to worldly
-matters. *Śridhara*).
-
-("Those nights" *Go back to Vraja. These nights you shall enjoy with me* —
-the nights promised by these words. *Śridhara*.')
-
-At that time the moon had appeared on the horizon. As the lover reunited
-after long separation besmears the face of his beloved with orange
-coloured saffron, so he besmeared the face of the east with the most
-delightful orange rays which brushed away the sorrows of men
-(*charshani*). Krishna looked at the Moon, the lover of the Kumud flower,
-with unbroken disc, glowing like the face of Lakshmî, orange red like
-fresh saffron, and he looked at the forest illumined with the tender
-rays of the Moon and he indulged in song so sweet that it ravished the
-hearts of good-looking women.
-
-Listening to that passion-exciting song, the women of Vraja, with minds
-absorbed in Krishna rushed forth to where their lover was without taking
-notice of each other, their ear-rings moving violently about.
-
-Some left their houses while milking the cow. Some did not wait to see
-the boiling of the milk. Some did not take down boiled wheat from the
-oven. Some had been giving food to others, some had been giving milk to
-their own children. Some had been serving their husbands and some had
-been taking their own food. But they all left their work half finished.
-They gave up their household duties and, with clothes and ornaments all
-in disorder, they hurriedly went to Krishna, (Hearing the voice
-indicative of Sri Krishna, the Gopis became strongly inclined to Him,
-and they showed by their acts that then and there they had complete
-disinclination for works that had the three Vargas, Dharma, Artha and
-Kâma for their object. They left their half finished work and went over
-to Krishna straight. *Śridhara*.)
-
-Their husbands could not keep them back nor their fathers, brothers and
-friends. Their hearts had been completely charmed by Govinda. They did
-not turn back. (Obstacles cannot overcome those whose hearts are
-attracted by Krishna. *Śridhara*.)
-
-Some Gopis that had been inside their houses could not make their way
-out. Their thoughts had been already devoted to Krishna, and now with
-closed eyes, they held Him fast in their minds.
-
-With sins all removed by the acute pain of unbearable separation from
-the dearest one, the Kârmic effects of good works taken away by the
-absolute pleasure caused by the embraces of Krishna in meditation, with
-their bonds completely severed at that very moment, those Gopis gave up
-their bodies composed of the Gunas, even though they united with Krishna
-as their paramour. (How could they give up their bodies composed of
-Gunas while they did not know Krishna as Parama Âtmâ, but knew him only
-as their paramour, a relation caused by the Gunas? "Even though they
-&c." A thing is not dependent for its properties upon what another
-thinks of it. Drink nectar without knowing it is so. The effects are
-there. There is another difficulty. The Gopis had their Prârabdha Karma,
-or Karma that brought about the present birth and its surroundings, and
-Prârabdha is exhausted only after being worked out. So with the bonds of
-Prârabdha, how could they give up their body? "With their bonds
-completely severed at that very time." But Prârabdha cannot be exhausted
-without suffering and enjoyment. Where were the suffering and enjoyment
-in this case? "With sins all removed &c." The greatest suffering caused
-by separation removed all demerits and the greatest enjoyment caused by
-the embraces of Krishna removed the bonds of merits. Therefore when
-Parama Âtmâ was attained by intense meditation, the suffering and
-enjoyment of the time completely eradicated Karma and the Gopis gave up
-their bodies composed of the Gunas. *Śridhara*.)
-
-Asked Râjâ Parikshit: —
-
-"O Muni, they knew Krishna as only one enjoyable and not as Brahmâ. The
-Gunas were mixed up in their understanding of Krishna. How could there
-then be a cessation of the flow of the Gunas?"
-
-(Husbands, sons and others, even they themselves were Brahmâ in
-essence. But a devotion to them could not cause Moksha as they were not
-known as Brahmâ. How could union with Krishna cause Moksha, when he was
-not known as Brahmâ? Therefore this doubt. *Śridhara*.)
-
-Suka replied: —
-
-"O King, I have said before how Sisupâla attained Siddhi even by
-bearing enmity to Hrishikesha (controller of the senses, Krishna.) What
-of those to whom Krishna is dear? (The purport is that Brahmâ-hood is
-eclipsed in the Jiva. But Krishna is controller of the senses.
-Brahmâ-hood is manifest in him. He does not require to be known.
-*Śridhara*). Bhagavân manifests himself for the Moksha of men though in
-reality, He is without end, without measure, void of all Gunas and their
-controller." (Krishna being a manifestation of Bhagavân, there is no
-comparison between Him and other embodied men. *Śridhara*.)
-
-"Bear any feeling *constantly* towards Hari, whether it be a feeling of
-love, anger, fear, affection, kinship or devotion and you become full of
-Him. Do not wonder at this. For Krishna is the Lord of all Lords of
-Yoga. All (even the lowest life forms) attain Mukti from him. When the
-women of Vraja drew near, Krishna addressed them thus: —
-
-"'Welcome, ye great ones! What good can I do for you? Is it all safe in
-Vraja? Tell me the object of your coming here. The night is fearful and
-dangerous animals are treading round. Go back to Vraja. This is not a
-place for women. You have got your mothers, fathers, sons, brothers, and
-husbands. They are seeking you. Do not cause pain to your friends. What
-more, you have now seen this forest adorned with flowers and illumined
-by the tender rays of the full moon, where the trees and their tender
-branches, gently moved by the breeze from the Yamunâ, stand in all their
-beauty. Now go back, O virtuous girls, speedily to your homes and look
-after your husbands. The calves and your children are weeping. Go and
-let them have their drink. Or if you have come here, forced by your love
-for me, it is only meet and proper, for all people have their love for
-me. Devotion to husband is the one great religion for women. They are to
-seek the well being of their friends and to bring up their children. The
-husband may be wicked, old, diseased or poor. But those who wish for
-higher Lokas should not give up their husbands. The connection with one
-not the husband is disreputable and unbecoming. You may bear love to me
-in other ways than by such a near approach. Therefore go back to your
-houses.'"
-
-"The Gopis were struck dumb for a time. They became overcome with sorrow.
-They had given up every thing for the sake of Krishna and they could ill
-bear to hear these unkind words. At last they broke forth: — 'O Lord, it
-is not for Thee to utter these unkind words. We have given up all
-objects and sought Thy feet. O Thou difficult to be reached, do not
-forsake us but please think of us, even as the First Purusha thinks of
-those that seek Moksha. Thou speakest, O love, of our duties to
-husbands, sons, and friends as if thou wert a religious teacher, but
-thou art thyself the goal of those religious injunctions. So let them
-rest in thee. Thou art the greatest friend of all beings, for thou art
-verily their own self. What do they care for husbands or sons, sources
-of misery as they are, who are attached to thee, the constant source of
-happiness?
-
-"'Therefore do thou show favor to us and permit us to serve Thee.' Moved
-by their piteous appeal, Krishna gave his company to the Gopis. Proud of
-that company, the Gopis deemed themselves superior to all other women on
-the earth. To put down this loss of mental balance, caused by good
-fortune and this pride, Krishna suddenly disappeared from amongst them.
-The Gopis became disconsolate. Their hearts had been too much taken up
-by the gestures and movements of Krishna. So they imitated his deeds and
-even called themselves Krishna. They all sang loudly together and madly
-searched for Krishna from forest to forest. They asked the trees if they
-had seen their lover. They enquired of the creepers, the earth and the
-deer. Fatigued at last, they again took to reproducing the deeds of
-Krishna. Some played the part of Pûtanâ or some other Asura, some played
-the part of Krishna in connection with some of his manifold deeds. They
-again made enquiries from the plants. They then found out the footsteps
-of Krishna marked by the divine symbols (flag, the lotus, the
-thunder-bolt and the goad). Tracing those steps a little further, they
-found they were mixed up with the footprints of a girl. The Gopis
-exclaimed: —
-
-"'Surely this girl had made *Ârâdhanâ* (devout prayer for the Lord).
-Govinda left us that he might take her to a secret retreat. Sacred are
-the dust particles of Govinda's feet; even Brahmâ, Śiva and Lakshmî hold
-them on their head for the extinction of sins. Look here we no longer
-see the foot marks of that girl. It seems Krishna carried her here on
-his back and his footprints are therefore deeply marked. Here He placed
-her down to pluck flowers and touched the earth with his toes only, for
-the steps are not fully marked. Surely he placed the girl on his lap
-here and adorned her hair with flowers.' And what of that girl? She
-deemed herself very fortunate that Krishna should shew particular
-attention to her. With this sense of superiority she spoke to Krishna.
-'I can not walk. Take me to where I like on thy back.' Krishna said,
-'Get up on my back.' But when she would do so, Krishna had already
-disappeared. The girl was loudly lamenting, when the other Gopis joined
-her. They heard her story and became very much surprised. (It is
-necessary to draw the special attention of the readers to the girl, who
-had made Ârâdhanâ of Hari. She is the Râdhikâ of Nârada Pancharâtra and
-of later day Vaishnavism. Râdhikâ means literally one who makes Râdhanâ
-or Ârâdhanâ. But I shall not touch upon her in a study of the Bhâgavata
-Purâna. The study of this Purâna is incomplete without a study of
-Chaitanya's teachings. And if I succeed in taking up those teachings, I
-shall consider the lofty ideal of Râdhikâ).
-
-"The Gopis all returned to the forest and searched for Krishna as long as
-there was moonlight. They gave up their search when it was dark. With
-thoughts all directed to Krishna, with conversations all about Him, with
-gestures and movements all after Him, with songs all about His deeds,
-the Gopis, all full of Krishna, they did not think of their homes. They
-went to the banks of the Yamunâ, and all sang in a chorus about Krishna,
-ardently praying for his return. (I shall not touch with my profane
-hand the songs of the Gopis. They are far too sacred for any rendering
-into English and they baffle any attempt to do so. Sweet as nectar, the
-melody of those songs is inseparable from their very essence, and he
-would be murdering Bhâgavata who would attempt to translate those songs.
-For the continuity of our study it is only necessary to translate the
-fourth sloka.)
-
-"'Thou art not surely the son of Yasodâ. Thou art the inmost seer of all
-things. Implored by Brahmâ thou hast appeared, O friend, in the line of
-the Sâtvats, for the protection of the Universe.' While the Gopis were
-thus bewailing in melodious tunes, Krishna appeared with a smiling face.
-They formed a circle round Him and were so pleased to see Him that they
-reached the very limit of their joy. The Gopis spread out their outer
-garments as a seat for Sri Krishna, on the river bank. When Krishna sat
-down, they addressed him thus: —
-
-"'Some seek those only that seek them; some do the contrary, (*i.e.* seek
-those even who do not seek them), others seek neither those that seek
-them nor those that do not seek them. Please tell us, what is all this.'
-
-"Said Śri Krishna: — 'Those that seek each other are guided in their
-efforts by selfishness. There is neither friendship nor virtue in that
-mutuality. It is all for a selfish end. (Even the beasts seek mutual
-good. *Śridhara*. And do not the Utilitarians and the evolutionists do
-so)? Those that seek the unseeking are either kind-hearted men or they
-are guided by affection like the parents. It is pure virtue in the
-former case and friendship in the latter.
-
-"'Those that do not seek the people that seek them and far less those that
-do not seek them fall under one of the following four classes: —
-
-"'(1) Those that seek pleasure in self (and not in the outside world), (2)
-those that are satiated, (3) the ungrateful and (4) the treacherous. But
-I do not belong to any of these classes, I do not seek those that seek
-me in order to make them seek me continually and constantly. For when a
-poor man gains wealth and then loses it, he becomes so full of that loss
-that no other thought can enter his mind (*i.e.* to help the continuity
-and constancy of the devotional feeling, I do not show open favor to a
-devotee. This is an act of supreme kindness and friendship). You have
-given up for my sake all worldly concerns, the Vedas and even your own
-relations. I seek you from behind, being out of sight. Therefore you
-ought rightly to be angry with me. Even with the life of a God, I cannot
-make any return for your devotion to me, for you have burst asunder the
-ever fresh chains of home life, in order to seek me. So let your own
-goodness be the only recompense for your devotion.'"
-
-THE RÂSA.
-`````````
-
-Govinda commenced Râsa with his devoted band. (Râsa is a kind of dance
-in which many dancing girls take part.) The Gopis formed a circle, and
-Krishna, the Lord of Yoga, was between every two of them and he pressed
-them all unto his shoulders, and each of them thought that Krishna was
-near to her. (How could one Krishna stand between every two of them and
-how could each Gopi think that he was near to her only, when he was near
-to them all? Therefore "the Lord of Yoga" *i.e.* of unimaginable
-powers. *Śridhara*.) The sky became filled with hundreds of chariots of
-Devas and Deva girls, eager to witness the scene. Drums beat and flowers
-rained. The Gandharva kings with their wives sang the pure glory of
-Krishna. Loud was the clash of the Gopis' ornaments. They danced and
-sang in great excitement. The moon lingered on with amazed look and the
-night became prolonged. So the dance continued till at last the Gopis
-became fatigued. Krishna wiped off their sweat and went with them to
-bathe in the Yamunâ. After the bath they most reluctantly took leave of
-Krishna.
-
-In these enjoyments Krishna was self-contained.
-
-Asked Râjâ Parikshit: —
-
-"The Incarnation of Íśvara is for the spread of Dharma and the putting
-down of Adharma. What is this enjoyment of others' wives, contrary to
-all injunctions and hateful in itself, by one who is at once the
-originator and preserver of all Dharma?"
-
-Suka said: — Even the great are seen to violate what we call Dharma and
-the gods become over bold. But this does not bespeak any evil of them,
-as they have got superior force, even as fire eats everything but is
-ever pure. But he who is not capable (*i.e.* who is a slave to his body
-and its attributes) is not to perform such acts even in mind. If he does
-such acts through ignorance, he is sure to be ruined. It is only Śiva
-that could drink the poison that appeared from the ocean of milk. The
-words of the Lords (Ísvara) are true. Their deeds are only sometimes
-true, (*i.e.* their exceptional life, which is governed by extraordinary
-consideration and unusual conditions, is not meant always as an example
-for ordinary beings. But what they say is always for the good of the
-universe and is to be followed as a teaching. What is given as their
-life is also sometimes allegorical and has to be understood in another
-sense). The wise man therefore follows such of their deeds as are
-consistent with the other words of the great ones. They have nothing to
-gain or lose by good or bad deeds. For they have no Egoism in them. What
-is good and what is bad to him who is the Lord of all beings? By
-devotion to His feet and by power of Yoga, even Munis are freed from the
-bonds of good and evil. The Lord did only assume a body at will. Whence
-could there be any bondage in His case? (And was there really an
-enjoyment of others' wives? No for He dwells in all beings, even the
-Gopis and their husbands. He is the manifestor of all the senses. The
-assumption of the body is only a playful fancy. It is for the good of
-all beings that He became a man. His indulgences are such as are likely
-to make one devoted to Him, when heard of. Even the minds of those that
-are very much turned away from Íśvara are attracted towards Ísvara, by
-means of Sringâra Râsa or love topics. Hence the love matter of Sri
-Krishna. This is the purport. *Śridhara*) The people of Vraja, deluded by
-the Mâyâ of Krishna, thought that their wives were by their side. They
-bore no ill-feeling towards Krishna. (It follows that those who perform
-such acts without such powers are sinners. *Śridhara*.)
-
-When it was Brahmâ Muhurta, (the part of the night immediately preceding
-the dawn), the Gopis, with the permission of Śri Krishna, reluctantly
-left Him and went home.
-
-He who hears or recites this play of Vishnu with the women of Vraja
-acquires supreme devotion to Bhagavat and shakes off in no time that
-disease of the heart called Kâma or passion for women.
-
-SUDARSANA.
-``````````
-
-**SKANDHA X. CHAP. 34.**
-
-(The Râsa is a teaching about conquering Kâma by treating of indulgence
-in Kâma itself. Similarly this chapter treats of the conquest of
-Vidyadhara. *Śridhara*.)
-
-On the occasion of a sacred festival the Gopas went to the banks of the
-Sarasvati. (Students will mark the significance of the Sarasvati, which
-corresponds to Sushumnâ in the human system at this stage of spiritual
-development). They adored Pasupati (Śiva) and Ambikâ (Durgâ). They
-passed the night on the river bank. A huge serpent swallowed Nanda. The
-Gopas burnt the animal but it would not let go its hold; Krishna then
-touched it with his feet and out came a Vidyadhara from the serpent
-body. This Vidyadhara, by name Sudarsana, had been cursed by Rishi
-Angiras for having slighted him and became a serpent.
-
-SANKHA CHÛDA.
-`````````````
-
-**SKANDHA X. CHAP. 34.**
-
-One day Râma and Krishna came to the forest to have company with the
-Gopis. It was the first part of the night. They played upon the flute
-and the Gopis listened to the music with rapt attention. At this time
-Sankha Chûda, the well-known attendant of Kuvera, drove the Gopis away
-northward. The girls wept and called out to Krishna and Râma for help.
-They ran after the Yaksha who in terror left the Gopis and fled away.
-Râma remained in charge of the Gopa girls. Krishna overtook Sankha Chûda
-and severed his head with its jewel and presented the crest jewel to
-Balarâma.
-
-THE SEPARATION SONG OF THE GOPIS.
-`````````````````````````````````
-
-**SKANDHA X. CHAP. 35.**
-
-At night the Gopis enjoyed the company of Krishna. But the day was their
-time of separation and, when Krishna went to the forest, they passed the
-time any how in singing about him. For the separation song, please refer
-to the original.
-
-ARISHTA.
-````````
-
-**SKANDHA X. CHAP. 36.**
-
-Arishta, an Asura in the form of a bull, attacked the quarters of the
-cows. The cows fled away and the Gopas cried out "Krishna, O Krishna
-save us," Krishna killed the Asura.
-
-NÂRADA AND KANSA.
-`````````````````
-
-**SKANDHA X. CHAP. 36.**
-
-Nârada told Kansa: — "The female child was the daughter of Yasodâ;
-Krishna and Râma are sons of Devaki. Vâsudeva kept them with his friend
-Nanda out of fear. Those two brothers have killed your spies." In rage
-the king of Bhoja took his sword to kill Vâsudeva. Nârada prevented him.
-But the King put Yasudeva and his wife in iron fetters. He then ordered
-Kesi to kill Râma and Krishna. He called his ministers together in
-council. Addressing Chânur and Mushtika he said: — "Râma and Krishna are
-to kill us. So Nârada told me." Those two Asuras came ready for Vraja.
-But Kansa said: "No, you need not go. I shall send for the two brothers
-and kill them in a wrestling match. So prepare the playground. Place the
-elephant Kubalayâpida at the entrance and let him kill my enemies. On
-the fourteenth day of the Moon, let us commence Dhanus Yajna, and let
-animals be killed in honor of Śiva."
-
-Kansa then sent for Akrûra, one of the chiefs of the Yadu clan.
-"Akrûra," said he, "Thou art my friend and do the work of a friend.
-Please go to Vraja. Take this chariot and bring the two sons of
-Vâsudeva. Tell them, they are to see the Dhanus Yajna and have a sight
-of the town. Let Nanda and other Gopas come with presents. The elephant
-shall kill the two boys. Or if perchance they escape, the wrestlers
-shall do away with them. I will then make easy work of Vâsudeva, my old
-father Ugrasena, his brother Devaka, the Vrishnis, the Bhojas and the
-Dasârhas. Then, O friend, the earth will be left without a thorn.
-Jarâsandha is my guide. Dvivid is my friend. Samvara, Naraka, and Vâna
-have made alliance with me. With the help of these, I shall kill all
-kings that are on the side of the Devas. Know this to be my plan."
-Akrûra said: — "The design is all right. But it may or may not succeed.
-Even lofty desires are frustrated by unforeseen obstacles. Still man
-entertains them, to meet with either joy or sorrow. But I will do thy
-behests."
-
-The council broke up.
-
-KESI.
-`````
-
-**SKANDHA X. CHAP. 37.**
-
-In the meantime, Kesi, under the orders of Kansa, entered Vraja, in the
-form of a fiery steed, Krishna held him aloft by the feet and threw him
-away. The Asura regained consciousness and again ran after Krishna. He
-thrust his hand inside the mouth of the Asura and killed him at once.
-The Devas rained flowers over him and prayed. Rishi Nârada also appeared
-and adored him, making reference to his future deeds.
-
-VYOMA.
-``````
-
-**SKANDHA X. CHAP. 37.**
-
-The Gopas were grazing cattle on the flat summit of a hill. Some played
-the part of thieves, some, that of cattle keepers and some the part of
-sheep. The Asura Vyoma, (the word meaning Âkâsa), son of Mâyâ, assumed
-the form of a Gopa, and playing the part of a thief carried away many
-Gopas, who became sheep and he confined them in a hill cave closed by
-stones. In the playground only four or five Gopas remained. Krishna
-found out the mischief, attacked the Asura and killed him.
-
-
-AKRÛRA.
-```````
-
-Akrûra was mightily pleased that he would see the lotus feet of Râma and
-Krishna. His devotion to Krishna knew no bounds and he knew full well
-that, whatever his mission might be, the Lord would find out his inward
-devotion. At sunset he reached Gokula and, on seeing Râma and Krishna,
-fell down at their feet. They duly honored him. Nanda also shewed every
-respect to Akrûra. At night Akrûra made a clean breast of everything to
-Râma and Krishna, telling how Kansa oppressed the Yadus, how Nârada
-informed him of their presence in Vraja and who they were, how he
-planned their death, and the mission on which he sent him. Râma and
-Krishna only laughed. The next morning they informed Nanda about the
-command of the king. Nanda asked the Gopas to prepare themselves with
-presents.
-
-And the Gopa girls? Who could measure the depth of their sorrow? Their
-plaintive strains were most heart-rending. They wept They followed the
-chariot carrying Râma and Krishna. Krishna to console them sent word
-that he would come back. At last the chariot became invisible and the
-Gopis went back to their homes.
-
-On reaching the banks of the Yamunâ the brothers took their bath in the
-river and refreshed themselves with its water. They took their seat
-again in the chariot. Akrûra asked their permission and went to bathe.
-He plunged himself in the waters and duly performed the ablution
-ceremonies. He made a *japa* (repeated recital) of Veda Mantras. But lo!
-he found before him Râma and Krishna. They were in the chariot. How
-could they appear then? He rose and saw the boys were really seated in
-the chariot. He plunged himself once more and saw in the waters the
-serpent king Ananta, with a thousand heads and a thousand crowns,
-dressed in blue clothes, white in body, adored by Siddhas, Châranas,
-Gandhavas, and Asuras. Embraced by him was the dark Purusha, dressed in
-yellow clothes, with four hands, adored by the Rishis.
-
-Akrûra made salutations and adored the Purusha with folded hands.
-
-Krishna then withdrew his form, as a play is withdrawn from the stage.
-Akrûra got up and took his seat in the chariot.
-
-Krishna said: — "Akrûra, you look as if you have seen something unusual."
-Akrûra replied: — "What is there in the universe that is not in thee.
-When I have seen thee, I have seen everything." They drove on again and
-at last reached Mathurâ.
-
-
-
-MATHURÂ.
-````````
-
-**SKANDHA X. CHAP. 41-42.**
-
-Akrûra asked Krishna and all the Gopas to come to his house. But Krishna
-would first kill Kansa before doing him this favor. So Akrûra
-sorrowfully left him and informed Kansa about the performance of his
-mission.
-
-Krishna with Balarâma and the Gopas went out to see the town. The house
-tops became crowded with females who wanted to have a look at Krishna,
-whose fame had already preceded him. A washerman passed that way.
-Krishna begged him to give him some choice clothes. But he was the
-washerman of Kansa and he arrogantly refused to give any of the King's
-clothes. Krishna in anger cut off his head. The attendants left the
-clothes and fled away. Râma and Krishna took as many as they liked and
-gave the rest to the Gopas.
-
-A weaver came forward of his own accord and gladly dressed the brothers
-with choice clothes. Krishna rewarded him with great powers and provided
-for him Sârupya (a kind of Mukti) after death.
-
-Then the brothers went to the house of a garland-maker named Sudâmâ.
-Sudâmâ fell down at their feet and adorned them and the Gopas with the
-best garlands. The garland-maker prayed for constant devotion, for
-friendship with the devotees and for love of all beings. Krishna gave
-him these boons as well as many other blessings.
-
-A young girl went that way with fragrant paste in her hand. Though young
-and beautiful, she was hunch-backed.
-
-Krishna said smilingly: — "Fine girl that thou art, tell me truly what
-this scented thing is for. Anoint us with this, and good shall be your
-lot." The girl said: — "My name is Trivakrâ (with three bends). I am a
-servant of Kansa. He likes my paste very much. Who but you can deserve
-to have it?" The girl then anointed the brothers, with zeal and love.
-Krishna pressed her feet with the tips of his own feet and held up her
-chin with two fingers and with a little effort made her erect. The hunch
-on her back was gone and she became a beauty. She invited Krishna to her
-own house. Krishna knew her object and said "Let me first do my work
-and then I shall visit your house." He then passed through the traders'
-quarters. They made various presents. Krishna then enquired where the
-Yajna Dhanus (the bow to be used in the performance of the Yajna) was.
-Though warned by the citizens, he entered the place and easily broke the
-bow asunder. There was great noise. The warders ran to kill him. He
-killed the guardsmen with the two parts of the bow.
-
-It was then sun-set. The boys returned with the Gopas to their quarters.
-
-Kansa heard of the valour of the boys and passed the night in evil
-dreams. When the day broke, he made preparations for the wrestling
-match.
-
-
-
-THE WRESTLING.
-``````````````
-
-**SKANDHA X. CHAP. 43-44.**
-
-Kansa took his seat on a raised platform with his ministers. There was
-beating of drums. The athletes appeared on the scene, headed by Chânur,
-Mushtika, Kûta, Sala and Tosala. Nanda and other Gopas made their
-presents and were shown over to another platform.
-
-Hearing the noise, Râma and Krishna also came to see the match. At the
-entrance they were obstructed by the elephant Kubalayâpida. Krishna
-asked the driver to remove the elephant, but he only set it upon him.
-There was a fight and Krishna at last succeeded in felling the elephant
-to the ground. He then plucked out its teeth and with their help, he
-killed both the animal and its driver. Blood-stained, the two brothers
-entered the wrestling ground with the ivory teeth in their hands. All
-were struck by their appearance. The account of the elephant's death
-struck terror into Kansa's heart. He began to tremble. The people of
-Mathurâ were attracted by the divine form of the brothers and they began
-to talk about their deeds. Chânûra addressing the brothers said: — "You
-are known as good wrestlers. The King has therefore invited you to this
-match. Come and do the pleasure of the King, for the King is the
-embodiment of all Devas."
-
-Krishna said: — "We dwell in the forest. But still we are subjects of the
-King of Bhoja. That we are ordered to please the King is a great favor
-to us. But we are boys. We shall play with those of equal might. There
-will then be a fair match and there will be no injustice attaching to
-those present here."
-
-Chânûra replied: —
-
-"You are neither a boy nor a youth below fifteen, Krishna. Nor is
-Balarâma so. You killed that elephant with the might of a thousand
-elephants as it were in sport. It is meet therefore you shall fight with
-the powerful. There is no injustice in this. You measure your strength
-with me and let Balarâma do so with Mushtika."
-
-So it was. The fight was a drawn one. At last the brothers killed their
-rivals. Kûta then confronted Balarâma, who killed him with his fist.
-Sola and Tosala also fell dead before Krishna. The other wrestlers fled
-for their lives. Râma and Krishna then called their Gopa companions and
-began to dance together on the wrestling ground. "Well done," "Well
-done," cried all, except Kansa.
-
-
-
-THE DEATH OF KANSA.
-```````````````````
-
-**SKANDHA X. CHAP. 44.**
-
-Kansa stopped the music. He exclaimed. "Let these two unruly sons of
-Vâsudeva be driven out from the town. Take away the wealth of the Gopas.
-Confine this wicked Nanda. Kill that vile Vâsudeva. My father Ugrasena
-is partial to my enemies. Kill him with all his attendants." While Kansa
-was thus bragging Krishna got angry and with one jump, he got upon the
-platform. Kansa stood up with his sword and shield. Krishna held him by
-his hair and threw him down from the platform. He then jumped over Kansa
-and his life departed. He then dragged the dead body of Kansa in the
-presence of all. Kansa through fear and anxiety had always thought of
-Krishna and now being killed by his hands, he attained the Rûpa of
-Krishna. The eight brothers of Kansa attacked Krishna but they were put
-to death by Balarâma. There was great rejoicing amongst the Devas.
-
-The wives of Kansa loudly lamented the death of their husband. Bhagavân
-consoled them. He then liberated his father and mother and touched their
-feet. He then took leave of Nanda and the Gopas, promising a speedy
-return to them.
-
-
-
-THE THREAD CEREMONY AND BRAHMACHARYA.
-`````````````````````````````````````
-
-**SKANDHA X. CHAP. 45.**
-
-Krishna placed Ugrasena on the throne. The Yadus, Vrishnis, Andhakas,
-Madhus, Dasarhas and Kukkuras, who had left Mathurâ for fear of Kansa,
-now returned to that town. Vâsudeva called the Purohita (family priest)
-Garga and performed the Upanayana ceremony (investiture of the sacred
-thread) of his sons. They then became twice-born. (Dvija-Brâhmanas,
-Kshatriyas and Vaisyas are the twice-born classes. Krishna was a
-Kshatriya by birth). After Upanayana, one has to practise Brahmâcharya
-*i.e.* he has to reside at the house of his Guru, learn the Vedas from
-him and practise asceticism at the same time. According to practice,
-Râma and Krishna went to reside at the house of Rishi Sandipani of
-Avanti of the line of Kasyapa. The brothers learned the Vedas, the
-Vedangas and all the branches of learning in sixty four days. Then they
-requested their Guru to name his Dakshinâ. (When a disciple leaves his
-Guru after the completion of study, he has to give some Dakshinâ or
-present according to his power to the Guru). Sandipani in consultation
-with his wife asked for the restoration to life of his son, who had been
-drowned in the sea at Prabhâsa Kshetra. "All right," said the brothers.
-They took their chariot and went to the sea-side. The sea brought
-presents. But Krishna asked for the restoration of his Guru's son. The
-sea replied: — "I did not carry him off, but one Asura named Panchajana,
-who lives in my waters in the form of a conch." Krishna entered the
-waters and killed Panchajana. But he did not find the boy within the
-Asura's body. Me took the conch and came back. He then went with
-Balarâma to the seat of Yâma called Sanyamani and blew the conch. Yâma
-adored the brothers and wanted to know their behests.
-
-Bhagavân said: — "My Guru's son has certainly been brought here by his
-own Karma. But hear my command and bring him to me." "So be it" said
-Yâma, and brought back the Guru's son. The brothers took him to their
-father and said: "What more do you ask, O Guru?"
-
-The Guru said: — "I have nothing more to ask. Now you may go home."
-
-
-
-UDDHAVA AND VRAJA.
-``````````````````
-
-**SKANDHA X. CHAP. 46.**
-
-Uddhava was the chief counsellor of the Vrishnis, the dear friend of
-Krishna and the direct disciple of Brihaspati. He was second to none in
-wisdom. His dress and decorations were those of Krishna.
-
-Krishna called his friend aside and said: —
-
-"Go, Uddhava, to Vraja. Bear my love to Nanda and Yasodâ, Give my
-message to the Gopis, which will be a relief to them in their distress.
-Their desires are all centred in me. I am their life. They have given up
-all worldly connections for my sake. I am their dearest and nearest
-friend. I protect those that give up worldly duties for my sake. So
-painful is my separation to the Gopis that they are beside themselves.
-Any how they live and that with difficulty, only because I sent word of
-my speedy return."
-
-Gladly Uddhava accepted the mission. He went to Vraja and stayed there
-for a few months, consoling the Gopas and Gopis.
-
-To Nanda and Yasodâ he said: —
-
-"Râma and Krishna are the efficient and the material cause of the
-Universe — Purusha and Pradhana. They pervade all beings and guide the
-workings of individual natures. Krishna would fulfil the promise he made
-to you on the wrestling ground and come back to Vraja ere long. Do not
-grieve O great ones. You shall see Krishna by your side: He is within
-the heart of all beings, as fire is inside all fuel, To him nothing is
-agreeable or disagreeable, nothing high or low. He has no father, no
-wife, no sons, no one near or distant, no body, no birth, no Karma. For
-the protection of Sâdhus he manifests himself in different births at his
-own pleasure. Though void of all Gunas, he seeks them at pleasure for
-the purpose of creation. As a stationary body appears to be moving, so
-Âtmâ appears to be working, though Chitta is the worker. Krishna is not
-your son only. But he is of all the sons, the self, father, mother and
-Ísvara. Nothing exists in reality but Krishna."
-
-Excited were the effusions of the Gopis, on seeing Uddhava. (They may be
-interesting to the general reader but to the student the message
-delivered by Uddhava is the only necessary portion at this stage of the
-story. The reader is therefore referred to other translations for those
-highly poetical effusions.)
-
-Uddhava informed the Gopis that he was the secret messenger of Krishna.
-He then delivered the following message from Bhagavân: — "You have no
-separation from me, for I am all-pervading. As the five elements earth,
-water, air, fire and ether enter into the composition of all beings, so
-I underlie Manas, Prana, the Bhûtas and the Indriyas, as also the Gunas
-themselves. I create, preserve and destroy self in self by self. By my
-Mâyâ, I become the Bhûtas, the Indriyas and the Gunas. But Âtmâ is pure,
-it is all consciousness (Jnâna), separate, unconnected with the Gunas.
-It is only by the mental states of wakefulness, dream and dreamless
-sleep that egoistic perceptions are caused in Âtmâ. (The objects of
-perception in one state appear to be unreal in another state.) The
-objects of dream perception appear to be unreal to the awakened man. The
-mind (being the common factor in all the three states) perceives these
-(unreal) objects of the senses and it underlies the senses themselves.
-Sleeplessly therefore control the mind. This is the final reach of the
-Vedas, of Yoga, and of Sânkhya, of relinquishment, of Tapas, of the
-control of senses, and of Truth itself. This is the ocean into which all
-rivers fall.
-
-"That I, though pleasing to your eyes, remain away from you is because I
-want you constantly to meditate on me, for such meditation will attract
-your mind more towards me. The mind of women does not dwell so much upon
-the lover, near at hand, dearest though he be, as it dwells upon a
-distant lover, being full of him.
-
-"By devoting your whole mind to me, free from all other thoughts, and by
-constantly meditating on me you shall forthwith attain me. Even those
-girls that remained at Vraja and could not join the Râsa attained me by
-meditating on My powers." The words of Uddhava only reminded the Gopis
-of the doings of Krishna. They loudly took his name. They were full of
-Krishna and would not forget him. But they knew from His message that
-He was Âtmâ and their pain of separation was gone.
-
-Uddhava remained for several days at Vraja, reminding all of Sri Krishna.
-When he left Vraja he wished that he could be one of the creepers or
-herbs in Vrindâvana, that had been rendered sacred by the dust of the
-Gopis' feet. (With that wish let us take leave of the Vrindâvana Lilâ of
-Bhagavân Sri Krishna.)
-
-THOUGHTS ON THE VRINDÂVANA LILÂ.
-````````````````````````````````
-
-Before making any remarks of my own, it will be necessary to draw upon
-the Upanishads.
-
-Gopâla Tâpani is one of the chief Upanishads dealing with Krishna. The
-work is divided into two parts. The first part gives one yantra for the
-Upâsanâ of Krishna. The second part gives a narration. The women of
-Vraja asked Krishna to name some Brâhmana to whom they could make
-offerings of food. Krishna named Durvasas. "But how can we approach him
-without crossing the Yamunâ?" asked the Gopis.
-
-"Take my name, that of Krishna, a Brahmâcharin, and the Yamunâ shall
-give you way" So it was. The Gopis crossed the Yamunâ and went to the
-Âsrama of Durvasas, the incarnation of Rudra. They offered the sweet
-things to the Rishi and when he partook of these, he permitted the Gopis
-to retire. "But how can we cross the Yamunâ?"
-
-The Rishi replied: — "Remember me, the eater of Durvâ (a kind of grass) and
-the river shall give way."
-
-"Krishna a Brahmâcharin! And thou an eater of Durvâ only? How can that
-be?" asked the chief Gopi and she asked a number of other questions.
-
-(According to the common exoteric notion Sri Krishna is the lord of many
-women and Durvasas is a voracious Rishi. This is the cause of the
-wonder.)
-
-Durvasas first explained that Krishna was the all-pervading Purusha,
-underlying all. Then further on, there are seven *Sâkâmya* Puris or
-places, on the top of Meru, as well as seven *nishkâmya* Puris.
-
-(The commentator Visvesvara explains "Sâkâmya," as regions where
-desires fructify. As on the Meru there are seven such Puris, so there
-are seven Nishkâmya or Moksha-producing Puri's). On the earth, these, are
-seven Sâkâmya Puris (Ayodhyâ, Mathurâ and others.) Of these Gopâla Puri
-(Mathurâ) is the direct abode of Brahmâ.
-
-As the lotus floats on the lake, Mathurâ rears itself up on the earth,
-protected by Chakra, the disc of Vishnu. Hence it is called Gopâla Puri.
-This Puri is surrounded by twelve forests: —
-
-Brihat Vana (from Brihat or great, large).
-
-Madhu Vana (From Madhu, a daitya).
-
-Tâla Vana (Tâla or palm tree).
-
-Bahula Vana (From Bahula, a kind of tree).
-
-Kumud Vana (From Kumud, flower).
-
-Khadira Vana (From Khadira or the catechu plant).
-
-Bhadra Vana (From Bhadra, a kind of tree).
-
-Bhândira Vana (From Bhândira, the name of a religious fig tree).
-
-Srî Vana (From Srî or Lakshmî).
-
-Loha-vana (from Loha, the name of an Asura.)
-
-And Vrindâvana (from Vrinda or Tulasi plant.)
-
-These twelve forests are presided over by the 12 Âdityas, 11 Rudras,
-eight Vasus, seven Rishis, Brahmâ, Nârada, the five Vinâyakas (Moda,
-Pramoda, Âmoda, Sumukha and Durmukha), Viresvara, Rudresvara,
-Visvesvara, Gopalesvara, Bhadresvara, and 24 other Śiva Lingas.
-
-There are two chief forests, Krishnavana and Bhadra vana. The 12 forests
-are included in these. They are all sacred, some of them most sacred.
-
-There are four forms of Vishnu (Mûrtis) in these forests, Râma
-(Sankarshana), Pradyumna, Aniruddha and Krishna (Vâsudeva).
-
-There are twelve other Mûrtis in Mathurâ:
-
-*Roudrî* adored by the Rudras.
-
-*Brâhmi*, by Brahmâ.
-
-*Devî*, by the sons of Brahmâ.
-
-*Mânavî*, by the Maruts.
-
-*Vighna nâsinî*, by the Yinayakas.
-
-*Kâmyâ*, by the Vasus.
-
-*Ârshî*, by the Rishis.
-
-*Gândharvi*, by the Gandharvas.
-
-*Gō*, by the Apsarasas.
-
-*Antardhânasthâ* remains hidden.
-
-*Svapadangatâ* is at the supreme abode of Vishnu.
-
-*Bhûmisithâ* remains on the earth (Bhûmi).
-
-Those who worship *Bhûmisthâ* know no death, they become
-liberated.
-
-Gopa is Jiva (Ego).
-
-Gopâla = Gopa (Jiva) + âla (acceptor).
-
-Gopâla is he who accepts the Jivas as his own.
-
-He who realises "I am Gopâla" attains Moksha. Gopâla always remains at
-Mathurâ. Mathurâ is the place for devotion.
-
-The Lotus of the heart is Mathurâ with its eight petals. The two feet of
-Nârâyana are there marked with the divine Symbols (flag, umbrella &c.).
-The object of meditation there is either Krishna, with Srivatsa, with
-Kaustubha, with four hands, bearing Sankha, Chakra, Padma, and Gadâ,
-with arms adorned by Keyûra, with the neck adorned by a garland, with a
-crown on the head and with Makara-shaped Kundalas on the ears; or it is
-Krishna with, two hands, bearing a flute and horn.
-
-Mathurâ is from *Math*, to put down, because materiality is put down there
-by divine wisdom. The eight Dikpâlas (Indra, Agni, Vayu, Varuna and
-others) preside over the eight petals of the Lotus in the heart.
-
-The "flags" have the glow of the Sun and the Moon.
-
-The umbrella is Brahmâ Loka.
-
-The two feet are "above" and "below."
-
-Kaustubha is that light which overpowers all other lights *viz.*, Surya,
-Agni, Vak and Chandra.
-
-The "four hands" are Satva, Rajas, Tamas and Ahankâra.
-
-"Sankha," consisting of the five Bhûtas, is held by the hand
-representing Rajas.
-
-"Chakra," consisting of Manas, is held by the hand representing Satva.
-
-"Padma" is the universe, the primal Mâyâ. It is held by the hand,
-representing Tamas.
-
-"Gadâ" is primal Vidya or wisdom. It is held by the hand, representing
-Ahankâra.
-
-"Garland" round the neck consists of the Mânasa Putras of Brahmâ. The
-crown is Sat, absolute existence. The different life forms and the
-underlying Jiva are the two "Kundalas" on the ear.
-
-Then we come to MANTRA BHAGAVATA or Bhâgavata written in Vedic Mantras,
-a stiff work not quite intelligible without the excellent gloss of
-Nilkantha (published at the Venkatesvara Press, Bombay). This work is
-said to have been found out by Nilkantha. It is divided into four parts —
-Gokula Kânda, Vrindâvana Kânda, Akrûra Kânda and Mathurâ Kânda. The
-chief events of Krishna's divine life (Lilâ) are narrated in this book,
-but in the order of narration., it follows Hari Vansa more than the
-Bhâgavata Purâna. I refer only to those portions of the book, which to
-me appear important.
-
-We take the following from the Gokula Kânda. The Gopas are
-re-incarnations of Devas. They are the messengers of Krishna. They are
-fond of *Gavya* or the products of Cows. The relation between Krishna and
-the Gopas is that between an object and its image. Krishna drove the
-cattle of Nanda, just as he drove the horses of Arjuna, the object of
-doing so being in both the cases the destruction of all the enemies
-(III). In commenting on the 5th Śloka, Nilkantha calls Krishna the white
-ray of the Sun, which becomes the blue ray, which is in reality the ray
-of Sat, Chit and Ananda. He refers in this connection to the word Bharga
-(ray) in the Gayatri. Krishna is the heart of the Sun.
-
-The sixth sloka explains this: —
-
-"It is Krishna who causes bliss. The Sun God (Savitri), being guided by
-Krishna, goes his way on the golden chariot (VI)."
-
-In the 11th sloka, Krishna is called the Black ray.
-
-Mother Aditi (Earth) asked her son Indra for relief (VII). At the
-request of Indra, Vishnu entered the womb of Devaki. He first ensouled
-seven Ardha-Garbhas. (*Ardha* is half and *Garbha* is a foetal child. The
-six sons of Kala-nemi — the name of a demon, literally, the rim of the
-wheel of time, known as Shat Garbhas, pleased Brahmâ by worship and
-became immortal. They were the grandsons of Hiranyakasipu. He cursed
-them saying: —
-
-"I am your own grandfather. But you disregard me for the sake of the
-Divine Grandfather Brahmâ. Hence you shall be killed by the hands of
-your own father." They remained in their Linga Sarira in Pâtâla.
-
-They incarnated as the first six sons of Vâsudeva and were killed by
-Kansa, the incarnation of Kala-nemi. This is related in Harivansa.
-Therefore they are called Ardha Garbhas. The seventh Balarâma is also
-called Ardha-Garbha, as he was drawn away from Devakl to Rohini.
-*Nilkantha*) IX.
-
-The Black ray (Sat, Chit and Ananda) incarnated in Devakt's womb.
-
-Krishna is Antaryâmin or inside all beings.
-
-Balarâma is Sutrâtmâ, the Ego. XIX.
-
-The Cart Asura (*Sakata*) is a messenger of the death God from the South,
-XX.
-
-*Pûtanâ* is a weapon of death in the form of a bird. XXI.
-
-*Trinâvarta* is the disease, known as consumption.
-
-The Gopas asked Krishna for the milk-products. As devas, they had never
-known such offerings in Yajnas. They informed Krishna, where the milk
-made things were to be found. (XXIII and XXIV.) For the gratification of
-the universe, the longings of Krishna are great and for this reason he
-did not spare any fresh butter of the Gopis. The Gopis learned from this
-that for the bare up-keep of their lives, they were to attend to their
-household duties (XXVI). (If the boys are to steal away all the butter,
-life itself will be extinguished. People should have enough left for
-their household requirement. If I taste only a little of the butter, all
-the three Lokas will be gratified, and the Gopis will acquire the merit
-thereof. Considering all this, Bhagavân tasted butter by stealth
-*Nilkantka*. This means, in so many words, that Krishna accepted the
-fruits of all the actions of the Gopis except such as sufficed to
-preserve their lives). The Gopis complained to Yasodâ of the stealing
-acts of Krishna. XXVII.
-
-*Vrindâvana Kânda*.
-
-The dwellers of Gokula migrated with Krishna to Vrinddvana, for fear of
-Vrikas or wolves. (Kâma and other passions are the wolves, *Nitkantha*), I.
-
-In treating of Pralamba Asura, mention is made of the nonperception of
-"I am Brahmâ," VII.
-
-Pralamba is said to be an aspect of the primal Daitya Madhu, IX.
-
-There is some philosophical discussion about the concealment of calves
-by Brahmâ, (X to XIV.)
-
-The first six sons of Devaki are the Six Indriyas (including Manas) and
-the seventh is the Jivâtma, the conscious Ego. XXXV.
-
-In commenting upon this sloka, Nilkantha says, "Devaki and other names
-are merely allegorical, bearing an esoteric meaning. The narration is
-not the real point." He further supports his position while commenting
-on sloka XL, of Vrindâvana Kânda. He makes quotations from the Skanda
-Purâna, which speak of the twofold meanings of the narration texts, one
-Âdhyâtmika and another Âdhi bhautika, the former being difficult to
-follow. Following up these quotations, Nilkantha says; "Those that are
-not prepared for the Âdhyâtmika hindering of all modifications of the
-mind, must seek the Âdhibhautika Lilâ of Bhagavân. And if they
-concentrate their minds on the *holy deeds of Bhagavân*, they acquire the
-result of Samâdhi."
-
-Krishna is Paramâtmâ. The intercourse of the Gopis was not therefore
-adulterous. (XXXVII and XXXVIII.)
-
-*Akrûra Kânda*.
-
-In this Kânda, Akrûra comes to Vraja and takes Râma and Krishna to
-Mathurâ.
-
-*Mathura Kânda*.
-
-This part treats of the killing of Kansa by Krishna.
-
-Krishna is described as the knower of the hidden names of the cows. (It
-is to be understood that the cows have hidden names, *Nilkantha*.)
-
-We now come to KRISHNA UPANISHAD, one of the Atharvana Upanishads.
-
-The Gopas are Devas.
-
-"Nanda" is Supreme bliss.
-
-"Yasodâ" is Mukti.
-
-Mâyâ is three-fold Sâtvika, Râjasika and Tâmasika.
-
-Satvika Mâyâ is in Rudra, Râjasika in Brahmâ and Tâmasika in the Daityas.
-
-Devaki (*Deva+ki* or chanted by the Devas) is Brahmâ Vidya.
-
-"Vâsudeva" is Nigama.
-
-The "Gopis" and the cows are Riks. (Vedic Mantras)
-
-Brahmâ is the stick of Krishna.
-
-Rudra is His flute.
-
-Indra is the horn,
-
-"Gokula Vâna" is Vaikuntha.
-
-The trees are the Rishis of Vaikuntha.
-
-The Daityas (Trinâvarta and others) are greed, anger and other passions.
-Krishna, in the form of Gopa, is Hari. Râma is the Sesha serpent.
-
-The eight principal wives and the sixteen thousand and one hundred minor
-wives of Krishna are the Riks and Upanishads.
-
-"Chânûra" is Dvesha (Dislike).
-
-"Mushtika" is Matsara (Egoism, Envy).
-
-"Kubalaya pîda" is Darpa (pride).
-
-"Vaka" is Garva (Arrogance).
-
-"Rohini" is Dayâ (Tenderness).
-
-"Satya bhama" is Ahinsâ, (Non-Injury).
-
-"Agha" is some fatal disease, such as consumption &c.
-
-"Kansa" is Kali(?) (The commentator Nârâyana says that by Kali we are
-here to understand Kalaha or quarrel, for Kansa is the incarnation of
-Kâlanemi and Duryodhana is the incarnation of Kali.).
-
-"Sudâman" is Sama (restraint of the mind).
-
-"Akrûra" is Satya (Truth).
-
-"Uddhava" is Dama (restraint of the senses).
-
-"Sankha" is Vishnu himself in the form of Lakshmî.
-
-The Milk products of the Gopis correspond to the ocean of milk in the
-universe.
-
-Kasyapa is the Ulûkhala (wooden mortar used in cleansing rice), to which
-Krishna was tied by Yasodâ.
-
-The rope that was used in the tying of Sri Krishna is Aditi. Chakra is
-Veda.
-
-The garland Vaijayanti is Dharma.
-
-The umbrella is Âkasa.
-
-Gadâ is the Goddess Kalika.
-
-The bow of horn (Sârnga) is the Mâyâ of Vishnu.
-
-The Arrow is Kâla, the destroyer of all lives.
-
-The Lotus is the seed of the universe. Garuda is the religious
-fig tree named Bhândira.
-
-The following is taken from GOPI CHANDANA UPANISHAD.
-
-"What is Gopi?
-
-"She who preserves.
-
-"Preserves from what?
-
-"Preserves people from Naraka, from death and from fear."
-
-HARIVANSA says: —
-
-"Kansa is Kâlanemi,
-
-"Kesin is Haya Grîva,
-
-"Arishta is son of Bali, the Elephant is Rishta, son of Diti, Chânûra and
-Mushtika are the Asuras, Varaha and Kisora."
-
-PADMA PURANA throws the greatest light on the Vrindâvana Lilâ of Sri
-Krishna. The chapters refer to the Pâtâla Khanda of that Purâna.
-
-Ch. 38. Of innumerable Brahmândas (solar systems), there is one supreme
-seat, that of Vishnu. Of this seat, Goloka is the highest aspect, and
-Vaikuntha, Śiva Loka and others are the lower aspects. Goloka is
-represented on the earth by Gokula, and Vaikuntha by Dvârakâ. Vrindâvana
-is within the jurisdiction of Mathurâ. Mathurâ has the form of the
-thousand-petalled lotus, situated in the head.
-
-Of the forests in Gokula, the twelve chief ones are: — Bhadra, Sri, Loha,
-Bhândira, Mahâvana, Tâla, Khadir, Bakula, Kumud, Kâmya, Madhu and
-Vrindâvan. There are several sub-forests too, which witnessed some scene
-or other of Krishna Lilâ.
-
-Gokula is the thousand-petalled lotus and its disc is the seat of
-Govinda.
-
-The petals are the seats of different performances of Sri Krishna and
-are different occult centres.
-
-The southern petal contains a most occult seat, attainable with
-difficulty by the greatest of Yogins. The south-eastern petal contains
-two secret recesses. The eastern petal has the most purifying
-properties. The north-east petal is the seat of fruition. The Gopis
-attained Krishna on this petal, by worshipping Kâtyâyani. Their clothes
-were also stolen on this petal.
-
-The northern petal is the seat of the twelve Âdityas. It is as good as
-the disc itself.
-
-The north-west petal is the seat of Kâliya. On the western
-petal, favor was shewn to the wives of the Vedic Rishis. Here the
-Asura Agha was killed. Here is also the Lake called Brahmâ. On
-the south-western petal, the Asuras Vyoma and Sankha-chûda were
-killed.
-
-These eight petals are situated in Vrindâvana. Outside Vrindâvana, there
-are sixteen petals. The first petal is the seat of Govardhana. Here
-Krishna was installed as Govinda. The first petal contains Madhuvana,
-the second Khadira, the fourth Kadamba, the fifth Nandisvara (residence
-of Nanda), the sixth Nanda, the seventh Bakula, the eighth Tâla (where
-the Asura Dhenuka was killed), the ninth Kumuda, the tenth Kâmya (where
-Brahmâ knew Krishna as Vishnu), the eleventh many forests, the twelfth
-Bhândîra, the thirteenth Bhadra, the fourteenth Sri, the fifteenth Loha,
-and the sixteenth Mahâvana. The deeds of Sri Krishna up to the age of
-five were all performed at Mahâvana.
-
-Vrindâvana is the seed cavity of the thousand-petalled lotus. By all
-means place Vrindâvana in the heart cavity. Krishna is always a Kisora
-(between ten and fifteen) at Vrindâvana, (*i.e.* Vrindâvana proper, the
-particular forest of that name).
-
-At the centre of Vrindâvana is the eight-cornered Yoga seat of Sri
-Krishna. Over that seat is a throne of jewels. The eight petalled lotus
-lies there. The disc of that lotus is the supreme abode of Govinda. He
-is the Lord of Vrindâvana. Brahmâ, Vishnu and Śiva are all His parts.
-His primal Prakriti is Râdhikâ.
-
-**CHAPTER 39.**
-
-Govinda with Râdhâ is seated on the golden throne. Outside the throne,
-on the seat of Yoga, remain the chief favorites of Krishna, who are
-parts of Râdhikâ.
-
-Lalita stands on the west, Syâmalâ on the north-west, Srimatî on the
-north, Haripriyâ on the north-east, Visâkha on the east, Saivyâ on the
-south-east, Padmâ on the south, and Bhadrâ on the south-west.
-
-Then there is another group of eight, Chandrâvali, Chitrarekhâ, Chandrâ,
-Madana Sundari, Sri, Madhumati, Chandra-rekhâ, and Haripriyâ.
-
-Of this latter group, Chandrâvali holds almost equal position with
-Râdhikâ.
-
-These are the sixteen principal Prakritis. Then there are thousands of
-Gopis all devoted to Krishna.
-
-On the right side of Sri Krishna are thousands of Sruti girls, who chant
-His divine mysteries. On the left side are the most beautiful-looking
-Deva girls, who turn towards Sri Krishna with the greatest eagerness.
-
-Outside this inner temple are the Gopa boys, who look like Krishna.
-Sridâman is on the west, Sudâman on the north, Vasudâman on the east,
-and Kinkini on the south.
-
-Outwards still more, inside a golden temple, seated upon a golden seat,
-adorned with ornaments of gold, there are thousands of Gopa boys, headed
-by Stoka Krishna, Ansu Bhadra and others, all devoutly singing the glory
-of Sri Krishna.
-
-The whole of this is surrounded by a shining gold wall.
-
-On the west of that wall, within a temple, situated under a Parijâta
-tree, is Vâsudeva, with his eight wives, Rukmini, Satyabhama, Jâmbavati,
-Nâgnajiti, Sulakshanâ, Mitravindâ, Anuvindâ and Sunandâ.
-
-On the north, under a Harichandana tree, is Sankarshana with Revati. On
-the south, under a Santâna tree, is Pradyumna with Rati. On the east,
-under a Kalpataru, is Aniruddha.
-
-Surrounding all this is a white stone wall, with four gates. White
-Vishnu preserves the western gate, Red Vishnu preserves the northern
-gate, yellow Vishnu preserves the eastern gate, Black Vishnu preserves
-the southern.
-
-CHAP. 41. Rishi Ugra-tapas meditated on Sri Krishna for one hundred
-Kalpas. At the end of that period he became a Gopi, named Sunandâ.
-
-Rishi Satya-tapas meditated on Krishna for ten Kalpas, and he then
-became a Gopi named Bhadrâ.
-
-Rishi Hari-dhamâ became a Gopi, named Raktavenî, at the end of three
-Kalpas.
-
-Rishi Jâvâli became Chitra-gandhâ after ten Kalpas.
-
-Suchi-sravas and Suvarna became the daughters of the Gopa Suvira, at the
-end of one Kalpa.
-
-Jatila, Janghapûta, Ghritâsin, and Karbu became Gopis after three
-Kalpas.
-
-Suka, son of Dirgha-tapas, Vyâsa of the previous Kalpa, became daughter
-of Upananda.
-
-One son of Svetaketu became the daughter of Bâlâvani.
-
-Chitra-dhvaja, son of Râjârshi Chandraprabha, became Chitrakalâ,
-daughter of Gopa Viragupta, at the end of one Kalpa.
-
-Rishi Punya-sravas practised meditation for thirty thousand Kalpas and
-he was born as the daughter of Nanda's brother, by name Labangâ.
-
-These are some of the favorite Gopis of Krishna.
-
-CHAP. 42. The form of Sri Krishna, as seen at Vrindâvana, is constant.
-Mathurâ, Vrindâvana, Yamunâ, the Gopa girls, the Gopa boys, Sri Krishna
-as an Avatâra — are all constant.
-
-The Gopis are the Srutis (forms invoked by Vedic Mantras), Deva girls
-and devoted Rishis, desirous of liberation.
-
-The Gopa boys are Munis, full of the bliss of Vaikuntha.
-
-The Kadamba tree is Kalpa Vriksha, (a divine tree that gives all that is
-desired).
-
-The Siddhas, Sadhyas and Gandharvas are the Kokilas (cuckoos) of
-Vrindâvana.
-
-Govardhana is the eternal servant of Hari.
-
-CHAP. 43. Arjuna wanted to know the mysteries of Vrindâvana and of the
-Gopis.
-
-Krishna said they were unknown to Brahmâ even. He then advised Arjuna to
-worship the goddess Tripura-sundari, as through her favor only he could
-know all he asked about. The goddess asked Arjuna to bathe in a tank
-called Kulakunda. She then gave directions which were duly performed by
-Arjuna. The goddess then took Arjuna to the real, constant Vrindâvana,
-which is placed over Goloka. With the divine vision, given by the
-goddess, Arjuna saw the mysteries of Vrindâvana, and became full of
-devotional love. He then asked the goddess what to do next. She then
-asked him to bathe in another tank, and, when Arjuna did so, he became a
-female. A divine voice said, "Go back to the former tank. Touch its
-water and you will attain your object. There you will find your
-companions."
-
-The Gopis gathered round Arjuna out of curiosity. One of them Priyamuda
-asked: — "Who art thou? How hast thou come here?" Arjuna related his
-story.
-
-To satisfy the curiosity of Arjuna, Priyamuda said: — "We are all the dear
-companions of Krishna. Here are the girls of Vraja. Those are Srutis and
-these are Munis. We are Gopa girls. Some appeared here from the body of
-Krishna. They are constant, keeping constant company with Krishna and
-moving all over the universe. Of them, this is Purna-rasâ, this is Râsa
-Manthara (and so on). Then of the Srutis, this is Udgita, this is Sugita
-(and so on). Then of the Munis, this is Ugra-tapas, this is Priyavrata,
-this is Suvrata (and so on). Amongst us, the girls of Gopas, this is
-Chandravali, this is Chandrika, this is Chandra-rekha (and so on). You
-will have all these for your companions. Come bathe on the east side of
-the tank. I shall give thee the Mantra of Râdhikâ". Arjuna worshipped
-Râdhikâ with that Mantra and she appeared before him. She then gave him
-the Mantra of Krishna. With that Mantra, Arjuna succeeded in getting the
-favor of Krishna. He called Arjuna, in his female form, and gave him the
-privilege of his company. Arjuna was then made to bathe on the west side
-of the tank and he then regained his former form.
-
-THE BRAHMA VAIVARTA PURANA follows the ideal of Padma Purâna. This
-ideal was further worked out and further revelations were made by
-Chaitanya, who is believed to be an Avatâra of Krishna Himself. A full
-discussion of these revelations will be made when we come to study the
-teachings of Chaitanya. No reference is therefore made in this book to
-the works which appeared and some of which preceded, but were connected
-with, the great movement of Chaitanya.
-
-Such is the study of the Vrindâvana Lilâ as authoritatively
-given in standard religious books. It gives us a clue to the mysteries,
-which should be worked out by each esoteric student for himself.
-
-The mysteries are partly allegorical and partly historical. We shall
-first take the allegorical representation of the Lilâ, which has
-reference to the spiritual development of every individual Bhakta and is
-therefore of the most abiding interest to all Bhaktas.
-
-The Puri of Mathurâ is in every man, the kingdom of his own mind, where
-the personal self is to be *put down*. Mathurâ is from *math*, to put down.
-Lavana (Salt), the demon of materialism (for salt is an emblem of
-materialism; cf. the salt ocean) had hold of this Puri during the time
-of Râma, and Satrughna killed the demon.
-
-But materialism regained its lost ground and the forces of descent
-gathered strong round Kansa. Kansa was Kâla-nemi, or the mark left by
-the wheel of time. Each one of us has inherited through countless ages a
-strong element of materiality, which tries to reign over each one of us.
-This is the Kansa in each of us. There was also king Kansa of the period
-when Krishna appeared. He was brought down from his high platform and
-killed by Krishna, and the spiritual evolution of humanity became
-assured.
-
-There are eight Prâkritic principles in man, corresponding to eight
-senses. Earth or smell, water or taste, fire or form, air or touch, and
-akasa or sound, these enable Jivas to acquire experiences from the
-outside. Ahankâra, or the sense of egoism, enables man to assimilate
-those experiences to his personal self, and to make a small world of his
-own self.
-
-Then there is Mahat and the universal sense corresponding to it. This
-sense takes man out of the limits of personality; it raises him to the
-level of spiritual life. It develops unselfishness and universal life.
-
-Last of all is the eighth principle, Mula Prakritî. It gives the sense
-of perceiving Âtmâ.
-
-Krishna helps the evolution of the Jivas, by developing the outer senses
-first and then the inner senses.
-
-When the first six senses are developed, the evolution of personality is
-complete. The powers that develop the senses do not come any more into
-requisition. Those powers were the first six brothers of Krishna, who
-lay slumbering in the ocean, and who were *ardhagarbha*, as Harivansa
-says. Their action was confined to the material stage of evolution and
-hence they are said to have descended from Hiranyakasipu. Kansa had no
-difficulty in slaying these half-dead powers.
-
-The sixth brother was Balarâma. He was robed in blue, a highly spiritual
-color, the color of Mahat. He roused the spiritual sense of man. Jivas
-had wandered away from their spiritual home, where they were all united,
-and each had made a separate entity for himself. Balarâma tried to draw
-them together once more on the plane of Mahat. Hence he was called
-Sankarshana, and his instrument was called the plough. He was the first
-born, as men cannot come face to face with Íshvara, so long as they are
-not raised beyond the limits of personality. Jivas streamed forth from
-the plane of Mahat, presided over by Atlanta or Sankarshana, and they
-are drawn back to that plane so that they may set out on a higher
-spiritual journey.
-
-Then came Sri Krishna and Yogamâyâ, both together. Sri Krishna was the
-highest of the high, beyond the Mâyâ that enshrouded the Brahmânda. How
-could he come in contact with the Jivas of Brahmânda? The only plane of
-Prakriti with which He could come in direct contact was the plane of
-Mula Prakriti. But this plane was not developed in humanity as yet.
-Therefore He asked Yoga Mâyâ, the energy of Jivic evolution, who carries
-Jiva from the lowest to the highest point, to serve as a medium between
-Him and the Jivas. Sri Krishna performed His mission with the help of
-Yoga Mâyâ. The Gopis met Sri Krishna because they worshipped Yoga Mâyâ
-(Kâtyâyani). Sri Krishna had personal contact with the Gopis at Râsa,
-because He invoked Yoga Mâyâ at the time and got her help. Yoga Mâyâ is
-the highest sense of which Jiva is capable, and, when Durga appeared in
-her third incarnation as Yoga Mâyâ, she was not to undergo further
-incarnation in this Kalpa. To the developing sense of Yoga Mâyâ, Śiva
-gave truth after truth, till the highest truths were revealed to her,
-which form the Agamas and Nigamas. The revelations to the developing
-sense of humanity are the Tantras.
-
-Sri Krishna was born that men might come up to His ideal. He is the
-first Purusha. The limitations or Mâyâ of the solar system do not touch
-Him. He is the Lord of many solar systems. Even the materials that form
-the solar systems have their manifestation from him. Nothing that we
-know of, nothing that we are composed of, nothing that shapes our
-experiences, that causes our likes and dislikes, limits Krishna. Even
-Brahmâ, Vishnu and Śiva, the triune aspect of the second Purusha, are
-limited by the universe they lord over. Śiva is also called an aspect of
-the first Purusha in Saiva Purânas.
-
-Sri Krishna is Nirguna, for the Gunas we know of do not touch Him. He is
-the Absolute, for the relativities we know of, or which we may even
-think of, have no place in Him. The other Avatâras are said to be
-manifestations of the second Purusha. But Krishna is Bhagavân Himself,
-*i.e.*, the first Purusha (I-3-28).
-
-There are three aspects of the Absolute, the non-transformable, which
-uphold creation. It is through these aspects that all beings come into
-existence, prosper and dissolve. It is through them that they are
-brought nearer and nearer in every Kalpa to Íshvara. In the perfected
-being, the aspects of sat (existence), chit (consciousness) and ânanda
-(bliss) are not restricted by the conditions of the universe in which
-those aspects are developed. When beings are perfected in this way, they
-reach the plane of Krishna, which is beyond the seven-fold plane of the
-Cosmic Egg. The Gopis are such perfected beings.
-
-It will be out of place to enter here into a detailed study of these
-aspects. But it will be necessary to make a brief reference to them in
-order to understand the aspect of Bliss, as a factor in spiritual
-Evolution.
-
-It is the *existence* aspect of the underlying ray of the Absolute
-Brahmân, in every individual, that gives a continuity to individual
-existence, through thousands of births and experiences, and makes
-individual evolution a possibility.
-
-The *consciousness* aspect of the ray unfolds the blunt inanimate sense
-into the most highly developed mind. It gives the wisdom side of man's
-evolution, which leads to the path of Jnâna.
-
-Then there is the *Bliss* aspect of the ray, which directly leads to the
-union of the human soul with the Over-soul, of Jiva with Íshvara, and it
-leads to the path of Bhakti. It is the sensation of pleasure that makes
-the lowest organic form, the primordial cell, break through the inertia
-of Tamas. The cell moves about, either for cell union or for the
-assimilation of food, because these give rise to some sensation, call it
-pleasurable, if you like. It is not so easy to form an idea of the
-sensation of pleasure in the vegetable kingdom, but the excitement
-caused by the union of the sperm cell with the germ cell cannot but
-strike any one with the existence of some such feeling, though in a most
-rudimentary state.
-
-Animals feel pleasure in the company of their female partners. They also
-love their offspring. This gives rise to family connections, to the
-formation of society and of social virtues. With the evolution of body
-and mind, pleasures become many-sided, and the acquirement of pleasure
-becomes in itself the principal factor in the development of man. Man
-seeks his pleasure outside himself, and he does so either for himself or
-for others. A point is reached when self is lost sight of and self
-sacrifice for the good of others becomes a duty of pleasure. Self is
-estranged from the narrow groove of personality. It tries to identify
-itself with all beings. There is philanthropy, there is universal
-kindness. Still the differences cause unrest and disquiet. Self finds no
-rest, till it seeks its reality, till it makes a homeward journey, for
-even its own personality and the outside world lose all charm for it.
-Self finds bliss in self void of personality. This is spiritual bliss
-attained by those that are Antarmukh (facing inwards) and not by those
-that are Bahir Mukh (facing outwards). Self when seeking self becomes
-united to the universal self as its eternal friend and its real aspect.
-The universal self in Vrindâvana is Sri Krishna. And the bliss of the
-Gopis is self-attainment, attachment to self or Âtmâ and not to non-self
-or worldly connections.
-
-It is to those and those only that eagerly desire to make this inward
-journey that the Vrindâvana Lilâ is addressed.
-
-Nanda is bliss, he is spiritual Bliss the Bliss of an Antar Mukha. It is
-spiritual bliss that attracts spirit unto itself. It is the field for
-spiritual growth, the nursery ground of enthusiastic devotion and, what
-is more, of devotional love. The ideal spiritual bliss is that of
-Râdhikâ and of her fellow Gopis. It is the Bliss aspect of Ísvara that
-in the Jiva causes mutual attractions and makes devotion a law, a
-necessity. Reflected in the Universe at large, it is the one bond that
-holds together all beings, and becomes a force of attraction on all
-planes. Man is guided by bliss in his relations to the Universe. He is
-guided by bliss in his relation to himself.
-
-Nanda is located in the brain, in the thousand-petalled Lotus. The
-spiritual seat in the head is Gokul, the first abode of Nanda.
-
-Krishna appears in Gokul. The devotee sets out on his devotional
-journey.
-
-The first impediment of a devotee is Mala or impurity. In spite of
-himself, he cannot get the better of his passions, his personal desires.
-They have such a strong and apparent charm, there is such an hereditary
-and accumulated attraction toward them, that they easily overcome the
-devotional life in its infancy. The fascinating Pûtanâ overtook all by
-her charms and she found an easy access to Krishna himself. She made an
-attempt to nurse Krishna with poisoned milk. She was killed and Mala was
-removed (X. 6.)
-
-The next impediment is Vikshepa or distraction. The mind, with its load
-of outside experiences always responding to the outside world, is so
-much distracted, thinking now of this and now of that, that it has to be
-set right before further development is possible. The cart has to be
-upturned, with its load of food-articles, the cart of mind with its load
-of experiences. That is, the man has to become Antarmukha (X. 7.) When
-this is done, the Asura of distraction, Trinâvarta or whirlwind, is
-easily killed (X. 7.). The Gopis were now void of impurities and void of
-distraction; yet more they were being attracted to Krishna. Krishna
-favored them by stealing the fruits of their karma or action and
-accepting them for himself. Sri Krishna said to Arjuna, "You have a
-right to the Karma only and not to the fruits thereof." The senses of
-the Gopis used to roam about in the performance of daily duties, and
-they brought back perceptions and conceptions for the day which were
-worked out by the Gopis as duty required. The perceptions and
-conceptions are the milk-products and milk. They were churned into the
-karma of the Gopis. The senses are the cows; the outside objects of
-perception, their grass. The Brahmâ Vaivarta Purâna says: — "*Ghrita* is
-obtained from milk, *Yajna* is performed with *Ghrita*, and all happiness
-arises out of the performance of Yajna." *Prakriti Khanda*. The
-preparation of milk products is the karma or sacrifice of the Gopis.
-(X. 8.).
-
-The husk-stand is the discriminating faculty, that which separates the
-husk from the grains. When Krishna becomes fastened to the
-discriminating faculty (not that any one can fasten him with any effort
-of his own), when right and wrong are centered in him, self becomes
-abnegated and offered up entirely to Krishna, Egoism and ignorance, the
-pair of Arjuna trees disappear, though deeply rooted in man (X. 10). When
-fruits are offered to Krishna, there is a rich return (X. 11.).
-
-We have reached here a point in spiritual progress. Personality has been
-completely given up. Brain intellect is no longer congenial to spiritual
-progress. The head retards the spiritual man and does not carry him
-forward.
-
-The elders of Gokula sat in council and they decided to leave Gokula for
-Vrindâvana.
-
-Vrindâvana is the Heart. The eight-petalled lotus in the heart is the
-permanent abode of Sri Krishna. The twelve forests are twelve centres
-4 x 3, the primary number being 4, the number of the sacred Tetraktys.
-Within the heart, the only Purusha is Sri Krishna. AH others have to make
-themselves passive to Him. The Gopis, the ideal devotees of the Purusha
-in the heart, left the world outside, their husbands and homes, and
-placed themselves entirely at the service of the Divine Lord. Let us
-approach the sublime truths of the Vrindâvana Upâsanâ with the utmost
-solemnity possible. Those who cannot bring themselves to an exalted
-appreciation of the Vrindâvana Lilâ had better not read the Bhâgavata at
-all.
-
-The Gopas and Gopis went to Vrindâvana. Râma and Krishna headed the Gopa
-boys and looked after the calves.
-
-What are the cows and calves? Who are the Gopas, the Gopa boys and the
-Gopis?
-
-Once more let us understand the triad — Adhyâtma, Adhibhûta and Adhidaiva.
-Take sight.
-
-The sense of sight comes in contact with the outside world and carries
-the perception of sight to the possessor of the eye, under the guidance
-of a conscious energy. The senses and the mind are Cows or Adhyatma. The
-outside world is grass or Adhibhûta. The possessor of the senses and the
-mind is the Gopi, the Ego or Jiva. In Vrindâvana, the Gopis are the
-highest Jivas or Rishis, as explained in the Upanishads. The conscious
-energy is the Gopa or Adhideva.
-
-The Adhidevas are the Vedic Devas, as we have already seen.
-
-The Gopas are reincarnations of the Devas, as explained in the
-Upanishads.
-
-Ordinarily the Gopas lead the cows or the Adhi-Davas lead the senses,
-but in Vrindâvana the Devas surrender themselves entirely to Krishna.
-
-The calves or the Vatsas are the modifications of the senses and the
-mind — the Vrittis.
-
-In Vrindâvana, Râma and Krishna first tended the calves. The Gopa boys
-were the attendants of Râma and Krishna, the pârishads or companions who
-reached very near the state of divinity, the work-mates of Bhagavân in
-the preservation of the universe.
-
-The Lord tended the Vrittis of the mind. Therefore they could not go
-astray.
-
-Now let us follow up the working of the divine in the heart of
-the individual and the killing of all obstacles.
-
-*Vatsa, Baka, Agha and Brahmâ*. — The Vatsa Asura is a Vritti of the mind.
-If a non-spiritual Vritti becomes unconsciously mixed up with the
-spiritual Vrittis of the mind, it has instantly to be killed.
-
-Baka or the crane, stands for religious hypocrisy. Spiritual life
-rejects all hypocrisy, all traces of untruth, in any form.
-
-When these two Asuras are destroyed, a third Asura appears on the scene,
-the terrible Agha. Agha is sin, an evil deed. The sins of a man, his
-past evil deeds, stand up for a while and swallow up all that is divine
-in him. Even Gods can not overcome Agha. Those who know the struggles of
-a devotee know very well how hard it is when all that is evil in man the
-accumulated tendencies of innumerable births, rise up in rebellion as it
-were at a certain stage of his progress. Who else but Sri Krishna can
-save a devotee at such a crisis. The flesh itself has to be destroyed
-and the whole nature changed. The devotee undergoes a second birth as it
-were. His Vrittis are not the Vrittis of yore; even the energies that
-guide these vrittis undergo change.
-
-Every Brâhmana knows the Mantra that is recited for the suppression of
-Agha (Agha-marshana). It goes back to the pre-manifesting period, when
-days and nights did not exist.
-
-The serpent Agha swallowed up Krishna and his companions.
-
-Krishna came out victorious and he revivified his companions.
-
-The Vrittis underwent change by this process and also those that guided
-them. It was another creation altogether. The forms and varieties of
-Brahmâ's creation had no meaning now in them.
-
-What if the Vrittis were now removed from the Gopis or the Gopa boys
-kept out in a body? They all lost their distinctive features; their
-differences were gone. All was become divine — the Vrittis and the Gopa
-boys.
-
-So when Brahmâ concealed the calves and the Gopa boys, he only thought
-of his own creation. The Vrittis and the Gopa boys came out in divinity
-which was now their only reality. They were all parts of Sri Krishna
-himself. They were manifestly sparks or rays of Âtmâ itself. The senses
-and the mind were now irresistibly drawn towards their calves. The Gopas
-were more than ever attached to their boys. Balarâma noticed this and
-spoke to Krishna. The query of Râjâ Parikshit and the reply of Suka
-explain the whole position. This brings us to the end of the KUMARA LILÂ
-of Sri Krishna which prepares the way for the union of the human soul
-with the over-soul, of Jiva Âtmâ with Parama Âtmâ. We come next to the
-POUGANDA LILÂ when Krishna guided the mind itself and all were attached
-to Him.
-
-*Krishna, the tender of the cows.*
-
-Râma and Krishna were now in charge of the cows themselves, the senses
-and the mind.
-
-*The Kâliya serpent.*
-
-Yâma is the Death-god. The river Yamunâ is his sister. *Kâliya* is from
-kala or time. Kâliya with its one hundred hoods is the lifetime of one
-birth, represented by one hundred years. The serpent could not be killed
-but only sent away from Vrindâvana. The devotees got over the periodic
-death-transformation.
-
-*The conflagtation and Pralamba.*
-
-As the followers of Krishna were saved from death on the one hand, so
-they were saved from conflagration (annihilation of form) and loss of
-the Ego (Balarâma) on the other hand.
-
-In the kingdom of Divine Bliss, everything now was divine. The purified
-mind did not go astray. It remained entirely attached to Sri Krishna.
-Personality was now thoroughly conquered. The Jiva had acquired matter
-congenial to the plane of the first Purusha, and he no longer ran the
-risk of death or annihilation. The Gopis completed their homeward
-journey and they knew nothing except their Lord Krishna. They gave up
-all for the sake of the Lord. The Lord was all in all to them. They were
-bound to Him by the most sacred ties of devotional love. We shall now
-see how they became united to the Divine Lord.
-
-*The Gopis and the stealing of their clothes.*
-
-The rains followed the summer and there was a flow of spirituality all
-around. The autumn followed and it was calm, clear and transparent.
-
-When the water is pure, transparent and calm and the sun is over it can
-anything prevent the reflection of the sun's image on its bosom? The
-Gopis drew unto themselves the image of Sri Krishna. There was no
-muddiness in them as in ordinary mortals; they had not the calls of
-other desires.
-
-It is not till the ear ceases to hear the outside world, that it is open
-to the music in the heart, the flute of Sri Krishna.
-
-The Rupa of Krishna becomes manifest when all worldly Rupas lose their
-charm.
-
-The Gopis even smelt the divine fragrance of Sri Krishna; they felt his
-divine touch and they tasted the honey of Sri Krishna's lips.
-
-The charms of the world all dead and gone, there remains only one
-attraction, that of Sri Krishna, the only Purusha in Vrindâvana.
-
-The Gopis now had a right to approach Sri Krishna as their lover. They
-became full of Him (*tanmaya*), and they worshipped Kâtyâyani (Yoga Mâyâ)
-to gain their object. (X. 21.)
-
-It was then that Sri Krishna stripped them of their clothes (X. 22.) No
-false shame, no false considerations should now deter the Gopis. They
-should lay themselves bare before Sri Krishna. No hiding, no half
-speaking. "Virtuous girls, I know your resolve. It is to worship me. I
-also approve of it and so it must succeed." This was the long and short
-of the whole affair. The Gopis saw they were found out. So it was to be
-a matter of open love now.
-
-We shall pass over a few digressions before we come back to the Gopis
-and the consummation of their love (Râsa Lilâ).
-
-*Vedic Brahmâns and their wives.*
-
-Those that were under the influence of Vedic Yajnas could not easily
-accept the self-sacrificing path of compassion.
-
-The students of Bhagavat Gitâ know very well that Sri Krishna raised his
-voice against Vedic karma and preached the performance of unselfish
-karma in its stead. The Vedic Brâhmanas did not follow Him for a time.
-But the tide overtook their unselfish wives who were attached to the
-path of unselfishness and compassion blended as it was with the path of
-devotion to the Lord Sri Krishna. The wives brought their husbands round
-and the cause triumphed in all India.
-
-*The raising of Govardhana.*
-
-The raising of Govardhana is only a sequel to the suppression of Vedic
-Yajnas. Why are the gods, headed by Indra, worshipped? Because the
-Indriyas are their channels of communion with men and they can influence
-men through those channels. They are therefore called Adhi-Devas. They
-are also the hands of providence and through them we get all the things
-of the earth. But can they give us anything that is not allotted to us
-by our own karma? If a prolonged and unhindered connection with the
-manasic world or a prolonged Svarga experience is brought about by the
-performance of Vedic Yajnas it is on account of the superior force
-exerted over the Devas, acquired by such performances, and is therefore
-due to karma. The Devas cannot override karma.
-
-But still men have to depend upon the gods in their everyday lives. They
-are the hands of the karmic dispenser. True they deal out things
-according to the karma of men. But they give to men the desired objects
-of life and in return they expect yajna-offerings to them. This is the
-old law of the existence of beings. The universe itself is the outcome
-of sacrifice and inter-dependence, the law of giving and taking.
-
-If men broke that law, what wonder that the gods should resent it! But
-there was a higher law, governing men and Devas alike, the law of direct
-communion with the lord of all, the supreme karmic dispenser, the
-Adhi-yajna of Bhagavat Gitâ. If men placed themselves and their karma
-entirely at the service of the Lord, where was room left for the Devas?
-Against such men the gods themselves lost all power.
-
-The Hill Govardhana is the accumulated karma of the Gopis, which gives
-the pasture ground for their cows. Krishna bears the burden of His
-Bhaktas' karma, and He lifted up the karmic hill of his devoted band
-with very little effort of his own. And when Sri Krishna bears the karma
-of His Bhaktas, the Devas are powerless against them. It is karma that
-nourishes the senses and hence the hill is called Govardhana (nourisher
-of the cows).
-
-*The Installation.*
-
-When the gods were displaced from their position of leadership, whom
-were the cows, the senses, to follow? Surabhi, the heavenly mother of
-the cows, said: — "Now that thou hast taken the place of Indra, we shall
-call thee our Indra, or GOVINDA." Śridhara says, *go* means a cow, as well
-as Svarga. Govinda is one who acquires supremacy over the cows or over
-Svarga. So the word means Indra as well. But the peculiar significance
-of the word Govinda has been elaborated in the Brahmâ Sanhita and other
-works.
-
-The plane of the first Purusha, which is the common plane of innumerable
-solar systems, with their sevenfold planes, has two broad aspects
-Vaikuntha and Goloka. Vaikuntha has reference to the solar systems as a
-whole. The energies that guide the Brahmândas proceed from the plane of
-Vaikuntha. Both Śiva and Vishnu are aspects of the first Purusha, but
-not Brahmâ. Śiva Loka or Kailâsa is therefore included in Vaikuntha. The
-plane of Brahmâ is Satya Loka or Brahmâ Loka, the highest plane of the
-Brahmânda. The worshippers of Brahmâ or Hiranya-garbha reach the plane
-of Brahmâ Loka. There they remain till the Brahmânda becomes dissolved
-at the end of the life period of Brahmân.
-
-Vaikuntha is the plane of Vishnu as the first Purusha. He has four
-aspects on that plane — Vâsudeva, Sankarshana, Pradyumna and Aniruddha.
-His female aspect is Lakshmî. The worshippers of Vishnu, Preserver of
-the Universe, reach this plane.
-
-Goloka is a higher aspect of the plane of the first Purusha. There
-Krishna is not the Lord of the Universe. He is the Lord of only His
-followers — those that give up everything for His sake. The highest
-spiritual life is on this plane. In Vaikuntha there is the majesty of
-power. In Goloka there is the sweetness of love. Love is a surrender
-which we all owe to Krishna, who makes the greatest sacrifices for us.
-Íshvara gives us existence, consciousness and bliss, so that we may
-develop new centres that approach the state of Íshvara, and when we do
-that we have no right to keep them to ourselves, but should give them
-back to Him from whom we owe them. Nothing can please the Lord so much
-as when we pay this willing homage to Him. He has full control over the
-senses and experiences of the Gopas and Gopis that dwell in Goloka. He
-can turn them to any use He likes. They are His own property, and the
-dwellers of Goloka form His own household. He is one with them as they
-are with Him. The highest spiritual life is in Goloka. Every kalpa adds
-to the number of the devoted band.
-
-Vaikuntha is represented in the Dvârakâ Lilâ. The acts of Sri Krishna
-that constitute the Vrindâvana Lilâ are constant (nitya).
-
-They are reproduced in all Kalpas and on all the Dvipas or globes for
-the benefit of all Bhaktas. When there is the full manifestation of
-Krishna in any Kalpa, the Gopas and Gopis also appear with Him. But His
-relations with them are meant to serve as a guide only for the initiated
-Bhaktas, and not for the world at large. Sri Krishna as an Avatâra is
-different from Sri Krishna as the beloved and the lover. As an Avatâra,
-He forces allegiance, and expects it as of right. As a lover, He seeks
-His Bhaktas as they seek Him.
-
-The Lord of Goloka is Govinda. When Sri Krishna was installed as
-Govinda, he had a right to the company of the Gopis, and not before. The
-Gopis became the property of Govinda, as soon as Krishna asserted
-himself as such. The Installation precedes the Râsa Lilâ. The
-significance of this Installation will never be lost sight of by those
-who want to make a critical study of the Râsa Lilâ, or to apply the
-ordinary canons of morality to this most sacred, most sublime, and most
-soul-enchanting act of Sri Krishna the RÂSA LILÂ.
-
-
-
-THE RÂSA.
-`````````
-
-Who can presume to explain Râsa! What mortal mind can approach, even in
-conception, the divinity, the sublimity of the five chapters on Râsa!
-The Gopis were on the field of action. They had their husbands, their
-parents, their sons; they had their worldly duties to perform, some of
-them arduous enough to require constant attention. When the time came,
-however, for union with the Purusha of the Heart, when the signal music
-was heard, every Gopi threw aside all Karma, all actions, all
-attachments, all bonds and offered herself up completely to the Lord.
-Where is the glory of those that give up the world, that give up all
-duties in life, of those that force themselves out of all actions that
-they may be devoted to the Lord within and the Lord without? And when
-the Gopis approached the Lord, there was no trace of human passion in
-them, no love of human flesh, no idea of material gratification. They
-placed themselves entirely at the service of the Lord.
-
-But there were those that had the yearning to do so, to free themselves
-from all material obstacles in their way, to offer their individuality
-to the Lord, but the Prârabdha Karma was too much for them. Their past
-Karma had woven a net round them which they could not break through. It
-was the yearning which the Lord looked to and not the overcoming of
-obstacles in the way. And though they died with that yearning only, the
-death completed what they yearned for, for then the Union was complete.
-
-The Vrindâvana Lilâ is Nitya or constant. The Râsa Lilâ is for all time,
-for all Bhaktas.
-
-The night is the time for rest but it is the rest of bodily actions.
-For, towards the close of night, spiritual activity sets in. Men get
-spiritual teachings and spiritual advancement without knowing it. But it
-is only a few, who have a conscious union with the Lord who manifests
-Himself in the heart of man.
-
-Purusha is one. Jiva Prakritis or Para Prakritis are many. To Purusha
-Jiva must be always negative, however positive it may be towards the
-forms of Apara Prakriti. Purusha is always Male. And to Him, Jiva
-Prakriti is always a female. As the Vaishnavas say, there is only one
-male in all Vrindâvana and that male is the Lord Sri Krishna. In
-devotional practice, one should consider himself a female, the male
-being the Lord of the universe, as reflected in the heart of every man.
-
-The Gopis heard the music and went to Sri Krishna.
-
-If you are of the world, go back to the world. But no, the Gopis were
-not of the world. They had every right to the union. And Sri Krishna
-could not deny them His companionship. Nay, it was a great thing to the
-Lord Himself that Jivas should return to Him with all their spiritual
-experiences that the Universe might be served and protected. The
-concession was natural, the joy was mutual. But in the midst of the
-union itself, there is a danger, a most subtle danger, that of Egoism,
-"I am in union with the Lord." The first and the last weakness of
-humanity, this I-ness is a drawback even in the highest spiritual life
-of man. The Gopis thought of *themselves* and there was an instant break
-in the union. The Lord disappeared. The Lord incarnated for the good of
-the Universe and not of individuals, and if individuals were dear to Him
-it was for the sake of the Universe. He was no special property of the
-Gopis; What did the Gopis do? They imitated his actions on the Earth.
-They followed His footsteps wherever found. They approached the Lord as
-much as they could in idea.
-
-At last they broke out, "Thou art surely not the son of a Gopi. Thou art
-the inmost seer of all beings. Implored by Brahmâ thou hast appeared, O
-friend in the line of the Sâtvatas, for the protection of the Universe."
-
-The Gopis now realised that the Lord they wanted to be united to was the
-Lord of the Universe. His mission was the protection of the universe.
-Could they share with Him? It was then and then only that they could
-expect a continuity of the union. It was not for themselves only that
-they had any further right. Hut the Gopis now cared not for themselves.
-They cared for their Lord, whom they now knew and realised to be the
-Lord of the Universe.
-
-And lo! the Lord appeared again. This time there was union but not
-individual union. Hand in hand, the Gopis formed a circle with their
-Lord, not the individual Lord, but the universal Lord making Himself
-many. Every Gopi held the hands of the Lord and all the Gopis
-collectively formed one circle, and the circle went on dancing and
-dancing. The Devas looked with wonder and envied the lot of the Gopis.
-Let that wonder grow amongst us. Let us catch a glimpse of that divine
-dance, that Râsa Lilâ, that men may become gods on the Earth.
-
-*Sudarsana, Sankha Chuda, Arishta, Kesi and Vyoma.*
-
-The Vidyâdharas and Yakshas were controlled and other obstacles
-overcome. Even the barrier of Akâsa, which forms the final limit of
-actions and wisdom in the universe, was pushed through. Work was now
-over at Vrindâvana. The Bhaktas were now fitted to pass across the
-limits of Brahmânda to Goloka.
-
-*Akrûra.* With the advent of Akrûra, we move backwards from the heart to
-the head, from the world of Bhaktas to the world at large. When Kansa
-presided over Mathurâ, men were guided by Self in their thoughts and
-actions. Jarâsandha, who represented the Brahmânism of self-seeking
-Yajnas, was the friend of Kansa.
-
-Akrûra was the messenger selected by Kansa to fetch Râma and Krishna
-from Vrindâvana. *Krûra* is cruel. Akrûra is one who is not cruel. It was
-not cruelty on the part of Akrûra to take Râma and Krishna to Mathurâ.
-He was no doubt seemingly cruel to the Gopis. But he was kind to the
-generality of mankind, who did not live in Vrindâvana.
-
-The Gopis, followers of the path of Devotion, could not bear the sight
-of him and they called him a mock Rishi. But he was really a Bhakta
-himself, though he adhered to Vedic Karma. He performed the Vedic
-Sandhyâ and recited Vedic Mantras; he was rewarded with the vision of
-Râma and Krishna in meditation.
-
-This votary of Karma Kânda was a fitting messenger from Kansa. He united
-in himself the spirituality of Karma Kânda and the unselfishness of the
-path of Devotion.
-
-From Vrindâvana to Mathurâ we proceed from the inner man to the outer
-man, from the everlasting companions of Sri Krishna to His surroundings
-as an Avatâra.
-
-In the Vrindâvana Lilâ, we find Krishna in his relations to the holy
-beings and to the Devas who incarnated with Him for the good of the
-universe. Whenever a great Avatâra appears on the Earth, his companions
-also appear with him. His relations to his own companions serve as a
-living example to others. They afford a lesson to all Bhaktas for all
-time. This part of the Lilâ is based upon undying, eternal truths, upon
-the permanent relations between Jiva and Íshvara. The heart of man is the
-seat of this Lilâ, which can be reproduced at all times, in the heart of
-every real Bhakta. The Gopis are the same now as they were when Krishna
-sanctified the Earth. They are the preservers of the universe, according
-to Gopi Chandana Upanishad. And their ranks may be increased by devoted
-Bhaktas who give up all for the sake of the universe and its Lord.
-
-There is one point more in the relations of the Gopas and Gopis to
-Krishna. Love was the one bond which united them all to Him. They sought
-him in their inmost heart, they talked to him, they knew him as one of
-themselves. He was a son to them, a companion, a lover. Whatever pleased
-the Lord pleased them. Whatever was His work was their work too. They
-abnegated themselves. They merged themselves entirely in Krishna. There
-was no question of duty; no rules, no injunctions. The Vedas did not
-exist for the dwellers in Vrindâvana. The Smritis were not written for
-them. They did not tread the path of karma. Love-bound, they gave
-themselves entirely up to Krishna and they did not stop to ask the
-reason why, they did not stop to cast a glance at the world they left.
-
-But the union was hardly complete; the Gopis had scarcely embraced their
-friend, their lover, than he disappeared into the regions of the
-Universe. The message came that He was to be sought in the Universe.
-
-The Lord of the Universe was not the lover of the Gopis. He could not be
-the direct object of their love. But, when the Gopis knew that their own
-Krishna was the Lord of the Universe, they failed not to bear the same
-love to Him. But the majesty of the Universe was ill-adapted to the
-sweetness of their domestic love. They were out of harmony with the
-lordliness of their Lord at Dvârakâ. So when the Lord finally received
-them at Kurukshetra, the Gopis said that, home-bred as they were, they
-could not forget the lotus feet of Krishna in their heart. They were
-re-united to Krishna, as the all-pervading Purusha, the preserver of the
-Universe. The veil may be lifted a little further. We have already seen
-that life in the higher Lokas is purely unselfish, for, as the Bhâgavata
-says, the higher Lokas are transformations of Nishkâma Karma. We are to
-abnegate ourselves before we can go to Mahar Loka. This abnegation can
-be accomplished by merging ourselves in some one who stands across the
-Trilokî. Love alone breaks the barrier between man and man. If we can
-get an object of unselfish love, to whom we can give everything that we
-have, we may easily learn the lesson of self-surrender. By the bond of
-love, souls group together in Mahar Loka and they learn the first
-lessons of universal life. What better object of love can one have than
-one of the Avatâras himself? What union will be more glorious, more
-lasting, more spiritual? And Sri Krishna offered himself for such love
-to those that are devoted to him. And the most fortunate amongst
-humanity are those that complete the love-union with Sri Krishna. They
-form an inseparable group with Him, and the plane of their union is
-Goloka. The Vaishnavas place that Loka higher than Vaikuntha Itself. It
-is the plane proper of Sri Krishna, where he is always at home with his
-Bhaktas. There may be many centres round which souls might gather in the
-higher Lokas, many types of universal life, but there is none so high,
-so noble, so glorious, as the centre afforded by Lord Krishna. When
-Krishna incarnates, He cannot do so singly. The Gopis appear with Him.
-The Chaitanya Charitâmrita, which embodies the teachings of Chaitanya,
-says that the Lilâ of Krishna is reproduced throughout the fourteen
-Manvantaras over all parts of the Brahmânda, just as days and nights are
-produced over all parts of the earth. The Lilâ is constantly performed
-in Goloka, and it is reproduced over parts of Brahmânda, according to
-the will of Krishna. Vrindâvana is only a reflection of Goloka.
-
-When we go to Mathurâ, we find the Asura attendants of Kansa
-representing all the predominating vices of the time. Pride, arrogance,
-envy and malice, worldliness and anger, all that keep up the materiality
-in man were to be found among the best of his followers and advisers.
-
-They were all subdued and Kansa himself brought down from his high
-platform.
-
-When Krishna went to Mathurâ and Dvârakâ, we find him as an Avatâra,
-inaugurating a new era in the spiritual history of the Universe. We find
-him there in all His majesty, glory and divine lordship. Those who
-follow him there follow the path of Divine Lordship. Those who follow
-Him at Vrindâvana follow the path of Divine Love and sweetness.
-
-**END OF VRINDAVANA LILÂ,**
-
-
-MATHURÂ LILÂ
-------------
-
-THE HUNCH-BACKED GIRL AND THE PÂNDAVAS.
-```````````````````````````````````````
-
-**SKANDHA X. CHAP. 48-49.**
-
-To keep his word, Sri Krishna went with Uddhava to the house of the
-hunch-backed girl. He gratified her desire and gave her what she wanted.
-
-Sri Krishna then went with Râma and Uddhava to the house of Akrûra.
-Akrûra rose up to receive them. He adored Krishna saying: — "Thou hast
-come down for the good of the Universe. Whenever the olden path of the
-Vedas is crossed by the evil paths of unbelievers, Thou dost manifest
-Thyself, as now, by the attribute of Satva."
-
-Sri Krishna said: —
-
-"Good people like yourselves are to be always adored by men and the
-Devas. For while Devas are self-seeking, Sâdhus are not so. The places
-of sanctity on the earth and idols and stones, that symbolise divinity,
-have the power to purify the mind after long service, while the very
-sight of Sâdhus is purifying. Go thou to Hastinâpura and make enquiries
-about the Pândavas. They are still young and they have lost their
-father. We hear they are living with Dhritarâshra. But the blind king
-is too much in the hands of his evil sons and he may not be impartial to
-his nephews. So enquire whether his treatment of them is good or bad.
-When I know that, I shall do what is best for my friends."
-
-Akrûra went to Hastinâpura and learned from Vidura and Kunti the cruel
-treatment of the Pândavas by Dhritarâshra and his sons. Dhritarâshra
-confessed that he could not hold the balance evenly between his sons and
-nephews, as his attachment for his sons was too great.
-
-Akrûra returned to Mathurâ and informed Râma and Krishna of all that
-he had heard.
-
-
-
-JARA SANDHA, YAVANA AND DVARAKA.
-````````````````````````````````
-
-**SKANDHA X. CHAP. 50.**
-
-Kansa had two wives, Asti and Prâpti. They were the daughters of
-Jarâsandha, king of Magadha (modern Bihar). The latter king learned
-from his daughters the fate of Kansa and became highly enraged. He
-collected an army of thirteen Akshauhinis, (one Akshauhini consisting of
-21,870 chariots, as many elephants, 65,610 horses, and 109,350 foot),
-and he besieged Mathurâ on all sides.
-
-Krishna thought for a moment how he could best serve the object of his
-Avatarship. He found in the army before him a collection of the forces
-that oppressed the Earth. He thought of killing the army and of saving
-Jarâsandha, who might be instrumental in raising such large armies over
-and over again. "For it is to remove the weight now oppressing the
-Earth that I have incarnated. I have to protect the good people and kill
-those that are not so." Two chariots came from the Heavens fully
-equipped. Râma and Krishna drove out on those chariots. They killed the
-whole army in no time. Râma fell upon Jarâsandha and well-nigh killed
-him when Krishna caused him to be set free. Jarâsandha, in his disgrace,
-thought of practising asceticism but he was kept off by other kings who
-consoled him with words of worldly wisdom.
-
-The king of Magadha was however not to be easily put down. Seventeen
-times he led his army to an attack on Mathurâ, and each time he lost his
-entire army at the hands of Krishna and his followers. Before the fight
-commenced for the eighteenth time, Kala Yavana appeared on the field of
-battle with three crores of Mlechha troops. Krishna held counsel with
-Râma as to the course to be adopted. The brothers might engage with Kala
-Yavana in fight, but Jarâsandha would make havoc in the meantime amongst
-their clansmen at Mathurâ. So Krishna planned the erection of a fort,
-within the seas, where he might harbour his clansmen in safety. So the
-fort was built extending over twelve Yajanas. It was laid out with a
-town of exquisite skill and workmanship. High buildings with golden
-towers, extensive roads, large gardens enhanced the beauty of the town.
-The Devas offered their best things and the Lokapâlas surrendered their
-rulership to Sri Krishna. By Yogic powers Krishna removed his kinsmen
-to this town. He then left the town in charge of Balarâm and himself
-went out to fight with Yavana. (Yavana, is one altogether outside the
-pale of Hinduism, a Mlechha.)
-
-Kala Yavana recognized Krishna and pursued him. Krishna drew him inside
-a mountain cave. There Kala Yavana found a man lying asleep. He thought
-Krishna was pretending sleep. So he gave the man a kick. That man had
-been sleeping for a long time but he gradually opened his eyes and in
-anger looked at Yavana who became consumed by the fire proceeding from
-that look.
-
-
-
-MUCHUKUNDA
-``````````
-
-**SKANDHA X. CHAP. 51.**
-
-Râjâ Parikshit asked — "Who was the man and why was he sleeping in the
-cave?"
-
-Suka replied: —
-
-"He was a descendant of the line of Ikshvâku, son of the great King
-Mândhâtâ, by name Muchukunda. He had helped the Devas in their fight
-with the Asuras. When the fight was over, the Devas showed him the cave
-and asked him to rest there. The Devas blessed him with a long sleep."
-
-When Yavana was killed, Krishna appeared before Muchukunda.
-
-"Who mayest thou be with such overpowering glory?" the latter asked.
-
-Krishna replied: —
-
-"My births and deeds are infinite. Even I cannot count them. At the
-request of Brahmâ, I am at present born in the line of Yadu as the son
-of Vâsudeva, for the protection of religion and for the rooting out of
-the Asuras. I have killed Kansa who is no other than Kalanemi. I have
-killed Pralamba and others. This Yavana was also killed by me, by means
-of the fire from your eyes. I have now come here to favor thee, for I am
-bound by affection to my votaries. Ask what boon thou likest. Thou shalt
-have all thou desirest."
-
-Muchu Kunda remembered the foresaying of Garga that there was to be a
-Divine Incarnation in the 28th Kali Yuga and he therefore knew Krishna
-to be the divine Lord. He asked for no boon but devotion to Krishna.
-
-"Truly" said Krishna, "thy mind is pure and noble for it is not tempted
-by boons. Those that are wholly devoted to me do not yield to desires.
-Those that are not devoted may control their mind by Prânâyama and other
-practices but, as their desires are not overcome, they are found to go
-astray. Roam about the Earth, with mind fixed in me. Thy devotion shall
-never fail. Wash away the impurities of the present life with devoted
-concentration of the mind. In the next birth thou shalt be born as a
-Brâhmana and become the greatest friend of all beings, and thou shalt
-then fully attain me."
-
-Muchu Kunda came out of the mountain cave. He found that the animals and
-trees were all short-sized and hence inferred it was Kali Yuga. He made
-his way to the north and engaged himself in devotional practices in the
-Badari Asram of Nara and Nârâyana.
-
-(What has been the next birth of Muchu Kunda? How has he befriended the
-universe! Or is he still to come?)
-
-Krishna came back to Mathurâ. He killed the Mlechha troops. His men and
-cattle were carrying the booty to Dvârakâ. When on the way, Râma and
-Krishna were attacked by Jara Sandha with a large army. The brothers
-feigned a flight. Jara Sandha chased them with his army. They climbed up
-a mountain. Jara Sandha made a search, but could not find them. He then
-set fire to the mountain sides. The brothers jumped down eleven Yojanas
-and made their way to Dvârakâ.
-
-
-
-DVARAKA LILÂ.
--------------
-
-RUKMINI.
-````````
-
-**SKANDHA X. CHAP. 52-54.**
-
-We have been already told of Balarâma's marriage with Revati.
-
-Sri Krishna married Rukmini in the Râkshasa form. (The seizure of a
-maiden by force from her house, while she weeps and calls for
-assistance, after her kinsmen and friends have been slain in the battle
-or wounded and their houses broken open, is the marriage styled
-Râkshasa).
-
-King Bhishmaka of Vidarbha had five sons, Rukmin, Rukmaratha,
-Rukma-vahu, Rukma-kesa, and Rukma-malin. He had also one daughter
-Rukmini. (*Rukma* means bright, radiant, also gold).
-
-Krishna and Rukmini had heard of each other and they made a vow of
-marriage. Rukmin however betrothed his sister to Sisupâla, son of the
-king of Chedi. Rukmini secretly sent a Brâhmana messenger to Krishna and
-gave him a letter. The Brâhmana was received well by Krishna. He read
-out the following letter of Rukmini.
-
-"O Achyuta, thou most lovely of all, my mind has forced through all
-false shame and has become attached to thee, for I have heard of thy
-excellences, which reach the ear only to remove all sufferings and I
-have heard of thy beauty, which gives all that is desired to the seer
-thereof.
-
-"O Mukunda, O Nrisinha, where is the girl, however wellborn, modest and
-great she may be, that will not choose thee as her husband, unequalled
-as thou art in birth, grace, beauty, wisdom and riches, and the most
-pleasing to all mankind.
-
-"Therefore thou art chosen by me as my husband. I offer myself up to
-thee. Come thou here and make me thy wife. Thou dost deserve to have me
-soon. Let not Sisupâla touch me, like a jackal touching the share of a
-lion.
-
-"If I have done virtuous acts, if I have rightly served the great Lord
-Śiva, then come, O brother of Râma, and hold my hand and let not others
-do so. The day after to-morrow is fixed for my marriage. Come thou
-unnoticed. Defeat Sisupâla and others and carry me away by force in the
-Râkshasa form of marriage.
-
-"I shall tell you how it will not be necessary to kill my friends within
-the house. The day before the marriage there will be a large gathering
-outside the town to worship the goddess Durga, and I as bride shall be
-present there."
-
-The message was thus delivered. Sri Krishna vowed to marry Rukmini by
-force. He ordered Daruka (His charioteer) to bring the chariot. Then he
-took the Brâhmana with him and reached Kundina, the town of Bhishmaka,
-in one day.
-
-Kundina was gay with preparations for the marriage. Dama Ghosa, the
-father of Sisupâla, also made grand preparations. He came with a large
-retinue to Kundina. Bhishmaka went out to receive him, and led him to
-his quarters. Sâlva, Jarâsandha, Dantavakra, Viduratha, Paundraka, and
-many other kings, friendly to Dama Ghosha joined him with large armies.
-They anticipated a fight with Krishna and Râma and they came well
-prepared for the occasion. Râma heard that Krishna went all alone and
-he heard of the preparations made by his enemies. So he lost no time
-in gathering a large army and marching for Kundina.
-
-Bhishmaka heard of the approach of Krishna and Râma. He gladly received
-them and gave them quarters. Rukmini, guarded by the army, went to the
-temple of Durga with her companions. She worshipped the Goddess and
-prayed for Krishna as her husband. She then left the temple and was
-about to get into the chariot when Sri Krishna carried her off by force
-in his own chariot.
-
-Jara Sandha and other kings were defeated by the Yadu chiefs and they
-took to flight They consoled Sisupâla and then each went to his own
-place.
-
-Rukmin vowed that he would not return to Kundina till he had killed
-Krishna and rescued his sister. He attacked Krishna but was defeated by
-him. Krishna was about to kill him when Rukmini interceded on his
-behalf. Krishna then partially shaved his head and chin and left him.
-Being thus disgraced, Rukmin made a town called Bhojukata and lived
-there.
-
-Krishna brought Rukmini to Dvârakâ and married her in due form.
-
-
-
-PRADYUMNA.
-``````````
-
-**SKANDHA X. CHAP. 55.**
-
-The god Kâma is an aspect of Vâsudeva. He had been burnt before by the
-fire of Rudra's anger. To get back his body, he was born as the son of
-Krishna by Rukmini and became known as Pradyumna. He was not unlike his
-father in any respect The Asura Samvara, who was Kâma (or passions)
-incarnate, (Kâma rûpin), knew the child to be his enemy and stole him
-away and threw him into the sea. A big fish swallowed him up. That fish
-with others was caught in a large net by the fishermen. They presented
-the fish to Samvara. The servant cut open the fish and the child came
-out. They made him over to Mayavati. She was frightened but Naroda told
-her all about the child. This Mayavati, named Rati, had been the wife of
-Kâma. She had been waiting for the reappearance of her husband in a
-body. She was employed by Samvara as a cook. Knowing the child to be
-Kâma Deva, she nursed him and became attached to him. In time, Kâmadeva
-grew tip and Mâyâvati approached him with expressions of love. "What is
-this mother?" asked Kâmadeva, "Why this change in your feelings towards
-me!"
-
-"Thou art Kâmadeva, O Lord, son of Krishna. Thou hadst been stolen away
-by Samvara. I am thy wife Rati. The Asura had thrown thee into the sea,
-when a fish devoured thee. I have got thee back from the stomach of that
-fish. Samvara is an adept in many forms of Mâyâ. Kill him by means of
-Delusion and other powers of Mâyâ known to thee."
-
-Rati gave to Pradyumna the Vidya known as Mahamaya, the destroyer of all
-other Mâyâs.
-
-Pradyumna fought with Samvara and killed him with the help of Mahamaya.
-Rati then carried her husband to Dvârakâ. There the women mistook him
-for Krishna and bashfully moved aside. Even Rukmini could only half
-decide that he was her son. Krishna appeared with Vâsudeva, Devaki and
-Râma. Nârada related the story of Pradyumna's adventures. There was
-great joy at Dvârakâ and people welcomed Pradyumna and his wife.
-Pradyumna was an image of Krishna. What wonder if even his mother became
-attached to him!
-
-THE JEWEL SYAMANTAKA, JAMBAVATI AND SATYABHAMA.
-```````````````````````````````````````````````
-
-**SKANDHA X. CHAP. 56.**
-
-King Satrajit was a votary of the Sun-God. He got a present from his
-deity of the Syamantaka jewel. He came to Dvârakâ with the jewel on his
-neck. He shone with such a lustre that people took him for the sun. The
-jewel used to bring forth 16,000 palas of gold every day. Sri Krishna
-asked the jewel for the king of the Yadus, but Satrajit would not part
-with it. One day his brother Prasenajit rode on a hunting excursion into
-the forests, with the jewel on his neck. A lion killed him and his horse
-and carried away the jewel. The Bear-chief, Jâmbavat, killed the lion
-and took away the jewel into his cave and made it the plaything of his
-son. When Prasena did not return, Satrajit thought that he had been
-killed by Krishna. People also suspected him. To get rid of this unjust
-reproach, Sri Krishna went on a search himself with his men. He traced
-out the remains of Prasena, the horse and the lion. He then entered the
-cave of the Bear-chief, leaving his men outside. The infant son of
-Jâmbavat was playing with the jewel. Krishna appeared before the boy.
-The nurse screamed aloud. Jâmbavat rushed out in anger and attacked
-Krishna. The fight went on for twenty eight days and at last Jâmbavat
-was overpowered. He then knew Sri Krishna as Vishnu, the primal Purusha
-and prayed to Him. Sri Krishna said the object of his entering the cave
-was to recover the jewel, as he wanted to remove the suspicion that he
-himself had taken it. Jâmbavat gladly offered his daughter Jâmbavati
-with the jewel to Sri Krishna. He then returned to Dvârakâ with his
-bride and the jewel. He called an assembly and, in the presence of all,
-made over the jewel to Satrajit. He also told him how he got it back.
-Satrajit felt deeply mortified. He came back to his kingdom and thought
-how he could best appease Sri Krishna whom he had offended by groundless
-suspicion. At last he offered his daughter Satyabhama to Krishna and
-also the jewel. Krishna said: — "We do not want the jewel, O King. Thou
-art the votary of the Sun-God. Let it remain with thee. We shall partake
-of its blessings."
-
-SYAMANTAKA, AKRURA, KRITAVARMAN AND SATA DHANU:
-```````````````````````````````````````````````
-
-**SKANDHA X. CHAP. 57.**
-
-Hearing that the Pândavas had been killed in the Lac-house, Râma and
-Krishna went to Hastinâpura to offer their condolences. Taking advantage
-of their absence, Akrûra and Kritavarman said to Satadhanu, — "Satrajit
-promised the Syamantaka jewel also when he made over his daughter to Sri
-Krishna. Why shall not the jewel be taken from him? Why shall he not
-share the fate of his brother?" The wicked Satadhanu under this evil
-inspiration killed Satrajit while he was asleep and carried away the
-jewel. Satyabhama went to Hastinâpura and informed Krishna of the
-killing of her father. The brothers came back to Dvârakâ. Krishna made
-preparations for killing Satadhanu and for recovering the jewel from
-him. Satadhanu sought the help of Kritavarman. But he knew too well the
-might of Sri Krishna and he declined to give any help. Satadhanu then
-turned to Akrûra. Akrûra knew Krishna as Âtmân and he would not do
-anything. Satadhanu however left the jewel with Akrûra and fled away on
-horse-back. Râma and Krishna followed him to Mithila. He left the horse
-and ran away on foot. Sri Krishna overtook him soon and cut off his head
-with the Chakra.
-
-He then searched for the jewel, but could not find it. Turning to his
-brother, he said, "For nothing have I killed Satadhanu. The jewel is
-not with him." Râma replied — "Satadhanu must have left the jewel with
-some one. Try to find him out. Go back to Dvârakâ. I shall in the
-meantime pass some time with my friend, the king of Mithila." Râma
-remained at Mithila for a few years. Duryodhana also came there. He
-learned the art of fighting with the mall from Râma.
-
-Sri Krishna went back to Dvârakâ and told Satyabhama how he had killed
-Satadhanu but could not find the jewel. Kritavarman and Akrûra heard all
-that took place and they fled for their lives from Dvârakâ. In the
-absence of Akrûra the people of Dvârakâ suffered from bodily and mental
-pain as well as disturbances from the Devas and the elements. Those who
-forgot the glory of Sri Krishna attributed all this to the absence of
-Akrûra. But it was not possible that such things should happen where Sri
-Krishna resided (without His wish.)
-
-"Once upon a time there were no rains at Kâsî (Benares). The king of
-Kâsî offered his daughter Gandivi to Svafalka and it rained at Kâsî.
-Akrûra is the son of that Svafalka. He has got the powers of his father.
-It rains wherever Akrûra lives and the land becomes free from epidemics
-and calamities."
-
-The old people talked thus. Sri Krishna knew it was not so. He sent for
-Akrûra, shewed him every respect, and smilingly addressed him thus: — "O
-lord of giving (*Danapati*), Satadhanu must have left the Syamantaka jewel
-with thee. I knew this from before. Satrajit left no son. His daughter's
-son is therefore his true heir. But it is not so easy to keep the jewel.
-Thou dost keep the observances well. So let it be with thee. But in the
-matter of this jewel, even my brother does not believe me. Therefore
-shew it once and give peace to your friends." Akrûra made over the jewel
-to Sri Krishna. He shewed it to his clansmen, in order to remove the
-stain of suspicion against him. He then returned it to Akrûra.
-
-
-THE OTHER WIVES OF SRI KRISHNA.
-```````````````````````````````
-
-**SKANDHA X. CHAP. 58-59.**
-
-Sri Krishna went to see the Pandava brothers at Hastinâpura. They gave
-him a most devoted reception. One day Krishna and Arjuna went on a
-hunting excursion to the side of the Yamunâ.
-
-They saw there a most beautiful girl. Arjuna asked who she was. The girl
-replied: — "I am daughter of the Sun-god. Desiring Vishnu to be my
-husband, I have performed great Tapas. I shall have no other husband.
-Let that friend of the friendless be pleased with me. My name is
-KALINDI. I am to reside in the waters of the Yamunâ in the abode built
-by my father till I see Achyuta." Krishna placed the girl on his chariot
-and took her to Yudisthira.
-
-It was at this time that Krishna got a town built by Visvakarmân at the
-request of Arjuna and the Khândava forest was burnt by the Fire-god.
-
-The rains over, Krishna went to Dvârakâ and there duly married Kalindi.
-
-Vinda and Anuvinda, two princes of Avanti, were followers of Duryodhana.
-Their sister MITRA VINDA wanted to marry Krishna but they dissuaded her.
-So Krishna carried away the girl by force and married her. She was the
-daughter of his father's sister Rajadhi-devi.
-
-In Ko-sala, there was a virtuous prince named Nagnajit. He had a
-daughter named SATYA, also called NAGNAJITI after her father. No one
-could marry her who had not overcome seven fierce bulls. Krishna went to
-Kosala with a large retinue and he was received well by the prince. The
-girl prayed to the Fire-god to have Krishna as her bridegroom. Krishna
-overcame the bulls and married the girl.
-
-Krishna then married BHADRA of Kekaya, the daughter of her aunt
-(father's sister) Sruta-kirtî. He also carried away by force LAKSHANA,
-the daughter of the king of Madra.
-
-Naraka, son of the Earth, deprived Aditi, mother of Indra, of her
-ear-rings, Varuna of his umbrella and Indra of his seat at Mani Parvat
-(Mountain of jewels). Indra complained to Krishna. He went with his wife
-Satyabhâma to Prâkjyotisha, the town of Naraka. That town was well
-fortified and it was protected by the Daitya Mura and his meshes.
-Krishna forced his passage through all obstacles and had a fight with
-Mura whom he slew with his Chakra. The seven sons of Mura, — Tâmra,
-Antariksha, Sravana, Vibhâvasu, Vatu, Nabhasvat and Varuna, — under the
-lead of one Pithha also attacked Krishna, but they were all killed.
-Naraka then himself fought with Krishna and was killed by him. The
-Goddess Earth then approached Krishna and, after adoring him, said: —
-"This Bhagadatta, son of Naraka, takes Thy shelter. Please pass Thy hand
-round his head."
-
-Krishna gave assurances of safety and he then entered the house of
-Naraka. Naraka had carried away 16 THOUSAND GIRLS by force. Krishna sent
-away these girls and much treasure to Dvârakâ. He then went with
-Satyabhâma to the place of Indra and there restored the ear-rings to
-Aditi. At the request of his wife, Krishna uprooted the Pârijâta tree
-and placed it on the back of Garuda. The Devas resisted, but Krishna
-defeated them all. The Pârijâta tree was planted in the quarters of
-Satyabhâma and it spread its fragrance all round. Krishna married the 16
-thousand girls at one and the same moment by assuming as many forms.
-
-
-
-KRISHNA AND RUKMINI.
-````````````````````
-
-**SKANDHA X. CHAP. 60.**
-
-Krishna and Rukmini were once sitting together, when, turning to his
-wife with a smile, Krishna spoke the following words:
-
-"Princess, thou wert coveted by great and powerful kings. Thy brother
-and thy own father offered thee to Sisupâla and others. How is it then
-thou didst accept me who am not thy equal? See how we have taken shelter
-in the sea being afraid of the kings. Having powerful enemies, we can
-hardly be said to occupy our kingly seats. O thou with beautiful
-eyebrows, woe to those women who follow such men as have unknown and
-uncommon ways of their own. Poor as we are, wealthy people hardly seek
-us. It is meet that they should marry or make friendship with each
-other, who are equals in wealth, birth, power and beauty. It is through
-ignorance and shortsightedness that thou hast married one who is void of
-all Gunas (good qualities) and who is praised only by Bhikshus
-(beggars). Therefore do thou seek some Kshatriya king who will be a
-match for thee. Sisupâla, Sâlva, Jarâsandha, Danta Vakra and other kings
-and even thy own brother Rukmin, blindfolded by pride, shewed hostility
-to me. For the repression of their pride, I the punisher of evil men
-brought thee here. But we are indifferent to the body and the house,
-void of all desires, fixed in self, all full, the light within, without
-actions."
-
-(Without anticipating our general study of the Dvârakâ Lilâ, it is
-sufficient to mention here that Rukmini is the spiritual energy of Mula
-Prakriti, or rather the light of Purusha, as reflected on Prakriti. The
-gist of what Krishna says is that there is an essential difference
-between Prakriti and Purusha. Purusha is void of Gunas, while the Gunas
-form the essence of Prakriti. Coming from Prakriti, Rukmini must follow
-the Prâkritic elements. And if Krishna wrested her away from the hands
-of the material energies of Prakriti and even from her own Prâkritic
-basis (her brothers and father), it was because the material energies
-had asserted themselves too much. This was done in the Seventh
-Manvantara, when the spiritual ascent was a Kâlpic necessity. Was
-Rukmini to remain wedded to Krishna for the remaining period of the
-Kalpa, or was she to go back to her brothers and their friends?).
-
-Rukmini replied: —
-
-"O Lotus eyed! even so it is as thou sayest. I am quite unlike thee, the
-Great Bhagavat. Lord of even Brahmâ, Vishnu and Śiva, Thou art plunged
-in Thy own greatness. What am I to Thee, the Gunas forming my essence?
-It is only ignorant people who worship me. (For fear of kings, thou hast
-taken refuge in the sea.) But the kings are the Gunas, (Sound, Touch,
-Form, Taste, and Smell which compose the object world.) For fear of
-them, as it were, thou hast taken refuge in the inner ocean of the
-heart, and there thou dost manifest Thyself, as pure Chaitanya. The
-object-seeking Indriyas are no doubt thy constant enemies. But when thou
-speakest of giving up kingly seats, why even thy votaries give them up,
-as darkness itself. The ways of even Munis who worship Thy Lotus feet
-are unknown; what of thine own? When their ways are uncommon, what of
-thine? Thou art poor indeed, for there is nothing besides thee, (and so
-nothing can form Thy wealth.) But thou dost receive the offerings of
-others and they seek thee. It is not through ignorance, but knowing that
-thou art the Âtmâ of the Universe, that I have sought Thee. The flow of
-Time that arises from Thy eyebrow swallows up the desires of even Brahmâ
-and others. I did not even seek them for Thy sake. What speakest thou of
-others? As the lion carries away his share by force from other animals,
-so thou didst carry me away from amongst the kings. How can I believe
-that thou didst take shelter in the Sea from fear of such kings? Anga,
-Prithu, Bharata, Yayâti, Gaya and other jewels of kings gave up their
-kingdoms and sought thee in the forests. Did woe befall them that thou
-talkest of woe to me? The Gunas have their resting place in thee. Thou
-art the home of Lakshmî. Moksha is at Thy feet. What foolish woman shall
-follow others, neglecting Thee? I have accepted thee, the Lord and soul
-of the Universe, the giver of all blessings here and hereafter. Let thy
-Moksha-giving feet be my shelter. Let those women have the kings for
-their husbands, those asses, bullocks, dogs, cats, and servants who have
-not heard of Thee.
-
-"(What is man without Âtmâ?) Those that have not smelt the honey of Thy
-Lotus feet seek the dead body, though it seems to be alive, consisting
-of flesh, blood, bone, worms, excrement, phlegm, bile and gas, covered
-over with skin, hair and nails." (Mula Prakriti in the Universe, or Budhi
-in man, is wedded to Âtmâ, represented by Sri Krishna. The kings
-represent here the followers of material elements in the Universe or in
-man.)
-
-
-
-THE SONS OF KRISHNA.
-````````````````````
-
-**SKANDHA X. CHAP. 61.**
-
-The wives of Krishna had each ten sons.
-
-*The Sons of Rukmini were.* — Pradyumna, Charudeshna, Sudeshna, Chârudeha,
-Suchâru, Châru Gupta, Bhadra Châru, Châru-Chandra, Vichâru and Châru.
-
-*The ten sons of Satyabhâma were.* — Bhânu, Subhânu, Svarbhânu, Prabhânu,
-Bhânumat, Chandra-bhânu, Vrihat-bhânu, Ati-bhânu, Sribhânu and
-Prati-bhânu.
-
-*Jâmbavati had ten sons.* — Sâmva, Sumitra, Purujit, Satajit, Sahasrajit,
-Vijaya, Chitraketu, Vasumat, Dravida, and Kratu.
-
-*Nâgnajiti had ten sons.* — Vira, Chandra, Asva-sen, Chitragu, Vegavat,
-Vrisha, Âma, Sanku, Vasu and Kunti.
-
-*Kalindî had ten sons.* — Sruta, Kavi, Vrisha, Vira, Suvâhu, Bhadra, Sânti,
-Darsa, Pûrna Mâsa and Somaka.
-
-*Mâdrî had ten sons.* — Praghosha, Gâtravat, Sinha, Bala, Prabala, Urdhaga,
-Mahâsakti, Saha, Ojas and Aparâjita.
-
-*Mitravindâ had ten Sons.* — Vrika, Harsha, Anila, Gridhra, Vardhana,
-Annâda, Mahânsa, Pâvana, Vahni and Kshudhi.
-
-*Bhadra had ten Sons.* — Sangrâmajit, Brihat Sena, Sûra, Praharana, Arijit,
-Jaya, Subhadrâ, Râma, Âyu and Satya.
-
-Rohini (illustrative of the 16 thousand wives) had Tâmra-taptâ and other
-sons.
-
-Pradyumna had, by Rukmavati, daughter of Rukmin, one son Aniruddha.
-
-There were millions and millions in the line of Krishna. Though Rukmin
-vowed enmity to Krishna, he gave his daughter to Krishna's son, out of
-regard for his own sister Rukmini.
-
-Balavat son of Kritavarman married Chârumati, daughter of Rukmini.
-
-Rukmin also gave his grand-daughter Rochanâ in marriage to Aniruddha.
-
-
-
-THE DEATH OF RUKMIN.
-````````````````````
-
-**SKANDHA X. CHAP. 61.**
-
-Râma, Krishna, Pradyumna, Rukmini and others went to Bhoja Kata, the
-seat of Rukmin, on the occasion of Aniruddha's marriage. When the
-marriage was over, the assembled kings advised Rukmin to challenge Râma
-to a game of dice. At first, the wager was laid by Râma at one hundred,
-one thousand and ten thousand gold coins respectively. Rukmin won all
-the games. The king of Kalinga derided Râma by shewing his teeth. Râma
-did not like this.
-
-Rukmin then laid the wager at one lakh of gold coins. Balarâma won the
-game. But Rukmin falsely declared that he had won it.
-
-Râma then laid the wager at ten krores. Râma won the game this time
-also. But Rukmin falsely said: — "I have got it let the bystanders decide
-this." At this time, a voice from the heavens said that Balarâma had got
-the victory by fair means and Rukmin was telling a lie, But Rukmin under
-evil advice did not mind this. He and the kings derided Balarâma.
-"Keeper of cows, what know you of games? They are the province of kings."
-Balarâma could bear it no longer. He took his club and killed Rukmin. He
-then broke the teeth of the king of Kalinga. The other kings fled in
-fear.
-
-
-BANA.
-`````
-
-**SKANDHA X. CHAP. 62-63.**
-
-Bâna, the eldest son of Bali, had one thousand hands. He was a votary of
-Śiva. Śiva asked him to name a boon and he prayed to Śiva to be the
-keeper of his place. Once he told Śiva that there was too much
-fighting-inclination in his hands, but he found no match for him except
-Śiva himself. Even the elephants of space ran away in fear. Śiva said
-angrily: — "Fool that thou art, thou shalt fight with one equal to
-myself. Thy eminence shall then be lowered." The Asura chief gladly
-waited for the day.
-
-Bâna had a daughter named Usha. She met Aniruddha in a dream. On getting
-up, she exclaimed, "Friend where art thou?" Her attendant Chitra-lekhâ,
-daughter of the minister, named Kumbhanda, enquired whom she was looking
-for. Usha described the figure she had seen in her dream. Chitra-lekhâ
-pointed out to her Devas, Gandhavas, and men, one after another. At
-last, when she pointed to the figure of Aniruddha, the princess
-indicated him as her lover. Chitra-lekhâ by her Yogic powers went to
-Dvârakâ and carried away Aniruddha, while he was asleep. The prince and
-the princess passed their days together in the privacy of Usha's
-apartment. The men of the guard found some significant change in Usha.
-They informed the King. Bâna came in unexpectedly and he found his
-daughter playing with a young man. The armed attendants of Bâna attacked
-Aniruddha but he killed many of them with his club and they ran away.
-Bâna then tied the prince with serpents' twinings.
-
-Nârada gave the news to Krishna. Râma and Krishna, with their followers
-and a large army, attacked Sonita-pura, the seat of Bâna. Śiva engaged
-in fight with Krishna, Kartikeya with Pradyumna, Bâna with Satyaki,
-Kumbhanda and Kûpakarna with Balarâma and Bâna's son with Sâmba. Krishna
-worsted Śiva and Pradyumna worsted Kartikeya. Bâna then attacked
-Krishna. After some fighting the king fled away. The Fever with three
-heads and three feet, known as Śiva's Fever, joined the battle. To meet
-him, Krishna created the Fever known as Vishnu's Fever. The two fevers
-fought with each other. Worsted in the fight, the Fever of Śiva sought
-the protection of Krishna. He got assurances that he need have no fear
-from Vishnu's Fever.
-
-Bâna returned to the charge. Krishna began to cut off his hands with the
-Chakra. Śiva appeared at the time and asked Krishna to forgive Bâna as
-he had forgiven his father Bali. Krishna replied: — "O Lord, I cannot
-kill this son of Bali. I promised Prahlâda that I would not kill any of
-his line. His many hands caused grief to Earth and I have lopped them
-off. Now four hands shall only remain. With these hands, Bâna shall be
-thy constant companion, without fear of death or infirmity." Bâna bowed
-down his head. He made over his daughter and Aniruddha to Krishna.
-
-
-
-NRIGA.
-``````
-
-**SKANDHA X. CHAP, 64.**
-
-The sons of Krishna went out to play in the forest. They saw a huge
-lizard in a certain well. They tried all means, but could not raise it
-up. They then informed Krishna. He raised it, without effort, with his
-left hand. The lizard assumed the form of a Deva. On inquiry from
-Krishna, he thus related his own story. "I am king Nriga of the line of
-Ikshvâku. My charities knew no bounds and they have become proverbial.
-One cow belonging to a Brâhmana got mixed with my herd and, without
-knowing that, I gave her to another Brâhmana. While he was taking away
-the cow, the owner found her out. The two Brâhmanas quarrelled and they
-came to me. They said: — 'You are a giver as well as taker.' I became
-surprised and, when the facts were known, I offered one lakh of cows for
-the return of the mistaken cow. One of them however said, 'I am not
-going to take a gift from the king.' The other said: — 'I do not wish for
-other cows even if they be ten lakhs.' They both went away. At this time
-the messengers of Yâma came and carried me away. Yâma said: — 'I see no
-end of your merits and the places acquired by them. Do you prefer to
-suffer for your demerit first or to enjoy those heavenly things?' I took
-the first choice and down I fell as a lizard into this well. Look how I
-have suffered for taking a Brâhmana's property." The king then thanked
-Krishna for his favor and ascended to the heavens. Krishna gave a
-discourse to those around him as to how iniquitous it was to take a
-Brâhmana's property, consciously or unconsciously.
-
-
-
-BALARÂMA AND THE DRAWING OF THE YAMUNÂ.
-```````````````````````````````````````
-
-**SKANDHA X. CHAP. 65.**
-
-Balarâma went to Vrindâvana to see his old friends. The Gopas and Gopis
-gave him a warm reception and they complained of the hard-heartedness of
-Krishna. Balarâma remained there for the two months, Chaitra and
-Vaisakha. The Gopa girls used to join him at night. One day he went in
-their company to the side of the Yamunâ. Fermented juice (Vâruni) fell
-from the trees, as directed by Varuna. Balarâma drank the juice with the
-Gopa girls and became intoxicated. He called the Yamunâ to his side for
-a pleasure bath, but she did not came. Balarâma thought he was drunk and
-therefore the river goddess did not heed his words. He drew her by the
-ploughshare and said in anger: — "Wicked thou, I called thee. But thou
-didst not hear. I shall tear thee asunder with this plough." Terrified,
-the river goddess adored Balarâma and sought his pardon. Balarâma
-forgave her. He then had a pleasure bath with the girls. Lakshmî made
-presents to him of blue clothes, rich ornaments and an auspicious
-garland.
-
-
-
-POUNDRAKA AND THE KING OF KÂSÎ (BENARES).
-`````````````````````````````````````````
-
-**SKANDHA X. CHAP. 66.**
-
-Poundraka, king of Karusha, thought, "I am Vâsudeva." With this
-conviction, he sent a messenger to Krishna, calling him a pretender. He
-was staying with his friend, the king of Kâsî. Krishna attacked Kâsî,
-and both the princes came out with a large army. Krishna found Poundraka
-had the conch, the disc, the club, the bow made of horn and the
-Srivatsa, all his own symbols. He was adorned with the Kaustubha and a
-garland of wild flowers. He had yellow clothes and rich crest jewels. He
-had Makara-shaped ear-rings. He was seated on a false Garuda. Seeing
-Poundraka represent him in this way, as it were on the stage, Krishna
-began to laugh. He killed both the princes in the fight. Poundraka had
-constantly meditated on Hari and he assumed his form and became all Hari
-himself.
-
-Sudakshina, son of the Kâsî prince, vowed vengeance and worshipped Śiva.
-Śiva, being pleased with his worship, asked him to name a boon. He asked
-how he could kill the slayer of his father. Śiva told him to invoke
-Dakshinâ Agni, with a Mantra of black magic (*Abhichâra*). Sudakshina did
-so with the aid of Brâhmanas. The fire went towards Dvârakâ to consume
-Krishna. Krishna sent his Sudarsana disc which overpowered the fire. The
-fire fell back on Kâsî and consumed Sudakshina and the Brâhmanas.
-Sudarsana still followed the fire. The divine weapon burnt the whole of
-Kâsî and went back to Krishna.
-
-
-
-DVI-VID (MONKEY).
-`````````````````
-
-**SKANDHA X. CHAP. 67.**
-
-The Monkey-general Dvi-vid was a minister of Sugriva and brother of
-Mainda. He was a friend of Naraka, son of Earth. To take revenge for his
-friend's death, he began to do all sorts of mischief, especially in the
-regions of Dvârakâ.
-
-Balarâma was in the midst of some girls on the Raivataka hill. The
-monkey made all sorts of gestures to annoy and insult the girls and he
-provoked Balarâma again and again who then killed Dvi-vid, to the great
-joy of all.
-
-
-
-SÂMBA, LAKSHANÂ AND BALARÂMA.
-`````````````````````````````
-
-**SKANDHA X. CHAP. 68.**
-
-Lakshanâ, daughter of Duryodhana, was to select her own husband, and
-there was an assembly of princes. Sâmba, son of Jâmbavati, carried away
-the girl by force. The Kauravas could not brook this insult. Bhishma,
-Kâma, Salya, Bhûri, Yajna Ketu and Duryodhana united to defeat Sâmba and
-they brought him back as a prisoner. Nârada gave the information to the
-Vrishnis and their chief Ugrasena gave them permission to fight with
-the Kauravas. Balarama did not like that the Kurus and Yadus should
-fight with one another. So he went himself to Hastinâpura. He remained
-outside the town and sent Uddhava to learn the views of Dhrita-Râshtra.
-The Kurus came in a body to receive Balarâma. When the formalities were
-over, Balarâma composedly asked the Kurus, in the name of king Ugrasena,
-to restore Sâmba. The Kurus proudly replied: "We have given the kingdom
-to the Vrishnis and Yadus. A wonder indeed, they want to become our
-equals and to dictate to us! Surely the lamb cannot take away the lion's
-game."
-
-Balarâma thought how foolish the Kurus had become. They did not know the
-powers of Ugrasena and of Krishna. In anger he exclaimed, "I will make
-the earth to be stripped of all Kauravas" He took his plough and gave a
-pull to Hastinâpura. The town became topsy-turvy. The Kurus came and
-adored him. They brought back Sâmba and Lakshanâ. Duryodhana made large
-presents and Balarâma became appeased. He went back with Sâmba and his
-bride to Hastinâpura and related what had happened to the Yadus.
-
-
-
-NARADA AND THE WIVES OF SRI KRISHNA.
-````````````````````````````````````
-
-**SKANDHA X. CHAP. 69.**
-
-"What a wonder that Sri Krishna married 16 thousand girls, all at one and
-the same time, with but one body!" So thought Nârada and he came to see
-things with his own eyes at Dvârakâ. He entered one of the rooms and
-found Krishna seated with one of the girls. Krishna washed the feet of
-Nârada and sprinkled the water over his body.
-
-The Rishi entered another room. Krishna was playing at dice with one of
-his wives and with Uddhava. He entered another room and found Krishna
-was taking care of his children.
-
-So he entered room after room. Krishna was either bathing or making
-preparations for the sacrifice, or feeding Brâhmanas, or making recitals
-of Gâyatrî, or riding, or driving, or taking counsel of ministers, or
-making gifts, or hearing recitals of sacred books. He was in one place
-following Dharma, in one Artha and in another Kâma.
-
-Nârada smiled and said: — "O Lord of Yoga, I know the Yogic Mâyâ, by
-service at Thy feet, as it is manifest in me, though hard of perception
-by those that are themselves under the influence of Mâyâ. Now permit me
-to roam about the Lokas, filled with Thy glory, singing Thy deeds, which
-purify all the worlds."
-
-Sri Krishna said: —
-
-"O Brâhmana, I am the teacher, the maker and the recogniser of Dharma.
-It is to teach people that I have resorted to all this. O Son, do not be
-deluded."
-
-
-
-THE RAJA SUYA AND JARASANDHA.
-`````````````````````````````
-
-**SKANDHA X. CHAP. 70-73.**
-
-Krishna was holding council in the Assembly Room called Sudharmâ. A
-Brâhmana came as a messenger from the Rajas who had been imprisoned by
-Jarâsandha and confined in a hill fort. The Rajas sought their delivery
-from Krishna, who had defeated Jarâsandha seven times and had been
-defeated by him only once.
-
-Nârada appeared at the time. Krishna enquired from him about the
-Pândavas. The Rishi said: —
-
-"Râjâ Yudhisthira intends to perform the great Yajna Râjâ Sûya in Thy
-honor. Please give thy consent". Krishna turned towards Uddhava and
-asked for advice.
-
-Uddhava gauged the feelings of Nârada, of Krishna and the assembly and
-said: —
-
-"It is meet thou shouldst help thy cousin in the performance of Râjâ
-Sûya Yajna and also that thou shouldst protect the Rajas that seek
-relief from thee. Kings all round will have to be conquered at the Râjâ
-Sûya sacrifice. The defeat of Jarâsandha will follow as a matter of
-course. Thus shall we see the fulfilment of our great desire and the
-liberation of the Rajas shall redound to Thy glory. Both ends will be
-served in this way. But Jarâsandha is very powerful. He should not be
-fought with while at the head of his large army. Bhima is equal to him
-in strength. Let him fight singly with Jarâsandha. That king does not
-refuse any prayer of Brâhmanas. Let Bhima ask for single combat in the
-disguise of a Brâhmana. Surely that son of Pându will kill him in thy
-presence."
-
-Krishna gave kind assurances to the messenger of the captive kings and
-left for Hastinâpura.
-
-The Pândavas vied with one another in shewing respectful love to Krishna
-and Arjuna delivered up the Khândava forest to Agni and liberated Mâyâ.
-In return for this kindness, Mâyâ made the magical assembly ground for
-the Yajna.
-
-All the kings were brought under submission by Bhima, Arjuna, Nakula,
-Sahadeva and the allied kings, except Jarâsandha.
-
-Bhima, Arjuna and Krishna went to the seat of Jarâsandha in the disguise
-of Brâhmanas.
-
-They begged hospitality from the king. King Jarâsandha concluded from
-their voice, their shape and from the arrow marks on their hands that
-they were Kshatriyas. He also thought they were his acquaintances.
-"These are Kshatriyas, though they wear the marks of brahmanas. I will
-give them what they ask even though it be my own self, so difficult to
-part with. Is not the pure glory of Bali spread in all directions,
-though he was deprived of his lordly powers by Vishnu in the disguise of
-a Brâhmana? Vishnu wanted to restore the lordship of the Trilokî to
-India. Bali knew the Brâhmana in disguise to be Vishnu. He still made
-over the Trilokî to him, even against the protests of his Guru Sukra.
-This body of a Kshatriya, frail as it is, what purpose will it serve if
-wide fame is not acquired by means of it for the sake of a Brâhmana?"
-Turning to Krishna, Arjuna and Bhima, Jarâsandha said: — "O Brâhmanas,
-ask what you wish for. Even if it be my own head, I shall give it to
-you."
-
-Krishna replied: "Give us a single combat, if you please, O King. We are
-Kshatriyas and have come for fight. We desire nothing else. This is
-Bhima. This is his brother Arjuna. Know me to be their cousin Krishna,
-thy enemy." The king of Magadha broke out in loud laughter. In anger he
-then exclaimed: — "O fools, I will give you a fight then. But thou art a
-coward. Thou didst run away from Mathurâ and didst take shelter in the
-sea. This Arjuna is not my equal in age. He is not very strong. He is
-unlike me in his body. So he cannot be my rival. This Bhima is my match
-in strength." So saying he gave one club to Bhima and took one himself.
-The two heroes fought outside the town. The fight was a drawn one.
-Krishna knew about the birth, death and life of Jarâsandha. He thought
-in his mind about the joining together by the Râkshasa woman Jara. (The
-legend is that Jarâsandha was born, divided in two halves, which were
-put together by the Râkshasa woman Jara.) Krishna took a branch in his
-hand and tore it asunder. Bhima took the hint. He put his foot on one of
-the legs of Jarâsandha and took the other in his hand and tore asunder
-the body in two equal parts.
-
-Krishna placed Sahadeva, the son of Jarâsandha, on the throne of
-Magadha, He then liberated the kings who had been imprisoned by
-Jarâsandha. They were twenty thousand and eight hundred in number. They
-saw Krishna with four hands and with all the divine attributes. Their
-eyes, tongues and noses all fed upon him, as it were, and their hands
-were stretched forth to receive him. They all fell at the feet of
-Krishna and began to adore him.
-
-"We do not blame the king of Magadha. O Lord, it is by Thy favor, that
-kings are deprived of their thrones. Humbled, we remember Thy feet. We
-do not long for any kingdom in this life, nor do we care for the fruits
-of good works after death. Tell us that which will keep the recollection
-of Thy feet ever fresh in this life."
-
-Sri Krishna replied: —
-
-"From this day forward let your devotion towards me, the Lord of all,
-be made firm and fixed. Your resolve is commendable. It is true as you
-say that riches and power turn the heads of princes. Look at Haihaya,
-Nahusha Vena, Râvana, Naraka and others. Though kings of Devas, Daityas
-and men, they came down from their lofty position through pride.
-Knowing as you do that the body and all other things that have a
-beginning have also an end, you should worship me, perform sacrifices
-and duly protect your subjects. Indifferent to good and bad things
-alike, fix your minds completely on me and you shall attain me in the
-end."
-
-Krishna made arrangements for their comfort. At his bidding, Sahadeva
-supplied them with kingly dresses and valuable ornaments and gave them
-princely treatment. Krishna sent them to their respective kingdoms.
-Krishna, Bhima and Arjuna then returned to Hastinâpura.
-
-
-
-SISUPÂLA.
-`````````
-
-**SKANDHA X. CHAP. 74.**
-
-Yudhisthira commenced the performance of the Yajna. He asked permission
-of Krishna to make a respectful call on the priests that were to
-officiate at the ceremonies. Vyâsa, Bharadvâja, Sumanta, Gotama, Asita,
-Vasishtha, Chyavana, Kanva, Maitreya and other Rishis, Drona, Bhishma,
-Kripa and others, Dhritarâshra with his sons, Vidura, Brâhmanas,
-Vaisyas and Sudras: all the kings and their subjects came to witness the
-Yajna. The Brâhmanas prepared the sacrificial ground with golden
-ploughs. They then initiated king Yudhisthira according to the Vedic
-rites. The Ritvik Brâhmanas duly assisted at the performance of the
-Rajasûya. On the day of extracting Sōma Juice, the king duly worshipped
-the priests and their assistants. Then the time came for worshipping
-those that were present at the assembly. Now who was to be worshipped
-first? There were many head-men present and the members consulted with
-one another as to who deserved to get the first offering but they could
-not come to a decision. Sahadeva then addressed the meeting thus: —
-
-"Sri Krishna, the Lord of the Sâtvats, deserves the first place. All the
-Devas, Time, Space, wealth and all else are but himself. He is the soul
-of the Universe. He is the essence of all sacrifices, the sacrificial
-fire, the sacrificial offerings and Mantras, Sânkhya and Yoga; all
-relate to him. He is the one without a second. Alone, He creates,
-preserves and destroys. By His favor men make various performances and
-from Him they attain the fruits of those performances. Give the first
-welcome-offering of respect to that Great Krishna. All beings and even
-Self shall be honored by this. Krishna is the soul of all beings. All
-differences vanish before him."
-
-All good people approved of the proposal of Sahadeva.
-
-Râjâ Yudhisthira washed the feet of Krishna and sprinkled the water over
-his own head and that of his relatives. He then made valuable offerings
-to him. All people saluted Krishna, saying "Namas" (salutation) and
-"Jaya" (Victory), and flowers rained over his head.
-
-Sisupâla could not bear all this. He stood up in the midst of the
-assembly and thus gave vent to his feelings.
-
-"True is the saying that time is hard to overcome. Or how could even old
-men be led away by the words of a boy? You leaders of the assembly know
-best what are the relative merits of all. Do not endorse the words of a
-boy that Krishna deserves to get the first welcome-offering of respect
-Here are great Rishis, fixed on Brahmâ, great in asceticism, wisdom and
-religious practices, adored even by the Lokapâlas, their impurities all
-completely removed by divine perception. Overstepping them all, how
-could this cowherd (*Gopâla*) boy, the disgrace (*pansana*) of his family
-(*Kûla*), deserve to be worshipped, as if the crow (*Kâka*) deserves to get
-the sacrificial oblation (*purodâsa*)? (Śridhara explains this Śloka and
-the following ones as a veiled adoration of Sri Krishna. *Gopâla* is the
-protector of Vedas, of the Earth and of others. The word *go* means the
-Vedas and the Earth, besides "cow." *Kula pânsana* = Kulapa+ansana.
-*Kulapas* are sinners. He who destroys (*Ansa*) them is *Kula pânsana*. *Kâka*
-may be read as compounded with another word in the Śloka, in the form of
-*akâka*. *Kâka* is ka + aka. *Ka* is happiness, *aka* is misery. He who has
-neither happiness nor misery is *akâka* *i.e.*, one who has got all his
-desires. One who has got all his desires does not only deserve to get
-the *purodâsa* offering of the Devas but all other offerings. I do not
-think it necessary to reproduce the double interpretation by Śridhara of
-the other Ślokas, which is continued in the same strain.) He has gone
-away from his Varna, Âsrama and Kula. He is outside all injunctions and
-duties. He follows his own will. He is void of attributes (*Gunas*). How
-can he deserve to be worshipped? King Yayâti cursed his line and it is
-not honored by good people. His clansmen are addicted to unnecessary
-drinking. How can he deserve to be worshipped? They left the the lands
-where the Rishis dwell, and made their fort on the Sea; moreover they
-oppress their subjects like robbers."
-
-Sisupâla went on in this way and Krishna did not say a word. The lion
-heeds not the jackal's cry. The members of the Assembly closed their
-ears and went away, cursing Sisupâla in anger. They could not hear the
-calumny of Bhagavat. For he who hears the calumny of Bhagavat and of
-those that are devoted to him and does not leave the place goes
-downwards, deprived of all merits. The sons of Pându and their allies of
-Matsya, Kaikaya and Srinjaya, took up arms to kill Sisupâla. Sisupâla
-also took his shield and sword and reproved the kings on the side of
-Krishna. Krishna then rose up and asked his followers to desist. He cut
-off the head of Sisupâla with the Chakra. A flame like a glowing
-meteor rose from the body of Sisupâla and entered Sri Krishna. For three
-births, Sisupâla had constantly followed Vishnu in enmity. By this
-constant though hostile meditation, he attained the state of that he
-meditated upon. (The readers are reminded here of the story of Jaya and
-Vijaya, the gatekeepers of Vishnu in Vaikuntha).
-
-The Rajasûya sacrifice came to a close. Râjâ Yudhisthira performed the
-bathing ceremony, enjoined at the close of a sacrifice (*avabhritha*).
-
-
-
-THE SLIGHT OF DURYODHANA.
-`````````````````````````
-
-**SKANDHA X. CHAP. 75.**
-
-The fame of Yudhisthira went abroad. All sang the glory of the Rajasûya
-sacrifice. Duryodhana became filled with jealousy. One day king
-Yudhisthira was seated on a golden throne in the assembly hall, prepared
-by Mâyâ, with Krishna and others around him. The proud Duryodhana,
-surrounded by his brothers, entered the place with crown on his head and
-sword in his hand, showering abuse on the gate-keepers and others. He
-took land to be water and drew up his clothes. He also took water to be
-land and wet himself. The Mâyâ (Magic), displayed by Mâyâ, in the
-preparation of the assembly ground, caused this delusion. Bhima laughed,
-and the females and other kings laughed too, though forbidden by
-Yudhisthira. Krishna however approved their laughter.
-
-Overpowered with shame, with his head cast down, Duryodhana silently
-left the place and went to Hastinâpura.
-
-Krishna kept quiet. He wished to relieve the Earth of the weight of the
-Daityas who were oppressing her. It was only His will that Duryodhana
-should thus be deluded (and the disastrous results would follow).
-
-
-
-SÂLVA.
-``````
-
-**SKANDHA X. CHAP. 76-77.**
-
-When Krishna carried away Rukmini, he defeated the kings in battle and,
-amongst others, he defeated Sâlva, king of Soubha, the friend of
-Sisupâla. Sâlva vowed at the time to kill all Yâdavas. He ate only a
-handful of dust and worshipped Śiva. After a year Śiva became pleased
-with his worship and asked the king to name a boon. He prayed for an
-invulnerable chariot that would carry terror to the Yâdavas. At the
-bidding of Śiva, Mâyâ prepared an iron chariot, called Soubha, which
-could move at will to any place. Mounted on this chariot, Sâlva attacked
-Dvârakâ, with his large army. He threw weapons, stones, trees and
-serpents from above and demolished walls and gardens. The people of
-Dvârakâ became very much oppressed. Pradyumna and other Yâdavas engaged
-in fight with Sâlva and his army. Sâlva's chariot was sometimes visible
-and sometimes not. It now rose high and now came low. With difficulty,
-Pradyumna killed Dyumat, the general of Sâlva. But still the fight went
-on for seven days and seven nights. Krishna had been at Hastinâpura. He
-felt misgivings and hurried to Dvârakâ with Râma. The fight was then
-going on. Krishna placed Râma in charge of the town and himself went to
-fight with Sâlva. Sâlva tauntingly addressed Krishna who gave the king a
-heavy blow with his club. Sâlva disappeared. Instantly a man came and
-informed Krishna that he was a messenger from Devaki. Sâlva had carried
-away his father Vâsudeva.
-
-Krishna asked: — "How could Sâlva conquer Râma so as to carry away my
-father?" But he had scarcely finished when Sâlva appeared with somebody
-like Vâsudeva, saying "O fool, here is your father. I will kill him in
-your presence. Save him, if you can." He then cut off the head of
-Vâsudeva, and entered the chariot. Krishna found this was all the Mâyâ
-of Sâlva and in reality his father was neither carried off nor killed.
-He broke the chariot Soubha with his club. Sâlva left the chariot and
-stood upon earth, club in hand. Krishna cut off his hands and then cut
-off his head with the Chakra.
-
-
-
-DANTA VAKRA AND VIDURATHA.
-``````````````````````````
-
-**SKANDHA X. CHAP. 78.**
-
-Danta-Vakra was the friend of Sisupâla, Sâlva and Paundraka. He came to
-attack Sri Krishna with club in hand and, seeing him, exclaimed: "It is
-good fortune, that I see you. You are our cousin. But still you have
-killed our friends and you now want to kill me. I will therefore kill
-you with this club." (Śridhara gives a second meaning to this Śloka. At
-the end of his third birth Danta Vakra was to regain his place in
-Vaikuntha. Sisupâla and Danta Vakra, as explained before, were Jaya and
-Vijaya, gate-keepers of Vaikuntha. By the curse of the Kumâras, they
-incarnated as Asuras. The third and last cycle of material ascendancy
-was to be ended. Jaya and Vijaya were not to incarnate any more. Therefore
-Danta-Vakra exclaimed that it was his good fortune to meet Krishna and
-so on). Krishna struck him with his club and killed him. A flame arose
-from the body of Danta-Vakra, as from that of Sisupâla, and it entered
-Sri Krishna.
-
-Vidûratha, the brother of Danta-Vakra was afflicted with grief at the
-death of his brother. He now attacked Krishna. Krishna cut off his head
-with the Chakra.
-
-
-
-BALARÂMA AND THE DEATH OF ROMAHARSHANA.
-````````````````````````````````````````
-
-**SKANDHA X. CHAP. 78-79.**
-
-Balarâma heard that the Kurus and Pândavas were making preparations for
-a mutual fight. He belonged to neither side. So he went out on pretext
-of a pilgrimage. He went to Prabhâsa and performed the ablution
-ceremonies. He went to several other places and at last reached the
-Naimisha forest. The Rishis all rose up to receive him. Romaharshana,
-the disciple of Vyâsa, did not leave his seat. He belonged to the Sûta
-community, — a mixed class, born of Kshatriya father and Brâhmana mother, —
-but he took his seat higher than that of the Brâhmanas. Balarâma thought
-that the Sûta had learned the Itihasas, Purânas and all Dharma Sâstras
-from Vyâsa but he had not learned humility and self-control and that he
-had become proud of his wisdom. Balarâma cut off his head with the tip
-of a Kusa grass. The Rishis broke forth into loud cries of lamentation.
-Addressing Balarâma, they said: "O lord! thou hast done a wrong. We
-gave him this seat of a Brâhmana. We gave him age and freedom from
-fatigue, till the Yajna was completed. Not knowing this, thou hast
-killed one who was, while on his seat, a Brâhmana. Thou art not
-regulated by the Vedas. But of thy own accord, do thou perform some
-Prâyaschitta, and thereby shew an example to other people." Balarâma
-enquired what he was to do. The Rishi asked him to do that by which
-their words as well as the act of Balarâma both might prove true.
-Balarâma said: "One's son is one's own self. So say the Vedas.
-Therefore the son of Romaharshana, Ugrasravas, shall be your reciter of
-Purânas. He shall have long life and freedom from fatigue. What am I to
-do, O Rishis, by which I may atone for my deed?"
-
-The Rishis asked Balarâma to kill Valvala, son of the Dânava Ilvala, who
-used to pollute the sacrificial ground on certain days of the moon. They
-also asked Râma to travel all over Bhârata Varsha for twelve months, and
-take his bath at the sacred places.
-
-Râma killed Valvala and went out on pilgrimage. On his return to
-Prabhâsa he heard about the death of the Kshatriya kings in the war
-between the Kurus and the Pândavas. He went to Kurukshetra. Bhima and
-Duryodhana were then fighting with each other with their clubs. Balarâma
-tried to bring about peace. But they did not heed his words. He then
-returned to Dvârakâ.
-
-Balarâma once more went to Naimisha and he was adored by the Rishis.
-
-
-
-SRÎDÂMAN.
-`````````
-
-**SKANDHA X. CHAP. 80-81.**
-
-Krishna had a Brâhmana fellow-student, by name Srîdâman. He was
-well-read in the Vedas, self controlled and contented. He had a wife. He
-lived on whatever was freely given to him by others. His wife was
-ill-clad and ill-fed, like himself. One day she approached her husband
-and said: —
-
-"Husband, your friend is the Lord of Lakshmî (the goddess of wealth)
-herself. Go to him and he will give you wealth. He gives even his own
-self to those that meditate on his lotus feet. What can not that Lord of
-the Universe give to those that worship him with some desire?" Being
-repeatedly pressed by his wife, he at last resolved to go to Krishna,
-thinking that the sight of his friend would be his greatest gain. He
-asked his wife for some offering for his friend, She begged four
-handfuls of flattened rice (*Chipîtaka*) from the Brâhmanas and tied that
-up in one corner of her husband's rag. The Brâhmana went to Dvârakâ,
-thinking all the way how he could meet Krishna. He passed through
-certain apartments and went into one of the rooms. Krishna was seated
-with one of his wives. He saw the Brâhmana from a distance and rose up
-to receive him. He came down and embraced his former companion with both
-his hands. Krishna gave him a respectful welcome and a seat by his own
-side. He then talked with him about the old reminiscences of student
-life, how they passed their days at the residence of Sandipani, how
-faithfully they carried out the behests of the Guru and his wife, how
-necessary it was to respect the Guru and such other topics. He then
-smilingly looked at the Brâhmana and said: —
-
-"What have you brought for me from your house? Even the smallest thing
-brought by my Bhaktas becomes great by their love, while the largest
-offerings of those that are not devoted to me cannot please me." The
-Brâhmana, though asked, was ashamed to offer the flattened rice to the
-Lord of Lakshmî and he cast down his head. The all-seeing Sri Krishna
-knew the object of the Brâhmana's coming. He found that the Brâhmana had
-not at first worshipped him with the object of attaining wealth. It was
-only to please his devoted wife that he now had that desire. The Lord
-therefore thought he would give him such wealth as was difficult to
-acquire. He then snatched away the flattened rice from the rags of the
-Brâhmana saying, "What is this! O friend you have brought this highly
-gratifying offering for me. These rice grains please me, the Universal
-Âtmâ." So saying he partook of one handful. When he was going to take
-the second handful, Lakshmî held his hand, saying, "O Lord of the
-Universe, this much will quite suffice to give all such wealth as can be
-needed for this world as well as for the next, such that it will even
-please thee to see that thy votary has got so much wealth."
-
-The Brâhmana passed the night with Krishna. The next morning, he went
-home. Krishna went a certain distance with him to see him off. Krishna
-did not give him wealth nor did he ask for any. He thought within
-himself "What am I, a poor Brâhmana and a sinner and this Krishna, whose
-breast is the abode of Lakshmî, gave me a reception as if I were a god.
-The worship of His feet is the root of all Siddhis, all enjoyments, of
-Svarga and even of Mukti. Kind as he is, he did not give me any the
-least wealth, lest a poor man should forget Him by the pride of wealth."
-
-When he reached home, he found palatial buildings, gardens and lots of
-well-dressed male and female attendants. They received him with valuable
-presents. His wife also came out to receive him, with a number of female
-attendants. The Brâhmana was surprised. He saw this was all the outcome
-of his visiting Sri Krishna. He controlled himself while enjoying this
-immense wealth and, meditating on Sri Krishna, he at last attained His
-supreme abode.
-
-
-
-THE MEETING AT KURUKSHETRA.
-```````````````````````````
-
-**SKANDHA X. CHAP. 82-84**
-
-There was a total eclipse of the sun. Krishna and all the Yâdavas went
-to Kurukshetra to bathe on the occasion. Nanda, the Gopas and Gopis, all
-came there. Kunti and her sons, Bhishma, Drona and all the kings also
-went. They all went together. (The Bhâgavata Purâna carefully avoids the
-battle at Kurukshetra. It barely mentions the duel between Bhima and
-Duryodhana. According to the Mahâbhârata, Bhishma, Drona and all the
-brothers of Duryodhana had been killed before the fight took place
-between Bhima and Duryodhana. But we find here that they were all
-present at the Kurukshetra meeting. A slight explanation will be
-necessary to put the readers on the right line of thought. The ideal of
-the Mahâbhârata was Tatva-masi, the unity of Jiva and Íshvara. Krishna
-and Arjuna looked alike. They were close companions. This Advaita view
-struck at the root of Upâsanâ excepting as a means to an end; it put
-into the shade altogether the Path of compassion, the Path of service of
-which Nârada is the guide for this Kalpa. So we find even Bhishma being
-killed. Bhishma died at Uttarayana and necessarily passed through the
-Devayâna Mârga, as an Upâsaka. Whatever might be the goal of Upâsanâ,
-the Bhâgavata Purâna treats of Upâsanâ as an end and not as a means. The
-Bhâgavatas, the Sâtvatas, the Vaishnavas do not ask for Nirvana Mukti
-they ask for devotion to the Lord of the Universe. They work in the
-Universe as servants of the Lord, taking the whole Universe to be their
-own selves. The Kurukshetra battle is therefore out of place in the
-Bhâgavata Purâna. This explains the great meeting at Kurukshetra instead
-of the Great Annihilation.)
-
-Kunti complained to Vâsudeva that he did not make any enquiries about
-her and her sons, in her many afflictions. Vâsudeva said, for fear of
-Kansa the Yâdavas had scattered themselves, and they could not make
-enquiries about one another. The Kurus, Pândavas and the kings were all
-glad to see Krishna and his wives. Râma and Krishna duly honoured them
-all and made valuable presents. They all admired the good fortune of the
-Yâdavas, in having Krishna always in their midst.
-
-Nanda and Yasodâ were duly respected by Vâsudeva and his wives.
-
-Krishna met the Gopis in privacy. He embraced them all, and, after
-enquiry about their safety, said smilingly: — "Do you remember us, O
-friends? For the good of those whom we call our own, we have been long
-in putting down the adverse party. Or do you think little of us, feeling
-that we have been ungrateful to you? Know for certain, it is the Lord
-who unites and separates all beings. As the wind unites masses of
-clouds, grass, cotton and dust particles, and again disunites them, so
-the creator does with all beings. Devotion to me serves to make beings
-immortal. How glad I am that you have this love to me, for by that love
-you gain me back. I am the beginning and end of all beings, I am both
-inside and outside. As the material objects resolve themselves into the
-primal elements, (Akâsa, air, fire, water and earth), so (the material
-parts in) all beings resolve themselves into the primal elements. Âtmâ
-pervades all beings as the conscious Perceiver (Âtmâ). Know both (the
-Perceiver and the Perceived) to be reflected in me, the Supreme and the
-Immutable."
-
-The Gopis were taught this Adhyâtma teaching by Sri Krishna. Bearing
-this teaching constantly in mind, they cast off the Jiva sheath (Jiva
-Kosa) and they attained Krishna. And they said: — "O Krishna let thy lotus
-feet be ever present in our minds, home-seeking though we may have been.
-The lords of Yoga by their profound wisdom meditate on thy feet in their
-hearts. It is by thy feet that those that have fallen into the well of
-Sansara are raised."
-
-(Here we take a final leave of the Gopis. They had known Krishna as the
-Purusha of the Heart. They now knew him as the all-pervading Purusha.
-They were drawn back into the bosom of that Purusha, their Linga
-(Sûkshma) Sarira destroyed. They now entered the divine state, but even
-there they did not forget the lotus feet of Krishna. They became centres
-of devotional love in the bosom of the Universal Lord.)
-
-Yudisthira and other friends of Krishna addressed him as all-incarnating
-Purusha. The wives of Krishna related to Draupadi how they came to be
-married to him. The Rishis addressed Sri Krishna as Íshvara. They then
-took leave of him. Vâsudeva however detained them, saying they should
-instruct him as to how he could exhaust his Karma. Nârada said it was no
-wonder that he should ask this question of them and not of Krishna. For
-proximity is the cause of disregard.
-
-The Rishis, addressing Vâsudeva, said: —
-
-"Karma is exhausted by Karma. Worship Vishnu by Yajna. He is the lord of
-all Yajnas. Wise men do not wish for riches by the performance of Yajna,
-nor do they wish for men or enjoyments. They give up all desires and
-then go to the forest for Tapas. The twice-born are indebted to the
-Devas, Rishis and Pitris, by their birth. You have paid up your debts to
-the Rishis and to the Pitris. Now pay up your debts to the Devas, by the
-performance of Yajna and then give up your home." Vâsudeva then performed
-Yajna, and the Rishis officiated. The Yajna over, the Rishis went away.
-Dhritarâshra, Vidura, the Pândavas, Bhishma, Drona, Kunti, Nârada,
-Vyâsa, his friends and relatives, parted with a heavy heart. Nârada and
-his followers were detained for three months by the Yâdavas, such was
-their love for them. They then received many presents and left for
-Mathurâ. Seeing the approach of the rainy season, the Yâdavas also went
-back to Dvârakâ.
-
-
-
-VASUDEVA, DEVAKI, AND THEIR DEAD SONS.
-``````````````````````````````````````
-
-**SKANDHA X. CHAP. 85.**
-
-Vâsudeva now believed his sons to be lords of the Universe. He once
-asked them whether they had not incarnated for relieving the pressure on
-the Earth. Krishna replied: — "I, yourselves, this Râma, the people of
-Dvârakâ, nay the whole universe are to be known as Brahmâ. Âtmâ, though
-one and self-manifest, becomes manifold, according to the nature of the
-beings in which its manifestation takes place. Compare the variety in
-the manifestation of the Bhûtas in the Bhoutic objects."
-
-Hearing these words of wisdom, Vâsudeva learned to see unity in
-diversity.
-
-Devaki had heard of the powers of Râma and Krishna in bringing back to
-life the deceased son of their Guru. She asked them to shew her the sons
-that had been killed by Kansa.
-
-Râma and Krishna entered by Yogic power the regions of Sutala. Bali
-shewed them every respect and worshipped them.
-
-Krishna said: "In the Svayambhava Manvantara, Marîchi had six sons by
-Urna. These sons of the Rishi laughed at Brahmâ, because he grew
-passionate towards his daughter. For this they became Asuras and sons of
-Hiranyakasipu. Yoga Mâyâ carried them to the womb of Devaki and they
-became her sons. They were killed by Kansa. Devaki takes them to be her
-own sons and laments over their death. They are now with you; I shall
-take them over to my mother to remove her grief. They shall then go to
-Devaloka, free from the effects of their curse. Smara, Udgitha,
-Parishvanga, Patanga, Kshudra-bhuka and Ghrini — these shall by my favor
-again attain a good state." (Smara is called Kirtimat.)
-
-Krishna took the boys to Devaki and she embraced them all. They were
-then taken to Devaloka.
-
-
-
-ARJUNA AND SUBHADRÂ
-```````````````````
-
-**SKANDHA X. CHAP. 86.**
-
-Râjâ Parikshit enquired how Arjuna had married his grandmother Subhadrâ,
-the sister of Râma and Krishna.
-
-Suka replied: —
-
-"Arjuna heard that Râma was going to give Subhadrâ (the cousin of
-Arjuna) in marriage to Duryodhana. He disguised himself as a Sanyâsîn
-and went to Dvârakâ. The people of Dvârakâ and even Râma could not
-recognise him. Arjuna lived there for a year and received due
-hospitality. Once Arjuna was invited by Balarâma and he was taking his
-food when Subhadrâ passed by him. They looked at each other and felt
-mutual love. One day, Subhadrâ, with the permission of her parents and
-of Sri Krishna, came out on a chariot to worship an idol outside the
-fort and a strong guard accompanied her. Arjuna availed himself of this
-opportunity and carried away the girl by force. Balarâma became greatly
-enraged. But Sri Krishna and other friends appeased him."
-
-
-
-SRUTADEVA AND BAHULÂSVA.
-````````````````````````
-
-**SKANDHA X. CHAP. 86.**
-
-Srutadeva, a Brâhmana of Mithila, was much devoted to Sri Krishna. The
-prince of Mithila, Bahulâsva, was also a favorite of Sri Krishna. To
-favor them, Sri Krishna went with Nârada and other Rishis to Mithila.
-Srutadeva and Bahulâsva each asked him to go to his own house. Krishna
-to please them both went to the houses of both at the same time, being
-unnoticed by each in respect of his going to the other's house. Both
-Bahulâsva and Srutadeva received Sri Krishna and the Rishis with due
-respect. Sri Krishna taught Srutadeva to respect the Brâhmana Rishis as
-much as he respected him. After giving proper instructions to the prince
-and the Brâhmana for sometime, Sri Krishna returned to Dvârakâ.
-
-
-
-THE PRAYER TO BRAHMAN BY THE SRUTIS.
-````````````````````````````````````
-
-**SKANDHA X. CHAP. 87.**
-
-Râjâ Parikshit asked: —
-
-"O Great Sage, Brahmân is undefinable, void of Gunas, beyond both causes
-and effects. How can the Srutis, which have the Gunas for their Vritti
-(*i.e.* which treat of Devas and sacrifices which are full of
-attributes), directly cognise Brahmân?"
-
-Suka replied: —
-
-"The Lord created Buddhi, Indriya, Manas and Prana in Jivas that they
-might obtain their objects (Mâtrâ), their birth-producing Karma (Bhava),
-their transmigration to different Lokas (Âtmâ), and also their Mukti
-(Akalpana)." (These four words respectively mean Artha, Dharma, Kâma and
-Moksha. The Srutis treat of Bhagavat, of Sat-Chit-Ananda the
-all-knowing, the all-powerful, the lord of all, the guide of all, the
-all-object of Upâsanâ, the Dispenser of all fruits of Karma, the Resort
-of all that is good, as one with attributes. The Srutis begin with
-attributes, but at last drop these attributes saying "Not this", "Not
-this" and end in Brahmân. The sayings about Upasan and Karma treat of
-things with attributes, as a means to attain wisdom and thereby
-indirectly lead to Brahmân. This is the purport. *Śridhara*.)
-
-"The Upanishad speaks of Brahmân. She was accepted as such by even
-those that were older than those whom we call old. He who accepts her
-with faith attains well-being." (The Bhâgavata tries to refute the idea
-that the Vedas treat of the Devas only and not of Ísvara and Brahmâ).
-
-"I shall relate to thee here a conversation between Nârada and
-Nârâyana.
-
-"Once upon a time Nârada went to see the great Rishi Nârâyana. For the
-well-being of Bhâratavarsha, for the good of all men, he remains in his
-Âsrama, fixed in Tapas, since the beginning of this Kalpa. The Rishis of
-Kalâpa sat round him. Nârada saluted him and asked this very question.
-
-"Nârâyana said: —
-
-"In Jana Loka, the Manas, born Rishis of that place performed Brahmâ
-Yajna (Yajna, in which 'What is Brahmân' is ascertained, some one
-becoming the speaker and others forming the audience). You had gone to
-Sveta Dvipa at the time. This very question was raised in the assembly.
-Sanandan became the speaker. He said: —
-
-"The Supreme drank up his own creation and lay asleep with His Śaktis.
-At the end of Pralaya, the Srutis (which were the first breath of the
-Supreme. *Śridhara*) roused Him up by words denotive of Him.
-
-"The Srutis said: —
-
-"Glory be to Thee! Destroy the Avidyâ of all moveable and immoveable
-beings. She has got attributes for the sake of deluding others. All Thy
-powers are completely confined in Thee. Thou art the Manifester of all
-Śaktis in Jivas. Thou art (sometimes — *Śridhara*) with Mâyâ and (always —
-*Śridhara*) by Thyself. (But wherever thou art) the Vedas follow Thee.
-(The Vedas treat both of Saguna and Nirguna Brahmân).
-
-"All that are perceived, (Indra and other gods), know Thee to be the Big,
-and themselves to be only parts. For their rise and setting are from
-Thee. (Then is the Big transformable? Hence the next words. *Śridhara*).
-But thou art untransformed. Even as the (transformed) earth pots have
-their rise and setting in the (untransformed) mother earth. Therefore
-the Rishis — (the Mantras or their perceivers. *Śridhara*. Every Vedic Mantra
-has its Rishi, who first perceived that Mantra) — set their minds, their
-words and actions in Thee (or had their purport and meaning in Thee.
-*Śridhara*). For wherever people may roam, their footsteps always touch the
-earth.
-
-"O Thou Lord of the Three Gunas, the wise plunged into the nectar ocean
-formed of words about Thee, — an Ocean which removes the impurities of all
-people — and they got rid of all miseries. What of those then who, by the
-perception of Self in them, free themselves from the attributes of mind
-(likes or dislikes) and of time (the transformations of age) and worship
-Thy real self which gives rise to perpetual happiness?
-
-"Those that are animated by life breathe truly if they follow Thee,
-otherwise their breath is the breath of bellows. Inspired by Thee,
-Mahat, Ahankâra and others lay their eggs (create collective and
-individual bodies). Thou dost permeate the five sheaths (Annamaya and
-others) in man and become those sheaths, as it were, by this permeation.
-But thou art the last in the sheaths, as taught in the Upanishads.
-
-"Thou art beyond the gross and subtle sheaths, the Indestructible and
-Real.
-
-"Among the Rishis, the Śârkarakshas (or those that have an imperfect
-vision) meditate on Brahmâ in the navel. The Ârunis, however,
-meditate on Brahmâ in the cavity of the Heart, which is the seat of
-the nerves. Ananta, from the Heart, the Sushumnâ (the nerve which
-causes Thy perception) leads to Thy supreme place in the Head. He
-who once attains that place does not fall into the mouth of Death
-again. (The Upanishads speak of one hundred and one nerves of the
-heart. Of these, one goes to the head).
-
-"Thou hast Thyself created various life kingdoms and various forms.
-Though Thou pervadest them all from of old, having brought them all
-about, yet Thy special manifestation in them is relatively greater or
-smaller, according to the nature of the things created by Thee even as
-fire, though one and the same, burns differently according to the
-character of the fuel. Those that are of pure intellect follow the one
-Real amidst the many unreal forms. The (perceiving) Purusha in all
-beings is said to be Thy part only. Knowing this to be the truth about
-Jivas, wise men worship Thy feet.
-
-"Brahmâ and other Jivas did not know Thy end. Even Thou dost not know Thy
-own end. For Thou art endless. Drawn by the wheel of time, the
-Brahmândas, with their Avaranas, (outer circles) roll on together in Thy
-middle, even as if they were dust particles in the air. The Srutis
-fructify in Thee (have Thee, for their end and goal.) (Though they
-cannot directly speak of Thee) their words are directed towards Thee, by
-discarding every thing else." (Though the Vedas treat of Indra and other
-Devas, they ultimately lead to Brahmâ, by saying "Brahmâ is not this,
-not this," in the Upanishads.)
-
-
-
-THE RESTORATION OF BRAHMAN BOYS TO LIFE.
-````````````````````````````````````````
-
-**SKANDHA X. CHAP. 89.**
-
-At Dvârakâ a Brahmân lost his son at birth. He took the dead child to
-the palace and placed it at the gate, blaming the king for his
-misfortune. For the sins of kings visit themselves upon their subjects.
-In this way nine sons died one after another and the Brahmân did the
-same with all of them and, when the ninth son died, Arjuna was sitting
-with Krishna and he heard the reproaches of the Brâhmana. Arjuna
-promised the Brâhmana that he would protect his son this time, or would
-otherwise enter the fire for breach of his promise. The son was born
-again. And Arjuna was there with his famous bow. But lo! the child wept
-and it rose up high and disappeared, The Brâhmana taunted Arjuna for
-making promises he had not the power to keep. Stung by these words, the
-Pândava went to Yâma Loka. He went to Indra Loka. He went to the
-regions of Agni, Nirriti, Chandra, Vâyu and Varuna. He went to Rasâtala.
-He went to Svarga. But the Brâhmana boy was no where to be found. He
-then made preparations for entering the fire. Sri Krishna made him
-desist. He said: — "I shall show you the Brâhmana's sons. Do not
-disregard yourself. Those that blame us now shall sing our glory
-hereafter."
-
-Krishna and Arjuna went towards the west. They crossed the seven oceans
-and the seven Dvipas. They crossed the Loka-aloka and entered the
-regions of chaotic darkness. The horses could not proceed further. So by
-Krishna's order the glowing Chakra, Sudarshana, pierced through the
-darkness and the horses followed the track. Infinite, endless, divine
-light then spread out. Arjuna re-opened his eyes. They then entered the
-regions of primal water. They found one house glittering with gems and
-stones. The thousand-headed Ananta was sitting in that house. Seated
-upon Ananta was the Supreme Purusha, the Lord of the Lords. Krishna and
-Arjuna saluted Him. The Purusha then smiled and said: — "I brought the
-Brâhmana boys that I might see you both. For the protection of Dharma on
-the Earth, you have incarnated as my parts (Kalâ.) Kill the Asuras that
-oppress the Earth and come back soon to me. Filled are your own desires,
-O you Rishis, Nara and Nârâyana. But for the preservation of the
-Universe, do that which others may follow."
-
-Krishna and Arjuna said "Om". They brought back the Brâhmana boys and
-restored them to their father.
-
-
-THE LINE OF KRISHNA.
---------------------
-
-**SKANDHA X. CHAP. 90.**
-
-Vajra was the son of Aniruddha.
-
-Prati-bâhu was the son of Vajra.
-
-Su-bâhu was the son of Prati-bâhu.
-
-Upasena was the son of Su-bâhu.
-
-Bhadra-sena was the son of Upasena.
-
-**END OF THE TENTH BRANCH.**
-
-
-THOUGHTS ON THE MATHURÂ LILÂ.
-------------------------------
-
-Kansa was killed and all good men that had fled from Mathurâ returned to
-it. Krishna fast developed Himself as Íshvara. He restored his Guru's son
-to life.
-
-Uddhava, the embodiment of Bhakti Yoga mixed with wisdom, was the
-messenger of Krishna to the Gopis. It was through him that Sri Krishna
-sent words of wisdom, which He himself could not have spoken to them at
-Vrindâvana. For the Gopis would have spurned such words from Him, so
-great was their personal love for Him. Krishna now placed another ideal
-before them for meditation. They were now to seek Him, not as the lovely
-Krishna, playing upon the flute, but as the all-pervading Âtmâ to be
-known by discriminating wisdom. He asked the Gopis to meditate on this
-ideal, and He now returned to them as the all-pervading immutable
-principle in the Universe.
-
-In the stories of Jarâsandha, Yavana and Muchukunda we find the
-historical Krishna.
-
-Jarâsandha was an incongruous combination of materiality and
-spirituality, (the two parts which Jiva put together). He was the
-performer of Vedic Yajnas, the supporter of Brâhmanas, the
-representative of the old state of things. Naturally therefore he was
-the most powerful king of his time and the most powerful enemy of
-Krishna. Vaishnavism had to fight hard with orthodox Brahmânism.
-Vaishnava kings were put to death in large numbers. Krishna could not
-kill him on account of his connection with Brâhmanas and with Vedic
-Yajnas. He even feigned a retreat and fled away to Dvârakâ. Dvârakâ was
-a spiritual centre on earth, created by Krishna, for the performance of
-His mission as Avatâra. The town was washed away as soon as Krishna
-disappeared.
-
-It will be interesting to know the future mission of Muchukunda. But the
-Bhâgavata is silent about it.
-
-
-
-THOUGHTS ON THE DVÂRAKÂ
------------------------
-
-At Dvârakâ, we find Sri Krishna as the Lord of the Universe, a Kâlpic
-Avatâra, and as such something more than the historical Krishna.
-
-*Sri Krishna as an Avatâra.*
-
-It is time that we should know something definitely of Sri Krishna as an
-Avatâra.
-
-To restore the Brâhmana boys, Sri Krishna went with Arjuna to the abode
-of Purusha. Purusha smiled and said: — "I brought the Brâhmana boys, that
-I might see you both. For the protection of Dharma on the Earth, you
-have incarnated as my parts (Kalâ). Kill the Asuras that oppress the
-Earth and come back soon to Me. Sâtiated are your own desires, O you
-Rishis, Nara and Nârâyana, but for the preservation of the universe do
-that which others may follow."
-
-The Purusha is the Virât Purusha of our universe, the Second Purusha or
-the Second Logos.
-
-When the first Purusha woke up, the process of transformation went on
-and the material creation was completed. The materials could not however
-unite to form individual bodies. Purusha infused the material creation
-and became known as the Second Purusha or Virât Purusha, As regards this
-Virât Purusha, the Bhâgavata Purâna says as follows: —
-
-"He is the resting place and eternal seed of all Avatâras. Brahmâ is His
-part, Marichi and other Rishis are parts of His part. Devas, animals and
-men are brought into manifestation by parts of His part." Bhâgavata I.
-3-5.
-
-"He is the primal, unborn Purusha, who in every Kalpa creates, preserves
-and destroys self (objective) as self (nominative), in self (locative),
-by self (instrumental)." II. 6 XXXVII.
-
-"He is the primal Purusha Avatâra of the Supreme." II. 6 XL.
-
-He is also called the Thousand-Limbed and the Egg-born. II. 5, XXXV.,
-III. 6, VI.
-
-This Virât Purusha upholds the manifested universe. All materials are in
-Him and all individuals take their rise from Him and end in Him. He is
-the one ocean of endless bubbles which have their beginning and end in
-Him. The Avatâras also all rest on the bosom of Virât Purusha.
-
-We have looked at Virât Purusha from the standpoint of the First
-Purusha. Now let us proceed upwards from below.
-
-The Brihat Aranayaka Upanishad thus speaks of Virât Purusha, at the
-beginning of the Fourth Brâhmana of the first chapter: —
-
-"This was before soul, bearing the shape of a man. Looking round he
-beheld nothing but himself. He said first: — 'This am I.' Hence the name
-of I was produced. And, because he as the first of all of them consumed
-by fire all the sins, therefore he is called Purusha. He verily consumes
-him who, before this, strives to obtain the state of Prajâpati, he,
-namely who, thus knows."
-
-The following is the commentary of Sankarâchârya.
-
-"This was before the soul." The soul is here defined as Prajâpati, the
-first born from the Egg, the embodied soul, as resulting from his
-knowledge and works in accordance with the Vedas. He was what? "This,"
-produced by the division of the body, "was the soul" not separated from
-the body of Prajâpati, "before" the production of other bodies. He was
-"also bearing the shape of man", which means that he was endowed with
-head, hands and other members, he was the Viraj, the first born.
-"Looking round reflecting who am I, and of what nature, he beheld nothing
-but himself", the fulness of life, the organism of causes and effects.
-He beheld only himself as the Universal soul. Then, endowed with the
-recollection of his Vedic knowledge in a former birth, "he said first:
-This am I" *viz*., Prajâpati, the universal soul. "Hence," because from
-the recollection of his knowledge in a former world he called himself I,
-therefore his name was I "And because he" — Prajâpati in a former birth,
-which is the cause, as the first of those who were desirous of obtaining
-the state of Prajâpati by the exercise of reflection on works and
-knowledge *viz*. "as the first of all of them," of all that were desirous
-of obtaining the state of Prajâpati, consumed by the perfect exercise of
-reflection on works and knowledge of all the sins of contact which are
-obstacles to the acquirement of the state of Prajâpati, — because such was
-the case, therefore he is called Purusha, because he is *Purvam Aushad*,
-(first burnt). As that Prajâpati, by consuming all opposite sins, became
-this Purusha Prajâpati, so also any other consumes, reduces all to ashes
-by the fire of the practice of reflection on knowledge and works, or
-only by the force of his knowledge, and He verily "consumes" Whom?
-"Him who before this sage strives to obtain the state of Prajâpati." The
-sage is pointed out as he who thus knows, who according to his power
-manifests his reflection on knowledge. "But is it not useless for any
-one to strive for the state of Prajâpati, if he is consumed by one who
-thus knows? There is no fault in this; for consuming means here only
-that the highest state, that of Prajâpati, is not obtained, because the
-eminence of reflection on knowledge is wanting. Therefore by the words,
-"He consumes him" is meant, that the perfect performer obtains the
-highest state of Prajâpati; he who is less perfect does not obtain it,
-and by no means that the less perfect performer is actually consumed by
-the perfect; thus it is said in common life, that a warrior who first
-rushes into battle, consumes his combatants, which means that he exceeds
-them in prowess.
-
-In order to understand this better, let us consider the scheme of human
-evolution.
-
-Âtmâ is the same in all beings and, when free from the limitations of
-individual life, it becomes all pervading.
-
-Sympathy and compassion open the door to the liberation of Âtmâ.
-
-The Upadhi, or vehicle of Âtmâ, or the body of its manifestation,
-becomes less and less gross, as Âtmâ proceeds in its course of
-liberation, the body becomes better able to do good to all mankind and
-it does not act as a barrier to communion with the real self.
-
-The most highly evolved beings become universal and not individual, and
-they live normally on the spiritual plane.
-
-They at last reach the state of divinity. Then they may become Avatâras.
-When these Avatâras have to work on the physical and intellectual
-planes, they assume a body and become born, like ordinary beings. They
-have then to *come down* from their normal state, but their vision and
-power remain undestroyed. When their mission is over, they reach again
-their normal state. The Avatâras have not to work out their own Karma.
-They are liberated Âtmâs, staying back for the liberation of other
-individuals in the universe. Karma-less themselves, they bear the Karma
-of the universe upon their shoulders. The thin veil that separates their
-state from the state of the absolute Brahmâ is Mâyâ, which is the
-highest manifestation of Prakriti which enables them to assume cosmic
-responsibility out of their unbounded compassion for all beings.
-
-The Avatâras may cast off their veil at will, but as long as they choose
-to keep that veil, the whole universe is at their command and they guide
-the whole course of universal evolution.
-
-Now of all Avatâras one takes upon himself to hold all individuals in
-His bosom, to sustain them all and to make Him the field of their
-Involution and Evolution, in the Kalpa.
-
-He is called Virât Purusha. He is practically the Íshvara of our
-universe.
-
-The body of this Purusha, called the First Avatâra, the Second or Virât
-Purusha, and the Egg-born, is formed by the Tatvas, numbered twenty-four
-in the Sânkhya philosophy. These Tatvas collect together to form an Egg
-and the Second Purusha breaks forth from that Egg and becomes the
-Thousand-headed Purusha of the Upanishads. For the sake of meditation,
-He is imagined to be seated on the Serpent Ananta. The lotus stalk grew
-out of his navel.
-
-The Tatvas themselves are brought into manifestation by the awaking of
-the First Purusha.
-
-The Second Purusha enters into all beings as their Âtmâ, becoming
-three-fold in his aspect *viz*. Adhi-Âtmâ, Adhi-bhuta and Adhi-deva. Then
-He is called the Third Purusha. Says the Sâtvata Tantra, as quoted by
-Śridhara: —
-
-"There are three forms of Vishnu known as Purusha — the first is the
-creator of Mahat, the Second is the permeator of the cosmic Egg, and the
-third is the permeator of all beings." Virât Purusha is the seat af all
-Avatâras. Therefore all Avatâras are called parts of the Virât Purusha.
-
-Speaking of other Lilâ Avatâras, Bhâgavata calls them parts
-and aspects of the Second Purusha; "but Krishna is Bhagavat Himself."
-
-Bhagavat is here the First Purusha. I. 3 XXVIII.
-
-In the Tenth Skandha, Râjâ Parikshit says: "Tell us the mighty deeds of
-Vishnu, incarnated as a *part* in the line of Yadu." X. 1 II. Later on
-again: —
-
-"The supreme Purusha, Bhagavat Himself, shall be born in the house of
-Vâsudeva." X. 1 XXIII.
-
-The Devas said, addressing Devaki: — "Rejoice mother, the Supreme
-Purusha, Bhagavat Himself, is in thy womb *by His part*" X. 2 XII.
-
-The Purusha, seated on Ananta, addressed Arjuna and Krishna as Nara and
-Nârâyana.
-
-The Mahâbhârata also calls them Incarnations of Nara and Nârâyana. These
-Rishis are invoked all throughout the Mahâbhârata. They were the sons of
-Dharma by Mûrti, daughter of Daksha.
-
-Nara and Nârâyana are looked upon as two in one and they were adored by
-the Devas, as manifestations of Purusha Himself. (IV. 1 XLVI).
-
-They went after their birth to Gandha Madana. (IV. 1 XLVIII.) It is these
-Rishis, parts of Bhagavat Hari, who have now appeared for the removal of
-her load from the Goddess Earth, as Krishnas, in the lines of Yadu and
-Kuru. (IV. 1 XLIX.)
-
-Krishna in the line of Kuru is Arjuna.
-
-In explaining this Śloka, Śridhara quotes the following from a Vaishnava
-Tantra: —
-
-"In Arjuna, there is only the Âvesa (suffusing) of Nara. Krishna is
-Nârâyana Himself."
-
-Sri Krishna said to Arjuna: — "I have passed through many births as well
-as thou. I know them all. Not so thou."
-
-This shows that Arjuna was not Nara himself, the supplement of Nârâyana,
-for in that case he would have remembered his previous births. But, as
-the Tantra says, "Arjuna was possessed by the Nara aspect of the dual
-Rishi."
-
-Sri Krishna said to Devaki: —
-
-"At my first birth, in the Svâyam-bhuva Manvantara, thou wert born as
-Prisni and this Vâsudeva was named Prajâpati Sutapas I was born as your
-son, Prisni-garbha. I was also born of you, when you were Aditi and
-Vâsudeva was Kasyapa, as Upendra, also called the Vâmana or Dwarf
-Avatâra. At this third birth, I am your son again, with the same body."
-X. 3 XXXII. to XLIII.
-
-These are the three Incarnations of Nara Nârâyana, mentioned in the
-Bhâgavata. They are certainly not the many births to which Sri Krishna
-alludes in the Gitâ. Those many births took place in previous Kalpas of
-which we know nothing. In this Kalpa, however, he appeared at the
-turning points in the Evolution of our universe. He appeared in the
-First Manvantara, the Manvantara of manifestation, as Prisni-garbha. We
-do not know the good done by Him in His first birth.
-
-As Vâmana, however, he restored the Trilokî to the Devas and asserted
-the supremacy of the spiritual forces.
-
-The Earth was again overpowered by the Asuras. The Kalpa was about to be
-half over. The last struggle was to be made. Satva had to be infused
-into all beings, even into the materials composing them. Every thing in
-the universe was to be wedded to the Lord of Preservation. An upward
-trend was to be given to the whole course of evolution. Materialism
-could not be stamped out all at once. But henceforth there was to be a
-steady fall of Materiality and rise of Spirituality, subject to such
-variations as minor Cycles might cause.
-
-Sri Krishna is therefore the greatest Avatâra of our Kalpa. "For the
-good of those that seek Âtmâ, Nara Nârâyana shall perform Tapas in
-Bharata Varsha, unknown to others, till the end of the Kalpa." V. 19-9
-
-Sri Krishna as Bhagavat is greater than the Second Purusha.
-
-To the devotees, he is greater than the Purusha manifestation.
-
-He now appeared as the preserver of the Universe, the embodiment of
-Satva, the force of ascent. And the Tatvas had to be wedded to him, so
-that they might acquire the energy of higher evolution in them.
-
-Unless there was change in the innate downward tendency of the Tatvas,
-the spiritual ascent of the universe was not possible.
-
-The Lord brought about this change by permeating the whole universe with
-His Satva body, or becoming something like the spiritual soul in every
-being. Therefore Lord Krishna is in the hearts of all beings and can be
-perceived by all in meditation. He is everywhere, in every atom. Whether
-Sri Krishna is Bhagavat Himself or some manifestation of Bhagavat makes
-no difference whatever. By His works, He is Bhagavat. His worshippers
-are bound for the abode of Bhagavat. They have not to wait in Brahmâ or
-Satya Loka, till the end of Brahmâ's life. Those who worship. Hiranya
-garbha or Brahmâ cannot pass beyond the limits of Brahmâ Loka.
-
-In answer to Râjâ Parikshit, Suka Deva delineated the Paths to be
-followed after death.
-
-I. The Prompt Path of Liberation (Sadyo Mukti). Those who meditate on
-the abstract Absolute, called Brahmâ, attain prompt liberation. The
-All-pervading principle is abstracted from the phenomenal universe,
-there is no thought of man, no thought of fellow beings, no thought of
-the universe, there is the pure abstraction by the process of "Not
-this." "Not this" liberates one from all phenomenal connections. This
-is Sadyo Mukti. (II. 2 XV. to XXI.)
-
-II. The Deferred Path of Liberation (Krama Mukti), when one wishes to go
-to Brahmâ Loka or to the abode of the Siddhas. Where the eight siddhis
-are acquired, he retains the Manas and the Indriyas and goes all over
-the universe of Seven Lokas. II. 2 XXII.
-
-With their Linga Sarira, these Lords of Yoga go inside and outside
-Trilokî. II. 2 XXIII.
-
-On their way to Brahmâ Loka, they are carried by Sushumna first to Agni
-Loka. Then they go to the farthest limit of Trilokî, the Sisumara
-Chakra, extending over to Dhruva or the Polar star. II. 2 XXIV.
-
-When at the end of a Kalpa, the Trilokî becomes consumed by fire from
-the mouth of Sankarshana, they go to Brahmâ Loka, which lasts for two
-Parârddhas, and which is adorned by the chariots of great Siddhas. II. 2
-XXVI.
-
-There is no sorrow, no infirmity no death, no pain, no anxiety in Brahmâ
-Loka. But those who go there are, out of their compassion, afflicted by
-the endless miseries of those that do not know the path. II. 2 XXVII.
-
-Then they pass through the seven Avaranas or covers of the Universe and,
-having the Vehicle of Mula Prakriti only, become full of Bliss and, when
-that Upadhi is destroyed, they obtain absolute bliss and do not return
-again. This is the attainment of the state. II. 2. XXVIII to XXXI.
-
-Those who go to Brahmâ Loka pass through three different paths.
-
-1. Those, who come with great merits acquired in life, get posts of
- duty according to their merits in the next Kalpa (*i.e.* they become
- Prajâpatis, Lokapâlas. Indras and so on.)
-
-2. Those who go to Brahmâ Loka merely by force of their Upâsanâ of
- Hiranya-Garbha become liberated, when Brahmâ becomes liberated at the
- end of his life ('extending over two Parârddhas.)
-
-3. Those that worship Bhagavat pierce the Brahmânda at
- will, and rise to the abode of Vishnu. The Ślokas XXVIII to XXXI
- refer to the piercing of Brahmânda by the Bhâgavatas. *Śridhara*.
-
-The worshippers of Sri Krishna attain the last state. The deferred path
-of Liberation is the path of all Bhaktas. It is the path of compassion,
-of service. The Bhaktas spurn all sorts of Mukti, even if they be
-offered to them. They become servants of the Lord in the preservation of
-the Universe.
-
-In the Dvârakâ Lilâ, we shall find Sri Krishna, as the greatest Avatâra
-of the Kalpa, carrying out His work of Preservation.
-
-The Purâna does not speak of the Nara aspect of Sri Krishna as
-manifested in Arjuna. That is the subject matter of the Mahâbhârata. The
-study of the one is complementary to the study of the other, as the
-study of the Bhagavat is complementary to the study of the Gitâ. In one,
-we see the Evolution of Man, in the other we see the work of Bhagavat.
-We see in both together the whole of our Lord Sri Krishna.
-
-
-
-THE WIVES.
-----------
-
-As Lord of the Universe, Sri Krishna became wedded to the eightfold
-energies of Prakriti, His eight principal wives, so that he might
-influence, through them, individuals formed by these divisions of
-Prakritis. These energies are: —
-
-1. *Rukmini* or Mula Prakritî, Buddhi.
-
-2. *Jâmba-vati* or Mahat, Universal mind.
-
-3. *Satya-bhâmâ* or Ahankâra.
-
-4. *Kâlindi* or Akâsa-Tanmâttra, sound, Akâsa.
-
-5. *Mitra Vinda* or Vâyu-Tanmatra, Touch, Air.
-
-6. *Satya* or *Nagnajiti*, Agni-Tanmatra, Form, Fire.
-
-7. *Bhadrâ*, Ap-Tanmâtra, Taste, Water.
-
-8. *Lakshanâ*, Kshiti-Tanmâtra, smell, Earth.
-
-The Energies of Prakriti have a double tendency, one of lower
-transformation, of materialisation, of descent and another of higher
-transformation, of spiritualisation, of ascent. Sri Krishna, by His
-Avatârship, attracted to Himself the higher tendency of all the energies
-of Prakriti. This is how he was wedded to all the aspects of Prakriti.
-
-Rukmini is the spiritual energy of Mula Prakriti. Read the talk between
-Krishna and Rukmini (X. 80).
-
-The legend of the Syamantaka jewel is a mysterious one. It was the gift
-of the Sun-God. It used to produce gold every day.
-
-The Hiranya-Garbha Purusha of Vedic Upâsanâ has its seat inside the
-Sun-God. "The Purusha inside Âditya." This Purusha is the Adhi-daiva of
-Bhagavat Gitâ, as explained by Sankarâchârya. All the Devas proceed from
-*Him*. He is the one Deva, also called Prâna. (Vide Yajnavalkya's answer
-to Sakala Brihat Aranyaka Upanishad III. 9.) Hiranya is gold.
-Hiranya-garbha is that which has gold in its womb. The Syamantaka jewel
-gave protection against diseases, accidents, and other dangers. These
-are all the results of Hiranya-garbha Upâsanâ. Syamantaka represents
-Hiranyagarbha Upâsanâ.
-
-Sri Krishna wanted that this Upâsanâ should be replaced by the Upâsanâ
-of Íshvara.
-
-The jewel was lost. It was carried away by some religious movement,
-represented as a lion.
-
-Jâmba-vat snatched it from the Lion. Jâmbavat, the bear king, was one of
-the chief allies of Sugriva. He was the oldest in years and the wisest
-in counsel.
-
-"When Vâmana stepped over the three Lokas, I made a respectful circuit
-round Him." Râmayana Kishkindha Kânda. Chap. 64-15.
-
-"When Vâmana became an Avatâra I moved round the earth twenty one times.
-I threw plants into the Sea which yielded Amrita by churning. Now I am
-old." Râmayana Kishkindha Kânda Chap. 65-32.
-
-While Râma was about to ascend to heaven he addressed the old Jâmbavat,
-as a son of Brahmâ, and asked him to stay behind till the approach of
-Kali — Uttarâ Kânda. Chap. 121-34.
-
-Jâmbavat represents a very old religious movement, which was out of date
-even in Râma's time.
-
-Hiranyagarbha Upâsanâ became old and a thing of the past. But however
-hoary it might be with years, it was holy with the traditions of the
-Vedas and though Krishna had no direct hand in its disappearance,
-people thought the disappearance was the outcome of His Avatarship. To
-save His reputation, Krishna restored the jewel from Jâmbavat, but it
-could not long remain in the hands of Satrajit. Vedic Upâsanâ did
-survive. But it survived only in Vedic Sandhyâ and Gâyatri, which were
-represented by Akrûra.
-
-Krishna was wedded to Jâmbavatî, the spiritual energy of Mahat.
-
-Satya-bhâmâ is the spiritual energy of Ahankâra. She holds the Vinâ,
-with the seven notes of differentiation. The Vedas proceed from these
-notes and also all departments of knowledge, Satyabhâmâ is the goddess
-of learning.
-
-There is not much to say about the five other principal wives.
-
-The last of these wives, Lakshanâ, represents the spiritual energy of
-earth. Coming down to earth, we proceed to Naraka, son of Earth. The
-word Naraka literally means Hell, hence gross materiality. We have found
-that the Purâna writers place Naraka below the Pâtâlas. Sixteen thousand
-girls representing all earthly and material energies had been snatched
-away by Naraka. They all became wedded to Sri Krishna.
-
-*Vâsudeva, Sankarshana, Pradyumna, Aniruddha.*
-
-The following correspondences were given by Kapila to his
-mother Devahûti. (III. 26 ).
-
-
- +------------+-------------+-------------+--------------+
- | *Upâsya* | *Adhibhûta* | *Adhyatma* | *Adhideva* |
- +------------+-------------+-------------+--------------+
- | Vâsudeva | Mahat | Chitta | Kshetrajna |
- +------------+-------------+-------------+--------------+
- | Sankarsana | Ahankâra | Ahankâra | Rudra |
- +------------+-------------+-------------+--------------+
- | Aniruddha | Manas | Manas | The Moon god |
- +------------+-------------+-------------+--------------+
- | Pradyumna | Buddhi | Buddhi | Brahmâ |
- +------------+-------------+-------------+--------------+
-
-
-*Chitta* is transparent, without transformation, and calm, even as the
-first state of water. III. 26. XXI.
-
-"Transparent" — capable of of receiving the image Bhagavat.
-
-"Without transformation" — without indolence and distraction. *Śridhara*
-
-Chitta is the abode of Bhagavat, *i.e.* Bhagavat is perceived by Chitta.
-III. 26. XX.
-
-Differences cause many-sidedness and distraction.
-
-Ahankâra Tatva brings differences into manifestation.
-
-Beyond the plane of Ahankâra Tatva, is the plane of Mahat.
-
-Mahat literally means big, great, universal.
-
-It is the plane of universal manifestation.
-
-The mind is universal on this plane. As soon as the One Purusha wished
-to be many, Prakriti gave rise to the Mahat transformation and Mahat
-took up the wish to be many. It was one, but it had the potency of
-becoming many. The whole universe that was to manifest itself was
-mirrored in Mahat, and was the subject matter of one thought, the
-thought of one who had the universe for his body. During the period of
-creation, Mahat soon transformed itself into Ahankâra, the Tatva of
-differences. Ahankâra gave rise to different bodies, different minds and
-different faculties; individuals appeared and they started on separate
-lines of manifestation and of evolution.
-
-On their homeward journey, individuals again reach the plane of Mahat,
-when they rise above all differences, lose all sense of personality and
-carry their experiences to the plane of the Universe. Their thoughts
-then become thoughts of the Universe, guided by one feeling, that of
-compassion for those that remain behind. There is no thought of self, no
-distraction, no impurity, it is all calm and tranquil; such a mind is
-called *Chitta* by Kapila. This Chitta is the abode of peace, the abode of
-Bhagavat.
-
-Bhagavat, when reflected on Chitta, is VASUDEVA. He is the Purusha
-seated on Ananta.
-
-SANKARSANA is Bhagavat as reflected on Ahankâra. He is called Ananta or
-endless, as there is no end of individuals. He is Bhagavat as manifested
-in every individual and may be called, in one sense, the Purusha of
-Individual souls. Balarâma is said to be an incarnation of Sankarshana.
-As individuals proceed in their course of life journeys, they become
-crystallised into separate entities, with a strong sense of personality.
-The inner self, the real self, runs the risk of becoming swallowed up by
-the outer self, the Upadhi of individuality. The point is reached, when
-individuals are to be drawn back to their homes, their real selves.
-Therefore Balarâma used the plough to draw in others. This is a process
-of destruction. The material nature is gradually destroyed in us.
-Therefore Balarâma is also called an incarnation of Rudra or Śiva
-according to Vaishnava texts. He is Rudra Himself. The fire from the
-mouth of Sankarshana burns the Trilokî at Pralaya. Sankarshana literally
-means "he who draws in completely." The process of Pralaya has already
-set in. The whole process of spiritual ascent is a process of material
-Pralaya. According to some therefore, Vishnu and Śiva united to form
-Harihara, at the time of the Great Churning, when this process first set
-in. When individuals throw off their material garb, or when, by Pralayic
-force, their material cover is forcibly removed, they become fit to be
-gathered together and to become merged at Pralaya in the One.
-
-PRADYUMNA is the wish of Bhagavat, as imprinted on the course of
-universal evolution. He is the wish of God. When the one wished to be
-many, He represented that wish and gave the entire turn to the course of
-evolution, that it might adopt itself to that wish. Individuals
-multiplied. Desires became many and all actions became Sakama. Pradyumna
-was then called Kâmadeva, the God of Love, or desire.
-
-When the course of descent was arrested, Kâmadeva was destroyed by fire
-from the forehead of Śiva. He appeared again, but this time he appeared
-as the son of Krishna. The wish of his father now was to be one again,
-for He had already become many, as many as the Karma of the previous
-Kalpa would allow. And Pradyumna had to impress this wish upon
-individuals generally, so that the ascent of matter to spirit might be
-universal.
-
-According to Kapila, Pradyumna is reflected on Buddhi. Buddhi is defined
-by him as that faculty by which objects are perceived. Doubt, false
-understanding, true understanding, memory and sleep, these are the
-indications of that faculty. (III. 26. XXVIII, XXIX).
-
-ANIRUDDHA is the son of Pradyumna. According to Kapila, he is reflected on
-Manas, the faculty of Sankalpa and Vikalpa. Sankalpa in Sânkhya
-terminology is the first or general idea of a thing.
-
-Vikalpa is the idea of the peculiarity of a thing. Thus when I cast a
-passing glance at a man, I know nothing of him except that he is a man.
-But when I look at him carefully, I know his peculiarities and can
-differentiate him from others.
-
-The first idea is the idea of a thing in its primity or dawn.
-
-The second idea is the idea of its peculiarities. It is the second idea
-which gives rise to likes and dislikes.
-
-In the course of ascent, we must carry general ideas. We must rise from
-particulars to generals. The mind will thus be freed from the burden of
-personal and material thoughts.
-
-Aniruddha became wedded to Usha or Dawn. He is Bhagavat as perceived by
-Manas.
-
-**END OF THE TENTH SKANDHA.**
-
-.. clearpage::
-
-THE ELEVENTH SKANDHA
-====================
-
-THE MUSHALA. XI. I.
--------------------
-
-Sri Krishna, with the help of Râma, the Yâdavas and the Pândavas, killed
-the Daityas, born as Kings. He made the Pândavas his instruments in the
-great war. When the Kings on both sides and their armies were killed,
-Sri Krishna thought within himself: — "The pressure is not yet all
-removed from the earth. For these powerful Yâdavas, backed by me, have
-become mad with power. I shall bring on disunion among them, which will
-be the cause of their death. Then I can have rest and may go to my own
-abode."
-
-Visvâ-mitra, Asita, Kanva, Durvâsas, Bhrigu, Angiras, Kasyapa, Vâmadeva,
-Atri, Vasistha, Nârada and other Rishis went to a sacred place called
-Pindaraka near Dvârâka. The Yadava boys were playing among themselves.
-They dressed Sâmba, son of Jâmbavati, as a girl and took him to the
-Rishis, saying she was pregnant and inquiring whether she would have a
-son or a daughter. The Rishis could not bear this impertinence and they
-said: — "O you fools, she will bring forth a *Mushala* (a pestle) that will
-be the ruin of your line." The boys were terrified. Sâmba did produce an
-iron pestle. They took the pestle and went home. The boys related the
-story to all the Yâdavas. Âhuka, the chief of the clan, ordered the
-pestle to be ground down to powder and the powder to be thrown into the
-Sea. This was done, but a portion remained. That portion was also thrown
-into the Sea. A fish swallowed the iron piece. The fish was caught by a
-fisherman. He made two spears of the iron found in the fish. The
-powdered iron grains were carried by the waves to the coast and there
-they grew into reeds.
-
-
-
-THE BHÂGAVATÂ PATH.
--------------------
-
-**SKANDHA XI. CHAP. 2-5.**
-
-Vâsudeva asked Nârada about the Path of Bhagavat which leads to Moksha.
-Nârada said: —
-
-Of the sons of Rishabha, nine became well-versed in Âtmâ Vidya. They
-were Kavi, Hari, Antariksha, Prabuddha, Pippalayana Avirhotra, Drumila,
-Chamasa, and Kara-bhâjana.
-
-The Rishis of Bharata Varsha were performing Yajna at the place of Nimi
-and these nine Rishis went there.
-
-I. Nimi asked the Rishis about the *path of Bhagavat*.
-
-Kavi said: —
-
-The path of Bhagavat consists of such expedients as the Lord mentioned
-Himself (for those that are not wise) for the speedy acquisition of self
-knowledge. In following this Path, man is not overcome by obstacles (as
-in the path of Yoga). He may run along this path even with closed eyes
-without fear of losing his steps (with closed eyes *i.e.* even without
-knowing where he goes and what he does).
-
-(What is the path then?)
-
-Whatever a man does, whether it be the body or speech or mind or the
-senses or intellect or the sense of I-ness that acts, let him offer that
-all up to the Supreme Nârâyana.
-
-He who is removed from Ísvara, (first) forgets (Ísvara), (*Asmriti*), then
-there is wrong perception such as "I am the body" (*Viparyaya*). This is
-caused by the Mâyâ of Bhagavat. Fear arises from devotion to the Second.
-Therefore wise men worship the Lord only, with unfailing Bhakti, knowing
-his Guru to be one with Ísvara and Âtmâ.
-
-(The Bhâgavata School classifies Jivas under two heads — Antar Mukha and
-Bahir Mukha. Antar Mukha is literally one with his face turned inwards
-*i.e.*, one who withdraws himself from the outside world and looks to
-self within, which is only an aspect of Íshvara.
-
-Bahir Mukha Jiva is one with his face turned outwards *i.e.* one who
-withdraws himself from the self-within and therefore from Íshvara. He
-first loses sight of Íshvara, forgets that he (the Jiva) is an aspect of
-Íshvara and that he is not the same as the body. He then considers the
-body as one with himself and concerns himself only with its relations to
-the outside world. This is called forgetting and wrong perception.
-"Fear arises from devotion to the Second." The Second is that which is
-not self. In meditation, the Guru stands between Ísvara and self, and is
-Ísvara for all practical purposes to the devotee).
-
-The Dvaita (Mayic manifestation), though not existing, appears to exist,
-through the mind of man, like dreams and desires. Therefore wise men
-should control the mind, which gives rise to desires and doubts about
-actions. Then there shall be no fear.
-
-The existence of the outside world and of the body is like the
-existence of dreams and desires. The dream exists for the time being and
-then disappears altogether, The dream has its existence because the mind
-brings it into existence. It is a creation of the mind, not permanently
-attached to the Jiva. So desires are also creations of the mind, not
-permanently attached to the Jiva, But they have got a temporary
-existence. That existence, however, is an existence in the mind of the
-man entertaining the dreams and desires and not outside the mind.
-Therefore the existence is not a real one.
-
-So the body of the Jiva and its surroundings are temporarily attached to
-the Jiva. As the dream vanishes in the wakeful state, so the body and
-its surroundings disappear with the transformation called Death. Body
-after body, surroundings after surroundings, are dreams, as it were, in
-the mind that bears all through the bubbles arising in the ocean of
-Jivic existence.
-
-The realisation of this temporary connection of the body and its
-surroundings is a training for the Antarmukha Jiva, for it enables him
-to turn towards Íshvara and the permanent aspect of Jiva.
-
-The non-existence of Dvaita has always to be understood with reference
-to Jiva or Íshvara, and not *independently*, for the flow of Prakriti is
-eternal. The disregard of this primary idea has given rise to many
-misconceptions. (Then as to Antarmukha practices.) Hear about the
-Incarnations of Vishnu and His blessed deeds, hear about his names full
-of import as to those deeds and Incarnations, hear and sing the songs
-about Him, without any sense of uneasiness as to what others will say.
-Then roam over the earth free from all worldly attachments.
-
-By such practices, and by the recital of His dear names, love for
-Bhagavat grows up. The heart then melts away. The devotee laughs loudly,
-he weeps, he cries aloud, he sings and he dances like a mad man. He
-loses all control over himself.
-
-He salutes Akâsa, Vayu, Agni, Water, Earth, the planets, the trees, the
-Seas and all beings as forming the body of his Hari. For he knows
-nothing else.
-
-He, who worships Bhagavat in this way, has Devotion (Bhakti), perception
-of Íshvara (Anubhava) and dispassion (Virakti) — all three growing at one
-and the same time, as, by eating, one gets pleasure, nutrition and
-satisfaction of hunger all at one and the same time.
-
-The Bhâgavata then attains supreme peace.
-
-II. Nimi then asked: "What are the *Characteristics of a Bhâgavata* and
- what are the *Signs by which a Bhâgavata is known?*"
-
-Hari replied: —
-
-"He who sees in all beings the existence of Bhagavat as in his own
-self, and sees all beings in the Bhagavat within himself is the highest
-Bhâgavata.
-
-"He who bears love towards Ísvara friendship towards his dependents,
-kindness toward the ignorant, and indifference towards his enemies
-belongs to the next class of Bhâgavatas.
-
-"He who worships an image as Hari with faith, but has no regard for
-Bhaktas and for other beings is only a beginner as a Bhakta.
-
-"The highest Bhâgavata perceives the objects with his senses, but does
-not feel either aversion or pleasure. He looks upon the universe as the
-Mâyâ of Vishnu.
-
-"By constant meditation on Hari, he is not affected by the changes of
-life. Desires have no place in his mind, so devoted is he to Vâsudeva.
-
-*He* is the favourite of Hari, who does not take pride in his birth,
-Karma, caste or Âsrama.
-
-"The highest Bhâgavata does not know "Mine" and "Thine," either in wealth
-or in body. He looks upon all beings with equal eyes, His mind is always
-at peace.
-
-"Even for the sake of all the three Lokas, the Vaishnava will not for a
-moment forget the lotus feet of Bhagavat.
-
-"And more, he is the greatest of all Bhâgavatas, to whose heart Hari is
-bound down by the tie of Love."
-
-III. Nimi asked: — "What is then this Mâyâ of the Supreme Lord?"
-
-Antariksha replied: —
-
-"Mâyâ of Bhagavat is that which causes the creation, preservation and
-dissolution of this universe."
-
-IV. Nimi asked: — "How can one whose mind is not controlled and who is of
- dull understanding easily cross over this Mâyâ?
-
-Prabuddha replied: —
-
-"Have recourse to a Guru, who knows the Truth and is fixed in the
-supreme. Learn the duties of Bhâgavatas from him. Practise
-non-attachment, keep company with Sâdhus. Be kind to your inferiors,
-friendly to your equals and respectful to your superiors. Keep your body
-and mind pure. Regulate your life by fixed rules. Have forgiveness. Do
-not talk idly. Read the sacred books. Be upright. Be temperate. Be
-harmless to all beings. Bear good and evil, pleasure and pain with
-equanimity. Find out Âtmâ and Íshvara everywhere. Free yourself from all
-connections. Do not bind yourself down to your house. Have that which is
-easily got for your clothing. Be content with anything and everything.
-Have faith in the Bhâgavata Sâstra, but do not blame any other Sastra.
-Control your mind, speech and actions. Speak the truth. Control your
-inner and outer senses. Hear, recite and meditate on the deeds and
-Avatâras of Hari. Let all your exertions be for Him. Offer up all, even
-your wife, children and your own life, to Him. In the company of
-Bhâgavatas, interchange devotion and love, remind each other and speak
-to each other of the glory of Bhagavat, till your hair stands on end,
-and you will sometimes dance and sometimes sing, maddened by your
-devotional thoughts about Achyuta.
-
-"These are the duties of a Bhâgavata and by practising these, he may
-easily cross over Mâyâ."
-
-V. Nimi asked: — "How can one be fixed in devotion to Nârâyana?"
-
-Pippalâyana replied: —
-
-"When through the desire of attaining the feet of Vishnu, one has strong
-devotion, the impurities of one's mind are destroyed. When the mind is
-purified, it becomes fixed in Âtmâ."
-
-VI. Nimi asked: — "Tell me about Karma Yoga, by the performance of which
- Karma is speedily destroyed."
-
-Âvirhotra replied: —
-
-"Vedic Karma does not directly lead to Moksha. Offer up your Vedic Karma
-to Íshvara, and perform it, without any worldly attachment, however.
-
-"He who wants speedily to cut asunder the tie of Ahankâra shall worship
-Vishnu in the way prescribed in the Tantras or Âgama. (Vedic Karma at
-first consisted of Vedic Yajna. The Gitâ gave a death blow to the
-performance of Vedic Yajnas. *Nishkâma* Karma took the place of *Kâmya*
-Karma, The Vedic Karma however survived in the Sandhyâ Mantras, which
-conform themselves to the Path of Upâsanâ.
-
-"The Vedic Sandhyâ is however meant only for Brâhmanas.
-
-"The Tântric Sandhyâ is an imitation of the Vedic Sandhyâ, adapted to all
-classes of men, and it supplements the Vedic Sandhyâ by laying down a
-method of worshipping the Lord in the heart and of worshipping His
-image. Mantras are also prescribed. Devotion is the chief element in
-Tântric Upâsanâ and this Upâsanâ is enjoined for all Bhâgavatas or
-Vaishnavas. There are Śiva Tantras, Śakti Tantras, Ganapati Tantras,
-Sûrya Tantras as well as Vaishnava Tantras. There are black rites
-prescribed in some of the Śakti Tantras and the Tantras have therefore
-got a bad name with many. But the Tantras as a whole form the only
-science of practical occultism in Sanskrit, and the Vaishnava Upâsanâ is
-strictly a Tântric Upâsanâ."
-
-(I do not enter here into the details of that Upâsanâ, though some
-details are given in the text.)
-
-VII. Nimi said: — "Tell me about the *Avatâras* and Their deeds O Rishis."
- Drumila gave a short account of the Avatâras, commencing from the First
- Purusha. As this is nearly a repetition of what has been said before, no
- attempt is made to reproduce it.
-
-VIII. Nimi asked what is the *destiny of those that do not worship
- Bhagavat, those that have no control over their mind and their senses*.
-
-Chamasa replied: — "They enter the regions of darkness (Tamas)."
-
-IX. Nimi asked:
-
-"What is the Color of the manifestation of Bhagavat at each period, how
-does he manifest Himself, by what name is He known and in what way is He
-worshipped?"
-
-Karabhâjana replied: —
-
-"In Satya Yuga, Bhagavat becomes white, with four hands, with tufts of
-braided hair, with bark round His waist. He bears a black deer-skin, the
-sacred thread and beads, and has Danda (the rod of an ascetic) and
-Kâmandalu (the water-pot of an ascetic) in his hands. (*i.e.* He looks
-like a Brahmâcharin).
-
-"Men are then peaceful and friendly towards one another. There are no
-differences amongst them. They worship the Lord by means of Tapas, by
-control of the senses and of the mind.
-
-"Bhagavat is then known by the following names: — Hansa, Suparna,
-Vaikuntha, Dharma, Yogesvara, Amala, Ísvara, Purusha, Avyakta, and
-Paramâtmân.
-
-"In Tretâ, Bhagavat becomes Red. He has four hands and golden hair. His
-form is that of Yajna. Men are pious at the time. They worship Bhagavat
-by Vedic Yajna.
-
-"Bhagavat is known by the following names: —
-
-"Vishnu, Yajna, Prism-garbha, Sarvadeva, Uru-krama, Vrishâ Kapi, Jayanta
-and Urugâya.
-
-"In Dvâpara, Bhagavat is *Syama*. (The word Syâma ordinarily means
-dark-blue. But Śridhara explains the word here as the color of an Atasi
-flower, which is generally yellow. This is because the Bhagavat speaks
-before of white, red, yellow and black as the colors of Yuga Avatâras.)
-His cloth is yellow.
-
-"Men worship Him both by Vedic and Tântric methods.
-
-"Vâsudeva, Sankarshana, Pradyumna, Aniruddha, Nârâyana, Visvesvara and
-Visva are his names.
-
-"In Kali, worship is made according to the Tantras, which are various.
-
-"Bhagavat is black (Krishna). Men worship Him, His Symbols and attendants
-mostly by loud recitals of names and prayers (Sankirtana). Wise men
-praise Kali because worship is so easily made by mere Sankirtana. Even
-men in Satya Yuga wish to be born in Kali Yuga."
-
-Nimi respected the nine Rishis and they disappeared in the presence of
-all men.
-
-Vâsudeva and Devaki heard this story from Nârada. They realised Krishna
-as Ísvara and they acquired wisdom.
-
-
-
-KRISHNA AND UDDHAVA.
---------------------
-
-**SKANDHA XI. CHAP. 6.**
-
-Brahmâ and other Devas went to Dvârakâ. Addressing Krishna; Brahmâ said: —
-"All that we prayed for has been done. One hundred and twenty-five
-years have passed away since thou didst appear in the line of Yadus.
-That line is also well nigh extinguished. Now go back to thy own abode,
-if it pleases thee."
-
-Sri Krishna replied: — "The extinction of the Yâdavas has been set on
-foot by the curse of the Rishis. I shall remain on Earth, till it is
-completely brought about." There were unusual phenomena at Dvârakâ. The
-elders came to Krishna. He proposed a pilgrimage to Prabhâsa. So the
-Yâdavas made preparations for going to Prabhâsa. Uddhava saw the evil
-portents and he heard what Sri Krishna said. "I see, O Lord," said he to
-Sri Krishna, "thou shalt leave this earth, as soon as the Yadus are
-destroyed. I can not miss thy feet even for half a moment. So take me to
-thy own abode."
-
-Sri Krishna replied: — "It is true as you say. My mission is fulfilled. The
-Devas ask me to go back. The Yâdavas shall be killed by mutual quarrel.
-On the seventh day from this, the sea shall swallow up this seat of
-Dvârakâ. As soon as I leave this earth, Kali shall overtake it and men
-shall grow unrighteous. It will not then be meet for you to remain here.
-Give up all and free yourself from all attachments and roam about over
-this earth, with your mind fixed on me, looking on all beings with equal
-eyes. Whatever is perceived by the senses and the mind, know all that to
-be of the mind, and so Mâyic and transitory. "This is this" and "this
-is that" this conception of difference is only a delusion of him whose
-mind is distracted (*i.e.* not united to Me). It is this delusion which
-causes experiences of right and wrong. It is for those that have got
-notions of right and wrong that (the Vedas speak) differently of the
-performance of prescribed work (Karma), the non-performance of
-prescribed work (Akarma), and the performance of prohibited work
-(Vikarma). (This has reference to Varna and Âsrama duties. As long as a
-man identifies himself with some Varna or Âsrama he looks upon others
-also as belonging to some Varna or Âsrama. He therefore makes a
-distinction between men and men. The Varnâsrama duties are prescribed by
-the Vedas for a man, so long as he entertains ideas of difference. When
-he looks equally upon a Brâhmana and a Chandâla, when he finds his Lord
-every where and finds all beings in the Lord within himself, he becomes
-a man of the Universe, a Bhâgavata. For him the Vedas do not make any
-rule. He is above all rules and restrictions. But the Varnâsrama duties
-are to be respected, so long as one makes any difference between man and
-man.) Control thy senses and control thy mind. See the wide-spread
-Universe in thyself and see thyself in Me, the Lord. Learn and digest
-all that is given in the scriptures. Contented with self perception, the
-very self of all other beings, you shall have no danger from others. You
-will do no wrong but not because it is prohibited by the Scriptures, and
-you will do what is prescribed but not because it is so prescribed (*i.e.*
-the sense of right and wrong will be natural in you, independently of
-Sastric teachings.) You will exceed the limits of both right and wrong
-and do things just like a child. The friend of all beings, calm and
-quiet at heart, fixed in wisdom and direct knowledge, you will see the
-Universe full of Me and you will not be drawn back to births."
-
-Uddhava said: —
-
-"Lord of Yoga, what thou sayest for my final bliss is a complete
-renunciation of all worldly attachments. It seems to me however that the
-giving up of desires is not possible for those that have their mind
-filled with the object world, unless they are completely devoted to
-Thee.
-
-"I have not yet got over the sense of 'I' and 'Mine.' Tell me how I
-can easily follow out Thy teachings."
-
-Sri Krishna replied: —
-
-"Generally those men that are skilful in discrimination rescue self from
-worldly desires by means of self, (*i.e.* they may do so, even without
-the help of a Guru, by means of self discrimination.) Self is the
-instructor of self, specially in man (Purusha.)" (Even in animals,
-preserving instincts proceed from self. So self is the instructor.
-*Śridhara*) "For it is self that finds out final bliss by direct
-perception and by inference. Wise men, well versed in Sânkhya and Yoga,
-look upon Me as Purusha pervading all beings, and possessing all
-powers. (This is according to Śridhara, the direct perception by which
-final bliss is attained. The word Purusha here has something like the
-sense of a Monad in Theosophical literature. The passage quoted by
-Śridhara from the Upanishads to illustrate the idea of Purusha also
-shews this.) There are many habitations created for life manifestation,
-some, with one, two, three or four feet, some with many feet and some
-with no foot. Of these, however, that of man (Pourushi) is dear to me.
-For in this form of Man those that are fixed in meditation truly find me
-out, the Lord, though beyond all objects of perception, by the
-indications of perceived attributes as well as by inferences from the
-same." (*Indications*. Buddhi, Manas and others, the perceived attributes,
-are in their nature manifestless. The manifestation is not possible
-except through one that is self manifest. Therefore Buddhi and others
-point to Him.
-
-*Inferences*. Whenever there is an instrument, there is some
-one to use it. Buddhi and others are instruments. There is therefore
-one who guides these. *Śridhara*.) In this matter of self instruction,
-hear the story of an Ava-dhuta (an ascetic who renounces all worldly
-attachments and connections.)
-
-
-
-SELF-INSTRUCTION.
------------------
-
-**SKANDHA XI. CHAP. 7-9.**
-
-Yadu asked an Ava-dhûta how he could get that clear spiritual vision, by
-which he was able to give up all attachments, and roam like a child in
-perfect bliss.
-
-The Ava-dhûta replied: —
-
-I have many Gurus, O king — Earth, Air, Âkâsa, Water, Fire, the Moon, the
-Sun, the pigeon, the huge serpents, the ocean, the insect, the bee, the
-elephant, the collector of honey, the deer, the fish, Pingalâ, the
-osprey, the child, the maid, the maker of arrows, the serpent, the
-spider and the wasp. These are my twenty four Gurus.
-
-Though oppressed by the elements, the Earth does not deviate from her
-path, as she knows that they are only guided by the divine law. This
-forbearance I have learned from the Earth. I have learned from the
-mountain (which is a part of the Earth) that all our desires should be
-for the good of others and that our very existence is for others and not
-for self. I have learned entire subordination to other's interests from
-the trees (also part of the Earth).
-
-I have learned from the vital air, that one should be content only with
-such things as keep up the life and should not care about the objects of
-the senses. (The sage should keep up his life so that his mind be not
-put out of order and his mental acquisitions lost; but at the same time
-he should not be attached to the objects of the senses, so that his
-speech and mind be not disturbed.)
-
-Though placed in the midst of the objects with different attributes, the
-Yogi should not be attached to them. This I have learned from the
-outside air. The soul enters the body and the bodily attributes seem its
-own, but it is not so. The air is charged with smell, but the smell is
-no attribute of air.
-
-Âtmâ is all pervading and it is not affected by the body and bodily
-attributes. This I have learned from Akâsa which, though all pervading,
-seems to be conditioned by clouds and other objects.
-
-Transparency, agreeability and sweetness, I have learned from water. The
-sage purifies others like water.
-
-Powerful in knowledge and glowing with asceticism, the sage receiving
-all things does not take their impurities even as fire.
-
-Fire eats the sacrificial ghee when offered to it and consumes the sins
-of the offerer. The sage eats the food offered to him by others but he
-burns up their past and future impurities.
-
-Fire is one though it enters fuels of various sorts.
-
-One Âtmâ pervades all beings, however different they may appear by the
-action of Avidyâ.
-
-Birth, death, and other affections are states of the body, not of Âtmâ.
-The moon looks full, diminished and gone, though it is the same in all
-these states.
-
-The sun draws water by its rays and gives it all away in time. The sage
-takes in order to give, and not in order to add to his own possessions.
-
-The sun reflected on different surfaces appears to the ignorant as many
-and various. The Âtmâ in different bodies, even appears as such.
-
-Too much attachment is bad. This I have learned from a pair of pigeons.
-They lived in a forest. One day they left their young ones in the nest
-and went about in search of food for them. When they returned they found
-the young ones netted by a hunter. The mother had too much affection for
-the young ones. She fell into the net of her own accord. The father also
-followed suit and the hunter was pleased to have them all without any
-exertion of his own.
-
-The huge Ajagara serpent remains where he is and is content with
-whatever food comes to him.
-
-The sage is calm and deep, not to be fathomed or measured. He is
-limitless (as the unconditioned self is manifested in him). He is not to
-be disturbed even like the tranquil ocean. The ocean may receive volumes
-of water from the rivers at times or may receive no water at other
-times. But it remains the same, even as the sage at all times.
-
-He who is tempted by woman is destroyed like an insect falling into
-fire.
-
-The bee takes a little from every flower. The Sanyâsî should take only a
-little from each Grihasthâ, so that the Grihasthâ may not suffer.
-
-The bee extracts honey from all flowers big or small. The Sage should
-extract wisdom from all Sâstras big or small. Do not store anything for
-the evening or for the morrow. Have only so much for your *bhikshâ* (alms
-given to a Sanyâsî) as may suffice for one meal. The bee is killed for
-his storing.
-
-The Bhikshu shall not touch a woman though made of wood, even with his
-feet. The elephant is shewn a female and is drawn into a trap. The woman
-is the death of the sage. He should never approach her. The elephant
-seeking a female is killed by stronger elephants.
-
-The miser neither gives nor enjoys his riches. What ever he collects
-with difficulty is carried away by some one else. The collector of honey
-carries away the honey collected by others. He does not make it by his
-own effort. The Sanyâsî without any effort of his own gets food from the
-Grihasthâs, as it is their duty to feed him.
-
-Do not hear vulgar songs. The deer is attracted by songs and is
-entrapped.
-
-The love of taste is to be conquered above all, for it is most difficult
-to conquer. When the sense of taste is controlled, all other senses are
-controlled. The fish is killed when tempted by the bait.
-
-Pinglâ, a courtesan of Videha waited the whole day for some lover who
-might come and make presents to her, with breathless expectation. The
-night approached and she grew restless She then thought within herself: —
-"For what a trifle, am I so uneasy. Why not seek Íshvara, the eternal
-giver of all pleasures and all desires." She gave up all hopes and
-expectations that troubled her ere long and became happy. She had good
-sleep in the night. It is hope that gives us trouble. Without hope we
-are happy.
-
-When the bird kurara (osprey) gets some flesh to eat, the stronger birds
-kill him. He is happy when he renounces the flesh. Renunciation of dear
-objects is good for the sage.
-
-The child has no sense of honor or dis-honor. It has not the thoughts of
-a man of the world. It is self content and it plays with self. I roam
-about like the child. The child is however ignorant, but the sage
-crosses the limits of the Gunas.
-
-Some people came to select a bride. The maid was alone in the house. She
-received the men who came. She went to a solilary place to beat off the
-impurities of the rice for their meal. She had shell-made bracelets on
-her wrists. These made a great noise. She felt disgust and broke the
-bracelets one by one, till only one remained on each hand. When there
-are two or more at one place, they cause a jarring sound, and they
-quarrel. I have therefore earned solitariness from the maid.
-
-I have learned concentration of mind from the maker of arrows.
-
-The serpent has no home. It roams in solitude. So do I.
-
-Nârâyana draws in the whole creation at the end of the Kalpa and becomes
-one, the resort of all.
-
-By Kâla Śakti, the thread, Mahat, first comes out and the universe is
-again brought into manifestation. The spider brings the thread out of
-himself, spreads out the web and devours it himself.
-
-(There is a kind of wasp, which catches a particular insect and carries
-it into a hole. It is supposed that the insect assumes the form of the
-wasp through fear.) When either through affection, hatred, or fear, a
-man throws his whole heart upon some object and the mind holds it fast,
-he attains the form of that object. I have learned this from the wasp.
-
-Thus I have learned from my Gurus, My own body is also my Guru. I have
-learned from it dispassion and discrimination. The body is born only to
-die. Constant misery is its lot. I know the truths, by a discriminative
-study of the body. Still I regard it as not mine and so I feel no
-attachment for it (The body belongs to the dogs and jackals who devour
-it after death. *Śridhara*.)
-
-What does not a man do for the enjoyment of the body — but it comes to an
-end after all, having created the germs of another body.
-
-The possessor of the body is now drawn away by this sense, now by that
-sense, now by this action now by that action. The senses suck his very
-life blood, even as the many wives of one husband.
-
-The Lord created vegetable and animal bodies. But he was not satisfied
-with them. For the human body only has the power to perceive Brahmân.
-
-Therefore after many births, when the human body is once attained, one
-should strive promptly for his supreme bliss.
-
-Yadu heard these words of wisdom, and he gave up all attachments.
-
-
-
-ÂTMÂ A REFUTATION OF THE SCHOOL OF JAIMINI.
--------------------------------------------
-
-**SKANDHA XI. CHAP. 10.**
-
-Sri Krishna continued: —
-
-(Self-study is the first stage. It leads to the power of discrimination.
-Without self study no progress is possible. Therefore Sri Krishna speaks
-of it as an essential condition. He then goes on to the next stage of
-preparation.)
-
-"Subject to what I have said as to one's own duties (in Pancha Râtra and
-other Vaishnava works; *Sridhara*) and knowing me to be the final resort,
-you should dispassionately follow the Varna-Âsrama and family duties.
-(But how is dispassion possible?) With the mind purified by the
-performance of duties, reflect on this that worldly men take up things,
-thinking them to be real but the end shews that they are not so.
-
-"Objects of desire are unreal, as their perception as separate entities
-is caused by the senses and they are altogether sense-made. Even they
-are as unreal as dreams and fancy, both caused by the mind."
-
-(Actions are fourfold, (1) those that have the fulfilment of selfish
-desires for their object or Kâmya Karma, (2) those that are prohibited
-by the Scriptures or Nishiddha Karma, (3) those that are required to be
-daily performed or Nityâ Karma, (4) those that are required to be
-performed on certain occasions or Naimittika.
-
-The first two are Pravritta or selfish Karma. The last two are Nivritta
-or unselfish Karma. The Smritis say that those who want Moksha or
-liberation must not perform Pravritta Karma. But they should perform
-Nitya and Naimittika Karma, as their non-performance might give rise to
-obstacles.) Perform Nivritta Karma and being devoted to Me, give up all
-Pravritta Karma. But when you fully enter the path of wisdom, then you
-need not care much even for Nivritta Karma. Constantly practise Yâma.
-Being fixed on Me, you may sometimes practise Niyama (Yâma and Niyama
-are detailed in the 19th chapter.)
-
-"Devotedly follow one Guru, who knows Me and is full of Me, being calm
-and quiet at heart.
-
-"Be humble and unenvious, active, free from the sense of "Mineness",
-strong in friendship (towards the Guru. *Śridhara*) not over-zealous,
-eager to know the truths and free from malice. Do not indulge in idle
-talk. Be indifferent to wife, son, house, land, relations, riches and
-all other things, for Âtmâ is the same every where and its working is
-the same in all bodies.
-
-"This Âtmâ is neither the gross body nor the subtle body. It is the self
-illumined seer. Fire that illuminates and burns is separate from the
-fuel that is illuminated and burnt.
-
-"The fuel has beginning and end. It is big and small. It is of various
-kinds. The fire that pervades it is limited by the nature of the fuel.
-So Âtmâ which is separate from the body bears the attributes of the
-body.
-
-"The birth and re-birth of the Jiva have their origin in the gross and
-the subtle body, which are the outcome of the Gunas, subordinated by
-Ísvara. The knowledge of Âtmâ (as separate from the body) cuts off the
-course of rebirths.
-
-"Therefore by seeking after knowledge fully realise that Âtmâ in self is
-separate and is beyond the body. Then by degrees do away with a sense of
-reality in respect of the gross and the subtle body.
-
-"The preceptor is the lower piece of wood used for kindling the sacred
-fire. The pupil is the upper piece of wood. The teachings form the
-middle portion of the wood where the stroke is made. Vidyâ is the
-pleasing fire that comes out. (The pupil by constant questioning should
-extract the fire of wisdom from the Guru *i.e.* one should learn Âtmâ
-Vidyâ from his Guru.)
-
-"The pure wisdom that is thus acquired from the Guru shakes off the Mâyâ
-that is begotten of the Gunas. It burns up the Gunas themselves, which
-constitute this universe of re-incarnation and then it ceases of itself.
-The fire consumes the fuel first and then it is extinguished of itself.
-
-"Or if you think that the doers of actions, their pleasures and pains,
-the enjoyers and sufferers (Jivâtmas or Egos) are many and that the
-place and time of enjoyment and suffering, and the scriptures relating
-thereto and to the enjoyer or sufferer are all alike not constant."
-
-(We have found in the former slokas that Âtmâ is one and constant. It is
-self manifest and it is conciousness itself. When we speak of Âtmâ as
-the Doer, the Enjoyer and so on these attributes really relate to the
-body which forms the phenomenal basis of Âtmâ. Every thing else besides
-Âtmâ is transitory and formed of Mâyâ. It has been therefore said that
-one should free himself from all attachments and should attain
-liberation by the knowledge of Âtmâ. This is the conclusion arrived at
-by a reconciliation of all the Srutis. But there is another school, that
-of Jaimini, which arrives at a different conclusion. To remove all
-doubts whatsoever, the author refers to it for the sake of refutation.
-The followers of Jaimini deem Jivâtmas — the doers and enjoyers in all
-beings to be essentially separate and many. According to them, Âtmâ is
-known by the feeling of "I-ness." Now this feeling is different in
-different bodies. "I am the doer" "I am the enjoyer" every one feels
-this separately for himself. There is no one Parmâtmâ, which is the
-essence of all these Jivâtmas and which is above all transformations.
-Therefore freedom from attachments or dispassion is not possible. You
-may think, that the enjoyments are transitory, and so also that the time
-and place of enjoyment, the scriptures that enjoin them, and the
-*enjoying* Âtmâ itself are not constant. Hence you may justify dispassion.
-But all this is not a fact. This is the argument of the followers of
-Jaimini. *Śridhara*.)
-
-"And if you consider that all substances are constant by the eternal flow
-of their existence and that consciousness grows and is separate
-according to the difference in every particular form." (According to the
-followers of Jaimini there is no break in the objects of enjoyment nor
-are they formed of Mâyâ. All substances perpetually exist by the
-constancy of their flow. They say that there was no time, when the
-Universe was not what it is. Therefore there is no maker of the
-Universe, no Íshvara. And the Universe is not a delusion — Mâyâ. It is what
-it appears to be. There is no one and constant consciousness of which
-the essence is Âtmâ. "This pot" "this cloth" — Our consciousness grows by
-the process of perceiving these differences. Therefore consciousness is
-not constant and it has separate forms. The hidden purport is this. Âtmâ
-is not absolute consciousness itself, but it is transformed into
-consciousness. But you can not say, because it is subject to
-transformation, therefore it is transient. For it has been said
-authoritatively that its transformation into consciousness does not
-interfere with its eternity. Therefore for the purpose of liberation
-(Mukti), Âtmâ can not transform itself without the help of the senses
-&c. And if Âtmâ attains liberation, in the state of jada (or
-unconsciousness) nothing is gained. Therefore the best path to follow is
-that of Pravritti or Inclination and not that of Nivritti or
-Disinclination. *Śridhara*. The above commentaries of Śridhara form one of
-the best expositions of the philosophy of Jaimini. Only the last passage
-requires a little elucidation. Âtmâ in itself is not consciousness. Its
-transformation into consciousness is its highest evolution or Mukti. Now
-this transformation is caused by the perception of objects, it is made
-complete by the perception of all objects and it is made constant by a
-constant desire for all objects. This object, or that object may vanish,
-this man or that woman may die, this flower or that flower may perish,
-but there is no time when the objects as a class do not exist, when
-there is no enjoyer, no object to be enjoyed. So there is a constancy in
-the desires. Therefore one must form attachments, have desires, that
-Âtmâ be made fully conscious. But if Âtmâ be left to itself, it will
-remain Jada or unconscious. There is nothing to be gained by this.
-Therefore one should persistently follow the path of desires as laid
-down in the Karma Kânda of the Vedas, analysed by Jaimini in his Pûrva
-Mimânsâ. One should not give up Vedic Karma and selfish desires as he is
-taught to do in the Jnâna Kânda of the Vedas, the Upanishads, as
-analysed by Vyâsa in his Uttara Mimânsâ, and as expounded by Sri Krishna
-in the Bhagavat Gitâ. It must be remembered that this philosophy of
-Karma, so effectually refuted by Sri Krishna, was suited to the
-materialistic cycle of evolution, when Rajas had to be sought rather
-than put down. The minerals and vegetables were unconscious. The animals
-shewed a slight development in consciousness. But the full development
-was in Man. And this was due to the pursuit of the Path of Inclination
-or Pravritti Mârga up to a late period in the past history of the
-Universe. Notwithstanding the attacks of Sri Krishna, the school of
-Jaimini had its followers till the time of Srî Sankarâchârya, when
-Mandana Misra the most learned Pandit of the time, was its chief
-exponent. After his memorable defeat by Srî Sankarâchârya the Mimânsâkas
-fell into disrepute and Vedic Karma became a thing of the past.)
-
-"Granting all that, O dear Uddhava, all Âtmâs have constantly their
-births and other states, by connection with the body and by reason of
-the divisions of time." (*i.e.* though you may say that Âtmâ itself is
-transformed, still you can not deny that the transformations take place
-by its connection with the body and that they are brought about by
-time.)
-
-"It follows then that the doer of actions, the enjoyer of joys and the
-sufferer of sorrows is dependent on other things." (For Âtmâ is dependent
-upon the body and upon time for its highest transformation. Śridhara
-says if Âtmâ is the doer and enjoyer, why should it do wrong acts and
-suffer sorrows if it were independent. Therefore Âtmâ must be dependent
-according to the Mimânsâkas). Now who in seeking his greatest good would
-worship one that is dependent on others?
-
-"(Do not say that those who know Vedic karma thoroughly are always happy
-and only those that do not know that are unhappy. For it is found that —
-*Śridhara*) even wise men sometimes have no happiness and the ignorant
-have no misery. Therefore it is mere vanity (to speak about Karma).
-Even if (the followers of the path of Pravritti) know how to gain
-happiness and destroy misery, they certainly do not know the means by
-which they can get over death. And when death is near at hand, what
-objects of desire can give joy? What can please the victim that is
-carried to the place of sacrifice? (This is so far as this life is
-concerned. Then as to life after death). What you hear about Svarga
-life, even that is as bad as the life we lead on this earth. For in
-Svarga, there is jealousy, there is fault finding, there are
-inequalities and consequent uneasiness, and there is a finality in the
-enjoyments and the desires are full of obstacles, even as agriculture is
-and so after all even Svarga is of no good. When the Vedic Karma is
-properly performed without any obstacle whatsoever, hear how the
-performer of Karma loses the place acquired by his Karma. He makes
-offerings to Indra and other Devas by the performance of Yajna and he
-goes after death to Svarga. There he enjoys heavenly objects like the
-Devas, objects acquired by his own Karma. He moves in white chariots the
-acquisitions of his own merits, among Deva girls and is adored; by the
-Gandharvas. The chariot moves at his will. It is adorned by small bells.
-He whiles away his time with the Deva girls in the gardens of Svarga and
-he does not know his own fall. But he remains in Svarga only so long as
-his merit is not exhausted. And when the merit is run out, down falls
-the man by the force of time, even against his will. (The above is the
-course after death of those who perform Kâmya Karma, according to Vedic
-rules. This is one way of following Pravritti Mârga. There is another
-way — the following up of one's own inclinations, in disregard of the
-Vedic rules. The next Śloka refers to the performers of prohibited
-Karma). And if again a man indulges in the prohibited acts, through evil
-company, if his senses are not controlled, and if in consequence, he is
-passionate indiscriminate, greedy, excessively fond of women, and unkind
-to other beings, if the man kills animals wantonly and worships Pretas
-and Bhûtas, he goes, driven by the law, to the Narakas and finds there
-intense Tamas.
-
-"Therefore karma (selfish actions) ends in unhappiness. By performing
-karma with the body, men seek the body again. What happiness is there in
-the possession of this transitory body? The Lokas and Lokapâlas have to
-fear me, they who live for one full day of Brahmâ. Even Brahmâ who lives
-for 2 Parardhas has fear of me."
-
-(Therefore Pravritti Mârga leads to evil. It should be shunned and
-Nivritti Mârga should be adopted. This is the purport. *Śridhara*).
-
-(Now Sri Krishna goes on to refute the first two assumptions (1) that
-Âtmâ is the doer and (2) that Âtmâ is the enjoyer). The Gunas create
-actions and the Gunas lead the Gunas. (The Gunas are Satva, Rajas and
-Tamas. These primal attributes of Prakriti give rise to all her
-manifestations. The Indriyas, the senses, and the mind are Sâtvic and
-Râjasic transformations of the Ahankâra manifestation of Prakriti. So
-they are the Gunas first referred to. The senses and the mind create
-actions. Our actions are all prompted by them and not by Âtmâ. So Âtmâ
-is not the doer. It may be said however that the senses and the mind are
-guided by Âtmâ. But it is not so. The primal attributes (Gunas) lead the
-senses and the mind (Gunas). If Satva prevails in a man his actions are
-Sâtvic and so on. It is the nature of the Prâkritic transformations of a
-man that determines his actions. This is only an elaboration of
-Śridhara's notes.)
-
-The Jiva enjoys the fruits of Karma, being connected with the Gunas (The
-enjoyment by Jiva is also due to its phenomenal basis. "Connected with
-the Gunas" *i.e.* connected with the senses and other Prâkritic
-elements. Jivâtma dwells in the body. When the house falls down, he
-occupies another house. When the houses are merely halting stations in
-his long journey, he does not care much for the house itself, he does
-not identify himself with the house. So when Jivâtma becomes indifferent
-to the body, it is not affected by the changes of the body. When a house
-burns, the dweller in the house feels pain. When the house is
-comfortable, the dweller in the house feels pleasure. His connection
-with the house is however temporary.)
-
-As long as there is difference in the Gunas (i. e, Guna transformations,
-Ahankâra &c.), so long there is plurality in Âtmâ. As long as there is
-plurality so long is it dependent on others. (The difference in Jivâtmas
-or individuals, is not due to any difference in Âtmâ, but to differences
-in the Guna transformations which give rise to the body. Dependence is
-also an accompaniment of those transformations),
-
-So long as Jiva is dependent on others it has fear from Íshvara. Those
-that worship the Guna transformations are given up to sorrow and they
-become deluded.
-
-
-
-BONDAGE AND LIBERATION.
------------------------
-
-**SKANDHA XI. CHAP. 11.**
-
-Uddhava asked: —
-
-"Âtmâ dwells in the transformations of the Gunas forming the body. Why
-should it not be bound down by the Gunas. Or if Âtmâ is free (like
-Akâsa) why should it be at all in bondage? What are the indications of
-Âtmâ in bondage and of liberated Âtmâ? Is Âtmâ ever in bondage? (for
-connection with the Gunas is eternal. *Śridhara*) or ever in liberation
-(for if liberation is a state to be acquired, Âtmâ can not be permanent.
-*Śridhara*)"
-
-Sri Krishna replied: —
-
-"Bondage and liberation are terms applied to Me not with reference to my
-real self, but with reference to My Gunas (the Guna limitations, Satva,
-Rajas and Tamas that are subordinate to me. *Śridhara*). The Gunas have
-their origin in Mâyâ. Therefore I have neither liberation nor bondage.
-
-"Sorrow and delusion, joy and grief, even the attainment of body — these
-are all due to Mâyâ. The dream is only an illusory form of the mind,
-even so the course of births is not real. Vidya and Avidyâ both proceed
-from My Mâyâ, O Uddhava. I am one and the Jiva is only my part (as the
-ray is of the sun). The bondage of Jiva is caused by Avidyâ and its
-liberation by Vidya. This is eternally so. Now I shall tell you the
-different indications of the imprisoned and the liberated Jiva. (The
-difference is twofold: that between Jiva and Ísvara and that amongst the
-Jivas themselves. The author first speaks of the former. *Śridhara.*) Jiva
-and Ísvara though of different attributes dwell in the same body. They
-are two birds like each other (for both are manifestations of
-conciousness), companions that have made a nest for themselves (the
-heart), in the tree of body, of their own free will.
-
-"Of these one (the Jiva) eats the fruits of the tree. The other (Ísvara)
-though not a partaker of the fruits is the mightier of the two. For He
-who does not partake of the fruits is the knower of self as of others.
-But the partaker of fruits is not so. He (Jiva) who is joined with
-Avidyâ is always imprisoned. He (Íshvara) who is joined with Vidya is
-always liberated. (Mâyâ of Íshvara or Vidya does not throw a veil round
-and does not delude). The "conscious" are two in every individual. The
-consciousness of Ísvara is universal. Jivâtma however takes upon himself
-the limitations of individuality and becomes the conscious centre in
-every man. "I perceive" "I conceive" "I do," that "I" is Âtmâ
-limited by the sense of individuality. The perception and conceptions
-are of Jivâtma and he is the partaker of the fruits. This "Jiva" element
-in an individual is in bondage. But the Ísvara element in him is always
-liberated. And Jiva becomes liberated, when the individual limitation is
-withdrawn).
-
-"(Now the difference amongst Jivas liberated and imprisoned).
-
-"The liberated (Jiva) though dwelling in the body does not dwell in it as
-it were, even like one aroused from dream. (The awakened man remembers
-his dream body, but realises it as unreal, So the liberated Jiva looks
-upon his body as unreal or a temporary halting station, not a part of
-his own self). The ignorant identifies himself with the body, like the
-man in dream.
-
-"The senses perceive the objects of the senses. The Gunas perceive the
-Gunas. The wise (Jiva) does not identify self with these. He is
-therefore not distracted.
-
-"The ignorant, however, while dwelling in this body brought about by
-prior Karma, in which the senses act, thinks that he is the doer and
-becomes thus bound down.
-
-"The wise one sees with disgust that the actions of others bind him.
-Sleeping, sitting, walking or bathing, seeing, touching, smelling,
-eating or hearing, the wise (Jiva) does not bind himself like the
-ignorant, for in those acts, he realises that the Gunas (senses)
-perceive (and not his self). He dwells in the body, but is not attached
-to it, like the Akâsa, the sun and the air. (Space is in all
-things, but the things form no part of space. The sun becomes reflected
-in water, but is not attached to water. The air moves about all around,
-but does not become attached to any thing). By the force of dispassion,
-the vision becomes clear. All doubts are removed. And the wise (Jiva)
-rises as it were from sleep, and withdraws himself from the diversities
-(of body and other material objects).
-
-"The Jiva whose Prânas, Indriyas, Manas and Buddhi function without the
-promptings of self-centred desires is freed from the attributes of the
-body though dwelling in the body.
-
-"Whether injured by others or adored the liberated Jiva is not affected
-in the least. He neither praises nor blames others for their good or bad
-deeds or words. He knows no merits nor demerits. He looks on all with an
-equal eye. He does not do anything, he does not say anything, he does
-not think on any thing, good or bad. He is self-entranced and moves like
-a sense-less being (Jada).
-
-"If a man well-versed in the Vedas is not fixed in the Supreme, his
-labour becomes fruitless like that of a man who keeps a breeding cow
-that bears no calf. A cow that does not give milk, an unchaste wife, a
-body that is under the control of others, an undutiful son, wealth that
-is not given to the deserving and words that do not relate to me: he
-only keeps these whose lot is misery.
-
-"With discrimination such as this do away with the notion of diversity in
-self. Then fix your purified mind in Me, who am all pervading, and
-desist from everything else.
-
-"If you can not fix your mind in Me, then offer up all your actions
-unconditionally to Me. Hear with faith the words that relate to Me. Sing
-of Me, meditate on my deeds and Incarnations. Imitate these. Whatever
-you do, do that for Me. Then will be gained, O Uddhava, fixed devotion
-to Me. That devotion (Bhakti) is to be acquired in the company of
-Sâdhus."
-
-
-
-SÂDHU AND BHAKTI.
------------------
-
-**SKANDHA XI. CHAP. 11-12.**
-
-Uddhava asked: —
-
-"Who according to Thee is a Sâdhu? What sort of Bhakti (devotion) may be
-offered to Thee?"
-
-Sri Krishna replied: —
-
-"Compassionate, harmless, forgiving, firm in truth, faultless, impartial,
-doing good to all, undisturbed by desires, self restrained, mild, pure,
-not asking for anything, indifferent, temperate in eating with
-controlled mind, steady in the performance of duties, seeking refuge in
-me, given to meditation, careful, profound, patient, having control over
-the six-fold waves (hunger, thirst, sorrow and delusion, infirmity and
-death), not seeking respect from others, but respecting others, able,
-friendly, tender-hearted, wise, such is a Sâdhu. He who knowing my
-injunctions and prohibitions in the performance of one's own Dharma or
-duties of life, even gives them all up for my sake is the best of all
-Sâdhus. Those who seek me and nothing else, whether they know or not
-what I am, are the best of My Bhaktas.
-
-"To see, touch and worship My symbols and my votaries, to serve and adore
-them, the humble recital of My glory and of My deeds, Faith in hearing
-words about Me, constant meditation on Me, the offering up of all gains
-to Me, even the offering up of self in a spirit of service, the
-observance of the sacred days, rejoicings in the houses set apart for Me
-(all good Hindus have a house or room set apart for divine worship),
-initiation according to the Vedic and the Tântric System (one who is
-initiated is to recite the Mantras a certain number of times, every
-morning and evening and he can not take his meals without doing so in
-the morning) to observe fasts, enthusiasm in founding My image for
-worship, and in founding gardens, buildings and towns (in connection
-with My worship) humility and silence about one's own good deeds, — these
-are the indications of Bhakti.
-
-"Sun, Fire, the Brâhmana, the Cow, the Vaishnava, Akâsa, Air, Water,
-Earth, Âtmâ, and all beings — these are the eleven places of my worship.
-
-"I am to be worshipped in the Sun, by Vedic Mantras, in the fire by
-sacrificial Ghee, in the Brâhmana by hospitality, in the cows by the
-offer of grass, in the Vaishnava by friendly treatment, in the Akâsa of
-the heart cavity by meditation, in the air by the contemplation of
-Prana, in the water by offerings of libation and so forth, in the Earth
-by secret Mantras, in Âtmâ by experiencing (Bhōga) and in all beings by
-equality.
-
-"In all these places of worship I am to be meditated on as with four
-hands, bearing conch, disc, club and lotus.
-
-"He who worships Me as above and serves the Sâdhus acquires Devotion.
-Except by devotion that is acquired in the company of Sâdhus, there is
-hardly any other way of liberation. I am not so easily attainable by
-Yoga, Sânkhya, Dharma, the reading of Scriptures, Tapas, gifts,
-charitable acts, fasts, Yajnas, the Vedas, resort to pilgrimage, Niyamas
-or Yâmas as by the company of Sâdhus. Even those that are the lowest by
-birth, those that have Rajas and Tamas predominant in them, the Daityas,
-Asuras, and Râkshasas attain me easily by the company of Sâdhus. The
-Gopis in Vraja, the wives of the Vedic Brâhmanas did not read the Vedas,
-they did not observe fasts, they did not perform Tapas, but they
-attained Me, through the company of Sâdhus. Therefore O Uddhava care not
-for Srutis or Smritis, for biddings and for forbiddings. Have recourse
-to Me, the Âtmâ of all beings, with all devotion, and thou shall have no
-fear from any quarter."
-
-(The following stages are to be marked: —
-
-1. Study of Nature and self instruction.
-
-2. Self discrimination, resuting in the separation of the conscious Âtmâ
- and the unconscious Non-Âtmâ.
-
-3. The understanding of what is bondage and liberation, and the relation
- between Jiva Âtmâ and Parama Âtmâ (Íshvara.)
-
-4. The liberating process during which the rules are to be observed,
- sacrifices to be made, the duties of life to be performed and active
- good done to all beings. During this process, the whole nature of the
- man becomes one of universal compassion and friendliness. Differences
- vanish. Good and bad become all alike.
-
-The Jiva rests in his own Âtmâ, which is the Âtmâ of all beings, and
-then all is calm and quiet.
-
-5. The company of Sâdhus.
-
-6. Devotion acquired in that company.
-
-7. When Devotion (Bhakti) becomes a part of one's nature then the giving
- up of all rules, all karma, whether pertaining to the Srutis or the
- Smritis.)
-
-
-
-WHY GIVE UP ALL KARMA
----------------------
-
-**SKANDHA XI. CHAP. 12.**
-
-This Jiva-Íshvara becomes manifest in the cavities (nerve-plexuses). He
-enters the cavity (called Âdhâra or prostatic plexus) with the Prana
-(energy) of sound (called Para). He passed through subtle mind-made
-forms (Pasyanti and Madhyamâ) in the plexuses called Manipura or Solar
-and Visuddhi or laryngeal and at last comes out as) very gross (Sound
-forms, called Vaikhari, consisting of) Mâtrâ (Measures, such as long,
-short &c), Svara (accents known as Udâtta or high, Anudâtta or low and
-Svarita or mixed; and Varna the (letters of the alphabet, *ka, kha* &c.)
-
-(The ruling idea is that the teachings of the Vedas and the Smritis are
-conveyed in articulate expressions and are adapted to planes
-corresponding to articulation. But articulation is the last and grossest
-expression of Divine Sound energy. In man the highest manifestation of
-sound energy, the primal voice, the divine voice, the first Logos, is
-Para. It is the Light which manifests the whole Universe. In that
-highest plane of manifestation there is no difference between Light and
-Sound. The seat of this Light is Mûla-Âdhâra Chakra.
-
-Coming down the line of material manifestation, this Divine Light, this
-Parâ Voice, become Pasyanti in the plane of causes, of germ thoughts, of
-root ideas, the Karana plane. The germs are transmitted in Man from
-birth to birth and in the Universe from kalpa to kalpa. They are the
-*causes* of the subsequent manifestations, whether individual or
-universal. The Parâ voice passing through the causal plane, becomes the
-root-ideas or germ thoughts.
-
-In the next plane, the Sûkshma plane, the voice becomes the thoughts
-themselves or Madhyamâ.
-
-The last expression of the Voice is the articulate expression, Vaikhari.
-
-The Srutis and Smritis as written or spoken belong to the plane of
-lowest manifestation. They are governed by the root-ideas and ideas of
-the present universe, the root-ideas and ideas of the Rishis through
-whom they are manifested.
-
-When you seek the *unmanifested* light of the Logos, the
-Divine Voice, or only the first manifestation of that Voice, what care
-you about the lower manifestations, the Srutis or Smritis, what care
-you about karma that pertains to the lower planes?)
-
-In Akâsa, fire is only unmanifested heat (Ushman). It is manifested
-further down in the fuel. By friction in the fuel, it becomes a spark.
-Kindled by *Ghee*, it becomes a flame. Such is my manifestation also in
-this articulate Voice.
-
-So also the senses of action (Karmendriyas) and of perception
-(Gnanendriyas), the faculties of Desire, Discrimination, and Egoistic
-perception, the thread-giving Pradhâna, the transformations of Satva,
-Rajas and Tamas are all my manifestations. (*i.e.* I am manifested
-through all of them).
-
-Primally, this Jiva Íshvara is unmanifested and one. But being the resort
-of the three Gunas, being the generator (Yoni) of the lotus (of the
-Universe), He becomes in time of divided energy, and appears as many,
-even like seeds that have found the soil.
-
-This Universe exists in Me, even as a piece of cloth exists in threads.
-
-The essence of this eternal tree of the Universe is Inclination. It
-begets flowers (Karma) and fruits (the fruits of Karma). Two are its
-seeds (Merit and de merit). Hundreds are its roots (the desires). Three
-are its stems (the Three Gunas). Five are its trunks (the five Bhûtas,
-Akâsa &c). The branches produce 5 sorts of juice (Sound, Touch, Sight,
-Taste and Smell); the Ten senses and the mind are the branches of the
-tree. Two birds (Jivâtma and Paramâtmâ) make their nest on it. Wind,
-bile and phlegm are its dermal layers. Joy and sorrow are the two fruits
-of this tree. It extends up to the solar regions (for beyond the Solar
-system, the Trilokî, there are no rebirths.) The country loving Gridhras
-(in the first sense, vultures and in the second sense, home loving men
-of desires) partake of one fruit (sorrow). And the forest frequenting
-Hansas (in one sense swans and in the other sense discriminating men who
-give up desires) partake of the other fruit (joy).
-
-He who, through the favor of his Guru knows the One as becoming Many
-through Mâyâ, knows the Truth.
-
-Thus with the axe of wisdom, sharpened by whole-minded devotion acquired
-by the worship of the Guru, do thou calmly and steadily cut asunder the
-sheaths of Jiva and on attaining Paramâtmâ, do thou let go of the
-instrument itself.
-
-
-
-THE GUNAS.
-----------
-
-**SKANDHA XI. CHAP. 13.**
-
-Satva, Rajas and Tamas — they are the Gunas of Buddhi (Prakriti), not of
-Âtmâ — control Rajas and Tamas by means of Satva and control Satva by
-Satva itself. When Satva grows in Man, he acquires Dharma, which is
-Devotion to Me. By worshipping Sâtvic objects Satva increases and Dharma
-is the outcome. That Dharma kills Rajas and Tamas and it increases
-Satva. When Rajas and Tamas are killed, Adharma which is an outcome of
-Rajas and Tamas is also killed. The scriptures, water, men, land, time,
-karma, regeneration, meditation, mantra and purification these ten are
-accessaries to the Gunas. Of these what the Sages praise are Sâtvic,
-what they blame are Tâmasic, what they neither praise nor blame are
-Râjasic. Have resort to only those of them that are Sâtvic, for then
-Satva will increase. Dharma follows that increase and wisdom follows
-Dharma. But wisdom has its field only so long as memory lasts and the
-(Gunas) are not exhausted. Fire that is produced by the friction of
-bamboo pieces, burns up the forest and is then extinguished of itself
-even so the body caused by disturbance of the Gunas is extinguished of
-itself, (at that final stage).
-
-(Of the scriptures, there are some that speak of inclination, others
-that speak of disinclination. The latter only are to be followed. Water
-which has a purifying effect, as that of a sacred place is to be used,
-not pointed water and wine. Bad men are to be shunned and good men are
-to be mixed with. Quiet solitary places are to be sought, not highways
-and gambling places. The time before sun rise is preferable for
-meditation not night fall or night. Nitya Karma is to be performed, not
-Kâmya Karma. Initiation causes a second birth. Vaishnava or Saiva
-initiation is Sâtvic and not Sakta initiation. Meditation upon Vishnu is
-Sâtvic and not the meditation upon women or upon those that are hostile
-to Vishnu. The Pranava Mantra is Sâtvic and not the lower Kâmya Mantras.
-The cleansing must be purification of self, not the mere cleansing of
-Deva houses. *Śridhara*. By these Sâtvic pursuits, Satva Guna prevails in
-man. When Satva prevails the whole nature becomes Sâtvic. The tendencies
-are all such as to lead to calmness, which is the essence of Satva. This
-is Dharma Adharma is the opposite of this. It is identified with such a
-nature as leads to distractions. Dharma is followed by wisdom. For when
-the mind is calm and tranquil, truths are reflected on it in their
-entirety and they are fully perceived. That wisdom lasts as long as
-memory lasts *i.e.* as long as Dvaita perception exists. But when the
-Gunas themselves die out, wisdom vanishes of itself, for when there is
-direct perception of Brahmâ as self, the knower, the known and knowledge
-become one and the same.)
-
-
-
-HOW TO WITHDRAW FROM THE OBJECTS OF THE SENSES.
------------------------------------------------
-
-**SKANDHA XI. CHAP. 13.**
-
-Uddhava asked: —
-
-"Generally people know that the objects of the senses lead them to
-misery. How is it, O Krishna, they still follow them, like dogs, donkeys
-and goats?"
-
-Sri Krishna replied: —
-
-"When in the heart of the undiscriminating man, the false perception of
-'I' arises (with regard to body &c.), the terrible Rajas takes possession
-of the Manas, which by its origin is Sâtvic. Doubts and desires arise in
-the mind. The mind then dwells upon attributes (oh! how beautiful, what
-a nice thing!) and acquires a strong liking for it. Guided by the
-passions, with the senses uncontrolled, deluded by the strong current of
-Rajas, the helpless man knowingly does things that bear evil fruits. The
-mind of the wise man is also distracted by Rajas and Tamas. But he
-sleeplessly controls his mind and he finds fault (with his own actions).
-He is not attached to them. Gradually and steadfastly offer up your mind
-to Me, being wide awake, at all times, controlling your breath and
-regulating your seat and you will then be able to control your mind.
-
-"This is the Yoga, as taught by My disciples Sanaka and others."
-
-Uddhava asked: —
-
-"When and in what form did you teach Sanaka and others?"
-
-Sri Krishna replied: —
-
-"Sanaka and other Manas-born sons of Brahmâ asked their father as
-follows: — The mind enters the Gunas (objects *i.e.* the mind naturally
-becomes attached to objects) and the Gunas (*i.e.* the objects when
-experienced) enter the mind (as desires). How can those that want to
-cross over (the objects) and to become liberated cause a separation
-between the two?
-
-"Brahmâ could not gauge the question in his own mind. So he meditated on
-me. I appeared before him as a Hansa. (The Swan can discriminate between
-milk and water. So the bird symbolises a discriminating sage.) The
-Brâhmanas and Brahmâ asked: 'Who art thou?' I said as follows: —
-
-"O Brâhmanas does your question relate to Âtmâ — If so, Âtmâ is not many.
-So the question does not arise. And who will reply to whom?
-
-"If your question relates to the body, then also the elements composing
-the body being the same in all beings, and Atmâ being the same in all,
-your question is meaningless.
-
-"Whatever is perceived by the senses and the mind, I am that — There is
-nothing besides Me. Rightly know this to be so.
-
-"True the mind enters the Gunas and the Gunas enter the mind. The Gunas
-and mind thus mutually blended are but the body of the Jiva, its reality
-being My own self. (If mind wedded to objects, be the essence of Jiva,
-then their separation is not possible. But the essence of Jiva is
-Brahmâ. Mind is only attributed to Jiva. And Jiva's connection with the
-objects is through the properties of the mind. Therefore Jiva by
-realising that it is Brahmâ will find out that the objects have no
-existence as far as its own self is concerned. Therefore by devotion to
-Bhagavat, Jiva completely rests in its own self. *Śridhara*. This is not a
-separation of Manas and objects, but the withdrawal of self from both.)
-
-"By constant pursuit of the Gunas, the mind enters the Gunas. The Gunas
-also (being turned into desires) take a firm hold of the mind. Knowing
-Me to be thy own self give up both (the objects and the mind wedded to
-them.)
-
-"Wakefulness (Jâgrat), Dream (Svapna) and Dreamless sleep (Sushupti)
-are states of mind, caused by the Gunas, Jiva is beyond all these
-states. For it is the witness of all these states. The bondage caused by
-mind imparts the actions of the Gunas to Âtmâ. Therefore being fixed in
-Me, the Fourth (*i.e.* beyond the three states of consciousness), get
-over the bondage of mind. That will be the (mutual) giving up of the
-mind and the Gunas. This bondage of Âtmâ is caused by Ahankâra (the
-sense of 'I-ness') Know this to be the cause of all evils. Knowing
-this, be fixed in the Fourth, and give up all thoughts of *Sansâra* (*i.e.*
-of mind and of the connections caused by mind.)
-
-"So long as the idea of manifoldness is not destroyed by reasoning, man
-dreams in ignorance even in the wakeful state, just as in dream, the
-ignorant man thinks he is wakeful.
-
-"All things, other than Âtmâ are unreal. The differences made amongst
-them (such as, this is Brâhmana, this is Sudra, this is Grihasthâ, this
-is Sanyâsîn), the different destinations (Svarga and other Kârmic
-fruits) and even Karma (action) itself are unreal, so far as Âtmâ is
-concerned.
-
-"He who throughout the constantly following stages of life (childhood,
-youth, age etc.) perceives the objects in the wakeful state, with the
-help of all the senses, he who perceives the likes of those objects in
-dream in the heart, and he who brings those perceptions to an end in
-dreamless sleep are all one and the same. For the same memory runs
-through all these states. The Lord of the senses is one and the same.
-(The outward senses perceive the wakeful state. Mind, perceives the
-dream. Buddhi perceives dreamless sleep. Âtmâ, is the Lord of all these
-senses).
-
-"Ponder well over this that the three states of mind are caused in Me by
-the Gunas, through My Mâyâ. Knowing this definitely, cut asunder the
-source of all doubts (Ahankâra) by the sword of wisdom sharpened by
-reasoning, the teachings of Sâdhus, and the Srutis. And worship Me, that
-dwell in the heart.
-
-"Look upon this Universe as a delusion, a play of the mind. Now seen, now
-destroyed. So rapid is the succession, that it is like a whirling fire
-brand that looks circular (on account of the rapid motion, though it is
-not circular). One consciousness appears as many. The phenomenal
-existence (*Vikalpa*) caused by the threefold Guna transformations is but
-Mâyâ, a dream.
-
-"Turn away your sight from this object world. Give up all desires. Be
-calm and find bliss in the perception of self. At times you will have
-experience of the objects in your daily life (for getting the
-necessaries of life). But what you have once thrown aside as unreal
-shall not be able to cause delusion in you. Till the fall of your body,
-the objects will haunt you like things of the past, stored as it were in
-memory alone. This frail body, through which he has known his real self,
-may rise or sit, may move away from its place or come back, just as
-chance will have it, but the Siddha sees it not, even as an inebriate
-person does not see the cloth he puts on.
-
-"The body waits with the Prânas and Indriyas till the *Commenced* Karma
-exhausts itself. But being fixed in Samâdhi, the knower of the truth
-does not care for the body and the object world, which are all visionary
-to him.
-
-"I said all this to the Brâhmanas and came back to my own abode."
-
-
-
-BHAKTI YOGA.
-------------
-
-**SKANDHA XI. CHAP. 14.**
-
-"O Krishna, thou speakest of Bhakti Yoga. Others speak of other
-expedients. Are they all same or is any one of them superior to others?"
-
-Sri-Krishna replied: —
-
-"The tendencies of men are different, according to the differences in
-their nature. So different paths have been spoken of. But the regions
-(or fruits) acquired by the votaries of the other paths, and as created
-by their actions have a beginning and an end, a miserable future and an
-end in Tamas. The pleasures there are small and they are not unmixed
-with sorrow. Where is that bliss to be found in objects that is to be
-found in Me.
-
-"Fixed in Me, and finding bliss in Me, all is blissful to My votaries.
-They do not wish for universal supremacy, they do not ask for supremacy
-over Svarga, Bhûr or Pâtâla, they do not long for Siddhis, they do not
-even ask for Mukti. Surrendering Self to Me they wish for nothing else
-but Myself. Brahmâ, Śiva, Sankarshana, Lakshmî and My own form are not
-so dear to Me, O Uddhava, as thou art to Me. I always seek my Bhaktas.
-It is they only that know what bliss they enjoy, Bhakti consumes all
-impurities, even as fire consumes the fuel. Yoga, Sânkhya, Dharma, study
-of the scriptures, asceticism, or relinquishment nothing wins me so much
-as powerful Bhakti does. I am attained only by faithful Devotion. Bhakti
-purifies the Bhaktas, even though they be Chandâlas by birth.
-
-"Dharma, though combined with truth and compassion, wisdom though wedded
-to asceticism, do not completely purify self, if devotion to Me is
-wanting. How can mind be purified without Bhakti. For by Bhakti the
-hairs stand on end, the heart melts away and tears of bliss run down the
-cheek. Words become choked with devotional feelings. The Bhakta weeps,
-and smiles, and sings and dances forgetting himself. Such a Bhakta (not
-only purifies self, but) he purifies the whole world.
-
-"Gold loses its impurities under fire and regains its own form. Âtmâ
-(Jiva Âtmâ) shakes off its impurities under Bhakti Yoga and regains its
-own form. As Âtmâ becomes more and more purified, by hearing and
-meditating on the sacred sayings about Me, it sees more and more of
-subtle objects, as the eye touched with collyrium does.
-
-"Think of objects and your mind will be attached to objects. Think of Me
-and your mind will be attached to Me. Therefore fix your mind on Me,
-giving up all other thoughts.
-
-"Shun from a distance the company of women and of those that keep the
-company of women. Be self controlled. Go to a solitary place, free from
-dangers and then sleeplessly meditate on Me.
-
-"There is not so much misery, so much bondage from other quarters as from
-the company of women and of those that associate with them."
-
-
-MEDITATION.
------------
-
-**SKANDHA XI. CHAP. 14.**
-
-Uddhava asked: —
-
-"O Lotus-eyed! how to meditate on Thee! Tell me what is the nature of
-that meditation and what it is?"
-
-Sri Krishna replied: —
-
-"Be seated on an Asana (Seat), that is neither high nor low (say, a
-blanket), with your body erect and in an easy posture. Place your hands
-on the lap. Fix your gaze on the tip of the nose (in order to fix the
-mind). Purify the tracks of Prâna by Puraka, Kumbhaka and Rechaka, and
-then again in the reverse way (*i.e.* first breathe in by the left
-nostril with the right nostril closed by the tip of the thumb, then
-close the left nostril by the tips of the ring finger and the little
-finger and retain the breath in both the nostrils. Then remove the tip
-of the thumb, and breathe out through the right nostril. Reverse the
-process by breathing in through the right nostril then retaining the
-breath in both the nostrils and then letting out the breath through the
-left nostril). Practise this Prânâyama gradually with your senses
-controlled.
-
-"'Aum' with the sound of a bell, extends all over, from Mûlâdhâra
-upwards. Raise the 'Aum' in the heart, by means of Prâna (twelve
-fingers upwards) as if it were the thread of a lotus-stalk. There let
-Bindu (the fifteenth vowel sound) be added to it. Thus practise
-Prânâyama accompanied by the Pranava reciting the latter ten times.
-Continue the practice, three times a day and within a month you shall be
-able to control the vital air. The lotus of the heart, has its stalk
-upwards and the flower downwards, facing below (and it is also closed,
-like the inflorescence with bracts of the banana. *Śridhara*). Meditate on
-it however as facing upwards and full-blown, with eight petals and with
-the pericarp. On the pericarp, think of the Sun, the Moon, and Fire one
-after another. Meditate on My form (as given in the text) within the
-Fire. First Meditate on all the limbs. Then let the mind withdraw the
-senses from their objects. Then draw the concentrated mind completely
-towards Me, by means of Buddhi. Then give up all other limbs and
-concentrate your mind on one thing only My smiling face. Do not meditate
-on anything else. Then with draw the concentrated mind from that and fix
-it on Akâsa. Give up that also and being fixed in Me, (as Brahmâ) think
-of nothing at all. You shall see Me in Âtmâ, as identical with all
-Âtmâs, even as light is identical with another light. The delusions
-about object, knowledge and action shall then completely disappear."
-
-
-
-THE SIDDHIS
------------
-
-**SKANDHA XI. CHAP. 15.**
-
-When the senses and the breath are controlled and the mind is fixed on
-Me, Siddhis or powers overtake the Yogi. There are eighteen Siddhis and
-eighteen Dhârânas. Of these, eight belong to me (eight of them are
-normally the powers of Íshvara and they exist in a some what lesser
-degree in those that approach the state of Íshvara. *Śridhara*. The
-remaining ten cause the appearance of Guna *i.e.* they cause an
-excellence of Satva. *Śridhara*.)
-
-1. *Animâ*, the power of becoming as small as an atom.
-
-2. *Mahimâ*, the power of increasing size.
-
-3. *Laghimâ*, the power of becoming light. These three Siddhis relate to
-the body.
-
-4. *Prâpti*, to be in the relation of presiding Devas to the
-corresponding senses of all beings.
-
-5. *Prâkâmya*, power of enjoying and perceiving all objects seen or
-unseen.
-
-6. *Îsitâ*, control over the energies of Mâyâ in Ísvara, over the lower
-energies in other beings.
-
-7. *Vasitâ*, Non-attachment to objects.
-
-8. *Kâmâvasâyitâ*, the power of attaining all desires.
-
-These are My eight Siddhis and they normally exist in Me.
-
-1. The cessation of hunger and thirst.
-
-2. The hearing from a distance.
-
-3. Seeing from a distance.
-
-4. Motion of the body with the velocity of the mind.
-
-5. Assumption of any form at will.
-
-6. The entering into another's body.
-
-7. Death at one's own will.
-
-8. Play with Deva girls.
-
-9. The attainment of desired for objects.
-
-10. Irresistible command.
-
-These are the ten Siddhis that relate to the Gunas. There are also five
-smaller Siddhis.
-
-1. Knowledge of the present, past and future.
-
-2. Control over the Pairs, such as heat and cold &c.
-
-3. Knowledge of other's minds.
-
-4. Suspending the actions of fire, sun, water, poison &c.
-
-5. Invincibility.
-
-These are only illustrative of the Siddhis.
-
-Now about Dhârâna or the modes of concentration of the mind.
-
-Those that fix their mind on Me as pervading the Tanmatras acquire the
-power of becoming an atom.
-
-Those that concentrate their mind on Me as pervading Mahat
-Tatva acquire *Mahima*.
-
-::
-
- The object of Dhârâna ... ... The power acquired
-
- The Lord pervading the atoms ... Laghima.
-
- Do. Do. Sâtvic Ahankâra ... Prâpti.
-
- Do. Do. Sûtra or Mahat ... Prakamya.
-
- Vishnu the Lord of the three Gunas ... Îsita.
-
- Nârâyana, the Fourth, Bhagavat ... Vasita.
-
- Nirguna Brahmâ (Brahmâ without
- attribute) ... ... ... Kâmavasayita.
-
- Lord of Sveta Dvipa (White Island) ... Cessation of hunger
- and thirst.
-
- Akâsa ... ... ... Distant hearing.
-
- Sun ... ... ... Distant vision.
-
- &c. &c. &c.
-
-
-
-
-THE VIBHÛTIS OR POWERS OF THE LORD.
------------------------------------
-
-**SKANDHA XI. CHAP. 16.**
-
-The Sixteenth Chapter deals with the Vibhûtis of the Lord, much in the
-same way as the tenth chapter of the Bhagavad Gitâ.
-
-
-VARNA AND ASRAMA RULES.
------------------------
-
-**SKANDHA XI. CHAP. 17-18.**
-
-The seventeenth and eighteenth chapters deal with Varna and Âsrama
-rules.
-
-
-WHAT ONE IS TO DO FOR MOKSHA.
------------------------------
-
-**SKANDHA XI. CHAP. 19.**
-
-Jnâna (knowledge), Vairâgya (dispassion), Vijnâna (direct knowledge),
-Sraddhâ (faith) Bhakti (Devotion), these are the requisites of Moksha.
-The nine (Prakriti, Purusha, Mahat. Ahankâra and the five Tanmatras),
-the eleven (five Jnânendriyas, five Karmendriyas and Manas), the five
-Bhûtas, the three (Gunas), that knowledge by which one knows that these
-constitute all beings and that the One underlies all these is *Jnâna*.
-
-(The first training of the mind is to break up the objects into their
-component elements. Thus we can mentally resolve any object into its
-chemical elements and this Universe into a mass of homogeneous nebula.
-The process is to be carried further, till we get the Tatvas or the
-ultimate principles of the Sânkhya philosophy. Then the next step is to
-realise the one Purusha as underlying all the Prâkritic principles.)
-
-Vijnâna is the direct knowledge of the One by itself and not as
-pervading all Prâkritic forms. (Jnâna is indirect knowledge and Vijnâna
-is direct knowledge of Brahmâ).
-
-All the existing things being formed of the three Gunas have their
-growth, existence and end. What follows the transformation from one form
-into another, at all the three stages of beginning, middle and end, and
-what remains behind after the destruction of all forms — that is the
-existing (Sat).
-
-The Vedas, direct perception, the sayings of great men and logical
-inference are the four Pramanas or evidences. The world of
-transformations does not stand the test of any of them (*i.e.* there is
-only one real existence, the existence of the transformable and
-transformed world being only relative and unreal. This is the conclusion
-arrived at from all sources. Therefore the wise man becomes
-dispassionate to all things.
-
-Transformation is the end of all actions. Therefore the wise man sees
-all the regions that may be attained by actions from that of Brahmâ
-downwards, as miserable and transitory even like the worlds that are
-seen. This is Vairagya or Dispassion.
-
-I have told you already of Bhakti yoga. Hear again what I say. *Sraddhâ*
-or faith in the nectar like sayings about Me, constant recitals about
-myself, steadiness in worshipping Me, the chanting of devotional hymns,
-the hearty performance of divine service, adoration by means of the
-body, worship of my votaries, the realisation of my existence in all
-beings, the directing of the daily actions and of the daily talks
-towards Me, the offering up of the mind to Me, the giving up of all
-desires, of all objects, of all enjoyments and of all joys for my Sake,
-the performance of Vedic karma all for Me — by all these, Bhakti grows up
-towards Me.
-
-
-
-THE SADHANAS OR EXPEDIENTS.
----------------------------
-
-**SKANDHA XI. CHAP. 19.**
-
-Yâma consists of —
-
-1. *Ahinsâ* — the non-infliction of pain.
-
-2. *Satya* — the practice of truth.
-
-3. *Asteya* — Not even the mental stealing of other's properties.
-
-4. *Asanga* — Non-attachment.
-
-5. *Hri* — Modesty.
-
-6. *Asanchaya* — Want of storing for the future.
-
-7. *Astikya* — faith in religion.
-
-8. *Brahmacharya* — Abstinence.
-
-9. *Mauna* — Silence.
-
-10. *Sthairya* — Steadiness.
-
-11. *Kshamâ* — forgiveness.
-
-12. *Abhaya* — fearlessness.
-
-*Niyama* Consists of
-
-1. *Saucha* — bodily purity.
-
-2. *Do*. — Mental purity.
-
-3. *Japa* — Mental repetition of Mantras or Names of deities.
-
-4. *Tapas* — Asceticism.
-
-5. *Homa* — Sacrificial offering.
-
-6. *Sraddhâ* — faith.
-
-7. *Atithya* — hospitality.
-
-8. *Archanâ* — daily worship.
-
-9. *Tîrthâtana* — Wandering on pilgrimage.
-
-10. *Pararthehâ* — desire for the Supreme object.
-
-11. *Tushti* — Contentment.
-
-12. *Achârya Sevana* — Service of the spiritual teacher.
-
-Yâma and Niyama are practised by men, either for furtherance in life or
-for Moksha.
-
-*Sama* — is fixing the mind on Me (and not mental quietness only).
-
-*Titikshâ* — is forbearance.
-
-*Dhriti* — is the restraint of the senses of taste and generation.
-
-The best *Dâna* (gift) is not to oppress any creature.
-
-*Tapas* — is really the giving up of desires.
-
-*Saurya* — or power is the control of one's own nature.
-
-*Satya* or Truth is the practice of equality.
-
-*Rita* — is truth speaking that does not cause pain.
-
-*Saucha* — is only non-attachment to karma, but *Tyâga* is its
-complete renunciation.
-
-The wealth to be coveted for is *Dharma*. I Myself am *Yajna*, Spiritual
-teaching is the *Sacrificial gift*, *Prânâyama* is the greatest strength.
-
-*Bhaga* is my Lordly state.
-
-The best attainment is devotion to Me.
-
-*Vidyâ* is the removal of the idea of separateness from self.
-
-*Hrî* is the abhorrence of all unrighteous acts (and not merely modesty.)
-
-*Srî* is (not merely riches but) virtues. Happiness is that which seeks
-neither happiness nor misery.
-
-Misery is nothing but longings for enjoyment.
-
-The Sage is he who knows about liberation from bondage.
-
-He is ignorant who knows the body to be self.
-
-The Path is that which leads to Me.
-
-The evil path is that which distracts the mind.
-
-The increase of Satva is Svarga (and not merely Indra Loka.)
-
-The increase of Tamas is Naraka.
-
-Guru is the friend and I am that Guru.
-
-This human body is the house.
-
-He is rich who is virtuous.
-
-He is poor who is not contented.
-
-He who has not conquered the senses is the helpless man.
-
-The Lord is he who is not attached to the objects.
-
-He is a slave who is attached to them.
-
-
-
-THE THREE PATHS: KARMA, JNÂNA AND BHAKTI.
------------------------------------------
-
-**SKANDHA XI. CHAP. 20.**
-
-Uddhava said: —
-
-"Karma is to be performed and Karma is not to be performed — both are Thy
-injunctions in the Vedas. The Vedas speak of merits and demerits in
-connection with Karma. They speak of Varna and Âsrama, of differences in
-time, space, age and objects, of Svarga and Naraka.
-
-"The sense of right and wrong is not innate but it is acquired from the
-scriptures, and the same scriptures undermine all ideas of difference.
-All this is confounding to me."
-
-Shri Krishna replied: —
-
-"I have spoken of three paths leading to the attainment of Moksha by men —
-Jnâna, Karma and Bhakti Yogas. There is no other means what so ever of
-attaining Moksha. Jnâna Yoga is for those that are disgusted with the
-performance of Karma and so give it up.
-
-"Karma Yoga is for those that are not disgusted with the performance of
-Karma but are attached to it.
-
-"He who perchance becomes fond of what is said or spoken of Me, but has
-no aversion for Karma nor has any undue attachment to it is fit for
-Bhakti Yoga.
-
-"Perform Karma so long as you do not feel disgust for it or as long as
-you are not drawn by love for me. True to your duties, perform Yajnas
-but without any selfish desires. Do not perform prohibited Karma. Then
-you shall cross the limits of both Svarga and Naraka.
-
-"By the performance of one's own duties, the purified man may acquire
-pure wisdom (Jnâna) and Bhakti.
-
-"The dwellers of Svarga wish for the human body and so the dwellers of
-Naraka. For that body is a means to the attainment of of Jnâna and
-Bhakti both, not so the Svarga body or Naraka body.
-
-"The far-sighted man does not wish for Svarga or Naraka. He does not even
-wish for human existence. For connection with the body causes selfish
-distractions.
-
-"The sage knows the body as leading to desired for ends. But he realises
-at the same time its transitory character. He therefore loses no time in
-striving for Moksha before the approach of death. Even so the bird loses
-all attachment for its nest and flies away free and happy before the man
-who strikes at the tree succeeds in felling it.
-
-"The human body which is the primal source of all attainments is a well
-built boat, so hard to secure and so cheap when once attained. The Guru
-is at the helm of this boat, and I am the favorable wind that drives it.
-The man that does not cross the ocean of births with such a boat is a
-killer of self.
-
-"*Jnâna*: — When a man feels disgust for karma and becomes dispassionate and
-when his senses are controlled, he should practise concentration of
-mind.
-
-"When in the act of concentration, the mind suddenly goes astray and
-becomes unsettled, you should bring it back under the control of self,
-with unremitting efforts, after allowing it to go in its wandering
-course a little.
-
-"Never neglect however to check the course of the mind with your Prânas
-and senses all controlled. With the help of Sâtvic Buddhi bring the mind
-under the control of self.
-
-"This control of the mind is the highest yoga. The horseman slackens the
-reins at first but never lets go the reins. Reflect on the creative
-manifestation of all objects and then the contrary process of their
-dissolution, according to the Sânkhya method. Do this till the mind
-attains calm.
-
-"By cultivating a sense of disgust, by the growth of dispassion, by
-constant pondering over the teachings of the Guru, the mind gives up its
-delusion.
-
-"By practising Yâma and other ways of Yoga, by discrimination of self and
-by worshipping Me, the mind is able to think of the Supreme.
-
-"If by loss of mental balance, the Yogi does some improper act he should
-burn up the impurity by Yoga alone, but not by any other means (not by
-expiatory rites. *Śridhara*)
-
-"Adherence to the particular path of one's own following is the right
-thing. People have been taught to distinguish between right and wrong,
-not because the acts are not all impure by their very nature but because
-the distinction is necessary to regulate the acts themselves with a view
-to cause a final abandonment of all attachments to them". (It may be said
-that according to the scriptures, Nitya Karma (acts ordained to be daily
-performed) and Naimittika Karma (acts ordained to be occasionally
-performed) purify the mind. Hence they are *right* (*guna*). The killing of
-animals and such other acts make the mind impure. Hence they are *wrong*
-(*dosha*). Expiatory acts (Prâyaschitta) are required to be performed in
-order to remove the consequences of wrong acts. Therefore Prâyaschitta
-is a right thing (*guna*). How can impurities be destroyed by means of
-Yoga then and not by means of Prâyaschitta: therefore it is said that
-what is called Guna (right) and Dosha (wrong) by injunctions and
-prohibitions, is only a regulation of acts. The purport is this. The
-impurities of a man are not the outcome of his own inclinations. Man is
-impure through his natural tendencies. It is not possible for him all on
-a sudden to have disinclination for all actions. Therefore "Do this,"
-"Do not do this," these injunctions and prohibitions only put a
-restriction upon the inclinations of a man and by this means, they lead
-to disinclination. The Yogis have no inclinations. The rules of
-Prâyaschitta are therefore not meant for them. *Śridhara*.)
-
-Bhakti: — "He who has reverential faith in all that is said about Me, and
-who feels disgust for all actions, who knows that desires are identical
-with misery, but is yet in-capable of renouncing them, such a man should
-worship Me, with sincere devotion and firm faith. Though gratifying his
-desires, he should not have any attachment for them, knowing that they
-lead to misery in the end. Those that constantly worship Me according to
-Bhakti yoga as already expounded by Me, have all the desires of their
-heart destroyed as I myself dwell in their heart. The bondage is broken
-asunder, doubts all cease to exist, the accumulated actions fade away,
-when I, the Âtmâ of all, am seen. My Bhakta speedily attains every thing
-that is attained by other means, Svarga, Moksha or even My own abode, if
-he has any desire for any of these. But My Bhaktas who are solely
-devoted to Me do not desire any thing even if it be offered by Me, not
-even final liberation. They are beyond the limits of Guna and Dosha."
-
-
-
-GUNA AND DOSHA OR RIGHT AND WRONG
----------------------------------
-
-**SKANDHA XI. CHAP. 21.**
-
-Those who do not follow the Paths of Bhakti, Jnâna and Karma, but who
-only seek paltry desires become subject to rebirths [For those that are
-matured in Jnâna and Bhakti, there is neither Guna (right) nor Dosha
-(wrong). For those that practise Disinclination, the performance of
-Nitya and Naimittika Karma is Guna, for it leads to the purification of
-the mind. The non-performance of such Karma and the performance of
-prohibited Karma are Dosha, for they give rise to impurities of the
-mind. Prâyaschitta counteracts such Dosha, and therefore it is Guna. For
-those pure men that are fixed in the Path of Jnâna, the practice of
-Jnâna is Guna; Bhakti is Guna to them that are fixed in the path of
-Bhakti. What is opposed to Jnâna and Bhakti is Dosha to the followers of
-those two Paths. All this has been said before. Now Guna and Dosha are
-detailed for those that do not follow the Paths, but seek their selfish
-ends. *Śridhara*]. Devotion to the path of one's following is Guna. The
-reverse is Dōsha. This is the proper definition of Guna and Dosha (Guna
-and Dosha are relative terms. They do not appertain to the thing itself.
-*Śridhara*).
-
-Purity (Sûddhi) or Impurity (Asûddhi), Right (Guna) or Wrong (Dōsha),
-Auspicious (Sûbha) or Inauspicious (Asûbha) are terms applied to the
-same objects, in relation to religion (Dharma), Society (Vyavahara) and
-living (Yâtrâ), respectively.
-
-I have explained Âchâra (rules of life) for those that want to be guided
-by Dharma (Sanctional religion). (Shri Krishna refers here to the works
-of Manu and other Smriti writers).
-
-The body of all beings is composed of the five elements (earth, water
-&c). They are all ensouled by Âtmâ. Though men are all equal, the Vedas
-give different names and forms to their bodies (saying this is Brâhmana,
-this is Sudra, this is Grihasthâ, this is Sanyâsî) with a view to do
-good to them. (The object is to put a limit to the natural inclinations
-and thereby to secure Dharma, Artha, Kâma and Moksha. *Śridhara*).
-Similarly classification is made of time, space and other things, solely
-with the object of regulating actions (Karma.) Thus those lands are
-impure where the black deer do not roam (Details are not given for which
-read the original).
-
-"Those that perform Yajna attain Svarga." Sayings like these do not speak
-of final bliss. They are only tempting words really meant for the
-attainment of Moksha, just like words said to a child to induce him to
-take medicine (The father says; "Eat this Nimba — a bitter drug. I shall
-give you this sweet meat." The child takes the medicine. But the sweet
-meat is not what he really gets, for his real gain is recovery from
-disease).
-
-From their very birth, mortals are attached to some objects of desire,
-to their lives and powers and to their own people. But these are only
-sources of misery in the future. Why should the Vedas then teach
-attachment to such things? Some wrong-minded people say so without
-knowing the purport of the Vedas. They are deluded by the performance of
-fire sacrifices, and they resort to Pitri Yâna (*i.e.* they are drawn to
-rebirths on the Earth after temporary enjoyment of Svarga). They do not
-know their own abode, which am I as seated in their heart, from whom the
-universe proceeds. Not knowing the real meaning of the Vedas, they
-worship Indra and other Devas and perform Yajnas at which animals are
-sacrificed. Parâ, Pasyanti and Madhyamâ remain deep and unfathomable
-like the ocean and only Vaikhari becomes manifest in the Vedas
-originating in Pranava and appearing through the letters of the alphabet
-and the Metres. Even that Vaikhari is not properly understood by men.
-(The Vedas form the sound manifestation of Íshvara. That sound has four
-divisions. *Parâ*, which finds manifestation only in Prâna, *Pasyanti*,
-which finds manifestation in the mind, *Madhyamâ* which finds
-manifestation in the Indriyas, and Vaikhari which finds manifestation in
-articulate expression. Those who have mental vision can only find out
-the first three. But the Vedas as expressed in language are also
-difficult to understand.) Further details are given, which are not
-reproduced.
-
-
-
-THE TATVAS.
------------
-
-**SKANDHA XI. CHAP. 22.**
-
-Uddhava asked: — "How many Tatvas (elemental principles) are there?
-The Rishis give the number differently."
-
-Sri Krishna replied: —
-
-"The discussion about the number is useless. The principles are
-interpenetrating. Their order and their number are therefore differently
-understood."
-
-Uddhava asked: —
-
-"Prakriti and Purusha though different by themselves are interdependent.
-They are never seen separately. Âtmâ is seen in Prakriti (body) and
-Prakriti is seen in Âtmâ (Where is then the difference between body and
-Âtmâ?)
-
-"This is my doubt."
-
-Sri Krishna replied: —
-
-"Prakriti and Purusha are essentially different."
-
-
-
-PRAKRITI AND PURUSHA.
----------------------
-
-**SKANDHA XI. CHAP. 22.**
-
-(1). *Prakriti* is subject to manifestation.
-
-(2). It is subject to transformation.
-
-(3). It consists of the transformations of the Gunas.
-
-(4). It is various, — broadly speaking threefold, Adhyâtma, Adhi-bhûta and
-Adhi-daiva.
-
-(5). It is not self manifest.
-
-Âtmâ is one, immutable and self manifest.
-
-Ahankâra is at the root of all doubt and delusion. They last as long as
-the mind is turned away from me.
-
-
-RE-INCARNATION.
----------------
-
-**SKANDHA XI. CHAP. 22.**
-
-Uddhava asked: —
-
-"Those that are turned away from Thee take on and give up bodies. Tell me
-something about rebirth."
-
-Sri Krishna replied: —
-
-"The mind of men imprinted with karma moves with the five senses from
-body to body. Âtmâ (under the denomination of 'I') accompanies the
-mind.
-
-"The mind (after death) thinks of such seen and unseen objects as the
-karma of men places before it. It awakes (unto those objects, it thinks
-of) and fades away (in respect of previous objects). The memory
-(connecting the present with the past) dies away in consequence.
-
-"When one loses all thoughts of one's body on account of close
-application to another object (body), through some cause or other,
-that utter forgetfulness is his death." (By karma, man gets
-after his so-called death either a deva body, or a body of inflictions.
-In the former case, it is through pleasure and desire and in the latter
-case, through fear and sorrow, that the Jiva utterly forgets his former
-body. That is the death of the Jiva who used to identify himself
-with the former body and not the destruction of Jiva as of the body.
-*Śridhara*.
-
-The Deva-body is the phenomenal basis of the Jiva in Svarga Loka. The
-body of inflications is the astral or Kâmic body, in Bhûta, Preta and
-Pisâcha Loka, where the Jiva undergoes inflictions. The Jiva identifies
-itself with these new bodies or new states in such a way as to forget
-completely its former physical body. The connection with the former body
-is thus completely cut off in the mind. This is the death of the Jiva in
-relation to its previous body.)
-
-"The birth of a Jiva is the acceptance of a body as one's own self. It is
-even like dream or fancy. In dream or fancy, a man does not know his
-present self as the former self. The mind by its application to a new
-body causes a birth into that body, and the ideas of good, bad and
-indifferent crop up in self.
-
-"Though a father may have neither friend nor enemy, he is affected by the
-connections formed by his vicious son, even so it is with Âtmâ. Growth
-and decay are happening every moment in the body. But they are hardly
-perceptible owing to the extreme subtlely of time.
-
-"The burning lamp, the flowing current, the ripening fruit, pass through
-stages, as all beings also pass through the stages of childhood, youth
-and age. We say it is the same fire, it is the same water (though the
-particles of fire and water are continually changing.) So we say, it is
-the same man. The understanding and the words of ignorant men are all
-confounding (for they speak and think assuming that the same body
-continues). But even the ignorant man does not acquire birth or death,
-by Karma engendered by self, for the self is immortal and the notion of
-birth and death is itself a delusion with reference to self. Fire, as an
-element lasts through out the Kalpa. But it seems to come into existence
-or to become extinguished. Fecundation, foetal state, birth, childhood,
-grown up childhod, youth, ripeness, age and death are the nine states of
-the body. These states of the body which is other than self are only
-fancies of the mind (so far as self is concerned). Some accept them as
-their own, by contact with Gunas and some reject them to some extent (by
-discriminating knowledge). From the death of the body inherited from the
-father and the birth of another child body, one can infer the birth and
-death of his body only, he the knower not being affected by either birth
-or death. The seer of the growth and decay of the tree is different from
-the tree itself, so the seer of the different states of the body is
-different from the body itself. One is bound down to the wheel of
-rebirths, by want of discrimination. One becomes Deva or Rishi by the
-action of Satva, Asura or man by the action of Rajas and Bhûta or animal
-by the action of Tamas. As a man seeing the performance of singers and
-dancers involuntarily imitates them (in the mind) even so Âtmâ follows
-the actions of Buddhi. The tree seems to move when the water is moving.
-The earth seems to roll when the eyes are rolling. Births and rebirths
-are as unreal to Âtmâ as are dreams but they have an existence even as
-objects in dream have an existence so long as the mind thinks of those
-objects.
-
-"Whatever others may say or do unto you, do not care the least about
-that, but with single minded devotion restore self by self."
-
-Uddhava said: —
-
-"Human nature is human nature, O Lord. Hew can one bear all that is said
-or done by the impious?"
-
-
-FORBEARANCE.
-------------
-
-**SKANDHA XI. CHAP, 23.**
-
-Sri Krishna said: —
-
-"In days of yore, there was a wealthy Brâhmana in the Malava regions. He
-earned money by the evil ways of the world, but did not spend any thing
-on charity. In time the wealth was all gone. He repented and felt
-disgust for wealth. He renounced the world and became a wandering
-Bhikshu. He went to villages for alms. People called him all sorts of
-names — thief, hypocrite and so on. Some pelted him, others abused him,
-others put him to chains and confined him.
-
-"He bore all this with perfect calm. This is how he used to reason within
-himself: —
-
-"These men, the Devas, self, the planets, Karma and Kâla (periodicity)
-none of them is the cause of my happiness or misery. Mind is the one
-cause, which causes the wheel of births to move. They make friends and
-enemies, who do not conquer the mind. The connection with the body is
-only an act of the mind. Deluded men however think, this is my body and
-they go astray.
-
-"One man can not be the cause of grief and joy to another. Âtmâ in all
-men is not the doer. All acts proceed from the gross and the subtle
-body. If the tooth bites the tongue, who should you be angry at?
-
-"If the Devas (the Adhidevas) be the cause of sorrow, it is not their
-Âtmâ that is so but their bodily transformations. And the Devas (who
-guide the senses) are the same in all beings. If one limb causes pain to
-another limb, who should be the object of anger?
-
-"If self is the cause of joy and sorrow, then you have not to look to the
-outside world. But every thing else besides Âtmâ is only a seeming
-existence. Therefore there is no real existence of any cause of joy or
-grief and there is no joy or grief.
-
-"If the planets by their position at birth bring about joys and sorrows,
-then no body is to blame for that. And the planetary Purusha is separate
-from the bodies of the planets. There is none to be angry at. Karma can
-not be the cause of Joy and sorrow. Karma has its sphere in which there
-is both a conscious and an unconscious element. The unconscious element
-undergoes transformation and the conscious element in search for the
-desired object leads to action. But the body is absolutely unconscious.
-And Purusha (or Self) in man is absolutely conscious. There is no root
-of Karma either in body or in Purusha.
-
-"*Kâla* is part of Âtmâ, for Kâla is an aspect of Íshvara. Fire does not
-destroy its spark, snow does not destroy its flakes.
-
-"One who is awakened to his real self has fear from no one else. Purusha
-has no connection with the pairs of opposites." (Cold and heat, happiness
-and misery &c.)
-
-
-SANKHYA.
---------
-
-**SKANDHA XI. CHAP. 24.**
-
-"There is only one perception and one undivided object of perception,
-when there are no Yugas (i.e. in Pralaya), in Satya Yuga, as well as for
-men skilful in discrimination, that object of perception is Brahmân, the
-absolute Truth, beyond the reach of worlds and of mind. I became two
-fold, by means of Mâyâ. Of the two one is Prakriti consisting of causes
-and effects. And the other is Purusha.
-
-"Following the Kârmic record of Jivas, I disturbed Prakriti, and Satva,
-Rajas and Tamas became manifest. The Gunas gave rise to Sutra or Thread
-(which represents Kriyâ Śakti). Mahat (Jnâna Śakti) is not separate from
-Sutra (Sutra and Mahat form one Tatva. It is two-fold, on account of its
-double aspect of Jnâna and Kriyâ or knowledge and action).
-
-"Ahankâra is the transformation of Mahat. It is three-fold, Sâtvic or
-Vaikâric, Râjasic or Taijasa and Tâmasic.
-
-"The Adhi-daivas and Manas came from Sâtvic Ahankâra, and the 5 Tanmâtras
-from Tâmasic Ahankâra.. The five Mahâ bhutas came from the five
-Tanmâtras.
-
-"Prompted by Me, all these principles united together to form the Egg
-which was My own abode. I incarnated in that Egg which was immersed in
-the (Pralayic) water (as Sri Nârâyana or Virât Purusha).
-
-"Out of my navel grew the Lotus called the Universe. Brahmâ was
-manifested in that Lotus.
-
-"He brought into manifestation the Lokas (Bhûr, Bhuvar &c.,) and the
-Lokapâlas.
-
-"Svar was the abode of the Devas, Bhuvar of the Bhûtas, Bhûr of men, the
-higher Lokas of the Siddhas and the Lower Lokas of the Asuras and Nâgas.
-
-"All actions (Karma) bear fruits in the Trilokî. Mahar, Jana and Tapas
-are attained by Yoga, Tapas and Renunciation. My abode (Vaikuntha, which
-is beyond the Seven Lokas) is attained by Bhakti Yoga.
-
-"All beings in this Universe wedded to karma are made by Me, who as
-Kâla am the Dispenser of all karma, to merge out of or to dive down in
-the flow of Gunas (*i.e.* they are made to go up to the higher Lokas or to
-come down to the lower Lokas).
-
-"All things big or small, thick or thin are pervaded by Prakriti and
-Purusha.
-
-"That which is at the beginning and at the end of a thing is also at the
-middle, as in the case of ornaments and earth-pots, the intervening
-transformations having a separate existence only for the sake of
-conventional use (thus the ornaments of gold are called by different
-names only for temporary uses. But they are gold when the forms are made
-and destroyed. The forms are all transitory and the ornaments are
-essentially gold).
-
-"That is only Real which gives rise to the original transformation, which
-is at the beginning and at the end. Prakriti the material cause, Purusha —
-that pervades Prakriti and Kâla or periodicity which causes disturbance
-in the Gunas — these are three in one and I am that three-fold Brahmâ. The
-creative process flows on in order of succession without a break. The
-multifarious creation unfolds itself to serve the purposes of the jivas
-and it lasts so long as the period of Preservation continues and so long
-as Íshvara looks at it.
-
-"The order is reversed in Pralaya, and transformations are merged in the
-principles from which they proceeded. The body merges in to the food
-grains. The food grains merge in to the roots of plants. The roots merge
-into the earth, The earth merges into smell, smell into water, water
-into Taste, Taste into fire, fire into Form, Form in to Air, Air into
-Touch, touch into Akâsa and Akâsa into sound.
-
-"The Indriyas merge into the Adhi-daivas. The Adhi-daivas merge into the
-Manas. Manas merges into Ahankâra.
-
-"Ahankâra merges into Mahat (*i.e.* gives up the unconscious portion and
-becomes Jiva Śakti and Kriyâ Śakti itself. *Śridhara*.)
-
-"Mahat merges into the Gunas.
-
-"The Gunas merge into unmanifested Prakriti. Prakriti merges into Kâla.
-Kâla merges into Jiva. Jiva merges into Âtmâ. Âtmâ rests in self.
-
-"When these processes are meditated on, there is no delusion."
-
-
-SATVA RAJAS AND TAMAS.
-----------------------
-
-**SKANDHA XI. CHAP. 25.**
-
-"*Sama* or Control of the mind, *Dama* or Control of the Senses, forbearance,
-discrimination, tapas, truthfulness, compassion, memory, renunciation,
-contentment, faith, shame and charitableness are the attributes proper
-of *Satva*. Selfish desire, Selfish exertion, pride, discontent, variety,
-selfish-invocation of the Devas, idea of separateness, material
-enjoyment, love of excitement, love of fame, derision, power and
-violence, are the attributes proper of *Rajas*.
-
-"Anger, greed, untruthfulness, cruelty, begging, parading of religion,
-languor, quarrel, repentance, delusion, grief, dejection, sleep,
-helplessness, fear and indolence are the attributes proper of *Tamas*.
-
-"The sense of I-ness and My-ness is produced by the mixture of the three
-Gunas (I have Sama, selfish desire and anger. My Sama, selfish desire
-and anger. Thus *I* and *My* are common to all the three Gunas. *Śridhara*)
-All our dealings having the elements of Manas (Sâtvic), the Tanmâtras
-(Tâmasic), the Indriyas and the Prânas (Râjasic) in them, proceed
-from a mixture of the three Gunas. Devotion to Dharma (Sâtvic), Kâma
-(Râjasic) and Artha (Tâmasic), that bears the fruits of faith (Sâtvic),
-attachment (Râjasic) and wealth (Tâmasic) is also based on a
-mixture of the Gunas.
-
-"The performance of religion for the gratification of desires (Kâmya
-Dharma which is Râjasic), the performance of the duties of married life
-(Grihasta Dharma which is Tâmasic) and the performance of the daily
-and occasional duties assigned to one's position in life (Svadharma
-which is Sâtvic) are based on a union of the three Gunas. Man is
-Sâtvic, when he has got the Sâtvic attributes. He is Râjasic when he has
-got the Râjasic attributes. He is Tâmasic when he has got the Tâmasic
-attributes.
-
-"When a man or woman worships Me with unselfish devotion and by the
-performance of duties, he or she is Sâtvic.
-
-"The person who worships Me, for the attainment of desires is Râjasic.
-
-"The person who worships Me with a view to do injury to others is
-Tâmasic.
-
-"Satva, Rajas and Tamas are attributes that grow in the minds of jivas,
-they are not My attributes.
-
-"When Satva prevails over the other two Gunas, man acquires
-religiousness, wisdom, and other attributes, as also happiness. When
-Rajas prevails, it causes distraction, attachment and a sense of
-separateness. Man acquires karma, fame and wealth. But he becomes
-miserable.
-
-"When Tamas prevails, delusion, inaction and ignorance follow.
-
-"When the Mind attains calm, the senses become abstemious, the body free
-from fear and the mind free from attachments, Satva grows up and makes
-it easy to perceive Me.
-
-"When the mind becomes distracted by actions, and desires multiply, when
-the senses of action become disordered and the mind always wanders away,
-Rajas has its hold over man.
-
-"When the mind can not grasp, when it languishes, when even desires do
-not crop up, and there is indolence, melancholy and ignorance, they all
-proceed from Tamas.
-
-"With Satva, the Deva element prevails, with Rajas, the Asura element
-prevails and with Tamas, the Râkshas element prevails.
-
-"The waking is from Satva, dream from Rajas and deep sleep from Tamas.
-
-"By Satva, people go higher and higher up, by Rajas they move about in
-the middle, and by Tamas they move lower down.
-
-"Satva takes one to Svarga Loka, Rajas to human Loka and Tamas to Naraka.
-Those who are void of Gunas attain Me.
-
-"Action that is offered up to Me or that is unselfish is Sâtvic. Selfish
-action is Rajasa. Heartless action is Tamasa.
-
-"Sâtvic wisdom is that which relates to Âtmâ, as separate from the body.
-
-"Râjasic is half perceived wisdom. Tâmasic is wisdom relating to the
-material universe.
-
-"Wisdom centred in Me is Nirguna or without Gunas.
-
-"Sâtvics like to reside in the forest. Râjasics in human habitations and
-Tâmasics in gambling houses. Houses where I am worshipped are beyond all
-the Gunas. Births are caused by Guna and Karma. Those who conquer these
-become devoted to Me and attain my state."
-
-
-
-COMPANY.
---------
-
-**SKANDHA XI. CHAP. 26.**
-
-"King Pururavas was forsaken by Urvasi. He then thought within himself
-what the body of a woman was composed of, where its beauty lay, and the
-origin and the end of that body. 'Therefore' said he 'wise men should
-not associate with women or those that are addicted to women. By contact
-of the senses with their objects, mind gets disturbed, not otherwise.
-What you have not seen or heard of before can not disturb your mind. Let
-not the senses indulge in objects and mind will attain calm.' Keep
-company with Sâdhus.
-
-"Give up bad company. Acquire from the Sâdhus devotion to Me and you
-shall ultimately attain Moksha."
-
-
-KRIYA YOGA AND IDOL WORSHIP.
-----------------------------
-
-**SKANDHA XI. CHAP. 27.**
-
-(The details will not be interesting to the general reader).
-
-
-JNÂNA YOGA.
------------
-
-**SKANDHA XI. CHAP. 28.**
-
-"Do not either praise or blame other men and their actions. Look upon all
-as one, pervaded by the same Prakriti and the same Purusha. By
-criticising others, the mind is directed to a false channel and it
-deviates from the right path. What is good or what is bad of Dvaita? By
-direct perception, reasoning, self intuition, and scriptural teachings,
-know every thing in this manifested Universe to have a beginning and an
-end and to be thus unreal. Therefore free yourself from all attachments.
-(The ways of acquiring discriminative knowledge are then given in
-eloquent terms for which read the original).
-
-"Clearing up all doubts by discrimination, the sage should be fixed in
-the bliss of self, having abstained from every thing else.
-
-"The body of gross matter is not Âtmâ. The Indriyas, their guiding Devas,
-Manas, Buddhi, Chitta and Ahankâra are not Âtmâ. The Bhûtas, the
-Tanmatras and Prakriti are not Âtmâ. These do not affect the seer.
-Whether the clouds gather or disperse, what is that to the Sun.
-
-"Akâsa is not affected by the attributes of air, fire, water and earth
-nor by the changes of seasons.
-
-"The immutable is not affected by the impurities of Satva, Rajas and
-Tamas, however often they may cause the birth and rebirth of the Ahan
-principle.
-
-"But still (the unliberated sage) should avoid contact with the Gunas. He
-should by firm devotion to Me, cast off all attachments and all
-passions. When the disease is not properly treated, it gives trouble
-again and again. So when attachments are not completely removed and
-Karma is not counteracted they trouble the imperfect Yogi.
-
-"The yogis that deviate from the path on account of obstacles that are
-spread out for them by the Devas through men (For the Sruti says: — "The
-Devas do not like that men should know all this." *Śridhara*) are re-united
-to the path of Yoga in a better birth through the practices of their
-former birth.
-
-"The immature Yogi may be overpowered by diseases and other grievances of
-the body. He should overcome some of them by Yoga concentration (by
-concentration on the Moon, the Sun and others he should overcome heat
-cold &c., *Śridhara*), others by prescribed postures accompanied by
-retention of breath (diseases caused by gaseous derangement are to be
-overcome by postures, accompanied by retention of breath), and some
-others by Tapas, Mantra and medicine. He should overcome some evils by
-meditating on Me, by taking My name, and by making rehearsals about Me.
-He should overcome other evils by following the lords of Yoga.
-
-"Some practise these to keep themselves young and free from diseases,
-solely with the object of attaining some Siddhis. This is not approved
-of by good people. The effort is fruitless. The body has an end. True in
-following the path of Yoga, the body sometimes becomes free from
-diseases and infirmities. But the Yogi should put no faith on these
-Siddhis.
-
-"When the Yogi gives up all desires, becomes fixed in self-bliss, and
-makes Me his all in all, he is not overcome by obstacles."
-
-
-BHAKTI YOGA.
-------------
-
-**SKANDHA XI. CHAP. 29.**
-
-Uddhava said: —
-
-"This path of Yoga seems to Me to be difficult of pursuit. Tell me O
-Achyuta, some means by which man may attain perfection without such
-exertion. Generally those that try to concentrate their mind become
-tired at last, being unsuccessful in their attempts. The discriminating
-sage has recourse to Thy lotus-feet, the fountain of all bliss. Tell me
-the path that leads to Thee."
-
-Shri Krishna replied: —
-
-"Do all actions for Me and bear me in mind as much as you can. Offer up
-the mind and all thoughts to Me. Be attached to the duties of
-Bhâgavatas. Live in sacred lands, where my Bhaktas dwell. Follow what
-they do — see Me in all beings as well as in self, pure as Akâsa. With the
-eye of pure wisdom, look upon all beings as my existence and respect
-them as such. Brâhmana or Chandâla, stealer or giver, big as the sun or
-small as his ray, tender hearted or cruel, the sage must look upon all
-alike. Then he shall have neither rivalry, nor jealousy nor reproach for
-others. His egoism shall also be gone. Mind not the ridicule of friends,
-mind not the bodily differences that may cause a feeling of shame, but
-salute even horses, Chandâlas, cows and asses. As long as you do not
-learn to see Me in all beings, do not give up this practice in speech,
-body and mind. There is not the least chance of failure in the Bhâgavata
-Path. Even what is otherwise fruitless becomes a Dharma, when it is
-unselfishly offered up to Me. There is no higher wisdom, no higher
-cleverness than this that the Real is attained by the Unreal, the
-Immortal is attained by what is mortal. This is the essence of Brahmâ
-Vidyâ.
-
-"Now that you have learned all this give it unto those that are
-deserving.
-
-"Go Uddhava now to Badari Âsrama and follow what I have said."
-
-THE END.
---------
-
-**SKANDHA XI. CHAP. 30.**
-
-Uddhava went to Badari. Sri Krishna advised the Yadus to leave Dvârakâ.
-"Let the females, children, and the aged go to Sankha-Uddhara and let us
-go to Prabhâsa." The Yadu chiefs went to Prabhâsa. They drank the wine
-called Maireya and got intoxicated. They quarreled and fought with one
-another. They snatched the fatal reeds and killed one another. Râma went
-to the Sea-side and by practicing Samâdhi, left this world. All was now
-over. Sri Krishna sat under an Asvatha tree (religious fig). A huntsman
-named Jara took Him for a deer and pierced him with a spear, formed of
-the fatal pestle.
-
-The huntsman then saw Krishna bearing four hands and became terrified.
-"Fear not" said Sri Krishna "you shall go to heaven." The chariot came
-down from the heaven and took up the huntsman.
-
-Daruka, the charioteer of Sri Krishna traced Him to the spot.
-
-Sri Krishna asked him to inform all friends at Dvârakâ of the death of
-the Yadu chiefs, the disappearance of Râma and of His own state. "Do
-not remain any more at Dvârakâ, for the Sea shall swallow it up. Let our
-parents and all others go to Indraprastha under the protection of
-Arjuna."
-
-Daruka saluted Krishna and went away.
-
-The Garuda marked chariot of Sri Krishna came from high above. Brahmâ and
-all other Devas gathered to witness the scene.
-
-The Lord disappeared from the earth and truth, Dharma, forbearance,
-glory and Lakshmî all followed Him.
-
-There was great rejoicing in the heavens. The Devas sang and flowers
-rained.
-
-Daruka gave the information to Vâsudeva and Ugrasena. All came to see
-the place of the occurrence. Vâsudeva died of grief. Some of the ladies
-followed their husbands to death. Those that remained were escorted by
-Arjuna to Indraprastha. He installed Vajra as the successor of the Yadu
-chiefs. The Pândavas made Parikshit their successor and left
-Indraprastha for the Final Journey.
-
-**END OF THE ELEVENTH SKANDHA.**
-
-.. clearpage::
-
-THE TWELFTH SKANDHA.
-=====================
-
-**SKANDHA XII. CHAP. 2.**
-
-When the present Kali Yuga will be about to end, Bhagavân will incarnate
-as KALKI. He will take birth at Sambhal as the son of Vishnu-Yasas.
-
-On His advent, Satya Yuga will make its appearance. The Sun, the Moon
-and the Jupiter will then enter together the constellation of Pushyâ.
-(Jupiter enters the constellation of Pushyâ in Cancer every twelve
-years, and there may be a conjunction of that planet with the Sun and
-the Moon on new Moon nights, but the text here means the *entering
-together* of the three. *Śridhara*.)
-
-One thousand one hundred and fifteen years will expire from the birth of
-Râjâ Parikshit to the beginning of King Nanda's reign. (But in the
-detailed account given in the Bhâgavata Purâna, the period comes up to
-1448 years, as shewn by Śridhara.)
-
-Of the Seven Rishis (forming the constellation of the Great Bear), the
-two that are first seen to rise above the horizon have through their
-middle point a correspondence with some constellation (in the Zodiac).
-The Rishis remain united to that constellation for one hundred mortal
-years.
-
-At present (*i.e.* when Sukadeva was reciting Bhâgavata to Râjâ
-Parikshit), the Rishis are united to Maghâ.
-
-The form of the Great Bear or the constellation of the Seven Rishis is
-given below.
-
-.. figure:: images/bhagap419.png
-
-.. parsed-literal::
-
- 6 5 X
- X X 1
- X X X X
- 7 4 3 2
-
-Śridhara gives the following names:
-
-No. 1 is Marichi.
-
-No. 2 is Vasishtha with Arundhâti.
-
-No. 3 is Angiras.
-
-No. 4 is Atri.
-
-No. 5 is Pulastya.
-
-No. 6 is Pulaha.
-
-No. 7 is Kratu.
-
-"Such being the configuration of the Rishis, the two that are first seen
-to rise above the horizon are Pulaha and Kratu. The longitudinal line
-passing through the middle point of the line joining them crosses some
-one of the 27 constellations, Asvini, Bharani and others. The Rishis
-have their position in that constellation for one hundred years."
-*Śridhara*.
-
-So soon as the Krishna named divine body of Vishnu ascended the heavens,
-Kali entered this Loka. As long as the Lord of Lakshmî touched this
-Earth with His lotus feet, Kali could not overtake the planet. ( While
-Sri Krishna was still on this Earth, Kali appeared in its Sandhyâ or
-Dawn. When Sri Krishna disappeared, the Sandhyâ period was over, and the
-period proper of Kali set in. *Śridhara*).
-
-The Yuga shall become darker and darker, as the Seven Rishis will pass
-on from Maghâ to Pûrva-Âshâdhâ, *i.e.*, till the period of king Nanda.
-(The darkness will go on increasing till the reign of king Pradyotana.
-It will still go on increasing very much till the reign of king Nanda.
-*Śridhara*.
-
-This gives us a cycle of 1,000 years. The line of the Ecliptic is
-divided into 27 constellations, which form the 12 signs of the Zodiac.
-Each sign of the Zodiac contains 9 parts of these constellations, if
-each constellation be divided into four parts.
-
-Thus Aries contains Asvini, Bharani and 1/4 Krittika;
-
-Taurus contains 3/4 Krittika, Rohini and 1/2 Mrigasiras;
-
-Gemini contains 1/2 Mrigasiras, Ârdrâ and 3/4 Punarvasu;
-
-Cancer contains 1/4 Punarvasu, Pushyâ and Ashlesha;
-
-Leo contains Magha, Pûrva Falguni and 1/4 Uttar Falguni;
-
-Virgo contains 3/4 Uttara Falguni, Hastâ, and 1/2 Chitra;
-
-Libra contains Chitra, Svâti and 3/4 Visâkhâ;
-
-Scorpio contains 1/4 Visâkhâ, Anurâdhâ and Jyeshthâ;
-
-Sagittarius contains Mûla, Pûrva Âshâdha and 1/4 Uttara Âshâdhâ;
-
-Capricornus contains 3/4 Uttara Âshâdhâ, Sravanâ, and 1/2 Dhanishtha;
-
-Aquarius contains 1/2 Dhanishthâ, Sata-bhishâ, and 3/4 Pûrva Bhâdrapada;
-
-Pisces contains 1/4 Pûrva Bhâdrapada, Uttara Bhâdrapada and Revati.
-
-Abhijit is included in Uttarâshâdhâ and Sravana. From Maghâ to Pûrva
-Âshâdhâ there are eleven constellations. This gives a cycle of 1,000
-years.
-
-The reference to king Nanda's reign leaves no doubt as to the cycle
-being one of 1,000 years, for the period is given in this very chapter
-as 1,115 years.
-
-The lines of Kshatriya kings have been given in the Purâma, The lines of
-Brâhmanas, Vaisyas and Sudras are to be similarly known.
-
-Devâpi, brother of Santanu and Maru of the line of Ikshvâku are now
-waiting at Kalapa. They will appear towards the end of Kali Yuga and
-will again teach Varna and Âsrama Dharma. (They will start again the
-lines of divine kings which came to an end in the Kali Yuga. *Śridhara*.)
-
-
-
-PRALAYA.
---------
-
-**SKANDHA XII. CHAP. 4.**
-
-Four thousand Yugas form one day of Brahmâ. This is also the period of
-one Kalpa, during which fourteen Manus appear. The night of Brahmâ
-follows for an equally long period. The three worlds — Bhûr, Bhuvar and
-Svar then come to an end. This is called *Naimittika* Pralaya. Drawing the
-universe within self, Nârâyana sleeps at the time over Ananta and Brahmâ
-sleeps too. (*Nimitta* is cause. Naimittika is proceeding frome some
-cause. This Pralaya procedes from the sleep of Brahmâ as a *cause*).
-
-When two Parârddhas of years expire, the seven subdivisions of Prakriti
-(Mahat, Ahankâra, and the five Tanmatras) become subject to dissolution.
-(The life period of Brahmâ is two Parârddhas). This is called *Prâkritika*
-Pralaya. When this dissolving factor comes in, the whole combination
-known as the Cosmic Egg breaks up. (As the subdivisions of Prakriti as
-well as the Cosmic Egg which is formed by their combination become all
-dissolved, this Pralaya is called Prâkritika Pralaya). With the advent
-of this Pralaya, there will be no rains for one hundred years. Food will
-disappear. People will devour one another. The Sun will draw in moisture
-from the seas, from the body, and from the earth, but will not give it
-back. The fire called Samvartaka, arising from the mouth of
-Shankarshana, will consume the Pâtâlas. Winds will blow for one hundred
-years, followed by rain for another hundred years. The universe will be
-covered by one sheet of water. Water will draw in earth, fire will draw
-in water, and so on till Pradhâna in due time will devour all the Gunas.
-Pradhâna is not measured by time, and it does not undergo
-transformation. Beginningless, endless, unmanifested, eternal, the
-cause of all causes, without diminution, it is beyond the reach of
-Gunas, the rootless root, that passes comprehension, like the void.
-
-Jnâna is the ultimate resort of Buddhi (the perceiver or knower), the
-Indriyas or senses (perception, knowledge or the instruments of
-perception and knowledge) and the objects (things perceived and known).
-It is Jnâna alone that appears in this threefold form. That which is
-subject to perception, which in its nature is not separate from its
-cause, and which has both beginning and end is no real substance. The
-lamp, the eye and the object seen are not different from light itself.
-So Buddhi, the senses and the objects are not separate from the one
-Truth (Brahmân, for they all proceed from Brahmân), but Brahmân is quite
-separate from all others. Wakefulness, dream and dreamless sleep are all
-states of Buddhi. They are all transitory, O king. The diversity appears
-in Pratyagâtma (the separate self). The clouds appear and disappear in
-space, even as the universes appear and disappear in Brahmân. Of all
-forms, the common element is the only reality. But the forms seem to
-have an existence of their own independently of the primal element. The
-threads that form the cloth look separate from the cloth itself. All
-that appears as cause and effect is unreal, for there is
-interdependence, and there is both beginning and end.
-
-The transformations can not exist without the light of Âtmâ. If they are
-self-manifest however, they are not in any way different from Âtmâ
-itself.
-
-Do not think Âtmâ is many, (as there is Âtmâ in every being). It is
-ignorance to think so. The space confined in a pot and the limitless
-space are one and the same, even so the sun and its image in water, the
-air inside and outside.
-
-Men call gold by different names, according to the different
-ornaments it forms. So the language of the Vedas and the language
-of ordinary men give different names to Bhagavân.
-
-The cloud that is generated by the sun, that appears by the light of the
-sun, that is in fact rays of the sun so transformed stands between the
-eye and the sun. Even so Ahankâra, proceeding from Brahmân, manifested
-by Brahmân, even a part of Brahmân, eclipses the perception of Brahmân
-by Jiva.
-
-When the cloud disappears, the eye perceives the sun. When Ahankâra, the
-*upâdhi* of Âtmâ, disappears by discrimination, then the Jiva perceives
-"I am Brahmân."
-
-When by discrimination, such as this, the tie of unreal Ahankâra is cut
-as under, and the unfailing perception of Âtmâ becomes fixed, it is
-called *Âtyantika* Pralaya.
-
-(Âtyantika is from Atyanta = ati+anta, the very last. After this
-Pralaya, which is individual and not general, one does not return to
-life in the universe. It is the final liberation of a man from the
-limitations of life in Brahmânda).
-
-Every day all beings, from Brahmâ downwards, undergo according to some
-seers of subtleties states of beginning and end.
-
-These beginnings and ends are caused by the changes in states of all
-beings subject to transformation, changes that follow the flow of time.
-(One does not grow adult or old in one day. The change must be going on
-constantly. The fruit does not ripen in one day. But the process of
-ripening day by day is not perceptible. Water flows in a continued
-stream but the water particles constantly change at a given space. So
-the lamp burns and the flame looks one and the same though the particles
-that ignite do constantly change. Even so our body is not the same from
-day to day. There is a change going on every moment of our life.
-Particles of the body are rejected every day and they are replaced by
-new particles. There is the beginning with our new particles, and an end
-or Pralaya with the old particles.) This is called NITYA Pralaya. (Nitya
-means constant).
-
-Pralaya is thus fourfold — Nitya, Naimittika, Prakritika and Atyantika.
-
-Such are the stories of Bhagavat as related in the Bhâgavata Purâna.
-
-Rishi Nârâyana first related the Purâna to Nârada, Nârada related it to
-Vyâsa and Vyâsa to Suka. Suta heard the Purâna from Sukadeva, when he
-related it to Râjâ Parikshit, and he expounded it to the assembly of
-Rishis at Naimisha, headed by Sounaka.
-
-THOUGHTS ON PRALAYA.
----------------------
-
-Prakriti changes its forms and states. The body disintegrates into
-particles, particles into molecules, and molecules into atoms. Solid
-becomes liquid, liquid becomes gaseous and gaseous becomes
-ultra-gaseous. Life manifests itself through the endless varieties of
-Prakriti and becomes manifold in its manifestations. The hard mineral
-matter does not admit the mineral life to be expressed in any other way
-than by a fixed form. The more plastic vegetable matter shews vegetable
-life in all the activities of life and growth. Subtler matter appears in
-the animals and makes the sensing of the object world possible. Even
-sublter matter becomes the basis of brain activities. The Prâkritic
-basis of the mind is two-fold in its character Ahankâra and Mahat. When
-the mind is capable of thinking only from the standpoint of one life and
-one birth only, it is limited by Ahankâra matter. When that limit is
-overcome, mind is on the plane of Mahat. Individuality is not lost, but
-the individual has consciousness of all births, *i.e.* consciousness on
-the plane of the universe. Such consciousness does not normally exist in
-Trilokî. When a man becomes normally conscious on the plane of Mahat, he
-is carried to Mahar Loka and becomes a Rishi. Bhrigu is such a Rishi.
-The acquirement of such consciousness is the object of life evolution in
-our solar system. When the solar system is destroyed, it is the Manasic
-consciousness that alone survives. The three Lokas — Bhûr, Bhuvar and Svar
-are destroyed, The Prâkritic forms and states of these three Lokas
-become destroyed and the different states of consciousness corresponding
-to those forms and states finally disappear. The harvest of Manasic
-evolution, which is the only harvest reaped by means of one solar system
-is stored in Mahar Loka. But when the three lower Lokas are destroyed,
-the flames of dissolution reach even Mahar Loka and all the gains of a
-Kalpa's evolution are transferred to the higher plane of Jana Loka. This
-is therefore the highest plane of our consciousness. The highest evolved
-beings of the previous solar system could not after Pralaya go beyond
-Jana Loka, and their consciousness was the consciousness of Jana Loka.
-When our earth was formed and when they came down in time for further
-evolution, they brought down their highest consciousness with them as a
-possibility, for it was obscured in their entrance to Trilokî. As the
-soul gathers spiritual strength in Svarga Loka after death, so the
-disembodied soul after Prayala gathers spiritual strength in Jana Loka
-or the Loka of Kumâras. "When the three Lokas are consumed by fire from
-the mouth of Sankarshana, afflicted by the heat, Bhrigu and others go to
-Jana Loka" III-II-XXX. The Lord of Yoga goes by means of Sushumna
-through the radiant path in his subtle body and at last reaches Mahar
-Loka, where Bhrigu and other Rishis who live for one Kalpa remain.
-"Then seeing the Trilokî consumed by fire from the mouth of Ananta he
-goes towards that supreme abode, which is adorned by the chariots of
-great Siddhas, and which lasts for the whole life period of Brahmâ."
-(II-2-XXVI).
-
-Those who did not reach the Manasic state, in the last Kalpa were no
-acquisitions to the higher planes of Brahmânda, which stand over the
-three mortal planes, where all experience is to be gathered. Those who
-developed the Manasic state were gathered to the third of the higher
-planes, Jana Loka, because further development was possible, nay it was
-a necessity, in the Trilokî that was to come. But there were others, who
-did not quite reach the Manasic state, but they were still on the way to
-acquire such state, and in fact they acquired the human form. They were
-also preserved to carry out a certain purpose in the life evolution of
-the coming Kalpa which will be shortly mentioned. How they were
-preserved, the Purânas do not speak of. They became the Pitris of the
-present Kalpa. The Pitris reached different states of development and
-were therefore classed under seven heads. Some of them had developed the
-fire in them and some were without the fire. "Agnishvatta, Barhishad,
-Sōmapa, and Ajyapa are Pitris with fire; the others are without fire.
-They were all wedded to Svadha, the daughter of Daksha." IV-1-III.
-
-The mention of the word "fire" requires a little explanation. The
-Upanishads say that the three mortal Lokas of form Bhûr, Bhuvar and Svar
-are the transformations of "Tejobanna" *i.e.* of fire, water and
-earth. The other two elements do not enter into the constitution of
-forms. The element earth predominates on the plane of Bhûr or the
-material plane. Water is supreme on Bhuvar or the Astral plane. Our
-Kamic tendencies proceed from the presence of water in us. Fire is the
-element of Svarga or the Mental plane. Fire devas are therefore the
-highest devas of Trilokî. The forty-nine forms of fire are therefore so
-many forms of consciousness. Some of the Pitris developed fire in them,
-*i.e.* they developed the principle of mind in them, in however
-rudimental a form it might be.
-
-Devas and Rishis were also preserved. Jana Loka is the Loka of Kumâras.
-We shall therefore call the souls preserved in Jana Loka as Kumâras, or
-Kumaric souls.
-
-Commenting on the fourth sloka, twelfth chapter, Third Skandha, Śridhara
-says: — "Sanaka and others are not created in every Kalpa. The mention of
-their creation has reference to the Brahmâ Kalpa, *i.e.* the first Kalpa.
-In fact the objects of Mukhya creation and others are brought into
-existence in every Kalpa. Sanaka and others are only created in the
-Brahmâ Kalpa and they follow the other Kalpas." The Mukhya creation has
-reference to chapter 10, Skandha III. It is the same as Urdha Srotas (p.
-25). Śridhara means to say that plants, animals and men are only created
-in every Kalpa.
-
-The Kumaric souls of the last Kalpa that went to Jana Loka have to play
-the most prominent part in the present Kalpa and they are the heroes of
-our solar system. Their stay at Jana Loka was only a fitting preparation
-for the most responsible work of the present Kalpa. The Íshvara of our
-system, addressing Puranjana, said: — "Wishing to have an abode, drawn to
-earthly enjoyments, thou didst leave me. But, o great one, both I and
-thou were swans (Hansa) and friends in the Manas Lake. We dwelt there
-without any abode, for one thousand years." IV. 28 LIV. "One thousand
-years" is indicative of Pralaya, which lasts for one thousand yuga
-cycles. In Pralaya, the kumaric soul had no body *i.e.* no abode. The
-body separates Jiva from Íshvara. Without the impediment, the obstacle of
-the body, without any obscuring agency, the Jiva meets Íshvara face to
-face in Jana Loka, and being both essentially alike become friends.
-Nârada says, esoterically the Mânasa Laka is the heart and Hansa means
-the pure. But in Pralaya, the heart of the Jiva is in Jana Loka, which
-is the Mânasa or mental Lake. This friendly union of Jiva and Íshvara
-gives all the promise of the future for the Jiva.
-
-What is not preserved in Naimittika Pralaya, the forms of the past
-kalpa, are all borne in the mind of Brahmâ as images. It is the mind of
-Brahmâ that reproduces the forms of the previous creation. The image of
-all that was remains in the mind of Brahmâ. Creation in Brahmâ Kalpa is
-not the same as creation in the succeeding Kalpas. In Brahmâ Kalpa, all
-the seven Lokas, and the dwellers of all the planes are created. In the
-succeeding Kalpas, the three Lokas and their dwellers only are created.
-
-The Naimittika Pralaya comes on, as Brahmâ sleeps.
-
-This Pralaya corresponds to our physical death. When we die, the body is
-destroyed. Just as when the universe bodied Brahmâ goes to sleep, His
-Trilokî body is destroyed. Men go after death first to Bhuvar Loka, and
-then to Svarga Loka. At Pralaya, the Mânasika Jivas first go to Mahar
-Loka and then to Jana Loka.
-
-The Naimittika Pralaya affords the greatest relief to Jivas. It makes up
-for all the ups and downs of manifested life, for all miseries, all
-sorrows, all sufferings and all disappointments. Íshvara can do more for
-Jivas in Pralaya, than in manifestation. He gives company to those, who
-by their advancement reach Jana Loka, There is the Íshvara of our system
-or Brahmânda and there is the Íshvara of many systems.
-
-The Íshvara of many systems, "Bhagavân Himself" is the First Purusha. He
-is the manifestor of the Tatvas, the first Principles, the Karan or
-causal creation, which enter into the constitution of all the solar
-systems or Brahmândas. When He wishes to become many, to appear through
-many manifestations, to bring up all unto Himself and His own state,
-through œons and œons of cosmic manifestation, though it might be,
-the Tatvas start forth into activity and form an ocean by themselves.
-Many solar systems are evolved out of this Karan Samudra or the ocean of
-the causes and each system gets its Íshvara, the Second Purusha. That
-Second Purusha becomes three fold — Brahmâ, Vishnu and Śiva, for the
-Creation, Preservation and Dissolution of His own Universe. He is Virât
-Purusha or the universe bodied, Nârâyana seated on the waters of Karana
-Samudra, and Sahasra Sirsha Purusha or the thousand headed Purusha of
-the Upanishads. "All this, the past, present and future is this Purusha.
-The universe is pervaded by Him As Prana (*i.e.* the sun, for Prana is
-the solar deity according to the Sruti. *Śridhara*) by illumining his own
-circle illumines the outside as well, so Purusha by illumining his Virât
-body illumines the inside and outside of this Brahmânda as well. I
-(Brahmâ) create by His direction, Śiva destroys, under His control, as
-Vishnu, He preserves this universe He is the primal Avatâra." II. 6.
-
-"First of all, Bhagavân took form as Purusha for the creation of the
-Lokas form made by Mahat and others, having 16 parts. (*Mahat and others* —
-Mahat, Ahankâra, and the Tanmatras. 16 parts the eleven Indriyas and the
-5 elements. Though this is not the form of Bhagavân meaning the First
-Purusha still for the Upâsanâ in Virât form of the Virât Purusha who
-indwells all Jivas, this is given. *Śridhara*). (In the Padma Kalpa),
-Brahmâ, the Lord of Prajâpatis, appeared in the lotus that rose out of
-the navel of (this Purusha), who while lying down on the ocean, spread
-the sleep of Samâdhi all round. The Lokas are but parts of His body. His
-form is pure and intensified Satva. The Yogins perceive Him by their
-vision of wisdom, as one looking wonderful with a thousand feet, thighs,
-hands and mouths, with a thousand heads, ears, eyes and noses,
-glittering with a thousand crowns, and ornaments. This (Virât Purusha)
-is the immutable seed and final resort of the many Avatâras. Brahmâ is
-His part. Marichi and other Prajâpatis are parts of Brahmâ. So through
-parts of His part, Devas, animals and men are created. (He does not
-appear and disappear like other Avatâras. He is the end not only of the
-Avatâras, but of all beings. *Śridhara*.)" I-3.
-
-Brahmâ appeared in the lotus, it is said, in the last Kalpa, which
-from this event is named Pâdma Kalpa. How Brahmâ appeared out of
-Nârâyana in the previous Kalpas is not given. That he appeared in our
-Kalpa in the same way as in the last Kalpa is evident, as no difference
-is noted. Brahmâ took up the creation, which was two-fold — direct or
-Mânasa and indirect or through Prajâpatis and Manu. The creation or
-bringing into manifestation of those that had been preserved at Pralaya
-is direct or Mânasa. The mind born sons of Brahmâ took up positions in
-the universe of duty and responsibility and in this Kalpa they have not
-to look to themselves, but to others. Their own evolution is not a
-matter of their concern. The innumerable Monads were created through
-Manu and the real history of the Kalpa is the history of their
-evolution.
-
-First there was the process of involution. There was no form and forms
-had to be first brought forth. Limitation after limitation had to the
-imposed, to chain life in forms. For when set forms were arrived at with
-set organs, Jivas could be trusted with independent action.
-
-No energy is spent in vain in the economy of the universe. Each monadic
-flow as it appeared in the universe could he carried on to a certain
-stage, by one common guiding influence. This requires a little
-explanation.
-
-Each particle of each Tatva is alive. The Tatvic life is the life of the
-first Purusha. But the particles combine, and the power of combination
-proceeds from the life of the second Purusha, the Íshvara of our system.
-Every combination however large has the life of Íshvara in it and it is
-that life which keeps up the combination. Each combination for the time
-being has its ruler, who is the viceroy of Íshvara, and who is called the
-Monad of that combination. Monad is Jivâtma or Jiva Âtmâ or Âtmâ as
-limited by every Jiva.
-
-The combination transforms, but the Monad remains constant. The
-vegetable becomes animal, and the animal becomes man, but one Monad runs
-through all these transformations.
-
-By rulership over higher and higher combinations the Monad or Jivâtma,
-ultimately approaches the state of Íshvara Himself and that is the goal
-of evolution in this universe.
-
-Whenever a combination is formed, there is one life governing that
-combination — the life of the ruler of that combination. Ail other lives
-have to surrender themselves completely and entirely to that one life.
-This is the law and we have to bow down our heads to the inevitable.
-There is life in every cell that composes the human body. But the cell
-lives are all subordinated to the life of the man, the Jivâtma ruling
-the combination that forms the man. So long as the cell is attached to
-the human combination, it has no independence whatsoever. And this is
-to the immense benefit of the cells themselves. They receive the impress of
-souls much more evolved than their own and are able to evolve themselves
-at a much more rapid rate, than if they had been left to themselves.
-This is the law of giving and taking, the law of sacrifice, the Yajna
-which is the essence of creation. And even as men approach the state of
-Íshvara, they have to surrender themselves completely to Him and to merge
-themselves in His existence.
-
-The Jivic or Monadic flow first appears on the plane of Svarga, it comes
-down to Bhûvar and then to Bhûr, to appear finally in the mineral
-Kingdom of our Earth. This process of coming down does not require
-separate guidance for separate combinations. The downward flow is
-homogeneous. It is carried on under the guidance of the Prajâpatis. It
-is all involution during this process taking in grosser and grosser
-matter and not rejecting anything. Rudra had no work to do during the
-earliest stages of monadic life. The mineral Kingdom appeared and the
-Himalayan chain reared up its head. The legend says the sons of Himalaya
-had wings on and they could move about but the Devas cut down their
-wings and they became fixed. No doubt the mineral Kingdom hardened and
-became immobile in time. The immobility of the mineral Kingdom, the
-final reach of matter in its downward course was the turning point in
-the life history of Jivas. Their foetal stage was over and they were now
-born into the Kalpa, as it were.
-
-There was need for separation now, for the rejection of particles and
-the drawing in of new ones, and Durga appeared as the daughter of
-Himalaya.
-
-She became wedded to Śiva once more and since then there was change
-continually going on in all forms of life, that evolved out of the
-mineral Kingdom. There was continual adjustment of external and internal
-conditions, called life. The vegetable appeared, the animal appeared and
-the man appeared. The life process means continual transformation. Forms
-changed and dissolved. Change is continually going on all round and is
-called Nitya Pralaya.
-
-During the transformation that goes on, combinations are guided by
-rulers, who are the Pitris. They lead the combinations on till the human
-form is reached. When the human form is reached each combination is a
-man. The highest of the Pitris can give only germinal Manas. When the
-Pitris give to the combination, all that they could give, their work is
-over, for this Kalpa.
-
-Then come the Kumaric souls, the Puranjanas from the Mânasa Laka (P.
-89). They find the abode ready made and leaving their friend and
-companion they enter their chosen abodes. There are nine gate ways in
-that abode, and every enjoyment reaches Puranjana through those gate
-ways. He becomes mad in the pursuit of enjoyments. He forgets himself.
-He forgets his friend the eternal companion of Jiva. He identifies
-himself with the abode. He thinks that he is inseparable from that
-abode. So he goes on and on hopelessly in his course of riotous joy and
-the Friend whom he forgets gives him rebuff for every joy that he meets.
-The rebuffs at last make him a little attentive. The friend then speaks
-through the Vedas, the Smritis through sages and at last He comes down
-Himself as an Avatâra.
-
-The Eternal Friend first allows Puranjana to run on in the midst of
-enjoyments, just as he likes. If he goes beyond the limits of temperance
-and moderation he gets some unpleasant experience. If he does something
-wrong, he feels the painful consequence. The sting of pain makes
-Puranjana ponder over what he does. He registers the pleasurable and
-painful experiences and reasons about the causes and effects. He tries
-to know what is right and what is wrong.
-
-With the power of discrimination in its infancy, with the "enjoyment"
-nature or the self-seeking Asuric element too strong in him, Puranjana,
-the Kumaric soul, is helpless. He is drifted away, though sometimes much
-against his will.
-
-The Friend comes to the rescue. The Devas and Asuras combine and with
-their joint efforts, the ocean of Milk is churned, and the Goddess of
-Evolution, the Energy of Vishnu, makes Her divine appearance in our
-universe. The Devas become more than a match for the Asuras. The
-Vaivasvata Manvantara steps in, the Manvantara teeming with the fate of
-man and of the universe. Íshvara, the eternal friend of Puranjana, is
-most busy in the Vaivasvata Manvantara. Every effort is made to raise
-humanity to a higher level and to open out all the possibilities of man.
-
-First, the enjoyments of Svarga are held out before the rising vision of
-men as an allurement. Man admires those enjoyments and makes every
-effort to attain them. The Vedic sacrifice is revealed to Pururavas, who
-becomes mad after Urvasi, the nymph of Svarga. Later on, the heavenly
-cow, Surabhi, attracts Visvâmitra. And he becomes the chief actor in the
-promulgation of Vedic sacrifice. In the firmness of resolve, in the bold
-and determined pursuit of objects, and in the intolerance of
-inferiority, Visvâmitra stands prominently out as an example to
-humanity, for all ages to come and it is meet and proper that in the
-next Manvantara, he will act as one of the seven sages guiding the
-affairs of the universe.
-
-The Karma Kânda of the Vedas is a monument of Visvamitara's gigantic
-efforts for the good of humanity. Íshvara made revelations. He prompted
-the sages.
-
-If the Karma Kânda holds out the allurements of Svarga life, it lays
-down rules and restrictions at the same time, that regulate life and
-beget temperance and moderation. Meritorious acts are enjoined and acts
-that retard evolution are prohibited. Men do what is good and avoid what
-is evil, that they may attain heavenly things. They do what is right and
-shun what is wrong, not because that is the Law, the divine will, but
-because it gives them some reward. All the same, the mind is trained,
-the man curbed and regulated. The bitter pill is taken and if the child
-thinks that it is for the sweetmeat he is only mistaken. When the child
-grows he knows, that he takes the bitter pill as it is the law of nature
-that he should do so. Do what is right, because that is the law. Shun
-what is wrong, because it is against the law. We are all carried forward
-by the law, and we must willingly give ourselves up to that law. When we
-do that, we partake ourselves of divine life. The ground had to be
-prepared for further teachings.
-
-Events in Svarga foreshadow and forestall events that are to transpire
-on the earth. The Devas and Asuras by their mutual fight in Svarga bring
-about a state of things which casts its shadow on the earth below.
-
-Two great events happened in Svarga the killing of Vritra, and the
-deposition of Bali.
-
-Vritra, though an Asura was a votary of Sankarshana, the Shankara aspect
-of Vishnu. Vritra was great in all respects and his wisdom extracted the
-admiration of Indra. But he represented the idea of personal self in
-Jiva, which is so strong-rooted, and which is the hardest thing to over
-come. Vritra was killed by a weapon, which is no other than the most
-willing and ready sacrifice of personal self by Dadhîchi.
-
-Bali, the Asura king, ungrudgingly gave all that he had to Vâmana. The
-Asura had become so great both in intellect and in spirituality, that
-there was no question of killing him or of his being overpowered by the
-Devas. The Asuras and Devas both combined to make Svarga, the
-store-house of spiritual life. The Asuras by their willing surrender
-permitted the Devas to have entire hold of Svarga. By this sacrifice,
-they established their indisputable right to Svarga, in the broad
-dispensation of providence and in the succeeding Manvantara, Bali is to
-become the Indra of the Devas.
-
-Vâmana was the same as Lord Sri Krishna on our earth. If diplomacy had
-succeeded so easily below as above, if the Asura chiefs on earth had
-behaved as splendidly as Bali in Svarga, the horrors and heartrending
-scenes of Kurukshetra could have been avoided. The same result was
-however brought about in Svarga as it was subsequently brought about on
-the Earth. The actor was the same, the diplomacy was the same, only the
-result of diplomacy was different on the different planes. The
-deposition of Bali was bloodless while the deposition of
-Duryodhana was a bloody one.
-
-Coming down to Earth let us see how events in Svarga were followed up on
-the terrestrial plane.
-
-Two great human Avatâras came, one the ideal and the other the apostle
-of unselfishness. But we must take a running survey of the Avatâras as a
-whole.
-
-Vishnu appeared on Earth Himself, through His direct manifestations
-called Avatâras. Ten of them have been specially picked out as Great
-Avatâras, though no specification has been made in the Bhâgavata Purâna.
-
-There were three great Asuric movements in this Kalpa, caused by the
-three successive incarnations of Jaya and Vijaya. And these gave our
-four great Avatâras.
-
-Hiranyâksha was killed by Varaha, Hiranyakasipu was killed by Nrisinha.
-Râvana and Kumbhakarna were killed by Râma. Sisupâla and Dantavakra were
-killed by Sri Krishna. Kûrma was a great Avatâra as He prepared the way
-for the spiritual regeneration of the universe, by the Churning of the
-ocean of Milk.
-
-Vâmana was a great Avatâra as He reclaimed the Trilokî from the Asuras.
-
-Parasurâma and Buddha did work, which revolutionised the whole humanity.
-
-Kalki will give the final blow to the Asuric element in us.
-
-Matsya is important with reference to our own Manvantara. Every
-Manvantara is followed by a deluge, which destroys the existing
-continents and swallows up all living beings. When the last Manvantara
-was over, our Manu saved the germs of creation with the help of Matsya.
-Opinion is divided as to whether there is Pralaya after every
-Manvantara. The Bhâgavata Purâna says when there was deluge (sanplava)
-following the Chakshusha Manvantara, Vishnu assumed the form of Matsya.
-Commenting on this, Śridhara says there is no Pralaya at the end of a
-Manvantara. There may not be such a Pralaya at the end of a Manvantara
-as happens at the end of a Kalpa. But other Purânas speak of some sort
-of Pralaya on the expiry of every Manvantara. Sûrya Siddhanta, the
-renowned work on Astronomy, also says: — "There is a period called Sandhi
-(the meet between two Manvantaras) measured by the period of one Satya
-Yuga, followed by another Manvantara. There is deluge by water then."
-
-The Avatâras of Vishnu infuse more and more of Satva into men, that they
-may become Satvika. Increasing Satva put down Rajas and Tamas in man and
-makes him divine.
-
-But of all these Avatâras two stand out most prominently one the ideal
-and the other the apostle of unselfishness. The brightest luminary of
-the solar line held out in His life, an example of unselfishness, of
-purity of character and of scrupulous regard to duty, an example that is
-the admiration of all people in all ages, as perfect as the limits of
-humanity will allow and as elevated as the loftiest ideal of human
-character may be, unsurpassed in its pathetic grandeur, unrivalled in
-the straight forward pursuit of duty along a most thorny and uneven
-path. The divine founder of Dvârakâ of the Lunar line asserted Himself
-as the supreme Íshvara, He took up the reins of Trilokî in His own hands,
-the Devas installed Him as the king of Svarga or Govinda, and men on
-earth had now to look up to Him only and not to the Devas for their
-guidance. For men had now to pass the limits of Trilokî, and the friend
-of Puranjana came down Himself to hold out the torch of divine light.
-Sri Krishna laid down the triple path of Karma, Bhakti and Jnâna, and
-shewed the relative importance of each. His teachings are perfect,
-thorough and exhaustive. Ever since His manifestation, those teachings
-have been re-iterated in a thousand forms, they have been adapted to
-different powers of understanding and all the modern scriptures of
-Hinduism have grown up, round the central point of those teachings. Men
-had no longer to complain of teachings. They had to follow those
-teachings now and to live up to them. They had to begin with
-unselfishness, and end with liberation. New vistas opened out before the
-growing spiritual vision of men, vistas of new worlds, new planes, of
-masters of Yoga and wisdom, forming every link between man and Íshvara.
-Possibilities became realities. Liberation was no longer a word of the
-lips.
-
-Now liberation is a relative term. First there may be liberation from
-the bonds of Trilokî only. Or it may be from the limitations of Janaloka
-which was the highest possibility with which the Jiva started. Or it may
-be liberation from the bonds of the Brahmânda itself. The last
-liberation is again two fold in its character. There may be liberation
-from all concrete things and all ideas, including the idea of Íshvara
-Himself or the liberation may lead to the great Íshvara from whom many
-solar systems proceed. Mukti is not only liberation from bondage. It is
-also something more. It is an acquisition, Starting from the plane of
-Jana Loka, the Kumaric soul acquires higher and higher possibilities. He
-may transcend Jana Loka. He may transcend even the Satya Loka. But
-passage across Satya Loka is not easy in this Kalpa. Mukti in its
-fullest and highest sense means freedom from all limitations caused by
-Prakriti, caused by Time and Space and identification with Brahmân, who
-is absolute bliss, absolute consciousness and absolute existence beyond
-the limits of Time and Space. This is called Atyantika Pralaya or
-absolute dissolution. But this Mukti lean never be obtained till all the
-duties of a man are performed. These duties are nothing else but
-sacrifices or Yajna. Man must perform each one of his duties he must
-perform all that he owes to himself, to all other beings, and last of
-all the highest duty he owes to the Íshvara of the Universe the Lord of
-Sacrifice, Yajnesvara Himself, "Adhiyajna am I, here in the body, best
-of living beings."
-
-The Bhâgavatas do not care to go beyond the Yajna Purusha, They do not
-care to leave the life of sacrifice, as long as their Íshvara stands out
-as the embodiment of all sacrifice.
-
-"Salutation to Thee, Bhagavân, let me meditate on Vâsudeva. Salutations
-to Pradyumna, Aniruddha and to Sankarshana. He who, by knowing these
-*mûrtis* in the *mûrtiless*, whose only *mûtrti* is mantra makes offerings
-to Yajna Purusha, is the complete seer." I. 5. 37 "When the Indriyas,"
-said Kapila, "that manifest the objects of external and internal
-perception, become trained by the performance of Vedic Karma, their
-spontaneous Vritti (or function) in a man of concentrated mind is in
-Satva which is the same as Vishnu. This Vritti which is void of all
-selfishness is Bhakti in Bhagavâna. It is superior to Mukti. It
-instantly destroys the Kosha, as the digestive fire consumes food. The
-devoted have no yearning for that Mukti which makes the Jiva one with
-Me. But they prefer ever to talk with each other about Me, to exert
-themselves for My sake and ever to meditate on me. Mukti comes to them
-unasked. My Vibhutis, the eight Siddhis, and all the glory of the
-highest Lokas are theirs though they want them not. I am their Teacher,
-their Friend, their companion, their all. So even Kala can not destroy
-them."
-
-Again, "The devoted spurn Salokya, Sarshti, Samipya, Sarupya and
-Sayujya, even when offered to them and they prefer to serve Bhagavân
-ever and ever. Compassion and friendliness to all beings are the
-essential qualifications of the devoted. They must be humble respectful
-and self controlled. They must pass their days in hearing and reciting
-the glory of Bhagavân." Kapila makes the following classification as to
-the final destiny of men (p. 46):
-
-1. Those who selfishly perform their Dharma and worship Devas and Pitris
-go to Sōma Loka, and after partaking of Sōma, they are again re-born.
-Their Lokas are destroyed with the daily Pralaya of Brahmâ.
-
-2. The worshippers of Hiranya-garbha (Brahmâ) reach Brahmâ Loka or Satya
-Loka and there wait for two Parârddhas *i.e.* for the life time of Brahmâ
-and upon the final dissolution of the Brahmânda, they enter with
-Hiranya-garbha, the Eternal Supreme Purusha, who is supreme Bliss and
-their sense of individuality becomes then lost.
-
-3. "Brahmâ with Marichi and other Rishis, with Kumâras and other lords
-of Yoga, and with Siddhas who are leaders of Yoga, do by their unselfish
-action, and at the same time the retention of their individuality, and
-their vision of separateness reach Saguna Brahmâ or the Second Purusha,
-who is the Íshvara of our system. And when Kala, as an aspect of Íshvara,
-causes a disturbance in the Gunas on the approach of the creative period
-they are born again just as they had been before. (They are born because
-of their individuality and their vision of separateness. They are born
-in the same state on account of their non-attachment and their
-unselfishness. *Śridhara*). As long as the Trilokî lasts, they enjoy all
-the divine things of Satya Loka, according to their Karma. (And when the
-Trilokî is destroyed, they attain the Saguna Purusha, who is First
-Avatâra. *Śridhara*). When the Gunas are disturbed again they come back
-(i.e. they revert to their former posts respectively. *Śridhara*)" III 32
-xii-xv.
-
-4. Those who unselfishly perform their duties and give themselves up
-entirely to the Supreme Purusha void of all attachment and all egoism,
-calm, tranquil and pure in the mind go through the gateway of the Sun to
-the all pervading Purusha, the Lord of all, the material and efficient
-cause of all this.
-
-Commenting on II 2 xxviii, Śridhara says: — "There are three courses for
-those that go to Brahmâ Loka. Those who go by the excellence of their
-merits, become holders of responsible positions in the next Kalpa,
-according to their respective merits. Those who go there by worshipping
-Hiranya-garbha and others, become liberated along with Brahmâ. Those who
-are worshippers of Bhagavân, pierce the Brahmânda at will and reach the
-State of Vishnu."
-
-The classification is the same as made by Kapila.
-
-Hiranya-garbha Upâsanâ, which was prevalent at one time is now out of
-use. It was the worship of the Life aspect of Íshvara, as manifested in
-the Solar system. There is a higher duty, the highest duty of a Jiva
-manifested in this universe, to realise that this universe itself is a
-part of a big universe, and there is Íshvara of that big universe
-Bhagavân Himself and to surrender one self completely up to Him in pure
-love and devotion. He will not then be of this universe, but he will be
-of many universes, he will transcend the limits of all the seven planes
-of our system at will. What his work then will be, it is for Bhagavân to
-say not for him. The work of Bhagavân is his work, the life of Bhagavân
-is his life. He becomes a Bhâgavata. The Gopis are ideal Bhâgavatas and
-the Vrindâvana Lilâ is the consummation on this earth of the relation of
-a Bhâgavata with Bhagavân. This to all Bhaktas is the highest form of
-Mukti.
-
-To the Bhakta, there is no Mukti, without the universe and the lord of
-universe.
-
-Forget the universe, forget every thing, only meditate on the eternal
-unchanging element in you, be fixed in that and that only and you attain
-Atyantika Pralaya.
-
-**PEACE BE TO ALL.**
-
-.. footnotes::
- :class: smaller
-
-.. pgfooter::
diff --git a/39442-rst/images/again_brahma_purusha.png b/39442-rst/images/again_brahma_purusha.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 2080363..0000000
--- a/39442-rst/images/again_brahma_purusha.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/39442-rst/images/bhagaf004.jpg b/39442-rst/images/bhagaf004.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 0b6d037..0000000
--- a/39442-rst/images/bhagaf004.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/39442-rst/images/bhagap011.png b/39442-rst/images/bhagap011.png
deleted file mode 100644
index ff566a3..0000000
--- a/39442-rst/images/bhagap011.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/39442-rst/images/bhagap013.png b/39442-rst/images/bhagap013.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 8d5c10d..0000000
--- a/39442-rst/images/bhagap013.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/39442-rst/images/bhagap018.png b/39442-rst/images/bhagap018.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 71bb4fb..0000000
--- a/39442-rst/images/bhagap018.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/39442-rst/images/bhagap021.png b/39442-rst/images/bhagap021.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 07331a8..0000000
--- a/39442-rst/images/bhagap021.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/39442-rst/images/bhagap048.png b/39442-rst/images/bhagap048.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 185a7ee..0000000
--- a/39442-rst/images/bhagap048.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/39442-rst/images/bhagap049.png b/39442-rst/images/bhagap049.png
deleted file mode 100644
index be898a3..0000000
--- a/39442-rst/images/bhagap049.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/39442-rst/images/bhagap050.png b/39442-rst/images/bhagap050.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 8cf755f..0000000
--- a/39442-rst/images/bhagap050.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/39442-rst/images/bhagap051.png b/39442-rst/images/bhagap051.png
deleted file mode 100644
index a6c960b..0000000
--- a/39442-rst/images/bhagap051.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/39442-rst/images/bhagap052.png b/39442-rst/images/bhagap052.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 26a7280..0000000
--- a/39442-rst/images/bhagap052.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/39442-rst/images/bhagap053.png b/39442-rst/images/bhagap053.png
deleted file mode 100644
index e8eac9d..0000000
--- a/39442-rst/images/bhagap053.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/39442-rst/images/bhagap054.png b/39442-rst/images/bhagap054.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 7c6c521..0000000
--- a/39442-rst/images/bhagap054.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/39442-rst/images/bhagap055.png b/39442-rst/images/bhagap055.png
deleted file mode 100644
index d3495c8..0000000
--- a/39442-rst/images/bhagap055.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/39442-rst/images/bhagap056.png b/39442-rst/images/bhagap056.png
deleted file mode 100644
index a490f11..0000000
--- a/39442-rst/images/bhagap056.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/39442-rst/images/bhagap057.png b/39442-rst/images/bhagap057.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 2635d3f..0000000
--- a/39442-rst/images/bhagap057.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/39442-rst/images/bhagap058.png b/39442-rst/images/bhagap058.png
deleted file mode 100644
index aa24ad7..0000000
--- a/39442-rst/images/bhagap058.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/39442-rst/images/bhagap059.png b/39442-rst/images/bhagap059.png
deleted file mode 100644
index d71622c..0000000
--- a/39442-rst/images/bhagap059.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/39442-rst/images/bhagap060.png b/39442-rst/images/bhagap060.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 915a963..0000000
--- a/39442-rst/images/bhagap060.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/39442-rst/images/bhagap061.png b/39442-rst/images/bhagap061.png
deleted file mode 100644
index c710312..0000000
--- a/39442-rst/images/bhagap061.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/39442-rst/images/bhagap099.png b/39442-rst/images/bhagap099.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 923f10c..0000000
--- a/39442-rst/images/bhagap099.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/39442-rst/images/bhagap100.png b/39442-rst/images/bhagap100.png
deleted file mode 100644
index c35eb5d..0000000
--- a/39442-rst/images/bhagap100.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/39442-rst/images/bhagap101.png b/39442-rst/images/bhagap101.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 49791cc..0000000
--- a/39442-rst/images/bhagap101.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/39442-rst/images/bhagap102.png b/39442-rst/images/bhagap102.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 2627a29..0000000
--- a/39442-rst/images/bhagap102.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/39442-rst/images/bhagap113.png b/39442-rst/images/bhagap113.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 1a8b711..0000000
--- a/39442-rst/images/bhagap113.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/39442-rst/images/bhagap125.png b/39442-rst/images/bhagap125.png
deleted file mode 100644
index ecde7f9..0000000
--- a/39442-rst/images/bhagap125.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/39442-rst/images/bhagap128.png b/39442-rst/images/bhagap128.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 2b5f3e2..0000000
--- a/39442-rst/images/bhagap128.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/39442-rst/images/bhagap131.png b/39442-rst/images/bhagap131.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 9510b52..0000000
--- a/39442-rst/images/bhagap131.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/39442-rst/images/bhagap139.png b/39442-rst/images/bhagap139.png
deleted file mode 100644
index f99cf06..0000000
--- a/39442-rst/images/bhagap139.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/39442-rst/images/bhagap147.png b/39442-rst/images/bhagap147.png
deleted file mode 100644
index e550bf4..0000000
--- a/39442-rst/images/bhagap147.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/39442-rst/images/bhagap186.png b/39442-rst/images/bhagap186.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 9b75f2b..0000000
--- a/39442-rst/images/bhagap186.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/39442-rst/images/bhagap187.png b/39442-rst/images/bhagap187.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 2456046..0000000
--- a/39442-rst/images/bhagap187.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/39442-rst/images/bhagap188.png b/39442-rst/images/bhagap188.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 013cbc6..0000000
--- a/39442-rst/images/bhagap188.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/39442-rst/images/bhagap192.png b/39442-rst/images/bhagap192.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 483f6b0..0000000
--- a/39442-rst/images/bhagap192.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/39442-rst/images/bhagap193.png b/39442-rst/images/bhagap193.png
deleted file mode 100644
index ff931af..0000000
--- a/39442-rst/images/bhagap193.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/39442-rst/images/bhagap195.png b/39442-rst/images/bhagap195.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 2c04215..0000000
--- a/39442-rst/images/bhagap195.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/39442-rst/images/bhagap196.png b/39442-rst/images/bhagap196.png
deleted file mode 100644
index e175230..0000000
--- a/39442-rst/images/bhagap196.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/39442-rst/images/bhagap197.png b/39442-rst/images/bhagap197.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 1eac35e..0000000
--- a/39442-rst/images/bhagap197.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/39442-rst/images/bhagap198.png b/39442-rst/images/bhagap198.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 890097c..0000000
--- a/39442-rst/images/bhagap198.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/39442-rst/images/bhagap199.png b/39442-rst/images/bhagap199.png
deleted file mode 100644
index aa4c744..0000000
--- a/39442-rst/images/bhagap199.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/39442-rst/images/bhagap200.png b/39442-rst/images/bhagap200.png
deleted file mode 100644
index b524598..0000000
--- a/39442-rst/images/bhagap200.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/39442-rst/images/bhagap201.png b/39442-rst/images/bhagap201.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 47e0b1a..0000000
--- a/39442-rst/images/bhagap201.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/39442-rst/images/bhagap202.png b/39442-rst/images/bhagap202.png
deleted file mode 100644
index a939a5b..0000000
--- a/39442-rst/images/bhagap202.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/39442-rst/images/bhagap204.png b/39442-rst/images/bhagap204.png
deleted file mode 100644
index d9b3708..0000000
--- a/39442-rst/images/bhagap204.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/39442-rst/images/bhagap205.png b/39442-rst/images/bhagap205.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 396ce16..0000000
--- a/39442-rst/images/bhagap205.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/39442-rst/images/bhagap207.png b/39442-rst/images/bhagap207.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 3a86f94..0000000
--- a/39442-rst/images/bhagap207.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/39442-rst/images/bhagap208.png b/39442-rst/images/bhagap208.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 1f01f5d..0000000
--- a/39442-rst/images/bhagap208.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/39442-rst/images/bhagap209.png b/39442-rst/images/bhagap209.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 6f84a94..0000000
--- a/39442-rst/images/bhagap209.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/39442-rst/images/bhagap210.png b/39442-rst/images/bhagap210.png
deleted file mode 100644
index b7056fb..0000000
--- a/39442-rst/images/bhagap210.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/39442-rst/images/bhagap211.png b/39442-rst/images/bhagap211.png
deleted file mode 100644
index a1862e9..0000000
--- a/39442-rst/images/bhagap211.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/39442-rst/images/bhagap212.png b/39442-rst/images/bhagap212.png
deleted file mode 100644
index a417306..0000000
--- a/39442-rst/images/bhagap212.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/39442-rst/images/bhagap213.png b/39442-rst/images/bhagap213.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 856f5ef..0000000
--- a/39442-rst/images/bhagap213.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/39442-rst/images/bhagap215.png b/39442-rst/images/bhagap215.png
deleted file mode 100644
index b0515da..0000000
--- a/39442-rst/images/bhagap215.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/39442-rst/images/bhagap216.png b/39442-rst/images/bhagap216.png
deleted file mode 100644
index e289f43..0000000
--- a/39442-rst/images/bhagap216.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/39442-rst/images/bhagap217.png b/39442-rst/images/bhagap217.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 0e8cf82..0000000
--- a/39442-rst/images/bhagap217.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/39442-rst/images/bhagap218.png b/39442-rst/images/bhagap218.png
deleted file mode 100644
index b1ff602..0000000
--- a/39442-rst/images/bhagap218.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/39442-rst/images/bhagap219.png b/39442-rst/images/bhagap219.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 5310207..0000000
--- a/39442-rst/images/bhagap219.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/39442-rst/images/bhagap220.png b/39442-rst/images/bhagap220.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 3bb4b64..0000000
--- a/39442-rst/images/bhagap220.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/39442-rst/images/bhagap221.png b/39442-rst/images/bhagap221.png
deleted file mode 100644
index e5f7bfa..0000000
--- a/39442-rst/images/bhagap221.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/39442-rst/images/bhagap222.png b/39442-rst/images/bhagap222.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 0b06ebc..0000000
--- a/39442-rst/images/bhagap222.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/39442-rst/images/bhagap223.png b/39442-rst/images/bhagap223.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 0b27548..0000000
--- a/39442-rst/images/bhagap223.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/39442-rst/images/bhagap224.png b/39442-rst/images/bhagap224.png
deleted file mode 100644
index a12ea9a..0000000
--- a/39442-rst/images/bhagap224.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/39442-rst/images/bhagap225.png b/39442-rst/images/bhagap225.png
deleted file mode 100644
index abda141..0000000
--- a/39442-rst/images/bhagap225.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/39442-rst/images/bhagap226.png b/39442-rst/images/bhagap226.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 71d6984..0000000
--- a/39442-rst/images/bhagap226.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/39442-rst/images/bhagap419.png b/39442-rst/images/bhagap419.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 857a2f3..0000000
--- a/39442-rst/images/bhagap419.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/39442-rst/images/bhagap_cover.jpg b/39442-rst/images/bhagap_cover.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 506f240..0000000
--- a/39442-rst/images/bhagap_cover.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/39442-rst/images/it_is_this_prana.png b/39442-rst/images/it_is_this_prana.png
deleted file mode 100644
index 6fe2a5a..0000000
--- a/39442-rst/images/it_is_this_prana.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/39442-rst/images/they_are_the_five.png b/39442-rst/images/they_are_the_five.png
deleted file mode 100644
index fed2051..0000000
--- a/39442-rst/images/they_are_the_five.png
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/39442.txt b/39442.txt
deleted file mode 100644
index 8d40791..0000000
--- a/39442.txt
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,21310 +0,0 @@
- A Study of the Bhagavata Purana
-
- or Esoteric Hinduism
-
-
-
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with almost
-no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
-under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
-eBook or online at http://www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-
-Title: A Study of the Bhagavata Purana or Esoteric Hinduism
-
-Author: Purnendu Narayana Sinha
-
-Release Date: April 12, 2012 [EBook #39442]
-
-Language: English
-
-Character set encoding: US-ASCII
-
-
-*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK STUDY OF THE BHAGAVATA PURANA
-***
-
-
-
-
-Produced by Bhakta Jim.
-
-This file was produced from page images at the Internet Archive.
-
-
-
-
-Transcriber's Note
-
-
-The original book was very badly proofread and was filled with errors,
-inconsistent accents, improper punctuation, etc. Also the typesetters
-were unable to properly accent the book. As an example, the letter a is
-represented as A when capitalized. The author probably wanted to use a
-macron instead of a circumflex or an accent to indicate a long syllable
-and was forced to settle for this mixture of circumflexes and accents
-instead. This etext will use the circumflex throughout and will attempt
-to accent words as consistently as possible.
-
-In the original book some family tree tables were turned sideways. For
-reading as an e-book, these trees have been modified to read left to
-right rather than top-down. All family trees have been done as ASCII
-art. I have included the original page images containing the family
-trees as well.
-
-The family tree tables in the book put female names in italics, but not
-consistently. Where possible I have followed this practice in the ASCII
-art version, but in many cases I have omitted the italics because it
-would throw off the alignment of the trees in the text version of the
-book. When in doubt consult the page images in the HTML version.
-
-
-
-
- A STUDY
-
- OF THE
-
- BHAGAVATA PURANA
-
- OR
-
- ESOTERIC HINDUISM
-
- BY PURNENDU NARAYANA SINHA, M. A., B. L.
-
- BENARES:
-
- PRINTED BY FREEMAN & Co., LTD.,
-
- AT THE TARA PRINTING WORKS. 1901.
-
-
-
-
- To
-
- *ANNIE BESANT*
-
- THE BHAGAVATA OF BHAGAVATAS
-
- THESE PAGES ARE RESPECTFULLY DEDICATED
-
- BY
-
- HER MOST DEVOTED BROTHER.
-
-
-
-
-"Let him kiss me with the kisses of his mouth: for thy love is better
-than wine.
-
-"Because of the savour of thy good ointments thy name is as ointment
-poured forth, therefore do the virgins love thee.
-
-"Tell me, O thou whom my soul loveth, where thou feedest, where thou
-makest thy flock to rest at noon; for why should I be as one that
-turneth aside by the flocks of thy companions?
-
-"If thou know not, O thou fairest among women, go thy way forth by the
-footsteps of the flock, and feed thy kids beside the shepherds' tents."
-
-THE SONG OF SOLOMON.
-
-
-
-
-PREFACE.
-
-
-The Bhagavata is the most popular of all Puranas and it is held in the
-highest esteem by Vaishnavas in all parts of India. It was the most
-authoritative book with such religious teachers as Shri Chaitanya.
-Several commentaries have been written on this great work. It is however
-strange that there has been so much discussion about the authoritative
-character of the work. The readers are all familiar with that discussion
-and I need not refer to it further than to say that the discussion does
-not in any way affect the intrinsic merit of the book, and the verdict
-of the public is so certain in this respect that the book will continue
-to be the most popular of all Puranas, despite any thing that may be
-said as to its authorship or the period of its appearance.
-
-The Padma Purana devotes a chapter to the worship of this Purana and
-calls it the most exalted of all the Puranas and the book is actually
-worshipped in many Hindu houses. The Purana is recited all over India by
-learned Pandits and Sadhus and its subject matter is familiar to every
-Hindu.
-
-PROFESSOR WILSON SAYS: -- "Bhagavata is a work of great celebrity in
-India and exercises a more direct and powerful influence upon the
-opinions and feelings of the people than perhaps any other of the
-Puranas. It is placed fifth in all the lists but the Padma Purana ranks
-it as the eighteenth, as the extracted substance of all the rest.
-According to the usual specification it consists of eighteen thousand
-slokas, distributed amongst three hundred and thirty-two chapters
-divided into twelve Skandhas or books. It is named Bhagavata from its
-being dedicated to the glorification of Bhagavat or Vishnu."
-
-Referring to the Tenth Skandha, Professor Wilson says "The tenth book is
-the characteristic part of the Purana, and the portion upon which its
-popularity is founded. It has been translated into, perhaps, all the
-languages in India, and is a favourite work with all descriptions of
-people."
-
-Much as the book commands the respect of the Hindus, it has brought upon
-itself the ridicule and sarcasm of those that attack Hinduism. It is the
-Tenth Skandha which has given the greatest handle to all adverse
-criticism and it is the one Skandha in the whole book which is so little
-understood by foreigners, unacquainted with the genius of the Hindu
-religion, particularly with its love aspect which is the peculium of all
-real devotees in every great religion. But the modern professors of
-great religions, being lost in their material surroundings, have
-entirely lost sight of that aspect. The songs of Solomon will stand out
-in all ages as an expression of enthusiastic and rapturous love of the
-human soul for the Divine Lord, whether the Christians of the modern day
-understand them or not. The Divvans and Sufis bore the highest love to
-their divine Lover, whether or not the Mohammedans of the present day
-follow the outpourings of their heart.
-
-Love in religion is a Science. It is the natural outcome of the human
-soul, when it is freed from impurities and cured of distractions.
-
-All religions speak of the purity of the mind, and they speak also of
-devotion to God or Ishvara. But no religion other than Hinduism treats
-of the gradual development of the mind as a Science, treats of its
-purification and then of its natural attraction for Ishvara and the
-final assimilation of human life to Isvaric life as the law of the
-Universe. And no book in Hinduism deals with the subject so
-systematically specially with reference to the history of the Universe,
-as the Bhagavata Purana does. I have tried to understand the book myself
-as an earnest student, with the light afforded by the book itself. I
-have been greatly helped in the understanding of of the book by the
-commentary of Sridhara Svami which is by common consent the most
-authoritative of all the commentaries on the Bhagavata Purana. Once a
-Pandita prided himself before Sri Chaitanya on his having put an
-interpretation upon a certain sloka of the Purana different from that of
-Sridhara Svami. Now "Svami" is the designation of a learned Sanyassi,
-such as Sridhara Svami was and it also means a husband. Sri Chaitanya
-remarked "one that does not follow the Svami is unchaste." Such was the
-high opinion which the great Teacher held regarding Sridhara's
-commentary.
-
-I have purposely avoided making any reference to the commentaries made
-by the followers of Sri Chaitanya as I intend to study them separately
-along with the teachings of his school.
-
-The method of treatment followed in this study will speak for itself. I
-have separated the text from my own observations except in the
-introductory chapter and in the reference to Sukadeva in the chapter on
-Virat Purusha, and one can follow the text itself, without accepting any
-of my own views. I believe I have faithfully reproduced the text in its
-essential features, I have omitted unimportant details, poetical
-descriptions, prayers and adorations some of them most beautiful and
-sublime -- and I have also omitted the introduction by Suta and his
-concluding words. Suta related the Purana to Rishi Sounaka and others as
-he heard it from Sukadeva.
-
-The proofs have passed through different hands and the transliteration
-of Sanskrit words has been differently made. For instance [Sanskrit
-Letter] has been rendered as s, s, _s_ and sh. Though I would prefer s,
-the dash has been generally omitted, for the convenience of the printer.
-There have been also several mistakes in names.
-
-My best thanks are due to the several gentlemen, who have gone through
-the proofs and specially to my friend Mr. Bertram Keightley M, A., who
-has gone through nearly the whole of the manuscripts.
-
-
-
-
-Table of Contents
-
-
- PREFACE.
- SKANDHA I.
- THE IDEAL OF BHAGAVATA PURANA: A DISCOURSE BETWEEN VYASA AND
- NARADA.
- ACCOUNT OF NARADA.
- VIRAT PURUSHA.
- SKANDHA II.
- THE PURUSHA IN ALL HEARTS.
- THE DEATH OF THE YOGI AND AFTER.
- WHAT MEN ARE TO DO AND WHAT THEY ARE NOT TO DO.
- THE BHAGAVATA PURANA AS RELATED BY BRAHMA TO NARADA.
- I. THE CREATION.
- II. PRESERVATION BY LILA AVATARAS.
- THOUGHTS ON THE ABOVE.
- THE BHAGAVATA PURANA AND ITS PARTS.
- SKANDHA III.
- BHAGAVATA AS RELATED BY MAITREYA TO VIDURA.
- I.--THE CREATION
- THOUGHTS ON THE ABOVE
- II. -- VASUDEVA AND SANKARSHANA.
- III. -- THE CREATION BY BRAHMA.
- THOUGHTS ON THE ABOVE.
- IV. DIVISIONS OF KALA.
- V.-THE CREATION BY BRAHMA (_Continued_) III. 12.
- PRE-MANVANTARIC CREATION.
- THE FIRST OR THE SVAYAMBHUVA MANVANTARA.
- VI. BHUR AND VARAHA
- THOUGHTS ON THE ABOVE.
- VII. THE STORY OF HIRANYAKSHA.
- THOUGHTS ON HIRANYAKSHA.
- VIII. DEVA AND DEVA-YONI CREATION.
- IX. THE PROGENY OF KARDAMA.
- THOUGHTS ON KARDAMA.
- X. KAPILA'S INSTRUCTION TO HIS MOTHER DEVAHUTI.
- SKANDHA IV.
- THE GENEALOGY OF MANU AND THE RISHIS.
- GENERAL REMARKS ON THE TABLES.
- TABLE A.
- TABLE B.
- TABLE C.
- TABLE D.
- TABLE E.
- TABLE F.
- TABLE G.
- TABLE H.
- TABLE I.
- TABLE J.
- TABLE K.
- TABLE L.
- THE QUARREL BETWEEN SIVA AND DAKSHA.
- THOUGHTS ON THE ABOVE.
- TABLE M.
- TABLE N.
- I. THE STORY OF DHRUVA.
- THOUGHTS ON THE ABOVE.
- II. THE STORY OF PRITHU.
- THOUGHT ON THE ABOVE.
- III. THE STORY OF THE PRACHINA BARHIS OR BARHISHAD.
- IV. THE ALLEGORY OF PURANJANA.
- V. THE STORY OF THE PRACHETAS BROTHERS.
- THOUGHTS ON THE ABOVE.
- SKANDHA V.
- TABLE V. PRIYAVRATA.
- THOUGHTS ON THE LINE OF PRIYA VRATA.
- THE EARTH CHAIN, BHUVANA KOSHA.
- ILAVRITA IS THE CENTRAL VARSHA.
- THE GANGES.
- THE MYSTERIES OF THE VARSHAS.
- THE DVIPAS.
- SVAR AND BHUVAR.
- THE SUN.
- THE PLANETS AND STARS.
- THE PATALAS
- ANANTA.
- THE NARAKAS.
- SKANDHA VI.
- THE STORY OF AJAMILA
- THE PROGENY OF DAKSHA.
- THE PROGENY OF DHARMA.
- THE PROGENY OF BHUTA.
- THE PROGENY OF ANGIRASA.
- THE PROGENY OF KRISASVA.
- THE PROGENY OF TARKSHA.
- THE PROGENY OF KASYAPA
- THE STORY OF VIVSVARUPA.
- THE STORY OF VRITRU.
- THE STORY OF CHITRAKETU.
- THE DAITYAS.
- THE MARUTS.
- SKANDHA VII.
- THE MYSTERIES ABOUT THE SURAS AND THE ASURAS.
- THOUGHTS ON THE ABOVE.
- I. _Hiranyaksha and Hiranyakasipu._
- II. _Ravana and Kumbhakarna._
- THE STORY OF HIRANYAKASIPU.
- HIRANYAKASIPU AND PRAHLADA.
- THE PRAYER OF PRAHLADA
- VARNA AND ASHRAMA.
- SKANDHA VIII.
- YAJNA.
- THE SECOND MANVANTARA.
- THE THIRD MANVANTARA.
- THE FOURTH MANVANTARA.
- THE STORY OF THE ELEPHANT KING.
- THE FIFTH MANVANTARA.
- THE SIXTH MANVANTARA.
- THE CHURNING OF THE OCEAN.
- THOUGHTS ON THE ABOVE.
- THE SEVENTH MANVANTARA.
- THE EIGHTH MANVANTARA.
- THE NINTH MANVANTARA.
- THE TENTH MANVANTARA.
- THE ELEVENTH MANVANTARA.
- THE TWELFTH MANVANTARA.
- THE THIRTEENTH MANVANTARA.
- THE FOURTEENTH MANVANTARA.
- THE ADMINISTRATION OF A MANVANTARA
- THE STORY OF BALI.
- THOUGHTS ON THE ABOVE.
- THE MATSYA AVATARA.
- SKANDHA IX.
- THE VAIVASVATA MANVANTARA.
- SUDYUMNA.
- IKSHVAKU BROTHERS.
- THE LUNAR DYNASTY.
- THE LUNAR DYNASTY (Continued).
- THOUGHTS ON THE VAIVASVATA MANVANTARA.
- THE TENTH SKANDHA.
- VRINDAVANA LILA
- THE BIRTH OF SRI KRISHNA.
- COUNSEL WITH THE DAITYAS.
- NANDA AND VASUDEVA.
- PUTANA
- THE UPTURNING OF THE CART.
- TRINAVARTA OR THE WHIRLWIND.
- THE NAMES "KRISHNA" AND "RAMA."
- PRANKS OF THE BOY.
- THE TYING.
- THE ARJUNA TREES.
- THE FRUIT SELLER.
- VRINDAVANA.
- VATSA OR THE CALF.
- BAKA OR THE CRANE.
- AGHA OR THE SERPENT.
- BRAHMA AND KRISHNA.
- DHENUKA.
- THE KALIYA SERPENT AND THE FIRE.
- PRALAMBA.
- THE FOREST CONFLAGRATION.
- THE RAINY SEASON.
- THE AUTUMN.
- SRI KRISHNA AND THE GOPIS.
- THE STEALING OF CLOTHES.
- KRISHNA AND VEDIC YAJNA (SUMMER AGAIN.)
- INDRA AND THE RAISING OF GO-VARDHANA. THE INSTALLATION.
- KRISHNA AND VARUNA, KRISHNA AND THE GOPAS.
- THE FIVE CHAPTERS ON RASA
- THE RASA.
- SUDARSANA.
- SANKHA CHUDA.
- THE SEPARATION SONG OF THE GOPIS.
- ARISHTA.
- NARADA AND KANSA.
- KESI.
- VYOMA.
- AKRURA.
- MATHURA.
- THE WRESTLING.
- THE DEATH OF KANSA.
- THE THREAD CEREMONY AND BRAHMACHARYA.
- UDDHAVA AND VRAJA.
- THOUGHTS ON THE VRINDAVANA LILA.
- THE RASA.
- MATHURA LILA
- THE HUNCH-BACKED GIRL AND THE PANDAVAS.
- JARA SANDHA, YAVANA AND DVARAKA.
- MUCHUKUNDA
- DVARAKA LILA.
- RUKMINI.
- PRADYUMNA.
- THE JEWEL SYAMANTAKA, JAMBAVATI AND SATYABHAMA.
- SYAMANTAKA, AKRURA, KRITAVARMAN AND SATA DHANU:
- THE OTHER WIVES OF SRI KRISHNA.
- KRISHNA AND RUKMINI.
- THE SONS OF KRISHNA.
- THE DEATH OF RUKMIN.
- BANA.
- NRIGA.
- BALARAMA AND THE DRAWING OF THE YAMUNA.
- POUNDRAKA AND THE KING OF KASI (BENARES).
- DVI-VID (MONKEY).
- SAMBA, LAKSHANA AND BALARAMA.
- NARADA AND THE WIVES OF SRI KRISHNA.
- THE RAJA SUYA AND JARASANDHA.
- SISUPALA.
- THE SLIGHT OF DURYODHANA.
- SALVA.
- DANTA VAKRA AND VIDURATHA.
- BALARAMA AND THE DEATH OF ROMAHARSHANA.
- SRIDAMAN.
- THE MEETING AT KURUKSHETRA.
- VASUDEVA, DEVAKI, AND THEIR DEAD SONS.
- ARJUNA AND SUBHADRA
- SRUTADEVA AND BAHULASVA.
- THE PRAYER TO BRAHMAN BY THE SRUTIS.
- THE RESTORATION OF BRAHMAN BOYS TO LIFE.
- THE LINE OF KRISHNA.
- THOUGHTS ON THE MATHURA LILA.
- THOUGHTS ON THE DVARAKA
- THE WIVES.
- THE ELEVENTH SKANDHA
- THE MUSHALA. XI. I.
- THE BHAGAVATA PATH.
- KRISHNA AND UDDHAVA.
- SELF-INSTRUCTION.
- ATMA A REFUTATION OF THE SCHOOL OF JAIMINI.
- BONDAGE AND LIBERATION.
- SADHU AND BHAKTI.
- WHY GIVE UP ALL KARMA
- THE GUNAS.
- HOW TO WITHDRAW FROM THE OBJECTS OF THE SENSES.
- BHAKTI YOGA.
- MEDITATION.
- THE SIDDHIS
- THE VIBHUTIS OR POWERS OF THE LORD.
- VARNA AND ASRAMA RULES.
- WHAT ONE IS TO DO FOR MOKSHA.
- THE SADHANAS OR EXPEDIENTS.
- THE THREE PATHS: KARMA, JNANA AND BHAKTI.
- GUNA AND DOSHA OR RIGHT AND WRONG
- THE TATVAS.
- PRAKRITI AND PURUSHA.
- RE-INCARNATION.
- FORBEARANCE.
- SANKHYA.
- SATVA RAJAS AND TAMAS.
- COMPANY.
- KRIYA YOGA AND IDOL WORSHIP.
- JNANA YOGA.
- BHAKTI YOGA.
- THE END.
- THE TWELFTH SKANDHA.
- PRALAYA.
-
-
-
-
-SKANDHA I.
-
-
-
-THE IDEAL OF BHAGAVATA PURANA: A DISCOURSE BETWEEN VYASA AND NARADA.
-
-
-"I have duly respected the Vedas, the teachers and the sacrificial fire,
-I have put the sense of all the Vedas into the Mahabharata and have made
-their sacred lore accessible to all classes of men. I have done all
-this, nay, much more. Still I think my work is not fully done." So
-thought Veda Vyasa, the adept author of the Kali Yuga, while meditating
-on the sacred banks of the Sarasvati, and his heart became heavy with
-something, he knew not what. At this time Narada appeared before him --
-Narada, who knew all that transpired in the Triloki and who could enter
-into the hearts of all beings. "Thou hast fully known," said Narada,
-"all that is knowable, for thou hast written the excellent Mahabharata,
-which leaves nothing unsaid. How is it then thou feelest dispirited as
-if thy object were not gained?" What could Vyasa say in reply; he only
-inquired from the seer Narada the cause of his uneasiness.
-
-Narada entered into a free criticism of the Bhagavat Gita, the
-philosophical portion of the Mahabharata, pointed out its shortcomings
-and suggested to Vyasa what next to do. A few remarks will be necessary
-to understand all this.
-
-There are seven planes Bhur, Bhuvar, Svar, Mahar, Jana, Tapas and Satya.
-
-Bhur is the terrestrial plane.
-
-Bhuvar is the astral plane.
-
-Svar is the plane of Kama and desires.
-
-These three planes, collectively known as Triloki, are the planes of
-personality. Kama is the guiding principle of existence in Triloki, and
-a recurrence of births and re-births its main characteristic. With every
-Night of Brahma, this triple plane comes to an end, transferring its
-energies to the next higher plane, and is re-born with every Day of
-Brahma. Mahar is intermediate between Triloki and the three higher Lokas
-of Universality.
-
-The Vedic school laid great stress on communion with the Devas of Svar
-Loka or Svarga or Indra Loka, and this was pre-eminently known as Vedic
-Yajna. The performance of Vedic Yajna led only to a prolonged
-gratification of kama in Svar Loka. But however long the period might
-be, it was limited by the magnitude of the force (Apurva) which buoyed
-up the individuality in the Svar Loka. As the Gita says, when the merits
-are exhausted the observer of Vedic Dharma enters again into the
-transitory plane. The course of births and re-births is then set up
-anew, with constant transformations and with all the miseries of
-existence conditioned by personality.
-
-This was not Mukti or liberation. The followers of the post-vedic or
-Upanishad school contended that liberation lay in crossing the triple
-plane of individuality to the higher cosmic planes of universality. When
-an individual reaches the higher planes, he does not again become
-subject to transformations, and to the constant recurrence of births and
-re-births. There is one continued life, one continued existence in the
-higher planes, till the end of cosmos or the Life of Brahma. This life
-is not measured by personalities but is the cosmical life, and the
-individuality becomes a cosmical entity. Further there is life also
-beyond the cosmos, in the highest plane, the abode of the Supreme.
-
-The Gita only incidentally describes the highest plane in the following
-sloka:
-
-"That is my supreme abode, by reaching which (Jivas) do not recur (to
-fresh births). Not the Sun, not the Moon, not even fire illumines that."
--- XV. 6.
-
-Krishna also refers to that plane in VIII. 20 and XV. 4. 5.
-
-The Gita lays down Nishkama Karma, or the unselfish performance of the
-duties of life (Sva-dharma) as the first step towards reaching the
-higher planes. The sense of separateness is killed by Nishkama Karma.
-Then the Gita takes the disciple to Upasana or communion with the
-Purusha of the highest plane, but scarcely a glimpse is given of that
-plane and its surroundings. The Mahabharata does not throw any light on
-the dwellers of the higher planes, nor does it give any details of those
-planes. Without any distinct prospect of trans-Triloki life, one is
-asked to adhere to the duties appertaining to one's own sphere of life
-(Sva-dharma) and to perform those duties unselfishly. However transitory
-the things of Triloki may be, there are attractions enough for the frail
-sons of Manu, abounding in passions and desires. What can then bind a
-man to the higher planes and the highest Purusha of those planes or
-Bhagavan? It is only a description of the grandeur and the glory of
-those planes and of Bhagavan. Such description begets Bhakti or holy
-attachment, and it is this Bhakti which sets up a real communion with
-Bhagavan. Frail as man is, the mere performance of duties makes him
-attached to them, unless he is bound to the higher planes by the tie of
-holy attachment. The Gita is however silent as to the attractions of the
-higher planes and of Bhagavan. This was the defect pointed out by
-Narada.
-
-"O thou great Muni, as thou hast treated of Dharma and of other things,
-so thou hast not recited the glory of Vasudeva". -- I. 5. 9.
-
-"This universe is also an aspect of Bhagavan, for its creation,
-preservation and end proceed from Him. Thou knowest all this thyself.
-But thou hast shown to others only a portion of this truth." -- I. 5.
-20.
-
-"Salutations to Thee, Bhagavan, let me meditate on Vasudeva. Salutations
-to Pradyumna, Aniruddha and to Sankarshana. He who, by naming these
-_murtis_ in the _murtiless_, whose only _murti_ is mantra, makes
-offerings to Yajna Purusha, is the complete seer." -- I. 5. 37-38. A
-mystery lies veiled in this Sloka.
-
-But who is this Narada? Why should we accept his authority? Narada was
-therefore careful to give his own account, elaborated by the enquiries
-of Vyasa. All students of occultism will do well to read carefully this
-account which forms a fitting preliminary to the Bhagavata.
-
-
-
-ACCOUNT OF NARADA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA I. CHAP. 5 & 6.*
-
-"In the previous Kalpa, in my former birth, I was born of a certain
-maid-servant of Vedic Rishis. Certain Yogis had collected at a place to
-pass the rainy season and I was engaged as a boy to serve them. Seeing
-me void of all fickleness as a boy and self-controlled, the Munis, who
-looked on all with equal eyes, were kind to me, especially as I gave up
-play, followed them, served them and talked little. With the permission
-of the regenerated I at one time partook of the remnants of their meal
-and the impurities of my mind were all removed. When thus my mind became
-pure, my inclination grew towards their Dharma. By their favor I heard
-them sing the beautiful stories of Krishna. Hearing those stories every
-day with faith, I gained holy love for Krishna. Through that love my
-mind became fixed in Him and I came to perceive my Sthula and Sukshma
-bodies as only false reflections of the real Self or Brahma. The Bhakti
-that grew up in me destroyed my Rajas and Tamas. Then when the kind
-Rishis were about to leave the place, they imparted to me the most
-occult knowledge which had been given to them by Bhagavan himself.
-Through that knowledge I have known the Maya of Bhagavan. It is by that
-knowledge that one reaches the plane of Bhagavan. As I cultivated this
-occult knowledge, Bhagavan appeared Himself and gave me knowledge and
-powers direct."
-
-[Sridhara Svami, the commentator of Bhagavata Purana notes the following
-points in the above story (1) Seva, _i.e._, service of and attendance on
-Mahatmas, (2) their kripa or favor, (3) trust in their Dharma, (4)
-hearing the stories of Bhagavan, (5) attachment to Bhagavan, (6)
-knowledge of Self by the discrimination of the Sthula and the Sukshma
-body, (7) firm Bhakti, (8) knowledge of the reality of Bhagavan, (9) at
-the last the appearance of omniscience and other powers through the
-favor of Bhagavan.]
-
-What followed then, inquired Vyasa? Narada continued:
-
-"Sometime after my teachers, the Bhikshus, had gone away, my mother died
-of snake-bite. I deemed that an act of God and went towards the North.
-After crossing several forests, rivers and mountains, I at last reached
-a solitary forest and there sat under a pipal tree. As directed by my
-teachers, I meditated on self in self through self. My mind had been
-completely conquered by Bhakti. As I was devotedly meditating on the
-lotus feet of Bhagavan with tear-drops in my eyes, Hari gradually
-appeared in my heart. O Muni, the hairs of my body stood on end through
-exuberance of holy love, I was completely lost in joy and knew not
-either self or any other. The indescribable Ishvara spoke thus in solemn
-words:
-
-"O thou that dost not deserve to see me in this life, I am difficult to
-be seen by imperfect Yogis, whose likes and dislikes have not been
-completely burnt up. I have shown myself to thee that thy Kama may all
-be centred in me. When I am the object of Kama, the Sadhu gives up all
-other desires. By prolonged service of Mahatmas, thy mind is firmly
-fixed in me. Therefore shalt thou give up this faulty body and acquire
-my companionship. The mind fixed in me is never destroyed in creation or
-in pralaya, nor does the memory fail.'"
-
-"So saying Ishvara disappeared. In time, when I was drawn towards the
-pure body with which I was favored by Bhagavan, the body of my five
-Bhutas fell down on the extinction of my Prarabdha Karma. When the Kalpa
-came to an end my new body was indrawn by the breath of Brahma who was
-going to sleep. After one thousand Yuga Cycles, when Brahma awoke and
-desired to create, I, Marichi, and other Rishis came out. Since then I
-have invariably observed Brahmacharya and through the favor of Vishnu
-have been travelling all over Triloki, both inside and outside, my
-passage being wholly unobstructed. The Devas gave me this Vina which is
-adorned with Svara-Brahma. By playing upon this Vina I send forth songs
-of Hari all round. These songs are the only means of crossing the ocean
-of recurring lives."
-
-[This is the mystery of Narada as related in the Puranas. Narada is the
-repository of occult knowledge from the previous Kalpa. The first and
-foremost adept of this Kalpa, his mission is to spread occult knowledge,
-by unceasingly playing on the seven musical notes. He is ever watchful
-and always bides his time in all cyclic changes. He is the only Rishi of
-whom the Vina is a constant accompaniment, as it is of the goddess
-Sarasvati. His sphere of action is Triloki, and the dwellers of Bhur,
-Bhuvar, and Svar alike respect him. He is the universal counsellor, even
-of the highest Devas and of the highest Rishis. His constant mission is
-the good of the Universe. One thing is said of him, that he sometimes
-serves his purpose by setting one against another and amongst the
-ignorant his name is a bye-word for quarrel. However that be, the
-greatest good of the Universe in this Kalpa has been always done by him.
-It is under his inspiration, that Valmiki and Vyasa wrote their most
-occult works, and his benign influence is observed in all universal
-changes for good. The Bhagavata recites his constant endeavours to do
-good and we shall consider them in detail hereafter.]
-
-
-
-VIRAT PURUSHA.
-
-
-*SK. I. CH. 18 & SK. II. CH. I.*
-
-Vyasa drew upon his inspiration and wrote the Bhagavata. He taught this
-Purana to his son, the wonderful Suka. Suka did not marry, as Rishis in
-his time did. He left his home and roamed about the world at large,
-stark naked. The separation was painful to Vyasa and he went out in
-search of his son. While he passed near a tank, the Apsarasas, who were
-freely indulging in play, hastily drew up their clothes, feeling
-ashamed. "Strange!" exclaimed Vyasa, "I am old and covered. But when my
-young son, wholly uncovered, went this way, you remained unmoved." And
-the Deva-ladies replied, "Thy son knows not man and woman, but thou
-knowest." This exalted Suka was the worthy propounder of the Bhagavata
-Purana.
-
-Raja Parikshit, son of Abhimanyu and grandson of Arjuna, the successor
-of Raja Yudisthira on the throne of Hastinapura, forgot himself in a fit
-of anger and placed a dead serpent round the neck of a Rishi. For this
-he was cursed by the Rishi's son to meet with untimely death at the end
-of a week. The Raja became penitent and deemed the curse an act of God.
-He prepared himself for death and took up his abode on the sacred banks
-of the Ganges in company with all the Rishis. The Raja asked what a man
-on the point of death should do. The Rishis present could not give any
-satisfactory answer. At this time Suka appeared, followed by a host of
-boys, who took him to be a mad man. Suka was then only sixteen with long
-flowing hairs and well-built body, blooming with nature's beauty. All
-rose up as they saw the very young Rishi, and gave him the first seat.
-He related the Bhagavata Purana to Parikshit in seven days.
-
-The Raja repeated his question to Suka -- "What is a dying man,
-specially one who desires to attain Moksha, to do? What are the duties
-of men and what are they not to do?"
-
-Suka replied: -- "A man on the approach of death is to give up all
-fear of death and is to cut off all likes and dislikes by dispassion. He
-is to leave his house, bathe in pure water and duly make his asana in
-some solitary place. He is then to meditate on the three lettered
-Pranava with mind concentrated by Dharana and Dhyana till he attains
-_samadhi_. If, however, his mind gets distracted by Rajas and Tamas, he
-is again and again to practise Dharana."
-
-"What Dharana is it that speedily brings on concentration and purity of
-mind?" was the next question.
-
-Suka replied: -- "Dharana of the Sthula aspect of Bhagavana, by a
-fully controlled mind." He then went on dilating on the Sthula or
-Universe aspect, called Virat Purusha or Mahapurusha. The present, the
-past, the future is manifest in that aspect. The Virata Purusha is the
-soul of an Egg-like body with a seven-fold cover of earth, water, fire,
-air, akasa, Ahankara, and Mahat, respectively.
-
-Patala is His feet, Rasatala His heels, Mahatala His ankles, Talatala
-His legs, Sutala His knees, Vitala the lower portion of His thighs, and
-Atala the upper portion.
-
-Bhur Loka is His loins, Bhuvar Loka His navel, Svar Loka His breast,
-Mahar Loka His throat, Jana Loka His mouth, Tapas Loka His forehead, and
-Satya Loka is the head of the thousand-headed Virat Purusha. Indra and
-other Usra Devas (the world Usra meaning, literally, a ray of light) are
-his hands.
-
-The Dik or space gods are his ears. The twin gods Asvini Kumara are his
-nose.
-
-Agni is His mouth.
-
-The firmament is His eyes and the Sun-god His sight.
-
-Day and night are His eye-lashes.
-
-The graceful movement of His eye-brows is the abode of the Supreme.
-
-Water is His palate, taste His tongue.
-
-The Vedas are known as His Brahma-randhra.
-
-Yama is His tusk.
-
-The objects of affection are His teeth.
-
-His enchanting smile is Maya.
-
-The endless creation is His side-glance.
-
-His lower lip is shame, and the upper greed.
-
-Dharma is His breast. Adharma His back.
-
-Prajapati is His generative organ.
-
-The Mitra-Varuna gods are His sense of taste.
-
-The seas are His belly, the mountains His bony system and the rivers His
-veins and arteries.
-
-The trees are the hairs of the Universe-bodied.
-
-The powerful wind-god is His breath.
-
-Time is His movement.
-
-His play is the flow of Gunas.
-
-The clouds are His hairs.
-
-Twilight is His clothing.
-
-Prakriti is His heart.
-
-His manas is the moon, which is the source of all transformations.
-
-Mahat is His Chitta.
-
-Rudra is His Ahankara.
-
-Horses, mules, camels and elephants are His nails.
-
-All the other animals are His loins.
-
-The birds are His wonderful art.
-
-He is the abode of Manu, Buddhi and Man.
-
-Gandharva, Vidyadhara, Charana and Apsaras are His musical notes.
-
-The Asuras are His strength.
-
-The Brahmana is His mouth, the Kshatriya His hands, the Vaisya His
-thighs, and the black Sudra His feet.
-
-The Devas severally and collectively are His _havis_ or sacrificial
-ghee, and yajna is His karma.
-
-This is Virat Purusha. This is how the Universe-aspect of Purusha is
-realised in meditation, more as a means of concentration, than as the
-end. When the mind is sufficiently fixed by Dharana or contemplation of
-Virat Purusha, it has next to meditate on the Purusha in the heart.
-
-
-
-
-SKANDHA II.
-
-
-
-THE PURUSHA IN ALL HEARTS.
-
-
-*SKANDHA II., CHAP. 2.*
-
-Some meditate within their own body on the Purusha of the size of
-_pradesa_ (the space of the thumb and forefinger) in the space covered
-by the heart, who dwells there. He has four hands containing Sankha
-(conch), chakra (a sharp circular missile), Gada (club) and Padma
-(lotus). His face is smiling, His eyes are as wide as lotus petals, and
-His cloth is yellow as the filament of the Kadamba flower. His armlets
-glitter with gems and gold. His crown and earrings sparkle with
-brilliant stones. Adepts in Yoga place His feet on the pericarp of the
-full blown lotus in the heart. With Him is Sri (Lakshmi). The Kaustubha
-gem is on His neck. He is adorned with a garland of ever blooming wild
-flowers. His hair is curling and deep blue. His very look is full of
-kindness to all.
-
-As long as the mind is not fixed by Dharana, meditate on this form of
-Ishvara, with the help of thy imagination. Concentrate your mind on one
-limb after another, beginning with the feet of Vishnu and ending with
-His smiling face. Try to grasp every limb in thought and then proceed to
-the next-higher. But as long as Bhakti or Devotion is not developed, do
-not fail to contemplate also on the Universe aspect of Purusha.
-
-
-
-THE DEATH OF THE YOGI AND AFTER.
-
-
-*SKANDHA II., CHAP. 2.*
-
-When all desires are controlled by meditation, and the Yogi is lost in
-the contemplation of Vishnu, he sits in proper posture, pressing his
-feet against the anus and perseveringly draws the vital air upwards to
-the six centres. He draws the air in the navel centre (Manipur) to the
-cardiac plexus, thence to the plexus beneath the throat (Visuddha),
-thence gradually by intuition to the root of the palate. (Sridhara Svami
-calls this last the higher part of Visuddha chakra, and remarks that the
-vital air is not displaced from that position. This may be called the
-pharyngeal plexus.) Thence he takes the vital air to Ajna chakra, which
-is situated between the two eye-brows. Then he controls the seven holes
-(the ears, the eyes, the nostrils and the mouth). He then looks steadily
-for half a Muhurta, and if he has not a trace of desire left in him
-gives up the body and the Indriyas, passes out through the
-Brahma-randhra and attains the state of Vishnu.
-
-[It will be noticed above that six plexuses are mentioned other than the
-Sacral and the prostatic.
-
-In the death of the desireless Yogi, there is no record of thereafter,
-for nothing is known beyond our cosmos.]
-
-"But, O king," said Suka, "if the Yogi seeks for the highest cosmic
-state or for the roamings of aerial Siddhas over the whole of cosmos, in
-full control of the eight Siddhis, he will then take his Manas and
-Indriyas with him. It is said that these Masters of Yoga can move both
-inside and outside Triloki, for their Linga Sarira consists of the atoms
-of air. The state attained by those that acquire Samadhi by Upasana,
-Tapas and Yoga cannot be reached by Vedic Karma. In space when the Yogi
-moves towards the Brahma Loka or Satya Loka, he first goes by means of
-his Sushumna Nadi to Vaisvanara or the fire-god for the Sushumna by its
-light extends beyond the body. His impurities being all washed away, he
-goes upwards to the Sisumara Chakra of Hari (_i.e._, up to the highest
-point of Triloki, as will be explained afterwards). Then crossing that
-Chakra of Vishnu, which is the navel of the Universe, he reaches the
-Mahar Loka with his pure Linga Sarira. There the dwellers of Svarga
-cannot go. Mahar Loka is the abode of Brahmavids, where Bhrigu and other
-adepts who live for a whole Kalpa dwell.
-
-"The Yogi remains in Mahar Loka till the end of the Kalpa, when, seeing
-the Triloki burnt up by fire from the mouth of Ananta or Sankarshana,
-the fires reaching even Mahar Loka's he moves towards the abode of
-Paramesthi (Satya Loka or Brahma Loka). This highest Loka lasts for two
-Pararddhas and is adorned by the chariots of the kings of Siddhas. There
-is no sorrow in Brahma Loka, no infirmity, no death, no misery, no fear
-of any kind. But the Yogi suffers from mental pain caused by sympathy
-with those that suffer for their ignorance of the supreme state in the
-recurrence of births with their endless miseries.
-
-"There are three courses for those that go to Brahma Loka. Some by the
-excellence of their merits get responsible cosmical positions at the
-next Kalpa. Others remain in the Brahma Loka till the end of the cosmos
-or Brahmanda. The Upasakas of Bhagavan however may at their will pierce
-through the cosmos or Brahmanda and reach the trans-cosmic plane of
-Vishnu. The text goes on to say how this is done. The cosmos consists of
-seven Patalas and seven Lokas, together forming the fourteen-fold
-Bhuvana, which extends over 50 Krores of Yojanas (1 Yojana = 8 miles).
-Surrounding this is a covering of the earthy principle, such as was not
-used up in the formation of the cosmos, extending over one krore of
-yojanas. (According to some this covering extends over 50 krores of
-yojanas.) The second cover is of water, extending over ten times as much
-space as earth, the third of fire, the fourth of air, the fifth of
-akasa, the sixth of Ahankara, the seventh of Mahat, each covering ten
-times as much space as the one preceding. The eighth cover is Prakriti,
-which is all pervading. The Linga Sarira of the Yogi in passing through
-the earthy cover, becomes earthy, through water becomes watery, and
-through fire, fiery. With the fiery body he goes to the air cover and
-with the airy cover to the akasa cover. He passes also through the
-Tanmatras and senses them. He passes through Prana itself and becomes
-all action. Having thus crossed the Sthula and Sukshma coverings, the
-Yogi reaches the sixth covering that of the Transformable or Ahankara
-Tatva, which is the absorber of the Tanmatras and of the Indriyas.
-Thence he goes to Mahat Tatva and thence to Pradhana, where all the
-Gunas find their resting place. Then becoming all Pradhana himself full
-of bliss, he attains with the exhaustion of all _upadhis_ the
-trans-cosmic Atma, which is Peace and Bliss.
-
-"These are the two ways to Mukti, the one prompt and the other deferred
-as sung in the Vedas."
-
-The following Diagram may be of some help in understanding the above:
---
-
-[Illustration: A diagram of concentric circles with P at the center and
-M' the outermost, with the Key below working inwards.]
-
-KEY TO THE CIRCLE.
-
-M' = Mahat cover 1,000,000 Krores or 50,000,000 Krores Yojanas.
-
-A" = Ahankara cover 100,000 or 5,000,000 Krores Yojanas.
-
-A' = Akas cover 10,000 or 500,000 Krores Yojanas.
-
-V = Vayu cover 1000 or 50.000 Krores Yojanas.
-
-T' = Tejas cover 100 or 5000 Krores Yojanas.
-
-A = Apas cover 10 or 500 Krores Yojanas.
-
-E = Earth cover 1 or 50 Krores Yojanas.
-
-S'= Satya Loka
-
-T = Tapas Loka
-
-J = Jana Loka
-
-M = Mahar Loka
-
-S = Svar Loka
-
-B' = Bhuvar Loka
-
-B = Bhur Loka
-
-P = Seven Patalas
-
-S' to P = 50 Krores Yojanas.
-
-A' to E = Includes Tanmatras, Indriyas and Prana.
-
-Prakriti surrounds the whole circle.
-
-
-
-WHAT MEN ARE TO DO AND WHAT THEY ARE NOT TO DO.
-
-
-*SKANDHA II. CHAP. 3.*
-
-This was the second part of Parikshit's question, and to this general
-question, the answer is also general. Those that want divine glory
-worship Brahma. Those that want their Indriyas to be powerful worship
-Indra and so on. But those that are desirous of Moksha must practise
-Bhakti Yoga towards the supreme Purusha. Of all Upasakas, this is the
-only means of attaining supreme bliss, unswerving Bhakti or devotion to
-Bhagavan and the company of Bhagavatas.
-
-
-
-THE BHAGAVATA PURANA AS RELATED BY BRAHMA TO NARADA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA II. CHAP. 4-6.*
-
-
-I. THE CREATION.
-
-
-Parikshit next asked "How did Bhagavan create this Universe, how does He
-preserve it, how will He draw it in? What are the Saktis by which He
-manifests Himself directly and indirectly? What are His actions?"
-
-Suka replied, these were the very questions asked by Narada of his
-father Brahma.
-
-Brahma replied: -- "Wishing to become manifold, the Lord of Maya,
-influenced Kala, Karma and Svabhava, by his own Maya". (Kala is the flow
-of Time and is, according to the Bhagavata Purana, the Sakti of Purusha.
-Karma is the _adrishta_ of Jiva or the Jiva record of the previous
-Kalpa. Svabhava is the essence of Prakriti). Under the influence of
-Purusha, the first disturbance in the equilibrium of the Gunas follows
-from Kala, transformation follows from Svabhava and the development of
-Mahat Tatva follows from Karma. When Rajas and Tamas manifest themselves
-in Mahat Tatva, it is transformed into Ahankara Tatva, with predominant
-Tamas. Ahankara Tatva by transformation becomes threefold. -- Satvika,
-Rajasika and Tamasika, i.e., Jnana Sakti (potency to produce the Devas),
-Kriya Sakti (potency to produce the Indriyas), and Dravya Sakti (potency
-to produce the Bhutas), respectively.
-
-Tamasa Ahankara was first transformed into Akasa, Akasa into Vayu, Vayu
-into Agni, Agni into Apas, and Apas into Prithivi, Satvika Ahankara was
-transformed into Manas and the ten Vaikarika Devas.
-
-[The Vaikarika Devas are the Adhidevas or the Energy-giving gods of the
-ten Indriyas. Sensing is _in_ Man or Adhi-Atma, it is of the object or
-Adhi-bhuta and is _caused by_ Vaikarika Deva or Adhi-Deva. Thus the
-object seen is Adhi-bhuta, the sight is Adhyatma and the manifesting
-Energy of sight is Adhideva.]
-
-The Vaikarika Devas are --
-
-Dik for Hearing;
-
-Vayu for Touch;
-
-Sun for Sight;
-
-Varuna for Taste;
-
-Asvini Kumaras for Smell;
-
-Agni for Speech;
-
-Indra for Pani or action of the hand;
-
-Upendra or Vishnu for Pada or action of the foot;
-
-Mitra or Yama for Payu or excretion;
-
-and Prajapati for Upastha or generation.
-
-Rajasika Ahankara was transformed into the ten Indriyas.
-
-The foregoing can be shown in the following table: --
-
-[Illustration: There is a pendulum-like drawing between the word Purusha
-and the phrase starting with Kala which is the pendulum swinging left
-and Karma which is the pendulum swinging right.]
-
- PURUSHA.
-
- Kala causing
- disturbance
- in the equilibrium of Karma
- Gunas.
- Svabhava.
-
-
- Transformation
-
-
- Details of transformation from
- Mahat downwards.
-
- Mahat.
- |
- Ahankara.
- |
- +---------------------+------------------+
- | | |
- Satvika or Rajasika Tamasika
- Vaikarika, = Kriya Sakti. = Dravya Sakti.
- = Jnana Sakti | |
- | | |
- | The 10 Indriyas Akasa
- | |
- | Vayu (air).
- +--------+ |
- | | Agni (fire).
- Manas The 10 Vaikarika |
- Devas or Adhidevas Apas (water).
- |
- Prithivi (earth).
-
-This is the Karana creation or the creation of the materials of the
-Individual creation. They could not, however, unite and proceed further
-with the work of creation. The Sakti of Bhagavan then permeated them and
-the cosmic Egg or Brahmanda was formed. The Egg remained for a thousand
-years unconsciously submerged in the primal waters. Purusha then
-influenced Kala, Karma and Svabhava to send forth vitality into it. It
-is this Purusha that emerged from the Egg with thousands of heads and
-thousands of limbs and is known as Virat Purusha. The seven Lokas and
-the seven Patalas are parts of His body. This is the first Avatara, the
-Adi Purusha that creates, preserves and destroys. All the objects of
-creation are His Avataras, or Saktis or Vibhutis. The Lila Avatars of
-Virat Purusha or special Incarnations for the preservation of the
-Universe are detailed below.
-
-
-II. PRESERVATION BY LILA AVATARAS.
-
-
-*SKANDHA II. CHAP. 7.*
-
- 1. _Varaha_ -- In order to raise the Earth from the waters, the
- Purusha adopted the body of Varaha or Boar and killed with His
- tusks the first Daitya Hiranyaksha.
- 2. _Yajna_ -- was born of Ruchi and Akuti. The Suyama Devas were
- born of Yajna. He dispelled the fears of Triloki.
- 3. _Kapila_ -- was born of Kardama Prajapati and his wife Devahuti.
- He taught Brahma Vidya to his mother.
- 4. _Dattatreya_ -- He preached Yoga to his disciples, who acquired
- powers and became liberated.
- 5. _The Kumaras._ -- Sanat Kumara, Sanaka, Sanandana and Sanatana.
- They completely promulgated the Atma Vidya, which had been lost in
- Pralaya.
- 6. _Nara Narayana._ -- They were born of Dharma and his wife Murti,
- daughter of Daksha. Their Tapas was so great that the Deva ladies
- could not shake it.
- 7. _Dhruva._ -- Though a boy, he could not bear the words of his
- step-mother. He went into the forests and made Tapas. He was
- rewarded with ascent to Dhruva Loka or the region of the polar
- star.
- 8. _Prithu._ -- He milked out riches and edibles from the earth.
- 9. _Rishabha._ -- Rishabha was the son of Nabhi by Sudevi or Meru
- Devi. He roamed about as Parama Hansa.
- 10. _Hayagriva._ -- This horse-headed Avatara appeared in the Vedic
- Yajna and promulgated the Vedas.
- 11. _Matsya._ -- Vaivasvata Mann found out this Avatara at the end
- of a cycle of Yugas. He preserved all beings and the Vedas from
- the waters of the Deluge.
- 12. _Kurma._ -- At the great churning of the Ocean, the Tortoise
- Avatara supported the Mandara mountain.
- 13. _Nrisinha._ -- The Man-Lion Avatara killed Hiranyakasipu.
- 14. _Hari_ -- saved the Elephant King of the famous story of Gajendra
- Moksha.
- 15. _Vamana_ -- measured the Triloki by His two steps.
- 16. _Hansa_ -- related Bhakti Yoga, Gnana and Bhagavata Purana to
- Narada.
- 17. The presiding deity of each Manvantara.
- 18. _Dhanvantari_ -- promulgated the science of medicine.
- 19. _Parasu Rama_ -- suppressed the Kshatriyas who became disregardful
- of the Brahmanas and the Sastras.
- 20. _Rama_ -- destroyed Lanka and killed Ravana.
- 21. _Rama_ and _Krishna_. -- The tenth Canto of Bhagavata is entirely
- devoted to their deeds.
- 22. _Vyasa._ -- He divided the trunk of the Veda tree into several
- branches.
- 23. _Buddha._ -- When the Asuras came to know the Vedic mysteries and
- to oppress people, Buddha incarnated Himself in order to confound
- them by preaching a variety of by-religions.
- 24. _Kalki_ -- will appear before the end of Kali Yuga, to set things
- right.
-
-Besides these Lila Avataras, there are Maya Guna Avataras and Vibhutis
-or Saktis.
-
-In _creation_ these are:
-
-Tapas, Brahma, the Rishis, and the Nine Prajapatis.
-
-In _preservation_ they are:
-
-Dharma, Vishnu, Manu, Devas and Kings.
-
-In _Pralaya_ they are:
-
-Adharma, Siva, Serpents and Asuras.
-
-O Narada, this is, in brief, the Bhagavata Purana. You relate it to
-others in a much more expanded form, so that people may have Bhakti or
-Divine attachment to Bhagavan.
-
-
-THOUGHTS ON THE ABOVE.
-
-
-The above account of creation relates to Triloki and to the dwellers of
-Triloki. After creation, some come down from the higher planes and hold
-responsible positions as we have already seen. The Vaikarika Devas, who
-may be identified with the Vedic Devas, are created or rather manifested
-in the Triloki before the Individual creation. They appertain to what
-the Purana calls Karana or causal Creation. The Vaikritika Devas and
-Deva Yonis, known as Elemental in Theosophical language, are created
-according to their Karma in the previous Kalpa and are subject to
-gradual evolution during the Kalpa. The Vaikarika Devas, however, remain
-as they are during the whole of the Kalpa. Similarly the Devas of the
-higher planes, e. g., Kumudas, Ribhus, Pratardanas, Anjanabhas and
-Pratitabhas of Mahar Loka, Brahma Purohitas, Brahma Kayikas, Brahma Maha
-Kayikas and Amaras of Jana Loka, Abhasvaras, Mahabhasvaras, and Satya
-Mahabhasvaras of Tapas Loka and Achyutas, Suddha Nibasas, Satyabhas and
-Sanjna Sanjnins of Satya Loka these are not affected by creation in
-Triloki. The dwellers of those Lokas other than Devas are also similarly
-not affected. The story of creation is a simple one. As the Linga Purana
-says, when Earth is scorched up in the summer season, it becomes fallow
-and the roots of vegetation remain underground. They, however, wait for
-the rainy season to germinate again and grow in all the varieties of the
-previous vegetation. Similarly when the previous creation is burnt up by
-the fires of Pralaya, the roots remain imbedded in Prakriti, which
-becomes fallow. The fallowness is removed on the approach of the
-creative period or Kala. Kala, according to Bhagavata, is a Sakti of
-Purush or the Unmanifested Logos. Then transformation follows in
-Prakriti according to Svabhava or the inherent nature of Prakriti and
-Karma, or the root-record of the previous Kalpa gives shape to the
-transformation.
-
-Sridhara Svami quotes a sloka, which says that there are three Purusha
-manifestations. The first Purusha is the creator of Mahat and other
-elemental principles (Tatvas). The Second Purusha is the dweller of the
-Cosmic Egg. The Third Purusha is the pervader of all beings.
-
-Creation is divided into two stages. First the creation of the
-principles themselves or Tatvas, which unite to form globes and
-individuals. This is called Karana creation. Secondly the creation of
-individuals and of globes. This is called Karya or resultant creation.
-Following the law of periodicity, the First Purusha energises the latent
-Karma or Jiva-record of the previous Kalpa, and prepares the ground for
-the development of that Karma, by setting Prakriti into active
-transformation. This is the First Life Wave which caused the principles
-to appear by themselves. The First Purusha permeated these principles as
-pure Atma.
-
-But the principles could not unite to make the forms, and to make
-individuals and globes. Purusha, as pure Atma could not guide them
-further, as the gulf between Purusha and Prakriti was too wide. So
-Purusha had to limit Himself further, by uniting with Mula Prakriti, as
-one undivided whole, and so becoming the guiding principle of all
-individual workings in our universe, the pervader of all individuals and
-globes as Atma-Buddhi. The Universe as a whole is represented as an Egg,
-and the Second Purusha or Virat Purusha is the soul of that Egg.
-Individuals and globes appear as germs in that Egg, and are all brought
-into manifestation in time by the Third Purusha Brahma.
-
-The Second Purusha is called the First Avatara and the seed and resting
-place of all other Avataras. An Avatara is a highly evolved Jiva, that
-has attained the Logoic state and that _comes down_ from his exalted
-position, to serve the universe. Why is the second Purusha called an
-Avatara? The Brihad Aranyaka Upanishad raises the veil a little on this
-point.
-
-"This was before Atma, bearing the shape of man (the first born from the
-Egg, the embodied soul, the Virat with heads and other members of the
-body) Looking round, he beheld nothing, but himself. He said first:
-'This am I'. Hence the name of I was produced.
-
-"_And because he, as the first of all of them consumed by fire all the
-sins, therefore he is called Purusha. He verily consumes him, who
-strives to obtain the state of Prajapati, prior to him."_ Sankaracharya
-explains the under-lined portion as follows: -- "And because he,
-"Prajapati in a former birth, which is the cause, as the first of those
-who were desirous to obtain the state of Prajapati by the exercise of
-reflection on works and knowledge, viz, "as the first of all of them,"
-of all those desirous of obtaining the state of Prajapati, consumed by
-the perfect exercise of reflection in works and knowledge all the sins
-of contact, which are obstacles to the acquirement of the state 'of
-Prajapati' because such was the case, therefore he is called Purusha,
-because, he, _pur_ (first) (did) _ush_ (burn)
-
-Therefore by the words: "He consumes him," it is meant, that the perfect
-performer obtains the highest state of Prajapati, he, who is less
-perfect, does not obtain it, and by no means, that the less perfect
-performer is actually consumed by the perfect.
-
-Here the word Prajapati refers to the Second Purusha.
-
-The state of the Second Purusha is the highest achievement of Jiva. It
-is the meeting ground of Jiva and the Supreme Purusha. The Second
-Purusha may be different for each Kalpa, it may be for each Brahmanda.
-He is the Ishvara, the Lord of our Universe. He holds the whole creation
-unto His bosom, and is the sustaining force of all. In the three aspects
-of Brahma, Vishnu and Siva, he guides the creation, the preservation and
-the dissolution of the Universe. Those that could not attain His state,
-though they strove for it equally as eminent as the Second Purusha, that
-are to become the Second Purusha in perhaps another Kalpa or Brahmanda,
-are the Lila Avataras. They remain merged in the Second Purusha or
-Ishvara and they manifest themselves in the Universe, only when a
-necessity arises for their manifestation. The Bhagavata contends that of
-all Lila Avataras, only Krishna is Purusha Himself the others being only
-partial manifestations of Purusha.
-
-"These are the parts and aspects of Purusha. Krishna is Bhagavan
-Himself." -- I-3-28.
-
-Tamas is dark, opaque and heavy on the physical plane, indolent and
-ignorant on the mental plane, non-perceptive on the spiritual plane.
-
-Rajas is translucent, and constantly moving on the physical plane;
-distracted constantly, acquiring likes and dislikes, and exercising
-intellection on the mental plane; and partially perceptive on the
-spiritual plane.
-
-Satva is light and transparent on the physical plane, cheerful and
-buoyant on the mental plane, and fully perceptive on the spiritual
-plane. True perception and real knowledge follow from Satva. By partial
-understanding and semblance of knowledge, the results of Rajas, people
-become distracted and led astray.
-
-Tamas keeps down all beings and enchains them to materiality in the
-course of evolution, and there is a point in the downfall of beings as
-well as of globes, beyond which there is a complete break-down. Satva
-counter-acts Tamas and the preservation and improvement of the Universe,
-rather of Triloki, there fore mean the infusion of Satva. Vishnu
-represents Satva and so Vishnu is the Preservative aspect of Virata
-Purusha. When Rajas and Tamas predominate in Triloki, when the lowest
-plane Bhur becomes heavy with Tamas, the Lila Avataras appear and infuse
-Satva into the Lokas.
-
-*SKANDHA I., CHAP. 2-34.*
-
-This Preserver of Lokas preserves the Lokas by means of Satva, by
-incarnating in Deva, Animal, Human and other kingdoms as Lila Avataras.
-
-The Third Purusha is Brahma in Creation, Vishnu in Preservation and Siva
-in dissolution. Vishnu as the Atma in each being manifests Himself in
-action consciousness and will. Brahma is the propelling power in the
-Involution of beings, which gives them their physical body. Vishnu is
-the propelling force in the evolution of beings through physiological
-action (Prana), sensation, intellect, and lastly the development of the
-spiritual faculties.
-
-
-THE BHAGAVATA PURANA AND ITS PARTS.
-
-
-*SKANDHA II., CHAP. 10.*
-
-The next question of Raja Parikshit was most comprehensive. It related
-to all knowledge of the Universe in all details. In answering the
-question, Suka related the whole of the Purana, from beginning to end.
-In doing so, the Muni gave a short introduction as to the history of the
-Purana. When Brahma regained his drowsy consciousness at the dawn of the
-present Kalpa, he knew not how to bring back the former state of things.
-He practised Tapas. Then Bhagavan appeared and related to him the
-Bhagavata Purana. Brahma taught the Purana to his son Narada. Narada
-gave it to Vyasa, and Vyasa to his son Suka.
-
-The Purana has ten parts: --
-
- 1. _Sarga_ -- the creation of the Bhutas, Tanmatras, Indriyas,
- Ahankara and Mahat, or of the materials that form individuals, and
- the appearance of Virat Purusha.
- 2. _Visarga_ -- the Individual creation by Brahma or the creation of
- the individual life forms.
- 3. _Sthana_ -- the preservation of the created beings in their own
- states by Bhagavan.
- 4. _Poshana_ -- the divine favor to those that properly remain in
- their own states.
- 5. _Manvantara_ -- the duties of the Rulers of Manvantaras.
- 6. _Uti_ -- desires that bind one to Triloki.
- 7. _Isanukatha_ -- stories of the Avataras and of the followers of
- Hari.
- 8. _Nirodha_ -- the sleep of Hari and of all individual souls a
- Pralaya.
- 9. _Mukti_ -- the continued perception of the identity of self and of
- Brahma.
- 10. _Asraya_ -- The Final Resort, Para Brahma or Paramatma from whom
- Creation and Dissolution both proceed.
-
-This brings us to the end of the Second Skandha.
-
-
-
-
-SKANDHA III.
-
-
-
-BHAGAVATA AS RELATED BY MAITREYA TO VIDURA.
-
-
-The Third and Fourth Branches of the Bhagavata are related by Maitreya
-to Vidura. Maitreya was the disciple of Parasara, father of Vyasa.
-Parasara learned the Purana from Sankhyayana, Sankhyayana from Sanat
-Kumara and Sanat Kumara from Atlanta Deva.
-
-
-I.--THE CREATION
-
-
-*SKANDHA III., CHAP. 5-6.*
-
-At Pralaya, the Sakti of Bhagavan was asleep. That Sakti is Maya, which
-is Sat-asat or Existing-nonexisting Existing eternally as root, and not
-so existing as forms. Following the law of Periodicity (Kala), Purusha
-fecundated Maya. Mahat and other principles appeared by transformation.
-All these principles were Devas, having in them germs of consciousness,
-action and transformation. They could not unite to form the Universe,
-being divergent in character. They prayed to Ishvara for power to unite.
-Taking Prakriti as a part (Sakti) of Him, Ishvara entered into the 23
-Tatvas or root principles. He awakened the Karma that remained latent in
-them. By Kriya Sakti, He then united then. The 23 Tatvas, acting under
-Divine Energy and the impulse of Karma that had remained latent in them,
-formed the Virat body, each bearing its own share in the work. The
-Purusha within this body -- Virat Purusha or Hiranya Purusha -- with all
-beings and globes included in Him, dwelt for one thousand years in the
-waters (like the embryo in the waters of the uterus.) This Embryonic
-Purusha divided self by self, onefold by Daiva Sakti, tenfold by Kriya
-Sakti and threefold by Atma Sakti. The onefold division is in the Heart.
-The tenfold division is in the Pranas (Prana, Apana, Samana, Udana,
-Vyana, Naga, Kurma, Krikara, Devadatta and Dhananjaya,) for the Pranas
-are not Tatvas or principles, but they form an aspect of Purusha. The
-threefold division is Atma in every being which is triune with its three
-sides -- Adhyatma, Adhibhuta and Adhidaiva. The Purusha infused His
-Sakti into the Virat body, for the development of powers in the Tatvas.
-The Adhyatma mouth appeared with its Adhibhuta speech and Adhidaiva
-Agni. Similarly the following appeared: --
-
-
- -----------------------------------------------------------------
- Adhyatma. Adhibhuta. Adhidaiva.
- -----------------------------------------------------------------
- Tongue Rasa (taste) Varuna.
- -----------------------------------------------------------------
- Nose Gandha(smell) Asvini Kumaras.
- -----------------------------------------------------------------
- Eye Rupa(sight) Aditya.
- -----------------------------------------------------------------
- Skin Sparsa (touch) Vayu.
- -----------------------------------------------------------------
- Ear Sabda (sound) Dik.
- -----------------------------------------------------------------
- Epidermis Sting Gods of
- vegetation
- -----------------------------------------------------------------
- Upastha
- -----------------------------------------------------------------
- (generative organ) Generation Prajapati.
- -----------------------------------------------------------------
- Payu Secretion Mitra
- -----------------------------------------------------------------
- Hand Actions of hand Indra.
- -----------------------------------------------------------------
- Pada (foot) Movements of foot Vishnu.
- -----------------------------------------------------------------
- Buddhi Bodh (deliberation) Brahma.
- -----------------------------------------------------------------
- Manas Sankalpa and Vikalpa Moon.
- (true and false
- perception)
- -----------------------------------------------------------------
- Ahankara Aham perception Rudra.
- -----------------------------------------------------------------
- Chitta Thought Brahma
- -----------------------------------------------------------------
-
-
-The Triloki also appeared, Svar from the head, Bhuvar from the navel and
-Bhur from the feet. With these Lokas appeared the Devas and other
-beings, who are the transformations of the Gunas. From the predominance
-of Satva, the Devas went to Svar Loka. Men and the lower Kingdoms
-entered Bhur Loka from the predominance of Rajas in them. By the
-predominance of Tamas, the different classes of Bhutas remained in
-Bhuvar Loka. The Brahmana appeared from the mouth, the Kshatriya from
-the hands, the Vaisya from the thighs and the Sudra from the feet.
-
-
-THOUGHTS ON THE ABOVE
-
-
-We have considered the manifested Logos in the Universe. We shall now
-consider His manifestation in Man, the microcosm. The teachings are all
-collected from the Upanishads.
-
-(i.) -- _The manifestation in the heart._ -- A detailed knowledge of
-this manifestation is called Dahara Vidya in Chandogya. The Upanishads
-speaks of Atma in the cavity of the heart.
-
-"Guhahitam Gahvarestham Puranam" is a well-known passage from the
-Upanishads. The Purusha in the heart is also called Pradesa or the
-span-sized Purusha and is the favourite object of meditation in
-Pauranika Upasana. The Upanishads call Him thumb-sized and there is an
-interesting discussion as to the size in Sariraka Sutras I-3-24 to 26
-and the Bhashya thereupon.
-
-(ii.) -- _The Manifestation in the Pranas._ -- The Upanishads say: --
-
-"It is this Prana that is consciousness itself, Bliss, without
-infirmities and death."
-
-"They are these five Brahma Purushas."
-
-Again --
-
-_"Brahma Purusha in the openings of the heart."_ The heart is called the
-abode of Brahma. There are five openings of this abode of Brahma and
-there are five gate-keepers. These gate-keepers or _dvara-palas_ are the
-five Pranas. They are called Brahma Purushas as they pertain to Brahma.
-As long as the king is in the heart, the doorkeepers remain in the body.
-These door-keepers being inevitable accompaniments of Brahma in the
-heart, are also themselves the outer aspects of Brahma.
-
-(iii.) -- _The manifestation as Atma which is triune._ What is a man but
-a bundle of experiences on the planes of Jagrat, Svapna and Sushupti.
-Each of these experiences has a threefold aspect or in Vedantic
-expression is a Triputi. These aspects are:
-
- 1) the object experienced or Adhibhuta,
- 2) the experience itself or Adhyatma,
- 3) and the Deva which gives the consciousness of that experience or
- Adhidaiva.
-
-In material expression, the object outside is Adhibhuta. The reception
-of its image is Adhyatma. The light that shews the image to be what it
-is, is Adhidaiva. As we have said, each experience is a three-sided
-triangle. All the triangles in the Jagrat state, analysed by the
-Vedantins into fourteen, are represented by the first letter _a_ in
-Pranava. All the triangles or Triputis in the dream state are
-represented by the second letter _u_. In Taraka Brahma Yoga, _a_ is
-merged in contemplation into _u_, and _u_ is merged into _ma_. In _ma_
-there is only one triangle, which is the primary triangle to which all
-other triangles in _a_ and _u_ may be reduced. The Adhibhuta side of
-this triangle is _ananda_ by the _vritti_ of Avidya. The Adhyatma side
-is the _vritti_ of Avidya. The Adhidaiva side is Ishvara. Life in
-Triloki is conditioned by this triangle. The object of Taraka Brahma
-Yoga is to cross the Triptiti, to cross the three letters of Pranava. It
-is only in the fourth _pada_ of Pranava that he finds his resting place,
-that pada being situated beyond the Triloki.
-
-The three manifestations of the Third Purusha in Jivas or individuals,
-may be said to relate to their different stages of evolution. Thus Prana
-manifests itself only in the lower life kingdoms, the minerals and
-vegetables. The Prana or life process is more elaborate in the
-vegetables than in the minerals. Purusha then manifests itself in the
-senses and emotions in the Animal kingdom and in intellect in the lower
-human kingdom the manifestation being three fold.
-
-The last manifestation of Purusha, the one-fold manifestation in the
-heart, is in higher man.
-
-
-II. -- VASUDEVA AND SANKARSHANA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA III., CHAP. 8.*
-
-When this universe remained submerged in the waters of Pralaya, the eyes
-of Vasudeva remained closed in sleep. He opened His eyes, lying down on
-the Serpent King Ananta or Sankarshana. He indulged in self and was
-without action. Inside His body was Bhuta-Sukshma or all beings in a
-subtle state of latency. Only Kala-Sakti manifested itself and He dwelt
-in those waters in self, as fire remains in wood, with powers
-controlled. Having slept for one thousand Yuga cycles in the waters,
-with only Kala-Sakti manifesting His work, He found the lotuses of the
-Lokas in His body. He then looked at the Sukshma, that was within Him.
-That Sukshma became pierced with Kala -- propelled Rajas, and small as
-it was, it came out of his navel region. By the action of Kala, which
-awakens Karma, it suddenly grew up into a lotus bud. Vishnu entered this
-Loka Padma or the Lotus of Lokas. Brahma then appeared in that Lotus. He
-looked on all sides and became four-faced, but he could not find out the
-Lokas. Though he was in the Lotus himself, confused as he was, he knew
-not the whole Lotus. Whence am I? Whence is this Lotus? So thought
-Brahma. And he searched below to feel the lotus-stalk. The search was
-vain for one hundred years.
-
-For another hundred years he meditated within self, and lo! there
-appeared within his heart one _Purusha_ lying down on the body of Sesha
-(the serpent king). (The description of the Purusha is much the same as
-we have read of the _Pradesa Purusha_. So it is not given here.) Brahma
-prayed to that Purusha and was told to practise Tapas for acquiring the
-power of creation.
-
-
-III. -- THE CREATION BY BRAHMA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA III., CHAP. 10.*
-
-When Bhagavan disappeared, Brahma, as directed, practised meditation for
-one hundred Deva-years. He found his lotus abode moved by air. With all
-the power acquired by _Atma Vidya_ and _Tapas_, he drank up all the
-waters and the air. He found the _Lokas_ attached to the overspreading
-Lotus and he had only to divide them. He entered into the Lotus bud and
-divided it into three parts -- the _Triloki_. This is the creation of
-the _Triloki_. The higher Lokas (Mahar, Jana, Tapas and Satya) are the
-transformations of _Nishkama Karma_ or unselfish action. So they are not
-destroyed in each Kalpa, but they last for two Parardhas.
-
-"What is Kala", asked Vidura, "that has been described as a _Sakti of
-Hari?_"
-
-"_Kala_ is the disturber of _Gunas_", replied Maitreya, "causing
-transformations. In itself it is without any particularity and is
-without beginning or end.
-
-"With Kala as the Nimitta or efficient cause, Bhagavan only manifested
-Himself. The Universe has no separate existence from that of Brahma. It
-is only Kala that makes the Universe manifest."
-
-The Creation of Brahma is ninefold, Prakrita and Vaikrita,
-Prakrita-Vaikrita being the tenth. The Pralaya is of three kinds:
-
- 1) By Kala or Nitya. Flow of time is the only cause of this Pralaya.
- 2) By Dravya or Naimittika. Dravya is the fire from the mouth of
- Sankarshana, at the end of one Kalpa.
- 3) By Guna or Prakritika, the Gunas devouring their own actions. The
- forms of Pralaya will be considered in the study of the Twelfth
- Branch.
-
-_A. -- Prakrita Creation, *i.e._ the Creation of Principles or Tatvas.*
-
- I. _Mahat_ -- Which is the out-come of the first disturbance of
- the equilibrium of the Gunas.
- II. _Ahankara_ -- Dravya + Jnana + Kriya.
- III. _Tanmatra_ -- Result of Dravya Sakti.
- IV. _Indriyas_ -- Result of Jnana and Kriya Sakti.
- V. _Vaikarika_ -- Devas and Manas.
- VI. The five-fold Tamasika creation.
-
-_B. -- Vaikrita or Individual Creation._
-
- VII. _Urdha Srotas_ -- or with upward current of the food taken, the
- Sthavara or Immobile kingdom with six divisions.
-
- 1) _Vanaspati_ -- Plants that fructify without flowers.
-
- 2) _Oshadhi_ -- Creepers that last till the ripening of fruits.
-
- 3) _Lata_ -- Ascending creepers.
-
- 4) _Tvaksara_ -- Those of which the growth is not in the
- centre, but in the dermal regions, as bamboos.
-
- 5) _Virudh_ -- Non-ascending woody creepers.
-
- 6) _Druma_ -- Flowering plants.
-
-
-The consciousness of all the six classes is almost obscured by Tamas.
-They are sensitive only to internal touch. They have many peculiarities.
-
- VIII. _Tiryak-Srotas._ -- With slanting food current. The position of
- the animal stomach as regards the animal mouth is such that
- food is not taken in vertically, but either horizontally or
- slantingly. The animal kingdom has 28 divisions. The animals
- are ignorant, with predominating Tamas, with the sense of smell
- largely developed in them so much that they mostly perceive by
- that sense, and with the faculties of the heart entirely
- undeveloped. The 28 classes are:
- 1. _Living on the ground._
- i. -- _The cloven-footed._
-
- (1) Cow, (2) goat, (3) buffalo (4)
- krishnasara, the spotted antelope, (5) hog,
- (6) gavaya, a species of ox, (7) ruru, a kind
- of deer, (8) sheep, (9) camel.
-
- ii. -- _The whole hoofed._
-
-
- (10) Ass, (n) horse, (12) mule, (13) goura, a
- kind of deer, (14) sarabha, a kind of deer,
- (15) chamari, a kind of deer.
-
- iii. -- _The five-nailed._
-
- (16) Dog, (17) jackal, (18) wolf, (19) tiger,
- (20) cat, (21) hare, rabbit, (22) porcupine,
- (23) lion, (24) monkey, (25) elephant, (26)
- tortoise, (27) alligator.
- 2. (28) Aquatic animals and birds.
- IX. _Arvak-Srotas_ or with downward food current, the Human kingdom
- with predominant Rajas, given to Karma, mistaking misery for
- happiness.
-
-
-_C. -- Prakrita- Vaikrita._
-
- X. The Kumaras. The Kumara creation is partly Prakrita and partly
- Vaikrita.
-
-Besides these, there is
-
-_D. -- Vaikrita Dev Creation._
-
-There are eight divisions of Vaikrita Devas:
-
- 1) Vivudha,
- 2) Pitri,
- 3) Asura,
- 4) Gandharva and Apsara,
- 5) Siddha, Charana and Vidyadhara,
- 6) Yaksha and Raksha,
- 7) Bhuta, Preta and Pisacha,
- 8) Kinnara, Kimpurusha, Asvamukha and others.
-
-The Vaikarika and Vaikrita Devas form one class.
-
-
-THOUGHTS ON THE ABOVE.
-
-
-_Prakrita_ creation is that which gives rise to and is connected with
-all individuals. Excepting the Tamasic or Avidya creation, which we
-shall consider later on, the other divisions of this creation were
-caused by the first life impulse, given by the First Purusha. The
-Tamasic creation was brought into manifestation by the Third Purusha
-Brahma.
-
-The division of the life-kingdoms according to the movements of the food
-taken is peculiar to the Pauranic system. It will be interesting to know
-from the physiological stand-point whether it is necessary for the
-development of the brain that the spinal column should be erect, whether
-it is necessary for the formation of the spinal column, that the stomach
-should retain a certain position, and to know also how far the fixture
-of the plants is an impediment to the development of any nervous system
-in them.
-
-It is remarkable that the mineral kingdom is not mentioned as a distinct
-life-kingdom. The reason appears to be that the creative process is
-divided into two periods. In the first period formless Jivas take form
-after form, till the lowest material form is reached. This is elemental
-creation or the creation of Devas, as described in detail in Ch. XXI.
-Sk. IV. The Purana goes on to say: -- "Then Brahma created the Manus."
-III.-24-49. The Manu creation shews, how mind was gradually developed
-through Vegetable, Animal and Human creations, out of the Mineral
-Kingdom, represented by the Mountain Chief Himalaya. The giving up by
-Sati, of the body acquired from Daksha and her rebirth as the daughter
-of the Mountain King show how the elemental creation gave way to a fresh
-creative process, which took its start from the Mineral Kingdom.
-
-The Kumaras form a peculiar creation. "They are Prakrita in as much as
-they partake of the character of Devas and they are Vaikrita, as they
-partake of the character of men." _Sridhara._ -- The great commentator
-also says: -- "Sanaka and other Kumaras are not created in every kalpa.
-The account of their creation is only given in the first Kalpa, called
-Brahma. In reality, the Vegetable and other life kingdoms are created in
-every Kalpa. Sanaka and others being created in Brahma Kalpa only follow
-the creations in other Kalpas."
-
-Upon death, men go to Bhuvar Loka, where they become Bhutas, Pretas and
-Pisachas. Then they go to Svar Loka, where they become Devas, not the
-Devas of Deva creations but only temporary Devas. When their merits are
-exhausted, they come down upon earth, to begin life as men again. But if
-by unselfish Karma and devotion, men pass across the limits of the
-triple plane, they go first to Mahar Loka. Here they are called
-Prajapatis. Bhrigu and other Prajapatis who are the ordinary dwellers of
-Mahar Loka, are described in one sloka of Bhagavata, as bearing the life
-period of one Kalpa. (II. 2. 25). In the next sloka it is said that the
-Yogins who go to Mahar Loka, remain there till the end of the Kalpa,
-when at last they go to Satya Loka.
-
-But in another sloka, the Purana says: -- "When the night of Pralaya
-follows, the three Lokas, Bhur, Bhuvar and Svar, are burnt by the fire
-from the mouth of Sankarshana. Troubled by the excessive heat of that
-fire, Bhrigu and others proceed from Mahar Loka to Jana Loka."
-III-11-30.
-
-This shews that the dwellers of Mahar Loka live for the life time of
-Brahma or two Parardhas.
-
-This is also made clear by the following commentary of Sridhara on
-III-10-9: --
-
-"Why did Brahma make the three Lokas into one division? This Triloki
-consisting of Bhur, Bhuvar and Svar -- is the place that is to be made
-in every Kalpa or day of Brahma for the enjoyment of Jivas (or
-individuals). But Jivas dwell in the higher Lokas as well. Why are not
-those Lokas created then in every Kalpa? This is because they are the
-transformations of unselfish (Nishkama) action or Dharma -- the Lokas
-themselves and the dwellers thereof. The Triloki and the dwellers
-thereof are the transformations of selfish (Kamya) action. Therefore
-they have birth and death in every Kalpa. But Mahar and other Lokas are
-begotten by unselfish action heightened by Upasana (or devotion), and
-they last for two Parardhas, which is the life time of Brahma. And the
-dwellers of those Lokas generally attain mukti (or liberation) after
-that period."
-
-The ordinary dwellers of Jana Loka are the Kumaras. When men in course
-of evolution reach Jana Loka, they become Kumaras.
-
-We have already seen that the essence of life in the higher Lokas is
-unselfishness. It is for this reason that the Gita speaks of unselfish
-action in the first instance as an essential requisite of spiritual
-life. But it is not unselfish action alone which enables us to get rid
-of our personal desires and to assimilate ourselves with that one life
-which pervades all. Devotional love is another equally essential
-requisite.
-
-It is impossible for us to realise the different experiences in the four
-higher Lokas.
-
-The famous Brahma Sukta has the following line: -- "The three feet of
-Isvara, bearing eternal happiness in the higher Lokas." The eighteenth
-Sloka in Chapter VI. of the Second Skandha is an exposition of this
-line. Sridhara has the following commentary on that line:
-
-"Happiness in Triloki is fleeting and temporary. Though Mahar Loka is on
-the path of liberation, the dwellers of that Loka have to leave it at
-the end of every Kalpa. The happiness there is therefore not
-ever-lasting. In Jana Loka, the happiness is ever-lasting, as long as
-the dwellers do not leave the place. But they have to witness the
-miseries of the dwellers of Mahar Loka, when they come to Jana Loka, at
-the end of the Kalpa. In Tapas, there is absolute want of evil. In
-Satya, there is freedom from fear or liberation."
-
-We have left the Devas (not the elementals that pass through the life
-kingdoms of this earth) out of consideration. Their evolution is worked
-out in all the seven Lokas. Their names and characteristics in each Loka
-are given by Vyasa in his commentaries on Patanjali's Sutras. Those who
-are ordinarily known as Devas are the dwellers of Svar Loka. The Deva
-Yonis or lower Devas are dwellers of Bhuvar Loka and Bhur Loka. Men have
-nothing to do with the Devas of the higher Lokas. The Devas of Triloki
-are indifferent, friendly or inimical to men. Left alone, they do not
-interfere with men. But when men try to gain superiority over them, by
-the acquisition of Brahma Vidya, they try to throw obstacles in their
-way.
-
-The Brihad Aranyak Upanishad says: -- "Even the gods verily are not able
-to prevent him from the possession of the state of all." I.-4-10
-
-Again, "As verily many beasts maintain a man, so every man maintains the
-gods. It is not pleasant, even if one beast is taken away, how then, if
-many? Therefore it is not pleasant to them, that men should know this
-_i.e._ the truth of the nature of Brahma." Commenting on this,
-Sankaracharyya quotes a Sloka from Anugrta: "The world of the gods is
-surrounded by performers of works. But the gods do not wish that mortals
-should abide above."
-
-Sankaracharyya goes on to say: -- "Therefore the gods try to exclude,
-like cattle from tigers, men from the knowledge of Brahma, as it is
-their desire, that they should not be elevated above the sphere of their
-use. Whom they wish to liberate, to him they impart belief &c., and
-unbelief to him whom they wish not to liberate."
-
-Ananda Giri, the commentator of Sankaracharyya, quotes the following
-Sloka: --
-
-"Devas do not protect men, rod in hand, like cattle-keepers. When they
-wish to protect a man, they impart the necessary intelligence to him."
-
-Nothing is said in the Puranas, as to Devas of the higher Lokas.
-
-The Prakrita Devas are intimately connected with our senses and
-intellect. It is through their direct help, that we are able to perceive
-and to conceive. Hence they are called Adhi-devas or Vaikaric Devas.
-They are not individuals and the remarks made above as to Devas, do not
-apply to them.
-
-
-IV. DIVISIONS OF KALA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA III. CHAP. 11.*
-
-The unit of Kala at the Sukshma pole is Paramanu, which is the minutest
-part of the created thing, not united to form a body. At the Sthula pole
-is the whole Sthula creation known in its entirety as Parama Mahan. The
-time during which the Sun crosses in his orbit one paramanu is the Kala
-unit paramanu. The time during which he crosses the whole system in his
-orbit, _i.e._, crosses all the twelve signs of the Zodiac, is Parama
-Mahan or one Samvatsara. The units of time and space are thus the same.
-
-1 Dvyanuka = 2 Paramanus.
-
-1 Trasarenu = 3 Paramanus.
-
-1 Truti = 3 Trasarenus.
-
-1 Vedha = 100 Trutis.
-
-1 Lava = 3 Vedhas.
-
-1 Nimesha or wink = 3 Lavas.
-
-1 Kshana = 3 Nimesha.
-
-1 Kastha = 5 Kshanas.
-
-1 Laghu = 15 Kasthas.
-
-1 Nadika = 15 Laghus.
-
-1 Muhurta = 2 Nadikas.
-
-1 Yama or Prahara = 6 or 7 Nadikas.
-
-1 Ahoratra (of the Mortals) = 8 Yamas.
-
-1 Paksha (Sukla or Krishna) = 15 Ahoratras.
-
-1 Masa (Month) = 1 Sukla + 1 Krishna Paksha.
-
-1 Ritu = 2 Masas.
-
-1 Ayana = 6 Masas (Uttara or Dakshina.)
-
-1 Vatsara = 2 Ayanas.
-
-1 Vatsara = 12 Masas
-
-1 Vatsara = 1 Ahoratra of Devas.
-
-1 Samvatsara = 1 year of Solar months.
-
-1 Parivatsara = 1 year of Jupiter months.
-
-1 Idavatsara = 1 year of Savana months.
-
-1 Svanuvatsara = 1 year of Lunar months.
-
-1 Vatsara = 1 year of Stellar months.
-
-One hundred Samvatsaras is the maximum age of men.
-
-Satya, Treta, Dvapara and Kali a cycle of these 4 Yugas and their
-Sandhyas and Sandhyansas consist of 12 thousand divine years.
-
-The beginning of a Yuga is its Sandhya. Tho end of a Yuga is its
-Sandhyansa. Sandhya and Sandhyansa are not included in a Yuga and Yuga
-Dharma is not to be performed while they last.
-
- Sandhya of Satya Yuga = 400 Deva years.
-
- Satya Yuga = 4,000 " "
-
- Sandhyansa of Satya Yuga 400 " "
-
- Sandhya of Treta Yuga 300 " "
-
- Treta Yuga 3,000 " "
-
- Sandhyansa of Treta Yuga 300 " "
-
- Sandhya of Dvapara Yuga 200 " "
-
- Dvapara Yuga 2,000 " "
-
- Sandhyansa of Dvapara Yuga 200 " "
-
- Sandhya of Kali Yuga 100 " "
-
- Kali Yuga 1,000 " "
-
- Sandhyansa of Kali Yuga 100 " "
- -------
- 12,000 Deva years.
-
-Dharma is enjoined for the period between Sandhya and Sandhyansa, which
-is called Yuga.
-
- Dharma has all the 4 padas or feet in Satya,
- " " only 3 padas in Treta,
- " " only 2 padas in Dvapara,
- " " only 1 pada in Kali.
-
- 1,000 Yuga cycles is one Day of Brahma or one Kalpa,
- *i.e.*, 1 Day of Brahma = 1,000 x 12,000 Deva years,
- = 1,20,00,000 Deva years.
-
-An equal period of time is also reckoned as one Night of Brahma. 14
-Manus reign during the Day of Brahma, each Manu reigning for:
-
- 1,000
- -------- = 71 3/4
- 14
-
-_i.e._, a little over 71 Yuga Cycles. Converted into Deva years: --
-
- 1 Manvantara = 12,000 x 1,000
- -------------- = 8,57,142 6/7 Deva years.
- 14
-
- 1 Deva year = 360 Lunar years.
-
- 12,000,000 x 360
- 1 Manvantara = ---------------- = 3,37,142,657 1/2 Lunar years.
- 14
-
-The Manvantaras have their Manus, successors of Manus, Rishis and Devas.
-
-The Rishis, Indras, and Devas appear together.
-
-In the daily creation of Brahma, Animals, Men, Pitris and Devas are born
-according to their own Karma.
-
-During the Manvantara, Bhagavan preserves this universe by His own
-Satva, directly as Manvantara Avataras and indirectly as Manus and
-others. When Pralaya approaches, Bhagavan withdraws His Saktis (or
-powers). Triloki is then burnt up by fires from the mouth of
-Sankarshana. Bhrigu and other dwellers of Mahar Loka proceed to Jana
-Loka. The waters of Pralaya sweep away everything before them. In that
-watery expanse, Hari remains seated upon the coils of Ananta, with His
-eyes closed.
-
-With every Day and Night, the age of Brahma declines. He lives for one
-hundred years only. Half of Brahma's age is called Pararddha. The first
-Pararddha has expired, the second has commenced with our Kalpa. Every
-day of Brahma is called one Kalpa.
-
-At the beginning of the first Pararddha was Brahma Kalpa, when Brahma or
-the present Kosmos was born.
-
-At the end of the first Pararddha was Padma Kalpa, when the Loka-Padma
-(the lotus of Lokas) appeared at the navel of Hari.
-
-The first Kalpa of the second Pararddha, which is the present Kalpa, is
-called Varaha Kalpa. Hari incarnated as Varaha or Boar during this
-Kalpa.
-
-The two Pararddhas are but a wink of Bhagavan. Kala cannot measure him.
-
- [1 Day of Brahma = 12,000,000 Deva years,
- 1 Night of Brahma = 12,000,000 Do.
- -------------
- 24,000,000 Do.
-
- Multiplying by 360
- ---------------
- 1 year of Brahma = 8,640,000,000 Deva years.
- Multiplying by 100
- ------------------
- Age of Brahma = 864,000,000,000 Deva years.
- Multiplying by 360
- -----------------------
- 31,10,40,00,00,00,000 Lunar years.
-
- 1 Kali Yuga, including Twilight (Sandhya and Sandhyansa)
- = 1,200 X 360 = 4,32,000 Lunar years.
-
- Varaha Kalpa = 50 X 360 + 1 = 180001st Kalpa.
-
- The present is the seventh Manvantara of that Kalpa.
-
-The present Kali Yuga is the 28th Yuga of that Manvantara and 4,994
-years of that Yuga have expired in the present year of Christ 1894.
-
-THEOSOPHICAL CORRESPONDENCES. The words Kalpa and Manvantara are
-carelessly used in Theosophical literature. But I shall use those terms,
-specially with reference to page 309 of the second volume of the _Secret
-Doctrine_ (first edition.)
-
-1 Kalpa = 7 Rounds.
-
-1 Round = 2 Manvantaras.
-
-The Pralaya at the end of seven Rounds therefore means the Pralaya of
-Triloki.
-
-The last Globe Chain of which the Moon formed a living planet belonged
-to Padma Kalpa. Our Globe D is the 18001st since the birth of the
-Kosmos. There will be 17999 more such Globes, one after each Pralaya of
-Globe Chains. There will be 18000 more Pralayas of the Globe Chain. Then
-there will be a general dissolution or Prakritika Pralaya, not only of
-the Globe Chain, but of the whole Kosmic system.
-
-
-V.-THE CREATION BY BRAHMA (_Continued_) III. 12.
-
-
-The first creation of Brahma was the five-fold Avidya, _viz_: --
-
- 1) Tamas or ignorance of Self (Avidya in Patanjali.)
- 2) Moha or egoism (Asmita.)
- 3) Maha Moha or desire for enjoyment (Raga).
- 4) Tamisra or mental disturbance on the non-fulfilment of desires
- (Dvesha).
- 5) Andha Tamisra or false perception of death (Abhinivesa).
-
-Brahma was not pleased with this dark creation. He purified his soul by
-meditation on Bhagavan and created Sanaka, Sananda, Sanatana and
-Sanatkumara. These Munis had no performances (for their own evolution).
-They were Urdha-retas. Brahma, addressing them, said -- "Sons, go and
-multiply yourselves." But they sought Moksha, and heeded him not. Brahma
-got enraged at the disobedience of his sons, and, though he tried to put
-down his anger, it burst forth from between his eye-brows and appeared
-as Kumara Nila-Lohita or Blue-Red. The boy, the first born of Devas,
-wept and cried out to Brahma -- "Give me names and give me abodes."
-"That shall be done," replied Brahma, "and, as thou wept like a boy,
-thou shalt be called Rudra or the Weeper. The heart, the Indriyas,
-Prana, Akasa, Vayu, Agni, Apas, Prithvi, the Sun, the Moon and Tapas are
-your abodes. Manyu, Manu, Mahinasa, Mahan, Siva, Ritadhvaja, Ugra-retas,
-Bhava, Kala, Bamadeva and Dhrita-vrata these are thy eleven names; Dhi,
-Dhriti, Rasaloma, Nijut, Sarpi, Ila, Ambika, Iravati, Svadha, Diksha and
-Rudrani, these are thy wives. Beget sons, as thou art Prajapati." Thus
-ordered, Nila-Lohita begot sons like unto himself in might, form and
-habits. The Rudras became numerous, and they spread all round the
-Universe ready almost to devour it. Brahma became afraid of his
-creation, and, addressing himself to Rudra, said -- "O Chief of Devas,
-desist from such creation. Thy progeny with their fiery eyes are
-consuming all and even consuming me. Take to Tapas for the joy of all
-beings. By Tapas thou shalt create the Universe as it was of yore. By
-Tapas thou shalt gain that Bhagavan who dwells in all hearts." "Amen,"
-said Rudra, and he went into the forests to make Tapas.
-
-Brahma then begot ten sons: -- Marichi, Atri, Angirasa, Pulastya,
-Pulaha, Kratu, Bhrigu, Vasishtha, Daksha and Narada. Narada came from
-Brahma's bosom, Daksha from his thumb, Vasishtha from his Prana, Bhrigu
-from his skin, Kratu from his hands, Pulaha from his navel, Pulastya
-from his ears, Angirasa from his mouth, Atri from his eyes and Marichi
-from his Manas.
-
-Dharma came from Brahma's right breast, where Narayana himself dwells.
-Adharma, the parent of Mrityu (or Death) came from his back. Kama came
-from his heart, Anger from his eye-brows, Greed from the lower lip. Vak
-or speech came from his mouth, the Seas from his generative organ and
-Death from his anus.
-
-Kardama, the husband of Devahuti, was born of Brahma's Chhaya or shadow.
-So there was creation out of the body and the mind of Brahma. Brahma
-took a fancy to his daughter Vak (or speech). Marichi and his other sons
-dissuaded him from the incestuous connection. And the Creator in shame
-gave up his body which was taken up by Space and which is known as dewy
-darkness. "How shall I bring back all the previous Creation?" So thought
-Brahma at one time, and the four Vedas appeared from his four mouths.
-The Yajnas, the Upavedas, the Philosophies, the four parts of Dharma,
-and the duties of Asramas also appeared.
-
-Brahma had another body void of incestuous impulses and he thought of
-enlarging the Creation. But he found himself and the Rishis, powerful
-though they were, unsuccessful in this respect. He thought there was
-some unforeseen impediment, so he divided his body into two. A pair was
-formed by that division. The male was Svayambhuva Manu and the female
-was his wife Satarupa. Since then creation multiplied by sexual
-intercourse. Svayambhuva Manu begot five children in Satarapa -- two
-sons, Priyavrata and Uttanapada, and three daughters, Akuti, Devahuti
-and Prasuti. He gave Akuti in marriage to Ruchi, Devahuti to Kardama and
-Prasuti to Daksha. This changing universe is filled with their progeny.
-
-
-PRE-MANVANTARIC CREATION.
-
-
-The descent of Spirit into Matter is indicated by the overshadowing
-Tamas creation, The individuals reach the spiritual plane at the time of
-Pralaya and lose all sense of I-ness. Their memory becomes perfectly
-dead to all previous connections and experiences and even as to self as
-a distinct unit. The child starts with a body of his own, and faculties
-limited to that body. The Jiva children that came into existence at the
-beginning of the Universe had however nothing peculiar to themselves,
-and they had even to acquire the sense of I-ness.
-
-First, the Jiva identifies himself with his body and mind, his own
-phenomenal basis. For, if he identifies himself with the universal
-spirit, there is no action for him, no working out of his own Karma.
-Though from the standpoint of the highest wisdom individuality is a
-delusion, for the one unchangeable ever-lasting element in Jiva is Atma,
-and at the final stage of development man has to separate himself from
-his phenomenal basis and to identify himself with Atma, which is the
-real self, still the sense of separateness is necessary for the process
-of creation and for the gaining of experiences. This sense is
-two-fold,--
-
- 1) The non-perception of Atma as Self, called Avidya by Patanjali and
- Tamas in the Puranas, and
- 2) The perception of the _upadhi_ as self, called Asmita by Patanjali
- and Moha in the Puranas.
-
-Attachment and aversion, likes and dislikes, are equally necessary for
-continued individual action. The Jiva eats what he likes and does not
-eat what he dislikes. He associates himself with certain objects, ideas
-and thoughts and shuns others. His likes and dislikes form the guiding
-principle of his actions. These affinities are called Raga and Dvesha by
-Patanjali and Maha Moha and Tamisra in the Puranas.
-
-The tenacious desire to live in the present body is called Abhinivesha
-by Patanjali. This desire becomes an instinct in the Jiva, so necessary
-is it for his preservation. The Puranas call it Andha-Tamisra. Sridhara
-explains it as the shock we receive from a separation from all our
-present enjoyments. For, according to him, the idea of death is nothing
-but a sense of separation from our present enjoyments.
-
-These forms of Avidya were called into being that the forms of the
-previous Kalpa might be brought into existence, or that the work of
-creation might be undertaken. These faculties are the very essence of
-life manifestation. But the process has now been reversed. The work of
-creation is over. We have acquired the experiences of earth-life, and we
-are now destined to take a journey back to our home, the bosom of
-Ishvara, from which we all came. We have now to undo our sense of
-separateness. The five forms of Avidya are therefore called miseries
-(klesha) by Patanjali and he lays down rules for getting rid of them.
-
-After invoking Avidya, Brahma created the Kumaras, who were the most
-spiritual of the beings to be created. They were so spiritual, that they
-could not take any part in the work of creation. They had to bide their
-time, till there was spiritual ascent in the Universe.
-
-The Rudras, called the Blue-Red Kumaras, come next. Though highly
-spiritual themselves they did not object to take part in the work of
-creation. But as real factors in the work of dissolution, they were
-entirely out of place in the work of creation. We owe our idea of
-separateness or individuality to the Rudras. In the scale of universal
-life the agencies of dissolution carve out individual lives and their
-mission ends there.
-
-The ten Rishis form the next Creation. Further descent of life in the
-Universe brought forth ten distinct types of Intelligence. We shall
-consider these types later on. Then comes the story of Brahma's incest.
-Brahma could not directly take part in the Creation. His task was simply
-to bring back the former state of things through a graduated series of
-intermediaries. First appeared those that had to hold cosmic positions
-of responsibility, some throughout the Kalpa and others throughout the
-Manvantara. With the powers invoked, the temptation to evolve an
-independent Creation with the help of Vach, the potency of Mantras had
-to be got over. This done, Brahma thought of the Monads of the previous
-Kalpa, and the first Manu appeared with his wife Sata-rupa or
-Hundred-formed. All forms of Creation existed in Idea before further
-manifestation, and Sata-rupa was the collective aspect of all such
-Ideas.
-
-
-
-THE FIRST OR THE SVAYAMBHUVA MANVANTARA.
-
-
-VI. BHUR AND VARAHA
-
-
-*SKANDHA III., CHAP. 13.*
-
-Said Manu to Brahma -- "I shall do thy behests, O Lord. But tell me
-where my Praja (progeny) and myself are to be located. The Bhur of the
-previous Kalpa where all beings found shelter is lost in the great ocean
-of Pralaya. Bestir thyself and raise it up, O Deva."
-
-Brahma thought within Himself what was to be done, when lo! out from His
-nostril came a Boar, no bigger than a thumb. In a moment the Boar
-assumed gigantic proportions and all space resounded with his roar. The
-dwellers of the Jana, Tapas and Satya Lokas worshipped Him by chanting
-the Mantras of the three Vedas. He roared once more for the good of the
-Devas and instantly plunged into the waters. Though an incarnation of
-Yajna, He tried to discover the Bhur by smelling like an ordinary
-animal. He dived down as far as Rasatala and there found the Bhur Loka.
-He then raised it up on His tusks. The Daitya King Hiranyaksha resisted
-and in rage the Boar killed him. The Rishis then worshipped Him knowing
-His true form to be Yajna.
-
-
-THOUGHTS ON THE ABOVE.
-
-
-[Bhur is the main system of Triloki. The Varaha Avatara restored the
-system after the Kalpa Pralaya. Bhur being the lowest of the Seven Lokas
-corresponds to Prithvi Tatva and hence to the sense of smell. The boar
-is pre-eminently the animal of smell. The materialisation of the Prithvi
-principle for the purpose of globe formation was an effort of the energy
-of the Logos and the _smelling_ out of Bhur by the Varaha is suggestive.
-The Globe evolution is preparatory to Monadic evolution. The pent up
-Karma of the previous Kalpa develops itself on the Globes. All beings
-are mutually interdependent for their evolution. They help one another
-in the work of evolution, and one makes sacrifices that the others may
-grow. Some have to wait, till others come forward. Then they become
-united in the further race for progress. This great cosmic process, this
-mutual sacrifice is Yajna itself, which is typified in the Boar
-Incarnation. The Vedic Yajna gives prominence to the Communion of men
-with Devas, as at the early stages this is an all important fact of
-evolution. The Varaha is called the first Yajna Avatara and all the
-parts of His body are named with reference to Vedic Yajna, as He by
-raising Bhur prepared the field for Karma.]
-
-
-VII. THE STORY OF HIRANYAKSHA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA III., CHAP. 14.*
-
-Diti, the daughter of Daksha, approached one evening her husband
-Kasyapa, son of Marichi. She was overpowered with the passion of love
-and became importunate. Kasyapa asked her to wait. Rudra was presiding
-over sunset. His astral attendants, the Bhutas and Pishachas, were
-roaming over the Universe. With His three eyes representing the Sun,
-Moon and fire he could see every thing. His hesitation to yield to Diti
-was of no avail, and the Muni had to yield. There Diti became ashamed of
-her weakness. She was afraid she had offended Rudra and she helplessly
-prostrated herself at the feet of Kasyapa praying for his forgiveness.
-"Thou hast disobeyed me," said Kasyapa, "and hast shown disrespect to
-the companions of Rudra, thy mind is impure and so is the time of
-Evening (Sandhya). These four evils will cause the birth of two wicked
-sons from thee. They will oppress the Triloki and the Lokapalas
-(Preservers of the three Lokas). When their inequities exceed all
-bounds, Vishnu will Himself incarnate to kill them."
-
-For one hundred years Diti conceived her twin sons. Even from within the
-womb they shed lustre all round, which even overpowered the Lokapalas.
-The Devas went to Brahma to ascertain the cause of this disaster. He
-related to them the following story.
-
-"My Manasa-putras, Sanaka and others were once in Vaikuntha, the abode
-of Bhagavan. Impatient to see Bhagavan the Kumaras hurriedly passed
-through the six portals (Kaksha). At the seventh portal, they found two
-doorkeepers of equal age with clubs in their hands, richly adorned with
-golden crowns and other ornaments. They had four hands and looked
-beautiful in their blue colour. The Kumaras heeded them not, but opened
-the gate with their own hands as they had opened the other gates. The
-door keepers stopped them with their clubs. The Kumaras were put out by
-this unforeseen obstruction and addressing the doorkeepers gave vent to
-their feelings thus: -- 'What mean you by making this distinction? In
-Him the Lord of Vaikuntha, there is no difference whatsoever. The whole
-of this Universe is in Him. Do you dread any danger to Him, as to a
-common being, and why will you admit some and not others? But you are
-His servants. So we do not intend to be very hard on you. But you must
-descend from this elevated plane and take your birth where passion,
-anger and greed prevail'."
-
-"The door-keepers became terrified at this curse and fell at the feet of
-the Kumaras. All that they prayed for was that while passing through the
-lowest births, they might not have Moha, beclouding their recollection
-of Bhagavan. Bhagavan knew what had transpired outside. He hastened on
-foot with Lakshmi by His side to where the Munis stood. The Kumaras
-prostrated themselves before Him Whom they had so long meditated upon in
-their hearts. With intent eyes they looked steadily on Him and longed to
-see Him again and again. The Kumaras lauded Him with words full of
-import. Bhagavan addressing them said: -- 'These my door-keepers are by
-name Jaya and Vijaya. They have slighted you, and it is right that you
-have cursed them. I sanction that curse. For they are my servants, and I
-am indirectly responsible for their deeds. I always respect Brahmanas,
-as my glory is derived from them. These door-keepers did not know my
-regard for you, and they therefore unintentionally slighted you. But
-they shall instantly reap the fruit of their evil deeds and come back to
-Me when their punishment is over. Please therefore decide where they are
-to go.' The Kumaras knew not what to say. They thought they had not done
-right and they asked to be excused. 'It is all right for Thee to extol
-the Brahmanas in this way, for Thou art the Preserver of Dharma and Thou
-teachest others what to do. But if, really, we have done wrong, let us
-be punished and let not our curse visit these innocent door-keepers.'
-Bhagavan replied: -- 'It is I who have uttered the curse through your
-mouths. My will shall be done. These door-keepers shall be born as
-Asuras, but they shall come back to Me speedily.' These two
-door-keepers, O Devas, have now appeared in Diti's womb. I have no power
-to overcome them. But when the time comes for the prevalence of Satva,
-Bhagavan Himself will do what is needed."
-
-The Devas went away and waited for events. The two Daityas Hiranyaksha
-and Hiranyakasipu were born of Diti, after a conception of one hundred
-years. Hiranyaksha though elder by birth was younger by conception.
-
-
-THOUGHTS ON HIRANYAKSHA.
-
-
-[Diti is literally 'Cutting,' 'Splitting,' or 'dividing.' Jaya and
-Vijaya mean victory. Hiranya is gold. Hiranyaksha means gold-eyed.
-Hiranyakasipu means gold-bedded. The key to the mystery lies in the fact
-that Jaya and Vijaya were the door-keepers of Vishnu and their external
-form was that of Vishnu. The Purusha in the Heart is the Counterpart in
-microcosm of the Purusha in the Universe. And we have found above that
-the five or ten door-keepers or Brahma-Purushas in the Heart are the
-five or ten Pranas in man. By analogy, therefore, which is a potent
-factor in the solution of mysteries, we find that Jaya and Vijaya are
-the two-fold manifestations of Prana in Vaikuntha, the in-going and
-out-going energies of Purusha. The life principle is an aspect of
-Bhagavan and stands at His very gate. It is this outer aspect of Purusha
-that is the mainspring of all material activities, of all
-life-manifestations and of the material development of the universe. The
-duality represents Tamasic inaction and Rajasic activity. Hiranyaksha
-would have no life-manifestation, no appearance of globes, he would
-continue a state of things verging on Pralayic sleep. Hiranyakasipu was
-the very ideal of material greatness and material grandeur. Kumbhakarna
-slept and Ravana worked. The brothers Jaya and Vijaya passed through the
-dividing energy of Diti, to cause the material manifoldness of the
-Universe. The Varaha as representing the awakened Jivic Karma fought
-with the Asura that opposed the development of that Karma, which could
-only fructify on the Bhur system.]
-
-
-VIII. DEVA AND DEVA-YONI CREATION.
-
-
-*SKANDHA III., CHAP. 20.*
-
-Vidura asked Maitreya: How did Marichi and other Rishis and also
-Svayambhuva Manu carry out Brahma's orders to create.
-
-Maitreya continued the story of Creation in reply to Vidura.
-
-We have heard of the primal dark creation of Brahma, consisting of
-five-fold Avidya. Referring to that, Maitreya said, it was a creation of
-shadows. Brahma was not pleased with this shadowy creation. He gave up
-the dark body and it became night, At that time Yakshas and Rakshasas
-were born and they took it up. The body was not only dark, but it was
-the seat of hunger and thirst. The new-born therefore in their hunger
-and thirst ran after Brahma to devour Him. Some of them said: "Have no
-mercy on Him as father." Others said "Devour him." Brahma became afraid
-of them and said -- "Save me. You are my sons. You should not devour
-me." Those that said "Devour" are Yakshas and those that said "Do not
-save him" are Rakshasas. Brahma then created the Devas, with His radiant
-Satvika body.
-
-This body when given up became day and the playing Devas took it up.
-Brahma then created the Asuras out of His thigh. They became extremely
-passionate and ran after Brahma void of all shame. In great distress
-Brahma prayed to Vishnu and the Creator was told to give up His body of
-passion. The body was given up and it became Sandhya, or evening. The
-Asuras accepted Sandhya as their wife. Evening is the time for lust and
-passion. Brahma then created the Gandharvas and Apsaras with His body of
-beauty, which when given up became Moon-light. With his indolence,
-Brahma created the Bhutas and Pisachas. They were stark naked and had
-long loose hair. Brahma closed his eyes on seeing them. After a time he
-gave up his yawning body and the Bhutas and Pishachas took it up. The
-body that causes secretion is called "Sleep."
-
-That which causes delusion is "Madness." Indolence, yawning, sleep and
-madness all these four were taken up by Bhutas and Pisachas for their
-body. Brahma knew His powers and He created with His invisible body the
-Sadhyas and Pitris. By His power of becoming invisible, He created
-Siddhas and Vidhyadharas and gave them His body with that power. By His
-reflected image He created the Kinnaras and Kimpurushas, who took up
-that image for their body. At dawn, they sing in pairs the praise of
-Brahma. Brahma did not find any progress in creation with all these
-Bhoga (expansive) bodies. He threw away His body and from His hair the
-elemental serpents or Nagas were born. After all, Brahma created the
-Manus and Rishis.
-
-
-IX. THE PROGENY OF KARDAMA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA III. CHAP. 21-24.*
-
-Kardama Rishi was ordered by Brahma to create. This led him to pray to
-Vishnu on the sacred banks of the Sarasvati, near Vindu Sarovara. Vishnu
-appeared before him with Lakshmi by His side. He revealed to Kardama a
-happy future. The Rishi was to marry Manu's daughter, to have by her
-nine daughters and one son, an Incarnation of Vishnu Himself, who was to
-promulgate the Tatva Vidya. Shortly after, Svayambhuva Manu came to
-Kardama's hermitage, with his wife Sata-rupa and offered to the Rishi
-his daughter Devahuti in marriage. Kardama accepted her as his wife. He
-had by her nine daughters and the Avatara Kapila. Brahma with his sons
-the Rishis came to Kardama and congratulated him and his wife Devahuti
-upon having Bhagavan Vishnu for their son. He then asked Kardama to give
-his daughters in marriage to the Rishis. Kardama followed his father's
-behests and gave his daughters duly in marriage to the Rishis. Kala, he
-gave to Marichi, Anasuya to Atri, Sraddha to Angirasa, Havirbhu to
-Pulastya, Gati to Pulaha, Kriya to Kratu, Khyati to Bhrigu, Arundhati to
-Vasishtha and Santi to Atharvan. The Rishi then went to the forest for
-yoga and left his wife in charge of Kapila.
-
-
-THOUGHTS ON KARDAMA.
-
-
-[Devahuti means offering to Devas, which is universal service. She is
-the progenitor of those forms of life which have a spiritual influence
-over the whole Trailokya.
-
-"Kala" is part, a digit of the Moon.
-
-"Anasuya" means absence of envy. From the proverbial chastity of Atri's
-wife the word also means the highest type of chastity and wifely
-devotion.
-
-"Sraddha" means faith.
-
-"Havirbhu" means born of sacrificial oblation.
-
-"Gati" means course, path.
-
-"Kriya" means performance (of Yajna) and action.
-
-"Khyati" means fame, praise and also proper discrimination.
-
-"Arundhati" would perhaps mean one that does not stop or hinder.
-Probably the word means a wife who helps her husband in the performance
-of duties and does not stop or prevent him.
-
-It is for this reason that the Star Arundhati is pointed out to the
-bride at the nuptial ceremony.
-
-"Santi" is peace, the well known invocation of the Vedas at the end of a
-Mantra.
-
-"Kardama" means clay. He was born of Brahma's Chhaya or shadow.
-
-Devahuti, being wedded to the materialised shadow of the whole Universe,
-gave rise to certain female types which in their turn on being wedded to
-the Rishis, the highest Planetary Intelligences, became the progenitors
-of all the life forms of the Universe. Kapila was one of the earliest
-Rishis. The word -- Kapila means tawny or brown coloured.]
-
-
-X. KAPILA'S INSTRUCTION TO HIS MOTHER DEVAHUTI.
-
-
-*SKANDHA III., CHAP. 25-33.*
-
-We now come to an important part of the Bhagavata Purana, the teachings
-of Kapila to his mother in the Yoga philosophy of the Bhagavat Purana.
-They adapt the Sankhya and the Yoga systems to Bhakti or devotion. For a
-full knowledge of the teachings I refer my readers to the Purana itself,
-I shall only give the salient points and avoid details as much as
-possible, without breaking the continuity of the discourses. "Yoga
-directed towards Atma brings about Mukti. Chitta attached to the
-transformations of Gunas causes Bondage; attached to Purusha, it causes
-Mukti. When the mind is pure and free from distractions, man perceives
-Atma in himself, by Wisdom, Dispassion and Devotion. There is no path so
-friendly to the Yogins as constant devotion to Bhagavan. Company of
-Sadhus opens wide the door to Mukti. They are Sadhus who have
-forbearance and compassion, who are friendly to all beings, who have no
-enemies, who are free from passions, and above all who have firm and
-undivided Bhakti in Me. They give up all for My sake and they hear and
-speak no words that do not relate to Me. Their company removes the
-impurities of worldliness. Men first hear about Me from the Sadhus. By
-faith their heart is drawn towards Me, and they have devotion for Me.
-Devotion causes Dispassion and makes easy the path of Yoga. By
-indifference to the Guna transformations of Prakriti, by wisdom fostered
-by Dispassion, by Yoga and by Bhakti (devotion) offered to Me, the Jiva
-attains Me even while in this body."
-
-"When the Indriyas (the senses and the mind), that manifest the objects
-of external and internal perception, become trained by the performance
-of Vedic Karma, their spontaneous Vritti (or function) in a man of
-concentrated mind is in Satva which is the same as Vishnu. This Vritti
-which is void of all selfishness is Bhakti in Bhagavan. It is superior
-to Mukti. It instantly destroys the Kosha (Astral body) as the digestive
-fire consumes food. The devoted have no yearning for that Mukti (Sayujya
-or Nirvana) which makes the Jiva one with Me. But they prefer ever to
-talk with each other about Me, to exert themselves for My sake and ever
-to meditate on Me. Mukti comes to them unasked. My Vibhutis, the eight
-Siddhis (_anima &c._) and all the glory of the highest Lokas are theirs,
-though they want them not. I am their Teacher, their Friend, their
-Companion, their all. So even Kala cannot destroy them."
-
-"Purusha is Atma. He is eternal, void of Gunas, beyond Prakriti, all
-pervading, self luminous and all manifestating."
-
-"Prakriti is Pradhana, one in itself, but is also the source of all
-differences (_visesha_), possessed of three Gunas, unmanifested
-(_avyakta_) and eternal."
-
-"The twenty four transformations of Prakriti called Pradhanika or Saguna
-Brahma are: --
-
-"5 Maha Bhutas -- Earth, Water, Fire, Air and Akasa.
-
-"5 Tanmatras -- Smell, Taste, Rupa, Touch and Sound.
-
-"10 Indriyas -- Ear, Skin, Eye, Tongue, Nose, Speech, Hand, Foot,
-Upastha and Payu.
-
-"4 Divisions of Antahkarana -- Manas, Buddhi, Chitta and Ahankara."
-
-"Kala is the twenty-fifth. But according to some, Kala is Prabhava or
-Sakti of Purusha. Those who identify themselves with Prakriti are afraid
-of Kala. Kala as the outer aspect of Purusha disturbs the equilibrium of
-Gunas in Prakriti."
-
-"Purusha energised Prakriti and the Gunas led to transformations
-following the action of Daiva or Karma, (Jivic record of the previous
-Kalpa). Prakriti brought forth the refulgent Mahat Tatva. The seed of
-the Universe was in the bosom of Mahat, and it manifested the Universe
-and destroyed the darkness of Pralaya by its own light."
-
-"Chitta which is Vasudeva and Mahat, is Satva, transparent and pure, and
-the perception of Bhagavan is achieved by this division of Antahkarana."
-
-"Transparence (fitness for the full reflection of Brahma) immutability
-and tranquility are the characteristics of Chitta, as of water in its
-primal state."
-
-"Mahat Tatva was transformed into Ahankara Tatva, with its Kriya Sakti.
-Ahankara became three-fold -- Satvika (Manas), Rajasika (Indriyas) and
-Tamasika (Bhutas) _i.e._ Kartri or Cause, Karana or Instrument and
-Karyya or effect."
-
-"Sankarshana is the Purusha of Ahankara. He is the Thousand-Headed and
-Ananta (endless.)"
-
-"Manas is Sankalpa and Vikalpa. It is the generator of Kama (or desire.)
-So Aniruddha, the king of Indriyas, blue as the blue-lotus of autumn,
-the Purusha of Manas, has with patience to be got over by yogins."
-
-"Buddhi is Rajasa transformation of Ahankara. The perception of objects,
-dependence on the Indriyas, doubt, wrong-knowledge, right-knowledge,
-memory and sleep these are the functions of Buddhi. (Pradyumna is the
-Purusha of Buddhi.)"
-
-[The terminology here adopted will appear strange to the Vedantin
-scholar. The divisions of Antahkarana are here adopted to the sacred
-Tetractys or Chatur-vyuha, consisting of Vasudeva, Sankarshana,
-Aniruddha and Pradyumna. In Devotional practice, Antahkarana should be
-made the channel for higher communion and its divisions are the
-divisions of spiritual perception.
-
-Chitta is the highest aspect of Antahkarana corresponding to Mahat Tatva
-in the Universe, with the Purusha always reflected in it. This aspect
-corresponds to Vasudeva, the highest Purusha in the Tetraktys.
-
-Ahankara is the bare individuality, transformable into peculiarities,
-but not so transformed. Sankarshana is the corresponding Purusha.
-
-Manas is Kama or desire brought on by likes and dislikes. It consists of
-the mental tendencies of attachment, repulsion and indifference.
-Aniruddha is the corresponding Purusha.
-
-Buddhi is in one word the Chitta of Patanjali, -- that which functions
-through the physical brain.
-
-Pradyumna is the corresponding Purusha.]
-
-"The Indriyas are also the Rajasika transformations of Ahankara."
-
-Prana through its Kriya Sakti gave rise to the Karma Indriyas. Buddhi
-through its Jnana Sakti gave rise to the Jnana Indriyas. The Tanmatras
-and the Maha Bhutas then came out in order of transformation. All these
-principles could not, however, unite to bring forth the creation.
-Purusha then permeated them, and the Cosmic Egg with its covers was
-formed. Details are given as to how the Indriyas and Antahkarana with
-their Adhyatma, Adhibhuta and Adhidaiva appearing in the Virata Purusha,
-rose up from sleep as it were only when Chitta finally appeared.
-
-Kapila then dilated on the relations between Purusha and Prakriti, using
-the illustration of the sun reflected on water and re-reflected on the
-wall. He showed how Mukti could be attained by discrimination of
-Prakriti and Purusha -- the seer and the seen.
-
-Devahuti asked how Mukti was possible when Prakriti and Purusha were
-eternally co-existent, and inter-dependent in manifestation. A man might
-for a time realize that the Purusha was free from the fears of
-relativity, but his Karma had connected him with the Gunas and the fears
-would recur as the ultimate cause could not be removed. Kapila replied,
-"By unselfish performance of duties, by purification of mind, by intense
-Bhakti in Bhagavan fostered by the recital of His glory, by wisdom based
-on the knowledge of the Tatvas, by strong dispassion, by austere yoga,
-by intense concentration on Atma, Prakriti becomes daily subdued and it
-is finally consumed, even as the wood is consumed by its own fire,
-caused by constant friction. Given up as already enjoyed and constantly
-found fault with, Prakriti does no harm to the Purusha centred in Self.
-Dreams do harm in sleep. But when a man wakes up, they lose all power to
-injure, as they are then found to be dreams only."
-
-Kapila then explained the Ashtanga Yoga of Patanjali, as adapted to
-Bhakti and gave a graphic description of Vishnu as the object of
-meditation.
-
-He then explained Bhakti Yoga. Bhakti Yoga is either Saguna or Nirguna.
-As Saguna it is either Satvika, Rajasika or Tamasika.
-
-Nirguna Bhakti Yoga is that in which the mind runs towards Bhagavan,
-even as the Ganges runs towards the Sea, with a constant spontaneous
-flow. The Devoted spurn Salokya, Sarshti, Samipya, Sarupya and Sayujya
-union[1] even when offered to them and they prefer to serve Bhagavan
-ever and ever. Compassion and friendliness to all beings are the
-essential qualifications of the Devoted. They must be humble, respectful
-and self controlled. They must pass their days in hearing and reciting
-the glory of Bhagavan.
-
-Kapila then described in vivid terms the life and death of a man of the
-world and his passage after death to Yama Loka. He described the rebirth
-and went through every detail of foetal existence. The foetus acquires
-consciousness in the seventh month and gets a recollection of previous
-births. This recollection is lost on being born.
-
-Those who selfishly perform their Dharma and worship Devas and Pitris go
-to Soma Loka, and after partaking of Soma, they are again re-born. And
-even their Lokas are destroyed with the daily Pralaya of Brahma.
-
-Those who unselfishly perform their duties and give themselves up
-entirely to the Supreme Purusha go through Surya (Sun) to the
-transcosmic Loka of Parama Purusha. The worshippers of Hiranyagarbha
-(Brahma) reach Brahma Loka or Satya Loka and there wait for two
-Pararddhas _i.e._ for the life time of Brahma and upon the final
-dissolution of the Brahmanda go to the trans-cosmic plane of Parama
-Purusha.
-
-Brahma, Marichi and other Rishis, the Kumaras and Siddhas do their
-assigned work unselfishly, but their Upasana admits of distinction. So
-they are absorbed in the Second or the First Manifested Purusha at
-Pralaya and become re-born at creation.
-
-Devahuti heard all this from Kapila. Her doubts were all removed and she
-found the light within herself. She remained fixed in meditation as long
-as her Prarabdha was not exhausted. She then attained Mukti.
-
-Kapila first went towards the North. The sea then gave Him place, where
-He still lies in deep Samadhi, for the peace of Triloki. (Ganga Sagar or
-Saugor is said to be the seat of Kapila).
-
- [1] These are the five kinds of Mukti. Salokya is residence in the
- same Loka with the Supreme Being. Sarshti is equality with the
- Supreme Being in all the divine attributes. Samipya is
- assimilation to the deity. Saynjya is absorption into the Supreme
- Being.
-
-
-
-
-SKANDHA IV.
-
-
-
-THE GENEALOGY OF MANU AND THE RISHIS.
-
-
-*SKANDHA IV. CHAP. 1.*
-
-In every Manvantara, there are one Manu, sons of Manu, Devas, Indra or
-king of the Devas, seven Rishis and one Avatara of Vishnu. The Avataras
-of Purusha propel Manu and others to their work. At the end of every
-cycle of 4 Yugas, the Rishis by their Tapas find out the lost Srutis and
-revive the old Dharma. The Manus propound the Dharma. The sons of Manu
-including their descendants and others preserve the Dharma, in their
-respective times, to the end of the Manvantara. The Devas help them in
-their work. Indra preserves the Triloki and sends down rains" VIII. --
-14.
-
-In the Svayambhuva Manvantara, Svayambhuva was Manu, the Tushita Devas
-were the Devatas, Marichi and others were the seven Rishis, Yajna was
-both Avatara and Indra. Priyavrata and Uttanpada were the two sons of
-Manu.
-
-A number of genealogical tables are given below:
-
-(N. B. The female names are given in italics)
-
-TABLE A.
-
- SVAYAMBHUVA MANU m.
- SATARUPA -----+---Priyavrata
- |
- +---Uttanpada
- |
- +---Akuti
- | m. Ruchi +--- KAPILA
- | |
- +---Devahuti |
- | m. Kardama -----+--- _Kala_
- | | m. Marichi
- +---Prasuti |
- m. Daksha +--- _Anasuya_
- | m. Atri
- |
- +--- _Sraddha_
- | m. Angirasa
- |
- +--- _Havirbhu_
- | m. Pulastya
- |
- +--- _Gati_
- | m. Pulaha
- |
- +--- _Kriya_
- | m. Kratu
- |
- +--- _Khyati_
- | m. Bhrigu
- |
- +--- _Arundhati_
- | m. Vasistha
- |
- +--- _Sauti_
- m. Atharvan
-
-TABLE B.
-
- RUCHI m.
- AKUTI --- YAJNA --------------+
- (married his +--+--- Tosha
- sister) Dakshina. --+ |
- |
- +--- Pratosha
- |
- |
- +--- Santosha
- |
- |
- +--- Bhadra
- |
- |
- +--- Sauti
- |
- |
- +--- Idampati
- |
- |
- +--- Idhma
- |
- |
- +--- Kavi
- |
- |
- +--- Vibhu
- |
- |
- +--- Svahra
- |
- |
- +--- Sudiva
- |
- |
- +--- Rochana
-
- N.B. The sons of Yajna are the Sushita Devas of the 1st. Manvantara.
-
-TABLE C.
-
- Marichi
- _m. Kala_
- |
- |
- --+--+-----------------+-----
- | |
- Kasyapa Purnima
- |
- +--------------+------------+--------
- | | |
- Viraja Visvaga _Devakulya_
- (River Ganges in
- subsequent incarnation).
-
-TABLE D.
-
- Atri
- _m. Anasuyaa_
- |
- +----------------+--+------------------------+
- | | |
- Datta Durvasas Soma
- (Rudra) (Brahma)
-
-TABLE E.
-
- Angirasa
- _m. Sraddha_
- |
- ---+----------+-------+-+--------+----------+--------+-----
- | | | | | |
- Sinivali Kuhu Raka Anumati Utathya Vrihaspati
-
-TABLE F.
-
- Pulastya
- _m. Havirbhu_
- |
- -------------+------------+----------------+
- | |
- Agastya Visvaras
- m. (1) Ilavila m. (2) Kesini
- | |
- Kuvera +------+------+-------------+
- | | |
- Ravana Kumbhakarna Vibhisana
-
-TABLE G.
-
- Pulaha
- _m. Gati_
- |
- -----+---------------+-+---------------+---
- | | |
- Karma Sreshtha Bariyas Sahishnu
-
-TABLE H.
-
- Kratu
- _m. Kriya_
- |
- 60,000 Balakhilya Rishis
-
-TABLE I.
-
- Vasishtha
- _m. Aruudhati (Urja)_
- |
- -----+---------+--------+---+--+-------+----------+-----------+--
- | | | | | | |
- Chitraketu, Surochi, Viraja, Mitra, Ulvana, Vasubhirdyana, Duyuman,
-
-TABLE J.
-
- Atharvan
- _m. Chitti_
- |
- Dadhichi ( Asvasiras )
-
-TABLE K.
-
- Bhrigu
- _m. Khyati_
- |
- +---------------+-------+---------+-----------+
- | | | |
- Dhata Vidhata Sri Kavi
- m. Ayati m. Niyati |
- | | |
- Mrikundu Vedasiras Usanas
- |
- Markandeya
-
-TABLE L.
-
- Daksha
- m. Prasuti ---+-- m. Dharma
- |
- |
- +-- _Sraddha_, --- Satya
- |
- |
- +-- _Maitri_, --- Prasada
- |
- |
- +-- _Daya_, --- Abhaya
- |
- |
- +-- _Santi_, --- Sama
- |
- |
- +-- _Tushti_, --- Harsha
- |
- |
- +-- _Pushti_, --- Garva
- |
- |
- +-- _Kriya_, --- Yoga
- |
- |
- +-- _Unnati_, --- Darpa
- |
- |
- +-- _Buddhi_, --- Artha
- |
- |
- +-- _Medha_, --- Smriti
- |
- |
- +-- _Titksha_, --- Kshema
- |
- |
- +-- _Lajja_, --- Vinaya
- |
- |
- +-- _Murti_
- | m. Dharma --+-- Nara
- | |
- | +-- Narayana
- |
- +-- _Svaha_
- | m. Agni ---+-- Pavaka--+
- | | |
- | +-- Pavaman-+-- 45 Fires
- | | | (Agni).
- | +-- Suchi---+
- |
- |
- +-- _Svadha_,
- | m. Pitris --+-- Vayuna
- | |
- | +-- Dhurini
- |
- +-- _Sati_
- | m. Siva
- |
- |
-
-TABLE M.
-
- Adharma
- _m. Mithya_
- |
- +-------------+--------------+
- | |
- Damba Married _Maya_
- |
- +-------------+--------------+
- | |
- Lobha Married _Sathata_
- |
- +-------------+--------------+
- | |
- Krodha Married _Hinsa_
- |
- +-------------+--------------+
- | |
- Kali Married _Durukti_
- |
- +-------------+--------------+
- | |
- Mrityu Married _Bhiti_
- |
- +-------------+--------------+
- | |
- Niraya _Yatana_
-
-TABLE N.
-
- Uttanapada
- _m. Suruchi_
- |
- Uttama
- (killed by Yaksha) _m. Suniti_
- |
- +-------------------------+
- |
- Dhruva
- m. Ila m. Bharami
- | +-------------+
- +------+--------+ | |
- | | Kalpa Vatsara
- Utkala (Daughter) _m. Suvithi_
- |
- m. Prabha --+-------------+---------+-----+-+---+----+---
- | | | | | | |
- | Pushparna, Tigmaketu, Isha, Urja, Vasu, Jaya
- |
- +--+---+------------+
- | | |
- Pratar Madhyandina Sayam m. Dosha
- |
- |
- +-------------+---------------+
- | | |
- Pradosha, Nisitha, Vyushta
- _m. Pushkarini_
- |
- Sarvatejas
- or
- Chakshus
- _m. Akuti_
- |
- Manu
- _m. Nadvala_
- |
- +-------+-------+-----+---------+-------+--+---------+--------+------+--
- | | | | | | | | |
- Puru, Kritasna, Rita, Vrata, Agnishtoma, Atiratra, Pradyumna, Sivi, Ulmuka
- |
- +-------+--------+-------+--------+--------+--------+
- | | | | | |
- Anga, Sumanas, Svati, Kratu, Angiras, Gaya.
-
-Table N.--(_Contd._)
-
- _M. Sunitha_
- |
- Vena
- (By Churning)
- |
- PRITHU
- _M. Archi_
- |
- ---+-------------+---+---------+----------+---------+----
- | | | | |
- Vijitasva, Haryaksha, Dhumrakesha, Vrika, Dravina.
- or
- Antardhana
- _M. Skihandini_ _M. Nabhasvati_
- | |
- --+---+-----+--------+-- -----+--------
- | | | |
- Pavaka, Pavaman, Suchi Habirdhana
- _M. Habirdhani_
- |
- ----+----------+------+--------+--------+---------+---
- | | | | | |
- Barhishad, Gaya, Sukla, Krishna, Satya, Jitabrata
- or
- Pra-china Barhi
- _M. Satadruti_ (Daughter of Ocean God)
- |
- 10 Prachetas
- M. The Vegetable daughter of Kaudu and Pramlocha
- |
- Daksha (of Chakshusha Manvantara)
- _M. Asikni_ (Daughter of Panchajana)
- |
- +--+-------------------+----------------+
- | | |
- 10,000 Haryasva, 1,000 Sabalasva, 60 Daughters
-
- 10 Married to Dharma
- 2 " " Bhuta
- 2 " " Angiras
- 2 " " Krisasva
- 4 " " Tarksha
- 27 " " Moon
- 13 " " Kasyapa
- ------
- 60
-
-TABLE O.
-
- Dharma
-
- m.
- _1. Bhanu,_ ---- Devarshava ---- Indra Sena
-
- m.
- _2. Lamba,_ ---- Vidyota ---- The Clouds
-
- m.
- _3. Kakua,_ ---- Sankata ---- Kikata (The Presiding-Gods
- of earth cavities.)
-
- m.
- _4. Yami,_ ---- Svarga ---- Nandi
-
- m.
- _5. Visva,_ ---- The Visvadevas
-
- m.
- _6. Sadhya,_ --- The Sadhyas ---- Arthasidhi
-
- m.
- 7. Maruvati, --+-- Marutvat
- |
- +-- Jayanta or Upendra
-
- m.
- _8. Muhurta,_ --- The Muhurta-Gods
-
- m.
- _9. Sankalpa._ --- Sankalpa ---- Kama
-
- m.
- 10. Vasu ----+--- Drona,
- | m. Anumati ----+-- Harsha
- | |
- | +-- Soka &c.
- |
- +--- Prana,
- | m. Urjasvati --+-- Saha,
- | |
- | +-- Ayus,
- | |
- | +-- Purojava.
- |
- +--- Dhruva
- | m. Dharani ----- The different
- | Localities (Pura).
- |
- +--- Arka
- | _m. Vasana_ ------ Tarsha &c.
- |
- +--- Agni
- | m. Dhara -----+-- Skanda ---- _Visakhu &c._
- | | (Kartikeya)
- | |
- | +-- Dravinaka & c.
- |
- +--- Dosha
- | _m. Sarvari_ ----- Sisumara
- |
- +--- Vastu
- | m. Angirasi ---- Visvakarma --+-- Chakshush Manu
- | |
- | +-- Visvadevas
- | |
- | +-- Sadhyas
- |
- +--- Vibhavasu
- m. Usha -------+-- Vyustha,
- |
- +-- Rochisha,
- |
- +-- Atapa ----- Panchayama
-
-TABLE P.
-
- Bhuta
- m. 11. Svarupa ----+-- Raivata,
- |
- +-- Aja,
- |
- +-- Bhava,
- |
- +-- Bhima,
- |
- +-- Bama,
- |
- +-- Ugra,
- |
- +-- Vrishakapi,
- |
- +-- Ajaikpada,
- |
- +-- Bahurupa,
- |
- +-- Mahanand
- Millions
- of such
- Rudras.
-
- 12. Married another
- wife ------------- Pretas
-
-TABLE Q.
-
- Angirasa
-
- _m. 13 Svadha_ _m. 14. Sati_
- | |
- | |
- Pitris Aharvangiras
-
-TABLE R.
-
- Krisasva
-
- _m. 15. Archi_ _m. 16. Dhishana_
- | |
- | +-----------++--------+--------+
- | | | | |
- Dhumaketu Vedasiras Devala Vayuna Manu.
-
-TABLE S.
-
- Tarksha
-
- m. 17. Vinata m. 18. Kadru m. 19. Patangi m. 20. Yamini
- | | | |
- +-+---+ | | |
- | | | | |
- Garuda Aruna Serpents Flying birds Salabha (Moths
- and locusts)
-
-TABLE T.
-
- Chandra (Moon)
-
- _m._ 21 to 47. Krittika &c
- (Stars in the lunar path on the Ecliptic.)
-
-TABLE U.
-
- Kasyapa
-
- _m. 48. Timi_ -------- Aquatic animals,
-
- _m. 49. Sarama_ ------ Quadrupeds,
- (Tigers &c.)
-
- _m. 50. Suravi_ ------ Cloven footed
- animals.
-
- m. 51. Tamra ----+-- Syena (falcon)
- |
- +-- Gridhra &c. (vulture)
-
- _m. 52. Muni_ ------- Apsarasas
-
- _m. 53. Krodhivasa_ --- Dvandasuka &c. (serpents)
-
- _m. 54. Ila_ ---------- Udvid (Plants)
-
- _m. 55. Surama_ ------- Rakshasas
-
- _m. 56. Aristha_ ------ Gandharvas
-
- _m. 57. Kashtha_ ------ Animals other than
- cloven-footed.
-
- m. 58. Danu------+-- Dvimurdha,
- |
- +-- Samvara,
- |
- +-- Aristha,
- |
- +-- Hayagriva,
- |
- +-- Bibhavasu,
- |
- +-- Ayomukha,
- |
- +-- Sankusiras,
- |
- +-- Svarbhanu, ---- _Suprabha_
- | _m._ Namuchi
- |
- +-- Kapila,
- |
- +-- Puloman,
- |
- +-- Vrishaparva, ---- _Sarmistha_
- | _m._ Yayati
- |
- +-- Ekachakra,
- |
- +-- Anutapana,
- |
- +-- Dhumrakesha,
- |
- +-- Virupaksha,
- |
- +-- Biprachitti ----+-- Rahu
- | m. Sinhaka |
- | +-- 100 Ketus.
- |
- +-- Durjaya,
-
- Kasyapa
- m. Aditi --+-- Vivasvat
- | m. Sanjna ----+-- Sradhadeva
- | | Manu
- | | (The present
- | | Vaivasvata Manu)
- | |
- | +-- Yama
- | |
- | +-- Yamuna
- | |
- | +-- Ashvini kumaras
- |
- | m. Chhaya -----+-- Sanaischara,
- | |
- | +-- Savarni,
- | |
- | +-- _Tapati_
- | _m._ Samvarana
- |
- +-- Aryaman
- | _m. Matrika_ ---- Charshanis
- |
- +-- Pushan
- |
- +-- Tvastri
- | _m. Rachana_ ---- Visvarupa
- |
- +-- Tvastri
- | m. Prisni ---+-- _Savitri,_
- | |
- | +-- _Vyahriti,_
- | |
- | +-- _Trayi,_
- | |
- | +-- Agnihotra,
- | |
- | +-- Pasuyaga,
- | |
- | +-- Somayaga,
- | |
- | +-- Chaturmasya,
- | |
- | +-- Panchamahayajna.
- |
- +-- Bhaga
- | m. Sidhi -----+-- Mahiman,
- | |
- | +-- Bibhu,
- | |
- | +-- Prabhu,
- | |
- | +-- Asis
- |
- +-- Dhatri
- | _m. Kuhu_ ------ Sayam
- | _m. Sinivati_, --- Darsa
- |
- | _m. Raka_, ------- Pratar
- |
- | _m. Anumati_ --- Purnamasa
- |
- +-- Vidhatri
- | _m. Kriya_, ------ Purishya
- | (Five Fires)
- |
- +-- Varuna
- | m. Charshani --+-- Bhrigu
- | |
- | +-- Valmila
- |
- | m. Urvasi -----+-- Agastya
- | |
- | +-- Vasistha
- |
- +-- Mitra
- | m. Revati -----+-- Utsarga
- | |
- | +-- Aristha
- | |
- | +-- Pippala
- |
- +-- Vishnu
- | _m. Kirti_ ----- Vrihat slocac --- Soubhaga
- | &c.
- |
- +-- Hiranyakasipu
- | _m. Kayadhu_
- | |
- | +--+-- Samhrada,
- | | _m. Mati_ -- Panchajana
- | |
- | +-- Anuhrada,
- | | m. Surya,--+-- Vaskala
- | | |
- | | +-- Mahisha
- | |
- | +-- Hlada,
- | | m. Dhamani +-- Vatapi
- | | |
- | | +-- Ilvala
- | |
- | +-- Prahlada
- | _m. Drarbi,_
- | |
- | Virochana
- | |
- | Bali
- | _m. Asana_
- | |
- | +----------+
- | | |
- | Vana 100 Sons
- |
- +-- Hiranyaksha
- |
- +-- 49 Maruts
-
-
-
-GENERAL REMARKS ON THE TABLES.
-
-
-These Tables must not be mistaken for human genealogies. The reader will
-have to carry himself in imagination to a time when there was a vast
-sheet of nebulous mass, when the globes and planets had not been formed,
-and the phenomena now known as day, night, year, month and season were
-still unknown.
-
-The process known as Pralaya had absorbed the life energies of Triloki,
-which remained latent in that intermediate plane between the higher and
-the lower Lokas known as Mahar Loka. When the creative process set in,
-and the ground was prepared for the manifestation of life, life energies
-streamed forth from the Mahar Loka, more as types than as individuals.
-These types are called Prajapatis or the Lords of life kingdoms. They
-carry back to Triloki all the life energies of the previous Kalpa. At
-Pralaya, they draw back unto themselves all the life energies of the
-dying Triloki, and take a lasting sleep in the archetypal plane ( Mahar
-Loka ) to which they properly belong. The Prajapatis of the First
-Manvantara become the Rishis of other Manvantaras. As the first Lords of
-creation bring back the life energies as well as the lost experiences of
-the previous Kalpa, so the Rishis bring back the lost knowledge of each
-Manvantara. This is fully explained in the fourteenth Chapter of the
-Eighth Skandha. The Kumars are not Prajapatis, as they come from a plane
-higher than Mahar Loka. In the first Manvantara, Marichi, Atri Angirasa,
-Pulastya, Pulaha, Kratu, Bhrigu, Vasistha, Daksha, and Narada are
-mentioned as the chief Prajapatis. Of these, Narada is not strictly
-speaking a Prajapati, or Lord of creation, as he took no part in the
-work of creation, though he is called so having proceeded from Mahar
-Loka. Kardama, Ruchi and Visvakarma are some of the other Prajapatis.
-
-Of the Prajapatis, seven form distinct types by themselves. They preside
-over the seven stars, which form the constellation of Great Bear. They
-send forth their energies from the plane of the Seven Sages, and guide
-the course of life evolution that takes place in Triloki. The sages are
-relieved every Manvantara by others who take up their place. The seven
-sages of our Manvantara, are different from the Prajapatis of the first
-Manvantara. It is by great sacrifices and by great efforts that the
-highest Rishis of a Manvantara attain the position of the Seven Sages.
-The Sages may become Prajapatis, and Prajapatis may become Kumaras. And
-men may become sages, if they follow the true path. The grades that
-divide men from sages or Rishis proper are many, and human evolution
-proceeds on the line of those grades.
-
-Energies of another kind proceeded from Mahar Loka, energies known as
-Devas and Asuras. They work out, or rather they are intimately connected
-with, the tendency of life-evolution. There is a tendency in the
-Spiritual Jiva to acquire experience of the lower planes, through senses
-which they develop. The Asuras are connected with this tendency. There
-is the opposite tendency in the Jiva to get rid of the material taint
-and the material restriction earned in the efforts to acquire manifold
-experiences and to gain back the original state of purity after the
-acquisition of fresh spiritual treasures though the experiences of
-matter. The Devas are connected with this tendency.
-
-These are the forms of life which then come into existence and work out
-their evolution in this Triloki.
-
-Life evolution proceeds on two different lines -- that of globes and
-that of individuals. They are represented by the two sons of Manu --
-Priyavrata and Uttanapada.
-
-In the line of Priyavrata we find how the globes were formed in the
-solar system, through various cosmic fires originating from Visvakarma,
-how this earth was formed, its continents and countries. The different
-divisions of the Bhur Loka are presided over by different forms of
-intelligence, who are the sons of Priyavrata.
-
-In the line of Uttanapada we find the different life kingdoms passing
-through different stages of evolution.
-
-First of all, we find a limit is put to life existence in Triloki by
-Dhruva. Dhruva, son of Uttanapada, presides over the Polar Star. That
-Star forms the farthest limit of Triloki. Matter is so attenuated there
-that it can last for one Kalpa. We are speaking of a period when infant
-souls merged out to commence the race of life in the present Kalpa. They
-were spiritual and highly spiritual too. But they were carried away by
-the general current of creative tendencies. They were to limit
-themselves by sheath after sheath, so that they might acquire the
-experiences of Svar Loka, of Bhuvar Loka and of Bhur Loka in succession.
-Dhruva, the infant soul, a child only five years old, however, resisted
-the common temptation. He would not go down, for he had an important
-service to render to the Universe. Who would advise him in this noble
-mission but Narada. Narada was out of element when the creative process
-was in full swing, and it was a necessity of life evolution. But there
-were instances of exception, instances of noble souls who would not go
-in with the general current, but would like to remain fixed in spiritual
-life, and Narada was always to be found helping them with his advice.
-
-Dhruva remained fixed in his early spirituality. That was a sacrifice,
-for he could not enrich himself with further spiritual experiences,
-through the senses, of the lower planes of life. But he had to keep up
-an abode which was to be resorted to by evolved souls in later days,
-souls that in due course would reach that high spiritual plane.
-
-From that Kalpic plane and the dweller thereof, we come to lower planes
-and their dwellers, to the divisions of time that rule the lives of
-individuals and of lives adapted to these divisions of time. We come
-from the elementals of the Svarga plane, or the Devas, to the elementals
-of the Astral or Bhuvar plane, the Pitris, Bhutas, Pretas and Pisachas,
-till we reach the mineral kingdom, represented by Himalya, the Mountain
-king. At this point a turning point was reached in life evolution, and
-the goddess of life-evolution became the daughter of the Mountain king.
-Of this we shall know more hereafter.
-
-We know of Daksha, first as the son of Brahma, the creative Prajapati
-when the life-process rapidly worked itself out in Elemental forms. Then
-there was no sexual procreation. Creation meant the materialisation of
-the Jiva. Sati, the daughter of Daksha, was the guiding energy of
-life-evolution. She became wedded to Siva, the Lord of Bhutas, Pretas
-and Pisachas who by the infusion of their Tamasic energies could bring
-down Jivas from their high spiritual plane.
-
-When the process of materialisation was over, when the Jivas or Monads
-reached the lowest limits of materiality, the mission of Daksha came to
-an end.
-
-Life evolution had now to pass through mineral, vegetable and animal
-stages, until at last the human stage was reached.
-
-Sati now appeared as the daughter of the mineral king Himalaya. She gave
-the upward bent to life evolution and by the energy she imparted
-minerals were able to shake off the rigidity and stability of gross
-matter, to develop the sense of touch and to become vegetable at last.
-In like manner vegetable became animal, and animals at last became men.
-
-Siva, the husband of Bhagavati or Durga, as Sati was now called, is the
-Purusha of Dissolution. Bhagavati is His Energy, Who guides the Monadic
-or Jiva Evolution of the Kalpa. It is the wear and tear, the process of
-destruction, that counteracts the cohesive strength of the particles
-forming mineral matter, which by its action becomes flexible and so
-receptive of outside influences.
-
-Cells by division and death become capable of the life process in
-themselves. Vegetables grow by the rejection of cells, which
-necessitates a number of physiological processes. Death brings on life,
-waste, repair.
-
-If animals exist in one and the same body, progress will be limited,
-further evolution will be impossible. It is by death that we evolve.
-
-Bhagavati works out the evolution of life in different kingdoms till the
-stage of humanity is reached.
-
-At this point Aryaman, one of the Adityas, comes to the help of
-humanity. Through his influence the sons of humanity become endowed with
-the power of reasoning, -- the faculty of discrimination.
-
-The sons of Aryaman are called Charshanis. The word Charshani literally
-means a cultivator. Its secondary sense given in the Vedic lexicon is
-one endowed with the discriminative faculty. The word Charshani is used
-in the Vedas for man. It is the equivalent of Arya or Aryan, the
-ploughman. But it is not as ploughmen or cultivators, that the Aryans
-had their high place in humanity, but as men endowed with the power of
-discrimination. And this we owe to Aryaman. This is why, though an
-Aditya, he is called the chief of Pitris by Sri Krishna.
-
-"I am Aryaman of the Pitris." -- Bhagavat Gita.
-
-We have thus the first stage in life evolution, when the spiritual Jiva
-had to descend from the elemental to the mineral form. Next we have the
-second stage, when minerals passed through higher forms of life till the
-Human Kingdom was reached.
-
-Then we have the third stage, when men became endowed with the power of
-discrimination.
-
-In the exercise of the discriminative faculty men were helped by their
-elder brothers, the Rishis and Mahatmas of every period, and by Avataras
-Who apeared from time to time.
-
-Then the ground was prepared for further evolution. The Sacred
-Injunctions or the Vedas were revealed to men to give them a sense of
-right and wrong, of duties and prohibitions. The Vedas also held out to
-the developed sense of men the charming prospect of life in Svarga Loka
-with its lasting and alluring enjoyments. This may be called the stage
-of Karma Kanda. In following the stages of human evolution we have come
-down to Vaivasvatu Manvantara.
-
-Side by side with the efforts made to raise humanity in the scale of
-evolution, sin was accumulating in the great Atlantean continent which
-spread over the whole of what we now know as the Bay of Bengal. The
-Atlanteans had acquired a mastery over the five forces of nature, which
-they used for selfish objects and against the cause and current of
-evolution.
-
-Then there was a great revolution in Nature. The great Atlantean
-Continent went down with its load of sins. The sons of Sagar, the
-Atlantean king, became buried under the great ocean, which overtook the
-doomed continent, and to this day the sea is called in India, "Sagar" or
-relating to Sagar.
-
-There was a corresponding upheaval in the Himalayas, and the sacred
-river Ganga streamed forth from their sides, inaugurating the spiritual
-regeneration of the Universe. Much of what we now know as India must
-have been raised up at the time, and on its sacred soil appeared the
-great Avatara Rama, Who put an end to the disorganising, chaos-loving
-sons of Lanka. The people of Lanka were called Rakshasas as they were
-working towards the destruction of all order, all progress in the
-Universe, and rendered everything topsy-turvy in Nature.
-
-Now it was time for Sri Krishna to appear, the greatest of all Avataras
-in our Kalpa, Who gave the last bent to the progress of humanity. He
-wedded Himself with all the principles that enter into the constitution
-of man, so that man may come up to Him. He taught the basic unity of all
-beings, and laid down the path of Service and Devotion. He established
-the reign of spiritual life, and ever since His lotus feet sanctified
-the soil of India, the Scriptures only re-iterate His teachings, and
-they all sing His glory for ever and ever. We shall find in its true
-place the Service done by Lord Sri Krishna, and how by His Avatarship
-humanity has made one more advance in the scale of human evolution. When
-the Lord appeared, Bhagavati made her appearance too as the daughter of
-Nanda. It is with Her energy that Sri Krishna performed the mission of
-His Avatarship.
-
-This is a bare outline of what the Tables teach us, We shall consider
-them each in its own place. We shall find a detailed account as to how
-the Universe is preserved. We shall hear of great Rishis, of many
-Avataras, of the part played by Devas and Asurus. We shall see how the
-Monads pass through different stages of evolution, till the idea of
-perfect humanity is presented by Lord Krishna.
-
-The Tables sometimes speak of life Kingdoms, sometimes of human races,
-sometimes of types and principles, and sometimes of individuals.
-Sometimes, the names used convey a good deal of hidden meaning,
-sometimes they are used at random.
-
-In the line of Priyavratra, we find how globes are formed, how
-continents and countries appear. The solidification of earth is
-indicated by the muteness of Bharata. Bharata Varsa or India is called
-the first born of all countries, and other lands are enjoined to follow
-and to obey their eldest brother.
-
-
-TABLE A.
-
-
-*SKANDHA IV. CHAP. 1.*
-
-The names of the first table have been considered before.
-
-
-TABLE B.
-
-
-*SKANDHA IV. CHAP. 1.*
-
-Ruchi and Akuti both mean Wish, Desire. Yajna is sacrifice, Dakshina
-means ordinarily the present made to a Brahmana for officiating at a
-ceremony. It is also the present made for the performance of a Vedic
-sacrifice. No Vedic sacrifice is complete without the present of
-Dakshina to the officiating priest. Dakshina was married to Yajna, for
-they are inseparable. Possibly Yajna has reference to the elemental or
-Devic character of life forms in the first Manvantara. That also
-explains why there was no Indra separate from the Avatara of the
-Manvantara.
-
-The first Manvantara was one of Pravritti or Descent, Spirit could
-descend into matters only with the help of Desire. Desire is the father
-of Kama -- Kama is the characteristic of Vedic Yajna. Yajna therefore
-guided the First Manvantara. He was the Avatara of Vishnu as well as the
-Indra of the Devas.
-
-The sons of Yajna were the Devas of the First Manvantara. The Bhagavata
-calls them Sushita or Bliss gods. The Vishnu Purana calls them Yama
-Devas. The Manvantara Devas have for their mission the carrying out of
-the cyclic work of the Manvantara.
-
-
-TABLE C.
-
-
-*SKANDHA IV. CHAP. 1.*
-
-Marichi means literally a ray of light. The word is frequently applied
-to the sun's ray. As the sun's ray breaks up into the component colours,
-so the line of Marichi broke up into the life kingdoms. Kala means a
-digit of the moon. Kasyapa was the son of Marichi and Kala. He married
-the 13 daughters of Daksha, in the line Uttanapada. By his wives,
-Kasyapa was the father of Suras and Asuras, of elementals, vegetables,
-animals and men. He is directly connected with the Monads. Marichi and
-Kala have a special significance in reference to Jivic evolution. Does
-the pair symbolise the sun's ray reflected on the Moon or the Atmic ray
-reflected on Buddhi? Any how Marichi and Kala imply the divine ray in
-the Jivas or Atma-Buddhi.
-
-The monads of individuals are limited by the shells or bodies of
-Kasyapa's line. (The word Kasyapa means primarily bed, seat). They come
-through Purnima, daughter of Marichi. The sons of Purnima are Viraja and
-Visvaga.
-
-Viraja is free from Rajas. Visvaga means one who goes all over the
-Universe. Viraja and Visvaga are Universal aspects of Jivic
-Intelligence.
-
-(Viraja is the father of Vairajas). Devakulya is the daughter of
-Purnima. She flowed from the washings of the feet of Vishnu and became
-the divine river Ganga.
-
-
-TABLE D.
-
-
-*SKANDHA IV. CHAP. 1.*
-
-Atri = _a_ (not ) + _tri_ (three). Not three, but three in one. Anasuya
-= (not)+*asuya* (envy, intolerance, jealousy).
-
-Atri made severe Tapas for one hundred years for a son like unto the
-Lord of the Universe. The ascetic fire at last broke forth from his head
-and instantly Brahma, Vishnu and Siva appeared before him.
-
-"Lords!" said Atri, "I had only one of you in my mind, but you have all
-Three come to me!"
-
-The Trinity replied: -- "We are three in one. You shall have three sons,
-one after each of us."
-
-Anasuya begot Soma or the Moon after Brahma, Datta or Dattatreya after
-Vishnu and Durvasas after Siva.
-
-[The Moon is thus a sort of Brahma or creator to the present Kalpa.]
-
-Atri represents the Creative, the Preservative and the Destructive
-Intelligence in the individual, all united to carry out the complex
-process of evolution.
-
-The Brihat Aranyaka certainly refers to one of his aspects in the
-following passage: --
-
-"Speech is Attri; for by speech food is consumed; for Attri is verily
-derived from the root Attih (to eat, consume); he is the consumer of
-all." II-2-4.
-
-
-TABLE E.
-
-
-"Where was he, who thus established us? He Is within the mouth; hence is
-Ayasya. He is Angirasa, because he is the essence of the members."
-Brihat Aranyaka I-3-8.
-
-Commenting on this passage Sankaracharya says: "Life is also called
-Angirasa, the essence of causes and effects. Angirasa is a compound of
-Anga and Rasa -- Anga meaning members, causes, and effects, and Rasa
-essence, substance; the whole meaning therefore is the substance, upon
-which causes and effects depend -- It is the essence of every thing,
-because unless it were present, all would become without effect."
-
-"He who abides in the mouth is Angirasa, for he is the essence (Rasa) of
-the members (Anga). Life is the essence of the members. This is also
-Brihaspati. Speech is Brihati. Life is the preserver (_pati_) of
-Brihati, therefore it is Brihaspati."
-
-B.A. I-3-19 and 20.
-
-Brihaspati or the presiding deity of the planet Jupiter is called
-Angirasa _i.e._ the son of Angiras. The wife of Angiras is, according to
-the Bhagavata, Sraddha or Faith, and, according to Vishnu Purina, Smriti
-or Memory. The latter is a more suggestive name. Brihaspati or Jupiter
-is the essence of all beings and of the Universe and is connected with
-the memory of the past.
-
-Angirasa is the Rishi of the 5th Mandala of the Rig Veda. The Mantras of
-that Mandala are composed in the Brihati or big Metre. This accounts for
-the name Brihaspati (Brihati+pati).
-
-Brihaspati or Jupiter, as the guide of the Devas, has to play a most
-important part in bringing about the life evolution of the present Kalpa
-according to the records of the past and the essence or Rasa of all
-beings. The Aranyaka therefore calls him life itself.
-
-Utathya, another son of Angiras, is _u+tathya_. _U_ is an interjection,
-used as an expletive -- _Tathya_ means reality, truth -- Utathya is said
-to be an incarnation of Vishnu. Both the brothers are said to have
-distinguished themselves in the Second Manvantara. _Sinivali_ is the day
-preceding that of new moon or that day on which the moon rises with a
-scarcely visible crescent. Kuha is new moon day when the moon is
-altogether invisible.
-
-_Raka_ is the full moon day.
-
-_Anumati_ is the 15th day of the moon's age on which she rises one digit
-less than full.
-
-The full moon and new moon days have thus a mysterious connection with
-the essence of all beings. On those days the herbs have their medicinal
-properties in full and even men have mysterious potencies, which have
-formed the subject of occult study.
-
-
-TABLE F.
-
-
-Pulastya = Pula + Stya.
-
-_Pula_ is large, wide. It also means a thrill of joy or fear.
-
-_Stya_ is he who collects, is connected with, remains in. Agastya = Aga
-+ Stya.
-
-_Aga_ is mountain, unable to walk, fixed.
-
-According to a Pauranik legend, the Vindhya mountain began to rise
-higher and higher so as to obstruct the path of the sun and moon. The
-gods being alarmed sought the aid of Agastya who was the teacher of
-Vindhya. The Rishi approached the mountain and asked it to bend down and
-give him an easy passage to the south and to retain the same position
-till his return. Vindhya obeyed the order of his teacher, but Agastya
-never returned from the south and Vindhya never attained the height of
-Meru.
-
-According to the Bhagavata, Agastya is the digestive fire of the
-stomach.
-
-Visravas = Vi (signifying intensity) + Sravas (ear).
-
-Kubera is literally deformed. He is the god of riches and Regent of the
-North. He is the king of the Yakshas and Kinnaras and a friend of Rudra.
-His abode is Kailasa. He is represented as having three legs, only eight
-teeth and a yellow mark in place of one eye.
-
-Ravana, Kumbhakarna and Vibhishana are Rakshasas made famous by the
-Ramayana.
-
-Ravana is one who makes a loud noise. The Rakshasas reached the height
-of their power in his time. The Yakshas, before his time, had occupied
-Lanka or Atlantis under Kubera, but Ravana propitiated Siva by his loud
-hymns, and acquired easy mastery over his kindred elementals. He ousted
-the Yakshas from Lanka and made it his own capital. Ravana also
-controlled the higher Devas of Triloki.
-
-Kumbha karna = Kumbha (pitcher) + Karna (ear). This pitcher-eared
-brother of Ravana is said to have devoured thousands of beings including
-sages and heavenly nymphs. He slept for six months at a time. He was
-ultimately slain by Rama.
-
-Vibhisana, meaning the Terrible, left his brother Ravana and joined
-Rama. After the death of Ravana, Rama installed him on the throne of
-Lanka. He is said to be still living.
-
-The Rakshasas are said to have possessed Kama Rupa _i.e._ they could
-assume any body at will.
-
-In the line of Pulastya we have this strange combination -- the
-digestive fire of stomach, ears, Yakshas and lastly the Rakshasas who
-could change their body at will. Altogether we may say, Pulastya is
-Intelligence which governs animal passions and Kama.
-
-
-TABLE G.
-
-
-Pulaha = Pula + ha. _Ha_ is one who gives up.
-
-_Gati_ is motion.
-
-_Karma-Srestha_ is one most skilled in karma or work.
-
-_Variyas_ is excellent, preferable.
-
-_Sahishnu_ is patient, enduring.
-
-Pulaha seems to be the higher aspect of Kama -- the impulses pure and
-simple, apart from their Kamic generator, or perhaps Pulaha may
-represent Pranic activity.
-
-
-TABLE H.
-
-
-Kratu is a Vedic sacrifice, intelligence, power, ability. Kriya is
-action.
-
-Balakhilyas -- are a class of Rishis 60,000 in number, of the size of
-the thumb, and are said to precede the sun's chariot. The word literally
-implies stunted in growth like infants. These Rishis are said to burn
-brightly with the spiritual fire of asceticism. The number 60,000 is
-significant. It indicates a correspondence.
-
-Perhaps the Rishis represent the sense perceptions which are guided by
-the Adhidevas who have their abode in the heart of the sun. The
-Balakhilya Rishis are therefore said to accompany the sun's chariot.
-Their connection with Vedic sacrifices is also intelligible, as they are
-generally directed to the Adhidevas.
-
-
-TABLE I.
-
-
-Vasistha is the Controller. He is the spiritual teacher of the Solar
-Race and represents spiritual Intelligence or Higher Manas. He is the
-controller of the senses and the lower mind.
-
-Urja is Energy. She is also called Arundhati.
-
-
-TABLE J.
-
-
-_Atharvan_ -- The Veda called by that name.
-
-_Dadhichi_ -- The name of a Rishi who accepted death In order to serve
-the Devas. Visvakarman forged the thunderbolt with his bones and Indra
-defeated Vritra, the Asura King, with that weapon.
-
-The line of Atharvan represents self sacrifice for universal good as
-well as magic or occult wisdom.
-
-
-TABLE K.
-
-
-_Bhrigu_ -- is the Dweller of Mahar Loka, or the Archetypal plane. Upon
-the Pralaya of Triloki, the essence of that triple plane and its Karma
-become embedded in Mahar Loka. The creative process sets in again in
-strict conformity to the Karma of the past. Bhrigu is therefore father
-of:
-
-_Dhata_ -- or Universal Karma
-
-_Vidhata_ -- or Individual Karma, and
-
-_Sri_ or _Lakshmi_ -- the wife of Vishnu, the Energy of Preservation.
-
-_Ayati_ -- or potency is the wife of Dhata, Mrikandu and Markandeya, are
-in this line.
-
-_Niyati_ -- or fate, is the wife of Vidhata. Prana and Vedasiras are in
-this line.
-
-_Kavi_ -- is another son of Bhrigu and _Usanas_ or _Sukra_ is Kavi's
-son. But according to some authorities Kavi is the same as Usanas. It is
-a matter for reflection how Sukra or the presiding Rishi of the planet
-Venus is connected with Mahar Loka or the trans-personal plane. Mahar
-Loka is the first approach to universality and therefore may correspond
-to Higher Manas. However that be, Venus corresponds to the first plane
-of universality.
-
-The consideration of Tables C to K has proved to be an interesting one.
-But readers are requested to remember that this is a mere study by an
-inquiring student and they are left to think for themselves. I might
-have dwelt at some length on this portion of the subject, but that would
-be going beyond the scope of the present work.
-
-Briefly speaking then,
-
-_Marichi_ -- is Monadic ray or Atma-Buddhi,
-
-_Atri_ -- is the adjustment of the creative, preservative and
-destructive tendencies in a Jiva,
-
-_Angiras_ -- is the Essence of Creation, the auric repository of the
-Jiva,
-
-_Pulastya_ -- is Kamic Intelligence,
-
-_Pulaha_ -- is higher Kamic Intelligence, or it may be Pranic also,
-
-_Kratu_ -- is lower Manasic Intelligence,
-
-_Vasishtha_ -- is Higher Manasic Intelligence.
-
-
-TABLE L.
-
-
-_Daksha_ -- is the Able.
-
-_Prasuti_ -- is the Mother, the Procreative Energy. During the First
-Manvantara Daksha had nothing to do with sexual procreation. He was the
-father of 16 primal energies. These energies were wedded to Dharma,
-Agni, the Pitris and Siva -- 13 to Dharma and one to each of the others.
-
-_Dharma_ -- is that which binds the creation. Man and man, man and
-animal, animal and animal, all forms of creation are kept together by
-Dharma. The binding forces of creation are the wives of Dharma.
-
-_Sraddha_ or Faith is the first wife of Dharma. Her son is _Satya_ or
-Truth.
-
-_Maitri_ or Friendliness is the second wife. Her son is _Prasada_ or
-complacence.
-
-_Daya_ or compassion is the third wife. Her son is _Abhaya_ or Freedom
-from fear.
-
-_Santi_ or Peace is the fourth wife. Her son is _Sama_ or Tranquility.
-
-The fifth wife is _Tushti_ or contentment. Her son is _Harsha_ or joy.
-
-The sixth wife is _Pushti_ or Fullness. Her son is _Garva_ or Pride.
-
-The seventh wife is _Kriya_. Her son is _Yoga_.
-
-The eighth wife is _Unnati_ or Advancement. Her son is _Darpa_ or
-Vanity.
-
-The ninth wife is _Buddhi_. Her son is _Artha_.
-
-The tenth wife is _Medha_ or Intellect. Her son is _Smriti_ or Memory.
-
-The eleventh wife is _Titiksha_ or Forbearance. Her son is _Kshema_ or
-Well-being.
-
-The twelfth wife is _Lajja_ or Shame. Her son is _Vinaya_ or Modesty.
-
-The thirteenth and last wife of Dharma is _Murti_ or Form. Her sons are
-Nara and Narayana, _i.e._ Humanity and Divinity. The Human Form
-constitute a Duality. It is in this dual form that Sri Krishna
-incarnated Himself.
-
-From Dharma we pass to Agni.
-
-[Agni is used in many senses. It means the channel of communication
-between different kingdoms in nature, specially between Man and Deva, as
-also a vehicle of consciousness, and sometimes consciousness itself. It
-also means the Rupa or form-giving principle in the Universe. It is
-frequently used in the Puranas in the last sense.]
-
-Agni was wedded to _Svaha_, the 14th. daughter of Daksha. His three sons
-are _Pavaka_ or the Purifier, _Pavaman_ or that which is being purified
-and _Sachi_ or Pure. They have 45 sons who with their fathers and
-grandfather form the Forty-nine Fires. They are separately mentioned in
-the Vedic Sacrifices in honour of Agni.
-
-_Svadha_ is the 15th. daughter of Daksha. She was married to the Pitris.
-Agnishvatva, Barhishad, Somapa and Ajyapa are the names of the Pitris.
-They are with fire (Sagni) or without fire (Niragini). Svadha bore two
-daughters to the Pitris, Vayuna and Dharini. Both of them were
-well-versed in the Supreme wisdom.
-
-[_Vayana_ is knowledge, wisdom, faculty of perception. _Dharini_ means
-that which bears, holds, carries, supports. Sometimes the word is used
-to mean the earth.
-
-This two-fold classification means that some of the Pitris give the
-_body_, which is the receptacle or carrier, with its sub-divisions, and
-others give knowledge, wisdom and the faculties of perception].
-
-_Sati_ is the last daughter of Daksha. She was wedded to Siva. We shall
-specially notice her in the succeeding chapter.
-
-
-
-THE QUARREL BETWEEN SIVA AND DAKSHA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA IV., CHAP. 2.*
-
-Of old the Prajapaties performed a Yajna, and the Devas and Rishis all
-graced the occasion with their presence. Prajapati Daksha entered the
-assembly, when all stood up to receive him, except Brahma and Siva.
-Daksha saluted his father Brahma and with His permission took a seat.
-But he was so mortified by the conduct of Siva that he could not contain
-himself, and indignantly broke forth thus: -- "O you, Rishis, Devas and
-Agni! Witness this disgraceful conduct of Siva my own son-in-law, rather
-my disciple. This senseless being would not do so much as rise up and
-receive me. He has no sense of respect and dis-respect, of purity and
-impurity. He is mindless of all injunctions and observances. Do you
-know, what he does? He roves like a mad man in the crematories, with his
-host of Bhutas, Pretas and Pisachas, sometimes laughing, sometimes
-weeping, his body covered over with the ashes of dead bodies, their
-bones serving for his ornaments. His name is Siva (auspicious). But he
-is really A-Siva (inauspicious). He is fond of intoxication, and his
-companions are the impure and senseless Bhutas. Oh! that I have given my
-daughter Sati in marriage to him. That was simply to obey the orders of
-Brahma."
-
-Siva remained unmoved. Daksha went on abusing Him and at last he cursed
-Siva saying "This vilest of Devas shall not participate in the
-sacrificial offerings to Indra, Upendra and others." He then left the
-place in a rage.
-
-Nandisvara, the chief companion of Siva, could not bear the gross and
-wanton insult done to his master. He retorted in angry tones the unkind
-words of Daksha and the approbation of some of the councillors. "Siva
-bears malice to none. It is Daksha who makes differences, where there
-are none. Ignorant people follow him and blame Siva. The Vedas deal with
-transitory objects. Worldly attachments receive an impetus from the
-Karma Kanda of the Vedas and they beget vices and evil deeds. This
-Daksha looks upon the body as the soul. He shall be as fond of women as
-a beast and his face shall he that of an Aja (goat). Verily he deserves
-this, as he looks upon Avidya as Tatvavidya. He publicly insults Siva.
-The Brahmanas who follow him shall go through the repeated course of
-births and deaths and shall resort to the apparently pleasing Karma
-Kanda of the Vedas. These Brahmanas shall have no scruples to eat
-anything and they shall make a profession of their learning, their Tapas
-and their austerities (Vrata). They shall consider their riches, their
-body and their Indriyas to be all in all. They shall beg about from door
-to door."
-
-Bhrigu, the leader of the Brahmanas, thus returned the curses of Nandi
-on the followers of Siva: -- "Those that will follow Siva, shall be
-disregardful of the Sat (real) Sastras and shall be irreligious. With
-braids of hair on their head, and ashes and bones round their body, they
-shall frequent places where wine is indulged in. The Vedas have at all
-times laid down the approved path. The Rishis of old followed their
-injunctions and Narayana is at their very root. Those that forget all
-this shall only attain the Tamasic Siva, the Lord of Bhutas and
-Pishachas."
-
-Siva with his followers then left the place. The Prajapatis performed
-the Yajna for 1,000 years.
-
-Sometime after, Brahma made Daksha the head of the Prajapatis, and his
-pride knew no bounds. He commenced a sacrifice called Vrihaspati Yajna
-and to it he invited all except Siva and his own daughter Sati. Sati
-heard of the grand preparations made by her father and became impatient
-to witness the Yajna herself. Siva at last yielded to her expostulations
-much against His own will. She left for Daksha's house accompanied by
-the attendants of Siva. At last she reached her father's house and went
-to the place of sacrifice. But her father would not receive her. She did
-not find any offering to Siva. She could easily make out that Daksha had
-disregarded her husband. No attention was also paid to her. She grew
-furious with rage and addressing her father said: -- "With Siva, all are
-equal. He has enmity with none. Who else but thee could be envious of
-his virtues? Thou hast attributed evil things to Siva. But do not the
-Devas know all that and knowingly worship Him? If the devoted wife
-cannot kill her husband's calumniators, she must leave the place with
-ears closed with her hands. But if she is strong enough, she must in the
-first place sever the tongue of the calumniator from his body by force
-and then put an end to herself. Thou art the calumniator of Siva. This
-my body is from thee, so I shall not keep it any longer. If prohibited
-food is taken, the best thing is to throw it out. True, there are the
-two Paths of Inclination (Pravritti) and of Renunciation (Nivritti). But
-one cannot adopt both the Paths at one and the same time. What action is
-there for Siva? He is Brahma Himself. Thou speakest of His ashes and
-bones. But hast thou any idea of His Yogic powers, in comparison with
-which thy powers as a performer of Vedic sacrifices are nothing? But
-there is no use wrangling with thee. I am ashamed of this body which has
-connection with thee. The sooner I get rid of it the better."
-
-So saying Sati gave up her body, and there was great uproar. Her
-attendants made ready for an attack, when Bhirgu, who acted as Adhvaryu,
-invoked the Ribhus. They appeared and beat the attendants of Siva, who
-ran away on all sides.
-
-Narada informed Siva of what had happened. Siva bit His lips in anger
-and tore up a Jata (matted hairtuft) from his head. The Jata glowed with
-electric fire.
-
-He threw it down on the earth and the terrible Virabhadra sprang from
-it. His tall body reached the high heavens. He was dark as the clouds.
-He had one thousand hands, three eyes burning like the sun, teeth
-terrible to look at, and tufts of hair bright as fire. He had a garland
-of human skulls round his neck and there were various weapons in his
-hands.
-
-"What are thy behests, O Lord?" exclaimed Virabhadra. "Thou art clever
-in fight, child, thou hast nothing to fear from the Brahmanas, for
-verily thou art part of myself. Go forth at the head of my army. Put an
-end to Daksha and his Yajna." Such was the command of Siva. Virabhadra
-rushed forth with trident in hand, and the attendants of Siva followed
-him with enthusiasm and noise. The priests, the Brahmanas and their
-wives present at Daksha's sacrifice saw a huge dust storm, as it were,
-coming from the north. "Can it be the hurricane?" thought they, "but the
-wind is not strong. Can this be the march of robbers? But King
-Prachinabarhi is still alive. In his reign there is no fear from
-robbers. No one is driving cattle. What can be the cause of this
-approaching volume of dust?" The attendants of Siva arrived in no time.
-Some of them were brown coloured, some yellow. Some had their belly,
-some their face, like Makara. They broke the implements of sacrifice and
-scattered them around. They pulled down the buildings and put out the
-fires. They made all sorts of sacrilege, ran after the Rishis and Devas
-and frightened the women. Maniman caught hold of Bhrigu and tied him up.
-Virabhadra captured Daksha; Chandesa captured Suryya and Nandisvara
-captured Bhaga. Seeing this, the other Brahmanas and Devas took to
-flight, but they were grievously hurt by the stones cast at them by the
-followers of Siva. Virabhadra began to uproot the beard of Bhrigu, for
-while scoffing Siva he made his beard prominent. Nandishvara pulled out
-the two eye-balls of Bhaga, for he had encouraged Daksha by side
-glances. Virabhadra did not also spare Pushan, and pulled out all his
-teeth. Pushan had showed his teeth while smiling in approval of Daksha's
-abuse. But the crowning act of Virabhadra was still to come. He sprang
-upon Daksha and made several attempts to cut off his head. But the head
-resisted all his strokes. Wonder-struck, he took at last the weapons of
-sacrifice and easily severed the head of Daksha even as it were the head
-of a beast of sacrifice. Loud were the lamentations at the place of
-sacrifice when Virbhadra with his followers left it for Kailasa.
-
-The Devas after this signal defeat went to Brahma. Brahma and Vishnu
-knew what was to happen at Daksha's sacrifice, so they had kept
-themselves aloof. When the Devas had related their mishap, Brahma
-explained to them that they had done wrong in not allowing Siva to
-participate in the Yajna offering. There was no help now but to appease
-the Astral Lord, Who could destroy the Universe at His will. So saying
-Brahma himself went with the Devas to Kailasa the abode of Siva. He
-found there higher beings than men perfected by birth, herbs, Tapas,
-Mantra or Yoga and Yakshas, Kinnaras, Gandharvas and Apsarasas. The
-river Nanda (Ganga) traced its course round Kailasa. High up on the
-mount was the abode called Alaka and the garden called Saugandhika
-(sweet-scented). On two sides of Alaka were the two rivers Nanda and
-Alakananda, sanctified by the dust of Vishnu's feet. Alaka is the abode
-of Kubera, the Yaksha king. The Kinnaras occupied the Saugandhika
-garden. Near it was a large fig tree (Vata) 800 miles (100 Yojanas)
-high, the branches spreading over 600 miles. Below that tree, the Devas
-found Siva in deep meditation for the good of the Universe. Brahma asked
-Him to pardon Daksha and his followers who had slighted Him by
-withholding Yajna offerings. "Through thy favour let the Yajna be
-completed now. Let Daksha get back his life. Let the eyes of Bhagadeva,
-the head of Bhrigu, the teeth of Pushan, be restored. Let the Devas and
-the sacrificial Rishis be relieved of all pain in their broken limbs.
-Since now, the remnants of Yajna offerings are all Thine. Take Thy
-offerings, and let the sacrifice be completed this day."
-
-Siva replied with a smile thus: -- "Daksha is a mere child. I do not
-even think of him as an offender. But I have to set right those that are
-led astray by Maya. Daksha's head is burnt up. So let him have the head
-of a goat. Bhagadeva shall find his Yajna offerings through the eyes of
-Mitra. Pushan shall have _pishta_ (crushed or ground up things) for his
-offerings. In company with other Devas, however, he shall have the use
-of the sacrificer's teeth. Let the broken limbs of the Devas be
-rehabilitated. But those that have lost their limbs shall use the arms
-of Asvinikumara and the hands of Pushan. So let it be with the Rishis
-too. Bhrigu shall have the beard of a goat."
-
-The Devas thanked Siva for His great kindness and invited Him to the
-sacrifice. Brahma accompanied Siva. Daksha regained life and looked on
-Siva with reverence. He acquired wisdom and became purified in mind. The
-sacrifice was duly performed. Daksha sat in meditation and, lo! Vishnu
-appeared on the back of Garuda.
-
-All rose up and saluted Him. Spontaneous prayers broke forth from one
-and all. Vishnu participated in the Yajna offerings. Addressing Daksha
-He said: -- "Only ignorant people see the difference between Me and
-Siva. I, Siva and Brahma are Three in One. For the creation,
-preservation and dissolution of the Universe, We assume three different
-Names. We, as the triune Atma, pervade all beings. Wise men therefore
-look upon all others as their own selves."
-
-Such is the story of Sati's death. She took birth again as the daughter
-of Himalaya and became wedded once more -- the union with Siva this time
-was permanent.
-
-
-
-THOUGHTS ON THE ABOVE.
-
-
-Brahma, Vishnu and Siva are the three aspects of the Second Purusha.
-
-Brahma brings into manifestation the Prajapatis, and the Prajapatis
-bring into manifestation the individuals and life forms. The other
-Prajapatis mostly represent the principles that enter into the
-constitution of life-forms, while Daksha represents the combination of
-principles forming a life unit.
-
-Daksha had sixteen daughters -- thirteen he gave in marriage to Dharma,
-one to Agni, one to the Pitris and one to Siva.
-
-Agni or the god of Fire is the Rupa or form-giving Deva. Fire is used in
-sacrifice, because it changes the form of things offered and makes them
-acceptable to the gods by change of form.
-
-If Agni represents Rupa Devas or Devas with forms, Dharma might
-represent Arupa Devas or Devas without forms.
-
-The Pitris, of whom four classes are only mentioned (Agnishvatvas,
-Barhishads, Saumyas and Ajyapas), are also divided into two classes, --
-one with fire and one without fire.
-
-The attendants of Siva were dwellers of the astral or Bhuvar plane.
-
-For the sake of convenient reference we shall call the dwellers of
-Svarga Loka Devas and the dwellers of Bhuvar Loka, Astrals. The
-different classes of Devas and Astrals are described in the 20th.
-chapter of the 4th. Skandha. The Devas and Astrals were brought into
-manifestation by Daksha, whose position in creation was next to that of
-Brahma. Therefore all stood up to receive him at the sacrifice except
-Brahma.
-
-Siva first appeared as Kumara Nila Lohita or Rudra. And all beings
-thereafter got the potentiality of dissolution, phenomenal change, death
-and decay. But in the first stage of life process, phenomenal change,
-decay or dissolution was not in requisition, as Monads went on in their
-downward journey, not by dissolution, but by evolution. They remained
-what they were, and they acquired in addition a more material form. As
-the material form became prominent the Deva form and the astral form
-became suppressed.
-
-Consciousness in Deva form manifests itself as mind, in the astral form
-as animal desire and sense perception. In the mineral form it can hardly
-shew itself.
-
-Siva works out the decay and dissolution of mineral matter, so that the
-astral element may once more assert itself and there may be sense
-perception in the mineral metamorphosed into the vegetable. The process
-is carried further in the animal kingdom, and the animals get a
-constitution in which Kama or animal desire can manifest itself. The
-animals evolve themselves by death. Death frees them from the trammels
-of one set of experience, and carries them onwards till the human body
-is reached.
-
-The work of dissolution proceeds in various ways. Our sleep is partial
-dissolution. It is brought on by the astral attendants of Siva.
-
-Dissolution is caused by Tamas. Tamas begets inaction, and inaction
-causes death and decay. There is no phenomenal change without
-dissolution, death or decay.
-
-There are so many material tendencies in us that they require rejection.
-Siva gives us the power of rejection, as Vishnu, the power of
-preservation -- preservation of all that is good in us. Death makes the
-man, where moral teachings fail, The Consort of Siva is the Energy
-through Whom He guides the life process of Monads or Jivas. In the first
-stage of life process She is called Sati or the Lasting. For the body of
-the Jiva was lasting during the period of evolution. But Her mission was
-to act on the Monad itself, to cause the material tendency in it by
-means of Tamas.
-
-In the second stage, She is the Energy of dissolution, death and
-phenomenal change. In the third stage, she is over and above that the
-Energy of rejection (of all that is evil in us.) She is the kind mother,
-who has been nourishing all Jivas in their course of evolution.
-
-When the Mineral form was reached by the primal elemental Jiva, the
-creative process had done its work and the process of dissolution was to
-assert itself. There was to be a revolution in the life process. Sati
-gave up her own nature and became re-born in another character in the
-Mineral Kingdom. The creative process was materially changed. Daksha
-lost his original head, and he acquired the head of a goat. The goat
-symbolises sexual connection. All this happened during the reign of
-Prachina-Barhis. The Prachetas brothers were his sons. Daksha reappeared
-as the son of the Prachetas brothers.
-
-The Adityas or gods of preservation who formed Daksha were Pushava and
-Bhaga. They were the preserving deities of the first stage of life
-process. When the next stage came in, they lost their activity. This
-explains the breaking of teeth and the uprooting of eyes of two of the
-Adityas. The subjoined Table of correspondences taken from the 11th.
-Chapter of the Twelfth Skandha shews that Pushana and Bhaga correspond
-to the months of Pausha (December) and Magha (January) when the rays of
-the sun are the least powerful. These Adityas preserve Jivas in their
-downward course. Pushana was a favorite god of the Aryan shepherd.
-
-
-------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------
-NO MONTH ADITYA RISHI YAKSHA RAKSHAS NAGA GANDHARVA APSARAS
-------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------
- 1. Chaitra Dhatri Pulastya Rathravit Heti. Vasuki. Tumburu. Kritusthali.
-------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------
- 2. Baisaka Aryaman Pulaha Athaujas. Praheti. Kachnira Narada Punjikasthali.
-------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------
- 3. Jyaistha Mitra. Atri Rathasvana Paurusheya Takshaka Haha. Menaka.
-------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------
- 4. Asarha Varuna. Vasistha. Chitrasvana Sahajayna Sukra. Huhu. Rambha.
- (Sahajanya)
-------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------
- 5. Sravana Indra. Angiras. Sroti. Varya Elaptara Visvavasu Pramlocha.
-------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------
- 6. Bhadra Vivasvat Bhrigu. Asarana. Vyaghra. Sankhahala Ugrasena. Anumlocha.
-------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------
- 7. Magha Pushan. Gautama. Suruchi. Vata. Dhanjaya. Sushena. Ghritachi.
-------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------
- 8. Falguna Parjanya Bharadhvaja Ritu. Vorcha. Airavatra Visva. Senajit.
- (Savitri)
-------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------
- 9. Agrahayana Ansu. Kasyapa. Ritusena. Vidyatsatru Mahasankha Ritusena. Urvasi.
- (Vidhatri)
-------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------
- 10. Pausha. Bhaga. Kratu. Urna. Sphurja. Karkotaka. Arishtanemi Purvachitti
-------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------
- 11. Asvina Tvastri. Jamadagni. Satajit. Brahmapeta. Kambala. Dhritarashtra Tilottama.
-------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------
- 12. Kartika Vishnu. Visvamitra. Satyajit. Makhapeta. Asvatara. Suryyavarcha. Rambha.
-------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------
-
-
-TABLE M.
-
-
-There is not much to detain us in this Table. It will be enough if
-readers will please note the meanings of the names used.
-
-
-TABLE N.
-
-
-We must divide this Table into the following heads: -- I. The story of
-Dhruva, II. The story of Pirthu, III. The story of Prachina Barhis, IV.
-The allegory of Puranjana, and V. The story of the Prachetasas.
-
-
-I. THE STORY OF DHRUVA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA IV. CHAP. 8-12.*
-
-Uttanapada is one of the sons of the First Manu. Uttanapada means "with
-uplifted foot". This perhaps refers to the period when the Jiva, having
-still the spiritual element strong in him, was not fixed in the course
-of material descent, but had one foot towards Mahar-Loka. Uttanapada had
-two wives Suruchi (with good graces) and Suniti (of good morals). Uttama
-or the Highest was the son of Suruchi. Dhruva or the fixed was the son
-of Suniti. Once upon a time, Dhruva found Uttama on his father's lap and
-he wished to be there himself. For fear of Suruchi, Uttanapada did not
-dare stretch forth his hands towards Dhruva, while Suruchi herself
-taunted the boy for his impudent aspiration. Stung to the quick by the
-bitter words of his stepmother Dhruva forthwith left the place and went
-straight to his mother and related to her his grievances. Suniti advised
-her son who was only five years old to make Tapas. Dhruva did not lose
-time but left home to make Tapas as directed by his mother. Narada met
-him on the way. "Thou art a child Dhruva" said the great Rishi. "How is
-it possible for thee to find out Him by Tapas, Who is attainable by
-intense Yoga concentration and freedom from passion practised for
-several births. Desist my boy, for the present. Try, when thou hast
-enjoyed all the things of the world and hast grown old". But Dhruva was
-fixed in resolve and he importuned Narada to teach him how to meditate.
-Narada initiated Dhruva into the mysteries of the Mantra "Om Namo
-Bhagavate Vasudevaya", told him how to meditate on Vasudeva and asked
-him to make Tapas at Mathura where Bhagavan permanently resides. Dhruva
-passed his days in austere asceticism, standing on one foot and living
-on air. The prince at last controlled his breath and with deep
-concentration saw the Divine Light in the heart. Bhagavan withdrew that
-Light from the heart, and on the break of Samadhi, Dhruva found the same
-Divinity outside, standing before him. Words he had none for a time.
-Bhagavan addressing him said: -- "O Thou Kshatriya boy! I know thy
-resolve. Do thou ever prosper. I give thee a place which is ever bright
-and where Nirvana is constant. The planets and stars are all attached to
-that place. Those that live for a Kalpa will die, but that place shall
-never be destroyed. Dharma, Agni, Kasyapa, Indra and the seven Rishis
-with all the luminaries of the sky are constantly revolving round the
-place. Thou shalt succeed thy father on the throne and reign for 36,000
-years. Thy brother Uttama shall disappear in a forest. Thy stepmother
-Suruchi shall die in pursuit of her son. The place where thou shalt
-finally go is my own abode, higher than that of the Rishis, and there is
-no return from it."
-
-Dhruva returned to his parents and was placed by his father on the
-throne. He married Bhrami, the daughter of Sisumara, and had two sons by
-her, Kalpa and Vatsara. He had another son Utkala by Ila. Uttama was
-killed by a powerful Yaksha while out on a hunt. Dhruva went out to the
-north to take revenge on the Yakshas for his brother's death. He killed
-several thousands of innocent Yakshas, Rakshasas and Kinnaras in battle.
-Manu took pity on them and asked his grandson to desist from fight.
-Dhruva bowed in obedience to Manu and so Kubera the king of Yakshas
-became much pleased with him and blest him too. After thirty six
-thousand years, Sananda and Nanda, two companions of Vishnu came with a
-chariot and took Dhruva to the promised abode.
-
-Utkala was the eldest son of Dhruva and he was entitled to succeed his
-father. But he was a sage and had united himself with Brahma. He
-declined the throne. Bhrami's son Vatsara became the king. Vatsara
-married Subithi and had six sons by her, -- Pushparna, Tigmaketu, Isha,
-Urja, Vasu and Jaya. Pushparna had two wives, -- Pravha and Dosha.
-Prabha had three sons, -- Pratar, Madhyandina and Sayam, Dosha had three
-sons, -- Pradosha, Nisitha and Vyushta. Vyushta married Pushkarini. His
-Son was Sarvatejas, afterwards called Chakshus. Chakshus had one son, --
-Nadvala Manu.
-
-
-THOUGHTS ON THE ABOVE.
-
-
-[The line of Uttanapada, as I have said above, represents the appearance
-of individual life-forms. Limitation had to be put to the life-periods
-of individuals. We commence with Dhruva, who presides over the polar
-star, and lives for one Kalpa. His sons are Kalpa and Vatsara. "Vatsara"
-means year. The sons of Vatsara are the six seasons. "Pushparna" is the
-flower season or spring. "Tigmaketu" means fierce-rayed. The word
-denotes summer season. "Isha" means full of sat and is the name of the
-month of Asvina. But it means here the rainy season. "Urja" is the name
-of the month of Kartika. It is indicative of autumn. "Vasu" meaning
-wealth is the season between autumn and winter, when paddy becomes ripe.
-"Prabha" is light. "Dosha" is darkness. "Pratar," "Madhyandina" and
-Sayam are morning, midday and evening, respectively. "Pradosha" is first
-part of the night, "Nisitha" is midnight. "Vyushta" is day break.
-"Sarva-tejas" is all-fire. He was subsequently called Chakshus or eye.
-The names other than Chakshus indicate different capacities of
-individual life, ranging from portions of a day to the whole Kalpa. When
-the downward flow of Jivas was the rule, Dhruva had to make great
-sacrifice to remain fixed on the spiritual plane. Hence he worshipped
-Vishnu, as directed by Narada. Sarva-tejas or Chakshus perhaps indicates
-the appearance of perceptive faculties. The son of Chakshus is glorified
-with the title of Manu. This is significant. He is called Nadvala, or
-one made of reeds. This marks a new era in the progress of Monads. As
-the reed is made up of sheaths over-lapping each other, so the sons of
-this Manu were constituted of overlapping principles. Why Nadvala is
-called Manu, has to be found out in the circumstances that attended the
-progress of the Monads from the mineral to the vegetable stage. The son
-of this Manu was Anga or the limbs. And Anga was wedded to the daughter
-of the death god. So there was no death up to the Nadvala form of life,
-and no limbs. It was something like the appearance of protoplastic
-matter, with all its potentialities of evolving life forms. Thus we can
-understand the importance of Nadvala as a Manu. Death or decay made the
-inorganic to develop organs or anga.]
-
-
-II. THE STORY OF PRITHU.
-
-
-*SKANDHA. IV. CHAP. 13-23.*
-
-Nadvala had twelve sons; one of them being Ulmuka (fire-brand, torch).
-He had six sons, one of them being Anga or the members of the body. Anga
-married Sunitha, the daughter of Death. The iniquitous Vena was the son
-of Anga. When he became king, he issued a proclamation prohibiting all
-worship and sacrifices. The sages strongly remonstrated with him but
-when he turned a deaf ear to their words, they killed him with their
-incantations. The kingdom was now without a ruler and there was great
-disorder. The Rishis then churned the thigh of the dead body, until a
-dwarfish, deep black person came out. The Rishis told him to 'sit down
-and wait.' Hence he was called Nishada. They then churned the two arms,
-and a pair arose. "This male is an incarnation of Vishnu," said the
-Rishis, "and this female is an incarnation of Lakshmi. They shall marry
-each other. He shall be called Prithu and his wife, Archis. Prithu shall
-be the King and he shall preserve all beings." Prithu accepted the duty
-of preserving the people. He saw there was no vegetation on the earth.
-His subjects suffered from hunger. He thought that the earth had eaten
-up the seeds and was not bringing forth the plants. In anger Prithu took
-up his bow and aimed at the earth. She assumed the form of a cow and
-began to run away chased by the King. But she at last yielded and
-requested him to spare her life. "Thou art Lord of this Universe,"
-exclaimed the earth, "Thou knowest very well that the forms of vegetable
-life created by Brahma could not be used in Yajna so long. I have
-therefore preserved them within myself. If I had not done so, they would
-have been destroyed long ago and no Yajna could be performed in future.
-True, they are now rotting in me. But think about the best means to
-bring them out. Find out a calf, a milk-pot and a milker. I will secrete
-all desired objects as my milk. But first of all make my surface flat
-and level." Prithu rejoiced at these words. He made Svayambhuva Manu the
-calf and milked all vegetables into his own hands. Others followed him.
-The Rishis made Vrihaspati their calf and drew out the Vedas into their
-Indriyas.
-
-The Devas made Indra their calf and milked out into their golden pot
-Amrita and energy of body, of mind and of the Indriyas.
-
-The Daityas and Danavas made Prahlada their calf and milked out wine
-into their iron pot. The Gandharvas and Apsaras made Visvavasu their
-calf and milked out into their lotus vessel, fragrance, beauty and sweet
-words.
-
-The Pitris made Aryaman their calf and extracted into their unburnt
-earth vessel the Kavya offerings. The Siddhas made Kapila their calf and
-milked out the Siddhis (animan &c). (And so other instances are given).
-Prithu was so glad that he called earth his daughter and hence she is
-called Prithivi or the daughter of Prithu. The King also crushed the
-mountains and made the earth's surface level.
-
-Prithu then commenced a series of Asvamedha Yajnas. During the
-performance of the hundredth, Indra twice stole away the sacrificial
-horse, but Prithu's son restored it on both the occasions. The performer
-of one hundred Asvamedha sacrifices becomes an Indra. This was the cause
-of Indra's fear. Prithu could not bear the disgraceful conduct of Indra
-and he resolved to kill him. The Rishis dissuaded him and even Brahma
-and Vishnu appeared to soothe the offended King and restore his
-friendship with Indra. Vishnu explained to Prithu that he had enough to
-do as a king of the earth and as a preserver of the people and that he
-should not aspire to become Indra, who had his duties as well.
-
-Sometime after, the Sanat Kumar brothers appeared before the King and
-taught him the way to Mukti. He made over the kingdom to his son
-Vijitasva and retired into the forest. At last he gave up the body and
-went to Vaikuntha.
-
-
-THOUGHT ON THE ABOVE.
-
-
-[We left the Monad in its protoplasmic state. The protoplasmic mass
-began to spread out limbs (Anga). But the development of limbs was not
-an unmixed blessing, for Anga became wedded to the daughter of Death.
-
-There was no death in the protoplasm. The offspring of the first
-connexion with death was Vena.
-
-The root _ven_ means to move. The first moving protoplasmic mass had too
-much of unruliness in it, and it was not therefore fitted for _yajna_ or
-evolution. It had to be brought under the law and the black element was
-churned out. That black element of Tamas had to wait till the time of
-the great dissolution. Vishnu had to incarnate at this stage as Prithu
-to suffuse the material mass with _satva_ and thereby make it conscious.
-The course of evolution received a great impetus. The Monad had passed
-through elemental and mineral stages. Organic life had already appeared.
-Matter had passed through the grossness and immobility of Tamas and the
-irregular, impulsive and purposeless movements of Rajas, till it became
-permeated with Satva, when those movements assumed the regularity of
-conscious acts. The consciousness of Satva made the future evolution or
-_yajna_ teem with big possibilities. Earth could no longer keep back the
-seeds of the vegetable creation in her bosom. Her surface became
-levelled and she looked green with vegetation. She brought forth all her
-latent life-energies and life-evolution commenced in right earnest under
-the guidance of the first King energised by Vishnu for the preservation
-of the universe. But that King was not to exceed the proper bounds. He
-was not to usurp the functions of Indra. The Devas are the executive
-officers of the Rishis in the cyclic administration of the universe and
-their work is more on cyclic than on individual lines. The kings however
-as representing Manu have to deal directly with Monads and Egos and have
-to guide them according to the light of the Rishis. Prithu was asked by
-Vishnu to keep himself within the bounds of kingly duties.]
-
-
-III. THE STORY OF THE PRACHINA BARHIS OR BARHISHAD.
-
-
-*SKANDHA IV. CHAP, 24.*
-
-The eldest son of Prithu was Vijitasva. He was so called for having
-restored the sacrificial horse stolen by Indra. Indra taught him the art
-of becoming invisible. Hence he was also called Antardhana. He had four
-brothers -- Havyaksha, Dhumrakesha, Vrika and Dravinas. To them he gave
-the east, the south, the west and the north respectively. By his wife
-Sikhandini, Vijitasva had three sons -- Pavaka, Pavamana, and Suchi.
-
-These fire-gods descended by the curse of Vasishtha but the descent was
-only temporary. Antardhana had by his other wife Nabhasvati one son,
-Havirdhana. Havirdhana had six sons -- Barhishad, Gaya, Sukla, Krishna,
-Satya and Jitavrata. Of these, Barhishad was a great votary of Kriya,
-(action) and he constantly performed Yajnas. Even while he was
-performing one Yajna, the place for another was preparing close by.
-Hence he was called Prachina-Barhis. King Prachina-Barhis married
-Satadruti, the daughter of the Ocean-god. And he had by her ten sons,
-all of whom were called Prachetas. The King ordered his sons to enlarge
-the creation. They went out to make Tapas for one thousand years. Narada
-came to the King and told him that the way to Mukti was not through
-Kriya Kanda. By. performing sacrifices he was only acquiring new karma.
-The only way to attain liberation was to know oneself. The Rishi
-illustrated his teachings by the famous allegory of Puranjana. The King
-heard the story and its explanation from Narada. He did not wait for the
-return of his sons. But he called his ministers together and delivered
-to them his mandate that his sons were to succeed him on the throne. He
-went to the Asrama of Kapila for Tapas and attained liberation.
-
-
-IV. THE ALLEGORY OF PURANJANA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA IV. CHAP. 25-29.*
-
-There was a king called Puranjana. He had a friend, but the king knew
-not his name nor his doings. Puranjana went in search of a place to live
-in. He went about on all sides, but found no suitable abode. At last
-while roaming south of the Himalayas, he found one Puri (town) in
-Bharata Varsha (India), The marks were all favourable. There were nine
-gateways. In one of the gardens he found a most beautiful young lady.
-She had ten attendants. Each of them had hundreds of wives. One
-five-headed serpent was the warder of the town and he constantly guarded
-his mistress. The lady was on the look out for one to be her lord.
-Puranjana broke forth into words of love, and asked who she was. "O thou
-greatest of men!" exclaimed the lady, "I know not who I am or who thou
-art. Nor do I know who made us both. This only I know, that I now exist.
-I do not know even who made this town for me. These are my companions
-male and female. This serpent guards the town, even when we are all
-asleep. Luckily hast thou come here. I shall try with all my companions
-to bring to thee all objects of desire. Be thou the lord of this Puri
-for one hundred years. And accept all enjoyments brought by me."
-Puranjana entered the Puri and lived in enjoyment there for one hundred
-years.
-
-Of the nine gateways, seven were upper and two lower -- five on the east
-(Purva, which also means front), one on the south (Dakshina), one on the
-north (Uttara) and two on the west (Paschima). Two of them Khadyota and
-Avirmukhi were close to each other and Puranjana used them whenever he
-would go out to see Vibhrajita in the company of Dyumat.
-
-Nalini and Nalini were also two passages built together. Puranjana used
-them with the help of Avadhuta in order to repair to Saurabha.
-
-The Mukhya passage was used for Apana and Bahudana. Through the southern
-passage Pitrihu, Puranjana went with Srutadhara to Dakshina Panchala and
-through the northern passage Devahu, to Uttara Panchala.
-
-Through the western passage called Asuri, Puranjana went with Durmada to
-Gramaka. The other western passage was called Nir-riti, Through that
-passage Puranjana went with Lubdhaka to Vais-asa.
-
-There were two blind gates _i.e._ without opening, viz: -- Nirvak and
-Pesaskrita. Puranjana used them for motion and action. He went inside
-the town with Vishuchina. There he experienced Moha (delusion), Prasada
-(contentment) and Harsha (joy), caused by his wife and daughters.
-
-Puranjana became thus attached to Karma. He slavishly followed whatever
-the Queen did. If she heard, the King heard. If she smelt, the King
-smelt. If she rejoiced, the King rejoiced. If she wept, the King wept.
-Puranjana merged his self entirely in that of his wife.
-
-Once upon a time, the King went out hunting into the forest
-Panchaprastha, His chariot had five swift going horses, two poles, two
-wheels, two axles, three flags, five chains, one bridle, one charioteer,
-one seat for the charioteer, two yoke ends, seven fenders, and five
-courses. He had a golden armour and an endless supply of arrows.
-Brihadbala was the commander of his forces. The King forgot his wife for
-the time being in the chase of deer. But he got tired and returned home.
-The Queen would not speak to him in feigned anger. The King appeased her
-with gentle and flattering words of love.
-
-So passed the days in utter delusion. The King had 1100 sons and 110
-daughters. He gave them in marriage to duly qualified persons.
-Puranjana's sons had 100 sons each. The kingdom of Panchala became
-filled with the progeny of Puranjana. The King performed sacrifices for
-the welfare of his children and killed animals for the purpose.
-
-Chandavega, a Gandharva king, had a strong force of 360 white
-Gandharvas. Each of them had one black wife. By turns these Gandharvas
-robbed the town of Puranjana. The serpent-warder could not fight long
-against such odds, it lost strength day by day. The King and all the
-citizens became extremely anxious.
-
-There was a daughter of Kala who went about the world for a husband. But
-no one received her for a wife. She went to Narada and on the refusal of
-the sage cursed him to become a wanderer for ever. She was referred
-however by Narada to Fear, the King of Yavanas. King Fear would not
-accept her for his wife. But he addressed her as his sister and assured
-her that she would enjoy all beings on earth, if only she attacked them
-unnoticed. His Yavana troops would always accompany her as well as his
-brother Prajvara.
-
-The Yavana troops of King Fear under Prajvara and the daughter of Kala
-attacked the Puri of Puranjana. The old serpent gave way. The Puri was
-burnt up by Prajvara. There was wailing all round. The Serpent left the
-Puri. Puranjana was dragged out of it. The sufferings he had caused to
-others in sacrifices or otherwise reacted upon him. Long he suffered
-forgetting even his old friends. His mind had been tainted by the
-constant company of women and he had thought of his wife till the last
-moment. So he became a female in the next birth. She was born as the
-daughter of the Vidarbha king. Malayadhvaja, King of Pandya, defeated
-other princes in the fight for her hand and the princess became his
-wife. She bore to the King one black-eyed daughter and seven sons. The
-sons became kings of Dravida and each of them had millions of sons,
-Agastya married the daughter of the King, and had by her a son called
-Dridhachyta. His son was Idhmavaha. King Malayadhvaja divided the
-kingdom amongst his sons; and ascended the hills for devotional
-meditation. His wife accompanied him. One day the princess found the
-body of her husband cold in death. With loud lamentations, she prepared
-the funeral pyre, placed the King's body upon it and put fire thereon.
-She then resolved to burn herself on the same pyre.
-
-The former friend now appeared. Addressing the Queen he said: --
-
-"Who art thou? Who is he lying on the funeral pyre that thou mournest
-aloud? Dost thou know me, thy friend, thy former companion? Dost thou
-remember even so much that thou hadst a friend, whom thou canst not
-recognise? Thou didst leave me in search of some earthly abode and
-enjoyment. We were two Hansas (swans) on the Manasa Loka and we lived
-together for one thousand years. Desirous of worldly enjoyments thou
-didst leave me for the earth and there didst find a town with a woman as
-its mistress. The company of that woman spoiled thy vision and effaced
-thy memory. Hence thou hast attained this state. Thou art not the
-daughter of the Vidarbha King, nor is this King thy husband. Nor wast
-thou the husband of Puranjana. By my _maya_ thou misconceivest thyself
-as a man or a woman. But in reality both myself and thyself are Hansas.
-Wise men find no difference between us. If there is any difference
-between a man and his image, that is the difference between me and
-thyself."
-
-The other Hansa now regained his lost consciousness and was reawakened
-to his former state.
-
-This is the story of Puranjana. Now its explanation by Narada: --
-
-Puranjana is Purusha -- he who illumines the Pura with consciousness.
-
-The unknown friend is Ishvara.
-
-The Pura or Puri or town is the human body.
-
-"The marks were all favourable" -- there were no deformities in the
-body.
-
-"The nine gateways" are the nine openings of the body.
-
-The young lady Puranjani is Buddhi.
-
-She is the mistress of the body.
-
-The ten male attendants are the five _jnanendriyas_ or organs of
-perception and the five _karmendriyas_ or organs of action.
-
-The wives of the attendants are the functions of the Indriyas.
-
-The five-headed serpent is Prana. The five heads are its five
-sub-divisions.
-
-"One hundred years" is the full term of man's life.
-
-"Khadyota," literally glow-worm, is the left eye, for, it has not the
-illumining capacity of the right eye.
-
-"Avirmukhi" or the great illuminator is the right eye.
-
-"Vibhrajita" is Rupa or object of sight.
-
-"Dyumat" is the perceiving eye.
-
-"Nalini" and "Nalini" are the left and right nostrils respectively.
-
-"Avadhuta" is Vayu. In the story, it means the perceiving nose.
-
-"Saurabha" is Gandha or smell.
-
-"Mukhya" is mouth.
-
-"Apana" is speech.
-
-"Bahudana" is eating.
-
-"Panchala" is Pancha (five) + ala (capable) that which is capable of
-bringing to light such of the five objects of the senses, as cannot be
-otherwise cognised; Sastra or spiritual teachings.
-
-The right ear is stronger than the left ear. Therefore it is more
-prominent and useful in _hearing_ the Sastras, of which the first to be
-heard is Karma Kanda.
-
-A man by the observance of Karma Kanda is called to the Pitris, _i.e._
-he reaches, after death, the path called Pitriyana.
-
-"Pitrihu" is therefore the right ear. "Devahu" is the left ear
-corresponding to Devayana.
-
-"Uttara Panchala" is Pravritti Sastra or teachings of worldliness.
-
-"Dakshina Panchal" is Nivritti Sastra or teachings of renunciation.
-
-"Nirriti" is death. The anus is called death, because ordinarily the
-Linga Sarira goes out through that passage after death.
-
-"Lubdhak" is Payu.
-
-"Vaisasa" is excrement.
-
-"Nirvak" is foot.
-
-"Pesaskrita" is hand.
-
-Of the Indriyas, hand and foot are blind, as there are no openings in
-them.
-
-"Vishuchina" is mind.
-
-Moha is the result of Tamas, Prasada of Satva and Harsha of Rajas.
-
-The aforesaid names indicate enjoyment in the Jagrat or waking state.
-
-The hunting represents enjoyment in the Svapna or dream state.
-
-The "Chariot" is the body in dream consciousness.
-
-The five horses are the five organs of perception.
-
-The two poles are "I-ness" and "Mine-ness."
-
-The two wheels are merit and demerit.
-
-The axle is Pradhana.
-
-The three flags are the three Gunas.
-
-The five chains are the five Pranas.
-
-The bridle is Manas the seat of desires.
-
-The charioteer is Buddhi.
-
-The yoke-ends are sorrow and delusion.
-
-The seven fenders are the seven Dhatus or essential ingredients of the
-body.
-
-The five courses are the five organs of action.
-
-The gold color of the armour is due to Rajas.
-
-Brihadbala is the even perceiving mind.
-
-The sons are the transformations of perception.
-
-The daughters are the concepts following such transformations.
-
-"Chandavega", the Gandharva king, is the year, every year of human life.
-
-The Gandharvas are days.
-
-Their wives are nights.
-
-The 360 Gandharvas are the 360 days of the year. With their wives or
-nights they form the number 720.
-
-The daughter of Kala is Jara or decrepitude.
-
-The Yavanas are diseases or infirmities.
-
-Fear is the King of all diseases and infirmities viz., Death.
-
-Prajvara is destructive fever.
-
-As long as Purusha does not know his real self, but identifies himself
-with the Gunas of Prakriti, he becomes subject to births and deaths. The
-only remedy for this malady is pure devotion to Guru and to Bhagavan. By
-such devotion, dispassion and wisdom are both acquired.
-
-"Darbha" is Kusa grass, symbolical of Yajna. "Vidarbha" is pure land.
-"Malaya" or the Deccan is famous for Vishnu worship.
-
-"Malayadhvaja" is therefore a Vaishnava king.
-
-[It appears that Vaishnavism had its rise and growth in the South of
-India before it overspread Northern India. This would be natural
-considering the hold of Vedic Brahmanism in Northern India.]
-
-The daughter of Malayadhvaja is Devotion. The seven sons are the seven
-divisions of Bhakti, viz. --
-
- 1) _Sravana_ or hearing the glory of Vishnu,
- 2) _Kirtana_ or reciting the glory of Vishnu,
- 3) _Smarana_ or constant remembrance of Vishnu,
- 4) _Padasevana_ or shewing respect to Vishnu,
- 5) _Archana_ or worship of Vishnu,
- 6) _Bandana_ or adoration of Vishnu,
- 7) _Dasya_ or consecration of one self to the service of Vishnu.
-
-The other two divisions, _Saukhya_ or companionship with Vishnu and
-_Atma nivedana_ or complete resignation are not mentioned in this
-connection as they relate to a highly advanced spiritual state.
-
-These modes of Bhakti worship are prevalent in Dravida.
-
-The millions of sons are sub-divisions of Sravana, &c.
-
-"Agastya" is mind.
-
-"Dridhachyuta" is one confirmed in dispassion.
-
-"Idhmavaha" is one who goes to Guru, fuel in hand, for instructions.
-
-Isvara, the unknown friend, called Himself and the Purusha two Kansas of
-the Manasa Lake. Hansa is one absolutely pure. Manasa Lake is the Heart.
-
-"For one thousand years" -- Both Jiva and Isvara remained together as
-friends, the same in essence and in form, during the one thousand years
-of Maha Pralaya, at the end of a Kaipa. During Manvantaric
-Manifestation, the Jiva parts from his Friend Isvara and launches into a
-wild course of enjoyments, of joys and sorrows. The touch of that
-fascinating lady Buddhi destroys all previous remembrances and the Jiva
-plays several characters in the drama of life, in dream and delusion.
-
-Narada concluded his explanation of the allegory with this eloquent
-exhortation: --
-
-"Know thou, O King, the deer, skipping in the flower-garden, in company
-with its sweet-heart, deeply attached to the sweets of that garden,
-devouring with eager ears the humming music of _bhramaras_, little
-caring for the wolves on its way or for the arrows of the huntsman that
-pierce its back.
-
-"The flowers are but women who bloom only to droop. The fragrance and
-honey, the sweets of the garden, are the enjoyments brought on by the
-_karma_ of another birth."
-
-"The music of _bhramaras_ is the pleasing conversation of women and
-others. The wolves are the days and nights. The huntsman who stealthily
-flings arrows at the deer is Death. The deer is thy own self."
-
-"Consider Well the efforts of the deer. Concentrate _chitta_ into the
-heart and all perceptions into _chitta_. Give up the company of woman.
-Turn a deaf ear to all idle talks. Be devoted to that one true Friend of
-Jivas -- Isvara. Retire, retire from all others."
-
-King Prachina Barhis wondered why such beautiful teachings were with
-held by his teachers. Or forsooth, they knew not themselves. He
-requested Narada however to remove two doubts that were still lurking in
-his mind. -- Purusha acquires _karma_ in one body, but he reaps the
-fruits of that _karma_ in another body. One body is the doer while
-another is the enjoyer and sufferer. To one body, the fruits of its own
-work are lost. To another body, there is an acquisition of fruits it did
-not sow. How can this be? This was the first doubt.
-
-What is done is done. Nothing apparently remains of our _karma_. How can
-then the sequences be accounted for? This was the second doubt.
-
-Narada replies: --
-
-Purusha reaps the fruits in that very body without break in which it
-acquires _karma_, but that body is the Linga Sarira, inclusive of Manas.
-As in dream man works out the impressions of the wakeful state without
-changing the body, so he enjoys the fruits of _karma_ created in one
-birth in the Karma-made body of another birth.
-
-And the doer of Karma is verily the Manas and not the Sthula body.
-"These are mine," "I am so and so," only such concepts of the mind
-produce re-birth, and not anything in the Sthula body. So the mind sows
-and the mind reaps. The body is merely the vehicle of birth producing
-thoughts.
-
-This is in answer to the first question. Now to the second.
-
-How do you know there is chitta or mind? All the senses are at one and
-the same time in contact with the objects of all the senses. But still
-you perceive only one thing at a time. Hence you infer the existence of
-the mind. Similarly by marking the tendencies of the mind their
-connection with a former birth is inferred. Otherwise why should there
-be one mental affection at a time and not another?
-
-Then, in this life you never realise a thing which you never heard or
-saw or felt before. How can the mind then reproduce matters you never
-experienced before?
-
-The mind by its present characteristics gives an insight into the past
-as well as into the future.
-
-It sometimes happens that things are perceived in the mind with strange
-combinations in time, space and action, as in dream.
-
-But men are endowed with mind and the mind perceives one after another
-the objects of the senses in an enormous variety, and the perceptions
-are lost again. So (in the long run) not one experience is altogether
-strange.
-
-(For instance, a man sees in dream that he is a king. He must have been
-a king in some birth or other. The present combination in the dream is
-untrue but not so the kingly experience. The experience is always true
-with reference to some time, some space, some action or other).
-
-When the mind is intensely Satvic (calm, pure and transparent) and
-becomes constantly devoted to Bhagavan, the whole universe is reflected
-on it.
-
-In Jiva there is never a break in the egoistic experience as long as the
-Linga Sarira continues.
-
-There is only a seeming break in sleep, swoon and-deep distress such as
-death and fatal illness, but such break is due to a collapse of the
-perceiving senses.
-
-There is similarly a break in the foetal stage and in extreme childhood.
-But such break is due to imperfection of the senses; The moon though not
-visible on the new moon night does still exist.
-
-The connection with gross objects does not cease because there is a
-temporary absence of such objects. For, are not thoughts about objects
-potent in their effects in dream?
-
-The Linga Sarira, consisting in their essence of the five pure elements
-(Tanmatra), subject to the three Gunas, extending over the sixteen
-transformations (of the Sankhya category), permeated with consciousness,
-is called Jiva.
-
-It is with this Ling Sarira that Purusha enters into a body or comes out
-of it, and it is with this Sarira that he experiences joy, sorrow, fear,
-misery and happiness.
-
-As the leech has its hold on the first blade of grass till it connects
-itself with another, so the Jiva identifies itself with one body till it
-enters another.
-
-Manas only acquires _karma_ by its contemplation of the objects of the
-senses. The bondage is thus created by Avidya.
-
-Therefore do thou meditate on Hari to free thyself from all worldly
-attachments and to be fixed in Him for ever.
-
-
-V. THE STORY OF THE PRACHETAS BROTHERS.
-
-
-*SKANDHA IV, CHAP. 30-31.*
-
-The Prachetas brothers left home in order to discover by Tapas the best
-mode of enlarging the creation. They went west-ward and had not gone far
-when Siva rose from beneath a large lake and addressed them thus: --
-"Children, you are sons of Barhishad, I know your good resolve.
-Blessings be on you. By the performance of one's duty in life, one
-attains the state of Brahma after many births. My abode is still
-further, inaccessible even to the virtuous. But the votary of Vishnu
-attains His holy state, only when this life is ended. I and the Devas
-shall also attain that state after the final break up of our Linga
-Sarira. Learn therefore this prayer to Vishnu. (Siva then recited the
-prayer to Vishnu, known as Rudra Gita). Concentrate your mind on this
-prayer, meditate on it and recite it constantly."
-
-The Prachetas brothers entered the waters of the deep and there prayed
-to Vishnu for a thousand years. Vishnu appeared and asked them to chose
-a boon and without waiting for a reply addressed them thus: -- "You are
-dutiful sons and shall ever be known as such. You shall have a son in no
-way inferior to Brahma. All the three Lokas shall be filled with his
-progeny. Indra had sent Pramlocha to decoy Kandu Rishi in his penances
-and the Apsara succeeded in winning the heart of the Rishi. She had by
-him one daughter whom she brought forth from her pores as she brushed
-against the tops of the trees. She left her child there and ascended to
-heaven. The moon nourished the child by putting his nectar-bearing
-forefinger into her mouth. Have that daughter of the trees for your
-wife. You are all alike in your virtues and she is like to you all. So
-she shall be the wife of all the brothers."
-
-The brothers then rose up from the waters. They found the earth
-overgrown with innumerable plants, so high that they almost reached the
-high heavens. The Prachetas brothers were angry to find such growth in
-plants and they resolved to destroy them. They emitted fire and air from
-their mouths, which caused havoc in the vegetable kingdom. Brahma came
-and pacified the sons of Barhishad. He advised the surviving plants to
-give their adopted daughter Marisha in marriage to the Prachetas
-brothers. The offspring of this marriage was Daksha. He is the same as
-Prajapati Daksha, son of Brahma. His degradation was owing to his former
-disregard of Siva. The Chakshusa Manvantara witnessed his work of
-creation.
-
-The Prachetas brothers reigned for 1000 Deva years. They were succeeded
-by Daksha.
-
-
-THOUGHTS ON THE ABOVE.
-
-
-Consciousness in organic life had appeared with Prithu. The table of
-further evolution may be here reproduced for facility of reference.
-
- Prithu.
- |
- -+-------------+---+--------+---------+---------+--
- | | | | |
- Vijitasva Haryyaksha Dhumraksha Vrika Dravinas
- or Antardhana. (East) (South) (West) (North)
- m. Sikhandini m. Nabhasvati.
- | |
- | Havirdhana
- --+--+------+--------+-- |
- | | | |
- Pavaka Pavamana Suchi |
- |
- -+----------+-------+---+-----+---------+----------+--
- | | | | | |
- Barhishad Gaya Sukla Krishna Satya Jitavrata
- _alias_ Prachina Barhis
- m. Satadruti.
- |
- 10 Prachetases
- m. Marisha
- |
- Daksha.
-
-Vijitasva could make himself invisible. This may have reference to the
-state of the body at that stage of evolution. The fires appeared as it
-is they that give forms. The object corresponding to elemental fire is
-Rupa or form. Barhishad, the name of one class of Pitris, was the
-progenitor of the form-producing Linga Sarira with all its
-potentialities.
-
-We find the senses developed in his sons the Prachetas brothers. "Pra"
-Means perfect and "Chetas" is the perceiving mind. But the mind
-perceives through the Indriyas, which are ten in number. Therefore they
-are ten brothers all alike; but they are wedded to one girl Marisha.
-
-There is some occult connection between water and sense perception.
-Barhishad was married to the daughter of the Ocean-god. The Prachetas
-brothers remained submerged for a thousand years in the waters. The
-protozoa and protophytes must of necessity be aquatic, as it were, for
-the development in them of sense perceptions.
-
-It is in Touch that the sense perceptions find a common basis. Touch
-underlies all other perceptions. It is touch of the object by one sense
-or other that gives rise to one perception or the other. "Kandu" is
-primarily scratching or itching, secondarily touch. Marisha was
-nourished by the moon and brought up by the plants.
-
-The period refers to the stage of evolution when the vegetables formed
-the predominant creation. It corresponds somewhat to the geological
-period of tree-ferns and lycopods in our Manvantara.
-
-The development of sense perceptions is the result of a communion with
-Vishnu, under the auspices of Rudra. This means a further infusion of
-Satva by Vishnu, which was made possible by the Dissolving influence of
-Siva. And the son of the Prachetas brothers is verily Daksha, the
-Prajapati of procreation, reincarnated under better auspices for the
-purpose of extending the creation. So we find the Trinity acting as
-three in one in the creative process.
-
-With the appearance of Daksha Jiva evolution comes to an end in the
-first Manvantara.
-
-TABLE V.
-
- Priyavrata
- |
- By Bathishmati | By another wife
- ----------+----------------+--------------------+--------
- | |
- 10 sons (Agnidhra, Idhmajihva, Uttama
- Yajnavahu, Mahavira, Tamasa, and
- Hiranyaretas, Ghritapristha, Raivata, the
- Savana, Medhatithi, Vitihotra, Manus.
- and Kavi ) and one daughter
- *Urjasvati* married to
- Sukracharyya.
- Agnidhra
- m. Purvachitti
- |
- --+--------------+------------+------+---------------+---------+--------\
- | | | | | |
- Nabhi Kimpurusha Harivarsha Ilavrita Ramyak |
- m. Merudevi m. Ptatirupa m. Ugradanstri m. Lata m. Ramya |
- | | |
- | |Hiranmaya Kuru Bhadrasva Ketumat |
- | | m. Syama m. Nadi m. Bhadra m. Devaviti |
- | \----------------------------------------------------/
- |
- RISHABHA
- m. Jayanti
- |
- ---+--+-----------+-----------+------------+----------+-------+--\
- | | | | | | |
- Bharata Kusavartu Ilavrita Brahmavarta Malaya Ketu |
- (Ajanabhavas | Bhadrasena, Indrasprik, Vidarbha, Kikata, |
- called after him | Kavi, Havis, Antariksha, Prabuddha, |
- Bharatavarsha) | Pippalayana, Avirhotra, Dravida, Chamasa, |
- m. Panchajani | Karabhojana, and 81 more sons. |
- | \----------------------------------------------/
- |
- --+----+------+--------------+--------+------------+
- | | | | |
- Sumati Rashtrabhrit Sudarsana Abharana Dhumraketu
- m. Vriddhasena
- |
- Devatajit
- m. Asuri
- |
- Devadyumna
- m. Dhenumati
- |
- |
- Paramesthin
- m. Suvarchala
- |
- |
- --+------+----------+-------------+
- | | |
- Pratihartri Pratistotri Udgatri
- m. Stuti
- |
- +-----+-----------------+---
- | |
- Aja Bhuman
- m. Rishikulya m. Devakula
- | |
- Udgitha Prastava
- m. Virutsa
- |
- Vibhu
- m. Rati
- |
- Prithusena
- m. Akriti
- |
- Nakta
- m. Riti
- |
- Gaya
- m. Gayanti
- |
- -----+--------------+---------------+---------+-------
- | | |
- Chitraratha Sugati Abhirodhana
- m. Urva
- |
- Samrat
- m. Utkala
- |
- Marichi
- m. Vindumati
- |
- Vindumat
- m. Saragha
- |
- Madhu
- m. Sumanas
- |
- Viravrata
- m. Bhoja
- |
- +----+--------------------------+
- | |
- Manthu Pramanthu
- m. Satya
- |
- Bhauvava
- |
- Tvastri
- m. Vitochana
- |
- Viraja
- m. Vishuchi
- |
- +--------------------+
- | |
- 100 sons 1 daughter
-
-
-
-
-SKANDHA V.
-
-
-
-TABLE V. PRIYAVRATA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA V. CHAP. 1.*
-
-Priyavrata was, from the beginning, under the influence of Narada. So he
-declined to take part in the rule of the universe; till at last Brahma
-persuaded him not to shirk his assigned work. King Priyavrata married
-Barhishmati, the daughter of Visvakarma. By her he had ten sons Agnidhra
-&c., all names of Agni.
-
-Of these ten, Kavi, Mahavira and Savana were spiritually inclined and
-they became Parama Hansas (Parama Hansa is one who gives up the world
-entirely and becomes fixed in Brahma). Priyavrata had by another wife
-three sons: Uttama, Tamasa and Raivata. They all became Manus.
-
-Priyavrata reigned for 400,000,000 years. The Sun-god Aditya moves round
-the Sumeru Mount and sends his rays up to the Loka-loka range,
-illumining half the regions while the other half remains dark. King
-Priyavrata in the exuberance of spiritual power determined to illuminate
-the dark regions and to make it all day and no night. He followed the
-Sun-god seven times with a chariot as swift and bright as that of the
-Sun-god himself even as though he were a second Aditya. Brahma appeared
-saying "Desist, O Son, this is not thy assigned duty in the universe."
-The ruts caused by the wheel of Priyavtata's chariot are the seven
-oceans, which gave rise to the seven Dvipas -- Jambu, Plaksha, Salmali,
-Kusa Krauncha, Saka and Pushkara.
-
-Of these Dvipas, each succeeding one is twice as large as the one
-preceding it. The seven oceans respectively consist of:
-
- 1) Kshara (Salt),
- 2) Ikshu (Sugarcane juice),
- 3) Sura (wine),
- 4) Ghrita (clarified butter),
- 5) Kshira (milk),
- 6) Dadhi (curd) and
- 7) Suddha (pure water).
-
-They are like ditches round the Dvipas and their dimensions are the same
-as those of the corresponding Dvipas.
-
-King Priyavrata divided the seven Dvipas among his seven sons thus: --
-
- To Agnidhra, he gave Jambu Dvipa.
- " Idhmajihva, " " Plaksha Dvipa.
- " Yajnavahu, " " Salmali Dvipa.
- " Hiranyaretas, " " Kusa Dvipa.
- " Ghritapristha, " " Krauncha Dvipa.
- " Medhatithi, " " Saka Dvipa.
- " Vitihotra. " " Pushkar Dvipa.
-
-He gave his daughter Urjasvati in marriage to Sukra. The famous Devayani
-was their daughter.
-
-*SKANDHA V. CHAP. 2.*
-
-King Agnidhra presided over Jambu Dvipa. He saw the Apsara Purva-chitti
-and became love-stricken, so much so that he became a _jada_ (Jada is
-literally fixed, materialized hence idiotic, mad.)
-
-The King had by her nine sons Nabhi, Kimpurusha, Harivarsha, Ilavrita,
-Ramyak, Hiranmaya, Kuru, Bhadrasva and Ketumala. Each of them presided
-over the Varsha of his name. They were respectively wedded to the
-following nine daughters of Meru, -- Merudevi, Pratirupa, Ugradanstri,
-Lata, Ramya, Syama, Nari, Bhadra and Devaviti.
-
-*SKANDHA V. CHAP. 4-6.*
-
-Nabhi had for his son RISHABHA an Incarnation of Vishnu. Rishabha knew
-his Varsha to be the field of Karma. He married Jayanti and had by her
-one hundred sons. The eldest and most qualified of his sons was Bharata,
-Bharatavarsha is named after him.
-
-The chief amongst the remaining ninety-nine sons were Kusavarta,
-Ilavarta, Brahmavarta, Malayaketu, Bhadrasena, Indrasprik, Vidarbha and
-Kikata. These nine were the immediate successors of Bharata and were
-attached to him.
-
-Following them were Kavi, Hari, Antariksha, Prabuddha, Pippalayana,
-Abirhotra, Dravida, Chamasa and Karabhajana. They were devoted to
-Bhagavan. Their story will be related in the 11th. Branch of this
-Purana.
-
-The younger eighty one sons were devoted to karma and they were great
-performers of Yajna.
-
-Rishabha called his sons together and gave them proper advice. He taught
-them Atma Vidya and revealed to them his own nature as the all pervading
-Purusha, free from Avidya.
-
-"This my body is inconceivable. My heart is pure Satva. All impurities
-were cast off by me. Therefore good people call me 'Rishabha' (primarily
-a bull, secondarily the best). You are all born of my heart and so you
-all are great; follow your brother Bharata willingly. By serving him you
-will do your duty by your subjects."
-
-So saying, he made over the reins of government to Bharata and himself
-became a Parama Hansa. He took the vow of silence and never spoke again.
-He looked blind, dumb and deaf like one obsessed and mad. He went
-everywhere in this state, heedless of what others said. People flocked
-round him wherever he went. At last he thought the rush of people to be
-an impediment to yoga and took the vow of Ajagara life (Ajagara is a
-huge python that does not move, but eats whatever comes within reach of
-its mouth). He remained fixed at one place.
-
-The yoga powers (Sidhis) sought him but he spurned them all. When he
-foresaw the end of his _prarabdha karma_ Rishabha went about at will and
-travelled in Kanka, Venkata, Kutaka and South Karnataka. While in the
-forest of Kutaka he thrust some stones into his mouth. At that time the
-wind blew high and the bamboo tops caught fire and the body of the King
-was consumed. In Kali Vuga, King Arhat of Kanka, Venkata and Kutaka will
-hear of the deeds of Rishabha and in the name of religion will introduce
-all sorts of sacrilegious practices as sanctioned by Rishabha's example.
-
-*SKANDHA V. CHAP. 7.*
-
-King Bharata married Panchajani, the daughter of Visva. He had by her
-five sons -- Sumati, Rashtrabhrit, Sudarsana, Abharana and Dhumraketu.
-This Varsha was formerly called Ajanabha. When Bharata became king, it
-was named after him Bharata Varsha. King Bharata performed the Vedic
-Yajnas and made offerings to the Devas. But he knew the Devas as
-manifestations only of Vasudeva. His mind became pure and filled with
-Satva. He lost himself in devotion to Vasudeva. At last he divided his
-kingdom amongst his sons and himself went for Tapas to the hermitage of
-Pulaha in the _kshetra_ of Hari on the Sacred Gandaki. He meditated in
-his heart on the lotus feet of Bhagavan and became suffused with
-ecstasy.
-
-Bharata invoked the golden Purusha in the rising sun by a special Rik
-(Vedic Mantra) and addressed Him thus, "Let us attain the spiritual rays
-of luminous Savitri that are beyond Rajas and that are the generators of
-Karmic effects. By His Manas He created this universe. He preserves the
-Jiva again by permeating this universe."
-
-*SKANDHA V. CHAP. 8.*
-
-Once upon a time king Bharata had bathed in the Gandaka and after
-performing the daily practices was meditating on Pranava on the
-river-side. A deer came to drink water at the time. While the animal was
-quenching her thirst a lion roared not far off and she in terror jumped
-into the river. As she happened to be big with child, she was delivered
-of it at the time. Exhausted, the deer got back to the river side only
-to die. The new born fawn was being washed away, having no one to take
-care of it. Bharata took pity on the little fawn. He took it up and
-brought it to his hermitage. He brought it up as his own child and
-became deeply attached to it. He constantly thought of the deer-child,
-even so much so that when death approached he could not forget it and
-became re-born in another birth as a deer.
-
-But though born as a deer, Bharata did not lose the memory of his former
-birth. He reflected that the mind that had been trained and controlled
-in the worship of Vasudeva went astray only for the sake of one
-deer-child. He left the Kalanjara hills where he was born as a deer and
-sought for Salagram, sacred with the Asramas of Pulastya and Pulaha. He
-waited calmly for the exhaustion of Karma that had given rise to his
-deer life. He then gave up his body in the sacred waters of the Gandaka.
-
-*SKANDHA V. CHAP. 9.*
-
-A Brahmana of the line of Angiras had nine sons by one wife. They were
-all well versed in the Vedas, He had one son by another wife and one
-daughter. This son was said to be an incarnation of Bharata. He was
-afraid of _sanga_ (company), so much so that he would not even speak to
-any one for fear of acquiring new Karma. People took him for an idiot.
-His father strove hard to teach him the Vedas but did not succeed. His
-parents died and his half brothers had charge of him. Their wisdom was
-that of the Vedas. They had not learned Atma Vidya. So they did not
-understand the nature of Bharata and neglected him. They gave him poor
-meals for the day's work in the fields.
-
-At one time a thief wanted to propitiate the goddess Bhadra Kali by
-human sacrifice in order that he might be blessed with a child. The
-victim that was procured somehow untied himself and fled. The attendants
-searched for him on all sides in vain. They at last fell upon Bharata
-who was watching in the fields in a peculiar way. They found him most
-suited for sacrifice and tied him up and carried him to the altar of
-Kali. He was duly consecrated and the priest took up a sharp instrument
-to cut off his head. Kali could no longer remain unconcerned. She rushed
-forth in rage from out of her image, wrested the knives from the hands
-of the thieves and cut off their heads.
-
-Once upon a time Rahugana King of Sindhu and Saubira was travelling in a
-palanquin. The chief palanquin bearer on reaching the river Ikshumati
-went in search of a bearer and on finding Bharata deemed him to be a
-god-send. He found his limbs strong and well-built and thought him
-capable of bearing the palanquin. He forced Bharata into the service.
-Bharata though quite unfit for this menial work did his utmost. But he
-was in the habit of looking forward for the distance of an arrow throw
-and then taking steps in advance, so that he might not unwarily kill
-some animal under his feet. He could not therefore keep pace with the
-other bearers and the palanquin lost its balance. King Rahugana became
-angry and reproached the bearers. They complained against the new
-recruit. The king taunted Bharata with these words; "Oh my friend I dare
-say you are tired -- for have you not carried me long and for a long
-distance too -- and you appear to be thin indeed and weak. Are you
-suffering from decrepitude? Are not these your fellow-mates."
-
-Bharata kept quiet. For these taunting remarks did not touch him. He was
-crystallised in wisdom and was no longer troubled with the false
-perceptions of "I and mine."
-
-The palanquin again lost its balance. The king lost his temper and broke
-forth thus; "What is this? are you alive or dead? Do you thus disregard
-my orders and think of living? You must be a madman, like the Death-god
-I will punish your madness and bring you to your senses." King Rahugana
-was proud of his learning and his kingship. He was inflated with Rajas
-and Tames. He had therefore no hesitation in reproaching that lord of
-Yoga, Bharata.
-
-Bharata smiled and thus replied: -- "Thy taunts are true, O king! There
-is no doubt, I am neither tired nor did I travel long. For thy weight
-does not affect me nor have I any distance to travel. Nor could I be
-called fat. For the body is fat and not I. It is by falsely attributing
-the bodily attributes to self that one is said to have thickness,
-leanness, disease, hunger thirst, fear, enmity, desire, sleep,
-attachment, anger, egotism, pride and sorrow. But I have no such false
-perception.
-
-"Thou sayest I am dead even when alive. But such is the case with all
-beings for they are all subject to constant transformations.
-
-"Thou chargest me with disregarding the orders of my Master. But only if
-the relationship of Master and servant does really subsist, might there
-be command and obedience. But where is that relationship? If thou
-sayest, in the ways of the world, thou art my king momentary though
-these ways be, please tell me thy behests.
-
-"Thou callest me a mad man and dost want to punish me and bring me to my
-senses. But I am not mad, though I may look so, for I am fixed in the
-meditation of Brahma. But still if thou thinkest me to be a madman it
-will be useless to punish or to teach a senseless being."
-
-So saying Bharata continued to carry the king. Rahugana came down from
-the palanquin and fell at Bharata's feet. He expressed regret for having
-slighted such a sage in disguise and prayed for a fuller explanation of
-the philosophy involved in his weighty words. This led to an explanation
-by Bharata of the Advaita philosophy from the stand point of the
-Puranas, a denunciation of Vedic and Tantric rites, and an allegorical
-description of the worldly life as trading in the forest (the world
-being the forest and the traders being men in search of wealth). The
-allegory was explained by Suka to Parikshit. [The enquiring student is
-referred to the original for details (V. 11-14.)]
-
-*SKANDHA V. CHAP. 15.*
-
-We must hurriedly refer to the line of Bharata. Sumati was the son of
-Bharata. Ill guided men in the Kali Yuga will call him a God. In his
-line Pratiha was master of Atma Vidya. Coming lower down by far the most
-renowned king in the line of Bharata was Gaya Viraja was also well
-known. Of the hundred sons of Viraja, the eldest was Satajit or the
-Conqueror of the hundred.
-
-
-
-THOUGHTS ON THE LINE OF PRIYA VRATA.
-
-
-Priya Vrata means literally one of welcome (_Priya_) deeds (_Vrata_).
-
-Priya Vrata, was under the influence of Narada from the beginning and he
-declined to go along the Descending path or Pravritti Marga. He was
-wedded to the daughter of Vishva Karma.
-
-Vishva Karma is the cosmic manufacturer. The work of this Prajapati
-extends over the whole of Triloki and he is the architect of all systems
-and chains included in the Triloki -- Priya Vrata, as we shall see later
-on, represents the earth chain only or the system known as Bhur.
-
-What we generally call the Solar system is a misnomer. For the sun
-stands between Bhur Loka and Svar Loka and illumines both the Lokas with
-its rays. The Solar System is therefore properly speaking the whole of
-the Triloki. In speaking of Priya Vrata, therefore, the Bhagavata
-restricts itself to the regions illumined by the sun as well as by the
-moon (V-15-I.)
-
-We shall enter into a detailed description of the whole system in the
-next chapter. Let us take here a passing glance of the line of Priya
-Vrata.
-
-We take Priya Vrata to be the Earth chain complete in itself or rather
-the progenitor of the Earth chain.
-
-Meru or Sumeru is the axis of Bhur Loka, its highest point being the
-highest point of Bhur Loka.
-
-The sun god revolves round this central axis.
-
-The Earth-god Priyavrata also revolved round Meru _i.e._ the Earth
-rotated round its own axis at a very rapid rate for some time during its
-infancy.
-
-The rotation of the Earth was followed by the separation of layers. The
-part most removed from the centre was first affected.
-
-In this way seven distinct layers were formed. The layer towards the
-circumference was the most spiritual. That towards the centre was the
-most material.
-
-The reason of this is to be found in the action of the three Gunas and
-Tamas.
-
-Satva is: on the material plane, light, transparent, with upward motion.
-On the mental plane, buoyant and cheerful, with true perception,
-spiritual.
-
-Rajas is: on the material plane, constantly moving, translucent, with
-motion on the same plane, without levity or gravity.
-
-On the mental plane, constantly active, partly joyful, partly sorrowful,
-with partially true and partially false perception, intellectual.
-
-Tamas is: on the material plane, heavy, opaque, with downward motion.
-
-On the mental plane indolent, melancholy, nonperceptive or dull.
-
-The centripetal force is the action of Tamas and is connected with
-materiality. The centrifugal force is the action of Satva and is
-connected with spirituality.
-
-Of the seven Dvipas, the central is the Jambudvipa, which is the most
-material.
-
-The one farthest from the centre is the Pushkara Dvipa.
-
-The spaces intervening between the layers or Dvipas are the seven
-oceans. They partake of the characteristics of the Dvipas, which they
-respectively surround. Thus the salt ocean surrounding the Jambu Dvipa
-is the most material. The materiality is indicated by the word "salt,"
-which implies gross matter.
-
-Priyavrata, it is said, went seven times round Meru, and at the time of
-each rotation, one ocean and its corresponding Dvipa were formed.
-
-But when the Dvipas and the oceans were all formed that particular
-motion of the whole system was lost.
-
-Since then days and nights are solely caused by the motion of the sun
-round Meru along the Manasottara range.
-
-The seven Dvipas may be the Globes A, B, C, D, E, F, and G of
-Theosophical literature.
-
-The rulers of these seven Globes are seven sons of Priyavrata, named
-after Agni or Fire.
-
-Agni is here the form-giving Energy of each Globe.
-
-Of the ten sons of Priyavrata, seven only became Rulers of the Globes,
-but the other three Kavi, Mahavira and Savana, had nothing to do with
-the creative process. They are highly spiritual entities beyond the
-plane of the seven Globes.
-
-The daughter of Priyavrata was Urjasvati. The word means full of Energy.
-She was wedded to Sukra, the presiding god of the planet Venus.
-
-Her daughter is the renowned Devayani, who was married to King Yayati.
-She stands for Devayana, the Radiant Path of the Upanishads, which
-transcends the Triloki.
-
-Of the sons of Priyavrata, we of Jambu Dvipa or Globe D are directly
-concerned with Agnidhra, who presided over its earliest destinies.
-
-The Bhagavata does not relate the genealogy of the other sons as at
-present we have nothing to do with the life-evolution on these globes.
-
-The process of materialisation is indicated by the Jada state of
-Agnidhra on seeing the Apsaras Purvachitti.
-
-The sons of Agnidhra are the nine Varshas or Continents. We shall learn
-the details of these Varshas subsequently. Of these Varshas again, we
-are directly concerned with Nabhi. The word Nabhi means navel, which is
-at the centre of the body. The Nabhi Varsha is the pivot on which the
-other Varshas hang. The Nabhi Varsha is what we know as our Earth. The
-nine Varshas are also placed layer over layer, as the Dvipas are.
-
-When Nabhi underwent further transformation, Rishabha became his son. In
-Rishabha, we come to a turning point. He is said to be an Incarnation of
-Vishnu. The word "Rishabha" means bull. But that meaning does not give
-us any help in understanding Rishabha and his work.
-
-Priyavrata moved rapidly round Meru, till the globes were formed. This
-is in accordance with the Nebulous theory of Laplace. When the globes
-were formed, the Earth became denser. As the density increased, the
-movement of the Earth became irregular, till at last, the planet became
-fixed. This is not the western idea. The Pauranic idea is that the sun
-moves round the Earth, and the Earth remains fixed in its position. The
-story of Priyavrata's line is based upon this idea. Another idea of the
-ancients was that the planets had speech, till they became solidified.
-
-Rishabha took upon himself the vow of silence. His son Bharata became
-speechless as a deer.
-
-It was necessary to put a limit to the materiality of the Earth. The
-hard crust that formed the shell of the planet could not be allowed to
-affect its heart. The Earth was not to lose all spirituality. Therefore
-Vishnu incarnated in Rishabha so that spirituality might be stored in
-our planets, for the evolution of those Jivas that dwelt over it. Look
-at a Parama Hansa; the ascetic that neither speaks nor moves. Judging
-from outside, he is no better than a mute animal, but he is all
-spirituality within. Such is the nature of our mother Earth.
-
-The thrusting of stones into the mouth of Rishabha is suggestive.
-
-The sons of Rishabha are the countries of our Earth. Of these Bharata
-(India) was the first-born. The spiritual character of this holy land is
-shewn by the story of Bharata.
-
-Bharata was obeyed and imitated by nine brothers, of whom Brahma-varta
-is well-known as described by Manu. Malaya is Malabar. Vidarbha is Berar
-and Kikata is Bihar.
-
-The sons of Rishabha very likely include all the countries of the Earth.
-
-Rishabha called his sons and asked them to follow Bharata. Will other
-lands now follow that advice?
-
-
-
-THE EARTH CHAIN, BHUVANA KOSHA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA V. CHAP. 16.*
-
-Said Parikshit: -- "Thou hast given the bare outline of these regions of
-the universe which are lighted by the sun and where the moon and the
-luminous starry host are also seen.
-
-"Thou hast hereby mentioned the seven oceans and the seven Dvipas, but
-thou hast not given the details thereof." Suka replied: --
-
-Imagine the Bhu-mandala or the Earth chain to be the pericarp of a
-lotus. Imagine there are seven sheaths immersed in it -- the seven
-Dvipas. The central sheath is Jambu Dvipa. It is Niyut Yojanas in area
-(Niyut= 1,000,000 But Sridhara Svami here explains Niyuta as meaning one
-laksha or 100,000. So according to Sridhara the area of Jambu Dvipa is
-800,000 miles). Jambu Dvipa is round like the lotus leaf.
-
-There are nine Varshas in Jambu Dvipa, each nine thousand Yojanas in
-area completely divided by eight mountain ranges. (Bhadrasva and
-Ketumala form exceptions, for they extend over 34,000 Yojanas. Some take
-nine thousand Yojanas to be the expanse between the Nila and Nishadha
-ranges. The Vayu Purana describes the position thus: -- Two Varshas are
-situated like two bows north and south. Four are placed longways.
-Ilavrita is as it were with four petals. _Sridhara_. This gives 7 x 9000
-+ 34000 = 97000).
-
-
-
-ILAVRITA IS THE CENTRAL VARSHA.
-
-
-Sumeru is situated in the navel of this Varsha. This king of mountains
-is gold all through. It is a laksha Yojanas high. If the Earth chain be
-taken to be a lotus, this Meru is its pericarp. It is 32,000 Yojanas as
-the top and 16,000 Yojanas at the foot and 16,000 Yojanas under the
-ground.
-
-(By saying 16000 Yojanas at the foot, 84000 Yojanas are left out. Thus
-the Vishnu Purana says -- the Meru is 84000 Yojanas over the ground and
-16000 under the ground, at the top 32000 and at the foot 16000.
-_Sridhara_. 16000 + 84000=100000).
-
-On the north of Ilavrita are the three mountain ranges Nila, Sveta and
-Sringavan in order. They are respectively the boundary ranges of
-Ramayak, Hiranmaya and Kuru. They spread east and west up to the salt
-ocean. They are two thousand Yojanas wide. In length, each succeeding
-one is a little over one tenth part shorter than the preceding one.
-(There is no difference in height and in width. _Sridhara_).
-
-So on the south of Ilavrita are the three ranges Nishadha, Hemakuta and
-Himalaya spreading east and west like the preceding ones. They are
-10,000 Yojanas in height. They are the boundary ranges respectively of
-Harivarsha, Kinpurusha and Bharata. (This -- 10,000 Yojanas -- is also
-the height of Nila, Sveta and Sringavna. The width of these ranges again
-is that of Nila, and others. By Bharata we are to understand Nabhi.
-
-On the west of Ilavrita is the Malyavat range and on the east lies the
-Gandha Madana range, These ranges extend north up to the Nila range and
-on the south up to the Nishadha range. They are two thousand Yojanas
-wide. They are the boundary ranges of Ketumala and Bhadrasva
-respectively. (East and west there is the Meru surrounded by Ilavrita,
-then there are the two ranges Malyavat and Gandha Madana, and the two
-varshas Bhadrasva and Ketumala and nothing besides).
-
-North and south, there is the Meru then Ilavrita, 6 mountain ranges and
-6 Varshas, 3 on each side and nothing else.
-
-[Where do you then get a _laksha_ of Yojanas? It is said: -- Meru has a
-diameter of 16,000. Ilavrita has 18,000. The 6 Varshas have 6 x 9,000 =
-54,000. The 6 mountain ranges have together a width of 6 x 2,000 =
-12,000. Thus north and south, we have 16,000 + 18,000 + 54,000 + 12,000
-= 100,000.
-
-East and west we have 34000 (9000 + 16000 + 9000) across Meru and
-Ilavrita and the two mountain ranges 2 x 2000 = 4000.
-
-The expanse of the two Varshas up to the ocean side is 62000. This gives
-us 34000 + 4000 + 62000 = 100,000. Thus there is no conflict.
-_Sridhara_.]
-
-[This discussion of Sridhara throws immense light on the text. We find
-that the area is measured by the diameter. We find that 16000 is the
-diameter of Meru at the foot. We find that Ilavrita has 9000 from Meru
-to Nila and 9000 from Meru to Nishadha. We understand also why Bhadrasva
-and Ketumala were said to be exceptions, their expanse being 34,000. A
-diagram will now best illustrate what we say.]
-
-[Illustration: A diagram of Jambu-Dvipa.]
-
-[Bharata as a Varsha must not be mistaken for India. For Bharata here
-stands for Nabhi or the whole of our known earth.
-
-Bharata Varsha extends from the base of the Earth opposite the Himalayas
-on the side of America to the highest point of the Himalayas.]
-
-Kinpurusha Varsha, so called from its dwellers, extends from the highest
-point of the Himalayas as its base to the highest point of Hemakuta.
-
-So with the other Varshas.
-
-It will be seen, that we have no idea of any of the mountains, besides
-the Himalayas.
-
-Ilavrita stands on the same level with Ketumala and Bhadrasva. If these
-three be taken as one, we get the number _7_. Five other Dvipas have _7_
-Varshas only.]
-
-On the four sides of Meru are the four mountains -- Mandara, Meru
-Mandara, Suparsna and Kumua. They are ten thousand Yojanas in height and
-expanse.
-
-(There are two mountains east and west, their expanse being north and
-south. There are other two north and south, their expanse being east and
-west. Otherwise if these mountains were to encircle Meru, Ilavrita would
-not be in existence. _Sridhara_).
-
-On these four mountains respectively are four big trees of Mango,
-Jamboland, Kadamba and the sacred Fig. They are the banners as it were
-of the Mountains. They are 11000 Yojanas high and they also spread over
-this area. Their width is one hundred Yojanas.
-
-There is one lake below each of these trees: milk, sugarcane juice and
-pure water respectively. The use of these fluids gives natural Yogic
-powers to the Upadevas (lesser devas).
-
-There are also four gardens of the Devas, _viz._ Nandana, Chaitraratha,
-Vaibhrajoka and Sarvato-bhadra.
-
-The Devas, adored by the Upadevas amuse themselves in those gardens.
-
-Big fruits with nectar-like juice fall from the mango tree on Mandara.
-
-(The Vayu Purana gives the measure of the fruit. The Rishis who perceive
-truths give the measure of the fruits to be 108 cubits with the fist
-closed (_aratvi_) and also 61 cubits more. _Sridhara_)
-
-When these fruits drop down, they give out a very sweet, very fragrant,
-profuse reddish juice which collects to form the river called Arunoda,
-having water of the color of Aruna or the morning Sun. This river waters
-the Eastern part of Ilavrita. The use of its water gives such a sweet
-scent to the body of the female attendants of Durga that the wind
-carries that scent to ten Yojanas around.
-
-So the Jambu river is formed by the juice of the fruits that drop down
-from the Jambolova tree in Meru Mandara. It waters the southern part of
-Ilavrita.
-
-The land on the banks of these rivers is soaked by their juice and
-worked on by air and light and is thus converted into gold called
-Jambunada, which gives ornaments to the Devas.
-
-Aruna is the morning Sun, as well as the color of the morning Sun. The
-river with Aruna water is also gold producing.
-
-The Kadamba tree on Suparsva has cavities from which flow five streams
-of honey, each 5 Vyamas wide (Vyama = the space between the tips of the
-fingers of either hand when the arms are extended.) These streams water
-the western part of Ilavrita. The fragrant breath of those that use them
-spreads over one hundred Yojanas all round.
-
-The fig tree (Vata) called Satavolsa on the summit of Kumuda has
-branches which give rise to rivers that bring forth milk, curd, honey,
-clarified butter, molasses, edibles, carpets, cloths, ornaments, in fact
-all objects of desire. These rivers fall from Kumuda and water the
-northern part of Ilavrita.
-
-Those that use the waters of those rivers are free from all Infirmities,
-diseases, secretions, old age and death. They live in absolute bliss all
-their lives.
-
-There are twenty more mountains on all sides of Meru, at its foot. They
-are Kuranga, Kurara, Kusumbha Naikovka, Trikuta, Sisira, Patanga.
-Ruchoka, Nishadha Sitivasa, Kapila Sankha, Vaidurya, Jarudhi, Housas,
-Rishabha, Naga, Kalanjara, Nirada and others.
-
-Two mountains, Jatharu and Devakuta, are situated on the east of Meru.
-They are two thousand Yojanas in height and in width. To the north they
-spread over 18,000 Yojanas.
-
-So on the west there are the two mountains Pavana and Pariyatra.
-
-On the south there are Kailasa and Karavira, which expand towards the
-east. So on the north, there are Trisringa and Makara. (If different
-measures are given in Vishnu and other Puranas, they are with reference
-to different Kalpas. _Sridhara_).
-
-The sages say that in the central portion of the top of Sumeru is the
-abode of Brahma, made of gold, 10,000,000 Yojanas in area, and of four
-equal sides.
-
-Surrounding the abode of Brahma are the eight abodes of the eight
-Lokapalas situated respectively in the directions presided over by these
-Lokapalas. Each of these abodes has the color of its own Lokapala and
-each extends over 2 1/2 thousand yojanas. (The names of these abodes are
-given in other Puranas. Thus:
-
- Manovati is the abode of Brahma.
- Amaravati " " Indra.
- Tejovati " " Agni.
- Sanyavati " " Yama.
- Krishnangana " " Nairita.
- Sradhavati " " Varuna.
- Gandhavati " " Vayu.
- Mahodaya " " Kubera.
- Yasovati " " Isa.
-
-
-
-THE GANGES.
-
-
-*SKANDHA V. CHAP. 7.*
-
-The Avatara Vamana asked Bali, the Daitya King, for as much space as he
-could cover in three steps. The first step covered the earth. Vamana
-then raised his foot over the heavens and the stroke of his left
-toe-nail caused a hole in the cosmic egg. Water entered the hole from
-outside, water that carried the washings of Vishnu's feet and that was
-consequently capable of purifying all the impurities of the world and
-that was in itself very pure, water that was then called Bhagavat pudi.
-In a thousand yugas the stream reached the highest point of Svar Loka,
-called Vishnupada.
-
-Dhruva carried the stream on his own head with ever increasing devotion.
-
-The seven Rishis (of the Great Bear) carry the sacred water in their
-braided tufts of hair, as something better than Mukti, for the stream of
-devotion flows from Vishnu direct.
-
-Thence the stream passes through the path of the Devas, studded with
-thousands and thousands of starry chariots, till it overflows the lunar
-regions and fall down on the abode of Brahma in Meru.
-
-There the stream divides itself into four parts called Sita, Alakananda,
-Vankshu and Bhadra.
-
-The Sita flows from the abode of Brahma through the highest mountain
-ranges, she comes down to Gandha Madana, thence through Bhadrasva Varsha
-she falls into the salt ocean towards the east.
-
-So the Vankshu flows through the Malyavat range into Ketumala Varsha and
-falls on the west into the Salt ocean.
-
-The Bhadra flows north from the Sumeru peak through several mountain
-ranges down to Sringavat range and passes through Kuru in to the Salt
-ocean.
-
-The Alakananda flows south from the abode of Brahma through several
-mountain ranges to Hema Kuta and thence to Himalaya till it reaches
-Bharata Varsha (_i.e._ Nabhi Varsha) and at last flows through it into
-the Salt ocean.
-
-There are a thousand other rivers and a thousand other mountains in each
-Varsha.
-
-[The real source of the Ganges is not the melting of snow in the
-Himalayas. That may be the source of the waters that swell the bed of
-the Ganges, as we see it. But the Ganges is something more than a volume
-of waters. There is a spiritual current underlying its waters. That
-current comes from regions higher than the highest peak of the
-Himalayas. Hence the great sanctity attached to it].
-
-
-
-THE MYSTERIES OF THE VARSHAS.
-
-
-*SKANDHA V. CHAP. 17-19.*
-
-Of the nine Varshas, Bharata is the field of Karma (I must now once for
-all remind my readers that Bharata when mentioned as a Varsha means
-Nabhi Varsha, the whole of this visible earth from the highest point of
-the Himalayas downwards). The other Varshas are places of fruition of
-the merits of those that go to Svarga. Hence they are called terrestrial
-(Bhouma) Svargas.
-
-(Svarga is of three kinds: --
-
- a. Divya viz. Svarga proper or Swar Loka.
- b. Bhouma or terrestrial and
- c. Bila or Patalic.
-
-_Sridhara_.)
-
-_Ilavrita._ -- The dwellers of this Varsha live for ten thousand years
-of human measure. They are like Devas. They have the vitality of ten
-thousand elephants. Their body is strong like the thunderbolt They enjoy
-with women all their lives and only one year before death do the women
-bear children. They always live as it were in Treta Yuga.
-
-Narayana -- the Maha Purusha pervades all the Varshas for their good, in
-different forms of His Chatur Vyuha (Vasudeva, Sankarshana, Pradyumna
-and Anirudha).
-
-In Ilavrita, Bhava or Siva is the only male. Other males do not enter
-that Varsha, for they know the curse of Bhavani (Durga) that whoever
-should enter the Varsha was to become a female.
-
-Bhava is adored by millions of women. He meditates on the fourth, the
-Tamasa Murti of Mahapurusha _viz._ Shankarshana. He recites the
-following mantra and runs about: --
-
-"Om Namo Bhagavate Maha Purushaya Sarva-guna Sankhaynaya Anantaya
-Avyaktaya Namaha."
-
-"Om, Salutations to Bhagavat Maha Purusha, salutations to the manifester
-of all Gunas, the Endless, the Unmanifested."
-
-Then follows a prayer to Sankarshana for which readers are referred to
-the original _Bhadtasva_.
-
-Bhadrasravas is the lord of Bhadrasva. He and his followers dwell there,
-they meditate on the Hayasirsha aspect of Vasudeva, they recite the
-following mantra and run about.
-
-"Om Namo Bhagavate Dharmaya Atma-visodhanaya namah."
-
-"Om salutations to Bhagavat Dharma; salutations to him who purifies the
-soul."
-
-Then follows a prayer to Hayagriva _Harivarsha_.
-
-The renowned saintly Daitya Prahlada with the dwellers of this Varsha
-adore Him and recite the following mantra.
-
-"Om Namo Bhagavate Sri Nara Sinhaya Namastejastejase Aviravir bhava
-vajranakha vajra-danstra Karma-Sayan randhaya randhaya tamo grasa om
-Svaha Abhayam Abhoyam Atmani bhuyisthuh om kshroum."
-
-"Om salutations to Bhagavat Sri Hrisinha, Salutations to the fire of all
-fires! Manifest Thyself! Manifest thyself O thunder-nailed! O
-thunder-toothed! Burn up, burn up all desires! devour Tamas! Om Svaha!
-Freedom from fear, freedom from fear be in us. Om! Kohraum!"
-
-_Ketumala._
-
-Pradyumna or Kamadeva presides over Ketumala in order to please Lakshmi
-Samvatsara (one year), the daughters of Samvatsara _viz:_ the nights and
-Sons of Samvatsara _viz:_ the days. The days and nights are 36,000 in
-number _i.e._ as many as are contained in the full term of a man's life
-(one hundred years). These days and nights are the lords of Ketumala
-Lakshmi with whom the dwellers of Ketumala adore Kamadeva.
-
-(The mantra and prayer are then given.)
-
-_Ramyaka._
-
-Matsya (The Fish Incarnation) presides over Ramyaka. Manu is the King.
-
-(Mantra and prayer follow)
-
-_Hiranmaya._
-
-Kurma (the Tortoise Incarnation) presides over Hiranmaya. Aryaman the
-chief of the Pitris dwells there with others.
-
-(Mantra and prayer follow)
-
-_Kuru._
-
-Varsha or the Boar Incarnation presides over Kuru. Bhur with the
-dwellers of Kuru adore him.
-
-(Mantra and prayer follow.)
-
-_Kinpurusha._
-
-In Kinpurusha, Hanuman with the dwellers of the Varsha worship the
-Adipurusha Rama, brother of Lakshamana and husband of Sita.
-
-(Mantra and prayer follow.)
-
-_Bharat Varsha._
-
-Nara Narayana presides over this Varsha. There are various (castes) and
-Asramas in this Varsha. Narada of great devotion leads the people of
-this Varsha. His object in so doing is to teach to Savarni, the coming
-Manu, the Sankhya and Yoga (as related in the Bhagavat Gita) together
-with the full realisation of Bhagavat (as related in the Pancharatras).
-
-[This mission of Narada is specially noteworthy.]
-
-( Mantra and prayer follow.)
-
-In this Bharata Varsha there are many mountains and rivers.
-
-Maloya, Mangalaprastha, Mainaka, Trikuta, Rishava, Kutaka, Konva, Sahya,
-Rishyamuka, Srisaila, Venkata, Mahendra, Varidhara, Vindhya, Saktiman,
-Riksha, Paripatra, Drona, Chitrakuta, Gobardhana, Raivatak, Kakubha,
-Nila, Gokamukha, Indrakila, Kamagiri and hundreds and thousands of other
-mountains are situated in this Varsha.
-
-The following are the principal rivers Chandvavasa, Tamvaparni, Avatoda,
-Kritamala, Vaihayasi, Kaveri, Venua, Payasvini, Sarkaravarta,
-Krishnavenua, Bhimrathi, Godabari, Nirvindhya, Payoshni, Tapi, Reva,
-Surasa, Narmada, Charmanvati, Andha, Sona, Mahanadi, Vedasmriti,
-Rishikulya, Trisama, Kousiki, Mandakini, Yamuna, Sarasvati, Drishadvati,
-Gomati, Saraju, Aghavati, Shasthavati, Saptavati, Satadru, Sushoma,
-Chandrabhaga, Maruduridha, Vitasta, Asikini and Visva.
-
-Those that acquire birth in this Varsha have recourse to Svarga,
-humanity and Naraka respectively, according as their Karma is White
-(Satvic), Red (Rajasic) or Black (Tamasic). The People acquire Moksha in
-this Varsha in accordance with their Varna (Caste). (This is because
-Karma according to caste prevails in this Varsha, not that Moksha is not
-otherwise attainable. _Sridhara_).
-
-And what is moksha in this Varsha? It is the Companionship of Mahatmas
-(Mahapurushas) brought about by the destruction of the bonds of Avidya
-caused by various births. And that Moksha is in reality unceasing,
-unselfish devotion to the All-pervading, Indestructible, Causeless
-Paramatma Vasudeva.
-
-Even the Devas say: -- "How fortunate are these people of Bharat Varsha!
-For Hari is kind to them, even without many performances and they are so
-adapted for communion with Hari by devotion. We have attained Svarga by
-the performance of Yajna. But we shall have to be born again after the
-end of the Kalpa. What good is in this state, which does not bring us in
-direct communion with Vishnu? These people of Bharat Varsha even with
-their short lives acquire the state of Hari. If there be any Karma left
-to us after the enjoyment of Svarga may we be born as men that we may
-worship Hari."
-
-Some say there are eight upadvipas in Jambu Dvipa, formed by the sons of
-Sagara when they dug up this earth in search of the sacrificial horse.
-They are Svarna Prastha, Chandra Sukla, Avartana, Ramanaka,
-Manda-harina, Panchajanya, Sinhala and Louka.
-
-
-
-THE DVIPAS.
-
-
-*SKANDHA V. CHAP. 20.*
-
-_Plaksha Dvipa_
-
-Jambu Dvipa is surrounded by the salt ocean on all sides. That ocean
-extends over Laksha Yojanas. That salt ocean is again surrounded on all
-sides by Plaksha Dvipa, which extends over 2 laksha of Yojanas.
-
-There is one golden Plaksha tree in that Dvipa as high as the Jambu tree
-in Jambu Dvipa and the Dvipa itself takes its name from that tree. There
-Fire is seven tongued,
-
-Idhmajihva son of Priyavrata ruled over this Dvipa. He divided the Dvipa
-into seven Varshas and named them after his seven sons each of whom
-ruled over the Varsha of his name.
-
-Siva, Vayasa, Subhadra, Santa, Kshema, Amrita and Abhoya are the
-Varshas.
-
-Manikuta, Vajrakuta, Indrasena, Jyotishmat, Subarna, Hiranyasthiva and
-Meghmala are the seven chief mountains.
-
-Aruna, Nrimana, Angirasi, Savitri, Supravata, Ritambhara and Satyambhara
-are the seven great rivers.
-
-Hansa, Patanga, Urdhayana and Satyanga are the corresponding castes.
-
-The dwellers of the Dvipa live for one thousand years. They look like
-Devas and procreate after Deva fashion. They worship the Surya (Sun-god)
-of the Vedas.
-
-(The Mantra is given)
-
-In Plaksha, Salmali, Kusa, Krouncha and Saka, the inmates have their
-age, Indriyas, strength, power and Budhi by their very birth and not by
-Karma.
-
-The Dvipa is surrounded by the Sugar cane juice ocean which extends over
-2 laksha of Yojanas.
-
-_Salmali Divpa:_ -- Twice as large as Plaksha Dvipa. The ocean of wine
-surrounding it is equally large.
-
-_Tree:_ -- Salmali (Bombax Malabaricum) as high as the Plaksha tree said
-to be the seat of Garuda.
-
-_King:_ Yajna-vaha son of Priyavrata.
-
-_Seven Varshas and seven sons of Yajnavaha:_ -- Surochana, Soumanasya,
-Ramanaka, Devvarha, Paribhadra, Apyayana and Abhijhata.
-
-_Seven principal mountains:_ -- Surasa, Sata Sringa, Vamadeva, Kunda,
-Kumuda, Pushpa Varsha and Sahosra.
-
-_Seven great rivers:_ -- Anumati, Sinivati, Sarasvati, Kuhu, Rajani,
-Nanda and Raka.
-
-_Divisions of people:_ -- Srutidhara, Viryadhara, Vasundhara, and
-Ishundhara.
-
-_Presiding deity:_ -- The Moon.
-
-_Kusa Dvipa:_ -- Twice as large as Salmali Dvipa surrounded by an ocean
-of clarified butter equally large.
-
-_Tree:_ -- Clusters of Kusa grass glowing and glittering.
-
-_King:_ -- Hiranyaretas son of Priyavrata.
-
-_Seven Varshas:_ -- Vasu, Vasudana, Dridharuchi, Nabhigupta, Satyavrata,
-Bikranama, and Devanama.
-
-_Seven mountains:_ -- Babhra, Chatur-Sringa, Kapila Chitra Kuta,
-Devanika, Urdharomau and Dravina.
-
-_Seven Rivers:_ -- Raaskulya, Madhukulya, Mitravinda, Srutavinda, Deva
-Garbha, Ghutachynta, and Mantramala.
-
-_Divisions of People:_ -- Kusala, Kovida, Abhiyukta and Kulaka.
-
-_Presiding Deity:_ -- Agni (Fire-god).
-
-_Krouncha Dvipa:_ -- Twice as large as Kusa, surrounded by an ocean of
-milk equally large. Named after the Krouncha Mountain. The Krouncha
-Mountain was attacked by Kartikeya and injured too. But the Milk Ocean
-and the presiding deity Varuna saved it.
-
-_King:_ -- Ghritaprestha son of Priyavrata.
-
-_Seven Varshas:_ -- Atma, Madhuruha, Meghapristha, Sudhawan, Bhrajistha,
-Lohitarna, Vanaspati.
-
-_Seven Mountains:_ -- Sukla, Vardhaman, Bhajana, Upavarhaha, Nauda,
-Nandana and Sarvato-bhadra.
-
-_Seven Rivers:_ -- Abhoya, Amritougha, Aryuka, Tirthavati, Rupavati,
-Pavitravati and Sukla.
-
-_Divisions of people:_ -- Purasha, Rishabha, Dravina and Devaka.
-
-_Presiding Deity:_ Apas (Water-God.)
-
-_Saka Dvipa:_ -- 32 laksha Yojanas. Surrounded by an ocean of curds --
-equally extensive.
-
-_Tree:_ -- Saka (Teak wood tree) very fragrant.
-
-_King:_ -- Medhatithi, son of Priyavrata.
-
-_Seven Varshas:_ -- Purojava, Manojava, Vepamana, Dhumranika,
-Chitrarepha, Bahurupa and Visva-dhara.
-
-_Seven Mountains:_ -- Isana, Uru Sringa, Balabhadra, Sata Kesara,
-Sahasra-srotas, Devapala and Mohanasa.
-
-_Seven Rivers:_ -- Anagha, Ayurda, Ubhayaspriti, Aparajita, Punchapadi,
-Sahasra Sruti and Nijadhriti.
-
-_Division of people:_ -- Ritavrata, Satyavrata, Danavrata and Anuvrata.
-
-_Presiding Deity:_ -- Vayu (Wind-god).
-
-_Puskkara Dvipa:_ -- Twice as large as Saka Dvipa surrounded by an ocean
-of pure water -- equally extensive: There is a big Pushkara or Lotus
-plant with thousands of golden leaves. The Lotus is known as the seat of
-Brahma.
-
-Standing between two Varshas, eastern and western, is the Manasattara
-Mountain ten thousand Yojanas high. On the four sides of this Mountain
-are four abodes of the Lokapalas = Indra and others.
-
-Over these abodes the Sanvatsava or Uttarayana Dakshinayana wheel
-(_chakra_) of the Sun's chariot moves in its course round Meru.
-
-Vitihotra, Son of Priyavrata, is the king of this Varsha.
-
-His two sons Ramanaka and Dhataka are the lords of two Varshas named
-after them.
-
-The people of those Varshas worship Brahma by Yajna performances.
-
-Beyond the Ocean of pure water is the Lokaloka (Loka and Aloka)
-Mountain, dividing Loka, the regions lighted by the sun, from Aloka or
-the regions not lighted by the sun.
-
-As much land as there is between Manasottara and Meru, so much golden
-land is there on the other side of the pure water ocean. It is like the
-surface of the mirror. If any thing is thrown on that land, it is not
-regained. It is therefore forsaken by all beings. [The land between
-Manasottara and Meru is one krore and a half _plus_ seven and a half
-lakhs. There is as much land on the other side of the Pure Water Ocean.
-There are living beings in that land. Beyond that is the golden land.
-That land is eight krores and thirty nine laksha yojanas wide. It is
-thus that the distance between Meru and Lokaloka comes to be 12 1/2
-krores as mentioned below. This is also said in the Siva Tantra.
-
-Two krores 53 lakshas and 50 thousand this is the measure of the seven
-Dvipas with the Oceans. Beyond that is the golden land which is 10
-Krores of Yojanas. This is used by the Devas as their play-ground.
-Beyond that is Lokaloka. The ten krores include the previously mentioned
-land, "Forsaken by all beings" -- this is to be understood with the
-exception of the Devas, for it is mentioned as the play-ground of the
-Devas. _Sridhara._]
-
-In order to understand the commentary of _Sridhara_, let us examine the
-figures.
-
-Jambu Dvipa with Ocean on one side of Meru:
-
- ... ... 150,000 Yojanas
-
-Plaksha Dvipa with Ocean on one side of Meru:
-
- ... ... 400,000
-
- Salmali Do. ... ... 800,000
-
- Kusa Do. .. ... 1,600,000
-
- Krouncha Do. .. ... 3,200,000
-
- Saka Do. .. ... 6,400,000
-
- Pushkar Do. . ... 12,800,000
-
-Deduct Pure water Ocean as it is not included between Meru and
-Manasottara:
-
- ... ... 6,400,000
-
- ------------
- 18,950,000
-
-Manasottara stands half way in Pushkara, as it stands between two
-Varshas. Deduct distance between Manasottara and Pure Water Ocean:
-
- ... 3,200,000
-
- ------------
- 15,750,000
-
-The distance between Meru and Manasottara is 1 1/2 Krores and 7 1/2
-lakhs.
-
-According to Sridhara, there is this much land on the other side of the
-Pure Water Ocean.
-
-Beyond that land is the Golden land which according to _Sridhara_ is:
-
- ... ... 83900000 Yojanas
-
- Thus we get Dvipas and Oceans ... 25350000 "
-
- Land beyond Pure Water Oceans ... 15750000 "
-
- The Golden land ... ... 83900000 "
-
- ----------
-
- 125000000 "
-
-Thus we get the 12 1/2 krores of Sridhara. Beyond the Golden land is the
-Lokaloka Mountain. This will also explain the quotation from Siva
-Tantra. The following Diagram will partially illustrate the points.
-
- Lokaloka
-
- * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * *
- --------------------------------
-
- The Golden Land
- --------------------------------
-
- Land beyond Pure Water Ocean
- --------------------------------
-
- Pure Water Ocean
- --------------------------------
-
- P
- u
- s
- h ( * * Manasottara
- k
- a
- r
- a
-
- -------------------------------
-
- Milk Ocean
- -------------------------------
-
- Saka
- -------------------------------
-
- Sour Milk Ocean
- -------------------------------
-
- Krouncha
- -------------------------------
-
- Clarified Butter Ocean
- -------------------------------
-
- Kusa
- -------------------------------
-
- Wine Ocean
- -------------------------------
-
- Salmali
- -------------------------------
-
- Sugarcane Juice Ocean
- -------------------------------
-
- Plaksha
- -------------------------------
-
- Salt Ocean
- -------------------------------
-
- * Meru, Jambu
- -------------------------------
-
-The Lokaloka is the boundary of three Lokas, Bhur, Bhuvar, and Svar.
-
-The rays of the numerous bodies from the Sun up to Dhruva illuminate the
-regions on the Triloka side of Lokaloka but they can never reach its
-other side. For such is the height and expanse of Lokaloka -- (It is
-even higher than Dhruva. So it is the boundary of Triloki. _Sridhara_).
-
-The Bhu-Golaka or the Bhur system measures 50 Krores. And Lokaloka is
-one-fourth of that _i.e._ 12 1/2 Krores (on one side of Meru.
-_Sridhara_).
-
-Over this Lokaloka, Brahma placed 4 Elephant Kings in four different
-directions _viz:_ Rishabha, Pushkarachura, Vamana and Aparajita. This is
-for the preservation of the Lokas.
-
-Bhagavan Maha Purusha (Vishnu) Himself remains there. He infuses various
-powers into the Elephant Kings and into the Lokapalas (preservers of the
-Lokas) Indra and others who are but His manifestations. He pervades all.
-He manifests His pure Satva. The characteristics of that satva are the
-eight Siddhis.
-
-Dharma, Jnana, Vairagya, Aisvarya &c., Vishvaksena and His other
-Companions are with Him. His own weapons are in his hands. He remains
-there for the good of all Lokas.
-
-To the end of the Kalpa, Vishnu remains in this way pervading all for
-the preservation of the Universe formed by His own Maya.
-
-The measure of Aloka is also 12 1/2 Krores (on one side of Meru.
-_Sridhara_).
-
-Beyond Aloka is Visuddha (very pure region) where only masters of Yoga
-can go.
-
-The Sun stands in the centre of the Egg. That is also the middle ground
-between Svar and Bhur. Between the Sun and the Circumference of the Egg
-is 25 Krores.
-
-The Sun is called Martanda (Mrita and anda) because in Mrita or dead
-matter he infused life as Vairaja. He is called Hiranya Garbha (Gold
-wombed) because he came out of the Golden Egg.
-
-The sun divided space into Bhur, Bhuvar and Svar. The Sun divides the
-regions of enjoyment and Moksha. He divides the Narakas and Patalas. He
-is the Atma of Devas, men, animals, plants and other Jivas. He is the
-manifester of sight.
-
-
-
-SVAR AND BHUVAR.
-
-
-*SKANDHA V. CHAP. 21.*
-
-The localisation, measure and other details of Bhur have been given
-above. (By expanse 50 Krores and by height 25 Krores. _Sridhara_).
-
-The measure of Svar is the same as that of Bhur -- Just as one cotyledon
-gives the measure of the other cotyledon in a flower.
-
-Bhuvar is the connecting link of Bhur and Svar.
-
-
-
-THE SUN.
-
-
-*SKANDHA V. CHAP. 21-22.*
-
-The Sun from the Bhuvar Loka sends forth his rays to Triloki.
-
-(Here follow astronomical details which need not be given.)
-
-When the Sun is between the Autumn and spring Equinoxes it is called
-Uttarayana (or going towards the north.) Then the Sun's motion is said
-to be slow.
-
-When the Sun is between the spring Equinox and Autumn Equinox, it is
-Dakshinayana (Going towards the south.) The Sun's motion is then said to
-be Quick.
-
-When the sun is at the Equinoxes it is Vishuva. The Sun's motion is then
-said to be Even.
-
-When it is Dakshinayana, the days increase. When it is Uttarayana the
-nights increase.
-
-The sages teach 9 Krores and 51 lakhs of Yojanas as the Circumference of
-Manasottara.
-
-[On both sides of Meru up to Manasottara is 3 Krores and 15 lakhs. The
-Measure of the above circle is obtained from this (diameter).
-_Sridhara_.]
-
-[A full diagram of the Bhur system will now have to be given, to explain
-the above figures. For the sake of convenience, the Dvipa and its ocean
-are given as one.]
-
-[Illustration: A diagram of the Bhur system.]
-
- From Meru to Lokaloka on one side ... 12 1/2 Krores
- on both sides ... 25 "
- Loka loka on both sides ... 25 "
- Measure of Bhur system ... 50 "
- Distance from Meru to Manasottora 15,750,000
- On both sides ... 31,500,000
-
-The Manasottara range is a circle of which the last figure is the
-diameter.
-
-The circle is obtained by multiplying the diameter by a little over 3.
-
-The circle is thus given to be -- 9 Krores and 51 Lakshas.
-
-The Manasottara is the path of revolution of the sun round Meru.
-
-On the East side of Meru in the Manasottara is the seat of Indra named
-Devadhani.
-
-On the South side is the seat of Yama named Sanyamani.
-
-On the West is the seat of Varuna named Nimlochani.
-
-On the North is the seat of the Moon named Vibhavari.
-
-Sunrise, midday, Sunset and night on those seats cause action and
-inaction in beings, according to the time with reference to the side of
-Meru.
-
-(For those that live to the south of Meru, their east &c. commence from
-the abode of Indra, of those that live to the west from the abode of
-Yama, of the northern people, from the abode of Varuna, of the eastern
-people from the abode of the Moon. _Sridhara_.)
-
-Those that live on the Meru have the Sun always over their heads.
-
-The Sun's chariot makes one round along Manasottara in one year. The
-wheel or chakra of the chariot is therefore called Sanvatsara.
-
-The 12 months are the 12 spokes of that wheel. The six seasons form 6
-arcs.
-
-The pole of that chariot extends to the top of Meru. The other end of
-the pole is on the Manasottara. (It is either to be thought that the
-wheel is placed more than 50,000 Yojanas over the Manasottara in the
-regions of air or the wheel is to be considered as high as that
-distance, otherwise the Manasottara being 10,000 Yojanas high and Meru
-being 84 Yojanas high, 16 thousand being under ground, there will be a
-difference of planes in the Sun's revolution. _Sridhara_.)
-
-There is another movement of the Sun round Dhruva. The radius of that
-revolution is one fourth the distance between Meru and Manasottara.
-(_i.e._ 1/4 X 15,750,000 = 3,937,500).
-
-The movement round Dhruva is caused by the action of air.
-
-The seat within the chariot is 36 laksha of Yojanas wide. The yoke is
-also of the same measure. The seven horses are the seven Vedic metres
-(Gayatri, Ushnik, Anustup, Vrihati, Pankti, Tristup and Jagati). They
-are driven by Aruna.
-
-The thumb sized Balikhilya Rishis stand in front of the chariot and
-chant hymns in honor of Aditya.
-
-
-
-THE PLANETS AND STARS.
-
-
-*SKANDHA V. CHAP. 22-23.*
-
-The moon is one laksha of Yojanas over the Sun. The growing Moon makes
-the day of the Devas and the waning Moon is the life of all Jivas, in
-fact he is Jiva.
-
-He is Manomaya, Annamaya and Amritamaya. From him therefore proceed the
-life and advancement of Devas, Pitris, Men, Animals and Plants.
-
-Two laksha of Yojanas over the Moon are the 27 Zodiacal constellations
-and also the star Abhijit ( a mysterious star between Uttarashadha and
-Sravana) attached to the wheel of time.
-
-Two laksha of Yojanas over them is Sukra or Venus. His movements are
-like those of the Sun. He is ever favourable to men. His progression is
-generally accompanied by showers of rain. He also subdues those planets
-that counteract the rains.
-
-Two laksha of Yojanas over Sukra is Budha or Mercury. He is much like
-Sukra in his movements and is generally favourable to men. But when he
-transgresses the Sun, there is fear of high winds, rainless clouds and
-drought.
-
-Two laksha of Yojanas over Budha is Mangala or Mars. He moves round the
-Zodiac in three fortnights. He is generally unfavourable to men, causing
-miseries, unless he proceeds by retrogression.
-
-Two laksha of Yojanas over Mars is Brihaspati or Jupiter. He moves in
-each sign of the Zodiac for one Parivatsara (year of Jupiter), if there
-is no retrogression. He is generally unfavorable to the Brahmanas.
-
-Two laksha of Yojanas over Jupiter is Sanaischara or Saturn. He loiters
-in each sign of the Zodiac for thirty months. He completes his round in
-thirty Anuvatsaras. He is generally unfavourable to all and causes
-unrest.
-
-Eleven laksha of Yojanas over Saturn are the Rishis. Their influence is
-for the good of all people. They revolve round the Supreme abode of
-Vishnu.
-
-Thirteen laksha of Yojanas beyond the Rishis is Dhruva, which is the
-Supreme abode of Vishnu.
-
-All luminous bodies attached to the wheel of time move round Dhruva
-being propelled by Vayu while Dhruva remains fixed.
-
-The planets and stars remain fixed in their relative positions, under
-the union of Prakriti and Purusha by the future made for them by their
-Karma.
-
-Some however say that the luminous bodies become fixed in their relative
-positions by the Yoga support of Vasudeva, being held together in the
-shape of Sisumara (the Gangetic porpoise). The Sisumara has its face
-downwards and its body is coiled.
-
-Dhruva is at the end of its tail. Prajapati, Agni, Indra and Dharma are
-in the lower part of the tail. Dhata and Vidhata are at the root of the
-tail. The seven Rishis are in the middle. On the right side are the
-fourteen Stars from Abhijit to Punarvasu. On the left side are the 14
-stars from Pushya to Uttara Sarha. So on, all the stars and planets.
-(For details refer to the original).
-
-The Sisumara is the Universal manifestation of Maha Purusha.
-
-[The following Geo-centric diagram is given, as illustrative of the
-positions of the planets.]
-
-[Illustration: Positions of the planets.]
-
-
-
-THE PATALAS
-
-
-*SKANDHA V. CHAP. 24.*
-
-Ten thousand Yojanas below the Sun is Rahu, son of Sinhika. Though an
-Asura, by favour of Bhagavan he became a planet and immortal too like
-the Devas.
-
-Ten thousand Yojanas below Rahu is the abode of the Siddhas, Charanas
-and Vaidyadharas.
-
-Below that is the abode of the Yakshas, Rakshasas, Pisachas, Pretas, and
-Bhutas. This abode extends down to the regions of air and clouds.
-
-One hundred Yojanas below that is the Earth. The details of the Earth's
-surface have been given above.
-
-Underneath the Earth are the seven Patalas: -- Atala, Vitala, Sutala,
-Talatala, Mahatala, Rasatala and Patala. They are ten thousand Yojanas
-apart from each other.
-
-In these nether Svargas, Daityas, Danavas and Nagas dwell. Their
-enjoyments, power, joys and luxuries are even greater than those of the
-Devas of Svarga. Their houses, gardens and playgrounds are very rich.
-They are always joyous. They are attached to their wives, sons, friends
-and attendants. By the grace of Isvara, their desires are always
-gratified.
-
-Maya, the Danava Magician, has built wonderful houses, gardens &c. in
-these regions with precious stones.
-
-There are no divisions of time, as the Sun's rays do not enter those
-regions and no disturbances from such divisions. All darkness is removed
-by the light of the precious stones on the head of the serpent king.
-
-The people of Patala use divine herbs and medicines, and consequently
-they have no infirmities, diseases, old age, languor and offensive
-secretions.
-
-They have no death except by the Chakra of Bhagavan (_i.e._ final
-extinction).
-
-_Atala:_ -- Bala, the son of Maya resides in Atala (Maya is a masculine
-form of Maya the root Prakriti). He created here 96 forms of Maya. The
-Mayavins (those who practice Magic) still have recourse to those forms.
-When he yawns, three classes of women spring into existence viz:
-
- 1. Svairini (self willed loose women),
- 2. Kamini (passionate women) and
- 3. Punschali (unchaste women).
-
-If any one enters Atala these women completely allure him by their
-Hataka (golden) charm, and when the man is completely overcome by their
-allurements, he says "I am Isvara", "I am Siddha."
-
-[The women are only forms of Maya because Maya is personified as an
-alluring woman. A man in Atala is completely under the domination of
-Maya and becomes estranged from spirit. So Maya is all in all to him and
-he knows no other.]
-
-_Vitala_: -- Below Atala is Vitala. There Bhava (Siva) the king of Gold
-reigns in company with his consort Bhavani, attended by Bhutas. He
-remains there for the benefit of the Prajapati creation. The fluid of
-intercourse with Bhavani gives rise to a river called Hataki (Golden).
-Agni kindled by Vayu drinks up that river and gives out the gold called
-Hataka which is used in ornaments by the Asuras who dwell there.
-
-(We have known Siva as the Astral Lord. We find him here engaged in the
-work of creation. The text speaks of a mysterious connection between him
-and the gold called Hataka. The occult varieties of gold such as
-Jamvanada and Hataka form a fit subject of study. Hataka refers to the
-Prajapati creation. There is duality in Vitala, as distinguished from
-the singleness of Maya in Atala).
-
-_Sutala_: -- Below Vitala is Sutala. There the renowned Bali son of
-Virochana still dwells. Vamana, the Dwarf Incarnation of Vishnu, took
-away the Triloki from him and replaced him here. His enjoyments even
-here are greater than those of Indra. He performs Sva-dharma and
-worships Vishnu. His sins are all removed.
-
-(A full account of Bali will be given below.)
-
-_Talatala_: -- Below Sutala is Talatala. Maya, the Danava king, rules
-there. His "Three Puras" (abodes) were destroyed by Siva who is hence
-called Tripurari. But Siva favoured him again and placed him in
-Talatala. He is the preceptor of all Mayavins. He is preserved by Siva
-and he has no fear from Sudarsana (the chakra weapon of Vishnu, which
-symbolises Time.)
-
-(Bali and Maya, Triloki and Tripura, the seizure of one and the
-destruction of the other, the restoration of Bali to Sutala and of Maya
-to Talatala, the favour shown to them in those regions, the
-correspondences of Sutala and Talatala are worth careful consideration.
-In the case of one, Vishnu or the Preservative aspect of the Second
-Purusha is the actor, and in the other, Siva, the Destructive aspect.)
-
-_Mahatala_: -- Below Talatala is Mahatala. Many headed serpents, the
-progeny of Kadru, dwell there. The chief amongst them are Kuhaka,
-Takshaka, Kaliya, Sushena, and others. They are always afraid of Garuda,
-the Vehicle of Vishnu, and they are therefore seldom seen to indulge in
-pleasure-trips outside.
-
-_Rasatala_: -- Below Mahatala is Rasatala; Daityas, Danavas and Panis,
-named Nivatakavachas, Kalakeyas and Hiranyapuravasins dwell there. They
-are the enemies of the Devas. They are powerful from their very birth.
-They are subdued by the Sudarsana of Vishnu. They are like serpents.
-They fear even the threats of Sarama, the bitch of the gods who is
-Indra's messenger to them. They fear Indra also.
-
-_Patala_: -- Below Rasatala is Patala. The Nagas dwell there. Vasuki is
-their chief. The other principal Nagas are -- Sankha, Kulika, Maha
-Sankha, Sveta, Dhananjaya, Asvatara, and Devadatta. Their hood is very
-large and they are very furious. Some of them are five headed, some 7
-headed, some 10 headed, some a thousand headed. The precious stones on
-their hoods dispel all darkness in Patala.
-
-
-
-ANANTA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA V. CHAP. 25.*
-
-At the root of Patala, thirty thousand Yojanas beyond, is the Tamas
-aspect of Bhagavan called Ananta. Those that worship the Chaturvyuha
-aspect call him Sankarshana. He has a thousand heads. The earth held up
-on one of these heads looks but like a mustard seed. When the time for
-dissolution comes, Ananta assumes His Tamas form and becomes Rudra --
-other wise called Sankarshana, a host of eleven, with three eyes, three
-tufts of hair and with tridents on their heads. At other times, Ananta
-withdraws His Tamas and abides for the good of all Lokas. His eyes roll
-as it were by intoxication. His garments are blue. He has one ear-ring.
-He has a plough on his back.
-
-
-
-THE NARAKAS.
-
-
-*SKANDHA V. CHAP. 26.*
-
-Where are the Narakas, O Rishi, asked Parikshit? Are they particular
-localities? Are they outside the Triloki or inside?
-
-Suka replied: --
-
-They are inside the Triloki on the south side below the earth, over the
-waters, where Agnishvatta and other Pitris deeply meditate on the
-welfare of their respective descendants.
-
-There, Yama, the Death-god, metes out just punishment to the dead.
-
-There are twenty-one Narakas: --
-
- 1. Tamisra
- 2. Andha Tamisara
- 3. Rourava
- 4. Maharourava
- 5. Kumbhipaka
- 6. Kala Sutra
- 7. Asipatravana
- 8. Sukara Mukha
- 9. Andha Kupa
- 10. Krimi bhajana
- 11. Sandansa
- 12. Tapta Surmi
- 13. Vajra-Kantaka Salmali
- 14. Vaitarani
- 15. Puyoda
- 16. Pranarodha
- 17. Vaisasana
- 18. Lalabhaksha
- 19. Sarameyadana
- 20. Avichi and
- 21. Ayahpana.
-
-There are seven other Narakas:
-
- 1. Kshara Kardama
- 2. Rakshogana bhojana
- 3. Sulaprota
- 4. Danda Suka
- 5. Avata-nirodhana
- 6. Parya vartana and
- 7. Suchi mukha.
-
-(For details of these Narakas, the reader is referred to the original.
-They are more for the exoteric than for the esoteric reader.)
-
-There are hundreds and thousands of such Narakas in the realms of Yama.
-The vicious enter them by turns. The meritorious go to Svarga. But the
-Karma of men is not exhausted in Svarga or Naraka. For that which
-remains unexhausted, they enter life again by re-birth.
-
-(The mention of Pitris and Yama connects the Narakas with the astral
-plane.)
-
-
-
-
-SKANDHA VI.
-
-
-
-THE STORY OF AJAMILA
-
-
-*SKANDHA VI. CHAP. 1-3.*
-
-Raja Parikshit asked how men could avoid Naraka.
-
-SUKA replied: -- It is by Prayaschitta (expiation) that men can avoid
-Naraka. But it is not Vedic Prayaschitta, not fasting by Chandrayana and
-other Vratas. These Vedic performances cannot root out vicious
-tendencies, for the performer is seen again to indulge in vices. They do
-not purify the mind. They simply counteract the Karmic effect of the act
-for which Prayaschitta is performed. The real Prayaschitta is devotion
-to Vishnu.
-
-Ajamila was the son of a Brahmana. He was dutiful, virtuous, modest,
-truthful, and regular in the performance of Vedic injunctions. One day
-in obedience to his father he went into the forests and there collected
-fruits, flowers, sacrificial wood and _Kusa_ -- on returning he saw a
-Sudra in company with a slave-girl. He tried much to subdue his passions
-but did not succeed. He spent the whole of his patrimony to win the love
-of that girl. He gave up his own wife and kept company with that slave
-girl. He had by her several sons of whom the youngest was Narayana.
-Ajamila lost all his good qualities in low company and he forgot his
-daily practices. To support the woman and her children, he had recourse
-to all sorts of vicious and unlawful acts. Narayana was the favorite
-among his sons. He caressed him always. At last his end approached. He
-thought even then of his youngest son who was playing at a distance.
-Three fierce-looking messengers of Yama appeared, with ropes in hand.
-Terrified at the sight Ajamila cried out "Narayana, Narayana." Instantly
-the Messengers of Vishnu appeared. At the time when the servants of Yama
-were drawing out the Jiva from the heart of Ajamila, the attendants of
-Vishnu stopped them with a strong voice. "But who are you" said they "to
-interfere with the just sway of Yama." The bright attendants of Vishnu
-only smiled and asked: "What is Dharma? Does your lord Yama hold the
-sceptre of punishment against all who perform Karma? Is there no
-distinction made?"
-
-The astral messengers replied: -- "The performance of Vedic Injunctions
-is Dharma and their disregard is Adharma. This Ajamila in his earlier
-days duly respected the Vedas. But in company with the slave-girl, he
-lost his Brahmanism, disregarded the Vedas and did things which a
-Brahmana should not do. He justly comes for punishment to Yama."
-
-The attendants of Vishnu expressed wonder at these words. "And you are
-servants of him, who is called the king of Dharma, and you do not know
-that there is something above the Vedas too. This Ajamila consciously or
-unconsciously took the name of Narayana and that saved him from your
-clutches. It is in the nature of fire to consume fuel and so it is in
-the nature of Vishnu's name to destroy all sins. If one unconsciously
-takes some powerful medicine, does it not have effect? It matters not
-whether Ajamila meant his youngest son or not but still he took the name
-of Narayana. So you must retire."
-
-Wonder-struck the servants of Yama left their hold over Ajamila. They
-went away and complained to their Master. "There must be one law and one
-dispenser of that law. Otherwise some will be punished and others not.
-Why should there be this difference? We know Thee to be the sole
-dispenser of the Law for the vicious. But just now the attendants of
-Vishnu came and wrested from our hands a transgressor against the
-Vedas."
-
-"True my sons", replied Yama, "there is some one above me and it is
-Vishnu. His ways are mysterious.
-
-"The whole Universe is in Him. His attendants always save His votaries.
-Only twelve of us know his Dharma, which is Bhagavata and no one else.
-These twelve are Brahma, Siva, Sanat Kumara, Narada, Kapila, Manu,
-Prahlada, Janaka, Bhishma, Bali, Suka and myself."
-
-Ajamila heard the conversation between the messengers of Yama and
-Vishnu. He became sorely penitent (the repentance is strongly
-described). He overcame his attachments, left the house and went to
-Haridvara. There he meditated on Vishnu with concentrated mind. The
-former attendants of Vishnu appeared once more and took him on a chariot
-to Vishnu Loka.
-
-
-
-THE PROGENY OF DAKSHA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA VI. CHAP. 4-6.*
-
-[We left the line of Uttanapada with Daksha, the son of the Prachetas
-brothers. We were told of his work of creation in the Chakshasha
-Manvantara. But we have to take up the line just now, to introduce the
-story of Visva Rupa.]
-
-Daksha first carried on the work of creation by Manasic reproduction.
-But he found this sort of reproduction was not adequate for the
-enlargement of creation. He went to a place near the Vindhyas and prayed
-hard to Vishnu. Vishnu became pleased with his prayers and advised him
-to marry Asikni, the daughter of Prajapati Panchajana. "Take her for
-your wife and have sexual intercourse with her. By sexual reproduction,
-you shall have a large progeny and that form of reproduction shall
-prevail among your sons too".
-
-By Asikni, Daksha had at first 10 thousand sons called Haryasva. He
-asked them to take up the work of creation. They went westwards to where
-the river Sindhu falls into the ocean. They began to make Tapas there
-for their progeny. Narada appeared before them and dissuaded them from
-Pravritti Marga. He gave them instructions for obtaining Moksha and they
-followed the path of its attainment.
-
-Daksha heard that his sons were killed by Narada and he became very
-sorry.
-
-He again had one thousand sons names Subalasva. They also went out to
-the very same place and prayed to Vishnu for progeny. Narada again
-dissuaded them and they never returned to their father.
-
-Daksha became restless in sorrow and thus cursed Narada on meeting him.
-"Thou shalt roam all over Triloki and shalt find no resting place."
-
-Daksha had then 60 daughters. Ten he gave to Dharma, 13 to Kasyapa, 27
-to the Moon, two each to Bhuta, Angirasa, and Krisasva and four to
-Tarksha.
-
-
-
-THE PROGENY OF DHARMA.
-
-
- (1) _By Bhanu_: -- Devar-shabha or the chief Devas.
-
- (2) _By Lamba_: -- Vidyota (flash of lightning)
- |
- The clouds.
-
- (3) _By Kakud_: -- Sankata
- |
- Kikata (the elementals presiding over
- earth-cavities).
-
- (4) _By Yami_: -- Svarga.
- |
- Nandi.
-
- (5) _By Visva_: -- The Visvadevas (Vedic-gods).
-
- (6) _By Sadhya_: -- The Sadhyas -- attainment of desires.
-
- (7) _By Mavutvati_: -- Marutvat and Jayanta, otherwise called Upendra.
-
- (8) _By Muhurta_: -- The Muhurta Devas or Devas presiding over the
- moments.
-
- (9) _By Sankalpa_: -- Sankalpa (Desire).
-
- (10) _By Vasu_: The eight Vasus (Vedic-gods), _viz_
-
- (_a_) Drona = Abhimati
- |
- --+---------+---+-----
- | |
- Harsha (Joy) Soka (Sorrow) &c.
-
-
- (_b_) Prana = Urjasvati
- |
- --+---------------+-----+-----+---
- | | |
- Saha (strength) Ayus (age) Purojava.
-
-
- (_c_) Dhruva=Dharani
- |
- Different towns.
-
-
- (_d_) Arka = Vasana (tendency)
- |
- ---+-----+------+--
- | |
- Tarsha (desire) &c.
-
-
- (_e_) Agni (Fire) = Dhara
- |
- --+----------------------+--+------------+--
- | | |
- Skanda Dravinaka &c.
- (otherwise known as (Gold, wealth)
- Kartikeya, the son
- of Siva by Krittika)
- |
- Visakha &c.
-
- (_f_) Dosha = Sarvari (night)
- |
- Sisumara (Gangetic porpoise the symbol of Triloki).
-
-
- (_g_) Vastu (Dwelling place) = Angirasi
- |
- Visvakarma (The cosmic manufacturer)
- |
- Chakshusha Manu
- |
- --+------+---------+---
- | |
- The Visvadevas The Sadhyas.
-
-
- (_h_) Vibhavasu = Usha (Dawn)
- |
- --+--------------+--+--------------+--
- | | |
- Vyushta Rochisha Atapa.
- (Dawn) (Bright, shining) (Sun shine)
- |
- Panchayama
-
- (1 Yama = 1/3 part of day
- = 3 hours. There are
- 8 yamas in day and night.
- Pancha yama = 5 yamas
- when men do their work).
-
-[The 8 Vasus are sub-manifestations of Brahma or the creative Purusha.
-They are energies that help creation in various ways. They find no place
-in the Hindu worship now. They are invoked only in marriage ceremonies
-when their appropriateness is evident. The Vedic gods can be analysed
-thus:--:
-
- Purusha
- |
- --+------------------------+-----------------------+--
- | | |
- Creative or Brahma Preservative or Vishnu Destructive or Siva
- 8 Vasus. 12 Adityas. 11 Rudras.
-
-These are 31 gods. Then there are Prajapati and Indra, making the number
-33. The Brihat Aranyaka says that the 33 Krores of Devas are only sub
-rays of these primary 33].
-
-
-
-THE PROGENY OF BHUTA.
-
-
-_By Sarupa_: -- Millions of Rudras and the chief Pretas.
-
-
-
-THE PROGENY OF ANGIRASA.
-
-
- (1) _By Svadha_: -- Pitris (comet).
- (2) _By Sati_: -- The Veda known as Atharva-Angirasa.
-
-
-
-THE PROGENY OF KRISASVA.
-
-
- (1) _By Archis_: -- Dhuma ketu (comet).
- (2) _By Dhishana_: -- Vedasiras, Devala, Vayuna and Manu.
-
-
-
-THE PROGENY OF TARKSHA.
-
-
-(1) _By Vinata_: -- Garuda (the vehicle of Vishnu) and Aruna (the
-charioteer of the Sun.)
-
- (2) _By Patangi_: -- Birds.
- (3) _By Yamini_. -- Moths and locusts.
- (4) _By Kadru_: -- the serpents.
-
-_The Moon_: The Moon married the 27 stars. But he is consumptive (_i.e._
-he is consumed?). Therefore he has no progeny. (What is meant by the
-consumption of a planetary body like the Moon?)
-
-
-
-THE PROGENY OF KASYAPA
-
-
- (1) _By Timi_: -- Aquatic animals.
- (2) _By Sarama_: -- Wild beasts, such as Tigers.
- (3) _By Surabhi_. -- Cloven-footed animals.
- (4) _By Tamra_: -- The Vultures.
- (5) _By Muni_: -- The Apsarasas.
- (6) _By Krodhavasa_: -- Serpents such as Danda Suka and others.
- (7) _By Ila_: -- Plants.
- (8) _By Surama_: -- The Rakshasas.
- (9) _By Aristha_: -- The Gandharvas.
- (10) _By Kastha_: -- Beasts other than cloven-hoofed.
- (11) _By Danu_: -- 61 Danavas the chief of them being Dvi Murdha,
- Sambara, Aristha, Hayagriva, Vibhavasu, Ayomukha, Sanku Siras,
- Svarbhanu, Kapila, Putoma, Vrisha Prava, Eka-Chakra, Anutapana,
- Dhumra-Kesa, Virupaksha, Vipra-chitti and Durjaya.
-
-Namuchi married Suprabha, the daughter of Svar-bhanu.
-
-King Yayati married Sarmistha, the daughter of Vrisha-parvan.
-
-Vaisvanara was another son of Danu. He had four daughters. Upadanavi,
-Haya-siras, Puloma and Kalaka. Puloma and Kalaka had 60,000 valiant sons
-named Poulama and Kalakeya. Arjuna alone killed all of them in Svarga.
-Bipra Chitti had by his wife Sinhika 101 sons. The eldest of them is
-Rahu. The other hundred are Ketus. They all became planets.
-
- (12) _By Aditi_: -- The 12 Adityas -- Vivasvat, Aryaman, Pushan,
- Tvastri, Savitri, Bhaga, Dhatri, Vidhatri, Varuna, Mitra, Indra,
- and Vishnu. _Vivasvat_ had by his wife Sanjna two sons
- Sraddhadeva Manu and Yama (the death god), and one daughter the
- river Yamuna. This Sanjna became also a mare and produced the
- twin Asvini Kumaras. He had also by Chaya two sons Sanaischara
- (Saturn) and Savarni Manu and one daughter Tapati. Tapati had for
- her husband Sanvarana. Matrika is the wife of _Aryaman_. He had
- by her sons called Charshani. (For Charshani _vide Supra_.) The
- human race has been moulded after them by Brahma. Pushan is
- childless, and broken toothed. He partakes only of powdered food.
- This has been related in the story of Daksha. Rachana is the wife
- of _Tvastri_. She is the daughter of a Daitya. Prajapati Tvastri
- had by her one son Visvarupa. Though connected on the mother's
- side with the Asuras, Visvarupa was made a Purohita by the Devas,
- when Brihaspati (Jupiter) their former preceptor left them.
-
-*SKANDHA VI. CHAP. 18.*
-
-_Savitri_ had, by his wife Prisni, three daughters, Savitri (Gayatri),
-Vyahriti (Bhur, Bhuvar, Svar, Mahar &c.) and the Trayi; (Rik, Yajur, and
-Saman). His sons were Agnihotra, Pasu Yaga, Soma Yaga, Chaturmasya Yaga
-and the 5 Maha Yajnas.
-
-_Bhaga_ had, by his wife Siddhi, three sons Mahimart, Vibhu and Prabhu
-and one daughter Asis.
-
-_Dhatri_ had, by his wife Kuhu, one son Sayam (evening), by his wife
-Sinivau, Darsa (the new moon day), by his wife Raka, Pratar (morn) and
-by his wife Anumati, Purnamasa (full Moonday).
-
-_Vidhatri_ had, by his wife Kriya, five Agnis called Purishya. Charshani
-is the wife of _Varuna_. Bhrigu incarnated as his son. It is said that
-the great Rishi Valmika is also Varuna's son. Mitra and Varuna once felt
-love for Urvasi. Agastya and Vasishtha were then born of that Apsaras.
-
-_Mitra_ had, by Revati, Utsarga, Arishta and Pippala.
-
-_Indra_ had, by Paulomi, Jayanta, Rishabha and Midhusha.
-
-_Vishnu_, as son of Aditi, is known as the Vamana incarnation. He had by
-his wife Kirti one son Brihat Sloka (great fame). His sons were Sambhoga
-and others.
-
- (13) _By Diti_: Hiranyakasipu, Hiranyaksha and the Maruts.
-
-
-
-THE STORY OF VIVSVARUPA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA VI. CHAP. 7-8.*
-
-Indra surrounded by the Devas, was seated on the throne of _Triloki_. He
-felt the pride of his position. Brihaspati, the preceptor and guide of
-all Devas came, but Indra did not rise up to receive him. Thus insulted,
-Brihaspati left the place at once and abandoned the Devas. The Asuras
-took this opportunity to put down the Devas and carried on a severe
-struggle under the lead of Sukra. The Devas were worsted in the fight
-and they went to Brahma for redress. Brahma advised them to accept the
-guidance of Visvarupa, son of Tvastri. They gladly went to Visvarupa and
-he consented to be their preceptor. Visvarupa initiated Indra into the
-mysteries of Narayana Kabacha (an invocation to Vishnu which preserves
-one against all danger. The invocation must be read in the original, so
-no attempt has been made to render it into English). With the help of
-that Kabacha, Indra easily conquered the Asuras and firmly established
-once more the Kingdom of Triloki.
-
-Visvarupa had three mouths. With one he used to drink Soma, with another
-he used to drink wine and with the third he used to take his food. While
-performing Yajna, he openly gave oblations to the Devas, but secretly
-reserved some for his mother's relations the Asuras. Indra once found
-out this treachery. He became angry and cut off the three heads of
-Visvarupa. The Soma drinking head became Chataka (the Swallow, supposed
-to live only on rain drops). The liquor imbibing head became Chataka
-(the Sparrow). The food eating head became Tittiri (the francoline
-partridge). The sin of killing a Brahmana attached to Indra. He divided
-it into equal parts and distributed them between earth, water, trees and
-woman. Earth accepted her part on receiving the boon that her cavities
-would be filled up by nature. But the sin manifests itself in the barren
-lands. The trees took their part in return for the boon that the wounds
-on their cuticle should naturally heal up of themselves. But the sin
-shows itself in the exudation. Water was persuaded by the boon that it
-could mix with any other substance. But the sin shows itself in bubbles
-and foam.
-
-
-
-THE STORY OF VRITRU.
-
-
-*SKANDHA VI. CHAP. 9-13.*
-
-Tvastri became enraged at the death of his son. He gave offerings to
-Agni for the destruction of Indra. A huge and fearful Asura rose out of
-the sacrificial fire. The Devas threw their weapons at him, but he
-swallowed them all. Wonderstruck they prayed to Vishnu for help. Vishnu
-asked them to go to Dadhichi and pray for his body and assured them that
-the weapon made of his bones by Visvakarma would cut off the head of
-Vritra. The Devas went to Dadhichi and got his body. Visvakarma made the
-thunderbolt instrument (Vajra) out of his bones. Indra went with this
-instrument at the head of the Devas to fight with Vritra. _The fight
-took place at the commencement of Treta Yuga in the first Yuga cycle of
-Vaivasvata Manvantara,_ on the banks of the Narmada. After a severe
-fight, the chances shewed themselves favourable to the Devas. The Daitya
-and Danava chiefs began to shew their backs to the enemies. "What is
-this my companions?" exclaimed Vritra, "Is not death inevitable? And
-what death is more enviable than that with honor and glory? There are
-two modes of death, rare though they be, that are given the palm in all
-religious books -- one is by control of the Pranas by means of Yoga and
-the other is by facing enemies foremost of all, in the battle field."
-
-But the Asuras heeded him not. The Devas ran after them. "O ye cowards?"
-exclaimed Vritra, "What glory do you gain by running after those that
-fly away. Come and approach those that are in the field." So saying he
-attacked Indra. Indra in anger threw a large club at him. Vritra easily
-took it up with his left hand. He struck it with force on the head of
-Airavata, the elephant of Indra. The elephant receded 28 cubits and
-vomitted blood, The magnanimous Vritra seeing the distress of the animal
-did not strike it again. Indra softly touched the injured animal, trying
-to give it relief and he took respite for some time. Vritra remembered
-the wicked deeds of Indra and addressed him thus "O thou assassinator of
-a Brahmana! Thou didst kill thy own Guru, my brother Visvarupa. Thou
-didst raise faith and trust in my brother's mind and still thou didst
-kill that innocent, wise Brahmana, your own Guru, having been initiated
-by him in Yajna. Your karma makes you worse than even Rakshasas. It is
-meet that I shall kill thee with this Trident and make over thy body as
-food for vultures. And if thou, O Indra, cuttest off my head, I shall be
-free from the bond of Karma, by offering my body as Bali (sacrificial
-food) to the animals. Here I stand before thee. Why dost thou not strike
-with the Vajra. Thou hast been favoured by Vishnu and by Dadhichi.
-Victory and all the virtues always follow Vishnu. I will do as advised
-by my deity Sankarshana and attain after death the state of Yogins by
-sacrificing this body. O Bhagavat, may I ever and ever remain in the
-Service of thy votaries. This I deem a thousand times more desirable
-than the attainment of the Supreme Abode, or of Siddhis or of Mukti."
-
-Vritra then took the trident in hand and attacked Indra -- Indra then
-had recourse to Vajra and he easily cut off both the trident and one
-hand of Vritra. Vritra took a club in the other hand and struck both
-Indra and the elephant. The Vajra slipped out of the hands of Indra and
-he felt ashamed to pick it up in the presence of his enemy. "Pick it up,
-O King of Devas, and kill your enemy. This is no time for shame or
-sorrow. It is not you or I that are the real actors. Bhagavan is guiding
-us all. He guides the whole Universe. Look at me. I have been worsted,
-hand and weapon gone, still I am trying my best to kill you. This our
-fight is but like the game of dice in which the life of one of us is the
-stake."
-
-Indra could not help wondering at the wisdom and magnanimity of Vritra.
-He exclaimed "O king of Danavas! thou hast got over the Maya of Vishnu.
-The Asura nature has altogether- left thee and thou art fixed in
-devotion to Vishnu. Verily thou art a Mahatma now."
-
-They again engaged in fight. This time Indra cut off both the club and
-the other hand with the help of Vajra -- Vritra then opened his mouth
-and swallowed Indra. There was loud wailing and lamentation all round.
-But Indra broke through the interior of Vritra with the help of Vajra,
-and he then forcibly applied the bolt to cut off the head of Vritra. The
-bolt though actively employed could only sever the head of the Asura
-King in 360 days. The flame of self from Vritra's body merged in
-Shankarshana in the presence of the Devas.
-
-The sin of killing a Brahmana a second time followed Indra in the form
-of a hideous old outcaste woman. He fled away into the Manasa lake and
-entered the filament of a lotus stalk. He remained there concealed for
-one thousand years. King Nahusha reigned in Svarga during that time. But
-as he became maddened in pride, Sachi the wife of Indra made him a
-serpent. The Brahmanas then called back Indra to Svarga, and he reigned
-there again.
-
-
-
-THE STORY OF CHITRAKETU.
-
-
-*SKANDHA VI. CHAP. 14-17.*
-
-Chitraketu, the King of Surasena had ten millions of wives, but he had
-no son. Rishi Angiras once came to him. The King expressed regret for
-his childlessness. Angiras performed a Yajna in honor of Tvastri, and
-gave the sacrificial remnants to the eldest wife. "You shall have a son,
-O King!" said Angiras. "But he will give you joy and sorrow both." In
-time the eldest Queen bore a son. Her co-wives grew jealous and poisoned
-the child. Chitraketu was deeply moved, and he wept profusely. At the
-time Narada and Angiras came to him. They taught him the worship of
-Shankarshana. Chitraketu became fixed in the meditation of this second
-manifestation of Chaturvyuha, and this made him very powerful. He became
-the King of the Vidyadharas.
-
-Once Chitraketu was roaming over the firmament on the chariot given him
-by Vishnu, when he saw Siva surrounded by his attendants openly
-embracing His consort Bhavani. Chitraketu made some taunting remarks in
-the hearing of all. Siva simply smiled, and so did His attendants. But
-Bhavani cursed Chitraketu with an Asura birth. Chitaketu accepted the
-curse with an unruffled mind, saying it was the way of all beings to
-meet with things pleasant and unpleasant in this perishable world, and
-he only asked Bhavani to pardon him, if he had offended her. "Look how
-bold the followers of Vishnu are!" exclaimed Siva, "They fear no body in
-this world. I am also a follower of Vishnu. So I took no offence at the
-words of the King Vidyadhara."
-
-Chitraketu became Vritra by this curse, but his magnanimity and devotion
-to Vishnu were not lost.
-
-
-
-THE DAITYAS.
-
-
-*SKANDHA VI. CHAP. 18.*
-
- KASYAPA = Diti.
- |
- ---+-----------------+----------------+--
- | | |
- Hiranyakasipu Hiranyaksha 49 Maruts.
- = Kayadhu = Bhanu
- |
- ---+-------------+---------+-------------+---------+---
- | | | | |
- Sanhrada Anuhrada Hrada Prahlada Sinhika
- = Mati = Surya. = Dhamanti = Drarvi. = Viprachit
- | | | | |
- Panchajana +----+---+ +-+----+ | Rahu.
- | | | | |
- Vashkala. Mahisha. Vatapi Ilvala |
- |
- Virochana.
- Bali
- = Asana
- |
- --+----+------+--
- | |
- Bana 99 sons.
-
-
-
-THE MARUTS.
-
-
-*SKANDHA VI. CHAP. 18-19.*
-
-Diti was very much grieved by the loss of her sons, caused by Indra. She
-ardently wished to have a son who could kill Indra. With this object,
-she served Kasyapa with all her heart and pleased him much. Kasyapa
-offered to give her any boon, and she prayed for an immortal son that
-would kill Indra. Sorely perplexed in mind, the Rishi thought within
-himself of a device. He said "I grant you the boon, but you shall have
-to observe Punsavana Vrata for one full year." This is a Vaisnava Vrata,
-the performance of which requires absolute purity of body and mind.
-Kasyapa related the details to his wife, (for which refer to the
-original). His object was to give an immortal son to Diti and to purify
-her mind by this Vrata, so that she might cast, off all enmity against
-Indra. He also thought it possible that his wife might not observe the
-strict rules for such a long time. Diti however accepted the conditions,
-and she bore a son. Indra became very much frightened, and he closely
-watched his step mother to discover a breach of the rules. He followed
-and served Diti always and tried to please her. One day Diti became very
-much tired, and she fell asleep after eating before she could wash her
-hands, mouth and feet. Finding this opportunity, Indra, by his Yogic
-powers entered the womb and split the child into 7 parts. The Maruts
-wept and requested their half-brother not to kill them. Indra consoled
-them saying that they need have no fear from him, and he would make them
-his companions. He then split each of the seven into as many parts
-again. By the favour of Vishnu, the Maruts were not destroyed, but came
-out all alive from the womb of Diti. It was a little short of one year
-still. Indra made them drinkers of Soma and his chief companions. Diti
-woke up, and she was astonished to find 49 sons by her. "Tell me Indra
-if thou knowest" said she, "how is it I have these 49 sons instead of
-one. Pray do not conceal any thing." Indra gave the whole story to Diti
-and expressed great repentance. He assured Diti that the Maruts would be
-his best companions. Diti's mind had been purified, and she allowed her
-sons to become Devas. Thus the Maruts, though born as Daityas, became
-immortal Devas. (Marut Vayu air. Vayu corresponds to the sense of touch
-and to vital energy).
-
-
-
-
-SKANDHA VII.
-
-
-
-THE MYSTERIES ABOUT THE SURAS AND THE ASURAS.
-
-
-*SKANDHA VII. CHAP. 7-1.*
-
-Raja Parikshit said: -- "To Bhagavan, all beings are equal, and He is
-the dear friend of all. Why did he kill the Daityas for the sake of
-Indra, as if He was not above partiality. Supreme Bliss Himself, He had
-nothing to gain from the Devas. Being above the control of the Gunas, He
-had no fear from the Asuras, and he did not bear any unfriendly feeling
-for them. We are in doubt as to the virtues of Narayana. Please clear up
-the doubt."
-
-Suka replied: -- Void of Gunas, without beginning, without
-manifestation, beyond Prakriti, Bhagavan pervades and permeates the
-Gunas of His Maya. Hence His seeming relations. Satva, Rajas and Tamas
-are not His Gunas, but they are the Gunas of Prakriti. These attributes
-or tendencies of Prakriti do not all prevail at one and the same period;
-but they have got their periods of increase and decrease. (That is,
-since the beginning of the universe, the general tendency which guides
-all beings is different at different times. Thus at the very outset
-there was inertia, Tamas. This inertia was got over by Rajas, which
-predominated in the Prajapatis, and the life-forms appeared on the
-globes. There was Tamas again in the mineral kingdom, which had to be
-conquered by Rajasic activity. And Rajas was in full swing till humanity
-reached a certain stage. Then Satva manifested itself for the evolution
-of men. The spiritual regeneration will be brought about by the ever
-increasing prevalence of Satva).
-
-When Satva prevails, Bhagavan favours the Devas and Rishis. When Rajas
-prevails, He favours the Asuras. When Tamas prevails, He favors the
-Yakshas and Rakshasas. He follows in fact the periodic tendency.
-
-It is Kala (Periodicity) that now brings up Satva. So the Lord seems to
-favour the hosts of Devas, in whom Satva prevails. He also seems to put
-down the hosts of Asuras, who are opposed to the Devas being full of
-Rajas and Tamas.
-
-It is also to favour the Asuras that He kills them. For we have seen
-above, how the gate-keepers of Vishnu became Hiranyaksha and
-Hiranyakasipu by the curse of the Kumara brothers. They had to become
-Asuras for three successive births. In the second birth, they became
-Ravana and Kumbhakarna, when they were killed by Rama. In their last
-birth, they became Shishupala and Danta-vakra, when they were killed by
-Sri Krishna. Then they became finally liberated and restored to their
-place in Vaikuntha.
-
-(The Spiritual ascent commenced finally on the appearance of Sri
-Krishna. It was to prevail for the remaining life period of the
-universe. The Asuras had done their work by this time, and therefore
-they finally returned to Vaikuntha).
-
-
-
-THOUGHTS ON THE ABOVE.
-
-
-The Daityas and the Danavas are both called Asuras. But there is a
-radical difference between the two classes.
-
-The Daityas are opposed to the A-dityas. The root verb _da_ means to cut
-to pieces, to separate. _Diti_ is that which separates. _Aditi_ is that
-which does not separate. Jivatma is the same in all beings. One life
-principle animates all the forms of creation. The idea of separateness
-did not exist from before. The elementals that began life in this Kalpa
-from the spiritual plane, have hardly any idea of separate existence.
-The Devas and Pitris are described as classes (_ganas_), and not as
-individuals. In the Mineral Kingdom, again, there is no individual
-existence. Individuality has to be worked out, and the sons of Diti
-bring about this great work in the evolution of life forms.
-
-When we have the sense of separate existence strong in us, we become
-capable of further evolution. By our individual experiences, we know
-what is right and what is wrong, what is pleasurable and what is
-painful. Things that give joy give pain as well. It is the measure of
-pleasure or pain that teaches us what to covet and what to shun. Then we
-have the fact that by our very existence we have duties to perform. The
-teachings of other ages that are revealed to the Rishis and proclaimed
-by them, give us a better idea of things, and they tell us more than we
-can know of by our own experience. The Asuras lead us on and on, till we
-reach the highest point that, with a sense of individuality, we may
-attain.
-
-When the individual soul gathers all experience that may be acquired by
-the idea of separateness, it traces back its way to that spiritual home
-whence it came. In the return journey, it is helped by the Adityas, who
-gradually efface the idea of separateness, by an ever increasing
-infusion of Satva: Vishnu himself became Aditya and taught men the unity
-of all souls.
-
-The Adityas who guided the early elementals had to be crushed, so that
-separateness might grow. Pushan and Bhaga were therefore overpowered by
-the attendants of Siva at the sacrifice of Daksha.
-
-The Adityas who guide humanity in their return to spirituality are
-themselves high spiritual energies, the highest Devas of our Triloki.
-
-Our evolution is thus two-fold -- individual and non-individual. When we
-work as individuals, we are under the influence of Daityas. When we want
-to cast off separateness, we are under the influence of the Adityas.
-
-In both cases, however, it is the bliss element in us that is worked on
-by the Daityas and A-dityas. This bliss element is our eternal heritage
-from Ishvara, and it is this element that saves us in our contact with
-manifold matter. The measure of bliss, (_ananda_), enables us to judge
-what matter to accept and what not.
-
-Individuality developed under Hiranyakasipu, and all sorts of blissful
-experiences were acquired. The sons of Hiranyakasipu were all called
-Bliss (Hrada), but the perfection of Bliss (Pra-Hrada) was in Prahlada,
-He found out that the worldly joys were unreal, and that the real joy
-could be had only from Him above, who was joy itself.
-
-But Prahlada did not realise that there was one life underlying all
-beings, and that all beings were essentially one and the same. He was
-separate in his devotion, though unselfish to the extreme. He knew that
-men had separate existences, and while he attained perfection, others
-did not. It was therefore his duty to raise others to his level. With
-all unselfishness and devotion, Prahlada was an Asura, because he worked
-from the stand point of individual life. The foster-father of Sri
-Krishna was Nanda, the word meaning also bliss. But the bliss of Gopas
-and Gopis consisted in forgetting self altogether. The bliss that was
-then evolved will draw humanity to the highest level of spirituality in
-our Kalpa.
-
-The reign of the Daityas may be divided into three periods: --
-
- I. -- The period of Hiranyaksha and Hiranyakasipu.
- II. -- The period of Ravana and Kumbhakarna.
- III. -- The period of Shishupala and Dantavakra.
-
-
-I. _Hiranyaksha and Hiranyakasipu._
-
-
-Jaya and Vijaya are the outer aspects of Vishnu. Vishnu preserves the
-universe, and He preserves all beings. Existence, consciousness and
-bliss all proceed from Vishnu, and it is these essential attributes that
-bring about the involution and evolution of all beings. In minerals,
-there is existence, but it is Tamasic. Consciousness and bliss are
-completely eclipsed by the Tamasic opacity of gross matter.
-
-In the vegetables, there is existence and something more -- the bare
-dawning of perceptive consciousness. There is predominating Tamas in the
-vegetables also. But Rajas also tries to manifest itself.
-
-In the animals, Rajas asserts itself by increasing activity, and by the
-action of the senses. The animals exist, they are conscious and they
-have blissful experiences.
-
-In men, Rajas plays the most important part. Through the ever increasing
-activities of mind and the development of consciousness, man runs after
-all sorts of experience, pleasurable and painful, till at last the idea
-of lasting and real bliss settles down in him, and he knows more of
-bliss than any other being in the universe. The future evolution of man
-lies in the permanence of spiritual bliss, which is purely Satvic in its
-character.
-
-Vishnu preserves all beings in their Tamasic, Rajasic and Satvic stages.
-For preservation means the maintenance as well as the improvement of
-beings. Therefore preservation is Satvic, and Vishnu is the Preserver.
-We live and move onwards in all stages of our being. But in Rajasic and
-Tamasic stages, it is the attendants of Vishnu, the door-keepers, that
-preserve us, and the Daityas are the lower manifestations of Jaya and
-Vijaya. One is Tamasic and the other Rajasic.
-
-Hiranyaksha is Tamasic. He represents the original inertia of matter,
-its primary resistance to the onward process of evolution. There was
-existence after Pralayic sleep But it was homogeneous existence, with
-little or no phenomenal change. Varaha got over this homogeneal tenacity
-by the killing of Hiranyaksha, and he set going the process of planetary
-and individual life.
-
-Hiranyakasipu came next. He was the favoured son of Brahma. He helped
-the evolution of individual life. Minerals became vegetables. Vegetables
-became animals, and animals became men. The intellectual power of men
-rapidly increased, and there was material and moral progress. The limit
-of moral progress was reached by Prahlada. But the ideal of Prahlada was
-based upon the conception of differences and of individualities. It is
-for this reason that Varna and Ashrama Dharma, or the separate duties of
-life for separate classes of men, is dealt with in the discourses with
-Prahlada.
-
-But though Prahlada was a son of Hiranyakasipu, he was an exception to
-the general run of material evolution which was fostered by
-Hiranyakasipu. Hiranyakasipu hated the development of Satvic virtues, he
-hated Hari, the embodiment of Satva. Nrisinha killed the great Daitya,
-and Satva made its appearance in men.
-
-Hiranya means gold.
-
-Hiranyaksha is gold-eyed.
-
-Hiranyakasipu is gold bedded.
-
-
-II. _Ravana and Kumbhakarna._
-
-
-Hiranyakasipu represented the gradual development of material and
-intellectual evolution, till the highest point was reached.
-
-Then there was a period of intellectual abuse. The Intellect of man
-tried to get a supremacy over the established order of things: Ravana
-sought to make Nature subservient to his own purposes. The universe
-existed for man, and not man for nature. This was the perverse idea that
-guided the people of the Atlantean Continent. The intellectual giants,
-maddened by this material grandeur, did not look for any world beyond
-the one they lived in. They cared not for Svarga, nor for the sacrifices
-that led to Svarga. The flow of evolution, the breath of Ishvara seemed
-to stand still for a time as it were. The human will tried to override
-the divine will. There was chaos and disorder, which tended to cause
-dissolution in the universe. Hence Ravana was a Rakshasa. The Tamasic
-Kumbhakarna with his six-monthly sleep was the back ground of Ravana.
-
-The spiritual forces that were called forth to put an end to this state
-of things were equal to the occasion. The great Atlantean Continent was
-washed away by the sea. The sacred Ganga came rushing forward from the
-heights of the Himalayas, and eventually Rama appeared to give a
-finishing stroke to the evolutionary work of the time.
-
-Vishvamitra and others had paved the way for the great work undertaken
-by Rama. They propounded the Karma Kanda of the Vedas.
-
-Men who knew nothing but the joys and sorrows of this short span of
-earthly life, and whose ideas and aspirations were all confined to that
-life, made a great advance when they were taught of an existence after
-death. When they further knew that life in Svarga was infinitely happier
-and far more lasting than what they called life on this earth, they made
-the beginning of a really spiritual life. The Vedic Devas are permanent
-dwellers in Svarga, and the Vedic Sacrifices establish communion with
-them by means of Apurva, a spiritual force generated by the performance
-of sacrifices, and life in Svarga becomes prolonged for a very very long
-period. People took time to understand this truth, but in time they
-accepted the performance of Vedic Sacrifices as the only religion for
-man.
-
-There was however a re-action. The intellectual giants, called
-Rakshasas, looked down upon Vedic Sacrifices, and they did not care for
-any life after death. They were the worst enemies of the Vedic Rishis.
-
-Vishvamitra took the help of Rama in protecting the Rishis in the
-peaceful performance of Yajnas.
-
-But people had grown old in their ideas about Vedic sacrifices. The
-first seceders were some Kshatriyas. They did not understand why Vedic
-Sacrifices should be the monopoly of Brahmanas, and they aspired to the
-position acquired by them. The foremost of these Kshatriyas were the
-Haihayas and Talajanghas. But they were defeated by Parashurama, who
-re-established the supremacy of the Brahmanas.
-
-But a silent revolution was going on, in which the Kshatriyas and
-Brahmanas equally took part. King Janaka and Rishi Yajnavalkya gave the
-finishing stroke to the Upanishad movement, and side by side with Karma
-Kanda grew up the Jnana Kanda of the Vedas. Rama brought the two
-divisions of the Vedas into closer union, as he was himself the resting
-place of both. And as Vishnu himself, He became the object of Upasana.
-The three Paths appeared, that of Karma, Bhakti and Jnana. Vedic
-Sacrifices held their own, and a school grew up which accepted these as
-the highest Karma which man could perform. Another school, following the
-very old teachings of Kapila, dissected the transformable parts in man
-and discriminated the same from the non-transformable. A sister school
-followed up the teaching with practices in conformity to these, and
-taught how to concentrate the mind on the discriminated Atma. Another
-school confined itself to the properties of matter and mind, soul and
-oversoul, and remained wonder-struck at the superior properties that
-divided Jiva from Ishvara. Schools of independent thought grew up. Each
-school had its followers. There were differences and dissensions. There
-was disunion, self-sufficiency, pride, envy, jealousy and other evil
-traits of human character that thinks too much of itself. Every one
-followed his own faith and hated the follower of other faiths. This was
-the cycle of Shishupala and Dantavakta.
-
-Jarasandha performed Vedic sacrifices, and he put in chains the
-Vaishnava kings. There were those who believed in the existence of two
-primary causes, (_Dvivid_). Men, like the king of Kashi, prided
-themselves on mock wisdom. Religious faiths existed in all possible
-shades, and their difference was accentuated by dogmatism and mutual
-jealousy. "The Vedas are different, the Smritis are different. He is not
-a Muni, who has not some distinctive opinion of his own." This well
-known verse related strictly to the period of which we are now speaking.
-Shishupala had respect for the Munis. He was essentially a man of the
-period.
-
-Sri Krishna taught harmony. He gave the essence of all religions, the
-eternal truths that formed the ground work of all faiths. He proclaimed
-in the clearest language possible the One underlying the Many, the
-eternal Brahman as forming the essence of Jiva and Ishvara. He
-particularly emphasised the relations of man, Ishvara and the universe,
-and the duties that followed from these relations. Religion became a
-science, the law universal, and all teachings found there respective
-places in the universal religion which He proclaimed. The Rishis bowed
-down their heads before Him. The Upanishads were never explained so
-lucidly before. The key-note of all truths and all religions was
-unravelled beyond all doubt. Such knowledge could proceed only from
-Ishvara Himself. The Rishis recognised Sri Krishna as the Lord. But
-Shishupala was slow to believe in this novel revolution. He did not
-understand why the Rishis gave the first place to Sri Krishna at the
-Rajasuya sacrifice performed by Raja Yudhisthira. The difference formed
-a religion with Shishupala. But the age of differences was doomed. The
-age of unity, of harmony, of spiritual glory was now to reign in the
-Universe. Hundreds and hundreds of years have passed away, but the
-scriptures one and all proclaim the glory of the Lord Sri Krishna. What
-He has done for our universe, we shall see later on.
-
-Danta-vakra was the Tamasic counterpart of Shishupala.
-
-The Asuras advanced as the Kalpic age advanced. There was no end of
-advancement from the standpoint of self. There is no big jump from
-individual self to universal self. Though the essential idea of
-spirituality is unity and the essential idea of materiality is
-diversity, the one idea develops into the other idea, by an ever
-widening view of things. Our duties enlarge. Our relations increase. The
-range of life widens, till it includes the life in Svarga. Vedic Yajna
-is then performed, though from a pure motive of self-advancement. The
-advanced self comes very near to the universal self. The performance of
-Vedic sacrifices is Asuric in so far as it is selfish, but it minimises
-the self of earthly existence, and gives a transitory character to our
-worldly joys and sufferings, and it gives the idea of an enlarged self,
-of widened existence and of higher duties. The Karma Kanda of the Vedas
-therefore opens the door widely to real spiritual life.
-
-This explains why Vishvarupa, an Asura, guided the Devas for some time.
-The three heads of Vishvarupa represent the three Vedas. The swallow
-head is the Rik, the sparrow head is the Saman, and the Tittiri head is
-proverbially the Yajur. This refers to the prevalence of Karma Kanda.
-But when better times came, Indra killed Vishva-rupa. The place of
-Vishva-rupa was however speedily taken, up by Vritra. And Indra had
-recourse to Atharva, the fourth Veda and to Dadhichi, a votary
-(represented as the son) of Atharva Veda, the very ideal of
-self-sacrifice.
-
-And who is this Vritra? The Vedas say: -- _"Sa iman lokan Avrinot etat
-Vritrasya Vritratvam."_
-
-He spread over (_vri_) all these Lokas, this is the Vritraship of
-Vritra.
-
-The Bhagavata says: -- "These Lokas are spread over by him in the form
-of Tvashtri's Tapas. Hence he is called Vritra." VI. -- 9-xviii.
-
-The invocation of Tvashtri is thus described in the Bhagavata: -- "Rise
-up, O Indra -- Shatru, never give up enmity." VI -- 9-xii.
-
-The word _shatru_ means enemy. Tvastri meant to say "he who is to become
-the enemy of Indra." But by proper grammatical construction, the
-expression means, he of whom Indra is to become the enemy. The
-invocation was therefore defective and it produced a contrary result.
-Panini points this out as an apt illustration of what bad grammar leads
-to.
-
-The Vedas thus speak of the invocation: -- "As he said-_Svaha_! O
-Indra-Shatru! rise up -- so Indra became the enemy of Vritra."
-Notwithstanding his wisdom, Chitra-ketu was anxious to have a son. He
-wept bitterly, when the son was lost. He was a votary of Sankarshana,
-who presides over Ahankara or Egoism. So by devotion he became the king
-of the Vidyadharas. This selfish devotion, the worship of Gods for the
-gratification of selfish aspiration, which is so universal, is Vritra.
-
-Vritra was killed by a weapon made of the bones of Dadhichi the Rishi of
-self-sacrifice. We want to kill thee for thy bones, for they will be of
-service to the universe, so said the Devas. And Dadhichi felt the height
-of pleasure in giving himself completely up, that the universe might
-prosper.
-
-We are told that the fight with Vritra took place in the Vaivasvata
-Manvantara. The readers will easily understand why this is so.
-
-The fight between the Devas and the Asuras is only a counterpart of
-struggles on our earth between the forces of materiality and
-spirituality. With the appearance of Lord Krishna, the ascendancy of the
-Asuras is virtually over, and however self-seeking we may be by our
-nature, we bow down before the ideal of unselfishness, of One Life
-pervading all beings, so prominently held before us by that greatest of
-all Avataras, and the circle of those that follow this ideal is daily
-increasing.
-
-But why is Atharva Veda spoken of as the Veda of unselfishness? The
-popular idea about that Veda is quite the contrary.
-
-People resort to it for Tantric malpractices. The Vajra or thunderbolt
-is an electric current, which in the hands of Indra has the power of
-spiritualisation. The Asuras dread the subtle forces of nature which
-reach them even in the regions of Patala. Who knows what purpose the
-electric discharges serve in the economy of nature? Who knows of the
-subtler currents of spiritual forces that silently bring about the
-grandest revolutions in nature? Atharva Veda inculcates an intimate
-acquaintance with the subtle forces of nature. It opens the door alike
-to White as well as Black Magic. But at the present day, the Black Magic
-only survives, making the Atharva a name of opprobrium and reproach.
-
-Marut is Vayu. The Maruts are forms of Pranic energy. They are 49 in
-number, corresponding to the 49 forms of Agni. These 49 forms include
-all sorts of Pranic energy in the spiritual, intellectual and material
-planes. As the whole process of evolution is dependent on life
-activities, and as life itself is essentially divine, the Maruts are the
-companions of Indra. As by life, we understand individual life as
-imprisoned in Jivic centres, the Maruts are by birth Daityas.
-
-We have lingered so long over the Daityas. The Danavas are also called
-Asuras, but they are essentially different from the Daityas. Every
-individual has got two aspects -- Prakritic and Purushic. The Purusha
-aspect in him is limited by the individual Prakriti. The individual
-limitation appertains to the Daityas. The Prakritic element in man is
-Danavic. The chief Danava, Maya, is an aspect of Maya. Maya is a great
-magician, as the essence of Prakriti is illusion. Duryodhana and his
-brothers could not discriminate between the illusory aspect of the
-assembly-ground prepared by Maya. To the Pandavas, the followers of Sri
-Krishna, there was no illusion. The Danavas lead men away from
-spirituality, so much so that they may be estranged completely from
-their spiritual nature. These dark forces in nature have no redeeming
-feature in them. Fortunately for the history of the universe, we do not
-hear much of them.
-
-
-
-THE STORY OF HIRANYAKASIPU.
-
-
-*SKANDHA VII. CHAP. 2-4.*
-
-Upon the death of Hiranyaksha, Hiranyakasipu collected his companions
-and told them that Vishnu was no longer keeping that neutrality and
-impartiality which he had observed of yore. On the contrary, he had
-taken the side of the Devas, under the pretence of Upasana.
-
-He then consoled his nephew and his brother's wife by words of wisdom
-explaining to them the transitory character of the world and the
-permanence of Atma. He also told them several stories to illustrate the
-point.
-
-Hiranyakasipu vowed enmity to Vishnu. He prayed hard for immortality and
-supremacy over the Triloki. Brahma became pleased with his asceticism
-and enquired what boon he wanted. Said Hiranyakasipu: -- "Let me have no
-death from any one created by Thee. Let not those that are not created
-by Thee kill me inside or outside, by day or by night, with any weapon,
-either on the earth or in the air. Let no man or animal, with or without
-life (asu) Deva, Daitya or serpent kill me. As thou art without a rival
-in battle, the one glorious lord of all beings and all Lokapalas, so let
-me be too. Let me possess all the Siddhis, (Anima &c.)" Brahma said,
-Amen.
-
-Hiranyakasipu then ruled the Universe. He took the place of Indra. All
-the Devas worshipped him.
-
-Brahmanas and other Grihasthas performed Yajna in his honor and gave
-offerings to him. The earth yielded plenty even without much effort.
-There was prosperity all around. The Shastras were however not duly
-respected. (All this is a description of the material period, the reign
-of Materiality). A long, long time passed on in this way. At last the
-Lokapalas could bear it no longer. They prayed to Vishnu for relief. The
-Devas heard a voice from heaven "Wait ye all. The time has not yet come
-for the fall of Hiranyakasipu. He shall be the enemy of his own son. I
-kill him then." -- Assured by these words, the Devas went to their own
-place.
-
-
-
-HIRANYAKASIPU AND PRAHLADA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA VII. CHAP. 4-9.*
-
-Hiranyakasipu had 4 sons. Of these Prahlada was great in his virtues. He
-was respectful, well-behaved, truthful, self-controlled, friendly to all
-beings, and great in his devotion. Even in his infancy, he gave up play
-and constantly meditated on Vasudeva. The things of the world had no
-relish for him. In the exuberance of devotional feelings, he sometimes
-laughed, sometimes wept, sometimes sang and sometimes danced. At times
-when the feelings were profound, he remained quiet with hair standing on
-end while tears flowed down his cheeks.
-
-Shanda and Amarka, sons of Shukra, had charge of the education of
-Prahlada. He heard and learned whatever they had to say, but he inwardly
-did not like the teachings about mine and thine and about the transitory
-things of the world.
-
-Once Hiranyakasipu placed Prahlada on his lap and asked him -- "What do
-you consider to be righteous (_Sadhu_)?"
-
-Prahlada replied: -- "Human souls enshrined in bodies are always
-distracted on account of false perceptions. O great Asura, I therefore
-consider it righteous to leave the house, which like a dark well causes
-the downfall of Atma, in order to go to the forest and take the shelter
-of Vishnu."
-
-Hiranyakasipu smiled and said: -- "It is thus that boys are spoiled by
-others. Take him back to the house of his teachers and let them see that
-Vaishnavas in disguise may not confound his Buddhi."
-
-The teachers brought him to their house and asked him in gentle and
-sweet words: -- "Child, do not conceal any thing from us. We are your
-teachers. Tell us whether this perversity is spontaneous in you or
-whether it is acquired from others." Said Prahlada: -- "I and others,
-this is mere false perception caused by the Maya of Bhagavan. So
-salutations to Him. When Bhagavan becomes kind, it is then only that the
-difference-making perception of men disappears. As the iron moves of
-itself in the presence of a magnet, so the distraction in my Budhi, if
-you like to call it so, rises of itself in the presence of Vishnu."
-
-"Get the cane," said one of the teachers, "This wicked boy will put us
-all to shame. He is a disgrace to his family. It is but meet to punish
-him. The Daityas are sandal trees and this boy is a thorn plant amongst
-them. Vishnu is the one for the extirpation of the sandal forest, and
-this boy is his handle."
-
-They threatened Prahlada in various ways and taught him Dharma, Artha
-and Kama, and the different devices to subdue one's enemies. At last
-they thought Prahlada had been well trained. So they took him to the
-king.
-
-The king embraced the child and said "Prahlada, my boy, you have been so
-long with your teachers. Tell me what you have learned, as the best of
-all."
-
-Prahlada replied: -- "Hearing of Vishnu, recital of His glory, constant
-remembrance of Him, attendance on Hari, His worship, adoration, service,
-and friendship, and offering oneself entirely to Him this is ninefold
-Bhakti. This Bhakti is to be offered to Vishnu and acted upon. This I
-deem to be the best teaching."
-
-Hiranyakasipu reproved the teachers in anger. They told him, it was
-neither from themselves nor from any one else that Prahlada had these
-teachings, but that they were spontaneous with him. The Asura king then
-addressing his son said: -- "If you have not learned these things from
-your teachings, whence could you have such a vicious inclination."
-
-Prahlada replied: -- "Inclination for Vishnu does not come to the
-Grihastha either from himself or from any other. One blind man cannot
-lead another. It is the company of Mahatmas alone that can give such an
-inclination."
-
-Hiranyakasipu could bear it no longer. He threw down the child from his
-embrace, and asked the Asuras to kill him at once or expel him. They
-cried out "kill him, kill him," and struck the five year old child with
-their spears. But Prahlada was deeply concentrated in Bhagavan, so he
-felt not the spears at all. This put Hiranyakasipu in fear, and he
-devised means to kill the boy.
-
-He tried big elephants, venomous serpents, Tantric practices, throwing
-down the child from the hills, enclosing him in cavities, poisoning,
-starvation, cold, air, fire, water, but failed to kill his innocent son.
-He then thought his end was near at hand and became melancholy. Shanda
-and Amarka told him not to entertain fears, but to wait till Shukra
-came. The king asked them to take charge of the boy once more. They
-again commenced to teach him their sciences. One day the teachers left
-the house on business. The boys were all engaged in play, and they
-invited Prahlada into their midst. Prahlada took the opportunity to
-instruct the boys. He explained to them in eloquent terms the
-transitoriness of all joys and sorrows and the vanity of all worldly
-attachments. He taught them the imperishable character of Atma, and
-dilated on its relation to the body and the universe. He then preached
-in glowing words friendliness to all beings and devotion to Bhagavan. He
-then told the boys that he had learned these things himself from Narada.
-
-The boys expressed wonder, for they knew Prahlada to have been always
-under the tuition of Shanda and Amarka.
-
-Prahlada informed them that when Hiranyakasipu had gone to the Mandara
-mountain for prayer, the Devas attacked his kingdom, and Indra carried
-away his wife. Prahlada was then in her womb. Narada kept
-Hiranyakasipu's wife in his own Ashrama till he had taught to her, more
-for the child in the womb than for the mother, the whole of Atma Vidya.
-
-Prahlada again continued the discourse and impressed on his companions
-in the most eloquent words, full of wisdom, the utility and nature of
-devotion. (The original discourse will repay perusal).
-
-The teachers returned and found the contagion of Vaishnavism had also
-spread amongst other boys. They instantly reported the matter to
-Hiranyakasipu. The king became all wrath and angry. He sent for
-Prahlada. Prahlada approached him with all respect and humility. The
-king thundered forth thus: -- "What makes thee so often disobey me, thou
-vile enemy of thy own race? Dost thou not know that I will instantly put
-thee to death? All Triloki dreads me and trembles when I am enraged. But
-thou dost break my words without the least fear in thy mind."
-
-"Father," said Prahlada, "Bhagavan is my only strength. He is not only
-my strength, but also yours and that of the whole world. Look upon all
-as your own self, father."
-
-"Unfortunate that thou art", said Hiranyakasipu, "Tell me, who else is
-there besides myself whom thou callest Bhagavan or Ishvara. Where is
-he?" Said Prahlada, "He is everywhere."
-
-"Why not then in this pillar?"
-
-"Yes, I see him there."
-
-"Well, let me sever your head from your body and see how your Hari can
-preserve you."
-
-So saying, Hiranyakasipu took sword in hand and violently struck the
-pillar with his fist. A great noise was heard at the time, and the
-fearful Nrisinha came out of the pillar, half man, half lion.
-Hiranyakasipu with wonder saw He was neither man nor animal. Nrisinha
-placed the Asura king on his thighs and tore him with His nails to
-death. (For a description of Nrisinha and of the fight refer to the
-original).
-
-The Devas all collected and prayed to Him one after the other. But
-Nrisinha was still in a rage and they dared not approach Him. Brahma at
-last sent Prahlada to pacify Him.
-
-Prahlada approached Him slowly and prostrated himself at His feet;
-Nrisinha became full of tenderness and placed his hand on the head of
-Prahlada. That divine touch removed all evil from Prahlada and illumined
-his mind with Brahma Vidya. He then broke forth into a prayer, (perhaps
-the most sublime in the Bhagavata Purana).
-
-
-
-THE PRAYER OF PRAHLADA
-
-
-*SKANDHA VII. CHAP. 9.*
-
-"Brahma and other Devas, Rishis and wise men, full of Satva, have failed
-to adore Thee in suitable words. How can this Asura boy please Thee, O
-Hari: But I think, it is not wealth, good birth, beauty, asceticism,
-learning, power, intellect, or even Yoga that is so much suited for the
-worship of Parama Purusha as Bhakti. It is by Bhakti that the elephant
-king pleased Bhagavan. _Even a Chandala, (an outcaste) is much superior
-to a Brahmana, who has all the 12 virtues, but has no devotion to
-Vishuu._ For the Chandala who offers his Manas, his words, his Karma,
-his wealth and even his Prana to Vishnu, purifies not only himself, but
-his whole line, while, the proud Brahmana does not even purify himself."
-(Without devotion, the virtues only serve to increase pride. They do not
-purify the mind. _Sridhara_.)
-
-(The Almighty Vishnu does not want any offering from the ignorant for
-himself. He is possessed of all things. But the man who gives offerings
-to Him can alone keep them to himself, for verily the paintings on the
-real face are to be seen in the image. The self in man is only a
-reflection of Atma or Manas. Therefore if a man does any thing that
-affects his Manas only, it does not concern his real self. If an
-offering is made to Ishvara, that reaches his real self).
-
-"Therefore though of low birth, I have no hesitation in reciting thy
-glory as much as I can, for such a recital is sure to purify a man.
-
-"Withdraw, O Lord! this terrible form, and be cooled. Look! the world
-trembles at Thee.
-
-"I am not afraid, however, even of this form, as I am afraid of the
-wheel of births. Give shelter at thy feet, that I may gain Moksha.
-
-"I have been scorched by the fire of misery in all births. The only
-remedy is devotion to Thy service. For Thy servant by Thy favor gets the
-company of Mahatmas. By their company, he gets rid of all worldly
-attachments and sings the glory of Bhagavan. Then the miseries of life
-cannot overpower him.
-
-"The parents are not the protectors of the child; medicine is not the
-remedy for the diseased; the boat is not a shelter for the drowning; for
-they cannot save from a recurrence of evils. And even the little that
-others do is promoted by the Prompter of all.
-
-"When Purusha wishes, Maya disturbed by Kala creates the Sukshma
-Sharira, headed by Manas. That Manas is drawn into a world of recurring
-births, characterised by the transformations of Maya": (5 Jnanendriyas,
-5 Karmendriyas, 5 Bhutas and Manas). "I am being squeezed in this wheel,
-like the sugar-cane in the mill.
-
-"Draw me unto Thee, O Lord! or I am lost in the whirl."
-
-(Some platitudes and a short account of the part taken by Vishnu in the
-creation follow).
-
-"Thou dost incarnate as man, animal, Rishi and Deva in order to guard
-all beings, to destroy the enemies of the world and preserve Dharma,
-according to the requirements of every Yuga. But in Kali Yuga, Thou
-concealest Thyself. Hence (from manifestating only in three Yugas), Thou
-art called Triyuga.
-
-"Lord of Vaikuntha, this mind does not take pleasure in discourses about
-Thee, as it is vitiated, prone towards the outside, unmanageable,
-passionate and affected by the three promptings -- joy, sorrow and fear.
-How can I with such a mind think of Thee?
-
-"I am drawn on all sides by the Indriyas, and I am as miserable as a man
-with many wives.
-
-"I am not the only sufferer. Look! all men remain fallen by their own
-karma in the Vaitarani (River at the gate of Yama) of recurring births.
-They are afraid of births and deaths and of danger from each other. They
-are mutually both friends and enemies. Take pity on these bewildered
-creatures, O Thou that art on the other side of the river, and preserve
-them this very day by taking them across the Vaitarani (_i.e._ the
-relativity's of Triloki existence).
-
-"O guide of the Universe! what is thy difficulty in saving all men? For
-Thou art the cause of the creation, preservation and destruction of the
-Universe. Thou hast much kindness for the ignorant. Thou art the friend
-of the afflicted. What then by saving us only who serve thy favorite men
-the Mahatmas (for, those who serve the Mahatmas are already saved).
-
-"O Thou Supreme, I am not the least anxious for myself about the
-Vaitarani (Triloki existence), however difficult to cross it may be, for
-my mind is plunged in the nectar ocean of singing thy glory. But I mourn
-for the ignorant, those that care only for the gratification of the
-senses and for the means of such gratification while they remain
-estranged from Thee.
-
-"Generally, O Deva! the Munis are desirous of their own Moksha, they
-hold their tongue, and roam in solitude without caring for the good of
-others. But I do not like to be liberated alone, leaving behind me the
-afflicted round me; I find no other shelter for these misguided people,
-besides Thee.
-
-"They are not happy, O Lord, in the enjoyment of the objects of the
-senses. For like itching, it is not a pleasure by itself but seems to be
-so, as long as Thou art not known.
-
-"It is said that holding the tongue (_mouna_) vowed observance (Vrata),
-sacred knowledge (Sruta), austerity (Tapas), reading (Adhyayana), the
-observance of rules pertaining to one's caste (Sva Dharma), exposition
-of Shastras (Vyakhya), living in solitude (Rahas), recital of Mantra
-(Japa), and Samadhi also lead to Moksha. But generally it is seen that
-these are only means of livelihood for those that have no control over
-their senses. And for proud people they are sometimes the means of
-livelihood and sometimes not. But pride in itself is not a good thing.
-
-"Thou art not separate from the Universe. Both cause and effect are thy
-forms. It is not by avoiding the ways of Universe but by seeing Thee
-everywhere by means of Bhakti, that the right course is followed. It is
-by striking one stone against another that fire comes out, and not
-otherwise."
-
-[Let the words of the Asura boy resound from one end of India to the
-other. Let the sublime words of compassion and universal love be written
-in characters of gold, and let them be engraven in the hearts of all
-Indians]. Prahlada was made the king of the Asuras.
-
-
-
-VARNA AND ASHRAMA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA VII, CHAP. 11 TO 15.*
-
-Narada related the story of Prahlada to King Yudhisthira at the Rajasuya
-sacrifice. That story revealed the highest devotion that was possible
-for a Jiva to attain with the idea of separate existence. But separation
-also gives rise to the idea of difference. And as differences become
-established in society, duties and relations become manifold.
-Yudhisthira therefore appropriately asked Narada about the Varnasrama
-duties.
-
-The general rules to be observed by all castes are first given, ethical,
-spiritual and devotional. The specific duties and indications of each
-caste are then given, much the same as given in Manu Sanhita, as also
-the duties of women. The following significant passage occurs at the
-end: --
-
-"The indications of each caste are given above (e.g. restraint of the
-senses, contentment, &c., for Brahmanas; courage, strength, &c., for
-Kshatriyas; reverence, energy, &c., for Vaishyas; and humanity, service
-&c., for Shudras). If however the indications of one caste are found in
-a man belonging to another caste, he is to be specified by the caste of
-his indications and not the caste of his birth." VII -- 35.
-
-The commentary of Sridhara is explicit on this passage. This shews the
-liberality of the Bhagavata Purana. According to this Purana, the
-divisions of caste at the present day, (for one must not forget that the
-Vaishnava movement belongs comparatively to a later period), are not to
-be determined by birth, but they are indicated by the virtues of each
-particular individual.
-
-The duties of each Asrama are next enumerated in detail. The enumeration
-follows the Smritis, with a word for Bhakti Yoga where necessary. Some
-very useful hints are given for a Grihastha, for which please refer to
-the original.
-
-The paths called Pitriyana and Devayana are next described. Hints on
-Yoga and the recital of Pranava are also given.
-
-
-
-
-SKANDHA VIII.
-
-
-
-YAJNA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA VIII. CHAP. 1.*
-
-An account has been given above of the progeny of Devahuti and Prasuti.
-Yajna is the son of Akuti. In the First Manvantara, when Asuras and
-Rakshasas were going to devour Manu, Yajna killed the former, with the
-help of his sons, the Yama Devas. He ruled over Svarga as the Indra of
-that Manvantara.
-
-[This brings us to the end of the 1st Manvantara. The narration at
-several places took us to later Manvantaras, and the account of the
-Asuras especially took us to Vaivasvata Manvantara. The account of the
-first Manvantara is illustrative of the succeeding Manvantaras. Details
-have therefore been given at times which might not properly pertain to
-the 1st Manvantara, but which fit in with other Manvantaras at those
-stages of the narration. Necessarily the account of the succeeding
-Manvantaras is very meagre.]
-
-*END OF THE FIRST MANVANTARA.*
-
-
-
-THE SECOND MANVANTARA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA VIII. CHAP. 1.*
-
-Svarochisha is the 2nd Manu. (Svarochisha = Self refulgent). He is the
-son of Agni; Dyumat, Sushena, Rochishmat and others are the sons of this
-Manu. (Dyumat and Rochishmat also mean bright, refulgent). Rochana was
-the Indra (Rochana = bright illuminating). Tushita and others were the
-Devas. Urjastambha and others were the seven Rishis well versed in
-Brahma Vidya.
-
-There was one Rishi named Veda Siras. His wife was Tushita. He had by
-her _Vibhu_, the Avatara of this Manvantara. Vibhu took the vow of
-Brahmacharya and never married. 80,000 Rishis learned his Vrata.
-
-(The Second Manvantara is in Theosophical language the second ascending
-half of the 1st round. The spiritual character of this Manvantara is
-manifest from the use of words meaning "bright," "refulgent." The
-Avatara is Vibhu or All-pervading. The vow of Vibhu also denotes
-spirituality. Agni also, the father of the Manu, is almost a name for
-spirituality).
-
-
-
-THE THIRD MANVANTARA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA VIII. CHAP. 1.*
-
-The third Manu is Uttama, son of Priya Vrata. Pavana, Srinjaya,
-Yajnahotra and others were his sons. The sons of Vasistha, Pramada and
-others, were the seven Rishis.
-
-Satya, Veda Sruta, and Bhadra were the Devas. Satyajit was Indra.
-
-Dharma had by Sunrita one son named Satya-Sena. He was the Avatara of
-this Manvantara. He was born with others called Satya-Vrata. He killed
-wicked Yakshas and Rakshasas given to falsehood, and Bhutas who injured
-others.
-
-[The characteristic mark of this Manvantara which is the first half of
-the second Round is Truth. Satya or Truth enters into the names of one
-class of Devas, of the Indra and of the Avatara. The name of the
-Avatara's mother was also truth. The Yakshas and Rakshasas were given to
-falsehood].
-
-
-
-THE FOURTH MANVANTARA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA VIII. CHAP. 1-4.*
-
-The fourth Mann was Tamasa, brother of Uttama. He had ten sons, Prithu,
-Khyati, Nara, Ketu and others.
-
-Satyaka, Hari and Vira were the Devas. Trisikha was Indra.
-
-Jyotirdhaman and others were the seven Rishis. The Vedas had been lost
-in time. The sons of Vidhriti, called Vaidhritis, however preserved them
-by their own energy. They are also the Devas of this manvantara.
-
-The Avatara Hari incarnated as the son of Harimedhas by Harini. He saved
-the Elephant king from the crocodile.
-
-
-
-THE STORY OF THE ELEPHANT KING.
-
-
-*SKANDHA VIII. CHAP. 2-4.*
-
-An elephant king resided on the summits of Trikuta. He roamed about with
-his female herd, intoxicated with the juice that exuded from his
-temples. Finding a lake, he plunged himself into its waters and quenched
-his thirst. He then took water in his trunk and passed it on to the
-young herd and the females. A powerful crocodile attacked him in rage.
-They fought for one thousand years, each trying to draw the other unto
-him. The elephants on the bank raised a piteous cry, but they could not
-be of any use to their companion. The Elephant King got tired at last,
-but the crocodile being in his own element did not feel any fatigue. The
-elephant devoutly and ardently prayed to the supreme Purusha. In
-response to that prayer, Hari appeared with the Devas, seated on the
-back of Garuda. He drew out the crocodile, cut off its head with the
-chakra and thus saved the Elephant King.
-
-The Elephant was a Gandharva, named Huhu. He was playing with his wives
-in a tank. Rishi Devala went there to bathe. The Gandharva drew the
-Rishi himself by his feet. The Rishi cursed him to become a crocodile.
-The elephant was king Indradyumna of Pandya. He was under a vow of
-silence while engaged in meditation. Rishi Agastya came with his
-disciples, but the king could not receive him with any word of welcome.
-"O thou of untrained intellect like an elephant, be an elephant
-thyself." Such was the curse of the Rishi to him.
-
-[The Elephant represents the characteristic Jiva of this Manvantara. The
-elephant becomes excited and mad when the juice exudes from his temples.
-In the story, madness represents the prevalence of Kama. The elephant
-was passionately attached to his wives. The Jiva had given himself too
-much to Kama, and he was carried away helplessly by the demon, he knew
-not where. His better sense could not prevail without some extraordinary
-help and that help was given by Hari, an incarnation of Vishnu. Possibly
-the story represents the development of animal instincts].
-
-
-
-THE FIFTH MANVANTARA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA VIII. CHAP. 5.*
-
-Raivata was the fifth Manu. He was the brother of Tamasa. His sons were
-Arjuna, Bali, Vindhya and others. Vibhu was Indra. Bhuttaraya and others
-were the Devas.
-
-The seven Rishis were Hiranya-romay, Vedasiras, Urddhabahu and others.
-
-The presiding deity of Vaikuntha incarnated in partial manifestation as
-the son of Subhra and Vikuntha. He was the Avatara of this Manvantara.
-[This is the first half of the Third Round. The incarnation of the Lord
-of Vaikuntha may have some significance, but what is not clear from the
-text.]
-
-
-
-THE SIXTH MANVANTARA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA VIII. CHAPTER 5.*
-
-The Sixth Manu was Chakshusha, son of Chakshus. Puru, Purusha, Sudyumna
-and others were his sons. Mantra Druma was Indra. Apya and others were
-the Devas; Haryasma, Dviraka and others were the Rishis.
-
-The Avatara was Ajita, son of Vairaja by Deva-Sambhuti. He assumed the
-form of Kurma or the Tortoise, and helped in the churning of the Milk
-Ocean.
-
-
-
-THE CHURNING OF THE OCEAN.
-
-
-*SKANDHA VIII. CHAP. 5-12.*
-
-In the fight with the Asuras, the Devas lost their lives. They fell down
-and did not rise up again. By the curse of Durvasas, Indra and the three
-Lokas became shorn of Sri or Lakshmi (wife of Vishnu in Vaikuntha:
-Preservative energy). Consequently there were no performances such as
-Yajna. (Durvasas once saw Indra on the elephant Airavata. He gave him
-the garland of his own neck. Indra proud of his own Sri or wealth,
-placed the garland on the head of the elephant. The elephant threw it
-down and tore it to pieces with his feet. Durvasas got angry and cursed
-Indra that he and his Triloki were to lose Sri). Indra did not know what
-to do and the Devas all went over to the seat of Brahma on the top of
-Meru. Brahma, saw the Lokapalas lifeless and lustreless, as it were, the
-Lokas beset with evils and the Asuras full of life and energy. He
-meditated on Parama Purasha with concentrated mind and then addressed
-the Devas thus.
-
-"Purusha has resort to Rajas, Satva and Tamas respectively for Creation,
-Preservation and Dissolution. This is just the time for Preservation.
-For the good of all beings, He shall now be possessed of Satva. So let
-us take the shelter of the guide of the universe. He shall now befriend
-the Devas and do what is best for us."
-
-The Devas with Brahma then went to Ajita. Brahma prayed to Him as the
-Preservative aspect of Virat Purusha. Vishnu appeared before the Devas
-and addressed them thus: --
-
-"The Asuras favored by Sukra are now victorious. Make peace with them so
-long as you are not strong yourselves. Lose no time in churning the Milk
-Ocean for Amrita in concert with the Asuras. By drinking Amrita even
-dead persons become immortal. Throw all creepers and herbs into that
-ocean. Make Mandara mountain the churning rod and make Vasuki the rope.
-Then with my help, churn the ocean with all diligence. The Asuras shall
-have all the trouble to themselves, while you shall reap the fruits. If
-the Asuras ask for any concession, you had better approve of that. Do
-not be afraid of any poison that may arise. Have neither greed nor anger
-nor desire in respect of the things that will arise."
-
-So saying Vishnu disappeared. The Devas went to the Asura King Bali and
-Indra explained to him what Vishnu had said about the churning. The
-Asuras approved of the plan and made friends with the Devas. They then
-went together and uprooted the golden mountain Mandara and carried it
-towards the ocean. After going a long way, they felt fatigued and
-dropped the mountain. Several Devas and Asuras were crushed by its fall.
-Vishnu appeared on Garuda and revived them all. He then easily placed
-the mountain on the back of Garuda and went towards the ocean, followed
-by the Devas and Asuras.
-
-The Serpent King Vasuki was assured of a share in Amrita and he
-consented to become the rope. The Mountain was then surrounded by
-Vasuki. Vishnu followed by the Devas held the mouth of the serpent. But
-the Asuras said: -- "We have learned the Vedas, we know the Sastras, it
-is improper for us to hold the tail of a serpent. We will not do that.
-It is inauspicious." Vishnu smiled. He and the Devas gave up the mouth
-end and held the tail.
-
-The churning then commenced. The Mountain was however heavy and it sank
-down to the bottom of the ocean. The Devas and Asuras became mournful.
-Vishnu then assumed the form of a Tortoise, went into the water and
-raised the Mountain. He then remained like a Dvipa one lakhsa Yojanas in
-expanse with the mountain on his back. He infused his influence all
-round. Energised by Him, the Devas and Asuras vigorously carried on the
-churning. At last fire and smoke came out from the thousand mouths of
-Vasuki. This overpowered the Asuras and the Devas -- but the Devas were
-refreshed by clouds, rains, and winds sent by Vishnu.
-
-After a good deal of churning, poison came out first. It spread out on
-all sides and the Prajapatis and their progeny in terror took the
-shelter of Siva. Siva felt compassion for them and with the approval of
-Durga, he drank up the whole of the poison. It made his throat blue.
-
-The Churning recommenced. Out came Surabhi (the fabulous cow of plenty).
-The Vedic Rishis took that Cow for the necessaries of Yajna. Then came
-the horse Uchchaih-Sravas. Bali desired to have it. But Indra as
-directed by Vishnu made no desire. Then came the elephant Airavata, then
-the 8 space elephants and their 8 female partners.
-
-Next arose Kaustubha, the celebrated lotus-colored gem. Vishnu wished to
-have it as an ornament for His breast. Next came Parijata, then the
-Apsaras.
-
-Illumining all sides with her lustre arose Lakshmi. All paid homage to
-her. She looked on all sides, but found none, whom she could accept. If
-there was an ascetic he could not control his anger. If there was a
-Jnani (sophist) he could not get over attachments. There might be a
-Mahatma, but he had not conquered his passion of love. How could he be
-called Isvara, who depended on others, (and no one but Isvara could
-claim Lakshmi). If there was Dharma any where, there was not
-friendliness for all beings. If there was sacrifice, it was not for
-liberation. There was power but it could not resist the flow of time. If
-there was one void of likes and dislikes, he did not take a companion.
-If there was any one long lived, he had neither good nature (_Sila_) nor
-auspiciousness (_Mangala._) If one had good nature and auspiciousness,
-he was not long lived. If one had all the Virtues he was out of his
-element with her. If he was all that she wanted he did not want her.
-
-Considering everything, Lakshmi at last accepted Vishnu for her husband.
-He placed her on His breast. She favored the Devas, so they became
-possessed of all the virtues. She showed indifference to the Asuras, so
-they lost their might, energy and modesty and became greedy.
-
-Then arose a lotus eyed girl called Varuni (Spirituous liquor.) The
-Asuras accepted her.
-
-Then arose Dhanvantari, part of a part of Vishnu, with a pot of Amrita
-in hand. Seeing the pot of Amrita, the greedy Asuras took that by force.
-They quarrelled with each other, some saying "First myself," "First
-myself," others saying "Not you" "Not you," whilst the weaker amongst
-them finding that they were going to be deprived, cried out in jealousy
-"The Devas are also entitled to an equal share. They have also toiled
-with us."
-
-At this time Vishnu became a most beautiful young woman. She filled the
-hearts of the Asura Chiefs with passion. They asked the tempting girl to
-settle their differences and to make a proper distribution of Amrita
-amongst them. "But how can you trust a woman," said the girl. But the
-Asuras had fallen in love with her, so they made over the Amrita pot to
-her without further thought. She consented to distribute Amrita on the
-condition that the Asuras should put up with whatever she did, right or
-wrong. The Asuras consented. She then made the Devas and Asuras sit in
-two separate rows. She distributed the whole of the Amrita amongst the
-Devas. Only one Asura, named Rahu, sat with the Devas. The Sun and the
-Moon pointed him out to the girl Vishnu. Vishnu then and there severed
-the head from the body of the Asura, but as the head had touched Amrita,
-it became immortal. Brahma made it a planet. Rahu still pursues the Sun
-and Moon at eclipses out of enmity.
-
-When the Amrita was wholly spent, Vishnu assumed His own form and in the
-presence of all left the place on the back of Garuda.
-
-The Asuras found they had been deceived and they became very angry. They
-could not bear the success of their enemies but they instantly engaged
-in fight with them. The fight was personal between the chiefs of both
-sides. (It is interesting to note the antagonistic names, as they give
-the correspondences between the Deva and Asura chiefs.) Indra fought
-with Bali, Kartikeya with Taraka, Varuna with Heti, Mitra with Praheti,
-Yama with Kalanabha, Visvakarma with Maya, Tvastri with Sambara, Savitri
-with Virochana, Aparajita with Namuchi. The Asvini Kumaras with
-Vrishaparvan, Surya (Sun) with the hundred sons of Bali, Vana and
-others, Chandra (Moon) with Rahu, Vayu with Puloman, Bhadra Kali with
-Sumbha and Nishumbha, Vrishakapi with Jambha, Vibhavasu with Mahisha,
-the sons of Brahma with Ilvala and Vatapi, Brihaspati with Sukra, Sani
-with Naraka, the Maruts with the Nivatakavachas, the Vasus with the
-Kaleyas, the Visvadevas with the Poulamas and the Rudras with the
-Krodhavasas. (Those who want to make a deep study will do well to note
-these correspondences as they will serve to explain points which I have
-not touched upon as beyond the scope of the present work).
-
-The Asuras used all the weapons of tempting Maya and conquered the
-Devas, Vishnu then came to their rescue and they became victorious (The
-details of the fight might be interesting from an occult point of view,
-for which the reader must refer to the original.)
-
-Siva heard that Vishnu had assumed an enchanting female form. To satisfy
-his curiosity he went to Him with Bhavani. Vishnu assumed that form
-again to satisfy Siva. The Astral Lord became passionate and ran after
-that female form and embraced her. The female Vishnu got out of the
-embrace and re-assumed His own form. Siva was then restored to himself.
-
-
-
-THOUGHTS ON THE ABOVE.
-
-
-We have already seen that the ascent of spirit commenced in the
-Vaivasvata Manvantara. If the fourteenth Manvantara or the second half
-of the Seventh Round he left out of consideration, as the Manvantara of
-Dissolution or Pralaya, the middle of the remaining 13 Manvantaras will
-be in the Vaivasvata Manvantara. But the ascent could not commence
-without preparation. That preparation was made in the Chakshusha
-Manvantara or during the latter half of the Third Round.
-
-Sri or Lakshmi is the Satvic energy of preservation. This energy was so
-much overpowered by Materiality, that she was not to be found in
-Triloki. The spiritual forces, the Devas, lost life and energy. The
-Asuras were at the height of their power. But as the ascending arc was
-near at hand, the Devas were promised Amrita _i.e._ immortality for the
-remaining part of the Kalpa. But that Amrita was to be obtained, the arc
-of spiritual evolution was to be raised by the churning of the ocean of
-Milk.
-
-The ocean of Milk does not appertain to Jambu Dwipa, but it is the ocean
-of Saka Dwipa. The seven oceans are transformations of Prakriti,
-differing in the admixture of Satva, Rajas and Tamas and determining the
-character of the globe they surround. Vishnu, as the Third Purusha, is
-the divine source of evolution in every Jiva. The seat of that Vishnu is
-the ocean of Milk, the ocean where Satva prevails.
-
-It is Vishnu who from His seat in the Ocean of Milk sends down Pranic
-Energy and the mineral becomes a vegetable. He sends down the power of
-perception and then the power of conception and the vegetable becomes an
-animal and at last a man. Throughout this course of evolution, there is
-a development of the self element in us. There is no idea of self in the
-mineral or in the vegetable. It faintly asserts itself or rather makes
-an effort to assert itself in the animal kingdom. The early history of
-humanity is the development of the selfish element in him. The Jiva has
-two sides in himself and non-self. The self side is caused by limitation
-due to his own senses They put him in contact with the outside world,
-and make him a centre of sense perceptions. He becomes lost entirely in
-the sense products, which form a world by themselves. The non-self side
-of a Jiva, is his spiritual nature. He begins with this spiritual
-nature. But the development of selfishness eclipses this nature, the
-true, the real nature of Jiva, and he identifies himself entirely with
-the acquired and false nature.
-
-Then comes a crisis in the evolution of Jivas. Were men to be lost for
-ever to their spiritual, their real nature? Were they to be tempted away
-by the senses, which had done their work of training, past all chance of
-return?
-
-Vishnu, the God of human evolution, willed otherwise. He caused a
-re-adjustment of the Daivic and Asuric forces, and the Devas by His help
-got the better of the Asuras. This is the churning of the Ocean of Milk.
-It averted a crisis and is therefore a great event in the history of the
-Universe.
-
-The Asura element could not be altogether wiped away. For the Deva or
-spiritual nature evolves out of Asura or selfish and material nature.
-Unselfishness grows out of selfishness, spirituality rises out of
-materiality.
-
-In the act of churning, the Devas could not do without the Asuras.
-Churning itself, implies the action and reaction of two contending
-forces. "Make peace with them, as long as you are not strong
-yourselves." The compromise of the Devas with the Asuras is the
-development of spiritual faculties out of the personal element in man.
-It is the grafting of higher Manas on lower Manas. The element of mind
-is in the Asuras as well as in the Devas. But the Asuric or lower mind
-thinks of self as separate from other selves. The Daivic or higher mind
-breaks through the trammels of personality and finds oneness all round.
-
-To use a better expression, we shall say higher self and lower self,
-rather than self and non-self.
-
-Jivas are carried on in their course of life evolution by the force of
-past tendencies, and nature unaided produces the personal man. But when
-the past tendencies are exhausted, there is nothing to keep on the Jivas
-in their course of evolution.
-
-Kurma comes to the help of humanity at this stage. He gives a new power
-to men, the power of discrimination. With this power men become free
-agents, and they become responsible for their actions. They then
-generate new Karma for themselves, which takes them through infinite
-births and becomes a most potent factor in their future evolution.
-
-The three Purushas have three Oceans as their correspondences. The first
-ocean (Karana) gives the materials of the Jiva body. The Second ocean
-(Garbhoda), gives the germs of all Jivas. The third (Kshira) is the
-ocean of Jiva evolution. This ocean is churned for the spiritual
-evolution of Jivas, and it yields all that is necessary for that
-evolution. Vishnu himself appears as Kurma and becomes the sustaining
-force of that evolution.
-
-It is a Kalpic revolution. Vasuki sustains the earth and its inhabitants
-for one Kalpic period. The thousand hoods represent the thousand Maha
-yugas of every Kalpa. The Asuras held the mouth end of the serpent king
-and the Devas held the tail end. And the Devas acted wisely. For as the
-Kalpa waned, they got the supremacy.
-
-The tortoise thrusts out its limbs and draws them in. Man is drawn
-outside by his senses during material descent and he is drawn in by his
-spiritual ascent. It is by the power of discrimination when fully
-developed that a man returns to his higher nature.
-
-Sri or Lakshmi is the divine energy of Vishnu. She is the Energy of
-preservation, of evolution and progress She works out all that is good,
-all that is beautiful, and all that is powerful in this Universe. The
-possibilities of purely material development or of Nature's own
-evolution, are limited, and they are worked out in time. Then there is a
-void. There was this void in our universe and Triloki become deprived of
-Sri. This was the curse of Durvasas, an Avatara of Siva.
-
-The Churning took place as a remedy for this evil. Fresh forces had to
-be brought into requisition, fresh elements that could secure the
-spiritual evolution of the universe. Lakshmi herself reappeared in a
-most enchanting form, as the energy of a new evolution, the very best
-that man was capable of. The necessaries of this evolution also appeared
-and became powers in the hands of those that had to take part in the
-spiritual evolution of the universe.
-
-All evolution is preceded by dissolution. Unless we give up the evil
-element in us, we can not acquire the good. The evil has to be destroyed
-and the Lord of destruction, in his infinite compassion, accepted this
-poison for himself, to do away with the evils of the Universe.
-
-The Poison only opens the door for Amrita, the spiritual nectar. The
-famous Purusha Sukta says: -- "He placed Amrita or eternal bliss in the
-higher three Lokas." The Bhagavata renders this famous saying into the
-eighteenth sloka of the 6th. chapter of the Second Skandha. Commenting
-on this sloka, Sridhara says, bliss in our Triloki is only transitory
-and the dwellers of Mahar Loka have also to leave their abode for the
-higher Jana Loka, when they are oppressed by the fire of Kalpic
-dissolution. Amrita was secured to the higher Lokas, as there is no
-selfishness in them. (III. 10-9.) Could the Asuras, the gods of
-selfishness, aspire to have life immortal and unlimited bliss. Vishnu
-decided otherwise.
-
-The way was thus prepared for the Vaivasvata Manvantara, when men
-learned to discern between right and wrong.
-
-
-
-THE SEVENTH MANVANTARA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA VIII. CHAP. 13.*
-
-Sraddha Deva son of Vivasvat or Surya is the seventh Manu. He is
-reigning at present. Ikshvaku, Nabhaga, Dhrishta, Saryati, Narishyanta,
-Nabhaga, Dishta, Tarusha, Prishadhra, and Vasumat are his ten sons.
-
-The Adityas, the Vasus, the Rudras, the Visvadevas, the Maruts, the
-Asvini-kumaras and the Ribhus are the Devas. Purandara is their Indra.
-Kasyapa, Atri, Vasistha, Visvamitra, Goutama, Jamadagni and Bharadvaja
-are the seven Rishis.
-
-The Avatara of this Manvantara is Vamana, the youngest son of Aditi by
-Kasyapa.
-
-(The Purana will revert to this Manvantara after giving a general
-account of the succeeding Manvantaras).
-
-
-
-THE EIGHTH MANVANTARA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA VIII. CHAP. 13.*
-
-Savarni is the son of Vivasvat by his wife Chaya. He shall be the eighth
-Manu -- Nirmoka, Virajaska (without Rajas) and others shall be his sons.
-Sutapas, Viraja (without Rajas) and Amrita Prabha shall be the Devas.
-Bali, son of Virochana, shall be the Indra.
-
-Galava, Diptiman, Parasurama, Asvatthama, Kripa, Rishya Sringa and Vyasa
-shall be the seven Rishis.
-
-Sarvabhouma, son of Devaguhya by Sarasvati, shall be the Avatara. He
-shall wrest the kingdom of Svarga Loka from Purandara and make it over
-to Bali.
-
-(The eighth Manvantara is the Second half of the Fourth Round and should
-be the spiritual half according to Theosophical ideas. But we find the
-Asura King Bali, who was removed from the kingdom of Triloki in the
-Vaivasvat Manvantara, restored to the kingdom of Svarga).
-
-Amongst the Rishis we find Parasurama who fought with Rama and
-Asvatthama and Kripa who ranged themselves against the Pandava brothers
-in the battle of Kurukshetra.
-
-All this shews that spirituality was developed out of materiality. The
-sons of Manu are Nirmoka and Virajaska. _Moka_ is the cast off skin of
-an animal and may well represent the sthula body. Nirmoka is one without
-Moka.
-
-Virajaska is without Rajas. So the course of evolution shews a tendency
-in the first place to cast off the sthula body and to overcome the
-Rajas.
-
-
-
-THE NINTH MANVANTARA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA VIII. CHAP. 13.*
-
-The ninth Manu is Daksha Savarni. He is the son of Varuna Bhutaketu,
-Diptaketu and others shall be his sons. Para, Marichi garbha and others
-shall be the Devas and Adbhuta their Indra. Dyu timat and others shall
-be the Rishis.
-
-Rishabha, son of Ayushmat by Ambudhara, shall be the Avatara.
-
-
-
-THE TENTH MANVANTARA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA VIII. CHAP. 13.*
-
-Brahma Savarni is the tenth Manu. He is the son of Upasloka. Bhurishena
-and others shall be his sons. Havishmat, Sukrita, Satya, Jaya, Murti and
-others shall be the Rishis; Suvasana, Aviruddha and others shall be the
-Devas and Sambhu their Indra.
-
-Vishvaksena, son of Visvasrij by Visuchi, shall be the Avatara.
-
-
-
-THE ELEVENTH MANVANTARA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA VIII. CHAP. 13*
-
-Dharma Savarni is the eleventh Manu. Satya-Dharma and others shall be
-his ten sons. Vihangama, Kalagama, Nirvana-ruchi and others shall be the
-Devas, Vaidhrita their king, and Aruna and others the Rishis.
-Dharma-Setu, son of Aryaka by Vaidhrita shall be the Avatara.
-
-
-
-THE TWELFTH MANVANTARA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA VIII. CHAP. 13.*
-
-Rudra-Savarni is the twelfth Manu. Devavat, Upadeva, Devasrestha and
-others shall be his sons (men shall be evolved into Devas In this
-Manvantara). Harita and others shall be the Devas, Ritadhaman their
-Indra. Tapomurti, Tapasvin, Agnidhraka and others the Rishis; Svadhaman,
-son of Satya-sahas by Sunrita, shall be the Avatara.
-
-
-
-THE THIRTEENTH MANVANTARA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA VIII. CHAP. 13.*
-
-Deva Savarni is the thirteenth Manu. Chitra Sena, Vichitra and others
-shall he his sons, Sukarma and Sutrama the Devas, Divaspati their Indra
-and Nirmoka, Tatvadarsa, and others the Rishis.
-
-Yogesvara, son of Devahotra by Vrihati, shall be the Avatara.
-
-
-
-THE FOURTEENTH MANVANTARA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA VIII. CHAP. 13.*
-
-Indra Savarni is the fourteenth Manu. Uru, Gambhira, Vradhna and others
-shall be his sons.
-
-Pavitra and Chakshusha the Devas, Suchi their Indra, Agni, Vahu, Suchi,
-Suddha Magadha and others the Rishis.
-
-Brihat-bhanu, son of Satrayana by Vitana, shall be the Avatara (_i.e._
-the great sun shall absorb everything.)
-
-
-
-THE ADMINISTRATION OF A MANVANTARA
-
-
-*SKANDHA VIII. CHAP. 14.*
-
-Said Raja Parikshit: -- Tell me, O Rishi, what are the respective duties
-of Manu and others in the Manvantaras.
-
-Suka replied: -- The _Avatara_ of each Manvantara guides the Manu, the
-sons of Manu, the Rishis, the Indra and the Devas of that Manvantara.
-(Each Manvantara has its own place in the history of the Kalpa, and the
-general evolution has to be worked out in the way best adapted to that
-Manvantara. The administration of each Manvantara is in the hands of a
-separate set of kings and ministers. Vishnu incarnates in each
-Manvantara, as the king of all who serve as administrative officers of
-that Manvantara and he is as such called the special Avatara for that
-Manvantara. The divine kings, the Rishis, the Devas, all work under His
-direction. He gives the law that is to be administered. He shews the
-path, which evolution is to take in any particular Manvantara.)
-
-Yajna and others are Avataras of Purusha. Guided by them, Manu and
-others lead the course of the universe.
-
-_Rishis_: -- At the end of every four Yugas, the Srutis become devoured
-by time. (The human races have a life period timed to the four Yugas.
-They have their infancy, as it were, in Satya Yuga, and they have to be
-guided by wise sayings, which form the Srutis of those races. The Srutis
-become better understood with the growth of racial intelligence and
-other texts take the place of old ones. When the races do not require
-the help of the earlier texts, those texts become lost in time. When the
-races begin another life cycle, they require again the help of
-teachings, which become revealed to the Rishis. The Rishis then give
-those teachings to the races.) The Rishis find out the Srutis, by means
-of Tapas. The eternal Dharma proceeds from the Srutis. (People know
-their duties from the scriptures.)
-
-_Manus_. -- The Manus then take up the Dharma, and each in his own time
-devotedly promulgates it on the earth.
-
-_Manu's sons_. -- The sons of Manu preserve the Dharma, generation after
-generation, till the end of the Manvantara.
-
-_Devas and Indra_. -- Indra, with the Devas that participate in
-sacrificial offerings, protects the three Lokas and gives rains.
-
-(Besides this general administration, there are other ways also of
-managing the affairs of the universe and these are mentioned
-incidentally in the following slokas. _Sridhara_.)
-
-Hari appears as the Siddhas (Sanaka and others) and expounds divine
-wisdom (Jnana) in every Yuga. He appears as Rishis (Yajnavalkya and
-others) and expounds Karma. As Lords of Yoga (Dattatreya and others), He
-expounds Yoga.
-
-
-
-THE STORY OF BALI.
-
-
-*SKANDHA VIII. CHAPS. 15-23.*
-
-Bali, son of Virochana and grandson of Prahlada, was once defeated by
-Indra. His Guru, Sukra, advised him to perform the Visvajit sacrifice.
-When _ghee_ was offered at the sacrifice, one chariot, some green
-coloured horses, one lion-marked flag, one golden bow, two quivers with
-an inexhaustible store of arrows, and one divine _kavacha_ (protective
-charm) arose from the fire. Bali gladly accepted these things. Prahlada
-also gave him a fresh garland and Sukra gave him a conch.
-
-Equipped with these things Bali attacked Svarga. Brihaspati told Indra
-the time was inauspicious and the Devas could not succeed without the
-help of Vishnu. He advised them to give in and to remain concealed
-somewhere, till the time came for their ascendancy. The Devas followed
-the advice of Brihaspati and Bali became the king of Triloki.
-
-Sukra advised Bali to perform one hundred Asvamedha sacrifices.
-
-Aditi became disconsolate at the down-fall of her sons. She asked her
-husband Kasyapa what to do for her sons. The Prajapati advised her to
-observe Payoravata in honor of Vishnu (for details, see the original).
-She observed the Vrata for 12 days when Vishnu appeared before her and
-assured her He would incarnate as her son.
-
-Vamana was born of Aditi at midday, on the 12th day of the moon, during
-the white quarter in the month of Bhadra, while the moon was in the
-first part of Sravana, in the Abhijit.
-
-(Vamana = Dwarf). Vamana heard that Bali was performing Asvamedha on the
-banks of the Narmada. He went there and Bali received him duly and
-enquired what he wanted, expressing his willingness to gratify him
-fully. Vamana asked for only three paces of ground. Bali laughed at this
-modest prayer and asked him to take more land. But Vamana excused
-himself, saying a Brahmana should be content with small things only.
-Bali laughed again and at once said "Then accept." He then took the
-water pot to make the formal gift. Sukra perceived the object of Vishnu.
-He tried to dissuade Bali from carrying out his promise. "This is not a
-dwarf Brahmana but Vishnu Himself. By one pace he will cover the whole
-of Bhur Loka and Bhuvar Loka. By the second pace, He will cover Svar
-Loka and what then will become of the third pace? You will have to go to
-Naraka for not being able to fulfil your promise. And where shall you
-yourself remain after giving over all you have? Therefore desist from
-what you are doing. No doubt truth is preferable. But the Vedas also
-allow untruth in extreme cases."
-
-Bali replied: -- "The grandson of Prahlada shall never speak an untruth.
-I will give to this Brahmana boy what I have promised, even if he be
-Vishnu and my enemy too."
-
-Sukra said in anger -- "You disregard the words of your Guru. So you
-shall forthwith lose everything."
-
-Bali remained unmoved. He worshipped the Brahmana boy and read out the
-formal Mantra of giving over three paces of land. Vindhyavali, the
-virtuous consort of Bali, at this time placed a golden pitcher filled
-with water before her husband. He washed the feet of Vamana with that
-water, and sprinkled it over his head. Then Vamana wonderfully grew in
-size. The whole Universe became visible in him. He seized the whole of
-Bhur Loka with one pace the whole of Bhuvar Loka with his body, and the
-directions in space with his hands, so that even the whole of Svar Loka
-became insufficient for the second pace. But nothing remained for the
-third pace. For the second pace of Vamana passed through Mahar Loka,
-Jana Loka, Tapas Loka and reached even Satya Loka.
-
-The Asuras exclaimed: -- "By what an unjust device has our king been
-deprived of all! It is no sin to fight with this disgrace of a Brahmana,
-this deceitful Vishnu." So they engaged in fight with the followers of
-Vishnu, but were defeated by them.
-
-Bali told his followers there was no use fighting, for Kala was against
-them. The same Bhagavan who had favored them was now in opposition.
-
-Garuda, knowing the intention of Vishnu, tied Bali with the noose of
-Varuna.
-
-Vamana then addressing Bali said: -- "Where is your promised ground for
-my third pace? You have told a lie. You do not carry out your promise to
-a Brahmana. For this you will have to go to Naraka."
-
-Bali said: -- "Do not think I told an untruth or that I mean to deceive
-thee. Here is my head for the third pace. I am not so much afraid of the
-Naraka thou art speaking of, nor of this noose, nor of any troubles I
-may undergo, nor of any punishment thou mayest inflict on me as I am
-afraid of doing anything for which good people will blame me. I deem
-this punishment an act of favor a favor shewn perhaps out of
-consideration for my grand-father Prahlada. For this kingdom only
-maddened me with power and made me forget my end. And what shall I do
-with this body too? True thou art my enemy, but this loss of kingdom has
-brought me nearer to thee."
-
-Prahlada appeared at this time. He bowed down to Vamana and said: -- "It
-is thou that didst give the kingdom of Triloki to Bali and it is thou
-that hast taken it away and really thou hast shewn him a favor by doing
-so. For power maddens a man and blinds him as to his real self."
-
-Vindhyavali said: -- "O Lord, Thou art the Creator, the Preserver, and
-the Destroyer of Triloki. Who else could own it besides Thyself? It was
-the height of presumption to pretend to give the Triloki to you." Brahma
-said: -- "O Deva of Devas, all-pervading Lord, thou hast taken away
-everything from this Bali. He has also given himself up entirely to
-Thee, without being moved in the least. He does not now deserve to
-remain tied up."
-
-Bhagavan said: -- "O Brahma, I take away all his riches from him whom I
-favor. For one proud of riches disregards both myself and others. When
-after many births the Jiva happens to become a man, and when in that
-birth he is found not to entertain any pride of birth, karma, age,
-beauty, wisdom, power, wealth and other things, you should know that to
-be my favor. One constantly devoted to me is not led away by anything
-apt to beget pride.
-
-"This king of Danavas and Daityas has now conquered Maya. So he is not
-beside himself even in grief. His wealth gone, his position lost,
-himself overpowered and chained by enemies, forsaken by friends, reviled
-and cursed by his own preceptor, and what not, this Bali did not give up
-Truth.
-
-"I will give him a place, difficult for others to attain. He shall be
-the Indra of Savarni Manvantara. Till then let him reside in Sutala. By
-my wish, the dwellers of Sutala shall have no mental or bodily pain, no
-fatigue, no sleepiness, no defeat and no misfortune. Bless thee, O
-Maharaj, go to Sutala with thy clan. Sutala is even wished for by those
-that dwell in Svarga. Even the Lokapalas shall not be able to overpower
-thee. What of others? If any Daitya does not follow thee, I will kill
-him by my Chakra. By all means I will preserve thee and thy followers.
-There you shall always find me at your door. Thy Asura nature shall be
-there entirely destroyed under my influence."
-
-Prahlada was also ordered by Bhagavan to accompany Bali to Sutala. So
-they all went to Sutala.
-
-
-
-THOUGHTS ON THE ABOVE.
-
-
-We now find Bali shorn of all materialism and restored to spiritual
-purity. We can well understand the removal of Bali from the kingdom of
-Triloki, for the cyclic movement was tending that way since the last
-Manvantara, and the Devas were to have supremacy over Triloki. We have
-to study the future of Bali, as holding further light for us.
-
-We must repeat here the distinction made between the two classes of
-Asuras: Daityas and Danavas. The Daityas trace their origin to the
-gate-keepers of Vishnu. They had inherent Satva in them, which was
-eclipsed in their downfall. Therefore, though they acted as
-materialistic forces following the cyclic tendency, they were themselves
-not incapable of spiritual development Thus we find words of wisdom and
-spirituality in Vritra, in Hiranyakasipu, unselfish devotion in
-Prahlada, and complete resignation in Bali. Hiranyaksha and
-Hiranyakasipu went back to their old place in Vaikuntha. Vritra became
-united with Sankarshana. Prahlada is immortal in his unselfish mission,
-and we have just heard the future of Bali. The Maruts become Devas after
-their very birth.
-
-Therefore there is no extinction for the Asuras, except for those that
-do not follow Bali and do not place themselves under the influence of
-Vishnu. The cyclic weapon or Chakra is ever ready to destroy those that
-hopelessly go against the law.
-
-Now a word about Sutala. The arrangement of Patalas as given in the text
-is the reverse of what they should be in point of spirituality, for
-Atala is the most and Patala the least removed from spirituality.
-
-The influence of Vishnu does not extend beyond Sutala, and nothing can
-save those that transgress the limits of this nether plane. For in
-Vitala the destructive Purusha reigns and a passage to that plane is
-only a door to utter extinction. And in Atala there is not a trace of
-spirituality, the work of destruction is already done, and mother Nature
-dissolves the material elements for some better use in future.
-
-The special provision for Sutala is therefore a cyclic necessity. For
-Jivas have to be preserved from an undesirable end. Therefore Bali was
-given a post, the proud privilege of seeing that Jivas do not undergo
-utter extinction. Sutala was also fortified with an accession of
-spirituality.
-
-The example of self-abnegation, the ideal of self-sacrifice, Bali is to
-become the king of Devas in the succeeding Manvantara.
-
-
-
-THE MATSYA AVATARA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA. VIII. CHAP. 24.*
-
-Towards the end of the previous Kalpa, Brahma was falling asleep and the
-Vedas fell from his mouth. The Asura Hayagriva took them up. Seeing this
-Vishnu became a small fish. King Satyavrata was making Tarpana (_i.e._
-offering libations of water), when the fish found its way into his
-hands. He threw it into the river. The fish implored the King to
-preserve him. So he took it home and placed it in a small waterpot. The
-fish increased in size so much that all tanks and rivers were tried, but
-they could not contain it. At last the king took the fish to the sea,
-but it implored him not to throw it away into the sea. The king then
-said: -- "This fish must be the Deity Himself, otherwise how could it
-grow so large?" The fish then addressed the king thus: "On the seventh
-day from this, the Triloki shall be plunged into the Pralaya waters.
-Then a big Ark shall come to thee. Take all plants, all seeds, all
-animals, and the seven Rishis with you and get into that ark. When the
-wind shakes that ark, tie it with a serpent to myself. I will remain
-with that ark in the Pralaya Ocean till the awakening of Brahma. I will
-manifest supreme wisdom in thee."
-
-So saying the fish disappeared and on the seventh day the Pralaya waters
-deluged the Triloki. Satya Vrata did as he was told. He got the highest
-wisdom from the Fish Incarnation.
-
-That Satya Vrata is Sraddhadeva, our present Manu.
-
-
-
-
-SKANDHA IX.
-
-
-
-THE VAIVASVATA MANVANTARA.
-
-
-SUDYUMNA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA IX. CHAP. 1.*
-
-Sraddhadeva Manu had no child for some time. Vasistha performed a
-sacrifice in honor of Mitra-varuna that he might obtain progeny.
-Sraddha, wife of the Manu, went to the chief priest and asked for a
-daughter. So Manu had a daughter named Ila. He took Vasistha to task for
-having had a daughter. Vasistha thought the priest had done something
-wrong. He prayed to Bhagavan for the change of Ila's sex. So Ila became
-a male named Sudyumna and in company with others went on horse back to
-the chase. He entered a forest called Sukumara, below the Meru, which is
-the play ground of Siva and his consort. He and his companions were all
-transformed into females, for such is the mandate of Siva for those that
-enter the forest. In this changed condition, Sudyumna with his female
-companions went to Budha. Budha took a fancy for Sudyumna and had by her
-one son Pururavas.
-
-Vasistha took pity on Sudyumna again and prayed to Siva to change his
-sex. By the favor of Siva, Sudyumna became a male for one month and a
-female for another month. He had three sons. Utkala, Gaya and Vimala.
-
-
-IKSHVAKU BROTHERS.
-
-
-*SKANDHA IX. CHAP. 2.*
-
-Manu prayed to Vishnu for one hundred years for other sons. He got ten
-sons like unto himself. Ikshvaku was the eldest:
-
- Manu
- |
- --+------+-----+--------+-------+--------+---------+------------\\
- | | | | | | | |
- Ikshvaku Nriga Saryati Dishita Dhrishta Karusha Narishyanta |
- |
- --+---------+-------/
- | |
- Prishadhra Nabhaga Kavi
-
-(8). PRISHADHRA.
-
-While residing in the house of his Guru, Prishadhra was placed in charge
-of cattle. It was raining one night, when a tiger entered the fold. The
-cattle strayed about in fear and bellowed aloud. Prishadhra ran after
-the tiger. The night was dark. He missed his aim and cut off the head of
-the cow, which the tiger had seized. He found out the mistake in the
-morning and informed his Guru about it. The Guru said: -- "You shall
-become a Sudra, as the fruit of your Karma." Prishadhra accepted the
-curse. He became an ascetic, and roamed about the earth as the friend of
-all beings. Eventually He ended his life in fire.
-
-(10). KAVI.
-
-Kavi attained wisdom in his youth. He did not marry.
-
-(6). KARUSHA.
-
-The sons of Karusha were the Karushas, a race of pious Kshatriyas, who
-guarded the north.
-
-(5). DHRISHTA.
-
-Dharshtas were the sons of Dhrishta. Though born as Kshatriyas, they
-became Brahmanas on this earth.
-
- (2). NRIGA.
- |
- Sumati
- |
- Bhutajyoti
- |
- Vasu
- |
- Pratika
- |
- Oghavat
- |
- --+-+-----------------+----
- | |
- Oghavat Oghavati
- m. Sudarsana
-
-
- (7) Narishyanta, (4) Dishta
- | |
- Chitra Sena Nabaga (became a Vaisya
- | by his karma)
- Riksha |
- | Bhaladana
- Midhvat |
- | Vatsapriti
- Purna |
- | Pransu
- Indra Sena |
- | Pramati
- Vitihotra |
- | Khanitra
- Satya-Sravas |
- | Chakshusha
- Uru-Sravas |
- | Vivinsati
- Devadatta |
- | Rambha
- Agnivesya |
- Khaninetra (very pious)
- (Incarnation of Agni |
- also known as Kanina Karandhama
- and Jatu-Karna) |
- | Avikshit
- Agni veshyayana |
- Brahmanas. Marutta.
-
-Sambarta, Son of Angiras, officiated at the Yajna performed by Marutta.
-The Devas took direct part in the Yajna.
-
- Marutta
- |
- Dama
- |
- Rajavardhana
- |
- Sudhriti
- |
- Nara
- |
- Kevala
- |
- Dhundhumat
- |
- Vegavat
- |
- Budha
- |
- Trinabindu
-
- m. Apsaras Alamvusha
- |
- --+-----+--+-----------+--------+--
- | | | |
- Visala Sunyabandhu Dhumraketu Ilavila
-
- (founded the _m_. Rishi Visravas
- town named |
- Vaisali) Kubera--the
- | King of the
- Hema Chandra Yakshas.
- |
- Dhumraksha.
- |
- Sanyama
- |
- --++------+---
- | |
- Devaja Krisasva
- |
- Somadatta
- |
- Sumati
- |
- Janamejaya.
-
-(3). SARYATI.
-
-SKANDHA IX. CHAP. 3.
-
-Saryati was well versed in the Vedas. He had one daughter, Sukanya. He
-went with her one day to the Asrama of Chyavana Rishi. Sukanya found
-there two streaks of light as from glow-worms, issuing from within a
-mound of earth, thrown up by white ants. She pricked those portions with
-a thorn and blood oozed out. The party of Saryati found that their usual
-secretions were stopped. The king thought some one had offended
-Chyavana. The girl then told her story. The king found the Rishi
-underneath the mound of earth and asked his pardon. The Rishi wanted the
-hand of the girl in marriage and Saryati consented. So Sukanya became
-the wife of Chyavana.
-
-One day the Asvini Kumaras came to Chyavana. The Rishi asked them to
-give him youth and beauty and promised in return to give them offerings
-of Soma, though they had no part in Soma Yagas, The Asvini Kumaras took
-the Rishi inside a tank and all the three came out young and beautiful
-and looking all alike. Sukanya could not recognise her husband and she
-prayed to the Asvini Kumaras to remove her confusion. They were pleased
-with her chastity and pointed out her husband.
-
-One day king Saryati came and found his daughter sitting with a young
-man. He reproved Sukanya for her supposed unchastity. The girl then
-related the story of her husband's attaining youth and the king became
-very much pleased.
-
-Chyavana made offerings of Soma to the Asvini Kumaras. This offended
-Indra. He held up the Vajra to kill Chyavana, but the son of Bhrigu
-paralysed the hands of Indra. From that time the Devas consented to give
-a share in Soma to the Asvini Kumaras.
-
- SARYATI.
- |
- --+------------+--------+---+-----------------+---
- | | | |
- Sukanya Uttanavarhi Anarta Dhuri Sena
- m. Chyavana |
- Revata
- (He built a town called Kusasthali
- in the midst of the sea and from that
- town ruled Anarta and other lands.)
- |
- --+----------------------+-------------------+---
- | |
- Kakudmin 99 other Sons.
- |
- Revati
-
-Kakudmin took his daughter Revati with him and went to Brahma loka to
-enquire of Brahma, who should be her husband. The Gandharvas were
-singing at the time and Kakudmin had to wait for a moment. He then
-saluted Brahma and made the enquiry. Brahma laughed and said: -- "O
-king, the men of your choice are dead and gone. I do not hear even of
-their sons and grandsons. Twenty seven yuga cycles have now passed away.
-Therefore go back to thy place and give thy daughter to Baladeva, who
-has now incarnated as an Ansa (part) of Vishnu for the good of
-Bhur-loka." And so the king did. (The Present is the 28th. Yuga cycle.
-Baladeva is the brother of Sri Krishna.)
-
- (9) NABHAGA.
-
-SKANDHA IX. CHAPS. 4-6.
-
-Nabhaga remained long with his Guru. So his brothers thought he had
-become a Brahma-charin. They reserved no share for him at partition.
-Nabhaga at last returned to his house and asked for his share in the
-patrimony. The brothers pointed out their father Manu as his share.
-Nabhaga asked his father -- "How is it my brothers have reserved thee
-for my share?" Manu replied: -- "Child, do not believe them. The clan of
-Angiras are performing Yajna. They get confounded on every sixth day.
-This is the sixth day. Give them two Vaisvadeva Suktas. When they go to
-Svarga after completion of their Yajna they will leave all their
-sacrificial wealth to you." Nabhaga did as he was told. The Angirasas
-left all the property remaining on the sacrificial ground to Nabhaga. As
-he was going to take those things, a dark Purusha appeared from the
-north and said. "These are mine."
-
-"But the Rishis have given them to me" said Nabhaga.
-
-"Go to your father then and ask for the solution" said the dark Purusha.
-
-"Yes, the remnants of a Sacrifice belong to Rudra" said Manu.
-
-Nabhaga returned and said "Yes these remnants of sacrifice all belong to
-thee. So my father told me."
-
-"I am pleased with thee and thy father. Both of you have spoken the
-truth" said Rudra, "I give thee supreme wisdom. I also give thee these
-remnants. Take them now."
-
- NABHAGA
- |
- NABHAGA.
- |
- AMBARISHA
-
-King Ambarisha had discrimination and dispassion. His devotion was
-great. His mind was fixed on the lotus feet of Vishnu, his words were
-all about the glory of Vaikuntha, his hands were engaged in cleansing
-the temples of Vishnu, his ears only heard about the glory and the works
-of Vishnu, his eyes intently looked on the symbols of Vishnu wherever
-found. His body felt pleasure in the touch of Vaishnavas, his nose smelt
-the sweet fragrance of Tulasi proceeding from the feet of Vishnu, his
-tongue tasted only food offered to Vishnu, his feet traversed the places
-sacred to Vishnu and his head was devoted to the salutation of Vishnu.
-If he enjoyed things of this world, it was for service to Vishnu and not
-for the sake of enjoyment. If he had attachment, it was only for those
-that were devoted to Vishnu. The fruits of his action he offered to Him.
-By devotion and by the unselfish performance of duties pertaining to his
-sphere of life (Svadharma), he pleased Bhagavan and by degrees he gave
-up all desires. Vishnu was so much pleased with the King, that he gave
-him His own Chakra for protection.
-
-Ambarisha with his wife once undertook to perform Dvadasi Vrata for one
-year. (Dvadasi is the twelfth day of the Moon. The Vrata consists in
-fasting on the eleventh day of the Moon and in breaking the fast on the
-12th day). On one occasion he fasted for 3 consecutive days. He bathed
-himself in the Yamuna and worshipped Vishnu at Mathura. He gave plenty
-of riches and cattle to the Brahmanas. He then fed the Brahmanas and
-asked their permission to eat himself. At the time Durvasas appeared as
-his guest. The king received him duly and requested him to take his
-meals. The Rishi consented and went to bathe himself in the river and
-perform his daily rites. The king waited long for him but he did not
-return. There was only half a muhurta now remaining of Dvadasi. If the
-king did not eat any thing, his Vrata would not be observed. If he ate,
-he would shew disregard to a Brahmana. At this juncture, the king
-decided to serve both ends by taking a little water, for the Brahmanas
-call that both eating and non-eating. Durvasas came back. By spiritual
-vision, he knew what had happened and became highly enraged. He tore up
-a hair tuft and charged it to kill Ambarisha. The king remained unmoved.
-The chakra of Vishnu consumed the destructive force sent by Durvasas and
-went even to destroy him. The Rishi ran in every direction. The Chakra
-followed him wherever he went. He went to Brahma and prayed to be saved.
-"It is not in my power to save thee" said Brahma. "Thou hast offended a
-votary of Vishnu." He went to Siva. "Child" said Siva "this weapon of
-Vishnu is too much for me even. Go thou to Vishnu." Durvasas went to
-Vishnu and prayed to be pardoned and saved. Said Vishnu: "O Brahmana, I
-am dependent on my Bhaktas. I am not free. My heart is in the possession
-of my Bhaktas. I am dear to them. Without these my Bhaktas I do not even
-want myself, nor my absolute powers, for I am their sole and supreme
-resort. They forsake their wives, homes, children and wealth for my
-sake. How can I forsake them. Their heart is chained to me. They look on
-all with equal eyes. By devotion they win me even as chaste wives win
-their husbands. My service is all in all to them. They do not even
-desire the four Muktis, Salokya and others, though these come within
-their easy reach. What perishable objects can they have desire for? The
-Sadhus are my heart. I am the heart of the Sadhus. They do not know any
-one besides me nor do I know any one besides them. O Brahmana, hear what
-is thy only remedy. Without delay go to him who has caused this fear in
-thee. When force is used against Sadhus, it reacts on him who uses the
-force. True asceticism and wisdom are both for the salvation of the
-Brahmanas. But in one untrained, they produce the contrary effect.
-Therefore go thou to the son of Nabhaga. Beg his pardon and thou shalt
-be saved." Durvasas went back to Ambarisha and touched the feet of the
-king. Ambarisha became non-plussed at this act of a Brahmana and knowing
-the object of the Rishi, he prayed to the Chakra to desist from its
-course and to save the Brahmana. The Chakra had just commenced its work
-of destruction, but it withdrew its energies upon the prayer of
-Ambarisha. Durvasas was extremely thankful and he thus praised the king.
-"I see this day the greatness of Vaishnavas, O king. Thou didst pray for
-my welfare, though I had offended thee. There is nothing strange for
-those that have conquered Vishnu Himself. Thou hast been very kind to
-me. Thou hast favored me much. Thou didst not even think of my offence,
-but thou hast saved my life." The king had waited for Durvasas all this
-time. He now fell at the feet of the Rishi and requested him to take his
-meals. The Rishi gladly did so, and also made the king take his food.
-
-Durvasas then went to Brahma Loka. He did not return for one year and
-the King lived upon water only all this time, being so anxious to see
-the Rishi back. Such is the holy story of Ambarisha.
-
- Ambarisha
- |
- --+-------------------+--+----------------+--
- | | |
- Virupa Ketumat Sambhu
- |
- Prishadasva
- |
- Rathitara
-
-Rathitara had no children. At his request Rishi Angiras produced certain
-sons by his wife. They were known both as Rathitaras and Angirasas.
-
-[Durvasas had cursed Indra, and Indra lost all power. But after the
-great churning, times were changed. The divine law favoured the Devas
-and the worshippers of Vishnu. Those who assumed a power, independently
-of Vishnu, were sure to find disappointment, however eminent their
-position might be.]
-
- (I) IKSHVAKU.
-
-SKANDHA IX. CHAPS. 6-13.
-
-Ikshvaku was born out of the nostrils of Manu when sneezing. He had one
-hundred sons. Vikukshi, Nimi, and Dandaka were the eldest born. Twenty
-five of them ruled on the east of Aryavarta, twenty five on the west and
-twenty five in the middle. The others ruled else where. For the
-performance of Ashtaka Sraddha, Ikshvaku once ordered Vikukshi to get
-some good flesh. Vikukshi had a bagful of good game. But he was hungry
-and ate one rabbit out of his store.
-
-Vasishtha found fault with this and Ikshvaku had to reject the whole of
-the game. The King became angry at this and he expelled his son from the
-kingdom. When Ikshvaku died, Vikukshi returned. He succeeded his father
-as king and was known as Sasada or Rabbiteater. Puranjaya was the son of
-Sasada. He was also called Indravaha and Kakutstha. The Devas had a
-fight with the Asuras and Indra asked for the help of Puranjaya.
-Puranjaya wanted Indra to be his carrier, and the King of the Devas
-became a bull. Puranjaya ascended the bull on its hump. He is therefore
-called Indravaha or Indra-vehicled and Kakutstha or the mounter on the
-hump. He defeated the Asuras.
-
- Ikshvaku
- |
- --+--------------------+-----+-----------------------+---
- | | |
- Vikukshi Nimi 98 other sons
- (Sasada)
- |
- Puranjaya
- (Indra vahu
- Kakutstha)
- |
- Anena
- |
- Prithu
- |
- Visvagandhi
- |
- Chandra
- |
- Yuvanasva
- |
- Sravasta
- (He built the town Sravasti)
- |
- Brihadasva
- |
- Kuvalayasva
- (Dhundhumara.)
-
-With his 21 thousand sons, Kuvalayasva killed an Asura called Dhundhu,
-for the good of Rishi Utanka. But the Asura killed all his sons, except
-three, with fire from his mouth. Those three were Dridhasva, Kapilasva
-and Bhadrasva.
-
- Kuvalayasva or Dhundhumara.
- |
- ---+--------------------+-+-----------------------+----
- | | |
- Dridhasva. Kapilasva. Bhadrasva.
- |
- Haryasva
- |
- Nikumbha
- |
- Bahulasva
- |
- Krisasva
- |
- Senajit
- |
- Yuvanasva.
-
-Yuvanasva had no son. So the Rishis performed a sacrifice directed to
-Indra. One night Yuvanasva became very thirsty and entered the Yajna
-house. He found all the Rishis sleeping at the time. He thought it
-improper to rouse the Rishis and drank whatever water he found near at
-hand. By chance that happened to be the consecrated water with the power
-of producing a son. When the Rishis rose up they did not find the water.
-On enquiry, when they knew what had happened, every one wondered what
-the outcome would be. In time the king brought forth a son from his
-right side. The little thing cried out for milk. Indra said "Do not
-weep, child, you shall _drink wine_ ('_Man Dhata_')" So saying he
-offered the child his fore finger. From this, the child was called
-Mandhata. Yuvanasva, by the blessing of the Rishis, did not meet with
-death at delivery. Mandhata was a very powerful king. The thieves
-dreaded him much. He performed many sacrifices and made many gifts. He
-married Indumati, daughter of Sasabindu. He had three sons Purukutsa,
-Ambarisha, and the Yogin Muchukunda. He had also fifty daughters.
-
-Rishi Soubhari made Tapas in the waters of the Yamuna. One day he saw
-the pairing of a couple of fish and became excited. He requested king
-Mandhata to give him one daughter in marriage. The king said: "By
-Svayamvara, you may get my daughter" (_i.e._ the girl must choose her
-own husband from amongst a number of men offering themselves as
-husbands.) The Rishi thought because he was old and decrepit therefore
-the king wanted to put him off. So Soubhari by yogic powers became young
-and beautiful. All the fifty daughters then accepted him for their
-husband. The Rishi prepared for himself all the enjoyments of life and
-passed his days in company with his 50 wives. He then became disgusted
-with this sensual life and afterwards attained Moksha with his wives.
-
-Yuvanasva adopted his grand son Ambarisha. Ambarisha had one son
-Youvanasva. His son was Harita. These three, Ambarisha, Youvanasva and
-Harita were the founders of the chief clans of the Mandhata Dynasty.
-
-The elemental serpents gave their sister Narmoda in marriage to
-Purukutsa. Purukutsa accompanied Narmoda to Rasatala at the request of
-Vasuki. There he killed such Gandharvas as deserved to be killed. Those
-who remember this story have no fear from serpents. Such was the
-blessing of the elemental serpents.
-
- Yuvanasva
- |
- Mandhata
- |
- --+----------------------+--+-----------------------+---
- | | |
- Purukuta Ambarisha Muchukunda
- m. Narmoda (adopted by Yuvanasva) (Yogin)
- | |
- Trasadasya Youvanasva
- | |
- Anaranya Harita
- |
- Horyasva
- |
- Praruna
- |
- Tribandhana
- |
- Satyavrata or Tri Sanku
-
-Tri Sanku became a Chandala by the curse of his father. Rishi Visvamitra
-lifted him up to Svarga in his own mortal body. Tri Sanku is still
-visible in the heavens. The devas turned him with his head downwards and
-attempted to throw him down. Visvamitra by his power has retained him
-there.
-
-[Tri Sanku is a constellation in the southern hemisphere.]:
-
- Tri Sanku
- |
- Haris Chandra
-
-Haris Chandra had at first no issue. He prayed to Varuna for a son,
-promising to offer him as a sacrifice to the Water-god. The king had a
-son named Rohita (Red). Varuna asked for his victim. Ten days passed
-away. "Without teething the child will not be pure." There was teething.
-"When these milk teeth fall away, then will be the time." The milk teeth
-fell off. "Let other teeth grow." Other teeth did grow. "But he is a
-Kshatriya boy. He can be pure only when he is fit to put his armour on."
-
-The king put off Varuna from time to time in this way, out of affection
-for his son. Rohita came to know of his father's promise. To save
-himself, he took a bow and went to the forest. There he learned that his
-father had an attack of dropsy, the disease caused by Varuna. So he
-prepared himself to go back, but Indra prevented him by persuasive
-words. He was put back from year to year by Indra, till his 6th. year.
-He then made his way to the king. He purchased from Ajigarta his second
-son Sunahsepha. He saluted his father and offered the child. King Haris
-Chandra appeased Varuna by human sacrifice and got rid of his dropsy. In
-that sacrifice, Visvamitra was the Hota, Jamadagni was the Adhvaryu,
-Vasistha Brahma and Ayasya was the Udgata. Indra being pleased gave a
-golden chariot to the king. Visvamitra taught Atma Vidya to Haris
-Chandra and he attained liberation.
-
-[The story of Haris Chandra in this Purana follows the vedic version.
-The gist of the story is that in the course of further evolution the
-Devas were to be propitiated by human sacrifice. But this sacrifice did
-not mean killing. It was the complete offering of oneself up to the
-service of the gods. The mission of the human victim is to constantly
-work for the good of the Universe and to extinguish his own personality.
-Sunahsepha was not killed in the sacrifice. He was offered up to the
-service of the gods. After the sacrifice, he was called Devarata _i.e._
-one offered to the Devas. Visvamitra adopted Devarata as his own son and
-he asked his hundred sons to accept him as their eldest brother. He
-disowned those sons that did not obey him (Bhagavata IX-16). Therefore
-Visvamitra took the principal part in this sacrifice and not Vasistha,
-though he was the family preceptor.]
-
- Haris Chandra
- |
- Rohita
- |
- Harita
- |
- Champa (founder of Champa)
- |
- Sudeva
- |
- Vijaya
- |
- Bharuka
- |
- Vrika
- |
- Bahuka
-
-His enemies dispossesed Bahuka of his kingdom. He went to the forest
-accompanied by his wives. When he died, the eldest queen prepared
-herself for death also. Rishi Aurva knew her to be big with child, and
-dissuaded her from accompanying her husband on to the funeral pyre. The
-co-wives of the queen, out of jealousy, gave her poison. The child was
-born with this poison, therefore he was called Sagara (Sa = with, gara =
-poison.) Sagara became a great king. The Seas were dug by his sons. He
-was prevented by Rishi Aurva from taking the lives of the Talajanghas,
-Yavanas, Sakas, Haihayas, and Barbars. But he made them change their
-outward look. He performed an Asvamedha sacrifice as advised by Aurva
-and Indra stole the sacrificial horse.
-
-Sagara had two wives Sumati and Kesini. The 60 thousand sons of Sumati
-searched for the horse on all sides. They dug the earth's surface and
-made the Seas. They found the horse near Kapila. They took him to be the
-stealer of the horse and abused him. For this they were all burnt up.
-
-Kesini had one son Asamanjas by Sagara. Ansumat was son of Asamanjas. He
-was attached to his grandfather Sagara. Asamanjas was a Yogin in his
-former birth. He therefore wanted to avoid company by means of provoking
-acts. He threw down some children into the Saraju. His father Sagara was
-thus compelled to forsake him. By Yogic powers, be brought back the
-children thrown into the Saraju, and left his father for ever.
-
-Ansumat was also sent by Sagara to search for the horse. He found the
-horse and a heap of ashes near Kapila. He saluted Kapila and glorified
-him. The Avatara was pleased. He permitted Ansumat to take away the
-horse. He also informed him that his burnt-up Pitris could only he saved
-by the water of the Ganga.
-
-Sagara completed the sacrifice with the horse. He made over the kingdom
-to Ansumat and attained Mukti.
-
-Ansumat made Tapas for the downward flow of Ganga but without success.
-He was followed by his son Dilipa. He also did not succeed. Bhagiratha
-was the son of Dilipa. He prayed hard and Ganga appeared in person
-before him. "Child, I am pleased with thee. What boon do you ask for"?
-Bhagiratha told her what he prayed for. "But who shall arrest my course,
-when I fall down. If not arrested I will pierce the earth and reach
-Rasatala. Again if I pass over earth, men will wash away their sins in
-my waters. Where shall I wash away those sins, O King? Therefore do thou
-ponder well what to do." Said Bhagiratha: -- "The touch of Sadhus shall
-take away thy sins. For Vishnu, the destroyer of sins, remains in them.
-Thy downward course shall be arrested by Rudra." Siva was pleased by the
-prayer of Bhagiratha, and he consented to hold Ganga.
-
-Ganga came rushing down and she was taken by Bhagiratha to where the
-ashes of his Pitris lay. The very touch of her waters purified the sons
-of Sagara and they went to Svarga.
-
- Bahuka
- |
- Sagara
- m. Sumati | m. Kesini
- --+----------+-------------------+--
- | |
- 60 thousand Asamanjas
- sons |
- Ansumat
- |
- Dilipa
- |
- Bhagiratha
- |
- Sruta
- |
- Nabha
- |
- Sindhu Dvipa
- |
- Ayutayu
- |
- Rituparna (friend
- of Nala)
- |
- Sarvakama
- |
- Sudasa
- |
- Soudasa or Mitrasaha
- or Kalmashapada
- _m_. Madayanti.
-
-Once there lived two Rakshasas. Soudasa killed one and did not kill the
-other. The surviving Rakshasa, bent on taking revenge, entered the
-service of Soudasa as a cook. When the king entertained Vasistha, he
-gave him human flesh to eat. The Rishi became angry and caused Soudasa
-to become a Rakshasa. When he learned however it was the doing of a
-Rakshasa, he reduced the king's Rakshasa life to 12 years. The king also
-held out water for the execration of Vasistha. His queen prevented him.
-So he threw the water at his own feet. His feet became black with sin.
-While living as a Rakshasa, the king saw a Brahmana and his wife in
-their privacy, and he attacked the Brahmana. The wife reminded the king
-of his former birth and requested him not to deprive her of her husband
-at the time of enjoyment. The king heeded not her words but devoured the
-Brahmana. The Brahmana woman cursed Soudasa so that he should meet with
-death whenever he had female connection. On the expiry of 12 years,
-Soudasa reverted to his former birth, but for fear of the curse he had
-no connection with women. Vasistha at the request of Soudasa produced a
-son by his wife, Madayanti. The conception lingered for 7 years.
-Vasistha struck the womb with a stone (Asman) and the son was hence
-called Asmaka. The son of Asmaka was Balika. He was the surviving
-kshatriya, after the extirpation of that caste by Parasurama. Hence he
-was called Mulaka also (the root of a race).
-
- Soudasa
- |
- Asmaka
- |
- Balika or Mulaka
- |
- Dasaratha
- |
- Aidavidi
- |
- Visvasaha
- |
- Khatvanga
-
-Khatvanga was a very powerful king. He killed Daityas as a friend of the
-Devas. The Devas offered him a boon. The king wanted to know how much
-longer he was to live. Learning it was a Muhurta only, he returned
-forthwith to his place and concentrated his mind on Bhagavan. He
-attained Mukti.
-
- Khatvanga
- |
- Dirgha-bahu
- |
- Raghu
- |
- Aja
- |
- Dasaratha
- |
- --+-+------+-----------+------------+--
- | | | |
- RAMA Lakshmana Bharata Satrughna
-
-(The story of Rama as told in the Ramayana is widely and universally
-known. It is therefore unnecessary to repeat that story from the
-Bhagavata Purana.)
-
- Dasaratha
- |
- --+---+-------------+-------------+--------------+---
- | | | |
- RAMA Lakshmana Bharata Satrughna
- | | | |
- +-----+ --+----+-----+-- --+-------+-- --+--------+--
- | | | | | | | |
- Kusa Lava Angada Chitraketu Taksha Pushkala Subahu Srutasena.
-
-
- Pushpa Kusa
- | |
- Dhruva Sandhi Atithi
- | |
- Sudarsana Nishada
- | |
- Agni varna Nabha
- | |
- Sighra Pundarika
- | |
- Maru Kshema Dhanvan
- |
- Devanika
- |
- Aniha
- |
- Pariyatra
- |
- Balasthala
- |
- Vajra nabha (incarnation
- of Surya).
- |
- Sagana
- |
- Vidhriti
- |
- Hiranya nabha (disciple
- of Jaimini and
- Yogacharya
- Teacher of Rishi
- Yajnavalka in
- Yoga)
-
-_Manu has matured in Yoga. He now resides at Kalapa._ _Towards the end
-of Kaliyuga he shall restore the Solar dynasty._
-
- Maru Vatsa-Vriddha Sutapas
- | | |
- Prasusruta Prativyoma Amitrajit
- | | |
- Sandhi Bhanu Bridharaj
- | | |
- Amarshana Divaka Barhi
- | | |
- Mahasvat Sahadeva Kritanjaya
- | | |
- Visvabahu Brihadasva Rananjaya
- | | |
- Prasenajit Bhanumat Sanjaya
- | | |
- Takshaka Pratikasva Sakya
- | | |
- Brihadbala, killed Supratika Suddhoda
- at the battle of | |
- Kurukshetra by Marudeva Langala
- Abhimanyu | |
- Sunakshatra Prasenajit
- (Time of Parikshit) | |
- | Pushkara Kshudraka
- Brihat-rana | |
- | Antariksha Sumitra
- Vatsa-vriddha |
- Sutapas
-
-Sumitra shall be the last of the Ikshvaku dynasty in this Kali Yuga.
-
-Nimi was the second son of Ikshvaku. He asked Vasistha to officiate at
-his Yajna. But the Rishi had been pre-engaged with Indra. So he asked
-the king to wait till he came back. Considering the uncertainty, Nimi
-did not wait for his family Purohita. But engaged another priest.
-Vasistha on returning became offended and cursed Nimi with the loss of
-his body. Nimi gave the same curse to Vasistha. So both gave up their
-bodies. Vasistha was reborn shortly after as the son of Mitravaruna by
-Urvasi. The Rishis picked up the body of Nimi and placed it with the
-scented things of Yajna. On the completion of the Yajna, the Rishis
-prayed to the Devas for the vivification of the body. But Nimi said from
-within the scented things that he did not want to be encumbered with the
-body any more. The Devas said: "Then remain in the eyes of all beings as
-winking." So Nimi remains in the twinkling of eyes.
-
-The Rishis churned the body of Nimi and a son was born. He was called
-Janaka. As he was born, when his father was bodiless (_videha_) he was
-also called _Vaideha_. The churning also gave him the name of Mithila
-(Manth = to churn). He built the town Milhila. (Mithila is the modern
-Tirhut).
-
- NIMI Marti
- | |
- Janaka Pratipa
- | |
- Udavasu Kritaratha
- | |
- Nandivardhana Devamirha
- | |
- Suketu Visruta
- | |
- Devarata Mahadhriti
- | |
- Brihadratha Kritirata
- | |
- Mahavirya Maharoman (large-haired)
- | |
- Sudhriti Svarnaroman (gold-haired)
- | |
- Dhrishtaketu Hrasvaroman (short-haired)
- | |
- Haryasva Sira-Dhvaja
- |
- Maru
-
-While ploughing the ground for sacrifice, Sira-Dhvaja got Sita at the
-end of the plough. Therefore Sira (plough) being his Dhvaja (flag,
-proclaimer of fame), he was called Sira Dhvaja.
-
-(This Sira-Dhvaja is the renowned Janaka of Ramayana.):
-
- Sira-Dhvaja
- |
- Kusa-Dhvaja
- |
- Dharma-Dhvaja
- |
- --+-+---------------+---
- | |
- Krita-Dhvaja Mita-Dhvaja
- | |
- Kesi-Dhvaja Khandikya
-
-Kesi Dhvaja was versed in Atma-vidya, Khandikya was versed in Vedic
-Karma, Kesi Dhvaja overpowered Khandikya and he fled away.
-
- Kesi-Dhvaja Upa-guru
- | |
- Bhanumat Upa-gupta (incarnation of Agni)
- | |
- Sata-dyumna Vasvananta
- | |
- Suchi Yuyudha
- | |
- Sanadvaja Subhashana
- | |
- Urja-ketu Sruta
- | |
- Purujit Jaya
- | |
- Arishta nemi Vijaya
- | |
- Srutayu Rita
- | |
- Suparsva Sunaka
- | |
- Chitraratha Vitahavya
- | |
- Kshemadhi Dhriti
- | |
- Samaratha Bahulasva
- | |
- Satyaratha Kriti
- |
- Upa-guru
-
-These kings of Mithila were well versed in Atma-vidya.
-
-
-
-THE LUNAR DYNASTY.
-
-
-*SKANDHA IX. CHAP. 14.*
-
-Soma (the Moon) was born out of the eyes of Atri. He carried off Tara,
-the wife of Brihaspati (Jupiter). Brihaspati asked for his wife several
-times, but Soma would not give her up. Sukra (Venus) was not on good
-terms with Brihaspati. So he took the side of Soma, with his disciples,
-the Asuras. Siva with his Bhutas took the side of Brihaspati. Indra with
-the Devas also sided with their preceptor. The two parties engaged in
-fight. After some days of fight, Angiras informed Brahma about every
-thing that transpired. Brahma reproached Soma. So he returned Tara to
-Brihaspati. Brihaspati found that Tara had conceived. "Immediately throw
-out the seed of another man in my field," cried he. Tara feeling bashful
-brought forth at the time a lustrous son, Both Brihaspati and Soma
-desired to have the son, each saying "It is mine not yours." When they
-quarrelled with each other, the Devas and Rishis asked Tara who was the
-father of the child. The child reproved his mother for the delay in
-answering. Brahma took Tara aside and learned from her that Soma was the
-father of the son, Soma then took the child. Brahma seeing the deep
-wisdom of the child named him Budha (Mercury).
-
-Budha had by Ila one son Pururavas. Narada related his beauty and his
-virtues to the Devas in Svarga. Urvasi heard all that and took a fancy
-for the king. By the curse of Mitra Varuna, she had then a human form.
-Both the king and the Apsaras became attached to each other and they
-lived as husband and wife. But Urvasi laid down two conditions of her
-company with the king -- (1) that the king was to preserve two rams,
-which the Apsaras had brought with her and (2) that the king was never
-to expose himself before her except in privacy. Indra sent the
-Gandharvas in search of Urvasi. They found her out and took away her two
-rams. She had a maternal affection for these animals and she cried out
-in despair. The king hurriedly took his arms and ran after the
-Gandharvas. They left the rams and fled away. The king brought them
-back. But in the hurry, he had forgot to cover himself and Urvasi left
-him. The king became disconsolate, and roamed about in search of her.
-After some days he found her on the banks of the Sarasvati with her 5
-companions. He entreated her to come back. She promised to give her
-company to the king one night every year and informed him of her
-delicate state of health.
-
-Urvasi came after a year, with one son. She advised the king to entreat
-the Gandharvas for her hands. The king did so and the Gandharvas became
-pleased with him. They gave him one Agnisthali (pot of fire). The king
-took the Agnisthali to be Urvasi and roamed with it in the forest. (The
-Gandharvas gave him the fire for the performance of sacrifice necessary
-for the attainment of Urvasi). The king found out his mistake at last.
-He then placed the fire in the forest, went home and meditated every
-night on Urvasi. On the approach of Treta, he was inspired with the
-three Vedas (Karma-Kanda). He then went to the place of fire and found
-there one Asvatha tree (the sacred fig) grown from inside a Sami tree
-(Sami is the name of a tree said to contain fire). He decided that the
-fire must be within the Asvatha tree. He took two pieces of wood
-(technically called Arani) from that tree and produced fire by their
-friction. He deemed one piece to be Urvasi and another piece to be
-himself and the space between the two pieces to be his son. By friction,
-the fire called Jatavedas came out. (_Vedas_ is wealth, enjoyments in
-general. _Jata_ is grown. Jata-vedas is that fire from which enjoyments
-proceed that which gratifies all sense-desires. It is the chief fire of
-the Karma-kanda of the Vedas). By the invocation of the three vedas,
-that fire became three fold. (Ahavaniya, Garhapatya, and Dakshina are
-the three fires perpetually kept in the household. _Ahavaniya_ is the
-eastern fire which represents the relations of the house holder with the
-Devas. _Garhapatya_ is the sacred fire which the householder receives
-from his father and transmits to his descendants and from which fires
-for sacrificial purposes are lighted. It represents household and family
-duties. _Dakhina_ is the southern fire. It represents all classes of
-duty to the Pitris). The king imagined this threefold fire to be his son
-(The son by his offerings sends his father's soul to Svarga. The
-sacrificial fire also sends the performer to Svarga). With that fire, he
-performed Yajna desiring to reach the Loka (plane) of Urvasi. Prior to
-this in Satya Yuga, Pranava was the only Veda, Narayana was the only
-Deva, there was only one fire and only one caste. The three Vedas came
-only from Pururavas, at the beginning of Treta Yuga. The king attained
-Gandharva Loka by means of the fire. (In Satya Yuga, Satva generally
-prevailed in men. Therefore they were all fixed in meditation. But in
-Treta Yuga, Rajas prevailed and by the division of the Vedas, Karma
-Marga made its appearance. _Sridhara_.)
-
-[The true history of the origin of the three Vedas is thus given in
-veiled words. They originated in the strong desire of men in Treta Yuga
-for the possession of heavenly things. This gives us about two millions
-of years at the present day. The origin of the Vedas must not be
-confounded however with their existence in the present form. For that we
-must refer to the sacrifice of Haris Chandra, the adoption of Sunah
-sepha by Visvamitra and the division amongst the Madhu Chandas
-brothers.]
-
- Pururavas
- _m_. Urvasi
- |
- --+-----------+-----------+----------+---------+----------+--
- | | | | | |
- Ayus Srutayus Satyayus Raya Vijaya Jaya
- | | | | |
- Vasumat Srutanjaya Eka Bhima Amita
- |
- Kanchana
- |
- Hotraka
-
-
- Hotraka
- |
- Jahnu (He swallowed up the
- | Ganga in her downward
- | course and let her out
- | though his thighs).
- |
- Puru
- |
- Balaka
- |
- Ajaka
- |
- Kusa
- |
- --+-----------+---+----+-----------+--
- | | | |
- Kusambu Tanaya Vasu Kusanabha
- |
- Gadhi
- |
- Satyavati
-
-Rishi Richika asked for the hand of Satyavati. Gadhi did not consider
-him to be a fit husband for his daughter. He therefore wanted to put him
-off and said: -- "Give a dower of one thousand horses, with the lustre
-of moon all over their body and with one of their ears dark-coloured
-(Syama). For we are sons of Kusika."
-
-The Rishi went to Varuna and got the horses. He gave them to the king
-and married Satyavati.
-
-Satyavati and her mother both asked Richika to prepare _Charu_ for the
-birth of a son to each. (_Charu_ is an oblation of rice, barley, and
-pulse, boiled together. It is offered to Devas and Pitris). Richika
-prepared two charus and consecrated one with Brahmana Mantra and the
-other with Kshatriya Mantra. The Rishi then went to bathe himself. In
-the meantime, the mother thought, the daughter's Charu must be superior
-to hers. So she procured that from her daughter and the daughter partook
-of her mother's Charu. When the Rishi returned and learned what had
-taken place, he said to his wife: -- "What an improper thing you have
-done by this exchange of Charus! You shall have a fierce and terrible
-son, while your brother shall be the greatest in divine wisdom."
-
-Satyavati prayed to her husband, saying "Let it not be so." The Rishi
-then said, "Then your grandson shall be all that."
-
-Jamadagni was born of Satyavati. She became the river Kausiki.
-
-Jamadagni married Renuka the daughter of Renu.
-
-Jamadagni had several sons, Vasumat and others. The youngest was Rama
-(Parsurama). He is said to be an Incarnation of Vishnu. He destroyed the
-Haihaya Kshatriyas. He cleared the earth of Kshatriyas twenty one times.
-
-Kartaviryarjuna was the chief of the Haihaya clan. He got yogic powers
-from Datta-Atreya and also one thousand heads. He was very powerful. He
-was hospitably received one day by Jamadagni, with the objects yielded
-by his Kama-Dhenu (a cow that yields all objects of desire). The king
-longed to have the cow and forcibly carried her away. Parasurama killed
-the king in battle and carried back the cow. The sons of the king out of
-revenge killed Rishi Jamadagni while Parasurama and his brothers were
-out. Incensed by this conduct of the Haihayas, Parasurama killed all the
-Kshatriyas on account of their iniquities.
-
-Jamadagni on his death became the Seventh Rishi in the constellation of
-the Seven Rishis.
-
-Parasurama will become one of the Seven Rishis in the next Manvantara.
-He bides his time, with axe in hand, on the Mahendra mountain.
-
-Gadhi had his son Visvamitra. Though a Kshatriya, he became a Brahmana
-by his Tapas. He had one hundred sons. The mid son was Madhuchhandas.
-But they were all called Madhuchhandas. Visvamitra adopted as his son
-Sunahsepha, son of Ajigarta of the clan of Bhrigu after he had been
-offered up to the Devas and the Rishi asked his sons to accept him as
-their eldest brother. Sunahsepha had been purchased as the victim of
-Haris Chandra's sacrifice. He prayed to the Devas and to Prajapati and
-got liberation. In the clan of Gadhi, he was known as Devarata. In the
-clan of Bhrigu, he was called Sunahsepha. The elder sons of Visvamitra
-did not accept him. So the Rishi cursed them to become Mlechhas.
-Madhuchhandas with the youngest 50 did as asked by the Rishi.
-
-The other sons of Visvamitra were Ashtaka, Harita, Jaya, Kratumat and
-others.
-
- GADHI
- |
- --+---------------------+------------+--
- | |
- Satyavati Visvamitra
- m. Richika |
- | --+------------+---+-----------+---
- Jamadagni (adopted) | |
- | Devarata 100 sons Ashtakja
- Parasurama including & others
- Madhuchhandas
-
-
-
-THE LUNAR DYNASTY (Continued).
-
-
-*SKANDHA IX. CHAP. 17.*
-
-Ayus was the eldest son of Pururavas. His line is now given.
-
- Pururavas
- |
- Ayus
- |
- --+-------------+----------+---+------+--------+--
- | | | | |
- Nahusha Kshatra-Vriddha Raji Rabha Anena
- | | | |
- Suhotra 500 Sons Rabhas Suddha
- | | |
- | Gambhira Suchi
- --+---------+-----+----+-- | |
- | | | Akriya Chitraka
- Kasya Kusa Gritsamada | |
- | | | Brahmavit Santarajas
- Kasi Prati Sunaka
- | | |
- Rashtra Sanjaya Sounaka
- | |
- Dirghatamas Jaya
- | |
- Dhanvantari Harnabala
- (promulgator |
- of Ayur Veda Sahadeva
- and a sub |
- Incarnation Hina
- of Vishnu.) |
- | Jaya Sena
- Ketumat |
- | Saukriti
- Bhimaratha |
- | Jaya.
- Divodasa
- |
- Dyumat (also called Pratardana
- Satrujit and Ritadhvaja)
- |
- Dharmaketu
- |
- -+-+--------------------+--
- | |
- Alarka others
- (reigned for 66000 years)
- |
- Santati
- |
- Sunitha
- |
- Niketana
- |
- Dharmaketu
- |
- Satyaketu
- |
- Dhrishtaketu
- |
- Sukumara
- |
- Vitihotra
- |
- Bharga
- |
- Bhargabhumi
-
-Raji defeated the Asuras and made over Svarga to Indra. Indra placed
-Raji in charge of Svarga. Raji died and his sons did not return the
-kingdom of Svarga to Indra. Brihaspati made invocation against them and
-they were all easily killed.
-
-SKANDHA IX. CHAPS. 18-19.
-
- Pururavas
- |
- Ayus
- |
- --+--------------+----------+---+--------+---------+--
- | | | | |
- Nahusha Kshatra-vridha Raji Rabha Anena
- |
- --+--------------+--------------+--------+---------+-------+--
- | | | | | |
- Yati Yayati Saryati Ayati Viyati Kriti
-
-Sarmistha was the daughter of the Danava king Vrishaparvan. Devayani was
-the daughter of Sukra, the preceptor of the Danavas. They quarrelled
-whilst playing with each other and Sarmistha threw Devayani into a well.
-King Yayati happened to pass by the way and he rescued her. She became
-attached to the king and married him. Sukra became displeased with the
-Danavas for the ill treatment of his daughter by Sarmistha. And to
-please the preceptor and his daughter, Vrishaparvan had to make over his
-daughter and her companions to Devayani as her constant attendants. So
-they accompanied Devayani to the place of Yayati. Sukra warned Yayati
-however not to have any intercourse with Sarmistha. But the king did not
-heed the warning. He had two sons Yadu and Turvasu by Devayani and three
-sons, Druhya, Anu and Puru by Sarmistha. Devayani complained to Sukra
-and by the curse of the Rishi the king was attacked with the infirmities
-of old age. The Rishi was subsequently pleased to say that the king
-might exchange his infirmities with another. Yayati called his sons one
-by one and they all declined to comply with his request except the
-youngest son Puru. So he exchanged his infirmities with Puru and lived
-as a young man. At last he found that no amount of gratification of the
-senses produced satiety and being disgusted with the pleasures of life,
-made over to Puru his youth and took upon himself his own infirmities.
-He made over the south east to Druhya, the east to Yadu, the west to
-Turvasu and the north to Anu. He then made Puru his successor and went
-into the forest.
-
-SKANDHA IX. CHAP. 20.
-
- YAYATI
- |
- --+---------+----------+------+--+-------+--
- | | | | |
- Yadu Turvasu Druhya Anu Puru
- |
- Janamejaya
- |
- Prachinvat
- |
- Pravira
- |
- Manasyu
- |
- Charupada
- |
- Sudyu
- |
- Bahugava
- |
- Sanyati
- |
- Ahanyati
- |
- Raudrasva
- by Apsaras Ghritachi
- |
- --+---------+-----------+----------+-+---------+--------
- | | | | | |
- Riteyu Kaksheya Sthandileyua Kriteyu Jaleyu |
- | |
- Rantinabha --+---------+----------+-----------+-------++
- | | | | | |
- | Sateyu Dharmeyu Sannatyeyu Vrateyu Vaneyu
- |
- --++-----------------+--------------------+---
- | | |
- Sumati Dhruva Apratiratha
- | |
- Rebhi Kanva
- | |
- Dushmanta (the famous Medhatithi
- lover of Sakuntala daughter |
- of Visvamitra by Menaka, Pras Kanna and other
- hero of Kali Dasa's drama.) Brahmanas
- |
- Bharata
- (Sub-Incarnation of Vishnu)
-
-Bharata had three wives, all of Vidarbha. One of them bore a son to the
-king, but he pronounced the child to be unlike himself. The wives of the
-king killed their children for fear of their being called illegitimate.
-Bharata gave Yajna offerings to the Maruts and to Soma (Moon) that he
-might be blessed with a Son. The Maruts gave him Bharadvaja as his son.
-Brihaspati (Jupiter) produced Bharadvaja on Mamata (Egoism), the wife of
-his brother Utathya. The parents deserted the child and he was brought
-up by the Maruts. Bharadvaja being adopted by Bharata was called
-Vitatha.
-
- BHARADVAJA OR VITATHA
- |
- MANYU
- |
- ---+-----------------+---+----------+------------+-----------+--
- | | | | |
- Brihat-Kshatra Jaya Mahavirya Nara Garga
- | | | |
- Hastin Durita-Kshaya Sankriti Sani
- (founded Hastinapur, | | |
- modern Delhi) | --+--+----+-- |
- | | | | |
- --+---+----------+-----------+-- | Guru Rantideva |
- | | | | |
- Ajamirha Dvimirha Purumirha | Gargya
- (See next page) | | (became
- | ---+------------++----------+--- Brahmana)
- | | | |
- | Trayyaprni Kavi Pushkararuni
- | (Brahmana) (Br) (Br)
- |
- Yavinara
- |
- Kritimat
- |
- Satyadhriti
- |
- Dridhanemi
- |
- Suparsva
- |
- Sumati
- |
- Sannatimat
- |
- Kriti (arranged
- Prachasama in to 6
- Sanhitas)
- |
- Niha
- |
- Ugrayudha
- |
- Kshemya
- |
- Suvira
- |
- Ripunjaya
- |
- Bahuratha
-
-Rantideva gave to others whatever he had and had nothing left for
-himself. He and his dependents remained without food for forty-eight
-days. On the morning of the 49th. day he got some _ghee_, milk,
-prepared barley, and water. While he was going to partake of that with
-the others, a Brahmana became his guest. He duly respected his guest
-and gladly gave him a share of the meals. When the Brahmana went away,
-he divided the remnant amongst his dependents and himself, and while he
-was going to eat, one Sudra became his guest. He gave him a share out
-of his own. When the Sudra went away, another man came with a number of
-dogs and Rantideva duly respected him and gave him what he could. Only
-some water now remained, sufficient for the drink of one man only. He
-was going to drink that water, when a man of the Pukvasa caste (a
-degraded mixed caste) came and pitifully asked for some water. "I do
-not ask for the eight Siddhis," exclaimed Rantideva "I do not ask for
-Nirvana. I only want that I may pervade all beings and suffer for them
-all their miseries, that they may be sorrowless. By parting with this
-water to save the life of this distressed man, my hunger, thirst,
-langour, giddiness, and distress are all gone." Kind hearted Rantideva
-gave even the water to the thirsty Pukvasa. Even Brahma and others
-could not distract him from his devotion to Vishnu. His followers all
-became Yogins devoted to Vishnu.
-
-(Is there some connection between Rantideva and Jesus Christ?)
-
- Ajamirha
- |
- --+------------+------+---------+-----------+--
- | | | |
- The Brahmans Brihadishu Nila Riksha (1)
- Priyamedha | |
- & c. Brihaddbanu Santi
- (Large Jaws) |
- | Susanti
- Brihatkaya |
- Large sized) Puruja
- | |
- Jayadratha Arka
- | |
- Vishada Bharmyasva
- | (His sons were
- Syenajit known as
- | Panchala) -----+-- Mudgala
- --+-----------+-+---------+ | (originator of the
- | | | | Maudgalya clan)
- Ruchirasya Dhridhahanu Kasya Vatsa |
- | +-- Yavinara
- Para |
- | +-- Brihadvisva
- --+--+--------+-- |
- | | +-- Kampilla
- Prithusena Nipa |
- | +-- Sanjava
- --+--+----------+--
- | |
- 100 sons Bhahmadatta
- (Yogin)
- |
- Vishvaksen
- (author of Yoga
- Sastra)
- |
- Udaksena
- |
- Bhaliata
-
-
- Mudgala (continued from above)
- |
- --+-----------+--------+--
- | |
- Divodasa Ahalya
- | m. Gotama
- Mitrayu |
- | Sotananda
- Chyavana |
- | Satyadhriti (versed in
- Sudasa Dhanur Veda)
- | |
- Sahadeva Saradvat (saw Urvasi and
- | his seed fell on a cluster
- Somaka of Sara grass from which were
- | born the pair).
- --+-------++----------+-- |
- | | | --+---+-------+--
- Jantu 93 sons Prishata | |
- | Kripa Kripi
- Drupada m. Drona
- |
- Draupadi
- |
- --+--+-----------+--
- | |
- Dhrishtadyumna others
- |
- Dhrishtaketu
-
-
-
-
- (1) RIKSHA
- |
- Samvarana
- _m_. Tapati daughter of the Sun
- |
- Kuru
- |
- --+-----------+---------+--+------+--
- | | | |
- Parikshi Sudhana Jahnu Nishadha
- | |
- Suhotra Suratha
- | |
- Chyavana Viduratha
- | |
- Kriti Sarvabhouma
- | |
- Uparichara Vasu Jaya Sena
- | |
- | Radhika
- | |
- | Ayutayu
- |
- Uparichara Vasu Ayutayu
- | |
- | Akrodhana
- | |
- | Devatithi
- | |
- | Riksha
- | |
- | Dilipa
- | |
- | Pratipa --------------------------\
- | |
- | |
- --+---------++--------+-------+----------+-------+-- |
- | | | | | | |
- Brihadratha Kusamba Matsya Pratyagra Chedipa Others |
- | |
- --+-+---------+-- |
- | | |
- Kusagra Jara Sandha |
- | (was born in two parts. He was |
- Rishabha therefore thrown away out side. |
- | Jara a Rakshasha woman, united |
- Satyahita the two parts and made the child |
- | alive. Hence he was called |
- Pushpavat Jarasandha). |
- | |
- Jahu --+----------+-----------+---/
- | | | |
- Sahadeva Devapi Santanu Vahika
- | (gave up the world |
- Somapi and went to forest) Somadatta
- | |
- Sruta Sravas --+------------+-------------+---+--
- | | |
- Bhuri Bhurisravas Sala
-
-Santana had in his former life the power by pass of his hands to make an
-old man young. He was therefore called Santanu in this life. When he
-became king, there was drought for 12 years. The Brahmanas ascribed this
-to Santanu's overlooking the claims of his eldest brother Devapi.
-Santanu went to his brother. But in the meantime his minister had sent
-certain Brahmanas to Devapi and they dissuaded him from Vedic Dharma. He
-thus became unfit to be a king and the Devas then rained. _But Devapi is
-waiting at Kalapa for his future mission. The lunar dynasty will come to
-an end in the present Kaliyuga and Devapi will be the progenitor of the
-lunar Dynasty in the next Satyayuga._
-
- Santanu
- By Ganga | By Satyavati
- --+---------------------+---+----------------------+--
- | | |
- Bhishma Chitrangada Vichitra Virya
- (killed by a _m_. Amba and
- Gandharva) Ambalika
- daughters of
- Kasiraja
-
-Satyavati was the daughter of Uparichara Vasu by Matsyagandha. Before
-her marriage with Santanu, Rishi Parasara had by her one son Krishna
-Dvaipayana, the renowned Vyasa, father of Suka, the propounder of the
-Bhagavata Purana.
-
-As Vichitra Virya had no son, Satyavati asked Vyasa to produce sons on
-his wives. They were Dhritarashra, Pandu, and Vidura.
-
- Dhritarashra
- _m_. Gandhari
- |
- --+----------------+----------+----+--
- | | |
- Duryodhana 99 Others Duhsala
-
-
- Pandu
- _m_. Kunti _m_. Madri
- | |
- --+---+---------+-----------+-- -----+------
- | | | |
- (By Dharma) (By Indra) (By Vayu) (By Asvini Kumars)
- Yudhisthira Arjuna Bhima | |
- Nakula Sahadeva
-
-YUDISTHIRA HAD:
-
- (1) By Draupadi -- Prativindhya
- (2) By Pauravi -- Devaka
-
-BHIMA HAD:
-
- (1) By Draupadi -- Srutasena
- (2) By Hidimba -- Ghatot Kacha
- (3) By Kali -- Sarvagata
-
-ARJUNA HAD
-
- (1) By Draupadi -- Srutakirti
- (2) By Ulupi -- Iravat
- (3) By the princess
- of Manipur -- Vabhruvahana
- (4) By Subhadra -- Abhimanyu
- _m_. Uttara
- |
- Parikshit
-
-NAKULA HAD:
-
- (1) By Draupadi -- Satanika
- (2) By Karenumati -- Naramitra
-
-SAHADEVA HAD:
-
- (1) By Draupadi -- Sruta Karman
- (2) By Vijaya -- Suhotra
-
-
- Arjuna Vrishtimat Durdamana
- | | |
- Abhimanyu Susena Mahinara
- | | |
- Parikshit Mahipati Dandapani
- | | |
- Janmaejaya Sunitha Nimi
- | | |
- Satanika Nri Chakshus Kshemaka
- | |
- Sahasranika Sukhinala
- | |
- Asvamedhaja Pariplava
- | |
- Asima Krishna Sunaya
- | |
- Nemi Chakra Medhavin
- (Hastinapura |
- shall be washed Nripanjaya
- away and he |
- shall reside at Durva
- Kousambi) |
- | Timi
- Upta |
- | Brihadratha
- Chitraratha |
- | Sudasa
- Suchiratha |
- | Satanika
- Vrishtimat |
- | Durdamana
-
-_Kshemaka shall be the last of this approved line in the Kali Yuga._
-
-Now as to the Magadha kings.
-
- Jara Sandha Sama
- | |
- Sahadeva Dridhasena
- | |
- Marjari Sumati
- | |
- Srutasravas Subala
- | |
- Yutayu Sunitha
- | |
- Naramitra Satyajit
- | |
- Sunakshatra Visvajit
- | |
- Brihat Sena Ripunjaya
- |
- Karmajit
- |
- Satanjaya
- |
- Vipra
- |
- Suchi
- |
- Kshema
- |
- Suvrata
- |
- Dharma Sutra
- |
- Sama
-
-This line shall be extinguished one thousand years after the death of
-Parikshit. (The future tense is used in the text with reference to the
-time of Parikshit.)
-
-*SKANDHA IX. CHAPS. 23.*
-
- YAYATI
- |
- --+---------+-----------++-------+---------+--
- | | | | |
- Yadu Turvasu Druhya Anu Puru
- |
- --+-------+------+----------+--
- | | |
- Sabhanara Chakshus Parekshu
- |
- Kalanara
- |
- Janamejaya
- |
- Maha Sala
- |
- Mahamanas
- |
- --+--------------+------------+--
- | |
- Usinara Titiksha
- | |
- --+------+---+--+------+-- Rushadratha
- | | | | |
- Sivi Vara Krimi Daksha Homa
- | |
- --+--+----------+-------+------+-- Sutapas
- | | | | |
- Vrisharbha Subiua Madra Kekaya Bali
-
-Dirghatamas Rishi produced on Bali's wife Six sons -- Anga, Banga,
-Kalinga, Sambhu, Pundra and Odhra. These six sons founded kingdoms in
-their own names in the East.
-
-(Anga is the country about Bhagalpur. Banga is modern Bengal. Kalinga is
-the country between Jagannatha and the Krishna. Odhra is part of modern
-Orissa.)
-
- BALI
- |
- --+-------+---------+---------++--------+---------+--
- | | | | | |
- Anga Banga Kalinga Sambhu Pundra Odhra
- |
- Khalapana
- |
- Diviratha
- |
- Dharmaratha
- |
- Chitraratha.
-
-Chitratha was also called Romapada. He had no son. Dasaratha (father of
-Rama) was his friend. He gave his daughter Santa to Romapada. Santa was
-married to Rishi Rishya Sringa. That Rishi made a Yajna for Romapada and
-he had a Son Chaturanga born to him.
-
- Chitraratha or Romapada
- |
- Chaturanga
- |
- Prithulaksha
- |
- Brihadratha
- |
- --+-------------------+-----------------+--
- | | |
- Brihadratha Brihatkarman Brihatbhanu
- |
- Brihanmanas
- |
- Jayadratha
- |
- Vijaya
- |
- Dhriti
- |
- Dhritavrata
- |
- Satkarman
- |
- Adhiratha
-
-(He adopted Karna of the Mahabharata as his son, when he had been left
-by Kunti.)
-
- ADHIRATHA
- |
- Karna
- |
- Vrisha Sena
-
-
- YAYATI
- |
- Druhyu
- |
- Babhru
- |
- Setu
- |
- Arabdha
- |
- Gandhara
- |
- Dharma
- |
- Dhrita
- |
- Durmada
- |
- Prachetas
- |
- One hundred sons inhabiting the north as a Mlechcha race.
-
-
-
- YAYATI
- |
- Turvasu
- |
- Bahni
- |
- Bharga
- |
- Bhanumat
- |
- Tribhanu
- |
- Karandhama
- |
- Marutta (adopted Dushmanta of the
- line of Puru as his son, but
- Dushmanta reverted to his own
- line.)
-
-
-
-
- YAYATI
- |
- Yadu
- |
- --+------------+-----------+---------+--
- | | | |
- Sahasrajit, Kroshta, Nala, Ripu,
- |
- Satajit
- |
- --+-+----------+----------+--
- | | |
- Mahahaya Renuhaya Haihaya
- |
- Dharma
- |
- Netra
- |
- Kunti
- |
- Sohanji
- |
- Mahishmat
- |
- Bhadra sen
- |
- --+------+-------+--
- | |
- Durmada Dhanaka
- |
- --+-------------+-------------+--------------+--
- | | | |
- Kritavirya Kritagni Kritavarman Kritaujas
- |
- Arjuna
- (Learned Yoga from Dattatreya. Had one
- thousand sons of whom only 5 survived.)
- |
- --+------+-----+-------------+----------+---------+--
- | | | | |
- Jayadhvaja Surasena Vrishabha Madhu Urjita
- | |
- Talajangha --+-----+--------+--
- | | |
- Vitihotra and 99 other sons Vrishni 99 other sons
- called Tala Janghas. They
- were killed by Sagara.
-
-
-
- YADU
- |
- Kroshtu
- |
- Vrijinavat
- |
- Svahita
-
-
- Svahita (Continued)
- |
- Visadgu
- |
- Chitraratha
- |
- Sasavindu. (Had ten thousand wives
- and one laksha sons by each wife. Of these sons, six
- were famous: Prithu Sravas, Prithu Kirti, Punyayasas etc.)
-
-
-
- SASAVINDU
- |
- --+-------------------+-----------------+--
- | |
- Prithu-Sravas Others
- |
- Dharma
- |
- Usanas
- |
- Ruchaka
- |
- --+--------+-+----------+-----------+------------+--
- | | | | |
- Purujit Rukma Rukmesha Prithu Jyamagha
- _m_. Saivya
-
- (The king carried away
- from Indra's place one girl
- Bhojya whom he married
- to his future son Vidarbha)
- |
- Vidarbha
- |
- --+-----------------+-------------+--------+----
- | | |
- Kusa Krathu Romapada
- | |
- Kunti Babhru
- | |
- Vrishni Kriti
- | |
- Nirvriti Usika
- | |
- Dasarha --+---+--------+--------+--
- | | | |
- Vyoma Chedi Damagosha Others
- |
- Jimuta
- |
- Bhimaratha
- |
- Navaratha
-
-
-
- Navaratha (Continued)
- |
- Dasaratha
- |
- Sakuni
- |
- Karambhi
- |
- Devarata
- |
- Devakshatra
- |
- Madhu
- |
- Kuruvasa
- |
- Anu
- |
- Puruhotra
- |
- Ayus
- |
- Satvata
- |
- --+--------+------+-------+--+------+----------+---------+--
- | | | | | | |
- Bhajamat Bhaji Divya Vrishni Devavridha Andhaka Mohabhoja
- | | | (a) |
- --+--------+-------+----\ | Babhra The Bhojas
- | | | | |
- Nimlochi Kinkana Dhrishti | |
- --+-------+---------+----/ |
- | | | |
- Satajit Sahasrajit Ayutajit |
- |
- --+---------+-----------+--
- | |
- Sumitra Yudhajit
- |
- --+------+---+----------+--
- | | |
- Nighna Sini Anamitra
- | |
- --+---+---+-- |
- | | |
- Satrajita Prasena |
- |
- |
- /----------------------/
- |
- --+------+---+--
- | |
- Sini Vrishni
- | |
- Satyaka |
- | --+------------+--
- Yuyudhana | |
- | Svaphalka Chitraratha
- Jaya | |
- | | --+-----+-+--
- Kuni | | |
- | | Prithu Viduratha
- Yugandhara | (_c_)
- |
- --+---------+----------+--
- | | |
- Akrura 12 others Suchara
- |
- --++-----------+--
- | |
- Devavat Upadeva
-
-
-
- (_a_) ANDHAKA
- |
- --+-----------+----------+----------+-+--
- | | | |
- Kukura Bhajamat Suchi Kambalavarhis
- |
- Bahni
- |
- Viloman
- |
- Kapota-roman
- |
- Anu (Tumvaru was
- his friend)
- |
- Andhaka
- |
- Dundubhi
- |
- Avidyota
- |
- Punarvasu
- |
- --+--+----+--
- | |
- Ahuka Ahuki
- |
- --+------+--
- | |
- Devaka Ugrasena (_b_)
- |
- --+-----------------------------------------------
- |
- (1) Devavat. (2) Upadeva. (3) Sudeva. (4) Devavardhana.
- (5) _Dhritadeva_. (6) _Santideva_. (7) _Upadeva_. (8) _Srideva_.
- (9) _Devarakshita_. (10) _Sahadeva_. (11) _Devaki_.
- (Vasudeva married all the Sisters)
-
-
-
- UGRA-SENA.
- |
- --+--------+---------+--------++-------+------+----------+-----
- | | | | | | |
- Kansa Sunama Nyagrodha Kanka Sanku Suhu Rashtrapala
-
- --+---------+------------------+----------
- | | |
- Dhrishti Tushtimat 5 Sisters married to the
- brothers of Vasudeva.
-
-
-
- (c) VIDURATHA
- |
- Sura
- |
- Bhojamat
-
-
-
- Bhojamat (Continued)
- |
- Sini
- |
- Bhoja
- |
- Hridika
- |
- --+-------------++-----------------+--
- | | |
- Devamirha Satadhanu Kritavarman
- |
- Sura
- _m_. Marisha
- |
- --+-----------+-+---------+----------+--------+----------+-----\
- | | | | | | |
- Vasudeva Devabhaga Devasravas Anaka Srinjaya Syamaka |
- |
- --+---------+---------+---------+-----------+--------/
- | | | | |
- Kanka Samika Vatsaka Vrika 5 daughters
-
- The five sisters of Vasudeva were:--
-
- (1) _Pritha_, married to Pandu
-
- (2) _Srutadeva_, married to Vriddha Sarman
- Dantavakra
-
- (3) _Sruta Kirti_, married to Dhrishtaketu
- |
- --+---+-------+--
- | |
- Santardan 4 sons
-
- (4) _Sruta Sravas_, married to Damaghosha of Chedi
- |
- Sisupala
-
- (5) _Rajadhidevi_, married to Jayasena
- |
- --++----------+--
- | |
- Vinda Anuvinda
-
- The five sisters of Kansa were married to the 5
- brothers of Vasudeva. They were:--
-
- (1) _Kansa_, married to Devabhaga.
- |
- --+-------+-----+--
- | |
- Chittaketu Brihadbala.
-
- (2) _Kansavati_, married to Deva Sravas.
- |
- --+-+-----------+--
- | |
- Suvira Ishumat
-
-
-
- (3) _Kanka_, married to Kanka.
- |
- --+---+------+-----------+--
- | | |
- Vaka Satyajit Purujit.
-
- (4) _Rashtrapali_, married to Srinjaya.
- |
- --+--+--------+-----------+--
- | | |
- Vrisha Durmarshana Others.
-
- (5) _Surabhumi_, married to Syamaka.
- |
- --+----+---------+--
- | |
- Harikesa Hiranyaksha.
-
- As to the other brothers of Vasudeva, Vatsaka had by
- Apsaras--Misrakesi, Vrika and other sons.
-
-
-
- VATSAKA
- _m_. MISRAKESI
- |
- --+------------------------+--------------------+--
- | |
- Vrika Others
- _m_. Durvakshi
- |
- --+---------------+--------------------+--
- | | |
- Taksha Pushkarasala Others.
-
-
- Samika
- _m_. Sudamani
- |
- --+------------------+------+-----------+--
- | | |
- Sumitra Arjunapala Others.
-
-
- Anaka
- _m_. Karnika
- |
- --+------------------------+----------+--
- | |
- Ritadhaman Jaya
-
-
- Vasudeva had several wives. Their names and the names of
- their sons are given below:
-
-
- 1. _Rohini_
- |
- --+--------+------+-------+----+--+-------+-------+------+--
- | | | | | | | |
- BALADEVA Gada Sarana Durmada Vipula Dhruva Krita Others
-
-
- 2. _Pauravi_
- |
- --+----------+----------+------+-+------+---------+--
- | | | | | |
- Subhadra Bhadrabahu Durmada Bhadra Bhuta 7 Others.
-
-
- 3. _Madira_
- |
- --+---------+-----------+-------+-+-------+--
- | | | | |
- Nanda Upananda Kritaka Sura Others.
-
-
- 4. _Bhadra_
- |
- Kesin.
-
-
- 5. _Rochana_
- |
- --+---------------+--------+--------+--
- | | |
- Hasta Hemangada Others
-
-
-
- 6. _Ila_.
- |
- --+---------------------+-----------+--
- | |
- Uruvalka Others.
-
-
- 7. _Dhritadeva_
- |
- Vipristha.
-
-
- 8. _Santideva_
- |
- --+-----------+-----------+------+--
- | | |
- Prasama Prathita Others.
-
-
- 9. _Upadeva_
- |
- --+-----------+-----------+------+--
- | | |
- Rajanya Kalpa-Varha Others.
-
-
- 10. _Srideva_
- |
- --+---------+----------+---+------+--
- | | | |
- Vasu Hansa Suvansa Others.
-
-
- 11. _Devarakshita_
- |
- --+------------------------+------+--
- | |
- Gada Others.
-
-
- 12. _Shahadeva_
- |
- --+-------------+---------+------+--
- | | |
- Pravara Srutimukhya Others.
-
-
- 13. _Devaki_
- |
- --+---------+----------+-------+-+---------+----------+----\
- | | | | | | |
- Kirtimat Sushena Bhadrasena Riju Sanmardana Bhadra |
- |
- --+----------------+-------------+--------------/
- | | |
- Sankarshana KRISHNA Subhadra.
-
-With the birth of Sri Krishna, we come to the end of the Ninth Skandha
-of the Bhagavata Purana. But for the completion of the racial account,
-we give here only the 1st. Chapter of the 12th. Skandha.
-
-*SKANDHA XII. CHAP. 1.*
-
-We have seen Ripunjaya to be the last of the Magadha kings. He will be
-also called Puranjaya (The future tense, it must be remembered, is used
-solely with reference to the time of Parikshit). His minister Sunaka
-shall kill him and place his own son Pradyota on the throne.
-
- Pradyota
- |
- Palaka
- |
- Visakha
- |
- Rajaka
- |
- Nandivardhana
-
-These 5 kings of the line of Pradyota shall reign for 138 years.
-
- Nandi Vardhana Ajata-Satru (Contd).
- | |
- Sisunaga Darbhaka
- | |
- Kakavarna Aj-aya
- | |
- Kshemadharma Nandi Vardhana
- | |
- Kshetrajna Mahanandi
- | |
- Vidhisara Saisunaga
- |
- Ajata-Satru
-
-These ten shall reign for 360 years--Mahanandi shall have a son, Nanda,
-by a Sudra woman. He shall be the next king. One Brahmana Chanakya shall
-kill Nanda and his eight sons and shall place Chandra Gupta on the
-throne.
-
- Chandra Gupta
- |
- Varisara
- |
- Asokavardhana
- |
- Suyasas
- |
- Dasaratha
- |
- Sangata
- |
- Salisuka
- |
- Soma-Sarman
- |
- Satadhanvan
- |
- Brihadratha
-
-These ten kings called Mauryas shall reign for 137 years. Pushpamitra,
-Commander of Brihadratha's forces, shall kill his master and be king
-himself. He shall be the founder of the Sunga dynasty.
-
- PUSHPAMITRA
- |
- Agnimitra
- |
- Sujyestha
- |
- --+---------------------+-----------------+--
- | | |
- Vasumitra Bhadraka Pulinda
- |
- Utghosha
- |
- Vajramitra
- |
- Bhagavata
- |
- Devabhuti
-
-These (10) ten kings of the Sunga dynasty shall reign for 112 years.
-Vasudeva, the minister of Devabhuti, shall kill his master and become
-himself the king.
-
- VASUDEVA
- |
- Bhumitra
- |
- Narayana
- |
- Susarman
-
-These four kings shall be called Kanvas. They shall reign for 345 years.
-Susarman shall be killed by his servant Balin, a Sudra of the Andhra
-clan, who shall himself usurp the throne. Balin shall be succeeded by
-his brother.
-
- --+------------+--
- | |
- Balin Krishna Anishta Karman Gomati
- | | |
- Srisantakarna Haleya Purimat
- | | |
- Pournamasa Talaka Medasiras
- | | |
- Lambodara Purishabhiru Sivaskanda
- | | |
- Chivilaka Sunandana Yajnasri
- | | |
- Meghasvati Chakora Vijaya
- | | |
- Atamana 8 Bahus Chandravijna
- | ending in Sivasvati |
- Anishta Karman Salomadhi
-
-These thirty kings of the Andhra dynasty shall rule the earth for 456
-years. Seven Abhiras, kings of Avabhriti, ten Gardabhins (men of
-Gardabha) and sixteen Kankas shall then be the rulers. They shall be
-followed by 8 Yavanas, 14 Turushkas and ten Surundas. These 65 kings
-shall reign for one thousand and ninety nine years. Eleven Moulas shall
-then be the kings for 300 years.
-
-Bhuta-Nanda, Bangiri, Sisunandi and Yaso-Nandi shall then become kings.
-Their sons, all known as Bahlikas, shall succeed them. Then Pushpamitra
-shall be the king, then his son Durmitra. Seven Andhras, seven Kosalas,
-Vidurapatis and Nishadhas shall then become kings, at one and the same
-time, over the lands of these names. They shall be the descendants of
-the Bahlikas.
-
-Visvasphurji, otherwise called Puranjaya, shall be the king of the
-Magadhas. He shall make havoc of the caste system. His chief town shall
-be Padmavati (Modern Patna) but his kingdom shall extend from Hardwar to
-Pryag.
-
-Then there shall be Sudra and Mlechcha kings.
-
-
-
-THOUGHTS ON THE VAIVASVATA MANVANTARA.
-
-
-The study of the Vaivasvata Manvantara can be pursued, as to minor
-details, from more than one stand-point. But I am at present concerned
-with only the broad outlines of its esoteric aspect.
-
-We are to understand, in the first place, that there are certain types
-of human races in this as in other Manvantaras. Each of these types has
-a history of its own. Each has its stages of growth, rise and decline,
-and some have their periods of revival in this Manvantara as well. Each
-racial type has to be studied separately.
-
-The connection of the races with the Sun and the Moon requires a little
-consideration.
-
-Those who are acquainted with Hindu astrology know that the life time of
-a man is divided into certain divisions, each division being under the
-influence of one planet. Each planetary period again has its
-sub-divisions, in each of which there is a secondary run of the planets.
-
-According to the Bengal School, the main planetary run takes 108 years
-for its completion, and according to another school, it takes 120 years.
-
-The following is the order of planetary succession according to the
-second school, which prevails all over India, except in Bengal: --
-
-Sun 6 years, Moon 10, Mars 7, Rahu 18, Brihaspati 16, Saturn 19, Mercury
-17, Ketu 7 and Venus 20. Thus if a man lives for 120 years, all the
-planets will in turn have influenced his life in the above order,
-commencing from the planet of his birth. Again there will be
-corresponding sub-runs of all the planets during each planetary run. The
-races are also governed by such planetary influences.
-
-The Solar Dynasty means that the particular type of humanity so denoted
-was born under the influence of the solar planet. When all the planets
-have in turn exercised their influence over this Dynasty, it disappears
-for a time and is re-born under the influence of the Sun.
-
-Similarly there will be a revival of the Lunar dynasty -- that which
-commenced under the influence of the Moon.
-
-The law of planetary influence over the human races is not as clearly
-known as that over individual men. Otherwise the future history of each
-race would not be the sealed book to us which it is.
-
-The humanity of the present Manvantara was first born under the
-influence of the Solar Planet. Our Moon is the son of the Sun-God.
-
-The races that first appeared were called Solar races.
-
-Other races appeared under the influence of the Moon. In these races we
-find first the influence of Brihaspati or Jupiter, through his wife
-Tara, then of Budha or Mercury, and lastly of Sukra or Venus, through
-his daughter Devayani.
-
-This planetary succession may be only a Sub-run of the planets. We read,
-in the account of the previous Manvantaras, of the appearance of Sukra
-as the guide of the Daityas, and of Brihaspati as the guide of the
-Devas. We have also read of the appearance of Rahu in the sixth
-Manvantara. This shews that the main planetary round has to be found in
-the Kalpa itself.
-
-Our knowledge on the whole subject is however so poor that it is unsafe
-to make any distinct suggestion.
-
-Now we shall take the Solar Races, or the sons of Vaivasvat Manu, in
-order of their treatment in the text. _Prishadhta_ and _Kavi_ were the
-first spiritual races. They did not marry _i.e._ there was no sexual
-reproduction among them.
-
-Next in order was the _Karusha_ race inhabiting the north.
-
-The _Dharshtas_ were also a spiritual race (Brahmanas).
-
-The descent towards Materiality commenced with Nriga. He is said to have
-been transformed into a lizard. His grandson was _Bhutajyoti_, Bhutas
-being different forms of matter. _Vasu_ is a God of Material wealth.
-_Pratika_ means the reverse or opposite (_i.e._ the reverse of spirit.)
-_Ogha_ means a current. The current of materialism set in with the line
-of Nriga.
-
-The next line, that of Narishyanta, shews further materiality. Midhvat
-is that which wets (the root _mih_ means to pass water). _Viti_ is
-production, enjoyments. Vitihotra is the name of a sacrificial fire.
-_Agnivesya_ is an incarnation of Agni or the Fire-God, but he is
-nick-named Kanina or son of an unmarried woman and also _Jatukarna_ (the
-name of a Vedic Rishi). There seems to have been sexual procreation in
-this line. The incarnation of Agni further indicates that the present
-human form was complete, for Agni is the form-giving energy in Nature.
-
-In the next line of _Dishta_ we have _Vatsapriti_ or affection for
-children, _Pransu_ or tall, _Pramati_ or full-grown intellect,
-_Khanitra_ or digger, _Chakshusha_ or the eyed, and _Khaninetra_ or the
-hollow-eyed. This line represents the race of the earliest diggers, very
-tall, with the hollow eye predominant in them as a characteristic
-feature; this race was very powerful and capable of direct communion
-with the Devas, and the gods acted as waiters in the Yajna of Marutta.
-
-The line of Saryati refers to Anarta and a town named Kusasthali, built
-in the midst of the Sea. Evidently the continent on which the race
-flourished is now under water. Anarta is supposed to be Sourashtra
-(modern Surat.) But the site of Kusasthali cannot be ascertained. There
-were remnants of this race till the time of Krishna, for Balaram married
-Revati, the daughter of Kakudmin (hump-backed). The line of Nabhaga is a
-short one and it merged itself into that of Angiras who was the father
-of Brihaspati or Jupiter. Ambarisha is the prominent figure of this
-period.
-
-Then we come to the line of _Ikshvaku_. This is the best known line of
-the Solar races. It flourished during the last Tretayuga. _Ikshvaku_ is
-called the eldest son of Manu. Perhaps this has reference to the
-appearance of the Race in the previous Manvantaras.
-
-The eldest son of Ikshvaku is Vikukshi (_Kukshi_ is womb.) He is also
-called Sasada or the Rabbit-eater. The Moon is called Rabbit-marked.
-
-_Puranjaya_ is the son of Vikukshi. He is called Indra-Vaha or
-Indra-Vehicled. Several of the kings of this dynasty befriended the
-Devas of Svar Loka.
-
-Further down we find King _Purukutsa_ forming an alliance with the
-elemental serpents, and holding communion with the dwellers of Rasatala.
-The river Narvada is mentioned in connection with Rasatala.
-
-_Mandhata_ is a traditional name that has been preserved upto this time
-in common parlance in the saying "As old as king Mandhata." The line of
-Mandhata was divided into three different branches. _Muchukunda_
-represented a branch of Yogins. The long, unbroken sleep of Muchukunda
-is traditional and he is credited also with Yogic powers. Another branch
-that of Ambarisha, Youvanasva and Harita represented a spiritual
-sub-race. But we have to follow the history of the Atlanteans through
-Purukutsa. The connection with Rasatala, or the plane of Material
-ascendancy, affected the destiny of this line. In Trisanku, the
-aspiration ran very high. He became a Deva, but had his head turned
-downwards, _i.e._ turned towards materiality. With the powers of a Deva,
-but with the aspirations of an Asura, the ground was prepared for the
-downfall of this line. For a time, however, the Race flourished in all
-its materiality. The alliance between Devas and men became cemented by
-the performance of Vedic sacrifices. This was the first spiritual
-advance of the human race, through the temptations of Svarga life.
-
-The time of Haris Chandra is the Vedic era, when the earliest Riks of
-what we know as Rigveda were composed. Visvamitra and his disciples were
-the Vedic Rishis of this age. The Vedas tried to curb the riotous course
-of materiality by prescribing a number of restrictions on the enjoyment
-of material desires. Elaborate rules were laid down as to how the
-desires might be best gratified for a prolonged period in Svargaloka, by
-the performance of sacrifices or Yajna. The whole of the life of the
-regenerate classes was regulated by rigid laws and a glowing picture was
-given of life in Svarga after death. The sacred injunctions were not,
-however, potent enough to check the Kamic tendencies of the race and the
-cyclic law which now required the spiritual evolution of humanity was
-continually disregarded by the race. This was poison (_gara_) to the
-system of humanity and king Sagar imbibed this poison. Hence he was
-called the Poisoned. He had two wives. The sons of one wife were 60
-thousand in number. They offended Kapila, an Incarnation of Vishnu, and
-thus were all consumed. They reached the limit of material degradation,
-where final extinction awaited the race. The number 60,000 is
-suggestive.
-
-The extinction of Sagara's sons was attended with great changes on the
-earth's surface. It is said they dug the earth and made the seas in
-their search for the sacrificial horse. Hence the sea is called Sagara.
-This may refer to the sinking down of Atlantis when a large portion of
-that great continent became a sea-bed. There was a corresponding
-upheaval of land and the Himalayan chain reared up its head, as we can
-easily infer from the first appearance of the Ganges. The first flow of
-Ganga indicated a many sided revolution in the appearance of the earth's
-surface. A new continent was formed to which India was attached as the
-prominent link. Spiritual sub-races grew up on the banks of the sacred
-river who more than atoned for the sins of their fathers. The
-fore-runner of the race of spirituality was Asamanjas (rising above the
-ordinary run). He was a Yogin not led away by the material tendencies of
-the age. His son was Ansumat (having the ray or light in him). Ansumat
-pacified Kapila.
-
-Ganga is said to be a spiritual stream flowing from the feet of Vishnu.
-With the advent of this stream, the spiritual rebirth of humanity
-commenced in right earnest, for the remaining period of the Kalpa.
-Already the path had been paved by the Karmakanda of the Vedas, which
-put restrictions on the wanton and reckless performance of Karma or
-action. The pure magnetism of the holy river helped on the process of
-regeneration. But this was not in itself sufficient to cope with the
-forces of materiality. Accordingly we see _Kalmasha_ or sin appearing in
-the line of Bhagiratha. King Kalmashapada became a Rakshasa. A Rakshasa
-is an elemental of destruction. When mind becomes too much identified
-with the gross body and its desires, its connection with the Higher Self
-is liable to be cut off by the action of the Rakshasas. These forces of
-Tamas act in different ways to serve different purposes in the economy
-of the Universe. When the material downfall of man reaches its furthest
-limit in the Kalpa, the Rakshasas become Tamasic forces in man and he is
-unconscious of his higher nature. That sleep in time becomes a permanent
-sleep, and the lower man becomes dead to his real Self. This is the real
-death of man, when the ray sent forth by Ishvara comes back to Him,
-without any spiritual harvest, and what constituted the personality of
-man dissolves into the Material Universe.
-
-The time had come when a fresh departure was necessary in the methods
-pursued by the Lila Avataras for the spiritual regeneration of the
-Universe. They had now to appear amongst men, as ordinary beings, to
-give direct teachings to their votaries, to infuse as much Satva as
-possible into humanity and to retard by all means the further extinction
-of the human race.
-
-For a time the Rakshasas reigned supreme, but not over the new
-continent, permeated as it was by the sacred waters of the Ganges. Their
-stronghold was Lanka, the remnant of the Atlantean continent. Following
-the descent of Ganga therefore, Vishnu incarnated himself as Rama, one
-of the greatest of his manifestations. The Rakshasas of Lanka were
-killed. Vibhishana only survived, but he was allied to Rama and so
-became immortal in spirituality. The Rakshasa survives in us but its
-energy of dissolution does not militate against the evolution of man. It
-was Rama who first gave the idea of Ishvara to the degraded human races
-of the present Manvantara. They knew, for the first time, that there was
-one greater than all the Devas -- the Gods of the Vedas -- and that
-there were planes higher than even Svarga. The path of devotion was
-proclaimed. And it became possible for men to cross the limits of death
-and of Triloki by this quality. The downfall was stopped no doubt; but
-the ascent was only permanently secured by Lord Sri Krishna as we shall
-see later on.
-
-After Rama, there is little of interest in the line of Ikshvaku. The
-decline commenced and the line became extinct with Sumitra, but it is
-said one king Maru of this line became an adept in Yoga and retired to
-Kalapa, where he bides his time to revive the solar dynasty towards the
-end of the Kaliyuga. We may take him to be the originator of another
-race which will be the re-incarnation of the Ikshvaku race.
-
-We have considered the line of Ikshvaku's descendants through Purukutsa.
-There is another line of his descendants through Nimisha. Then we come
-to the Lunar Dynasty.
-
-The Lunar races first appeared while the descendants of Ikshvaku were
-still flourishing, though on the eve of their decline. They had immense
-possibilities of spiritual evolution, and the great Aryan race seems to
-be connected with them. The appearance of these races is almost
-simultaneous with the first flow of the Ganges. For we find Jahnu, who
-swallowed up the Ganges in her first terrestrial course, is only sixth
-in the line of descent from Pururavas.
-
-The Lunar dynasty originated in the union of Tara, the female principle
-of Brihaspati (Jupiter), and the Moon. The issue was Budha (Mercury),
-the direct progenitor of the Lunar dynasty.
-
-The son of Budha was Pururavas. He married Urvasi, the renowned Deva
-nymph.
-
-Pururavas had six sons. But we are concerned with only two of them, Ayus
-and Vijaya.
-
-Vijaya gave the Adept line of the race and Ayus, the ordinary humanity.
-
-In the line of Vijaya, we find Jahnu, purified by the assimilation of
-Ganga, Visvamitra, pre-eminently the Rishi of the Rig Veda and one of
-the seven sages who watch over the destiny of the present Manvantara,
-Jamadagni, another of the seven sages of our Manvantara and Parasurama
-one of the coming sages of the next Manvantara. We have already
-mentioned the part taken by Visvamitra and his sons in the composition
-of the Vedic Mantras.
-
-Coming to the line of Ayus, we recognise the forefathers of the Aryan
-races.
-
-In the short-lived branch through Kshatra-vriddha, we find the Vedic
-Rishi Gritsamada, his son Sunaka, the renowned Sounaka, Dirghatamas and
-Dhanvantari, the promulgator of Ayur-veda.
-
-But the longest history of the Race is through the descendants of
-Yayati.
-
-King Yayati married Devayani, the daughter of Sukra, the presiding Rishi
-of the planet Venus, and had by her two sons, Yadu and Turvasu. Sukra is
-the son of Bhrigu, the Rishi of Mahar Loka. Devayana, is the path
-leading beyond Triloki, after death.
-
-But the King had also connection with a Danava girl, who brought forth
-three sons, Druhyu, Anu and Puru. For his Danava connection, King Yayati
-had in youth to undergo the infirmities of age. This evil was
-transmitted to Puru, the youngest son of the Danava girl.
-
-The line of Puru was short-lived. But it is this line that gave some of
-the renowned Vedic Rishis, viz. Apratiratha, Kanva, Medhatithi and
-Praskanva. Dushmanta, the hero of Kalidasa's renowned drama also came of
-this line. Vishnu incarnated in part as Bharata, son of Dushmanta.
-
-Then there was a revolution. Bharata found that his sons were not like
-unto himself. So the direct line of Puru came to an end. What followed
-is a little mysterious. Bharata adopted Bharadvaja as his son.
-Bharadvaja was begotten by Brihaspati (Jupiter) on the wife of his
-brother Utathya named Mamata (Egoism).
-
-Bharadvaja is one of the seven presiding Rishis of the present
-Manvantara. His name is connected with several Mantras of the Rig Veda.
-
-The great actors in the Kurukshetra battle were the descendants of
-Bharadvaja. We find much diversity of spiritual characteristics among
-them. The material and spiritual forces were gathered together, in all
-possible grades from the Pandavas downward to the sons of Dhrita-rashtra
-and their allies. The poetical genius of the author of the Mahabharata
-has called forth characters in the Drama of the Kurukshetra battle, that
-stand out in all the details of real life and find a permanent place in
-the genealogy of the Lunar dynasty. The study of the racial account of
-the line of Bharadvaja becomes therefore extremely difficult.
-
-The Lunar dynasty will be revived by Devapi, a descendant of Bharadvaja,
-who is biding his time at Kalapa.
-
-The early inhabitants of Bengal, Behar and Urishya were the sons of Anu,
-the second son of Sarmistha. The famous Kama, one of the heroes of
-Kurukshetra, also belonged to this line.
-
-The eldest son of Sarmistha by Yayati was Druhyu. Prachetas of this line
-had one hundred sons, who inhabited the north as Mlechha races.
-
-But the greatest interest attaches to the line of Yadu, the eldest son
-of Yayati by Devayani. The early descendants of this line were the
-Haihayas, killed by Parasurama, and the Talajanghas, killed by Sagar --
-both of the Solar Dynasty. The Mahabharata has given an importance to
-the overthrow of these early Yadu classes as a victory of the Brahmanas
-over the Kshatriyas. Next to the Brahmanas in intelligence were the
-Kshatriyas. They eagerly accepted the teachings of Rama, who incarnated
-as one of them. They knew Isvara as higher than the Devas and the
-Brahmanas. They thought they could profitably employ their time in
-seeking after the knowledge of Brahman. This necessarily offended the
-orthodox Brahmanas, who performed the Vedic sacrifices and had no higher
-ambition than to resort to Devaloka. The Kshatriyas thus represented a
-religious evolution, of which the Upanishads were an outcome. In time,
-some Brahmanas even became disciples of Kshatriyas. Both Rama and
-Krishna incarnated themselves as Kshatriyas. We are to understand that
-by Kshatriyas, during this period of Puranic history, is meant seceders
-from Vedic Karma Kanda more or less.
-
-The early seceders, the Haihayas and Talajanghas were put down by the
-Brahmana Parasurama and by the Kshatriya King Sagar, who espoused the
-cause of Vedic Karma Kanda and of the Brahmanas, represented by Rishi
-Aurva of this time.
-
-Parasurama did not like any meddling with Vedic Karma Kanda by persons
-not perfected in wisdom. Even Rama had to respect the Vedic Rishis and
-had to protect them in the performance of Vedic sacrifices from the
-attacks of Asuras and Rakshasas. When Lord Krishna appeared on the
-scene, the Asuras still survived; the Vedic Rishis denied offerings to
-Him, Vedic Karma had a strong supporter in Jarasandha, there was
-hypocrisy in the name of religion, and there were pretensions in various
-forms. On the other hand great improvements had been made in the proper
-understanding of the realities of life and of the laws of nature.
-Intellect overflowed in many channels of thought, and the religious
-nature of man found vent in all directions from atheism to religious
-devotion.
-
-Leaving this general resume, we may now enter upon a closer study of the
-history of religious movements in our present Manvantara, so that we may
-understand the great work done by Lord Sri Krishna. The races live as
-individuals live. However developed an individual may be, when he is
-re-born after death, he first becomes a child as any other child. There
-is much of spiritual life in the child, and sometimes pictures of
-heavenly life are presented to his spiritual vision, which are denied to
-to the grown-up man. The child begins his life when he is grown up, and
-then his individual characteristics soon manifest themselves. We do not
-read much of the man in the child. Hence the history of the early
-spiritual races, who were infants in the racial life, does not teach us
-anything. We find some of them had communion with the Devas of Svarga
-Loka, but that is more on account of their infant spirituality than any
-thing else.
-
-When the races developed in time, they became most intellectual as well
-as most material at the same time. Manvantara after Manvantara was taken
-up in developing the physiological (Pranic) activities, the sense
-(Indriya) activities, and then the lower mental activities of the Jivas.
-The personal man was fully developed in the sixth Manvantara and the
-great churning only opened the door for another line of development. The
-possibility of spiritual activity was secured to men by Kurma.
-
-When the races of the Sixth Manvantara therefore became reborn in the
-Seventh Manvantara, they were the most intellectual of all races, but
-they had also the power given to them of developing spiritual faculties.
-They could not however shake off the Asuric element all at once. They
-were extremely fond of material joys, and they devised all means, which
-human intellect could contrive, of gratifying material desires. That was
-right which gave material gratification; that was wrong which militated
-against material enjoyment.
-
-Bhuvar Loka is the plane of animal desires. The human beasts go after
-death to Bhuvar Loka. They do not possess anything which could take them
-to Svarga Loka.
-
-The Svarga Loka is for those who develop in themselves the faculty of
-discriminating between right and wrong, and who do or attempt to do what
-is right. Far more it is for those who love others and who do good to
-them. For service and love pertain to planes higher even than Svarga.
-But in the higher planes, service is unselfish and love is divine. The
-lower forms of service and love pertain to the plane of Svarga. In
-Svarga there is selfishness, but it is mixed with spirituality. It is
-only the good, the virtuous, the devoted that go to the plane of the
-Devas and there gratify their higher desires to their heart's content.
-There are divine music, divine beauty, divine objects of gratification
-in Svarga Loka -- allurements enough for a man of desire. And if his
-merits be great, he enjoys the things of Svarga Loka for an enormously
-long period.
-
-But a man by bare intellectuality can not cross the threshold of Svarga.
-The Devas reject the intruder. However much Trisanku might aspire to
-have the enjoyments of Svarga, and however great his intellect might be,
-he was not allowed to enter the coveted plane, without the passport of
-spirituality. Humanity had still to learn the proper means of securing
-life in Svarga.
-
-Poor and chance spiritual acquisitions give only a passing life in
-Svarga and that not of a superior character. So all the knowledge as to
-attaining Svarga life had to be revealed in time.
-
-The Rishis made great efforts to improve humanity by securing for them a
-prolonged existence in Svarga, most of all Rishi Visvamitra, one of the
-seven sages of our Manvantara. Visvamitra failed in his attempt to send
-Trisanku to Svarga. He then tried with his son Haris Chandra. It is said
-he advised the Raja to make a human sacrifice to Varuna. But we find the
-victim Sunah-sepha living after the sacrifice, under the name of
-Deva-rata, or one given up to the gods, and some of the Riks even were
-revealed to him. Haris Chandra succeeded in entering Svarga. That was a
-great victory for Rishi Visvamitra. The Vedas were revealed to the
-Rishis and sacrifices came to be known.
-
-Narada also helped the cause in another away. He related the beauty and
-the virtues of king Pururavas to the Devas in Svarga. Urvasi, the famous
-Deva nymph, hearing all that, became enamoured of the king. She had
-then, by the curse of some god, a human form. So she could keep company
-with the King. The king was enchanted by her beauty. When she left, he
-followed her advice and pleased the Gandharvas. The Gandharvas gave him
-the fire, with which the king could perform sacrifice. The fire became
-threefold. With one he could perform his duties to the Devas and go to
-Svarga Loka. With another, he could perform his duties to the Pitris.
-With the third fire, he could perform the duties of a house-holder. Thus
-sacrifices meant duties. And it is by the performance of duties that men
-can perform Vedic sacrifices and go to Svarga Loka.
-
-The Vedas laid down injunctions and prohibitions. They regulated the
-actions of men, propelled by Kama or desire. Men must eat meat. The
-Vedas said this meat was prohibited, but that could be used. Men mixed
-with women. The Vedas laid down restrictions. Even they regulated the
-relations between man and wife. Then the Vedas laid down the duties
-which men owed to all classes of beings. In order to induce men to
-accept the Vedic injunctions, the Vedas held out Svarga as the reward of
-Vedic Karma. They even favoured the belief, that there was to be
-immortal life in Svarga gained by the performance of Vedic Karma.
-Detailed rules as to the performance of Vedic sacrifices were given. So
-long as men did not aspire to become Indra, or the ruler of Svarga, the
-Devas were pleased with the sacrifices; they helped the performer as
-much as they could, giving them all objects of desire, and they welcomed
-them to Svarga, when they passed to that plane after death. The Devas
-were as friendly to the performer of Vedic Karma as they were unfriendly
-to the immature Trisanku.
-
-The Vedic Karma Kanda became thus fully revealed. The revelation was
-made in the last Treta-yuga of the present Manvantara. "At the beginning
-of the Treta Yuga, the three Vedas were revealed through Pururavas." IX.
-14-49. "The path of Karma was promulgated in Treta Yuga, by the division
-of the Vedas." _Sridhara_.
-
-The great churning was justified. The Devas asserted themselves for the
-good of humanity. The Rishis got the revelation and helped men to place
-themselves in active relationship with the Devas. Men learned to
-regulate themselves and to give up the wantonness of material life. And
-they had a strong inducement to do so in the prospect of eternal life in
-Svarga. The great actor in this Vedic movement was Rishi Visvamitra,
-(Hallowed be his name!) Others followed him in quick succession, and
-there was a brilliant combination of Vedic Rishis who propounded the
-whole of the Karma Kanda of the Vedas, as it was revealed to them by the
-force of Kalpic necessity.
-
-At all times there have been two parties, one following the current of
-evolution, and another going against it. At all times there have been
-cavillers and sceptics.
-
-The Haihayas and Talajanghas were confirmed materialists and great
-sinners. They ridiculed the Brahmanas, who performed Vedic Karma, and
-often set themselves in opposition to them. They were very troublesome
-to the Brahmanas. King Sagar wanted to extinguish the race, but he was
-prevented from doing so. Possibly Atlantis was the country inhabited by
-these races and Nature helped the cause of evolution by dragging down
-the continent itself under water. The sacred Ganga also flowed at this
-time, spreading purity over all lands lying on her banks.
-
-The Haihayas however still flourished; and they had a great leader in
-Karta-Viryarjuna. Then came one of the great Avataras, Parasurama. He
-extirpated the Haihaya Kshatriyas, and went on killing the Kshatriyas
-till Rama appeared, and it was then that he thought his mission was
-over.
-
-If there were some Kshatriyas who disregarded the Vedas, there were
-others who found transitoriness, even in Svarga Loka, and honestly
-thought that the complete wisdom was not to be found in the Karma Kanda.
-They were for further revelations At first, the Brahmanas did not look
-with favour upon these Kshatriyas. But when it was found that the
-Kshatriyas got real light, they were soon joined by the Brahmanas. The
-foremost of these Kshatriyas was Janaka, and the foremost of the
-Brahmanas was Yajnavalkya. The further revelations were called the
-Upanishads.
-
-King Janaka found Sita, the consort of Rama, at the end of his plough.
-Yajnavalkya defeated all the Brahmanas of his time in discussions held
-at the court of king Janaka.
-
-When Rama incarnated, there existed the people of Lanka, a remnant of
-the Atlantean continent, who had inherited a mighty material
-civilisation, but who were called Rakshasas, on account of their gross
-iniquities. They reached the last point of material downfall, and lost
-all spirituality. They were called Rakshasas as final extinction was
-their lot, and as the force of dissolution was strong in them.
-
-Then there were the regenerate classes, who performed Vedic sacrifices.
-There were a few again, who accepted the Upanishads as a teaching, but
-they could not boldly declare themselves against the performance of
-sacrifices.
-
-Rama finally did away with the Rakshasas. The bard who sang his glory,
-the great Valmiki, thus began his lay: -- "O Killer of birds, thou shalt
-not live for ever, as of the pair of storks thou hast killed the male,
-so passionately attached to his consort." Verily the Purusha in us, the
-ray of the supreme Purusha, becomes passionately attached to the element
-of Prakriti in us, so that we may acquire spiritual experiences through
-the body. And it is a cruel act to separate our Prakritic
-individualities completely from him by turning ourselves persistently
-away from the Purusha. But when Rama became an Avatara, the fate of the
-separator was sealed.
-
-When the Rakshasas were killed, the Rishis were left free to perform the
-Vedic sacrifices.
-
-Rama did something more. He married the daughter of Janaka, and by this
-act openly espoused the cause of the Upanishads.
-
-Lastly Rama offered Himself as an object of worship. This was the
-beginning of Vishnu worship, which makes no distinction between classes
-and castes. Rama openly made friendship with Guhaka, belonging to the
-lowest class, whom it was an abomination to touch, for Guhaka was
-devotedly attached to Him, as an Incarnation of Vishnu.
-
-The world admired Rama. No man could reach such eminence. He must be
-something more than a man. In time men accepted him as an Avatara. At
-any rate, he was an example to others in every respect. The ethical
-standard he laid down in his own life was unimpeachable. The world had
-never seen such sacrifices in the performance of the duties of life. A
-model king, a model son, a model husband, a model brother, a model
-warrior, a model friend, the model of models, Rama left an indelible
-mark as a religious and moral teacher, on the age in which he lived, and
-on all succeeding ages.
-
-The example was not lost on the world. The many-sided picture, that Rama
-presented, produced a spirit of enquiry, which has never been rivalled
-in this Kalpa. Men thought on different lines. They studied the
-Upanishads, which had been favoured by Rama. They could not forget also
-that Rama taught salvation for the performers of Vedic sacrifices. Then
-there was the teaching of his own life. The light was manifold.
-Independent schools of thought grew up, notably the six schools of
-philosophy. Each school tried to find its authority in the Upanishads
-and the divine scriptures supplied texts enough for all the schools.
-Every school found a part of the truth but not the whole truth. Yet each
-school regarded its own part as the whole. So they quarrelled. The
-Mimansakas said that the performance of Vedic sacrifices was all in all.
-It had the sanction of time-honored texts and of the most ancient
-Rishis. And Jaimini supplied the reasoning by which the practice could
-be supported. The Sankhyas said that the chief duty of a man was to
-discriminate between the transformable and the non-transformable element
-in him, and when that was done, nothing more was needed. The followers
-of Patanjali said that mere discrimination was not sufficient, but a
-continued practice was required. The Vaiseshikas studied the attributes
-and properties of all objects and sought by differentiation to know the
-truths. There were others who worshipped the Bhutas, Pretas and
-Pisachas, so that they might easily acquire powers. Others worshipped
-the dwellers of Svarga Loka. Some worshipped Ishvara. But mostly the
-worship of Siva was prevalent. Gifts and charities also were not
-unknown, in fact they were very extensive in some instances. But
-generally the object of all religious observances was self-seeking more
-or less.
-
-Amidst this diversity of religious ideas and religious observances,
-seemingly so contradictory, Sri Krishna, the greatest of all Avataras,
-appeared and He brought the message of peace and reconciliation. He laid
-great stress on the fact that the performance of Vedic sacrifices could
-lead us only to Svarga Loka, but when our merits were exhausted, we were
-bound to be born again on Bhur Loka, our Earth. While on Earth, we form
-fresh Karma, which gives rise to other births. The performance of Vedic
-Karma does not therefore free us from the bondage of births, for, as the
-Lord said, there is object-seeking in these performances. Object-seeking
-for one's own self does not find a place in the higher Lokas. Its
-highest limit is Svarga Loka. So long as man remains self-seeking, he
-can not transcend the limits of Triloki. In the higher Lokas, there is
-no recurrence of births and re-births. Once you are translated to Mahar
-Loka, you live for the whole of the remaining period of the Kalpa,
-passing through a gradual evolution to the higher Lokas. And if you form
-a devotional tie with the Lord of many Brahmandas, the First Purusha,
-even the Kalpic period does not restrict your existence. Liberation is a
-relative term. It may be from the bondage of births and re-births in
-Triloki. It may be liberation from the bondage of Bvahmandas or solar
-systems. Those who worship only material objects remain chained to this
-earth. Those who worship the dwellers of Bhuvar Loka (Bhutas, Pretas,
-Pisachas and Pitris) or cultivate aspiration for them become allied to
-them and they pass only to Bhuvar Loka after death. Those who worship
-the Devas and cultivate this aspiration go to Svarga Loka after death.
-Those who worship Hiranya-garbha go up to Satya or Brahma Loka. Those
-who worship the Lord of all Brahmandas pass beyond even the Brahmanda.
-
-The first thing that a man should do is to transcend the limits of
-Triloki. This he cannot do as long as he is self-seeking. He should
-therefore perform his actions _unselfishly_. And the Lord said as
-follows: --
-
-1. There is the perishable and the imperishable element in us. Karma or
-actions appertain to the perishable element. The perishable element
-constantly changes, so it cannot be our real self or Atma. From the
-stand-point of our real self, we can dissociate ourselves from our
-actions, which relate to our transitory nature. Here the system of
-Sankhya came into requisition.
-
-2. But by this discrimination, we can not forcibly stop the performance
-of actions. For the actions are propelled by (_a_) active tendencies
-which form an inseparable part of our present nature, and (_b_) by the
-necessity of our very existence. So by stopping actions, we force the
-tendencies to mental channels, and cause more mischief by producing
-mental germs for the future. And we cannot stop all actions, as some are
-necessary for our bare existence.
-
-3. Therefore we are to perform actions, and we can perform them
-unselfishly, if they are done from a pure sense of duty. We are to take
-duty as a law of our very existence. _Yajna_ is only another name for
-this law. The Lord of beings, having created all beings with the Yajna,
-said of yore, -- "You shall prosper by the performance of this Yajna and
-this Yajna shall be the producer of all desired objects for you." Yajna
-consists of mutual sacrifices, as all beings are dependent on one
-another. "Think of the Devas by means of Yajna, and the Devas shall
-think of you." All our actions may be classed under duties -- duties
-which we owe to the Devas, the Pitris, the sages, the animals and to
-other men. If we perform our Karma for the sake of Yajna only, we
-perform it unselfishly.
-
-4. As discrimination is useful in realising the real self, so restraint
-is necessary to put down the acquired self. The tendencies of the
-acquired self, if left to themselves, prompt men to ever recurring
-actions, which again produce their own effects, some of which develop
-into fresh tendencies or strengthen the pre-existing tendencies. So
-restraint is to be constantly practised. The object of restraint is to
-free the mind from thoughts of the object world and to fix it on the
-real self, Atma. Here the system of Patanjali comes into requisition.
-But the system is to be accepted with this reservation that Yoga does
-not necessarily mean renunciation of Karma. It includes the unselfish
-performance of Karma and, for the average humanity, renunciation of
-Karma is harmful as an expedient of Yoga. Though there may be some who
-do not require Karma for themselves, yet they should not renounce it, if
-they want to set an example to others and not to confound their
-intellect.
-
-5. But the Purva Mimansakas say: Vedic Karma is all in all, and the
-authority of the Vedas is supreme. Here Sri Krishna had to assert
-Himself as an Avatara, and He asked people to accept His own authority.
-He said there was self-seeking in Vedic Karma, and one could not
-therefore avoid the recurrence of births by the performance of Vedic
-Karma. So Sri Krishna said to Uddhava: -- "If the Vedas say that men
-attain Svarga by the performance of Vedic Karma, it is simply by way of
-inducement, and not as pointing out the supreme end. The father says;
-'Boy, eat this bitter medicine and I will give thee this cake in my
-hand.' The boy takes the medicine for the sweet thing. But that really
-leads to his recovery from the disease. So the Vedas mean final
-liberation as the end. But to enforce restraint, they hold out the
-prospect of Svarga, which is most agreeable to men." (Elaboration of XI.
-21. 23.)
-
-Many were unwilling to accept the authority of Sri Krishna, and the
-chief amongst them was Sisupala.
-
-This was the teaching of Karma Yoga by Sri Krishna. But the unselfish
-performance of Karma is not all. It is only a negative virtue. It
-purifies the mind and frees it from the taint of selfishness. The mind
-then becomes prepared for the higher planes and becomes fit for the
-direct influence of Ishvara.
-
-So Sri Krishna gave to His disciples the true conception of Isvara. He
-told them Isvara was One, the source of all existence, all knowledge and
-all bliss. He told them how one Isvara pervaded the whole universe and
-became thus manifested through the Universe. He also pervaded all
-beings, and became manifested through these beings. The Universe and the
-Jiva were His Prakritis or bodies as it were. The Universe body was
-eight-fold in its character, beginning with that most susceptible to His
-influence and ending with the division most obtuse to that influence.
-This eight-fold Prakriti also entered into the constitution of Jiva. But
-there was something more in Jiva, -- the consciousness, the knower. This
-element was Isvara Himself, as limited by Jiva Prakriti, or Jiva body.
-The whole universe being the body of Isvara, His knowledge and powers
-were unrestricted, whereas the body of the Jiva, being limited and
-restricted, his powers and knowledge were also restricted.
-
-This highest conception of Isvara is not adapted for all. So Sri Krishna
-gave the conception of Isvara, as manifested by His powers, and as
-manifested in Time and Space, and lastly as He is manifested in the
-human body with four hands and the Crown, symbolising His lordship over
-the whole Universe.
-
-But this conception of Isvara is not enough. As man owes a duty to all
-beings, the performance of which is Karma, so he owes a duty to Isvara,
-and that duty is Upasana. All beings make sacrifices for one another,
-and so they owe duty to one another. But Isvara makes the greatest
-sacrifice for all beings and He holds all beings close to His bosom in
-each Kalpa, that they may work out their evolution under the most
-favorable circumstances. He waits for those that give up everything for
-His sake, and give themselves entirely up to Him, so that He may bear
-their Karma upon Himself and hasten their evolution to such an extent,
-that they may approach His own state. As Isvara gives Himself to the
-service of the Universe, so do His Bhaktas too. Men owe the highest duty
-to Isvara, and this they discharge by means of Upasana. Upasana is the
-law of being for all Jivas, when they reach the state of manhood.
-Surrender is the essence of Upasana, and this Sri Krishna taught to
-Arjuna.
-
-_When a man by performing his duties to other beings and to Isvara
-becomes purified and single minded, he is entitled to receive the final
-teaching, and not before._ And Sri Krishna gave that teaching at the
-very last to Arjuna. He said that Jiva and Ishvara were one in essence.
-It is the difference in Prakriti that makes all the difference between
-Jiva and Ishvara. When all the bonds of Prakriti are broken through,
-only Brahman remains, the one reality, underlying both Ishvara and Jiva.
-When we become fixed, in this wisdom all is Brahman, and final
-liberation is attained. This is the real teaching of the Upanishads, as
-embodied in Uttara Mimansa. In this connection, Sri Krishna pointed out
-the fallacy of the Vaiseshika system in attempting to know the
-Attributeless, through the attributes.
-
-The highest wisdom of the Kalpa was revealed and the world resounds with
-all glory to Sri Krishna. The Rishis and Mahatmas took up His work. All
-the religious movements and religious writings that have followed only
-reproduce His teachings.
-
-There was something however wanting in these teachings as given in the
-Mahabharata -- the relation of Sri Krishna to His own Bhaktas. What He
-did for the Universe and how He did it are fully related in the great
-Epic. But what He did for those that had already given themselves up
-entirely to Him, who did not require the teaching of Karma, Upasana and
-Jnana, who were His own people, who knew no other Dharma than Himself,
-who had followed Him through ages, and who simply took births as He
-appeared on this earth, what Sri Krishna did for these Bhaktas, what His
-relations were with them, are not described in the Mahabharata at all.
-The lordly side is given but not the sweet side. The picture of the Lord
-edifies and overawes, that of the Lover enchants and enthrals. The
-Bhagavata sings what the Mahabharata left unsung. That is the peculiar
-significance of the Tenth Skandha which follows, the Skandha that
-maddens the hearts of all real devotees.
-
-
-
-
-THE TENTH SKANDHA.
-
-
-
-VRINDAVANA LILA
-
-
-THE BIRTH OF SRI KRISHNA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 1-3.*
-
-_Said Suka_: -- The goddess Earth, being oppressed by the heavy load of
-tens of thousands of Daitya hosts, who were born as arrogant kings,
-sought the shelter of Brahma. She took the form of a cow, and with tears
-running down her cheeks, piteously related her grievances to the Lord of
-Creation. Brahma took Siva and the Devas with him, and went over to the
-Ocean of milk (Kshira Samudra), the abode of Vishnu. There he adored the
-Lord of Preservation and heard the Divine voice, which he thus explained
-to the Devas: --
-
-"Even before this, the Lord knew about the grievances of the goddess of
-Earth. Go, take your births, as parts of yourselves, in the clan of the
-Yadus. The Lord of Lords, by governing His Kala Sakti, shall appear on
-the Earth and relieve her pressure. The Supreme Purusha Himself shall be
-born in the family of Vasudeva. Let the Deva girls take their births for
-His gratification. The thousand-mouthed, self-illumining Ananta, who is
-only a part of Vasudeva, shall be the elder-born, that he may do what
-pleases Hari. Bhagavati, the Maya of Vishnu, who keeps the whole world
-under delusion, shall also incarnate in part, as desired by the Lord,
-for doing His work."
-
-Saying all this to the Devas, and giving words of consolation to the
-goddess of Earth, Brahma went back to his own abode.
-
-Sura Sena, the chief of the Yadus, ruled over the town of Mathura. Hence
-it became the chief seat of the Yadu kings. It is a sacred town, the
-constant seat of Hari.
-
-Once upon a time, at Mathura. Vasudeva drove in his chariot with his
-newly married wife Devaki. The marriage presents were innumerable.
-Kansa, the son of Ugrasena, held the reins of the horses himself, so
-eager was he to please his sister Devaki.
-
-On the way, an incorporeal voice, addressing Kansa, said: --
-
-"O ignorant one! the eighth child of her whom thou art now driving shall
-be thy slayer."
-
-The cruel Kansa instantly took sword in hand and caught Devaki by her
-hair.
-
-Vasudeva pacified him with these words: --
-
-"Thy virtues are well known. Why shouldst thou kill a female, thine own
-sister, at marriage. Death is certain, this day or a hundred years
-hence. Man takes body after body under the action of Karma, as he takes
-step after step in walking, or even as the leech takes blade after blade
-of grass in moving.
-
-"As in dream there is a reflex perception of what is seen and heard in
-waking, and as in that perception the man forgets his former self and
-becomes a reflex of that self, so a man gives up his former body and
-becomes forgetful of it.
-
-"To whatever body the mind is drawn by fruit -- bearing Karma, the Jiva
-assumes that body as its own.
-
-"The wind shakes the water and the Son or moon, reflected on its bosom,
-appears as if shaken. So by ascription, the Purusha has the attributes
-of the body. He who does evil to another has to fear evil from others.
-
-"This girl, thy younger sister, is motionless with fear. Thou art not
-entitled to kill her."
-
-But persuasion was of no avail, as Kansa was under the influence of the
-Daityas.
-
-Vasudeva then thought how he could ward off the present danger, leaving
-the future to take care of itself.
-
-Addressing Kansa he said: --
-
-"But, O King, thon hast no fear from her: Surely I would make over to
-thee her sons, from whom thou hast fear." Kansa desisted from his cruel
-act and Vasudeva went home with his bride, pleased for the time being.
-
-In time Devaki brought forth eight sons and one daughter.
-
-The truthful Vasudeva presented his first son Kirtimat to Kansa. The
-king admired the firmness of his brother-in-law and smilingly said: --
-"Take back this child. I have no fear from him. From your eighth born my
-death is ordained." "So let it be" exclaimed Vasudeva, and he took back
-his son. But he had very little faith in the words of Kansa.
-
-Kansa learned from Narada that Nanda, Vasudeva and others of their dan,
-their wives and even the clansmen of Kansa, his friends and relatives,
-were partial incarnations of the Devas. He further learned from the
-Rishi that preparations were being made for the lolling of the Daityas,
-whose power menaced the Earth.
-
-When the Rishi left Kansa, he took all the members of the Yadu clan for
-Devas and every child of Devaki for Vishnu that was to kill him. He now
-confined Vasudeva and Devaki in his own house and put them in fetters.
-He put to death every son that was born to them.
-
-He knew himself to be Kalanemi who had been, in another birth, killed by
-Vishnu. He fell out with the Yadus, deposed his own father Ugra Sena and
-became himself the King.
-
-With the alliance of the Magadhas (people of Magadha or ancient Bihar)
-and with the help of Pralamba, Baka, Chanura, Trinavarta, Agha,
-Mushtika, Arishta, Dvivid, Putana, Kesi, Dhenuka, Vana, Bhouma and other
-Asuras, Kansa tormented the Yadus. They fled away to the kingdoms of
-Kuru, Panchala, Kekaya, Salva, Vidarbha, Nishadha, Videha, and Kausala.
-Some only remained behind and they followed the behests of Kansa.
-
-Six sons of Devaki were killed, one by one, by Kansa.
-
-The seventh, the abode of Vishnu, whom they call Ananta, appeared in the
-womb of Devaki, causing both joy and grief to his parents.
-
-Vishnu, the Atma of all beings, knew the sufferings of His own
-followers, the Yadus, at the hands of Kansa. He summoned Yoga Maya and
-commanded her as follows. "Go forth, blessed Devi! to Vraja, which is
-adorned by Gopas and Gos (_Go_ is ordinarily a cow. _Gopa_, go and pa is
-a preserver of cow, a cowherd. Vraja or Go-kula was the chief town of
-Nan da, the king of the Gopas). Rohini, wife of Vasudeva, dwells in
-Gokula the kingdom of Nanda. Other wives of Vasudeva lie hidden at other
-places, for fear of Kansa. The child in the womb of Devaki is my Sesha
-named abode. Draw it out and place it in the womb of Rohini. I shall
-myself become the son of Devaki as a part of myself. Thou shalt be born
-of Yasoda, the wife of Nanda. Men shall worship thee as the giver of all
-desires and boons, with incense, presents and sacrifices. They shall
-give thee names and make places for thee on the Earth. Durga,
-Bhadrakali, Vijaya, Vaishnavi, Kamada, Chandika, Krishna, Madhavi,
-Kanyaka, Maya, Narayani, Isani, Sarada and Ambika -- these shall be thy
-names. For thy _drawing out (Sankarshana)_ the child shall be called
-Sankarshana, He shall be called Rama, from his attractiveness (_ramana_)
-and Bala from his uncommon strength (_bala_)."
-
-"So let it be, Om!" said Bhagavati, and she carried out the behests of
-the Lord. By inducing the sleep of Yoga, she removed the child from the
-womb of Devaki to that of Rohini. People thought Devaki had miscarried.
-
-Then Bhagavan, the Atma of the Universe, the dispeller of all the fears
-of his votaries, entered the Manas of Vasudeva in part. Devaki bore in
-her Manas this part of Achyuta, even as the East bears the moon. Her
-lustre being confined to the prison-room could not please others, even
-like fire confined as heat or like Sarasvati confined in the cheat who
-keeps his wisdom to himself. Kansa saw an unusual glow round his sister
-such as he had never witnessed before. He exclaimed "Surely Hari is born
-in this womb, He who is to take away my life. What shall I do this day?
-He comes on a mission and His energy will be all directed towards that
-end. Am I then to kill my sister? But the killing of a pregnant female,
-my own sister, will ruin my fame, my wealth and my life. By the
-performance of such a heinous act, one becomes dead even when alive. Men
-curse him for his evil deeds and after death he enters the regions of
-absolute darkness."
-
-Kansa by his own persuasion restrained himself from doing any violent
-act and he waited with feelings of bitterness for the time when Hari was
-to be born. But whether sitting or lying down, eating or walking, he
-thought of Vishnu and saw Him everywhere in the Universe.
-
-Brahma, Siva, the Rishis, the Devas adored Vishnu in the womb of Devaki.
-"True in thy will, attainable by Truth, the one Truth before, after and
-in creation, the root of the Universe, and underlying the Universe as
-its only Reality, Thou from whom all true sayings and true perceptions
-do proceed, Truth Thyself, we take Thy shelter."
-
-"The primal Jiva tree stands on the field of Prakriti. Joy and sorrow
-are its fruits. The three gunas (Satva, Rajas and Tamas) are its three
-roots. Dharma (the means of attaining objects), Artha (the objects),
-Kama (desires) and Moksha (freedom from desires), these are its fourfold
-juice, the five senses are its sources of perception, the six sheaths
-form its chief feature, the seven constituents of the physical body
-(_dhatus_) form its skin, the five Bhutas, Manas, Buddhi and Ahankara
-are its eight branches, the nine openings are its holes, the ten Pranas,
-or physiological functions, are its leaves and Jivatma and Paramatma are
-the two birds sitting on this tree. Thou art the one root of this tree,
-it ends in Thee and it is preserved by Thee. Those that are deluded by
-Thy Maya see manifold forms in place of Thy real self, but not so the
-wise. Thou art consciousness itself. For the good of the world, Thou
-dost assume Satva-made forms, which bring joy to all good people and woe
-to the evil-minded."
-
-"O Lotus-eyed, thou art the abode of Satva. Thy votaries, by
-concentrating their minds on Thee and by resorting to Thy feet which
-serve as boats to them, make an easy ford of this Ocean of recurring
-births (_Sansara_)."
-
-"O Self manifest, the Ocean of recurring births, which is formidable and
-unfordable to others, gives way before Thy votaries, even at the mere
-touch of the boat of Thy feet. So while they cross themselves, even
-without the boat, they leave that boat for others, for they have
-boundless compassion for other beings." (_i.e._ Thy votaries lay down
-the path of Bhakti. _Sridhara_.)
-
-"There are others (followers of the Path of wisdom) who consider
-themselves liberated (_Mukta_). But their intellect is impure as they
-have no Bhakti in Thee. By ascetic efforts they rise to (near about) the
-Supreme abode, but (being overpowered by obstacles) they fall down, by
-their disregard of Thy feet."
-
-"But Thy votaries, O Madhava, never slip away from Thy path for they are
-bound by their attachment to Thee and Thou dost preserve them. So
-fearlessly they tread over the heads of Vinayaka hosts. (The Vinayaka
-are elementals who are supposed to cause obstacles to all good works)."
-
-"Thy body is pure Satva, for the preservation of the Universe. That body
-becomes the means of attaining the fruits of (devotional?) karma. It is
-by reason of that body that men are able to worship Thee by means of
-Veda, Kriya Yoga, Tapas and Samadhi." (There could be no worship, if no
-body had been assumed. Hence there could be no _attainment of the fruits
-of Karma, Sridhara_. This is not intelligible, if ordinary Karma is
-meant.)
-
-"If this Satva body of Thine had not existed, direct perception would
-not be possible. For through Thy manifestations in (the world of) the
-Gunas, thoughts can (at last) reach Thee. The Gunas only relate to Thee
-and are themselves manifested by Thee." (By devotion to the pure Satva
-body, the mind partakes of its character _i.e._ becomes purely Satvic.
-Then by the favor of Vishnu, there is direct perception, _i.e._ the form
-is not the object of direct perception but the means of direct
-perception. But these forms only serve the purpose of devotion. The
-Purusha can not be known by these forms. Hence the following Sloka,
-_Sridhara_).
-
-"Thy Name (nama) and Thy Form (rupa) are not however to be known by Thy
-attributes, births and deeds. For Thou art their Seer and Thy Path is
-beyond the reach of Manas and speech. Still in the act of devotion, Thy
-votaries realise Thee. By hearing, uttering, causing others to remember
-and by meditating on Thy blessed names and forms in devotional
-practices, one becomes fixed in mind on Thy Lotus Feet and does not then
-stand the chance of another birth."
-
-"By Thy birth, the pressure on the Earth is removed. The marks of Thy
-feet already adorn her. Heaven and Earth look favored by Thee."
-
-"What else can be the cause of Thy birth but a mere fancy on Thy part,
-for even the birth, life and death of Jivatmas are but seeming things
-caused by Thy Avidya."
-
-"The Fish, the Horse, the Tortoise, the Man Lion, the Boar, the Swan, in
-these and in Kings, Brahmanas and wise men, Thou hast incarnated. As
-thou dost preserve us and preserve this Triloki, so dost Thou take away
-the load from off the Earth. Our salutations to Thee."
-
-"And mother Devaki, the Great Purusha Himself is in Thy womb in part,
-for our good. Fear not then from Kansa, whose death is near at hand. Thy
-Son shall be the Saviour of the Yadus."
-
-Having thus adored the Lord, the Devas left the place.
-
-In time, when all nature looked still and there was joy in heaven and
-earth, Sri Krishna was born under the influence of the Rohini
-constellation. It was all dark at dead of night. He had four hands
-bearing Sankha, Chakra, Gada, and Padma. The mark of Srivatsa the
-Kaustubha gem, the yellow cloth, the crown on the head glittering with
-stones, the brilliant ear-rings all marked Him out as the Purusha, and
-Vasudeva and Devaki adored Him as such. Devaki asked him to withdraw his
-lordly form with four hands.
-
-Said Bhagavan, addressing Devaki.
-
-"In the Svayambhuva Manvantara, thou wert called Prisni, and this
-Vasudeva, Prajapati Sutapas. Commanded by Brahma to beget progeny, thou
-didst make austere Tapas and prayed for a son even like unto my own
-self. So I was born of thee as Prisni-Garbha. This was my first
-Incarnation. When you two were Aditi and Kasyapa, I was born of you as
-Upendra, otherwised called Vamana (the Dwarf). This was my second
-Incarnation. In this my third Incarnation, I am again born unto you.
-This form is shown to thee to remind thee of those previous births. Thou
-shalt attain my supreme state by meditating on me both as a son and as
-Brahma."
-
-Then He assumed the form of an ordinary child.
-
-Directed by Him, Vasudeva took Him to Vraja, the Kingdom of Nanda. The
-fetters loosened. The gate opened wide. The gate keepers fell into deep
-sleep. Though there was a heavy downpour of rain, the serpent Sesha gave
-shelter under his thousand hoods. The river Yamuna, deep in flood,
-fretting and foaming under the storm, made way for Vasudeva. The Gopas
-were all fast asleep in Vraja. Vasudeva placed his own son by the side
-of Yasoda and took her new born daughter away and placed her near
-Devaki. He then put on his fetters and remained confined as before.
-Yasoda knew that she had a child, but the labour pains and sleep made
-her quite forget the sex of the child.
-
-
-COUNSEL WITH THE DAITYAS.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 4.*
-
-The gates closed again, the gate-keepers woke up and, on hearing a
-child's voice, they forthwith informed their King. Kansa had been
-anxiously waiting for the birth of this child. So he lost no time in
-getting up and appearing before Devaki. He snatched away the child from
-her. Devaki remonstrated with her brother praying for the life of her
-daughter. Kansa heeded not her words. He raised the child aloft and cast
-it down to strike it against a stone. The child slipped away from his
-hands, and rose high up. This younger born of Vishnu appeared with eight
-hands, bearing eight weapons, -- Dhanus (bow) Sula (spear) Isha (arrow),
-Charma (hide protector), Asi (sword), Sankha (conch), Chakra (Disc), and
-Gada (club). She had divine garlands and garments and was adorned with
-ornaments. Siddhas, Charanas, Gandharvas, Apsarasas, Kinnaras and Nagas
-worshiped her with profuse offerings.
-
-"Fool that thou art" she thundered forth, "What if I am killed. He who
-shall make an end of thee, thy former enemy, is born somewhere else. Do
-not kill other children in vain."
-
-The Goddess Maya then became known by different names in different parts
-of the earth.
-
-Kansa was wonder-struck. He removed the fetters of Vasudeva and Devaki
-and begged their pardon, saying, "Like a Rakshasa, I have killed your
-sons. I do not know what fate awaits me after death. Not only men tell
-lies, but the Devas too."
-
-Kansa then called the Daityas together. These sworn enemies of the Devas
-heard their master and then broke forth thus: --
-
-"If it be so, O King of Bhoja, we will kill all children, whether ten
-days old or not, whether found in towns, villages, or pasture grounds.
-What can the Devas do, cowards in battle? They are always afraid of the
-sound of thy bow. Dost thou not remember how, pierced by thy arrows,
-they fled for their lives. The Devas are only bold when they are safe,
-and they indulge in tall talk outside the battle ground. Vishnu seeks
-solitude. Siva dwells in forests. Indra has but little might. Brahma is
-an ascetic. But still the Devas are enemies. They are not to be
-slighted. Therefore engage us, your followers, in digging out the very
-root of the Devas, for like disease and sensuality when neglected at
-first, they become difficult of suppression. Vishnu is the root of the
-Devas, and he represents the eternal religion (Sanatana Dharma _i.e._
-Dharma that follows the eternal course of time, or is based on the
-eternal truths of nature, hence eternal religion, a term applied to
-Hinduism proper). And the roots of Dharma are the Vedas, the Cows, the
-Brahmanas, Tapas and Yajna. Therefore by all means, O King, we shall
-kill the Deva-knowing, Yajna-performing and ascetic Brahmanas and cows
-that supply the sacrificial ghee. Brahmanas, Cows, Vedas, asceticism,
-truth, restraint of the senses, restraint of the mind, faith, kindness,
-forbearance and sacrifices these are the parts of Vishnu's body.
-Therefore the best way to kill him is to kill these. Vishnu, who
-pervades all hearts, is the guide of all Devas, the enemy of Asuras. He
-is the root of all Devas, including Siva and Brahma."
-
-Kansa approved of this counsel. He directed the Kamarupa bearing (_i.e._
-bearing forms at will) Asuras to oppress all good people and they
-readily took to their work.
-
-
-NANDA AND VASUDEVA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 5.*
-
-Nanda performed the birth ceremony of his son with great pomp. His gifts
-knew no bounds. Vishnu was worshipped and there was plenty in Vraja. The
-time came for payment of the year's dues to Kansa. So Nanda left Gokula
-( _i.e._ Vraja ) in charge of the Gopas and himself went with the dues
-to Mathura. Vasudeva learned of Nanda's arrival and went to meet him.
-Nanda stood up to receive him and embraced him heartily. Said Vasudeva:
---
-
-"Brother, you grew old and gave up all hopes of having a child. Luckily
-a son is now born unto you. It is indeed a new birth to you, that you
-are blessed with the sight of a lovely son. Friends cannot live
-pleasantly together as their manifold Karma, like a strong wind, forces
-them asunder. Is it all right with the big forest, with the pasture
-lands where you now dwell with friends? Is it all right with my son
-(Balarama) who lives at your place with her mother, and who looks upon
-you as his parent?"
-
-Nanda replied: --
-
-"Alas! your sons by Devaki were all killed by Kansa; even the daughter
-that was born last has ascended to the heavens. Surely man is governed
-by the unseen. Those that know are not deluded." Said Vasudeva: --
-
-"You have paid your yearly dues and have also met me. Now do not remain
-here any longer. For evils befall Gokula."
-
-Nanda left Mathura for Gokula.
-
-
-PUTANA
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 6.*
-
-With evil forebodings, Nanda made his way to Vraja, for he thought
-Vasudeva would not tell a lie. And he was right. By Kansa's orders, the
-fierce Putana went about killing children in towns, villages and pasture
-lands, for verily she was a killer of children. That wanderer of the
-skies entered Gokula at will, assuming the form of a woman most
-beautiful to look at. So no one stopped her passage. She moved freely
-here and there and at last entered the house of Nanda. She looked like a
-kind mother and Yasoda and Rohini were so much struck by her fine
-exterior that they did not stop her access to Krishna. Putana placed the
-child on her lap and gave him milk from her breast full of deadly
-poison. The divine child knew who Putana was and what she was about. He
-held fast her breast with both hands and in anger drank in the very life
-juice of the Asura woman. She screamed forth "Let go", "Let go", "No
-more". Her eyes expanded. She cast up and down her hands and feet again
-and again in profuse perspiration. Her groans made heaven and earth
-tremble and space itself resounded on all sides. At last she fell dead
-like a great mountain, crushing down trees within an ambit of twelve
-miles. Fearlessly the boy played on her body.
-
-The Gopa ladies hurried to the place with Rohini and Yasoda. They bathed
-the boy in cows' urine and dust from cow's feet. They pronounced the
-twelve names of Vishnu (Kesava and others) over twelve parts of his
-body. Then after touching water, they duly uttered the root mantras over
-their own body and that of the child. Lastly they invoked Vishnu by
-different names to protect the child from danger of all sorts. (The
-protective mantra uttered by the mother with passes of the hand over
-different parts of the body was supposed to shield the child from
-danger. Latterly the custom has been to get the mantra written, with due
-ceremonies, by a qualified Brahman, on the sacred bark (Bhurja) and then
-to tie it round the hand.)
-
-Yasoda then placed the child on her lap and gave him milk.
-
-By this time Nanda had returned to Vrindabana. He saw the huge body of
-the Asura woman and realised the force of Vasudeva's warning.
-
-The people of Vraja cut the body into parts and burnt them with fuel.
-The smoke was sweet-scented, as the touch of Krishna's body purifies
-even the enemy.
-
-
-THE UPTURNING OF THE CART.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 7.*
-
-The ceremony observable on the child being able to stand on his legs and
-the birth-day ceremony were observed together and there was a great
-feast at the house of Nanda. Yasoda placed the child near a cart,
-containing brass vessels with articles of food, and became busily
-engaged in receiving her guests. The child wept but she did not hear. He
-then raised his feet aloft, weeping for his mother's milk, and struck
-the cart with his feet. The cart was upset, the brass vessels broken and
-the wheel and axle upturned. The Gopa ladies could not account for this
-wonderful phenomenon. The boys, who sat near the child, told all that
-they saw, but people could not easily believe what they said.
-
-
-TRINAVARTA OR THE WHIRLWIND.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 7.*
-
-The child was once on the lap of Yasoda when he suddenly became so heavy
-that Yasoda had to throw him on the ground. The Asura Trinavarta or
-Whirlwind made an attack on the child and a violent dust storm overtook
-Gokula. The Asura had scarcely raised Krishna to a certain height, when
-his weight almost crushed him to death. Krishna did not let go his hold
-and the Asura breathed his last and fell dead. Yasoda kissed her son
-again and again, but when he opened His mouth, the mother saw the whole
-Universe within it.
-
-
-THE NAMES "KRISHNA" AND "RAMA."
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 8.*
-
-Garga, the family priest of the Yadus, came to Vraja at the request of
-Vasudeva. Nanda duly received him and said: -- "You are versed in the
-Vedas and you are the author of an astrological treatise. Please perform
-the Naming ceremony of the two boys." Garga replied: "I am known as the
-priest of the Yadus and, if I officiate at the ceremony, Kansa might
-suspect your son to be the eighth son of Devaki." Nanda promised strict
-privacy, and the Rishi performed the ceremony. Addressing Nanda, he then
-said: --
-
-"This son of Rohini shall be called Rama or the charming one, as he
-shall charm his friends by his virtues. He shall be called Bala, from
-possessing excessive strength. From his bringing together the Yadus, he
-shall be called Sankarshana.
-
-"This other boy, taking body, yuga after yuga, had three colors, White
-(_Sukla_), Red (_Rakta_) and Yellow, (_Pita_). Now he has got the black
-color (_Krishna_). In the past, he was born as the son of Vasudeva. So
-those that know call him Srimat Vasudeva. He has many names and many
-forms, according to his deeds and attributes. Neither I nor other people
-know them all. He shall give you the greatest blessings and protect you
-against all dangers. In days of yore, good people conquered the
-ill-doers by his help. Those that are attached to him are not conquered
-by enemies, even as followers of Vishnu are not conquered by the Asuras.
-Therefore this son of Nanda is equal to Narayana by his virtues, powers
-and fame."
-
-
-PRANKS OF THE BOY.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 8.*
-
-With growing childhood, Krishna became very naughty. Once the Gopa women
-made the following complaints. Krishna would untie their calves before
-the milking time. He would steal their milk and curds and divide the
-remnants, after eating, among the monkeys. If they did not eat, he would
-break the pot. If he did not get the things he wanted, he would curse
-the inmates and other boys. If the pots were out of reach, he would
-raise himself on seats or husking stools and bear those hanging pots
-away to get at their contents. He would illumine the dark room by the
-glitter of his own body and that of his jewels, to serve his purpose. He
-would talk insolently, and spoil the ground. The Gopa women exclaimed:
--- "But now how innocent he looks before you." Krishna betrayed fear in
-his eyes. Yasoda would not beat him. So she only smiled.
-
-One day Rama and other boys complained to Yasoda that Krishna had eaten
-earth. The mother remonstrated. "They have lied" exclaimed Krishna "Or
-if they have spoken the truth, then examine my mouth." "Open it," said
-Yasoda. But what did she find within that mouth? The Seven Dvipas, the
-planets, the stars, the three Gunas and all their transformations, even
-Vrindavana and herself. "Is this dream or delusion or is this all the
-power of my own son? If Thou art then the Unknowable, my salutations to
-Thee. I take the shelter of Him, by whose Maya I seem to be Yasoda, this
-Nanda my husband, this boy my son, the Gos (cows) Gopas and Gopis to be
-mine." She had the true knowledge, but it was soon eclipsed by the Maya
-of Vishnu and Yasoda again knew Krishna to be her own son.
-
-Raja Parikshit asked: --
-
-"What did Nanda do that Krishna would be his foster son? And what did
-Yasoda do, that Krishna should suck her breast? Even his own parents did
-not witness the deeds of the child of which poets have sung so much."
-
-Suka replied: --
-
-"Drona, the chief of the Vasus, with his wife Dhara shewed great
-obedience to Brahma. 'When born on Earth may we have the highest
-devotion for Him.'" Such was their prayer to Brahma and it was granted.
-Drona was born as Nanda and Dhara as Yasoda.
-
-
-THE TYING.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 9.*
-
-One day Yasoda was churning curdled milk and singing the deeds of her
-son. Krishna came up and, desirous of sucking milk, held the churning
-rod. Yasoda placed him on her lap and gave him milk to suck. But the
-milk that was boiling on the oven overflowed the pot and she hurriedly
-left her son. In anger Krishna bit his lips, broke the milk pot with a
-stone, took the fresh butter to a retired corner and there partook of
-it. Yasoda came back after a while and found the pot broken. Her son had
-left the place and she could easily see that it was all his doing. She
-found Krishna seated on the husk stand, freely dividing the contents of
-the hanging pots among the monkeys, and she quietly approached him with
-a stick. Krishna hurriedly got down and ran away as if in fear. Yasoda
-ran after him and caught him at last. Finding him fear-stricken, she
-threw down the stick and tried to fasten him to the husking stand. The
-rope fell short by the breadth of two fingers (say two inches). She
-added another rope. The gap remained the same. She added rope after
-rope, as many as she had of her own and of her neighbours, but could not
-bridge over the distance. She stood baffled at last, amazed and ashamed.
-Finding that his mother was perspiring in the effort and that her hair
-had become dishevelled, Krishna allowed himself to be fastened to the
-stand.
-
-
-THE ARJUNA TREES.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 10.*
-
-The Yaksha King Kuvera had two sons -- Nalakuvara and Manigriva. They
-became maddened with power and intoxicated with drink. Narada passed by
-them while they were playing with Gandharva girls stark naked in a river
-bath and they heeded him not. Narada thought how best he could reclaim
-them. "Poverty is the only remedy for those that lose their heads in
-wealth. These sons of the Lokapala Kuvera are deep in ignorance,
-insolence and intoxication. Let them become trees. But they shall not
-lose memory by my favor. After one hundred Deva years, the touch of Sri
-Krishna shall save them." These sons of Kuvera in consequence became a
-pair of Arjuna trees in Vrindavana.
-
-While Krishna was fastened to the husking stand, the pair of Arjuna
-trees drew his attention. He was bent on making good the words of
-Narada. So he approached the trees, drawing the husking stand behind him
-by force and, placing himself between them, uprooted the trees. They
-fell down with a crash and lo! two fiery spirits came out, illumining
-space by the splendour of their bodies. They prayed to Krishna and then
-rose upwards.
-
-The Gopa women had been engaged all this time in their household duties
-and the crash attracted the attention of all the Gopas and Gopis. The
-boys told what they had seen. But some were loath to believe that all
-this could be done by the boy Krishna.
-
-
-THE FRUIT SELLER.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 11.*
-
-One day Krishna heard a woman crying out "Come ye buy fruits." He took
-some paddy and hastened to her side. The woman filled both his hands
-with fruits and lo! her basket became full of gems and precious stones.
-
-
-VRINDAVANA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 11.*
-
-Seeing that calamities befell Brihat Vana (Vraja or Gokul) so often, the
-elders put their heads together to devise the best course to adopt. Upa
-Nanda, one of the oldest and wisest of them, said: --
-
-"We that wish well for Gokula must hence get away. Evils befall that
-bode no good for the children. This boy was with difficulty saved from
-that child-killing Rakshasa woman. It is only by the favor of Vishnu
-that the cart did not fall on him. When he was taken high up by the
-whirlwind Asura, and when he fell down on the rock, it was the Deva
-Kings that saved him. If this boy and others did not perish when they
-were between the two trees, it was because Vishnu preserved them. Ere
-this Vraja is visited by fresh calamity, let us go elsewhere with the
-boys and all attendants.
-
-"There is a forest called Vrindavana with fresh verdure for cattle,
-where Gopas, Gopis and Gos will all enjoy themselves. The hills, grass
-and creepers are all holy there. This very day let us go to that place.
-Make ready the carriages. Let the cows precede us, if it pleases you
-all."
-
-With one heart, the Gopas exclaimed: -- "Well said! Well said!" They
-prepared their carriages and placed on them the aged, the young, the
-females and all household articles. They drove the cows in advance. They
-blew their horns and beat their drums. Accompanied by the priests, the
-Gopas went on their way. The Gopa girls, seated on chariots sang the
-deeds of Krishna and Yasoda, and Rohinl attentively listened to them.
-
-At last they entered Vrindavana, which gives pleasure at all times, with
-the carriages; they made a semi-circular abode for the cattle.
-
-Rama and Krishna saw Vrindavana, the hill Govardhana and the banks of
-the Yamuna and then became very much pleased. In time they became
-keepers of calves (Vatsa). They tended the calves in the company of Gopa
-boys on pasture lands near at hand. They played with other boys as
-ordinary children.
-
-
-VATSA OR THE CALF.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 11.*
-
-One day Rama, Krishna and other boys were looking after their calves
-when an Asura, with the intention of killing them, assumed the form of a
-calf (Vatsa) and got mixed among the herd. Krishna pointed this out to
-Balarama and silently moved behind the Asura. He held it aloft by the
-hind feet and tail and gave it such a whirl that its life became
-extinct. The boys, cried out "Well done! Well done!" and the Devas
-rained flowers on Krishna.
-
-
-BAKA OR THE CRANE.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 11.*
-
-One day the Gopa boys went over to a tank to quench their thirst. They
-saw a huge monster in the form of a Baka (crane). It rushed forth and
-swallowed Krishna. Krishna caused a burning in its throat and the Asura
-threw him out. It made a second attack and Krishna held the two beaks
-and parted them asunder as if they were blades of grass, And the Asura
-died.
-
-
-AGHA OR THE SERPENT.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 12.*
-
-One day Krishna was playing with the boys in the forest. Agha, the
-youngest born of Putana and Baka, the Asura whom even the Devas,
-rendered immortal by _Amrita_, dreaded, burning with a spirit of revenge
-at the death of his brother and sister, thought of killing Krishna and
-all his attendants. He stretched himself forth as a huge serpent,
-spreading over one yojana, the extremities of his open mouth touching
-the clouds and the earth. The Gopa boys took the Asura to be the goddess
-of Vrindavana. "Or if it really be a serpent opening its mouth to kill
-us, it will instantly be killed like the Asura Vaka." So with their eyes
-fixed on Krishna they clapped their hands and with a smile entered the
-mouth of the serpent, even before Krishna had time to warn them. The
-Asura still waited with its mouth open for Krishna. Krishna thought how
-he could kill the serpent and at the same time save his companions.
-
-On reflection, he himself entered the mouth of the serpent and stretched
-himself and his comrades. The Asura lost breath and breathed his last. A
-shining spirit emerged from the Asura body and entered the body of
-Krishna. Krishna gave fresh life to his comrades by his Amrita bearing
-looks.
-
-Krishna killed Agha in his fifth year, but the Gopa boys who witnessed
-the act said, when Krishna entered his sixth year, that the act was done
-that very day.
-
-"How could that be?" enquired Parikshit.
-
-Suka explained this with reference to the following story.
-
-
-BRAHMA AND KRISHNA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 13-14.*
-
-When the Asura Agha was killed, Krishna went with his companions to the
-river bank and said: --
-
-"We are hungry, the hour is late. Let us have our meals here. Let the
-calves drink water and graze on near lands." The Gopa boys spread out
-their stores and improvised plates for eating. While they were engaged
-in eating, the calves strayed away. The boys became anxious and were
-about to get up, when Krishna stopped them, saying he would find the
-calves. He left his companions and went on the search. Brahma, who had
-been witnessing from the high heavens all the deeds of Krishna, even the
-killing of Agha, with wonder, wanted to have still one more
-manifestation of his divine powers. Finding opportunity, he removed the
-calves as well as the Gopa boys to some secure place and disappeared.
-Krishna could not find the calves and on returning he could not find his
-companions. He then knew it was all the act of Brahma. To please Brahma,
-as well as to please the mothers of the Gopa boys, He Himself became so
-many calves and so many Gopa boys of their very size and form to the
-minutest detail. The mothers thought they had got their boys and they
-became even more attached to them. The cows thought they had got their
-calves and their fondness knew no bounds.
-
-Krishna went on playing his manifold parts for one year. Five or six
-days remaining till the completion of the year, Balarama saw one day
-that the cows were grazing on the summits of Govardhana, while the
-calves were grazing at some distance near Vraja. The cows impelled by a
-fit of attachment breathlessly ran towards the calves even those that
-had quite lately brought forth younger calves and caressed them
-profusely. The elder Gopas who were in charge could not restrain them
-with all their efforts. They felt shame and vexation. But when they
-themselves approached the calves and their own sons, their anger melted
-away in deep affection.
-
-Balarama thought for a moment. "Never was such love witnessed by me
-before -- this attachment for calves that had been weaned long ago. The
-people of Vraja have even increasing affection for their own sons even
-as they had of yore for Krishna. These calves no longer appear to be the
-incarnations of Rishis, their keepers the Gopa boys do not appear any
-longer to be the incarnations of the Devas. They look all like thee O
-Krishna! Wherein lies the mystery?" Krishna explained to Rama what had
-happened. Brahma appeared after a Truti (fraction of a moment) of his
-own measure. He saw the boys, he saw the calves. He could not make any
-distinction between those he placed under his own Maya and those brought
-into existence by the Maya of Krishna. The foggy darkness is overpowered
-by the darkness of the night. The light of the glowworm vanishes before
-the light of the day. To delude Krishna, Brahma became deluded himself.
-In another moment Brahma saw the calves and the boys each and all
-bearing four hands, the divine weapons and all the divine powers. They
-shone in resplendent glory. Brahma became overpowered, stupefied.
-Recovering himself, he found once more Sri Krishna alone, searching for
-the calves and boys in Vrindavana. He fell at the feet of Krishna, again
-and again, his four heads with their crowns rolling on the ground and
-with tears in his eyes, he glorified Krishna.
-
-(The glorification is a long one. Only one sloka is given here.)
-
-"It is only he who lives on, anxiously looking out for Thy favor,
-bearing through the workings of his own Karma as a matter of course and
-making obeisance to Thee in heart, words and body, that can get the
-heritage of Mukti (As one must be living, so that a particular heritage
-may vest in him, so the Bhakta must keep up his individuality to get the
-heritage of Mukti)."
-
-Parikshit asked. "How could the people of Vraja have greater love for
-Krishna than for their own sons?"
-
-Suka replied: --
-
-"Self, O King, is the most beloved of all things not so beloved are
-one's sons or wealth. Therefore, O king, people love themselves better
-than they do their sons, their riches or their homes. Those that deem
-their body to be their own Atma or self, love that body more than
-anything else.
-
-"But the body only becomes dear as it pertains to self. It can not be as
-dear as self. For when the body wears away, the desire to live on is
-still strong.
-
-"Therefore Atma or self is most dear to all beings and the whole of this
-Universe is for that self.
-
-"But know thou this Krishna to be the Self of all selves, the Atma of
-all Atmas. For the good of the Universe, he also looks by Maya as one
-possessed of a body. Those that know Krishna know that all movable and
-immovable beings are but His forms and that nothing else exists.
-
-"Of all things, the ultimate reality is 'Existence'. Krishna is the
-reality of Existence itself. So there is nothing besides Krishna."
-
-Here ends the Kumara Lila of Krishna. The Pouganda Lila is now to
-commence. (Kumara is a boy below five, Pouganda is boyhood from the 5th
-to the 16th year).
-
-*END OF KUMARA LILA*
-
-
-DHENUKA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 15.*
-
-On attaining the Pouganda age, Rama and Krishna were placed in charge of
-cows. Vrindavana looked gay and Krishna amused himself with his
-companions in the forests. One day Sridaman, Subala, Stoka and other
-companions spoke to Rama and Krishna "Not far off is a forest of palm
-trees (Tala). Tala fruits fall in abundance there, but one Asura
-Dhenuka, with many of his kin obstruct all access to them. The Asura has
-the form of an Ass. We smell the fragrance of the fruits even from here.
-They are very tempting indeed." Rama boldly entered that forest and gave
-a shake to the Tala trees, and Talas fell in abundance. Roused by the
-noise, the Ass rushed forth and kicked Rama with its hind feet. The
-Asura brayed and made a second rush, when Rama held it by the hind feet
-and whirling it round in the skies threw It dead on the trees. The kith
-and kin of the Asura then came rushing forth, but they were one and all
-killed by Rama and Krishna. When they returned to Vrindavana the Gopis
-who had been feeling the separation went out to receive them and, being
-pleased to see them, cast bashful glances at them.
-
-
-THE KALIYA SERPENT AND THE FIRE.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 16-17.*
-
-The Nagas or serpents made offerings to Garuda on appointed days.
-Kaliya, proud of his own valour, did not make any offering himself and
-snatched away the offerings made by others. Garuda attacked him and,
-being overpowered in the fight, Kaliya sought shelter in a deep pool of
-water in the Yamuna.
-
-Of yore, Garuda had caught a fish in that pool of water and was about to
-eat it, when Rishi Soubhari asked him not to eat, but Garuda heeded not
-his words. The wailings of the fish moved the tender heart of the Rishi
-and for their future good he cursed Garuda with death, if he entered the
-pool any more.
-
-Kaliya knew about this and he therefore sought protection in that pool
-of water with his family. The water became deadly poison and even the
-adjoining air breathed poisonous death.
-
-One day Krishna went with all his companions, other than Rama, to the
-Yamuna side. The Gopa boys and the cows being very thirsty drank the
-water of that pool and met with instant death. Krishna cast his amrita
-pouring looks at them and they got up, being restored to life. They
-looked at each other, very much surprised.
-
-To purge the river, Krishna got upon a Kadamba tree and jumped into the
-pool of water. Kaliya fiercely attacked him and stung him to the quick.
-The serpent then twined round Krishna. The cows wept, the Gopa boys
-became senseless. There were evil portents in Vrindavana. Nanda and
-other Gopas came out in search of Krishna. They saw him in the grasp of
-the powerful serpent and made loud wailings. A moment after, seeing how
-they all grieved for him, Krishna eluded the grasp of the serpent and
-moved dancing round him. The serpent, somewhat fatigued, also kept
-moving with its overspread hoods, fixing its looks on Krishna. Krishna
-then got upon the hoods one thousand in number, one hundred being the
-chief, and danced on them putting down the hood that tried to raise
-itself. It was a lovely sight and the Devas sang in joy and rained
-flowers. The serpent king was overpowered. He vomited blood. His body
-was broken. In his heart of hearts, he sought the protection of
-Narayana. The serpent girls also glorified Krishna and prayed for their
-husband's life.
-
-Krishna said: -- "Go hence O serpent, dwell in the sea. Men and cows
-shall use the water of the river. You left Ramanaka Dvipa for fear of
-Garuda. But now as your heads bear the marks of my feet, Garuda shall
-not touch you." Kaliya left the Yamuna with his wives and the water of
-that river has been pure ever since.
-
-The people of Vrindavana embraced Krishna and shed tears of joy. They
-were all so much put out that they stopped that night on the river bank.
-At midnight, a fire broke out from a castor plantation and it surrounded
-the people on all sides. The Gopas and Gopis cried out: "O Krishna, O
-Rama, we are yours. Krishna! Save us from this fire. We are not afraid
-of our lives, but it will pain us to part from Thy feet."
-
-Krishna ate up the whole fire.
-
-
-PRALAMBA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 18.*
-
-It was summer. But Vrindavana was cool with its shade, its water-spouts
-and its river.
-
-Rama and Krishna were tending the cattle with their companions. An Asura
-named Pralamba disguised himself as a Gopa boy and mixed with the other
-boys. The All-knowing Krishna found him but he feigned friendship, with
-the object of killing the Asura. Krishna proposed two parties for play.
-The defeated party had to carry the members of the victorious party on
-their backs. Krishna became the leader of one party and Rama that of the
-other. The party of Krishna were routed near the Bhandiraka forest.
-Krishna carried Sridamana on his back, Bhadrasena carried Vrishabha and
-Pralamba carried Balarama. Pralamba ran with Balarama beyond the mark.
-Balarama suspected something evil. Then composing himself, he hit a blow
-on the head of the Asura and Pralamba lay down dead.
-
-
-THE FOREST CONFLAGRATION.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 19.*
-
-The cattle strayed away from the Bhandarika forest, when suddenly there
-was a fire. They ran bellowing into a forest of rushes. The Gopa boys
-went in search of them and found them from a distance. Krishna called
-them out and they responded to the call. At the time a general
-conflagration in the forest overtook the cows and the Gopa boys and they
-helplessly turned to Krishna. Krishna asked the boys to close their
-eyes. They did so, but when they looked again they found themselves once
-more in the Bhandarika forest. Seeing this Yoga power in Sri Krishna,
-they knew him to be a God. The older Gopas and Gopis, hearing all the
-wonderful deeds of Rama and Krishna, knew them to be Devas.
-
-
-THE RAINY SEASON.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 20.*
-
-The _rainy season_ followed summer. There was joy and plenty. (For a
-graphic and highly poetical description of the rainy season please refer
-to the original. The details of the description are somewhat important
-from the esoteric standpoint and the Season itself is suggestive as to a
-new era in spiritual development.)
-
-
-THE AUTUMN.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 20.*
-
-The AUTUMN came and it was all _calm, clear_ and _transparent_.
-
-The clouds disappeared. The water became pure. The wind became gentle.
-With the advent of lotus-bearing Autumn, the waters regained their
-tranquillity, even as distracted Yogins the calm of their minds by fresh
-resort to Yoga. The Autumn removed the clouds from the skies,
-promiscuous living from the animals, mud from the soil and dirt from the
-water -- even as Bhakti in Krishna does away with the impurities
-attaching to the four Asramas. The clouds gave up rainy moisture and
-looked beautifully white, even like Munis who give up all desires. The
-hills sometimes gave pure water from their sides and sometimes not, as
-wise men pour forth the nectar of their wisdom sometimes and not often.
-The animals that frequent shallow water did not know that the water was
-subsiding, as deluded men living in family circles do not realise the
-daily expiry of their lives. And they suffered like sensuous men from
-the rays of the Autumn sun. Day by day the soil gave up its muddiness as
-the wise give up their Mine-ness and the creepers got over their
-immaturity as the wise get over their I-ness. The Sea became calm as a
-Muni no longer distracted by Vedic performances. The farmers stored up
-waters in the paddy fields by making strong embankments, even as Yogins
-store up Prana by withdrawing it from the Indriyas. The moon gave relief
-from the inflictions of sun-burning, even as wisdom relieves the misery
-caused by connection with the body, and as the sight of Sri Krishna
-removes all the sorrows of the Gopis. The clear skies gave a brilliant
-view of the stars, as the mind purified by Satva makes manifest the
-conclusions of the Mimansa Darsanas. The full moon shone above with all
-the stars as Sri Krishna shone on earth with the circle of Yadus.
-
-
-SRI KRISHNA AND THE GOPIS.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 21.*
-
-Krishna roamed in the fresh forest with the cattle and his companions.
-He played upon the flute and the Gopis forgot themselves in hearing his
-music. They saw before their mind's eye the dancing Krishna filling the
-holes of the flute with nectar flowing from his lips, the peacock
-feather on his head, Karnikara flower on his ears, his cloth yellow like
-gold and the Vaijayanti garland round his neck.
-
-Some exclaimed: -- "What better could the eyes feed upon than the lovely
-faces of Rama and Krishna, with the flutes touching their lips and their
-smiling glances."
-
-Some said: -- "How beautiful they look with garlands of mango twigs,
-peacock feather and blue lotus. In the assembly of Gopas, they look like
-heroes on the theatrical stage."
-
-Others said: -- "What did that bamboo piece of a flute do that it should
-drink so hard the nectar flowing from Krishna's lips, the special
-possession of the Gopis, that nothing should remain but the taste
-thereof. The water that nourished it is thrilling with joy and the plant
-of which it is a shoot is shedding joysome tears."
-
-Some said: -- "Look, O companions! how lovely does Vrindavana look from
-the touch of Sri Krishna's lotus feet! Look there, the peacock madly
-dances to the tune of the flute and other animals stand dumb on the
-summit of the hills and witness the scene. There is no spot on the earth
-like Vrindavana."
-
-Others said: -- "How blessed are these female deer that In the company
-of their husbands hear the music of the flute and make an offering of
-their loving looks!"
-
-Other Gopis said: -- "So tempting is this form of Krishna and so
-alluring is the music of his flute that even Deva girls become lost to
-themselves. Look, how the cows drink that music with ears erect. And
-even the calves stand with their mothers' milk in their mouths, eagerly
-listening to that sound. Those birds are no worse than Rishis, for they
-sit high on trees whence they can have a full view of Krishna and with
-eyes closed they silently hear the sweet music of the flute. Even the
-rivers shew the love transformation of their hearts by their whirls and
-they stop their course to embrace the feet of Krishna with their raised
-billows serving as hands and offering lotus flowers at those feet. The
-clouds give shadow and they shed dewy flowers on Krishna. Most fortunate
-is Govardhana, for Krishna drives cattle on its sides and it makes its
-offerings of edibles and drink."
-
-The Gopis became full of Krishna (Tanmaya).
-
-
-THE STEALING OF CLOTHES.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 22.*
-
-In the first month of the DEWY SEASON (Agrahayana), the girls of
-Vrindavana worshipped Katyayani (a name of the Goddess Durga, wife of
-Siva). The observances lasted for a month. The girls prayed to Katyayani
-that they might get Krishna for their husband. They bathed early in the
-morning every day in the river Yamuna. One day they left their clothes
-on the bank and went down into the river to bathe. Krishna took away
-their clothes. He asked the girls to come up and take them. They did so
-and the clothes were returned. Krishna then addressing the Gopis said:
-
-"O virtuous girls, I know your resolve. It is to worship me. I also
-approve of it and you must succeed. The desires of those that are
-absorbed in me do not bear Karmic fruits. For fried or burnt paddy does
-not germinate. Go back to Vraja. Your object in worshipping Katyayani is
-gained. These nights (_i.e._ on nights to come. _Sridhara_) you shall
-enjoy with me."
-
-
-KRISHNA AND VEDIC YAJNA (SUMMER AGAIN.)
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 23.*
-
-Krishna went over to a distant forest driving cattle with his
-companions. The summer sun was fierce and the trees gave shade. "Look, O
-companions" said Krishna, "how noble minded these trees are. They live
-for others. Themselves they suffer from the winds, the rains, from the
-sun and frost but they protect us from these. They do not send away one
-disappointed. They offer their leaves, their flowers, their fruits,
-their shade, their roots, their bark, their fragrance, their juice,
-their ashes, their fuel, their buds, and what not. Of all living beings,
-such only justify their birth as do good to others by their lives, their
-wealth, their wisdom and their words." (This is introductory as an
-attack upon the selfish performances of Vedic Brahmanas. _Sridhara_.)
-
-The boys became hungry and they complained to Rama and Krishna.
-
-Krishna said: -- "The Brahmanas are performing Angirasa Yajna. Take our
-names and ask them for food."
-
-The boys did as they were told but the Brahmanas heeded them not. Narrow
-were their desires which did not extend beyond Svarga. But for these,
-they went through elaborate Karma. Ignorant as they were, they thought
-themselves to be wise. Yajna was all in all to them but they disregarded
-the Lord of Yajnas, the direct manifestation of Parama Purusha. They
-looked upon Krishna as an ordinary man and as Brahmanas they deemed
-themselves to be superior to Him. They said neither yea nor nay. So the
-boys returned unsuccessful to Krishna and Rama. Krishna smiled and asked
-them to go to the wives of the Brahmanas. This they did. The Brahmana
-women had heard of Krishna and they were eager to see him.
-Notwithstanding the protests of their husbands, brothers, sons and
-friends, they hastened to Krishna with dishes full of eatables of all
-sorts. The ears had heard and the eyes now saw. And it did not take the
-Brahmana women long to embrace Krishna and forget their grievances.
-
-Knowing that the women had given up all desires for the sake of seeing
-Atma, Krishna said smilingly: -- "Welcome O you noble-minded ones, take
-your seats. What can we do for you? It is meet that you have come to see
-us. I am Atma and therefore the most beloved. Those that care for their
-Atma or self bear unconditional and unremitting Bhakti towards me. The
-Pranas, Buddhi, Manas, the relatives, the body, wife, children and
-riches all become dear for the sake of self or Atma. What can be
-therefore dearer, than Atma? Now that you have seen me, go back to your
-husbands. They have to perform the sacrifices with your help."
-
-The Brahmana women replied: -- "Lord, thou dost not deserve to speak so
-cruelly to us. Make good thy words ('My Bhakta does not meet with
-destruction' or 'He does not again return' _Sridhara_.) We have taken
-the shelter of thy feet, throwing over-board all friends, that we may
-bear on our heads the Tulasi thrown from Thy feet. Our husbands,
-parents, sons, brothers, and friends will not take us back. Who else
-can? Grant us, O conqueror of all enemies, that we may have no other
-resort but Thee. ( We may not have such resorts as Svarga &c. for which
-our husbands are striving. We want to serve Thee. _Sridhara_)."
-
-Sri Krishna replied: -- "Your husbands will not bear any grudge against
-you. By my command all people, even the Devas (in whose honor the
-sacrifices are made) shall approve of your conduct. Direct contact is
-not necessary for love. Think of me with all your heart and you shall
-speedily obtain me."
-
-The Brahmana women returned to their husbands and they were received
-well. The Brahmanas repented. But for fear of Kansa, they could not go
-to Vrindavana. They worshipped Krishna at home.
-
-
-INDRA AND THE RAISING OF GO-VARDHANA. THE INSTALLATION.
-
-
-(THE RAINY SEASON AGAIN.)
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 24-27.*
-
-There were great preparations for Yajna in honor of Indra. "What is this
-all about, father?" asked Krishna of Nanda. "What is the outcome of this
-sacrifice? In whose honor is it to be performed and how?"
-
-Nanda replied -- "Child, Indra is the Cloud-God. He will give us rains.
-The rains give life to all beings. Therefore people worship Indra by
-these sacrificial offerings. The enjoyment of that only which remains
-after sacrifice conduces to Dharma, Artha and Kama."
-
-Krishna replied: -- "The birth and death of men are shaped by their own
-Karma. Happiness, misery, fear, well-being, these are all the effects of
-Karma. If there be any god who dispenses the fruits of Karma, he must
-also follow that Karma and not act independently of it. When people are
-governed by their own Karma, where does Indra come in? He can not undo
-what follows from Svabhava (Svabhava is Karmic tendency). Karma is the
-Lord and Karma is to be worshipped. It is Rajas that works the clouds.
-What can Indra do? We do not live in towns or villages but we live in
-the forest. Therefore let us make Yajna offerings to our cows, our
-Brahmanas and our hills. The preparations that you have already made
-will serve the purpose." Nanda and other Gopas approved of what Krishna
-said. They made offerings to the cows, the Brahmanas and the Hill. They
-went round the Hill to shew respect. Krishna said "I am the Hill" and
-assumed some form which created faith in the Gopas. He then partook
-himself of the offerings to the Hill.
-
-Indra became highly incensed. He sent forth his clouds and winds and
-there were rains and thunder-storms and hail-stones at Vrindavana.
-
-Krishna carelessly lifted up the Govardhana hill with one hand and the
-people of Vrindavana with their cows took shelter in the cave.
-
-For seven days it rained incessantly and for seven days Krishna held the
-hill aloft without moving an inch.
-
-Baffled and surprised, Indra withdrew his clouds and winds. The people
-of Vrindavana went to their own places and Krishna replaced the hill.
-
-The Gopas struck with wonder approached Nanda. They related all the
-previous deeds of Krishna and then referring to the last incident said:
--- "Look here this boy only _seven years_ old and there the holding
-aloft of this big hill. We wonder whether your son may not be the Atma
-of all beings." Nanda related to them what he had heard from Garga and
-they all ceased to wonder. Indra and Surabhi came down from the heavens.
-Indra fell at the feet of Krishna and glorified Him.
-
-Krishna said to him: -- "To favour you, Indra, I caused a break in your
-Yajna, that, maddened as you were by your position and powers, you might
-not forget me. It is only when one is blinded by powers, that one does
-not see me sceptre in hand. I take away the powers of him whom I want to
-favor. Therefore go now, Indra. You are to keep to your own station and
-do your duties as enjoined by me void of all pride." Surabhi, the divine
-mother of cows, thanked Krishna for the services done to her children.
-
-She said: -- "O Krishna, O thou great Yogin whose form is this Universe
-and who art the root of this Universe, we have found our Lord in Thee.
-Thou art our Supreme Deva O Lord of the Universe, thou shalt be our
-Indra, for the good of cows, Brahmanas and Devas, and of all that are
-good. By the command of Brahma, we shall install thee as our Indra."
-
-So saying, Surabhi poured her milk over Krishna's head and Indra and
-other Devas, by the command of the Deva mothers, bathed Him with the
-waters of the Akasa Ganga. They all called him "GOVINDA." (He who
-attains (_Vinda_) as Indra the _Cows_ or _Svarga_ (Go) Sridhara.) The
-Rishis, Gandharvas, Vidyadharas, Siddhas and Charanas all joined the
-Inauguration ceremony. The Deva girls danced and sang. The three Lokas
-became full of joy. The cows wet the earth with their milk. The rivers
-bore streams of milk and other drinks. The trees poured honey. The
-cereals bore grains without culture. The hills brought forth their
-precious stones. Even the wild animals became mild.
-
-
-KRISHNA AND VARUNA, KRISHNA AND THE GOPAS.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 28.*
-
-After observing the fast of the 11th Day of the Moon, Nanda went to
-bathe in the river Yamuna, on the twelfth day of the Moon. It was still
-dark. So the Asuras had possession of the hour. An Asura servant of
-Varuna carried Nanda to his master. The Gopas called out to Rama and
-Krishna. Krishna entered the water and went to Varuna. The Lokapala
-worshipped him and gave back Nanda, excusing himself for the ignorance
-of his servant. Nanda on returning apprised the Gopas of what he had
-seen. Could Krishna be any other than Ishvara? The Gopas wished ardently
-that He might take them over to His supreme abode. The all-knowing
-Krishna knew this. He took the Gopas to that portion of the Yamuna
-called Bramha Hrada. Plunged in the waters, they saw Vaikuntha, the
-supreme abode of Krishna, far away from the limits of Prakriti.
-
-
-THE FIVE CHAPTERS ON RASA
-
-
-(AUTUMN AGAIN.)
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 29-33.*
-
-Suka said: --
-
-"Seeing those autumnal nights, gay with Mallika flowers, Bhagavan wished
-to enjoy Himself by resort to Yogamaya."
-
-(It looks odd that there should be a show of conquering the God of love
-by enjoyment of others' wives. But it is really not so. For you have "By
-resort to Yoga Maya." "Enjoyed though self enjoyer," "The subduer of the
-God of Love Himself," "With enjoyment all self contained," and such like
-passages, which show absolute self dependence. Therefore this show of
-Rasa play is only meant to recite the conquest of Kama Deva. This is the
-real truth. Moreover through this love topic, the five chapters on Rasa
-are calculated to bring about a complete disinclination to worldly
-matters. _Sridhara_).
-
-("Those nights" _Go back to Vraja. These nights you shall enjoy with me_
--- the nights promised by these words. _Sridhara_.')
-
-At that time the moon had appeared on the horizon. As the lover reunited
-after long separation besmears the face of his beloved with orange
-coloured saffron, so he besmeared the face of the east with the most
-delightful orange rays which brushed away the sorrows of men
-(_charshani_). Krishna looked at the Moon, the lover of the Kumud
-flower, with unbroken disc, glowing like the face of Lakshmi, orange red
-like fresh saffron, and he looked at the forest illumined with the
-tender rays of the Moon and he indulged in song so sweet that it
-ravished the hearts of good-looking women.
-
-Listening to that passion-exciting song, the women of Vraja, with minds
-absorbed in Krishna rushed forth to where their lover was without taking
-notice of each other, their ear-rings moving violently about.
-
-Some left their houses while milking the cow. Some did not wait to see
-the boiling of the milk. Some did not take down boiled wheat from the
-oven. Some had been giving food to others, some had been giving milk to
-their own children. Some had been serving their husbands and some had
-been taking their own food. But they all left their work half finished.
-They gave up their household duties and, with clothes and ornaments all
-in disorder, they hurriedly went to Krishna, (Hearing the voice
-indicative of Sri Krishna, the Gopis became strongly inclined to Him,
-and they showed by their acts that then and there they had complete
-disinclination for works that had the three Vargas, Dharma, Artha and
-Kama for their object. They left their half finished work and went over
-to Krishna straight. _Sridhara_.)
-
-Their husbands could not keep them back nor their fathers, brothers and
-friends. Their hearts had been completely charmed by Govinda. They did
-not turn back. (Obstacles cannot overcome those whose hearts are
-attracted by Krishna. _Sridhara_.)
-
-Some Gopis that had been inside their houses could not make their way
-out. Their thoughts had been already devoted to Krishna, and now with
-closed eyes, they held Him fast in their minds.
-
-With sins all removed by the acute pain of unbearable separation from
-the dearest one, the Karmic effects of good works taken away by the
-absolute pleasure caused by the embraces of Krishna in meditation, with
-their bonds completely severed at that very moment, those Gopis gave up
-their bodies composed of the Gunas, even though they united with Krishna
-as their paramour. (How could they give up their bodies composed of
-Gunas while they did not know Krishna as Parama Atma, but knew him only
-as their paramour, a relation caused by the Gunas? "Even though they
-&c." A thing is not dependent for its properties upon what another
-thinks of it. Drink nectar without knowing it is so. The effects are
-there. There is another difficulty. The Gopis had their Prarabdha Karma,
-or Karma that brought about the present birth and its surroundings, and
-Prarabdha is exhausted only after being worked out. So with the bonds of
-Prarabdha, how could they give up their body? "With their bonds
-completely severed at that very time." But Prarabdha cannot be exhausted
-without suffering and enjoyment. Where were the suffering and enjoyment
-in this case? "With sins all removed &c." The greatest suffering caused
-by separation removed all demerits and the greatest enjoyment caused by
-the embraces of Krishna removed the bonds of merits. Therefore when
-Parama Atma was attained by intense meditation, the suffering and
-enjoyment of the time completely eradicated Karma and the Gopis gave up
-their bodies composed of the Gunas. _Sridhara_.)
-
-Asked Raja Parikshit: --
-
-"O Muni, they knew Krishna as only one enjoyable and not as Brahma. The
-Gunas were mixed up in their understanding of Krishna. How could there
-then be a cessation of the flow of the Gunas?"
-
-(Husbands, sons and others, even they themselves were Brahma in essence.
-But a devotion to them could not cause Moksha as they were not known as
-Brahma. How could union with Krishna cause Moksha, when he was not known
-as Brahma? Therefore this doubt. _Sridhara_.)
-
-Suka replied: --
-
-"O King, I have said before how Sisupala attained Siddhi even by bearing
-enmity to Hrishikesha (controller of the senses, Krishna.) What of those
-to whom Krishna is dear? (The purport is that Brahma-hood is eclipsed in
-the Jiva. But Krishna is controller of the senses. Brahma-hood is
-manifest in him. He does not require to be known. _Sridhara_). Bhagavan
-manifests himself for the Moksha of men though in reality, He is without
-end, without measure, void of all Gunas and their controller." (Krishna
-being a manifestation of Bhagavan, there is no comparison between Him
-and other embodied men. _Sridhara_.)
-
-"Bear any feeling _constantly_ towards Hari, whether it be a feeling of
-love, anger, fear, affection, kinship or devotion and you become full of
-Him. Do not wonder at this. For Krishna is the Lord of all Lords of
-Yoga. All (even the lowest life forms) attain Mukti from him. When the
-women of Vraja drew near, Krishna addressed them thus: --
-
-"'Welcome, ye great ones! What good can I do for you? Is it all safe in
-Vraja? Tell me the object of your coming here. The night is fearful and
-dangerous animals are treading round. Go back to Vraja. This is not a
-place for women. You have got your mothers, fathers, sons, brothers, and
-husbands. They are seeking you. Do not cause pain to your friends. What
-more, you have now seen this forest adorned with flowers and illumined
-by the tender rays of the full moon, where the trees and their tender
-branches, gently moved by the breeze from the Yamuna, stand in all their
-beauty. Now go back, O virtuous girls, speedily to your homes and look
-after your husbands. The calves and your children are weeping. Go and
-let them have their drink. Or if you have come here, forced by your love
-for me, it is only meet and proper, for all people have their love for
-me. Devotion to husband is the one great religion for women. They are to
-seek the well being of their friends and to bring up their children. The
-husband may be wicked, old, diseased or poor. But those who wish for
-higher Lokas should not give up their husbands. The connection with one
-not the husband is disreputable and unbecoming. You may bear love to me
-in other ways than by such a near approach. Therefore go back to your
-houses.'"
-
-"The Gopis were struck dumb for a time. They became overcome with
-sorrow. They had given up every thing for the sake of Krishna and they
-could ill bear to hear these unkind words. At last they broke forth: --
-'O Lord, it is not for Thee to utter these unkind words. We have given
-up all objects and sought Thy feet. O Thou difficult to be reached, do
-not forsake us but please think of us, even as the First Purusha thinks
-of those that seek Moksha. Thou speakest, O love, of our duties to
-husbands, sons, and friends as if thou wert a religious teacher, but
-thou art thyself the goal of those religious injunctions. So let them
-rest in thee. Thou art the greatest friend of all beings, for thou art
-verily their own self. What do they care for husbands or sons, sources
-of misery as they are, who are attached to thee, the constant source of
-happiness?
-
-"'Therefore do thou show favor to us and permit us to serve Thee.' Moved
-by their piteous appeal, Krishna gave his company to the Gopis. Proud of
-that company, the Gopis deemed themselves superior to all other women on
-the earth. To put down this loss of mental balance, caused by good
-fortune and this pride, Krishna suddenly disappeared from amongst them.
-The Gopis became disconsolate. Their hearts had been too much taken up
-by the gestures and movements of Krishna. So they imitated his deeds and
-even called themselves Krishna. They all sang loudly together and madly
-searched for Krishna from forest to forest. They asked the trees if they
-had seen their lover. They enquired of the creepers, the earth and the
-deer. Fatigued at last, they again took to reproducing the deeds of
-Krishna. Some played the part of Putana or some other Asura, some played
-the part of Krishna in connection with some of his manifold deeds. They
-again made enquiries from the plants. They then found out the footsteps
-of Krishna marked by the divine symbols (flag, the lotus, the
-thunder-bolt and the goad). Tracing those steps a little further, they
-found they were mixed up with the footprints of a girl. The Gopis
-exclaimed: --
-
-"'Surely this girl had made _Aradhana_ (devout prayer for the Lord).
-Govinda left us that he might take her to a secret retreat. Sacred are
-the dust particles of Govinda's feet; even Brahma, Siva and Lakshmi hold
-them on their head for the extinction of sins. Look here we no longer
-see the foot marks of that girl. It seems Krishna carried her here on
-his back and his footprints are therefore deeply marked. Here He placed
-her down to pluck flowers and touched the earth with his toes only, for
-the steps are not fully marked. Surely he placed the girl on his lap
-here and adorned her hair with flowers.' And what of that girl? She
-deemed herself very fortunate that Krishna should shew particular
-attention to her. With this sense of superiority she spoke to Krishna.
-'I can not walk. Take me to where I like on thy back.' Krishna said,
-'Get up on my back.' But when she would do so, Krishna had already
-disappeared. The girl was loudly lamenting, when the other Gopis joined
-her. They heard her story and became very much surprised. (It is
-necessary to draw the special attention of the readers to the girl, who
-had made Aradhana of Hari. She is the Radhika of Narada Pancharatra and
-of later day Vaishnavism. Radhika means literally one who makes Radhana
-or Aradhana. But I shall not touch upon her in a study of the Bhagavata
-Purana. The study of this Purana is incomplete without a study of
-Chaitanya's teachings. And if I succeed in taking up those teachings, I
-shall consider the lofty ideal of Radhika).
-
-"The Gopis all returned to the forest and searched for Krishna as long
-as there was moonlight. They gave up their search when it was dark. With
-thoughts all directed to Krishna, with conversations all about Him, with
-gestures and movements all after Him, with songs all about His deeds,
-the Gopis, all full of Krishna, they did not think of their homes. They
-went to the banks of the Yamuna, and all sang in a chorus about Krishna,
-ardently praying for his return. (I shall not touch with my profane hand
-the songs of the Gopis. They are far too sacred for any rendering into
-English and they baffle any attempt to do so. Sweet as nectar, the
-melody of those songs is inseparable from their very essence, and he
-would be murdering Bhagavata who would attempt to translate those songs.
-For the continuity of our study it is only necessary to translate the
-fourth sloka.)
-
-"'Thou art not surely the son of Yasoda. Thou art the inmost seer of all
-things. Implored by Brahma thou hast appeared, O friend, in the line of
-the Satvats, for the protection of the Universe.' While the Gopis were
-thus bewailing in melodious tunes, Krishna appeared with a smiling face.
-They formed a circle round Him and were so pleased to see Him that they
-reached the very limit of their joy. The Gopis spread out their outer
-garments as a seat for Sri Krishna, on the river bank. When Krishna sat
-down, they addressed him thus: --
-
-"'Some seek those only that seek them; some do the contrary, (_i.e._
-seek those even who do not seek them), others seek neither those that
-seek them nor those that do not seek them. Please tell us, what is all
-this.'
-
-"Said Sri Krishna: -- 'Those that seek each other are guided in their
-efforts by selfishness. There is neither friendship nor virtue in that
-mutuality. It is all for a selfish end. (Even the beasts seek mutual
-good. _Sridhara_. And do not the Utilitarians and the evolutionists do
-so)? Those that seek the unseeking are either kind-hearted men or they
-are guided by affection like the parents. It is pure virtue in the
-former case and friendship in the latter.
-
-"'Those that do not seek the people that seek them and far less those
-that do not seek them fall under one of the following four classes: --
-
-"'(1) Those that seek pleasure in self (and not in the outside world),
-(2) those that are satiated, (3) the ungrateful and (4) the treacherous.
-But I do not belong to any of these classes, I do not seek those that
-seek me in order to make them seek me continually and constantly. For
-when a poor man gains wealth and then loses it, he becomes so full of
-that loss that no other thought can enter his mind (_i.e._ to help the
-continuity and constancy of the devotional feeling, I do not show open
-favor to a devotee. This is an act of supreme kindness and friendship).
-You have given up for my sake all worldly concerns, the Vedas and even
-your own relations. I seek you from behind, being out of sight.
-Therefore you ought rightly to be angry with me. Even with the life of a
-God, I cannot make any return for your devotion to me, for you have
-burst asunder the ever fresh chains of home life, in order to seek me.
-So let your own goodness be the only recompense for your devotion.'"
-
-
-THE RASA.
-
-
-Govinda commenced Rasa with his devoted band. (Rasa is a kind of dance
-in which many dancing girls take part.) The Gopis formed a circle, and
-Krishna, the Lord of Yoga, was between every two of them and he pressed
-them all unto his shoulders, and each of them thought that Krishna was
-near to her. (How could one Krishna stand between every two of them and
-how could each Gopi think that he was near to her only, when he was near
-to them all? Therefore "the Lord of Yoga" _i.e._ of unimaginable powers.
-_Sridhara_.) The sky became filled with hundreds of chariots of Devas
-and Deva girls, eager to witness the scene. Drums beat and flowers
-rained. The Gandharva kings with their wives sang the pure glory of
-Krishna. Loud was the clash of the Gopis' ornaments. They danced and
-sang in great excitement. The moon lingered on with amazed look and the
-night became prolonged. So the dance continued till at last the Gopis
-became fatigued. Krishna wiped off their sweat and went with them to
-bathe in the Yamuna. After the bath they most reluctantly took leave of
-Krishna.
-
-In these enjoyments Krishna was self-contained.
-
-Asked Raja Parikshit: --
-
-"The Incarnation of Isvara is for the spread of Dharma and the putting
-down of Adharma. What is this enjoyment of others' wives, contrary to
-all injunctions and hateful in itself, by one who is at once the
-originator and preserver of all Dharma?"
-
-Suka said: -- Even the great are seen to violate what we call Dharma and
-the gods become over bold. But this does not bespeak any evil of them,
-as they have got superior force, even as fire eats everything but is
-ever pure. But he who is not capable (_i.e._ who is a slave to his body
-and its attributes) is not to perform such acts even in mind. If he does
-such acts through ignorance, he is sure to be ruined. It is only Siva
-that could drink the poison that appeared from the ocean of milk. The
-words of the Lords (Isvara) are true. Their deeds are only sometimes
-true, (_i.e._ their exceptional life, which is governed by extraordinary
-consideration and unusual conditions, is not meant always as an example
-for ordinary beings. But what they say is always for the good of the
-universe and is to be followed as a teaching. What is given as their
-life is also sometimes allegorical and has to be understood in another
-sense). The wise man therefore follows such of their deeds as are
-consistent with the other words of the great ones. They have nothing to
-gain or lose by good or bad deeds. For they have no Egoism in them. What
-is good and what is bad to him who is the Lord of all beings? By
-devotion to His feet and by power of Yoga, even Munis are freed from the
-bonds of good and evil. The Lord did only assume a body at will. Whence
-could there be any bondage in His case? (And was there really an
-enjoyment of others' wives? No for He dwells in all beings, even the
-Gopis and their husbands. He is the manifestor of all the senses. The
-assumption of the body is only a playful fancy. It is for the good of
-all beings that He became a man. His indulgences are such as are likely
-to make one devoted to Him, when heard of. Even the minds of those that
-are very much turned away from Isvara are attracted towards Isvara, by
-means of Sringara Rasa or love topics. Hence the love matter of Sri
-Krishna. This is the purport. _Sridhara_) The people of Vraja, deluded
-by the Maya of Krishna, thought that their wives were by their side.
-They bore no ill-feeling towards Krishna. (It follows that those who
-perform such acts without such powers are sinners. _Sridhara_.)
-
-When it was Brahma Muhurta, (the part of the night immediately preceding
-the dawn), the Gopis, with the permission of Sri Krishna, reluctantly
-left Him and went home.
-
-He who hears or recites this play of Vishnu with the women of Vraja
-acquires supreme devotion to Bhagavat and shakes off in no time that
-disease of the heart called Kama or passion for women.
-
-
-SUDARSANA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 34.*
-
-(The Rasa is a teaching about conquering Kama by treating of indulgence
-in Kama itself. Similarly this chapter treats of the conquest of
-Vidyadhara. _Sridhara_.)
-
-On the occasion of a sacred festival the Gopas went to the banks of the
-Sarasvati. (Students will mark the significance of the Sarasvati, which
-corresponds to Sushumna in the human system at this stage of spiritual
-development). They adored Pasupati (Siva) and Ambika (Durga). They
-passed the night on the river bank. A huge serpent swallowed Nanda. The
-Gopas burnt the animal but it would not let go its hold; Krishna then
-touched it with his feet and out came a Vidyadhara from the serpent
-body. This Vidyadhara, by name Sudarsana, had been cursed by Rishi
-Angiras for having slighted him and became a serpent.
-
-
-SANKHA CHUDA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 34.*
-
-One day Rama and Krishna came to the forest to have company with the
-Gopis. It was the first part of the night. They played upon the flute
-and the Gopis listened to the music with rapt attention. At this time
-Sankha Chuda, the well-known attendant of Kuvera, drove the Gopis away
-northward. The girls wept and called out to Krishna and Rama for help.
-They ran after the Yaksha who in terror left the Gopis and fled away.
-Rama remained in charge of the Gopa girls. Krishna overtook Sankha Chuda
-and severed his head with its jewel and presented the crest jewel to
-Balarama.
-
-
-THE SEPARATION SONG OF THE GOPIS.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 35.*
-
-At night the Gopis enjoyed the company of Krishna. But the day was their
-time of separation and, when Krishna went to the forest, they passed the
-time any how in singing about him. For the separation song, please refer
-to the original.
-
-
-ARISHTA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 36.*
-
-Arishta, an Asura in the form of a bull, attacked the quarters of the
-cows. The cows fled away and the Gopas cried out "Krishna, O Krishna
-save us," Krishna killed the Asura.
-
-
-NARADA AND KANSA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 36.*
-
-Narada told Kansa: -- "The female child was the daughter of Yasoda;
-Krishna and Rama are sons of Devaki. Vasudeva kept them with his friend
-Nanda out of fear. Those two brothers have killed your spies." In rage
-the king of Bhoja took his sword to kill Vasudeva. Narada prevented him.
-But the King put Yasudeva and his wife in iron fetters. He then ordered
-Kesi to kill Rama and Krishna. He called his ministers together in
-council. Addressing Chanur and Mushtika he said: -- "Rama and Krishna
-are to kill us. So Narada told me." Those two Asuras came ready for
-Vraja. But Kansa said: "No, you need not go. I shall send for the two
-brothers and kill them in a wrestling match. So prepare the playground.
-Place the elephant Kubalayapida at the entrance and let him kill my
-enemies. On the fourteenth day of the Moon, let us commence Dhanus
-Yajna, and let animals be killed in honor of Siva."
-
-Kansa then sent for Akrura, one of the chiefs of the Yadu clan.
-"Akrura," said he, "Thou art my friend and do the work of a friend.
-Please go to Vraja. Take this chariot and bring the two sons of
-Vasudeva. Tell them, they are to see the Dhanus Yajna and have a sight
-of the town. Let Nanda and other Gopas come with presents. The elephant
-shall kill the two boys. Or if perchance they escape, the wrestlers
-shall do away with them. I will then make easy work of Vasudeva, my old
-father Ugrasena, his brother Devaka, the Vrishnis, the Bhojas and the
-Dasarhas. Then, O friend, the earth will be left without a thorn.
-Jarasandha is my guide. Dvivid is my friend. Samvara, Naraka, and Vana
-have made alliance with me. With the help of these, I shall kill all
-kings that are on the side of the Devas. Know this to be my plan."
-Akrura said: -- "The design is all right. But it may or may not succeed.
-Even lofty desires are frustrated by unforeseen obstacles. Still man
-entertains them, to meet with either joy or sorrow. But I will do thy
-behests."
-
-The council broke up.
-
-
-KESI.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 37.*
-
-In the meantime, Kesi, under the orders of Kansa, entered Vraja, in the
-form of a fiery steed, Krishna held him aloft by the feet and threw him
-away. The Asura regained consciousness and again ran after Krishna. He
-thrust his hand inside the mouth of the Asura and killed him at once.
-The Devas rained flowers over him and prayed. Rishi Narada also appeared
-and adored him, making reference to his future deeds.
-
-
-VYOMA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 37.*
-
-The Gopas were grazing cattle on the flat summit of a hill. Some played
-the part of thieves, some, that of cattle keepers and some the part of
-sheep. The Asura Vyoma, (the word meaning Akasa), son of Maya, assumed
-the form of a Gopa, and playing the part of a thief carried away many
-Gopas, who became sheep and he confined them in a hill cave closed by
-stones. In the playground only four or five Gopas remained. Krishna
-found out the mischief, attacked the Asura and killed him.
-
-
-AKRURA.
-
-
-Akrura was mightily pleased that he would see the lotus feet of Rama and
-Krishna. His devotion to Krishna knew no bounds and he knew full well
-that, whatever his mission might be, the Lord would find out his inward
-devotion. At sunset he reached Gokula and, on seeing Rama and Krishna,
-fell down at their feet. They duly honored him. Nanda also shewed every
-respect to Akrura. At night Akrura made a clean breast of everything to
-Rama and Krishna, telling how Kansa oppressed the Yadus, how Narada
-informed him of their presence in Vraja and who they were, how he
-planned their death, and the mission on which he sent him. Rama and
-Krishna only laughed. The next morning they informed Nanda about the
-command of the king. Nanda asked the Gopas to prepare themselves with
-presents.
-
-And the Gopa girls? Who could measure the depth of their sorrow? Their
-plaintive strains were most heart-rending. They wept They followed the
-chariot carrying Rama and Krishna. Krishna to console them sent word
-that he would come back. At last the chariot became invisible and the
-Gopis went back to their homes.
-
-On reaching the banks of the Yamuna the brothers took their bath in the
-river and refreshed themselves with its water. They took their seat
-again in the chariot. Akrura asked their permission and went to bathe.
-He plunged himself in the waters and duly performed the ablution
-ceremonies. He made a _japa_ (repeated recital) of Veda Mantras. But lo!
-he found before him Rama and Krishna. They were in the chariot. How
-could they appear then? He rose and saw the boys were really seated in
-the chariot. He plunged himself once more and saw in the waters the
-serpent king Ananta, with a thousand heads and a thousand crowns,
-dressed in blue clothes, white in body, adored by Siddhas, Charanas,
-Gandhavas, and Asuras. Embraced by him was the dark Purusha, dressed in
-yellow clothes, with four hands, adored by the Rishis.
-
-Akrura made salutations and adored the Purusha with folded hands.
-
-Krishna then withdrew his form, as a play is withdrawn from the stage.
-Akrura got up and took his seat in the chariot.
-
-Krishna said: -- "Akrura, you look as if you have seen something
-unusual." Akrura replied: -- "What is there in the universe that is not
-in thee. When I have seen thee, I have seen everything." They drove on
-again and at last reached Mathura.
-
-
-MATHURA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 41-42.*
-
-Akrura asked Krishna and all the Gopas to come to his house. But Krishna
-would first kill Kansa before doing him this favor. So Akrura
-sorrowfully left him and informed Kansa about the performance of his
-mission.
-
-Krishna with Balarama and the Gopas went out to see the town. The house
-tops became crowded with females who wanted to have a look at Krishna,
-whose fame had already preceded him. A washerman passed that way.
-Krishna begged him to give him some choice clothes. But he was the
-washerman of Kansa and he arrogantly refused to give any of the King's
-clothes. Krishna in anger cut off his head. The attendants left the
-clothes and fled away. Rama and Krishna took as many as they liked and
-gave the rest to the Gopas.
-
-A weaver came forward of his own accord and gladly dressed the brothers
-with choice clothes. Krishna rewarded him with great powers and provided
-for him Sarupya (a kind of Mukti) after death.
-
-Then the brothers went to the house of a garland-maker named Sudama.
-Sudama fell down at their feet and adorned them and the Gopas with the
-best garlands. The garland-maker prayed for constant devotion, for
-friendship with the devotees and for love of all beings. Krishna gave
-him these boons as well as many other blessings.
-
-A young girl went that way with fragrant paste in her hand. Though young
-and beautiful, she was hunch-backed.
-
-Krishna said smilingly: -- "Fine girl that thou art, tell me truly what
-this scented thing is for. Anoint us with this, and good shall be your
-lot." The girl said: -- "My name is Trivakra (with three bends). I am a
-servant of Kansa. He likes my paste very much. Who but you can deserve
-to have it?" The girl then anointed the brothers, with zeal and love.
-Krishna pressed her feet with the tips of his own feet and held up her
-chin with two fingers and with a little effort made her erect. The hunch
-on her back was gone and she became a beauty. She invited Krishna to her
-own house. Krishna knew her object and said "Let me first do my work and
-then I shall visit your house." He then passed through the traders'
-quarters. They made various presents. Krishna then enquired where the
-Yajna Dhanus (the bow to be used in the performance of the Yajna) was.
-Though warned by the citizens, he entered the place and easily broke the
-bow asunder. There was great noise. The warders ran to kill him. He
-killed the guardsmen with the two parts of the bow.
-
-It was then sun-set. The boys returned with the Gopas to their quarters.
-
-Kansa heard of the valour of the boys and passed the night in evil
-dreams. When the day broke, he made preparations for the wrestling
-match.
-
-
-THE WRESTLING.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 43-44.*
-
-Kansa took his seat on a raised platform with his ministers. There was
-beating of drums. The athletes appeared on the scene, headed by Chanur,
-Mushtika, Kuta, Sala and Tosala. Nanda and other Gopas made their
-presents and were shown over to another platform.
-
-Hearing the noise, Rama and Krishna also came to see the match. At the
-entrance they were obstructed by the elephant Kubalayapida. Krishna
-asked the driver to remove the elephant, but he only set it upon him.
-There was a fight and Krishna at last succeeded in felling the elephant
-to the ground. He then plucked out its teeth and with their help, he
-killed both the animal and its driver. Blood-stained, the two brothers
-entered the wrestling ground with the ivory teeth in their hands. All
-were struck by their appearance. The account of the elephant's death
-struck terror into Kansa's heart. He began to tremble. The people of
-Mathura were attracted by the divine form of the brothers and they began
-to talk about their deeds. Chanura addressing the brothers said: -- "You
-are known as good wrestlers. The King has therefore invited you to this
-match. Come and do the pleasure of the King, for the King is the
-embodiment of all Devas."
-
-Krishna said: -- "We dwell in the forest. But still we are subjects of
-the King of Bhoja. That we are ordered to please the King is a great
-favor to us. But we are boys. We shall play with those of equal might.
-There will then be a fair match and there will be no injustice attaching
-to those present here."
-
-Chanura replied: --
-
-"You are neither a boy nor a youth below fifteen, Krishna. Nor is
-Balarama so. You killed that elephant with the might of a thousand
-elephants as it were in sport. It is meet therefore you shall fight with
-the powerful. There is no injustice in this. You measure your strength
-with me and let Balarama do so with Mushtika."
-
-So it was. The fight was a drawn one. At last the brothers killed their
-rivals. Kuta then confronted Balarama, who killed him with his fist.
-Sola and Tosala also fell dead before Krishna. The other wrestlers fled
-for their lives. Rama and Krishna then called their Gopa companions and
-began to dance together on the wrestling ground. "Well done," "Well
-done," cried all, except Kansa.
-
-
-THE DEATH OF KANSA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 44.*
-
-Kansa stopped the music. He exclaimed. "Let these two unruly sons of
-Vasudeva be driven out from the town. Take away the wealth of the Gopas.
-Confine this wicked Nanda. Kill that vile Vasudeva. My father Ugrasena
-is partial to my enemies. Kill him with all his attendants." While Kansa
-was thus bragging Krishna got angry and with one jump, he got upon the
-platform. Kansa stood up with his sword and shield. Krishna held him by
-his hair and threw him down from the platform. He then jumped over Kansa
-and his life departed. He then dragged the dead body of Kansa in the
-presence of all. Kansa through fear and anxiety had always thought of
-Krishna and now being killed by his hands, he attained the Rupa of
-Krishna. The eight brothers of Kansa attacked Krishna but they were put
-to death by Balarama. There was great rejoicing amongst the Devas.
-
-The wives of Kansa loudly lamented the death of their husband. Bhagavan
-consoled them. He then liberated his father and mother and touched their
-feet. He then took leave of Nanda and the Gopas, promising a speedy
-return to them.
-
-
-THE THREAD CEREMONY AND BRAHMACHARYA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 45.*
-
-Krishna placed Ugrasena on the throne. The Yadus, Vrishnis, Andhakas,
-Madhus, Dasarhas and Kukkuras, who had left Mathura for fear of Kansa,
-now returned to that town. Vasudeva called the Purohita (family priest)
-Garga and performed the Upanayana ceremony (investiture of the sacred
-thread) of his sons. They then became twice-born. (Dvija-Brahmanas,
-Kshatriyas and Vaisyas are the twice-born classes. Krishna was a
-Kshatriya by birth). After Upanayana, one has to practise Brahmacharya
-_i.e._ he has to reside at the house of his Guru, learn the Vedas from
-him and practise asceticism at the same time. According to practice,
-Rama and Krishna went to reside at the house of Rishi Sandipani of
-Avanti of the line of Kasyapa. The brothers learned the Vedas, the
-Vedangas and all the branches of learning in sixty four days. Then they
-requested their Guru to name his Dakshina. (When a disciple leaves his
-Guru after the completion of study, he has to give some Dakshina or
-present according to his power to the Guru). Sandipani in consultation
-with his wife asked for the restoration to life of his son, who had been
-drowned in the sea at Prabhasa Kshetra. "All right," said the brothers.
-They took their chariot and went to the sea-side. The sea brought
-presents. But Krishna asked for the restoration of his Guru's son. The
-sea replied: -- "I did not carry him off, but one Asura named
-Panchajana, who lives in my waters in the form of a conch." Krishna
-entered the waters and killed Panchajana. But he did not find the boy
-within the Asura's body. Me took the conch and came back. He then went
-with Balarama to the seat of Yama called Sanyamani and blew the conch.
-Yama adored the brothers and wanted to know their behests.
-
-Bhagavan said: -- "My Guru's son has certainly been brought here by his
-own Karma. But hear my command and bring him to me." "So be it" said
-Yama, and brought back the Guru's son. The brothers took him to their
-father and said: "What more do you ask, O Guru?"
-
-The Guru said: -- "I have nothing more to ask. Now you may go home."
-
-
-UDDHAVA AND VRAJA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 46.*
-
-Uddhava was the chief counsellor of the Vrishnis, the dear friend of
-Krishna and the direct disciple of Brihaspati. He was second to none in
-wisdom. His dress and decorations were those of Krishna.
-
-Krishna called his friend aside and said: --
-
-"Go, Uddhava, to Vraja. Bear my love to Nanda and Yasoda, Give my
-message to the Gopis, which will be a relief to them in their distress.
-Their desires are all centred in me. I am their life. They have given up
-all worldly connections for my sake. I am their dearest and nearest
-friend. I protect those that give up worldly duties for my sake. So
-painful is my separation to the Gopis that they are beside themselves.
-Any how they live and that with difficulty, only because I sent word of
-my speedy return."
-
-Gladly Uddhava accepted the mission. He went to Vraja and stayed there
-for a few months, consoling the Gopas and Gopis.
-
-To Nanda and Yasoda he said: --
-
-"Rama and Krishna are the efficient and the material cause of the
-Universe -- Purusha and Pradhana. They pervade all beings and guide the
-workings of individual natures. Krishna would fulfil the promise he made
-to you on the wrestling ground and come back to Vraja ere long. Do not
-grieve O great ones. You shall see Krishna by your side: He is within
-the heart of all beings, as fire is inside all fuel, To him nothing is
-agreeable or disagreeable, nothing high or low. He has no father, no
-wife, no sons, no one near or distant, no body, no birth, no Karma. For
-the protection of Sadhus he manifests himself in different births at his
-own pleasure. Though void of all Gunas, he seeks them at pleasure for
-the purpose of creation. As a stationary body appears to be moving, so
-Atma appears to be working, though Chitta is the worker. Krishna is not
-your son only. But he is of all the sons, the self, father, mother and
-Isvara. Nothing exists in reality but Krishna."
-
-Excited were the effusions of the Gopis, on seeing Uddhava. (They may be
-interesting to the general reader but to the student the message
-delivered by Uddhava is the only necessary portion at this stage of the
-story. The reader is therefore referred to other translations for those
-highly poetical effusions.)
-
-Uddhava informed the Gopis that he was the secret messenger of Krishna.
-He then delivered the following message from Bhagavan: -- "You have no
-separation from me, for I am all-pervading. As the five elements earth,
-water, air, fire and ether enter into the composition of all beings, so
-I underlie Manas, Prana, the Bhutas and the Indriyas, as also the Gunas
-themselves. I create, preserve and destroy self in self by self. By my
-Maya, I become the Bhutas, the Indriyas and the Gunas. But Atma is pure,
-it is all consciousness (Jnana), separate, unconnected with the Gunas.
-It is only by the mental states of wakefulness, dream and dreamless
-sleep that egoistic perceptions are caused in Atma. (The objects of
-perception in one state appear to be unreal in another state.) The
-objects of dream perception appear to be unreal to the awakened man. The
-mind (being the common factor in all the three states) perceives these
-(unreal) objects of the senses and it underlies the senses themselves.
-Sleeplessly therefore control the mind. This is the final reach of the
-Vedas, of Yoga, and of Sankhya, of relinquishment, of Tapas, of the
-control of senses, and of Truth itself. This is the ocean into which all
-rivers fall.
-
-"That I, though pleasing to your eyes, remain away from you is because I
-want you constantly to meditate on me, for such meditation will attract
-your mind more towards me. The mind of women does not dwell so much upon
-the lover, near at hand, dearest though he be, as it dwells upon a
-distant lover, being full of him.
-
-"By devoting your whole mind to me, free from all other thoughts, and by
-constantly meditating on me you shall forthwith attain me. Even those
-girls that remained at Vraja and could not join the Rasa attained me by
-meditating on My powers." The words of Uddhava only reminded the Gopis
-of the doings of Krishna. They loudly took his name. They were full of
-Krishna and would not forget him. But they knew from His message that He
-was Atma and their pain of separation was gone.
-
-Uddhava remained for several days at Vraja, reminding all of Sri
-Krishna. When he left Vraja he wished that he could be one of the
-creepers or herbs in Vrindavana, that had been rendered sacred by the
-dust of the Gopis' feet. (With that wish let us take leave of the
-Vrindavana Lila of Bhagavan Sri Krishna.)
-
-
-THOUGHTS ON THE VRINDAVANA LILA.
-
-
-Before making any remarks of my own, it will be necessary to draw upon
-the Upanishads.
-
-Gopala Tapani is one of the chief Upanishads dealing with Krishna. The
-work is divided into two parts. The first part gives one yantra for the
-Upasana of Krishna. The second part gives a narration. The women of
-Vraja asked Krishna to name some Brahmana to whom they could make
-offerings of food. Krishna named Durvasas. "But how can we approach him
-without crossing the Yamuna?" asked the Gopis.
-
-"Take my name, that of Krishna, a Brahmacharin, and the Yamuna shall
-give you way" So it was. The Gopis crossed the Yamuna and went to the
-Asrama of Durvasas, the incarnation of Rudra. They offered the sweet
-things to the Rishi and when he partook of these, he permitted the Gopis
-to retire. "But how can we cross the Yamuna?"
-
-The Rishi replied: -- "Remember me, the eater of Durva (a kind of grass)
-and the river shall give way."
-
-"Krishna a Brahmacharin! And thou an eater of Durva only? How can that
-be?" asked the chief Gopi and she asked a number of other questions.
-
-(According to the common exoteric notion Sri Krishna is the lord of many
-women and Durvasas is a voracious Rishi. This is the cause of the
-wonder.)
-
-Durvasas first explained that Krishna was the all-pervading Purusha,
-underlying all. Then further on, there are seven _Sakamya_ Puris or
-places, on the top of Meru, as well as seven _nishkamya_ Puris.
-
-(The commentator Visvesvara explains "Sakamya," as regions where desires
-fructify. As on the Meru there are seven such Puris, so there are seven
-Nishkamya or Moksha-producing Puri's). On the earth, these, are seven
-Sakamya Puris (Ayodhya, Mathura and others.) Of these Gopala Puri
-(Mathura) is the direct abode of Brahma.
-
-As the lotus floats on the lake, Mathura rears itself up on the earth,
-protected by Chakra, the disc of Vishnu. Hence it is called Gopala Puri.
-This Puri is surrounded by twelve forests: --
-
-Brihat Vana (from Brihat or great, large).
-
-Madhu Vana (From Madhu, a daitya).
-
-Tala Vana (Tala or palm tree).
-
-Bahula Vana (From Bahula, a kind of tree).
-
-Kumud Vana (From Kumud, flower).
-
-Khadira Vana (From Khadira or the catechu plant).
-
-Bhadra Vana (From Bhadra, a kind of tree).
-
-Bhandira Vana (From Bhandira, the name of a religious fig tree).
-
-Sri Vana (From Sri or Lakshmi).
-
-Loha-vana (from Loha, the name of an Asura.)
-
-And Vrindavana (from Vrinda or Tulasi plant.)
-
-These twelve forests are presided over by the 12 Adityas, 11 Rudras,
-eight Vasus, seven Rishis, Brahma, Narada, the five Vinayakas (Moda,
-Pramoda, Amoda, Sumukha and Durmukha), Viresvara, Rudresvara,
-Visvesvara, Gopalesvara, Bhadresvara, and 24 other Siva Lingas.
-
-There are two chief forests, Krishnavana and Bhadra vana. The 12 forests
-are included in these. They are all sacred, some of them most sacred.
-
-There are four forms of Vishnu (Murtis) in these forests, Rama
-(Sankarshana), Pradyumna, Aniruddha and Krishna (Vasudeva).
-
-There are twelve other Murtis in Mathura:
-
-_Roudri_ adored by the Rudras.
-
-_Brahmi_, by Brahma.
-
-_Devi_, by the sons of Brahma.
-
-_Manavi_, by the Maruts.
-
-_Vighna nasini_, by the Yinayakas.
-
-_Kamya_, by the Vasus.
-
-_Arshi_, by the Rishis.
-
-_Gandharvi_, by the Gandharvas.
-
-_Go_, by the Apsarasas.
-
-_Antardhanastha_ remains hidden.
-
-_Svapadangata_ is at the supreme abode of Vishnu.
-
-_Bhumisitha_ remains on the earth (Bhumi).
-
-Those who worship _Bhumistha_ know no death, they become liberated.
-
-Gopa is Jiva (Ego).
-
-Gopala = Gopa (Jiva) + ala (acceptor).
-
-Gopala is he who accepts the Jivas as his own.
-
-He who realises "I am Gopala" attains Moksha. Gopala always remains at
-Mathura. Mathura is the place for devotion.
-
-The Lotus of the heart is Mathura with its eight petals. The two feet of
-Narayana are there marked with the divine Symbols (flag, umbrella &c.).
-The object of meditation there is either Krishna, with Srivatsa, with
-Kaustubha, with four hands, bearing Sankha, Chakra, Padma, and Gada,
-with arms adorned by Keyura, with the neck adorned by a garland, with a
-crown on the head and with Makara-shaped Kundalas on the ears; or it is
-Krishna with, two hands, bearing a flute and horn.
-
-Mathura is from _Math_, to put down, because materiality is put down
-there by divine wisdom. The eight Dikpalas (Indra, Agni, Vayu, Varuna
-and others) preside over the eight petals of the Lotus in the heart.
-
-The "flags" have the glow of the Sun and the Moon.
-
-The umbrella is Brahma Loka.
-
-The two feet are "above" and "below."
-
-Kaustubha is that light which overpowers all other lights _viz._, Surya,
-Agni, Vak and Chandra.
-
-The "four hands" are Satva, Rajas, Tamas and Ahankara.
-
-"Sankha," consisting of the five Bhutas, is held by the hand
-representing Rajas.
-
-"Chakra," consisting of Manas, is held by the hand representing Satva.
-
-"Padma" is the universe, the primal Maya. It is held by the hand,
-representing Tamas.
-
-"Gada" is primal Vidya or wisdom. It is held by the hand, representing
-Ahankara.
-
-"Garland" round the neck consists of the Manasa Putras of Brahma. The
-crown is Sat, absolute existence. The different life forms and the
-underlying Jiva are the two "Kundalas" on the ear.
-
-Then we come to MANTRA BHAGAVATA or Bhagavata written in Vedic Mantras,
-a stiff work not quite intelligible without the excellent gloss of
-Nilkantha (published at the Venkatesvara Press, Bombay). This work is
-said to have been found out by Nilkantha. It is divided into four parts
--- Gokula Kanda, Vrindavana Kanda, Akrura Kanda and Mathura Kanda. The
-chief events of Krishna's divine life (Lila) are narrated in this book,
-but in the order of narration., it follows Hari Vansa more than the
-Bhagavata Purana. I refer only to those portions of the book, which to
-me appear important.
-
-We take the following from the Gokula Kanda. The Gopas are
-re-incarnations of Devas. They are the messengers of Krishna. They are
-fond of _Gavya_ or the products of Cows. The relation between Krishna
-and the Gopas is that between an object and its image. Krishna drove the
-cattle of Nanda, just as he drove the horses of Arjuna, the object of
-doing so being in both the cases the destruction of all the enemies
-(III). In commenting on the 5th Sloka, Nilkantha calls Krishna the white
-ray of the Sun, which becomes the blue ray, which is in reality the ray
-of Sat, Chit and Ananda. He refers in this connection to the word Bharga
-(ray) in the Gayatri. Krishna is the heart of the Sun.
-
-The sixth sloka explains this: --
-
-"It is Krishna who causes bliss. The Sun God (Savitri), being guided by
-Krishna, goes his way on the golden chariot (VI)."
-
-In the 11th sloka, Krishna is called the Black ray.
-
-Mother Aditi (Earth) asked her son Indra for relief (VII). At the
-request of Indra, Vishnu entered the womb of Devaki. He first ensouled
-seven Ardha-Garbhas. (_Ardha_ is half and _Garbha_ is a foetal child.
-The six sons of Kala-nemi -- the name of a demon, literally, the rim of
-the wheel of time, known as Shat Garbhas, pleased Brahma by worship and
-became immortal. They were the grandsons of Hiranyakasipu. He cursed
-them saying: --
-
-"I am your own grandfather. But you disregard me for the sake of the
-Divine Grandfather Brahma. Hence you shall be killed by the hands of
-your own father." They remained in their Linga Sarira in Patala.
-
-They incarnated as the first six sons of Vasudeva and were killed by
-Kansa, the incarnation of Kala-nemi. This is related in Harivansa.
-Therefore they are called Ardha Garbhas. The seventh Balarama is also
-called Ardha-Garbha, as he was drawn away from Devakl to Rohini.
-_Nilkantha_) IX.
-
-The Black ray (Sat, Chit and Ananda) incarnated in Devakt's womb.
-
-Krishna is Antaryamin or inside all beings.
-
-Balarama is Sutratma, the Ego. XIX.
-
-The Cart Asura (_Sakata_) is a messenger of the death God from the
-South, XX.
-
-_Putana_ is a weapon of death in the form of a bird. XXI.
-
-_Trinavarta_ is the disease, known as consumption.
-
-The Gopas asked Krishna for the milk-products. As devas, they had never
-known such offerings in Yajnas. They informed Krishna, where the milk
-made things were to be found. (XXIII and XXIV.) For the gratification of
-the universe, the longings of Krishna are great and for this reason he
-did not spare any fresh butter of the Gopis. The Gopis learned from this
-that for the bare up-keep of their lives, they were to attend to their
-household duties (XXVI). (If the boys are to steal away all the butter,
-life itself will be extinguished. People should have enough left for
-their household requirement. If I taste only a little of the butter, all
-the three Lokas will be gratified, and the Gopis will acquire the merit
-thereof. Considering all this, Bhagavan tasted butter by stealth
-_Nilkantka_. This means, in so many words, that Krishna accepted the
-fruits of all the actions of the Gopis except such as sufficed to
-preserve their lives). The Gopis complained to Yasoda of the stealing
-acts of Krishna. XXVII.
-
-_Vrindavana Kanda_.
-
-The dwellers of Gokula migrated with Krishna to Vrinddvana, for fear of
-Vrikas or wolves. (Kama and other passions are the wolves, _Nitkantha_),
-I.
-
-In treating of Pralamba Asura, mention is made of the nonperception of
-"I am Brahma," VII.
-
-Pralamba is said to be an aspect of the primal Daitya Madhu, IX.
-
-There is some philosophical discussion about the concealment of calves
-by Brahma, (X to XIV.)
-
-The first six sons of Devaki are the Six Indriyas (including Manas) and
-the seventh is the Jivatma, the conscious Ego. XXXV.
-
-In commenting upon this sloka, Nilkantha says, "Devaki and other names
-are merely allegorical, bearing an esoteric meaning. The narration is
-not the real point." He further supports his position while commenting
-on sloka XL, of Vrindavana Kanda. He makes quotations from the Skanda
-Purana, which speak of the twofold meanings of the narration texts, one
-Adhyatmika and another Adhi bhautika, the former being difficult to
-follow. Following up these quotations, Nilkantha says; "Those that are
-not prepared for the Adhyatmika hindering of all modifications of the
-mind, must seek the Adhibhautika Lila of Bhagavan. And if they
-concentrate their minds on the _holy deeds of Bhagavan_, they acquire
-the result of Samadhi."
-
-Krishna is Paramatma. The intercourse of the Gopis was not therefore
-adulterous. (XXXVII and XXXVIII.)
-
-_Akrura Kanda_.
-
-In this Kanda, Akrura comes to Vraja and takes Rama and Krishna to
-Mathura.
-
-_Mathura Kanda_.
-
-This part treats of the killing of Kansa by Krishna.
-
-Krishna is described as the knower of the hidden names of the cows. (It
-is to be understood that the cows have hidden names, _Nilkantha_.)
-
-We now come to KRISHNA UPANISHAD, one of the Atharvana Upanishads.
-
-The Gopas are Devas.
-
-"Nanda" is Supreme bliss.
-
-"Yasoda" is Mukti.
-
-Maya is three-fold Satvika, Rajasika and Tamasika.
-
-Satvika Maya is in Rudra, Rajasika in Brahma and Tamasika in the
-Daityas.
-
-Devaki (_Deva+ki_ or chanted by the Devas) is Brahma Vidya.
-
-"Vasudeva" is Nigama.
-
-The "Gopis" and the cows are Riks. (Vedic Mantras)
-
-Brahma is the stick of Krishna.
-
-Rudra is His flute.
-
-Indra is the horn,
-
-"Gokula Vana" is Vaikuntha.
-
-The trees are the Rishis of Vaikuntha.
-
-The Daityas (Trinavarta and others) are greed, anger and other passions.
-Krishna, in the form of Gopa, is Hari. Rama is the Sesha serpent.
-
-The eight principal wives and the sixteen thousand and one hundred minor
-wives of Krishna are the Riks and Upanishads.
-
-"Chanura" is Dvesha (Dislike).
-
-"Mushtika" is Matsara (Egoism, Envy).
-
-"Kubalaya pida" is Darpa (pride).
-
-"Vaka" is Garva (Arrogance).
-
-"Rohini" is Daya (Tenderness).
-
-"Satya bhama" is Ahinsa, (Non-Injury).
-
-"Agha" is some fatal disease, such as consumption &c.
-
-"Kansa" is Kali(?) (The commentator Narayana says that by Kali we are
-here to understand Kalaha or quarrel, for Kansa is the incarnation of
-Kalanemi and Duryodhana is the incarnation of Kali.).
-
-"Sudaman" is Sama (restraint of the mind).
-
-"Akrura" is Satya (Truth).
-
-"Uddhava" is Dama (restraint of the senses).
-
-"Sankha" is Vishnu himself in the form of Lakshmi.
-
-The Milk products of the Gopis correspond to the ocean of milk in the
-universe.
-
-Kasyapa is the Ulukhala (wooden mortar used in cleansing rice), to which
-Krishna was tied by Yasoda.
-
-The rope that was used in the tying of Sri Krishna is Aditi. Chakra is
-Veda.
-
-The garland Vaijayanti is Dharma.
-
-The umbrella is Akasa.
-
-Gada is the Goddess Kalika.
-
-The bow of horn (Sarnga) is the Maya of Vishnu.
-
-The Arrow is Kala, the destroyer of all lives.
-
-The Lotus is the seed of the universe. Garuda is the religious fig tree
-named Bhandira.
-
-The following is taken from GOPI CHANDANA UPANISHAD.
-
-"What is Gopi?
-
-"She who preserves.
-
-"Preserves from what?
-
-"Preserves people from Naraka, from death and from fear."
-
-HARIVANSA says: --
-
-"Kansa is Kalanemi,
-
-"Kesin is Haya Griva,
-
-"Arishta is son of Bali, the Elephant is Rishta, son of Diti, Chanura
-and Mushtika are the Asuras, Varaha and Kisora."
-
-PADMA PURANA throws the greatest light on the Vrindavana Lila of Sri
-Krishna. The chapters refer to the Patala Khanda of that Purana.
-
-Ch. 38. Of innumerable Brahmandas (solar systems), there is one supreme
-seat, that of Vishnu. Of this seat, Goloka is the highest aspect, and
-Vaikuntha, Siva Loka and others are the lower aspects. Goloka is
-represented on the earth by Gokula, and Vaikuntha by Dvaraka. Vrindavana
-is within the jurisdiction of Mathura. Mathura has the form of the
-thousand-petalled lotus, situated in the head.
-
-Of the forests in Gokula, the twelve chief ones are: -- Bhadra, Sri,
-Loha, Bhandira, Mahavana, Tala, Khadir, Bakula, Kumud, Kamya, Madhu and
-Vrindavan. There are several sub-forests too, which witnessed some scene
-or other of Krishna Lila.
-
-Gokula is the thousand-petalled lotus and its disc is the seat of
-Govinda.
-
-The petals are the seats of different performances of Sri Krishna and
-are different occult centres.
-
-The southern petal contains a most occult seat, attainable with
-difficulty by the greatest of Yogins. The south-eastern petal contains
-two secret recesses. The eastern petal has the most purifying
-properties. The north-east petal is the seat of fruition. The Gopis
-attained Krishna on this petal, by worshipping Katyayani. Their clothes
-were also stolen on this petal.
-
-The northern petal is the seat of the twelve Adityas. It is as good as
-the disc itself.
-
-The north-west petal is the seat of Kaliya. On the western petal, favor
-was shewn to the wives of the Vedic Rishis. Here the Asura Agha was
-killed. Here is also the Lake called Brahma. On the south-western petal,
-the Asuras Vyoma and Sankha-chuda were killed.
-
-These eight petals are situated in Vrindavana. Outside Vrindavana, there
-are sixteen petals. The first petal is the seat of Govardhana. Here
-Krishna was installed as Govinda. The first petal contains Madhuvana,
-the second Khadira, the fourth Kadamba, the fifth Nandisvara (residence
-of Nanda), the sixth Nanda, the seventh Bakula, the eighth Tala (where
-the Asura Dhenuka was killed), the ninth Kumuda, the tenth Kamya (where
-Brahma knew Krishna as Vishnu), the eleventh many forests, the twelfth
-Bhandira, the thirteenth Bhadra, the fourteenth Sri, the fifteenth Loha,
-and the sixteenth Mahavana. The deeds of Sri Krishna up to the age of
-five were all performed at Mahavana.
-
-Vrindavana is the seed cavity of the thousand-petalled lotus. By all
-means place Vrindavana in the heart cavity. Krishna is always a Kisora
-(between ten and fifteen) at Vrindavana, (_i.e._ Vrindavana proper, the
-particular forest of that name).
-
-At the centre of Vrindavana is the eight-cornered Yoga seat of Sri
-Krishna. Over that seat is a throne of jewels. The eight petalled lotus
-lies there. The disc of that lotus is the supreme abode of Govinda. He
-is the Lord of Vrindavana. Brahma, Vishnu and Siva are all His parts.
-His primal Prakriti is Radhika.
-
-*CHAPTER 39.*
-
-Govinda with Radha is seated on the golden throne. Outside the throne,
-on the seat of Yoga, remain the chief favorites of Krishna, who are
-parts of Radhika.
-
-Lalita stands on the west, Syamala on the north-west, Srimati on the
-north, Haripriya on the north-east, Visakha on the east, Saivya on the
-south-east, Padma on the south, and Bhadra on the south-west.
-
-Then there is another group of eight, Chandravali, Chitrarekha, Chandra,
-Madana Sundari, Sri, Madhumati, Chandra-rekha, and Haripriya.
-
-Of this latter group, Chandravali holds almost equal position with
-Radhika.
-
-These are the sixteen principal Prakritis. Then there are thousands of
-Gopis all devoted to Krishna.
-
-On the right side of Sri Krishna are thousands of Sruti girls, who chant
-His divine mysteries. On the left side are the most beautiful-looking
-Deva girls, who turn towards Sri Krishna with the greatest eagerness.
-
-Outside this inner temple are the Gopa boys, who look like Krishna.
-Sridaman is on the west, Sudaman on the north, Vasudaman on the east,
-and Kinkini on the south.
-
-Outwards still more, inside a golden temple, seated upon a golden seat,
-adorned with ornaments of gold, there are thousands of Gopa boys, headed
-by Stoka Krishna, Ansu Bhadra and others, all devoutly singing the glory
-of Sri Krishna.
-
-The whole of this is surrounded by a shining gold wall.
-
-On the west of that wall, within a temple, situated under a Parijata
-tree, is Vasudeva, with his eight wives, Rukmini, Satyabhama, Jambavati,
-Nagnajiti, Sulakshana, Mitravinda, Anuvinda and Sunanda.
-
-On the north, under a Harichandana tree, is Sankarshana with Revati. On
-the south, under a Santana tree, is Pradyumna with Rati. On the east,
-under a Kalpataru, is Aniruddha.
-
-Surrounding all this is a white stone wall, with four gates. White
-Vishnu preserves the western gate, Red Vishnu preserves the northern
-gate, yellow Vishnu preserves the eastern gate, Black Vishnu preserves
-the southern.
-
-CHAP. 41. Rishi Ugra-tapas meditated on Sri Krishna for one hundred
-Kalpas. At the end of that period he became a Gopi, named Sunanda.
-
-Rishi Satya-tapas meditated on Krishna for ten Kalpas, and he then
-became a Gopi named Bhadra.
-
-Rishi Hari-dhama became a Gopi, named Raktaveni, at the end of three
-Kalpas.
-
-Rishi Javali became Chitra-gandha after ten Kalpas.
-
-Suchi-sravas and Suvarna became the daughters of the Gopa Suvira, at the
-end of one Kalpa.
-
-Jatila, Janghaputa, Ghritasin, and Karbu became Gopis after three
-Kalpas.
-
-Suka, son of Dirgha-tapas, Vyasa of the previous Kalpa, became daughter
-of Upananda.
-
-One son of Svetaketu became the daughter of Balavani.
-
-Chitra-dhvaja, son of Rajarshi Chandraprabha, became Chitrakala,
-daughter of Gopa Viragupta, at the end of one Kalpa.
-
-Rishi Punya-sravas practised meditation for thirty thousand Kalpas and
-he was born as the daughter of Nanda's brother, by name Labanga.
-
-These are some of the favorite Gopis of Krishna.
-
-CHAP. 42. The form of Sri Krishna, as seen at Vrindavana, is constant.
-Mathura, Vrindavana, Yamuna, the Gopa girls, the Gopa boys, Sri Krishna
-as an Avatara -- are all constant.
-
-The Gopis are the Srutis (forms invoked by Vedic Mantras), Deva girls
-and devoted Rishis, desirous of liberation.
-
-The Gopa boys are Munis, full of the bliss of Vaikuntha.
-
-The Kadamba tree is Kalpa Vriksha, (a divine tree that gives all that is
-desired).
-
-The Siddhas, Sadhyas and Gandharvas are the Kokilas (cuckoos) of
-Vrindavana.
-
-Govardhana is the eternal servant of Hari.
-
-CHAP. 43. Arjuna wanted to know the mysteries of Vrindavana and of the
-Gopis.
-
-Krishna said they were unknown to Brahma even. He then advised Arjuna to
-worship the goddess Tripura-sundari, as through her favor only he could
-know all he asked about. The goddess asked Arjuna to bathe in a tank
-called Kulakunda. She then gave directions which were duly performed by
-Arjuna. The goddess then took Arjuna to the real, constant Vrindavana,
-which is placed over Goloka. With the divine vision, given by the
-goddess, Arjuna saw the mysteries of Vrindavana, and became full of
-devotional love. He then asked the goddess what to do next. She then
-asked him to bathe in another tank, and, when Arjuna did so, he became a
-female. A divine voice said, "Go back to the former tank. Touch its
-water and you will attain your object. There you will find your
-companions."
-
-The Gopis gathered round Arjuna out of curiosity. One of them Priyamuda
-asked: -- "Who art thou? How hast thou come here?" Arjuna related his
-story.
-
-To satisfy the curiosity of Arjuna, Priyamuda said: -- "We are all the
-dear companions of Krishna. Here are the girls of Vraja. Those are
-Srutis and these are Munis. We are Gopa girls. Some appeared here from
-the body of Krishna. They are constant, keeping constant company with
-Krishna and moving all over the universe. Of them, this is Purna-rasa,
-this is Rasa Manthara (and so on). Then of the Srutis, this is Udgita,
-this is Sugita (and so on). Then of the Munis, this is Ugra-tapas, this
-is Priyavrata, this is Suvrata (and so on). Amongst us, the girls of
-Gopas, this is Chandravali, this is Chandrika, this is Chandra-rekha
-(and so on). You will have all these for your companions. Come bathe on
-the east side of the tank. I shall give thee the Mantra of Radhika".
-Arjuna worshipped Radhika with that Mantra and she appeared before him.
-She then gave him the Mantra of Krishna. With that Mantra, Arjuna
-succeeded in getting the favor of Krishna. He called Arjuna, in his
-female form, and gave him the privilege of his company. Arjuna was then
-made to bathe on the west side of the tank and he then regained his
-former form.
-
-THE BRAHMA VAIVARTA PURANA follows the ideal of Padma Purana. This ideal
-was further worked out and further revelations were made by Chaitanya,
-who is believed to be an Avatara of Krishna Himself. A full discussion
-of these revelations will be made when we come to study the teachings of
-Chaitanya. No reference is therefore made in this book to the works
-which appeared and some of which preceded, but were connected with, the
-great movement of Chaitanya.
-
-Such is the study of the Vrindavana Lila as authoritatively given in
-standard religious books. It gives us a clue to the mysteries, which
-should be worked out by each esoteric student for himself.
-
-The mysteries are partly allegorical and partly historical. We shall
-first take the allegorical representation of the Lila, which has
-reference to the spiritual development of every individual Bhakta and is
-therefore of the most abiding interest to all Bhaktas.
-
-The Puri of Mathura is in every man, the kingdom of his own mind, where
-the personal self is to be _put down_. Mathura is from _math_, to put
-down. Lavana (Salt), the demon of materialism (for salt is an emblem of
-materialism; cf. the salt ocean) had hold of this Puri during the time
-of Rama, and Satrughna killed the demon.
-
-But materialism regained its lost ground and the forces of descent
-gathered strong round Kansa. Kansa was Kala-nemi, or the mark left by
-the wheel of time. Each one of us has inherited through countless ages a
-strong element of materiality, which tries to reign over each one of us.
-This is the Kansa in each of us. There was also king Kansa of the period
-when Krishna appeared. He was brought down from his high platform and
-killed by Krishna, and the spiritual evolution of humanity became
-assured.
-
-There are eight Prakritic principles in man, corresponding to eight
-senses. Earth or smell, water or taste, fire or form, air or touch, and
-akasa or sound, these enable Jivas to acquire experiences from the
-outside. Ahankara, or the sense of egoism, enables man to assimilate
-those experiences to his personal self, and to make a small world of his
-own self.
-
-Then there is Mahat and the universal sense corresponding to it. This
-sense takes man out of the limits of personality; it raises him to the
-level of spiritual life. It develops unselfishness and universal life.
-
-Last of all is the eighth principle, Mula Prakriti. It gives the sense
-of perceiving Atma.
-
-Krishna helps the evolution of the Jivas, by developing the outer senses
-first and then the inner senses.
-
-When the first six senses are developed, the evolution of personality is
-complete. The powers that develop the senses do not come any more into
-requisition. Those powers were the first six brothers of Krishna, who
-lay slumbering in the ocean, and who were _ardhagarbha_, as Harivansa
-says. Their action was confined to the material stage of evolution and
-hence they are said to have descended from Hiranyakasipu. Kansa had no
-difficulty in slaying these half-dead powers.
-
-The sixth brother was Balarama. He was robed in blue, a highly spiritual
-color, the color of Mahat. He roused the spiritual sense of man. Jivas
-had wandered away from their spiritual home, where they were all united,
-and each had made a separate entity for himself. Balarama tried to draw
-them together once more on the plane of Mahat. Hence he was called
-Sankarshana, and his instrument was called the plough. He was the first
-born, as men cannot come face to face with Ishvara, so long as they are
-not raised beyond the limits of personality. Jivas streamed forth from
-the plane of Mahat, presided over by Atlanta or Sankarshana, and they
-are drawn back to that plane so that they may set out on a higher
-spiritual journey.
-
-Then came Sri Krishna and Yogamaya, both together. Sri Krishna was the
-highest of the high, beyond the Maya that enshrouded the Brahmanda. How
-could he come in contact with the Jivas of Brahmanda? The only plane of
-Prakriti with which He could come in direct contact was the plane of
-Mula Prakriti. But this plane was not developed in humanity as yet.
-Therefore He asked Yoga Maya, the energy of Jivic evolution, who carries
-Jiva from the lowest to the highest point, to serve as a medium between
-Him and the Jivas. Sri Krishna performed His mission with the help of
-Yoga Maya. The Gopis met Sri Krishna because they worshipped Yoga Maya
-(Katyayani). Sri Krishna had personal contact with the Gopis at Rasa,
-because He invoked Yoga Maya at the time and got her help. Yoga Maya is
-the highest sense of which Jiva is capable, and, when Durga appeared in
-her third incarnation as Yoga Maya, she was not to undergo further
-incarnation in this Kalpa. To the developing sense of Yoga Maya, Siva
-gave truth after truth, till the highest truths were revealed to her,
-which form the Agamas and Nigamas. The revelations to the developing
-sense of humanity are the Tantras.
-
-Sri Krishna was born that men might come up to His ideal. He is the
-first Purusha. The limitations or Maya of the solar system do not touch
-Him. He is the Lord of many solar systems. Even the materials that form
-the solar systems have their manifestation from him. Nothing that we
-know of, nothing that we are composed of, nothing that shapes our
-experiences, that causes our likes and dislikes, limits Krishna. Even
-Brahma, Vishnu and Siva, the triune aspect of the second Purusha, are
-limited by the universe they lord over. Siva is also called an aspect of
-the first Purusha in Saiva Puranas.
-
-Sri Krishna is Nirguna, for the Gunas we know of do not touch Him. He is
-the Absolute, for the relativities we know of, or which we may even
-think of, have no place in Him. The other Avataras are said to be
-manifestations of the second Purusha. But Krishna is Bhagavan Himself,
-_i.e._, the first Purusha (I-3-28).
-
-There are three aspects of the Absolute, the non-transformable, which
-uphold creation. It is through these aspects that all beings come into
-existence, prosper and dissolve. It is through them that they are
-brought nearer and nearer in every Kalpa to Ishvara. In the perfected
-being, the aspects of sat (existence), chit (consciousness) and ananda
-(bliss) are not restricted by the conditions of the universe in which
-those aspects are developed. When beings are perfected in this way, they
-reach the plane of Krishna, which is beyond the seven-fold plane of the
-Cosmic Egg. The Gopis are such perfected beings.
-
-It will be out of place to enter here into a detailed study of these
-aspects. But it will be necessary to make a brief reference to them in
-order to understand the aspect of Bliss, as a factor in spiritual
-Evolution.
-
-It is the _existence_ aspect of the underlying ray of the Absolute
-Brahman, in every individual, that gives a continuity to individual
-existence, through thousands of births and experiences, and makes
-individual evolution a possibility.
-
-The _consciousness_ aspect of the ray unfolds the blunt inanimate sense
-into the most highly developed mind. It gives the wisdom side of man's
-evolution, which leads to the path of Jnana.
-
-Then there is the _Bliss_ aspect of the ray, which directly leads to the
-union of the human soul with the Over-soul, of Jiva with Ishvara, and it
-leads to the path of Bhakti. It is the sensation of pleasure that makes
-the lowest organic form, the primordial cell, break through the inertia
-of Tamas. The cell moves about, either for cell union or for the
-assimilation of food, because these give rise to some sensation, call it
-pleasurable, if you like. It is not so easy to form an idea of the
-sensation of pleasure in the vegetable kingdom, but the excitement
-caused by the union of the sperm cell with the germ cell cannot but
-strike any one with the existence of some such feeling, though in a most
-rudimentary state.
-
-Animals feel pleasure in the company of their female partners. They also
-love their offspring. This gives rise to family connections, to the
-formation of society and of social virtues. With the evolution of body
-and mind, pleasures become many-sided, and the acquirement of pleasure
-becomes in itself the principal factor in the development of man. Man
-seeks his pleasure outside himself, and he does so either for himself or
-for others. A point is reached when self is lost sight of and self
-sacrifice for the good of others becomes a duty of pleasure. Self is
-estranged from the narrow groove of personality. It tries to identify
-itself with all beings. There is philanthropy, there is universal
-kindness. Still the differences cause unrest and disquiet. Self finds no
-rest, till it seeks its reality, till it makes a homeward journey, for
-even its own personality and the outside world lose all charm for it.
-Self finds bliss in self void of personality. This is spiritual bliss
-attained by those that are Antarmukh (facing inwards) and not by those
-that are Bahir Mukh (facing outwards). Self when seeking self becomes
-united to the universal self as its eternal friend and its real aspect.
-The universal self in Vrindavana is Sri Krishna. And the bliss of the
-Gopis is self-attainment, attachment to self or Atma and not to non-self
-or worldly connections.
-
-It is to those and those only that eagerly desire to make this inward
-journey that the Vrindavana Lila is addressed.
-
-Nanda is bliss, he is spiritual Bliss the Bliss of an Antar Mukha. It is
-spiritual bliss that attracts spirit unto itself. It is the field for
-spiritual growth, the nursery ground of enthusiastic devotion and, what
-is more, of devotional love. The ideal spiritual bliss is that of
-Radhika and of her fellow Gopis. It is the Bliss aspect of Isvara that
-in the Jiva causes mutual attractions and makes devotion a law, a
-necessity. Reflected in the Universe at large, it is the one bond that
-holds together all beings, and becomes a force of attraction on all
-planes. Man is guided by bliss in his relations to the Universe. He is
-guided by bliss in his relation to himself.
-
-Nanda is located in the brain, in the thousand-petalled Lotus. The
-spiritual seat in the head is Gokul, the first abode of Nanda.
-
-Krishna appears in Gokul. The devotee sets out on his devotional
-journey.
-
-The first impediment of a devotee is Mala or impurity. In spite of
-himself, he cannot get the better of his passions, his personal desires.
-They have such a strong and apparent charm, there is such an hereditary
-and accumulated attraction toward them, that they easily overcome the
-devotional life in its infancy. The fascinating Putana overtook all by
-her charms and she found an easy access to Krishna himself. She made an
-attempt to nurse Krishna with poisoned milk. She was killed and Mala was
-removed (X. 6.)
-
-The next impediment is Vikshepa or distraction. The mind, with its load
-of outside experiences always responding to the outside world, is so
-much distracted, thinking now of this and now of that, that it has to be
-set right before further development is possible. The cart has to be
-upturned, with its load of food-articles, the cart of mind with its load
-of experiences. That is, the man has to become Antarmukha (X. 7.) When
-this is done, the Asura of distraction, Trinavarta or whirlwind, is
-easily killed (X. 7.). The Gopis were now void of impurities and void of
-distraction; yet more they were being attracted to Krishna. Krishna
-favored them by stealing the fruits of their karma or action and
-accepting them for himself. Sri Krishna said to Arjuna, "You have a
-right to the Karma only and not to the fruits thereof." The senses of
-the Gopis used to roam about in the performance of daily duties, and
-they brought back perceptions and conceptions for the day which were
-worked out by the Gopis as duty required. The perceptions and
-conceptions are the milk-products and milk. They were churned into the
-karma of the Gopis. The senses are the cows; the outside objects of
-perception, their grass. The Brahma Vaivarta Purana says: -- "_Ghrita_
-is obtained from milk, _Yajna_ is performed with _Ghrita_, and all
-happiness arises out of the performance of Yajna." _Prakriti Khanda_.
-The preparation of milk products is the karma or sacrifice of the Gopis.
-(X. 8.).
-
-The husk-stand is the discriminating faculty, that which separates the
-husk from the grains. When Krishna becomes fastened to the
-discriminating faculty (not that any one can fasten him with any effort
-of his own), when right and wrong are centered in him, self becomes
-abnegated and offered up entirely to Krishna, Egoism and ignorance, the
-pair of Arjuna trees disappear, though deeply rooted in man (X. 10).
-When fruits are offered to Krishna, there is a rich return (X. 11.).
-
-We have reached here a point in spiritual progress. Personality has been
-completely given up. Brain intellect is no longer congenial to spiritual
-progress. The head retards the spiritual man and does not carry him
-forward.
-
-The elders of Gokula sat in council and they decided to leave Gokula for
-Vrindavana.
-
-Vrindavana is the Heart. The eight-petalled lotus in the heart is the
-permanent abode of Sri Krishna. The twelve forests are twelve centres 4
-x 3, the primary number being 4, the number of the sacred Tetraktys.
-Within the heart, the only Purusha is Sri Krishna. AH others have to
-make themselves passive to Him. The Gopis, the ideal devotees of the
-Purusha in the heart, left the world outside, their husbands and homes,
-and placed themselves entirely at the service of the Divine Lord. Let us
-approach the sublime truths of the Vrindavana Upasana with the utmost
-solemnity possible. Those who cannot bring themselves to an exalted
-appreciation of the Vrindavana Lila had better not read the Bhagavata at
-all.
-
-The Gopas and Gopis went to Vrindavana. Rama and Krishna headed the Gopa
-boys and looked after the calves.
-
-What are the cows and calves? Who are the Gopas, the Gopa boys and the
-Gopis?
-
-Once more let us understand the triad -- Adhyatma, Adhibhuta and
-Adhidaiva. Take sight.
-
-The sense of sight comes in contact with the outside world and carries
-the perception of sight to the possessor of the eye, under the guidance
-of a conscious energy. The senses and the mind are Cows or Adhyatma. The
-outside world is grass or Adhibhuta. The possessor of the senses and the
-mind is the Gopi, the Ego or Jiva. In Vrindavana, the Gopis are the
-highest Jivas or Rishis, as explained in the Upanishads. The conscious
-energy is the Gopa or Adhideva.
-
-The Adhidevas are the Vedic Devas, as we have already seen.
-
-The Gopas are reincarnations of the Devas, as explained in the
-Upanishads.
-
-Ordinarily the Gopas lead the cows or the Adhi-Davas lead the senses,
-but in Vrindavana the Devas surrender themselves entirely to Krishna.
-
-The calves or the Vatsas are the modifications of the senses and the
-mind -- the Vrittis.
-
-In Vrindavana, Rama and Krishna first tended the calves. The Gopa boys
-were the attendants of Rama and Krishna, the parishads or companions who
-reached very near the state of divinity, the work-mates of Bhagavan in
-the preservation of the universe.
-
-The Lord tended the Vrittis of the mind. Therefore they could not go
-astray.
-
-Now let us follow up the working of the divine in the heart of the
-individual and the killing of all obstacles.
-
-_Vatsa, Baka, Agha and Brahma_. -- The Vatsa Asura is a Vritti of the
-mind. If a non-spiritual Vritti becomes unconsciously mixed up with the
-spiritual Vrittis of the mind, it has instantly to be killed.
-
-Baka or the crane, stands for religious hypocrisy. Spiritual life
-rejects all hypocrisy, all traces of untruth, in any form.
-
-When these two Asuras are destroyed, a third Asura appears on the scene,
-the terrible Agha. Agha is sin, an evil deed. The sins of a man, his
-past evil deeds, stand up for a while and swallow up all that is divine
-in him. Even Gods can not overcome Agha. Those who know the struggles of
-a devotee know very well how hard it is when all that is evil in man the
-accumulated tendencies of innumerable births, rise up in rebellion as it
-were at a certain stage of his progress. Who else but Sri Krishna can
-save a devotee at such a crisis. The flesh itself has to be destroyed
-and the whole nature changed. The devotee undergoes a second birth as it
-were. His Vrittis are not the Vrittis of yore; even the energies that
-guide these vrittis undergo change.
-
-Every Brahmana knows the Mantra that is recited for the suppression of
-Agha (Agha-marshana). It goes back to the pre-manifesting period, when
-days and nights did not exist.
-
-The serpent Agha swallowed up Krishna and his companions.
-
-Krishna came out victorious and he revivified his companions.
-
-The Vrittis underwent change by this process and also those that guided
-them. It was another creation altogether. The forms and varieties of
-Brahma's creation had no meaning now in them.
-
-What if the Vrittis were now removed from the Gopis or the Gopa boys
-kept out in a body? They all lost their distinctive features; their
-differences were gone. All was become divine -- the Vrittis and the Gopa
-boys.
-
-So when Brahma concealed the calves and the Gopa boys, he only thought
-of his own creation. The Vrittis and the Gopa boys came out in divinity
-which was now their only reality. They were all parts of Sri Krishna
-himself. They were manifestly sparks or rays of Atma itself. The senses
-and the mind were now irresistibly drawn towards their calves. The Gopas
-were more than ever attached to their boys. Balarama noticed this and
-spoke to Krishna. The query of Raja Parikshit and the reply of Suka
-explain the whole position. This brings us to the end of the KUMARA LILA
-of Sri Krishna which prepares the way for the union of the human soul
-with the over-soul, of Jiva Atma with Parama Atma. We come next to the
-POUGANDA LILA when Krishna guided the mind itself and all were attached
-to Him.
-
-_Krishna, the tender of the cows._
-
-Rama and Krishna were now in charge of the cows themselves, the senses
-and the mind.
-
-_The Kaliya serpent._
-
-Yama is the Death-god. The river Yamuna is his sister. _Kaliya_ is from
-kala or time. Kaliya with its one hundred hoods is the lifetime of one
-birth, represented by one hundred years. The serpent could not be killed
-but only sent away from Vrindavana. The devotees got over the periodic
-death-transformation.
-
-_The conflagtation and Pralamba._
-
-As the followers of Krishna were saved from death on the one hand, so
-they were saved from conflagration (annihilation of form) and loss of
-the Ego (Balarama) on the other hand.
-
-In the kingdom of Divine Bliss, everything now was divine. The purified
-mind did not go astray. It remained entirely attached to Sri Krishna.
-Personality was now thoroughly conquered. The Jiva had acquired matter
-congenial to the plane of the first Purusha, and he no longer ran the
-risk of death or annihilation. The Gopis completed their homeward
-journey and they knew nothing except their Lord Krishna. They gave up
-all for the sake of the Lord. The Lord was all in all to them. They were
-bound to Him by the most sacred ties of devotional love. We shall now
-see how they became united to the Divine Lord.
-
-_The Gopis and the stealing of their clothes._
-
-The rains followed the summer and there was a flow of spirituality all
-around. The autumn followed and it was calm, clear and transparent.
-
-When the water is pure, transparent and calm and the sun is over it can
-anything prevent the reflection of the sun's image on its bosom? The
-Gopis drew unto themselves the image of Sri Krishna. There was no
-muddiness in them as in ordinary mortals; they had not the calls of
-other desires.
-
-It is not till the ear ceases to hear the outside world, that it is open
-to the music in the heart, the flute of Sri Krishna.
-
-The Rupa of Krishna becomes manifest when all worldly Rupas lose their
-charm.
-
-The Gopis even smelt the divine fragrance of Sri Krishna; they felt his
-divine touch and they tasted the honey of Sri Krishna's lips.
-
-The charms of the world all dead and gone, there remains only one
-attraction, that of Sri Krishna, the only Purusha in Vrindavana.
-
-The Gopis now had a right to approach Sri Krishna as their lover. They
-became full of Him (_tanmaya_), and they worshipped Katyayani (Yoga
-Maya) to gain their object. (X. 21.)
-
-It was then that Sri Krishna stripped them of their clothes (X. 22.) No
-false shame, no false considerations should now deter the Gopis. They
-should lay themselves bare before Sri Krishna. No hiding, no half
-speaking. "Virtuous girls, I know your resolve. It is to worship me. I
-also approve of it and so it must succeed." This was the long and short
-of the whole affair. The Gopis saw they were found out. So it was to be
-a matter of open love now.
-
-We shall pass over a few digressions before we come back to the Gopis
-and the consummation of their love (Rasa Lila).
-
-_Vedic Brahmans and their wives._
-
-Those that were under the influence of Vedic Yajnas could not easily
-accept the self-sacrificing path of compassion.
-
-The students of Bhagavat Gita know very well that Sri Krishna raised his
-voice against Vedic karma and preached the performance of unselfish
-karma in its stead. The Vedic Brahmanas did not follow Him for a time.
-But the tide overtook their unselfish wives who were attached to the
-path of unselfishness and compassion blended as it was with the path of
-devotion to the Lord Sri Krishna. The wives brought their husbands round
-and the cause triumphed in all India.
-
-_The raising of Govardhana._
-
-The raising of Govardhana is only a sequel to the suppression of Vedic
-Yajnas. Why are the gods, headed by Indra, worshipped? Because the
-Indriyas are their channels of communion with men and they can influence
-men through those channels. They are therefore called Adhi-Devas. They
-are also the hands of providence and through them we get all the things
-of the earth. But can they give us anything that is not allotted to us
-by our own karma? If a prolonged and unhindered connection with the
-manasic world or a prolonged Svarga experience is brought about by the
-performance of Vedic Yajnas it is on account of the superior force
-exerted over the Devas, acquired by such performances, and is therefore
-due to karma. The Devas cannot override karma.
-
-But still men have to depend upon the gods in their everyday lives. They
-are the hands of the karmic dispenser. True they deal out things
-according to the karma of men. But they give to men the desired objects
-of life and in return they expect yajna-offerings to them. This is the
-old law of the existence of beings. The universe itself is the outcome
-of sacrifice and inter-dependence, the law of giving and taking.
-
-If men broke that law, what wonder that the gods should resent it! But
-there was a higher law, governing men and Devas alike, the law of direct
-communion with the lord of all, the supreme karmic dispenser, the
-Adhi-yajna of Bhagavat Gita. If men placed themselves and their karma
-entirely at the service of the Lord, where was room left for the Devas?
-Against such men the gods themselves lost all power.
-
-The Hill Govardhana is the accumulated karma of the Gopis, which gives
-the pasture ground for their cows. Krishna bears the burden of His
-Bhaktas' karma, and He lifted up the karmic hill of his devoted band
-with very little effort of his own. And when Sri Krishna bears the karma
-of His Bhaktas, the Devas are powerless against them. It is karma that
-nourishes the senses and hence the hill is called Govardhana (nourisher
-of the cows).
-
-_The Installation._
-
-When the gods were displaced from their position of leadership, whom
-were the cows, the senses, to follow? Surabhi, the heavenly mother of
-the cows, said: -- "Now that thou hast taken the place of Indra, we
-shall call thee our Indra, or GOVINDA." Sridhara says, _go_ means a cow,
-as well as Svarga. Govinda is one who acquires supremacy over the cows
-or over Svarga. So the word means Indra as well. But the peculiar
-significance of the word Govinda has been elaborated in the Brahma
-Sanhita and other works.
-
-The plane of the first Purusha, which is the common plane of innumerable
-solar systems, with their sevenfold planes, has two broad aspects
-Vaikuntha and Goloka. Vaikuntha has reference to the solar systems as a
-whole. The energies that guide the Brahmandas proceed from the plane of
-Vaikuntha. Both Siva and Vishnu are aspects of the first Purusha, but
-not Brahma. Siva Loka or Kailasa is therefore included in Vaikuntha. The
-plane of Brahma is Satya Loka or Brahma Loka, the highest plane of the
-Brahmanda. The worshippers of Brahma or Hiranya-garbha reach the plane
-of Brahma Loka. There they remain till the Brahmanda becomes dissolved
-at the end of the life period of Brahman.
-
-Vaikuntha is the plane of Vishnu as the first Purusha. He has four
-aspects on that plane -- Vasudeva, Sankarshana, Pradyumna and Aniruddha.
-His female aspect is Lakshmi. The worshippers of Vishnu, Preserver of
-the Universe, reach this plane.
-
-Goloka is a higher aspect of the plane of the first Purusha. There
-Krishna is not the Lord of the Universe. He is the Lord of only His
-followers -- those that give up everything for His sake. The highest
-spiritual life is on this plane. In Vaikuntha there is the majesty of
-power. In Goloka there is the sweetness of love. Love is a surrender
-which we all owe to Krishna, who makes the greatest sacrifices for us.
-Ishvara gives us existence, consciousness and bliss, so that we may
-develop new centres that approach the state of Ishvara, and when we do
-that we have no right to keep them to ourselves, but should give them
-back to Him from whom we owe them. Nothing can please the Lord so much
-as when we pay this willing homage to Him. He has full control over the
-senses and experiences of the Gopas and Gopis that dwell in Goloka. He
-can turn them to any use He likes. They are His own property, and the
-dwellers of Goloka form His own household. He is one with them as they
-are with Him. The highest spiritual life is in Goloka. Every kalpa adds
-to the number of the devoted band.
-
-Vaikuntha is represented in the Dvaraka Lila. The acts of Sri Krishna
-that constitute the Vrindavana Lila are constant (nitya).
-
-They are reproduced in all Kalpas and on all the Dvipas or globes for
-the benefit of all Bhaktas. When there is the full manifestation of
-Krishna in any Kalpa, the Gopas and Gopis also appear with Him. But His
-relations with them are meant to serve as a guide only for the initiated
-Bhaktas, and not for the world at large. Sri Krishna as an Avatara is
-different from Sri Krishna as the beloved and the lover. As an Avatara,
-He forces allegiance, and expects it as of right. As a lover, He seeks
-His Bhaktas as they seek Him.
-
-The Lord of Goloka is Govinda. When Sri Krishna was installed as
-Govinda, he had a right to the company of the Gopis, and not before. The
-Gopis became the property of Govinda, as soon as Krishna asserted
-himself as such. The Installation precedes the Rasa Lila. The
-significance of this Installation will never be lost sight of by those
-who want to make a critical study of the Rasa Lila, or to apply the
-ordinary canons of morality to this most sacred, most sublime, and most
-soul-enchanting act of Sri Krishna the RASA LILA.
-
-
-THE RASA.
-
-
-Who can presume to explain Rasa! What mortal mind can approach, even in
-conception, the divinity, the sublimity of the five chapters on Rasa!
-The Gopis were on the field of action. They had their husbands, their
-parents, their sons; they had their worldly duties to perform, some of
-them arduous enough to require constant attention. When the time came,
-however, for union with the Purusha of the Heart, when the signal music
-was heard, every Gopi threw aside all Karma, all actions, all
-attachments, all bonds and offered herself up completely to the Lord.
-Where is the glory of those that give up the world, that give up all
-duties in life, of those that force themselves out of all actions that
-they may be devoted to the Lord within and the Lord without? And when
-the Gopis approached the Lord, there was no trace of human passion in
-them, no love of human flesh, no idea of material gratification. They
-placed themselves entirely at the service of the Lord.
-
-But there were those that had the yearning to do so, to free themselves
-from all material obstacles in their way, to offer their individuality
-to the Lord, but the Prarabdha Karma was too much for them. Their past
-Karma had woven a net round them which they could not break through. It
-was the yearning which the Lord looked to and not the overcoming of
-obstacles in the way. And though they died with that yearning only, the
-death completed what they yearned for, for then the Union was complete.
-
-The Vrindavana Lila is Nitya or constant. The Rasa Lila is for all time,
-for all Bhaktas.
-
-The night is the time for rest but it is the rest of bodily actions.
-For, towards the close of night, spiritual activity sets in. Men get
-spiritual teachings and spiritual advancement without knowing it. But it
-is only a few, who have a conscious union with the Lord who manifests
-Himself in the heart of man.
-
-Purusha is one. Jiva Prakritis or Para Prakritis are many. To Purusha
-Jiva must be always negative, however positive it may be towards the
-forms of Apara Prakriti. Purusha is always Male. And to Him, Jiva
-Prakriti is always a female. As the Vaishnavas say, there is only one
-male in all Vrindavana and that male is the Lord Sri Krishna. In
-devotional practice, one should consider himself a female, the male
-being the Lord of the universe, as reflected in the heart of every man.
-
-The Gopis heard the music and went to Sri Krishna.
-
-If you are of the world, go back to the world. But no, the Gopis were
-not of the world. They had every right to the union. And Sri Krishna
-could not deny them His companionship. Nay, it was a great thing to the
-Lord Himself that Jivas should return to Him with all their spiritual
-experiences that the Universe might be served and protected. The
-concession was natural, the joy was mutual. But in the midst of the
-union itself, there is a danger, a most subtle danger, that of Egoism,
-"I am in union with the Lord." The first and the last weakness of
-humanity, this I-ness is a drawback even in the highest spiritual life
-of man. The Gopis thought of _themselves_ and there was an instant break
-in the union. The Lord disappeared. The Lord incarnated for the good of
-the Universe and not of individuals, and if individuals were dear to Him
-it was for the sake of the Universe. He was no special property of the
-Gopis; What did the Gopis do? They imitated his actions on the Earth.
-They followed His footsteps wherever found. They approached the Lord as
-much as they could in idea.
-
-At last they broke out, "Thou art surely not the son of a Gopi. Thou art
-the inmost seer of all beings. Implored by Brahma thou hast appeared, O
-friend in the line of the Satvatas, for the protection of the Universe."
-
-The Gopis now realised that the Lord they wanted to be united to was the
-Lord of the Universe. His mission was the protection of the universe.
-Could they share with Him? It was then and then only that they could
-expect a continuity of the union. It was not for themselves only that
-they had any further right. Hut the Gopis now cared not for themselves.
-They cared for their Lord, whom they now knew and realised to be the
-Lord of the Universe.
-
-And lo! the Lord appeared again. This time there was union but not
-individual union. Hand in hand, the Gopis formed a circle with their
-Lord, not the individual Lord, but the universal Lord making Himself
-many. Every Gopi held the hands of the Lord and all the Gopis
-collectively formed one circle, and the circle went on dancing and
-dancing. The Devas looked with wonder and envied the lot of the Gopis.
-Let that wonder grow amongst us. Let us catch a glimpse of that divine
-dance, that Rasa Lila, that men may become gods on the Earth.
-
-_Sudarsana, Sankha Chuda, Arishta, Kesi and Vyoma._
-
-The Vidyadharas and Yakshas were controlled and other obstacles
-overcome. Even the barrier of Akasa, which forms the final limit of
-actions and wisdom in the universe, was pushed through. Work was now
-over at Vrindavana. The Bhaktas were now fitted to pass across the
-limits of Brahmanda to Goloka.
-
-_Akrura._ With the advent of Akrura, we move backwards from the heart to
-the head, from the world of Bhaktas to the world at large. When Kansa
-presided over Mathura, men were guided by Self in their thoughts and
-actions. Jarasandha, who represented the Brahmanism of self-seeking
-Yajnas, was the friend of Kansa.
-
-Akrura was the messenger selected by Kansa to fetch Rama and Krishna
-from Vrindavana. _Krura_ is cruel. Akrura is one who is not cruel. It
-was not cruelty on the part of Akrura to take Rama and Krishna to
-Mathura. He was no doubt seemingly cruel to the Gopis. But he was kind
-to the generality of mankind, who did not live in Vrindavana.
-
-The Gopis, followers of the path of Devotion, could not bear the sight
-of him and they called him a mock Rishi. But he was really a Bhakta
-himself, though he adhered to Vedic Karma. He performed the Vedic
-Sandhya and recited Vedic Mantras; he was rewarded with the vision of
-Rama and Krishna in meditation.
-
-This votary of Karma Kanda was a fitting messenger from Kansa. He united
-in himself the spirituality of Karma Kanda and the unselfishness of the
-path of Devotion.
-
-From Vrindavana to Mathura we proceed from the inner man to the outer
-man, from the everlasting companions of Sri Krishna to His surroundings
-as an Avatara.
-
-In the Vrindavana Lila, we find Krishna in his relations to the holy
-beings and to the Devas who incarnated with Him for the good of the
-universe. Whenever a great Avatara appears on the Earth, his companions
-also appear with him. His relations to his own companions serve as a
-living example to others. They afford a lesson to all Bhaktas for all
-time. This part of the Lila is based upon undying, eternal truths, upon
-the permanent relations between Jiva and Ishvara. The heart of man is
-the seat of this Lila, which can be reproduced at all times, in the
-heart of every real Bhakta. The Gopis are the same now as they were when
-Krishna sanctified the Earth. They are the preservers of the universe,
-according to Gopi Chandana Upanishad. And their ranks may be increased
-by devoted Bhaktas who give up all for the sake of the universe and its
-Lord.
-
-There is one point more in the relations of the Gopas and Gopis to
-Krishna. Love was the one bond which united them all to Him. They sought
-him in their inmost heart, they talked to him, they knew him as one of
-themselves. He was a son to them, a companion, a lover. Whatever pleased
-the Lord pleased them. Whatever was His work was their work too. They
-abnegated themselves. They merged themselves entirely in Krishna. There
-was no question of duty; no rules, no injunctions. The Vedas did not
-exist for the dwellers in Vrindavana. The Smritis were not written for
-them. They did not tread the path of karma. Love-bound, they gave
-themselves entirely up to Krishna and they did not stop to ask the
-reason why, they did not stop to cast a glance at the world they left.
-
-But the union was hardly complete; the Gopis had scarcely embraced their
-friend, their lover, than he disappeared into the regions of the
-Universe. The message came that He was to be sought in the Universe.
-
-The Lord of the Universe was not the lover of the Gopis. He could not be
-the direct object of their love. But, when the Gopis knew that their own
-Krishna was the Lord of the Universe, they failed not to bear the same
-love to Him. But the majesty of the Universe was ill-adapted to the
-sweetness of their domestic love. They were out of harmony with the
-lordliness of their Lord at Dvaraka. So when the Lord finally received
-them at Kurukshetra, the Gopis said that, home-bred as they were, they
-could not forget the lotus feet of Krishna in their heart. They were
-re-united to Krishna, as the all-pervading Purusha, the preserver of the
-Universe. The veil may be lifted a little further. We have already seen
-that life in the higher Lokas is purely unselfish, for, as the Bhagavata
-says, the higher Lokas are transformations of Nishkama Karma. We are to
-abnegate ourselves before we can go to Mahar Loka. This abnegation can
-be accomplished by merging ourselves in some one who stands across the
-Triloki. Love alone breaks the barrier between man and man. If we can
-get an object of unselfish love, to whom we can give everything that we
-have, we may easily learn the lesson of self-surrender. By the bond of
-love, souls group together in Mahar Loka and they learn the first
-lessons of universal life. What better object of love can one have than
-one of the Avataras himself? What union will be more glorious, more
-lasting, more spiritual? And Sri Krishna offered himself for such love
-to those that are devoted to him. And the most fortunate amongst
-humanity are those that complete the love-union with Sri Krishna. They
-form an inseparable group with Him, and the plane of their union is
-Goloka. The Vaishnavas place that Loka higher than Vaikuntha Itself. It
-is the plane proper of Sri Krishna, where he is always at home with his
-Bhaktas. There may be many centres round which souls might gather in the
-higher Lokas, many types of universal life, but there is none so high,
-so noble, so glorious, as the centre afforded by Lord Krishna. When
-Krishna incarnates, He cannot do so singly. The Gopis appear with Him.
-The Chaitanya Charitamrita, which embodies the teachings of Chaitanya,
-says that the Lila of Krishna is reproduced throughout the fourteen
-Manvantaras over all parts of the Brahmanda, just as days and nights are
-produced over all parts of the earth. The Lila is constantly performed
-in Goloka, and it is reproduced over parts of Brahmanda, according to
-the will of Krishna. Vrindavana is only a reflection of Goloka.
-
-When we go to Mathura, we find the Asura attendants of Kansa
-representing all the predominating vices of the time. Pride, arrogance,
-envy and malice, worldliness and anger, all that keep up the materiality
-in man were to be found among the best of his followers and advisers.
-
-They were all subdued and Kansa himself brought down from his high
-platform.
-
-When Krishna went to Mathura and Dvaraka, we find him as an Avatara,
-inaugurating a new era in the spiritual history of the Universe. We find
-him there in all His majesty, glory and divine lordship. Those who
-follow him there follow the path of Divine Lordship. Those who follow
-Him at Vrindavana follow the path of Divine Love and sweetness.
-
-*END OF VRINDAVANA LILA,*
-
-
-
-MATHURA LILA
-
-
-THE HUNCH-BACKED GIRL AND THE PANDAVAS.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 48-49.*
-
-To keep his word, Sri Krishna went with Uddhava to the house of the
-hunch-backed girl. He gratified her desire and gave her what she wanted.
-
-Sri Krishna then went with Rama and Uddhava to the house of Akrura.
-Akrura rose up to receive them. He adored Krishna saying: -- "Thou hast
-come down for the good of the Universe. Whenever the olden path of the
-Vedas is crossed by the evil paths of unbelievers, Thou dost manifest
-Thyself, as now, by the attribute of Satva."
-
-Sri Krishna said: --
-
-"Good people like yourselves are to be always adored by men and the
-Devas. For while Devas are self-seeking, Sadhus are not so. The places
-of sanctity on the earth and idols and stones, that symbolise divinity,
-have the power to purify the mind after long service, while the very
-sight of Sadhus is purifying. Go thou to Hastinapura and make enquiries
-about the Pandavas. They are still young and they have lost their
-father. We hear they are living with Dhritarashra. But the blind king is
-too much in the hands of his evil sons and he may not be impartial to
-his nephews. So enquire whether his treatment of them is good or bad.
-When I know that, I shall do what is best for my friends."
-
-Akrura went to Hastinapura and learned from Vidura and Kunti the cruel
-treatment of the Pandavas by Dhritarashra and his sons. Dhritarashra
-confessed that he could not hold the balance evenly between his sons and
-nephews, as his attachment for his sons was too great.
-
-Akrura returned to Mathura and informed Rama and Krishna of all that he
-had heard.
-
-
-JARA SANDHA, YAVANA AND DVARAKA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 50.*
-
-Kansa had two wives, Asti and Prapti. They were the daughters of
-Jarasandha, king of Magadha (modern Bihar). The latter king learned from
-his daughters the fate of Kansa and became highly enraged. He collected
-an army of thirteen Akshauhinis, (one Akshauhini consisting of 21,870
-chariots, as many elephants, 65,610 horses, and 109,350 foot), and he
-besieged Mathura on all sides.
-
-Krishna thought for a moment how he could best serve the object of his
-Avatarship. He found in the army before him a collection of the forces
-that oppressed the Earth. He thought of killing the army and of saving
-Jarasandha, who might be instrumental in raising such large armies over
-and over again. "For it is to remove the weight now oppressing the Earth
-that I have incarnated. I have to protect the good people and kill those
-that are not so." Two chariots came from the Heavens fully equipped.
-Rama and Krishna drove out on those chariots. They killed the whole army
-in no time. Rama fell upon Jarasandha and well-nigh killed him when
-Krishna caused him to be set free. Jarasandha, in his disgrace, thought
-of practising asceticism but he was kept off by other kings who consoled
-him with words of worldly wisdom.
-
-The king of Magadha was however not to be easily put down. Seventeen
-times he led his army to an attack on Mathura, and each time he lost his
-entire army at the hands of Krishna and his followers. Before the fight
-commenced for the eighteenth time, Kala Yavana appeared on the field of
-battle with three crores of Mlechha troops. Krishna held counsel with
-Rama as to the course to be adopted. The brothers might engage with Kala
-Yavana in fight, but Jarasandha would make havoc in the meantime amongst
-their clansmen at Mathura. So Krishna planned the erection of a fort,
-within the seas, where he might harbour his clansmen in safety. So the
-fort was built extending over twelve Yajanas. It was laid out with a
-town of exquisite skill and workmanship. High buildings with golden
-towers, extensive roads, large gardens enhanced the beauty of the town.
-The Devas offered their best things and the Lokapalas surrendered their
-rulership to Sri Krishna. By Yogic powers Krishna removed his kinsmen to
-this town. He then left the town in charge of Balaram and himself went
-out to fight with Yavana. (Yavana, is one altogether outside the pale of
-Hinduism, a Mlechha.)
-
-Kala Yavana recognized Krishna and pursued him. Krishna drew him inside
-a mountain cave. There Kala Yavana found a man lying asleep. He thought
-Krishna was pretending sleep. So he gave the man a kick. That man had
-been sleeping for a long time but he gradually opened his eyes and in
-anger looked at Yavana who became consumed by the fire proceeding from
-that look.
-
-
-MUCHUKUNDA
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 51.*
-
-Raja Parikshit asked -- "Who was the man and why was he sleeping in the
-cave?"
-
-Suka replied: --
-
-"He was a descendant of the line of Ikshvaku, son of the great King
-Mandhata, by name Muchukunda. He had helped the Devas in their fight
-with the Asuras. When the fight was over, the Devas showed him the cave
-and asked him to rest there. The Devas blessed him with a long sleep."
-
-When Yavana was killed, Krishna appeared before Muchukunda.
-
-"Who mayest thou be with such overpowering glory?" the latter asked.
-
-Krishna replied: --
-
-"My births and deeds are infinite. Even I cannot count them. At the
-request of Brahma, I am at present born in the line of Yadu as the son
-of Vasudeva, for the protection of religion and for the rooting out of
-the Asuras. I have killed Kansa who is no other than Kalanemi. I have
-killed Pralamba and others. This Yavana was also killed by me, by means
-of the fire from your eyes. I have now come here to favor thee, for I am
-bound by affection to my votaries. Ask what boon thou likest. Thou shalt
-have all thou desirest."
-
-Muchu Kunda remembered the foresaying of Garga that there was to be a
-Divine Incarnation in the 28th Kali Yuga and he therefore knew Krishna
-to be the divine Lord. He asked for no boon but devotion to Krishna.
-
-"Truly" said Krishna, "thy mind is pure and noble for it is not tempted
-by boons. Those that are wholly devoted to me do not yield to desires.
-Those that are not devoted may control their mind by Pranayama and other
-practices but, as their desires are not overcome, they are found to go
-astray. Roam about the Earth, with mind fixed in me. Thy devotion shall
-never fail. Wash away the impurities of the present life with devoted
-concentration of the mind. In the next birth thou shalt be born as a
-Brahmana and become the greatest friend of all beings, and thou shalt
-then fully attain me."
-
-Muchu Kunda came out of the mountain cave. He found that the animals and
-trees were all short-sized and hence inferred it was Kali Yuga. He made
-his way to the north and engaged himself in devotional practices in the
-Badari Asram of Nara and Narayana.
-
-(What has been the next birth of Muchu Kunda? How has he befriended the
-universe! Or is he still to come?)
-
-Krishna came back to Mathura. He killed the Mlechha troops. His men and
-cattle were carrying the booty to Dvaraka. When on the way, Rama and
-Krishna were attacked by Jara Sandha with a large army. The brothers
-feigned a flight. Jara Sandha chased them with his army. They climbed up
-a mountain. Jara Sandha made a search, but could not find them. He then
-set fire to the mountain sides. The brothers jumped down eleven Yojanas
-and made their way to Dvaraka.
-
-
-
-DVARAKA LILA.
-
-
-RUKMINI.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 52-54.*
-
-We have been already told of Balarama's marriage with Revati.
-
-Sri Krishna married Rukmini in the Rakshasa form. (The seizure of a
-maiden by force from her house, while she weeps and calls for
-assistance, after her kinsmen and friends have been slain in the battle
-or wounded and their houses broken open, is the marriage styled
-Rakshasa).
-
-King Bhishmaka of Vidarbha had five sons, Rukmin, Rukmaratha,
-Rukma-vahu, Rukma-kesa, and Rukma-malin. He had also one daughter
-Rukmini. (_Rukma_ means bright, radiant, also gold).
-
-Krishna and Rukmini had heard of each other and they made a vow of
-marriage. Rukmin however betrothed his sister to Sisupala, son of the
-king of Chedi. Rukmini secretly sent a Brahmana messenger to Krishna and
-gave him a letter. The Brahmana was received well by Krishna. He read
-out the following letter of Rukmini.
-
-"O Achyuta, thou most lovely of all, my mind has forced through all
-false shame and has become attached to thee, for I have heard of thy
-excellences, which reach the ear only to remove all sufferings and I
-have heard of thy beauty, which gives all that is desired to the seer
-thereof.
-
-"O Mukunda, O Nrisinha, where is the girl, however wellborn, modest and
-great she may be, that will not choose thee as her husband, unequalled
-as thou art in birth, grace, beauty, wisdom and riches, and the most
-pleasing to all mankind.
-
-"Therefore thou art chosen by me as my husband. I offer myself up to
-thee. Come thou here and make me thy wife. Thou dost deserve to have me
-soon. Let not Sisupala touch me, like a jackal touching the share of a
-lion.
-
-"If I have done virtuous acts, if I have rightly served the great Lord
-Siva, then come, O brother of Rama, and hold my hand and let not others
-do so. The day after to-morrow is fixed for my marriage. Come thou
-unnoticed. Defeat Sisupala and others and carry me away by force in the
-Rakshasa form of marriage.
-
-"I shall tell you how it will not be necessary to kill my friends within
-the house. The day before the marriage there will be a large gathering
-outside the town to worship the goddess Durga, and I as bride shall be
-present there."
-
-The message was thus delivered. Sri Krishna vowed to marry Rukmini by
-force. He ordered Daruka (His charioteer) to bring the chariot. Then he
-took the Brahmana with him and reached Kundina, the town of Bhishmaka,
-in one day.
-
-Kundina was gay with preparations for the marriage. Dama Ghosa, the
-father of Sisupala, also made grand preparations. He came with a large
-retinue to Kundina. Bhishmaka went out to receive him, and led him to
-his quarters. Salva, Jarasandha, Dantavakra, Viduratha, Paundraka, and
-many other kings, friendly to Dama Ghosha joined him with large armies.
-They anticipated a fight with Krishna and Rama and they came well
-prepared for the occasion. Rama heard that Krishna went all alone and he
-heard of the preparations made by his enemies. So he lost no time in
-gathering a large army and marching for Kundina.
-
-Bhishmaka heard of the approach of Krishna and Rama. He gladly received
-them and gave them quarters. Rukmini, guarded by the army, went to the
-temple of Durga with her companions. She worshipped the Goddess and
-prayed for Krishna as her husband. She then left the temple and was
-about to get into the chariot when Sri Krishna carried her off by force
-in his own chariot.
-
-Jara Sandha and other kings were defeated by the Yadu chiefs and they
-took to flight They consoled Sisupala and then each went to his own
-place.
-
-Rukmin vowed that he would not return to Kundina till he had killed
-Krishna and rescued his sister. He attacked Krishna but was defeated by
-him. Krishna was about to kill him when Rukmini interceded on his
-behalf. Krishna then partially shaved his head and chin and left him.
-Being thus disgraced, Rukmin made a town called Bhojukata and lived
-there.
-
-Krishna brought Rukmini to Dvaraka and married her in due form.
-
-
-PRADYUMNA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 55.*
-
-The god Kama is an aspect of Vasudeva. He had been burnt before by the
-fire of Rudra's anger. To get back his body, he was born as the son of
-Krishna by Rukmini and became known as Pradyumna. He was not unlike his
-father in any respect The Asura Samvara, who was Kama (or passions)
-incarnate, (Kama rupin), knew the child to be his enemy and stole him
-away and threw him into the sea. A big fish swallowed him up. That fish
-with others was caught in a large net by the fishermen. They presented
-the fish to Samvara. The servant cut open the fish and the child came
-out. They made him over to Mayavati. She was frightened but Naroda told
-her all about the child. This Mayavati, named Rati, had been the wife of
-Kama. She had been waiting for the reappearance of her husband in a
-body. She was employed by Samvara as a cook. Knowing the child to be
-Kama Deva, she nursed him and became attached to him. In time, Kamadeva
-grew tip and Mayavati approached him with expressions of love. "What is
-this mother?" asked Kamadeva, "Why this change in your feelings towards
-me!"
-
-"Thou art Kamadeva, O Lord, son of Krishna. Thou hadst been stolen away
-by Samvara. I am thy wife Rati. The Asura had thrown thee into the sea,
-when a fish devoured thee. I have got thee back from the stomach of that
-fish. Samvara is an adept in many forms of Maya. Kill him by means of
-Delusion and other powers of Maya known to thee."
-
-Rati gave to Pradyumna the Vidya known as Mahamaya, the destroyer of all
-other Mayas.
-
-Pradyumna fought with Samvara and killed him with the help of Mahamaya.
-Rati then carried her husband to Dvaraka. There the women mistook him
-for Krishna and bashfully moved aside. Even Rukmini could only half
-decide that he was her son. Krishna appeared with Vasudeva, Devaki and
-Rama. Narada related the story of Pradyumna's adventures. There was
-great joy at Dvaraka and people welcomed Pradyumna and his wife.
-Pradyumna was an image of Krishna. What wonder if even his mother became
-attached to him!
-
-
-THE JEWEL SYAMANTAKA, JAMBAVATI AND SATYABHAMA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 56.*
-
-King Satrajit was a votary of the Sun-God. He got a present from his
-deity of the Syamantaka jewel. He came to Dvaraka with the jewel on his
-neck. He shone with such a lustre that people took him for the sun. The
-jewel used to bring forth 16,000 palas of gold every day. Sri Krishna
-asked the jewel for the king of the Yadus, but Satrajit would not part
-with it. One day his brother Prasenajit rode on a hunting excursion into
-the forests, with the jewel on his neck. A lion killed him and his horse
-and carried away the jewel. The Bear-chief, Jambavat, killed the lion
-and took away the jewel into his cave and made it the plaything of his
-son. When Prasena did not return, Satrajit thought that he had been
-killed by Krishna. People also suspected him. To get rid of this unjust
-reproach, Sri Krishna went on a search himself with his men. He traced
-out the remains of Prasena, the horse and the lion. He then entered the
-cave of the Bear-chief, leaving his men outside. The infant son of
-Jambavat was playing with the jewel. Krishna appeared before the boy.
-The nurse screamed aloud. Jambavat rushed out in anger and attacked
-Krishna. The fight went on for twenty eight days and at last Jambavat
-was overpowered. He then knew Sri Krishna as Vishnu, the primal Purusha
-and prayed to Him. Sri Krishna said the object of his entering the cave
-was to recover the jewel, as he wanted to remove the suspicion that he
-himself had taken it. Jambavat gladly offered his daughter Jambavati
-with the jewel to Sri Krishna. He then returned to Dvaraka with his
-bride and the jewel. He called an assembly and, in the presence of all,
-made over the jewel to Satrajit. He also told him how he got it back.
-Satrajit felt deeply mortified. He came back to his kingdom and thought
-how he could best appease Sri Krishna whom he had offended by groundless
-suspicion. At last he offered his daughter Satyabhama to Krishna and
-also the jewel. Krishna said: -- "We do not want the jewel, O King. Thou
-art the votary of the Sun-God. Let it remain with thee. We shall partake
-of its blessings."
-
-
-SYAMANTAKA, AKRURA, KRITAVARMAN AND SATA DHANU:
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 57.*
-
-Hearing that the Pandavas had been killed in the Lac-house, Rama and
-Krishna went to Hastinapura to offer their condolences. Taking advantage
-of their absence, Akrura and Kritavarman said to Satadhanu, -- "Satrajit
-promised the Syamantaka jewel also when he made over his daughter to Sri
-Krishna. Why shall not the jewel be taken from him? Why shall he not
-share the fate of his brother?" The wicked Satadhanu under this evil
-inspiration killed Satrajit while he was asleep and carried away the
-jewel. Satyabhama went to Hastinapura and informed Krishna of the
-killing of her father. The brothers came back to Dvaraka. Krishna made
-preparations for killing Satadhanu and for recovering the jewel from
-him. Satadhanu sought the help of Kritavarman. But he knew too well the
-might of Sri Krishna and he declined to give any help. Satadhanu then
-turned to Akrura. Akrura knew Krishna as Atman and he would not do
-anything. Satadhanu however left the jewel with Akrura and fled away on
-horse-back. Rama and Krishna followed him to Mithila. He left the horse
-and ran away on foot. Sri Krishna overtook him soon and cut off his head
-with the Chakra.
-
-He then searched for the jewel, but could not find it. Turning to his
-brother, he said, "For nothing have I killed Satadhanu. The jewel is not
-with him." Rama replied -- "Satadhanu must have left the jewel with some
-one. Try to find him out. Go back to Dvaraka. I shall in the meantime
-pass some time with my friend, the king of Mithila." Rama remained at
-Mithila for a few years. Duryodhana also came there. He learned the art
-of fighting with the mall from Rama.
-
-Sri Krishna went back to Dvaraka and told Satyabhama how he had killed
-Satadhanu but could not find the jewel. Kritavarman and Akrura heard all
-that took place and they fled for their lives from Dvaraka. In the
-absence of Akrura the people of Dvaraka suffered from bodily and mental
-pain as well as disturbances from the Devas and the elements. Those who
-forgot the glory of Sri Krishna attributed all this to the absence of
-Akrura. But it was not possible that such things should happen where Sri
-Krishna resided (without His wish.)
-
-"Once upon a time there were no rains at Kasi (Benares). The king of
-Kasi offered his daughter Gandivi to Svafalka and it rained at Kasi.
-Akrura is the son of that Svafalka. He has got the powers of his father.
-It rains wherever Akrura lives and the land becomes free from epidemics
-and calamities."
-
-The old people talked thus. Sri Krishna knew it was not so. He sent for
-Akrura, shewed him every respect, and smilingly addressed him thus: --
-"O lord of giving (_Danapati_), Satadhanu must have left the Syamantaka
-jewel with thee. I knew this from before. Satrajit left no son. His
-daughter's son is therefore his true heir. But it is not so easy to keep
-the jewel. Thou dost keep the observances well. So let it be with thee.
-But in the matter of this jewel, even my brother does not believe me.
-Therefore shew it once and give peace to your friends." Akrura made over
-the jewel to Sri Krishna. He shewed it to his clansmen, in order to
-remove the stain of suspicion against him. He then returned it to
-Akrura.
-
-
-THE OTHER WIVES OF SRI KRISHNA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 58-59.*
-
-Sri Krishna went to see the Pandava brothers at Hastinapura. They gave
-him a most devoted reception. One day Krishna and Arjuna went on a
-hunting excursion to the side of the Yamuna.
-
-They saw there a most beautiful girl. Arjuna asked who she was. The girl
-replied: -- "I am daughter of the Sun-god. Desiring Vishnu to be my
-husband, I have performed great Tapas. I shall have no other husband.
-Let that friend of the friendless be pleased with me. My name is
-KALINDI. I am to reside in the waters of the Yamuna in the abode built
-by my father till I see Achyuta." Krishna placed the girl on his chariot
-and took her to Yudisthira.
-
-It was at this time that Krishna got a town built by Visvakarman at the
-request of Arjuna and the Khandava forest was burnt by the Fire-god.
-
-The rains over, Krishna went to Dvaraka and there duly married Kalindi.
-
-Vinda and Anuvinda, two princes of Avanti, were followers of Duryodhana.
-Their sister MITRA VINDA wanted to marry Krishna but they dissuaded her.
-So Krishna carried away the girl by force and married her. She was the
-daughter of his father's sister Rajadhi-devi.
-
-In Ko-sala, there was a virtuous prince named Nagnajit. He had a
-daughter named SATYA, also called NAGNAJITI after her father. No one
-could marry her who had not overcome seven fierce bulls. Krishna went to
-Kosala with a large retinue and he was received well by the prince. The
-girl prayed to the Fire-god to have Krishna as her bridegroom. Krishna
-overcame the bulls and married the girl.
-
-Krishna then married BHADRA of Kekaya, the daughter of her aunt
-(father's sister) Sruta-kirti. He also carried away by force LAKSHANA,
-the daughter of the king of Madra.
-
-Naraka, son of the Earth, deprived Aditi, mother of Indra, of her
-ear-rings, Varuna of his umbrella and Indra of his seat at Mani Parvat
-(Mountain of jewels). Indra complained to Krishna. He went with his wife
-Satyabhama to Prakjyotisha, the town of Naraka. That town was well
-fortified and it was protected by the Daitya Mura and his meshes.
-Krishna forced his passage through all obstacles and had a fight with
-Mura whom he slew with his Chakra. The seven sons of Mura, -- Tamra,
-Antariksha, Sravana, Vibhavasu, Vatu, Nabhasvat and Varuna, -- under the
-lead of one Pithha also attacked Krishna, but they were all killed.
-Naraka then himself fought with Krishna and was killed by him. The
-Goddess Earth then approached Krishna and, after adoring him, said: --
-"This Bhagadatta, son of Naraka, takes Thy shelter. Please pass Thy hand
-round his head."
-
-Krishna gave assurances of safety and he then entered the house of
-Naraka. Naraka had carried away 16 THOUSAND GIRLS by force. Krishna sent
-away these girls and much treasure to Dvaraka. He then went with
-Satyabhama to the place of Indra and there restored the ear-rings to
-Aditi. At the request of his wife, Krishna uprooted the Parijata tree
-and placed it on the back of Garuda. The Devas resisted, but Krishna
-defeated them all. The Parijata tree was planted in the quarters of
-Satyabhama and it spread its fragrance all round. Krishna married the 16
-thousand girls at one and the same moment by assuming as many forms.
-
-
-KRISHNA AND RUKMINI.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 60.*
-
-Krishna and Rukmini were once sitting together, when, turning to his
-wife with a smile, Krishna spoke the following words:
-
-"Princess, thou wert coveted by great and powerful kings. Thy brother
-and thy own father offered thee to Sisupala and others. How is it then
-thou didst accept me who am not thy equal? See how we have taken shelter
-in the sea being afraid of the kings. Having powerful enemies, we can
-hardly be said to occupy our kingly seats. O thou with beautiful
-eyebrows, woe to those women who follow such men as have unknown and
-uncommon ways of their own. Poor as we are, wealthy people hardly seek
-us. It is meet that they should marry or make friendship with each
-other, who are equals in wealth, birth, power and beauty. It is through
-ignorance and shortsightedness that thou hast married one who is void of
-all Gunas (good qualities) and who is praised only by Bhikshus
-(beggars). Therefore do thou seek some Kshatriya king who will be a
-match for thee. Sisupala, Salva, Jarasandha, Danta Vakra and other kings
-and even thy own brother Rukmin, blindfolded by pride, shewed hostility
-to me. For the repression of their pride, I the punisher of evil men
-brought thee here. But we are indifferent to the body and the house,
-void of all desires, fixed in self, all full, the light within, without
-actions."
-
-(Without anticipating our general study of the Dvaraka Lila, it is
-sufficient to mention here that Rukmini is the spiritual energy of Mula
-Prakriti, or rather the light of Purusha, as reflected on Prakriti. The
-gist of what Krishna says is that there is an essential difference
-between Prakriti and Purusha. Purusha is void of Gunas, while the Gunas
-form the essence of Prakriti. Coming from Prakriti, Rukmini must follow
-the Prakritic elements. And if Krishna wrested her away from the hands
-of the material energies of Prakriti and even from her own Prakritic
-basis (her brothers and father), it was because the material energies
-had asserted themselves too much. This was done in the Seventh
-Manvantara, when the spiritual ascent was a Kalpic necessity. Was
-Rukmini to remain wedded to Krishna for the remaining period of the
-Kalpa, or was she to go back to her brothers and their friends?).
-
-Rukmini replied: --
-
-"O Lotus eyed! even so it is as thou sayest. I am quite unlike thee, the
-Great Bhagavat. Lord of even Brahma, Vishnu and Siva, Thou art plunged
-in Thy own greatness. What am I to Thee, the Gunas forming my essence?
-It is only ignorant people who worship me. (For fear of kings, thou hast
-taken refuge in the sea.) But the kings are the Gunas, (Sound, Touch,
-Form, Taste, and Smell which compose the object world.) For fear of
-them, as it were, thou hast taken refuge in the inner ocean of the
-heart, and there thou dost manifest Thyself, as pure Chaitanya. The
-object-seeking Indriyas are no doubt thy constant enemies. But when thou
-speakest of giving up kingly seats, why even thy votaries give them up,
-as darkness itself. The ways of even Munis who worship Thy Lotus feet
-are unknown; what of thine own? When their ways are uncommon, what of
-thine? Thou art poor indeed, for there is nothing besides thee, (and so
-nothing can form Thy wealth.) But thou dost receive the offerings of
-others and they seek thee. It is not through ignorance, but knowing that
-thou art the Atma of the Universe, that I have sought Thee. The flow of
-Time that arises from Thy eyebrow swallows up the desires of even Brahma
-and others. I did not even seek them for Thy sake. What speakest thou of
-others? As the lion carries away his share by force from other animals,
-so thou didst carry me away from amongst the kings. How can I believe
-that thou didst take shelter in the Sea from fear of such kings? Anga,
-Prithu, Bharata, Yayati, Gaya and other jewels of kings gave up their
-kingdoms and sought thee in the forests. Did woe befall them that thou
-talkest of woe to me? The Gunas have their resting place in thee. Thou
-art the home of Lakshmi. Moksha is at Thy feet. What foolish woman shall
-follow others, neglecting Thee? I have accepted thee, the Lord and soul
-of the Universe, the giver of all blessings here and hereafter. Let thy
-Moksha-giving feet be my shelter. Let those women have the kings for
-their husbands, those asses, bullocks, dogs, cats, and servants who have
-not heard of Thee.
-
-"(What is man without Atma?) Those that have not smelt the honey of Thy
-Lotus feet seek the dead body, though it seems to be alive, consisting
-of flesh, blood, bone, worms, excrement, phlegm, bile and gas, covered
-over with skin, hair and nails." (Mula Prakriti in the Universe, or
-Budhi in man, is wedded to Atma, represented by Sri Krishna. The kings
-represent here the followers of material elements in the Universe or in
-man.)
-
-
-THE SONS OF KRISHNA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 61.*
-
-The wives of Krishna had each ten sons.
-
-_The Sons of Rukmini were._ -- Pradyumna, Charudeshna, Sudeshna,
-Charudeha, Sucharu, Charu Gupta, Bhadra Charu, Charu-Chandra, Vicharu
-and Charu.
-
-_The ten sons of Satyabhama were._ -- Bhanu, Subhanu, Svarbhanu,
-Prabhanu, Bhanumat, Chandra-bhanu, Vrihat-bhanu, Ati-bhanu, Sribhanu and
-Prati-bhanu.
-
-_Jambavati had ten sons._ -- Samva, Sumitra, Purujit, Satajit,
-Sahasrajit, Vijaya, Chitraketu, Vasumat, Dravida, and Kratu.
-
-_Nagnajiti had ten sons._ -- Vira, Chandra, Asva-sen, Chitragu, Vegavat,
-Vrisha, Ama, Sanku, Vasu and Kunti.
-
-_Kalindi had ten sons._ -- Sruta, Kavi, Vrisha, Vira, Suvahu, Bhadra,
-Santi, Darsa, Purna Masa and Somaka.
-
-_Madri had ten sons._ -- Praghosha, Gatravat, Sinha, Bala, Prabala,
-Urdhaga, Mahasakti, Saha, Ojas and Aparajita.
-
-_Mitravinda had ten Sons._ -- Vrika, Harsha, Anila, Gridhra, Vardhana,
-Annada, Mahansa, Pavana, Vahni and Kshudhi.
-
-_Bhadra had ten Sons._ -- Sangramajit, Brihat Sena, Sura, Praharana,
-Arijit, Jaya, Subhadra, Rama, Ayu and Satya.
-
-Rohini (illustrative of the 16 thousand wives) had Tamra-tapta and other
-sons.
-
-Pradyumna had, by Rukmavati, daughter of Rukmin, one son Aniruddha.
-
-There were millions and millions in the line of Krishna. Though Rukmin
-vowed enmity to Krishna, he gave his daughter to Krishna's son, out of
-regard for his own sister Rukmini.
-
-Balavat son of Kritavarman married Charumati, daughter of Rukmini.
-
-Rukmin also gave his grand-daughter Rochana in marriage to Aniruddha.
-
-
-THE DEATH OF RUKMIN.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 61.*
-
-Rama, Krishna, Pradyumna, Rukmini and others went to Bhoja Kata, the
-seat of Rukmin, on the occasion of Aniruddha's marriage. When the
-marriage was over, the assembled kings advised Rukmin to challenge Rama
-to a game of dice. At first, the wager was laid by Rama at one hundred,
-one thousand and ten thousand gold coins respectively. Rukmin won all
-the games. The king of Kalinga derided Rama by shewing his teeth. Rama
-did not like this.
-
-Rukmin then laid the wager at one lakh of gold coins. Balarama won the
-game. But Rukmin falsely declared that he had won it.
-
-Rama then laid the wager at ten krores. Rama won the game this time
-also. But Rukmin falsely said: -- "I have got it let the bystanders
-decide this." At this time, a voice from the heavens said that Balarama
-had got the victory by fair means and Rukmin was telling a lie, But
-Rukmin under evil advice did not mind this. He and the kings derided
-Balarama. "Keeper of cows, what know you of games? They are the province
-of kings." Balarama could bear it no longer. He took his club and killed
-Rukmin. He then broke the teeth of the king of Kalinga. The other kings
-fled in fear.
-
-
-BANA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 62-63.*
-
-Bana, the eldest son of Bali, had one thousand hands. He was a votary of
-Siva. Siva asked him to name a boon and he prayed to Siva to be the
-keeper of his place. Once he told Siva that there was too much
-fighting-inclination in his hands, but he found no match for him except
-Siva himself. Even the elephants of space ran away in fear. Siva said
-angrily: -- "Fool that thou art, thou shalt fight with one equal to
-myself. Thy eminence shall then be lowered." The Asura chief gladly
-waited for the day.
-
-Bana had a daughter named Usha. She met Aniruddha in a dream. On getting
-up, she exclaimed, "Friend where art thou?" Her attendant Chitra-lekha,
-daughter of the minister, named Kumbhanda, enquired whom she was looking
-for. Usha described the figure she had seen in her dream. Chitra-lekha
-pointed out to her Devas, Gandhavas, and men, one after another. At
-last, when she pointed to the figure of Aniruddha, the princess
-indicated him as her lover. Chitra-lekha by her Yogic powers went to
-Dvaraka and carried away Aniruddha, while he was asleep. The prince and
-the princess passed their days together in the privacy of Usha's
-apartment. The men of the guard found some significant change in Usha.
-They informed the King. Bana came in unexpectedly and he found his
-daughter playing with a young man. The armed attendants of Bana attacked
-Aniruddha but he killed many of them with his club and they ran away.
-Bana then tied the prince with serpents' twinings.
-
-Narada gave the news to Krishna. Rama and Krishna, with their followers
-and a large army, attacked Sonita-pura, the seat of Bana. Siva engaged
-in fight with Krishna, Kartikeya with Pradyumna, Bana with Satyaki,
-Kumbhanda and Kupakarna with Balarama and Bana's son with Samba. Krishna
-worsted Siva and Pradyumna worsted Kartikeya. Bana then attacked
-Krishna. After some fighting the king fled away. The Fever with three
-heads and three feet, known as Siva's Fever, joined the battle. To meet
-him, Krishna created the Fever known as Vishnu's Fever. The two fevers
-fought with each other. Worsted in the fight, the Fever of Siva sought
-the protection of Krishna. He got assurances that he need have no fear
-from Vishnu's Fever.
-
-Bana returned to the charge. Krishna began to cut off his hands with the
-Chakra. Siva appeared at the time and asked Krishna to forgive Bana as
-he had forgiven his father Bali. Krishna replied: -- "O Lord, I cannot
-kill this son of Bali. I promised Prahlada that I would not kill any of
-his line. His many hands caused grief to Earth and I have lopped them
-off. Now four hands shall only remain. With these hands, Bana shall be
-thy constant companion, without fear of death or infirmity." Bana bowed
-down his head. He made over his daughter and Aniruddha to Krishna.
-
-
-NRIGA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP, 64.*
-
-The sons of Krishna went out to play in the forest. They saw a huge
-lizard in a certain well. They tried all means, but could not raise it
-up. They then informed Krishna. He raised it, without effort, with his
-left hand. The lizard assumed the form of a Deva. On inquiry from
-Krishna, he thus related his own story. "I am king Nriga of the line of
-Ikshvaku. My charities knew no bounds and they have become proverbial.
-One cow belonging to a Brahmana got mixed with my herd and, without
-knowing that, I gave her to another Brahmana. While he was taking away
-the cow, the owner found her out. The two Brahmanas quarrelled and they
-came to me. They said: -- 'You are a giver as well as taker.' I became
-surprised and, when the facts were known, I offered one lakh of cows for
-the return of the mistaken cow. One of them however said, 'I am not
-going to take a gift from the king.' The other said: -- 'I do not wish
-for other cows even if they be ten lakhs.' They both went away. At this
-time the messengers of Yama came and carried me away. Yama said: -- 'I
-see no end of your merits and the places acquired by them. Do you prefer
-to suffer for your demerit first or to enjoy those heavenly things?' I
-took the first choice and down I fell as a lizard into this well. Look
-how I have suffered for taking a Brahmana's property." The king then
-thanked Krishna for his favor and ascended to the heavens. Krishna gave
-a discourse to those around him as to how iniquitous it was to take a
-Brahmana's property, consciously or unconsciously.
-
-
-BALARAMA AND THE DRAWING OF THE YAMUNA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 65.*
-
-Balarama went to Vrindavana to see his old friends. The Gopas and Gopis
-gave him a warm reception and they complained of the hard-heartedness of
-Krishna. Balarama remained there for the two months, Chaitra and
-Vaisakha. The Gopa girls used to join him at night. One day he went in
-their company to the side of the Yamuna. Fermented juice (Varuni) fell
-from the trees, as directed by Varuna. Balarama drank the juice with the
-Gopa girls and became intoxicated. He called the Yamuna to his side for
-a pleasure bath, but she did not came. Balarama thought he was drunk and
-therefore the river goddess did not heed his words. He drew her by the
-ploughshare and said in anger: -- "Wicked thou, I called thee. But thou
-didst not hear. I shall tear thee asunder with this plough." Terrified,
-the river goddess adored Balarama and sought his pardon. Balarama
-forgave her. He then had a pleasure bath with the girls. Lakshmi made
-presents to him of blue clothes, rich ornaments and an auspicious
-garland.
-
-
-POUNDRAKA AND THE KING OF KASI (BENARES).
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 66.*
-
-Poundraka, king of Karusha, thought, "I am Vasudeva." With this
-conviction, he sent a messenger to Krishna, calling him a pretender. He
-was staying with his friend, the king of Kasi. Krishna attacked Kasi,
-and both the princes came out with a large army. Krishna found Poundraka
-had the conch, the disc, the club, the bow made of horn and the
-Srivatsa, all his own symbols. He was adorned with the Kaustubha and a
-garland of wild flowers. He had yellow clothes and rich crest jewels. He
-had Makara-shaped ear-rings. He was seated on a false Garuda. Seeing
-Poundraka represent him in this way, as it were on the stage, Krishna
-began to laugh. He killed both the princes in the fight. Poundraka had
-constantly meditated on Hari and he assumed his form and became all Hari
-himself.
-
-Sudakshina, son of the Kasi prince, vowed vengeance and worshipped Siva.
-Siva, being pleased with his worship, asked him to name a boon. He asked
-how he could kill the slayer of his father. Siva told him to invoke
-Dakshina Agni, with a Mantra of black magic (_Abhichara_). Sudakshina
-did so with the aid of Brahmanas. The fire went towards Dvaraka to
-consume Krishna. Krishna sent his Sudarsana disc which overpowered the
-fire. The fire fell back on Kasi and consumed Sudakshina and the
-Brahmanas. Sudarsana still followed the fire. The divine weapon burnt
-the whole of Kasi and went back to Krishna.
-
-
-DVI-VID (MONKEY).
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 67.*
-
-The Monkey-general Dvi-vid was a minister of Sugriva and brother of
-Mainda. He was a friend of Naraka, son of Earth. To take revenge for his
-friend's death, he began to do all sorts of mischief, especially in the
-regions of Dvaraka.
-
-Balarama was in the midst of some girls on the Raivataka hill. The
-monkey made all sorts of gestures to annoy and insult the girls and he
-provoked Balarama again and again who then killed Dvi-vid, to the great
-joy of all.
-
-
-SAMBA, LAKSHANA AND BALARAMA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 68.*
-
-Lakshana, daughter of Duryodhana, was to select her own husband, and
-there was an assembly of princes. Samba, son of Jambavati, carried away
-the girl by force. The Kauravas could not brook this insult. Bhishma,
-Kama, Salya, Bhuri, Yajna Ketu and Duryodhana united to defeat Samba and
-they brought him back as a prisoner. Narada gave the information to the
-Vrishnis and their chief Ugrasena gave them permission to fight with the
-Kauravas. Balarama did not like that the Kurus and Yadus should fight
-with one another. So he went himself to Hastinapura. He remained outside
-the town and sent Uddhava to learn the views of Dhrita-Rashtra. The
-Kurus came in a body to receive Balarama. When the formalities were
-over, Balarama composedly asked the Kurus, in the name of king Ugrasena,
-to restore Samba. The Kurus proudly replied: "We have given the kingdom
-to the Vrishnis and Yadus. A wonder indeed, they want to become our
-equals and to dictate to us! Surely the lamb cannot take away the lion's
-game."
-
-Balarama thought how foolish the Kurus had become. They did not know the
-powers of Ugrasena and of Krishna. In anger he exclaimed, "I will make
-the earth to be stripped of all Kauravas" He took his plough and gave a
-pull to Hastinapura. The town became topsy-turvy. The Kurus came and
-adored him. They brought back Samba and Lakshana. Duryodhana made large
-presents and Balarama became appeased. He went back with Samba and his
-bride to Hastinapura and related what had happened to the Yadus.
-
-
-NARADA AND THE WIVES OF SRI KRISHNA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 69.*
-
-"What a wonder that Sri Krishna married 16 thousand girls, all at one
-and the same time, with but one body!" So thought Narada and he came to
-see things with his own eyes at Dvaraka. He entered one of the rooms and
-found Krishna seated with one of the girls. Krishna washed the feet of
-Narada and sprinkled the water over his body.
-
-The Rishi entered another room. Krishna was playing at dice with one of
-his wives and with Uddhava. He entered another room and found Krishna
-was taking care of his children.
-
-So he entered room after room. Krishna was either bathing or making
-preparations for the sacrifice, or feeding Brahmanas, or making recitals
-of Gayatri, or riding, or driving, or taking counsel of ministers, or
-making gifts, or hearing recitals of sacred books. He was in one place
-following Dharma, in one Artha and in another Kama.
-
-Narada smiled and said: -- "O Lord of Yoga, I know the Yogic Maya, by
-service at Thy feet, as it is manifest in me, though hard of perception
-by those that are themselves under the influence of Maya. Now permit me
-to roam about the Lokas, filled with Thy glory, singing Thy deeds, which
-purify all the worlds."
-
-Sri Krishna said: --
-
-"O Brahmana, I am the teacher, the maker and the recogniser of Dharma.
-It is to teach people that I have resorted to all this. O Son, do not be
-deluded."
-
-
-THE RAJA SUYA AND JARASANDHA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 70-73.*
-
-Krishna was holding council in the Assembly Room called Sudharma. A
-Brahmana came as a messenger from the Rajas who had been imprisoned by
-Jarasandha and confined in a hill fort. The Rajas sought their delivery
-from Krishna, who had defeated Jarasandha seven times and had been
-defeated by him only once.
-
-Narada appeared at the time. Krishna enquired from him about the
-Pandavas. The Rishi said: --
-
-"Raja Yudhisthira intends to perform the great Yajna Raja Suya in Thy
-honor. Please give thy consent". Krishna turned towards Uddhava and
-asked for advice.
-
-Uddhava gauged the feelings of Narada, of Krishna and the assembly and
-said: --
-
-"It is meet thou shouldst help thy cousin in the performance of Raja
-Suya Yajna and also that thou shouldst protect the Rajas that seek
-relief from thee. Kings all round will have to be conquered at the Raja
-Suya sacrifice. The defeat of Jarasandha will follow as a matter of
-course. Thus shall we see the fulfilment of our great desire and the
-liberation of the Rajas shall redound to Thy glory. Both ends will be
-served in this way. But Jarasandha is very powerful. He should not be
-fought with while at the head of his large army. Bhima is equal to him
-in strength. Let him fight singly with Jarasandha. That king does not
-refuse any prayer of Brahmanas. Let Bhima ask for single combat in the
-disguise of a Brahmana. Surely that son of Pandu will kill him in thy
-presence."
-
-Krishna gave kind assurances to the messenger of the captive kings and
-left for Hastinapura.
-
-The Pandavas vied with one another in shewing respectful love to Krishna
-and Arjuna delivered up the Khandava forest to Agni and liberated Maya.
-In return for this kindness, Maya made the magical assembly ground for
-the Yajna.
-
-All the kings were brought under submission by Bhima, Arjuna, Nakula,
-Sahadeva and the allied kings, except Jarasandha.
-
-Bhima, Arjuna and Krishna went to the seat of Jarasandha in the disguise
-of Brahmanas.
-
-They begged hospitality from the king. King Jarasandha concluded from
-their voice, their shape and from the arrow marks on their hands that
-they were Kshatriyas. He also thought they were his acquaintances.
-"These are Kshatriyas, though they wear the marks of brahmanas. I will
-give them what they ask even though it be my own self, so difficult to
-part with. Is not the pure glory of Bali spread in all directions,
-though he was deprived of his lordly powers by Vishnu in the disguise of
-a Brahmana? Vishnu wanted to restore the lordship of the Triloki to
-India. Bali knew the Brahmana in disguise to be Vishnu. He still made
-over the Triloki to him, even against the protests of his Guru Sukra.
-This body of a Kshatriya, frail as it is, what purpose will it serve if
-wide fame is not acquired by means of it for the sake of a Brahmana?"
-Turning to Krishna, Arjuna and Bhima, Jarasandha said: -- "O Brahmanas,
-ask what you wish for. Even if it be my own head, I shall give it to
-you."
-
-Krishna replied: "Give us a single combat, if you please, O King. We are
-Kshatriyas and have come for fight. We desire nothing else. This is
-Bhima. This is his brother Arjuna. Know me to be their cousin Krishna,
-thy enemy." The king of Magadha broke out in loud laughter. In anger he
-then exclaimed: -- "O fools, I will give you a fight then. But thou art
-a coward. Thou didst run away from Mathura and didst take shelter in the
-sea. This Arjuna is not my equal in age. He is not very strong. He is
-unlike me in his body. So he cannot be my rival. This Bhima is my match
-in strength." So saying he gave one club to Bhima and took one himself.
-The two heroes fought outside the town. The fight was a drawn one.
-Krishna knew about the birth, death and life of Jarasandha. He thought
-in his mind about the joining together by the Rakshasa woman Jara. (The
-legend is that Jarasandha was born, divided in two halves, which were
-put together by the Rakshasa woman Jara.) Krishna took a branch in his
-hand and tore it asunder. Bhima took the hint. He put his foot on one of
-the legs of Jarasandha and took the other in his hand and tore asunder
-the body in two equal parts.
-
-Krishna placed Sahadeva, the son of Jarasandha, on the throne of
-Magadha, He then liberated the kings who had been imprisoned by
-Jarasandha. They were twenty thousand and eight hundred in number. They
-saw Krishna with four hands and with all the divine attributes. Their
-eyes, tongues and noses all fed upon him, as it were, and their hands
-were stretched forth to receive him. They all fell at the feet of
-Krishna and began to adore him.
-
-"We do not blame the king of Magadha. O Lord, it is by Thy favor, that
-kings are deprived of their thrones. Humbled, we remember Thy feet. We
-do not long for any kingdom in this life, nor do we care for the fruits
-of good works after death. Tell us that which will keep the recollection
-of Thy feet ever fresh in this life."
-
-Sri Krishna replied: --
-
-"From this day forward let your devotion towards me, the Lord of all, be
-made firm and fixed. Your resolve is commendable. It is true as you say
-that riches and power turn the heads of princes. Look at Haihaya,
-Nahusha Vena, Ravana, Naraka and others. Though kings of Devas, Daityas
-and men, they came down from their lofty position through pride. Knowing
-as you do that the body and all other things that have a beginning have
-also an end, you should worship me, perform sacrifices and duly protect
-your subjects. Indifferent to good and bad things alike, fix your minds
-completely on me and you shall attain me in the end."
-
-Krishna made arrangements for their comfort. At his bidding, Sahadeva
-supplied them with kingly dresses and valuable ornaments and gave them
-princely treatment. Krishna sent them to their respective kingdoms.
-Krishna, Bhima and Arjuna then returned to Hastinapura.
-
-
-SISUPALA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 74.*
-
-Yudhisthira commenced the performance of the Yajna. He asked permission
-of Krishna to make a respectful call on the priests that were to
-officiate at the ceremonies. Vyasa, Bharadvaja, Sumanta, Gotama, Asita,
-Vasishtha, Chyavana, Kanva, Maitreya and other Rishis, Drona, Bhishma,
-Kripa and others, Dhritarashra with his sons, Vidura, Brahmanas, Vaisyas
-and Sudras: all the kings and their subjects came to witness the Yajna.
-The Brahmanas prepared the sacrificial ground with golden ploughs. They
-then initiated king Yudhisthira according to the Vedic rites. The Ritvik
-Brahmanas duly assisted at the performance of the Rajasuya. On the day
-of extracting Soma Juice, the king duly worshipped the priests and their
-assistants. Then the time came for worshipping those that were present
-at the assembly. Now who was to be worshipped first? There were many
-head-men present and the members consulted with one another as to who
-deserved to get the first offering but they could not come to a
-decision. Sahadeva then addressed the meeting thus: --
-
-"Sri Krishna, the Lord of the Satvats, deserves the first place. All the
-Devas, Time, Space, wealth and all else are but himself. He is the soul
-of the Universe. He is the essence of all sacrifices, the sacrificial
-fire, the sacrificial offerings and Mantras, Sankhya and Yoga; all
-relate to him. He is the one without a second. Alone, He creates,
-preserves and destroys. By His favor men make various performances and
-from Him they attain the fruits of those performances. Give the first
-welcome-offering of respect to that Great Krishna. All beings and even
-Self shall be honored by this. Krishna is the soul of all beings. All
-differences vanish before him."
-
-All good people approved of the proposal of Sahadeva.
-
-Raja Yudhisthira washed the feet of Krishna and sprinkled the water over
-his own head and that of his relatives. He then made valuable offerings
-to him. All people saluted Krishna, saying "Namas" (salutation) and
-"Jaya" (Victory), and flowers rained over his head.
-
-Sisupala could not bear all this. He stood up in the midst of the
-assembly and thus gave vent to his feelings.
-
-"True is the saying that time is hard to overcome. Or how could even old
-men be led away by the words of a boy? You leaders of the assembly know
-best what are the relative merits of all. Do not endorse the words of a
-boy that Krishna deserves to get the first welcome-offering of respect
-Here are great Rishis, fixed on Brahma, great in asceticism, wisdom and
-religious practices, adored even by the Lokapalas, their impurities all
-completely removed by divine perception. Overstepping them all, how
-could this cowherd (_Gopala_) boy, the disgrace (_pansana_) of his
-family (_Kula_), deserve to be worshipped, as if the crow (_Kaka_)
-deserves to get the sacrificial oblation (_purodasa_)? (Sridhara
-explains this Sloka and the following ones as a veiled adoration of Sri
-Krishna. _Gopala_ is the protector of Vedas, of the Earth and of others.
-The word _go_ means the Vedas and the Earth, besides "cow." _Kula
-pansana_ = Kulapa+ansana. _Kulapas_ are sinners. He who destroys
-(_Ansa_) them is _Kula pansana_. _Kaka_ may be read as compounded with
-another word in the Sloka, in the form of _akaka_. _Kaka_ is ka + aka.
-_Ka_ is happiness, _aka_ is misery. He who has neither happiness nor
-misery is _akaka_ _i.e._, one who has got all his desires. One who has
-got all his desires does not only deserve to get the _purodasa_ offering
-of the Devas but all other offerings. I do not think it necessary to
-reproduce the double interpretation by Sridhara of the other Slokas,
-which is continued in the same strain.) He has gone away from his Varna,
-Asrama and Kula. He is outside all injunctions and duties. He follows
-his own will. He is void of attributes (_Gunas_). How can he deserve to
-be worshipped? King Yayati cursed his line and it is not honored by good
-people. His clansmen are addicted to unnecessary drinking. How can he
-deserve to be worshipped? They left the the lands where the Rishis
-dwell, and made their fort on the Sea; moreover they oppress their
-subjects like robbers."
-
-Sisupala went on in this way and Krishna did not say a word. The lion
-heeds not the jackal's cry. The members of the Assembly closed their
-ears and went away, cursing Sisupala in anger. They could not hear the
-calumny of Bhagavat. For he who hears the calumny of Bhagavat and of
-those that are devoted to him and does not leave the place goes
-downwards, deprived of all merits. The sons of Pandu and their allies of
-Matsya, Kaikaya and Srinjaya, took up arms to kill Sisupala. Sisupala
-also took his shield and sword and reproved the kings on the side of
-Krishna. Krishna then rose up and asked his followers to desist. He cut
-off the head of Sisupala with the Chakra. A flame like a glowing meteor
-rose from the body of Sisupala and entered Sri Krishna. For three
-births, Sisupala had constantly followed Vishnu in enmity. By this
-constant though hostile meditation, he attained the state of that he
-meditated upon. (The readers are reminded here of the story of Jaya and
-Vijaya, the gatekeepers of Vishnu in Vaikuntha).
-
-The Rajasuya sacrifice came to a close. Raja Yudhisthira performed the
-bathing ceremony, enjoined at the close of a sacrifice (_avabhritha_).
-
-
-THE SLIGHT OF DURYODHANA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 75.*
-
-The fame of Yudhisthira went abroad. All sang the glory of the Rajasuya
-sacrifice. Duryodhana became filled with jealousy. One day king
-Yudhisthira was seated on a golden throne in the assembly hall, prepared
-by Maya, with Krishna and others around him. The proud Duryodhana,
-surrounded by his brothers, entered the place with crown on his head and
-sword in his hand, showering abuse on the gate-keepers and others. He
-took land to be water and drew up his clothes. He also took water to be
-land and wet himself. The Maya (Magic), displayed by Maya, in the
-preparation of the assembly ground, caused this delusion. Bhima laughed,
-and the females and other kings laughed too, though forbidden by
-Yudhisthira. Krishna however approved their laughter.
-
-Overpowered with shame, with his head cast down, Duryodhana silently
-left the place and went to Hastinapura.
-
-Krishna kept quiet. He wished to relieve the Earth of the weight of the
-Daityas who were oppressing her. It was only His will that Duryodhana
-should thus be deluded (and the disastrous results would follow).
-
-
-SALVA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 76-77.*
-
-When Krishna carried away Rukmini, he defeated the kings in battle and,
-amongst others, he defeated Salva, king of Soubha, the friend of
-Sisupala. Salva vowed at the time to kill all Yadavas. He ate only a
-handful of dust and worshipped Siva. After a year Siva became pleased
-with his worship and asked the king to name a boon. He prayed for an
-invulnerable chariot that would carry terror to the Yadavas. At the
-bidding of Siva, Maya prepared an iron chariot, called Soubha, which
-could move at will to any place. Mounted on this chariot, Salva attacked
-Dvaraka, with his large army. He threw weapons, stones, trees and
-serpents from above and demolished walls and gardens. The people of
-Dvaraka became very much oppressed. Pradyumna and other Yadavas engaged
-in fight with Salva and his army. Salva's chariot was sometimes visible
-and sometimes not. It now rose high and now came low. With difficulty,
-Pradyumna killed Dyumat, the general of Salva. But still the fight went
-on for seven days and seven nights. Krishna had been at Hastinapura. He
-felt misgivings and hurried to Dvaraka with Rama. The fight was then
-going on. Krishna placed Rama in charge of the town and himself went to
-fight with Salva. Salva tauntingly addressed Krishna who gave the king a
-heavy blow with his club. Salva disappeared. Instantly a man came and
-informed Krishna that he was a messenger from Devaki. Salva had carried
-away his father Vasudeva.
-
-Krishna asked: -- "How could Salva conquer Rama so as to carry away my
-father?" But he had scarcely finished when Salva appeared with somebody
-like Vasudeva, saying "O fool, here is your father. I will kill him in
-your presence. Save him, if you can." He then cut off the head of
-Vasudeva, and entered the chariot. Krishna found this was all the Maya
-of Salva and in reality his father was neither carried off nor killed.
-He broke the chariot Soubha with his club. Salva left the chariot and
-stood upon earth, club in hand. Krishna cut off his hands and then cut
-off his head with the Chakra.
-
-
-DANTA VAKRA AND VIDURATHA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 78.*
-
-Danta-Vakra was the friend of Sisupala, Salva and Paundraka. He came to
-attack Sri Krishna with club in hand and, seeing him, exclaimed: "It is
-good fortune, that I see you. You are our cousin. But still you have
-killed our friends and you now want to kill me. I will therefore kill
-you with this club." (Sridhara gives a second meaning to this Sloka. At
-the end of his third birth Danta Vakra was to regain his place in
-Vaikuntha. Sisupala and Danta Vakra, as explained before, were Jaya and
-Vijaya, gate-keepers of Vaikuntha. By the curse of the Kumaras, they
-incarnated as Asuras. The third and last cycle of material ascendancy
-was to be ended. Jaya and Vijaya were not to incarnate any more.
-Therefore Danta-Vakra exclaimed that it was his good fortune to meet
-Krishna and so on). Krishna struck him with his club and killed him. A
-flame arose from the body of Danta-Vakra, as from that of Sisupala, and
-it entered Sri Krishna.
-
-Viduratha, the brother of Danta-Vakra was afflicted with grief at the
-death of his brother. He now attacked Krishna. Krishna cut off his head
-with the Chakra.
-
-
-BALARAMA AND THE DEATH OF ROMAHARSHANA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 78-79.*
-
-Balarama heard that the Kurus and Pandavas were making preparations for
-a mutual fight. He belonged to neither side. So he went out on pretext
-of a pilgrimage. He went to Prabhasa and performed the ablution
-ceremonies. He went to several other places and at last reached the
-Naimisha forest. The Rishis all rose up to receive him. Romaharshana,
-the disciple of Vyasa, did not leave his seat. He belonged to the Suta
-community, -- a mixed class, born of Kshatriya father and Brahmana
-mother, -- but he took his seat higher than that of the Brahmanas.
-Balarama thought that the Suta had learned the Itihasas, Puranas and all
-Dharma Sastras from Vyasa but he had not learned humility and
-self-control and that he had become proud of his wisdom. Balarama cut
-off his head with the tip of a Kusa grass. The Rishis broke forth into
-loud cries of lamentation. Addressing Balarama, they said: "O lord! thou
-hast done a wrong. We gave him this seat of a Brahmana. We gave him age
-and freedom from fatigue, till the Yajna was completed. Not knowing
-this, thou hast killed one who was, while on his seat, a Brahmana. Thou
-art not regulated by the Vedas. But of thy own accord, do thou perform
-some Prayaschitta, and thereby shew an example to other people."
-Balarama enquired what he was to do. The Rishi asked him to do that by
-which their words as well as the act of Balarama both might prove true.
-Balarama said: "One's son is one's own self. So say the Vedas. Therefore
-the son of Romaharshana, Ugrasravas, shall be your reciter of Puranas.
-He shall have long life and freedom from fatigue. What am I to do, O
-Rishis, by which I may atone for my deed?"
-
-The Rishis asked Balarama to kill Valvala, son of the Danava Ilvala, who
-used to pollute the sacrificial ground on certain days of the moon. They
-also asked Rama to travel all over Bharata Varsha for twelve months, and
-take his bath at the sacred places.
-
-Rama killed Valvala and went out on pilgrimage. On his return to
-Prabhasa he heard about the death of the Kshatriya kings in the war
-between the Kurus and the Pandavas. He went to Kurukshetra. Bhima and
-Duryodhana were then fighting with each other with their clubs. Balarama
-tried to bring about peace. But they did not heed his words. He then
-returned to Dvaraka.
-
-Balarama once more went to Naimisha and he was adored by the Rishis.
-
-
-SRIDAMAN.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 80-81.*
-
-Krishna had a Brahmana fellow-student, by name Sridaman. He was
-well-read in the Vedas, self controlled and contented. He had a wife. He
-lived on whatever was freely given to him by others. His wife was
-ill-clad and ill-fed, like himself. One day she approached her husband
-and said: --
-
-"Husband, your friend is the Lord of Lakshmi (the goddess of wealth)
-herself. Go to him and he will give you wealth. He gives even his own
-self to those that meditate on his lotus feet. What can not that Lord of
-the Universe give to those that worship him with some desire?" Being
-repeatedly pressed by his wife, he at last resolved to go to Krishna,
-thinking that the sight of his friend would be his greatest gain. He
-asked his wife for some offering for his friend, She begged four
-handfuls of flattened rice (_Chipitaka_) from the Brahmanas and tied
-that up in one corner of her husband's rag. The Brahmana went to
-Dvaraka, thinking all the way how he could meet Krishna. He passed
-through certain apartments and went into one of the rooms. Krishna was
-seated with one of his wives. He saw the Brahmana from a distance and
-rose up to receive him. He came down and embraced his former companion
-with both his hands. Krishna gave him a respectful welcome and a seat by
-his own side. He then talked with him about the old reminiscences of
-student life, how they passed their days at the residence of Sandipani,
-how faithfully they carried out the behests of the Guru and his wife,
-how necessary it was to respect the Guru and such other topics. He then
-smilingly looked at the Brahmana and said: --
-
-"What have you brought for me from your house? Even the smallest thing
-brought by my Bhaktas becomes great by their love, while the largest
-offerings of those that are not devoted to me cannot please me." The
-Brahmana, though asked, was ashamed to offer the flattened rice to the
-Lord of Lakshmi and he cast down his head. The all-seeing Sri Krishna
-knew the object of the Brahmana's coming. He found that the Brahmana had
-not at first worshipped him with the object of attaining wealth. It was
-only to please his devoted wife that he now had that desire. The Lord
-therefore thought he would give him such wealth as was difficult to
-acquire. He then snatched away the flattened rice from the rags of the
-Brahmana saying, "What is this! O friend you have brought this highly
-gratifying offering for me. These rice grains please me, the Universal
-Atma." So saying he partook of one handful. When he was going to take
-the second handful, Lakshmi held his hand, saying, "O Lord of the
-Universe, this much will quite suffice to give all such wealth as can be
-needed for this world as well as for the next, such that it will even
-please thee to see that thy votary has got so much wealth."
-
-The Brahmana passed the night with Krishna. The next morning, he went
-home. Krishna went a certain distance with him to see him off. Krishna
-did not give him wealth nor did he ask for any. He thought within
-himself "What am I, a poor Brahmana and a sinner and this Krishna, whose
-breast is the abode of Lakshmi, gave me a reception as if I were a god.
-The worship of His feet is the root of all Siddhis, all enjoyments, of
-Svarga and even of Mukti. Kind as he is, he did not give me any the
-least wealth, lest a poor man should forget Him by the pride of wealth."
-
-When he reached home, he found palatial buildings, gardens and lots of
-well-dressed male and female attendants. They received him with valuable
-presents. His wife also came out to receive him, with a number of female
-attendants. The Brahmana was surprised. He saw this was all the outcome
-of his visiting Sri Krishna. He controlled himself while enjoying this
-immense wealth and, meditating on Sri Krishna, he at last attained His
-supreme abode.
-
-
-THE MEETING AT KURUKSHETRA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 82-84*
-
-There was a total eclipse of the sun. Krishna and all the Yadavas went
-to Kurukshetra to bathe on the occasion. Nanda, the Gopas and Gopis, all
-came there. Kunti and her sons, Bhishma, Drona and all the kings also
-went. They all went together. (The Bhagavata Purana carefully avoids the
-battle at Kurukshetra. It barely mentions the duel between Bhima and
-Duryodhana. According to the Mahabharata, Bhishma, Drona and all the
-brothers of Duryodhana had been killed before the fight took place
-between Bhima and Duryodhana. But we find here that they were all
-present at the Kurukshetra meeting. A slight explanation will be
-necessary to put the readers on the right line of thought. The ideal of
-the Mahabharata was Tatva-masi, the unity of Jiva and Ishvara. Krishna
-and Arjuna looked alike. They were close companions. This Advaita view
-struck at the root of Upasana excepting as a means to an end; it put
-into the shade altogether the Path of compassion, the Path of service of
-which Narada is the guide for this Kalpa. So we find even Bhishma being
-killed. Bhishma died at Uttarayana and necessarily passed through the
-Devayana Marga, as an Upasaka. Whatever might be the goal of Upasana,
-the Bhagavata Purana treats of Upasana as an end and not as a means. The
-Bhagavatas, the Satvatas, the Vaishnavas do not ask for Nirvana Mukti
-they ask for devotion to the Lord of the Universe. They work in the
-Universe as servants of the Lord, taking the whole Universe to be their
-own selves. The Kurukshetra battle is therefore out of place in the
-Bhagavata Purana. This explains the great meeting at Kurukshetra instead
-of the Great Annihilation.)
-
-Kunti complained to Vasudeva that he did not make any enquiries about
-her and her sons, in her many afflictions. Vasudeva said, for fear of
-Kansa the Yadavas had scattered themselves, and they could not make
-enquiries about one another. The Kurus, Pandavas and the kings were all
-glad to see Krishna and his wives. Rama and Krishna duly honoured them
-all and made valuable presents. They all admired the good fortune of the
-Yadavas, in having Krishna always in their midst.
-
-Nanda and Yasoda were duly respected by Vasudeva and his wives.
-
-Krishna met the Gopis in privacy. He embraced them all, and, after
-enquiry about their safety, said smilingly: -- "Do you remember us, O
-friends? For the good of those whom we call our own, we have been long
-in putting down the adverse party. Or do you think little of us, feeling
-that we have been ungrateful to you? Know for certain, it is the Lord
-who unites and separates all beings. As the wind unites masses of
-clouds, grass, cotton and dust particles, and again disunites them, so
-the creator does with all beings. Devotion to me serves to make beings
-immortal. How glad I am that you have this love to me, for by that love
-you gain me back. I am the beginning and end of all beings, I am both
-inside and outside. As the material objects resolve themselves into the
-primal elements, (Akasa, air, fire, water and earth), so (the material
-parts in) all beings resolve themselves into the primal elements. Atma
-pervades all beings as the conscious Perceiver (Atma). Know both (the
-Perceiver and the Perceived) to be reflected in me, the Supreme and the
-Immutable."
-
-The Gopis were taught this Adhyatma teaching by Sri Krishna. Bearing
-this teaching constantly in mind, they cast off the Jiva sheath (Jiva
-Kosa) and they attained Krishna. And they said: -- "O Krishna let thy
-lotus feet be ever present in our minds, home-seeking though we may have
-been. The lords of Yoga by their profound wisdom meditate on thy feet in
-their hearts. It is by thy feet that those that have fallen into the
-well of Sansara are raised."
-
-(Here we take a final leave of the Gopis. They had known Krishna as the
-Purusha of the Heart. They now knew him as the all-pervading Purusha.
-They were drawn back into the bosom of that Purusha, their Linga
-(Sukshma) Sarira destroyed. They now entered the divine state, but even
-there they did not forget the lotus feet of Krishna. They became centres
-of devotional love in the bosom of the Universal Lord.)
-
-Yudisthira and other friends of Krishna addressed him as all-incarnating
-Purusha. The wives of Krishna related to Draupadi how they came to be
-married to him. The Rishis addressed Sri Krishna as Ishvara. They then
-took leave of him. Vasudeva however detained them, saying they should
-instruct him as to how he could exhaust his Karma. Narada said it was no
-wonder that he should ask this question of them and not of Krishna. For
-proximity is the cause of disregard.
-
-The Rishis, addressing Vasudeva, said: --
-
-"Karma is exhausted by Karma. Worship Vishnu by Yajna. He is the lord of
-all Yajnas. Wise men do not wish for riches by the performance of Yajna,
-nor do they wish for men or enjoyments. They give up all desires and
-then go to the forest for Tapas. The twice-born are indebted to the
-Devas, Rishis and Pitris, by their birth. You have paid up your debts to
-the Rishis and to the Pitris. Now pay up your debts to the Devas, by the
-performance of Yajna and then give up your home." Vasudeva then
-performed Yajna, and the Rishis officiated. The Yajna over, the Rishis
-went away. Dhritarashra, Vidura, the Pandavas, Bhishma, Drona, Kunti,
-Narada, Vyasa, his friends and relatives, parted with a heavy heart.
-Narada and his followers were detained for three months by the Yadavas,
-such was their love for them. They then received many presents and left
-for Mathura. Seeing the approach of the rainy season, the Yadavas also
-went back to Dvaraka.
-
-
-VASUDEVA, DEVAKI, AND THEIR DEAD SONS.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 85.*
-
-Vasudeva now believed his sons to be lords of the Universe. He once
-asked them whether they had not incarnated for relieving the pressure on
-the Earth. Krishna replied: -- "I, yourselves, this Rama, the people of
-Dvaraka, nay the whole universe are to be known as Brahma. Atma, though
-one and self-manifest, becomes manifold, according to the nature of the
-beings in which its manifestation takes place. Compare the variety in
-the manifestation of the Bhutas in the Bhoutic objects."
-
-Hearing these words of wisdom, Vasudeva learned to see unity in
-diversity.
-
-Devaki had heard of the powers of Rama and Krishna in bringing back to
-life the deceased son of their Guru. She asked them to shew her the sons
-that had been killed by Kansa.
-
-Rama and Krishna entered by Yogic power the regions of Sutala. Bali
-shewed them every respect and worshipped them.
-
-Krishna said: "In the Svayambhava Manvantara, Marichi had six sons by
-Urna. These sons of the Rishi laughed at Brahma, because he grew
-passionate towards his daughter. For this they became Asuras and sons of
-Hiranyakasipu. Yoga Maya carried them to the womb of Devaki and they
-became her sons. They were killed by Kansa. Devaki takes them to be her
-own sons and laments over their death. They are now with you; I shall
-take them over to my mother to remove her grief. They shall then go to
-Devaloka, free from the effects of their curse. Smara, Udgitha,
-Parishvanga, Patanga, Kshudra-bhuka and Ghrini -- these shall by my
-favor again attain a good state." (Smara is called Kirtimat.)
-
-Krishna took the boys to Devaki and she embraced them all. They were
-then taken to Devaloka.
-
-
-ARJUNA AND SUBHADRA
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 86.*
-
-Raja Parikshit enquired how Arjuna had married his grandmother Subhadra,
-the sister of Rama and Krishna.
-
-Suka replied: --
-
-"Arjuna heard that Rama was going to give Subhadra (the cousin of
-Arjuna) in marriage to Duryodhana. He disguised himself as a Sanyasin
-and went to Dvaraka. The people of Dvaraka and even Rama could not
-recognise him. Arjuna lived there for a year and received due
-hospitality. Once Arjuna was invited by Balarama and he was taking his
-food when Subhadra passed by him. They looked at each other and felt
-mutual love. One day, Subhadra, with the permission of her parents and
-of Sri Krishna, came out on a chariot to worship an idol outside the
-fort and a strong guard accompanied her. Arjuna availed himself of this
-opportunity and carried away the girl by force. Balarama became greatly
-enraged. But Sri Krishna and other friends appeased him."
-
-
-SRUTADEVA AND BAHULASVA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 86.*
-
-Srutadeva, a Brahmana of Mithila, was much devoted to Sri Krishna. The
-prince of Mithila, Bahulasva, was also a favorite of Sri Krishna. To
-favor them, Sri Krishna went with Narada and other Rishis to Mithila.
-Srutadeva and Bahulasva each asked him to go to his own house. Krishna
-to please them both went to the houses of both at the same time, being
-unnoticed by each in respect of his going to the other's house. Both
-Bahulasva and Srutadeva received Sri Krishna and the Rishis with due
-respect. Sri Krishna taught Srutadeva to respect the Brahmana Rishis as
-much as he respected him. After giving proper instructions to the prince
-and the Brahmana for sometime, Sri Krishna returned to Dvaraka.
-
-
-THE PRAYER TO BRAHMAN BY THE SRUTIS.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 87.*
-
-Raja Parikshit asked: --
-
-"O Great Sage, Brahman is undefinable, void of Gunas, beyond both causes
-and effects. How can the Srutis, which have the Gunas for their Vritti
-(_i.e._ which treat of Devas and sacrifices which are full of
-attributes), directly cognise Brahman?"
-
-Suka replied: --
-
-"The Lord created Buddhi, Indriya, Manas and Prana in Jivas that they
-might obtain their objects (Matra), their birth-producing Karma (Bhava),
-their transmigration to different Lokas (Atma), and also their Mukti
-(Akalpana)." (These four words respectively mean Artha, Dharma, Kama and
-Moksha. The Srutis treat of Bhagavat, of Sat-Chit-Ananda the
-all-knowing, the all-powerful, the lord of all, the guide of all, the
-all-object of Upasana, the Dispenser of all fruits of Karma, the Resort
-of all that is good, as one with attributes. The Srutis begin with
-attributes, but at last drop these attributes saying "Not this", "Not
-this" and end in Brahman. The sayings about Upasan and Karma treat of
-things with attributes, as a means to attain wisdom and thereby
-indirectly lead to Brahman. This is the purport. _Sridhara_.)
-
-"The Upanishad speaks of Brahman. She was accepted as such by even those
-that were older than those whom we call old. He who accepts her with
-faith attains well-being." (The Bhagavata tries to refute the idea that
-the Vedas treat of the Devas only and not of Isvara and Brahma).
-
-"I shall relate to thee here a conversation between Narada and Narayana.
-
-"Once upon a time Narada went to see the great Rishi Narayana. For the
-well-being of Bharatavarsha, for the good of all men, he remains in his
-Asrama, fixed in Tapas, since the beginning of this Kalpa. The Rishis of
-Kalapa sat round him. Narada saluted him and asked this very question.
-
-"Narayana said: --
-
-"In Jana Loka, the Manas, born Rishis of that place performed Brahma
-Yajna (Yajna, in which 'What is Brahman' is ascertained, some one
-becoming the speaker and others forming the audience). You had gone to
-Sveta Dvipa at the time. This very question was raised in the assembly.
-Sanandan became the speaker. He said: --
-
-"The Supreme drank up his own creation and lay asleep with His Saktis.
-At the end of Pralaya, the Srutis (which were the first breath of the
-Supreme. _Sridhara_) roused Him up by words denotive of Him.
-
-"The Srutis said: --
-
-"Glory be to Thee! Destroy the Avidya of all moveable and immoveable
-beings. She has got attributes for the sake of deluding others. All Thy
-powers are completely confined in Thee. Thou art the Manifester of all
-Saktis in Jivas. Thou art (sometimes -- _Sridhara_) with Maya and
-(always -- _Sridhara_) by Thyself. (But wherever thou art) the Vedas
-follow Thee. (The Vedas treat both of Saguna and Nirguna Brahman).
-
-"All that are perceived, (Indra and other gods), know Thee to be the
-Big, and themselves to be only parts. For their rise and setting are
-from Thee. (Then is the Big transformable? Hence the next words.
-_Sridhara_). But thou art untransformed. Even as the (transformed) earth
-pots have their rise and setting in the (untransformed) mother earth.
-Therefore the Rishis -- (the Mantras or their perceivers. _Sridhara_.
-Every Vedic Mantra has its Rishi, who first perceived that Mantra) --
-set their minds, their words and actions in Thee (or had their purport
-and meaning in Thee. _Sridhara_). For wherever people may roam, their
-footsteps always touch the earth.
-
-"O Thou Lord of the Three Gunas, the wise plunged into the nectar ocean
-formed of words about Thee, -- an Ocean which removes the impurities of
-all people -- and they got rid of all miseries. What of those then who,
-by the perception of Self in them, free themselves from the attributes
-of mind (likes or dislikes) and of time (the transformations of age) and
-worship Thy real self which gives rise to perpetual happiness?
-
-"Those that are animated by life breathe truly if they follow Thee,
-otherwise their breath is the breath of bellows. Inspired by Thee,
-Mahat, Ahankara and others lay their eggs (create collective and
-individual bodies). Thou dost permeate the five sheaths (Annamaya and
-others) in man and become those sheaths, as it were, by this permeation.
-But thou art the last in the sheaths, as taught in the Upanishads.
-
-"Thou art beyond the gross and subtle sheaths, the Indestructible and
-Real.
-
-"Among the Rishis, the Sarkarakshas (or those that have an imperfect
-vision) meditate on Brahma in the navel. The Arunis, however, meditate
-on Brahma in the cavity of the Heart, which is the seat of the nerves.
-Ananta, from the Heart, the Sushumna (the nerve which causes Thy
-perception) leads to Thy supreme place in the Head. He who once attains
-that place does not fall into the mouth of Death again. (The Upanishads
-speak of one hundred and one nerves of the heart. Of these, one goes to
-the head).
-
-"Thou hast Thyself created various life kingdoms and various forms.
-Though Thou pervadest them all from of old, having brought them all
-about, yet Thy special manifestation in them is relatively greater or
-smaller, according to the nature of the things created by Thee even as
-fire, though one and the same, burns differently according to the
-character of the fuel. Those that are of pure intellect follow the one
-Real amidst the many unreal forms. The (perceiving) Purusha in all
-beings is said to be Thy part only. Knowing this to be the truth about
-Jivas, wise men worship Thy feet.
-
-"Brahma and other Jivas did not know Thy end. Even Thou dost not know
-Thy own end. For Thou art endless. Drawn by the wheel of time, the
-Brahmandas, with their Avaranas, (outer circles) roll on together in Thy
-middle, even as if they were dust particles in the air. The Srutis
-fructify in Thee (have Thee, for their end and goal.) (Though they
-cannot directly speak of Thee) their words are directed towards Thee, by
-discarding every thing else." (Though the Vedas treat of Indra and other
-Devas, they ultimately lead to Brahma, by saying "Brahma is not this,
-not this," in the Upanishads.)
-
-
-THE RESTORATION OF BRAHMAN BOYS TO LIFE.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 89.*
-
-At Dvaraka a Brahman lost his son at birth. He took the dead child to
-the palace and placed it at the gate, blaming the king for his
-misfortune. For the sins of kings visit themselves upon their subjects.
-In this way nine sons died one after another and the Brahman did the
-same with all of them and, when the ninth son died, Arjuna was sitting
-with Krishna and he heard the reproaches of the Brahmana. Arjuna
-promised the Brahmana that he would protect his son this time, or would
-otherwise enter the fire for breach of his promise. The son was born
-again. And Arjuna was there with his famous bow. But lo! the child wept
-and it rose up high and disappeared, The Brahmana taunted Arjuna for
-making promises he had not the power to keep. Stung by these words, the
-Pandava went to Yama Loka. He went to Indra Loka. He went to the regions
-of Agni, Nirriti, Chandra, Vayu and Varuna. He went to Rasatala. He went
-to Svarga. But the Brahmana boy was no where to be found. He then made
-preparations for entering the fire. Sri Krishna made him desist. He
-said: -- "I shall show you the Brahmana's sons. Do not disregard
-yourself. Those that blame us now shall sing our glory hereafter."
-
-Krishna and Arjuna went towards the west. They crossed the seven oceans
-and the seven Dvipas. They crossed the Loka-aloka and entered the
-regions of chaotic darkness. The horses could not proceed further. So by
-Krishna's order the glowing Chakra, Sudarshana, pierced through the
-darkness and the horses followed the track. Infinite, endless, divine
-light then spread out. Arjuna re-opened his eyes. They then entered the
-regions of primal water. They found one house glittering with gems and
-stones. The thousand-headed Ananta was sitting in that house. Seated
-upon Ananta was the Supreme Purusha, the Lord of the Lords. Krishna and
-Arjuna saluted Him. The Purusha then smiled and said: -- "I brought the
-Brahmana boys that I might see you both. For the protection of Dharma on
-the Earth, you have incarnated as my parts (Kala.) Kill the Asuras that
-oppress the Earth and come back soon to me. Filled are your own desires,
-O you Rishis, Nara and Narayana. But for the preservation of the
-Universe, do that which others may follow."
-
-Krishna and Arjuna said "Om". They brought back the Brahmana boys and
-restored them to their father.
-
-
-
-THE LINE OF KRISHNA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA X. CHAP. 90.*
-
-Vajra was the son of Aniruddha.
-
-Prati-bahu was the son of Vajra.
-
-Su-bahu was the son of Prati-bahu.
-
-Upasena was the son of Su-bahu.
-
-Bhadra-sena was the son of Upasena.
-
-*END OF THE TENTH BRANCH.*
-
-
-
-THOUGHTS ON THE MATHURA LILA.
-
-
-Kansa was killed and all good men that had fled from Mathura returned to
-it. Krishna fast developed Himself as Ishvara. He restored his Guru's
-son to life.
-
-Uddhava, the embodiment of Bhakti Yoga mixed with wisdom, was the
-messenger of Krishna to the Gopis. It was through him that Sri Krishna
-sent words of wisdom, which He himself could not have spoken to them at
-Vrindavana. For the Gopis would have spurned such words from Him, so
-great was their personal love for Him. Krishna now placed another ideal
-before them for meditation. They were now to seek Him, not as the lovely
-Krishna, playing upon the flute, but as the all-pervading Atma to be
-known by discriminating wisdom. He asked the Gopis to meditate on this
-ideal, and He now returned to them as the all-pervading immutable
-principle in the Universe.
-
-In the stories of Jarasandha, Yavana and Muchukunda we find the
-historical Krishna.
-
-Jarasandha was an incongruous combination of materiality and
-spirituality, (the two parts which Jiva put together). He was the
-performer of Vedic Yajnas, the supporter of Brahmanas, the
-representative of the old state of things. Naturally therefore he was
-the most powerful king of his time and the most powerful enemy of
-Krishna. Vaishnavism had to fight hard with orthodox Brahmanism.
-Vaishnava kings were put to death in large numbers. Krishna could not
-kill him on account of his connection with Brahmanas and with Vedic
-Yajnas. He even feigned a retreat and fled away to Dvaraka. Dvaraka was
-a spiritual centre on earth, created by Krishna, for the performance of
-His mission as Avatara. The town was washed away as soon as Krishna
-disappeared.
-
-It will be interesting to know the future mission of Muchukunda. But the
-Bhagavata is silent about it.
-
-
-
-THOUGHTS ON THE DVARAKA
-
-
-At Dvaraka, we find Sri Krishna as the Lord of the Universe, a Kalpic
-Avatara, and as such something more than the historical Krishna.
-
-_Sri Krishna as an Avatara._
-
-It is time that we should know something definitely of Sri Krishna as an
-Avatara.
-
-To restore the Brahmana boys, Sri Krishna went with Arjuna to the abode
-of Purusha. Purusha smiled and said: -- "I brought the Brahmana boys,
-that I might see you both. For the protection of Dharma on the Earth,
-you have incarnated as my parts (Kala). Kill the Asuras that oppress the
-Earth and come back soon to Me. Satiated are your own desires, O you
-Rishis, Nara and Narayana, but for the preservation of the universe do
-that which others may follow."
-
-The Purusha is the Virat Purusha of our universe, the Second Purusha or
-the Second Logos.
-
-When the first Purusha woke up, the process of transformation went on
-and the material creation was completed. The materials could not however
-unite to form individual bodies. Purusha infused the material creation
-and became known as the Second Purusha or Virat Purusha, As regards this
-Virat Purusha, the Bhagavata Purana says as follows: --
-
-"He is the resting place and eternal seed of all Avataras. Brahma is His
-part, Marichi and other Rishis are parts of His part. Devas, animals and
-men are brought into manifestation by parts of His part." Bhagavata I.
-3-5.
-
-"He is the primal, unborn Purusha, who in every Kalpa creates, preserves
-and destroys self (objective) as self (nominative), in self (locative),
-by self (instrumental)." II. 6 XXXVII.
-
-"He is the primal Purusha Avatara of the Supreme." II. 6 XL.
-
-He is also called the Thousand-Limbed and the Egg-born. II. 5, XXXV.,
-III. 6, VI.
-
-This Virat Purusha upholds the manifested universe. All materials are in
-Him and all individuals take their rise from Him and end in Him. He is
-the one ocean of endless bubbles which have their beginning and end in
-Him. The Avataras also all rest on the bosom of Virat Purusha.
-
-We have looked at Virat Purusha from the standpoint of the First
-Purusha. Now let us proceed upwards from below.
-
-The Brihat Aranayaka Upanishad thus speaks of Virat Purusha, at the
-beginning of the Fourth Brahmana of the first chapter: --
-
-"This was before soul, bearing the shape of a man. Looking round he
-beheld nothing but himself. He said first: -- 'This am I.' Hence the
-name of I was produced. And, because he as the first of all of them
-consumed by fire all the sins, therefore he is called Purusha. He verily
-consumes him who, before this, strives to obtain the state of Prajapati,
-he, namely who, thus knows."
-
-The following is the commentary of Sankaracharya.
-
-"This was before the soul." The soul is here defined as Prajapati, the
-first born from the Egg, the embodied soul, as resulting from his
-knowledge and works in accordance with the Vedas. He was what? "This,"
-produced by the division of the body, "was the soul" not separated from
-the body of Prajapati, "before" the production of other bodies. He was
-"also bearing the shape of man", which means that he was endowed with
-head, hands and other members, he was the Viraj, the first born.
-"Looking round reflecting who am I, and of what nature, he beheld
-nothing but himself", the fulness of life, the organism of causes and
-effects. He beheld only himself as the Universal soul. Then, endowed
-with the recollection of his Vedic knowledge in a former birth, "he said
-first: This am I" _viz_., Prajapati, the universal soul. "Hence,"
-because from the recollection of his knowledge in a former world he
-called himself I, therefore his name was I "And because he" -- Prajapati
-in a former birth, which is the cause, as the first of those who were
-desirous of obtaining the state of Prajapati by the exercise of
-reflection on works and knowledge _viz_. "as the first of all of them,"
-of all that were desirous of obtaining the state of Prajapati, consumed
-by the perfect exercise of reflection on works and knowledge of all the
-sins of contact which are obstacles to the acquirement of the state of
-Prajapati, -- because such was the case, therefore he is called Purusha,
-because he is _Purvam Aushad_, (first burnt). As that Prajapati, by
-consuming all opposite sins, became this Purusha Prajapati, so also any
-other consumes, reduces all to ashes by the fire of the practice of
-reflection on knowledge and works, or only by the force of his
-knowledge, and He verily "consumes" Whom? "Him who before this sage
-strives to obtain the state of Prajapati." The sage is pointed out as he
-who thus knows, who according to his power manifests his reflection on
-knowledge. "But is it not useless for any one to strive for the state of
-Prajapati, if he is consumed by one who thus knows? There is no fault in
-this; for consuming means here only that the highest state, that of
-Prajapati, is not obtained, because the eminence of reflection on
-knowledge is wanting. Therefore by the words, "He consumes him" is
-meant, that the perfect performer obtains the highest state of
-Prajapati; he who is less perfect does not obtain it, and by no means
-that the less perfect performer is actually consumed by the perfect;
-thus it is said in common life, that a warrior who first rushes into
-battle, consumes his combatants, which means that he exceeds them in
-prowess.
-
-In order to understand this better, let us consider the scheme of human
-evolution.
-
-Atma is the same in all beings and, when free from the limitations of
-individual life, it becomes all pervading.
-
-Sympathy and compassion open the door to the liberation of Atma.
-
-The Upadhi, or vehicle of Atma, or the body of its manifestation,
-becomes less and less gross, as Atma proceeds in its course of
-liberation, the body becomes better able to do good to all mankind and
-it does not act as a barrier to communion with the real self.
-
-The most highly evolved beings become universal and not individual, and
-they live normally on the spiritual plane.
-
-They at last reach the state of divinity. Then they may become Avataras.
-When these Avataras have to work on the physical and intellectual
-planes, they assume a body and become born, like ordinary beings. They
-have then to _come down_ from their normal state, but their vision and
-power remain undestroyed. When their mission is over, they reach again
-their normal state. The Avataras have not to work out their own Karma.
-They are liberated Atmas, staying back for the liberation of other
-individuals in the universe. Karma-less themselves, they bear the Karma
-of the universe upon their shoulders. The thin veil that separates their
-state from the state of the absolute Brahma is Maya, which is the
-highest manifestation of Prakriti which enables them to assume cosmic
-responsibility out of their unbounded compassion for all beings.
-
-The Avataras may cast off their veil at will, but as long as they choose
-to keep that veil, the whole universe is at their command and they guide
-the whole course of universal evolution.
-
-Now of all Avataras one takes upon himself to hold all individuals in
-His bosom, to sustain them all and to make Him the field of their
-Involution and Evolution, in the Kalpa.
-
-He is called Virat Purusha. He is practically the Ishvara of our
-universe.
-
-The body of this Purusha, called the First Avatara, the Second or Virat
-Purusha, and the Egg-born, is formed by the Tatvas, numbered twenty-four
-in the Sankhya philosophy. These Tatvas collect together to form an Egg
-and the Second Purusha breaks forth from that Egg and becomes the
-Thousand-headed Purusha of the Upanishads. For the sake of meditation,
-He is imagined to be seated on the Serpent Ananta. The lotus stalk grew
-out of his navel.
-
-The Tatvas themselves are brought into manifestation by the awaking of
-the First Purusha.
-
-The Second Purusha enters into all beings as their Atma, becoming
-three-fold in his aspect _viz_. Adhi-Atma, Adhi-bhuta and Adhi-deva.
-Then He is called the Third Purusha. Says the Satvata Tantra, as quoted
-by Sridhara: --
-
-"There are three forms of Vishnu known as Purusha -- the first is the
-creator of Mahat, the Second is the permeator of the cosmic Egg, and the
-third is the permeator of all beings." Virat Purusha is the seat af all
-Avataras. Therefore all Avataras are called parts of the Virat Purusha.
-
-Speaking of other Lila Avataras, Bhagavata calls them parts and aspects
-of the Second Purusha; "but Krishna is Bhagavat Himself."
-
-Bhagavat is here the First Purusha. I. 3 XXVIII.
-
-In the Tenth Skandha, Raja Parikshit says: "Tell us the mighty deeds of
-Vishnu, incarnated as a _part_ in the line of Yadu." X. 1 II. Later on
-again: --
-
-"The supreme Purusha, Bhagavat Himself, shall be born in the house of
-Vasudeva." X. 1 XXIII.
-
-The Devas said, addressing Devaki: -- "Rejoice mother, the Supreme
-Purusha, Bhagavat Himself, is in thy womb _by His part_" X. 2 XII.
-
-The Purusha, seated on Ananta, addressed Arjuna and Krishna as Nara and
-Narayana.
-
-The Mahabharata also calls them Incarnations of Nara and Narayana. These
-Rishis are invoked all throughout the Mahabharata. They were the sons of
-Dharma by Murti, daughter of Daksha.
-
-Nara and Narayana are looked upon as two in one and they were adored by
-the Devas, as manifestations of Purusha Himself. (IV. 1 XLVI).
-
-They went after their birth to Gandha Madana. (IV. 1 XLVIII.) It is
-these Rishis, parts of Bhagavat Hari, who have now appeared for the
-removal of her load from the Goddess Earth, as Krishnas, in the lines of
-Yadu and Kuru. (IV. 1 XLIX.)
-
-Krishna in the line of Kuru is Arjuna.
-
-In explaining this Sloka, Sridhara quotes the following from a Vaishnava
-Tantra: --
-
-"In Arjuna, there is only the Avesa (suffusing) of Nara. Krishna is
-Narayana Himself."
-
-Sri Krishna said to Arjuna: -- "I have passed through many births as
-well as thou. I know them all. Not so thou."
-
-This shows that Arjuna was not Nara himself, the supplement of Narayana,
-for in that case he would have remembered his previous births. But, as
-the Tantra says, "Arjuna was possessed by the Nara aspect of the dual
-Rishi."
-
-Sri Krishna said to Devaki: --
-
-"At my first birth, in the Svayam-bhuva Manvantara, thou wert born as
-Prisni and this Vasudeva was named Prajapati Sutapas I was born as your
-son, Prisni-garbha. I was also born of you, when you were Aditi and
-Vasudeva was Kasyapa, as Upendra, also called the Vamana or Dwarf
-Avatara. At this third birth, I am your son again, with the same body."
-X. 3 XXXII. to XLIII.
-
-These are the three Incarnations of Nara Narayana, mentioned in the
-Bhagavata. They are certainly not the many births to which Sri Krishna
-alludes in the Gita. Those many births took place in previous Kalpas of
-which we know nothing. In this Kalpa, however, he appeared at the
-turning points in the Evolution of our universe. He appeared in the
-First Manvantara, the Manvantara of manifestation, as Prisni-garbha. We
-do not know the good done by Him in His first birth.
-
-As Vamana, however, he restored the Triloki to the Devas and asserted
-the supremacy of the spiritual forces.
-
-The Earth was again overpowered by the Asuras. The Kalpa was about to be
-half over. The last struggle was to be made. Satva had to be infused
-into all beings, even into the materials composing them. Every thing in
-the universe was to be wedded to the Lord of Preservation. An upward
-trend was to be given to the whole course of evolution. Materialism
-could not be stamped out all at once. But henceforth there was to be a
-steady fall of Materiality and rise of Spirituality, subject to such
-variations as minor Cycles might cause.
-
-Sri Krishna is therefore the greatest Avatara of our Kalpa. "For the
-good of those that seek Atma, Nara Narayana shall perform Tapas in
-Bharata Varsha, unknown to others, till the end of the Kalpa." V. 19-9
-
-Sri Krishna as Bhagavat is greater than the Second Purusha.
-
-To the devotees, he is greater than the Purusha manifestation.
-
-He now appeared as the preserver of the Universe, the embodiment of
-Satva, the force of ascent. And the Tatvas had to be wedded to him, so
-that they might acquire the energy of higher evolution in them.
-
-Unless there was change in the innate downward tendency of the Tatvas,
-the spiritual ascent of the universe was not possible.
-
-The Lord brought about this change by permeating the whole universe with
-His Satva body, or becoming something like the spiritual soul in every
-being. Therefore Lord Krishna is in the hearts of all beings and can be
-perceived by all in meditation. He is everywhere, in every atom. Whether
-Sri Krishna is Bhagavat Himself or some manifestation of Bhagavat makes
-no difference whatever. By His works, He is Bhagavat. His worshippers
-are bound for the abode of Bhagavat. They have not to wait in Brahma or
-Satya Loka, till the end of Brahma's life. Those who worship. Hiranya
-garbha or Brahma cannot pass beyond the limits of Brahma Loka.
-
-In answer to Raja Parikshit, Suka Deva delineated the Paths to be
-followed after death.
-
-I. The Prompt Path of Liberation (Sadyo Mukti). Those who meditate on
-the abstract Absolute, called Brahma, attain prompt liberation. The
-All-pervading principle is abstracted from the phenomenal universe,
-there is no thought of man, no thought of fellow beings, no thought of
-the universe, there is the pure abstraction by the process of "Not
-this." "Not this" liberates one from all phenomenal connections. This is
-Sadyo Mukti. (II. 2 XV. to XXI.)
-
-II. The Deferred Path of Liberation (Krama Mukti), when one wishes to go
-to Brahma Loka or to the abode of the Siddhas. Where the eight siddhis
-are acquired, he retains the Manas and the Indriyas and goes all over
-the universe of Seven Lokas. II. 2 XXII.
-
-With their Linga Sarira, these Lords of Yoga go inside and outside
-Triloki. II. 2 XXIII.
-
-On their way to Brahma Loka, they are carried by Sushumna first to Agni
-Loka. Then they go to the farthest limit of Triloki, the Sisumara
-Chakra, extending over to Dhruva or the Polar star. II. 2 XXIV.
-
-When at the end of a Kalpa, the Triloki becomes consumed by fire from
-the mouth of Sankarshana, they go to Brahma Loka, which lasts for two
-Pararddhas, and which is adorned by the chariots of great Siddhas. II. 2
-XXVI.
-
-There is no sorrow, no infirmity no death, no pain, no anxiety in Brahma
-Loka. But those who go there are, out of their compassion, afflicted by
-the endless miseries of those that do not know the path. II. 2 XXVII.
-
-Then they pass through the seven Avaranas or covers of the Universe and,
-having the Vehicle of Mula Prakriti only, become full of Bliss and, when
-that Upadhi is destroyed, they obtain absolute bliss and do not return
-again. This is the attainment of the state. II. 2. XXVIII to XXXI.
-
-Those who go to Brahma Loka pass through three different paths.
-
- 1. Those, who come with great merits acquired in life, get posts of
- duty according to their merits in the next Kalpa (_i.e._ they
- become Prajapatis, Lokapalas. Indras and so on.)
- 2. Those who go to Brahma Loka merely by force of their Upasana of
- Hiranya-Garbha become liberated, when Brahma becomes liberated at
- the end of his life ('extending over two Pararddhas.)
- 3. Those that worship Bhagavat pierce the Brahmanda at will, and rise
- to the abode of Vishnu. The Slokas XXVIII to XXXI refer to the
- piercing of Brahmanda by the Bhagavatas. _Sridhara_.
-
-The worshippers of Sri Krishna attain the last state. The deferred path
-of Liberation is the path of all Bhaktas. It is the path of compassion,
-of service. The Bhaktas spurn all sorts of Mukti, even if they be
-offered to them. They become servants of the Lord in the preservation of
-the Universe.
-
-In the Dvaraka Lila, we shall find Sri Krishna, as the greatest Avatara
-of the Kalpa, carrying out His work of Preservation.
-
-The Purana does not speak of the Nara aspect of Sri Krishna as
-manifested in Arjuna. That is the subject matter of the Mahabharata. The
-study of the one is complementary to the study of the other, as the
-study of the Bhagavat is complementary to the study of the Gita. In one,
-we see the Evolution of Man, in the other we see the work of Bhagavat.
-We see in both together the whole of our Lord Sri Krishna.
-
-
-
-THE WIVES.
-
-
-As Lord of the Universe, Sri Krishna became wedded to the eightfold
-energies of Prakriti, His eight principal wives, so that he might
-influence, through them, individuals formed by these divisions of
-Prakritis. These energies are: --
-
- 1. _Rukmini_ or Mula Prakriti, Buddhi.
- 2. _Jamba-vati_ or Mahat, Universal mind.
- 3. _Satya-bhama_ or Ahankara.
- 4. _Kalindi_ or Akasa-Tanmattra, sound, Akasa.
- 5. _Mitra Vinda_ or Vayu-Tanmatra, Touch, Air.
- 6. _Satya_ or _Nagnajiti_, Agni-Tanmatra, Form, Fire.
- 7. _Bhadra_, Ap-Tanmatra, Taste, Water.
- 8. _Lakshana_, Kshiti-Tanmatra, smell, Earth.
-
-The Energies of Prakriti have a double tendency, one of lower
-transformation, of materialisation, of descent and another of higher
-transformation, of spiritualisation, of ascent. Sri Krishna, by His
-Avatarship, attracted to Himself the higher tendency of all the energies
-of Prakriti. This is how he was wedded to all the aspects of Prakriti.
-
-Rukmini is the spiritual energy of Mula Prakriti. Read the talk between
-Krishna and Rukmini (X. 80).
-
-The legend of the Syamantaka jewel is a mysterious one. It was the gift
-of the Sun-God. It used to produce gold every day.
-
-The Hiranya-Garbha Purusha of Vedic Upasana has its seat inside the
-Sun-God. "The Purusha inside Aditya." This Purusha is the Adhi-daiva of
-Bhagavat Gita, as explained by Sankaracharya. All the Devas proceed from
-_Him_. He is the one Deva, also called Prana. (Vide Yajnavalkya's answer
-to Sakala Brihat Aranyaka Upanishad III. 9.) Hiranya is gold.
-Hiranya-garbha is that which has gold in its womb. The Syamantaka jewel
-gave protection against diseases, accidents, and other dangers. These
-are all the results of Hiranya-garbha Upasana. Syamantaka represents
-Hiranyagarbha Upasana.
-
-Sri Krishna wanted that this Upasana should be replaced by the Upasana
-of Ishvara.
-
-The jewel was lost. It was carried away by some religious movement,
-represented as a lion.
-
-Jamba-vat snatched it from the Lion. Jambavat, the bear king, was one of
-the chief allies of Sugriva. He was the oldest in years and the wisest
-in counsel.
-
-"When Vamana stepped over the three Lokas, I made a respectful circuit
-round Him." Ramayana Kishkindha Kanda. Chap. 64-15.
-
-"When Vamana became an Avatara I moved round the earth twenty one times.
-I threw plants into the Sea which yielded Amrita by churning. Now I am
-old." Ramayana Kishkindha Kanda Chap. 65-32.
-
-While Rama was about to ascend to heaven he addressed the old Jambavat,
-as a son of Brahma, and asked him to stay behind till the approach of
-Kali -- Uttara Kanda. Chap. 121-34.
-
-Jambavat represents a very old religious movement, which was out of date
-even in Rama's time.
-
-Hiranyagarbha Upasana became old and a thing of the past. But however
-hoary it might be with years, it was holy with the traditions of the
-Vedas and though Krishna had no direct hand in its disappearance, people
-thought the disappearance was the outcome of His Avatarship. To save His
-reputation, Krishna restored the jewel from Jambavat, but it could not
-long remain in the hands of Satrajit. Vedic Upasana did survive. But it
-survived only in Vedic Sandhya and Gayatri, which were represented by
-Akrura.
-
-Krishna was wedded to Jambavati, the spiritual energy of Mahat.
-
-Satya-bhama is the spiritual energy of Ahankara. She holds the Vina,
-with the seven notes of differentiation. The Vedas proceed from these
-notes and also all departments of knowledge, Satyabhama is the goddess
-of learning.
-
-There is not much to say about the five other principal wives.
-
-The last of these wives, Lakshana, represents the spiritual energy of
-earth. Coming down to earth, we proceed to Naraka, son of Earth. The
-word Naraka literally means Hell, hence gross materiality. We have found
-that the Purana writers place Naraka below the Patalas. Sixteen thousand
-girls representing all earthly and material energies had been snatched
-away by Naraka. They all became wedded to Sri Krishna.
-
-_Vasudeva, Sankarshana, Pradyumna, Aniruddha._
-
-The following correspondences were given by Kapila to his mother
-Devahuti. (III. 26 ).
-
-
- ------------------------------------------------------------------
- _Upasya_ _Adhibhuta_ _Adhyatma_ _Adhideva_
- ------------------------------------------------------------------
- Vasudeva Mahat Chitta Kshetrajna
- ------------------------------------------------------------------
- Sankarsana Ahankara Ahankara Rudra
- ------------------------------------------------------------------
- Aniruddha Manas Manas The Moon god
- ------------------------------------------------------------------
- Pradyumna Buddhi Buddhi Brahma
- ------------------------------------------------------------------
-
-
-_Chitta_ is transparent, without transformation, and calm, even as the
-first state of water. III. 26. XXI.
-
-"Transparent" -- capable of of receiving the image Bhagavat.
-
-"Without transformation" -- without indolence and distraction.
-_Sridhara_
-
-Chitta is the abode of Bhagavat, _i.e._ Bhagavat is perceived by Chitta.
-III. 26. XX.
-
-Differences cause many-sidedness and distraction.
-
-Ahankara Tatva brings differences into manifestation.
-
-Beyond the plane of Ahankara Tatva, is the plane of Mahat.
-
-Mahat literally means big, great, universal.
-
-It is the plane of universal manifestation.
-
-The mind is universal on this plane. As soon as the One Purusha wished
-to be many, Prakriti gave rise to the Mahat transformation and Mahat
-took up the wish to be many. It was one, but it had the potency of
-becoming many. The whole universe that was to manifest itself was
-mirrored in Mahat, and was the subject matter of one thought, the
-thought of one who had the universe for his body. During the period of
-creation, Mahat soon transformed itself into Ahankara, the Tatva of
-differences. Ahankara gave rise to different bodies, different minds and
-different faculties; individuals appeared and they started on separate
-lines of manifestation and of evolution.
-
-On their homeward journey, individuals again reach the plane of Mahat,
-when they rise above all differences, lose all sense of personality and
-carry their experiences to the plane of the Universe. Their thoughts
-then become thoughts of the Universe, guided by one feeling, that of
-compassion for those that remain behind. There is no thought of self, no
-distraction, no impurity, it is all calm and tranquil; such a mind is
-called _Chitta_ by Kapila. This Chitta is the abode of peace, the abode
-of Bhagavat.
-
-Bhagavat, when reflected on Chitta, is VASUDEVA. He is the Purusha
-seated on Ananta.
-
-SANKARSANA is Bhagavat as reflected on Ahankara. He is called Ananta or
-endless, as there is no end of individuals. He is Bhagavat as manifested
-in every individual and may be called, in one sense, the Purusha of
-Individual souls. Balarama is said to be an incarnation of Sankarshana.
-As individuals proceed in their course of life journeys, they become
-crystallised into separate entities, with a strong sense of personality.
-The inner self, the real self, runs the risk of becoming swallowed up by
-the outer self, the Upadhi of individuality. The point is reached, when
-individuals are to be drawn back to their homes, their real selves.
-Therefore Balarama used the plough to draw in others. This is a process
-of destruction. The material nature is gradually destroyed in us.
-Therefore Balarama is also called an incarnation of Rudra or Siva
-according to Vaishnava texts. He is Rudra Himself. The fire from the
-mouth of Sankarshana burns the Triloki at Pralaya. Sankarshana literally
-means "he who draws in completely." The process of Pralaya has already
-set in. The whole process of spiritual ascent is a process of material
-Pralaya. According to some therefore, Vishnu and Siva united to form
-Harihara, at the time of the Great Churning, when this process first set
-in. When individuals throw off their material garb, or when, by Pralayic
-force, their material cover is forcibly removed, they become fit to be
-gathered together and to become merged at Pralaya in the One.
-
-PRADYUMNA is the wish of Bhagavat, as imprinted on the course of
-universal evolution. He is the wish of God. When the one wished to be
-many, He represented that wish and gave the entire turn to the course of
-evolution, that it might adopt itself to that wish. Individuals
-multiplied. Desires became many and all actions became Sakama. Pradyumna
-was then called Kamadeva, the God of Love, or desire.
-
-When the course of descent was arrested, Kamadeva was destroyed by fire
-from the forehead of Siva. He appeared again, but this time he appeared
-as the son of Krishna. The wish of his father now was to be one again,
-for He had already become many, as many as the Karma of the previous
-Kalpa would allow. And Pradyumna had to impress this wish upon
-individuals generally, so that the ascent of matter to spirit might be
-universal.
-
-According to Kapila, Pradyumna is reflected on Buddhi. Buddhi is defined
-by him as that faculty by which objects are perceived. Doubt, false
-understanding, true understanding, memory and sleep, these are the
-indications of that faculty. (III. 26. XXVIII, XXIX).
-
-ANIRUDDHA is the son of Pradyumna. According to Kapila, he is reflected
-on Manas, the faculty of Sankalpa and Vikalpa. Sankalpa in Sankhya
-terminology is the first or general idea of a thing.
-
-Vikalpa is the idea of the peculiarity of a thing. Thus when I cast a
-passing glance at a man, I know nothing of him except that he is a man.
-But when I look at him carefully, I know his peculiarities and can
-differentiate him from others.
-
-The first idea is the idea of a thing in its primity or dawn.
-
-The second idea is the idea of its peculiarities. It is the second idea
-which gives rise to likes and dislikes.
-
-In the course of ascent, we must carry general ideas. We must rise from
-particulars to generals. The mind will thus be freed from the burden of
-personal and material thoughts.
-
-Aniruddha became wedded to Usha or Dawn. He is Bhagavat as perceived by
-Manas.
-
-*END OF THE TENTH SKANDHA.*
-
-
-
-
-THE ELEVENTH SKANDHA
-
-
-
-THE MUSHALA. XI. I.
-
-
-Sri Krishna, with the help of Rama, the Yadavas and the Pandavas, killed
-the Daityas, born as Kings. He made the Pandavas his instruments in the
-great war. When the Kings on both sides and their armies were killed,
-Sri Krishna thought within himself: -- "The pressure is not yet all
-removed from the earth. For these powerful Yadavas, backed by me, have
-become mad with power. I shall bring on disunion among them, which will
-be the cause of their death. Then I can have rest and may go to my own
-abode."
-
-Visva-mitra, Asita, Kanva, Durvasas, Bhrigu, Angiras, Kasyapa, Vamadeva,
-Atri, Vasistha, Narada and other Rishis went to a sacred place called
-Pindaraka near Dvaraka. The Yadava boys were playing among themselves.
-They dressed Samba, son of Jambavati, as a girl and took him to the
-Rishis, saying she was pregnant and inquiring whether she would have a
-son or a daughter. The Rishis could not bear this impertinence and they
-said: -- "O you fools, she will bring forth a _Mushala_ (a pestle) that
-will be the ruin of your line." The boys were terrified. Samba did
-produce an iron pestle. They took the pestle and went home. The boys
-related the story to all the Yadavas. Ahuka, the chief of the clan,
-ordered the pestle to be ground down to powder and the powder to be
-thrown into the Sea. This was done, but a portion remained. That portion
-was also thrown into the Sea. A fish swallowed the iron piece. The fish
-was caught by a fisherman. He made two spears of the iron found in the
-fish. The powdered iron grains were carried by the waves to the coast
-and there they grew into reeds.
-
-
-
-THE BHAGAVATA PATH.
-
-
-*SKANDHA XI. CHAP. 2-5.*
-
-Vasudeva asked Narada about the Path of Bhagavat which leads to Moksha.
-Narada said: --
-
-Of the sons of Rishabha, nine became well-versed in Atma Vidya. They
-were Kavi, Hari, Antariksha, Prabuddha, Pippalayana Avirhotra, Drumila,
-Chamasa, and Kara-bhajana.
-
-The Rishis of Bharata Varsha were performing Yajna at the place of Nimi
-and these nine Rishis went there.
-
- I. Nimi asked the Rishis about the _path of Bhagavat_.
-
-Kavi said: --
-
-The path of Bhagavat consists of such expedients as the Lord mentioned
-Himself (for those that are not wise) for the speedy acquisition of self
-knowledge. In following this Path, man is not overcome by obstacles (as
-in the path of Yoga). He may run along this path even with closed eyes
-without fear of losing his steps (with closed eyes _i.e._ even without
-knowing where he goes and what he does).
-
-(What is the path then?)
-
-Whatever a man does, whether it be the body or speech or mind or the
-senses or intellect or the sense of I-ness that acts, let him offer that
-all up to the Supreme Narayana.
-
-He who is removed from Isvara, (first) forgets (Isvara), (_Asmriti_),
-then there is wrong perception such as "I am the body" (_Viparyaya_).
-This is caused by the Maya of Bhagavat. Fear arises from devotion to the
-Second. Therefore wise men worship the Lord only, with unfailing Bhakti,
-knowing his Guru to be one with Isvara and Atma.
-
-(The Bhagavata School classifies Jivas under two heads -- Antar Mukha
-and Bahir Mukha. Antar Mukha is literally one with his face turned
-inwards _i.e._, one who withdraws himself from the outside world and
-looks to self within, which is only an aspect of Ishvara.
-
-Bahir Mukha Jiva is one with his face turned outwards _i.e._ one who
-withdraws himself from the self-within and therefore from Ishvara. He
-first loses sight of Ishvara, forgets that he (the Jiva) is an aspect of
-Ishvara and that he is not the same as the body. He then considers the
-body as one with himself and concerns himself only with its relations to
-the outside world. This is called forgetting and wrong perception. "Fear
-arises from devotion to the Second." The Second is that which is not
-self. In meditation, the Guru stands between Isvara and self, and is
-Isvara for all practical purposes to the devotee).
-
-The Dvaita (Mayic manifestation), though not existing, appears to exist,
-through the mind of man, like dreams and desires. Therefore wise men
-should control the mind, which gives rise to desires and doubts about
-actions. Then there shall be no fear.
-
-The existence of the outside world and of the body is like the existence
-of dreams and desires. The dream exists for the time being and then
-disappears altogether, The dream has its existence because the mind
-brings it into existence. It is a creation of the mind, not permanently
-attached to the Jiva. So desires are also creations of the mind, not
-permanently attached to the Jiva, But they have got a temporary
-existence. That existence, however, is an existence in the mind of the
-man entertaining the dreams and desires and not outside the mind.
-Therefore the existence is not a real one.
-
-So the body of the Jiva and its surroundings are temporarily attached to
-the Jiva. As the dream vanishes in the wakeful state, so the body and
-its surroundings disappear with the transformation called Death. Body
-after body, surroundings after surroundings, are dreams, as it were, in
-the mind that bears all through the bubbles arising in the ocean of
-Jivic existence.
-
-The realisation of this temporary connection of the body and its
-surroundings is a training for the Antarmukha Jiva, for it enables him
-to turn towards Ishvara and the permanent aspect of Jiva.
-
-The non-existence of Dvaita has always to be understood with reference
-to Jiva or Ishvara, and not _independently_, for the flow of Prakriti is
-eternal. The disregard of this primary idea has given rise to many
-misconceptions. (Then as to Antarmukha practices.) Hear about the
-Incarnations of Vishnu and His blessed deeds, hear about his names full
-of import as to those deeds and Incarnations, hear and sing the songs
-about Him, without any sense of uneasiness as to what others will say.
-Then roam over the earth free from all worldly attachments.
-
-By such practices, and by the recital of His dear names, love for
-Bhagavat grows up. The heart then melts away. The devotee laughs loudly,
-he weeps, he cries aloud, he sings and he dances like a mad man. He
-loses all control over himself.
-
-He salutes Akasa, Vayu, Agni, Water, Earth, the planets, the trees, the
-Seas and all beings as forming the body of his Hari. For he knows
-nothing else.
-
-He, who worships Bhagavat in this way, has Devotion (Bhakti), perception
-of Ishvara (Anubhava) and dispassion (Virakti) -- all three growing at
-one and the same time, as, by eating, one gets pleasure, nutrition and
-satisfaction of hunger all at one and the same time.
-
-The Bhagavata then attains supreme peace.
-
- II. Nimi then asked: "What are the _Characteristics of a Bhagavata_
- and what are the _Signs by which a Bhagavata is known?_"
-
-Hari replied: --
-
-"He who sees in all beings the existence of Bhagavat as in his own self,
-and sees all beings in the Bhagavat within himself is the highest
-Bhagavata.
-
-"He who bears love towards Isvara friendship towards his dependents,
-kindness toward the ignorant, and indifference towards his enemies
-belongs to the next class of Bhagavatas.
-
-"He who worships an image as Hari with faith, but has no regard for
-Bhaktas and for other beings is only a beginner as a Bhakta.
-
-"The highest Bhagavata perceives the objects with his senses, but does
-not feel either aversion or pleasure. He looks upon the universe as the
-Maya of Vishnu.
-
-"By constant meditation on Hari, he is not affected by the changes of
-life. Desires have no place in his mind, so devoted is he to Vasudeva.
-
-_He_ is the favourite of Hari, who does not take pride in his birth,
-Karma, caste or Asrama.
-
-"The highest Bhagavata does not know "Mine" and "Thine," either in
-wealth or in body. He looks upon all beings with equal eyes, His mind is
-always at peace.
-
-"Even for the sake of all the three Lokas, the Vaishnava will not for a
-moment forget the lotus feet of Bhagavat.
-
-"And more, he is the greatest of all Bhagavatas, to whose heart Hari is
-bound down by the tie of Love."
-
- III. Nimi asked: -- "What is then this Maya of the Supreme Lord?"
-
-Antariksha replied: --
-
-"Maya of Bhagavat is that which causes the creation, preservation and
-dissolution of this universe."
-
- IV. Nimi asked: -- "How can one whose mind is not controlled and
- who is of dull understanding easily cross over this Maya?
-
-Prabuddha replied: --
-
-"Have recourse to a Guru, who knows the Truth and is fixed in the
-supreme. Learn the duties of Bhagavatas from him. Practise
-non-attachment, keep company with Sadhus. Be kind to your inferiors,
-friendly to your equals and respectful to your superiors. Keep your body
-and mind pure. Regulate your life by fixed rules. Have forgiveness. Do
-not talk idly. Read the sacred books. Be upright. Be temperate. Be
-harmless to all beings. Bear good and evil, pleasure and pain with
-equanimity. Find out Atma and Ishvara everywhere. Free yourself from all
-connections. Do not bind yourself down to your house. Have that which is
-easily got for your clothing. Be content with anything and everything.
-Have faith in the Bhagavata Sastra, but do not blame any other Sastra.
-Control your mind, speech and actions. Speak the truth. Control your
-inner and outer senses. Hear, recite and meditate on the deeds and
-Avataras of Hari. Let all your exertions be for Him. Offer up all, even
-your wife, children and your own life, to Him. In the company of
-Bhagavatas, interchange devotion and love, remind each other and speak
-to each other of the glory of Bhagavat, till your hair stands on end,
-and you will sometimes dance and sometimes sing, maddened by your
-devotional thoughts about Achyuta.
-
-"These are the duties of a Bhagavata and by practising these, he may
-easily cross over Maya."
-
- V. Nimi asked: -- "How can one be fixed in devotion to Narayana?"
-
-Pippalayana replied: --
-
-"When through the desire of attaining the feet of Vishnu, one has strong
-devotion, the impurities of one's mind are destroyed. When the mind is
-purified, it becomes fixed in Atma."
-
- VI. Nimi asked: -- "Tell me about Karma Yoga, by the performance of
- which Karma is speedily destroyed."
-
-Avirhotra replied: --
-
-"Vedic Karma does not directly lead to Moksha. Offer up your Vedic Karma
-to Ishvara, and perform it, without any worldly attachment, however.
-
-"He who wants speedily to cut asunder the tie of Ahankara shall worship
-Vishnu in the way prescribed in the Tantras or Agama. (Vedic Karma at
-first consisted of Vedic Yajna. The Gita gave a death blow to the
-performance of Vedic Yajnas. _Nishkama_ Karma took the place of _Kamya_
-Karma, The Vedic Karma however survived in the Sandhya Mantras, which
-conform themselves to the Path of Upasana.
-
-"The Vedic Sandhya is however meant only for Brahmanas.
-
-"The Tantric Sandhya is an imitation of the Vedic Sandhya, adapted to
-all classes of men, and it supplements the Vedic Sandhya by laying down
-a method of worshipping the Lord in the heart and of worshipping His
-image. Mantras are also prescribed. Devotion is the chief element in
-Tantric Upasana and this Upasana is enjoined for all Bhagavatas or
-Vaishnavas. There are Siva Tantras, Sakti Tantras, Ganapati Tantras,
-Surya Tantras as well as Vaishnava Tantras. There are black rites
-prescribed in some of the Sakti Tantras and the Tantras have therefore
-got a bad name with many. But the Tantras as a whole form the only
-science of practical occultism in Sanskrit, and the Vaishnava Upasana is
-strictly a Tantric Upasana."
-
-(I do not enter here into the details of that Upasana, though some
-details are given in the text.)
-
- VII. Nimi said: -- "Tell me about the _Avataras_ and Their deeds O
- Rishis." Drumila gave a short account of the Avataras,
- commencing from the First Purusha. As this is nearly a
- repetition of what has been said before, no attempt is made to
- reproduce it.
- VIII. Nimi asked what is the _destiny of those that do not worship
- Bhagavat, those that have no control over their mind and their
- senses_.
-
-Chamasa replied: -- "They enter the regions of darkness (Tamas)."
-
- IX. Nimi asked:
-
-"What is the Color of the manifestation of Bhagavat at each period, how
-does he manifest Himself, by what name is He known and in what way is He
-worshipped?"
-
-Karabhajana replied: --
-
-"In Satya Yuga, Bhagavat becomes white, with four hands, with tufts of
-braided hair, with bark round His waist. He bears a black deer-skin, the
-sacred thread and beads, and has Danda (the rod of an ascetic) and
-Kamandalu (the water-pot of an ascetic) in his hands. (_i.e._ He looks
-like a Brahmacharin).
-
-"Men are then peaceful and friendly towards one another. There are no
-differences amongst them. They worship the Lord by means of Tapas, by
-control of the senses and of the mind.
-
-"Bhagavat is then known by the following names: -- Hansa, Suparna,
-Vaikuntha, Dharma, Yogesvara, Amala, Isvara, Purusha, Avyakta, and
-Paramatman.
-
-"In Treta, Bhagavat becomes Red. He has four hands and golden hair. His
-form is that of Yajna. Men are pious at the time. They worship Bhagavat
-by Vedic Yajna.
-
-"Bhagavat is known by the following names: --
-
-"Vishnu, Yajna, Prism-garbha, Sarvadeva, Uru-krama, Vrisha Kapi, Jayanta
-and Urugaya.
-
-"In Dvapara, Bhagavat is _Syama_. (The word Syama ordinarily means
-dark-blue. But Sridhara explains the word here as the color of an Atasi
-flower, which is generally yellow. This is because the Bhagavat speaks
-before of white, red, yellow and black as the colors of Yuga Avataras.)
-His cloth is yellow.
-
-"Men worship Him both by Vedic and Tantric methods.
-
-"Vasudeva, Sankarshana, Pradyumna, Aniruddha, Narayana, Visvesvara and
-Visva are his names.
-
-"In Kali, worship is made according to the Tantras, which are various.
-
-"Bhagavat is black (Krishna). Men worship Him, His Symbols and
-attendants mostly by loud recitals of names and prayers (Sankirtana).
-Wise men praise Kali because worship is so easily made by mere
-Sankirtana. Even men in Satya Yuga wish to be born in Kali Yuga."
-
-Nimi respected the nine Rishis and they disappeared in the presence of
-all men.
-
-Vasudeva and Devaki heard this story from Narada. They realised Krishna
-as Isvara and they acquired wisdom.
-
-
-
-KRISHNA AND UDDHAVA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA XI. CHAP. 6.*
-
-Brahma and other Devas went to Dvaraka. Addressing Krishna; Brahma said:
--- "All that we prayed for has been done. One hundred and twenty-five
-years have passed away since thou didst appear in the line of Yadus.
-That line is also well nigh extinguished. Now go back to thy own abode,
-if it pleases thee."
-
-Sri Krishna replied: -- "The extinction of the Yadavas has been set on
-foot by the curse of the Rishis. I shall remain on Earth, till it is
-completely brought about." There were unusual phenomena at Dvaraka. The
-elders came to Krishna. He proposed a pilgrimage to Prabhasa. So the
-Yadavas made preparations for going to Prabhasa. Uddhava saw the evil
-portents and he heard what Sri Krishna said. "I see, O Lord," said he to
-Sri Krishna, "thou shalt leave this earth, as soon as the Yadus are
-destroyed. I can not miss thy feet even for half a moment. So take me to
-thy own abode."
-
-Sri Krishna replied: -- "It is true as you say. My mission is fulfilled.
-The Devas ask me to go back. The Yadavas shall be killed by mutual
-quarrel. On the seventh day from this, the sea shall swallow up this
-seat of Dvaraka. As soon as I leave this earth, Kali shall overtake it
-and men shall grow unrighteous. It will not then be meet for you to
-remain here. Give up all and free yourself from all attachments and roam
-about over this earth, with your mind fixed on me, looking on all beings
-with equal eyes. Whatever is perceived by the senses and the mind, know
-all that to be of the mind, and so Mayic and transitory. "This is this"
-and "this is that" this conception of difference is only a delusion of
-him whose mind is distracted (_i.e._ not united to Me). It is this
-delusion which causes experiences of right and wrong. It is for those
-that have got notions of right and wrong that (the Vedas speak)
-differently of the performance of prescribed work (Karma), the
-non-performance of prescribed work (Akarma), and the performance of
-prohibited work (Vikarma). (This has reference to Varna and Asrama
-duties. As long as a man identifies himself with some Varna or Asrama he
-looks upon others also as belonging to some Varna or Asrama. He
-therefore makes a distinction between men and men. The Varnasrama duties
-are prescribed by the Vedas for a man, so long as he entertains ideas of
-difference. When he looks equally upon a Brahmana and a Chandala, when
-he finds his Lord every where and finds all beings in the Lord within
-himself, he becomes a man of the Universe, a Bhagavata. For him the
-Vedas do not make any rule. He is above all rules and restrictions. But
-the Varnasrama duties are to be respected, so long as one makes any
-difference between man and man.) Control thy senses and control thy
-mind. See the wide-spread Universe in thyself and see thyself in Me, the
-Lord. Learn and digest all that is given in the scriptures. Contented
-with self perception, the very self of all other beings, you shall have
-no danger from others. You will do no wrong but not because it is
-prohibited by the Scriptures, and you will do what is prescribed but not
-because it is so prescribed (_i.e._ the sense of right and wrong will be
-natural in you, independently of Sastric teachings.) You will exceed the
-limits of both right and wrong and do things just like a child. The
-friend of all beings, calm and quiet at heart, fixed in wisdom and
-direct knowledge, you will see the Universe full of Me and you will not
-be drawn back to births."
-
-Uddhava said: --
-
-"Lord of Yoga, what thou sayest for my final bliss is a complete
-renunciation of all worldly attachments. It seems to me however that the
-giving up of desires is not possible for those that have their mind
-filled with the object world, unless they are completely devoted to
-Thee.
-
-"I have not yet got over the sense of 'I' and 'Mine.' Tell me how I can
-easily follow out Thy teachings."
-
-Sri Krishna replied: --
-
-"Generally those men that are skilful in discrimination rescue self from
-worldly desires by means of self, (_i.e._ they may do so, even without
-the help of a Guru, by means of self discrimination.) Self is the
-instructor of self, specially in man (Purusha.)" (Even in animals,
-preserving instincts proceed from self. So self is the instructor.
-_Sridhara_) "For it is self that finds out final bliss by direct
-perception and by inference. Wise men, well versed in Sankhya and Yoga,
-look upon Me as Purusha pervading all beings, and possessing all powers.
-(This is according to Sridhara, the direct perception by which final
-bliss is attained. The word Purusha here has something like the sense of
-a Monad in Theosophical literature. The passage quoted by Sridhara from
-the Upanishads to illustrate the idea of Purusha also shews this.) There
-are many habitations created for life manifestation, some, with one,
-two, three or four feet, some with many feet and some with no foot. Of
-these, however, that of man (Pourushi) is dear to me. For in this form
-of Man those that are fixed in meditation truly find me out, the Lord,
-though beyond all objects of perception, by the indications of perceived
-attributes as well as by inferences from the same." (_Indications_.
-Buddhi, Manas and others, the perceived attributes, are in their nature
-manifestless. The manifestation is not possible except through one that
-is self manifest. Therefore Buddhi and others point to Him.
-
-_Inferences_. Whenever there is an instrument, there is some one to use
-it. Buddhi and others are instruments. There is therefore one who guides
-these. _Sridhara_.) In this matter of self instruction, hear the story
-of an Ava-dhuta (an ascetic who renounces all worldly attachments and
-connections.)
-
-
-
-SELF-INSTRUCTION.
-
-
-*SKANDHA XI. CHAP. 7-9.*
-
-Yadu asked an Ava-dhuta how he could get that clear spiritual vision, by
-which he was able to give up all attachments, and roam like a child in
-perfect bliss.
-
-The Ava-dhuta replied: --
-
-I have many Gurus, O king -- Earth, Air, Akasa, Water, Fire, the Moon,
-the Sun, the pigeon, the huge serpents, the ocean, the insect, the bee,
-the elephant, the collector of honey, the deer, the fish, Pingala, the
-osprey, the child, the maid, the maker of arrows, the serpent, the
-spider and the wasp. These are my twenty four Gurus.
-
-Though oppressed by the elements, the Earth does not deviate from her
-path, as she knows that they are only guided by the divine law. This
-forbearance I have learned from the Earth. I have learned from the
-mountain (which is a part of the Earth) that all our desires should be
-for the good of others and that our very existence is for others and not
-for self. I have learned entire subordination to other's interests from
-the trees (also part of the Earth).
-
-I have learned from the vital air, that one should be content only with
-such things as keep up the life and should not care about the objects of
-the senses. (The sage should keep up his life so that his mind be not
-put out of order and his mental acquisitions lost; but at the same time
-he should not be attached to the objects of the senses, so that his
-speech and mind be not disturbed.)
-
-Though placed in the midst of the objects with different attributes, the
-Yogi should not be attached to them. This I have learned from the
-outside air. The soul enters the body and the bodily attributes seem its
-own, but it is not so. The air is charged with smell, but the smell is
-no attribute of air.
-
-Atma is all pervading and it is not affected by the body and bodily
-attributes. This I have learned from Akasa which, though all pervading,
-seems to be conditioned by clouds and other objects.
-
-Transparency, agreeability and sweetness, I have learned from water. The
-sage purifies others like water.
-
-Powerful in knowledge and glowing with asceticism, the sage receiving
-all things does not take their impurities even as fire.
-
-Fire eats the sacrificial ghee when offered to it and consumes the sins
-of the offerer. The sage eats the food offered to him by others but he
-burns up their past and future impurities.
-
-Fire is one though it enters fuels of various sorts.
-
-One Atma pervades all beings, however different they may appear by the
-action of Avidya.
-
-Birth, death, and other affections are states of the body, not of Atma.
-The moon looks full, diminished and gone, though it is the same in all
-these states.
-
-The sun draws water by its rays and gives it all away in time. The sage
-takes in order to give, and not in order to add to his own possessions.
-
-The sun reflected on different surfaces appears to the ignorant as many
-and various. The Atma in different bodies, even appears as such.
-
-Too much attachment is bad. This I have learned from a pair of pigeons.
-They lived in a forest. One day they left their young ones in the nest
-and went about in search of food for them. When they returned they found
-the young ones netted by a hunter. The mother had too much affection for
-the young ones. She fell into the net of her own accord. The father also
-followed suit and the hunter was pleased to have them all without any
-exertion of his own.
-
-The huge Ajagara serpent remains where he is and is content with
-whatever food comes to him.
-
-The sage is calm and deep, not to be fathomed or measured. He is
-limitless (as the unconditioned self is manifested in him). He is not to
-be disturbed even like the tranquil ocean. The ocean may receive volumes
-of water from the rivers at times or may receive no water at other
-times. But it remains the same, even as the sage at all times.
-
-He who is tempted by woman is destroyed like an insect falling into
-fire.
-
-The bee takes a little from every flower. The Sanyasi should take only a
-little from each Grihastha, so that the Grihastha may not suffer.
-
-The bee extracts honey from all flowers big or small. The Sage should
-extract wisdom from all Sastras big or small. Do not store anything for
-the evening or for the morrow. Have only so much for your _bhiksha_
-(alms given to a Sanyasi) as may suffice for one meal. The bee is killed
-for his storing.
-
-The Bhikshu shall not touch a woman though made of wood, even with his
-feet. The elephant is shewn a female and is drawn into a trap. The woman
-is the death of the sage. He should never approach her. The elephant
-seeking a female is killed by stronger elephants.
-
-The miser neither gives nor enjoys his riches. What ever he collects
-with difficulty is carried away by some one else. The collector of honey
-carries away the honey collected by others. He does not make it by his
-own effort. The Sanyasi without any effort of his own gets food from the
-Grihasthas, as it is their duty to feed him.
-
-Do not hear vulgar songs. The deer is attracted by songs and is
-entrapped.
-
-The love of taste is to be conquered above all, for it is most difficult
-to conquer. When the sense of taste is controlled, all other senses are
-controlled. The fish is killed when tempted by the bait.
-
-Pingla, a courtesan of Videha waited the whole day for some lover who
-might come and make presents to her, with breathless expectation. The
-night approached and she grew restless She then thought within herself:
--- "For what a trifle, am I so uneasy. Why not seek Ishvara, the eternal
-giver of all pleasures and all desires." She gave up all hopes and
-expectations that troubled her ere long and became happy. She had good
-sleep in the night. It is hope that gives us trouble. Without hope we
-are happy.
-
-When the bird kurara (osprey) gets some flesh to eat, the stronger birds
-kill him. He is happy when he renounces the flesh. Renunciation of dear
-objects is good for the sage.
-
-The child has no sense of honor or dis-honor. It has not the thoughts of
-a man of the world. It is self content and it plays with self. I roam
-about like the child. The child is however ignorant, but the sage
-crosses the limits of the Gunas.
-
-Some people came to select a bride. The maid was alone in the house. She
-received the men who came. She went to a solilary place to beat off the
-impurities of the rice for their meal. She had shell-made bracelets on
-her wrists. These made a great noise. She felt disgust and broke the
-bracelets one by one, till only one remained on each hand. When there
-are two or more at one place, they cause a jarring sound, and they
-quarrel. I have therefore earned solitariness from the maid.
-
-I have learned concentration of mind from the maker of arrows.
-
-The serpent has no home. It roams in solitude. So do I.
-
-Narayana draws in the whole creation at the end of the Kalpa and becomes
-one, the resort of all.
-
-By Kala Sakti, the thread, Mahat, first comes out and the universe is
-again brought into manifestation. The spider brings the thread out of
-himself, spreads out the web and devours it himself.
-
-(There is a kind of wasp, which catches a particular insect and carries
-it into a hole. It is supposed that the insect assumes the form of the
-wasp through fear.) When either through affection, hatred, or fear, a
-man throws his whole heart upon some object and the mind holds it fast,
-he attains the form of that object. I have learned this from the wasp.
-
-Thus I have learned from my Gurus, My own body is also my Guru. I have
-learned from it dispassion and discrimination. The body is born only to
-die. Constant misery is its lot. I know the truths, by a discriminative
-study of the body. Still I regard it as not mine and so I feel no
-attachment for it (The body belongs to the dogs and jackals who devour
-it after death. _Sridhara_.)
-
-What does not a man do for the enjoyment of the body -- but it comes to
-an end after all, having created the germs of another body.
-
-The possessor of the body is now drawn away by this sense, now by that
-sense, now by this action now by that action. The senses suck his very
-life blood, even as the many wives of one husband.
-
-The Lord created vegetable and animal bodies. But he was not satisfied
-with them. For the human body only has the power to perceive Brahman.
-
-Therefore after many births, when the human body is once attained, one
-should strive promptly for his supreme bliss.
-
-Yadu heard these words of wisdom, and he gave up all attachments.
-
-
-
-ATMA A REFUTATION OF THE SCHOOL OF JAIMINI.
-
-
-*SKANDHA XI. CHAP. 10.*
-
-Sri Krishna continued: --
-
-(Self-study is the first stage. It leads to the power of discrimination.
-Without self study no progress is possible. Therefore Sri Krishna speaks
-of it as an essential condition. He then goes on to the next stage of
-preparation.)
-
-"Subject to what I have said as to one's own duties (in Pancha Ratra and
-other Vaishnava works; _Sridhara_) and knowing me to be the final
-resort, you should dispassionately follow the Varna-Asrama and family
-duties. (But how is dispassion possible?) With the mind purified by the
-performance of duties, reflect on this that worldly men take up things,
-thinking them to be real but the end shews that they are not so.
-
-"Objects of desire are unreal, as their perception as separate entities
-is caused by the senses and they are altogether sense-made. Even they
-are as unreal as dreams and fancy, both caused by the mind."
-
-(Actions are fourfold, (1) those that have the fulfilment of selfish
-desires for their object or Kamya Karma, (2) those that are prohibited
-by the Scriptures or Nishiddha Karma, (3) those that are required to be
-daily performed or Nitya Karma, (4) those that are required to be
-performed on certain occasions or Naimittika.
-
-The first two are Pravritta or selfish Karma. The last two are Nivritta
-or unselfish Karma. The Smritis say that those who want Moksha or
-liberation must not perform Pravritta Karma. But they should perform
-Nitya and Naimittika Karma, as their non-performance might give rise to
-obstacles.) Perform Nivritta Karma and being devoted to Me, give up all
-Pravritta Karma. But when you fully enter the path of wisdom, then you
-need not care much even for Nivritta Karma. Constantly practise Yama.
-Being fixed on Me, you may sometimes practise Niyama (Yama and Niyama
-are detailed in the 19th chapter.)
-
-"Devotedly follow one Guru, who knows Me and is full of Me, being calm
-and quiet at heart.
-
-"Be humble and unenvious, active, free from the sense of "Mineness",
-strong in friendship (towards the Guru. _Sridhara_) not over-zealous,
-eager to know the truths and free from malice. Do not indulge in idle
-talk. Be indifferent to wife, son, house, land, relations, riches and
-all other things, for Atma is the same every where and its working is
-the same in all bodies.
-
-"This Atma is neither the gross body nor the subtle body. It is the self
-illumined seer. Fire that illuminates and burns is separate from the
-fuel that is illuminated and burnt.
-
-"The fuel has beginning and end. It is big and small. It is of various
-kinds. The fire that pervades it is limited by the nature of the fuel.
-So Atma which is separate from the body bears the attributes of the
-body.
-
-"The birth and re-birth of the Jiva have their origin in the gross and
-the subtle body, which are the outcome of the Gunas, subordinated by
-Isvara. The knowledge of Atma (as separate from the body) cuts off the
-course of rebirths.
-
-"Therefore by seeking after knowledge fully realise that Atma in self is
-separate and is beyond the body. Then by degrees do away with a sense of
-reality in respect of the gross and the subtle body.
-
-"The preceptor is the lower piece of wood used for kindling the sacred
-fire. The pupil is the upper piece of wood. The teachings form the
-middle portion of the wood where the stroke is made. Vidya is the
-pleasing fire that comes out. (The pupil by constant questioning should
-extract the fire of wisdom from the Guru _i.e._ one should learn Atma
-Vidya from his Guru.)
-
-"The pure wisdom that is thus acquired from the Guru shakes off the Maya
-that is begotten of the Gunas. It burns up the Gunas themselves, which
-constitute this universe of re-incarnation and then it ceases of itself.
-The fire consumes the fuel first and then it is extinguished of itself.
-
-"Or if you think that the doers of actions, their pleasures and pains,
-the enjoyers and sufferers (Jivatmas or Egos) are many and that the
-place and time of enjoyment and suffering, and the scriptures relating
-thereto and to the enjoyer or sufferer are all alike not constant."
-
-(We have found in the former slokas that Atma is one and constant. It is
-self manifest and it is conciousness itself. When we speak of Atma as
-the Doer, the Enjoyer and so on these attributes really relate to the
-body which forms the phenomenal basis of Atma. Every thing else besides
-Atma is transitory and formed of Maya. It has been therefore said that
-one should free himself from all attachments and should attain
-liberation by the knowledge of Atma. This is the conclusion arrived at
-by a reconciliation of all the Srutis. But there is another school, that
-of Jaimini, which arrives at a different conclusion. To remove all
-doubts whatsoever, the author refers to it for the sake of refutation.
-The followers of Jaimini deem Jivatmas -- the doers and enjoyers in all
-beings to be essentially separate and many. According to them, Atma is
-known by the feeling of "I-ness." Now this feeling is different in
-different bodies. "I am the doer" "I am the enjoyer" every one feels
-this separately for himself. There is no one Parmatma, which is the
-essence of all these Jivatmas and which is above all transformations.
-Therefore freedom from attachments or dispassion is not possible. You
-may think, that the enjoyments are transitory, and so also that the time
-and place of enjoyment, the scriptures that enjoin them, and the
-_enjoying_ Atma itself are not constant. Hence you may justify
-dispassion. But all this is not a fact. This is the argument of the
-followers of Jaimini. _Sridhara_.)
-
-"And if you consider that all substances are constant by the eternal
-flow of their existence and that consciousness grows and is separate
-according to the difference in every particular form." (According to the
-followers of Jaimini there is no break in the objects of enjoyment nor
-are they formed of Maya. All substances perpetually exist by the
-constancy of their flow. They say that there was no time, when the
-Universe was not what it is. Therefore there is no maker of the
-Universe, no Ishvara. And the Universe is not a delusion -- Maya. It is
-what it appears to be. There is no one and constant consciousness of
-which the essence is Atma. "This pot" "this cloth" -- Our consciousness
-grows by the process of perceiving these differences. Therefore
-consciousness is not constant and it has separate forms. The hidden
-purport is this. Atma is not absolute consciousness itself, but it is
-transformed into consciousness. But you can not say, because it is
-subject to transformation, therefore it is transient. For it has been
-said authoritatively that its transformation into consciousness does not
-interfere with its eternity. Therefore for the purpose of liberation
-(Mukti), Atma can not transform itself without the help of the senses
-&c. And if Atma attains liberation, in the state of jada (or
-unconsciousness) nothing is gained. Therefore the best path to follow is
-that of Pravritti or Inclination and not that of Nivritti or
-Disinclination. _Sridhara_. The above commentaries of Sridhara form one
-of the best expositions of the philosophy of Jaimini. Only the last
-passage requires a little elucidation. Atma in itself is not
-consciousness. Its transformation into consciousness is its highest
-evolution or Mukti. Now this transformation is caused by the perception
-of objects, it is made complete by the perception of all objects and it
-is made constant by a constant desire for all objects. This object, or
-that object may vanish, this man or that woman may die, this flower or
-that flower may perish, but there is no time when the objects as a class
-do not exist, when there is no enjoyer, no object to be enjoyed. So
-there is a constancy in the desires. Therefore one must form
-attachments, have desires, that Atma be made fully conscious. But if
-Atma be left to itself, it will remain Jada or unconscious. There is
-nothing to be gained by this. Therefore one should persistently follow
-the path of desires as laid down in the Karma Kanda of the Vedas,
-analysed by Jaimini in his Purva Mimansa. One should not give up Vedic
-Karma and selfish desires as he is taught to do in the Jnana Kanda of
-the Vedas, the Upanishads, as analysed by Vyasa in his Uttara Mimansa,
-and as expounded by Sri Krishna in the Bhagavat Gita. It must be
-remembered that this philosophy of Karma, so effectually refuted by Sri
-Krishna, was suited to the materialistic cycle of evolution, when Rajas
-had to be sought rather than put down. The minerals and vegetables were
-unconscious. The animals shewed a slight development in consciousness.
-But the full development was in Man. And this was due to the pursuit of
-the Path of Inclination or Pravritti Marga up to a late period in the
-past history of the Universe. Notwithstanding the attacks of Sri
-Krishna, the school of Jaimini had its followers till the time of Sri
-Sankaracharya, when Mandana Misra the most learned Pandit of the time,
-was its chief exponent. After his memorable defeat by Sri Sankaracharya
-the Mimansakas fell into disrepute and Vedic Karma became a thing of the
-past.)
-
-"Granting all that, O dear Uddhava, all Atmas have constantly their
-births and other states, by connection with the body and by reason of
-the divisions of time." (_i.e._ though you may say that Atma itself is
-transformed, still you can not deny that the transformations take place
-by its connection with the body and that they are brought about by
-time.)
-
-"It follows then that the doer of actions, the enjoyer of joys and the
-sufferer of sorrows is dependent on other things." (For Atma is
-dependent upon the body and upon time for its highest transformation.
-Sridhara says if Atma is the doer and enjoyer, why should it do wrong
-acts and suffer sorrows if it were independent. Therefore Atma must be
-dependent according to the Mimansakas). Now who in seeking his greatest
-good would worship one that is dependent on others?
-
-"(Do not say that those who know Vedic karma thoroughly are always happy
-and only those that do not know that are unhappy. For it is found that
--- _Sridhara_) even wise men sometimes have no happiness and the
-ignorant have no misery. Therefore it is mere vanity (to speak about
-Karma). Even if (the followers of the path of Pravritti) know how to
-gain happiness and destroy misery, they certainly do not know the means
-by which they can get over death. And when death is near at hand, what
-objects of desire can give joy? What can please the victim that is
-carried to the place of sacrifice? (This is so far as this life is
-concerned. Then as to life after death). What you hear about Svarga
-life, even that is as bad as the life we lead on this earth. For in
-Svarga, there is jealousy, there is fault finding, there are
-inequalities and consequent uneasiness, and there is a finality in the
-enjoyments and the desires are full of obstacles, even as agriculture is
-and so after all even Svarga is of no good. When the Vedic Karma is
-properly performed without any obstacle whatsoever, hear how the
-performer of Karma loses the place acquired by his Karma. He makes
-offerings to Indra and other Devas by the performance of Yajna and he
-goes after death to Svarga. There he enjoys heavenly objects like the
-Devas, objects acquired by his own Karma. He moves in white chariots the
-acquisitions of his own merits, among Deva girls and is adored; by the
-Gandharvas. The chariot moves at his will. It is adorned by small bells.
-He whiles away his time with the Deva girls in the gardens of Svarga and
-he does not know his own fall. But he remains in Svarga only so long as
-his merit is not exhausted. And when the merit is run out, down falls
-the man by the force of time, even against his will. (The above is the
-course after death of those who perform Kamya Karma, according to Vedic
-rules. This is one way of following Pravritti Marga. There is another
-way -- the following up of one's own inclinations, in disregard of the
-Vedic rules. The next Sloka refers to the performers of prohibited
-Karma). And if again a man indulges in the prohibited acts, through evil
-company, if his senses are not controlled, and if in consequence, he is
-passionate indiscriminate, greedy, excessively fond of women, and unkind
-to other beings, if the man kills animals wantonly and worships Pretas
-and Bhutas, he goes, driven by the law, to the Narakas and finds there
-intense Tamas.
-
-"Therefore karma (selfish actions) ends in unhappiness. By performing
-karma with the body, men seek the body again. What happiness is there in
-the possession of this transitory body? The Lokas and Lokapalas have to
-fear me, they who live for one full day of Brahma. Even Brahma who lives
-for 2 Parardhas has fear of me."
-
-(Therefore Pravritti Marga leads to evil. It should be shunned and
-Nivritti Marga should be adopted. This is the purport. _Sridhara_).
-
-(Now Sri Krishna goes on to refute the first two assumptions (1) that
-Atma is the doer and (2) that Atma is the enjoyer). The Gunas create
-actions and the Gunas lead the Gunas. (The Gunas are Satva, Rajas and
-Tamas. These primal attributes of Prakriti give rise to all her
-manifestations. The Indriyas, the senses, and the mind are Satvic and
-Rajasic transformations of the Ahankara manifestation of Prakriti. So
-they are the Gunas first referred to. The senses and the mind create
-actions. Our actions are all prompted by them and not by Atma. So Atma
-is not the doer. It may be said however that the senses and the mind are
-guided by Atma. But it is not so. The primal attributes (Gunas) lead the
-senses and the mind (Gunas). If Satva prevails in a man his actions are
-Satvic and so on. It is the nature of the Prakritic transformations of a
-man that determines his actions. This is only an elaboration of
-Sridhara's notes.)
-
-The Jiva enjoys the fruits of Karma, being connected with the Gunas (The
-enjoyment by Jiva is also due to its phenomenal basis. "Connected with
-the Gunas" _i.e._ connected with the senses and other Prakritic
-elements. Jivatma dwells in the body. When the house falls down, he
-occupies another house. When the houses are merely halting stations in
-his long journey, he does not care much for the house itself, he does
-not identify himself with the house. So when Jivatma becomes indifferent
-to the body, it is not affected by the changes of the body. When a house
-burns, the dweller in the house feels pain. When the house is
-comfortable, the dweller in the house feels pleasure. His connection
-with the house is however temporary.)
-
-As long as there is difference in the Gunas (i. e, Guna transformations,
-Ahankara &c.), so long there is plurality in Atma. As long as there is
-plurality so long is it dependent on others. (The difference in Jivatmas
-or individuals, is not due to any difference in Atma, but to differences
-in the Guna transformations which give rise to the body. Dependence is
-also an accompaniment of those transformations),
-
-So long as Jiva is dependent on others it has fear from Ishvara. Those
-that worship the Guna transformations are given up to sorrow and they
-become deluded.
-
-
-
-BONDAGE AND LIBERATION.
-
-
-*SKANDHA XI. CHAP. 11.*
-
-Uddhava asked: --
-
-"Atma dwells in the transformations of the Gunas forming the body. Why
-should it not be bound down by the Gunas. Or if Atma is free (like
-Akasa) why should it be at all in bondage? What are the indications of
-Atma in bondage and of liberated Atma? Is Atma ever in bondage? (for
-connection with the Gunas is eternal. _Sridhara_) or ever in liberation
-(for if liberation is a state to be acquired, Atma can not be permanent.
-_Sridhara_)"
-
-Sri Krishna replied: --
-
-"Bondage and liberation are terms applied to Me not with reference to my
-real self, but with reference to My Gunas (the Guna limitations, Satva,
-Rajas and Tamas that are subordinate to me. _Sridhara_). The Gunas have
-their origin in Maya. Therefore I have neither liberation nor bondage.
-
-"Sorrow and delusion, joy and grief, even the attainment of body --
-these are all due to Maya. The dream is only an illusory form of the
-mind, even so the course of births is not real. Vidya and Avidya both
-proceed from My Maya, O Uddhava. I am one and the Jiva is only my part
-(as the ray is of the sun). The bondage of Jiva is caused by Avidya and
-its liberation by Vidya. This is eternally so. Now I shall tell you the
-different indications of the imprisoned and the liberated Jiva. (The
-difference is twofold: that between Jiva and Isvara and that amongst the
-Jivas themselves. The author first speaks of the former. _Sridhara._)
-Jiva and Isvara though of different attributes dwell in the same body.
-They are two birds like each other (for both are manifestations of
-conciousness), companions that have made a nest for themselves (the
-heart), in the tree of body, of their own free will.
-
-"Of these one (the Jiva) eats the fruits of the tree. The other (Isvara)
-though not a partaker of the fruits is the mightier of the two. For He
-who does not partake of the fruits is the knower of self as of others.
-But the partaker of fruits is not so. He (Jiva) who is joined with
-Avidya is always imprisoned. He (Ishvara) who is joined with Vidya is
-always liberated. (Maya of Ishvara or Vidya does not throw a veil round
-and does not delude). The "conscious" are two in every individual. The
-consciousness of Isvara is universal. Jivatma however takes upon himself
-the limitations of individuality and becomes the conscious centre in
-every man. "I perceive" "I conceive" "I do," that "I" is Atma limited by
-the sense of individuality. The perception and conceptions are of
-Jivatma and he is the partaker of the fruits. This "Jiva" element in an
-individual is in bondage. But the Isvara element in him is always
-liberated. And Jiva becomes liberated, when the individual limitation is
-withdrawn).
-
-"(Now the difference amongst Jivas liberated and imprisoned).
-
-"The liberated (Jiva) though dwelling in the body does not dwell in it
-as it were, even like one aroused from dream. (The awakened man
-remembers his dream body, but realises it as unreal, So the liberated
-Jiva looks upon his body as unreal or a temporary halting station, not a
-part of his own self). The ignorant identifies himself with the body,
-like the man in dream.
-
-"The senses perceive the objects of the senses. The Gunas perceive the
-Gunas. The wise (Jiva) does not identify self with these. He is
-therefore not distracted.
-
-"The ignorant, however, while dwelling in this body brought about by
-prior Karma, in which the senses act, thinks that he is the doer and
-becomes thus bound down.
-
-"The wise one sees with disgust that the actions of others bind him.
-Sleeping, sitting, walking or bathing, seeing, touching, smelling,
-eating or hearing, the wise (Jiva) does not bind himself like the
-ignorant, for in those acts, he realises that the Gunas (senses)
-perceive (and not his self). He dwells in the body, but is not attached
-to it, like the Akasa, the sun and the air. (Space is in all things, but
-the things form no part of space. The sun becomes reflected in water,
-but is not attached to water. The air moves about all around, but does
-not become attached to any thing). By the force of dispassion, the
-vision becomes clear. All doubts are removed. And the wise (Jiva) rises
-as it were from sleep, and withdraws himself from the diversities (of
-body and other material objects).
-
-"The Jiva whose Pranas, Indriyas, Manas and Buddhi function without the
-promptings of self-centred desires is freed from the attributes of the
-body though dwelling in the body.
-
-"Whether injured by others or adored the liberated Jiva is not affected
-in the least. He neither praises nor blames others for their good or bad
-deeds or words. He knows no merits nor demerits. He looks on all with an
-equal eye. He does not do anything, he does not say anything, he does
-not think on any thing, good or bad. He is self-entranced and moves like
-a sense-less being (Jada).
-
-"If a man well-versed in the Vedas is not fixed in the Supreme, his
-labour becomes fruitless like that of a man who keeps a breeding cow
-that bears no calf. A cow that does not give milk, an unchaste wife, a
-body that is under the control of others, an undutiful son, wealth that
-is not given to the deserving and words that do not relate to me: he
-only keeps these whose lot is misery.
-
-"With discrimination such as this do away with the notion of diversity
-in self. Then fix your purified mind in Me, who am all pervading, and
-desist from everything else.
-
-"If you can not fix your mind in Me, then offer up all your actions
-unconditionally to Me. Hear with faith the words that relate to Me. Sing
-of Me, meditate on my deeds and Incarnations. Imitate these. Whatever
-you do, do that for Me. Then will be gained, O Uddhava, fixed devotion
-to Me. That devotion (Bhakti) is to be acquired in the company of
-Sadhus."
-
-
-
-SADHU AND BHAKTI.
-
-
-*SKANDHA XI. CHAP. 11-12.*
-
-Uddhava asked: --
-
-"Who according to Thee is a Sadhu? What sort of Bhakti (devotion) may be
-offered to Thee?"
-
-Sri Krishna replied: --
-
-"Compassionate, harmless, forgiving, firm in truth, faultless,
-impartial, doing good to all, undisturbed by desires, self restrained,
-mild, pure, not asking for anything, indifferent, temperate in eating
-with controlled mind, steady in the performance of duties, seeking
-refuge in me, given to meditation, careful, profound, patient, having
-control over the six-fold waves (hunger, thirst, sorrow and delusion,
-infirmity and death), not seeking respect from others, but respecting
-others, able, friendly, tender-hearted, wise, such is a Sadhu. He who
-knowing my injunctions and prohibitions in the performance of one's own
-Dharma or duties of life, even gives them all up for my sake is the best
-of all Sadhus. Those who seek me and nothing else, whether they know or
-not what I am, are the best of My Bhaktas.
-
-"To see, touch and worship My symbols and my votaries, to serve and
-adore them, the humble recital of My glory and of My deeds, Faith in
-hearing words about Me, constant meditation on Me, the offering up of
-all gains to Me, even the offering up of self in a spirit of service,
-the observance of the sacred days, rejoicings in the houses set apart
-for Me (all good Hindus have a house or room set apart for divine
-worship), initiation according to the Vedic and the Tantric System (one
-who is initiated is to recite the Mantras a certain number of times,
-every morning and evening and he can not take his meals without doing so
-in the morning) to observe fasts, enthusiasm in founding My image for
-worship, and in founding gardens, buildings and towns (in connection
-with My worship) humility and silence about one's own good deeds, --
-these are the indications of Bhakti.
-
-"Sun, Fire, the Brahmana, the Cow, the Vaishnava, Akasa, Air, Water,
-Earth, Atma, and all beings -- these are the eleven places of my
-worship.
-
-"I am to be worshipped in the Sun, by Vedic Mantras, in the fire by
-sacrificial Ghee, in the Brahmana by hospitality, in the cows by the
-offer of grass, in the Vaishnava by friendly treatment, in the Akasa of
-the heart cavity by meditation, in the air by the contemplation of
-Prana, in the water by offerings of libation and so forth, in the Earth
-by secret Mantras, in Atma by experiencing (Bhoga) and in all beings by
-equality.
-
-"In all these places of worship I am to be meditated on as with four
-hands, bearing conch, disc, club and lotus.
-
-"He who worships Me as above and serves the Sadhus acquires Devotion.
-Except by devotion that is acquired in the company of Sadhus, there is
-hardly any other way of liberation. I am not so easily attainable by
-Yoga, Sankhya, Dharma, the reading of Scriptures, Tapas, gifts,
-charitable acts, fasts, Yajnas, the Vedas, resort to pilgrimage, Niyamas
-or Yamas as by the company of Sadhus. Even those that are the lowest by
-birth, those that have Rajas and Tamas predominant in them, the Daityas,
-Asuras, and Rakshasas attain me easily by the company of Sadhus. The
-Gopis in Vraja, the wives of the Vedic Brahmanas did not read the Vedas,
-they did not observe fasts, they did not perform Tapas, but they
-attained Me, through the company of Sadhus. Therefore O Uddhava care not
-for Srutis or Smritis, for biddings and for forbiddings. Have recourse
-to Me, the Atma of all beings, with all devotion, and thou shall have no
-fear from any quarter."
-
-(The following stages are to be marked: --
-
- 1. Study of Nature and self instruction.
- 2. Self discrimination, resuting in the separation of the conscious
- Atma and the unconscious Non-Atma.
- 3. The understanding of what is bondage and liberation, and the
- relation between Jiva Atma and Parama Atma (Ishvara.)
- 4. The liberating process during which the rules are to be observed,
- sacrifices to be made, the duties of life to be performed and
- active good done to all beings. During this process, the whole
- nature of the man becomes one of universal compassion and
- friendliness. Differences vanish. Good and bad become all alike.
-
-The Jiva rests in his own Atma, which is the Atma of all beings, and
-then all is calm and quiet.
-
- 5. The company of Sadhus.
- 6. Devotion acquired in that company.
- 7. When Devotion (Bhakti) becomes a part of one's nature then the
- giving up of all rules, all karma, whether pertaining to the Srutis
- or the Smritis.)
-
-
-
-WHY GIVE UP ALL KARMA
-
-
-*SKANDHA XI. CHAP. 12.*
-
-This Jiva-Ishvara becomes manifest in the cavities (nerve-plexuses). He
-enters the cavity (called Adhara or prostatic plexus) with the Prana
-(energy) of sound (called Para). He passed through subtle mind-made
-forms (Pasyanti and Madhyama) in the plexuses called Manipura or Solar
-and Visuddhi or laryngeal and at last comes out as) very gross (Sound
-forms, called Vaikhari, consisting of) Matra (Measures, such as long,
-short &c), Svara (accents known as Udatta or high, Anudatta or low and
-Svarita or mixed; and Varna the (letters of the alphabet, _ka, kha_ &c.)
-
-(The ruling idea is that the teachings of the Vedas and the Smritis are
-conveyed in articulate expressions and are adapted to planes
-corresponding to articulation. But articulation is the last and grossest
-expression of Divine Sound energy. In man the highest manifestation of
-sound energy, the primal voice, the divine voice, the first Logos, is
-Para. It is the Light which manifests the whole Universe. In that
-highest plane of manifestation there is no difference between Light and
-Sound. The seat of this Light is Mula-Adhara Chakra.
-
-Coming down the line of material manifestation, this Divine Light, this
-Para Voice, become Pasyanti in the plane of causes, of germ thoughts, of
-root ideas, the Karana plane. The germs are transmitted in Man from
-birth to birth and in the Universe from kalpa to kalpa. They are the
-_causes_ of the subsequent manifestations, whether individual or
-universal. The Para voice passing through the causal plane, becomes the
-root-ideas or germ thoughts.
-
-In the next plane, the Sukshma plane, the voice becomes the thoughts
-themselves or Madhyama.
-
-The last expression of the Voice is the articulate expression, Vaikhari.
-
-The Srutis and Smritis as written or spoken belong to the plane of
-lowest manifestation. They are governed by the root-ideas and ideas of
-the present universe, the root-ideas and ideas of the Rishis through
-whom they are manifested.
-
-When you seek the _unmanifested_ light of the Logos, the Divine Voice,
-or only the first manifestation of that Voice, what care you about the
-lower manifestations, the Srutis or Smritis, what care you about karma
-that pertains to the lower planes?)
-
-In Akasa, fire is only unmanifested heat (Ushman). It is manifested
-further down in the fuel. By friction in the fuel, it becomes a spark.
-Kindled by _Ghee_, it becomes a flame. Such is my manifestation also in
-this articulate Voice.
-
-So also the senses of action (Karmendriyas) and of perception
-(Gnanendriyas), the faculties of Desire, Discrimination, and Egoistic
-perception, the thread-giving Pradhana, the transformations of Satva,
-Rajas and Tamas are all my manifestations. (_i.e._ I am manifested
-through all of them).
-
-Primally, this Jiva Ishvara is unmanifested and one. But being the
-resort of the three Gunas, being the generator (Yoni) of the lotus (of
-the Universe), He becomes in time of divided energy, and appears as
-many, even like seeds that have found the soil.
-
-This Universe exists in Me, even as a piece of cloth exists in threads.
-
-The essence of this eternal tree of the Universe is Inclination. It
-begets flowers (Karma) and fruits (the fruits of Karma). Two are its
-seeds (Merit and de merit). Hundreds are its roots (the desires). Three
-are its stems (the Three Gunas). Five are its trunks (the five Bhutas,
-Akasa &c). The branches produce 5 sorts of juice (Sound, Touch, Sight,
-Taste and Smell); the Ten senses and the mind are the branches of the
-tree. Two birds (Jivatma and Paramatma) make their nest on it. Wind,
-bile and phlegm are its dermal layers. Joy and sorrow are the two fruits
-of this tree. It extends up to the solar regions (for beyond the Solar
-system, the Triloki, there are no rebirths.) The country loving Gridhras
-(in the first sense, vultures and in the second sense, home loving men
-of desires) partake of one fruit (sorrow). And the forest frequenting
-Hansas (in one sense swans and in the other sense discriminating men who
-give up desires) partake of the other fruit (joy).
-
-He who, through the favor of his Guru knows the One as becoming Many
-through Maya, knows the Truth.
-
-Thus with the axe of wisdom, sharpened by whole-minded devotion acquired
-by the worship of the Guru, do thou calmly and steadily cut asunder the
-sheaths of Jiva and on attaining Paramatma, do thou let go of the
-instrument itself.
-
-
-
-THE GUNAS.
-
-
-*SKANDHA XI. CHAP. 13.*
-
-Satva, Rajas and Tamas -- they are the Gunas of Buddhi (Prakriti), not
-of Atma -- control Rajas and Tamas by means of Satva and control Satva
-by Satva itself. When Satva grows in Man, he acquires Dharma, which is
-Devotion to Me. By worshipping Satvic objects Satva increases and Dharma
-is the outcome. That Dharma kills Rajas and Tamas and it increases
-Satva. When Rajas and Tamas are killed, Adharma which is an outcome of
-Rajas and Tamas is also killed. The scriptures, water, men, land, time,
-karma, regeneration, meditation, mantra and purification these ten are
-accessaries to the Gunas. Of these what the Sages praise are Satvic,
-what they blame are Tamasic, what they neither praise nor blame are
-Rajasic. Have resort to only those of them that are Satvic, for then
-Satva will increase. Dharma follows that increase and wisdom follows
-Dharma. But wisdom has its field only so long as memory lasts and the
-(Gunas) are not exhausted. Fire that is produced by the friction of
-bamboo pieces, burns up the forest and is then extinguished of itself
-even so the body caused by disturbance of the Gunas is extinguished of
-itself, (at that final stage).
-
-(Of the scriptures, there are some that speak of inclination, others
-that speak of disinclination. The latter only are to be followed. Water
-which has a purifying effect, as that of a sacred place is to be used,
-not pointed water and wine. Bad men are to be shunned and good men are
-to be mixed with. Quiet solitary places are to be sought, not highways
-and gambling places. The time before sun rise is preferable for
-meditation not night fall or night. Nitya Karma is to be performed, not
-Kamya Karma. Initiation causes a second birth. Vaishnava or Saiva
-initiation is Satvic and not Sakta initiation. Meditation upon Vishnu is
-Satvic and not the meditation upon women or upon those that are hostile
-to Vishnu. The Pranava Mantra is Satvic and not the lower Kamya Mantras.
-The cleansing must be purification of self, not the mere cleansing of
-Deva houses. _Sridhara_. By these Satvic pursuits, Satva Guna prevails
-in man. When Satva prevails the whole nature becomes Satvic. The
-tendencies are all such as to lead to calmness, which is the essence of
-Satva. This is Dharma Adharma is the opposite of this. It is identified
-with such a nature as leads to distractions. Dharma is followed by
-wisdom. For when the mind is calm and tranquil, truths are reflected on
-it in their entirety and they are fully perceived. That wisdom lasts as
-long as memory lasts _i.e._ as long as Dvaita perception exists. But
-when the Gunas themselves die out, wisdom vanishes of itself, for when
-there is direct perception of Brahma as self, the knower, the known and
-knowledge become one and the same.)
-
-
-
-HOW TO WITHDRAW FROM THE OBJECTS OF THE SENSES.
-
-
-*SKANDHA XI. CHAP. 13.*
-
-Uddhava asked: --
-
-"Generally people know that the objects of the senses lead them to
-misery. How is it, O Krishna, they still follow them, like dogs, donkeys
-and goats?"
-
-Sri Krishna replied: --
-
-"When in the heart of the undiscriminating man, the false perception of
-'I' arises (with regard to body &c.), the terrible Rajas takes
-possession of the Manas, which by its origin is Satvic. Doubts and
-desires arise in the mind. The mind then dwells upon attributes (oh! how
-beautiful, what a nice thing!) and acquires a strong liking for it.
-Guided by the passions, with the senses uncontrolled, deluded by the
-strong current of Rajas, the helpless man knowingly does things that
-bear evil fruits. The mind of the wise man is also distracted by Rajas
-and Tamas. But he sleeplessly controls his mind and he finds fault (with
-his own actions). He is not attached to them. Gradually and steadfastly
-offer up your mind to Me, being wide awake, at all times, controlling
-your breath and regulating your seat and you will then be able to
-control your mind.
-
-"This is the Yoga, as taught by My disciples Sanaka and others."
-
-Uddhava asked: --
-
-"When and in what form did you teach Sanaka and others?"
-
-Sri Krishna replied: --
-
-"Sanaka and other Manas-born sons of Brahma asked their father as
-follows: -- The mind enters the Gunas (objects _i.e._ the mind naturally
-becomes attached to objects) and the Gunas (_i.e._ the objects when
-experienced) enter the mind (as desires). How can those that want to
-cross over (the objects) and to become liberated cause a separation
-between the two?
-
-"Brahma could not gauge the question in his own mind. So he meditated on
-me. I appeared before him as a Hansa. (The Swan can discriminate between
-milk and water. So the bird symbolises a discriminating sage.) The
-Brahmanas and Brahma asked: 'Who art thou?' I said as follows: --
-
-"O Brahmanas does your question relate to Atma -- If so, Atma is not
-many. So the question does not arise. And who will reply to whom?
-
-"If your question relates to the body, then also the elements composing
-the body being the same in all beings, and Atma being the same in all,
-your question is meaningless.
-
-"Whatever is perceived by the senses and the mind, I am that -- There is
-nothing besides Me. Rightly know this to be so.
-
-"True the mind enters the Gunas and the Gunas enter the mind. The Gunas
-and mind thus mutually blended are but the body of the Jiva, its reality
-being My own self. (If mind wedded to objects, be the essence of Jiva,
-then their separation is not possible. But the essence of Jiva is
-Brahma. Mind is only attributed to Jiva. And Jiva's connection with the
-objects is through the properties of the mind. Therefore Jiva by
-realising that it is Brahma will find out that the objects have no
-existence as far as its own self is concerned. Therefore by devotion to
-Bhagavat, Jiva completely rests in its own self. _Sridhara_. This is not
-a separation of Manas and objects, but the withdrawal of self from
-both.)
-
-"By constant pursuit of the Gunas, the mind enters the Gunas. The Gunas
-also (being turned into desires) take a firm hold of the mind. Knowing
-Me to be thy own self give up both (the objects and the mind wedded to
-them.)
-
-"Wakefulness (Jagrat), Dream (Svapna) and Dreamless sleep (Sushupti) are
-states of mind, caused by the Gunas, Jiva is beyond all these states.
-For it is the witness of all these states. The bondage caused by mind
-imparts the actions of the Gunas to Atma. Therefore being fixed in Me,
-the Fourth (_i.e._ beyond the three states of consciousness), get over
-the bondage of mind. That will be the (mutual) giving up of the mind and
-the Gunas. This bondage of Atma is caused by Ahankara (the sense of
-'I-ness') Know this to be the cause of all evils. Knowing this, be fixed
-in the Fourth, and give up all thoughts of _Sansara_ (_i.e._ of mind and
-of the connections caused by mind.)
-
-"So long as the idea of manifoldness is not destroyed by reasoning, man
-dreams in ignorance even in the wakeful state, just as in dream, the
-ignorant man thinks he is wakeful.
-
-"All things, other than Atma are unreal. The differences made amongst
-them (such as, this is Brahmana, this is Sudra, this is Grihastha, this
-is Sanyasin), the different destinations (Svarga and other Karmic
-fruits) and even Karma (action) itself are unreal, so far as Atma is
-concerned.
-
-"He who throughout the constantly following stages of life (childhood,
-youth, age etc.) perceives the objects in the wakeful state, with the
-help of all the senses, he who perceives the likes of those objects in
-dream in the heart, and he who brings those perceptions to an end in
-dreamless sleep are all one and the same. For the same memory runs
-through all these states. The Lord of the senses is one and the same.
-(The outward senses perceive the wakeful state. Mind, perceives the
-dream. Buddhi perceives dreamless sleep. Atma, is the Lord of all these
-senses).
-
-"Ponder well over this that the three states of mind are caused in Me by
-the Gunas, through My Maya. Knowing this definitely, cut asunder the
-source of all doubts (Ahankara) by the sword of wisdom sharpened by
-reasoning, the teachings of Sadhus, and the Srutis. And worship Me, that
-dwell in the heart.
-
-"Look upon this Universe as a delusion, a play of the mind. Now seen,
-now destroyed. So rapid is the succession, that it is like a whirling
-fire brand that looks circular (on account of the rapid motion, though
-it is not circular). One consciousness appears as many. The phenomenal
-existence (_Vikalpa_) caused by the threefold Guna transformations is
-but Maya, a dream.
-
-"Turn away your sight from this object world. Give up all desires. Be
-calm and find bliss in the perception of self. At times you will have
-experience of the objects in your daily life (for getting the
-necessaries of life). But what you have once thrown aside as unreal
-shall not be able to cause delusion in you. Till the fall of your body,
-the objects will haunt you like things of the past, stored as it were in
-memory alone. This frail body, through which he has known his real self,
-may rise or sit, may move away from its place or come back, just as
-chance will have it, but the Siddha sees it not, even as an inebriate
-person does not see the cloth he puts on.
-
-"The body waits with the Pranas and Indriyas till the _Commenced_ Karma
-exhausts itself. But being fixed in Samadhi, the knower of the truth
-does not care for the body and the object world, which are all visionary
-to him.
-
-"I said all this to the Brahmanas and came back to my own abode."
-
-
-
-BHAKTI YOGA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA XI. CHAP. 14.*
-
-"O Krishna, thou speakest of Bhakti Yoga. Others speak of other
-expedients. Are they all same or is any one of them superior to others?"
-
-Sri-Krishna replied: --
-
-"The tendencies of men are different, according to the differences in
-their nature. So different paths have been spoken of. But the regions
-(or fruits) acquired by the votaries of the other paths, and as created
-by their actions have a beginning and an end, a miserable future and an
-end in Tamas. The pleasures there are small and they are not unmixed
-with sorrow. Where is that bliss to be found in objects that is to be
-found in Me.
-
-"Fixed in Me, and finding bliss in Me, all is blissful to My votaries.
-They do not wish for universal supremacy, they do not ask for supremacy
-over Svarga, Bhur or Patala, they do not long for Siddhis, they do not
-even ask for Mukti. Surrendering Self to Me they wish for nothing else
-but Myself. Brahma, Siva, Sankarshana, Lakshmi and My own form are not
-so dear to Me, O Uddhava, as thou art to Me. I always seek my Bhaktas.
-It is they only that know what bliss they enjoy, Bhakti consumes all
-impurities, even as fire consumes the fuel. Yoga, Sankhya, Dharma, study
-of the scriptures, asceticism, or relinquishment nothing wins me so much
-as powerful Bhakti does. I am attained only by faithful Devotion. Bhakti
-purifies the Bhaktas, even though they be Chandalas by birth.
-
-"Dharma, though combined with truth and compassion, wisdom though wedded
-to asceticism, do not completely purify self, if devotion to Me is
-wanting. How can mind be purified without Bhakti. For by Bhakti the
-hairs stand on end, the heart melts away and tears of bliss run down the
-cheek. Words become choked with devotional feelings. The Bhakta weeps,
-and smiles, and sings and dances forgetting himself. Such a Bhakta (not
-only purifies self, but) he purifies the whole world.
-
-"Gold loses its impurities under fire and regains its own form. Atma
-(Jiva Atma) shakes off its impurities under Bhakti Yoga and regains its
-own form. As Atma becomes more and more purified, by hearing and
-meditating on the sacred sayings about Me, it sees more and more of
-subtle objects, as the eye touched with collyrium does.
-
-"Think of objects and your mind will be attached to objects. Think of Me
-and your mind will be attached to Me. Therefore fix your mind on Me,
-giving up all other thoughts.
-
-"Shun from a distance the company of women and of those that keep the
-company of women. Be self controlled. Go to a solitary place, free from
-dangers and then sleeplessly meditate on Me.
-
-"There is not so much misery, so much bondage from other quarters as
-from the company of women and of those that associate with them."
-
-
-
-MEDITATION.
-
-
-*SKANDHA XI. CHAP. 14.*
-
-Uddhava asked: --
-
-"O Lotus-eyed! how to meditate on Thee! Tell me what is the nature of
-that meditation and what it is?"
-
-Sri Krishna replied: --
-
-"Be seated on an Asana (Seat), that is neither high nor low (say, a
-blanket), with your body erect and in an easy posture. Place your hands
-on the lap. Fix your gaze on the tip of the nose (in order to fix the
-mind). Purify the tracks of Prana by Puraka, Kumbhaka and Rechaka, and
-then again in the reverse way (_i.e._ first breathe in by the left
-nostril with the right nostril closed by the tip of the thumb, then
-close the left nostril by the tips of the ring finger and the little
-finger and retain the breath in both the nostrils. Then remove the tip
-of the thumb, and breathe out through the right nostril. Reverse the
-process by breathing in through the right nostril then retaining the
-breath in both the nostrils and then letting out the breath through the
-left nostril). Practise this Pranayama gradually with your senses
-controlled.
-
-"'Aum' with the sound of a bell, extends all over, from Muladhara
-upwards. Raise the 'Aum' in the heart, by means of Prana (twelve fingers
-upwards) as if it were the thread of a lotus-stalk. There let Bindu (the
-fifteenth vowel sound) be added to it. Thus practise Pranayama
-accompanied by the Pranava reciting the latter ten times. Continue the
-practice, three times a day and within a month you shall be able to
-control the vital air. The lotus of the heart, has its stalk upwards and
-the flower downwards, facing below (and it is also closed, like the
-inflorescence with bracts of the banana. _Sridhara_). Meditate on it
-however as facing upwards and full-blown, with eight petals and with the
-pericarp. On the pericarp, think of the Sun, the Moon, and Fire one
-after another. Meditate on My form (as given in the text) within the
-Fire. First Meditate on all the limbs. Then let the mind withdraw the
-senses from their objects. Then draw the concentrated mind completely
-towards Me, by means of Buddhi. Then give up all other limbs and
-concentrate your mind on one thing only My smiling face. Do not meditate
-on anything else. Then with draw the concentrated mind from that and fix
-it on Akasa. Give up that also and being fixed in Me, (as Brahma) think
-of nothing at all. You shall see Me in Atma, as identical with all
-Atmas, even as light is identical with another light. The delusions
-about object, knowledge and action shall then completely disappear."
-
-
-
-THE SIDDHIS
-
-
-*SKANDHA XI. CHAP. 15.*
-
-When the senses and the breath are controlled and the mind is fixed on
-Me, Siddhis or powers overtake the Yogi. There are eighteen Siddhis and
-eighteen Dharanas. Of these, eight belong to me (eight of them are
-normally the powers of Ishvara and they exist in a some what lesser
-degree in those that approach the state of Ishvara. _Sridhara_. The
-remaining ten cause the appearance of Guna _i.e._ they cause an
-excellence of Satva. _Sridhara_.)
-
- 1. _Anima_, the power of becoming as small as an atom.
- 2. _Mahima_, the power of increasing size.
-
-3. _Laghima_, the power of becoming light. These three Siddhis relate to
-the body.
-
-4. _Prapti_, to be in the relation of presiding Devas to the
-corresponding senses of all beings.
-
-5. _Prakamya_, power of enjoying and perceiving all objects seen or
-unseen.
-
-6. _Isita_, control over the energies of Maya in Isvara, over the lower
-energies in other beings.
-
- 7. _Vasita_, Non-attachment to objects.
- 8. _Kamavasayita_, the power of attaining all desires.
-
-These are My eight Siddhis and they normally exist in Me.
-
- 1. The cessation of hunger and thirst.
- 2. The hearing from a distance.
- 3. Seeing from a distance.
- 4. Motion of the body with the velocity of the mind.
- 5. Assumption of any form at will.
- 6. The entering into another's body.
- 7. Death at one's own will.
- 8. Play with Deva girls.
- 9. The attainment of desired for objects.
- 10. Irresistible command.
-
-These are the ten Siddhis that relate to the Gunas. There are also five
-smaller Siddhis.
-
- 1. Knowledge of the present, past and future.
- 2. Control over the Pairs, such as heat and cold &c.
- 3. Knowledge of other's minds.
- 4. Suspending the actions of fire, sun, water, poison &c.
- 5. Invincibility.
-
-These are only illustrative of the Siddhis.
-
-Now about Dharana or the modes of concentration of the mind.
-
-Those that fix their mind on Me as pervading the Tanmatras acquire the
-power of becoming an atom.
-
-Those that concentrate their mind on Me as pervading Mahat Tatva acquire
-_Mahima_.
-
- The object of Dharana ... ... The power acquired
-
- The Lord pervading the atoms ... Laghima.
-
- Do. Do. Satvic Ahankara ... Prapti.
-
- Do. Do. Sutra or Mahat ... Prakamya.
-
- Vishnu the Lord of the three Gunas ... Isita.
-
- Narayana, the Fourth, Bhagavat ... Vasita.
-
- Nirguna Brahma (Brahma without
- attribute) ... ... ... Kamavasayita.
-
- Lord of Sveta Dvipa (White Island) ... Cessation of hunger
- and thirst.
-
- Akasa ... ... ... Distant hearing.
-
- Sun ... ... ... Distant vision.
-
- &c. &c. &c.
-
-
-
-THE VIBHUTIS OR POWERS OF THE LORD.
-
-
-*SKANDHA XI. CHAP. 16.*
-
-The Sixteenth Chapter deals with the Vibhutis of the Lord, much in the
-same way as the tenth chapter of the Bhagavad Gita.
-
-
-
-VARNA AND ASRAMA RULES.
-
-
-*SKANDHA XI. CHAP. 17-18.*
-
-The seventeenth and eighteenth chapters deal with Varna and Asrama
-rules.
-
-
-
-WHAT ONE IS TO DO FOR MOKSHA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA XI. CHAP. 19.*
-
-Jnana (knowledge), Vairagya (dispassion), Vijnana (direct knowledge),
-Sraddha (faith) Bhakti (Devotion), these are the requisites of Moksha.
-The nine (Prakriti, Purusha, Mahat. Ahankara and the five Tanmatras),
-the eleven (five Jnanendriyas, five Karmendriyas and Manas), the five
-Bhutas, the three (Gunas), that knowledge by which one knows that these
-constitute all beings and that the One underlies all these is _Jnana_.
-
-(The first training of the mind is to break up the objects into their
-component elements. Thus we can mentally resolve any object into its
-chemical elements and this Universe into a mass of homogeneous nebula.
-The process is to be carried further, till we get the Tatvas or the
-ultimate principles of the Sankhya philosophy. Then the next step is to
-realise the one Purusha as underlying all the Prakritic principles.)
-
-Vijnana is the direct knowledge of the One by itself and not as
-pervading all Prakritic forms. (Jnana is indirect knowledge and Vijnana
-is direct knowledge of Brahma).
-
-All the existing things being formed of the three Gunas have their
-growth, existence and end. What follows the transformation from one form
-into another, at all the three stages of beginning, middle and end, and
-what remains behind after the destruction of all forms -- that is the
-existing (Sat).
-
-The Vedas, direct perception, the sayings of great men and logical
-inference are the four Pramanas or evidences. The world of
-transformations does not stand the test of any of them (_i.e._ there is
-only one real existence, the existence of the transformable and
-transformed world being only relative and unreal. This is the conclusion
-arrived at from all sources. Therefore the wise man becomes
-dispassionate to all things.
-
-Transformation is the end of all actions. Therefore the wise man sees
-all the regions that may be attained by actions from that of Brahma
-downwards, as miserable and transitory even like the worlds that are
-seen. This is Vairagya or Dispassion.
-
-I have told you already of Bhakti yoga. Hear again what I say. _Sraddha_
-or faith in the nectar like sayings about Me, constant recitals about
-myself, steadiness in worshipping Me, the chanting of devotional hymns,
-the hearty performance of divine service, adoration by means of the
-body, worship of my votaries, the realisation of my existence in all
-beings, the directing of the daily actions and of the daily talks
-towards Me, the offering up of the mind to Me, the giving up of all
-desires, of all objects, of all enjoyments and of all joys for my Sake,
-the performance of Vedic karma all for Me -- by all these, Bhakti grows
-up towards Me.
-
-
-
-THE SADHANAS OR EXPEDIENTS.
-
-
-*SKANDHA XI. CHAP. 19.*
-
-Yama consists of --
-
- 1. _Ahinsa_ -- the non-infliction of pain.
- 2. _Satya_ -- the practice of truth.
- 3. _Asteya_ -- Not even the mental stealing of other's properties.
- 4. _Asanga_ -- Non-attachment.
- 5. _Hri_ -- Modesty.
- 6. _Asanchaya_ -- Want of storing for the future.
- 7. _Astikya_ -- faith in religion.
- 8. _Brahmacharya_ -- Abstinence.
- 9. _Mauna_ -- Silence.
- 10. _Sthairya_ -- Steadiness.
- 11. _Kshama_ -- forgiveness.
- 12. _Abhaya_ -- fearlessness.
-
-_Niyama_ Consists of
-
- 1. _Saucha_ -- bodily purity.
- 2. _Do_. -- Mental purity.
- 3. _Japa_ -- Mental repetition of Mantras or Names of deities.
- 4. _Tapas_ -- Asceticism.
- 5. _Homa_ -- Sacrificial offering.
- 6. _Sraddha_ -- faith.
- 7. _Atithya_ -- hospitality.
- 8. _Archana_ -- daily worship.
- 9. _Tirthatana_ -- Wandering on pilgrimage.
- 10. _Parartheha_ -- desire for the Supreme object.
- 11. _Tushti_ -- Contentment.
- 12. _Acharya Sevana_ -- Service of the spiritual teacher.
-
-Yama and Niyama are practised by men, either for furtherance in life or
-for Moksha.
-
-_Sama_ -- is fixing the mind on Me (and not mental quietness only).
-
-_Titiksha_ -- is forbearance.
-
-_Dhriti_ -- is the restraint of the senses of taste and generation.
-
-The best _Dana_ (gift) is not to oppress any creature.
-
-_Tapas_ -- is really the giving up of desires.
-
-_Saurya_ -- or power is the control of one's own nature.
-
-_Satya_ or Truth is the practice of equality.
-
-_Rita_ -- is truth speaking that does not cause pain.
-
-_Saucha_ -- is only non-attachment to karma, but _Tyaga_ is its complete
-renunciation.
-
-The wealth to be coveted for is _Dharma_. I Myself am _Yajna_, Spiritual
-teaching is the _Sacrificial gift_, _Pranayama_ is the greatest
-strength.
-
-_Bhaga_ is my Lordly state.
-
-The best attainment is devotion to Me.
-
-_Vidya_ is the removal of the idea of separateness from self.
-
-_Hri_ is the abhorrence of all unrighteous acts (and not merely
-modesty.)
-
-_Sri_ is (not merely riches but) virtues. Happiness is that which seeks
-neither happiness nor misery.
-
-Misery is nothing but longings for enjoyment.
-
-The Sage is he who knows about liberation from bondage.
-
-He is ignorant who knows the body to be self.
-
-The Path is that which leads to Me.
-
-The evil path is that which distracts the mind.
-
-The increase of Satva is Svarga (and not merely Indra Loka.)
-
-The increase of Tamas is Naraka.
-
-Guru is the friend and I am that Guru.
-
-This human body is the house.
-
-He is rich who is virtuous.
-
-He is poor who is not contented.
-
-He who has not conquered the senses is the helpless man.
-
-The Lord is he who is not attached to the objects.
-
-He is a slave who is attached to them.
-
-
-
-THE THREE PATHS: KARMA, JNANA AND BHAKTI.
-
-
-*SKANDHA XI. CHAP. 20.*
-
-Uddhava said: --
-
-"Karma is to be performed and Karma is not to be performed -- both are
-Thy injunctions in the Vedas. The Vedas speak of merits and demerits in
-connection with Karma. They speak of Varna and Asrama, of differences in
-time, space, age and objects, of Svarga and Naraka.
-
-"The sense of right and wrong is not innate but it is acquired from the
-scriptures, and the same scriptures undermine all ideas of difference.
-All this is confounding to me."
-
-Shri Krishna replied: --
-
-"I have spoken of three paths leading to the attainment of Moksha by men
--- Jnana, Karma and Bhakti Yogas. There is no other means what so ever
-of attaining Moksha. Jnana Yoga is for those that are disgusted with the
-performance of Karma and so give it up.
-
-"Karma Yoga is for those that are not disgusted with the performance of
-Karma but are attached to it.
-
-"He who perchance becomes fond of what is said or spoken of Me, but has
-no aversion for Karma nor has any undue attachment to it is fit for
-Bhakti Yoga.
-
-"Perform Karma so long as you do not feel disgust for it or as long as
-you are not drawn by love for me. True to your duties, perform Yajnas
-but without any selfish desires. Do not perform prohibited Karma. Then
-you shall cross the limits of both Svarga and Naraka.
-
-"By the performance of one's own duties, the purified man may acquire
-pure wisdom (Jnana) and Bhakti.
-
-"The dwellers of Svarga wish for the human body and so the dwellers of
-Naraka. For that body is a means to the attainment of of Jnana and
-Bhakti both, not so the Svarga body or Naraka body.
-
-"The far-sighted man does not wish for Svarga or Naraka. He does not
-even wish for human existence. For connection with the body causes
-selfish distractions.
-
-"The sage knows the body as leading to desired for ends. But he realises
-at the same time its transitory character. He therefore loses no time in
-striving for Moksha before the approach of death. Even so the bird loses
-all attachment for its nest and flies away free and happy before the man
-who strikes at the tree succeeds in felling it.
-
-"The human body which is the primal source of all attainments is a well
-built boat, so hard to secure and so cheap when once attained. The Guru
-is at the helm of this boat, and I am the favorable wind that drives it.
-The man that does not cross the ocean of births with such a boat is a
-killer of self.
-
-"_Jnana_: -- When a man feels disgust for karma and becomes
-dispassionate and when his senses are controlled, he should practise
-concentration of mind.
-
-"When in the act of concentration, the mind suddenly goes astray and
-becomes unsettled, you should bring it back under the control of self,
-with unremitting efforts, after allowing it to go in its wandering
-course a little.
-
-"Never neglect however to check the course of the mind with your Pranas
-and senses all controlled. With the help of Satvic Buddhi bring the mind
-under the control of self.
-
-"This control of the mind is the highest yoga. The horseman slackens the
-reins at first but never lets go the reins. Reflect on the creative
-manifestation of all objects and then the contrary process of their
-dissolution, according to the Sankhya method. Do this till the mind
-attains calm.
-
-"By cultivating a sense of disgust, by the growth of dispassion, by
-constant pondering over the teachings of the Guru, the mind gives up its
-delusion.
-
-"By practising Yama and other ways of Yoga, by discrimination of self
-and by worshipping Me, the mind is able to think of the Supreme.
-
-"If by loss of mental balance, the Yogi does some improper act he should
-burn up the impurity by Yoga alone, but not by any other means (not by
-expiatory rites. _Sridhara_)
-
-"Adherence to the particular path of one's own following is the right
-thing. People have been taught to distinguish between right and wrong,
-not because the acts are not all impure by their very nature but because
-the distinction is necessary to regulate the acts themselves with a view
-to cause a final abandonment of all attachments to them". (It may be
-said that according to the scriptures, Nitya Karma (acts ordained to be
-daily performed) and Naimittika Karma (acts ordained to be occasionally
-performed) purify the mind. Hence they are _right_ (_guna_). The killing
-of animals and such other acts make the mind impure. Hence they are
-_wrong_ (_dosha_). Expiatory acts (Prayaschitta) are required to be
-performed in order to remove the consequences of wrong acts. Therefore
-Prayaschitta is a right thing (_guna_). How can impurities be destroyed
-by means of Yoga then and not by means of Prayaschitta: therefore it is
-said that what is called Guna (right) and Dosha (wrong) by injunctions
-and prohibitions, is only a regulation of acts. The purport is this. The
-impurities of a man are not the outcome of his own inclinations. Man is
-impure through his natural tendencies. It is not possible for him all on
-a sudden to have disinclination for all actions. Therefore "Do this,"
-"Do not do this," these injunctions and prohibitions only put a
-restriction upon the inclinations of a man and by this means, they lead
-to disinclination. The Yogis have no inclinations. The rules of
-Prayaschitta are therefore not meant for them. _Sridhara_.)
-
-Bhakti: -- "He who has reverential faith in all that is said about Me,
-and who feels disgust for all actions, who knows that desires are
-identical with misery, but is yet in-capable of renouncing them, such a
-man should worship Me, with sincere devotion and firm faith. Though
-gratifying his desires, he should not have any attachment for them,
-knowing that they lead to misery in the end. Those that constantly
-worship Me according to Bhakti yoga as already expounded by Me, have all
-the desires of their heart destroyed as I myself dwell in their heart.
-The bondage is broken asunder, doubts all cease to exist, the
-accumulated actions fade away, when I, the Atma of all, am seen. My
-Bhakta speedily attains every thing that is attained by other means,
-Svarga, Moksha or even My own abode, if he has any desire for any of
-these. But My Bhaktas who are solely devoted to Me do not desire any
-thing even if it be offered by Me, not even final liberation. They are
-beyond the limits of Guna and Dosha."
-
-
-
-GUNA AND DOSHA OR RIGHT AND WRONG
-
-
-*SKANDHA XI. CHAP. 21.*
-
-Those who do not follow the Paths of Bhakti, Jnana and Karma, but who
-only seek paltry desires become subject to rebirths [For those that are
-matured in Jnana and Bhakti, there is neither Guna (right) nor Dosha
-(wrong). For those that practise Disinclination, the performance of
-Nitya and Naimittika Karma is Guna, for it leads to the purification of
-the mind. The non-performance of such Karma and the performance of
-prohibited Karma are Dosha, for they give rise to impurities of the
-mind. Prayaschitta counteracts such Dosha, and therefore it is Guna. For
-those pure men that are fixed in the Path of Jnana, the practice of
-Jnana is Guna; Bhakti is Guna to them that are fixed in the path of
-Bhakti. What is opposed to Jnana and Bhakti is Dosha to the followers of
-those two Paths. All this has been said before. Now Guna and Dosha are
-detailed for those that do not follow the Paths, but seek their selfish
-ends. _Sridhara_]. Devotion to the path of one's following is Guna. The
-reverse is Dosha. This is the proper definition of Guna and Dosha (Guna
-and Dosha are relative terms. They do not appertain to the thing itself.
-_Sridhara_).
-
-Purity (Suddhi) or Impurity (Asuddhi), Right (Guna) or Wrong (Dosha),
-Auspicious (Subha) or Inauspicious (Asubha) are terms applied to the
-same objects, in relation to religion (Dharma), Society (Vyavahara) and
-living (Yatra), respectively.
-
-I have explained Achara (rules of life) for those that want to be guided
-by Dharma (Sanctional religion). (Shri Krishna refers here to the works
-of Manu and other Smriti writers).
-
-The body of all beings is composed of the five elements (earth, water
-&c). They are all ensouled by Atma. Though men are all equal, the Vedas
-give different names and forms to their bodies (saying this is Brahmana,
-this is Sudra, this is Grihastha, this is Sanyasi) with a view to do
-good to them. (The object is to put a limit to the natural inclinations
-and thereby to secure Dharma, Artha, Kama and Moksha. _Sridhara_).
-Similarly classification is made of time, space and other things, solely
-with the object of regulating actions (Karma.) Thus those lands are
-impure where the black deer do not roam (Details are not given for which
-read the original).
-
-"Those that perform Yajna attain Svarga." Sayings like these do not
-speak of final bliss. They are only tempting words really meant for the
-attainment of Moksha, just like words said to a child to induce him to
-take medicine (The father says; "Eat this Nimba -- a bitter drug. I
-shall give you this sweet meat." The child takes the medicine. But the
-sweet meat is not what he really gets, for his real gain is recovery
-from disease).
-
-From their very birth, mortals are attached to some objects of desire,
-to their lives and powers and to their own people. But these are only
-sources of misery in the future. Why should the Vedas then teach
-attachment to such things? Some wrong-minded people say so without
-knowing the purport of the Vedas. They are deluded by the performance of
-fire sacrifices, and they resort to Pitri Yana (_i.e._ they are drawn to
-rebirths on the Earth after temporary enjoyment of Svarga). They do not
-know their own abode, which am I as seated in their heart, from whom the
-universe proceeds. Not knowing the real meaning of the Vedas, they
-worship Indra and other Devas and perform Yajnas at which animals are
-sacrificed. Para, Pasyanti and Madhyama remain deep and unfathomable
-like the ocean and only Vaikhari becomes manifest in the Vedas
-originating in Pranava and appearing through the letters of the alphabet
-and the Metres. Even that Vaikhari is not properly understood by men.
-(The Vedas form the sound manifestation of Ishvara. That sound has four
-divisions. _Para_, which finds manifestation only in Prana, _Pasyanti_,
-which finds manifestation in the mind, _Madhyama_ which finds
-manifestation in the Indriyas, and Vaikhari which finds manifestation in
-articulate expression. Those who have mental vision can only find out
-the first three. But the Vedas as expressed in language are also
-difficult to understand.) Further details are given, which are not
-reproduced.
-
-
-
-THE TATVAS.
-
-
-*SKANDHA XI. CHAP. 22.*
-
-Uddhava asked: -- "How many Tatvas (elemental principles) are there? The
-Rishis give the number differently."
-
-Sri Krishna replied: --
-
-"The discussion about the number is useless. The principles are
-interpenetrating. Their order and their number are therefore differently
-understood."
-
-Uddhava asked: --
-
-"Prakriti and Purusha though different by themselves are interdependent.
-They are never seen separately. Atma is seen in Prakriti (body) and
-Prakriti is seen in Atma (Where is then the difference between body and
-Atma?)
-
-"This is my doubt."
-
-Sri Krishna replied: --
-
-"Prakriti and Purusha are essentially different."
-
-
-
-PRAKRITI AND PURUSHA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA XI. CHAP. 22.*
-
-(1). _Prakriti_ is subject to manifestation.
-
-(2). It is subject to transformation.
-
-(3). It consists of the transformations of the Gunas.
-
-(4). It is various, -- broadly speaking threefold, Adhyatma, Adhi-bhuta
-and Adhi-daiva.
-
-(5). It is not self manifest.
-
-Atma is one, immutable and self manifest.
-
-Ahankara is at the root of all doubt and delusion. They last as long as
-the mind is turned away from me.
-
-
-
-RE-INCARNATION.
-
-
-*SKANDHA XI. CHAP. 22.*
-
-Uddhava asked: --
-
-"Those that are turned away from Thee take on and give up bodies. Tell
-me something about rebirth."
-
-Sri Krishna replied: --
-
-"The mind of men imprinted with karma moves with the five senses from
-body to body. Atma (under the denomination of 'I') accompanies the mind.
-
-"The mind (after death) thinks of such seen and unseen objects as the
-karma of men places before it. It awakes (unto those objects, it thinks
-of) and fades away (in respect of previous objects). The memory
-(connecting the present with the past) dies away in consequence.
-
-"When one loses all thoughts of one's body on account of close
-application to another object (body), through some cause or other, that
-utter forgetfulness is his death." (By karma, man gets after his
-so-called death either a deva body, or a body of inflictions. In the
-former case, it is through pleasure and desire and in the latter case,
-through fear and sorrow, that the Jiva utterly forgets his former body.
-That is the death of the Jiva who used to identify himself with the
-former body and not the destruction of Jiva as of the body. _Sridhara_.
-
-The Deva-body is the phenomenal basis of the Jiva in Svarga Loka. The
-body of inflications is the astral or Kamic body, in Bhuta, Preta and
-Pisacha Loka, where the Jiva undergoes inflictions. The Jiva identifies
-itself with these new bodies or new states in such a way as to forget
-completely its former physical body. The connection with the former body
-is thus completely cut off in the mind. This is the death of the Jiva in
-relation to its previous body.)
-
-"The birth of a Jiva is the acceptance of a body as one's own self. It
-is even like dream or fancy. In dream or fancy, a man does not know his
-present self as the former self. The mind by its application to a new
-body causes a birth into that body, and the ideas of good, bad and
-indifferent crop up in self.
-
-"Though a father may have neither friend nor enemy, he is affected by
-the connections formed by his vicious son, even so it is with Atma.
-Growth and decay are happening every moment in the body. But they are
-hardly perceptible owing to the extreme subtlely of time.
-
-"The burning lamp, the flowing current, the ripening fruit, pass through
-stages, as all beings also pass through the stages of childhood, youth
-and age. We say it is the same fire, it is the same water (though the
-particles of fire and water are continually changing.) So we say, it is
-the same man. The understanding and the words of ignorant men are all
-confounding (for they speak and think assuming that the same body
-continues). But even the ignorant man does not acquire birth or death,
-by Karma engendered by self, for the self is immortal and the notion of
-birth and death is itself a delusion with reference to self. Fire, as an
-element lasts through out the Kalpa. But it seems to come into existence
-or to become extinguished. Fecundation, foetal state, birth, childhood,
-grown up childhod, youth, ripeness, age and death are the nine states of
-the body. These states of the body which is other than self are only
-fancies of the mind (so far as self is concerned). Some accept them as
-their own, by contact with Gunas and some reject them to some extent (by
-discriminating knowledge). From the death of the body inherited from the
-father and the birth of another child body, one can infer the birth and
-death of his body only, he the knower not being affected by either birth
-or death. The seer of the growth and decay of the tree is different from
-the tree itself, so the seer of the different states of the body is
-different from the body itself. One is bound down to the wheel of
-rebirths, by want of discrimination. One becomes Deva or Rishi by the
-action of Satva, Asura or man by the action of Rajas and Bhuta or animal
-by the action of Tamas. As a man seeing the performance of singers and
-dancers involuntarily imitates them (in the mind) even so Atma follows
-the actions of Buddhi. The tree seems to move when the water is moving.
-The earth seems to roll when the eyes are rolling. Births and rebirths
-are as unreal to Atma as are dreams but they have an existence even as
-objects in dream have an existence so long as the mind thinks of those
-objects.
-
-"Whatever others may say or do unto you, do not care the least about
-that, but with single minded devotion restore self by self."
-
-Uddhava said: --
-
-"Human nature is human nature, O Lord. Hew can one bear all that is said
-or done by the impious?"
-
-
-
-FORBEARANCE.
-
-
-*SKANDHA XI. CHAP, 23.*
-
-Sri Krishna said: --
-
-"In days of yore, there was a wealthy Brahmana in the Malava regions. He
-earned money by the evil ways of the world, but did not spend any thing
-on charity. In time the wealth was all gone. He repented and felt
-disgust for wealth. He renounced the world and became a wandering
-Bhikshu. He went to villages for alms. People called him all sorts of
-names -- thief, hypocrite and so on. Some pelted him, others abused him,
-others put him to chains and confined him.
-
-"He bore all this with perfect calm. This is how he used to reason
-within himself: --
-
-"These men, the Devas, self, the planets, Karma and Kala (periodicity)
-none of them is the cause of my happiness or misery. Mind is the one
-cause, which causes the wheel of births to move. They make friends and
-enemies, who do not conquer the mind. The connection with the body is
-only an act of the mind. Deluded men however think, this is my body and
-they go astray.
-
-"One man can not be the cause of grief and joy to another. Atma in all
-men is not the doer. All acts proceed from the gross and the subtle
-body. If the tooth bites the tongue, who should you be angry at?
-
-"If the Devas (the Adhidevas) be the cause of sorrow, it is not their
-Atma that is so but their bodily transformations. And the Devas (who
-guide the senses) are the same in all beings. If one limb causes pain to
-another limb, who should be the object of anger?
-
-"If self is the cause of joy and sorrow, then you have not to look to
-the outside world. But every thing else besides Atma is only a seeming
-existence. Therefore there is no real existence of any cause of joy or
-grief and there is no joy or grief.
-
-"If the planets by their position at birth bring about joys and sorrows,
-then no body is to blame for that. And the planetary Purusha is separate
-from the bodies of the planets. There is none to be angry at. Karma can
-not be the cause of Joy and sorrow. Karma has its sphere in which there
-is both a conscious and an unconscious element. The unconscious element
-undergoes transformation and the conscious element in search for the
-desired object leads to action. But the body is absolutely unconscious.
-And Purusha (or Self) in man is absolutely conscious. There is no root
-of Karma either in body or in Purusha.
-
-"_Kala_ is part of Atma, for Kala is an aspect of Ishvara. Fire does not
-destroy its spark, snow does not destroy its flakes.
-
-"One who is awakened to his real self has fear from no one else. Purusha
-has no connection with the pairs of opposites." (Cold and heat,
-happiness and misery &c.)
-
-
-
-SANKHYA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA XI. CHAP. 24.*
-
-"There is only one perception and one undivided object of perception,
-when there are no Yugas (i.e. in Pralaya), in Satya Yuga, as well as for
-men skilful in discrimination, that object of perception is Brahman, the
-absolute Truth, beyond the reach of worlds and of mind. I became two
-fold, by means of Maya. Of the two one is Prakriti consisting of causes
-and effects. And the other is Purusha.
-
-"Following the Karmic record of Jivas, I disturbed Prakriti, and Satva,
-Rajas and Tamas became manifest. The Gunas gave rise to Sutra or Thread
-(which represents Kriya Sakti). Mahat (Jnana Sakti) is not separate from
-Sutra (Sutra and Mahat form one Tatva. It is two-fold, on account of its
-double aspect of Jnana and Kriya or knowledge and action).
-
-"Ahankara is the transformation of Mahat. It is three-fold, Satvic or
-Vaikaric, Rajasic or Taijasa and Tamasic.
-
-"The Adhi-daivas and Manas came from Satvic Ahankara, and the 5
-Tanmatras from Tamasic Ahankara.. The five Maha bhutas came from the
-five Tanmatras.
-
-"Prompted by Me, all these principles united together to form the Egg
-which was My own abode. I incarnated in that Egg which was immersed in
-the (Pralayic) water (as Sri Narayana or Virat Purusha).
-
-"Out of my navel grew the Lotus called the Universe. Brahma was
-manifested in that Lotus.
-
-"He brought into manifestation the Lokas (Bhur, Bhuvar &c.,) and the
-Lokapalas.
-
-"Svar was the abode of the Devas, Bhuvar of the Bhutas, Bhur of men, the
-higher Lokas of the Siddhas and the Lower Lokas of the Asuras and Nagas.
-
-"All actions (Karma) bear fruits in the Triloki. Mahar, Jana and Tapas
-are attained by Yoga, Tapas and Renunciation. My abode (Vaikuntha, which
-is beyond the Seven Lokas) is attained by Bhakti Yoga.
-
-"All beings in this Universe wedded to karma are made by Me, who as Kala
-am the Dispenser of all karma, to merge out of or to dive down in the
-flow of Gunas (_i.e._ they are made to go up to the higher Lokas or to
-come down to the lower Lokas).
-
-"All things big or small, thick or thin are pervaded by Prakriti and
-Purusha.
-
-"That which is at the beginning and at the end of a thing is also at the
-middle, as in the case of ornaments and earth-pots, the intervening
-transformations having a separate existence only for the sake of
-conventional use (thus the ornaments of gold are called by different
-names only for temporary uses. But they are gold when the forms are made
-and destroyed. The forms are all transitory and the ornaments are
-essentially gold).
-
-"That is only Real which gives rise to the original transformation,
-which is at the beginning and at the end. Prakriti the material cause,
-Purusha -- that pervades Prakriti and Kala or periodicity which causes
-disturbance in the Gunas -- these are three in one and I am that
-three-fold Brahma. The creative process flows on in order of succession
-without a break. The multifarious creation unfolds itself to serve the
-purposes of the jivas and it lasts so long as the period of Preservation
-continues and so long as Ishvara looks at it.
-
-"The order is reversed in Pralaya, and transformations are merged in the
-principles from which they proceeded. The body merges in to the food
-grains. The food grains merge in to the roots of plants. The roots merge
-into the earth, The earth merges into smell, smell into water, water
-into Taste, Taste into fire, fire into Form, Form in to Air, Air into
-Touch, touch into Akasa and Akasa into sound.
-
-"The Indriyas merge into the Adhi-daivas. The Adhi-daivas merge into the
-Manas. Manas merges into Ahankara.
-
-"Ahankara merges into Mahat (_i.e._ gives up the unconscious portion and
-becomes Jiva Sakti and Kriya Sakti itself. _Sridhara_.)
-
-"Mahat merges into the Gunas.
-
-"The Gunas merge into unmanifested Prakriti. Prakriti merges into Kala.
-Kala merges into Jiva. Jiva merges into Atma. Atma rests in self.
-
-"When these processes are meditated on, there is no delusion."
-
-
-
-SATVA RAJAS AND TAMAS.
-
-
-*SKANDHA XI. CHAP. 25.*
-
-"_Sama_ or Control of the mind, _Dama_ or Control of the Senses,
-forbearance, discrimination, tapas, truthfulness, compassion, memory,
-renunciation, contentment, faith, shame and charitableness are the
-attributes proper of _Satva_. Selfish desire, Selfish exertion, pride,
-discontent, variety, selfish-invocation of the Devas, idea of
-separateness, material enjoyment, love of excitement, love of fame,
-derision, power and violence, are the attributes proper of _Rajas_.
-
-"Anger, greed, untruthfulness, cruelty, begging, parading of religion,
-languor, quarrel, repentance, delusion, grief, dejection, sleep,
-helplessness, fear and indolence are the attributes proper of _Tamas_.
-
-"The sense of I-ness and My-ness is produced by the mixture of the three
-Gunas (I have Sama, selfish desire and anger. My Sama, selfish desire
-and anger. Thus _I_ and _My_ are common to all the three Gunas.
-_Sridhara_) All our dealings having the elements of Manas (Satvic), the
-Tanmatras (Tamasic), the Indriyas and the Pranas (Rajasic) in them,
-proceed from a mixture of the three Gunas. Devotion to Dharma (Satvic),
-Kama (Rajasic) and Artha (Tamasic), that bears the fruits of faith
-(Satvic), attachment (Rajasic) and wealth (Tamasic) is also based on a
-mixture of the Gunas.
-
-"The performance of religion for the gratification of desires (Kamya
-Dharma which is Rajasic), the performance of the duties of married life
-(Grihasta Dharma which is Tamasic) and the performance of the daily and
-occasional duties assigned to one's position in life (Svadharma which is
-Satvic) are based on a union of the three Gunas. Man is Satvic, when he
-has got the Satvic attributes. He is Rajasic when he has got the Rajasic
-attributes. He is Tamasic when he has got the Tamasic attributes.
-
-"When a man or woman worships Me with unselfish devotion and by the
-performance of duties, he or she is Satvic.
-
-"The person who worships Me, for the attainment of desires is Rajasic.
-
-"The person who worships Me with a view to do injury to others is
-Tamasic.
-
-"Satva, Rajas and Tamas are attributes that grow in the minds of jivas,
-they are not My attributes.
-
-"When Satva prevails over the other two Gunas, man acquires
-religiousness, wisdom, and other attributes, as also happiness. When
-Rajas prevails, it causes distraction, attachment and a sense of
-separateness. Man acquires karma, fame and wealth. But he becomes
-miserable.
-
-"When Tamas prevails, delusion, inaction and ignorance follow.
-
-"When the Mind attains calm, the senses become abstemious, the body free
-from fear and the mind free from attachments, Satva grows up and makes
-it easy to perceive Me.
-
-"When the mind becomes distracted by actions, and desires multiply, when
-the senses of action become disordered and the mind always wanders away,
-Rajas has its hold over man.
-
-"When the mind can not grasp, when it languishes, when even desires do
-not crop up, and there is indolence, melancholy and ignorance, they all
-proceed from Tamas.
-
-"With Satva, the Deva element prevails, with Rajas, the Asura element
-prevails and with Tamas, the Rakshas element prevails.
-
-"The waking is from Satva, dream from Rajas and deep sleep from Tamas.
-
-"By Satva, people go higher and higher up, by Rajas they move about in
-the middle, and by Tamas they move lower down.
-
-"Satva takes one to Svarga Loka, Rajas to human Loka and Tamas to
-Naraka. Those who are void of Gunas attain Me.
-
-"Action that is offered up to Me or that is unselfish is Satvic. Selfish
-action is Rajasa. Heartless action is Tamasa.
-
-"Satvic wisdom is that which relates to Atma, as separate from the body.
-
-"Rajasic is half perceived wisdom. Tamasic is wisdom relating to the
-material universe.
-
-"Wisdom centred in Me is Nirguna or without Gunas.
-
-"Satvics like to reside in the forest. Rajasics in human habitations and
-Tamasics in gambling houses. Houses where I am worshipped are beyond all
-the Gunas. Births are caused by Guna and Karma. Those who conquer these
-become devoted to Me and attain my state."
-
-
-
-COMPANY.
-
-
-*SKANDHA XI. CHAP. 26.*
-
-"King Pururavas was forsaken by Urvasi. He then thought within himself
-what the body of a woman was composed of, where its beauty lay, and the
-origin and the end of that body. 'Therefore' said he 'wise men should
-not associate with women or those that are addicted to women. By contact
-of the senses with their objects, mind gets disturbed, not otherwise.
-What you have not seen or heard of before can not disturb your mind. Let
-not the senses indulge in objects and mind will attain calm.' Keep
-company with Sadhus.
-
-"Give up bad company. Acquire from the Sadhus devotion to Me and you
-shall ultimately attain Moksha."
-
-
-
-KRIYA YOGA AND IDOL WORSHIP.
-
-
-*SKANDHA XI. CHAP. 27.*
-
-(The details will not be interesting to the general reader).
-
-
-
-JNANA YOGA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA XI. CHAP. 28.*
-
-"Do not either praise or blame other men and their actions. Look upon
-all as one, pervaded by the same Prakriti and the same Purusha. By
-criticising others, the mind is directed to a false channel and it
-deviates from the right path. What is good or what is bad of Dvaita? By
-direct perception, reasoning, self intuition, and scriptural teachings,
-know every thing in this manifested Universe to have a beginning and an
-end and to be thus unreal. Therefore free yourself from all attachments.
-(The ways of acquiring discriminative knowledge are then given in
-eloquent terms for which read the original).
-
-"Clearing up all doubts by discrimination, the sage should be fixed in
-the bliss of self, having abstained from every thing else.
-
-"The body of gross matter is not Atma. The Indriyas, their guiding
-Devas, Manas, Buddhi, Chitta and Ahankara are not Atma. The Bhutas, the
-Tanmatras and Prakriti are not Atma. These do not affect the seer.
-Whether the clouds gather or disperse, what is that to the Sun.
-
-"Akasa is not affected by the attributes of air, fire, water and earth
-nor by the changes of seasons.
-
-"The immutable is not affected by the impurities of Satva, Rajas and
-Tamas, however often they may cause the birth and rebirth of the Ahan
-principle.
-
-"But still (the unliberated sage) should avoid contact with the Gunas.
-He should by firm devotion to Me, cast off all attachments and all
-passions. When the disease is not properly treated, it gives trouble
-again and again. So when attachments are not completely removed and
-Karma is not counteracted they trouble the imperfect Yogi.
-
-"The yogis that deviate from the path on account of obstacles that are
-spread out for them by the Devas through men (For the Sruti says: --
-"The Devas do not like that men should know all this." _Sridhara_) are
-re-united to the path of Yoga in a better birth through the practices of
-their former birth.
-
-"The immature Yogi may be overpowered by diseases and other grievances
-of the body. He should overcome some of them by Yoga concentration (by
-concentration on the Moon, the Sun and others he should overcome heat
-cold &c., _Sridhara_), others by prescribed postures accompanied by
-retention of breath (diseases caused by gaseous derangement are to be
-overcome by postures, accompanied by retention of breath), and some
-others by Tapas, Mantra and medicine. He should overcome some evils by
-meditating on Me, by taking My name, and by making rehearsals about Me.
-He should overcome other evils by following the lords of Yoga.
-
-"Some practise these to keep themselves young and free from diseases,
-solely with the object of attaining some Siddhis. This is not approved
-of by good people. The effort is fruitless. The body has an end. True in
-following the path of Yoga, the body sometimes becomes free from
-diseases and infirmities. But the Yogi should put no faith on these
-Siddhis.
-
-"When the Yogi gives up all desires, becomes fixed in self-bliss, and
-makes Me his all in all, he is not overcome by obstacles."
-
-
-
-BHAKTI YOGA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA XI. CHAP. 29.*
-
-Uddhava said: --
-
-"This path of Yoga seems to Me to be difficult of pursuit. Tell me O
-Achyuta, some means by which man may attain perfection without such
-exertion. Generally those that try to concentrate their mind become
-tired at last, being unsuccessful in their attempts. The discriminating
-sage has recourse to Thy lotus-feet, the fountain of all bliss. Tell me
-the path that leads to Thee."
-
-Shri Krishna replied: --
-
-"Do all actions for Me and bear me in mind as much as you can. Offer up
-the mind and all thoughts to Me. Be attached to the duties of
-Bhagavatas. Live in sacred lands, where my Bhaktas dwell. Follow what
-they do -- see Me in all beings as well as in self, pure as Akasa. With
-the eye of pure wisdom, look upon all beings as my existence and respect
-them as such. Brahmana or Chandala, stealer or giver, big as the sun or
-small as his ray, tender hearted or cruel, the sage must look upon all
-alike. Then he shall have neither rivalry, nor jealousy nor reproach for
-others. His egoism shall also be gone. Mind not the ridicule of friends,
-mind not the bodily differences that may cause a feeling of shame, but
-salute even horses, Chandalas, cows and asses. As long as you do not
-learn to see Me in all beings, do not give up this practice in speech,
-body and mind. There is not the least chance of failure in the Bhagavata
-Path. Even what is otherwise fruitless becomes a Dharma, when it is
-unselfishly offered up to Me. There is no higher wisdom, no higher
-cleverness than this that the Real is attained by the Unreal, the
-Immortal is attained by what is mortal. This is the essence of Brahma
-Vidya.
-
-"Now that you have learned all this give it unto those that are
-deserving.
-
-"Go Uddhava now to Badari Asrama and follow what I have said."
-
-
-
-THE END.
-
-
-*SKANDHA XI. CHAP. 30.*
-
-Uddhava went to Badari. Sri Krishna advised the Yadus to leave Dvaraka.
-"Let the females, children, and the aged go to Sankha-Uddhara and let us
-go to Prabhasa." The Yadu chiefs went to Prabhasa. They drank the wine
-called Maireya and got intoxicated. They quarreled and fought with one
-another. They snatched the fatal reeds and killed one another. Rama went
-to the Sea-side and by practicing Samadhi, left this world. All was now
-over. Sri Krishna sat under an Asvatha tree (religious fig). A huntsman
-named Jara took Him for a deer and pierced him with a spear, formed of
-the fatal pestle.
-
-The huntsman then saw Krishna bearing four hands and became terrified.
-"Fear not" said Sri Krishna "you shall go to heaven." The chariot came
-down from the heaven and took up the huntsman.
-
-Daruka, the charioteer of Sri Krishna traced Him to the spot.
-
-Sri Krishna asked him to inform all friends at Dvaraka of the death of
-the Yadu chiefs, the disappearance of Rama and of His own state. "Do not
-remain any more at Dvaraka, for the Sea shall swallow it up. Let our
-parents and all others go to Indraprastha under the protection of
-Arjuna."
-
-Daruka saluted Krishna and went away.
-
-The Garuda marked chariot of Sri Krishna came from high above. Brahma
-and all other Devas gathered to witness the scene.
-
-The Lord disappeared from the earth and truth, Dharma, forbearance,
-glory and Lakshmi all followed Him.
-
-There was great rejoicing in the heavens. The Devas sang and flowers
-rained.
-
-Daruka gave the information to Vasudeva and Ugrasena. All came to see
-the place of the occurrence. Vasudeva died of grief. Some of the ladies
-followed their husbands to death. Those that remained were escorted by
-Arjuna to Indraprastha. He installed Vajra as the successor of the Yadu
-chiefs. The Pandavas made Parikshit their successor and left
-Indraprastha for the Final Journey.
-
-*END OF THE ELEVENTH SKANDHA.*
-
-
-
-
-THE TWELFTH SKANDHA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA XII. CHAP. 2.*
-
-When the present Kali Yuga will be about to end, Bhagavan will incarnate
-as KALKI. He will take birth at Sambhal as the son of Vishnu-Yasas.
-
-On His advent, Satya Yuga will make its appearance. The Sun, the Moon
-and the Jupiter will then enter together the constellation of Pushya.
-(Jupiter enters the constellation of Pushya in Cancer every twelve
-years, and there may be a conjunction of that planet with the Sun and
-the Moon on new Moon nights, but the text here means the _entering
-together_ of the three. _Sridhara_.)
-
-One thousand one hundred and fifteen years will expire from the birth of
-Raja Parikshit to the beginning of King Nanda's reign. (But in the
-detailed account given in the Bhagavata Purana, the period comes up to
-1448 years, as shewn by Sridhara.)
-
-Of the Seven Rishis (forming the constellation of the Great Bear), the
-two that are first seen to rise above the horizon have through their
-middle point a correspondence with some constellation (in the Zodiac).
-The Rishis remain united to that constellation for one hundred mortal
-years.
-
-At present (_i.e._ when Sukadeva was reciting Bhagavata to Raja
-Parikshit), the Rishis are united to Magha.
-
-The form of the Great Bear or the constellation of the Seven Rishis is
-given below.
-
- 6 5 X
- X X 1
- X X X X
- 7 4 3 2
-
-Sridhara gives the following names:
-
-No. 1 is Marichi.
-
-No. 2 is Vasishtha with Arundhati.
-
-No. 3 is Angiras.
-
-No. 4 is Atri.
-
-No. 5 is Pulastya.
-
-No. 6 is Pulaha.
-
-No. 7 is Kratu.
-
-"Such being the configuration of the Rishis, the two that are first seen
-to rise above the horizon are Pulaha and Kratu. The longitudinal line
-passing through the middle point of the line joining them crosses some
-one of the 27 constellations, Asvini, Bharani and others. The Rishis
-have their position in that constellation for one hundred years."
-_Sridhara_.
-
-So soon as the Krishna named divine body of Vishnu ascended the heavens,
-Kali entered this Loka. As long as the Lord of Lakshmi touched this
-Earth with His lotus feet, Kali could not overtake the planet. ( While
-Sri Krishna was still on this Earth, Kali appeared in its Sandhya or
-Dawn. When Sri Krishna disappeared, the Sandhya period was over, and the
-period proper of Kali set in. _Sridhara_).
-
-The Yuga shall become darker and darker, as the Seven Rishis will pass
-on from Magha to Purva-Ashadha, _i.e._, till the period of king Nanda.
-(The darkness will go on increasing till the reign of king Pradyotana.
-It will still go on increasing very much till the reign of king Nanda.
-_Sridhara_.
-
-This gives us a cycle of 1,000 years. The line of the Ecliptic is
-divided into 27 constellations, which form the 12 signs of the Zodiac.
-Each sign of the Zodiac contains 9 parts of these constellations, if
-each constellation be divided into four parts.
-
-Thus Aries contains Asvini, Bharani and 1/4 Krittika;
-
-Taurus contains 3/4 Krittika, Rohini and 1/2 Mrigasiras;
-
-Gemini contains 1/2 Mrigasiras, Ardra and 3/4 Punarvasu;
-
-Cancer contains 1/4 Punarvasu, Pushya and Ashlesha;
-
-Leo contains Magha, Purva Falguni and 1/4 Uttar Falguni;
-
-Virgo contains 3/4 Uttara Falguni, Hasta, and 1/2 Chitra;
-
-Libra contains Chitra, Svati and 3/4 Visakha;
-
-Scorpio contains 1/4 Visakha, Anuradha and Jyeshtha;
-
-Sagittarius contains Mula, Purva Ashadha and 1/4 Uttara Ashadha;
-
-Capricornus contains 3/4 Uttara Ashadha, Sravana, and 1/2 Dhanishtha;
-
-Aquarius contains 1/2 Dhanishtha, Sata-bhisha, and 3/4 Purva Bhadrapada;
-
-Pisces contains 1/4 Purva Bhadrapada, Uttara Bhadrapada and Revati.
-
-Abhijit is included in Uttarashadha and Sravana. From Magha to Purva
-Ashadha there are eleven constellations. This gives a cycle of 1,000
-years.
-
-The reference to king Nanda's reign leaves no doubt as to the cycle
-being one of 1,000 years, for the period is given in this very chapter
-as 1,115 years.
-
-The lines of Kshatriya kings have been given in the Purama, The lines of
-Brahmanas, Vaisyas and Sudras are to be similarly known.
-
-Devapi, brother of Santanu and Maru of the line of Ikshvaku are now
-waiting at Kalapa. They will appear towards the end of Kali Yuga and
-will again teach Varna and Asrama Dharma. (They will start again the
-lines of divine kings which came to an end in the Kali Yuga.
-_Sridhara_.)
-
-
-
-PRALAYA.
-
-
-*SKANDHA XII. CHAP. 4.*
-
-Four thousand Yugas form one day of Brahma. This is also the period of
-one Kalpa, during which fourteen Manus appear. The night of Brahma
-follows for an equally long period. The three worlds -- Bhur, Bhuvar and
-Svar then come to an end. This is called _Naimittika_ Pralaya. Drawing
-the universe within self, Narayana sleeps at the time over Ananta and
-Brahma sleeps too. (_Nimitta_ is cause. Naimittika is proceeding frome
-some cause. This Pralaya procedes from the sleep of Brahma as a
-_cause_).
-
-When two Pararddhas of years expire, the seven subdivisions of Prakriti
-(Mahat, Ahankara, and the five Tanmatras) become subject to dissolution.
-(The life period of Brahma is two Pararddhas). This is called
-_Prakritika_ Pralaya. When this dissolving factor comes in, the whole
-combination known as the Cosmic Egg breaks up. (As the subdivisions of
-Prakriti as well as the Cosmic Egg which is formed by their combination
-become all dissolved, this Pralaya is called Prakritika Pralaya). With
-the advent of this Pralaya, there will be no rains for one hundred
-years. Food will disappear. People will devour one another. The Sun will
-draw in moisture from the seas, from the body, and from the earth, but
-will not give it back. The fire called Samvartaka, arising from the
-mouth of Shankarshana, will consume the Patalas. Winds will blow for one
-hundred years, followed by rain for another hundred years. The universe
-will be covered by one sheet of water. Water will draw in earth, fire
-will draw in water, and so on till Pradhana in due time will devour all
-the Gunas. Pradhana is not measured by time, and it does not undergo
-transformation. Beginningless, endless, unmanifested, eternal, the cause
-of all causes, without diminution, it is beyond the reach of Gunas, the
-rootless root, that passes comprehension, like the void.
-
-Jnana is the ultimate resort of Buddhi (the perceiver or knower), the
-Indriyas or senses (perception, knowledge or the instruments of
-perception and knowledge) and the objects (things perceived and known).
-It is Jnana alone that appears in this threefold form. That which is
-subject to perception, which in its nature is not separate from its
-cause, and which has both beginning and end is no real substance. The
-lamp, the eye and the object seen are not different from light itself.
-So Buddhi, the senses and the objects are not separate from the one
-Truth (Brahman, for they all proceed from Brahman), but Brahman is quite
-separate from all others. Wakefulness, dream and dreamless sleep are all
-states of Buddhi. They are all transitory, O king. The diversity appears
-in Pratyagatma (the separate self). The clouds appear and disappear in
-space, even as the universes appear and disappear in Brahman. Of all
-forms, the common element is the only reality. But the forms seem to
-have an existence of their own independently of the primal element. The
-threads that form the cloth look separate from the cloth itself. All
-that appears as cause and effect is unreal, for there is
-interdependence, and there is both beginning and end.
-
-The transformations can not exist without the light of Atma. If they are
-self-manifest however, they are not in any way different from Atma
-itself.
-
-Do not think Atma is many, (as there is Atma in every being). It is
-ignorance to think so. The space confined in a pot and the limitless
-space are one and the same, even so the sun and its image in water, the
-air inside and outside.
-
-Men call gold by different names, according to the different ornaments
-it forms. So the language of the Vedas and the language of ordinary men
-give different names to Bhagavan.
-
-The cloud that is generated by the sun, that appears by the light of the
-sun, that is in fact rays of the sun so transformed stands between the
-eye and the sun. Even so Ahankara, proceeding from Brahman, manifested
-by Brahman, even a part of Brahman, eclipses the perception of Brahman
-by Jiva.
-
-When the cloud disappears, the eye perceives the sun. When Ahankara, the
-_upadhi_ of Atma, disappears by discrimination, then the Jiva perceives
-"I am Brahman."
-
-When by discrimination, such as this, the tie of unreal Ahankara is cut
-as under, and the unfailing perception of Atma becomes fixed, it is
-called _Atyantika_ Pralaya.
-
-(Atyantika is from Atyanta = ati+anta, the very last. After this
-Pralaya, which is individual and not general, one does not return to
-life in the universe. It is the final liberation of a man from the
-limitations of life in Brahmanda).
-
-Every day all beings, from Brahma downwards, undergo according to some
-seers of subtleties states of beginning and end.
-
-These beginnings and ends are caused by the changes in states of all
-beings subject to transformation, changes that follow the flow of time.
-(One does not grow adult or old in one day. The change must be going on
-constantly. The fruit does not ripen in one day. But the process of
-ripening day by day is not perceptible. Water flows in a continued
-stream but the water particles constantly change at a given space. So
-the lamp burns and the flame looks one and the same though the particles
-that ignite do constantly change. Even so our body is not the same from
-day to day. There is a change going on every moment of our life.
-Particles of the body are rejected every day and they are replaced by
-new particles. There is the beginning with our new particles, and an end
-or Pralaya with the old particles.) This is called NITYA Pralaya. (Nitya
-means constant).
-
-Pralaya is thus fourfold -- Nitya, Naimittika, Prakritika and Atyantika.
-
-Such are the stories of Bhagavat as related in the Bhagavata Purana.
-
-Rishi Narayana first related the Purana to Narada, Narada related it to
-Vyasa and Vyasa to Suka. Suta heard the Purana from Sukadeva, when he
-related it to Raja Parikshit, and he expounded it to the assembly of
-Rishis at Naimisha, headed by Sounaka.
-
-Prakriti changes its forms and states. The body disintegrates into
-particles, particles into molecules, and molecules into atoms. Solid
-becomes liquid, liquid becomes gaseous and gaseous becomes
-ultra-gaseous. Life manifests itself through the endless varieties of
-Prakriti and becomes manifold in its manifestations. The hard mineral
-matter does not admit the mineral life to be expressed in any other way
-than by a fixed form. The more plastic vegetable matter shews vegetable
-life in all the activities of life and growth. Subtler matter appears in
-the animals and makes the sensing of the object world possible. Even
-sublter matter becomes the basis of brain activities. The Prakritic
-basis of the mind is two-fold in its character Ahankara and Mahat. When
-the mind is capable of thinking only from the standpoint of one life and
-one birth only, it is limited by Ahankara matter. When that limit is
-overcome, mind is on the plane of Mahat. Individuality is not lost, but
-the individual has consciousness of all births, _i.e._ consciousness on
-the plane of the universe. Such consciousness does not normally exist in
-Triloki. When a man becomes normally conscious on the plane of Mahat, he
-is carried to Mahar Loka and becomes a Rishi. Bhrigu is such a Rishi.
-The acquirement of such consciousness is the object of life evolution in
-our solar system. When the solar system is destroyed, it is the Manasic
-consciousness that alone survives. The three Lokas -- Bhur, Bhuvar and
-Svar are destroyed, The Prakritic forms and states of these three Lokas
-become destroyed and the different states of consciousness corresponding
-to those forms and states finally disappear. The harvest of Manasic
-evolution, which is the only harvest reaped by means of one solar system
-is stored in Mahar Loka. But when the three lower Lokas are destroyed,
-the flames of dissolution reach even Mahar Loka and all the gains of a
-Kalpa's evolution are transferred to the higher plane of Jana Loka. This
-is therefore the highest plane of our consciousness. The highest evolved
-beings of the previous solar system could not after Pralaya go beyond
-Jana Loka, and their consciousness was the consciousness of Jana Loka.
-When our earth was formed and when they came down in time for further
-evolution, they brought down their highest consciousness with them as a
-possibility, for it was obscured in their entrance to Triloki. As the
-soul gathers spiritual strength in Svarga Loka after death, so the
-disembodied soul after Prayala gathers spiritual strength in Jana Loka
-or the Loka of Kumaras. "When the three Lokas are consumed by fire from
-the mouth of Sankarshana, afflicted by the heat, Bhrigu and others go to
-Jana Loka" III-II-XXX. The Lord of Yoga goes by means of Sushumna
-through the radiant path in his subtle body and at last reaches Mahar
-Loka, where Bhrigu and other Rishis who live for one Kalpa remain. "Then
-seeing the Triloki consumed by fire from the mouth of Ananta he goes
-towards that supreme abode, which is adorned by the chariots of great
-Siddhas, and which lasts for the whole life period of Brahma."
-(II-2-XXVI).
-
-Those who did not reach the Manasic state, in the last Kalpa were no
-acquisitions to the higher planes of Brahmanda, which stand over the
-three mortal planes, where all experience is to be gathered. Those who
-developed the Manasic state were gathered to the third of the higher
-planes, Jana Loka, because further development was possible, nay it was
-a necessity, in the Triloki that was to come. But there were others, who
-did not quite reach the Manasic state, but they were still on the way to
-acquire such state, and in fact they acquired the human form. They were
-also preserved to carry out a certain purpose in the life evolution of
-the coming Kalpa which will be shortly mentioned. How they were
-preserved, the Puranas do not speak of. They became the Pitris of the
-present Kalpa. The Pitris reached different states of development and
-were therefore classed under seven heads. Some of them had developed the
-fire in them and some were without the fire. "Agnishvatta, Barhishad,
-Somapa, and Ajyapa are Pitris with fire; the others are without fire.
-They were all wedded to Svadha, the daughter of Daksha." IV-1-III.
-
-The mention of the word "fire" requires a little explanation. The
-Upanishads say that the three mortal Lokas of form Bhur, Bhuvar and Svar
-are the transformations of "Tejobanna" _i.e._ of fire, water and earth.
-The other two elements do not enter into the constitution of forms. The
-element earth predominates on the plane of Bhur or the material plane.
-Water is supreme on Bhuvar or the Astral plane. Our Kamic tendencies
-proceed from the presence of water in us. Fire is the element of Svarga
-or the Mental plane. Fire devas are therefore the highest devas of
-Triloki. The forty-nine forms of fire are therefore so many forms of
-consciousness. Some of the Pitris developed fire in them, _i.e._ they
-developed the principle of mind in them, in however rudimental a form it
-might be.
-
-Devas and Rishis were also preserved. Jana Loka is the Loka of Kumaras.
-We shall therefore call the souls preserved in Jana Loka as Kumaras, or
-Kumaric souls.
-
-Commenting on the fourth sloka, twelfth chapter, Third Skandha, Sridhara
-says: -- "Sanaka and others are not created in every Kalpa. The mention
-of their creation has reference to the Brahma Kalpa, _i.e._ the first
-Kalpa. In fact the objects of Mukhya creation and others are brought
-into existence in every Kalpa. Sanaka and others are only created in the
-Brahma Kalpa and they follow the other Kalpas." The Mukhya creation has
-reference to chapter 10, Skandha III. It is the same as Urdha Srotas (p.
-25). Sridhara means to say that plants, animals and men are only created
-in every Kalpa.
-
-The Kumaric souls of the last Kalpa that went to Jana Loka have to play
-the most prominent part in the present Kalpa and they are the heroes of
-our solar system. Their stay at Jana Loka was only a fitting preparation
-for the most responsible work of the present Kalpa. The Ishvara of our
-system, addressing Puranjana, said: -- "Wishing to have an abode, drawn
-to earthly enjoyments, thou didst leave me. But, o great one, both I and
-thou were swans (Hansa) and friends in the Manas Lake. We dwelt there
-without any abode, for one thousand years." IV. 28 LIV. "One thousand
-years" is indicative of Pralaya, which lasts for one thousand yuga
-cycles. In Pralaya, the kumaric soul had no body _i.e._ no abode. The
-body separates Jiva from Ishvara. Without the impediment, the obstacle
-of the body, without any obscuring agency, the Jiva meets Ishvara face
-to face in Jana Loka, and being both essentially alike become friends.
-Narada says, esoterically the Manasa Laka is the heart and Hansa means
-the pure. But in Pralaya, the heart of the Jiva is in Jana Loka, which
-is the Manasa or mental Lake. This friendly union of Jiva and Ishvara
-gives all the promise of the future for the Jiva.
-
-What is not preserved in Naimittika Pralaya, the forms of the past
-kalpa, are all borne in the mind of Brahma as images. It is the mind of
-Brahma that reproduces the forms of the previous creation. The image of
-all that was remains in the mind of Brahma. Creation in Brahma Kalpa is
-not the same as creation in the succeeding Kalpas. In Brahma Kalpa, all
-the seven Lokas, and the dwellers of all the planes are created. In the
-succeeding Kalpas, the three Lokas and their dwellers only are created.
-
-The Naimittika Pralaya comes on, as Brahma sleeps.
-
-This Pralaya corresponds to our physical death. When we die, the body is
-destroyed. Just as when the universe bodied Brahma goes to sleep, His
-Triloki body is destroyed. Men go after death first to Bhuvar Loka, and
-then to Svarga Loka. At Pralaya, the Manasika Jivas first go to Mahar
-Loka and then to Jana Loka.
-
-The Naimittika Pralaya affords the greatest relief to Jivas. It makes up
-for all the ups and downs of manifested life, for all miseries, all
-sorrows, all sufferings and all disappointments. Ishvara can do more for
-Jivas in Pralaya, than in manifestation. He gives company to those, who
-by their advancement reach Jana Loka, There is the Ishvara of our system
-or Brahmanda and there is the Ishvara of many systems.
-
-The Ishvara of many systems, "Bhagavan Himself" is the First Purusha. He
-is the manifestor of the Tatvas, the first Principles, the Karan or
-causal creation, which enter into the constitution of all the solar
-systems or Brahmandas. When He wishes to become many, to appear through
-many manifestations, to bring up all unto Himself and His own state,
-through oeons and oeons of cosmic manifestation, though it might be, the
-Tatvas start forth into activity and form an ocean by themselves. Many
-solar systems are evolved out of this Karan Samudra or the ocean of the
-causes and each system gets its Ishvara, the Second Purusha. That Second
-Purusha becomes three fold -- Brahma, Vishnu and Siva, for the Creation,
-Preservation and Dissolution of His own Universe. He is Virat Purusha or
-the universe bodied, Narayana seated on the waters of Karana Samudra,
-and Sahasra Sirsha Purusha or the thousand headed Purusha of the
-Upanishads. "All this, the past, present and future is this Purusha. The
-universe is pervaded by Him As Prana (_i.e._ the sun, for Prana is the
-solar deity according to the Sruti. _Sridhara_) by illumining his own
-circle illumines the outside as well, so Purusha by illumining his Virat
-body illumines the inside and outside of this Brahmanda as well. I
-(Brahma) create by His direction, Siva destroys, under His control, as
-Vishnu, He preserves this universe He is the primal Avatara." II. 6.
-
-"First of all, Bhagavan took form as Purusha for the creation of the
-Lokas form made by Mahat and others, having 16 parts. (_Mahat and
-others_ -- Mahat, Ahankara, and the Tanmatras. 16 parts the eleven
-Indriyas and the 5 elements. Though this is not the form of Bhagavan
-meaning the First Purusha still for the Upasana in Virat form of the
-Virat Purusha who indwells all Jivas, this is given. _Sridhara_). (In
-the Padma Kalpa), Brahma, the Lord of Prajapatis, appeared in the lotus
-that rose out of the navel of (this Purusha), who while lying down on
-the ocean, spread the sleep of Samadhi all round. The Lokas are but
-parts of His body. His form is pure and intensified Satva. The Yogins
-perceive Him by their vision of wisdom, as one looking wonderful with a
-thousand feet, thighs, hands and mouths, with a thousand heads, ears,
-eyes and noses, glittering with a thousand crowns, and ornaments. This
-(Virat Purusha) is the immutable seed and final resort of the many
-Avataras. Brahma is His part. Marichi and other Prajapatis are parts of
-Brahma. So through parts of His part, Devas, animals and men are
-created. (He does not appear and disappear like other Avataras. He is
-the end not only of the Avataras, but of all beings. _Sridhara_.)" I-3.
-
-Brahma appeared in the lotus, it is said, in the last Kalpa, which from
-this event is named Padma Kalpa. How Brahma appeared out of Narayana in
-the previous Kalpas is not given. That he appeared in our Kalpa in the
-same way as in the last Kalpa is evident, as no difference is noted.
-Brahma took up the creation, which was two-fold -- direct or Manasa and
-indirect or through Prajapatis and Manu. The creation or bringing into
-manifestation of those that had been preserved at Pralaya is direct or
-Manasa. The mind born sons of Brahma took up positions in the universe
-of duty and responsibility and in this Kalpa they have not to look to
-themselves, but to others. Their own evolution is not a matter of their
-concern. The innumerable Monads were created through Manu and the real
-history of the Kalpa is the history of their evolution.
-
-First there was the process of involution. There was no form and forms
-had to be first brought forth. Limitation after limitation had to the
-imposed, to chain life in forms. For when set forms were arrived at with
-set organs, Jivas could be trusted with independent action.
-
-No energy is spent in vain in the economy of the universe. Each monadic
-flow as it appeared in the universe could he carried on to a certain
-stage, by one common guiding influence. This requires a little
-explanation.
-
-Each particle of each Tatva is alive. The Tatvic life is the life of the
-first Purusha. But the particles combine, and the power of combination
-proceeds from the life of the second Purusha, the Ishvara of our system.
-Every combination however large has the life of Ishvara in it and it is
-that life which keeps up the combination. Each combination for the time
-being has its ruler, who is the viceroy of Ishvara, and who is called
-the Monad of that combination. Monad is Jivatma or Jiva Atma or Atma as
-limited by every Jiva.
-
-The combination transforms, but the Monad remains constant. The
-vegetable becomes animal, and the animal becomes man, but one Monad runs
-through all these transformations.
-
-By rulership over higher and higher combinations the Monad or Jivatma,
-ultimately approaches the state of Ishvara Himself and that is the goal
-of evolution in this universe.
-
-Whenever a combination is formed, there is one life governing that
-combination -- the life of the ruler of that combination. Ail other
-lives have to surrender themselves completely and entirely to that one
-life. This is the law and we have to bow down our heads to the
-inevitable. There is life in every cell that composes the human body.
-But the cell lives are all subordinated to the life of the man, the
-Jivatma ruling the combination that forms the man. So long as the cell
-is attached to the human combination, it has no independence whatsoever.
-And this is to the immense benefit of the cells themselves. They receive
-the impress of souls much more evolved than their own and are able to
-evolve themselves at a much more rapid rate, than if they had been left
-to themselves. This is the law of giving and taking, the law of
-sacrifice, the Yajna which is the essence of creation. And even as men
-approach the state of Ishvara, they have to surrender themselves
-completely to Him and to merge themselves in His existence.
-
-The Jivic or Monadic flow first appears on the plane of Svarga, it comes
-down to Bhuvar and then to Bhur, to appear finally in the mineral
-Kingdom of our Earth. This process of coming down does not require
-separate guidance for separate combinations. The downward flow is
-homogeneous. It is carried on under the guidance of the Prajapatis. It
-is all involution during this process taking in grosser and grosser
-matter and not rejecting anything. Rudra had no work to do during the
-earliest stages of monadic life. The mineral Kingdom appeared and the
-Himalayan chain reared up its head. The legend says the sons of Himalaya
-had wings on and they could move about but the Devas cut down their
-wings and they became fixed. No doubt the mineral Kingdom hardened and
-became immobile in time. The immobility of the mineral Kingdom, the
-final reach of matter in its downward course was the turning point in
-the life history of Jivas. Their foetal stage was over and they were now
-born into the Kalpa, as it were.
-
-There was need for separation now, for the rejection of particles and
-the drawing in of new ones, and Durga appeared as the daughter of
-Himalaya.
-
-She became wedded to Siva once more and since then there was change
-continually going on in all forms of life, that evolved out of the
-mineral Kingdom. There was continual adjustment of external and internal
-conditions, called life. The vegetable appeared, the animal appeared and
-the man appeared. The life process means continual transformation. Forms
-changed and dissolved. Change is continually going on all round and is
-called Nitya Pralaya.
-
-During the transformation that goes on, combinations are guided by
-rulers, who are the Pitris. They lead the combinations on till the human
-form is reached. When the human form is reached each combination is a
-man. The highest of the Pitris can give only germinal Manas. When the
-Pitris give to the combination, all that they could give, their work is
-over, for this Kalpa.
-
-Then come the Kumaric souls, the Puranjanas from the Manasa Laka (P.
-89). They find the abode ready made and leaving their friend and
-companion they enter their chosen abodes. There are nine gate ways in
-that abode, and every enjoyment reaches Puranjana through those gate
-ways. He becomes mad in the pursuit of enjoyments. He forgets himself.
-He forgets his friend the eternal companion of Jiva. He identifies
-himself with the abode. He thinks that he is inseparable from that
-abode. So he goes on and on hopelessly in his course of riotous joy and
-the Friend whom he forgets gives him rebuff for every joy that he meets.
-The rebuffs at last make him a little attentive. The friend then speaks
-through the Vedas, the Smritis through sages and at last He comes down
-Himself as an Avatara.
-
-The Eternal Friend first allows Puranjana to run on in the midst of
-enjoyments, just as he likes. If he goes beyond the limits of temperance
-and moderation he gets some unpleasant experience. If he does something
-wrong, he feels the painful consequence. The sting of pain makes
-Puranjana ponder over what he does. He registers the pleasurable and
-painful experiences and reasons about the causes and effects. He tries
-to know what is right and what is wrong.
-
-With the power of discrimination in its infancy, with the "enjoyment"
-nature or the self-seeking Asuric element too strong in him, Puranjana,
-the Kumaric soul, is helpless. He is drifted away, though sometimes much
-against his will.
-
-The Friend comes to the rescue. The Devas and Asuras combine and with
-their joint efforts, the ocean of Milk is churned, and the Goddess of
-Evolution, the Energy of Vishnu, makes Her divine appearance in our
-universe. The Devas become more than a match for the Asuras. The
-Vaivasvata Manvantara steps in, the Manvantara teeming with the fate of
-man and of the universe. Ishvara, the eternal friend of Puranjana, is
-most busy in the Vaivasvata Manvantara. Every effort is made to raise
-humanity to a higher level and to open out all the possibilities of man.
-
-First, the enjoyments of Svarga are held out before the rising vision of
-men as an allurement. Man admires those enjoyments and makes every
-effort to attain them. The Vedic sacrifice is revealed to Pururavas, who
-becomes mad after Urvasi, the nymph of Svarga. Later on, the heavenly
-cow, Surabhi, attracts Visvamitra. And he becomes the chief actor in the
-promulgation of Vedic sacrifice. In the firmness of resolve, in the bold
-and determined pursuit of objects, and in the intolerance of
-inferiority, Visvamitra stands prominently out as an example to
-humanity, for all ages to come and it is meet and proper that in the
-next Manvantara, he will act as one of the seven sages guiding the
-affairs of the universe.
-
-The Karma Kanda of the Vedas is a monument of Visvamitara's gigantic
-efforts for the good of humanity. Ishvara made revelations. He prompted
-the sages.
-
-If the Karma Kanda holds out the allurements of Svarga life, it lays
-down rules and restrictions at the same time, that regulate life and
-beget temperance and moderation. Meritorious acts are enjoined and acts
-that retard evolution are prohibited. Men do what is good and avoid what
-is evil, that they may attain heavenly things. They do what is right and
-shun what is wrong, not because that is the Law, the divine will, but
-because it gives them some reward. All the same, the mind is trained,
-the man curbed and regulated. The bitter pill is taken and if the child
-thinks that it is for the sweetmeat he is only mistaken. When the child
-grows he knows, that he takes the bitter pill as it is the law of nature
-that he should do so. Do what is right, because that is the law. Shun
-what is wrong, because it is against the law. We are all carried forward
-by the law, and we must willingly give ourselves up to that law. When we
-do that, we partake ourselves of divine life. The ground had to be
-prepared for further teachings.
-
-Events in Svarga foreshadow and forestall events that are to transpire
-on the earth. The Devas and Asuras by their mutual fight in Svarga bring
-about a state of things which casts its shadow on the earth below.
-
-Two great events happened in Svarga the killing of Vritra, and the
-deposition of Bali.
-
-Vritra, though an Asura was a votary of Sankarshana, the Shankara aspect
-of Vishnu. Vritra was great in all respects and his wisdom extracted the
-admiration of Indra. But he represented the idea of personal self in
-Jiva, which is so strong-rooted, and which is the hardest thing to over
-come. Vritra was killed by a weapon, which is no other than the most
-willing and ready sacrifice of personal self by Dadhichi.
-
-Bali, the Asura king, ungrudgingly gave all that he had to Vamana. The
-Asura had become so great both in intellect and in spirituality, that
-there was no question of killing him or of his being overpowered by the
-Devas. The Asuras and Devas both combined to make Svarga, the
-store-house of spiritual life. The Asuras by their willing surrender
-permitted the Devas to have entire hold of Svarga. By this sacrifice,
-they established their indisputable right to Svarga, in the broad
-dispensation of providence and in the succeeding Manvantara, Bali is to
-become the Indra of the Devas.
-
-Vamana was the same as Lord Sri Krishna on our earth. If diplomacy had
-succeeded so easily below as above, if the Asura chiefs on earth had
-behaved as splendidly as Bali in Svarga, the horrors and heartrending
-scenes of Kurukshetra could have been avoided. The same result was
-however brought about in Svarga as it was subsequently brought about on
-the Earth. The actor was the same, the diplomacy was the same, only the
-result of diplomacy was different on the different planes. The
-deposition of Bali was bloodless while the deposition of Duryodhana was
-a bloody one.
-
-Coming down to Earth let us see how events in Svarga were followed up on
-the terrestrial plane.
-
-Two great human Avataras came, one the ideal and the other the apostle
-of unselfishness. But we must take a running survey of the Avataras as a
-whole.
-
-Vishnu appeared on Earth Himself, through His direct manifestations
-called Avataras. Ten of them have been specially picked out as Great
-Avataras, though no specification has been made in the Bhagavata Purana.
-
-There were three great Asuric movements in this Kalpa, caused by the
-three successive incarnations of Jaya and Vijaya. And these gave our
-four great Avataras.
-
-Hiranyaksha was killed by Varaha, Hiranyakasipu was killed by Nrisinha.
-Ravana and Kumbhakarna were killed by Rama. Sisupala and Dantavakra were
-killed by Sri Krishna. Kurma was a great Avatara as He prepared the way
-for the spiritual regeneration of the universe, by the Churning of the
-ocean of Milk.
-
-Vamana was a great Avatara as He reclaimed the Triloki from the Asuras.
-
-Parasurama and Buddha did work, which revolutionised the whole humanity.
-
-Kalki will give the final blow to the Asuric element in us.
-
-Matsya is important with reference to our own Manvantara. Every
-Manvantara is followed by a deluge, which destroys the existing
-continents and swallows up all living beings. When the last Manvantara
-was over, our Manu saved the germs of creation with the help of Matsya.
-Opinion is divided as to whether there is Pralaya after every
-Manvantara. The Bhagavata Purana says when there was deluge (sanplava)
-following the Chakshusha Manvantara, Vishnu assumed the form of Matsya.
-Commenting on this, Sridhara says there is no Pralaya at the end of a
-Manvantara. There may not be such a Pralaya at the end of a Manvantara
-as happens at the end of a Kalpa. But other Puranas speak of some sort
-of Pralaya on the expiry of every Manvantara. Surya Siddhanta, the
-renowned work on Astronomy, also says: -- "There is a period called
-Sandhi (the meet between two Manvantaras) measured by the period of one
-Satya Yuga, followed by another Manvantara. There is deluge by water
-then."
-
-The Avataras of Vishnu infuse more and more of Satva into men, that they
-may become Satvika. Increasing Satva put down Rajas and Tamas in man and
-makes him divine.
-
-But of all these Avataras two stand out most prominently one the ideal
-and the other the apostle of unselfishness. The brightest luminary of
-the solar line held out in His life, an example of unselfishness, of
-purity of character and of scrupulous regard to duty, an example that is
-the admiration of all people in all ages, as perfect as the limits of
-humanity will allow and as elevated as the loftiest ideal of human
-character may be, unsurpassed in its pathetic grandeur, unrivalled in
-the straight forward pursuit of duty along a most thorny and uneven
-path. The divine founder of Dvaraka of the Lunar line asserted Himself
-as the supreme Ishvara, He took up the reins of Triloki in His own
-hands, the Devas installed Him as the king of Svarga or Govinda, and men
-on earth had now to look up to Him only and not to the Devas for their
-guidance. For men had now to pass the limits of Triloki, and the friend
-of Puranjana came down Himself to hold out the torch of divine light.
-Sri Krishna laid down the triple path of Karma, Bhakti and Jnana, and
-shewed the relative importance of each. His teachings are perfect,
-thorough and exhaustive. Ever since His manifestation, those teachings
-have been re-iterated in a thousand forms, they have been adapted to
-different powers of understanding and all the modern scriptures of
-Hinduism have grown up, round the central point of those teachings. Men
-had no longer to complain of teachings. They had to follow those
-teachings now and to live up to them. They had to begin with
-unselfishness, and end with liberation. New vistas opened out before the
-growing spiritual vision of men, vistas of new worlds, new planes, of
-masters of Yoga and wisdom, forming every link between man and Ishvara.
-Possibilities became realities. Liberation was no longer a word of the
-lips.
-
-Now liberation is a relative term. First there may be liberation from
-the bonds of Triloki only. Or it may be from the limitations of Janaloka
-which was the highest possibility with which the Jiva started. Or it may
-be liberation from the bonds of the Brahmanda itself. The last
-liberation is again two fold in its character. There may be liberation
-from all concrete things and all ideas, including the idea of Ishvara
-Himself or the liberation may lead to the great Ishvara from whom many
-solar systems proceed. Mukti is not only liberation from bondage. It is
-also something more. It is an acquisition, Starting from the plane of
-Jana Loka, the Kumaric soul acquires higher and higher possibilities. He
-may transcend Jana Loka. He may transcend even the Satya Loka. But
-passage across Satya Loka is not easy in this Kalpa. Mukti in its
-fullest and highest sense means freedom from all limitations caused by
-Prakriti, caused by Time and Space and identification with Brahman, who
-is absolute bliss, absolute consciousness and absolute existence beyond
-the limits of Time and Space. This is called Atyantika Pralaya or
-absolute dissolution. But this Mukti lean never be obtained till all the
-duties of a man are performed. These duties are nothing else but
-sacrifices or Yajna. Man must perform each one of his duties he must
-perform all that he owes to himself, to all other beings, and last of
-all the highest duty he owes to the Ishvara of the Universe the Lord of
-Sacrifice, Yajnesvara Himself, "Adhiyajna am I, here in the body, best
-of living beings."
-
-The Bhagavatas do not care to go beyond the Yajna Purusha, They do not
-care to leave the life of sacrifice, as long as their Ishvara stands out
-as the embodiment of all sacrifice.
-
-"Salutation to Thee, Bhagavan, let me meditate on Vasudeva. Salutations
-to Pradyumna, Aniruddha and to Sankarshana. He who, by knowing these
-_murtis_ in the _murtiless_, whose only _mutrti_ is mantra makes
-offerings to Yajna Purusha, is the complete seer." I. 5. 37 "When the
-Indriyas," said Kapila, "that manifest the objects of external and
-internal perception, become trained by the performance of Vedic Karma,
-their spontaneous Vritti (or function) in a man of concentrated mind is
-in Satva which is the same as Vishnu. This Vritti which is void of all
-selfishness is Bhakti in Bhagavana. It is superior to Mukti. It
-instantly destroys the Kosha, as the digestive fire consumes food. The
-devoted have no yearning for that Mukti which makes the Jiva one with
-Me. But they prefer ever to talk with each other about Me, to exert
-themselves for My sake and ever to meditate on me. Mukti comes to them
-unasked. My Vibhutis, the eight Siddhis, and all the glory of the
-highest Lokas are theirs though they want them not. I am their Teacher,
-their Friend, their companion, their all. So even Kala can not destroy
-them."
-
-Again, "The devoted spurn Salokya, Sarshti, Samipya, Sarupya and
-Sayujya, even when offered to them and they prefer to serve Bhagavan
-ever and ever. Compassion and friendliness to all beings are the
-essential qualifications of the devoted. They must be humble respectful
-and self controlled. They must pass their days in hearing and reciting
-the glory of Bhagavan." Kapila makes the following classification as to
-the final destiny of men (p. 46):
-
-1. Those who selfishly perform their Dharma and worship Devas and Pitris
-go to Soma Loka, and after partaking of Soma, they are again re-born.
-Their Lokas are destroyed with the daily Pralaya of Brahma.
-
-2. The worshippers of Hiranya-garbha (Brahma) reach Brahma Loka or Satya
-Loka and there wait for two Pararddhas _i.e._ for the life time of
-Brahma and upon the final dissolution of the Brahmanda, they enter with
-Hiranya-garbha, the Eternal Supreme Purusha, who is supreme Bliss and
-their sense of individuality becomes then lost.
-
-3. "Brahma with Marichi and other Rishis, with Kumaras and other lords
-of Yoga, and with Siddhas who are leaders of Yoga, do by their unselfish
-action, and at the same time the retention of their individuality, and
-their vision of separateness reach Saguna Brahma or the Second Purusha,
-who is the Ishvara of our system. And when Kala, as an aspect of
-Ishvara, causes a disturbance in the Gunas on the approach of the
-creative period they are born again just as they had been before. (They
-are born because of their individuality and their vision of
-separateness. They are born in the same state on account of their
-non-attachment and their unselfishness. _Sridhara_). As long as the
-Triloki lasts, they enjoy all the divine things of Satya Loka, according
-to their Karma. (And when the Triloki is destroyed, they attain the
-Saguna Purusha, who is First Avatara. _Sridhara_). When the Gunas are
-disturbed again they come back (i.e. they revert to their former posts
-respectively. _Sridhara_)" III 32 xii-xv.
-
-4. Those who unselfishly perform their duties and give themselves up
-entirely to the Supreme Purusha void of all attachment and all egoism,
-calm, tranquil and pure in the mind go through the gateway of the Sun to
-the all pervading Purusha, the Lord of all, the material and efficient
-cause of all this.
-
-Commenting on II 2 xxviii, Sridhara says: -- "There are three courses
-for those that go to Brahma Loka. Those who go by the excellence of
-their merits, become holders of responsible positions in the next Kalpa,
-according to their respective merits. Those who go there by worshipping
-Hiranya-garbha and others, become liberated along with Brahma. Those who
-are worshippers of Bhagavan, pierce the Brahmanda at will and reach the
-State of Vishnu."
-
-The classification is the same as made by Kapila.
-
-Hiranya-garbha Upasana, which was prevalent at one time is now out of
-use. It was the worship of the Life aspect of Ishvara, as manifested in
-the Solar system. There is a higher duty, the highest duty of a Jiva
-manifested in this universe, to realise that this universe itself is a
-part of a big universe, and there is Ishvara of that big universe
-Bhagavan Himself and to surrender one self completely up to Him in pure
-love and devotion. He will not then be of this universe, but he will be
-of many universes, he will transcend the limits of all the seven planes
-of our system at will. What his work then will be, it is for Bhagavan to
-say not for him. The work of Bhagavan is his work, the life of Bhagavan
-is his life. He becomes a Bhagavata. The Gopis are ideal Bhagavatas and
-the Vrindavana Lila is the consummation on this earth of the relation of
-a Bhagavata with Bhagavan. This to all Bhaktas is the highest form of
-Mukti.
-
-To the Bhakta, there is no Mukti, without the universe and the lord of
-universe.
-
-Forget the universe, forget every thing, only meditate on the eternal
-unchanging element in you, be fixed in that and that only and you attain
-Atyantika Pralaya.
-
-*PEACE BE TO ALL.*
-
-*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK STUDY OF THE BHAGAVATA PURANA
-***
-
-
-
-
-A Word from Project Gutenberg
-
-
-We will update this book if we find any errors.
-
-This book can be found under: http://www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/39442
-
-Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no one
-owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation (and
-you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without permission
-and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules, set forth in the
-General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to copying and
-distributing Project Gutenberg(tm) electronic works to protect the
-Project Gutenberg(tm) concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a
-registered trademark, and may not be used if you charge for the eBooks,
-unless you receive specific permission. If you do not charge anything
-for copies of this eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You may
-use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative
-works, reports, performances and research. They may be modified and
-printed and given away - you may do practically _anything_ with public
-domain eBooks. Redistribution is subject to the trademark license,
-especially commercial redistribution.
-
-
-
-The Full Project Gutenberg License
-
-
-_Please read this before you distribute or use this work._
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg(tm) mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work (or
-any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project
-Gutenberg(tm) License available with this file or online at
-http://www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use & Redistributing Project Gutenberg(tm)
-electronic works
-
-
-*1.A.* By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg(tm)
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all the
-terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy all
-copies of Project Gutenberg(tm) electronic works in your possession. If
-you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project
-Gutenberg(tm) electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the
-terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or
-entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
-
-*1.B.* "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few things
-that you can do with most Project Gutenberg(tm) electronic works even
-without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See paragraph
-1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg(tm) electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement
-and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg(tm) electronic
-works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-*1.C.* The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
-Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of
-Project Gutenberg(tm) electronic works. Nearly all the individual works
-in the collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an
-individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are
-located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you
-from copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating
-derivative works based on the work as long as all references to Project
-Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the
-Project Gutenberg(tm) mission of promoting free access to electronic
-works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg(tm) works in compliance with
-the terms of this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg(tm) name
-associated with the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this
-agreement by keeping this work in the same format with its attached full
-Project Gutenberg(tm) License when you share it without charge with
-others.
-
-*1.D.* The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in
-a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check
-the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement
-before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or
-creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project
-Gutenberg(tm) work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning
-the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United
-States.
-
-*1.E.* Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-*1.E.1.* The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg(tm) License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg(tm) work (any work
-on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
- almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away
- or re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License
- included with this eBook or online at http://www.gutenberg.org
-
-*1.E.2.* If an individual Project Gutenberg(tm) electronic work is
-derived from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating
-that it is posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can
-be copied and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying
-any fees or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a
-work with the phrase "Project Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on
-the work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs
-1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the
-Project Gutenberg(tm) trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or
-1.E.9.
-
-*1.E.3.* If an individual Project Gutenberg(tm) electronic work is
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and
-distribution must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and
-any additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg(tm) License for all works posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of
-this work.
-
-*1.E.4.* Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project
-Gutenberg(tm) License terms from this work, or any files containing a
-part of this work or any other work associated with Project
-Gutenberg(tm).
-
-*1.E.5.* Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg(tm) License.
-
-*1.E.6.* You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
-word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or
-distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg(tm) work in a format other than
-"Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official version
-posted on the official Project Gutenberg(tm) web site
-(http://www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or
-expense to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a
-means of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original
-"Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include
-the full Project Gutenberg(tm) License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-*1.E.7.* Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg(tm) works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-*1.E.8.* You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg(tm) electronic works
-provided that
-
- - You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg(tm) works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg(tm) trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation."
-
- - You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg(tm)
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg(tm)
- works.
-
- - You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
-
- - You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg(tm) works.
-
-
-*1.E.9.* If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg(tm) electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael
-Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg(tm) trademark. Contact the
-Foundation as set forth in Section 3. below.
-
-*1.F.*
-
-*1.F.1.* Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg(tm) collection.
-Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg(tm) electronic works, and the
-medium on which they may be stored, may contain "Defects," such as, but
-not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or corrupt data, transcription
-errors, a copyright or other intellectual property infringement, a
-defective or damaged disk or other medium, a computer virus, or computer
-codes that damage or cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-*1.F.2.* LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg(tm) trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg(tm) electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal fees.
-YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT LIABILITY,
-BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE PROVIDED IN
-PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE TRADEMARK OWNER, AND
-ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE LIABLE TO YOU FOR
-ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR INCIDENTAL DAMAGES
-EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH DAMAGE.
-
-*1.F.3.* LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with
-your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with
-the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a
-refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity
-providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to
-receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy
-is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further
-opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-*1.F.4.* Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS,' WITH NO OTHER
-WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO
-WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTIBILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-*1.F.5.* Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages.
-If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the
-law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be
-interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by
-the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any
-provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions.
-
-*1.F.6.* INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg(tm) electronic works in accordance
-with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
-promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg(tm) electronic works,
-harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees,
-that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do
-or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg(tm)
-work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any
-Project Gutenberg(tm) work, and (c) any Defect you cause.
-
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg(tm)
-
-
-Project Gutenberg(tm) is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers
-including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists
-because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from
-people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need, is critical to reaching Project Gutenberg(tm)'s
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg(tm) collection will remain
-freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure and
-permanent future for Project Gutenberg(tm) and future generations. To
-learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and
-how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4 and the
-Foundation web page at http://www.pglaf.org .
-
-
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
-Foundation
-
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the state
-of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal Revenue
-Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification number is
-64-6221541. Its 501(c)(3) letter is posted at
-http://www.gutenberg.org/fundraising/pglaf . Contributions to the
-Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the
-full extent permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr.
-S. Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered
-throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at 809
-North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887, email
-business@pglaf.org. Email contact links and up to date contact
-information can be found at the Foundation's web site and official page
-at http://www.pglaf.org
-
-For additional contact information:
-
- Dr. Gregory B. Newby
- Chief Executive and Director
- gbnewby@pglaf.org
-
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation
-
-
-Project Gutenberg(tm) depends upon and cannot survive without wide
-spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations where
-we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular state
-visit http://www.gutenberg.org/fundraising/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make any
-statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from outside
-the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other ways
-including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To donate,
-please visit: http://www.gutenberg.org/fundraising/donate
-
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg(tm) electronic
-works.
-
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart is the originator of the Project Gutenberg(tm)
-concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared
-with anyone. For thirty years, he produced and distributed Project
-Gutenberg(tm) eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg(tm) eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S. unless
-a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily keep eBooks
-in compliance with any particular paper edition.
-
-Each eBook is in a subdirectory of the same number as the eBook's eBook
-number, often in several formats including plain vanilla ASCII,
-compressed (zipped), HTML and others.
-
-Corrected _editions_ of our eBooks replace the old file and take over
-the old filename and etext number. The replaced older file is renamed.
-_Versions_ based on separate sources are treated as new eBooks receiving
-new filenames and etext numbers.
-
-Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:
-
- http://www.gutenberg.org
-
-This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg(tm),
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
diff --git a/39442.zip b/39442.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index 2ae61d8..0000000
--- a/39442.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ